《Foreign Land Reclamation By a Vegetable-growing Skeleton》 Chapter 1 - One Silent and Soundless_1 1 Chapter One Silent and Soundless_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Ange was awakened by the sound of pecking, his soul slowly ignited, and waves radiating from his hollow eye sockets, sensing whatever they touched. This was the skeleton¡¯s way of observing the world. The soul stretched out andnded on Ange¡¯s ribcage, the exact spot where the pecking sounds wereing from. A small bird was pecking at the damaged part of Ange¡¯s rib, plucking out and eating the seeds embedded there. Ange maintained his position and let the bird clean his body. This was good for him. The seeds embedded inside would swell and sprout when damp, and could damage his bones. After the bird flew away, Ange got up from the ground and checked his body. Many parts had worn out again, it was time for recements¡­ After a winter¡¯s slumber, Ange¡¯s skeleton had suffered more damagepared tost year. If the damage was not fixed, his movement could be affected. However, the thought of this made Ange look troubled. He cast his gaze towards the pce behind where the well-preserved skeletons could be found, nestled inside the grand pce resembling a mountain, and which after so many years had passed, was one of the few ces whereplete skeletons could be found. The search for recement bones required entry into the pce which was a troublesome task. Though the Undead King had disappeared for a thousand years, the lingering power in Ange¡¯s soul still made him reluctant to approach the pce. He would make do this year and think about recements next year¡­ Ange dismissed the idea of going to the pce to look for recement bones, and made his way towards the nearby field. Where he stood, was a pile of hay, which was Ange¡¯s home and where he slept and sought shade. In the past, he could not bear the scorching sunlight during the day. When the sun went down, he went out to work until the next day. This was the usual schedule of the undead. When he hadpanions, they would often burrow into the hay pile and emerge covered in dry grass at dusk. Ange found this to be not ideal. The hay pile was damp and dark, attracting insects and corroding the skeleton. So Ange began to bundle up stalks of hay, stacking them to form a semi-closed cavity. He would then burrow into the cavity, protecting himself from the rain and sun, resulting in better condition of his bonespared to hispanions. Over the past few years, he no longer minded the sun¡¯s exposure, yet the old habit continued affecting him, leading him to follow the schedule of resting at sunrise and working at sunset. Now it was the evening hour, and it was time to work rigorously again. Ange was a farming skeleton at the Resting Camp¡¯s nearby farm, responsible for tilling a fifty-acre farnd for the past 1,100 years. Previously, there were more than sixty skeletons like Ange in the entire farm, each tending to a fifty-acre field. Ange was an ordinary member of the group, his only special trait being probably that he lived longer than the others. Typical skeletons did not maintain their bones, liked to chase small birds, and loved to burrow in hay piles, hence their bones decayed to uselessness after a few decades and they copsed onto the ground. asionally, higher undead flying over would notice theid-waste part of the farm and realize that the skeleton responsible had decayed. They would report this, and a new skeleton would be assigned a dozen dayster. Of course, there was definitely no harvest from the neglected farnd that year, but that was not a worry. The undead did not need food. The crops grown here were just stored for entertaining any visiting human delegations. However, given the poor rtionship between the Undead Empire and the humans, visits from humans may not ur for centuries. But what did it matter? The investment cost was not high, just a matter of maintaining sixty or so skeletons. Keeping the farm running was effortless, so much so that the upper echelons of the Undead Empire even forgot about the existence of this farm. It only continued to operate out of inertia. In this farm sustained by inertia, nobody ever noticed Ange, the remarkably long-living skeleton. Few intelligent undead ever made their way here, and since he did not decay, nobody came to throw him away. Moreover, Ange had discovered a method of prolonging one¡¯s lifespan. Some skeletons had decayed, losing their ability to act, but not all of their bodies were rotten. Some had lost an arm, others their spine was rotten, yet for the most, their feet had gone bad. When these skeletonsy immobile on the ground, Ange would dismantle the intact parts from them and rece the decayed parts of his body. Over a hundred years passed like this, hispanions had been reced more than a dozen times, but Ange still maintained his battered and worn-out body. Then, upon awakening from a long winter slumber in the 139th year, Ange found the whole world had changed. The surroundings had be utterly silent, devoid of the wails of the wraiths, the shrieks of the malignant spirits, as well as high-rank undead creatures flying across the sky from time to time. Even hispanions in the farm were no more. Ange hadn¡¯t realized what had happened, he continued with his routine work from the past hundred years, weeding, tilling, and sowing. After a week of this, he noticed that apart from the area he was responsible for, all other ces had be barren. Had another skeleton decayed? Following tradition, he immediately went on to find the recement bones. After turning over every deserted plot, Ange found fifty-nine decayed skeletons whose bodies remained somewhat intact, their soul fires extinguished. At that point, Ange finally had the feeling that something was wrong. However, being only a low-ranking farming skeleton, he couldn¡¯t understand what was amiss. On the other hand, having found more than fifty intact skeletons made him happy for a long time. Ange used his invented method of storing these skeletons in a hollow stack of straw. In the following two hundred years, he survived peacefully, relying on the recement of these skeletons. Throughout these two hundred years, Ange continued with his work, sowing and harvesting. The harvested crops would leave behind seeds, and the rest would be moved to the edge of arge cave in the farm, to be thrown down a chute. The cave was covered with breathing soil that could preserve food for a very long time, and the space inside was veryrge. It might take Ange a thousand years to fill it up all by himself. Time passed day by day, and the skeletons eventually ran out, especially as those stored in the hollow also slowly decayed. When thest of the spare skeletons was used up, one of Ange¡¯s feet shattered, which forced him to hobble out of the farm he had not left for three hundred years. The entire Undead Empire was in dead silence, with no souls to be seen at all. However, there were many weathered and broken skeletons on the ground, which, judging by their state of decay, had been dead for at least two hundred years. Why was this so? Ange, filled with doubts, wandered on this silent deadnd, searching for spare bones, and eventually found his way to the pce. The Resting Camp was the supreme existence of the Undead Empire, where the Undead King who controlled souls and eternal life slept. It had a natural oppressive aura to lower-level undead creatures. Ange hovered around for several days before he got used to this pressure and stepped into the area of the Resting Camp. The ce was steeped in an aura of death, the ground filled with thick breathing soil which could dehydrate everything and preserve it for a longer time. In the breathing soil, Ange found some robust and sturdy skeletons. These strong and firm skeletons once belonged to higher-level Ashbone or White Skeletons if Ange was a low-ranking dry-bone skeleton. Unfortunately, these skeletons, once stronger than Ange, had now lost their souls and were reduced to a pile of bones. If they were not buried in the Breathing Soil, they probably would have rotten and decayed like the ones outside. Ange picked up a set of bones, assembling them into aplete skeleton, then transferred his soul onto it, transforming into a higher-ranking Ashbone Skeleton. While he wanted to assemble a higher-level Silver Skeleton, he found his soul too weak to drive it and had to give up. And so, Ange returned to his farm and continued his life of waking up at sunrise and working until sunset, until the bones of his body decayed once again. Chapter 2 - 2 People Starving to Death_1 2 Chapter 2 People Starving to Death_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion It was once again the busiest time of year, when the crops had ripened, and the season of harvest had arrived. Ange was toiling away, his sharp scythe sweeping high and low as rows upon rows of crops were severed at the root and neatly fell to the side, with a precision that seemed as if an invisible hand were arranging them. This was the result of untold years of ceaselessbor. The scythe in his hands moved as if it were alive. He cut where and how deep he wanted to, setting up the ideal conditions for the crop sorting toe. In the midst of this tireless work, the night passed in silence. As dawn approached, the chirping of birds gradually filled the air. Birds of all kinds descended onto the ridges of the field, pecking at the scattered crops. If they were only eating the scattered crops, Ange wouldn¡¯t mind. However, these scraps were nothingpared to the sulent fruits still on the stalks, and many inexperienced neers crossed the line,nding on the unharvested crops. Ange cocked his head, walked to the edge of the field, grabbed the scarecrow¡¯s straw hat, and ced it on his own head. Once activated by magic power, Ange, donning the straw hat, transformed into a hawk and flew into the field. The sight frightened the birds preying on the crops, causing them to scatter and flee, afraid to return for quite some time. A scarecrow¡¯s hat, an illusion-casting magical tool, only required a tiny bit of magic power to maintain an illusion for an extended time. Unless someone had a spiritual power greater than Ange¡¯s, it would be difficult to see through it. It was more than enough to scare off the birds. Once upon a time, the scarecrows, with their hats on, were capable of casting an illusion, startling any bird or beast trying to pilfer. But Ange wasn¡¯t sure when, one by one, the scarecrows had ceased their activities. After several years of mass decline in crop yield, birds and other creatures grew in number. Even the freshly sown seeds were dug up and devoured. Ange then realized the scarecrow¡¯s function and began slowly learning how to harness the illusion power of the hat. By now, he had mastered how to mimic several forms, such as the hawk, the creatures the birds and beasts feared the most. Arge hawk could be seen pping its wings, crisscrossing the field as the crops were continuously harvested. The greedy birds, scared by the sight, didn¡¯t dare descend for a long while. The sun eventually rose, its rays alighting upon Ange and bringing with it a hint of scorching heat. Undead creatures despise sunlight and Ange was no exception. A long, long time ago, if he stayed in the sunlight for a few minutes longer, he¡¯d feel like his soul was about to burst. Back then, he would scurry away as swiftly as possible, finding ces where the sun couldn¡¯t reach. Yet, over a thousand years had passed. Ange might not like the sunlight, but he no longer felt as ufortable as before, especially when only a bit of the crop was left to harvest. He believed he could endure it a little longer. Under the ring sunlight, Ange harvested thest row of crops, bundling them up. He then began pushing his little cart, transporting them towards the storage shed. In the middle of this, Ange suddenly felt something odd. Looking towards the outer edge of the farm, he saw a faint white light radiating from an arch-shaped gate beyond the fence. Ange couldn¡¯t remember how many years had passed since he hadst seen such an urrence. Up until this point, there had been no sound, no light, only a solemn and echoing silence. Why was the arch glowing? Had the indestructible souls returned? Ange promptly made a detour, abandoning the idea of storing the grain. He instead pushed his cart towards the glowing arch. However, upon reaching the arch, he found no undead souls. Apart from the softly glowing arch, the surrounding situation shed no change from the norm. Ange circled the arch in confusion. As he circled around, he eventually stepped into the center of the archway and disappeared. All he perceived was a blur. The barren destion of the farm was reced by an equally austere wilderness. Two pirs stood erect in the wastnd, faintly diffusing a white light. Ange took a step forward, yet he seemed to tug at the white light radiating from both pirs, connecting him to the pirs like a screen. Upon advancing once more, Ange felt restricted. A film of light was binding him to the pirs. What is this thing? He gave a tug and tore through the film of light, his foot finally making contact with the ground. The torn light film floated weakly, contracting until it finally shrank onto his wrist, transforming into a leather wristband engraved with magical symbols. A magical essory? Ange tilted his skull in consideration. Just then, a weak human voice echoed behind him: ¡°Hawk¡­ Hawkman? I¡­ I prayed¡­ to the undead souls¡­ why did a Hawkman arrive?¡± Ange turned his gaze to the ground where a skeletal human sprawled upon the earth. His extended arm was thin and bony, skin clinging tightly against the skeleton. The human pointed at Ange resentfully, uttering his final word before his head and arms flopped limply onto the ground, unconscious. Hawkman? Me? Ange tilted his head, puzzled. He was obviously a skeleton, so why did the human call him a ¡®Hawkman¡¯? What was a Hawkman? Realizing this, Ange felt for his head and removed the scarecrow¡¯s hat. So that was it. His scarecrow¡¯s hat remained on his head. It still gave him the appearance of a hawk, causing the misunderstanding with the human. Hanging his hat around his neck, Ange moved by the human¡¯s side, prodding him with a finger. No response; he was clearly unconscious. Upon closer observation, the human¡¯s life force was dwindling, on the verge of extinction, which meant that the human was nearly dead. This left Ange somewhat bewildered and helpless. He was just a small farming skeleton, and he¡¯d never encountered such a situation. What was he supposed to do now? He pondered for a moment and remembered the cart he had. He¡¯d just harvested the crop and filled the cart with the intention to deliver it to the warehouse. But he¡¯d been distracted by the celestial light beam and hade here with his cart in tow. Right now, he had a trolley full of food on his hands. Humans need food, right? This one seemed so skinny; he must be starving. Once the thought crossed his mind, Ange knew what to do. After all, there wasn¡¯t much he was capable of. He flipped the human over, stuffed a handful of grain into his mouth, then squatted there, arms around his knees, observing. Why isn¡¯t he eating? Ange mused for a while before he made a logical conclusion ¨C an unconscious person couldn¡¯t eat. Since that was the case, Ange decided to provide some extra help, stuffing more grain forcibly into the human¡¯s mouth. After several handfuls, the human weakly awoke, as expected. The feeble human managed to sputter out the grain, which had nearly choked him to death. He strained to indicate that the grains needed to be shelled and cooked before consumption. Furthermore, he was dying of thirst and needed water. Faced with these requests, Ange encountered difficulties. Where was he supposed to find water? Unable to provide water and with the grain proving inedible, the enfeebled human, despite eyeing the cartload of food, eventually sumbed to starvation and died. Chapter 3 - 3: Little Zombie (Revised)_1 3 Chapter 3: Little Zombie (Revised)_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Upon the human¡¯s death, Ange realized he couldn¡¯t return anymore. The luminescent membrane turned into a magical armlet on his wrist, but he didn¡¯t know how to change it back. Ange didn¡¯t dwell too much on not being able to return. Here wasn¡¯t much different from the Resting Camp ¡ª equally deste and quiet, with the only difference being the presence of other skeletons. Not long after the human¡¯s death, a decaying skeleton wandered over from afar. It staggered forward with its hollow eye sockets focused on the human¡¯s body, as if something about the corpse intrigued it. However, as it approached within a range of about thirty meters, the decaying skeleton stopped abruptly. It cocked its head, somewhat puzzled, and turned towards Ange, Its hollow eyes falling upon him. The Soul Fire within its eye sockets trembled for a moment before the skeleton turned around and wandered off in another direction, moving even faster this time. Skeletons have different ranks, and Ange¡¯s rank was much higher than this decaying skeleton¡¯s, which had scared it off directly. So, Ange stayed right there and managed to scare off over a dozen decaying skeletons and white skeletons that afternoon. It was as though boundaries had been re-established, and no low-level skeleton dared to wander towards Ange anymore. Ange dug a hole to settle down temporarily, burying the food from his trolley in another hole. Admittedly, the timing of the hole was perfect. By evening, Ange noticed that the roaming skeletons had started to dig holes simultaneously. They buried themselves before a wind began to blow. This wind was the Resting Wind. The Resting Wind is the origin of all living creatures in the Land of Death. It bestowed life upon the scattered corpses, bones, and soul fragments, nurturing them into skeletons, necromancers, and the undead. However, it could also mercilessly destroy everything if disrespected in the slightest way. As an undead, long-term exposure to the Resting Wind would slowly solidify and dry up the soul, leading to its eventual extinction. This rule applied even to the mighty Golden Skeleton Wraith King ¡ª the difference being their ability to withstand its effects longer. Angey in the dug-out hole, listening to the whistling of the Resting Wind. His soul gradually calmed down. The Resting Wind had a calming effect on souls, provided they were not hit directly by it. Laying in the hole, Ange¡¯s curiosity led him to stretch out a finger into the chilling wind. The fog-like Resting Wind passed across his finger, stirring vortices. Under the wind¡¯s touch, his entire palm turned silvery white, like metal. As the wind swept across him, a chilly sensation slithered from his palm down to his Soul Fire, giving him a sense of invigoration as though his soul was being devoured. This enlivened his spirit. For skeletons like himself, the best means of empowerment was to devour the souls of their kind. But as a farming skeleton, Ange had no need to enhance his soul. Besides, he was the only one left in the Resting Camp with no kin to prey upon. However, self-empowerment is innate to all souls. After trying it out, Ange found it irresistible, almost addictively reaching both his hands out. The night passed, and dawn arrived, bringing an end to the Resting Wind. Ange felt a significant solidification of his soul. He couldn¡¯t tell by how much, but his bones had drastically altered. There were fewer dents and ravines, the bigger holes had shrunk, and the small ones were filled up, just as if they had been puttied over. If he was exposed to the wind a few more times, it seemed he wouldn¡¯t have to rece his bones, Ange thought to himself. Upon climbing out of the hole, Ange noticed the corpse of the human from yesterday was gone. Looking up, he saw it had been transformed into a zombie, slowly shuffling away from him. Ange ran over and dragged the little zombie back. Terrified, thinking that Ange wanted to eat it, the little zombie struggled desperately. Unsurprisingly, even the decaying and white skeletons had been scared off by Ange, let alone the newly-born zombie, which was swiftly stripped bare. Stripped of human items ¡ª a leather pouch, an empty water bottle, a longsword. Inside the pouch was a map and a few silver coins, but there was nothing to prove its identity. In other words, why and how the human came here, and how he activated the Teleportation Array, might forever remain a mystery. If Ange couldn¡¯t figure out how to use the magical armlet, he might never get to return. Ange stared at the now marred bones, thinking that perhaps not being able to return wasn¡¯t such a bad thing after all. Thanks to the Resting Wind, Ange made a home for himself in this wilderness, with the wind gusting over him daily, continually empowering his soul. The newly-born little zombie gradually grew familiar with Ange too. In the beginning, it was petrified when Ange dragged it away and stripped it bare. It thought it was going to be eaten. But after having stripped it, Ange ignored it. A newly-born little zombie that just escaped death, wandering around aimlessly until the Resting Wind started to blow. Being new-born, it was unable to withstand the harsh blow of the Resting Wind. With an instinct to survive, it attempted to dig into the ground to hide, but given its pace, it would get disintegrated by the wind before it could dig a big enough hole. Luckily, the hole Ange had dug was not too distant, and braving the wind, he reached the zombie and dragged it into his hole. Compared to the little zombie, Ange was too formidable, which made sharing a hole with him rather oppressive, scaring the zombie to attempt crawling out. However, as its head peeked out of the hole, the chilling wind forced it to retreat. In the end, it crouched in a corner of the hole, clutching its head and shivering. Ange paid it no mind and stretched out his hands to harness the chilling wind. As dawn broke and the Resting Wind halted, the little zombie hastily crawled out of the hold. This time, the little zombie decided to keep its distance from this terrifying ce. But shortly after stepping outside the thirty meter radius, another wandering skeleton chased it back in. The thirty-meter area around Ange was his territory. In it, he wouldn¡¯t bother with the little zombie. But once it stepped out of that range, its fragile newly-born soul became a tempting meal, an easy target for anyone. After being chased back by other skeletons a few times, the little zombie figured out that every other ce was more terrifying than here. As evening approached and the Resting Wind began to blow again, the distressed, hole-digging-incapable little zombie timidly returned to Ange¡¯s hole. It continued to keep its eye on Ange, warily creeping further into the hole each time he ignored it. Eventually, it backed itself into the same corner as it upied the previous night, assuming the same position, clutching its head. The only difference was it no longer shivered. The next morning, it could not wait to crawl out again. By evening, it had returned to the hole before the Resting Wind had even started to blow. It no longer clutched its head; instead it watched Ange curiously, even venturing to mimic his action of reaching out a hand from the hole. Of course, this reckless move led the little zombie¡¯s soul to a brutal baptism by the chilling wind. Chapter 4 - 4: Mage and Bone Horse (Revised)_1 4 Chapter 4: Mage and Bone Horse (Revised)_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Little Zombie, under Ange¡¯s protection, thrived and safely passed his infancy, bing a Tough Skin Zombie. This is the most basic level of a zombie, on the same level as the skeletal bones, but because of theyer of flesh, it has higher defensive power and greater fighting ability than the skeletal bones. So one day, Little Zombie dragged a skeleton back to the pit and pushed it in front of Ange. Is this for me? Ange tilted his head. Little Zombie nodded and pushed the skull towards Ange. Ange shook his head, the soul strength of the skeleton bones was too weak, devouring it might not be as efficient as soaking in the Resting Wind to enhance the strength. Little Zombie drooped his head, disheartened, and dragged the skeleton away. Yet, after that, all the skeletons nearby were doomed, and none escaped the brutality of Little Zombie. When he stumbled upon a White Skeleton that was too powerful, he hid back in Ange¡¯s territory, a thirty-meter radius area which even a White Skeleton dared not venture into. Although there was now an actively hunting Little Zombie in the vicinity, it didn¡¯t affect the local ecosystem. The vacant area was quickly filled up by skeletons wandering from other ces. The skeletons discarded by Little Zombie, under a night¡¯s caress of the Resting Wind, could potentially give birth to new souls. This was the eternal cycle of the undead. The only change might be the soul strength of Ange and Little Zombie. If nothing else happened, Ange might just stay in the pit forever, just like he had been farming for over a thousand years on the farm. However, an unexpected change urred. One day, Little Zombie rushed back to the pit in panic, nudged Ange and pointed frantically outside. There was a deep wound on Little Zombie¡¯s face, cut by something unknown. Ange peeked outside, only to see a leading Ashbone Skeleton with about twenty lower-level skeletons marching into his territory. Being an Ashbone Skeleton himself, Ange didn¡¯t have an advantage over it in terms of their level, and the lower-level skeletons under itsmand also disregarded this level suppression. Did Little Zombie stir up a skeleton nest? Without a second thought, Ange took Little Zombie and ran out of the pit, thinking he might not be able to defeat the Ashbone Skeleton and its twenty or so followers of the same level. They ran ahead, with the Ashbone Skeleton leading the chase from behind. After a chase of two or three kilometers, the Ashbone Skeleton finally gave up reluctantly. ¡°What did you do?¡± Temporarily safe, Ange heaved a sigh and asked through his soul. Little Zombie stared nkly at Ange, unable to answer Ange¡¯s question. Alright, Ange gave up. His species back on the farm were like this, whenever you asked them a question, they would just stare at you nkly. Little Zombie was rtively good; knowing to run back and alert him when pursued¡­. Wait, If Little Zombie didn¡¯t run back, that Ashbone Skeleton would just chase him alone, why would it involve him? I almost died because of you¡­ Ange gave his head a knock. Because of the trouble stirred by Little Zombie, Ange was expelled from the pit he had upied for months. As night was falling, they urgently needed to find a ce to shelter from the wind. It was toote to go back. Ange dug a hole on the spot and hid in it with Little Zombie. Since the pit was shallow, they even had to shovel the nearby dirt and bury themselves under it. The next day, as soon as the wind stopped, Ange crawled out and dug another hole a few meters away and threw Little Zombie into it. He decided not to let Little Zombie hide in his pit anymore, lest he be implicated in future troubles. However, that evening, just as the wind started blowing, a head peeked over the edge of his pit. Seeing that Ange made no move to chase it away, it slid in. The next day Ange would throw it out, and it would run back again in the evening, like it was a game. Only after Ange dug a tunnel between the two pits did the game finally stop, because whenever it ran over, Ange would kick it into the tunnel and let it crawl back by itself. Ange was an easygoing skeleton. He was able to farm for over a thousand years without being directed by someone else, and now that he was driven out of his safe pit, he didn¡¯t mind, once again making his new pit bigger and safer, soaked in the Resting Wind within the pit every day. Little Zombie was more active than him. The moment the wind stopped each day, he would run outside. The low-level skeletons nearby fell into his clutches again, and his soul grew non-stop amidst the troubles. Ange had initially thought today would be like any other day, but not long after the wind started, he heard footsteps. Soon, a person slid into the pit. This was a human, wrapped in a cloak, looked to be in his forties, with a weather-beaten face. He held a finely crafted magic wand, robust magic power surging from his body. He was a human mage. Upon spotting Ange in their, the human mage was surprised. ¡°A skeleton? How did it get up the slope? Ah, sorry for disturbing, but could I take shelter from the wind here?¡± The mage asked casually, for it was widely known that a skeleton must reach gold level to possess intellect. Themon ones acted more instinctively, attacking when they perceive a threat. Perhaps this very skeleton in front of him would pounce the very next moment. However, a human mage daring enough to walk in the Land of Death would naturally not view a mere Ashbone Skeleton as a threat. He removed his hood nonchntly and gestured outside. A massive skull leaned into the pit, squeezing every bit of the remaining space. It was a Bone Horse, its hollow eye sockets shimmering with the soul fire¡¯s eerie blue glow. The pit was small, barely able to amodate a skeleton, a human, and a Bone Horse¡¯s head without room to turn. Ange squeezed into the passage leading to another pit, blocking the exit to offer more space. Why would a human mage appear here when the Resting Wind was rampant? Wasn¡¯t the Resting Wind affecting him? Even if it didn¡¯t, how did his Bone Horse manage to endure it? Ange learned the answer soon enough. The mage first gave him a curious nce to assure that the skeleton held no intention to attack. Then, heid a hand on the Bone Horse¡¯s head. ck smoke rose from his palm, slipping into the Bone Horse through its hollow eyes and nostrils. As the ck smoke passed through, the color of the Bone Horse¡¯s bones gradually faded. Only then did Ange notice the bones had been corroded by the Resting Wind, traces of decay on the surface. The Resting Wind had a strange mechanism. If a skeleton had a soul, the wind would erode it. But for a soulless skeleton, it offered protection, slowing down decay or even nurturing new Soul Fire to birth a new skeleton. The Bone Horse had Soul Fire, hence the corrosion, yet the signs of corrosion gradually faded under the ck smoke¡¯s soothing touch. Ange started to understand why the Bone Horse could traverse under the Resting Wind. It seemed that the human mage had been continuously healing it. Still, this was extremely draining on the mage¡¯s magic power. After the Bone Horse¡¯s head was enveloped in ck smoke, the mage seemed to realize something, pping his forehead, and groaned, ¡°Stupid me.¡± The mage reached out, twisted off the Bone Horse¡¯s skull. The Soul Fire resided in the skeleton¡¯s skull, so once it was removed, the remains outside the pit lost the soul fire, preventing the Resting Wind from causing any harm. Holding the Bone Horse¡¯s skull, the human mage chuckled at Ange apologetically, ¡°Forgot the time while travelling. We¡¯d have been killed by this evil wind if not for your pit. By the way, how did you get up this slope? This isn¡¯t your skeletons¡¯ ce. All these broken stones make it tough to dig pits.¡± Ange stared at the mage expressionlessly, not speaking. This ce isn¡¯t for skeletons? Upon reflection, it seemed indeed so. Thendscape rose, and there were no skeletons around. Little Zombies had to get to the in at the bottom of the slope to find other skeletons to huff and puff. Seeing him dumbfounded, the mageughed, ¡°Don¡¯t mind me. You kind of lose yournguage skills after being in an uninhabited ce for far too long, so I try to start a conversation with anyone I bump into.¡± Regardless of Ange¡¯s response, the mage kept talking as if mumbling to himself: ¡°This road has be more and more difficult to navigate. Do you know what it used to be called? The Gold Road, the Grain Road, the Silk Road. The basin below was the transfer station for the Undead Empire, and now, you little skeletons have imed it.¡± ¡°Business has be harder along this road ever since the Undead Empire disappeared. ording to past records, setting up a small shop on the road would have been extremely lucrative. Nothing like now where I have to travel for half a month might not even earn enough for two month¡¯s food provisions. I envy you, no need to eat or drink, it¡¯s only the undead like you that can survive here.¡± ¡°If only we could activate the teleportation channel. The grains from the Undead Empire could be sold here, and stuff from here could be sold there, business flourishes, and everyone prospers. By the way, you undead do not need to eat. Why do you produce so much food?¡± ¡°Ah, I forgot again, not all undead belong to the Undead Empire. Nearly a thousand years have passed; I¡¯m guessing all the skeletons from the Undead Empire are extinct.¡± The mage treated Ange like a hole in a tree and didn¡¯t expect a response. He babbled on and on; though Ange did not understand much, he got thest two paragraphs. Why are undead creatures, who do not need to eat, producing so much food? It¡¯s because farming skeletons like Ange grew those crops. At the end of his ramblings, the mage sighed heavily, ¡°The underground city is facing another crisis. If we can¡¯t find a new food source, I¡¯m afraid many people will starve. I hope we can activate the teleportation channel this time, I hope the Undead Empire still exists.¡± After his wishful ramblings, the mage nced at the quietly sitting Ange, gave a self-deprecating smile, pulled his hood back on, and slowly drifted into sleep. Chapter 5 - 5 Necromancer_1 5 Chapter 5 Necromancer_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Though the mage seemed utterly defenseless, Ange could feel the asional soul wave scanning him from the skull of the Bone Horse. Even without the Bone Horse¡¯s vignce, Ange had no intention of annoying this mage. He was but a humble skeleton who loved to farm, not a troublemaker like Little Zombie. Blocking the passage between two pits was done to prevent Little Zombie from hearing any noise and crawling over. The night passed without a word spoken. The wind ceased by the daylight, awakening the mage who rubbed his face vigorously as if he were washing it. As soon as he came to his senses, he turned to Ange with a surprised look and chuckled, ¡°What a quiet skeleton you are! It¡¯s rare to see an amiable one like you. Hope you survive till my next visit.¡± His best wishes were sincere, as skeletons in the area reced one another quickly. If there were more mischief makers like Little Zombie, the recement pace would be even quicker. Though Ange was undeniably a docile skeleton, he had been inadvertently caught up with the mage. He was lucky that the mage had no ill intentions; if it were any other predator, Ange would be in big trouble. Therefore, ¡®surviving till next time¡¯ was not an easy goal to achieve. It required great luck. The mage crawled out of the pit, attached the skull of the Bone Horse onto its body and with a whispering hiss, the nostrils of the Bone Horse let out a blue me and it sprung to its feet. The mage led the Bone Horse a couple steps forward, then he remembered something and turned around, ¡°Oh, oh, oh! How careless of me! I forgot to introduce myself. I am Aisike, a wandering trader on the Gold Road, and I also happen to be a Necromancer.¡± Aisike bowed his chest in farewell, nodded to Ange, and set off towards the ins downhill. Ange watched Aisike¡¯s figure receding into the distance and noticed the direction of his travel. The Soul Fire in Ange¡¯s eyes flickered a few times. Perhaps something crossed his mind, no one could tell. He climbed out of the pit and followed Aisike from afar. Aisike didn¡¯t get far before he discovered Ange. He stopped, and so did Ange. He moved, and Ange followed suit, always maintaining a distance of a few dozen meters. Ange seemed to have picked up some stubborn traits from Little Zombie. Amused, Aisike shook his head and ignored Ange. As they descended the slopes, more skeletons came into sight. The lower-level skeletons were scared away by the Bone Horse. When they reached the pit that Ange used to dig, an Ashbone Skeleton crawled out. It was the same skeleton that had once chased Ange and Little Zombie. Apparently, it had understood the advantages of the pit and decided toy im on it. While the other skeletons were frightened away by the Bone Horse, the Ashbone Skeleton remained. It crawled onto the ground with its back arched, jaw opened wide, and let out a soul-shattering howl. The surroundings were stirred, as one after another, more than a dozen low-level skeletons crawled out. This time was differentpared to the previous chase. The Ashbone Skeleton had significantly fewer underlings, only about a dozen, and several of them bore concave marks on their faces. Ange suspected that it was the work of Little Zombie. Ever since Little Zombie got a slice wound on its face from the previous chase, it developed a strange fondness for smashing other¡¯s faces. Several times Ange had seen simr concavities on the facial bones of the skeletons Little Zombie dragged back. During this period, Little Zombie always left early and returnedte. Could it have been out looking for the subordinates of the Ashbone Skeleton to cause trouble? Someone had dared to invade its territory. Enraged, the Ashbone Skeleton drew its bone sword and led its underlings to rush forward. The Bone Horse was only of white bone level, one level lower than the Ashbone Skeleton. However, its size was several timesrge. In theory, the Bone Horse was not weaker than the Ashbone Skeleton. But the Bone Horse didn¡¯t fight against the Ashbone Skeleton; it simply ducked behind Aisike with agility. Aisike stepped forward with empty hands, forming a w-like gesture towards the two leading skeletons. An invisible force immediately acted between the skeletons and Aisike. The Soul Fire from the skeletons¡¯ skulls was forcibly pulled out, strand by strand, and gathered into the palm of his hand. ¡®What kind of magic is this?¡¯ thought Ange, who observed with apprehension. After extracting the Soul Fire, it condensed into two Soul mes in the palm of Aisike. He quickly recited an incantation, whispering too softly for Ange to hear clearly. Aisike then cast the two Soul mes onto the ground. With a sizzling sound, two shrieking Wraiths burst from the mes and charged towards the Ashbone Skeleton. The Ashbone Skeleton waved its bone sword to sh at the Wraiths. The sword split the Wraith in two. However, it remained unharmed. After the sword passed, the two halves rbined into one andtched onto the Ashbone Skeleton. The Ashbone Skeleton put one arm around the Wraith. Strangely, it managed to grab hold of the immaterial Wraith and tried to pull it away. During the screech, the Wraith stretched out its ws and frantically reached for the eye sockets of the Ashbone Skeleton. The Soul Fire resided inside the eye sockets. It seemed the Ashbone Skeleton was wary of this. While it turned its head to avoid the Wraith¡¯s ws, the other arm formed a fist and began to hammer the Wraith¡¯s form. Although immaterial, the Wraith let out pitiful screams under the attack, ultimately being shattered in midair. After killing one Wraith, the Ashbone Skeleton resumed its fight with the other one. This gave Aisike ample time. Just like the previous two skeletons, he pulled out their souls and transformed them into Soul me. As he rapidly recited his incantation, he then threw it onto the ground. The me Soul burst into a ripple-like wave. Upon encounter with anything, the wave transformed into two ws, holding that object tightly in ce. These ws appeared very thin. Ange felt that he could easily break free. However, those low-level skeletons weren¡¯t as fortunate. They were firmly pinned down and became sitting ducks for the taking. Aisike started casting shadow arrows, shooting through the eye sockets of the skeletons, shattering the Soul Fires within the skull. By the time the Ashbone Skeleton finished dealing with the two Wraiths, it found that its dozen or so minions had turned into scattered bones on the ground. Single-handedly, the Ashbone Skeleton didn¡¯t stand a chance against Aisike. Aisike threw a ball of ck fire onto its head, setting the entire skull aze. After the me dissipated, the skull remained intact but the soul withinpletely vanished. Just like that, effortlessly, Aisike got rid of the Ashbone Skeleton and its underlings. More astonishingly, he didn¡¯t seem to have put his all into the fight. Even the Bone Horse ¨C physically capable of taking on the Ashbone Skeleton ¨C didn¡¯t have to lift a finger. Aisike didn¡¯t appear excited and treated it as if it was something easy to aplish. He nced back at Ange before leading the Bone Horse towards the stone pirs. Arriving at the pit where Ange had dug signified that the spatial passage between the two stone pirs was not far away. Upon reaching the stone pirs, Aisike began to tinker with them. He took several blue crystal stones from his waist pouch and embedded them in various locations on the pirs. Then he went in front of the pirs, knelt down reverently, and under his prostration, the two pirs slowly lit up. Chapter 6 - 6: A New Lord Observer?_1 6 Chapter 6: A New Lord Observer?_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Although the stone pir had lit up, there was no light membrane present. Aisike walked around the pir a few times, but nothing abnormal happened, causing a great sense of loss. He let out a long sigh, removed the crystal stones he had attached, and the pir dimmed again. Ange watched from a distance. When he saw Aisike in vain, he lowered his head and nced at his wrist. Was the leather essory which transformed from the light membrane the key to activate the teleportation passage? He noticed the stone pir dimmed again once Aisike removed the crystals. Ange realized the key to his return home might just be those crystals. Once detached, the crystal stones had shrunk a size smaller than when they had been attached. Aisike exhaled onto it with a pained heart before putting them back into his bag. On the way back, as Aisike passed by Ange, he shrugged his shoulders and said bitterly, ¡°It was a failure. We couldn¡¯t open it. Maybe we need to learn your survival methods earlier than expected.¡± My survival methods? nting vegetables? Ange tilted his head curiously, and followed Aisike again. Noticing Ange was still following him, Aisike couldn¡¯t help but chuckle, ¡°So you¡¯re still with me? nning to follow me back to the Underground City? Well, the wilderness is too dangerous. I might not see you again when Ie next time, so feel free to follow me.¡± Ange tilted his head again, sensing Aisike might have misunderstood something. The Underground City? Were there blue crystals there? When they were about to reach the cave, they saw a zombie yelling outside Ange¡¯s cave. Upon waking up, the Little Zombie discovered Ange wasn¡¯t there. It therefore refused to leave the cave, hollering at the entrance instead, as though believing its caws could bring Ange back. Indeed, Little Zombie¡¯s consistent howling eventually brought Ange back. The zombie leaped excitedly and ran towards him, refusing to leave afterwards. Hence, Aisike continued his way and Ange followed him as usual, but this time with a little tail, the Little Zombie, mimicking his every move precisely. A man, a bone horse, a skeleton, a zombie, a bizarre group it was. They ascended the slope, reaching the peak beyond whichid a limitless wilderness. t and deste, with an end out of sight. They walked in one direction, from morning until evening, till about the time the Resting Wind began to blow, a sudden ¡®ditch¡¯ appeared on the supposedly t ground. Like a crevasse cut into the ground, it sank deep. Seeing the ¡®ditch¡¯, Aisike beamed, saying excitedly, ¡°I thought we would have to spend another night out here. Hurry up, we¡¯ve reached the Underground City.¡± Just as Ange¡¯s party entered the ¡®ditch¡¯, the wind on the wastnd became stronger, but was blocked at the edge. Thanks to the edge¡¯s windscreens, the ditch was much windier than the outside, serving the same function as a cave. Ange looked up, feeling the sharp wind howling atop his head. The chilling sensation was even stronger than inside the cave. Here, guiding the cold air would be more efficient than inside the cave, right? Aisike looked back at Ange and said, ¡°Hurry up, or this evil wind may blow you away.¡± After his reminder, Aisike segued into his habitual monologue, muttering, ¡°This used to be a big river. The water flowed to this ce, encountered theva formation, then seeped into the ground, eroding out a huge underground space. This is where our Underground City was built. If it hadn¡¯t been for this underground area, we might have been killed by the evil wind.¡± Aisike murmured incoherently, not asking for any response. As he said, spending days alone in the wilderness, you developed a habit of talking to anything, even yourself. He used to talk to his bone horse, but now speaking to a skeleton wasn¡¯t anything strange. Plus, he had a feeling that Ange seemed to understand him, at least better than his dim-witted bone horse. Ange listened quietly, observing his surroundings. Probably because the Resting Wind was kept outside, the ditch¡¯s environment was significantly better than the exterior. There were even shrubs in the corner, and moss grew on the shaded side of the stones. From time to time, he could spot insects skimming about. In the shrubbery ahead, a stone attracted Ange¡¯s attention. He noticed a ck smoke wound around the stone, invisible to the naked eye. Seeing Ange nce in its direction, the smoke moved and slowly formed a human face. ¡°That¡¯s a ghost, known as ck Face, it is Old Witch Feilin¡¯s pet. ck Face, this is a young friend I¡¯ve brought back, don¡¯t scare him,¡± Aisike introduced and then spoke a word to the ghost. The face formed by the smoke, with two hollows where the eyes should be, lingered on Ange and Little Zombie for a moment before receding into a cloud of smoke once more and winding around the stone again. Further down, on the side of the ditch¡¯s bottom, there was arge slit. It spanned over ten meters in width and stood about four to five meters tall, serving as the entrance to the Underground city. At the entrance stood a figure, holding an exquisite Magic Wand, peeking around curiously in the direction of the ditch. This was a very ¡®human-like¡¯ figure, dry and thin. The skin visible outside his clothescked any luster, all wrinkly. His muscles seemed drained of all moisture, devoid of any sticity. His eye sockets were deep, cheekbones high, making him look like a dry corpse. This was indeed a dry corpse. Upon seeing the ¡®human,¡¯ Aisike called out from afar, ¡°Hey, Feilin, what are you doing here? Are you here to wee me? That¡¯s quite grand.¡± The owner of the ghost just now was indeed, Old Witch Feilin. Feilin chuckled, revealing a very cordial smile, ¡°ck Face saw youing back. So, how did it go? Did you find anything?¡± Even though the Old Witch was being subtle, Aisike knew what he was asking. He just did not want to put too much pressure on Aisike. Aisike forced a smile, shaking his head, ¡°No, they¡¯re also starving and unwilling to sell.¡± Feilin gave a disappointed nod, ¡°That¡¯s not surprising. More and more ces can¡¯t grow crops anymore. Everyone¡¯s running out of food. If they sell to us, people will starve on their end. You don¡¯t need to feel bad. It¡¯s not your fault.¡± Aisike gave a wry smile and said, ¡°In any case, I didn¡¯t manage to buy any food. So, I went to the Sea of the Deceased. The teleport channel is still closed, but the Demon Crystal has shrunk a bit.¡± Upon hearing this, Feilin didn¡¯t seem concerned. In fact, he seemed more disappointed, ¡°Still can¡¯t open it? That is also expected. It¡¯s been a thousand years, and no one knows the status of the Resting Camp. I hope Your Majesty is in peace. If the Demon Crystal shrinks, let it shrink. We can¡¯t eat it even if there¡¯s no food to buy. You¡¯re tired, go and rest.¡± Theforting words from Feilin made Aisike¡¯s eyes mist up. After walking past Feilin, he managed a smile, ¡°At the Sea of the Deceased, I met a quiet skeleton who followed me back on its own. Haha, I suspect it understands my words. It seems to have some wisdom.¡± Aisike¡¯s words made Feilin shift his gaze to Ange. He gave Ange a casual nce from head to toe until his eyesnded on Ange¡¯s wrist, and his body gave a violent shake, his eyes widening in disbelief. Aisike had already entered the Underground city, unaware of Feilin¡¯s unusual behavior. Feilin stumbled to Ange¡¯s side, dropping his exquisite Magic Wand carelessly. He reached out with a trembling hand to hold Ange¡¯s wrist but withdrew halfway when he realized something was off, his demeanor flustered. If Aisike had not gone in, he would¡¯ve been startled to see the usually calm Old Witch in such a state. Feilin was agitated for a while before he looked at Ange with hopeful eyes and asked, ¡°Are you¡­Are you the new Lord Observer?¡± Chapter 7 - 7: Skeleton Counts as a ’Person’, Right?_1 7 Chapter 7: Skeleton Counts as a ¡®Person¡¯, Right?_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion An Observer? What is that? Ange tilted his head, looking at the old witch in confusion. Ange was ¡®puzzled¡¯, but since he was a skeleton, his eye sockets couldn¡¯t convey emotions. To the old witch, Ange¡¯s ¡®head-tilting¡¯ action seemed more ¡®severe¡¯, which frightened the old witch into clutching his mouth tightly. ¡°I didn¡¯t say anything, I don¡¯t know anything.¡± His words were muffled by his covered mouth. Despite this, Feilin¡¯s once muddy eyes sparkled with hope. Feilin¡¯s inexplicable actions left Ange somewhat perplexed, leading him to stare at Feilin in wonder. This ¡®wonderment¡¯ was interpreted as dissatisfaction by Feilin: Lord Observer was dissatisfied. A chill ran down Feilin¡¯s spine as he realized hispse. He quickly rubbed his face to regain hisposure, picked up the fallen magic wand and tidied his clothes. He straightened his back, and although he still looked somewhat unnatural, there were no traces of his previous breakdown. Aisike returned from the entrance and asked, ¡°What happened? Lord City, it¡¯s just a kid, you didn¡¯t scare it, did you?¡± A kid? Feilin¡¯s heart thumped as he cautiously nced at Ange. Seeing no reaction from him, he breathed a sigh of relief, and said, ¡°Indeed, a quiet kid.¡± As he steps aside, he roars inwardly: A kid? He is probably older than your great-great-great-great-grandfather, and you dare call him a kid?!! Ange felt unnerved by Feilin¡¯s strange actions, so he quickly approached Aisike. Aisike nced at Feilin in puzzlement, unable to see any abnormalities, and then said to Ange: ¡°Don¡¯t be afraid, Feilin is a good person. There¡¯s a soul pressure between you undead, but you¡¯ll get used to it. Enter this door and you¡¯ll be in the underground city. It is very safe here. There are no predators. As long as you don¡¯t attack others at will, you can live until your bones decay. Find a ce you like to stay, ande to me if you need anything ¡­. ¡± Aisike rambled on and on as he led Ange away. Feilin wiped the non-existent cold sweat from his forehead and sighed relievedly. But he quickly showed an ecstatic expression. The Observer appeared, the underground city was saved! If Feilin wasn¡¯t a witch who had lived for thousands of years, if he hadn¡¯t worked at the world¡¯s transit station, he might not have known about the Observer. Observers are the controllers of the transmission channels, the observers and guardians of the world. This is not a formal term, but a title conventionally used by some insiders of the world¡¯s transit station, and it has not been recognized by the Observer. Lord Observer doesn¡¯t have a fixed form. Sometimes he is a skeleton, sometimes a zombie, or even a ghost. But themon feature is that they all have a magic skin ornament. Thisck of a fixed form indicates that those are not the true form of the Observer, but projections of their consciousness. Powerful Observers project their consciousness onto temporary bodies from other locations, observing and guarding the world¡¯s transit station. Because of these bodies, the power of the Observers is not very strong. They are sometimes killed by some mischievous fellows. But it¡¯s okay, they are only temporary bodies and do not affect the Observers at all. On the contrary, those who kill these bodies will have to face the wrath of Lord Observer. The angriest incident involved a team of powerful ck knights being transported through the transmission channel. A total of twelve ck knights ughtered the entire four hundred members of the offending Demon Trading Group. Since then, no one dared to kill those unremarkable skeletons and zombies at will. Unless the skeleton zombies initiate an attack, many people say, the Observer is likely the projection of the king, otherwise how could hemand a whole team of ck knights? Of course, that was almost a thousand years ago. Since the world¡¯s transit station was closed, this world, originally barren and deste, has gradually returned to its original state. Without the transfer trade of the Undead Empire, the economy here declined, food production decreased, the poption sharply reduced, and the remaining people hid in a few underground cities to linger on. And now, they may not even be able to linger on. The underground city¡¯s food production is decreasing year by year, and it may not be able to support the more than 5,000 people. If there are no new sources of food, two-thirds of the poption in the underground city may starve to death. This is a terrifying humanitarian disaster, which Feilin desperately wanted to avoid. He sent several missions to buy food from other underground cities, but all were refused without exception. This is normal, not only is his underground citycking in food, but so are others. If they sell to others, they would starve themselves. In normal circumstances, Feilin would haveunched a war movement at this time, marshaling all the forces in the underground city to seize other people¡¯s food. However, the Resting Wind prevented this situation from happening. No underground city can dere war against Resting Wind. If war is not an option, thest choice may be the Undead Cmity. However, at this critical juncture, the Observer appeared. What does this mean? It means that the world¡¯s transit station may be reopened. Even if it is not reopened, with Lord Observer¡¯s ability, it should be easy to solve the food supply problem, so they will not have to resort to thest step. With this thought, a hopeful look appeared on Feilin¡¯s face, and the wind element lifted his body, allowing him to float into the underground city. After walking through a dark tunnel, there is a sudden openness. A slightly downward sloping slope extends to a huge underground space. Arge number of houses have been excavated along the slope and extend down along two main roads. The main road is lit by oilmps, providing lighting for the road. All kinds of creatures were walking, talking, and it was a busy scene. Aisike, who was walking in front, turned around and said to Ange: ¡°After you enter here, you¡¯re safe. As long as you don¡¯t attack others at will, no one will hurt you. So, may your soul be at peace, see you again if I¡¯m free.¡± With that, Aisike got on the wooden cable car and slid towards the opposite cliff. Although he had seen Feilin, the underground city had other managers, and he needed to report to other managers on the situation. With Ange and the little zombie left behind, they both watched droopingly as Aisike increasingly disappeared into the distance on the cable car. The sound of ¡°crunch, crunch¡± echoed, Ange turned his head and saw a white skeleton carrying a basket full of coal and climbing up the stairs. The little zombie¡¯s eyes lit up, it shed a grin and was about to pounce on it. In the Sea of the Deceased, it had to hunt for skeletons every day. After walking a whole day without eating, it was already starving. Ange quickly grabbed the zombie¡¯s cor and stopped it. Aisike had repeatedly said ¡®not to attack others¡¯, and skeletons should be considered ¡®others¡¯ as well. Chapter 8 - 8 Terrifying Possibility_1 8 Chapter 8 Terrifying Possibility_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Ange led the Little Zombie further in, the number of ¡®people¡¯ increasing along the way, many of whom were skeletons and zombies. They were either carrying baskets on their backs to transport goods or turning cranks to draw water, performing such repetitive tasks. Among these skeletons and zombies, Ange saw a reflection of himself. He too was a skeleton engaged in repetitive work, his job being farming. With the presence of these skeleton zombies, Ange and the Little Zombie were inconspicuous. The ¡®people¡¯ along the way did not give them a second nce, each busy with their own tasks. For some reason, everyone¡¯s face was filled with worry. This was Ange¡¯s first time discovering that there were so many types of ¡®people¡¯ in the world. There were humans like Aisike, Minotaurs with bull heads, cavemen who walked on all fours with their hands longer than their legs, Subi with sheep hooves but extremely hot figures ¡ª an uncountable variety. Of course, the majority were still skeletons and zombies. Almost all repetitive work was done by skeletons and zombies, like pulleying, fetching water, and transporting goods. Ange aimlessly wandered with the Little Zombie in tow, and the further they moved, the more remote it became, with fewer and fewer people. Eventually, in a deste corner of the vast Underground City, they found a soft t ground and stopped. The reason they stopped was because the soil here was soft, fertile, and moist. As a Farming Skeleton, Ange was very sensitive to soil. He could tell at a nce what kind ofnd was suitable for nting. The soil here was fertile but too damp and devoid of sunlight. Even the farnd at the Resting Camp had sunlight, the Underground City did not. However, the absence of sunlight did not mean that there were no nts. On the edge of the t ground, a kind of luminescent moss grew on the rock wall. This did not surprise Ange. If moss could grow on the stones of the Breathing Soil, why couldn¡¯t it grow in the Underground City without sunlight? Having been teleported here for a few months, Ange had not nted anything for a long time. Seeing the soft soil and the moss that could grow, his deep-rooted farming instinct couldn¡¯t help but spring to life. With no sunlight there was no need to hide from it, without the Resting Wind he didn¡¯t need to dig burrows, Ange readily started gathering the glowing moss, collecting it from various parts. As Ange was gathering moss, a fierce argument was erupting in the underground council hall. The main participants were Subus Rina and Goblin Klegg, arguing over the fact that Aisike had failed to buy food, leaving the Underground City facing a life or death situation that required a final decision. Rina angrily said, ¡°Your proposal is inhumane, immoral, and hical! If these people are driven into the wilderness, they¡¯ll surely perish! You¡¯re practically murdering them!¡± Klegg calmly replied, ¡°I¡¯m not human, so why should I be humane? By driving away some people, we allow others to survive. Isn¡¯t that the most ethical thing to do? If we don¡¯t do this, we¡¯ll all starve to death this time next year.¡± Rina shouted back, ¡°You¡¯re distorting the facts. Whom are you to decide who gets driven away? How many to drive away? And who should survive? You have no such power.¡± Klegg responded evenly, ¡°It¡¯s not for me to decide how many people to drive away, it¡¯s the amount of food we have. It determines how many people we can support ¡ª the rest we¡¯ll drive out to fend for themselves. Otherwise, when food runs out, we¡¯ll all die.¡± Rina suggested, ¡°We can work harder, make the Magic Lamp stay lit longer¡ªwe¡¯ll provide more Magic Power. If we all work together, we can definitely ovee this.¡± ¡°That resolves this year, but what about next?¡± Klegg dismissed, ¡°This world can¡¯t support arge poption to begin with. We¡¯ve barely managed an additional thousand years due to the wealth left over by the Undead Empire¡¯s world transfer station ¡ª but now, we genuinely can¡¯t afford to support everyone anymore. We shouldn¡¯t resist this fate; we should let things return to their original state.¡± Klegg paused before adding, ¡°If we drive away the lower sses now, we can still select and retain more valuable talents. If food runs out, you won¡¯t be able to choose who stays or leaves anymore. Prestigious mages will starve to death alongside cavemen, and clever Goblin Engineers will rot with the alluring Subi who can only tter and fascinate. That would be the real waste.¡± Debating the issue without missing an opportunity to step on the Subi infuriated Rina, who promptly turned to face Feilin and demanded, ¡°Lord Feilin, Klegg¡¯s proposal is absurd and cruel. I ask you to use your veto and reject his suggestion.¡± Feilin nodded, ¡°Indeed, it¡¯s too cruel. But, Rina, if it were up to me, I would suggest initiating the Undead Cmity.¡± ¡°What?!¡± Just as Feilin¡¯s words hit the floor, not only Rina and Klegg but everyone in the council was stunned. As the name obviously suggests, the Undead Cmity is a disaster caused by the Undead transforming everyone into Undead. That is, all living things in the Underground City would be killed ¡ª which was significantly crueler than Klegg¡¯s n of driving away a few people. He was entirely capable of doing so as well. All the Undead in the city obeyed Feilin¡¯s orders. With just a thought, he couldunch the Undead Cmity. For a while, everyone believed they had heard wrong. Rina found it harder to ept as well. She failed to ept that the consistently kind and friendly Lord Feilin could utter such terrifying words. Instinctively, she tried to find a reason for him, ¡°Do you mean to transform everyone into a Witch, Lord Feilin?¡± Feilin shook his head, ¡°There aren¡¯t enough resources for that. A transformation would only be possible for three or five people at most ¡ª it¡¯s pointless.¡± ¡°What do you mean then?¡± Klegg carefully asked. He could ept the expulsion of some because they wouldn¡¯ty their hands on him. But if the Undead Cmity were to take ce, he¡¯d have topete with others for those three or five spots. Feilin heaved a deep sigh and asked seriously, ¡°Do you all know the most significant achievement of the Underground City¡¯s development to date?¡± The topic suddenly shifted, leaving people bewildered and shaking their heads. ¡°It¡¯s the harmonious atmosphere we¡¯ve developed. When everyone first arrived, Minotaurs and Goblins were sworn enemies. The Subi were ves to the humans. Many races used to prey on each other. Do you know what starving people may resort to once the food runs out?¡± Some guessed where Feilin was going with this, their faces filling with solemnity. This was indeed a possibility they hadn¡¯t considered before. ¡°They¡¯ll wash the freshly born calf of Mrs. Cow next door, throw it into a pot. They¡¯ll skewer a Goblin, season it, and stick it in an oven. They¡¯ll chop off a Subus¡¯s hoof and make soup out of it.¡± Chapter 9 - 9 Daring Ideas_1 9 Chapter 9 Daring Ideas_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Feilin¡¯s depiction sent horrifying chills down everyone¡¯s spine, yet this was something that could very likely ur. Starvation could drive animals to turn against each other, let alone different races who used to treat each other as prey. This part of history was too far removed from them, only an immortal Undead Witch like Feilin could remember the happenings of a thousand years ago. ¡°If you start to turn on each other, the surviving Undead Witches will stop believing in any kind of peaceful coexistence, and it will be just like Demon Valley ¨C humans would be enved and ughtered, or perhaps like Ice City, where the Minotaurs are merely used to pull carts, and Subus are locked away to entertain guests. Instead of that, might as well create a scourge, the souls of thousands of people could produce more than ten Undead or Witches, and at least we would have a few peaceful souls left.¡± In the end, Feilin made the final decision. Food couldst for another half a year, and no one talked about driving out the lower-ss poption during this period. Everyone was encouraged to eat freely. If they still couldn¡¯t find a solution after using up the food, they might as well die altogether, praying silently that they could retain their memories and be reincarnated as Witches or Undead. Feilin set a harsh timeline for everyone, but he was not willing to see things progress to that stage. Therefore, after the meeting, he quietly came looking for Ange. Although Ange had fled to a remote ce, it was easy for Feilin to find him, as his spies were scattered throughout the Underground City. The ubiquitous ghostly apparitions were a security force¡¯s prided weapon. Without such efficient means, Feilin couldn¡¯t possibly have managed a race-mixed Underground City into a harmonious and prosperous ce. As soon as he saw Ange, Feilin quickly came up with a ttering smile on his face. He hurried to Ange and earnestly said, ¡°My Lord, I¡¯m sorry to bother you. I wouldn¡¯t have asked for your help if it wasn¡¯t for the hardships we¡¯re facing, mainly because the World Transit Station is closed and we have no channels to procure food. We have been barely hanging on for almost a thousand years and now can¡¯t hold on any longer. I came here to buy food and hope you could spare some.¡± Feilin bent over and rubbed his hands together, looking cautious as he pointed to Ange¡¯s bracelet, a stark contrast to his previousmanding demeanor in the conference room. However, he didn¡¯t seem awkward at all. The man standing before him was Lord Observer, possibly a manifestation of the legendary Undead King who rules the countless realms. What¡¯s wrong with being humble? It was already an extraordinary honor to have a conversation with them. Ange, with his head tilted, looked at him, bewildered. Feilin seemed to recall something suddenly and said, ¡°Equal exchange, equal exchange, here, here, ten Soul Crystals. The teleportation corridor has been closed for a thousand years, I wonder if the same prices still apply? Before the closure, one Soul Crystal could be exchanged for two hundred kilograms of food.¡± As he spoke, Feilin took out ten ck crystals from his bosom and handed them to Ange. Soul Crystal? What is that? Is it simr to the Crystal Stone that starts the stone pir? Ange thought curiously and reached out to take it. The moment the Soul Crystal was in his hand, Ange understood its purpose. Soul Crystals, condensed Soul Energy, were a currency used among the Undead. Different creatures used different forms of currency. Humans preferred precious metals, Wizards liked to use Demon Crystals, and the Undead favored Soul Crystals, which were condensed from pure Soul Energy. They could be used as money, or consumed to replenish Soul Energy. Of course, Soul Energy was only beneficial to Undead, so Soul Crystals only circted among them. As soon as Ange touched them, he knew how to use them. Simr to how humans knew they could drink when they saw water, Ange looked at the Soul Crystals in his hands, then at the bracelet on his wrist, and started the refinement process directly. Once the ten Soul Crystals were converted into Soul Energy, most of them were absorbed by the bracelet. After absorption, the bracelet shone brightly, and Ange¡¯s consciousness was suddenly pulled into another ce. As soon as he regained his senses, he found himself at the arch near the Resting Camp¡¯s farm, which Ange had surprisingly teleported back to. However, it was only his consciousness, there was no physical body. As his thoughts moved, his consciousness arrived at the spot he thought of on the farm. The seemingly deserted field was empty and even the chirping birds from before were gone. Besides that, not much had changed since he had left. He thought about the granary, and instantly his consciousness was in there. Looking at the piles of grain that filled the granary, Ange thought about Feilin. He had used Soul Crystals to exchange for food, but how could he get these grains for him? Barely had the thought popped into his head when grain sacks started disappearing one after another in his line of sight. One sack, two sacks, three sacks, until forty-five sacks had vanished, Ange felt a resistance and the disappearance of the sacks ceased. Where had they gone? Ange pulled back his consciousness, and when he looked around, he was surrounded by a circr formation made of sacks of grain. On the outside of the circle was Feilin, smiling so broadly that his eyes had disappeared. ¡°Forty-five sacks, a full forty-five sacks, five less than before, but that¡¯s normal. It¡¯s been a thousand years, and the price has just increased by ten percent. Very reasonable. I will have people move them right away.¡± Fearing the night would bring more problems, Feilin summoned a team of skeletons which hoisted a sack each and in a single drill, moved all forty-five sacks of grain. Looking at the restored tranquillity around him, Ange thought about Feilin¡¯s words. Five sacks fewer? Most of the energy from the Soul Crystals was absorbed by the bracelet, but a small part was absorbed by Ange. Was it because this portion was missing, that there had been five less sacks? Upon examining his soul, he did seem slightly stronger. Ange tilted his head, pushed this question aside, and shifted his focus back onto the bracelet. With his thoughts, the bracelet lit up again, and drew his consciousness back in with a whoosh. Was it because the bracelet had absorbed the energy of the Soul Crystals, Ange could now return here at any moment? Ange¡¯s consciousness returned to the farm and the granary, but he could no longer teleport the sacks of grain. Instead, he could teleport some stones. After a few tries, he realized that the energy he infused into the bracelet ¨C most likely hooked to the weight ¨C permitted him to teleport an equivalent weight and after meeting the requirement, he was unable to teleport anymore. There could still be a quantity less than one sack left, which allowed him to teleport some lighter stones. Having explored back and forth between these few ces on the farm for over a thousand years, Ange was familiar with every corner. However, the game grew boring after a while. Just as he was about to exit, out of habit, he looked towards the direction of the Resting Camp. The Resting Camp was venerable, even though its king had disappeared for thousands of years. It remained a ce Ange would not dare to trespass. Driven to dire straits, he previously had to enter and search for usable bones, but only dared to root around the outskirts, not daring to venture in too deep. Now that his consciousness could freely move and not once has he visited the deepest part of the Resting Camp, should he have a look? A bold idea suddenly sprang to his mind. Chapter 10 - 10 Bronze Book_1 10 Chapter 10 Bronze Book_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion With a thought, nk! Ange bumped into something, his consciousness was flung outwards. Composing himself, he found he¡¯d been blocked from the core area of the Resting Camp where the Undead King was slumbering. Clearly, some boundary was preventing Ange¡¯s consciousness from entering the area. Ange was not surprised or disappointed; he simply turned towards the highest tower on the east side. The Resting Camp was incrediblyrge, with five main architecturalpounds. The centre naturally was the most critical area of the Resting Camp, and the other four grand structures were distributed in the four corners, symmetrically ced. The eastern tower was the tallest. His consciousness entered the tower without any obstruction. From the outside, it looked like a high tower. But once inside, it seemed more like a chimney. The interior structure had no floors or divisions. It was a continuous cylindrical space reaching right up to the top of the tower. It waspletely empty, except for a small podium ced in the middle of the ground, which held a book. Yes, a small podium and a book were the sole contents of the entire tower. Ange¡¯s consciousness floated over, brushing the book, and he was stunned to find that it was made of solid, heavy bronze. As Ange touched it, the Bronze Book flipped open, and a huge illusory shadow sprung into the sky, quickly filling the tower¡¯s interior space ¨C it was the shadow of this book. Ange began toprehend why the tower was erected so high. If it were not this high, it would undoubtedly be incapable of amodating the shadow of this book. The shadow of the book was raised, showing its inside pages. There were no words on these pages initially, but once opened, golden letters gradually emerged. Ange tilted his head, staring nkly for a long time without moving. Out of the pages came an illusory shadow of a Bronze Giant Dragon who said with some confusion, ¡°Why is there a skeleton? Ahem, do you not know how to read?¡± Ange nodded. ¡°What are you doing in a library if you can¡¯t read? Fooling about.¡± The Bronze Giant Dragonined, ¡°Well, although I can dictate, that¡¯s quite uncouth. You¡¯re in luck.¡± A surge of information flowed into Ange¡¯s soul and imprinted there. ¡°Eh? Your soul is pretty solid. Why are you only at the Ashbone Level?¡± murmured the Bronze Giant Dragon int her perplexed tone. Ange was puzzled. He didn¡¯t understand what it meant, but he could understand the words on the page. The information the Bronze Giant Dragon imprinted in his soul was the knowledge of words. The words on the page read: The Bronze Book knows everything. Only one question can be asked each time. A question can be asked? It knows everything? Ange tilted his head and inquired with his soul, ¡°Who are you?¡± ¡°Hahahaha, atst someone has asked this question, atst, oh God, oh God, you are so smart, how did you think of asking this?¡± The Bronze Giant Dragon was so thrilled it appeared as if it would leap right out of the book. Anyone allowed into the library would know the Bronze Dragon. Plus, as per the rules, only one question could be asked, so no one would waste that precious chance by asking who the Bronze Dragon was. The Bronze Dragon was just the Bronze Dragon, who else could it be? ¡°Goodd, you¡¯ve asked the right question. Listen well. I am the Bronze Book, the God of Knowledge, the omniscient Negris!¡± The sound of Negris¡¯s voice boomed like a bell in Ange¡¯s soul. Ange watched him curiously while Negris craned his neck to look at Ange. After a confrontation of stares, Negris could not contain himself and asked, ¡°You haven¡¯t heard my name, have you?¡± Ange nodded. With a dejected sigh, Negris said, ¡°I had figured. What would a skeleton know? Don¡¯t you have any other questions?¡± Ange tilted his head and asked with an innocent twinge in his soul, ¡°One question.¡± ¡°Doesn¡¯t count, doesn¡¯t count. That just now wasn¡¯t a question, that was a reward. Anyone who knows my divine name can summon me by it, and ask me a question. One every day!¡± Negris hastily informed him. Originally, that was a sort of cruel joke Negris had devised. If someone asked him who he was, he would respond that that was their one question, before notifying them that, as a token of his pity, they could summon him by his name and ask a question daily. Managing to get into the library was no small feat, and only being allowed one question, within that pain, Negris would tell them they could ask a question every day. Of course, this was a reward. The unbelievably rollercoaster ride of emotions his victims would take from the despair to extreme joy would satisfy his twisted sense of humor. However, from the moment of his confinement, no one has fallen into this trap for a thousand years. Who would enter without knowing the backstory, given how precious an opportunity it was? As for his divine name, no one cared. How great a god could he be when he was confined here? Could he be mightier than the Undead King? Thousands of years passed and finally, someone fell into the trap ¨C the unconventional Ange, who after asking his identity, really didn¡¯t n on asking anything else. This nearly killed Negris from frustration. ¡°Ask, ask another! I am the omniscient God of Knowledge, there is nothing I don¡¯t know.¡± Ange¡¯s indifferent demeanor somewhat annoyed Negris, who was looking forward to a question from Ange so he could demonstrate the power of a God of Knowledge. ¡°Oh.¡± After giving it some thought Ange asked, ¡°Where did the King go?¡± The huge illusion of the Bronze Book snapped shut with a thud, engulfing the Bronze Dragon within, then rapidly shrank back onto the podium as an actual Bronze Book with a distinct sound. The physical Bronze Book then closed. The space echoed with the irate voice of the Bronze Giant Dragon Negris, ¡°I don¡¯t know.¡± Of all the questions one could ask, he had to go for that one. Negris himself wanted to know where the Undead King had gone. Although it was just a small skeleton, Ange¡¯s question was unusually difficult and uncooperative. Negris was done ying, so he went on strike! Looking at the restored state of the space, Ange tilted his head and withdrew his consciousness. The Bronze Giant Dragon¡¯s tantrum had no effect on him. Ange was just a small skeleton who had no need of answering many questions. His consciousness shifted, intending to drift to another building, when Ange felt a nudge on his body signalling him his physical body was being shaken. Ange¡¯s consciousness returned to his body, instantly feeling someone violently shaking him. Turning to see who it was, it turned out to be the Little Zombie. Upon seeing Ange react, the panicking Little Zombie continued screeching, urgently pointing in a certain direction. Ange looked over in the direction the Little Zombie was pointing. A Tough Skin Zombie was lumbering from a distance, with white eyes and elongated arms indicative of preparing an attack,ing straight for Ange. ¡°Does this count as an ¡®active attack¡¯?¡± A question arose in Ange¡¯s soul as he reached for the scythe at his waist and swung it deftly. Chapter 11 - 11 Incredible Connection_1 11 Chapter 11 Incredible Connection_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Ange was not a fighter, he was a farming skeleton, but he had been using a scythe for over a thousand years. When harvesting crops, he could with one stroke chop down and neatly topple the crops. If he regards his opponent as crops, Ange could chop wherever he wished to. The sharp scythe severed the zombie¡¯s neck in one fell swoop. The head rolled down and, rattling along the way, ended up at the feet of the Little Zombie. Little Zombie, frightened by the scene, instinctively covered his own neck and looked in terror at the scythe in Ange¡¯s hand. Equally shocked as the Little Zombie was the person controlling the zombie from behind. In a gloomy corner of the underground city, a Necromancer d in a ck robe suddenly leaped from his chair, subconsciously clutching his own neck. The Necromancer¡¯s consciousness had been projected onto the zombie just now, and all of his experiences were the same as the zombie¡¯s. Ange¡¯s scythe had essentially chopped at his own neck. This was not the first time something like this had happened, but it was so sudden this time that the Necromancer had no time to prepare, and thus was greatly startled. Regaining hisposure, he wiped the cold sweat from his forehead, and tried to connect with the zombie again, only to find that the connection had been lost. ¡°I¡¯ve suffered a great loss. This zombie had the highest affinity with me. What kind of crap skeleton is that? How is its weapon so sharp? And why was its action so quick?¡± The Mage muttered. ¡°No, I have to go check on it and, if possible, capture those two skeleton zombies.¡± The Necromancer got up, and went to the wall and lightly pressed on it. A magic wave from the tip of his finger aligned with a certain structure in the wall, revealed a concealed door that swung outward. Walking into the concealed door, there was a narrow corridor. The corridor had recesses on both sides, somewhat resembling theyout of a cloakroom. But upon closer inspection, what was ced inside those small recesses were not clothes, but zombies and skeletons. After a brief selection, the Necromancer finally chose a skeleton that was thin but white and delicate. He murmured, ¡°I¡¯ll use you. Your bones are iplete, and the shoulder de on your back is slightly deformed. However, your bone density is the highest. I guess you were well-nourished when you were alive.¡± With his hand on the skeleton¡¯s skull, the Necromancer softly chanted a spell and controlled the white skeleton to walk out. Aisike always said that the underground city was very safe, as long as you did not attack anyone, no one would harm the skeletons and zombies. But Aisike only saw the skeleton zombies controlled by Feilin. These can be considered organized undead. Under Feilin¡¯s control, they are very safe, and no one would dare to harm them. However, Aisike overlooked a problem. The Resting Wind was blowing outside, and over the years, arge number of residents in the underground city had either died of old age or passed away suddenly. Wouldn¡¯t their bodies and bones give birth to undead under the influence of the Resting Wind? Then, where did these wild undead go? As a human, Aisike did not notice the difference between the wild and organized undead. Seeing the skeletons and zombies roaming the streets, he thought undead were safe. But the true evil often hides in corners that even Feilin cannot notice. As soon as Ange and the Little Zombie entered, they were targeted. Ange was an unowned Ashbone Skeleton, wandering the streets aimlessly without a fixed job, an obvious characteristic of being ¡®unowned¡¯. The Little Zombie, on the other hand, was unusually active. This was not like the rigid and dull zombies, it was more like a juvenile witch. Sorcerers, wise necromancers are called Liches while thosecking intelligence are called zombies. In terms of growth potential and practicality, the wise Liches are hundreds of times superior to zombies. They could also easily be trained to be powerful spellcasters. Think about it, having a powerful spellcaster who is absolutely obedient to you. And capable of living long enough would be such a precious asset to you or even your future generations. With the presence of Little Zombie, an Ashbone Skeleton like Ange was rtively worthless. The Necromancer targeted Ange first, intending to subdue Ange and then kidnap Little Zombie. However, Ange¡¯s actions were too quick, and it cost him control with just one hit. Theoretically, a broken scythe could not decapitate the Tough Skin Zombie in one blow. What caused this phenomenon? The puzzled Necromancer, unable to curb his curiosity, dispatched another skeleton. However, he no longer had the luxury of hoping to subdue Ange and then kidnap Little Zombie¡ªfiguring out the cause would bring him great satisfaction. By the time he controlled the skeleton to reach Ange¡¯s location, he only saw a headless zombie following Ange and Little Zombie,boriously moving rubble. The soul of a zombie resides in its chest, so losing its head does not kill it. Hence, one often hears about Headless Zombies or Headless Knights, but never headless skeletons. However, once a zombie loses its head, its perception ability weakens considerably. The soul observes its environment through the chest cavity, giving the sensation of having cataracts, unless the soul is strong enough to ignore this hindrance. Besides the three Skeleton Zombies working diligently in the fields, he also saw Feilin suddenly blocking his path. Feilin¡¯s exceedingly furious yet smiling face said: ¡°You pests from the underground sewer, normally I can¡¯t be bothered to deal with you. Now that you dare target my esteemed guests, why don¡¯t you repent in the world of the dead?¡± The Necromancer felt as if Feilin¡¯s face was caving in and spinning, making his head spin as if a mighty force was sucking him towards it and plummeting him into an endless abyss. This change shocked the Necromancer, and a terrifying magic crossed his mind ¡ª the Soul-devouring Abyss. It was a kind of spirit magic, specifically targeting consciousness bodies that attached themselves to other objects, such as mind control and undead body attachments. However, its sess rate was low. The spiritual power had to be many times stronger than the opponent for it to work. Feilin¡¯s spiritual power was stronger than that of this human Necromancer by a dozen times. He pulled out the Necromancer¡¯s consciousness directly and crushed it. In a dark corner, the Necromancer sitting in the chair trembled, and then went limp. His powerless body slid from the chair to the ground. With his consciousness sucked away, the Necromancer became akin to a living dead, never waking up again. Although his body was still breathing and he was still alive, if no one found him, he would remain lying there until he starved to death. After killing the consciousness body attached to the skeleton, Feilin heaved a sigh of relief and muttered, ¡°Fortunately, I was cautious. I can buy supplies from the newly met Observer. If these pests rm him and Lord Observer moves to watch over another ce, the Underground City would be ruined. No, this area must be dered off-limits. I can¡¯t let anyone in casually.¡± After saying this, he ignored the skeleton that had fallen on the ground and quietly left. He didn¡¯t dare disturb the Lord Observer. Not long after, the restless Little Zombie started running around. It quickly discovered the white skeleton and excitedly dragged it back, howling towards Ange. Ange didn¡¯t pay attention to this skeleton but stared at Little Zombie with confusion. A wisp of soul energy was emerging from Little Zombie¡¯s body and drifting into Ange¡¯s. This was the second time this had happened. When Ange had cut down the zombie before, Little Zombie had clutched its neck, looking scared, and then a wisp of soul energy had drifted into Ange¡¯s soul. From the first wisp of soul energy, Ange faintly felt that he and Little Zombie had established a mysterious connection. Chapter 12 - 12 - Undead Temple_1 12 Chapter 12 ¨C Undead Temple_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion The next day, Ange invoked the divine name of Negris, and the Bronze Dragon¡¯s thoughts projected into his soul. Ange exined the peculiar connection he had with Little Zombie and asked for an exnation. As soon as Negris heard, he shouted, ¡°Impossible, that¡¯s a soul contact, but you got it by its dedication to you? A new witch, it dedicated its soul to you? Are you kidding me? You¡¯re not a king.¡± Ange tilted his head, seemingly understanding, but also not. He blinked in confusion. ¡°Hey, hey, speak up, what do you mean by ignoring people?¡± Negris became angry. Ange tilted his head in confusion again, and said, ¡°One question, tomorrow.¡± Negris almost spat blood, ¡°No no no, this is not a question, it¡¯s me asking you, did it dedicate its Soul Fire to you? Voluntarily?¡± Negris asked urgently. Ange nodded. ¡°But¡­but¡­¡± Negris was at a loss for words: ¡°But you¡¯re not a king.¡± Ange stared at him nkly. Negris was distressed for a while, but decided it was better to clear things up, lest half-baked exnations kill him. ¡°Your connection with Little¡­this is a witch, Sidol Chuk? Your soul connection with Sidol, is called Soul Contact between two undead. There¡¯s a soul connection between superior and subordinate, it can¡¯t betray you, you can control everything about it, including its soul and thoughts, even destroy it.¡± ¡°There are two scenarios for Soul Contact. One is that you endow it with the soul, did you endow it with the soul?¡± Negris asked. Ange shook his head, but asked a seemingly unrted question, ¡°Why is it called Sidol Chuk?¡± Negris answered impatiently, ¡°Can¡¯t you see it? It¡¯s written inside the clothes.¡± ¡°The other possibility is that it makes a Soul Oath to you. Did it make a Soul Oath to you? Or do you even know what an Oath is?¡± Negris sneered, not that he was underestimating Ange and Little Zombie, but with Ange¡¯s slow-witted expression, what could he know? Just enough to be annoying. Ange shook his head. Negris sighed, ¡°If it¡¯s neither of the two cases, then the only remaining possibility is the Soul Network. But you aren¡¯t a king.¡± A puzzled Negris suggested, ¡°You should look for any remaining Undead Temples of followers. If your soul can connect to it, then it is the real Soul Network.¡± After Negris left, Ange pulled Little Zombie over, opened its clothes to check and indeed, inside he found the name Sidol Chuk written. When the original human starved to death, his clothes wereplete, but after turning into Little Zombie and running around wild, the wear and tear rubbed off the rest, leaving only half of it on. The name on the clothes was probably the name of Little Zombie¡¯s shell when it was alive. Even though they¡¯re not the same soul, Little Zombie was just an undead creature that sprouted from this corpse, but it doesn¡¯t matter, it¡¯s just a name, at least it¡¯s better than Little Zombie, less confusing. Seeing Ange open its clothes, Little Zombie thought that Ange wanted them and quickly took them off to hand over. It wasn¡¯t until Ange indicated that he didn¡¯t want them that it put them back on. But in such handling, the clothes became even more worn. And so, Ange imed this area, cultivated farnds, brought over broken stones to line up row by row, andid Luminous Moss on top of them. Luminous Moss, such tenacious moss, grows in every damp corner when left unattended. Now that someone had purposely set up a suitable environment for it, naturally, it grew wildly. Not only did the trenches of the cultivated farnd be full, even the edge of the rock wall was covered. When entering this area, it was a full view of glowing moss, as bright as daylight. With enough light, Ange sowed seeds into the ridges made between the two rows of Luminous Moss. Ange might not know much, but when ites to nting, he has over a thousand years of experience, allowing him to quickly familiarize himself with the properties of crops. Moss needs moisture, but can¡¯t stand stagnant water. So, heid broken stones at the bottom of the ditches. The crops couldn¡¯t be too humid, so they needed to be nted on ridges, spaced out in rows to ensure each row gets exposed to light. Yes, Ange nned to use the light emitted by the Luminous Moss to illuminate the crops, whether this would work was yet to be found out. In the meantime, Feilin made another visit, trading ten Soul Crystals for forty-five bags of grain. He then noticed the luminous moss field Ange had created, and it immediately caught his attention. In Feilin¡¯s mind, Ange was an Observer who wouldn¡¯t bother with pointless things. Could Luminous Moss be used like this? The biggest problem in the underground city is the dwindling cultivatablend. Meeting the conditions of having sufficient light and being shielded from the Resting Wind is difficult. It¡¯s easier to find fertile soil; a bit more effort in digging will do. If Luminous Moss could be used in this way, then the requirement for ¡®sufficient light¡¯ could be removed. The underground city has plenty ofnd to grow things. A weekter, all the sowed seeds had sprouted. ¡­ In a dark corner of the underground city, the body of a Necromancerid rigid on the ground and was showing signs of livor mortis. This was unusual; a normal corpse would have decayed and produced maggots a week after death. But, he had been a Necromancer alive, with too many methods of corpse preservation at his disposal. The erosion of death aura alone was enough to slow down the dposition of the body. Without any warning, a red me ignited on top of the corpse¡¯s head. The corpse suddenly sat up, with eyes wide open, revealing a pair of ck pupils without any whites. On the forehead, a pair of demonic horns twisted outwards, growing in odd angles. A low voice echoed, ¡°Useless trash. Can¡¯t even gather bodies without getting caught. In the end, it falls on the honorable Lord Demas to do the dirty work myself.¡± After the demonic speech, the horns retracted on the corpse, the pupils returned to their normal state, distinct with ck and white. Even the spots of livor mortis disappearedpletely, restoring the skin to the color and sticity of the living. After sorting himself out, Demon Demas surveyed himself from head to toe, nodded in satisfaction, and quietly left the room. Through a winding tunnel and an extended staircase, Demas crawled out of a thick coffin. There were hundreds of simr stone coffins here. ¡­ Feilin, who had been keeping constant tabs on Ange¡¯s situation, naturally knew about the sprouting of the seeds. As someone who was already struggling to make ends meet, he managed to scrape together another ten Soul Crystals under the pretense of trading for food, to personally inspect the situation. After seeing it for himself, Feilin was very excited. The Luminous Moss really could provide light for the crops. This was more efficient than their current method of manually powering Magic Lamps with magic, and then using thosemps to illuminate the crops. They didn¡¯t need to fully switch to this method; even adopting a small part of it could save them a huge amount of manpower. ¡°Lord, may we use this method?¡± Feilin asked expectantly. Ange didn¡¯t understand his meaning and cocked his head at him. This posture once again frightened Feilin. He promptly took out a Soul Crystal with a painful expression, ¡°Please allow us to use the method you invented. We will pay you a usage fee of one Soul Crystal per month.¡± Now Ange understood. It turned out that one needed to pay a fee to use someone else¡¯s invention. Ange epted the Soul Crystal and nodded. One Soul Crystal was not a small amount. Each time, Ange followed the habit he had formed from the first transaction, absorbing half of the energy of the Soul Crystal into his own soul. The first time was unintentional, but the next two times it became the norm. One Soul Crystal couldst for two transactions. Keeping the Soul Crystal aside, Ange suddenly remembered the Bronze Dragon¡¯s suggestion and asked Feilin, ¡°Is there an Undead Temple here?¡± Feilin, who had just let out a sigh of relief, felt his soul jump back into his throat upon hearing this question. Chapter 13 - 13: Do You Believe in the Undead?_1 13 Chapter 13: Do You Believe in the Undead?_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Should he say ¡°yes¡± or ¡°no¡±? If he were to say ¡°no,¡± what if Lord Observer gets annoyed because there are no believers of immortality in such arge underground city? If he says ¡°yes¡±, there were indeed two temples once, but one of them has been abandoned and turned into a ce to store coffins. The other one is half-dead, with only a silver skeleton lingering, and there isn¡¯t even a priest. Can it still be called a temple? Would Lord Observer think he is not dedicated enough if he sees this situation? That he can¡¯t even hold on to the belief in undead? This really isn¡¯t due to hisck of dedication but rather the unique characteristics of the Undead Temple. Only humans must worship it. The undead are directly branded with souls, why do they need a temple? With the closure of the world¡¯s transit station, the Undead Empire has not been seen in this world for thousands of years. Even the strongest belief weakens as generations of people die, ultimately disappearing. But mainly, the original Undead Temple was tooissez-faire. There were no rewards for followers, and not much punishment for those who desecrated it. As long as you didn¡¯t curse or spit at the entrance, you could even shout, ¡®Believing in the undead is foolish ¡ª¡ª¡¯, and nobody would pay attention to you. Of course, insulting the king is not allowed. Anyone who dares to criticize the Undead King who controls the spirits and immortality will be pursued even into another ne. Thisissez-faire attitude is far from that of the Demon Valley. The demons there love to entice people. You can trade anything ¨C money, beauties, status, power ¨C for their belief. One thousand years ago, Feilin heard of a religion called the Church of Light. It was even more maniptive, but with the closure of the world¡¯s transit station, they also disappeared. After a short consideration, Feilin decided to say ¡°yes¡±. After all, there indeed was one, though neglected, but that was not his fault. On the contrary, deceiving the Observer was a grave sin. ¡°Yes, there is a temple on the southeast corner.¡± Feilin sent an address through thought intensification. The advantage with the undead is that theymunicate directly at the soul level. Some things that are hard to describe with words can be conveyed with a simple thought. After receiving the address, Ange took Little Zombie and headed towards the northeastern corner. Ange¡¯s location was also in the northeast but in a branching cave, where there were very few people. The northeast corner, where the Undead Temple was located, was the sloping area when first entering the underground city, a main urban area. When Ange arrived here, all was silent and no ghosts were found, and the ground was covered with moss, making it slippery and hard to traverse. As he proceeded towards the temple¡¯s area, he noticed all the moss and scattered items disappeared. The grounds had been swept clean, leaving traces of tidiness. The sound of sweeping echoed from afar. Following the sound, Ange rounded a corner and saw a silver-white skeleton sweeping. Sensing Ange¡¯s arrival, the Silver Skeleton¡¯s hollow eye sockets looked in his direction. The Little Zombie was shocked and hastily hid behind Ange. Honestly, this Silver Skeleton was the strongest Ange had seen in a thousand years. Its soul strength was only slightly weaker than Feilin¡¯s¨Cenough to suppress lower-level undead creatures. However, Ange didn¡¯t feel any pressure at all, not even when facing Feilin. Initially, he picked his grey skeleton from the Temple of Rest, not the product of an earnest exercise, so he didn¡¯t even know his level. But since Silver Skeleton couldn¡¯t make him feel pressured, it infers that its soul isn¡¯t much stronger than his. The Silver Skeleton looked for a moment and then lowered its head to continue sweeping. It had been repeating the same task for a thousand years and might continue for another thousand. No broom can withstand a thousand years of friction and remain intact, unless it can repair itself. Looking at the ck gas swirling around the broom each time it swept confirmed his assumption ¨C it was the Silver Skeleton¡¯s soul armor. Soul armor, the weapon refined by high-level undead creatures with soul energy, has its own growth characteristic and can repair itself if damaged. That being said, Ange¡¯s scythe and hoe have also been used for over a thousand years. Seeing that the Silver Skeleton ignored them, Ange didn¡¯t mind and continued to wander around the temple. The idea of Negris was to find an Undead Temple and try to connect to the Soul Network to understand his situation, but how to connect? After making a round and getting no clue, Ange called for Negris again. As soon as Negris entered Ange¡¯s soul, he couldn¡¯t help butin, ¡°I never expected that after getting to know my divine name, someone would treat me like a magic spirit. From now on, I will never offer my divine name as a reward again. Little skull, I¡¯m not your magic housekeeper.¡± ¡°Oh, a temple, no, a Soul Network.¡± Ange ignored Negris¡¯ints. Negris sighed. When he was the God of Knowledge as the Bronze Giant Dragon, those who were eligible to know his divine name would ask questions with caution and utmost seriousness. The questions asked were either about researching thews of ne operation or about solving difficult magical problems. Not like Ange, who always asked aboutmon sense stuff, which made him feel like a magic housekeeper. But what could he do? Even if he didn¡¯t like the rule he set himself, he still had to do it. After looking around, Negris helplessly said, ¡°Without believers, how can there be a Soul Network? Even the Undead Fire on the altar has been extinguished. Light the Undead Fire first, then look for devout believers.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Ange responded. Negris, who had already figured out Ange¡¯s habits, helplessly said, ¡°Are you going to ask how to light the Undead Fire?¡± ¡°Yes, tomorrow.¡± Ange was a very rule-abiding skeleton. ¡°Don¡¯t wait until tomorrow. I will teach you now. Are you nning to use several days toplete something tiny as dust? You have the patience, but I don¡¯t.¡± Negris surrendered. As the splendid God of Knowledge, it was a disgrace to him to have to answer suchmon-sense stuff over several days. Under Negris¡¯ guidance, Ange lit the Undead Fire on the altar. A bit of Soul Energy was injected, and the Undead Fire rose. Almost at the moment the Undead Fire was lit, the sweeping sound in the temple stopped abruptly, and the Silver Skeleton quickly came over and knelt before the altar in the most standard posture. The metallic skull clinked on the ground each time it worshiped, and with each worship, the Undead Fire, like a small me, sprang up a bit. Ange pointed to the Silver Skeleton and asked Negris, ¡°Believer?¡± ¡°This is not a believer, consider it a priest. Your king is so stupid to make a Silver Skeleton a priest. Doesn¡¯t he know another name for a priest is swindler? Can a silly skeleton swindle people?¡± Negris sneered. ¡°Who can be a believer?¡± Ange asked. ¡°Anyone can be. It¡¯s not about who the believer is, but about ¡®belief¡¯. Without pious belief, no matter how many people, it¡¯s useless. Don¡¯t look for them yourself, seeing your skeletal frame will make people guard against you. How can they possibly believe you? You should disguise yourself or ask someone else for help.¡± Negris had practically taught him by hand now, he had never been this active when spreading his own beliefs before. Ange thought for a moment, put his scarecrow hat on. The scarecrow hat was a magical tool for scaring birds. It could transform into two or three things, like an eagle or a human. Although this low-level magical tool didn¡¯t work well, and in the condition of almost identical spiritual power, one could see through it at a nce. But one advantage is that it can make a sound. Ange, who couldn¡¯t speak, now talked to Feilin through the soul. After transforming into an ordinary-looking man, Ange left the temple. Not far away, he saw a burly minotaur aunt. Ange pointed at her, ¡°Can she do?¡± ¡°Hehe, stubborn Minotaur, if she¡¯s willing to believe in you, I can crawl like a lizard.¡± Negris sneered. The Minotaurs were notoriously stubborn and only believed in ancestral totems. It¡¯s harder to make them believe in the undead than reaching the sky. Ange took out the Soul Crystal he got from Feilin as a usage fee, refined it and absorbed it into the wristband, and then transferred a bag of grain out. He brought it to the Minotaur aunt, ¡°You, believe in the undead?¡± Chapter 14 - 14 Soul Network_1 14 Chapter 14 Soul Network_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion The bull-headed aunt with a face full of hunger was picking moss. She had three children, each one a big eater, who easily put her into poverty. Fortunately, they were minotaurs who could eat grass, so even when they were impoverished, they wouldn¡¯t starve to death. However, in this world where even grass is scarce, the moss carried a rotten odor. If it weren¡¯t for theirck of choices, the bull-headed aunt would never choose to eat such stuff. Not to mention, it made her family¡¯s faces pale and thin. God forbid, if they contracted hernia from all this, it would truly be disastrous. So when someone dropped a bag of food in front of her and asked if she believed in the ¡®Undead¡¯, the bull-headed aunt immediately fell to her knees, clutching the bag tightly and said excitedly, ¡°I believe! I believe! I will believe in the ¡®Undead¡¯ in any way possible.¡± Any way possible? Then you can kneel. They brought the bull-headed aunt to the altar. ¡°Your faith is devout, King, gives you food.¡± Thumping, thumping, thumping. The bull-headed aunt knocked her head so hard that it rattled the stone bricks on the altar. The Undead Fire rose high. The hunger-stricken were more devout in front of food than any other believers. On the fifteenth knock, a wisp of dark blue me floated from the bull-headed aunt and entered the Undead Fire. Once the dark blue me entered the Undead Fire, Ange felt something strange. It seemed for that moment, the bull-headed aunt, the Undead Fire, he, and the little zombie became awork. Was this the Soul Network? ¡°Yes, the Soul Network, you trickster, you¡¯re buying people¡¯s hearts!¡± Negris, taking the form of a lizard, dered unhappily. He had been waiting for news and didn¡¯t leave, disregarding the rule of asking only one question a day. Ange, confused, pointed at the bull-headed aunt and said, ¡°Devout.¡± Just devout faith, right? Negris was speechless, indeed, while disseminating faith, small favors y a major role. Even he, as the God of Knowledge, had granted some badges such as the Knowledge Contest First, Second, and Third Prizes. But with Ange throwing a sack of food like this, it was far beyond a small favor. Perhaps one might temporarily win people¡¯s hearts, but¡­ Thinking of this, Negris suddenly realized, Ange seemed to just need to ¡®temporarily¡¯ win people¡¯s hearts. He didn¡¯t have the notion of disseminating faith, nor did he harbor any such thought. He was merely following Negris¡¯s suggestion to verify what he had been uncertain about before. Hadn¡¯t this verification been sessful? ¡°Well, you¡¯re right. The Soul Network did move to you. But the problem is you¡¯re neither a king nor a divine entity. How did you steal the Soul Network?¡± Negris was puzzled. Negris couldn¡¯t understand, and so Ange didn¡¯t bother thinking about it at all. After giving food to the bull-headed aunt, Ange nned to leave. ¡°Hey, are you leaving just like this? Aren¡¯t you going to consolidate? Aren¡¯t you going to develop? Isn¡¯t that a waste?¡± Negris asked continuously. Now the Undead Fire had been lit, the Soul Network inherited, and a devout believer had been sessfully won over. But was he just walking away? It was such a pity that he was sealed. Otherwise, with Ange¡¯s conditions, Negris would be more than willing to reconstruct another divine entity. ¡°Food, if you can¡¯t reproduce.¡± Ange responded. He had just collected one Soul Crystal from Feilin, which could reproduce five sacks of food. One sack had already been used up, leaving only four. It would be too difficult to try and develop anything with the food left. ¡°You¡¯re still worried about Soul Energy with faith? Once you have more believers, I assure you that your Soul Crystals will never run out.¡± Negris tempted him, really unwilling to give up such a golden opportunity. ¡°It won¡¯t run out?¡± Ange tilted his head, asking, ¡°Bronze Book, how much?¡± What Ange meant was, how many Soul Crystals would be needed to extract the Bronze Book? This question surprised Negris, ¡°Are you thinking about me now? Once you have divine power as strong as mine, you should be able to do it.¡± The Bronze Book was a divine artifact sealing Negris. Controlling it would mean harnessing the powers of the God of Knowledge. In the world, those who could control a deity were called the handlers of gods. Did this oblivious fellow Ange dare to dream so big? But soon he knew that Ange was just casually finding a reference, and he happened to be that reference: ¡°Your divine power, equal to how many Soul Crystals?¡± ¡°¡­¡± Under the tempting promise of ¡®as many Soul Crystals as you need,¡¯ Ange agreed to Negris¡¯s suggestion to continue to develop believers. The method was simple. He found the bull-headed aunt and repeated Negris¡¯s words, ¡°The Undying King sensed the disaster,manded me to save you, and others. Believe in the Undying, be fed. Tell your children, your husband, your family, the devout believers shall be fed.¡± Well done, Ange lowered the offering from a sack of food to just enough to satiate hunger. Then he specifically reminded the bull-headed aunt, ¡°Guiding others, you may eat more.¡± Meaning, those who bring others can get more. The bull-headed aunt found these confusing words hard to decipher but felt that they were very profound. Once she understood the meaning, her eyes gleamed, almost the size of copper bells. Three children at home, all big eaters, usually going hungry after being full. Now just believing in the Undying would mean they get to eat their fill? Believe, definitely believe. Don¡¯t believe? They can be sure that Aunt Bull would break their legs. There was no need to break legs. As soon as the three calves heard they could be fed, their eyes turned red. They rushed at the speed of a raging bull, knocking their heads, making a loud noise. The Undead Fire was prodded by them and rose higher than Aunt Bull¡¯s. Indeed, for teenagers, the belief in being fed was more devout. But Negris soon regretted it because he promised to feed them but forgot that they were minotaurs. A small calf ate more than a sack of food. The five sacks of food that a Soul Crystal exchanged for, apart from Aunt Bull¡¯s one sack, the remaining four were all eaten by the three calves. One Soul Crystal, five sacks of food, won over four devout foodies. It¡¯s unclear whether it was a loss or gain. It should be a gain, though. Each minotaur offered at least one Soul me, which was equal to the quantity of four Soul Crystals. However, it would require aplicated process to convert these energies and extract them as Soul Energy. ¡°You, Undead Fire, Choke, Soul Network, flow. Yes, control the energy in the Undead Fire, let it flow towards you. Come, try to strengthen your soul. Do you feel it? Do you feel your soul growing stronger?¡± ¡°Are you even a skeleton? Why are you so adept? Did you practice this before? Even knowing how to do it, you still need a long time to master it. Why is it that you managed to do it as soon as I said it? Are you the bones of the Goddess of Fortune?¡± The process that Negris thought wasplicated waspleted at once by Ange. All the energy in the Undead Fire was extracted. ¡°Wind, flow.¡± Ange pointed to his head. Thisplicated process was simr to how he reached out from the hole inside his cave, drawing from the cold current within the Resting Wind. New moon book, seeking votes and rmendations for rewards. Chapter 15 - 15 Don’t be fooled, sir_1 15 Chapter 15 Don¡¯t be fooled, sir_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Negris underestimated the desperation of the hungry people for food. Even though he specified a limit to the number of worshippers, the Undead Temple was still overcrowded with civilians who¡¯d rushed to the news. When they heard that only fervent faith could receive the king¡¯s aid, everyone eagerly flocked to the altar, intending to show the king their devout belief in the Undead or their hunger. The crowd nearly made the neglected temple copse; even the desperate shouts from the Minotaur aunt¡¯s family could not maintain order. The ever-sweeping Silver Skeleton grasped its broomstick backward, the broom¡¯s end wrapped in a ck mist which transformed into arge double-handed ax. This is the uniqueness of Soul Armor ¨C it can alter its form to serve different purposes. If you¡¯re idle and interested in practicing, it¡¯s feasible to form around a hundred and eighty or so versions. With practice, one can shift between them rapidly. Holding the ax, the Silver Skeleton jumped onto a stone pir beside the altar, bowed its body, and let out a silent scream from its soul. The hustle-bustle crowd was unable to hear this wail. They only felt an icy soul-freezing energy surge through their bodies, simr to a chill running down their neck, only tens of times stronger. Most people froze, shivering. With the Silver Skeleton¡¯s shriek, a fence made out of white bones emerged from the ground of the temple that originally didn¡¯t have walls. This fence enclosed the Undead Temple¡¯s perimeter. After being enraged by the Silver Skeleton and encircled by the bone fence, the crowd was reminded that this was the Undead Temple, a resting ce for the Undead, not a ce they could recklessly create a ruckus. They obediently formed a queue to worship individually at the altar. When they revealed their sincere faith in the Undead, Ange felt a connection between himself and the worshippers, using the Undead Fire as a bridge, forming a Soul Network. At this moment, Ange could even hear the inner voices of the others. It was an extraordinary sensation. Among these prayers, most were ¡®please give me food¡¯; a few were ¡®let me live forever¡¯; asional ones included ¡®please kill the neighbor¡¯s cunning vixen,¡¯ ¡®make the Resting Wind disappear,¡¯ etc. This showed Ange howplicated the inner thoughts of Life Species were. Besides hearing all these voices, the most crucial task for Ange was converting these Faith Elemental Forces. This gave him a feeling of returning to the underground city, guiding the energy into his own body relentlessly. A Soul Crystal is a solidification of energy produced by an Undead¡¯s soul which can be reversed to supplement the soul. Other Undead could also use it, establishing its fundamental equivalence, allowing it to be used as a currency. Any Undead would recognize its value. Ange could use these energies to supplement his own soul. Previously, due to the need to relocate food, Ange didn¡¯t dare use it at will. Having acquired so much now, with the food to Soul Crystal ratio having reached one to one hundred, he could use it freely. As an endless stream of Soul Energy poured into him, Ange only felt his own rapidly growing strength. Sometimes change is rather abrupt. The Soul Fire suddenly began to shrink violently. All the mes surged inwards, forming a pulsating sphere. In the process of expansion and contraction, purer streams of Soul Energy coursed through his entire skeletal structure. Negris noticed Ange¡¯s condition and was taken aback. ¡°Soul Heart? I knew your soul was too solid and not like an Ashbone Skeleton. Nearly reaching the Soul Heart stage, soon your skeleton will transform into a golden structure, making you the Golden Skeleton King.¡± The Golden Skeleton King? It seems pretty powerful. His creator, the City Lord, is a Golden Skeleton King. Does this mean he could create other skeletons like the lord? ¡­ The Undead Temple¡¯s rituals thus became the norm. Devout worshippers who could faithfully offer their Soul me were rewarded with one jin of food. They coulde every day. Ange transferred around ten tons or twenty thousand jin of food, enough for the temple¡¯s consumption for a period. Not everyone was devout, and not everyone truly believed in the Undead. Among these two hundred people, approximately one hundred could offer their Soul me. Those whose belief was not firm wouldn¡¯te again. After a round of screening, the regr believers amounted to around two hundred people. This was a rather considerable number given the total poption of the underground city was just about five thousand people and excluding some races and groups that had their own beliefs, along with some Undead, the total was even less. Regarding the sudden rise of the Undead Temple, the management level of the underground city had considerable dispute. The Subus Rina even proposed to prevent believers from attending worship to avoid instability. However, as soon as she stated this proposal, she was angrily rebuked by Aisike: ¡°Are you mad? I am also a follower of the Undead. Are you going to seal me off, too?¡± Aisike is a Necromancer. How can any Necromancer not believe in the Undead? Rina¡¯s heart skipped a beat. She¡¯dpletely forgotten about this and what¡¯s worse, the identity of the City Lord. The lord is an old Witch and is an Undead himself. Proposing to seal off the Undead Temple on Witch¡¯s territory, Rina thought she must have been mad to make such a proposal. Feilin, who knew she didn¡¯t mean to, consoled her. ¡°Rina had good intentions, merely fearing the sudden appearance of an unstable element that might disrupt the current stability.¡± Rina nodded like a pecking chicken. Having recently joined this underground city, she wasn¡¯t very aware of the Undead Temple. But now she¡¯s understood ¨C the Undead Temple is a ce to worship the Undead. Feilin, who knew the inside story, said: ¡°There¡¯s no need to worry. The reopening of the temple may well be the most stable pir of the underground city. Plus, they¡¯re continuously distributing grains from the temple which can mitigate our food shortage. It¡¯s a fantastic thing. Just pretend it isn¡¯t happening and don¡¯t disturb them.¡± Klegg, who sat on the other side, revealed a smile that read ¡®just as I thought.¡¯ He knew it all along. Feilin suddenly brought back loads of grain a few days ago, and now with the sudden reopening of the temple and its distribution of food, anyone with a brain could link the two events. Only the brainless Subus could be bbering nonsense. When everyone reached a consensus, Feilin changed the topic. ¡°How¡¯s the idea of using Luminous Moss as a supplement light source for cropsing along?¡± Aisike and Rina gazed at each other andstly turned to Klegg. Klegg replied: ¡°It failed. It couldn¡¯t grow in the fields. nting it too far would make the light from the Luminous Moss too weak to provide lighting. Only by nting it between two rows of crops can it survive due to its need for a wet environment, which it can¡¯t survive in ordinarily. Overwatering will result in root rot and the crops will get damp too. Master, I think this approach is unfeasible.¡± ¡°Oh? Is that so? But, I¡¯ve seen someone seed with that.¡± said Feilin. ¡°Impossible.¡± The intelligent Goblin denied categorically: ¡°Master, don¡¯t tell me you¡¯ve been deceived by magic? Someone used magic to maintain crop growth temporarily to fool you. Master, you mustn¡¯t be fooled.¡± Chapter 16 - 16 Multi-layer Moss_1 16 Chapter 16 Multiyer Moss_1 Trantor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Editor: EndlessFantasy Trantion Facing Klegg¡¯s doubts, Feilin went to the temple first and secured Ange¡¯s approval, then took the entire management team to Ange¡¯s Luminous Moss field. ¡°So, that¡¯s how it works. By using different substrates and broken stone as a drainage system to drain excess water. My goodness, such a simple method allowing two distinctly humid-demanding things to grow in the same field. It really is remarkable,¡± Klegg conceded, admitting defeat with admiration. ¡°Master Feilin, the owner of this field possesses farming techniques far superior to ours. Could he possibly be a druid? Can hee help us manage and improve our fields?¡± ¡°In your dreams,¡± Feilin smirked in satisfaction and replied, ¡°You all can¡¯t stay here for long, so take a good look, record the details and then leave. This area has already been dered a restricted zone by me. Without permission, even I cannot enter.¡± He really was clueless when it came to technology and was frequently stumped and silenced by Klegg¡¯s professional questions. Now, he had finally gained the upper hand. See, Klegg did not outshine everyone else in all technical aspects. Everyone¡¯s nerves were on end after hearing that there were restricted zones in the Underground City, which even the City Lord couldn¡¯t freely ess. At this moment, a soldier ran over to inform Aisike, ¡°Sir, a gue has broken out in the Upper City Zone. More than a dozen people have diarrhea and are vomiting. A corpse was found in the pond.¡± Hearing the words ¡°Upper City Zone¡±, Aisike¡¯s expression grew serious. He asked, ¡°Has it been quarantined and sealed off? Where is the body?¡± The Upper City Zone is a wealthy sector and is located at the top of the slope in the Underground City. Water flows downwards, meaning the higher the area, the cleaner the water. In this dark, damp Underground City that has never seen sunlight, with its iplete drainage system, human and animal waste, as well as various other types of sewage, flow freely. The lower one goes, the worse the sanitary conditions, with the risk of gue spreading increasing. The Underground City already has a well-established emergency n in ce: to iste and seal off the area, then have a mage treat those afflicted. This generally manages to control the epidemic within a short span of time. What worried Aisike, though, was that the epidemic had broken out in the most hygienic part of the city, the Upper City Zone. The sewage from homes would naturally flow downhill toward the lower parts of the city. Only a dozen cases had been discovered now, but they had no idea of how many more were lurking undetected. A group of people hurriedly arrived at the site in the Upper City Zone where the body had been found. A rotten corpsey on the ground. Lena took one look and hurriedly turned away, nauseated. Feilin examined the corpse closely and seemed surprised, ¡°The time of death should only be two days ago, so why has the body decayed so much? There is also no trace of a soul left behind. Something¡¯s fishy.¡± Hearing Feilin, Lena boldly mustered up her courage to take a second look at the corpse. The sight forced her to ask, ¡°My Lord, could you open up his abdominal cavity?¡± Upon doing so, everyone¡¯s faces turned pale: ¡°A Demon Knot? It¡¯s those bastards from Demon Valley.¡± The emergence of Demon Valley and the outbreak of the gue made the whole Underground City fall into a tense atmosphere. All living creatures were ordered to stay indoors, and nobody was allowed to leave their residence. Only the Undead could move around freely. This was an even more effective measure than what humans would have done in their society. After all, the Undead couldn¡¯t get infected by the gue, which allowed the society to function normally. Ange noticed that the temple has quietened down. All the people were quarantined in their homes and no worshippers were visiting. The Undead Temple had reverted to its former deste state. The Silver Skeleton continued its tireless cleaning. Everything within the boundaries of the temple was swept meticulously clean, without a speck of dust left. The only thing that had changed was that ever since Ange began forming the Soul Heart, every time the Silver Skeleton encountered him, it would stop working, stand up holding the broom, lower its head and bow respectfully. Ordinary Skeleton Zombies, upon encountering another of their kind with a more powerful soul, would run away ¨C only those that were programmed with rules would act this way. Ange attempted tomunicate with it, yet he only managed to elicit very basic responses such as ¡®cleaning¡¯ and ¡®quiet¡¯. Logically, the Silver Skeleton should have possessed a certain level of intelligence and should have been able tomunicate much more than it was doing.. With no oneing over, Ange didn¡¯t mind as he preferred the quiet. Meanwhile, there had been major changes near the temple ¨C the entire vicinity had been densely filled with Luminous Moss. Initially, he wanted to nt the moss within the temple¡¯s boundary, but it would be swept away by the Silver Skeleton overnight. Due to good care and a suitable environment, the Luminous Moss thrived and multiplied rapidly, quickly filling up all avable space around the temple. After the quarantine measures, Ange had more time to take care of the Luminous Moss. Unfortunately, there was very little soil near the temple. The minor amount that was avable was an aggregation of dust withplicatedponents and didn¡¯t contain much nutrition; it couldn¡¯t be used to grow crops the way a proper soil field could. But he didn¡¯t care, as long as he could grow the Luminous Moss, that was enough. After all, the Minotaur family even ate moss; the Luminous Moss could be considered a type of food, he supposed. The Luminous Moss didn¡¯t require soil or sunlight, so Ange decided to bring in stone bs, stacked themyer uponyer, and nted the moss in between theyers. What the Underground Citycked was not stone bs. Certain areas contained shale which, with just a gentle tap, would produce neat stone bs. After constructing a seven- or eightyer rack, he nted Luminous Moss between eachyer. These didn¡¯t require light to grow but just the right amount of humidity. On these stone bs, Ange nted the sturdiest, fastest-growing, andrgest moss nts that had been specifically selected. Selective breeding is a fundamental skill in farming. If he didn¡¯t even know this, Ange wouldn¡¯t have been able to farm for thousands of years, as the seeds would have degenerated a long time ago. Just as Ange was quietly growing his moss, the sound of hurried footsteps approached from a distance. In the lead was a teenage boy, who carried a four or five-year-old girl in his arms. He was sprinting barefooted, with blood flowing from his foot where it seemed he¡¯d stepped on a sharp stone. However, the boy seemed to be oblivious to the pain as he ran towards the temple with all his might. Close on his heels were four or five skeleton soldiers brandishing weapons. They were about to catch up and cut the boy down, as their orders were to kill any living creature that moved around freely. As the temple came into view, hope shone in the boy¡¯s eyes. He whispered, ¡°Please save my sister, Undead Lord.¡± With his words, a Soul me, thicker by at least ten times than that of an average human, shot towards the distant altar. However, with just faith alone, it was impossible to ovee physical limitations. Just as they were about to enter the temple¡¯s boundary, the skeleton soldiers caught up. One of them swung its sword at the boy¡¯s back. Ange had been attracted by the thick Soul me. Seeing the boy on the brink of being hit, he subconsciously shouted out, ¡°Roar!¡± He wasn¡¯t quite sure why he chose to shout ¡®roar¡¯. Maybe he had been influenced by spending too much time roaring at Little Zombie. All he wanted to do was halt the skeleton soldier¡¯s attack. The roar, transmitting through the soul¡¯s vibrations, startled the skeleton soldier trying to strike the boy. It blitzed, looking at Ange in terror. An undead king, who had formed the Soul Heart and was about to transform into a Golden Skeleton, was bellowing. It was more than enough to scare low-level skeletons out of their wits. Not much slower than the sound, a figure rushed out, howling madly. It rammed into the stunned skeleton soldier, sending it flying. It smashed onto the ground, breaking into pieces instantly. Ange dripped some Holy Bug Ash onto it. Only then did the Insect Ash Liquid slowly seep into the stone. The fossilized egg, which had turned a brownish color, started to slowly turn gray where the Insect Ash Liquid had been dripped. That was the original color of the eggshell. ¡°¡­Not only can it cause wilted wood to sprout new growth, it can also rejuvenate fossils. This is indeed a more concentrated version of Insect Ash,¡± Negris didn¡¯t know what toment anymore. He wanted to say that this wasn¡¯t in line with the ne rules. But then he thought of the fact that these insects were originally the creation of Hermorthos, a kind of holy relic. Therefore, it wasn¡¯t strange for them to have these strange effects. Upon careful examination, only a thinyer of the fossilized egg shell had been restored. The underneath was still stony. Perhaps if they could get more Holy Bug Ash Liquid to soak it, it might actually be restored to a living, breathing egg. However¡­ ¡°This is just a liquid capable of reversing the state of life. Is it poisonous?¡± Negris asked. Ange shook his head, ¡°Not a reversal, it is blessed with powerful vitality. Let¡¯s go.¡± He beckoned Negris back to the Resting Pce and led him to a secluded corner where several pits had been dug into the Breathing Soil. Breathing Soil was being used to cover these pits that housed insects. Breathing Soil was filled with the scent of death. It could dehydrate and dessicate any creature, making it a natural enemy to all living beings. Only Skeleton Zombies, who were already dead, would befortable in such an environment. The wall of the pit was made of solidified Breathing Soil, which the insects wouldn¡¯t even touch, let alone bite. In order to live, the insects needed ayer of regr soil lining the bottom of the pit. In such an environment, there was no worry of any of the insects escaping. Each pit had a different situation. Some pits had very sparse, weak-looking insects, some contained only dead insects, some insects were in a state of hibernation, and some wereying eggs. Some pits even contained food residue, each pit¡¯s residue being different from the others. ¡°Is this yet anotherparison group?¡± Negris asked helplessly. Ange nodded as if it was only to be expected. Chapter 249 - 168: The Divine Fire of Knowledge Ignites Again_3 Chapter 249: Chapter 168: The Divine Fire of Knowledge Ignites Again_3 Trantor:549690339 ¡°So you can reference anything, why don¡¯t you set up a fertility control group for the Dragon n and see how they can improve their fertility rate?¡± Negris fumed. Ange nodded. ¡°Err, no, no, no, I was just joking, I¡¯m joking. Don¡¯t take it seriously, don¡¯t take it seriously.¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help but want to p his own mouth. He had forgotten that this skeleton takes everything seriously. One should not joke so lightly. If he actually starts capturing a bunch of giant dragons to set up dozens of control groups, the Giant Dragon n would surely be tormented to death by him. Quickly changing the topic, he continued to examine the pits, eventually seeing arge pit almost filled with bugs. In this pit, the bugs were packed so tightly that they had almost filled the entire pit. However, they had all died. Upon careful examination, he discovered that they had all starved to death. ¡°This doesn¡¯t make sense. There are bug corpses all over the pit. Why didn¡¯t they eat each other¡¯s corpses instead of starving to death? And why are there so many? If it¡¯s a control group, the initial number of bugs in each pit should be the same.¡± Negris identified the problem at first nce and asked in confusion. After Ange¡¯s exnation, he finally understood the reason. It was like a simr version of Instant Death Halo. The refined Holy Bug Ash has strong vitality, enabling organisms to grow and develop at an elerated rate. If Anthony had this when he was resurrected, there would be no need for him to eat World Tree tender buds fried with eggs and essence injection. A few bowls of this Insect Ash Liquid would be enough for him to grow to forty or fifty, or even seventy or eighty. Moreover, this potency does not weaken with the expansion of the spread radius. Instead, because of continuous stacking, bugs eating bugs, the more they eat, the stronger the effect, bing so strong that the bugs don¡¯t have enough time to gnaw at each other before they die of starvation or old age¡­ ¡°Isparative analysis really so effective? This is simply a contagious version of Instant Death Halo, and it¡¯s even extracted from their corpses. It¡¯s really using their poison against them.¡± Having sigh, Negris said, ¡°Let¡¯s use it as the main ingredient.¡± Once the main ingredient was found, the rest of the process proceeded smoothly. Soon, arge bottle of pesticide was ready. The faint scent it emitted made Negris hard to hold back his urge to taste it. ¡°This is good too, no need to think of ways to lure them to eat. Just throw it to the ce where the locust disaster is, and the bugs are bound toe and gnaw.¡± Murmuring to himself, suddenly, Negris heard a sound of someone falling to their knees behind him. Sava¡¯s eyes were glittering with excitement, she asked, ¡°Are you the Lord of Knowledge?¡± ¡°Eh, you know about the God of Knowledge?¡± Negris was slightly surprised, he could understand if an elf knew about it, but Sava, a low-level pharmacist, knew about him too?N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°You are indeed, you are indeed, right? God of Knowledge, my mentor is your faithful believer. From the age of five when I started learning pharmacy from him, for a full ten years, every morning he would devoutly pray to you.¡± Sava said excitedly. Negris rubbed his nose and said awkwardly, ¡°Really? Why can¡¯t I feel it?¡± ¡°Yeah, why can¡¯t you feel it? Could it be that my mentor is not devout enough? No wonder he stopped praying three years ago. He must not be devout enough.¡± Negris nearly choked at her words. He was still sealed up three years ago. Could it be that hisst true believer had given up his faith at the very moment he was about to leave the seal? ¡°I am also your believer. I am devout, the most devout one. With my most devout belief, I offer to the divine spirit of knowledge. Please grant me endless knowledge!¡± Sava bowed her head devoutly. If it had been before today, Sava would not believe in the Lord of Knowledge for a moment. Her mentor had believed for so many years and had not received a response even once. However, after this pesticide refining experience, she deeply realized that this was a legitimate Lord of Knowledge, this was a worthwhile pir to seek support from, and she was worried about not being able to hold it securely¡­. With Sava¡¯s worship, a powerful Soul me was cast into the Bronze Book. The Bronze Book, tucked under Negris¡¯s wing, lit up a little. The godhood of the God of Knowledge was ignited once again. Ignition is just ignition. It originally had nothing to do with him, but at the moment when Negris¡¯s godhood was ignited, Ange felt as if his Undead Godhood was also activated. Chapter 250 - 169: Burning My Field _1 Chapter 250: Chapter 169: Burning My Field _1 Trantor:549690339 With the surging in of the thick me Soul, a mass of information was also flooding in, causing Negris to jolt with excitement, yelling out, ¡°It¡¯s updated! My knowledge has been updated!¡± The God of Knowledge, known to be all-knowing, relies on such ability of worshippers to update the knowledge base. If the worshipper wishes to worship it, the knowledge the person holds will be transferred over, bing part of the god¡¯s knowledge system. This kind of ability has its pros and cons. On the bright side, the more worshippers it has, the richer the knowledge system bes, even obscure knowledge can be somewhat picked up. On the downside, the knowledge of the worshippers tends to run shallow, rarely involving anything especially arcane. If a schr who delves deeply into a certain discipline doesn¡¯t believe in it, then it wouldn¡¯t know of what those schrs delve into. This is the main reason why it¡¯s being mockingly referred to as the ¡®God of Common Sense¡¯. Its worshippers generally follow this pattern of growth. At first, they know nothing, and when examse they pray, ¡°God of Knowledge, please, the exam is tomorrow, please tell me what this course is about?¡± Some worshippers are particrly clever, understanding some pieces of information as soon as they hear them, extrapting from this to that,prehending extremely fast. This is the stage Negris likes best, as they would offer the most Faith Elemental Force. But once those top student worshippers¡¯ knowledge gradually step into deep waters, reaching areas no one before has explored, Negris starts to have a headache. If no one before has ventured into those areas, that means it has no knowledge of them. If it fails to answer the worshippers¡¯ questions, it would be fine for once or twice. But after several times, the worshippers would close their textbooks saying, ¡°Never mind, I don¡¯t need you anymore. I¡¯ll figure it out myself.¡± And then those worshippers would be gone. Furthermore, since its worshippers are somewhat mediocre, resulting in weak faith and non-prominent divine aura, the number of worshippers has always been limited, especiallycking fanatical worshippers, making it most annoyed. Why do others have fanatical worshippers but it doesn¡¯t even have one? At the root of it, its worshippers tend to be rational, finding it hard to get themselves fanatic. On the rare asion that there are one or two fanatics, their targets of fanaticism are not the God of Knowledge, but knowledge itself. The current Sava is one of the more fanatical worshippers among those Negris has seen, which is evident from the thickness of her me Soul. Yet, after these me Souls circled around inside its godhood, approximately seventy to eighty percent swooshed right over to Ange. ¡°Darn Kvada, are you snatching my Fusion? Why? Howe you can snatch my Fusion? Have I be your subordinate god?¡± Negris was panicking as it stamped its feet. After all the trouble of finding a worshipper, seventy to eighty percent of faith was siphoned away? How could this be? Ange tilted his head, finding it strange. He tried to return that channel of me Soul, but it was hard to distinguish the channel once it has been absorbed, so he identally returned a little too much. There, he only returned about, say¡­ ten times the original amount. The Bronze Book let out a bright light, instantly erging into a heavy dictionary taller than a person, which thudded and dropped onto the ground, with invisible rings of light spreading outwards.N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°It can be returned? Well, then, you keep it. Return it to me when I need it.¡± Apparently there were advantages to being a godlike-being, in being able to borrow Ange¡¯s Faith Elemental Force. His source of faith was so weak it could hardly count as a trickle, whilepared to him, Ange was the open sea. Now, he could proudly boast in the future: my divine power has ess to the sea. Anger withdrew his power, whoosh, the Bronze Book returned to its original size. With a thousand Demon Crystals in her pocket, Sava¡¯s stride had changed, swaying from side to side, as if she couldn¡¯t wait to tell everyone she was rich. ¡°Goodbye, we¡¯re leaving, I¡¯m noting back, no more worries about stepping on dirty things, I¡¯m going to buy back my family¡¯s mansion!¡± Sava dered triumphantly. ¡°The mansion is gone, eaten up by bugs.¡± Vania took down a doorpost, carried it on her shoulder, and picked up Sava, flinging her onto the other shoulder without a backward nce as she walked out of this neighborhood. A thousand Demon Crystals is a significant sum of money, enough to buy a bottle of limb-regenerating Holy Essence Liquid, albeit the diluted kind. ¡°What are you doing carrying that doorpost around?¡± Negris looked at the doorpost carried by Vania, and asked somewhat perplexedly. ¡°Weapon, the war totem pole of the Minotaur.¡± Vania stated confidently. ¡°But¡­¡± Negris picked with its little ws, scratching off the surface and revealing the empty interior eroded away underneath, ¡°The bugs have eaten it hollow.¡± Vania shrugged, ¡°Can¡¯t help it, it¡¯s better than bare hands. It¡¯s very chaotic out there.¡± ¡°Never mind, I¡¯ll give you a better one. Carrying that thing around is embarrassing.¡± In the end, Ange gave her a date-wood column about the thickness of a human waist. Because the Oasis had plenty of date-wood resources, and the Titans under hismand also needed date-wood to rece their weapons, Ange had collected a batch of date-wood materials and had covered them with Breathing Soil. It wouldn¡¯t take long for them to be old wood, both dense and hard. Vania cherished it dearly. Hit by such a totem pole, man and horse alike would be beaten into pancakes. The group left the slum, getting to the main streets. Compared to yesterday, the scene in the city hadpletely changed. There was nobody on the streets. If there were people in houses on both sides of the street, they were peeping out timidly, quickly retreating after a quick peek. ¡°Could this be¡­ martialw?¡± The Bronze Dragon had been stuffed back into the Resting Camp, currently projecting onto Ange. Seeing the situation on the street, it quickly thought of a possibility. Chapter 251 - 169 Burning my Field_2 Chapter 251: Chapter 169 Burning my Field_2 Trantor: 549690339 Martialw during wartime refers to the practice of controlling over traffic, food, water, and fuel on the roads in order to prioritize war needs, ensuring that troops could be mobilized smoothly during a conflict. Otherwise, it would be ridiculous if a squad was blocked on the road while trying to relocate elsewhere. ¡°How should we manage now that such controls are in ce? This is going to be troublesome, how do we leave the city?¡± Negris voiced his concerns. Now that the insecticide was ready, it was only natural to test it at the earliest opportunity. Yet, it was impossible to encounter any bugs if they couldn¡¯t leave the city. Just as Negris was brooding over this, the sound of galloping hooves echoed in the streets. A cavalry troop of three soldiers came racing in from the other end of the street. Spotting Ange and hispanions, they immediately shouted: ¡°Under martialw, cease your wandering around. Ah?¡± After shouting out a couple times, the soldier recognized theposition of Ange¡¯s group and his eyes lit up. His gaze first fell upon Vania, he excitedly said: ¡°A splendid Totem Column? A war Minotaur? And dressed in civilian clothes? Brilliant, you¡¯ve been conscripted. Head to thebat provisioning camp for a piece of leather armor, then proceed to the city wall. No defiance allowed!¡± After finishing, his gaze fell upon Little Zombie and Ange, healthy adult men who are also within the conscription age. Therefore, he said, ¡°Both of you have also been conscripted.¡± Finally, looking toward Sava and Little Angel, his expression softened slightly: ¡°You two are not within the conscription limits, go home. Do not roam around aimlessly. Those who can fight have already climbed onto the city walls. Some despicable characters are lurking around. If you two encounter any bad guys, yell for help immediately, understood?¡± As he was speaking, he reached into the saddlebag on his horse and pulled out a cloth bag, along with two loaves of bread from his pocket, pushed them over to Sava without further exnation. ¡°Ah, we¡¯ve been drafted. It¡¯smon during times of war for the young and strong within the city to be enlisted to defend it. It¡¯s the same everywhere. His heart isn¡¯t bad though, he even thought to care for the children. Why not justmend to the city wall? We can throw the insecticide from there and it would be easier to escape too.¡± Negris suggested. Ange nodded, directing his group toward the direction the knight had pointed to earlier. Little Angel naturaly followed in stride,pletely disregarding the knight¡¯s words. n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Sava gave an awkward smile toward the knight, returned the bag of bread to him, and followed Ange without dy. ¡°Ah! You two little girls are not within the conscription limits, don¡¯t go up there, it¡¯s dangerous on the city wall.¡± Unable to hold back, the knight added, but no one paid him any mind. Upon arriving near the military supply depot by the city wall, there were increasing number of people around, many clearly dressed as civilians, wandering circrly like headless flies. ¡°What idiots.¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help but scoff: ¡°At a time like this they should be rushing for armors. If there¡¯s no armor, at least get a shield. Once gotten the armor and shield, then snatch a weapon. Or else what would they do when they get to the city wall, wait to be killed empty-handed?¡± After theint, he couldn¡¯t help but sigh, contradicting to his own words earlier: ¡°Then again, one can¡¯t be certain. Once armed with armor, shield, and weapons, one bes too conspicuous and look just like a warrior. The city wall military officers wouldn¡¯t recognize anyone, and they would certainly prefer to use ¡®warriors¡¯. So you¡¯d end up dying even faster.¡± Upon hearing him, Vania looked confused: ¡°Should I take the armor then? The knight on the horse told me toe here and collect the armor.¡± ¡°Sure, take it. Regardless of whether you wear armor or not, with your size you are considered an elite. Wearing it will add ayer of defense. If someone tries tomand youter, just ignore them and stand here with Ange. If there¡¯s any danger, he can protect you.¡± Negris said. Vania looked doubtfully at Ange, she had already figured out that among this group, the silent Ange was the real leader. The chattiest Bronze Dragon turned out to be the one with the least status. However, Vania wasn¡¯t too certain about this guesswork, as the Bronze Dragon was described as the God of Knowledge by Sava. How could a deity be ¡®the one with the least status¡¯? However, Ange¡¯s small stature wasn¡¯t very convincing, Vania didn¡¯t quite believe that such a small human could protect her. She felt she could protect him instead, at least her body could shield him from arrows. Alright, I¡¯ll stand next to youter and protect you. Vania secretly made up her mind. The military supplies depot in front was already jam-packed. As Vanina walked over, threw her Totem Column on the ground and extended her arm, the crowd in front tumbled down, and she easily walked in. Not long after, she walked out, wearing an obviously too small leather armor that tightly hugging all over her body. As she adjusted it, she grumbled, ¡°The old man inside says there¡¯s no armor in my size. I¡¯ll have to make do with a smaller size, and the iron armor sizes are even smaller.¡± ¡°At least you¡¯ve got something. Back home, Purple Corpse could make you a set. With your figure, probably only a Titan¡¯s armor would fit.¡± Negris said, resigned. Only Vania put on armor, Ange and Little Zombie were still seemingly empty-handed, especially Little Angel who was even more conspicuous in her pure white dress ¨C pink and delicate, she wouldn¡¯t look out of ce in a fairy tale. From the martial lookout, staring at the city wall, afar from the city wall down to the squadron of cavalry on standby, Anthony, who led the group, squinted a nce and frowned, ¡°Hey, isn¡¯t that the lord who delivered the rations? They¡¯re going to the city wall?¡± As soon as he stepped onto the city wall, Ange instantly felt something. He looked towards the outside of the city and saw a sea of bugs. Outside the walls, beyond the line of fire created by the insect repellent, thend was densely packed with ck bugs. The entire open ground seemed to be carpeted in bugs, extending all the way to the horizon. Chapter 252 - 169 The One Who Burned My Field _3 Chapter 252: Chapter 169 The One Who Burned My Field _3 Trantor: 549690339 Although the insects were tiny, their vast number gave off a life force that was as conspicuous as a forest fire in Ange¡¯s soul. ¡°So much Insect Ash.¡± Ange mumbled to himself after staring nkly for a while. Negris, who was reflected upon Ange, almost burst intoughter. Apparently, in Ange¡¯s eyes, these myriad insects were nothing but fertilizer? Now it¡¯s not just fertilizer, but Holy Bug Ash Liquid, a magical liquid that could revive fossilized eggs back into fresh ones. He wasn¡¯t sure if a fried egg could be restored. If so, that would be a miraculous wonder. ¡°Hey, you little fes, don¡¯t just stand there,e,e sit over here.¡± A middle-aged man, looking like a farmer from a nearby corner, waved them over. Several shy young men were beside the middle-aged farmer. Upon seeing Ange and his group, they all grinned foolishly. Ange led his group over. The young men hurriedly made way, patting the bricks below them warmly to invite them to sit. Vania sat down without any hesitations, upying the space for three, and casually greeted the middle-aged farmer, ¡°Hi, my name is Vania.¡± Meanwhile, sheid her Totem Column on the ground. Now it was just right. The Totem Column was as thick as her waist and the right height whenid horizontally as a bench. It was way morefortable than sitting on the ground. Of course, whether it wasfortable was Sava¡¯s concern. She plopped down on the Totem Column. Ange and his twopanions were the Undead. They could stand till tomorrow without experiencing any difort, so they didn¡¯t sit. The middle-aged farmer gasped, ¡°Call me Farmer Leo. You¡¯re quite sturdy.¡± ¡°Right, I have a big appetite and eat a lot, so I¡¯m sturdy.¡± Vania often visited the Mercenary Guild and the market for work. She had already learned how to mingle with the working people. ¡°Did you hear that, boys? A good appetite and eating a lot makes you sturdy,¡± Farmer Leo said, seemingly finding theoretical support before turning his head to lecture the young men. The young men forced a smile, ¡°We would eat more if we had enough food.¡± Soon enough, they were all chatty. Vania asked, ¡°Why aren¡¯t those insects moving?¡± ¡°Ah, an officer came by earlier and said the bugs are waiting for dusk.¡± ¡°Ah, dusk? I can¡¯t see clearly in the dark.¡± Vaniained. The vision of Minotaurs is quite poor, it¡¯s rumored that it¡¯s because they¡¯re herbivores. Negris was also startled. This tactic was smart, both humans and Minotaurs have limited visibility at night, and the ck, tiny insects would be almost invisible in the pitch dark. Wouldn¡¯t they only notice them when they crawled onto their feet? Humans are in trouble now. They hoped the protective shield could hold up, but it seemed unlikely. The bugs didn¡¯tunch an attack yesterday and chose to attack today instead, most likely because they were gathering in numbers. Furthermore, yesterday the Flying Fire Meteor hit the protective shield, clearly testing the strength of the shield. Meaning, today¡¯s attack indicates that the bug-herder has tested the shield strength, sure of their chances to break it, and were ready to strike. Negris racked his brains but couldn¡¯te up with any good solutions to deal with the insects at night. Just then, mes erupted from Ange¡¯s head, and he angrily said, ¡°Turus! He¡¯s the one who burned my field!¡± After saying that, he rushed to the city wall, leapt down, passed through the barrier unhindered, andnded on the ground. Then, he took out the Scythe of Death and quickly rushed towards the hill on the right side of the city. The Little Zombie and Little Angel hurriedly followed. Looking up, Negris saw a bonfire zing on the hill of the fortress, its mes twisted with an asional face showing up amidst them, exuding a formidable demonic aura. What Turus? It was clearly a powerful demon. N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°Hey, hey, hey, it¡¯s not Turus. You can¡¯t just perceive every demon as the one who burned your field!¡± Negris shouted, exasperated. Chapter 253 - 170: Bone Soup Summoning_1 Chapter 253: Chapter 170: Bone Soup Summoning_1 Trantor: 549690339 Wasn¡¯t it? Puzzled, Ange got closer and discovered that indeed it wasn¡¯t. Although they were all demons and their auras were simr, there were subtle differences. It¡¯s like how some people think all minotaurs look the same, these slight variations would be hard to discern for the uninitiated. He mistook them for someone else. What should he do? Go back? Ange looked back only to see a protective shield blocking his way back. He couldn¡¯t retreat. With his arrival, the insect-like monsters became erratic. From underground, a creature surfaced, curiously reaching out an antenna to poke Ange¡¯s toe bone. It seemed puzzled: this thing is hard, is it tasty? To ascertain if it was edible, the insect took a bite, only to break its mandibles with a crunch. Ange cocked his head, stepping down to crush it, and guts squirted out: forget it, just kill it, he has to kill the bugs anyway. Taking a step forward, Ange hoisted his scythe, making quick strides towards the Demon Bonfire. As soon as Ange leaped off the city wall, the demons noticed him,ughing mockingly: ¡°So useless, scared enough to fall off the city wall.¡± As their taunt ended, they noticed Angending gracefully, and charging at them full speed, they quickly corrected themselves: ¡°Oh, he didn¡¯t fall, he jumped? An undeterred hero, eh? Braving the sea of insects to weave a heroic saga is awe-inspiring. Let¡¯s ask the bugs to nibble on him slowly, let him watch himself being gnawed to the bone, grant him that, he-he-he¡­¡± ¡°Umm, why does he seem so familiar?¡± His soul had been plundered, and his fragmented one, iplete memories made him feel a strange familiarity, yet he was unable to recall from where. ¡°Two more jumped down, a little girl? And a guy in armor. What¡¯s that in his hand? A hoe? My God, they¡¯re from the Underground! Life eleration!¡± The demon fell backwards, ovee by the fear of growing too fast and being crushed. ¡°Do you know these people? Are they strong? He has a scythe, is he Undead?¡± The demon emerging from the bonfire asked with a puzzled look on its face. The demon¡¯s words seemed to empower him: that¡¯s right, he has already sold his soul, he didn¡¯t need to fear Life eleration when he had the protection of a demon, did he? Scrambling to his feet, he showered the demon with praise: ¡°Of course they¡¯re nowhere near as powerful as you, my lord, it¡¯s just they have such strange capabilities, they can perform Life eleration.¡± The demon merely sneered at hisment: ¡°Must be some sort of illusion. Life eleration? Do you understand what that means? That¡¯s a Divine Technique. Are you suggesting that one of them up there is a deity?¡± He shook his head: ¡°Impossible, impossible, deities don¡¯t just wander about everywhere, but they truly can perform Life eleration.¡± ¡°Perhaps, it¡¯s some type of divine magic, alright then, I curse you. I curse you with Undying, to suffer eternally under the relentless grind of time.¡± The demon red at him, threatening him with a chilling curse. He felt an unknown force descending upon him, yet also something fading away from him. ¡°Undying? Is this really a curse? Isn¡¯t it more like a blessing?¡± He felt around himself, unable to recognize any changes, and questioned in a murmur. ¡°Heh, whatever you gain, you have to lose something in return. You sold your soul and you got a single chance at rebirth. But if you want eternal life, the price might be something you can¡¯t afford.¡± The demon chuckled as he spoke. n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om ¡°What price?¡± He couldn¡¯t resist asking, Undying, such irresistible words. ¡°Like eternal imprisonment, for instance.¡± The demon responded indifferently. A shiver ran through him, eternal life but eternal imprisonment as well? He¡¯d rather die early then, there really were no such easy deals. ¡°What about me now?¡± He asked anxiously, could the thing he lost just now be freedom? ¡°Temporary curse, for a period of time you will not be affected by life, what you lose is a little vitality, you will feel weak and drowsy, that¡¯s all. By the way, how is your Bone Souping along?¡± The demon said casually. Although he had a feeling that the demon was notpletely honest, he couldn¡¯t pinpoint the lie and was distracted by the mention of Bone Soup, so he went back to check on it. Behind him, there stood a big kettle, boiling bones of various cows, sheep, and horses. The bugs couldn¡¯t chew on the bones, leaving behind piles of white bones wherever they went. He thought he might as well pick some animal bones to make soup, because he was feeling a little thirsty. Seeing the soup had turned milky white, hedled some to taste and immediately eximed excitedly, ¡°It¡¯s delicious! Let me tell you, there¡¯s a knack to making bone soup. To cook a milky, non-gamey, and delicious soup, every step is crucial. First, you have to roast the bones, then put them in cold water, skim off the blood and foam, and simmer on low heat¡­¡± As he rattled on, he eagerly scooped another bowl for himself and started slurping it happily. It¡¯s that good? Tempted by his description, the demon couldn¡¯t help but lick his lips, but he couldn¡¯t eat it. He could only shout, ¡°Move aside!¡± The Bonfire suddenly red twice as high, a formless power stirring the Bone Soup in the big kettle, creating a hovering globule nearby in the air. Then, the me from the Bonfire slowly approached the Bone Soup to form a me Magic Array. The demon¡¯s voice echoed,, heed my summons, appear!¡­ Alright, the summoning isplete, all depends on how good your bone soup is. The tastier it is, the stronger the summoned creature.¡± Chapter 254 - 170 Bone Soup Summoning_2 Chapter 254: Chapter 170 Bone Soup Summoning_2 Trantor: 549690339 Ange, who was running from a distance, also saw the situation unfolding. Negris called out in his spirit, ¡°Not good! They¡¯re summoning something. What¡¯s that? Bone Soup? Oh, no! They¡¯re summoning the hellhound! Hurry! Wipe out that soup!¡± But at this distance, Ange¡¯s reach just wasn¡¯t that long. The only possible action that could make a difference was Holy Light sh. ¡°Roar!¡± Ange let out an unrestrained bellow. ¡°Roar!¡± The Little Angel responded immediately, stopping to spread its wings and pushing towards the action¡­ pushing forward again with wings spread¡­ After extending its wings twice, the Little Angel looked back and suddenly remembered its wings were folded. ¡°Roar!¡± Slighly annoyed, Little Sky raised its hand, in a helpless shrug, with palms facing upward. Nothing could be done. They could only watch helplessly as the Array took shape, a shadow leapt out from it onto the ground,nding with a childish howl. ¡°Um¡­is that a puppy? A Pekingese? Legend says that hellhounds love Bone Soup. The tastier the soup, the more powerful the summoned hellhound bes. This Bone Soup must taste awful,¡± Negris mumbled. The humans and demons were simrly stunned. A puppy? n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om ¡°Is your soup really that tasty?¡± A demon asked in a small voice. ¡°Of course, it¡¯s tasty. I myself drank a big bowl. Maybe my cooking style isn¡¯t liked by demons? Do you prefer the kind with a floating mix of blood foam and a foul stench?¡± The human defended himself. Just then, the puppy shook its head, splitting it into three. It swelled rapidly and pounced forward. Like a giant beast erupting from the body of the puppy, the giant dog with three heads sucked the Bone Soup dry with a single slurp and squinted down all six of its eyes in delight. Such a contented expression was the best endorsement for the Bone Soup. ¡°I told you it was tasty,¡± the human said hurriedly. After drinking the soup, the hellhound crunched the bones into pieces and swallowed them whole. Holding its right muzzle, the hellhound suddenly spoke in the demonnguage, The demon responded, ¡°¡­, The hellhound sighed regrettably and turned to confront Ange. The man asked urgently, ¡°What did you say?¡± ¡°Oh, the dog said, ¡®I am still hungry¡¯, and I said, ¡®You can¡¯t, wait until next soup is ready¡¯,¡± the demon replied casually. The man was suspicious. Why didn¡¯t the ¡®I¡¯m still hungry¡¯ seemed to fit with the ¡®You can¡¯t¡¯ response? But demons couldn¡¯t lie so he had to believe it. Yes, demons under trading status couldn¡¯t lie, but they could certainly omit. For example, just now, the hellhound had actually said: I¡¯m still hungry, can I eat this person? The hellhound, eager for another serving of Bone Soup, took action. It sprung forward, opening its gigantic jaws wide, attempting to bite Ange. ¡°Die, hellhound, the powerful creature that guards the abyss of hell. Its teeth can crunch steel¡­.¡± The man murmured, his sentence trailed off as he saw the hellhound scream and jump in horror. Ange had punched the hellhound¡¯s gum, breaking off one of its steel-crunching teeth. ¡°Whine Whine¡± The hellhound started to whimper, holding its mouth with its front paws, appearing much like a human with gum inmmation attempting to snap down on hard food. Ange put away his Scythe of Death, raising his hands instead. The hellhound was a huge creature after all, and the Scythe of Death wasn¡¯t as effective as the Hand of Locke and the Boundary-Crossing Hand, especially when the Hand of Locke was stronger than steel. The hellhound was in so much pain from its middle head that it couldn¡¯t open its mouth. Consequently, the left and right heads stretched out to bite. Ange used his Boundary-Crossing Hand to punch the right-head¡¯s nose, and Hand of Locke to hit the left-head¡¯s gum, breaking another tooth. ¡°Whine, whine~¡± The hellhound began to whimper again. This time all three heads whimpered. Sobbing, it spoke in demonnguage, Negris, who understood demonnguage, immediately retorted sullenly, ¡°Were you tricked? Do you know who you¡¯re dealing with? Selling your life for a pot of bone soup? And you¡¯re asking us who we are?¡± the hellhound sat up, holding its left and right mouths with its paws, and its middle head spoke. ¡°Alright Ange, pick up the broken tooth from the ground and show it to him,¡± Negris instructed. Ange picked up a broken tooth from the grounds, held it with the Hand of Locke and easily snapped it into two halves. The hellhound shook, sitting up even straighter. Ange snapped again, breaking the tooth into three, then four pieces. The hellhound was stunned as it watched how its hard, sharp tooth more durable than steel was snapped into segments in Ange¡¯s grasp. Each time the tooth was snapped, it shuddered, its form shrinking. In no time, it reverted back to the form of the tiny Pekingese, whined once, and patted the ground with its little paw. An array appeared, and the Pekingese barked once in demonnguage, ¡°#£¤@%!&¡±, and then dived into the array, disappearing. The nearby demons and humans gawked in stupefaction, mumbling, ¡°What just¡­happened? What did it say?¡± The demon answered absent-mindedly, ¡°It said: ¡®You idiots! You¡¯ve killed me.¡¯¡± If even the hellhound could be scared off, how strong is this man in front of us? ¡°No, I don¡¯t believe this. My swarm of insects is invincible. Protect me! Insects, bite them to death!¡± The human shouted with anger. Chapter 255 - 170 Bone Soup Summoned_3 Chapter 255: Chapter 170 Bone Soup Summoned_3 Trantor:549690339 The ocean of insects kicked up a tsunami; on thend, the ¡®carpet¡¯posed of insects was seething, flowing towards Ange from all directions like a tide crashing into him. There were too many of them. Ange stomped hard, pulling Little Angel and Little Zombie into his embrace, and then was engulfed by the sea of insects. The man in rags eerily muttered, ¡°Against absolute numbers, individual strength is useless. Even if it turns into a war of attrition, I could still grind you down. Life eleration would be of no help; I don¡¯t believe you can keep it up forever. Last time, there were too few insects. Otherwise, I could have drained you dry. It¡¯s all about who can oust whom!¡± Soon, a mound rose where Ange had been standing,posed of the corpses of insects. The insects were desperately gnawing at each other¡¯s bodies, burrowing into their flesh, growing all the while. They went from small beetles torger beetles, then died, their bodies gnawed by their kin. The same process repeated over and over again. Amidst the surging tide of insects, the man in rags noted some strange changes. The types of insects kept increasing, their sizes gettingrger, and some even grew enormous mouthparts. ¡°Is this evolution? Is Life eleration elerating their evolution?¡± the man in rags said excitedly. During their time in the undergroundir, he had skilfully exploited Ange¡¯s Instant Death Halo, sessfully breeding a few humanoid insects. While he wasn¡¯t specifically cultivating them now, as long as the numbers increased, the insects would surely cannibalize each other and spawn the most powerful Insect King. However, as the pile of insect corpses grewrger, he didn¡¯t notice that the growth rate of some insects was faster than ever, so fast that they didn¡¯t even have time to gnaw on their kin¡¯s bodies before growing old and dying. An hour passed, then two, then three. The carpet of insects that initially spanned the entirend had now shrunk to a small mound, which waspletely covered in insect corpses. Since the man in rags hadmanded the insects, they swarmed very efficiently; there wasn¡¯t a single insect left elsewhere. However, the scene he anticipated did not ur. The insects didn¡¯t cannibalize each other and evolve into the strongest Insect King. Instead, they all fell dead. Thest insect convulsed and rolled down from the mound of insect corpses to the foot of the man in rags. The small hill-shaped mound of insect corpses had grownrge enough to spread to his feet. ¡°How can this be? How can this be? How is this possible? Doesn¡¯t the Life eleration still exist? Why didn¡¯t they evolve? They didst time.¡± The man in rags mumbled in shock. A me sparked within the mound of corpses, reducing insects to ashes wherever it passed, stubbornly burning a path out. Ange and his party emerged from within. ¡°What¡¯s impossible? This time it wasn¡¯t just Life eleration, it was also insecticide.¡± The voice of the Bronze Dragon echoed from Ange. The demonic face in the bonfire had quietly disappeared at some point, realizing early that something was wrong and making an early escape. Little Angel clenched her little fist angrily, lighting up with Holy Light. Despite Ange¡¯s protection, she had been bitten by several insects. Now a true angel, not a skeletal figure cloaked in flesh, she could feel pain. ¡°Ah! Holy Light? Are you from the Church of Light?¡± The man in rags snapped out of his daze, quietly kneeling on the ground. ¡°Don¡¯t kill me. I¡¯ll buy Redemption Tickets, three of them!¡± ¡°Huh, this line sounds familiar. Is it you? The one from the Dark City Underground? Weren¡¯t you soul-searched?¡± Negris eximed in surprise. ¡°I¡­,¡± began the man in rags, just as an image of a piece of parchment appeared before him. The image quickly ignited, and the man in rags¡¯ eyes, ears, nose, and mouth started spewing a greenish glow. He howled in agony.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om ¡°So, you traded your soul and were resurrected by a demon,¡± Negris realized. Ange conjured up a scythe and swung it at the burning parchment-shaped projection. Chapter 256 - 171: What is this medicine for! _1 Chapter 256: Chapter 171: What is this medicine for! _1 Trantor:549690339 There was already arge crowd gathered on the town wall, everyone was fearfully watching the raging swarm of bugs in front of them, feeling helpless. Anthony was also on the wall at this moment. Originally, he had been preparing for an immediate attack at the base of the wall. He was waiting for the protective barrier to break, for the bugs to surge into the town, so he could strike, take out the bug charmer. This could potentially be the only way to save the city. Of course, Anthony didn¡¯t know that even if the bug charmer was to die, the bugs wouldn¡¯t stop. They would eat everything edible, fight each other, and then eventually all die out. Under a normal pace of growth, the bugs can¡¯t evolve. Only with Life eleration, which speeds up their generations, could it be possible. However, Anthony had already made the best preparations within his capacity. Whether it would be sessful or not was out of his control. But with such significant changes taking ce, he couldn¡¯t stay at the bottom of the wall. He hurried up to the top of the wall promptly, where he witnessed the most magnificent sight in his life. A fearless warrior opened his chest, taking a fragile little girl into his arms and then engulfed by the tidal wave of bugs. The peaks formed by the swarming bugs looked like a deep, devouring abyss. This scene could easily be a timeless painting. Obviously, not just he thought so. Not far on the wall, a wizard had already unrolled a scroll, swiftly moving his fingers in the air. Before long, the scene was sealed within the scroll. When the scroll is activated, everything recorded within will manifest, appearing lifelike in front of you, giving you an experiential feeling. This kind of Illusion Scroll, besides being expensive and having a limited activation count, has no other drawbacks. But being expensive is its biggest drawback. There¡¯s a huge market of people who can¡¯t afford the Illusion Scroll. Thus, painters with canvases setup quickly filled the wall, desperately recording the scene before them. As for the Little Zombie, most people intentionally ignored it for being an eyesore. This astonishing scenested for several hours. Then, the bug carpet covering the entirendscape began to shrink gradually from everyone¡¯s sight on the town wall, eventually forming a small hill. When Ange created a path with his fire magic, leading Little Angel out from the bug hill, a wave of cheering erupted from the town wall. When Little Angel raised both hands to invoke the Holy Light, the cheering grew even more intense. Everyone started ¡®cursing¡¯ the Church of Light: ¡°Long live the Light, Long live the Light!¡± The church has always said the Light is eternal yet you¡¯re wishing it to ¡®live long?¡¯ If not a curse, then what is it? Hearing this, Anthony felt uneasy. He didn¡¯t know how to stop the people¡¯s ¡®curse,¡¯ so he just forced a smile. Soon after, he realized: ¡°Hey, these people look familiar. My god, where has Lord Anthony found these people? They¡¯ve cleared the bug disaster all by themselves?¡± Not just him, when the news reached Anthony, he was also surprised. What in the world? I was just buying grain, was pest extermination service included? Moreover, how did Ange do it? He quickly called Ange over and asked cautiously: ¡°My Lord, how did you do it?¡± ¡°Pesticides.¡± ¡°What!? You¡¯re saying pesticides? A kind of pesticide which can poison an entire nest if just one bug eats it, causing all bugs to die?¡± Anthony¡¯s eyes were sparkling with excitement. He said passionately: ¡°I¡¯ll exclusively represent it!¡± Ange cocked his head, ¡°What do you mean by exclusive representation?¡± ¡°It means that this medicine, you only sell to me, and I resell it to others, giving you amission.¡±, Anthony exined. ¡°Oh.¡±, Ange indicated understanding and then he pulled Negris into his mind, letting them talk it over. As dusk fell, Ange began to gather Fire Elements into the bug corpse mountain, setting them aze. The ze that devoured the bug mountain spouted dozens of meters high. The rising heat carried away a lot of embers, scattering in all directions. Particr attention to downwind, the following year, the ck Mountain Kingdom had an explosive yield of crops. But all this would ur in the future. Anthony on the town wall shouted loudly: ¡°Governor, open the gates!¡± On the tower, a temporary governor of the ck Mountain Kingdom peeked out, saying: ¡°No, it¡¯s dark. We can¡¯t open the gates. If even one bug slips in, we¡¯d be doomed.¡± Anthony nodded. He understood the temporary governor¡¯s worries. Indeed, should a single bug slip in and make its way into the sewers, it could quickly multiply into an army of bugs. The thought of bugs crawling out of every sewer hole, every cesspool, every dirty drain was downright horrifying. No opening, then. Anthony simply jumped from the town wall. As soon as hended, the temporary governor shouted: ¡°Lord Anthony, are you going to visit that brave bug exterminator? Please express our thanks from the ck Mountain Kingdom. We¡¯re preparing some gifts and food to send overter.¡± ¡°Sure, no problem.¡± Anthony murmured to himself: He sure knows how to handle things.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Wait for me, wait for me. That¡¯s our boss. Catch us.¡± Sava¡¯s voice came from the city wall. Anthony took a look. It was a tall and slender girl who was also rted to Ange¡¯s servant? Well, that wouldn¡¯t be a problem: ¡°Alright, jump down here. I will catch you.¡± Sava took a deep breath, closed her eyes and jumped, and Anthony caught her solidly. ¡°Thank you, thank you, there¡¯s one more.¡± Sava politely thanked. Anthony saw that Sava was rather beautiful, he instantly perked up and pulled his most charming smile onto his face: ¡°No problem, serving beautifuldies is my honor. Nextdy, jump, bravely jump.¡± Chapter 257 - 171: What is this medicine for! _2 Chapter 257: Chapter 171: What is this medicine for! _2 Trantor:549690339 While speaking, he looked up at the city wall and prepared to catch something. Suddenly, a minotaur jumped down, and Anthony could only prompt his fighting spirit before feeling like a mountain had crashed onto him. Vania, with a face of embarrassment, carried the passed out Anthony to Ange, and awkwardly said, ¡°Lord Ange, I identally knocked him unconscious.¡± Ange took a nce and cast a series of Face Purification Technique. The burning insect hill was the brightest bonfire. Upwind, Anthony, rubbing his arm, warily nced at the nearby minotaur. Sensing his gaze, Vania asionally turned around to give an awkward smile. Probably, both of them were thinking: Kvada, I almost crushed (got crushed by a bull) someone¡­ Feeling his arm was better, Anthony suddenly remembered something: ¡°Oh, right, Lord Ange, the ck Mountain Kingdom¡¯s interim government wishes to express their thanks to you and are preparing a gift as a token of appreciation.¡± Ange tilted his head, unsure of what to say. He definitely couldn¡¯t exin that he had ¡®mistaken the person and jumped down to attack the wrong person, but decided to continue attacking anyway since he needed the insect ash¡¯. Not long after Anthony finished speaking, the distant city gate started opening slowly, and two horse carriages drove out. ¡°Wow, two carriages? That¡¯s quite a generous gift.¡± Anthony praised, but his face darkened the moment he saw the contents of the carriages. He originally thought it would be two carriages full of gold and silver coins, gems, jewelry, and such. After all, Ange saved a city and the lives of hundreds of thousands of people. Two carriages might be a bit much, one to one and a half carriages would have been reasonable. At the current rates, hiring a mercenary group to save a city of hundreds of thousands would cost three times as much. Yet, the two carriages wereden with unprofitable items: food, cloth, handicrafts, and books. The most valuable item was a pouch handed over by the person in charge, which contained a thousand Demon Crystals. A thousand Demon Crystals wouldn¡¯t even be enough to buy a bottle of pure Holy Essence Liquid. So, the ck Mountain Kingdom¡¯s gratitude was worth less than a bottle of essence.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Anthony was somewhat annoyed: ¡°No wonder the ck Mountain Kingdom is deteriorating widely. They dare to offer such trivial things?¡± Although annoyed, the gifts weren¡¯t payment, and there had been no prior agreement. Even if they offered nothing, it wouldn¡¯t be illegal. Besides, despising them for being cheap and impolite, Anthony couldn¡¯t do anything more than leer a few sentences and return to the city. Ange didn¡¯t mind; he hadn¡¯t taken action to save the ck Mountain Kingdom, it was merely a case of mistaken identity. After burning the insect hill, Ange gathered all the ash. At this moment, Rogge suddenly emerged: ¡°Lord Ange I have found the nest of the worm master.¡± Since Rogge could not pass the scan of the light of truth he had stayed outside the city. Technically, he could have been taken into the Resting Camp, but the city gate was crowded and the action would have been conspicuous, so he was simply left outside. The devil¡¯s perception was very keen, so he hadn¡¯t approached the fight. He didn¡¯t think that a devil and a worm master could defeat the Undead God and the God of Knowledge, so he wandered around and unintentionally stumbled upon unexpected gains. Looking at the bags full of items in the cave, just after settling the price with Anthony, Negris, who was projected on the Bronze Dragon, was dumbstruck: ¡°Did this guy flip the whole of the ck Mountain Kingdom upside down? Is that why the city people¡¯s gratitude was so frugal, they might actually be poor?¡± The cave was filled with bags; gold coins and treasures couldn¡¯t be constrained and flowed from the opening of the bags. There was everything in it: rings, nes, bracelets, silver candlesticks, gold bowls, various exquisite gold, silver, and copper ware. In short, anything valuable could potentially be found here. Among them was one bag that made everyone feel sick ¨C gold teeth, obviously knocked off from corpses. They even knocked down gold teeth, turning over the entire ck Mountain Kingdom would be nothing special, and it¡¯s something that bug eradication experts could handle. Driving away waves of bugs that infiltrated every nook and corner, whether it be rafters, floors, or even three feet underground. No ce could stop the bugs, if there¡¯s a gap they squeeze in, and if not they tunnel through it. Every corner, every brick, every cer, every ditch became a scouting target for these bugs. Especially since many nobles and wealthy households liked to bury their food in pits underground, this gave the bugs even more reason to tunnel. Under such painstaking efforts, the wealth umted over thousands of years by the ck Mountain Kingdom was all piled up right here. ¡°Add the royal treasury into the equation, and the entire wealth of a country hasnded in your hands. Talk about a stroke of luck.¡± The national treasury increased by one. Ange barely registered this, finding it rather boring instead. Bags of shimmering gold, silver, and jewelry, nes, and trinkets were being moved into the Resting Camp, even slower than when he filled them up with bug ashes. He had even wanted to stop packing, but seeing Sava excitedly preparing to pounce on the bags, Ange knew that these things still held value to humans. Negris began discussing the business after packing up the treasures. ¡°Anthony and I have reached an agreement. He¡¯s willing to pay three million Demon Crystals for exclusive rights to the bug repellent. From now on, we can just sell it to him. It¡¯s sixty thousand Demon Crystals per transaction.¡± The moment she heard the mention of bug repellent, Sava¡¯s ears perked up. Confused, she asked, ¡°Per transaction? What do you mean? Shouldn¡¯t our bug repellent be sold by weight?¡± Looking at her sideways, Negris snorted. ¡°You can¡¯t seriously think that the bugs were eradicated solely due to the insecticide?! Sure, the insecticide yed a role, but it on its own couldn¡¯t have eradicated the bugs. Bug Hunters would instantly notice something off and prevent the bugs from turning on one another.¡± ¡°You know why Ange stood there motionless earlier? Because only by doing so could he trick that Bug Hunter into driving all its bugs up to their deaths. Otherwise, they wouldn¡¯t have been wiped out so cleanly. At the very least, a significant amount of bugs would¡¯ve been left in this cave to guard the treasure.¡± ¡°As long as they¡¯re not all dead, even one or two bugs left could quickly breed a whole host of them again. Eradicating them isn¡¯t the problem, it¡¯s entirely clearing them out that¡¯s tricky. Especially inplex environments like cities. How could you possibly get rid of them all? In the end, Ange had to step in.¡± ¡°So, I came to an agreement with Anthony. We¡¯re not selling the physical product; we¡¯re offering a service ¨C exterminating the bugs in an area for a one-time fee of sixty thousand Demon Crystals. Bug corpses are ours to keep.¡± ¡°Oh, you have a one ten-thousandth share of earnings from the insecticide. So for every sixty thousand we bring in, you get six Demon Crystals in shares. The ie from this time might not just be sixty thousand Demon Crystals, so take this as your first shared earning.¡± Sava¡¯s eyes sparkled with the shine of Demon Crystals. ¡°Shared earnings? Every time? Does this time count too?¡± ¡°Yes, it does. As Gold Coin said, the best incentive for high-end talents is shared ies, because getting sixty Demon Crystals signifies that we¡¯ve earned sixty thousand more. If you¡¯re excited, create more potions,¡± Negris smiled. Of course, Gold Coin did say something else, but he didn¡¯t share that. Gold Coin advised: ¡°Don¡¯t give too much. Too much might dampen enthusiasm. What if they get enough tost three to five years and thenpletely ck off? At the same time, guide them to spend on expensive items. Buy a house, a manor, a Demon Crystal vehicle, have children, put them in deep debts. That way, they¡¯ll be driven to make money.¡± Sava was indeed motivated, ¡°Lord, take a look. These are the potions I¡¯ve conceptualized over the past two years. Could you see if any of them might be of use?¡± She then took out a thick notepad. Negris flipped through it and burst out: ¡°What the hell are these potions? A Petrification Potion that can make limbs harden for a short time? Shouldn¡¯t it be skin hardening, not limbs? Vasodtion Potion for treating vascr shrinkage? Isn¡¯t there the Purification method? Go find a Priest for purification. And this, a Pregnancy Potion? What on earth do you want to do with this?!¡± Chapter 258 - 172: Bounty from a Thousand Years Ago_1 Chapter 258: Chapter 172: Bounty from a Thousand Years Ago_1 Trantor:549690339 Negris, who just criticized those Eerie Potions, soon felt as if he was being repeatedly pped in the face. ¡°Used externally to petrify limbs, lessen sensitivity, and increase hardness. Isn¡¯t this the XX Divine Oil?¡± ¡°It expands blood vessels and the side effect is to erge and thicken. Kvada, isn¡¯t this medicine designed especially for men, rather than for heart disease?¡± ¡°And then there¡¯s the Pregnancy Potion, I¡¯m asking you if this medicine can be used by giant dragons!¡± ¡°Why are all the medicines you have in mind like this¡­ like this¡­? Are these medicines, are they serious? Can they be made at all?¡± Sava, seeming quite innocent and nodding like a pecking chicken, exined, ¡°Many of these ideas are from my teacher. He always said that the easiest money in the world is from devout believers, beauty-loving women, and impulsive men. The money of believers belongs to the gods, and it¡¯s hard to earn women¡¯s money, so he told me to think about men¡¯s, so I did¡­¡± ¡°You¡¯re not wrong to say that, Lisa and the silver coins should agree with your teacher¡¯s point of view. So, did you make money?¡± Negris asked. Lisa shook her head. ¡°These potions are just concepts. I have a general idea, but I can¡¯t find any investors, so I couldn¡¯t produce them.¡± ¡°Well, we will invest, just modify the Pregnancy Potion so that it can be used by giant dragons.¡± Using the cover of night, they hurried to Rnd City, 100 kilometers away. This city is the closest to the ck Mountain Kingdom and it houses thergest Mercenary Guild within a thousand-kilometer radius. Ange took off his straw hat, put on his Soul Armor, and wrapped himself up tightly. He then put on his sham hammer wrapped in Holy cloth, and went into the Mercenary Guild¡¯s hall. Due to itsrge size, the guild hall here is far more grand than that in the ck Mountain Kingdom. Thick stone pirs support the ten-meter-high ceiling, which makes it look very spacious. Despite the constant stream of people, the hall was not at all noisy. Why did Ange remove his hat and put on his Soul Armor? It¡¯s because, in the Mercenary Guild, these outfits would be inconspicuous. Ange had a feeling simr to his first time walking into Witch City, being greeted by a variety of species and bizarre attires, all with different styles of decoration. A beastman, with a nose piercing and body painted in various colors, passed by Ange while staring fiercely at him. A dark-skinned elf, his body covered in exquisite tattoos almost revealing all he possibly could, walked past him not too far away. Suddenly, he turned to look at Ange, and then seemed confused and walked away. Negris was surprised: ¡°The environment is much more tolerable than it was thousands of years ago.¡± If this were a thousand years ago, the beastmen and dark elves appearing on the territory of the Church of Light would certainly wear cors around their necks. These diverse creatures could only appear as ves in the human world. He had already noticed this situation in the ck Mountain Kingdom; Vania was unabashedly crowding into the crowd, and everyone took it for granted without any special reaction. He originally thought it was because of the Minotaur, as they are the species who get along best with humans. But now that he sees the same thing happening with beastmen and dark elves, it¡¯s clearly not an exception. Ange also curiously looked around. The most prominent thing in the hall was the Magic Notice Board directly opposite the main entrance; on it, brief pieces of information were continually scrolling: Super level task: Clear the insect gue in the ck Mountain Kingdom, Reward: A million Magic Crystals. Assigned: Five days ago.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Super level task: Retrieve the Earth Hammer, Reward: A million Magic Crystals. Assigned: Five days ago. Ultra super-level task: Heal the World Tree¡¯s withering disease, Reward: Ten million Magic Crystals, and gain the friendship of the elves. Assigned: Two years ago. Ultra super-level task: Kill the Fallen Angel, Reward: Ten million Magic Crystals, and receive the blessing of the Church of Light. Assigned: Seven months ago. Mega super-level+ task: Kill Steadfast Locke, Reward: One hundred million Magic Crystals, return his intact skeleton, and get an additional reward of three hundred million Magic Crystals. Assigned: One thousand three hundred sixty years ago. The only information that was scrolling on it were super level tasks or above, and there were very few high-level tasks. Among the mega super-level tasks, Ange saw a familiar name. ¡°Locke.¡± Ange pointed at the notice board and said. His intention was to let Negris, who was projecting the image on his body, take a look, but just as he finished speaking, a chortle came from behind him: ¡°Heh, you¡¯re definitely a rookie. Every newbie who enters the Mercenary Guild is always attracted by the mega super-level task that has been hanging for one thousand three hundred years. How about it? The total bounty is four hundred million, higher than the total production value of many major empires. Are you tempted?¡± When Ange turned around, he saw a middle-aged mercenary with a smile on his face. Seeing Ange turning his head, he said, ¡°I can tell you¡¯re visiting the Mercenary Guild for the first time. Have you registered as a mercenary yet? Want to know where to take tasks? Want to know which tasks earn more money and save more time? Want to know how to quickly increase your mercenary level and get ripped off less?¡± Ange shook his head honestly. ¡°That¡¯s right, you shouldn¡¯t know. They call me the King of Mercenaries, I guide rookies like you. Just for a small amount of three gold coins, you can learn all the above information and easily register as a mercenary. How about that, isn¡¯t it a good deal?¡± Ange shook his head and Negris finally realized: ¡°So he¡¯s an agent. Charging three gold coins just to show the way? Has he lost his mind?¡± ¡°No good deal? Or don¡¯t need it? Let me remind you, I have internal connections, and it would be difficult for you to seed in registration on your own. Three gold coins are not much, I still have to take care of rtionships.¡± The middle-aged mercenary exined. Ange shook his head, he did note here to register as a mercenary, he came here to hand in a task, so he ignored the middle-aged King of Mercenaries and turned around to walk towards the notice board. Perhaps due to theck of new recruits, the middle-aged mercenary¡¯s agent business hadn¡¯t taken off, and seeing Ange turn around and leave, he quickly caught up: ¡°As a newbie, it¡¯s easy to get exploited in a ce like this. The lower the mercenary level, the moremission the guild takes. If I help you register, you can skip the internship phase and save quite a bit of money. If you can spend a bit more, I have mid-level mercenary qualifications for sale here.¡± ¡°He really is doing quite a range of business.¡± Negrisughed: ¡°But I remember, the super level tasks do not requiremission, or rather, themission is given by the reward provider.¡± Ange came to the counter below the notice board and said, ¡°Handing in task.¡± The young woman with fair skin sitting behind the counter was filing her nails with a stone stick. Upon hearing Ange, she responded without lifting her head, ¡°Read the sign, read the sign. Submit high level and above tasks here, submit lower level tasks next door.¡± ¡°Handing in super-level task,¡± Ange said, his hand released the Holy Hammer, then with a tter, it crushed the counter andnded onto the floor. The fair-skinned young woman behind the counter was stunned. The only movement was her toes, which almost got smashed by the hammer, retreating beneath the counter. The King of Mercenaries, behind them, was so scared that he fell t on his butt. The news that someone was handing in a super level task quickly spread throughout the entire hall. PS: Second dose of vine on the 21st day, I felt a bit sleepy after the shot and took a nap, I¡¯ll update the second chapterter. Chapter 259 - 173 Everything is arranged_1 Chapter 259: Chapter 173 Everything is arranged_1 Trantor:549690339 The most significant aspect of the Earth Hammer is its blessing ¨C only the recognised can lift it. If Anthony crafted a hammer thatcked even the most basic feature, it could not be called a forgery. The Array had long been engraved inside the hammer. Once infused with the Holy Light, it would generate a powerful adhesion force ¡ª creating a deception that it is simply too heavy to lift.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om The more potent the Holy Light infused, the stronger and more enduring the adhering force. That was why Ange was required to operate it. In this world, apart from the Gods of Light, who else¡¯s Holy Light could be more potent than his? The pale clerk was speechless with shock, so he ran off. Shortly thereafter, the local officials of the Mercenary Guild, high-level personnel, military force leaders, and so on, all assembled. In addition to that, there were high-level members of top-tier mercenary groups, independent elite mercenaries present. The lower- and mid-tier mercenaries had already been pushed to the outskirts. To prevent people from seeing through his Soul Armor, Ange had invoked the Holy Light to wrap around his body. This was not out of excessive nervousness. In the mercenary profession, all sorts of odd abilities can exist ¨C and seeing through Soul Armor wasn¡¯t strange. But to see through Soul Armor and prate the Holy Light was much more challenging ¨C because these were two almost contrasting force attributes, with very few people possessing the ability to counter both attributes. As expected, not long after Ange used his Holy Light, he sensed several waves of power quietly cast upon himself. These powers recoiled immediately once touched by the Holy Light. Ange followed the wave of power and saw the previous Dark Elf, a mysterious figure covered in a cloak, and an old man with a solemn expression on his face, marked by the ravages of time. Seeing Ange looking towards them, the Dark Elf shrank back in shock, retreating into the crowd with an expression of horror. The cloaked figure trembled and lowered his head. Only the solemn old man performed a salute over his heart, then turned and walked away. Apparently, none of them predicted that Ange would discover their observation so swiftly and urately pinpoint them. It was like a thief preparing to dip hands into your pocket, only to look up and find you have been watching him all along ¨C caught red-handed. The other experts also noticed this silent shift, promptly abandoning their idle thoughts. Those who dared to investigate first in these circumstances are usually confident in their abilities, yet now they had all been caught out. Especially the old man, recognized by some as the ¡®Eye of the Gods¡¯ ¨C was actually startled and ran away? Some murmured quietly among themselves, ¡°No one haspleted a super task in years. The Earth Hammer task should be the simplest one in all those years. The challenge mainly depends on who can lift it. It¡¯s unexpected that someone can really lift it.¡± ¡°No, a Sword Saint Level figure can actually lift it with brute force. The key is whether or not the heir to the ck Mountain Kingdom possesses the ability to lift it. If they can lift it, it signifies recognition from the Earth Hammer, automatically inheriting the ck Mountain Kingdom.¡± ¡°Hasn¡¯t the royal family of the ck Mountain Kingdom all died out?¡± ¡°Did you forget about the illegitimate son? He¡¯s in our Rnd City. Maybe he¡¯s already been informed about the Earth Hammer and is rushing over here.¡± No sooner had the words been spoken than the main character arrived. A ragged young man was excitedly shouting, ¡°Holy Hammer, my Earth Hammer, our family¡¯s Holy Hammer. Let me pass, let me pass.¡± Everyone opened up a path. The excited young man was about to throw himself towards the Hammer when he was stopped by the guild members. ¡°We still need to verify the authenticity of the Hammer. Please do not approach.¡± The young man asked urgently, ¡°The Earth Hammer is the sacred object of our ck Mountain Kingdom. If it is verified as real, please return it to me.¡± The high-ranking members of the guild looked at each other. After a while, President Kage, the local leader of the guild, said, ¡°ck Mountain, ah, although you call yourself ck Mountain, the guild does not want to interfere in your family affairs. Once the authenticity is verified, the item will be returned to the sponsor. The current task was initiated by the interim ruler of the ck Mountain Kingdom. The Hammer will be handed over to them at that time.¡± ¡°My older cousin!? No, you can¡¯t hand the sacred object to him. He is not of the ck Mountain family. He is usurping the throne!¡± The young man, who refers to himself as ck Mountain, asserted loudly. President Kage just responded with a polite smile, without addressing his assertion. After an examination, the guild¡¯s appraiser reached a conclusion: ¡°President, it¡¯s real.¡± ¡°No, you haven¡¯t seen the Earth Hammer. Your words don¡¯t count. I¡¯ve seen it. My father has shown me the Holy Hammer many times. Let me see it,¡± ck Mountain immediately said. After pondering for a while, President Kage nodded to everyone and stepped aside. ck Mountain immediately lunged at the Holy Hammer, grabbed its handle in both hands and, before anyone could react, lifted the Earth Hammer. The Holy Hammer shone brilliantly. ¡°Hahaha, it¡¯s real, it¡¯s the real Earth Hammer. It recognizes me, it finally recognizes me. I am the heir to the ck Mountain Kingdom!¡± ck Mountain shouted loudly, causing a stir among the crowd. Upon seeing this, Negris finally sensed something wrong and muttered, ¡°This illegitimate child of ck Mountain¡­ couldn¡¯t he be arranged by Anthony?¡± ck Mountain put down the Earth Hammer. When others tried to lift it again, they still couldn¡¯t. This confirmed the fact that the Holy Hammer had recognized ck Mountain. Of course, it wasn¡¯t that no one could lift it. Those with strength exceeding the Sword Saint Level could lift the Holy Hammer with brute force and then quickly wrap it in a shroud. ¡°Come on! Follow me to the ck Mountain Kingdom. I can lift the Holy Hammer. I am the Duke¡¯s heir. Follow me to retake the lost title. You all will be meritorious,¡± ck Mountain roared to the mercenaries behind him, and several of them immediately stepped forward, ¡°We support you.¡± With a buzz, arge number of supporters followed ck Mountain out of the guild hall. Negris swore, ¡°Kvada, this is all arranged. After this scene, ck Mountain will have a legitimate excuse to reim his title. His supporters must have been arranged by Anthony. As long as he reims the title, he will naturally get the Earth Hammer. By then, whether the Holy Hammer is real or not won¡¯t matter, no one will check it again.¡± The old, experienced politician with his deep calctions even startled Negris, the age-old prophet. The insect disaster in the ck Mountain Kingdom was clearly sudden. In such a short time, they had already implemented a n to support their own people and throw a wrench in the Western District¡¯s ns. The ck Mountain Kingdom is nominally independent but is also within the sphere of influence of the Western District. As long as one of Anthony¡¯s people can be Duke, he can immediately get a strong supporter in the Western District. The Anthony Knights, who were trapped in the city and needed Ange for supplies, must have been part of the n too. Negris was scared, but Ange wasn¡¯t. After all, he didn¡¯t understand. After the messy people left, President Kage came over and politely said, ¡°My friend, this way, please.¡± In the private meeting room, President Kage personally brought out some items and politely asked, ¡°May I know your name or codename?¡± Ange sat there, letting Negris take the lead in speaking, as Ange¡¯s fragmented manner of speaking could drive many people crazy. Negris curiously asked, ¡°You can use a codename?¡± His voice came from Ange¡¯s body, sounding as if Ange was speaking, thanks to the Soul Armor. But since it wasn¡¯t exactly like speaking, President Kage could tell the difference, but he didn¡¯t show any reaction. Instead, he said, ¡°Certainly, our Mercenary Guild respects everyone¡¯s privacy. You can use your real name or a codename. But if you use a codename, we can¡¯t bind it to your identity. If you lose anything, it¡¯s gone for good. You can¡¯t get a recement.¡± ¡°Oh, then use a codename, Vegetable Farmer.¡± ¡°Vegetable Farmer? Are you sure?¡± Kage asked with a puzzled expression. ¡°Yes, just call it that,¡± Negris affirmed. There was no other codename more fitting for Ange than this. ¡°Uh, that name¡¯s taken. Someone used it already. How about we add a number after it?¡± ¡°No, change it to nting Vegetable Farmer. Is that also taken? Vegetable Head? Veggie Bone? Can Veggie Bone be used? Let¡¯s go with that, no more changes.¡± After the difficult task of settling on a codename, President Kage presented the items on the tray one by one, ¡°This stack consists of one hundred anonymous Magic Crystal Prepaid Cards, this is your Super Mercenary Ring. With it, you can receive the highest support from the Mercenary Guild, including intelligence, resources, transportation, personnel, etc. This is¡­¡± Chapter 260 - 174: Where Did This Dead Kid Come From?_1 Chapter 260: Chapter 174: Where Did This Dead Kid Come From?_1 Trantor:549690339 ¡°Here are twenty coupons for the Desert Style Bathhouse, twenty tickets for the deluxe set meals at the Dark Elf Tavern, oh, and two Face Purification Beauty Experience Tickets. If you have any women with you, they can go and give it a try, it¡¯s totally legit.¡± President Kage showed an expression everyone could understand, leaving the two men who knew nothing about it thoroughly confused. Even after leaving the Mercenary Guild, Negris was still murmuring, ¡°What¡¯s a ¡®one-stop¡¯ set menu? What have they done to us dragons?¡± Hurrying through the winding streets, Rogge emerged after a quick wait at a corner, ¡°No trackers, just an ordinary human mumbling something about the King of Mercenaries all the time. I cut his belt and he didn¡¯t dare to follow.¡± Ange nodded, the Soul Armor dissipated and he put on a straw hat, transforming into a typical human. ¡°Let¡¯s go to this Face Purification Beauty Salon. I suspect this is the business the silver coin mentioned, he did brief us about it before.¡± Negris said. Ange tilted his head, recalling something simr. The flow of Faith Elemental Force from the silver coin was sporadic, but whenever it urred, it was incredibly dense, like some sort of ritual was happening. ording to the silver coin, it was down to this Face Purification Beauty Salon. After asking people for directions, they finally found the so-called Face Purification Beauty Salon, only to discover that they couldn¡¯t enter. It only admitted women. Alright, this left the only female among them to do the work. In a secluded area, Ange brought out Little Angel. As soon as shended, she jumped onto a hammer, her holy light-veiled fists pounding on the hammer, apanied by the sounds of thumping and screams. Little Angel had brought out the Earth Hammer, but why the screams? Ange hurriedly put everything back and took a peek with his mind. Inside the Temple of Rest, Little Zombie and Little Angel were bullying the Earth Hammer. Little Zombie was holding down the handle and Little Angel pounded it with her fists glowing with holy light. Dissatisfied with her own attack power, she doubled up her fists and hammered down fiercely, making the ground echo with the thud sounds. The Earth Hammer emitted tortured screams, ¡°Hot, hot, hot, hot¡­¡± Ange quickly stopped the two little creatures and lifted the Earth Hammer. Yes, he lifted it. The Earth Hammer, which had required his full strength to lift just a bit outside, was now lifted as if it were an ordinary hammer. Curious, the Bronze Book approached, its voice full of surprise, ¡°Oh? A spirit, there¡¯s a spirit. This hammer is conscious.¡± A thought echoed from the Earth Hammer, ¡°Aren¡¯t you a spirit too, a book that has gained consciousness?¡± ¡°Huh, it talks back? Ange, hand it back to Little Angel.¡±, Negris said. Ange didn¡¯t do as told, but turned to Little Angel and said, ¡°Ooh?¡± ¡°Ooh!¡±, Little Angel pointed at the Earth Hammer. ¡°Why are you¡­ roaring at it?¡± Ange asked the Earth Hammer. It seemed the Earth Hammer realized Ange was the one in control. To avoid being handed back to Little Angel, it confessed, ¡°She doesn¡¯t bear the bloodline of ck Mountain, I thought she had stolen me. I shocked her.¡± Ange tilted his head, and said, ¡°Not stolen, snatched. You are ours.¡± Not stolen, but snatched¡­ The Earth Hammer trembled as if it were about to lose control. Ange tightened his grip, and holy light constantly exploded from his hand. The Earth Hammer let out a series of screams, ¡°Hot, hot, hot, hot, hot, hot¡­ I, the Earth Hammer, pledge my loyalty to you, my Lord! Hot, hot, hot, hot, hot!¡± Ange¡¯s holy light explosion was too rapid. Despite pledging its loyalty, it was still burnt several times and it was barely alive. Once the Earth Hammer had recovered somewhat, Negris leaned in and said sympathetically, ¡°It was wise of you to surrender. Any slower and you might have been erased.¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn The Earth Hammer replied discontentedly, ¡°Is everyone so cruel now?! Even denying the opportunity to surrender?¡± Negris asked, ¡°Hm? Someone else mentioned this before. Do you know how to farm?¡± ¡°Farming? I am Earth Hammer. Are you insulting me by asking me to farm?¡± Earth Hammer sounded somewhat angry. ¡°Well, if you can¡¯t, then you lose the opportunity to surrender,¡± Negris replied. ¡°I can!¡± Earth Hammer responded definitively. ¡°Huh?¡± ¡°I can loosen the soil. Any rock that I hit turns into mud, which has excellent drainage. It¡¯s perfect for nting things. When ck Mountain Kingdom was first established, thend was rocky. I brought it to fertility hammer by hammer,¡± Earth Hammer said resentfully. ¡°Good, you have hope. Here, a demon spirit that can¡¯t farm is worthless.¡± ¡°Can you farm then? How can a yellow book like you do farming?¡± Earth Hammer asked. ¡°I can teach you farming.¡± Now it was Negris¡¯s turn to sound resentful. ¡°Give it to Little Angel, let her use it to loosen the soil.¡± Ange put the hammer on the ground, Little Angel came over, picked it up easily, looked at it for a moment, then punched it. ¡°Why are you still hitting me when I haven¡¯t even said anything!¡± Earth Hammer wailed. Putting Earth Hammer down for the time being, Little Angel was lifted up, took the voucher, and rushed off to the Face Purification Beauty Salon, raising the voucher high to the weing girl. ¡°Oh, where did you get this voucher, little girl? Where are your parents?¡± the weing girl asked with surprise. ¡°Wow!¡± Little Angel hopped and jumped, thrusting the voucher at the girl¡¯s face, because Ange told her to give the voucher to the humans, and then go in, without hitting anyone. Just as the voucher was about to hit her face, the weing girl reluctantly took it. Before she could say anything, Little Angel had already rushed inside. This was a garden-style building. Inside the entrance was a courtyard with a pond, a big tree, flowers, and fish. In the cool corner under the lean-to, some clearly aristocratic women were dressed lightly, lying or sitting, chatting andughing. Some were unting their fullness, some showing off their slender figure, some disying their fairness. It was a bustling scene. Negris suddenly said, ¡°So that¡¯s how it is. No wonder they only serve female guests. Such skinny bodies aren¡¯t good looking. Human stomachs are too small, which can easily cause their organs to copse and they can¡¯t store heat. Our dragon bodies are much better.¡± At this moment, Ange and Negris were both focused on Little Angel, who ran all the way, ready to swat at these white thighs. Some of thedies couldn¡¯t resist crowding around at the sight of the tender and innocent Little Angel. ¡°What a cute little girl, she looks like an angel. Come, let auntie hold you.¡± Little Angel¡¯s hand was itching to punch them, but luckily Ange had warned her not to hit anyone, or else it would be trouble. Just then, a crisp p sounded. A girl dressed in work clothes, covering her face with her hands, tears in her eyes, ran out of a room nearby. A middle-aged woman chased out of the room, her hands on her hips as she shouted, ¡°Do you know who I am? You¡¯re called the Face Purification Beauty Salon, right? Let me tell you, if you can¡¯t remove the spots on my face today, I¡¯ll smash your sign.¡± By the time Little Angel got to the woman, she had either let her anger fester or simply didn¡¯t like the sight of the pure and tender Little Angel. The middle-aged woman tripped her and muttered, ¡°Where does this brate from, get lost.¡± Instinctively, Negris pulled Ange back. ¡°Don¡¯t be impulsive. She can¡¯t hurt Little Angel.¡± PS: Ling Chen still has a turn. Chapter 261 - 175 Pray for Your Divine Power to Descend_1 Chapter 261: Chapter 175 Pray for Your Divine Power to Descend_1 Trantor: 549690339 With a crunchy sound, Little Angel felt like she ran over something. She stopped in confusion, and then a horrific scream erupted beside her. A middle-aged woman sat there screaming, holding her ankle bent to a horrifying angle of about seventy-eight degrees. At her screams, two muscr female guards rushed out of the room, ran over in haste, and helped the woman, asking anxiously, ¡°Madam, Madam, are you okay? What happened?¡± The woman cried as she clutched her leg, ¡°My leg, my leg, it was her, it was her. Catch her, catch her.¡± Little Angel was somewhat bewildered, tilting her head to look at the woman¡¯s broken leg. It seemed¡­ she had caused the injury. Would this be considered hitting someone? As the two female guards charged toward her with ws bared, Little Angel started to chuckle. They were the ones who struck first, so retaliating wouldn¡¯t be considered hitting someone. With a punch to the left and a punch to the right, the two female guards flew back, clutching their ck eyes. They were such low-level opponents that she didn¡¯t need to use the Holy Light. As per Lord Ange¡¯s demand, Little Angel measured her punches well enough not to hurt anyone too badly. After dealing with the enemies, Little Angel turned around and scampered off. As the two female guards carried off the middle-aged woman, they left with a roar, ¡°Remember this! Go, go, go, we are going to get some people and tear down this lousy shop.¡± The whole Face Purification Beauty Store fell into chaos. A beautiful and fair-skinned young woman ran out and questioned an employee, her face turned pale at the answer: ¡°That female tyrannosaur? This is a disaster. She is the most ferocious woman in Rnd City. How did you offend her?¡± The female employee who had been pped covered her face, crying, ¡°She demanded that I remove her spots and wrinkles. I said that I couldn¡¯t do it, so she got angry and hit me. I ran off to look for you, but as soon as I left the room, she vented her anger on a little girl, tried to kick her, and somehow managed to break her own foot.¡± ¡°Venting her anger on a little girl? She broke her own foot? How forceful was she? If she had kicked the child, it would have been tragic. That¡¯s too cruel, too detestable.¡± The young woman scolded in anger, but she soon furrowed her brows again: ¡°This female tyrannosaur won¡¯t listen to reason. Now that she¡¯s suffered such a loss and broken her leg, she will surely not let this slide. She¡¯s the widow of Count Tulo and her brother is the City Defense Army Commander of Rnd City. She can call on the City Defense Army to give us trouble at any time. Get the customers out quickly, and you should also leave. Come back when this trouble is over.¡± n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om The female employee, still covering her face, asked, ¡°What about you, manager Katie?¡± ¡°Of course I will stay and mind the store. This is Lord Ange¡¯s property, and we can¡¯t let others destroy it carelessly. I won¡¯t even have to think about such a thing,¡± said store manager Katie without hesitation. When she mentioned ¡®Lord Ange,¡¯ Ange, who was standing not far from the corner of this block, sensed her information very clearly and couldn¡¯t help looking in this direction out of curiosity. ¡°But¡­¡± Katie was clearly unsure if the other party would resort to violence. If she stayed while everyone else left, wouldn¡¯t it be very dangerous? Katie, however, insisted on driving everyone out, ¡°Go, go, go. Hurry and leave. Go find that little girl and get her out of here too. Do you know whose child she is?¡± Not long after she had finished speaking, Little Angel ran back in, havingpleted the circle Ange told her to do. The female shop assistant who had been pped hurriedly stopped Little Angel, ¡°Little girl, little girl, where are your parents? Where are they?¡± Little Angel pointed toward the door, meaning to say: The adults are outside. However, before she could finish, about a dozen soldiers suddenly stormed in through the front door, waving their weapons and blocking the entrance. Katie eximed with a lost voice: ¡°Oh no, bless me master.¡± As she spoke, she quickly moved forward, pulling back the Little Angel and the staff, spreading her arms to protect those behind her. With her cry for divine protection, Ange finally thought of what he could do and quickly projected his consciousness. Such projection, he had performed three times before. The previous two were when Silver Coin had just died and was reincarnated. This was the third time, but the situation was drastically different. The two times with Silver Coin were projections across the nes, but now it was just through a few walls. The rity was so striking that it was as if he was there in person, as if he had reced Katie and stood in her ce, only slightly less real than having a soul contact with Little Angel. Ange, as though he were on the scene himself, ¡®saw¡¯ a middle-aged woman with a broken leg, being carried into the doorway by her two female guards. Katie looked at the middle-aged woman¡¯s iron-blue twisted face and quickly said: ¡°Countess, I am very sorry that this has happened. I am willing topensate for your loss and actively heal you. Please forgive them.¡± The Countess paid no attention to Katie¡¯s words, her short, fat finger pointed at something, and she ordered her soldiers: ¡°Go and grab those people, I want to scar their faces, then sell them into the cheapest tavern.¡± The soldiers¡¯ eyes lit up at her order, a lecherous smile appeared on their faces, excitedly rushing forward. Katie¡¯splexion changed drastically. She hadn¡¯t expected the Count¡¯s widow to be so overbearing, hurriedly adding: ¡°Countess, you can¡¯t do this, it wasn¡¯t intentional, this establishment is property of the Silver Chamber of Commerce, you can¡¯t run rampant.¡± ¡°Silver Chamber of Commerce? Never heard of it. Whether you are silver or ck, I am going to demolish this ce today. None of you will escape, I will scar all your faces, and then sell you to the cheapest tavern so you can be slept on bymoners every day! Grab them!¡± A look of despair filled Katie¡¯s face, she had tried to reason with her, but did not expect, when an overbearing person entirely rejects reason, how powerless she would feel. The middle-aged woman¡¯s words made her tremble, the thought of her face being destroyed, living in a cheap tavern, being disgraced every day by lowly men, she wished she could head-butt against a wall and die. Even more despairing was that the woman¡¯s words were very likely to be reality. Even if Chairman Silver Coin knew and came to save her, that would be dayster. By the time she was rescued, she probably wouldn¡¯t want to live anyway. For the first time, Katie regretted not learning some magic or martial arts, so she could protect herself at a critical time. Despite her despair and fear, Katie still firmly protected the Little Angel and female employees behind her, shouting loudly: ¡°It¡¯s okay to do whatever you want with me, but they are still young and naive, please let them go.¡± ¡°None of you can get away! Ah~¡± the middle-aged woman screamed hysterically, probably because she had moved her broken leg, causing her to moan in pain with an even more vicious look in her eyes. Seeing that kind of look, Katie knew there was no possible reconciliation. She closed her eyes in despair, muttering: ¡°God bless, I am willing to devote my body and soul, praying for your divine power toe¡­¡± Originally just a prayer of desperation, Katie didn¡¯t think anything would change, just pinned herst hope. However, with her muttering, an overwhelmingly powerful force suddenly rushed into her body. A sh of powerful force, from her forehead through to the soles of her feet, made her shudder. Her hands unconsciously clenched into fists, as if driven by an urge to grasp something. The soldiers rushed in front of her, reached out to grab her, but with impure motives, their hands were misced. Katie clenched her fist abruptly, and a Holy Light Staff appeared in her hand. Staff? Should I use magic or Divine Arts? The doubt shed through her mind, but her hands involuntarily swung the Holy Light Staff, hitting the soldier in front of her on the head. Chapter 262 - 176: I’m fine_1 Chapter 262: Chapter 176: I¡¯m fine_1 Trantor: 549690339 One by one, a plump and fair-skinned young woman swung her light rod, smashing the soldiers¡¯ heads in front of her like a game of whack-a-mole. The scene was incredibly shocking. For a moment, everyone at the scene was stunned, including Katie who stammered, ¡°I¡­ I¡­ Did I kill someone?¡± Everyone was taken aback, but the descending divine soul was not. It emerged from Katie¡¯s body as a light shadow, carrying a scepter and rushing towards its master. Those in the know recognized this light shadow: ¡°God, a Mystical Warrior! My God, a Divine Soul has descended, run!¡± With a shout, even the Countess, escorted by her female bodyguards, ran off. But how could it let you run away casually when a divine soul has descended? The divine soul, dedicated by Anthony, has maintained Anthony¡¯s nature. In general, when ites to action, it¡¯s thorough. The scepter pounded on the ground: ¡°God said: The original sin it carries is a heavy shackle, bound!¡± ¡ª Original Sin Shackles. Seven chains sprang from the ground, tying the Countess and her two guards on the street. ¡°Oh God, Original Sin Shackles, divine punishment! Did thedy spheme?¡± Whoosh! Everyone who could run cked out. The middle-aged woman freaked out. sphemy? Divine punishment? Original Sin Shackles? Wasn¡¯t she just bullying themoners, killing a few ves, selling civilians into the fire pit, and shing a few girls¡¯ faces? The City Lord didn¡¯t care about these things, would God? Isn¡¯t God too idle? Themotion here obviously rmed many people. Not long after the divine soul descended, various wizards flew in from all directions. As soon as they saw the Original Sin Shackles, they were taken aback and hurriedlynded, either lying on the rooftops or hiding in corners, peeping out. There were also people hiding in the corner where Ange was. As soon as they saw Ange, they familiarly asked, ¡°How long have you been here? Do you know what happened?¡± Ange did not answer him. Feeling bored, the wizard rubbed his nose and started looking out on his own. After a while, another wizard hid here and simrly asked, ¡°How long have you guys been here? Do you know what happened?¡± ¡°We just got here. We don¡¯t know what¡¯s happened yet, but apparently, there¡¯s Original Sin Shackles. Looks like someone sphemed,¡± the first wizard to arrive said. ¡°sphemy? My God, I know her, she¡¯s the widow of Count Tulo and the sister of the local City Defense Army Commander. She sphemed? She¡¯s gone mad?¡± ¡°Is it her? The Countess known as She-Tyrant? She has done so many evil deeds, sphemy is not surprising, but divine punishment? I¡¯ve never seen divine punishment in my life.¡± ¡°I heard thatst time when Great Bishop Nik was assassinated, the Original Sin Shackles also appeared. It¡¯s not necessarily divine punishment, it could be divine magic.¡± ¡°Hiss, look at that light shadow, a divine soul! And it¡¯s in the robes of a bishop! My god, at least a person of the Favored One of the God rank can summon such a high-level divine soul, right?¡± ¡°The Favored One of the God? Sounds familiar. Oh right, Archbishop Anthony was resurrected recently, he¡¯s also the Favored One of the God. There haven¡¯t been any for so many years, why have two appeared this year?¡± ¡°Look, look, a beautiful woman ising out, her body is shrouded in a holy light, could it be that she summoned the divine soul? Is she a saint?¡± The two wizards actually started a lively discussion, ignoring Ange. Ange, feeling helpless, grabbed one of them and threw him to the other side, letting them chat on their own. Rumble, rumble, the neat steps of an infantry squad walked into the street, and themander at the front yelled, ¡°Stop! There is no fighting in the city, offenders will be arrested!¡± The middle-aged woman, seeing the reinforcements, started crying out, ¡°Brother, brother, save me, save me! All I wanted was to do some beauty and skincare, these people broke my legs and tied me up! Help!¡± The frontmander shouted with righteous indignation, ¡°Damn it, who is tarnishing the church¡¯s reputation and injuring innocent people in the street?¡± As soon as he spoke, he positioned the other party as ¡®tarnishing the church¡¯s reputation and injuring people in the street¡¯. Needless to say, thismander was experienced. ¡°It¡¯s her!¡± The middle-aged woman pointed at Katie. However, she was tied so tightly that only her fingers were free. Themander took a look at Katie and heaved a sigh of relief, because he saw panic and cluelessness on Katie¡¯s face. This made things easier: he would first arrest her and then interrogate her harshly to get the answers he wanted. Although Katie might be from the Church of Light, the church¡¯s personnel varies greatly. He had arrested numerous clerics before and had delivered the due punishment; perhaps the church even owed him a favor. ¡°Arrest them all¡±, themander shouted, behind him, the soldiers carrying long spears, formed two lines and started jogging. Their heavy footsteps felt like they were treading on everyone¡¯s hearts. The Little Angel scurried out from the entrance, seeing the iing soldiers, her eyes lit up. Instantly, she spread her wings wide and thrusted her hands forward. Negris covered his face, unable to watch anymore, he said to Ange: ¡°This little bugger, always forgetting her wings are removed. Go on. There are too many people. She can¡¯t handle it.¡± Before he could finish his sentence, a beam of light blinded him. The Little Angel, with an invisible pair of light wings on her, pushed forward vigorously. In a sh, the beam of light traveled the length of the street, swallowing the marching soldiers and themander behind them. Negris was left gaping, ¡°My God, it¡¯s the second pair of light wings. This damn child actually stimted the Holy Light sh using the light wings?¡± The Little Angel had long been a Four-Winged Angel, but only the first pair of main wings were physical. The second pair was made of light, and it¡¯s highly likely, including the Six-winged Archangel, only one pair of wings was physical, the rest were all in an energy state. The Holy Light sh triggered by the light wings didn¡¯t dissipate the materials but burnt them to ashes. As the beam of light passed, the soldiers and themander, all covered in the beam, were groaning on the ground,pletely devoid of any life and soul. Negris eximed in shock, ¡°I see now. That¡¯s why, despite having her wings removed, she always wants to unleash powerful attacks. Originally, she really could trigger such attacks through her light wings. But this Holy Light sh¡¯s effect, why is so simr to Judgment?¡± The Little Angel, having just unleashed her powerful attack, was brimming with energy and was scampering toward where Ange was. ¡°Quick, make her turn toward a different direction, and we will meet her elsewhere.¡± Negris didn¡¯t want to be discovered by the two wizards, who were engaged in an animated conversation next to him, about their connection. Scurrying about, the Little Angel turned around and was out of sight from the other end of the street in no time. Everyone was somewhat bewildered, wondering what just happened? Then they saw the Divine Soul walking step by step towards the Earl¡¯s wife, who was constrained by the Original Sin Shackles. Just as he was about to lift his staff, Katie called out, ¡°Wait.¡± The Divine Soul stopped, Katie rushed over, muttering to herself, ¡°I feel a constant flow of divine power in me, I want to try if I can do it. Sorry for the offense, mdy.¡± After saying that, she pointed her finger on the woman¡¯s face, a fine red light shot out from her fingertip and struck the woman¡¯s face. ¡°Death finger? Doesn¡¯t seem like it, it is too thin, it¡¯s all over now. Surely the red light piercing her face will pierce through her brain?¡±, the two mages started chatting again. When they turned their heads, they found that besides them, only Ange had disappeared from that corner. However, to their amazement, the countess didn¡¯t die. The red light was roaming on her face, getting rid of the blemishes, then focusing on her crow¡¯s feet, the bags under her eyes and the ckheads on her nose, and the apple muscles on her cheeks. After roaming around, the countess seemed at least thirty years younger. Her blemishes, eye bags and wrinkles were all gone, and even her loose skin was a lot firmer. N?v(el)B\\jnn Katie took out a mirror and showed it to the countess, ¡°How is it? Are you satisfied with the result?¡± Looking at her rejuvenated self in the mirror, the countess was both surprised and somewhat puzzled. Wasn¡¯t this what she wanted? Why hadn¡¯t she been given this from the start? If they had done this at the beginning, then why would she have needed to lose her temper? ¡°I hadn¡¯t learned it back then,¡± Katie sighed leisurely, then turned to the Divine Soul, ¡°I¡¯m done.¡± The Divine Soul remained expressionless, striking his staff on the face of the woman who had just be thirty years younger, ttening it. Then the Divine Soul maintained the posture of striking, and disappeared into the specks of stars, leaving only Katie on the street. The onlookers gasped, and for a moment, an eerie silence fell. Not long after, Rnd¡¯s City Lord rushed over. After hearing a detailed report and looking at the corpse of the city defensemander, he nced at Katie, utterly perplexed. Having lost amander, he could not simply brush this matter aside. He sighed resignedly, ¡°Arrest her.¡± ¡°I¡¯d like to see who dares arrest the saint from our Church of Light!¡± a loud voice echoed from afar. The City Lord of Rnd furrowed his brows, ¡°It¡¯s Anthony. How did he arrive so quickly? This isn¡¯t his Eastern Diocese, how many informants does he have?¡± Chapter 263 - One Hundred Seventy-Seven: Erasing Someone’s Magic Tattoo?_1 Chapter 263: Chapter One Hundred Seventy-Seven: Erasing Someone¡¯s Magic Tattoo?_1 Trantor: 549690339 Everyone thought of Anthony cing spies in Rnd City, whilepletely overlooking the fact that they were all in this together. Besides Anthony, there were twelve towering Holy Spirit Angels who apanied him, drifting slowly down the street as if their feet had wheels underneath their gowns. The citizens, soldiers, and.idlers in their way neatly stepped aside, creating a pathway. Some devout believers couldn¡¯t wait to drop to their knees, worshipping fervently. Twelve rge¡¯ angels ¨C therger they were, the more powerful they must be. Some atheistic wizards have already started whispering among themselves, ¡°Did you hear? The Holy Church? Isn¡¯t that their nickname? They are collectively called the Church of Light typically.¡± ¡°Didn¡¯t you know? The Eastern Diocese has be self-governed. They im that the Western Diocese is upied by the minions of the evil god. The Archbishop of the Western Diocese, Nik, is a vile person, carelessly indulgent, sleeping with seven maidens every day, and raping the backyard pigs. He even sent someone to assassinate Archbishop Anthony.¡± ¡°In order to cleanse the followers of the evil god, Archbishop Anthonyunched a purge, but was obstructed by the Pope. Anthony, unwilling to associate with the evil god, decided to sever ties with the Church of Light and formed the Holy Church. He earned the support of the entire Eastern Diocese. Now, we have to call him ¡®His Majesty Archbishop Anthony¡¯.¡± A wizard who had never heard of these events appeared baffled. ¡°Is that an explosive rumor? Seven maidens and a pig. Why would anyone rape a pig? I just returned from the sea, I had no clue.¡± Another wizard shrugged disdainfully, ¡°I knew it. No one would give two hoots for those seven maidens. Anyhow, this is the situation and now the Holy Church and the Church of Light have separated. The person the Pope most wishes to get rid of is probably Lord Anthony.¡± ¡°But we are in the Western Diocese. How dare Anthonye here?¡± ¡°Who knows how many spies he has nted here? It isn¡¯t even decided whose side they are on.¡± ¡°Did you notice? That divine soul¡¯s guise looks a lot like Lord Anthony¡¯s. Even the scepter is identical. You can¡¯t make out the face, though.¡± ¡°You think so too? Do you think it¡¯s possible that thedy shopkeeper is one of Anthony¡¯s spies? This ce is an outpost of the Eastern Diocese, so Anthony arrived quickly. What if, he personally came because she is his mistress?¡± n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om The duo gossip fervently, part ways and merge into the crowd to find theirpanions. The wizard who just heard the explosive rumor can¡¯t help but share it with hispanions. ¡°Hey, hey! Have you heard? Nik is said to rape seven sows and maidens every day¡­¡± ¡°Hey, hey! Have you heard? Nik is said to rape seven maidens and sows every day¡­¡± The rumors spread rapidly, getting more and more distorted. Particrly the scandalous rumors. If Nik in heaven had any idea of these usations, he would surely descend in fury to strangle Anthony. Anthony floated up to Katie and smiled,¡±Those who have faith in our Lord shall receive his protection. Come with me. Here, no one dares to hurt you.¡± Everyone thought he was referring to the Gods of Light by saying ¡®Lord¡¯, but only he and Katie knew that their Lord was Ange. Katie was involuntarily led away by Anthony. Looking back, she saw Rnd City¡¯s Lord turning red with rage but not uttering a word about capturing her. Upon reaching a crossroad, the local Bishop arrived hurriedly with a team of pdins, having received news of a divine soul descent. God! It had been many years since theyst heard of a divine soul descent. Isn¡¯t it time for a Saintess Awakening? Hurry up and protect the saintess. Just as everyone rushed toward the scene, Anthony waved his hand in greeting from afar. The Bishop halted his procession, yelling,¡±The venerable saint is heading to ck Mountain Kingdom? It¡¯s very dangerous. Go protect the saint.¡± The group immediately reversed direction, heading back the way they hade,pletely ignoring the twelve Holy Spirit Angels at the intersection, as well as the slightly awkward Anthony with his hand up. ¡°Old slicker,¡± Anthony cursed, leading everyone away from the secret base through the teleportation array. Before leaving, he destroyed the teleportation array, effectively abandoning a secret base to rescue Katie. Back on his territory, Anthony finally rxed a little, instructed all the Holy Spirit Angels to leave, and then began tofort Katie, ¡°It¡¯s alright, you¡¯re safe now, are you Patricia¡¯s person?¡± ¡°Yes¡­¡± Having her identity named by Anthony, Katie was somewhat flustered. Everyone knew the role Patricia yed in the Church of Light, that she belonged to the shadowy side of the church. Who knew what Anthony thought about her. ¡°Don¡¯t be nervous, Patricia is my person.¡± Nothing could be moreforting than these words. They¡¯re all on the same side. Nevertheless, Katie found it hard to believe. Even though she was one of them, the fact that Anthony had personallye to rescue her, even revealing a secret base with a teleportation array, was the treatment a little too much? Anthony opened his eyes wide, instinctively revealing a kindly expression: ¡°What are you talking about? Everyone is the Lord¡¯s people. We should love each other and not give up easily. Besides, you have redefined the Holy Light.¡± However, this ¡®kind¡¯ expression, on his forty-something ¡®old¡¯ face, seemed a bit out of ce, making Katie, a beautiful woman in her thirties, blushing. Ange sat on the back of a dragon, shooting out red light from his fingers, smoothing the uneven dragon scales on the back of the Bone Dragon into smooth, fresh skin. ¡°Again, a whole new definition of the Holy Light, but why is the effect so strange? Removing spots and wrinkles?¡± Negris said in confusion. Ange pulled out a rusty iron sword, his fingers shooting out red light. The rust was soonpletely removed, revealing the original color of the sword. ¡°Eh? Removing spots is the same as removing impurities? It can be used in this way too? Here, try this.¡± Negris went into the Resting Camp, fetching a piece of Bismuth Silver Jewelry. Mithril is a valuable magic material. It has a strong affinity for Magic Elements, so it can be used in Magic Circuits. It is necessary to construct Element Channels and Magic Networks. The purity of mithril determines the value of mithril. Mithril with a purity of ny-eight and above is used to forge magic items, and mithril below ny-eight can only be used to make bismuth silver jewelry. There is a thousand-fold difference in value between the two. If Ange can remove the impurities from bismuth silver with his spot removal spell and turn it into mithril that can be used in magic items, wouldn¡¯t that be a fortune? The red light shone, and the impurities on the bismuth silver jewelry slowly disappeared, making the entire piece sparkle silver. Negris excitedly eximed, ¡°It really works, great, finally there¡¯s an ability that¡¯s not just for nting.¡± Ange then pulled out a Mithril Belt to try again. Negris quickly intervened, ¡°Wait, isn¡¯t this the Space Artifact taken from those two dragon yers? Don¡¯t mess around, be careful with the magic patterns¡­well, it¡¯s toote.¡± Negris¡¯s words alwaysgged behind Ange¡¯s actions. Before he could finish speaking, the red light lined up on the belt. There was a slight buzzing sound, the magic pattern locks on the Space Artifact disappeared. ¡°You can do that? Your spot removal spell can also erase others¡¯ magic patterns? You¡¯re kidding right? Hurry and see if it opens.¡± Chapter 264 - 178: Hammer of Ethereality_1 Chapter 264: Chapter 178: Hammer of Ethereality_1 Trantor: 549690339 Most space ornaments require magic pattern authentication to open, unless they are like the stripping female magest time who deliberately left them unlocked for quick removal, then anyone can open them. For locked space artifacts, there are only two methods to unlock them: the original owner uses their unique magic wave, i.e. the magic pattern, to trigger the opening, or you find a space wizard to crack it. Usually, it requires a space mage beyond the level of great magician to have a high chance of cracking, of course, this also depends on the creator of the magical artifact. The more powerful the spatial wizard, the harder it is to crack the space artifacts they create; the higher level the mage, the easier it is to crack the same artifact, just like a game of chess, measuring the distance between the creators and the crackers. Temporarily not knowing the level of the belt¡¯s creator, yet Ange, with his fade technique, managed to solve the magic pattern lock,pletely beyond Negris¡¯sprehension. However, Ange himself is already filled with plenty of unconventional things rted to God and the power of faith that defymon sense. That¡¯s why most wizards rather hate magicians, because it is easy to freak them out. The space belt is owned by a wizard named Xiehed. After opening the space in the belt and searching through it, he found some demon crystals, a few bottles of energy potion, several magic books, a few sets of magic robes, two wardrobes with clothes, a wig cab, and then nothing more. This Xiehed, actually uses valuable space to store clothes and wigs? Collecting useful items and shaking out useless ones directly from the dragon¡¯s back. He took out another space ring belonging to Iron Leyce and, after a while, it took longer to erase the magic pattern lock on the ring than the space belt, Ange reached in. ¡°Books on military strategy, topographic maps, ounting books, three books on military supply equipment, a list of contacts, various agreements in embossed form, rtionship charts of high-level people from various countries, reflections on chess operations, biographies, maps of creatures, census data tables from various countries, and reports on economic livelihoods and customs from various countries¡­ My God, Ange, it seems we have killed a pretty big-shot,¡± Negris eximed. Ange tilted his head. ¡°Look, all these professional books and reports, written and printed on special paper, not parchment, the material itself is quite valuable, and each one has signs of being read, with annotations. This person has read these materials, not just once, he must be a very keen learner, and focusing on such professional things, he must have been an excellentmander.¡± Ange nodded, anyway, he couldn¡¯t understand them, whatever Negris said. Almost everything was rted to military leadership, except for one item that looked like a pebble. Made of an unknown material, it began to glow faintly in the cold wind as soon as it was pulled out. As more wind blew on it, the glow became steadier, and behind the cobblestone, an air bubble free of wind opened up. Inside this space bubble, there was absolutely no feeling of wind. Wind is a phenomenon of wind element movement, it¡¯s a verb, only when it blows is it wind, and when it is at rest, it is air. ¡°Huh? What a magical boundary, this is the anti-wind magic barrier? And it is activated by the wind element itself? I forbid myself? Negris said, astonished. In the range enveloped by the bubble, there was no trace of wind, Ange tried to use his Pollination spell, but it wouldn¡¯t work. But the air was present, as if the moving wind would immediatelye to a halt as it entered this bubble. What use could such a thing have? N?v(el)B\\jnn Unable to figure it out after pondering for a long time, he decided to put it away for the time being. Back to Fallen Dragon Lake, as soon as hends, White Neck swoops in: ¡°Aaargh!¡± Ange immediately hopped back onto the dragon¡¯s back and soared towards Lake Ind. White Neck told him that the elf beans had sprouted. The elf beans had finally sprouted. To grow them, Ange had tried everything. Surprisingly, they turned out to be more difficult to grow than the World Tree. Of course, this is mainly because there was only one seed. Otherwise, with Ange¡¯sparative methods, he would quickly find a solution. The elves were able to grow elf beansrgely because of the World Tree. Ange couldn¡¯t bear to nt the little sapling, so he dug up a regr World Tree from the Resting Abyss and nted it on Lake Ind, with the elf bean nted in its shade. Before nting, Ange prepared dozens of soil types, then dripped life essence onto the elf bean, then ced it on the soil. If it showed signs of discontent, he would quickly pick it up; if it gave offfortable signals, he would use this ratio to increase the volume. Due to the strong effectiveness of the life essence, only one drop could be used each time, and there had to be an eight-hour interval before using it again, otherwise, the elf bean couldn¡¯t bear it. Just to adjust the appropriate soil environment for the elf bean, Ange used a bottle of life essence, it took three to four months just to select the constitution of the soil it loved the most, in which the proportion of dragon soil and insect ash had to reach seven percent and 0.5 percent respectively. Just to be safe, Ange didn¡¯t dare use the Instant Death Halo, but simply buried the seeds and let them grow naturally. Because the eleration from the Instant Death Halo was too fast, it hadn¡¯t even experienced nightfall in a mature cycle,mon crops were naturally fine, but for magic nts like elf beans, aplete day and night were very important. Chapter 265 - 178: Hammer of Ethereality_2 Chapter 265: Chapter 178: Hammer of Ethereality_2 Trantor: 549690339 White Neck¡¯s main task now is to look after the Elf Beans, because they are nted on Lake Ind, and it requires anyone else to row for a hundred to two hundred kilometers to get there. Arriving at Lake Ind, the surrounding nts are already very lush, especially the wends by the shore, all of which Ange has reimed into paddy fields, nting Saline Demon Rice. On the hillside of Lake Ind, a low World Tree is thriving there, growing longer and wider, almost covering the hillside. The soilyer of Lake Ind is quite shallow, to prevent the World Tree from being blown down, the tree top is often pruned to encourage horizontal growth and keep its height down. Under the umbre-like shade of the tree stand, five or six skeletons are gathered around a little seedling, holding sticks in their hands and warding off all kinds of small birds and ants to prevent the valuable seeds from being snatched away just after they¡¯ve sprouted. These arrangements now appear to be foresight, the seeds have sprouted. Ange looked at it and immediately felt relieved. The seedling was growing well and healthy, which meant that the growing environment was suitable for it. As long as it was watered and fertilized regrly, it could grow vigorously. Next, Ange jumped down into the paddy field by the shore, picked up the sickle, and started harvesting. The rice nts fell into the water row by row. Normally, the water should have been drained to keep the grain from getting wet, but Ange was not worried about it, he had magic and Breathing Soil. The wet rice was swept with Magic Power, removing the water element from its surface. This ability is not even considered magic. Lake Ind is a stone mountain, with a thinyer of weathered soil on the surface. On the bulging hillside where the stone is cracked open, there is a huge stone crevice. Breathing Soil is spread inside, and the harvested rice is piled in. At least several hundred thousand tons can be stacked. Ange ns to store all the crops nted on Lake Ind here, and allows humans to exchange the outside crops for Soul me. While Ange is happily busy, Negris sighs: ¡°You fool, you get caught up whenever you see a field, have you forgotten something important?¡± Ange tilts his head in confusion. ¡°The Earth Hammer, the real Earth Hammer, you wouldn¡¯t have forgotten about it, would you? The Undead Symphony, the Blessed Saint Seal, things that Anthony wants to see, even I want to see it, I¡¯m dying of curiosity.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Ange scratches his head as if he remembers something about it. ¡°But¡­¡± He turns back to see that only one tenth of the paddy field has been harvested. ¡°Alright, alright, I¡¯ll go get Anthony, you go ahead and enjoy.¡± Negris sighs helplessly. When Ange gets into this kind of mood, probably ten dragons together wouldn¡¯t be able to pull him away. It would be easier to have ¡®mountain¡¯e here. ¡°Okay.¡± He quickly agrees this time, and runs off with his sickle as soon as the words are out. ¡°Sigh¡­¡± Negris says: ¡°White Neck!¡± White Neck swooshes in front of Negris like a white shadow: ¡°Ao?¡± Negris ps it on the head: ¡°Stop making ¡®ao ao ao¡¯ sounds all the time, speak in Dragon Language.¡± White Neck said. ¡°¡­Forget it, just keep making ¡®ao¡¯ sounds. What you could say in one ¡®ao¡¯, takes you half a day in Dragon Language.¡± ¡°Ao!¡± White Neck dly switched back to Aoaonguage. ¡°Go to the canyon, fetch Anthony.¡± Negris finishes saying and then hops onto White Neck¡¯s back, plonking down onto it. Perhaps due to good nutrition, White Neck has grown rapidly and is now five to six meters long. It¡¯s not a problem for him to carry one or two people on his back. The talent of a Silver Dragon makes him look like a silver shadow when he flies. ¡°Ao!¡± ¡°You fly fast, whereas the Bone Dragon is sluggish. What¡¯s the problem with letting your ancestral grandfather hitch a ride?¡± ¡°Ao~¡± White Neck unwillingly twists his head, ps his wings weakly, and flies up with a listless look. ¡°Hurry up, we¡¯re short on time. I¡¯ve got something good for you.¡± Negris pulls out the pebble. White Neck holds it in his mouth, and looks at Negris in confusion. ¡°You fly up, give it a try, and you¡¯ll understand. You¡¯re small, fast, and the space bubble stimted by it should be able to envelope you,¡± Negris said. The faster you go, the bigger the space bubble the pebble can stimte. White Neck is small, unlike the Bone Dragon, which is twenty-some meters long and can¡¯t be wrapped up in the bubble. Taking off, elerating, upon reaching a specific speed, White Neck opened its mouth, allowing the Wind Element to strike the pebble it was biting. In an instant, White Neck felt the air resistance on its body disappear. When it flew at its top speed, the wind was the biggest factor that obstructed its speed, which humans referred to as wind resistance. N?v(el)B\\jnn With the disappearance of the resistance, White Neck suddenly darted forward, its speed drastically increasing. As its speed increased,rger air bubbles were stimted, encasing its body. Its entire body¡¯s resistance disappeared, so the faster White Neck went, therger the air bubbles became, creating a positive cycle. Whoosh, White Neck was as fast as lightning, disappearing from sight in the blink of an eye. It wasn¡¯t until it reached the gorge that White Neck slowed down, spat out the pebble into its hand, and excitedly cried out, ¡°Aoao!¡± ¡°Are you saying it feels amazing and super fast? But your snout isn¡¯t in the air bubble, so the wind bites a bit? Also,ck of shockwaves and streamlined structure means your aerial mobility isn¡¯t great, you can run away but not fight effectively?¡± ¡°Aoao!¡± ¡°That¡¯s easy to deal with. You could use a snout cover, extending a tube that you can push against. You can open it while elerating and close it while manoeuvring. Because the tube extends the distance, it can also cover your nose.¡± ¡°Aoao!¡± White Neck excitedly cried out ¡®Aoao¡¯. Some people on the ground were farming and, hearing the sound, they looked up excitedly saying to theirpanion, ¡°See, I told you, Giant Dragons do go ¡®Aoao¡¯. Do you hear it?¡± Arriving at the cliffs of the gorge, where Naeli had previously used puff puff, Anthony was already waiting there eagerly. ¡°Eh, you changed your mount? Why have youe sote?¡± Anthony jumped onto White Neck¡¯s back, at first surprised, then he couldn¡¯t help butin. ¡°I¡¯m really busy, with a ton of stuff, how are you guys handling that Favored One?¡± ¡°Which Favored One? Oh, you mean that female shopkeeper? Isn¡¯t she under Silver Coin¡¯smand? Just leave the arrangements to her.¡±, Negris responded after a moment of confusion. ¡°Isn¡¯t that inappropriate? She¡¯s a Favored One. You just left the arrangement to someone else. That¡¯s not right.¡±, Anthony hesitated to say. Negris rolled his eyes at him, ¡°You always look for Lord Ange to bber about your woes, and even let him run errands for you. Aren¡¯t you a Favored One? Silver Coin often reports to Lord Ange regardless of the matter at hand, isn¡¯t he also a Favored One? Lisa borrows Lord Ange¡¯s power for her beauty treatments daily, isn¡¯t she a Favored One too? Everyone¡¯s a Favored One here, no need for any special treatment.¡± ¡°Well, that¡¯s true. It¡¯s not that the Favored Ones are special, it¡¯s that Lord Ange is too special. Alright, I understand now.¡± Whoosh, White Neck went full speed and returned to Lake Ind in not too long. ¡°Hiss, is this the Saline Demon Rice? What¡¯s the yield?¡± Looking down from above, Anthony gasped upon seeing the rice in the deposition zone. It was his first time here and his first time seeing Saline Demon Rice up close. He had only heard Negris mention it a few times, but this was his first time having a direct understanding. Now, after looking at it, he immediately realized he previously underestimated it. Farm produce that can be nted in salt water and saline-alkali soil, as long as its yield isn¡¯t too low, can be a divine item capable of changing the entire continent¡¯s situation. It could be even more terrifying than one or two Divine Artifacts. As for how much the yield needs to be not to be considered low? Anything under one hundred catties per mu would be considered low, as it would mean that the harvested produce may not even be enough to feed the farmer himself. ¡°The ones nted are Magic Rice No.3, with a yield of six hundred catties per mu.¡± Negris stated. ¡°Huh? How much? Six hundred catties?¡± Anthony immediately spat out his drink. ¡°Is that not enough? You¡¯re right, at the Spring Breeze Cup, there were nts with a yield exceeding one thousand catties. So, six hundred does seem to be a bit low. We do have Type One rice though, with a yield that could reach seven hundred. That¡¯s already pretty good, considering it¡¯s salty soil¡­¡± ¡°Lord of Knowledge, haven¡¯t you updated your knowledge about farming in a while? Yes, there was a grain nt with a yield of over one thousand catties at the Spring Breeze Cup, but that was a product of meticulous cultivation and care by the druids. With ordinary farmers, a yield of three to four hundred catties is already considered a bumper harvest.¡± After being looked down upon by Anthony, Negris finally realized that he shouldn¡¯t use the data he got from Ange and the Spring Breeze Druid as a standard. Picking up the Earth Hammer, Anthony studied it, ¡°Hmm, this is indeed an artifact from the Undead Empire. There¡¯s aplete Undeadposition on the handle, aside from these visible symbols, there are also these convex dots that mark the resonance pitches of spirits. Only the Undead could chant thisposition perfectly. However, it¡¯s been sealed, so we can¡¯t see its original form, and don¡¯t know what kind of hammer it is.¡± ¡°It seems to be called the Hammer of Ethereality.¡± Suddenly, the hammer spoke up, startling Anthony, ¡°Who are you?!¡± ¡°Of course, I¡¯m the demon spirit who sealed this hammer.¡± Chapter 266 - 179: I Will Fulfill the Divine Parable_1 Chapter 266: Chapter 179: I Will Fulfill the Divine Parable_1 Trantor: 549690339 The Earth Hammer has a magic spirit? I¡¯ve never heard of that. Anthony, after being taken aback for a moment, quickly realized this was a breakthrough point. He had been troubled by not knowing the origin of the hammer. He never expected it to actually have a magic spirit. Why not just ask the spirit directly? ¡°So, it is called the Hammer of Ethereality. What is the Hammer of Ethereality?¡± Anthony asked. ¡°Why should I tell you? Keep your distance, don¡¯t lean in so close, your breath is blowing on me.¡± The Earth Hammer responded impatiently. Negris turned his head and called out: ¡°Ah.¡± The Little Angel quickly ran over. ¡°The Hammer of Ethereality signifies the echo of a soul in emptiness. It¡¯s a hammer capable of touching souls.¡± The Earth Hammer immediately responded quickly. ¡°What use is that?¡± Anthony inquired. Under the watchful eye of the Little Angel, the Earth Hammer was extremely cooperative: ¡°It can touch the echo of a soul, summoning corpses from the ground.¡± ¡°King¡¯s Arrival? Any Golden Skeleton could technically do that, so was it really necessary to seal it?¡± Negris questioned, baffled. ¡°You can¡¯t quite put it like that. The fact that a Golden Skeleton can do something, and that a hammer can do the same, are not the same concept. Because anyone can use a hammer. Can you imagine that in the heat of battle between two armies, half of one side dies, and you kill one-third of your own men. You¡¯re at an advantage and about to win when suddenly the corpses on the ground rise up and be your enemy? I suddenly understand why the ck Mountain Duke was undefeatable.¡± ¡°But, would the Church of Light allow such a person to live?¡± Negris wondered. ¡°Perhaps they simply couldn¡¯t beat him. This ck Mountain Duke himself has the power of a high-level Sword Saint. Under hismand, there are two Arcane Magicians, a Truth Sword Saint, six high-level Sword Saints, an elite cavalry, and he has received the support of most of the countries against the church. The fact that the Church of Light hasn¡¯t been destroyed is already quite remarkable.¡± Anthony exined. ¡°So, sealing the hammer is like a ceasefire agreement signed between the two parties?¡± Negris guessed. ¡°That¡¯s likely, I guess. Let¡¯s ask, spirit, do you represent a ceasefire agreement?¡± N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°Are you stupid? I¡¯m just a seal. How am I supposed to know what I symbolize? Do you know what you symbolize? You symbolize a fool.¡± Anthony was stunned into silence by the insult. He dazedly asked, ¡°Is this magic spirit rted to your lightning spirit?¡± Negris suppressed augh: ¡°No, it¡¯s easier to handle than Lightning, it doesn¡¯t have legs. Little Angel, it¡¯s up to you. Take it and level thend. Thend on the Lake Ind is too shallow with too many stones. It¡¯s perfect to use it for tilling.¡± Originally, Lake Ind was just a stony mountain. The shallow surface soilyer is almost all formed by weathering or the sedimentation of dust, with a vast amount of stones interspersed. If used to till thend, the Earth Hammer could likely increase the cultivable area by five or six times. The Little Angel excitedly ran off carrying the hammer, followed closely by Ange and the little zombie also ran off. Only the two sly old-timers remained, exchanging nces. ¡°Forget it. I have copied the seal and the Undead Chapter, and will research them slowly when I get back. If you discover anything, please let me know, You are, after all, the God of Knowledge.¡± unable to keep still, Anthony took his leave. Twenty dayster, thousands of acres of farnd on Lake Ind, leveled with the Earth Hammer, were all nted with magic rice by Ange. Around the same time, the second sprout emerged from the Elf Beans. ¡°Ange, we have a problem! The second sprout on the Elf Bean is missing¡­ wait, did you cut it off?¡± Negris rushed over to report, but then saw Ange holding a small sprout and carefully moving it towards the World Tree. The bark of the World Tree was stripped and turned green. The sprout was also trimmed, clinging closely to the inner bark, then irrigated with holy water, and covered with clean soil which had been purified by the holy light. ¡°You¡¯re¡­ grafting?¡± Ange nodded in affirmation. ¡°Why did you think of grafting? You haven¡¯t even finished growing your Elf Beans yet.¡± ¡°Too slow.¡± Ange scornfully replied. It took twenty days just to sprout the second sprout point. God knows how many years it would take to grow beans. ¡°Uh, it takes sixty years. Thirty to flower, thirty to bear fruit, and then it withers. The productive period is only twenty years, with about five hundred beans produced annually.¡± Thus, a single Elf Bean nt produces about ten thousand beans over its lifetime. It sounds like a lot, but in reality, if each person ate one bean a day, ten thousand beans would only feed ten thousand people for a single day. Furthermore, this requires sixty years of soil and fertility. Elf beans require a lot of nutrition, normalnd is insufficient for their growth, and their roots spread quite wide. Anywhere within a few hundred square meters radius couldn¡¯t sustain other nts once an Elf Bean was nted. Therefore, while Elf Beans are a crop with strategic value, Elves could not grow them everywhere. They could only grow a little as strategic reserves. Now, Ange surprisingly attempted to graft the Elf Bean onto the World Tree? Just because he thought it grew too slowly? Indeed, if the rate of growth could be simr to that of the World Tree, without any depletion of soil nutrition, then Elf Beans could definitely be the staple food of the entire world. But if it was possible, why hadn¡¯t the Elves done it already? ¡°Oh, I forgot, Elves only have one World Tree, a treasure they protect dearly. How could they possibly do such grafting experiments? Only you, with all your World Trees, can afford to mess around.¡± Negris thought of a key point and couldn¡¯t help but get excited. However, this was clearly not an easy task. The first sprout grafted on quickly wilted and ckened. In-between, Ange continuously dropped life essence, sacred essence, insect ash, and even essence bug ash liquid, but they couldn¡¯t save the sprout. Chapter 267 - 179: I’m Going to Fulfill the Divine Parable_2 Chapter 267: Chapter 179: I¡¯m Going to Fulfill the Divine Parable_2 Trantor:549690339 The first n failed, and Ange quickly prepared a second one, but it required waiting for new buds to grow, and the entire process was very slow. As Ange squatted, watching the Elf Beans sprouts, waiting for the new buds to grow, Lisa¡¯s call came through the soul connection: ¡°Lord,e and take a look, they have started fighting.¡± They had started fighting, the refugees from the Fallen Legion, and the desert dwellers. Fists and feet shed, pushing and shoving one another, punctuated bymenting cries: ¡°You desert dwellers pick on outsiders. Not giving us anything, why so? Just because you came here first?¡± The desert dwellers retorted angrily: ¡°This is the desert. Everything here is precious. You waste this and that, even use our precious water to bathe? Get back to your cities, you lot.¡± Conflicts umted over the past month eventually erupted into a brawl. By the time Ange got to the scene, everyone was lying on the ground panting heavily from exhaustion under the scorching midday sun. No one was killed in the fight, but more than one were dehydrated due to the sun. F and Shafya were dragged, heads hanging low, in front of Ange. The outraged Negris was also hoisted to Ange¡¯s face, and got started yelling right away: ¡°What on earth is going on! Have you fed too much and have nothing to do?!¡± F and Shafya nodded vigorously in agreement. F added: ¡°Lord, it¡¯s because we have too much to eat. We have delicious rice to eat every day. This used to be a luxury only nobles had. Now, we don¡¯t have to do a thing, lounge in shelter, and only get up to have meals when it¡¯s time. We were busy harvesting rice for a few days when we first arrived, but after that, with no chores to do, they started making trouble.¡± Shafya nodded in agreement, and added her grievance: ¡°They waste food and fresh water. We desert dwellers only bathe three times in our life, once at birth, once before death, and once to give birth. Yet, these people want to bathe every day, using fresh water. Infuriating!¡± ¡°Ah? You only bathe three times? But howe you¡¯re so clean?¡± Negris was immediately distracted and asked curiously. No sooner had these words left its mouth, than the threatening gaze of Naeli nearby had Negris scrambling to amend its question: ¡°Just curious, you don¡¯t have to answer.¡± ¡°What¡¯s the big deal?¡± Shafya stated openly, ¡°We use sand, clean sand, preferably the sunbaked sand, hot but not scorching, in thete afternoon. Rub this on your skin and it¡¯ll get you clean. It¡¯s good for your skin.¡± ¡°Well, that¡¯s a smart solution. Fresh water in the desert certainly doesn¡¯t support taking baths. But there¡¯s a river here now, isn¡¯t there? There¡¯s no shortage of fresh water.¡± Negris questioned. ¡°They are wasteful,ck hygiene, and make messes everywhere. They even defecate in the reed fields, pollute the river and water sources. When we reprimand them, they use us of bullying the outsiders.¡± Shafya¡¯s words rose in indignation as she red at F. It¡¯s clear, Shafya must have instigated this fight. This Dragon Speaker sure is quick-tempered. Vexed, F gave a wry smile: ¡°The main issue is idleness, and unspent energy. Lord, do we have some work that can be assigned? Like farming, that would keep them busy, and they won¡¯t think about fighting.¡± Ange was alert at once after hearing his, and when Negris turned to look at him, he immediately said: ¡°No, they are mine.¡± Well, everyone knows to answer in advance now. No room for negotiation here, this is a joke. Farming is Ange¡¯s single obsession, what would he y with if they started farming? Of course, Ange wouldn¡¯t mind if they ventured elsewhere to cultivate newnd. But the current cultivatednds are all Ange¡¯s. If they can¡¯t farm, then what could be done? What else could consume arge amount ofbor under current circumstances?n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Unable to figure it out, he temporarily instructed them to nt grass mats and date trees along both banks of the river. But this is not a long-term solution because every ecosystem is interconnected. If you nt too much along the river, it will inevitably drain the river¡¯s water. If the flow of the river decreases, the amount pouring into Fallen Dragon Lake will reduce. If the evaporation remains the same, less water will be refilled, thus theke will shrink and the water will be more saline, triggering a series of reactions. Unless it¡¯s a region that has plenty of water to begin with, but has be a desert due to other reasons. Otherwise, even if Ange could turn the entire desert green, he wouldn¡¯t do it. The water supply isn¡¯t substantial enough to support a prairie. ¡°Well, let¡¯s start a Beauty City,¡± Lisa suddenly suggested. Her eyes were gleaming. ¡°Few thingspel a person to travel a great distance, to put themselves through hardships, to brave the damaging heat of the sun, and willingly part with their money. Beauty is one of them.¡± ¡°Huh. Sounds like something I¡¯ve heard before. Sava, yes. Where are Sava and Vania?¡± This sort of meeting was clearly out of Sana¡¯s league. They sent for her and she soon arrived. Upon discussing it, she and Lisa hit it off. ¡°Devout believers, women who love beauty, impulsive men.¡± ¡°Wow, Sis, you¡¯ve heard that saying too? It¡¯s my teacher¡¯s go-to phrase. Pilgrimage, cosmetic surgery, virility enhancements, they¡¯re all massive industries.¡± ¡°We have corepetitive advantage for stic surgery. The Face Purification Technique, skin blemishes and wrinkle removal techniques, are the best out there. Imagine an ageddy, trekking to the desert for this,ing back rejuvenated by thirty years. More youthful, fairer, more appealing, they would be ecstatic.¡± The two women clucked and chirped away, quickly visualizing the entire concept of Cosmetic City. Even Shafya and Naeli were excited about the idea and joined the discussion. Ange didn¡¯t understand, so he just went off to tend his garden. Feilin and Negris were leftughing awkwardly at the sidelines. Clearly, they couldn¡¯t contribute much to this conversation. However, judging by the women¡¯s excitement, it seemed to be a promising idea. ¡°By the way, Lord Nage, do you know where Oke is?¡± Feilin asked. ¡°Oke?¡± The image of a zealous believer carrying his little sister into the temple shed across Negris¡¯s mind. Confused, he asked, ¡°Isn¡¯t he in the temple in Witch City?¡± ¡°No, he¡¯s been in the Oasis for some time. He said he was ¡®going to fulfill the prophecy¡¯ and then disappeared. I asked numerous people but none have seen him,¡± Feilin borated with a bitterugh. Negris grew anxious. If he was in the Resting Abyss, then it was safer ¡ª as long as he evaded the Resting Wind. But it was different here. This world was full of dangers. Not just from human predators, but from beasts and devil creatures that could easily kill a boy in his teens wandering about. Worried, Negris turned to Ange: ¡°Oke has disappeared. Do you know where he went?¡± Ange tilted his head, recalling Oke¡¯s symbol from his memory and began to search. Ange¡¯s projection instantly traversed vast distances,nding on Oke. Oke was in a pitch-ck cavern, stumbling and fumbling as he moved forward. Slipping often, he silently stood up each time. During one of his falls, he encountered something different. Bringing it up to his nose for a sniff, a surprised and delighted expression lit up his face. He fervently prayed, ¡°Master Ange, please grant me eyes that see through darkness.¡± Immediately, Ange sensed an energy surging towards Oke¡¯s symbol within his soul. He was ustomed to people using his power in exchange for their Soul me, so he didn¡¯t care who it was. In an instant, the deep darkness lifted, revealing a gigantic cavern filled withrge, slippery organisms upying most of the space. Countless insect eggs were scattered everywhere he could see. As Oke looked ahead, a confused thought fell upon him, seemingly questioning how this man appeared here. Ange, projecting onto Oke, recognized this thought. It was the one attached to the statue he used Soul Impact on in the underground of Dark City. So, what Oke meant by ¡®going to fulfill the prophecy¡¯ was to eliminate Hermorthos. When Ange ryed this information, Negris jumped up in panic, ¡°Is he out of his mind? Is he nning to kill Hermorthos all by himself? Where is he now? Which cave?¡± ¡°Two.¡± Ange tilted his head, ¡°He summoned a Bone Priest.¡± Chapter 268 - 180: Is He Seeking Death?_1 Chapter 268: Chapter 180: Is He Seeking Death?_1 Trantor:549690339 What defines a divine herald is that the deity may have forgotten, yet there are devout believers who spare nothing, risking their life to fulfill. ¡°Devour it! Kill it! Hermorthos.¡± Oke clearly pronounced every word, then scratched his head and asked somewhat shyly, ¡°Uh, may I ask, are you Hermorthos?¡± The intent in the darkness felt quite helpless, giving a ¡®hmm¡¯, you¡¯re here to kill me without even knowing who I am? Where did this audacious guye from? With a flicker of thought, a shadowy, almost invisible humanoid figure appeared from the darkness, quietly reaching out towards Oke. ¡°Oh, that¡¯s great, Bone Priest, I found it.¡± At Oke¡¯s words, a summoning channel opened behind him, and the Bone Priest, carrying a broom, leaped out from within. A broom? A skeleton? When did I offend a skeleton that sweeps? Hermorthos was utterly perplexed. The humanoid figure moved closer to Oke, its form flickering in and out of sight, possessing strong stealth abilities, and given that it was a pitch-ck cave, it would be hard for the average person to notice its presence.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om But just as it prepared to attack, it found that Oke and the newly jumped out skeleton were both turning their heads to look at it. Oh, been discovered? The humanoid figure quietly sidestepped a ways, finding that the gaze of its adversaries moved with it. Indeed it had been found out, the humanoid figure straightforwardly ceased its concealment, exposing its form. It was an insect-like humanoid figure with two curved saw des for hands, simr to a mantis. After revealing itself, its hind legs thrust out, it darted towards Oke like a bolt of lightning. The Bone Priest made a slight motion with both hands, the broom he was holding berthed horizontally. Quickly the edge of the broom transformed into a de, positioned right before the mantis insect. The mantis failed to evade and ran into the de, splitting in half and instantly dying. Pop, pop, pop, pop, pop, a series of explosions reverberated through the darkness, countless beetles burst forth like dark clouds and tidal waves, surging forward in great swarms. Oke was unfazed, loudly crying out: ¡°Master Ang, grant me divine power, wherever the light shines, no one can hurt me!¡± With his cry, his entire body lit up, forming a solid Barrier of Light. Ange felt his power continuously pouring into Oke, at a speed greater than ever before ¨C were it not for his ability to recover, he might not have been able to supply it. The continuous influx of energy caused the Barrier of Light around Oke to be increasingly solid. Soon he cried out again: ¡°Master Ang, grant me divine power, wherever my eyes see, it will burn!¡± In an instant, wherever Oke¡¯s gaze focused, it sizzled and began to burn. However, the range of thebustion was rather small, only about a centimeter in diameter at the focal point. All the insects touched by it popped and burst open. ¡°Well, Oke really is the most devout believer. He defined two Divine Arts in a row, the Barrier of Light and Burning Vision, and even summoned the Bone Priest? This guy is a genius.¡± Projected into Ange¡¯s soul, observing the battle through Ange¡¯s eyes, Negris couldn¡¯t resist murmuring to himself, his tone filled with concealed envy. ¡°Summon, and even an internar summon. Wow, don¡¯t just look at those knight¡¯s novel where they summon pets and skeletons as though it¡¯s very simple. It actually involves internar space transformation, which is very difficult.¡± ¡°If it¡¯s stored in a Magic Artifact, most artifacts can¡¯t contain living things, unlike the Resting Pce. How can he manage internar summoning? Where does the energy to establish the summoning channele from?¡± Ange replied: ¡°Mine.¡± This was what left Negris speechless. The power was borrowed from Ange, yet could aplish things Ange couldn¡¯t, and then, when Oke aplished it, Ange naturally could as well. The Divine Arts defined by the believers be naturally mastered by the deity. Which is to say, now that Oke uses the Barrier of Light and Burning Vision, Ange can as well. What does this mean? It¡¯s like a believer borrowing your money to do business, and the entire profit goes to you? How could such a nonsensical thing happen? ¡°Why can¡¯t I encounter a fanatical believer? I barely managed to teach a believer and now he¡¯s about to be seduced by your Lisa. With their fanaticism, it won¡¯t be long before you¡¯ll have to ignite another divine fire called ¡®Beauty¡¯, Undead Beauty God? Kvada.¡± After grumbling a few words, the Bone Priest made his move, facing the swarm of beetles flooding over them. He bunched up his body, opened his lower jaw, and let out a cry: ¡°Ah¡ªah¡ªah!¡± Ever witnessed a rhythmic Soul Impact? This was it, one Soul Impact following another, manipted by the Bone Priest to rise and fall with the rhythm. With this rhythm, wave after wave of beetles fell. ¡°Hiss, look at that, that¡¯s called skill. The Soul Impact is applied just severely enough to damage the beetles, but not excessively, thus prolonging the duration of the impact and maximizing the damage to enemies. It seems that this silver skeleton is capable of more than just sweeping.¡± As beetles fell down in waves, the Bone Priest forcefully stepped on the ground, sliding back. The dead beetles got to their feet and lumbered towards the living beetles to bite them. ¡°A Soul Impact, King¡¯s Arrival, that¡¯s how they can deal with beetles. What a genius,¡± Negris praised. Chapter 269 - 180: He Doesn’t Want to Live Anymore?_2 Chapter 269: Chapter 180: He Doesn¡¯t Want to Live Anymore?_2 Trantor:549690339 The Bone Priest¡¯s wisdom was not high, this could be sensed whenmunicating with it. But as a thousand-year-old Silver Skeleton Priest, its wisdom couldn¡¯t possibly be low. It seemed that it was proficient in other areas, such as fighting. Under the Bone Priest¡¯s Soul Impact, King¡¯s Arrival, and Oke¡¯s Burning Vision, the swarm of bugs that surged like a tidal wave couldn¡¯te close for quite some time. Hermorthos grew anxious. The entire space emitted a hissing sound, spreading like ripples. Instantly, the bugs went mad, elerating frantically, even stepping on their own kind. If their peers were in the way, they wouldn¡¯t hesitate to bite them down. In this all-out frenzy, the bug wave surged to within ten meters of Oke, threatening to engulf him. If Oke was submerged by the bugs, his death would be certain. Although he was protected by Ange, he was still a mere human. The Barrier of Light couldn¡¯tst forever. Oke was fearless and shouted loudly: ¡°Master Ange, grant me divine power. I am willing to offer everything in exchange for your arrival!¡± As soon as he finished speaking, a fierce fire of life ignited on Oke¡¯s body. ¡°Kvada, a sacrifice? What kind of bloody fanatic is he? Is he trying to die? Even if he wins, he won¡¯t survive,¡± Negris said with a mix of envy, jealousy, and iprehension. Ange had no time to pay attention to him. From the moment the fire of life ignited on Oke¡¯s body, Ange felt the opening of an unobstructed energy pathway between them. Watching his devout follower being swallowed by the bug swarm, how could Ange not be anxious? He was so anxious that he wanted to break through and reach out to him. But the contact between Ange and Oke was like a small pipe, constantly supplying, but at a minimal flow rate. Finally, through the sacrifice, the small pipe crackled and turned into a high-speed highway. All of Ange¡¯s power flowed over at once. Oke let out a horrible scream. His body couldn¡¯t withstand the massive power and felt like it was about to tear apart. However, the next moment, the Purification Technique¡¯s light enveloped him, healing the injury of his body. Then, he stepped on the ground, spreading the Instant Death Halo. At the same time,yers of dragon scales emerged from his skin, his body rapidly grew, transforming into a three-meter-tall Dragon-Man, uncontrobly rushed out. In the first second, hepleted the transformation. In the second second, he plunged into the bug pile like a high-speed object crashing into it, causing bug juice to ssh everywhere. In the third second, he pounced on the piece of biological tissue and punched it. The biological tissue exploded, with ripples exploding from where his fistnded. But he tilted his ear sideways in doubt, as if he was listening carefully. At the same time, the dragon scales on his body were changing, blue, red, yellow, representing Time Dragon, Space Dragon, and Prophet Dragon respectively. Only when it settled on the brass color, did he suddenly spring up, shing his ws at a seemingly empty space. Just as his ws were about to strike, a shadow appeared there, his ws cut into the body of the shadow. With a tight grip, he pulled out its heart.N?v(el)B\\jnn By then, within the fifth second and before he evennded, his head slumped to the side, losing consciousness, and his body swiftly reverted from the Dragon God Transformation back into a human. Ange was able to endure for a full fifteen seconds without a scratch, but Oke, who offered his life as a sacrifice, could only bear it for five seconds. Although he lost consciousness, but the hand holding the heart did not loosen. He plunged forward stiffly, using the impact of the Dragon God Transformation tond, but he had to bear it with his human body. Undoubtedly, Oke¡¯s brain would burst from the impact. Luckily, at the moment ofnding, a hand suddenly appeared and yanked him backward, pulling him away. The endless bug wave immediately lost all momentum and fell to the ground with a thud. The Bone Priest looked confusedly at the bugs on the ground and then at the ce where Oke disappeared. He stood there dazedly for a while then, as if recalling something, he switched his machete back into a broom, and began sweeping the floor. The sound of brush strokes echoed through the empty cave, reminding one of the Undead Temple that had been silent for a thousand years. Using the Boundary-crossing Hand to forcibly yank Oke back from death, Ange copsed onto the ground, wracked with an intense sense of fatigue. Pushing his power forward didn¡¯t tire him, and catalyzing Oke¡¯s Dragon God Transformation wasn¡¯t exhausting either. But using the Boundary-crossing Hand for the first time to breach a ce other than the Resting Camp had nearly exhausted Ange to death. Upon seeing Ange, a thrill Oke, his hand clutching a heart, ecstatically cheered, ¡°Lord Ange, I havepleted yourmand.¡± He didn¡¯t notice that, like the Little Angel after releasing the Holy Light sh, his body was gradually turning to ash. Oke was no Little Angel, his ashening was irreversible, even his soul would burn away. This was the result of his life sacrifice. ¡°This foolish child¡­¡± Negris watched him, heartbroken and helpless, unable to react. As the God of Knowledge, the more he knew, the clearer he understood the irreversible nature of this situation. Life¡¯s sacrifice was something even the Gods of Light could not reverse. Ange took the heart and nodded at Oke: ¡°Good.¡± He casually threw the heart into the Resting Camp and dragged out arge barrel filled with Essence Bug Ash Liquid. Ange quickly immersed Oke into the insect ash liquid, protecting his soul and soaking his entire body in it. The red light of the Face Purification Technique flowed ceaselessly from his left hand, purifying the impurities in the liquid. Even the water was impure, as it reduced, the concentration of the insect ash liquid increased. During this process, Ange continued to scoop out the purified insect ash liquid and pour it back into the barrel. Three barrels were purified into one, with the concentration of the ash liquid tripled. The left hand purified while the right hand alternated between Face Purification Technique and Rebirth Technique. Eventually, Ange realized that the Rebirth Technique was more effective for this situation and decided to only use the Rebirth Technique. Watching Ange¡¯s movements, Negris shook his head, ¡°It¡¯s useless, life sacrifice is a process of burning one¡¯s entire life story in an instant. It¡¯s a process that even Gods cannot reverse because the life me has already burnt out.¡± ¡°If life could be reversed, the World Tree wouldn¡¯t only have more than nine thousand years of lifespan left. Even the God of Life himself couldn¡¯t reverse this process. Don¡¯t waste your energy. Wait, what?¡± Negris stopped mid-sentence, surprised by the situation within the barrel. Had Oke¡¯s ashening process actually stopped? The surrounding onlookers silently bore witness to the miracle, watching the previously ashening Oke audaciously stop the process within the barrel. At this point, more than half of his body had turned to ash, exposing his skeletal structure and organs. But he didn¡¯t die, he just stared nkly at Ange, as if understanding something: Lord Ange was saving him? The processsted for a whole day and night, during which Ange added six more barrels of insect ash liquid, causing even Negris to wince in sympathy. If it were the past, the insect ash liquid, which was only used as fertilizer or for the hatching of stone eggs, wouldn¡¯t have been a big deal. But now, the purified insect ash liquid could reverse life ¡ª a treasure which might even tempt the Gods themselves with its unimaginable value. ¡°Oh my, didn¡¯t you just kill Hermorthos? Wouldn¡¯t that mean there will be no more bugs in the future? Wouldn¡¯t that mean what we have is all we have? That¡¯s no good, I think I¡¯ll go cover up the barrels to prevent any evaporation. If I had this stuff back in my day, I wouldn¡¯t have died at ten thousand and two.¡± The process of greying had been stopped, and all that was left was the healing. Oke, who was left with only bones and some organs, was moved into the Holy Essence Liquid. He then miraculously regrew all the missing parts of his body. But the newly regenerated Oke was somewhat different. His youthful face, having the appearance of a young teen, was coupled with a distinctly muscr body. A scan of his soul revealed him to have a bone density even higher than Luther, a high-level Sword Saint. ¡°In future, anyone who sees your face and thinks you¡¯re easy to bully, then tries to punch you¡­ your body must have been born to withstand divine power,¡± said Negris. This wasmon. Many magicians would wear loose robes, not because they were weak, but because their bodies were so muscr that if they ripped their robes, they would reveal bulging muscles. That¡¯s because only strong bodies could withstand greater power. Oke scratched his head innocently, then knelt down fervently in front of Ange, bowing deeply: ¡°Thank you, my Lord, for granting me a new lease on life.¡± Ange just nodded, then said to Negris: ¡°I need to sleep.¡± He found a shady spot, dug a hole, crawled into it, and buried himself. Negris looked at Ange with concern, he was going into hibernation? Looks like the exhaustion was extreme, would he be alright? Chapter 270 - 181: Ask Someone to Cut for Us_1 Chapter 270: Chapter 181: Ask Someone to Cut for Us_1 Trantor:549690339 Ange had no idea how long he had been sleeping. The longest he¡¯d ever slept had once spanned an entire winter. Although deep slumber was seen as the ideal way for a skeleton to grow stronger, he didn¡¯t mind either way. He was just a farming skeleton, after all, with no particr aspirations to power. However, winters were so cold that he couldn¡¯t nt anything. With no other tasks to undertake, all that was left was to sleep. Wait, could this somehow be the secret to leveling up for the undead? Regardless, Ange fell into a deep sleep, and a myriad of confused beliefs rushed into his spirit. ¡°May the Undead God bless our family with long lives and good health¡­¡± This was somewhat abnormal. If you¡¯re wishing for longevity and health, why would you pray to the Undead God? ¡°May the Undead God bless me with eternal life, if I can live forever, I am willing to offer a gold coin every year.¡± Some people¡¯s lives were really not that valuable. ¡°May the Undead God bless me with wealth¡­¡± ¡°Undead God, please help me to kill my Minotaur neighbor¡­¡± ¡°Undead God, bless me with sessful beauty treatment, make me look thirty years younger.¡± ¡°Undead God, I¡¯m thirty years old and still very short, is there any hope for me?¡± ¡°Undead God, please bless me as I burn these rice fields, starve these guys¡­¡± ¡°Undead God¡­¡± Wait a minute, go back a bit, burn these fields? Who wanted to burn his fields? Bang! Ange shot up from the ground, bolting out at a dazzling speed. The people busy outside stared inplete bafflement as a dark golden skeletal figure sprinted past them. ¡°Um, was that something just now?¡± ¡°It looked like a skeleton, dark yellow in color, wait, was that a Golden Skeleton?!¡± ¡°Where did a Golden Skeletone from? Could it be Lord Ange?¡± Negris pped his small wings, desperately chasing after him,¡±Ange, Where are you going?! Lightning, Lightning! White Neck, White Neck!¡± Whoosh, Lightning raced to the scene, movingterally to meet Negris, who rolled onto its back. ¡°Perfect coordination,¡± Negris said with a hint of pride. Lightning snorted, ¡°You¡¯re not even as fast as me, there¡¯s nothing to be so proud of.¡± Negris eyes narrowed with fierceness, staring at Lightning¡¯s horn. He was determined to saw it off one day. Lightning quickly caught up with Ange, and Negris yelled, ¡°Where are you going? And why have you turned yellow?¡± With a swift flip, Ange perched on Lightning¡¯s back, and pointed forward, ¡°Burning my fields, over there.¡± Negris¡¯s heart sank. Oh no, who the hell was trying to burn Ange¡¯s fields? Did they have a death wish? This was a disaster, a big disaster. No wonder Ange, who had been in a half-year slumber and wouldn¡¯t wake no matter how much he was called, suddenly popped out. It turned out that someone was burning his fields. But¡­ ¡°How do you know someone is burning your fields?¡± Negris asked. ¡°He prayed to me,¡± Ange replied. ¡°Pfft¡­¡± You¡¯re going to burn the fields of the Undead God and pray to him at the same time? Was this like the God of Life hanging himself because he thought life was too long? But then again, it wasn¡¯t that surprising. Who could have guessed that these fields belonged to the Undead God? What was the Undead God doing nting fields? As to why they would pray to the Undead God, it was probably a matter of following local customs. After all, the Undead God was the only deity worshipped in Fallen Dragon Lake and the whole desert. Making trouble and praying to the local God was pretty normal. Lightning galloped at full speed, and they could see a fire dragon rising from the rice field by Fallen Dragon Lake from afar. Negris gasped in surprise, ¡°Not good! It¡¯s the Water me Spell. It converts water into abustible fuel, which is then ignited so that water is no longer something that extinguishes fire, but it acts as a fuel. This is especially effective for arson in areas with water, even the sea could be set aze.¡± Lightning snorted dismissively, ¡°God of Knowledge, don¡¯t lie. How can water be fuel for a fire?¡± ¡°Of course it can, if the equation 2H2O=2H2¡ü+ O2¡ü%£¤#@£¤¡­&##+@+¡­@# is performed,¡± Negris exined. Lightning puckered his lips tightly, pretending he hadn¡¯t heard, probably because he didn¡¯t understand anyway. They raced to the front of the rice field, Ange leaped up vigorously and mmed into the fire like a cannonball. He was unconcerned about the mes scorching his bones and immediately unleashed a gust spell into the sky. Negris had already exined that water was useless against this kind of me, so he used wind instead. One tornado after another wasunched into the sky, immediately leaving a whirlwind in the fire, a cyclone without any mes. Using this cyclone as the base, Ange unceasingly released more at a velocity of six times per second, gradually stirring up a tornado. A massive amount of air was discharged into the sky, naturally causing low pressure, which sucked the surrounding air, thereby capturing and immobilizing the mes. It wasn¡¯t until the fire waspletely consumed that it was finally extinguished, destroying only about two or three acres of the rice field in total. Still, this was enough to enrage Ange. Bone Dragon and White Neck were called to circle the sky, the Titans blocked the banks with their giant clubs, Lightning, Little Angel, Little Zombie patrolled back and forth along the bank. Before long, two arsonists were cornered and forced to surface. They surfaced wearing underwater thermal wear and carrying magical air tanks for underwater breathing in their mouths. They had a few bottle-like items hanging from their waists. They peered fearfully at Bone Dragon and Silver Dragon circling in the sky, gaping at the towering giants on the shore. They werepletely bbergasted. Was it necessary to make such a fuss just for burning a few acres ofnd? ¡°May the Undead God protect me, what the hell is happening?¡± one of the arsonists mumbled.N?v(el)B\\jnn Chapter 271 - 181: Asking People to Help Us Cut_2 Chapter 271: Chapter 181: Asking People to Help Us Cut_2 Trantor:549690339 After a strict interrogation, it was revealed that they were men of Duke Leite.N?v(el)B\\jnn The Kingdom of Leite is located upstream of the East River, adjacent to the ck Mountain Kingdom, and across the river from the former headquarters of the Fallen Legion. Since the ck Mountain Kingdom was devastated by insect gue, only the Kingdom of Leite remains upstream of the East River. Unlike the ck Mountain Kingdom, the Kingdom of Leite is a ¡®normal¡¯ country with vast territory and arge poption. Due to its terrain, it has a wealth of agricultural and pastoral resources, making it an agricultural country. As we all know, while agriculture ensures a means of livelihood, wealth is hard toe by. Therefore, the Kingdom of Leite is quite poor. Compared to the elves and dwarves who have mines at home, or the human nations where handicrafts are thriving, the Kingdom of Leite is like a beggar lying on a sack of grain. In the past half a year, officials from the Kingdom of Leite noticed some wealthy merchants and nobles appearing in their nation¡¯s docks and taverns. Some of them rented or bought ships here and sailed downstream. Some people were even asking about the Goddess of Beauty, Beauty City, all sorts of magic for freckle removal, skin whitening, wrinkle elimination, hair regrowth, height increase, stic surgery, and so on. All these things sounded like miracles. At first, no one took it seriously, it was considered as a rumor spread by those impoverished desert thieves in the desert, to attract some ¡°fat sheep¡± to cross the border and get robbed. Until the Duke¡¯s seventy-year-old mother secretly took someone for a trip and returned 30 years younger, she was stopped outside the castle. The outraged Duchess stood outside the city, revealing all her son¡¯s secrets like how often he wet the bed as a child, when he started having wet dreams, how many lovers and illegitimate children he had¡­ No one dared to doubt her identity as the Duchess anymore. The appearance of the Duchess caused amotion in the harem. The Duke¡¯s main wife and mistresspletely lost their minds. If the Duchess wasn¡¯t as ferocious as before when scolding people, they would have highly doubted whether this was another mistress of the Duke. After all, the Duchess, who now looked only forty, matched perfectly with the fifty-year-old Duke. After the initial doubt came excitement. Who wouldn¡¯t want to look thirty years younger? Who wouldn¡¯t want wless, tender skin on their face? Who wouldn¡¯t want their facial shape lifted and eye bags removed? Everyone wanted to, and it was a disaster for Duke Leite. If he emptied the national treasury, it would still not be enough for his main wife and mistress to make a trip to Beauty City, let alone the treatments for hair regrowth, size increase, and height enhancement? The fifty-year-old bald, stout Duke Leite also wanted to go. In the end, he chose the Duchess to check things out. For this decision, his twenty-year-old mistress tortured him for two nights nonstop, leaving him barely able to work. He hid in the office and worked overtime for a few days before he regained his strength. Why did he choose the Duchess? Because the effects of the beauty treatment would be more evident on her due to her age. As for his mother, she ran away secretlyst time, only bringing her personal maid. They were too astonished to notice any details. This time, the Duchess was apanied by seasoned politicians and experienced adventurers. Before long, the Duchess, thirty years younger but retaining the carriage and charm of a mature woman, returned. She was like an imperial flower in full bloom, outshining all others. The Duke was so infatuated that it took him a few days toe to his senses. Upon closer inspection, he found differences between the Duchess¡¯ ¡®youth¡¯ and actual youth. The Duchess clearlycked the burning passion and vitality of his young lover. Her skin was tight but not as stic and moist as the young lover. However, because of her experience she was extremely attuned to his needs. The realization excited the Duke further; it meant his wife was still his wife, and not a different person. This was truly a miracle, not some kind of dark magic. Duke Leite couldn¡¯t wait to immediately fly to Beauty City, but after going through the national treasury, he discovered he was too poor. ording to the prices of different packages, he needed at least six hundred thousand Demon Crystals. His mother had spent as much, but she had used her private money. The national treasury of Duke Leite didn¡¯t have much more than his mother¡¯s private wealth. This was not only a pursuit of beauty but also a business opportunity that tantalized the Duke. He briefly consideredunching an army to take over Beauty City, but he dismissed the idea. Being poor, he couldn¡¯t afford to wage a war, especially one that would require marching deep into the desert, even with waterways. At this point, the Duke¡¯s administrative officer proposed a genius idea. ¡°Upstream of the East River, only we, Leite, and the ck Mountain Kingdom remain. The ck Mountain Kingdom is dealing with an insect gue and doesn¡¯t even have enough rice to eat. If we burn the paddy fields along the river bank, they will have to buy food on a massive scale. Transporting grain by the river is the most cost-effective method. We can raise the prices multiple times and earn back the Demon Crystals.¡± ¡°Good idea, but I heard there arerge paddy fields around the Fallen Dragon Lake too. We have to burn all the paddy fields.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t joke around. The Fallen Dragon Lake is a saltwaterke. How could it be possible to grow crops there? It¡¯s probably just some salt-resistant water grass.¡± ¡°Alright, let¡¯s do it. Setting fires along the river, and the Water me Spell is the most useful.¡± That¡¯s the story of how these two arsonists ended up here. What baffled Ange the most is, ¡®¡±Beauty City?¡±¡® Negris scratched his head sheepishly, ¡°It¡¯s an industry created by Lisa and the others to amodate those feuding refugees. Infrastructure construction is the most tedious part, so we let them build the city.¡± Chapter 272 - 181 Please Help Us Cut Down_3 Chapter 272: Chapter 181 Please Help Us Cut Down_3N?v(el)B\\jnn Trantor:549690339 ¡°I mentioned the Undead Beauty God before, right? They liked the name, so they used it, calling it the Goddess of Beauty City. They¡¯ve started building it, barely managing to construct the central district.¡± The Goddess of Beauty City, with the Temple of Goddess of Beauty at its core, is divided into four sections. Based on the beauty industry, it¡¯s a city mainly focused on hospitality and catering, with the beauty business leading the growth of its tertiary sector. Then, Ange saw a collection of mud houses, arge que inscribed with ¡®Temple of Goddess of Beauty,¡¯ and on the side of the que, there was a dragon pattern etching that read ¡®Eternal Soul¡¯. The Dragon n has no writtennguage, the dragon patterns are their way ofmunication. ¡®Eternal Soul¡¯ in dragon patterns stands for ¡®Undead,¡¯ tranting to ¡®Undead | Temple of Goddess of Beauty¡¯. Although it¡¯s called a temple, all Ange could see was a cluster of low-rise buildings. Ange didn¡¯t mind, while Negris, visibly flustered, tried to exin: ¡°We have no choice; building materials are scarce in the desert. The only abundant resource is stone. Once the quarry in the canyon has been built, we can bring in some stones and build a tall tower here as a spectacle. It will then look magnificent.¡± ¡°Oh,¡± Ange responded nonchntly. After all, it wasn¡¯t his property; as long as it wasn¡¯t built on his farnd, he didn¡¯t care. After briefing him on thetest situation, Negris asked, ¡°And you? How do you feel? Have you leveled up? To a Golden Skeleton?¡± Unlike those dazzling Golden Skeletons, Ange¡¯s bones were a dull gold, less like gold and more like brass. But the world had never known a Brass Skeleton. Ange tilted his head, inspecting himself from head to toe, also feeling somewhat puzzled. He had clearly leveled up. He could feel that his bones were much harder than before. However, he couldn¡¯t gauge how much he had progressed. Not wanting to dwell, Ange reached into the Temple of Rest and pulled out an arm bone, its dark luster revealing it to be part of Steadfast Locke¡¯s purple-golden skeleton. He attached it to his right hand and moved it around. It was flexible and easy to control. Great, his entire right hand was now purple-gold. He pulled out another section and fitted it onto his Boundary-crossing Hand. It was a bit tight, but still movable. Great, both hands were now purple-gold. When he cast magic, he found it to be smoother, with a twofold increase in his firing speed. Before, he was like a solitary turret; now he was like two Magic Crystal Cannons linked together, essentially a Double Crystal Cannon. His magic level also improved, and he could now use Level 2 Magic. ¡°My god, your magic level has finally been upgraded, and you can now cast Level 2 Magic. With a little buffer, you¡¯ll have Level 4 magic power, which is amazing. I¡¯ve almost thrown up because of your Level 1 Magic,¡± Negris excitedly shouted. Ange could originally only cast Level 1 Magic. However, by buffering it through Steadfast Bone, he could cast magic below Level 2. But what magic can Level 2 cast? It was always the same old stuff, which made Negris sick of it. Now it was better. Although it was only Level 2, with a little buffering, it could reach Level 4 magic power. As it stepped into the ¡®intermediate¡¯ stage, it was the most creative stage for a mage, with all sorts of unusual magic popping up endlessly. For example, a hybrid water-wind magic called ¡®Bubble Dragon Cleaner,¡¯ specifically used forundry. He then watched Ange summon the Titans, stuffing them into the Temple of Rest. Negris suddenly had a foreboding feeling. ¡°What are you trying to do?¡± Ange replied matter-of-factly: ¡°Duke Leite, set his fields on fire, behead him.¡± You want to behead a Duke for burning a few acres ofnd? ¡°We can¡¯t kill, we can¡¯t kill. The dimensional situation has been pretty tense recently. Anthony advised us to avoid killing people indiscriminately, especially a Duke. It¡¯ll definitely make it to the Dimensional Security Council. Even though we have at least three old acquaintances there, if the opposition gets four votes, we¡¯ll be considered the greatest threat to the dimension. No one can protect us then,¡± Negris eximed. Ange tilted his head. ¡°Although we can¡¯t kill, we can ask others to do it for us. Do you remember Holy Maiden Shamara?¡± Chapter 273 - 182: An Incident That Ruined the Meal_1 Chapter 273: Chapter 182: An Incident That Ruined the Meal_1 Trantor: 549690339 Shamara was in a dangerous situation. After all, the Church of Light is a grand religious group that has been existent for thousands of years, and when they mobilize, it is very difficult for the lone Shamara to gain any advantages. Shamara¡¯s biggest advantage is contamination. This leads the Church of Light¡¯s magicians to be unwilling to confront her. However, as long as the worry of the magicians was eliminated, or if those who are not magicians were mobilized to blockade her, Shamara¡¯s advantage could no longere into y. The Church of Light assembled a Fallen Knight Group, taking in those contaminated magicians and pdins, allowing them to pursue and kill Shamara. They then hired top-tier mercenary groups or wizards while an S-ss bounty was ced on the Mercenary Guild. After thepletion of the task of the Earth Hammer, the mission of the Fallen Angel became the easiest S-ss bounty toplete in the Mercenary Guild. It attracted the attention of the entire dimension and everyone was gearing up for it. In the end, Shamara, who was at wit¡¯s end, fled to Dark City and hid in aplicated underground cave. She asionally ran out to snatch some food but did not kill anyone. Shamara indeed did not kill much, except for idental deaths in battles. Usually, she contaminated and left it at that. Confronting this situation, Negris took the initiative to ce food in spots where Shamara looted, along with drinking water, clothes, cooking utensils, daily necessities, and even considerately ced some absorbing cotton cloths. Theoretically, Shamara being so old would no longer need absorbing cotton cloths. But who knew for certain? With the Fallen Angel, who could say she wouldn¡¯t return to her youth? As expected, the next day, everything that was ced there remained except the absorbing cotton cloths. Nobody knew if Shamara had taken a liking to the absorbing cotton cloths, but ever since, she no longer snatched food from Dark City. Instead, she picked up what she needed from fixed locations, never taking more than required. After taking things a number of times, she left behind a ck Crystal Stone. After Negris analysed it, he discovered it was a Holy Crystal akin to the Soul Crystal. They were both condensed energy, but this one was condensed with the Power of Fall. Negris had no idea what a ck Holy Crystal was used for, but Holy Crystals held extreme value. One piece would be enough to trade for several loads of food, which made Negris feel embarrassed. Sigh, as a believer in the Undead God, after being influenced by Lord Ange, the concept of equal trade had be innate. When he realized that the other party¡¯s goods had surpassed too much in value, he felt uneasy. So, he ced some high-value items among the goods, such as a new product from the Goddess of Beauty City ¨C the Holy Essence Life Silkworm Facial Mask. n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°These are holy mushroom powders, do you understand? Even though they have been suffused with the essence, they are still holy mushroom powders, not garbage. Are you really going to throw it away like that?¡± Sava roared in sorrow and despair when he saw the holy mushroom powders left over after extracting the Holy Essence. ¡°Then what?¡± The indifferent Lan replied, spreading her hands. And so, Sava demonstrated how to turn waste into treasure: ¡°Soak the divine mushroom powder in Holy Water, add gtin and perfume, mix into a paste and apply it onto the skin.¡± After washing off some timeter, everyone found that their skin had be as tender and white as a freshly hatched egg. Small pimples and wounds had simply vanished. Lan was astounded, as she rushed to the Teleportation Array, and teleported back to the Resting Abyss. After spending some time there, she teleported back,menting in sorrow: ¡°Oh, Holy Mushroom powders, the mushroom powders I extracted, are all dumped on spot forming a small mound. They¡¯ve all rotted and stink now. What a waste, what a waste. Why didn¡¯t youe earlier?¡± With this technique, Sava secured his first ce as a pharmaceutical maker. For convenient use, they soaked the pre-cut cotton clothes directly onto their faces, but they found that the cotton clothes were too thick and not breathable. In the end, they discovered that silkworm babies that nibbled on World Tree leaves spun the best silk cloth, especially the fire immune ones. Applying these on the skin brought about a cool feeling and almost immediate sensation of skin healing. Such facial masks could also be used by witches. Not everyone was like Lisa, who was a Divine Soul warrior of Lord Ange and could directly use the Face Purification Technique. For normal witches using the Face Purification Technique restoration, their skins would continue to dry out and toughen up. This situation couldn¡¯t be resolved by finding Lisa or Ange again. If they could use a facial mask to maintain it, then one round of full-body purifying every three to five years would mean one could stay healthy and lively all along, right? ¡°How much should we sell these divine mushroom powders and Tree of Life silkworm silk facial masks for? A box of twelve pieces.¡± Lisa was shaking her ceramic box containing twelve Holy Essence Life Silkworm Facial Masks, deliberately ignoring the key words ¡®extracted¡¯ in her words. ¡°Both divine mushroom powders and the silk from the Tree of Life silkworms are not cheap even when sold separately. We cannot sell these for cheap.¡± Sava was excited when he spoke. He didn¡¯t know until he hade to know that Lord Ange had too many good things. No wonder he dared to use the World Tree¡¯s branches to make a Dposition Rod, his World Trees were not counted by the number of trees but by the number of pieces. Sava, who was afraid of being poor, wanted to seize any good thing he saw and felt heartbroken at the thought of selling them. ¡°But it can¡¯t be more expensive than Holy Essence either, otherwise people would just buy Holy Essence.¡± Even though Anna had a facial mask on her face, she logically stated. After some discussion, they settled for a price of eight hundred Demon Crystals. Just a little bit of infused holy mushroom powder soaked in water, and a palm-sized silk cloth were to be sold for eight hundred Demon Crystals, the money made was simply too good. Of course, a box of such facial masks could not equate to the ck Holy Crystal, hence Negris sent them along with a full set of lightning immune undergarments. Chapter 274 - 182: An Incident That Ruined the Meal_2 Chapter 274: Chapter 182: An Incident That Ruined the Meal_2 Trantor: 549690339 At first, Negris didn¡¯t understand why he should use silk immune to lighting for underwear. After some exnation, he got it ¨C it¡¯s moisture absorbing, breathable, and anti-static. Wearing it felt as if you¡¯re not wearing anything at all. It was even better than being naked because while it absorbed water, it didn¡¯t stick to the skin, nor did it be sticky due to moisture. It was a godsend. As Anna put it, the clothes we wear are the next longest thing that wraps our bodies apart from our skin in a lifetime. Even the smallest difort can be amplified over time to an unbearable degree. Therefore, bed linen and underwear should be of the best quality. Indeed, just as Anna had said, silk underwear became the best-selling product in the Goddess of Beauty City, primarily due to its affordability. The only thing limiting its sales was its production capacity. y¡¯s mom didn¡¯t weave much, which couldn¡¯t keep up with the consumption of facial masks and underwear. Eventually, y came up with a solution ¨C stimte the silkworm baby to spit silk, spin this silk into thread, and weave the cloth by hand. This way, production increased, but quality decreased. It was no longer a did not possess the delicate integration of y¡¯s mom¡¯s weaving. But it didn¡¯t matter; the underwear didn¡¯t need to be so good, and the facial mask needed even less. As a result, silk cloth was divided into three grades. The highest grade was naturally woven by y¡¯s mom, mainly used for making clothes for little angels and for scrolls. Nobody knew whether it was the facial masks or the underwear that she liked, but gradually, she stopped hiding when receiving things. Sometimes she even revealed herself openly, taking what she needed before the deliverer even left and then indicating that it was useful and to send more next time. asionally, she would leave behind a ck holy crystal. To date, she had already left three ck holy crystals. Unclear of the function of the ck holy crystals, Negris had been storing them temporarily until Ange woke up to deal with them. Thus, an ambiguous rtionship was formed between Shamara and Ange. They were not quite enemies or friends, they each had their needs, and they didn¡¯t infringe upon each other. ¡°So, if we hire her to kill someone, as long as the thing we offer satisfies her needs, she probably won¡¯t refuse. Given her status, she wouldn¡¯t have trouble even if she killed a duke or even the Pope,¡± Negris analyzed. Ange cocked his head as if he was contemting, and after a long time, he asked, ¡°Can¡¯t I chop?¡± Negris hastily gestured, ¡°No, no, we can¡¯t. Our status is too sensitive. We are abyss wanderers, strictly speaking, abyss invaders. At the inter-ne conference, the dragons, elves, and Anthony spoke for us, so that we weren¡¯t targeted. But if we kill a human duke, we would provoke public anger. Shamara can kill, but we can¡¯t because Shamara is indigenous.¡± After saying that, Negris spread his hands, ¡°Of course, if you¡¯re not afraid of losingnd, just chop. In the worst case, we can go back to the Resting Abyss; we don¡¯t need these fields. You are the Undead God. So what if we¡¯re invaders? Who would dare challenge us?¡± Not even the Prime Material ne could produce a deity at present, and Ange, as the Undead God, even inherited the soulwork from the Undead King. What about the invasion? Come beat me if you dare! But how could Ange give up so many farnd just for a human duke? Upon hearing this, he immediately shook his head like a bobblehead, ¡°No chop.¡± N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°Okay, let¡¯s go find Shamara,¡± Negris said. Perhaps due to mutual trust, two dayster, Ange and his group arranged a meeting with Shamara in the Dark City. But upon seeing Ange, Sharara¡¯s expression immediately changed, ¡°It¡¯s you?!¡± A ck sacred me emerged from Shamara¡¯s body, forming a pair of ck, glossy wings. A figure of a holy spirit angel appeared behind her before shrinking rapidly and armorizing onto her body. In an instant, a woman in coarse clothes transformed into a mighty battle angel. Leaning forward, she charged forth like a lightning bolt. With a swing of her hands, a ck holy me sword manifested and cut across. Negris went nk. It suddenly dawned on him that he¡¯d never told Shamara about Ange, even though Shamara and Ange had met before when Ange was still ¡®Monk An Ge¡¯.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t fight, we¡¯re impostors, impostors¡­¡± It¡¯s toote. Negris had just opened his mouth when Shamara was already in front of Ange, swinging her ck holy me sword. Ange hunched his body, letting out a soul-piercing scream ¨C Soul Impact. Ange always had a deep impression of the Soul Impact. He remembered how the Bone Priests in the dungeon used Soul Impact like a chant. Of course, he didn¡¯t have the skill. All he could do was dump everything out at once. Like an invisible hammer hitting Shamara¡¯s face, her head jerked backward, and everything before her turned dark. Ange stepped forward, throwing a punch thatnded on her chest. Her holy armor cracked with a ¡°kacha¡±, and she was sent flying backward. She flew backward for tens of meters, sliding on the ground leaving two trails. The Holy me Sword stabbed into the ground stopping her momentum. But as she lifted her head, what she was greeted with were two rows of Flying Bombs, fully evolved Level 4 flying bombs at that. After toughing out two flying bombs, Shamara rolled forward in a most ungraceful manner. Ange¡¯s gaze was locked onto her, the flying bombs he fired curved and smashed into her and the ground. It was as if the ground had been filled with Magic Crystal Bombs, Shamara rolled along and where she passed, explosions followed. Her Holy Armor was left with cracks all over due to the sts. She quickly rolled to a rocky area, frantically jumping to hide behind a rock. The terrain of the Dark City was rather unique, within ten steps, there would always be some form of obstacle. This was extremely beneficial to those trying to escape. But just as she was about to hide behind the earthen wall, a column of light shone on her body. Nearly at the same time that the light column flickered, an apparition of a Holy Spirit emerged from within her and stood in front of the light column. At the same time, two light wings from her back wrapped around her. After the Holy Light sh, the Holy Spirit apparition and the light wings disappeared without a trace. Only the holy armor remained on Shamara. A shadow rushed across, Little Zombie collided with Shamara¡¯s body, and after she fell down, the two hoes in its hands pecked down like raindrops, making a series of crisp ringing sounds on Shamara¡¯s body. Little Zombie¡¯sbo was remarkably effective, toppling opponents and then rapidly striking them down. Many hadn¡¯t been able to react before they were left with a row of bloody holes. Shamara¡¯s holy armor also had been cracked by the series of hoe strikes, from her thighs all the way to her helmet. Thest hoe strike was aimed at Shamara¡¯s neck but was blocked by her elbow. At the same time, her eyes emitted a ck holy light that focused on Little Zombie¡¯s face, as if energy was about to shoot out at any moment. However, a pair of small white hands wrapped in a holy glow was already prepared in front of her face, ready to block her attack. At the same time, the tip of arge scythe was pointed at her nose. Slowly, very slowly, Shamara withdrew the ck holy light from her eyes. The holy armor on her body also gradually disappeared. Her body rxedpletely, giving up all resistance. Finally, she moved her gaze onto the owner of the scythe. ¡°Your holy light is so pure, so you¡¯re not from the Church of Light. But¡­ the Scythe of Death, are you an undead?¡± Shamara looked pure and curious, it seemed that she didn¡¯t care about her own life or death, but was more curious about Ange¡¯s identity. Ange nodded in response, ¡°Please, kill someone, Duke Leite.¡± Shamara was surprised, ¡°You mean, you¡¯re not going to kill me, but want me to kill someone, Duke Leite. Why?¡± ¡°He burnt my fields,¡± said Ange. Shamara¡¯s eyes were filled with question marks. What was the connection between burning fields and murder? But the good thing about pure individuals is that they are simple. She quickly dismissed that thought, and asked, ¡°What is themission?¡± Negris poked his head out, cautiously asking, ¡°Demon Crystals?¡± He originally thought he would need to do some convincing to get Shamara to help, who would have thought that a fight would suffice? ¡°It¡¯s not necessary,¡± Shamara shook her head. ¡°Then what do you need?¡± Negris asked. ¡°There¡¯s something that has been preventing me from enjoying my meals. If you guys can solve it for me, I will ept yourmission,¡± said Shamara. She curiously looked at Ange, and then at Little Angel, and suddenly stated, ¡°It¡¯s not a real Holy Spirit.¡± PS: I messed up with the timezone, I¡¯ll make it up tomorrow. Chapter 275 - 183: Demanding Protection Money?_1 Chapter 275: Chapter 183: Demanding Protection Money?_1 Trantor:549690339 ¡°What!? The Gods of Light are returning?!¡± After hearing the news that left Shamara unable to finish her meal, Negris also felt an unexpected knot in his stomach. ¡°Yes, or perhaps it¡¯s not a return, maybe it¡¯s a rebirth, or something else. I can feel a power growing stronger, contesting my control over the Power of Light,¡± Shamara said. Negris had to take Shamara¡¯s words seriously. She was, in a strict sense, a false god who had stolen the belief of the Gods of Light. Despite her being somewhat ipetent, and rather unlucky to have crossed paths with the ¡®True God¡¯ twice, she was part of the Belief System of Light. Her senses were unlikely to be wrong. ¡°Could there be another false god sensing the absence of the Gods of Light and trying to steal their divine power from you?¡± Negris suggested another possibility, immediately suspecting Anthony. That guy knew the Gods of Light had disappeared and Shamara had stolen their power. Would he just stand idly by? Perhaps he waspeting with Shamara for the divine power? Shamara shook her head: ¡°Impossible. The other party¡¯s affinity is higher than mine. The Power of Light leans more towards them. It¡¯s not another faith thief¡ªit has to be the Light itself.¡± Negris was taken aback. If this was the case, it would be a great deal of trouble. Whether the Gods of Light were returning or new gods were forming, either would prove severely detrimental to their cause. Now a divided entity, the Church of Light had seen Anthony undermine its structure by setting up independently, all because it was confirmed that the Gods of Light were gone. The only ones left were the Holy Spirit Angels, who were more obtuse than even the Dwarfs. Only with this assurance did Anthony dare to plot his own path, otherwise he wouldn¡¯t have faked his death to escape after plotting for a millennium to be the Pope. If the Gods of Light returned or were reborn, Anthony would be the first to be set on the Fire Execution Frame, wrapped in shroud, and burnt to death with the Sacred me. The Church of Light, consolidated with all its forces, would be incredibly powerful. It would no longer be like before where themander of the Saint¡¯s Edge Army dared to exploit resources for personal gain. Without the Undead King and Steadfast Locke¡¯s oppression, they would never see peace from the abyss. What trouble this was. Negris spun around a few times on the spot before realizing¡ªwait, why was he worrying about this? This should be Anthony¡¯s headache. After this realization, Negris breathed a sigh of relief and then asked: ¡°Why are you telling us? Do you think we can solve this problem that has made you lose your appetite? And what does this have to do with food?¡± Shamara also appeared confused. She muttered uncertainly: ¡°I¡¯m not sure, but a voice in my heart tells me that you can help me solve this problem.¡± ¡°That¡¯s ridiculous, what do you mean by a voice in your heart¡­ Wait, you are a fake God, the voice in your heart¡­ is that a Divine Technique? Kvada, have you awakened some Divine Technique?¡± Negris eximed in shock.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Shamara stared with wide eyes, appearing bewildered. She was only a former maiden who had be a false god by stealing divine power; she didn¡¯t really understand these things. ¡°Um, have you heard any other voices in your head?¡± Negris asked tentatively. If Shamara¡¯s feelings were not an isted event, it was highly likely to be a Divine Technique. Otherwise, they were just her random thoughts. Shamara stood still for a while, seemingly trying to listen to something. Then, she suddenly loosened her hair and bowed to Ange. ¡°Oh, you¡¯re too polite, what¡¯s the asion? No need for that, we haven¡¯t done anything particrly deserving,¡± Negris hurriedly said. Shamara raised her head, looking at him with a bizarre expression. Then, she lowered her head again, pointing at her head: ¡°The voice in my heart tells me that you can cure my hair loss.¡± Shamara was indeed suffering from hair loss, quite severely. Her hair was thinning out substantially, revealing patches of scalp. It wasn¡¯t noticeable when her hair was tied up, but once let down, it simply draped over her head like a thinyer of gauze. Negris heaved a sigh of relief: ¡°This, we can handle. We deal with that sort of thing all the time. How about this: We cure your hair loss, and you help us kill someone.¡± Shamara paused to think, hesitating before she opened her mouth and removed her gloves: ¡°And this, and this. My body has been corrupted by the Power of Fall. If you can cure these issues as well, I will ept your service.¡± Negris leaned in to take a closer look and frowned: ¡°Those are cavities and wear-and-tear on your teeth, not to mention nail loss. Are you sure that¡¯s corruption caused by the Power of Fall? Or maybe it¡¯s just your age?¡± Shamara¡¯s teeth were in better condition than many humans of the same age. After all, she was in her sixties or seventies, only appearing as a young woman due to the protection of the Power of Light. Now that she had fallen, these areas lost their protection, and natural aging was only expected. What seventies-year-old woman would still have all her teeth? Shamara¡¯s eyes widened in anger: ¡°I have been corrupted.¡± Shamara, who had remained calm even when threatened by a scythe, was angry now. This left Negris somewhat taken aback. Had he said something wrong? ¡°Alright, alright, you¡¯ve been corrupted. I¡¯ll see if there¡¯s anything I can do to help,¡± said Negris, and then turned around and asked: ¡°Can we do anything to help?¡± Apparently, his ¡®seeing¡¯ meant asking others. Ange cocked his head without replying, simply advancing towards Shamara and reaching out his hand. Shamara did not resist, standing quietly as Ange held his hand above her head. This gesture was surprisingly docile as Ange could smash her skull with a mere swipe of his hand at any time. Chapter 276 - 183: Want to Collect Protection Fee?_2 Chapter 276: Chapter 183: Want to Collect Protection Fee?_2 Trantor:549690339 If not for the beating she had taken, the fallen angel would never have allowed anyone toy a hand on her head. With a sprinkle of sacred essence, the little sapling was brought out and ced on top of her head. Having not had the chance to perform for a long time, the little sapling enthusiastically waved its leaves, transmitting the message: ¡°Grow harder, harder, grow the energy, the energy, grow ¡± with an unprecedented fervor. Unfortunately, it was ced in the wrong direction. Ange twisted the potted nt half a turn and indicated the correct way to Shamara with his fingers. The little sapling rustled around the edge of the pot, befuddled for a moment before it understood, and began to sway its leaves again: ¡°Grow harder, harder, grow ¡± Simultaneously, as the little sapling encouraged growth, Ange summoned holy light to shine upon Shamara¡¯s head. Shamara stood obediently, looking up at the sacred light with her eyes, several times wanting to reach out to grasp it. However, inside her heart was a voice that repeatedly screamed: ¡°Don¡¯t move! Do you want to die? Don¡¯t move! Do you want to die?! If you move, you¡¯ll die!¡± Death wasn¡¯t what she was afraid of, but rather, she knew that she couldn¡¯t steal it away. She couldn¡¯t steal these holy lights. ¡°Such pure holy light, you are the real light,¡± she said. Ange tilted his head. He saw a soul me surge from Shamara¡¯s body as if it wanted to plunge into him, but it took a detour midway and shrank back into her body. With a sincere smile, she said, ¡°I cannot follow you, I want to find my own light.¡± Ange nodded in agreement. Negris was wholly confused. What did she mean by that? Did Shamara almost start following Ange? Kvada, why the shock? A false god who steals the power of light was about to follow Ange? Never mind that a false god bing Ange¡¯s disciple would be shocking, but if she really did be a follower, wouldn¡¯t Ange be able to use her as a node to intensify the theft of the power of light? It sounded like Shamara almost believed, but finally didn¡¯t. Kvada, why doesn¡¯t she believe? Why not believe? If you believe in Ange, let¡¯s see if this damn skeleton will suck the divine aspect of light dry. Negris was so anxious that his hands and feet twitched. He desperately wanted to choke her, forcing her to believe in Ange. But Ange was just nodding his head as if nothing had happened, almost driving the bronze dragon to his death. With thebined power of the life essence, holy light, and the sapling, some sparse hairs begin to sprout on Shamara¡¯s head. Shamara touched it and, feeling the noticeable difference, couldn¡¯t help butment, ¡°It¡¯s so incredible, even the power of light couldn¡¯t cure baldness, ah¡ª¡± Once she finished speaking, Shamara opened her mouth wide. Negris noticed that Shamara¡¯s problems were all with her hair, nails, and teeth, but her flesh was incredibly lively. Not only did she not have a single wrinkle on her face, but she also didn¡¯t have any spots. The only problem was that her skin was a bit too dry. Why was there such a difference? These ces her blood couldn¡¯t reach, they were all the ends of keratinous and bony structures. Biologically speaking, they were dead. As a living creature aged, the first signs of trouble appeared in these ces. The Holy Light was ineffective against the dead. Hair and nails, as long as the body is still ¡®alive,¡¯ will naturally grow to rece the old. But teeth are different. Human teeth grow only twice in a lifetime, and without the bud of a milk tooth, no matter how much essence liquid and holy light are used, teeth can¡¯t regrow. ¡°Do you want me to find something to replenish you with?¡± Negris suggested. Ange did not say anything, and Shamara did not move. She just stood there agape, clearly understanding that Ascetic Monk Lord An was the one who was useful and that the dragon was all talk. Ange contemted for a moment, then took out a bottle of Concentrated Worm Ash Essence. He dropped some on one of the rotten mrs, and then he used the rebirth technique on that tooth. Visibly to the eyes, the tooth regrew its pulp, its periodontal, and enamel. In the middle of the process, the growth slowed down, and Ange used the rebirth technique twice more. Just like that, the decayed tooth transformed before their eyes into a shining, healthy, milky-white tooth. ¡°Who knew that would work? Bug ash liquid, which is not used for reviving dead things, is used to fix a tooth? The rebirth technique, which is not used to resurrect the dead, is used to fix a tooth?¡± Negris was left utterly baffled. The use of Insect Ash Liquid in bringing the dead back to life could be put to use like this? Just like using the Grim Reaper¡¯s scythe to cut grass, only the Farming Skeleton could pull something like this off. Ange felt that the concentrated Insect Ash liquid was too potent, so he switched to a regr one, smeared the entirety of Shamara¡¯s teeth with it, dropped a droplet on each cavity, and then cast the Rebirth Technique. A few minutester, Shamara revealed a mouth of shiny white teeth, grinned so radiantly and dropped a line before flying off, ¡°I¡¯m going to kill someone.¡± Back at Fallen Dragon Lake, when Negris briefed Lisa about everything, she rushed over with sparkles in her eyes: ¡°My Lord, they said you can make teeth whiter, have a look at mine, ah¡ª¡± tter, the billboard in the beauty salon of Goddess of Beauty City was torn down. It was reced with a magic photocopy of Lisa¡¯s gleaming white teeth and bright smile. The phrase ¡ª ¡°Full-set package for treating and whitening cavities, 100,000 demon crystals. Act fast if you wish to purchase,¡± written in big universal, elf, dwarf, and dragon pattern texts was on it. Not just the billboard, Lisa, Anna, Lan, Sava, Sofia, and Vania collectively hit the streets, distributing leaflets everywhere. They¡¯d show their white teeth to everyone they met, so much so that it¡¯s definitely hard for others to keep their eyes open. In particr, Vania, the dignified minotaur, opened her mouth so wide that people thought she was going to bite them, which scared them into dashing away. But the shock left an extremely deep impression of her healthy white teeth.N?v(el)B\\jnn The news about the beauty clinic¡¯s ability to treat cavities quickly spread along the East River and radiated to Rnd City and beyond. At the same time, there was another news spreading; Duke Leite had harassed a woman near the city gate and was in on the spot by the woman amidst a heavy guard patrol. Upon further inquiry, it turned out that the woman was the Fallen Angel Shamara. Upon hearing the news, people simply said: ¡°She deserves it¡± and carried on with their own business. Lately, news about Shamara was making headlines daily. The number of people she had tainted could even form a Fallen Legion. What¡¯s the big deal about killing a duke? Especially when it was Duke Leite who harassed her first. It was such a coincidence, Shamara was preparing to sneak into the city to kill Leite. Who knew that the moment she entered the city, she ran into Duke Leite¡¯s retinue. Her pearly white teeth, full head of hair, youthfulness, charm, and pure, angelic demeanor caught the Duke¡¯s attention at first sight. Hermoner wife disguise made Duke Leite feelpassionate, thinking she was an ordinary civilian. He wanted to invite her back to his castle to take care of her, but the next thing he knew, she had transformed, pped the face of his chief Sword Saint guard into shreds, causing his team to fall into chaos. Finally, she thrust a ck Sacred me into his body, and he was instantly judged. ¡°Shamara doesn¡¯t kill people on a whim, and Leite dares to harass her? He deserved the judgement.¡± After the news spread once, no one paid attention any further. Is it not normal for a Fallen Angel to kill people? We wish we could capture her, but we just can¡¯t. Not only were the natives unaffected, but Negris also didn¡¯t bother about it. He was discussing a more serious problem with Anthony- the Gods of Light were returning. Anthony¡¯s voice was trembling, ¡°Are you sure? Are you absolutely sure? The Gods of Light really are returning?¡± ¡°Or maybe a rebirth. Shamara said she feels someone else ispeting with her for the divine power of Light. You sure it¡¯s not you?¡± asked Negris. ¡°Oh hell no, if I had that ability, I would¡¯ve stolen it long ago. No need to have this much trouble. We¡¯re doomed, either rebirth or return, I¡¯m in big trouble. What should I do? Should I run?¡± Anthony was starting to panic. ¡°What are you running for? Why don¡¯t you find out who¡¯s stealing the belief and find a way to get rid of him? Judging by the current situation, even if it¡¯s a rebirth, the newborn Gods of Light won¡¯t be that strong.¡± Negris said. ¡°I, you, you make it sounds so easy, I¡­¡± Just then, Lisa rushed in and said in a strange tone: ¡°My Lord, the Silver Knights are here to pay a visit.¡± ¡°The Silver Knights? Weren¡¯t their elites blown upst time? What are they visiting us for?¡± ¡°It seems like they want to collect protection money.¡± Chapter 277 - 184: Feeding the Evil God (Three-in-One)_1 Chapter 277: Chapter 184: Feeding the Evil God (Three-in-One)_1 Trantor:549690339 ¡°Collecting taxes is one thing, but protection fees? You really have a way with words,¡± Bronze Dragon retorted. Lisa countered defiantly, ¡°Taxes are supposed to fund infrastructure, public welfare and job creation. Since they¡¯re not doing that, it¡¯s a protection fee. Who knows it better, you or me?¡± Negris suddenly remembered Lisa¡¯s former status as a high priestess. Indeed, she was in a better position to judge, so he reluctantly corrected himself, ¡°Okay, okay, protection fee. But why do they need to collect protection fees from us?¡± Lisa shot him a triumphant nce, ¡°It¡¯s not just us they¡¯re collecting from. They¡¯ve collected from every household nearby. We are just more influential, so they¡¯ve sent more people to us.¡± ¡°How many people are there?¡± Negris soon saw for himself. About fifty knights arrogantly blocked the main thoroughfare from Goddess of Beauty City to the docks. ¡°They¡¯ve sent only this few people to collect the protection fee?¡± Negris was surprised. Sofia, who had just arrived, added, ¡°It¡¯s quite decent. When they came to the Oasis, they only sent twenty knights. They were shouted down by Lord Naeli.¡± ¡°Did they also try to tax you in the Oasis?¡± Negris was astonished. Sofia shook her head, ¡°No, they didn¡¯t in the end. First, it was too far away. Second, they didn¡¯t want to start a conflict with Lord Naeli. So, they let it go. It¡¯s different with the Goddess of Beauty City. Although it¡¯s also quite far, we can take a boat downstream, which is much faster.¡± Negris scratched his head, ¡°I¡¯m not worried about that. What I worry about most is that they¡¯ll block the river. This will certainly ruin the business in Goddess of Beauty City. Have you consulted Chairman Silver Coin? He has experience in this. What does he suggest?¡± The Silver Knights¡¯ base is not far from the river. They could easily dispatch a team to block the river, essentially cutting off Goddess of Beauty City¡¯s customer flow. ¡°Chairman Silver Coin suggests that we draw the enemy into our circle of interest and form amunity of mutual benefit. He suggests that we try to concede a portion of the profits to make them our representatives. After all, the Silver Knights have more connections than us, rather than simply paying taxes,¡± said Lisa. ¡°Ah, that¡¯s a good idea. Use the Silver Knights¡¯ connections to expand our customer flow. That¡¯s much better than simply collecting and paying taxes. It¡¯s a win-win. Let¡¯s do that. Bring them over. Ummm, what¡¯s that guy up to?¡± Negris asked, suddenly puzzled. One of the knights from the Silver Knights, seemingly bored, suddenly ran from their ranks and galloped his horse into the paddy fields. Ripe rice ears about to be harvested were trampled into the mud by the horse¡¯s hooves, sshing mud everywhere. The knightughed loudly, controlling his horse to prance forward again, shouting, ¡°Watch my horse skills!¡± Just as the horse was about to leap a second time, a beam of light shone on the knight. It shed and the knight vanished from the horse¡¯s saddle, leaving only a pair of feet. The horse felt lighter and turned its head to find its master was gone. The Purple Skeleton Titans nearby were shouting in familiarity. ¡°Don¡¯t grab them, leave one for me, the third one from the left is mine.¡± ¡°One, two, four, five, seven, where¡¯s three?¡± ¡°Three follows right after two, can¡¯t you count?¡± Ange held his sickle, Little Zombie charging headfirst, Little Angel pping its wings, leading a group of Titans towards the Silver Knights. ¡°Ah¡­.¡± Negris sighed, ¡°Okay, no need to choose now. Let¡¯s eliminate the enemy.¡± Saying that, he shed a dragon-like re, gritted his teeth, and with a roar, ran on his little ws towards them. The knights were first startled by the Holy Light sh, then by the Titans. Before they could react, they were overwhelmed. It was not until a weekter that Terek, the God¡¯s Knight of the Silver Knights, learned of the disappearance of this group. The past few months have been tough for Terek. Their only goblin airship had defected and, before leaving, dropped a magic crystal bomb on their camp. Luckily, he was not in themand post at the time, and only a few guards were killed. However, he also seized the opportunity to ask the curia for a lot of supplies and funding, so he didn¡¯t lose out too much. The real trouble came when the Fallen Angel ran to Dark City.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om That was a huge problem. The Silver Knights were established to counter Dark City and were ill-prepared to fight an enemy like the Fallen Angel. They even feared facing the Fallen Angel because of potential corruption. Admittedly, the curia had set up the Fallen Knights tofort those corrupted by the Power of Fall and were probably researching ways to remove the Power of Fall. But the problem was that this would disrupt the organizational structure of the Silver Knights. Once you became a Fallen Knight, you might never return. The Silver Knights had now be a burdensome interest group. Although they hadn¡¯t achieved much, the curia still had to fund them. Otherwise, the Undead of Dark City might create chaos, ughtering viges and such. Rogge had sworn that they had never marched out inrge numbers to ughter humans since they came to Dark City. Regrettably, he couldn¡¯t confront the Silver Knights about it. To avoid Shamara¡¯s attention, the Silver Knights proactively retreated, far from Dark City, and moved south of the East River. Several orders from the curia demanding they hunt down Shamara were all dyed by Terek under the pretext of serious officer injuries. Chapter 278 - 184: Feeding the Evil God (Three in One)_2 Chapter 278: Chapter 184: Feeding the Evil God (Three in One)_2 Trantor:549690339 If Shamara decided to settle in Dark City permanently, what would be of their Silver Knight squadron? Would they strive to annihte Shamara to the death? The curia would say: You can do away with fallen angels; what are those undead in the Dark City? Continue wiping them out, no excuses epted. If they didn¡¯t attack and kept their distance, the curia would say: Why do we need you, let¡¯s cut their funding. Moreover, Terek already felt that with Anthony¡¯s Eastern Diocese dering independence, the whole atmosphere of the Church of Light had changed. The old ways of cking off weren¡¯t working well anymore. Could it be that the Silver Knights, who had been established for more than 200 years, were about to fall apart? However, this worry was somewhat eased after hearing about the situation in the Goddess of Beauty City. ¡°You¡¯re saying that a single treatment in this City of the Goddess of Beauty can cost up to tens of thousands of magic crystals? One treatment?¡± Terek asked in disbelief. The vicemander who brought the report was equally astounded, he nodded continuously adding, ¡°Even more, if you choose many options, the cost multiplies. For instance, if a seventy-year-old woman wants to look ten, twenty, thirty years younger, the price is different. It¡¯s different too for a fifty-year-old woman.¡± ¡°And that¡¯s just for wrinkle removal, there are also treatments for skin whitening, skin softening, treating scars, bone carving, height increase, enhancement, and liposuction¡­ Each one has a different price. I heard that Duke Leite¡¯s mother spent a total of 600,000 magic crystals, and she ended up looking thirty years younger.¡± Terek nearly lost his footing after hearing this, ¡°600,000 magic crystals?¡± Don¡¯t make a mistake thinking that since Ange easily makes tens to hundreds of millions of magic crystals, these crystals are worthless. 600,000 magic crystals is already equivalent to the annual tax revenue of a typical duchy. ¡°If we taxed it at 60%, wouldn¡¯t we gain 360,000 magic crystals? That would cover three years¡¯ allocation from the curia and this is just one transaction!¡± Terek murmured to himself. Don¡¯t think that a tax of 60% is absurd. These days, whichmoner¡¯s tax isn¡¯t at this rate? Territories that tax at 50% are very rare, and ces where the tax is 40%, would be ostracized and isted by all the other lords. They wouldn¡¯t y with you anymore, as you would be destroying market prices. Tax rates across the world must be unified. Otherwise, the popce would drain away to lower tax regimes. Good-hearted lords would stop after collecting taxes. However, some unscrupulous lords would also impose levies, or divide taxes into various names. Ordinary people, without specialized knowledge, couldn¡¯t calcte how much tax they had paid. If they could, they would discover the tax reached up to seventy or eighty percent. This led to many farmers going bankrupt, bing ves. Nobles and lords would buy theirnd at a low price, hiring these bankrupt farmers to cultivate their own former properties. Although they lost their freedom, the right of first night, personal rights etc., at least they could have enough to eat and wear. This also caused situations where many ces treated people worse than ves, the Western District had these conditions far more severe than Anthony¡¯s Eastern Diocese. While Anthony was unable to preventnd consolidation, many years ago he enacted aw that stated if the faithful continued to decrease inside the Diocese, the tax adjustments targeted at that territory would increase from a 10% rate to a 50% rate or even a 100% rate. This tax was aimed at the lords, which led to the lords of the Eastern Diocese leaving more room to maneuver when exploiting themon folks, so as not to drive them to death. When a disaster struck, their enthusiasm for relief would also be high. Otherwise, if too many people died of starvation, Anthony would take the opportunity to im the decrease in the faithful as a reason to act against them. Now that the City of Beauty had no lord, wouldn¡¯t it make sense for him to represent the curia and tax at 60%? Of course, Terek was just thinking about it. He didn¡¯t yet know the details about the City of Beauty. What if it resisted the tax violently? But even if he couldn¡¯t impose a 60% tax, a 50% or 10% tax was still eptable. One fifth of 600,000 amounted to 120,000, which was enough to offset one year¡¯s allocation from the curia, enough to support their mixed forces of a few thousand. This way, even if they lost the support of the curia, they could still survive. With his mind immersed in a beautiful fantasy, a stern shout suddenly came from the outside of the tent: ¡°Who¡¯s there!¡± Soon, an rm rang out, gradually fading as it rushed away. Terek was on alert. It wasn¡¯t long before a guard returned to report, ¡°The Search Light caught a ck warrior lurking outside the camp, we immediately gave chase with the Holy Spirit.¡± ¡°The ck Warrior? Is it Rogge from Dark City?¡± Terek was surprised. The ck warrior was an artificially created undead, not anyone could create one. The only ck warrior he knew of was Rogge. ¡°Seems like it.¡± ¡°Is he trying to assassinate me?¡± Terek was stupefied. If Rogge could assassinate him, he would have died tens of thousands of times already. To prevent assassination, he¡¯d equipped all sorts of detection devices for travel and encampment. The personal guards around him had undergone extensive anti-submarine training, and he himself was a God¡¯s Knight, his strength was iparable to a pretty-boy like Leonardo. Knowing full well that it was impossible to assassinate him, why would Rogge still lurk outside his camp?n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Terek immediately ordered, ¡°Dispatch aerial units to scout the surroundings of our camp.¡± Just as Terek¡¯s order was issued, his vicemander replied with an embarrassed look, ¡°Sir, you forgot. Ourst Goblin Airship defected. In recent times, the Sub-dragon Rider has constantly been harassed by a unicorn and he has been cursing at it for a week. The sub-dragon is getting a bit irritated.¡± ¡°Cursing? What is he cursing?¡± Terek asked in puzzlement. He would understand if it¡¯s attacks by a unicorn, getting jabbed by a horn or kicked by hooves, but being cursed? Chapter 279 - 184: Feeding the Evil God (Three-in-One)_3 Chapter 279: Chapter 184: Feeding the Evil God (Three-in-One)_3 Trantor:549690339 ¡°Yes, they insulted badly, saying things like the dragon descendants being ridden by people, ridden by thousands, shameless, disgracing the dragon n, poorly brought up, better off having their blood reced with piss and be piss descendants even¡­¡±. ¡°Alright, alright, you don¡¯t need to recite in such detail. What about the sub-dragon? What¡¯s its reaction?¡± Terek¡¯s head was buzzing. These words were too nasty; he could only imagine how the sub-dragon felt when it was being scolded. Despite being sub-dragons, they too possess the arrogance and pride of the dragon n. The greatest duty of a sub-dragon rider isn¡¯t to fight, but to serve the sub-dragons well and keep them in a good mood to work. Being scolded definitely wouldn¡¯t make them happy. ¡°The sub-dragon retorted: ¡®You¡¯re the one being ridden.¡¯ Then the unicorn replied: ¡®I am happy with that, are you? You disgrace the dragon n by letting others ride you, would a giant dragon be pleased? There¡¯s a lot more that followed, but I won¡¯t recite it all. Anyway, the sub-dragon doesn¡¯t feel much like eating recently, and doesn¡¯t seem to like being ridden by the knight either.¡± Terek was dumbfounded for a moment and then murmured, ¡°Is this still a unicorn? A noble unicorn? With such a venomous mouth?¡± Suddenly, a clear dragon chant echoed from the sky. Terek rushed out of the tent just as a silver shadow shed past the camp at high speed, leaving behind a dragon chant. From within the camp, a furious roar rang out: ¡°Damn silver dragon, just because you¡¯re an upper-level dragon doesn¡¯t mean you can scold me. I¡¯ll bite you to death!¡± A huge warehouse was shattered, and an odd creature about twenty meters in length with a wingspan of forty meters, a short, thick neck, almost no tail, and short, stout limbs, burst through the roof and took to the skies. With a short neck and no tail, this creature was bulkier than an average giant dragon. Its twenty-meter length and vast girth rivalled that of an adult ancient dragon, and with its strong front ws, it looked more like a giant bat rather than a dragon. With a pping sound, it clumsily took off and chased after the silver figure in the distance. Unable to hold himself back, Terek rebuked, ¡°Idiot, you¡¯re as fat as a pig and you think you can catch up with a silver dragon? It¡¯s clearly luring you away, you lump! How did we end up with a silver dragon here? When did we ever offend the dragon n?¡± Terek never considered the possibility ¨C what if the sub-dragon isn¡¯t stupid? What if it purposely chased after it? As the chubby sub-dragon left the camp, it began to speak in dragonnguage to the silver dragon ahead, ¡°What do you mean telling me to quickly leave the camp?¡± ¡°Roar!¡± The silver dragon roared back.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°What do you mean? Speak in dragonnguage,¡± the fat sub-dragon said. The silver dragon went off on a long string of terms. The fat sub-dragon cut him off, ¡°Alright, I get it.¡± At this moment, it was just turning its short, stout neck to look back at the camp. A sh of light had erupted from the campsite and in the dark night, it looked like a shining beacon of light. A few minutes ago, a goblin airship was swinging and swaying in the sky above the Silver Knights¡¯ camp, adjusting its position. ¡°A bit to the left, a bit forward, a bit more forward.¡± Based on Ange¡¯s instructions, Negris used voicemands to control the goblins and adjust the position. A ck warrior was lurking on the ground, and Ange could use his soul link with him to determine the exact location. ¡°Alright, hover. There¡¯s an eastward wind of three degrees, load the magic egg.¡± Negrismanded loudly. Award Master Gear Vaguli reluctantly pushed a huge magic bomb to the edge of the ship, mumbling: ¡°Magic eggs aren¡¯t meant to be used like this. They should be shot out using a twin-rail cannon, tracing a beautiful parab and hitting the target. This is in ordance with mechanical aesthetics, not by just being thrown down from the sky.¡± ¡°What are you mumbling about? Hurry up and throw, if you don¡¯t, I¡¯ll throw your World Tree branches down and see if it can crush someone.¡± Negris scolded. The moment Vaguli heard this, he pushed the magic egg out instantly as if his ass was on fire and let it freely plummet to the ground. After pushing the magic egg, he didn¡¯t wait for the result but dashed back into the cabin, rushed to the corner, lifted the cover, and when he saw that the branches of the World Tree were lying intact there, he finally let out a long sigh of relief. The light and shockwave from the magic egg¡¯s explosion overturned the entire camp. Before they had a chance to assess the damage, the rumbling sound of horse hooves came from outside the camp and thousands of Sandmen cavalry, three thousand undead, and war chariots, led by several dozen titans, rushed into the camp. The Silver Knights, in a panic, released the Holy Spirit Angels, but as soon as these angels appeared, they were brought down by a dark shadow, their holy lightpletely robbed. ¡°Fallen Angel Shamara! Shamara!¡± Panic-stricken cries rang out in the camp. That night, under the lead of Shamara and the Purple Skeleton Titan, along with thousands of Sandmen cavalry, three thousand undead and war chariots, the entire legion of Silver Knights and apprentice knights were wiped out. Typically in such battles, for every thousand enemies killed, five to six hundred would be lost. However, unfortunately for them, Ange had too many ways to save people. Normal injuries would get the Face Purification Technique, severed limbs would be treated with Holy Essence Liquid, and even the dead could be revived under the Insect Ash Liquid. Unless they were extremely unlucky and had the whole head blown off, leaving no soul behind, they could be saved. After cleaning up the battlefield, two dayster, a message from Anthony came in: ¡°Lord of Knowledge, didn¡¯t we agree not to kill people? Why did you suddenly wipe out the whole Silver Knights? What do we do now? Dyson from the Land of Fallen Diocese has proposed a motion to wipe you out. He¡¯s waiting on the vote at the security meeting.¡± Negris replied sheepishly, ¡°Hehe, well, we had no choice. Those knights were troublesome. They trampled two rice nts in front of Ange.¡± Chapter 280 - 184: Feeding the Evil God (Three-in-One)_4 Chapter 280: Chapter 184: Feeding the Evil God (Three-in-One)_4 Trantor:549690339 ¡°Crushed two stalks of rice? Was it necessary to kill them for that? Couldn¡¯t they just pay for the damages?¡± ¡°Ah, more than two stalks. Those guys are problematic. They don¡¯t know how many rice fields they¡¯ve trampled on their way here or how many date trees they¡¯ve cut down. Some of the green dates were knocked down before they could ripen, all rotten on the ground. Many grass mats on both sides of the river bank were ruined. They said it¡¯s good to ride horses on the grass; it doesn¡¯t hurt their hooves. Ange was furious, I didn¡¯t dare to pacify him.¡± Anthony was stunned for a while, then surprisingly asked, ¡°Are they really that reckless?¡± ¡°Yeah, if they just picked them for their own consumption, Ange wouldn¡¯t care. The date trees along the way were nted for everyone. But these guys, they ate the ripe and knocked down the unripe ones. They even had their horses running pell-mell in the rice fields, iming it was horse training. Sigh, they¡¯re asking for death,¡± Negrismented helplessly. ¡°So what do we do now?¡± Anthony was left speechless too. ¡°I don¡¯t know what to do. If worsees to worst, we¡¯ll go back to the Resting Abyss. It mainly depends on what you decide to do. I will show you something and you decide what to do. Did you know that the Silver Knights have sided with Dyson?¡± With that, he signaled his men to bring the objects over. A bare corpse; It was Terek¡¯s. Only, the intricate tattoos on the back of him, a God¡¯s Knight, were unlike any symbol of light no matter how one looked at it. Followed by a half-human-height sculpture, and then a finger bone. The finger bone wasn¡¯t unusual, but this was a purple-gold finger bone. The question is, both of Steadfast Locke¡¯s hands are intact, so whose finger bone was this? As he established the receiving end of the Teleportation Array, Anthony responded, ¡°Of course, I know. Otherwise, where would those skeletons carrying undeath germs havee from? Are they not from the Land of Fallen?¡± A sh of intense light, and the items were transmitted. Anthony stared at the items, silent for a long time. Finally, he said, ¡°I said that some people have pledged to the Evil God, it turns out there really are. That¡¯s good, I established the Holy Church to cleanse the church that has been polluted by the Evil God. You epted my secret bounty and discovered the Silver Knights¡¯ collusion with the Evil God. Now I can express my opinion justifiably.¡± A few dayster, the second motion initiated because of the Abyss Migrants resulted in a strange voting result in the Dimensional Security Meeting ¨C two votes in favor, five votes against, just likest time. Dyson, the initiator of the motion, undoubtedly voted in favor. The Dwarven God of War very casually dered he would vote in favor even before the vote. So, what vote did the Pope cast? Now that the items were handed over, Negris was relieved. Anthony was much slier than him, and he would certainly be able to find the best solution. When he returned, Ange, Little Angel, and Little Zombie were gathered around a sculpture. The sculpture¡¯s style was the same as the one he had sent to Anthony, only now, the mouth of the sculpture had cracked open. There was a rift in space, and a furry little paw stretches out, anxiously spread out wide. Ange took out a bean and put it in its palm. The little paw quickly retracts, the dimensional rift disappears, and before long, it opens again, and the paw stretches out. Every strand in Negris¡¯s mind buzzed. The w that prates the space rift, what kind of w was it? Ange¡¯s Boundary-crossing Hand was nearly exhausted through space. He slept for several months before recovering. Now, this little w easily prated space. Though he didn¡¯t know what kind of skill it used, it certainly wasn¡¯t easy. On the other hand, looking at it protruding from the sculpture of the Evil God, could it actually be the manifestation of the Evil God itself? Ange feeds it with little beans one by one, and while others pledge allegiance to the Evil God, is he actually feeding the Evil God? No, that¡¯s not right. If it were the Evil God, why would it be so eager for just a bean? Negris took a closer look at the bean and was taken aback. He leaped over and snatched the bean from Ange¡¯s hand.N?v(el)B\\jnn The little paw didn¡¯t get the bean and extended even further in its eagerness, almost shoving its entire arm through. wing desperately, it was like a cat paw fumbling under the bed. At that moment, Negris didn¡¯t care about the Evil God. He looked at the bean in astonishment: ¡°Elf Beans? You grew them? Grafted?¡± PS: Updatedte, added a bonus chapter, three-in-one. Chapter 281: 185 Falling in the Windy Plane_1 Chapter 281: 185 Falling in the Windy ne_1 Trantor: 549690339 No, it¡¯s not. Instead, it was the original stocks that grew. After Ange slept for half a year and woke up, he found that not many sprouts had grown from the Elf Beans, but their growth habits were clearly recorded. As a result, he began to speed up their life cycles, forcibly elerating the Elf Beans to their first productive period. He now had 500 Elf Beans in his hands. However, after these beans had sprouted, the main stem of the Elf Beans withered. Although it hadn¡¯tpletely died, it was barely alive. Without figuring out the cause, he couldn¡¯t elerate them to their second productive period. N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°What? So much effort and only 500 Elf Beans have grown? And you feed them to a cat?!¡± Negris was heartbroken. A cat? Ange tilted his head in confusion, as did Little Angel, Little Zombie, and Little Sapling. ¡°What else could it be? Isn¡¯t this a cat? And it¡¯s a greedy cat. Even if it¡¯s an Evil God, it¡¯s a greedy cat Evil God.¡± Negris grumpily pointed at the fluffy little paw. The small paw reached around for a while, getting impatient when it got nothing. It flipped to show its palm upward, its fingers wriggling non-stop. ¡°Don¡¯t feed it to the cat anymore. It¡¯s a waste. Let them seed. Even if only 500 beans are harvested, the quantity will make a difference. Maybe you¡¯ll be able to find a way to boost production?¡± Negris suggested. Ange tilted his head in confusion, ¡°The Elf said, beans can¡¯t be used as seeds, but seeds could.¡± Negris snorted, ¡°Don¡¯t listen to their nonsense. The beans they sell are all boiled so, of course, they can¡¯t be used as seeds. Seeds are just unboiled beans. How do you think theye to be? They beget from the Elf Beans. Unlike your No. 3 Magic Rice, which needs the blessing of Little Sapling in order to grow.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Ange understood. He turned his head again to look at the small paw of the Evil God and pointed, ¡°Look.¡± On the little paw of the Evil God were disyed two small things, one resembling a seed and the other resembling a bean. It turned out when it was talking to Ange, the little paw couldn¡¯t catch the beans, so it shrank back. When re-extended, there were two more of these items on its hand. ¡°Er, what does that mean? You want to exchange? Hey, can you hear me? Do you mean you want to exchange?¡± Negris froze, and despite pointing at the paw, got no response. Ange picked up the items from the paw of the Evil God and ced another Elf Bean on it. The little paw grabbed it and shot back. Negris came over to look. One of the items was indeed a seed, while the other resembled a bean and even had the fragrance of one. Negris felt deceived. The other party took an unknown object and a regr bean and exchanged them for an Elf Bean? ¡°How did you find this creature?¡± Negris asked. Ange pointed at the hand of the statue. It was an ugly statue, poorly crafted and extremely abstract. It barely resembled a figure with a wide-open mouth, both hands open palm-upward before it. When Ange ced an Elf Bean on the statue¡¯s hand, a fluffy paw immediately stretched out and grasped the Elf Bean, whisking it away. The paw reappeared, open, but without the Elf Bean. Negris tentatively picked up a small stone and ced it on the paw. The small paw felt it, immediately discarded it, and threw it back, hitting Negris in the face. ¡°Oh, you¡¯re picky, huh?¡± Negris changed to a gold coin, still rejected. He tried a Demon Crystal, still rejected. In the end, he even tried a bit of his own scale, but was still rejected. Little Angel moved a little and pushed Negris aside, then plucked a feather from his own wing. The little paw immediately retracted, whisking it away. Little Angel raised his little head to look at Negris with a proud and arrogant expression. Negris was mad on the spot. What did this differential treatment mean? Was his dragon scale not as good as an angel feather? ¡°Youe out and exin.¡± Negris pped his w on the palm of the statue. With a swoosh, the little paw shot out like lightning and applied pressure on his paw. Negris, startled, quickly withdrew his w from fear of being pulled in. But he was a little relieved that at least his w was still appreciated. The fluffy little paw pawed a few times, unable to find anything, and shrunk back. When it came out again, it had two more beans. ¡°You give me two beans for an angel feather! Are you a swindler? Do you know how expensive an angel feather is!?¡± Negris scolded and then thought of a potentially profitable idea, ¡°Yeah, why not pluck all your feathers out, sell them, and then let Ange heal you. Infinite production¡­ Hey, don¡¯t hit me, don¡¯t scale me¡­¡± Little Angel didn¡¯t understand the meaning of Negris, but he understood ¡®pluck all your feathers out¡¯. With a cry, he and Little Zombie pounced on Negris and gave him a beating. Bruised and battered, he turned around to see the three little ones clustered around the statue again, teasing the cat with Elf Beans. ¡°You guys can y for a while, but don¡¯t waste all the Elf Beans. Also, how do we deal with these?¡± Negris sighed in frustration, holding a seed and three beans that had been traded by the Evil God¡¯s paw. ¡°Huh, are these new beans? I haven¡¯t seen them before. How do they taste?¡± Luther¡¯s voice came from behind. A hand stretched over and weighed one of the beans in Negris¡¯ hand. Chapter 282: 185 Fell in the Plane of Strong Wind_2 Chapter 282: 185 Fell in the ne of Strong Wind_2 n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Trantor: 549690339 Turning around, Luther threw the bean into his mouth before he could stop him. He crunched down and instantly made a bitter face: ¡°It¡¯s so bitter.¡± Regrettably, he¡¯d already chewed it to bits. Unable to spit it out, he swallowed it down instead andined: ¡°Lord Nage, when did you collect these crappy beans? How could they be so awful?¡± Negris didn¡¯t know what to say and asked apprehensively: ¡°Apart from tasting awful, do you feel anything else?¡± ¡°Anything else? It¡¯s bitter, bitterly bitter,¡± Luther replied, pulling a face. ¡°Anything else?¡± asked Negris. Luther shook his head: ¡°Nope.¡± ¡°Here,e wipe your nose. You¡¯re nosebleeding,¡± Negris pointed at Luther¡¯s nose and saw a trickle of blood seeping slowly from his right nostril. Luther wiped it off, saw that it was indeed blood, and said without a care: ¡°So I am bleeding. Been eating too good, probably got a little heaty.¡± ¡°I think you¡¯re, like, running on empty,¡± Negris blurted out. Unexpectedly, his off-hand remark made Luther blush. Luther scratched his head and said, ¡°No help. The desert girls are too passionate.¡± A lightning in the distance was leisurely chewing on a beetroot. Suddenly, its ears perked up and it sauntered over, a beetroot mped in its mouth. It took a moment for Negris to catch on: ¡°Hang on, Luther, are you dating?¡± A horse head popped out: ¡°Oh, so you¡¯re dating. No wonder we haven¡¯t seen you around recently. We¡¯ve been fighting our guts out while you¡¯ve been romancing? Is that fair to us?¡± ¡°No, no, absolutely not. Don¡¯t you dare babble nonsense. It¡¯s just that you guys didn¡¯t call for me. I¡¯m always ready to serve my lord. But you guys run off on your own every day without calling me. Huh, it¡¯s getting hot, I¡¯m going for a swim.¡± Luther changed the subject and sprinted towards the distant river. Luther was not just hot; he was sizzling. Even after a half-hour swim, Luther noticed something was wrong when the heat did not dissipate. He managed to make it over to Ange: ¡°Lord, I feel offbeat. My heart is racing.¡± Ange cast two Purify techniques on Luther, improving nothing. On the contrary, Luther¡¯s nose began to bleed again. Ange tried to cast another technique on his face, to stop the nosebleed. However, this was prevented by Negris. ¡°Bleeding from the nose could be due to high intracranial pressure. Don¡¯t stop the bleeding now. Let¡¯s see what¡¯s happening. Your skin feels hot, and your heartbeat is fast. Could it be that you are poisoned? Do you feel any mental difort?¡± Negris asked. ¡°I feel extremely excited,¡± Luther replied, ¡°Was I poisoned? I haven¡¯t eaten anything strange today, except for that bean. Lord Nage, what kind of bean was that?¡± Negris shrugged, ¡°I don¡¯t know what kind of bean it was. It was given to us by the Evil God.¡± ¡°Oh, my Lord, you¡¯ve killed me. You randomly gave me something from the Evil God to eat,¡± Lutherined. ¡°Was it I who fed you? You snatched it yourself. It was you who snatched it, it was you who snatched it!!!¡± Negris roared angrily, and had he been slobbering, Luther would have been soaked through. In spite of feeling scorched, Luther¡¯s life was not in danger. So Negris forbade Ange from intervening, and instead gave him a te of ice cubes. Luther plunged his head inside, cooling his feverish body slightly before losing control and channeling his fighting spirit. He iled about with a random set of strikes, causing steam to rise from his body. After several rounds, he proimed his hunger. Ange tossed him two Elf Beans. After swallowing one Elf Bean, Luther immediately felt a surge of energy. He againunched a random set of strikes. This cycle repeated a few times before he ate the second bean. Normally, one Elf Bean could satisfy a person¡¯s daily needs. Even for a Sword Saint like Luther, it was impossible to use up the energy of an Elf Bean within half an hour. Clearly, he was undergoing a high-intensity consumption phase. People rushed to cook up a tter of World Tree buds for him, along with a ss of Holy Essence Liquid to drink. Upon consuming these high-energy foods, Luther was like a man possessed, iling about until evening. Eventually, he managed to manifest a Qi Sword with bare hands, copsed on the ground and murmured, ¡°I have broken through to the High-level Swordsaint.¡± Watching Luther sleep soundly on the ground, drooling, Negris had Ange check him. Once ensured that there were no irreversible injuries, he turned his attention back to the single seed and the two beans. His expression waspletely different from before. True to the Evil God¡¯s brand, the effect was amazing. It had managed to upgrade an Early Stage Swordsaint to a High-level Swordsaint on the spot. The leap from an Early Stage Swordsaint to a High-level Swordsaint is a big hurdle that some people never ovee in their lifetime. In Luther¡¯s case, that hurdle likely didn¡¯t exist. He was already capable of advancing to the High-level stage just by munching on beetroot. Perhaps that¡¯s why he managed it so smoothly. Of course, Elf Beans, World Tree buds, and the Holy Essence Liquid probably yed a big part in this. Otherwise, the huge energy expenditure during the breakthrough might have led to his copse and eventual death. Regardless, these beans were incredible. Able to bring an Early Stage Swordsaint to the next level in one shot made them worthy of the Evil God. Negris, no longerining about the Evil God¡¯s stinginess, felt that the trade of a few Elf Beans for such an amazing Upgrade Bean was a steal. Hmm? It seems there were two Upgrade Beans, which he traded for an Angel¡¯s feather. How many Upgrade Beans could he get for the Little Angel¡¯s pair of wings? ncing over, it appeared as if Little Angel could sense something. It scowled back, looking rather menacing. Chapter 283: 185 Falling in the Plane of Gale Wind_3 Chapter 283: 185 Falling in the ne of Gale Wind_3 Negris gave an awkwardugh, dismissing his wild ideas. ¡°Ange, try to exchange for as many of these upgrade beans as possible. We don¡¯t know what kind of seed this is, see if you can grow it. I suspect it¡¯s something valuable,¡± Negris whispered to Ange. ¡°Oh.¡± Ange picked up the seed and popped it into the farm of the Resting Camp. He randomly selected a spot and nted it, also nting an upgrade bean as an afterthought. ¡°Oh, right, if upgrade beans are beans, they can also be seeds. nt them, and we won¡¯t have to trade with the Evil God anymore,¡± Negris suggested. The Evil God seemed to be fond of hanging around Ange. Every afternoon, it would extend a w from the sculpture, feeling around. If it didn¡¯t touch anything, the w would hang there listlessly for a long time before it was reluctantly withdrawn. Sometimes, when Ange was nearby, he would give it an elf bean. This would make the w perk up with excitement and eagerly reach out for more, spreading wide. Generally, it would reward an upgrade bean in return for every five elf beans. Even if it didn¡¯t receive all five in one day, it would count those given the next day, maintaining fair and honest dealings. That probably exined why the three sprites werefortable ying with it, as this behavior demonstrated equivalent exchange. As for that unknown seed, the Evil God hadn¡¯t given any more. What¡¯s more, the beans were given one by one. This led Negris to believe that the seed must¡¯ve been unintentionally scooped up when the Evil God was giving out the beans. The sound of pping wings was heard from afar. A chubby sub-dragon descended from the sky. A figure flew off from it, heading towards Ange. Itnded halfway and began walking over. Seeing the chubby sub-dragon, Lightning grew excited and rushed over, calling out ¡°Yo, isn¡¯t this Fatty? Long time no see! How have you been? Still getting ridden?¡± Upon hearing Lightning¡¯s voice, the sub-dragon immediately closed its eyes and covered its head with its arms, refusing to see or hear anything. Lightning was stumped. With the sub-dragon ying deaf and blind, Lightning¡¯s taunting words and sneering expression would be wasted. It certainly couldn¡¯t force the sub-dragon¡¯s eyes open. After a few fruitless taunts with no response from the sub-dragon, Lightning could only turn and leave dejectedly. Lord help, the fat one has discovered its counterattack. This couldn¡¯t be fun. N?v(el)B\\jnn Shamara approached Ange, beginning her greetings from afar: ¡°Hello, Lord Ange, hello, Lord Nage.¡± Ange nodded in response, while Negris curiously asked, ¡°What¡¯s with that sub-dragon? Have you tamed it? How did you do it?¡± ¡°One has to show them who¡¯s boss. It¡¯s now my pet. Lord Ange, my pet is itchy all over, its scales are falling off. It says that every ten days, the Silver Knights feed it a medicine that relieves its symptoms. I have an inkling of what it is, but I don¡¯t want to approach the Church. Something tells me that you can cure this disease.¡± Negris looked at the chubby sub-dragon in surprise, ¡°Surely not, did the Church of Light apply the Corrosion Scar to the sub-dragon?¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Upon hearing of the Corrosion Scar, Ange figured out how to treat it. He ran over and flew around the sub-dragon several dozen times, continuously casting the Face Purification Technique. After casting over a thousand spells, he managed to cure the chubby sub-dragon. Though it sounds simple, only Ange could cast the second-tier magic with fourth-tier effects, the Face Purification Technique, over a thousand times without feeling winded. It was an unspoken kind of intimidation. After casting more than a thousand Face Purification Techniques and flying back casually, Shamara¡¯s tone became even more respectful, ¡°Something tells me that the thing which tried to steal my divine power is now in a dimension with strong winds.¡± ¡°A dimension with strong winds? The Wind Element ne?¡± Negris asked. ¡°No, the wind in that ce only blows at night,¡± Shamara rified. ¡°Ah, I know where it is.¡± PS: I¡¯m out, I thought I could write three chapters. Chapter 284: The wind broke the barrier_1 Chapter 284: The wind broke the barrier_1 A thick rope tightly bound White Neck into a ball, but Negris was still uneasy, so he instructed Purple Corpse to bind it tighter, causing White Neck to howl in distress. ¡°Stop howling, who asked you to get this fat? You¡¯re not even a year old and you¡¯re already seven to eight meters long, have you eaten Upgrade Beans!?¡± Negris yelled infuriatingly, ¡°Tighten it more, so as not to chop off its head during teleportation.¡± Despite being trapped in a dragon¡¯s egg for five hundred years, White Neck¡¯s body has just been nurtured for less than a year. In just a year, it grewrger than dragons of several hundred years. How much good food did it eat? In contrast are Naeli and the little golden dragon of the Brooks¡¯ family, they are only slightly bigger than Negris, which is the normal growth rate for giant dragons. White Neck, bound into a ball, turned into a meat dumpling with a diameter of two and a half meters. With a sh of white light, White Neck disappeared on the Teleportation Array. Back in the Resting Abyss, Ange and the Little Angels, Little Zombies had been looking up at the sky where a clearly visible city was suspended ¨C the approaching Heaven. When Shamara mentioned a dimension where strong winds blew at night, Negris immediately thought of this ce. Just as Heaven was descending, it was stopped by the Resting Wind and suspended in the sky above the Resting Abyss. If the Gods of Light were reborn or returned, it would be logical for them to appear in Heaven. Conveniently, Ange already has the ability to explore the Holy Kingdom ¨C flying. They didn¡¯t explore the Holy Kingdom before because they couldn¡¯t fly. But now, they have at least twopanions who can fly, White Neck and Lightning. Hence, the time to explore the Holy Kingdom has ripened. With a swoosh, another white light shone, and Shamara was pulled out, only taking off her hood after leaving the teleportation area. The hood was sewn from clean holy funeral cloth that covered till her waist. Although this item is rare, Ange confiscated several pieces after breaking into the Silver Knights¡¯ camp. It was most suitable for making hoods as it could block off most senses throughout. So that¡¯s what happened, Shamara was teleported here with her head covered the entire time to ensure she couldn¡¯t sense the direction and exact coordinates of the teleportation. Lifting the holy funeral cloth, Shamara looked up to the sky with a hint of perception and saw a sight that made her tremble: the sacred Heaven was hanging upside down in the sky. The distance was too far, she could only make out a general outline. Shamara¡¯s eyes ignited with Sacred me, pulling the distant scenery to her. She muttered nervously, ¡°Square of the Gods, Holy Light Avenue, the Light Dome¡­ This is Heaven, where are the people? Where are the followers who were supposed to be raptured to Heaven? Where are they?¡± With these doubts, Shamara stepped out of the gorge and looked around, only to be shocked again: ¡°Did you excavate the home of the elves? Why are there so many World Trees here?¡± A horse¡¯s head poked out and disdainfully said, ¡°Are there so many World Trees in the elves¡¯ home? Don¡¯t brag¡­¡± Shamara looked at Lightning with clear eyes, that pure gaze made Lightning stop talking and mumbled as it ran off, ¡°She¡¯s purer than an elf, so annoying¡­¡± ¡°Alright now, get ready, we¡¯re going to fly up!¡± Negris shouted loudly. One by one, the Titans walked over and were stuffed by Ange into the Temple of Rest, as were the Little Angels and Little Zombies, leaving only Shamara and Negris. Then everyone rode on White Neck, with Lightning following by their side as they flew towards the sky. Everyone could fly, but not very high. Even if they fell from the sky, they wouldn¡¯t die. Having one morepanion with strong flying abilities just provided an extrayer of insurance. Though Lightning had no wings, its ability to walk on air gave it an extremely high capacity for maneuverability in the sky, making it more abnormal than those with wings. The group rode on White Neck¡¯s back and flew towards the sky. Down on the ground, Lisa and the others set up recliners, poured green jujube juice, andy down looking at the sky. They thought it would take some time, but the silver dot representing White Neck flew to Heaven, circled around a few times, and then flew back. ¡°What happened? Why did youe back?¡± Everyone asked worriedly. Negris looked gloomy: ¡°We couldn¡¯t get in, there¡¯s a barrier called the Light Dome, we couldn¡¯t get through.¡± Huh? Stopped at the first attempt? Without even entering the gate? Subconsciously, everyone turned their gaze towards Ange. Negris knew what they were thinking, quickly saying: ¡°Don¡¯t even consider it. Regardless of whether the Boundary-crossing Hand is effective or not, even if it is, I will never let Ange take such a risk. That¡¯s a barrier, a dimensional barrier, understand? It¡¯s a force of the dimension. What if it rebounds and harms him?¡± Everyone thought it over and nodded promptly. It made sense. Since they can¡¯t enter the Holy Kingdom, they might as well take this opportunity to deal with the matters of the Resting Abyss. They hadn¡¯t been back for a long time and were unsure of the current conditions in the Abyss. Anna quickly reported: ¡°Everything is going smoothly. The Abyss is developing steadily, the people live and work happily, and their enthusiasm for production is high. There are no problems at all.¡± Of all the people, Anna returned to the Abyss most frequently, managing it far better than Negris. As long as administrative measures could solve the problem, it generally wasn¡¯t a problem. However, Anna quickly added: ¡°But the biggest problem now is the world waystation, Lord Nage, should we get it operating again or bury it back down? We¡¯ve always been short-staffed here, just maintaining the waystation is quite difficult.¡± N?v(el)B\\jnn The reason why the world waystation was buried in the past was because there were not enough people to maintain it under the Resting Wind, and thus, they were forced to abandon it. Now that the waystation has been cleared, but not operational, it is challenging to devote manpower for maintenance without any output. This is a heavy burden to the Resting Abyss with its current poption of just over 40,000. Of course, having a hardworking individual like Ange, who can support several thousand people singlehandedly, isn¡¯t a problem. The main issue Anna had was to report something that needed the leadership¡¯s decision. If she only stated that everything was going well, how else could they highlight the role of the leader? A leader needs to resolve matters, which will highlight their role. Otherwise, who would recognize a sweet potato like Luther, azy bum rxing at Ice City? ¡°No, it can¡¯t be operational, but we also can¡¯t bury it back. If it operates, we don¡¯t have the power to guard this ce, to keep those guysing and going in check. But if it¡¯s buried, what if we need it one day? We can¡¯t just dig it up anytime. Just leave it be for now. If we¡¯re short of manpower, we¡¯ll transfer the undead from Dark City.¡± ¡°Oh, okay. Also, about the demon crystal refinery in Demon Valley¡­¡± Even if everything seemed fine, handling it was a multitude of tasks that rolled intote evening before they knew it. Ange and the others had already disappeared, they had no idea where they went off to y. The Resting Wind slowly blew. Shamara, who had been moping since they returned in the morning, suddenly looked up, seemingly listening to something. Then, she sprung up, her light wings ring out, and strangely took off into the sky. ¡°Hey hey hey! Where are you going? It¡¯s dangerous,e back quickly! Are you insane?! It will blow you to pieces!¡± Negris shouted anxiously, but Shamara didn¡¯t seem to listen. She continued to fly straight into the sky, the wind blowing harder and harder, causing her to sway and wobble in the air. Deep in the World Tree forest, Ange rode on White Neck¡¯s back, and they flew into the sky in a sh, chasing after Shamara. ¡°Ange, don¡¯t pursue!¡± Negris yelled in panic. Even though it couldn¡¯t bear to see Shamara blown away by the wind, it was even more unwilling to see Ange take such a risky move to save her. Ten fallen angels couldn¡¯tpare to one bone of Ange¡¯s. However, it quickly realized that Ange was confident. White Neck bared its teeth, revealing the air bubble stone held in its mouth. It activated it in the Resting Wind, quickly forming an air bubble, enveloping both White Neck and Ange on its back. With the eleration from the air bubble, White Neck streaked past Shamara like lightning. Ange grabbed her waistband, pulling her into the bubble. The extreme pull at such high speed almost yanked her intestines out. But as soon as she entered the bubble, Shamara, regardless of her difort, urgently said: ¡°The wind has broken the barrier. We can enter now.¡± PS: My foot is swollen and ufortable. I¡¯ll continue writing. There¡¯s one more chapter today. Chapter 285: 187 White Ghost_1 Chapter 285: 187 White Ghost_1 Ange looked at the sky and then the ground, hesitant. Exploring heaven was not his interest. It was impossible to cultivate crops there, it was Negris who wanted to go. Allegedly, the gods may have reincarnated or returned there, and it was essential to eliminate enemies in order to prevent the Church of Light from being reassembled. But Negris was not there. Ange, ustomed to being pointed at by Negris, would rather go back and cultivate than proceed without Negris¡¯ guidance. Not only was Negris absent, Little Angel, Little Zombie, Titan Lightning, they were all missing. Only armored swordsmen, shield bearers and zombies along with Petacsi were inside the Temple of Rest. Should he go back and y the pretending game first? With Ange¡¯s hesitation, Shamara guessed his thoughts and interjected urgently, ¡°I don¡¯t know if the opening was idental or random. If it was idental, I don¡¯t know how long we would have to wait for such an opportunity toe again.¡± Just as he hesitated, Ange sensed Negris¡¯ projection approaching, and immediately admonished Shamara, ¡°Are you mad? Even the Resting Wind will kill you when it blows.¡± ¡°The barrier is broken.¡± ¡°Ah? Then hurriedly go back and call someone.¡± ¡°It¡¯s toote, the barrier is recovering. I don¡¯t know when it will be open again.¡± ¡°Kvada, how do you know? Are your eyes made of titanium alloy? Let¡¯s go, let¡¯s go, let¡¯s go up and see what¡¯s going on.¡± With the formation of air bubbles by the Air Bubble Stone, it¡¯s very safe for White Neck to fly, and as long as it¡¯s not blowing directly, the Resting Wind is not only harmless, but also reparative to the body. It quickly flew to the middle section, everyone felt a sense of weightlessness, including White Neck. They had already encountered this situation in the morning, and White Neck, who was prepared, just slightly turned his body to the side. As soon as the sensation of weightlessness disappeared, it immediately found bnce again. However, heaven and earth had already turned upside down. The Resting Abyss became the sky, and the Holy Kingdom became the earth. To get closer to heaven, they needed to fly ¡®down¡¯. At this moment, the gravity of the Resting Abyss disappeared, and what exerted on them now was the gravity of the Holy Kingdom. Besides the change of gravity, there were no other changes around. The Resting Wind was still blowing fiercely, and White Neck, maintaining its speed, spiraled down. ¡°Phew, this is amazing. Speaking of that, if we pull a house to the center of the gravity line and bnce it, will it hover there¡­ Nevermind, I shouldn¡¯t be discussing this with you. I¡¯ll write to the Republic of Steris to discuss this.¡± Halfway through, Negris realized he had chosen the wrong discussion partners. Ange looked confused, so did Shamara¡­. He quickly diverted the topic: ¡°This Air Bubble Stone is truly magic. I wonder which ne it¡¯s from. The Prime Material ne would definitely not produce such an extreme object. Using wind to suppress wind, that¡¯s such a fascinating phenomenon. If we had many such stones, everyone could carry one and strap it to a stick so they could travel in the Resting Wind.¡± ¡°What if it breaks?¡± asked Shamara. ¡°That indeed is the problem. Common people can¡¯t quickly dig a bunker to avoid the wind. But how could it possibly break? It¡¯s a stone, not a bubble, just a few gusts wouldn¡¯t break it.¡± Negrisughed. Not long after he¡¯d finished speaking, a ¡®crack¡¯ sound came from White Neck¡¯s mouth. The air bubble flickered for a few times thenpletely disappeared. The intense Resting Wind blew at everyone, with White Neck bearing the brunt, letting out a painful roar in response, and spitting out a few fragments of the Air Bubble Stone. ¡°You foul-mouthed jinx¡­ we¡¯re done for¡­¡± Negris nced at the Holy Kingdom still several kilometers away, extremely anxious. Ange and Shamara could withstand this distance, but White Neck could not. The wind in the air was so fierce, and itsrge body took in so much wind, its wings and head, the vulnerable parts, would soon stiffen. Particrly its head. Without the Air Bubble Stone, its head became the tip breaking the wind, which would soon be blown to destruction, and once the head was destroyed, even resurrection would be impossible. Ange rushed out, ran along its long neck all the way to White Neck¡¯s head, and anchored a flowerpot on its head. The suddenly uprooted Little Sapling was dazed, and took a while to react, waving its leaves, ¡°Force¨Cbreathe¨Cforce¨Cbreathe¨C¡± Centered around Little Sapling, the fierce Resting Wind swerved around and avoided White Neck¡¯s head. White Neck breathed a sigh of relief, no longer circling, but turned its head down and plummeted like a falling projectile, quickly breaching the thousands of meters¡¯ distance, and only slowed down with a p of wings when it was less than three hundred meters from the dome. The damage caused by the Resting Wind was bing apparent on it. The fluttering of White Neck¡¯s wingscked its usual nimbleness, nearly causing it to crash into the dome above. ¡°Hurry, Shamara, find the breach, where is it?¡± Negris roared loudly, but when Ange nced back, Shamara was clutching her head, conjuring a dark Sacred me to fend off the Resting Wind, she clearly didn¡¯t have the luxury to find the breach. Ange found it quite quickly, pointing his hand, ¡°There.¡± Negris couldn¡¯t see it, but through Ange¡¯s eyes, that particr area of the dome¡¯s strength was not as high as the others, but it was slowly growing stronger. Shamara was right, the damaged part of the Light Dome was healing. If they came a minuteter, perhaps the breach would have been restored. White Neck, in urgent panic, flew towards the ce where Ange was pointing to. It quickly suspended itself at the breach location and began to p its wings desperately. The thin flesh of the giant dragon¡¯s wings couldn¡¯t hold in the Resting Wind for long. There were already stiff spots on its wing membranes, and they split open with a hiss as White Neck moved. However, at this moment, White Neck couldn¡¯t feel the pain. It only saw its wing membranes torn, its eyes widened in fright, and it roared like a child seeing its skin scratched open. Ange leaped towards the breaching point, which actually couldn¡¯t be called a breach. It was simply weaker than the other areas due to the damage, it should be called a weak area of the barrier. Ange hit it hard, yet he couldn¡¯t break the barrier. With a leap, mes surged from his head, and the Hand of Locke smashed down with all its strength. Boom! The barrier let out a massive sound but remained motionless. Hearing this noise, Negris realised the trouble,pared to individual bodies, the barrier was too strong, it was simply impossible for humans to break it, just like a dozens feet thick steel city wall. N?v(el)B\\jnn Only a nar force like the Resting Wind could possibly break it. ¡°Stop it, take White Neck back as soon as possible, then find a ce to shelter from the wind.¡± Negris shouted loudly. But looking around, the Light Dome encapsted the entire Divine Country. The Divine Country was like a city in the dome, if they didn¡¯t break the dome, where could they shelter from the wind? Ange ignored Negris¡¯s words. The Hand of Locke was raised, joined with another phantom hand of Locke, and transformed! Shaped into Steadfast Locke, Ange pounded his fist in the weak area of the barrier. However, this was only the beginning. In the next seven seconds, Ange managed to throw sixty-seven punches, forcing arge hole in the barrier. The already overwhelmed White Neck plunged straight into the hole, and arge amount of Resting Wind also poured in. White Neck free-fell, its body stiffened and couldn¡¯t move it¡¯s wings. If it hit the ground, it would probably suffer severe fractures all over its body, if not death. Negris had prepared to resurrect it, hoping that its brain wouldn¡¯t get damaged. Shamara, who had been standing on its back, spread her wings and pressed her hands on White Neck. The rapidly falling Silver Dragon suddenly became as light as a feather, descending slowly. In the end, theynded at a huge square the Square of the Gods. The square was eerily quiet, with no sound, only the howling of the wind pouring in non-stop from the hole in the sky, whistle whistle whistle, like ghosts mourning. Ange immediately rushed to White Neck¡¯s side, casting the bright Holy Light on it. It was just wind-rigid fellow, the injuries were not hard to treat, it¡¯s just that White Neck was toorge, it would take some time. Right when Ange was applying Holy Light on White Neck, a white ghost mysteriously appeared from somewhere, it hovered and floated to Ange¡¯s side, stretching out two little hands towards the Holy Light, as if were warming itself by the fire. A ghost? White? Warming itself by the fire? A series of question marks appear in Ange and Negris¡¯s souls. Ange deliberately moved his hands away, the white ghost hastily floated after him, its small hands always hovering on the edge of the Holy Light. PS: I have a foot full of fever blisters. Something inside it has inmed and it needs to swell up before it can be treated. Unfortunately, it happens to be on my foot, I can¡¯t sit or standfortably, and it would take several days for the medication to take effect. Chapter 286 - 188: There’s Something Down Below – 1 Chapter 286: Chapter 188: There¡¯s Something Down Below ¨C 1 Left and right, forward and backward, in a circle, forming a character¡­ Forget it, it¡¯s too difficult ¨C Ange had never done that before¡­ Thus, the white ghost lifted its two small hands, trailing behind the Holy Light as it floated around. Only when Ange stopped teasing it did it let out a sigh sounding like a soul¡¯s relief. It happily stayed by the Holy Light, ¡®toasting¡¯ its little hands. ¡®Toasting¡¯ is simply a metaphor; it¡¯s actually absorbing the radiation of the holy light, but it dares not touch the Holy Light directly as it won¡¯t be able to stand it. Ange found it amusing, but Negris was baffled: ¡°A holy¡­ ghost? Kvada, is there such a thing?¡± A Holy Skeleton, Holy Light Corpse Witch, can be man-made. But, a holy ghost? Who would make such a thing? A naturally-formed Holy Ghost, that is not unlike ¡®bright¡¯ darkness. That¡¯s unscientific. Other than this little ghost, the square remained silent with nothing else around. As time went by, the whistling in the sky gradually quieted down, and upon looking up, one could see the hole closing and would fully closed soon. After about ten minutes of treatment, White Neck recovered. The damaged wing membrane had healed, and Ange retracted the Holy Light. Ah, that upset the little ghost who then spun around Ange¡¯s hand. Finally, in desperation, it hugged Ange¡¯s hand, twisting it outwards ¨C probably thinking that doing so would reward it with Holy Light. But how could a ghost have the strength to twist Ange¡¯s hand? After futile attempts for a while, it became sullen with its entire form radiating despair. Ange lighted up a finger. The little ghost was immediately invigorated and jumped straight onto it. Because the Holy Light from the finger wasn¡¯t intense, it even directly hugged Ange¡¯s finger. It was just a bit of weak Holy Light, and using it did not take much effort, so Ange maintained it throughout. ¡°Ange, bring out two heavily armored undead to walk in front,¡± said Negris. Two armored undead were brought out. One was a defender, and the other a swordsman. They carried their sword and shield respectively, and paced forward orderly. Shamara sniffed, seeming to have detected the smell under the armors, and muttered softly: ¡°Undead heretics¡­¡± For a pure maiden like her, eradicating heresy had be an instinct engraved in her bones. But there was a voice inside her continuously screaming: Don¡¯t move rashly, you¡¯ll die! Don¡¯t move rashly, you¡¯ll die! The heavily armored undead paved the way in front, with Ange and White Neck following behind. After a few steps, they realized that White Neck was walking very awkwardly, with wings tucked in and hips twisting like a hen. It was very inefficient. With a sigh, Negris suggested, ¡°Pack it back. It is too hard for a giant dragon to walk on the ground.¡± The situation here was uncertain; letting it fly isn¡¯t a good idea. Who knows if any defense tower is in the attack range, ready to st it off with a single shot. With White Neck sent back to the Resting Pce, only Ange and Shamara were left here; of course, there was the little ghost too. The entire Holy Kingdom was silent, not a living soul in sight. They left the Square of the Gods, walked straight down the Holy Light Avenue, looked around the buildings on the sides, but saw nothing. There were no defenses. The undead walked majestically in front, in this sanctified kingdom road, with not a trace of the holy decrees against them. ¡°It seems to be truly deserted now. Even the automatic defense function is lost; only ayer of barrier membrane is left. Yet, how can a dead membrane guard against the living?¡± Negris sighed. n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Ange did not heed it, but looked back at Shamara with curiosity. Since a while ago, he had been feeling that Shamara¡¯s emotions were fluctuating sporadically. Her anger was umting continuously, somewhat like an active volcano brewing and reaching the edge of eruption. Indeed, Shamara¡¯s eyes were full of anger, her breath was drawing ck fury. Negris also noticed it promptly and asked urgently, ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± I, want to y God,¡± Shamara articted each word, fuming with rage and bulging eyes. Subconsciously, Ange stepped back a few paces and wielded yhe Scythe of Death on guard. Why are you hiding?!¡± Shamara asked angrily. ¡°You want to y God,¡± Ange responded. He was the Undead God, falling within the range of what Shamara wanted. ¡°It¡¯s none of your concern. I want to kill all the Gods of Light!¡± Shamara uttered word by word, as if taking oath. The ck Sacred me on her body swelled a bit. ¡°Why this sudden deration of such an oath? You know it would be troublesome if the oath to y God can¡¯t be fulfilled,¡± Negris was at a loss. ¡°They have deceived everyone. There is no Heaven, no happiness. This is not a ce for the living,¡± Shamara pointed towards the surrounding buildings. ¡°Hmm, now that you mention it¡­ this is not a world for the living. The Gods of Light had been deceiving people. Where had the believers who were supposed to be brought to Heaven gone?¡± Negris was filled with horror-thinking about Shamara¡¯s hint. In the Holy book of Light, believers of God are promised that after death, they would be beckoned to a Heaven where the ground teems with grains and rivers flow with honey. There will be no disease, no hunger, and it will be home to countless handsome men and beautiful women¡­ But all along, they had seen various buildings, but not a single grain or honey river was to be found, let alone everything that humans need. There wasn¡¯t even a ce for a fire to cook. Chapter 287 - 188 There’s Something Below_2 Chapter 287: Chapter 188 There¡¯s Something Below_2 Are we to eat the grains spread out on the ground raw? If this were not Heaven, it would be understandable, but the Square of the Gods, Holy Light Avenue, Light Dome, everything is exactly as described in the Holy Code. This is Heaven. So where are the believers who were supposed to be led to Heaven? If they are in another ce, it would be fine, but the greater possibility is that there was never any such guidance. All the believers have been processed by them. Shamara is so angry that she does not hesitate to announce the Oath to y God; evidently, she has found the answer. n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Did your inner voice tell you this? Well, you should¡¯ve asked me before making such an oath. What should we do if the Gods of Light are no longer there and you fail to fulfill the oath?¡± Negrismented. No matter whether it is a Soul Oath or an Oath to y God, both involve a gain and a loss. The Soul Oath establishes a soul contact, and once it¡¯s linked to the king¡¯s Soul Network, you can borrow the king¡¯s power at any time. For example, Oke who had never learned magic, killed Hermorthos by leveraging Ange¡¯s power due to his fervent faith. Although Hermorthos was rather ineffective, he was still a god. Don¡¯t underestimate the Insect God like he¡¯s nothing. The Oath to y God is the same, it solidified Shamara¡¯s faith, made her divine power more refined and greatly increased her strength. But it requires a price to pay, and if the oath is not fulfilled, the consequences are very serious. But now that the Gods of Light are all gone, how can Shamara fulfill her oath? Shamara looked strange and said, ¡°I appreciate your concern, but don¡¯t worry, my oath has no deadline.¡± ¡°Pfft¡­¡± Negris almost spat out a mouthful of old blood, thought for a while, and indeed, there was no deadline in Shamara¡¯s oath, which means it doesn¡¯t matter when it is fulfilled. ¡°Unexpectedly, you, who are gentle and elegant, have also learned such a trick.¡± Negris didn¡¯t expect such a pure-hearted person like her to use such cunning tricks. Shamara gave a faint smile, ¡°This trick has been taught in the church for many years. I just looked down upon using it. But now it doesn¡¯t matter.¡± Thest phrase, ¡®now it doesn¡¯t matter,¡¯ gave Negris a heartache. Before, she was just disappointed with the Church of Light, but now, she seemed to be disappointed with the entirety of Light. A fanatic believer has be a defector who swears to y God. Negris sighed silently, not knowing what to say, and they just kept walking in silence until they hadpleted therge circle and returned to this end of Holy Light Avenue. At the end of Holy Light Avenue, going through the Square of the Gods, stands a magnificent temple. Climbing the long staircase and arriving at the entrance, you can see a solitary sculpture standing at the vacant entrance of the temple. It is a sculpture of a Holy Spirit Angel, about one and a half meters high, with wide open wings, taking a stride, looking up the sky and holding something up to the sky as though ready tounch at any moment. The expressions on the face and the wings at the back are so lifelike, they are brilliant as if sculpted by a master sculptor. Simr sculptures can be seen everywhere here. There are many sculptures of gods around the Square of the Gods. The only unusual thing about this sculpture is that it¡¯s a little more detailed and ced at the doorway, making it a bit obstructive. When Ange was about to bypass the sculpture, he suddenly stopped by its side and hesitantly said, ¡°It¡¯s real.¡± ¡°Real? What¡¯s real?¡± Negris asked in confusion. ¡°A real Holy Spirit, petrified,¡± Ange replied. Negris projected her mind into the sculpture¡¯s body and ¡®saw¡¯ distinct structures such as flesh and bones. It¡¯s impossible for a sculpture to carve out these internal things. ¡°Indeed it¡¯s real, it¡¯s not stone and was petrified? What happened?¡± Negris was shocked. If this is a real Holy Spirit, then considering its height plus the wings, it is at least a Six-winged Archangel. And the shape of its pair of wings also confirms Negris¡¯ spection. Angels only have a pair of True Wings. Whether it¡¯s a four or six-winged angel, the remaining wings are Light Wings, so they disappear after petrification. Why would a Six-winged Archangel be petrified here? Has Heaven been invaded? Or is there another reason? This is a Six-winged Archangel who can fight against Steadfast Locke. ¡°It looks like it was carrying a weapon. Look around to see if there is any weapon nearby.¡± Negris suddenly suggested. However, she was overthinking. There was nothing around, not even dust. It was spotlessly clean as if even a street cleaner would lose their job here. It angered Negris so much that she said, ¡°Take the sculpture away, Kvada. There is nothing valuable in this poor Heaven, no weapons, treasures, or food left, only some immovable buildings. This trip is a total loss.¡± Ange took the Petrified Angel with him. They continued to walk inside, into the temple. Finally, in this temple, they found something different coffin-like stone boxes set in one of the rooms inside the temple. Ange lifted one. Ah, it really is a coffin with a slender white skeleton lying quietly inside. The God of Knowledge today has already updated knowledge about these skeletons, recognizing at a nce that they are sacred bones. ¡°They are all first-order angels of one meter nine, useless.¡± Ange already had thousands of such sacred bones, they are useless to him. Chapter 288 - 188: There is Something Below _3 Chapter 288: Chapter 188: There is Something Below _3 Speaking of the Sacred Bodies, Negris immediately thought of those nted in the ground. ¡°Right, those Sacred Bodies nted with souls, have any born a soul of wisdom?¡± Ange shook his head. ¡°Is it that hard?¡± Negris asked disappointingly. They had been away from the Resting Abyss for almost a year ¨C how could it be that none of the thousands of Saint Bodies had bred a wisdom soul yet? Not only the Sacred Bodies, but also the ordinary corpses that were ntedter couldn¡¯t produce a soul of wisdom either. Is it that difficult to generate a wisdom soul? Then why did Ange just casually pick up two? In addition to the Sacred Bodies, Ange also found some metal eggs, fist-sized, engraved with intricate sacred patterns on the surface. ¡°Holy Spirit Armor? So many?¡± A pile of boxes wereid out in front of him, each box containing six eggs, a total of twenty boxes, and many of the boxes were empty. ¡°A hundred and twenty Holy Spirit Armors, it¡¯s quite a haul, quickly pack them up, at least we won¡¯t be going back empty-handed.¡± Negris said joyously. A statue of a petrified angel and a hundred twenty Holy Spirit Armor, that was all Ange¡¯s gains. Over the next few days, Ange turned every corner of the kingdom, but found nothing else. n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Impossible. Didn¡¯t you say the guy who waspeting with you for the Divine Power was in a dimension of the wind blowing at night? Isn¡¯t it here? Where is the guy who snatched your Divine Power? Could it be this little guy?¡± Negris looked at the little ghost on Ange¡¯s finger. In the entire Heavenly Kingdom, the only thing that moves was it. Of course, a ghostpeting with a false god for divine power was impossible, even an imbecile knew that. So, who waspeting with Shamara for the divine power? Shamara shook his head and firmly said: ¡°It¡¯s here. It¡¯s hiding from us.¡± ¡°Hiding from us? Why would it hide from us? Someone who canpete with you for divine power shoulde out and chase us away, shouldn¡¯t it?¡± Negris was astonished. Shamara said confusedly: ¡°Why wouldn¡¯t it hide? Even if I was ten times stronger, I would hide from a existence that could blow up the barrier.¡± Makes sense. If it were the him, he would definitely hide too. Who would dare to frontally confront Steadfast Locke? ¡°So, it goes to say, the Gods of Light most likely did not return, but were reborn or newly born divine spirits. So, what do we do now? If it hides all the time, we won¡¯t be able to find it.¡± The Holy Kingdom is not small, with corners everywhere and buildings in all directions. If a creature was intentionally hiding, it would be very difficult to find it without hundreds or even thousands of people. Obviously, it was impossible to wait here, better to return first and then think of a n. However, they had to wait until the night when the Resting Wind blew to see if it would blow out the weak point. Waiting was quite boring. Ange looked at the green belt and garden in the Square of the Gods, got the itch, and without a word, ran over, pulled out his sickle, and cut down a big tree with a few strokes. ¡°I¡­ You¡­ Never mind, you want to cut down the garden to nt vegetables, right? What you just cut down is a Divine Tree, don¡¯t waste it after cutting it, pack it up.¡± Negris was so angry that he didn¡¯t know what to say. But it was also good, there were quite a few Divine Trees in the garden, and all of them could be considered a gain. If Ange didn¡¯t cut it down, he wouldn¡¯t have thought of it. The nts here were actually quite valuable, if he didn¡¯t have anything else, then just cut down trees. ¡°The tiles are also quite valuable. These sacred patterns, this material, if sold to Anthony, he would definitely like them. Why don¡¯t you dig up a few tiles too?¡± Negris suggested. Ange strenuously cut down all the Divine Trees, some of them he even uprootedpletely, moved them inside the Temple of Rest, to see if they could be brought back to life. The tiles on the Square of the Gods were also dug up by him, ready to take back and sell to Anthony. However, while digging, he noticed something underneath the square. PS: I looked it up online, it¡¯s not cancer, at most amputation, ah damn it, you are all scaring people. Chapter 289 - 189 Face to the Ground_1 Chapter 289: Chapter 189 Face to the Ground_1 Ange activated his Soul Armor, and two¡­hoes materialized in his palms. It was time to use Little Zombie¡¯s trump card. He bent down, his hands moving quickly in alternation, and arge amount of dirt was magically pumped out in a violent spray, swiftly clearing arge area. There wererge rocks underground, but they looked peculiar. Their shapes and outlines were very irregr. How could they be described? It was as if a glob of water had struck a certain point and then had sshed all over, solidifying into stone. When Ange had cleared all the nearby soil, he was taken aback to find that indeed a glob of water had struck a person. The sshing water had encapsted most of his body, leaving only his hands and feet exposed. His thoughts scanned through the feet, clearly seeing the textures of the internal skin, muscle, bone, and other tissues. Negris looked at this petrified person, then nced at the position of the temple entrance and spected, ¡°Could it be that the angel statue had emitted some weapon or technique that petrified this person? But if it was an attackunched by the Holy Spirit Angel, why did the angel itself also turn into stone?¡± Shamara touched the exposed hands and feet of the petrified person and suggested, ¡°Unless, he is the God of Bnce.¡± ¡°What? The God of Bnce? The Equal Cross, beneath the cross, all things are equal. But it can¡¯t be, why would the Holy Spirit attack their god?¡± Negris asked, utterly bewildered. ¡°It¡¯s only like this. If the God of Bnce is petrified, the person who attacks him will also be petrified,¡± Shamara replied matter-of-factly. Negris was torn between belief and skepticism. He guessed then that Shamara had awoken some sort of divine technique rted to perception. Her predictive ability was very strong. If she felt this petrified person was the God of Bnce, then there was a high probability it was the truth. But if that were the case, it would imply another problem. Why would the Holy Spirit Angel attack their own god? Shamara shook her head, ¡°I don¡¯t know, perhaps it was hurt.¡± While they were talking, Ange quietly summoned the Scythe of Death, motioning as if to strike at the neck of the statue. ¡°Stop! Cease! Hold!¡± Fortunately, Negris noticed in time and bellowed, stopping Ange¡¯s actions. Ange tilted his head in confusion. ¡°You can¡¯t cut. If it is really the God of Bnce, then the equal action on your body would be as if your soul was also sliced, you can¡¯t cut, you should try something else first.¡± Ange tilted his head again. ¡°Cast a Purification spell on him. The Holy Light will not harm him. If he can absorb the Holy Light and it affects you, then he is the God of Bnce.¡± When he finished speaking, Negris murmured uncertainly, ¡°In theory, the Equal Cross is a rarely used divine technique. As a Master God of Light, it formally ¡®equalizes¡¯ with any enemy, wouldn¡¯t that put it at a disadvantage?¡± Shamara looked confused, ¡°Why not use it when the enemy is too weak, and use it when you can¡¯t beat them?¡± ¡°Pff¡­you make a lot of sense. If you can¡¯t beat them, then use it. This isn¡¯t a God of Bnce, it¡¯s a God of Double Standards. It is deployed when needed and packed away when it¡¯s not. Bada.¡± Negris was extremely irritated. It seemed like all these Gods of Light used sneaky and cunning tactics. Shamara uttered obtusely, ¡°You seem to have some misconceptions about gods. Gods became gods because they hold power, not because they are equal and fair. Without power, no matter how fair and just, he is not a god.¡± ¡°Huh?!¡± Negris was stunned by Shamara¡¯s statement. Although such an argument is popr among mages and atheists within the Republic of Steris, it should not havee from Shamara. ¡°You¡¯re not supposed to talk like that. Aren¡¯t you a devout believer?¡± ¡°Yes, I am a devout believer. I believe in the Light, I pursue pure light. When it is no longer pure, it is no longer the light I pursue. God, has betrayed me,¡± Shamara exined matter-of-factly, seemingly oblivious to the darkening Sacred me within her. Herments profoundly shocked Negris. He suddenly had a better understanding of why he no longer had fanatical followers and why Shamara fell from grace. He seemed to have misunderstood the concept of ¡®god¡¯. A god became a god because they acquired power, not because they became a god, then acquired power. Therefore, the notion that adapting to the rules would make one a god was fundamentally wed. n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om If he hadn¡¯t possessed the power of the Bronze Giant Dragon to begin with, could he have be a god? Initially, if he hadn¡¯t used his own power to secretly help those guys in their exams, could he have be a god? If¡­ Negris considered many things. A lot of things he didn¡¯t understand before suddenly made sense. A god, having gained power, establishes a set of rules and upholds them. More and more people adapt to these rules, believe in them, integrate into them, and be part of these rules. The power of a god, will grow stronger as a result, and the rules will be further solidified. When these rules can benefit everyone, the believers will naturally uphold, protect, and practice them. All who oppose will be annihted. In the end, the operation of these rules bes an inertia. Even if the Gods of Light disappear for a thousand years, they continue to function independently. This is the intrinsic logic of how a divine power system operates, a concept he had misunderstood all along. Chapter 290 - 189: Face to the Ground_2 Chapter 290: Chapter 189: Face to the Ground_2 However, what¡¯s the use of realising it now: ¡°I was deceived by the gods¡­¡± Negris sighed in despair. While Negris was sighing in despair, Ange had already started casting Purification on the God of Bnce. With each Purification spell, the stones wrapped around the God of Bnce would purify a little, turning into ash and dispersing. However, this purification was slow. Each time, it only removed a thinyer, even thinner than what was lost during Little Angel¡¯s recovery. Any other priest or saint might have given up, as the process of purifying the stones would oust their lifetime. However, this wasn¡¯t a problem for Ange. He had already forgotten what he was originally intending to do, and simply focused on the God of Bnce and the stones surrounding him. A day, two days, three days and finally, after a full week, the stone-like water mass that had exploded on the God of Bnce had been fully purified. During this time, the Light Dome ¡®broke¡¯ twice, each time at the very start of the Resting Wind. This ¡®breaking¡¯ wasn¡¯t arge hole appearing, but rather a sudden flickering and instability, which then slowly settled down. Under such circumstances, Ange could presumably break it with a few punches if he flew up to it. When this periodic phenomenon was noticed, Negris didn¡¯t worry anymore. At least they wouldn¡¯t be trapped here. After Ange had purified the stones on its surface, the God of Bnce¡¯s true appearance was revealed. The statue had an open pose with its arms extended horizontally to each side of its body and legs slightly apart. It was strikingly simr to the description of the Equal Cross pose in the Holy Code. He was attacked in the pose of the Equal Cross, an attack so powerful that it could even petrify a god. Ange then cast Holy Light, which rolled over the statue. When the Purification spell was cast again, the God of Bnce did not turn into ash. Instead, its colour became slightly lighter and at the same time, a bit of the Holy Light alsonded on Ange. ¡°Hiss¡­ the equal treatment really affected you. Is this truly the God of Bnce? If we continue, could we possibly revive him?¡± Negris eximed in surprise while also seeming a bit intrigued. The God of Bnce was the only one of the Gods of Light remaining. If they could revive him, wouldn¡¯t all of their questions be answered? However, this thought quickly passed, and Negris dismissed itpletely: ¡°Forget it, it¡¯s too dangerous. Let¡¯s bury him back and leave. I don¡¯t want to deal with an awakened God of Light.¡± Shamara walked over, pressed her hand against his back and said, ¡°Continue. The moment he awakens, he will no longer be a pure Master God.¡± n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°You want to corrupt him? Oh, that¡¯s a good idea. You corrupt him, he corrupts you, but you are already tainted so you are not afraid of corruption. If he bes corrupted, it will be difficult for him to wield the power of Light. Good idea.¡± Negris pped excitedly. Was this the key to breaking the Equal Cross? To corrupt the God of Bnce to one¡¯s own level and then defeat him with a wealth of experience? It seemed highly feasible. But for safety¡¯s sake, Negris decided to leave first and explore this possibility outside of the Divine Country. That way, even if the God of Bnce truly revived, they would only need to deal with his own power. If they stayed here, he would have the authority to utilize the entire defense force of Heaven, which could be troublesome. After making the decision to leave, Negris immediately realized that they had overlooked one thing: ¡°We¡¯re out of Air Bubble Stones¡­¡± Coming here, they initially relied on the Air Bubble Stones to support them until they reached the halfway point, and then they struggled through the remaining few thousand meters, descending at high speed. Without the Air Bubble Stones, it would mean that White Neck would have to fly against Resting Wind to cross the midpoint of gravity and then descend. The entire journey of tens of thousands of meters would be too much for White Neck to handle. ¡°I¡¯ve been foolish, what do we do now? We can¡¯t go back.¡± Negris was stunned. This mistake was severe. It could potentially lead to Ange being trapped there. What should they do now? What should they do? Negris pondered this problem for a whole two days. Ange, on the other hand, seemed utterly unconcerned. He overturned the entire Square of the Gods to uncover the God of Bnce, exposing the bare soil beneath. Looking at this dark, oily soil, Ange didn¡¯t feel the need to leave immediately. During Negris¡¯ two-day contemtion, Ange ttened the square, divided it into sections, and created ridges. He nted a World Tree in the center. The areas closest to the World Tree were nted with elf beans, and the remaining areas with every type of crop seed in his possession. Throughout this whole process, Ange didn¡¯t even use the Instant Death Halo. The moment the seeds were buried, they immediately entered a rapid growth state. In just two short days, they were already halfway grown. For instance, the growth cycle of the Saline Demon Rice is about four months. Within a mere two days, they were half grown, meaning that it would only need four days to fully mature, which was a thirty-fold eleration. Although it cannot bepared to the Instant Death Halo, it was natural growth, hence even the elf beans could be elerated. If elf beans could be nted here, it would only take one year for them to enter a period of peak productivity and then there would be a whole year of peak productivity, with about thirty harvests. Thus, making it the best ce to nt elf beans. Ange dug up all other crops and nted elf beans instead. He still had over four hundred elf bean seeds on hand. He nted three hundred of them and kept the remaining hundred forter use. Seeing Ange happily working, Negris who had been pondering over their situation for two days finallyughed, ¡°Is this really so fun? We might as well just stay here and farm, and never leave.¡± Chapter 291 - 189 Face Down_3 Chapter 291: Chapter 189 Face Down_3 Ange nodded. ¡°If you keep nodding, Little Angel and Little Zombie wille looking for you. Don¡¯t you want them anymore?¡± Negris demanded. Ange shook his head. ¡°Then why are you still nting? Do you need to water the crops? They only mature once a year, do you n on staying here for a year? You¡¯ll kill the nts if you don¡¯t water them in that time!¡± Negris scolded, losing his temper. ¡°No need to water them.¡± Ange replied. ¡°No need to water?¡± Negris was stunned. Was there such a thing as soil where you didn¡¯t need to water the crops in it? Ange nodded again. He had not watered these nts since he sowed them, yet they had started to grow all the same. ¡°So, you¡¯re not digging some up? This is good stuff, you know?¡± Well, even dirt seemed appealing in the straitened circumstances of the Holy Kingdom. ¡°Already done.¡± Ange was way ahead of Negris, having already dug uprge piles and stashed them in the corners of his farm. Of course, inparison to the millions of tons of soil above ground, the amount Ange had dug up was barely noticeable. ¡°You¡¯re pretty quick when ites to farming, but why don¡¯t you think about how to get back? Leaving me to brainstorm all by myself.¡± Negrisined, clearly disgruntled. Ange tilted his head, pointing at the top of the temple: ¡°Like them.¡± Negris mentally pped himself for his oversight. Kvada, why hadn¡¯t he thought of this before? How did the Holy Spirit Angels reach the Resting Abyss in the first ce? The Heaven¡¯s Ladder¡­ they could certainly attempt to use the Heaven¡¯s Ladder to return. Sometimes, ingrained thinking limits the possibilities one can conceive. This especially applies to those with much knowledge; their knowledge can, in fact, restrict their thinking. This was the case with Negris. In his mind, the Heaven¡¯s Ladder was meant for dispatching Holy Spirits and he hadn¡¯t even considered using it to return. Ange¡¯s suggestion shattered this preconceived notion, and Negris immediately began ruminating. He arrived at the top of the Temple, at the base of the stairway. After much analysis, he deduced a way to activate it. ¡°Holy Light, an abundance of Holy Light can activate it. Luckily, it works the same way as thest time. We don¡¯t have to tweak anything. Wouldn¡¯t want to mess with the parameters.¡± Ange had an infinite supply of Holy Light, even more so than the Church of Light. Even though their Holy Lights had different sources, Heaven¡¯s Ladder was a lifeless object and doesn¡¯t differentiate between them. The Holy Stairway was activated. A beam of light shot into the sky, crossing the gravity midpoint, andnded in the Resting Abyss. ¡°Let¡¯s start by sending a heavily armored zombie up.¡± proposed Negris, nning to first test if the Heaven¡¯s Ladder was capable of transporting Undead creatures without causing harm. n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om On the other side in Resting Abyss, preparations were in ce to receive the first traveller, as informed by the soul message. With a whooshing sound, the heavily armored zombie was absorbed into the beam of light, turning into tiny shimmering particles. Shortly after, they received the safending message from the armored zombie through soulmunication. Ange continued to pour out Holy Light and instructed Shamara to enter the beam, initiating the transmission process. Upon receiving the message of Shamara¡¯s safending, Ange stepped into the light for his turn, and activated the beam. All he could perceive was an expanse of white light, himself being pulled forcefully along it at high velocity toward somewhere distant. Mixed within the white light were sinews of different colored lights. Ange instinctively reached out his Boundary-crossing Hand and grabbed at these colored lights, managing to hold onto four or five strands. At the same time, the white light shattered, the beam of Heaven¡¯s Ladder flickered once and then disappeared. With a thud, Angended face-first, feet in the air, leaving a sizeable crater in the ground upon impact. PS: The time difference is messing up my updates. Bear with it. Once my mother-inw is here to help with child care duties, I can roll out the chapters faster. Chapter 292 - 190 Step Back_1 Chapter 292: Chapter 190 Step Back_1 My face is fine, but my hat is ruined. The scarecrow hat is a very basic prop, only capable of producing a handful of illusions and easily seen through by outsiders with equivalent spiritual power. However, this simple prop is perfectly suitable for Ange. His spiritual power is extremely strong. When he puts on the hat, even truth seekers like Brooks couldn¡¯t see through it. But, as suitable as it is, it¡¯s still just a basic prop, not some unbreakable object. To be honest, the fact that it managed to survive over a thousand years without breaking is already quite unusual, mainly due to its limited self-repairing ability. This repairing ability has its limits. Small scratches can be healed, butrge damage is beyond its capability. ¡°It¡¯s broken¡­¡± Ange picked up the hat, clenching the broken edges with a disappointed look. ¡°Yes, it¡¯s broken. You should patch it up. Ask someone who knows how to fix scarecrow hats, or you could buy a new one,¡± Negris said regretfully. Ange nodded. That was the only option. At the world transit station, Petersburg was removed and returned to his Divine Seat. Upon feeling the steady, unending energy flowing from the Divine Seat beneath his feet, Petersburg breathed a sigh of relief, ¡°Even though it often runs out of energy, standing on it still feels more reassuring.¡± ¡°Fine then, we won¡¯t take you out anymore. I¡¯ll have Ange rece you with another guardian,¡± Negris responded. He didn¡¯t expect that taking a guardian away from his Divine Seat would make them uneasy. If that¡¯s the case, he might as well rece them with a less sentient one to avoid causing Petersburg anxiety. Petersburg¡¯s hand shot out, clutching Negris tightly, ¡°I misspoke earlier. Being by your side, Lord, gives me even more peace of mind.¡± ¡°Uh, which one makes you more uneasy?¡± ¡°Being with you, oh, no, staying here is more unsettling.¡± ¡°Alright then, I¡¯ll take you with me from now on.¡± n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°To serve you, my Lord!¡± Petersburg sighed in relief, he never thought a casualment could almost cost him his job. Nearly all the followers in the ne were gathered together. They kneeled in the cleaned out lower level of the transit station, gazing up at the lofty Ange and praying devoutly. ¡°Great Lord Ange, He who holds the Light of Face Purification, smoothing wounds¡­ He stands eight feet tall, handsome and imposing, with a body sturdy as a pir reaching up to the sky, his gaze pierces the fog like lightning¡­¡± Bard Conan¡¯s voice echoed throughout the transit station. The handsome bard has now be a loyal subordinate under Lisa¡¯smand. Whether it¡¯s heroic deeds or miraculous wonders, they all need to be spread far and wide. How to spread them? Apart from writing poems,posing operas, and writing novels, the mostmon method is via bards. They wander from street to street, spreading your deeds in the form of songs. A good bard is the best faith propagator, so when Lisa learned that among the Undead in Dark City there was a bard, she immediately recruited him without a second thought. Now, the number of bards cultivated by the Gate has reached more than a dozen. This is a basic operation; the bards of the Church of Light, which they call the Choir, are not counted individually but in groups. They travel everywhere, or station in one ce, singing about Ange¡¯s deeds in a variety of ways. Of course, most of them are made up. This farming skeleton, apart from farming, what other deeds could be spread? Oh, he once wiped out an insect god called Hermorthos, which is worth boasting extensively. ¡°Ladies and gentlemen, listen to my tale. The insect God has sixteen eyes and twenty feet, swarming with insects. Our Lord Ange issued a divine decree, devout followers led the way¡­¡± In the rhythmic chant of the bard, wave after wave of Soul me rushed towards Ange. The buildup of fervor in the presence of tens of thousands of people can¡¯t be experienced ordinarily. Even the calmest believers, under such circumstances, get infected by the zeal. Their emotions keep building up until they be fanatic. Of course, this fervor doesn¡¯tst, and they feel exhausted afterward. For a while, they can¡¯t muster any energy, and their initiative to devote themselves drops significantly. The ritual of this enormous scale, it¡¯s like overdrawing a portion of the future¡¯s faith, but if executed well, it could bolster everyone¡¯s beliefs. What we¡¯re about to do is overdraw a period of faith. Ange slept for half a year, without farming and seldom activating Instant Death Halo, the technique requiring the most Soul me. He had now umted what equates to half a year worth of Soul me. This vast power is enough to activate the entire World Transfer Station. Especially, the Twelve Divine Seats. For safety¡¯s sake, Lisa convened everyone. As they pray and witness the miracle of a God of Light¡¯s resurrection, wouldn¡¯t that solidify their faith? This isn¡¯t only a miracle, it¡¯s a super miracle. If followers of the Church of Light saw this, their faith might crumble since their god was revived by others. Unfortunately, there were no followers of the Church of Light in Resting Abyss. If there were, we would have certainly brought some to witness this. The Twelve Divine Seats started moving, the overwhelming soul energy infused into the Divine Seat, and all the divine guardians are on standby, waiting silently. During the times of no battles, the Twelve Divine Seats remain motionless, moving consumes too much energy, and except for Petersburg, none of the guardians possesses wisdom, not even able to talk trash. However, within the range of the Twelve Divine Seats, even a Six-winged Archangel wouldn¡¯t dare to teleport in. They are the ultimate weapons to protect the World Transfer Station and keep major nar powers at bay. Surrounded by the Twelve Divine Seats, even if the God of Bnce became alive again, he would be crushed all the same. Of course, the Twelve Divine Seats are just security measures. Shamara already stood behind the stone statue, hands ced on his back, ready to corrupt him anytime. As the day gradually turned dark, the Resting Wind slowly blew by and the basin where the World Transfer Station is located was covered by wind, as if it had turned into an isted ind. ¡°Let¡¯s begin,¡± said Negris. Ange, who had long been prepared, used Holy Light to wipe away the gray on the statue¡¯s bodyyer byyer, restoring its flesh to its lively form. Restoring the body to its lively form wasn¡¯t as difficult as removing its stone texture. Half an hourter, the once gray statue has regained the regr skin tone of a living person. Luther, who was standing nearby for vignce, suddenly whispered to Lisa, ¡°Grandmother¡­ Ouch¡­¡± ¡°Who did you call grandmother?¡± Lisa gave him a sidelong nce. ¡°Uh, Miss Lisa, why does this God of Light look so¡­human?¡± Luther rubbed his head and asked in a low voice, grumbling to himself: Grandmother¡¯s grip is getting stronger and stronger, it really hurts when she hits you. Lisa¡¯s essence is a necromancer, no matter how youthful she seems, it won¡¯t change this fact. It is quite normal for Necromancers to have great strength, isn¡¯t it? ¡°They are alive, or rather, the divine device made them have to be alive. Even if they weren¡¯t, they would have to be anyway,¡± Lisa answered. ¡°Divine device?¡± Luther was confused. ¡°It¡¯splicated, I don¡¯t understand it very well either. When you are free, go ask Lord Nage, he should be able to exin,¡± said Lisa. Negris, in the distance, his ear twitching slightly, feigning nonchnce, drifted to the other side, keeping a long distance away. During their whispered conversation, the God of Bnce, who had just been revived, suddenly softened and was about to fall to the ground. A pair of delicate and strong hands propped him up from behind. The God of Bnce, with the help of the support, barely managed to stand steady. He shook his head, looking somewhat adrift in consciousness. After he stood still, he waved his hand back without even opening his eyes, ¡°Step back.¡± Though, the strong hands didn¡¯t step back, still holding him firmly. This made the God of Bnce frown. Without opening his eyes, he reprimanded, ¡°Step back, can¡¯t you hear?¡± PS, I messed up the second chapter, I need to delete and rewrite. Chapter 293 - 191: Contaminated a God_1 Chapter 293: Chapter 191: Contaminated a God_1 ck Sacred me surged into his body. Beginning from the armpits supported by his hands, the ck Sacred me spread slowly throughout his body, like ink seeping into clear water. The God of Bnce felt his body burning, a feeling he was familiar with, but this time, it was the dim Sacred me that engulfed him. The God of Bnce shook his head forcefully again. Finally regaining his senses, his gaze swept towards Ange, the surrounding believers and guardians, the Resting Wind in the sky,stly resting on the ck Sacred me on his own body. ¡°What¡­ what have you done to me?¡± As the God of Bnce spoke, he swung his arm sideways, pulling it back behind him. A hand reached out, grabbing his wrist, pinning him firmly in ce. ¡°?¡± The God of Bnce blinked, with heavy suspicion almost jumping from his eyes, someone grabbed his Divine Arm? Who was it? He looked closely in confusion: A skeleton? Is this some kind of joke? The Divine Arm struggled forcefully, failing to break free. The other hand reflexively gathered into a fist, ready to strike, but before he could unleash it, a steel fist the size of a head sprung towards him, grasping his entire forearm with force. He turned his head and saw a Steel Giant. ¡°Who are you? Where is this ce?¡± The God of Bnce asked, lost and bewildered, He was now a bit dazed. Hadn¡¯t he been hit by the Light of Petrification? Why was he here, and where was here? Looking at the circr basin, the towering Teleportation Tower, the Steel Giants, all of this seemed a bit like the Undead Empire¡¯s transit station. The ck Sacred me spread in circles over his body. In his perplexity and confusion, the God of Bnce continued to struggle instinctively, stomping his foot with force, and a ring of light spread out from the impact point. The circle of light hit Ange, hit Petersburg, hit¡­ Bang! Arge foot stomped on his toes, breaking the light ring in one fell swoop. At the same time, a giant fistnded on his eye socket, forcing him to recoil involuntarily, his eye socket quickly welled up with a ck eye. The Hand of Locke, a pair of hands that could even tear the Divine Body, what is a ck eye to you? Being smacked until he was dazed, probably in his whole life, the God of Bnce hadn¡¯t ever experienced a person grabbing his hand and smashing his face. This made him so angry that he screamed out: ¡°What are you doing to me?¡± zing Sacred me emitted from his body, his eyes radiating a dazzling Holy Light as a light silhouette slowly emerged from his body ¨C the true body. The appearance of a fresh human was just an external image he adopted to meet the imagination of his followers, the real God of Bnce was not like this. nk, a magic-carved giant hand pped the light silhouette, causing massive energy shockwaves. The light silhouette was smacked back, almost shrinking back into its original body. A guardian, very simr to Petersburg, with a round body but a pair of springy long legs, bounced his body above the God of Bnce and swung his fist down. ¡°Dammit, you who dared to offend the True God, you will bear my wrath!¡± A voice filled with rage roared from the God of Bnce¡¯s throat. The long-legged guardian pped down again. ¡°The wrath of God shall burn your body!¡± A me sprouted on the guardian¡¯s steel shell. N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°Smack!¡± The guardian ignored the me and once again pped the light silhouette. ¡°Send you into the abyss of hell, and suffer¡­¡± No response, another p ¡®smack¡¯. ¡°From the eternal despair and wailing¡­¡± ¡®Smack¡¯, another p came down. The God of Bnce grew a bit dispirited with each sentence he got out, and with each word, the guardian¡¯s hand pped down on him, driving his true form back relentlessly. Twelve guardian gods erected their defenses at the world transfer stations, each possessing their unique abilities. However, they shared onemon attribute: they could thwart most insubstantial attacks, such as sacred words, deflections, burns or shocks. In order to demolish them, it was best to go head-on, engaging them with raw, physical attacks, rather than resorting to showy skills. However, destroying them wasn¡¯t a walk in the park. Each was d in an armor of steel-infused magic runes that alone made it difficult to breach their defenses, let alone bring them down. Ange¡¯s Petersburg held the god¡¯s hands. A guardian god with long legs barraged him, ten other guardian gods watching closely to join in. But none of that was the most lethal part. The most fatal attack came from Shamara. She ced her hands on the back of the God of Bnce, her ck sacred me pouring in endlessly, tainting the God of Bnce. Gradually, the radiance of the God of Bnce became less pure. Amidst the white light, streaks of ck me were discernible. The terror of the Power of Fall did not lie in its strength, but in its contamination. The light mixed with the Power of Fall became impure. Was impure light still holy light? The God of Bnce could feel his power rapidly diminishing. By the time he realized the danger, it was already toote. ¡°I¡­ I can¡¯t feel the holy light?¡± The God of Bnce incredulously murmured as his true form retreated back into his body. He couldn¡¯t break free from the grips of Ange and Petersburg when he had revealed his true form, let alone now. He was helplessly restrained, just like being dragged at the entrance of a market by a minotaur madam for some form of demonstration, unable to break free no matter the struggle. ¡°What ¡­ what have you done to me¡­¡± The same question, emanating from the mouth of the God of Bnce, took upon apletely different tone, one filled with restlessness. ¡°Nothing. I¡¯ve just made you like me.¡± Shamara responded gently, though her voice carried a tremor her own self failed to pick up on. She had tainted a Master God. It wouldn¡¯t have been possible for her to taint him so easily, but the God of Bnce had just reawakened, his divine power kept to the minimum due to the restraint from Ange and others, and the ¡®tainting¡¯ ability just happened to counter his divine power. It was too much to call a mere coincidence. ¡°The ¡­ the Power of Fall? You have tainted me? You are of the same ilk as that rebel Luna?¡± It was only then that the God of Bnce understood the power behind the ck sacred mes, his words trembling. A rebel Luna? A Fallen Angel? Who could she be referring to? ¡°You mean her?¡± Ange motioned towards a petrified angel statue not too far away, bearing an unknown weapon. Ity inplete istion, in the corner. This angel, was she also a fallen angel like Shamara? Seeing no way out, the God of Bnce gave up struggling. Shamara, filled with excitement, could now im the fruits of her victory. She continued to drain the holy power of the God of Bnce, before pouring in the Power of Fall, until the point that she couldn¡¯t hold any more. ¡°Tie it up, tie it up. Is there any way to tie it up?¡± ¡°Gods of Light, ah, a rope won¡¯t work, right?¡± ¡°Can the Holy Shroud work?¡± ¡°Are you dumb? The Holy Shroud might just be defined by him.¡± ¡°Let us handle this.¡± Petersburg said, pointing to one of the guardian gods. Its round body had an opening, a hole. If they opened the lid, put the person inside but left the face exposed¡­¡± ¡°The Undead Coffin, it was created by the king to restrain the Gods of Light,¡± Petersburg exined. The title of the ¡®King¡¯ had not been mentioned in a while; it referred to the one supreme existence in the Undead Empire ¡ª the Undead King. The God of Bnce was shoved into the coffin. Negris couldn¡¯t wait to interrogate him, rubbing his hands together: ¡°Perfect, I can properly interrogate him now about everything that happened.¡± They were all curious about the disappearance of their king and the gods. Now that they had seized a God of Light, they could finally get their answers. But, before Negris could get his answers, the sound of cracking echoed throughout the area. Turning their heads, they saw the statue of the petrified angel gradually crumbling, as if something was about to break free from within. Negris immediately recognized the anomaly . ¡°Not good! The God of Bnce has lost his holy light. The Equal Cross isn¡¯t working anymore ¡ªThe Six-winged Archangel is waking up!¡± Chapter 294 - 192 Don’t Let Them Steal The Light_1 Chapter 294: Chapter 192 Don¡¯t Let Them Steal The Light_1 The petrification on her was cracking, revealing the delicate and tender Holy Spirit Angel underneath. As soon as her mouth could move again, a roar immediately erupted from her: The words that came out rendered everyone dumbfounded. Luther thought he had heard wrong and asked Lisa who was beside him, ¡°My dear grandmother, was she greeting others just now? Greeting the Gods of Light?¡± Lisa, ignoring the issue he had with her name, incredulously responded, ¡°It¡­ it seems so.¡± If such a greeting came from a Minotaur aunt at the entrance of a marketce, it would not have sounded out of ce. But for a Six-winged Archangel to roar out such vulgar words was indeed astounding. Everyone was stunned by the roar, still staring as the petrifiedyer came off. The Six-winged Archangel maintained herbat pose, shouting again, ¡°Die! For you wicked gods, is life that cheap and casual in your eyes?¡± n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om But immediately after, she felt something was amiss. She looked down and wondered, ¡°Eh, where¡¯s my cannon?¡± She nced at her left and right hands, shook her bracelets, and saw the in items transforming into a crossbow, but what the body of the bow was actually a cylindrical weapon¡ªthe Petroglyph Bow. At the same time, she spread her wings. A pair of ck feathers and four sacred mes sprayed out from the feather roots, transforming into four ck wings of light. The ck sacred mes rushed into the Petroglyph Bow, rapidly amplifying the energy within the bow. However, as she raised her head, she faltered, releasing the Petroglyph Bow and raising her hands obediently. Twelve Guardian Gods had her surrounded, ready to tear her apart at any moment. ¡°I¡­ I was teleported here, right? I¡­ I didn¡¯t do it on purpose.¡± The Six-winged Archangel shrank her head inpliance, uttering timidly. Negris cautiously peeked out and asked loudly, ¡°Hello, you¡¯re Luna, right? Do you remember what happened?¡± Like the God of Bnce, she too looked somewhat groggy. Being asked by Negris, she blinked her eyes, ¡°Let me think¡­ I used the Light of Petrification on Libra, and he¡­ Where is he? Where am I? Twelve Guardian Gods, is this the Undead Empire¡¯s world transfer station!?¡± ¡°Why did you attack the God of Bnce?¡± Negris continued to ask. ¡°He betrayed the Light!¡± Luna stated resolutely without hesitation, ¡°They all betrayed the Light! And they killed my pet.¡± Shamara trembled, her face showing an excited expression, as if she had encountered someone of her kind. Negris paused, wondering why she was mentioning that her pet had been killed. Why was she even more agitated when bringing up her pet? ¡°Libra is behind you.¡± Negris stated. Luna turned around and saw Libra¡¯s face appearing from inside the Undead Coffin. ¡°Evil god, your day hase!¡± Luna clenched her little fist, feeling the strong impulse to punch him. However, she managed to restrain herself in the end. Moving her gaze away from Libra, Luna looked at Negris. She furrowed her brows as it seemed that she recognized something and tentatively asked, ¡°God of Knowledge?¡± It was now Negris¡¯ turn to be surprised: ¡°You know me?¡± ¡°Of course I do. I¡¯m familiar with every god whose name can be spoken.¡± Upon saying this, she furrowed her brows and asked puzzled, ¡°Why have you lost weight?¡± ¡°¡­Can you really call this losing weight?¡± ¡°Not only have you lost weight, your life form has also changed. You¡¯ve be a Corpse Dragon. I remember thest news about you was when you were captured by Steadfast Locke. So were you killed by Steadfast Locke, and your soul was shoved into this Juvenile Dragon body?¡± Luna asked. ¡°I wasn¡¯t killed, just imprisoned,¡± Negris replied. ¡°Ah, do they also like to keep pets?¡± Luna asked curiously. Negris was speechless, had he degraded into a pet? ¡°What¡¯s the situation now? Is this the world transfer station? The Twelve Guardian Gods, why have they be so worn out? Has it been many years since? How long has passed?¡± Luna asked. ¡°A thousand years.¡± Negris responded. ¡°A thousand years? Has it been that long? Libra wasn¡¯t rescued immediately, and the gods had an ident? What ident happened?¡± Luna asked continuously, her eyes darting around until she quickly noticed the Inverted Heaven in the sky. Even though its vertical drop point was the Demon Valley, the Holy Kingdom was huge, looking just like a satellite. Its presence could almost be seen throughout the entire abyss. ¡°The arrival of Heaven? What happened? Why has the arrival of Heaven stopped? Is it stuck?¡± Luna asked. ¡°Yes, it¡¯s stuck,¡± Negris truthfully replied. By now, he had some spections about Luna. ¡°Getting stuck can be reversed. For now, it hasn¡¯t been reversed yet, so Heaven is out of control. Haha, it seems useful that I stole the Control Key,¡± Lunaughed heartily. ¡°Control Key?¡± Negris questioned in surprise. ¡°It¡¯s the key to control the Holy Kingdom. Without this thing, Heaven will operate ording to the predefined way. Even if it gets stuck, it won¡¯t go back¡­ No, wait. A thousand years have passed. If it was only recently that I stole the Control Key, it might still be stuck. But a thousand years have passed. Couldn¡¯t anyone deal with the problem of the Control Key? Unless all the Gods of Light are dead.¡± Luna mumbled to herself, then drew a conclusion that even she found unbelievable. She then looked at Negris for confirmation. ¡°I¡¯m not sure if they¡¯re dead, but all the Gods of Light have disappeared. Only the God of Bnce remains. I wanted to find out about the whereabouts of the Gods of Light from him, but from what you¡¯re saying, I suddenly have a bad feeling. Were the Gods of Light still around when you were petrified?¡± Negris asked. Chapter 295 - 192: Don’t Let Them Steal The Light_2 Chapter 295: Chapter 192: Don¡¯t Let Them Steal The Light_2 Did the Gods of Light disappear? Not only the Great Angel Luna, but even the Libra inside the Undead Coffin emanated astonishment. Seeing their reactions, Negris knew it was over. His hope to learn about the whereabouts of the Gods of Light and the Undead King from them shattered. ¡°So it was you who invaded Heaven and brought us out?¡± Luna guessed. Negris nodded: ¡°I think I know who you are now, Supreme Holy Spirit, Wisdom Angel. So you¡¯re Luna.¡± The Supreme Holy Spirits consist of three: Wisdom Angel, zing Angel, and Strength Angel. Valid evidence confirmed the death of at least one Supreme Holy Spirit at the hands of Steadfast Locke. From the records of the Purple Skeleton n, it was very likely the zing Angel. The Wisdom Angel usually represented the highest intelligence among the war weaponry known as Holy Spirit Angels. It was mostly them who led andmanded the battles, yet unexpectedly, one had fallen and even betrayed the Gods of Light. ¡°The name is just a code.¡± Luna didn¡¯t deny this. She turned her eyes to Shamara and asked, ¡°Why are you like me?¡± Shamara replied, ¡°The Gods betrayed me; they betrayed the Light.¡± Luna looked surprised, ¡°I never imagined a mortal could have the wisdom to see through this; you are remarkable.¡± With Luna¡¯s words, she folded her wings of light, transforming them into a ball of light. She tossed the ball of light to Shamara, ¡°I am giving you this. The Gods call our power the Power of Fall. Don¡¯t believe them. Power isn¡¯t noble or fallen, but simply determined by how we define the Sacred Light, and by light itself. It can be diverse.¡± n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Then, tearing her bracelet off and throwing it on the ground, she detached the true wings folded on her back and threw them there as well. She then struck her chest, taking out a palm-sized disc and discarding it likewise. Negris was dumbfounded, ¡°What are you doing?¡± ¡°I do not have much time left. I¡¯m leaving these things to you. If possible, please eliminate the Gods of Light. We cannot let them steal the light again,¡± Luna said. Out of time? On closer inspection, Negris noticed Luna¡¯s body was turning to ashes. It was so subtle one wouldn¡¯t see it unless they paid careful attention. ¡°Eh, what¡¯s happening?¡± Negris was puzzled. ¡°I¡¯m hurt, the Heart of the Holy Spirit has been shattered. I can¡¯t hold on for much longer. I didn¡¯t expect to be sealed by the Light of Petrification for a thousand years, so I gave you everything to avoid waste¡±, Luna said, unconcerned. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you give them to her?¡± Negris pointed to Shamara, ¡°You should have somemon traits.¡± Luna shook her head, ¡°She can¡¯t bear my power, nor protect these things.¡± With Luna¡¯s words, the greying of her body quickened. Visible dust was starting to form. Negris hurried to ask, ¡°Why did you say we can¡¯t let them steal the light anymore?¡± ¡°Light should be warm and desirable. The light defined by these evil gods is not as such. The light I understand, and the things they asked me to do were entirely different. I realized this one day, and they used me of falling. No, it¡¯s them who fell. We cannot allow them to define the light at will, or the entire world will plunge into darkness¡­¡± As she spoke, the speed of Luna turning to ash elerated, and some parts had already exposed the bone. ¡°The world will not plunge into darkness. A thousand years have passed, and the Gods of Light have disappeared. They probably did something bad and were killed by the king,¡± Negris said. ¡°Haha, that would be best. Thinking back, the Undead King was the most suitable to define the light. He gave hope to everyone¡­¡± With these words, Luna¡¯s skin, flesh and hair all disappeared into the air, leaving only a white skeleton that copsed with a crash. Gave everyone hope? What does it mean? Oi, oi, oi, don¡¯t just leave a sentence half-finished. ¡°The Bow of Petrification? A weapon capable of petrifying gods?¡± Negris picked up the pair of bracelets, examined them for a moment and tossed them to Ange. Ange put them on his skeletal hands fitting perfectly. His hands were only bones, and Luna was just about one meter forty, and so, the bracelets were nearly as thick as his bones. Moreover, it had an adaptive feature. Infusing it with a bit of Holy Light, it sticks onto the hand bone. As the infusion of Holy Light continued, the bracelet transformed with a clicking sound. It soon took on the shape of a cylindrical crossbow. However, Ange noticed that there were no arrows once he had stretched the bowstring back. ¡°There are no arrows.¡± Ange pointed to the Bow of Petrification. Negris leaned closer to study it, ¡°The Bow of Petrification probably doesn¡¯t require arrows. Look, there are several gemstones here. Infuse them with Holy Light, and they should light up. When all the gemstones are illuminated, it can be fired.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Ange immersed himself in casting Holy Light. ¡°Ah!¡± The Little Angel cried out eagerly, pointing at the True Wings of the angel on the ground. ¡°Ah!¡± Ange shook his head. The Little Angel already had a pair of True Wings, which were dug up from the Purple Skeleton ne. They were about the same size as the current pair, likely the true wings of a zing Angel. ¡°Ah!¡± ¡°Ah!¡± (Wouldn¡¯t give) ¡°Ah~¡± Hanging head in disappointment. Finally, Negris picked up the palm-sized disc: ¡°Is this the Control Key of the Holy Kingdom?¡± Lisa and Luther all curiously gathered around: ¡°With this Control Key, can we control Heaven?¡± ¡°Probably not. It can¡¯t be that easy. This is at most a key to open the control room, just like the key to the door of our transit station control room.¡± ¡°Does the door to our control room have a key?¡± ¡°Um, no, can Lord¡¯s hand count as a key?¡± ¡°What¡¯s the use of talking so much, why not try it out and see? There¡¯s no one in the Holy Kingdom, go up and give it a shot.¡± Some unknown person suggested. Negris was excited. If they could control the Holy Kingdom, not to mention moving it, just guiding the believers¡ªthose pious believers being guided to Heaven,ing out to see a skeleton leading the way¡­ Kvada, those believers¡¯ expressions must be very interesting. No, no, just thinking about it gets him excited. Negris¡¯s wicked taste sprouted again, and he couldn¡¯t suppress it no matter how hard he tried. However, he quickly thought of a very realistic problem: ¡°We can¡¯t go up without an Air Bubble Stone.¡± We can return using the Stairway to Heaven, but how do we go up? Without the Air Bubble Stone, no one can withstand the Resting Wind and fly to Heaven. ¡°Where can we find an Air Bubble Stone?¡± ¡°It should be produced in an elemental ne with a very rich Wind Element. Ask the Mercenary Guildter, or ce a reward.¡± After dealing with all the issues, only thest trouble remained. ¡°What to do with him?¡± The crowd discussed around the God of Bnce. Ange wasn¡¯t interested and continued to hold the Light of Petrification bow, pouring three hundred strands of Holy Light into it. The first gemstone of the Light of Petrification was finally lit up by him. There were still four left. No wonder even the God of Bnce can be petrified. Using Holy Light as a standard, its energy intensity is at least thirty times stronger than it. ¡°Ask him about the whereabouts of the Undead King. If he doesn¡¯t know, cut him down.¡± Someone suggested. Negris leaned in to whisper in front of the Undead Coffin: ¡°Do you know where the Undead King has gone? Where have the Gods of Light gone?¡± The God of Bnce casually said, ¡°I don¡¯t know.¡± ¡°You don¡¯t know? You don¡¯t know this, then you have no value. You will be cut down, you know?¡± Negris threatened. The God of Bnce showed a disdainful expression: ¡°Do you really think that without the Undead King¡¯s Undead Coffin, you can imprison a God of Light?¡± ¡°What do you mean?¡± Negris was instantly on high alert. Suddenly, Ange dropped the Light of Petrification bow in his hand and yanked Negris aside. The Hand of Locke trembled as hended a punch on the God of Bnce¡¯s face. Chapter 296 - 193: What It Said_1 Chapter 296: Chapter 193: What It Said_1 The God of Bnce shot divine light from his eyes, striking Ange¡¯s fist and forming a screen of light that blocked his punch. Ange retracted the Hand of Locke, and the Boundary-crossing Hand that followed was likewise blocked by the light beam emitted from the eyes of the Libra. Undeterred, Ange alternated his hands in a wild barrage of punches. ¡°Eh, doesn¡¯t the Lord have the Boundary-crossing Hand? Why doesn¡¯t he prate through?¡± Luther asked. ¡°It¡¯s not possible, the divine light is active, it can¡¯t be prated.¡± Negris replied while simultaneously warning Ange with his soul, ¡°Be careful of his Equal Cross.¡± He was afraid that Ange couldn¡¯t stop his hand, blow up the head of the God of Bnce, and then his own head would explode too. Sure enough, the God of Bnce had no fear, ¡°If you kill me, you will die too. Are you ready to die with me?¡± His response was a series of heavy punches from Ange. In the struggle between the fist and the divine light, the fist was clearly stronger. Ange¡¯s fist got closer and closer to the face of the God of Bnce with each punch. ¡°If you kill me, you will die too. Do you really want to die with me!¡± The tone of the God of Bnce was faintly panicked. Ange ignored him, facing the divine light that was shooting from his eyes, he pounded a fist into the eye socket of the God of Bnce. At the same time, numerous scales rapidly emerged from Ange¡¯s body, surging upwards from his feet. ¡°Dragon God Transformation? What is he trying to do?¡± Negris eximed. His fistnded on his face, but the God of Bnce was not rmed but rejoiced. With a ck eye, he said: ¡°You indeed¡­ oh, dare not¡­ oh, kill¡­ me, what¡¯s the point of this! As long as I abandon the Divine Body, once my Divine Gridpletes the transfer, the Undead Coffin can¡¯t imprison me!¡± The God of Bnce, disregarding Ange¡¯s barrage of punches, was roaring in rage. He was convinced that Ange did not dare to kill him, didn¡¯t dare to die with him. The Equal Cross, which was his divine technique to restrain stronger entities, was initially intended to defend against the Undead King. He disbelieves that the present skeleton in front of him was stronger than the Undead King. Ange threw the final punch vehemently,pletely transforming into the Dragon God Giant. His whole body lept back, and in the moment just beforending, it suddenly froze in ce. Negris shouted in shock, ¡°Time Stop of the Time Dragon? What is he doing?¡± Not long after his shouting, the Undead Coffin burst open, and the protector of the Undead Coffin,pletely disintegrated. If the protector had burst open, the thing inside was even more unsightly. The God of Bnce¡¯s entire head had disappeared, and the Divine Body was shattered and exploded. ¡°Dyed Concentrated Explosion Unison Formation Technique? Kvada, the negligible abilities of the Time Dragon and Space Dragon can also be used like this? He is truly a genius!¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help shouting excitedly, his tone filled with incredulity. Luther, itching to know, impatiently said, ¡°Lord, Lord, what does this mean? Please exin to us.¡± Negris had an air of exultation, he said excitedly, ¡°Haha, see who dare to say the abilities of the Time Dragon and Space Dragon are unimportant. Can you see this? This is the ughter God Technique. Time Dragon can stop time, Space Dragon can solidify space, but when applied to the enemy, it can also apply to oneself. It was initially very trivial.¡± ¡°But Ange did not use it on the enemy but on himself. Also, using the Dyed Concentrated Explosion Unison Formation Technique, he dyed the burst of damage. By the time the explosion took ce, he had already stopped his own time and solidified space. The equal reflection of the Equal Cross, which can¡¯t transcend time and space, so it can¡¯t take effect.¡± After a full twenty seconds, Ange finally moved. His feetnded on the ground, unscathed. The scales on his body swarmed and turned back into the skeletal form. Almost immediately afternding, Ange rushed forward quickly, returning to the original location of the God of Bnce. He reached out with the Boundary-crossing Hand, piercing through the space and when he drew it out, it was a fragment of Holy Light. Ange was so exhausted that he sat down on the ground. The intense dizziness didn¡¯t allow him to consider much else. He held the fragment of Holy Light and fiercely bit into it. Negris flew over in a flutter, looking at the fragment of Holy Light in Ange¡¯s hand, he asked shakily, ¡°An, Ange, this fragment isn¡¯t¡­ the divine grid of the God of Bnce, is it?¡± Ange nodded, then bit down hard again. Skeletons don¡¯t eat, he didn¡¯t even have an esophagus. This bite was just a motion, the shattered Divine Grid would turn into energy that he could absorb into his soul. As expected of the divine grid of the God of Bnce, after Ange absorbed a little, he recovered. He said stiffly, ¡°Half.¡± ¡°Half? The divine grid is shattered?¡± Nage was shocked. Ange nodded, ¡°Shattered, he¡¯s dead.¡± Negris took a deep breath, although he no longer needed to breathe, he was startled into doing so again: ¡°Ange, you¡¯ve in a god.¡± Ange tilted his head in some confusion: ¡°The second one.¡± Alright then, the second one. Hermorthos was also one, but the Insect God and the God of Bnce, were not in the same league. But Negris also knew that exining the difference between them to Ange was pointless. To him, aren¡¯t they all gods? If he killed them, he killed them, what¡¯s the big deal. ¡°Don¡¯t eat the divine essence, okay? Can it be repaired? If it can be repaired, you will have the divine essence of the God of Bnce.¡±, Negris said. Ange shook his head: ¡°I¡¯m tired, so I¡¯m off to sleep.¡± After saying that, he took another bite, and absorbed the rest in no time. Killing the God of Bnce had used up a lot of his power, making him feel as tired as when he had defeated Hermorthos. He ate half of the divine essence to replenish himself, so that he wouldn¡¯t sleep from exhaustion again. n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Kvada, half of the divine essence, you are snacking on it as if it¡¯s a supplement, I¡­ I¡­¡± Negris was so angry he didn¡¯t know what to say. The Little Zombie ran over, grinning from ear to ear. Ange tore off a piece and gave it to him. The Little Angel came running, jumping and bouncing, and then made a big circle with her hands. Ange ignored her and ripped off a piece about the same size as the one he had given to the Little Zombie and gave it to her. The Little Angel frowned unhappy, and her eyes moved to the piece in the Little Zombie¡¯s hand. The Little Zombie was startled, and without a word, he stuffed it all in his mouth and swallowed it all at once. Even though the piece of divine essence was small, it was still a part of one of the Gods of Light¡¯s divine essence. The Little Zombie became so swollen that light was emitted from his seven orifices and he cried out in panic. The Little Angel pouted and fiercely bit down on her piece, and then light also began to emit from her seven orifices, as she cried out in a simr panic. A tiny piece of divine essence was enough for them to digest for a while. Having held his breath for a bit, Negris couldn¡¯t help but turn back and ask curiously: ¡°How did youe up with the idea to use a time stop to break the Equal Cross?¡± Ange tilted his head: ¡°It said so.¡± ¡°It?¡± Negris probably understood what he meant, but couldn¡¯t help but ask anyway. ¡°When I transformed, it spoke.¡± Ange said. Yes, ¡®it¡¯ said so. It was engraved in their bloodline and passed down to all dragon descendants. Negris sighed deeply. Unfortunately, the dragon descendants had forgotten about this power, and couldn¡¯t even perform Dragon God Transformation, let alone activate these advanced knowledge. Dragon God, your offspring, are unworthy. He was filled with deep feelings, but soon his attention was caught by something else: ¡°Ange, what is that on your head?¡± Above Ange¡¯s head, at some point, a faint halo had appeared. As Ange absorbed the divine essence, it became more and more solid. In the Prime Material ne, in the Curia, in the Hall of Gods, a statue of a god with outstretched hands forming a cross and arge halo on his back, cracked open without warning. PS: My wife fell off the shared bike that she rode, so I have to take care of her, no time to write more, I¡¯ll update the next chapter before dawn. You guys are amazing at the event, we quickly reached 90%, unfortunately, I¡¯ve been busytely, and keeping up with the updates is hard already, let¡¯s wait a bit, until my mother-inwes over. Once someone helps with the kid, I will give you a big update, thank you in advance for your understanding. Chapter 297 - 194: Brought a Gift for the Adult_1 Chapter 297: Chapter 194: Brought a Gift for the Adult_1 ¡°The statue of the god has cracked!¡± ¡°The statue cracked? Why did the statue crack? Who cleaned it?¡± ¡°It cracked when no one was cleaning.¡± ¡°Is it due to thermal expansion and contraction? These statues must be over a thousand years old by now, right? It¡¯s about time they were reced. The old records mention a period over a thousand years ago when arge number of statues cracked in session, potentially due to improperly controlled temperature and humidity. They were all reced then.¡± ¡°Uh, no, the statue cracked, shouldn¡¯t that be a big deal? What does temperature and humidity have to do with it?¡± ¡°Are you dumb? If it doesn¡¯t have to do with temperature and humidity, then why do we strictly maintain them here? There¡¯s even a limitation on the number of people allowed in each day. Others may not care, but we certainly need to analyse the cause. If we don¡¯t identify the correct cause, what are we going to do if it cracks again?¡± ¡°But, the statues should be protected by divine power, how could they randomly crack?¡± ¡°That¡¯s where you¡¯re wrong. We need to be realistic. You¡¯ve been here for so long, have you ever seen the statues disy a miracle?¡± ¡°No.¡± ¡°Not only have you not seen it, neither have I. I have looked up records spanning eight hundred years, and there¡¯s no record of any miraculous urrence. How can you be so certain that they¡¯re under divine protection?¡± ¡°But, isn¡¯t that what the clergy, priests, and bishops all say?¡± ¡°What they say is one thing, you have to respect objective truth. The easiest way for a statue to crack is because of temperature and humidity, especially these pure stone statues carved from a single stone block. If they were cheap, mass-produced statues, they¡¯d actually be less likely to crack.¡± Hispanion seemed somewhat convinced, hesitating as he asked: ¡°So, what do we do now?¡± ¡°Go to the storage room to see if there¡¯s anything that can patch up the statue.¡± After rummaging around in the storage room, the two found a statue in a corner: ¡°My god, how fortunate, it¡¯s a statue of the God of Bnce, the same one that just broke.¡± ¡°I remember now, the records mention that when those statues cracked all those centuries ago, there was one that didn¡¯t crack ¨C the statue of the God of Bnce. But because they could get a discount on purchasing a set, they carved a new set instead. This one wasn¡¯t put in ce, so the one that just cracked was old? It had over a thousand years of history?¡± ¡°So what do we do now?¡± ¡°What do you mean, ¡®what do we do now¡¯? Just rece it, isn¡¯t such a coincidence a sign from the gods?¡± ¡°What about the one that cracked?¡± ¡°Of course, we¡¯ll move it out. But we can¡¯t just throw away such a sacred item. It¡¯s only cracked, the rest of it is still in good condition. We¡¯ll have it repaired, then let the devout followers take it home for worship. The donations received will be used to improve our lives, allowing us to serve the gods more effectively.¡± ¡°Is¡­ Is this really alright? I¡¯m a little scared.¡± ¡°What¡¯s there to be afraid of? This kind of ancient relic can sell for hundreds of demon crystals even in its cracked state. If you dare to block my fortune, I¡¯ll kill you.¡± ¡°Alright then¡­¡± For various reasons, the incident of the cracked statue in the Hall of Gods was not reported. Even if it had, it likely wouldn¡¯t have been taken very seriously. As the watcher pointed out, there¡¯s no record of any miracle being showcased by the statues for over a thousand years. Though the essible records only go back eight hundred years, preceding records were burnt in a fire. But based on existing records, it¡¯s highly probable the statues from eight hundred years ago did not showcase any miracles either. So, it cracked, big deal. Is there anything in this world that willst forever? ¡°The¡­ the thing on your head is¡­¡± Negris circled around Ange, observing him repetitively. He then spoke uncertainly: ¡°It kind of looks like the halo on the statue of the God of Bnce.¡± Ange raised his head and looked up, then with a thought, the halo disappeared. With another thought, the halo reappeared. ¡°So, you can keep it hidden? That¡¯s pretty good, otherwise with a bigmp on top of your head, it¡¯s a bit blinding. But it¡¯s a shame it¡¯s not a God status, what¡¯s the purpose of it?¡± Negris asked. Shamara, with her gigantic ck light wings fluttering, floated past and said, ¡°The Ring of Bnce, capable of measuring all things in the universe, nts, trees, wind, rain, thunder, and lightning all have their own mass. This is the Ring that measures everything. Only when the material has been measured, can you tell whether the two ends of the crucifix are equal.¡± ¡°Measure everything? Everything can be measured? That¡¯s incredible? How do you use it? Why didn¡¯t Libra use it?¡± Negris eximed in surprise. ¡°I don¡¯t know, maybe he didn¡¯t have time to use it. The Ring of Bnce requires a powerful spiritual power to operate. The weaker the spiritual power of the opponent, the easier it is to measure.¡± Shamara said. ¡°Pfft¡­¡± Negris understood. The God of Bnce probably didn¡¯t run out of time to use it. He likely had used it and it didn¡¯t work, because the spiritual power of the Undead God surpassed that of the God of Bnce. ¡°As for how to use it, I¡¯m not sure. It may need Lord Ange to slowly explore it. Lord, I wish to leave now. Can you send me away?¡± n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om With her head covered, Shamara entered the Teleportation Array and left the Abyss Dimension. ¡°Is it okay to let her leave just like that? She should be really powerful, don¡¯t you want to try and convince her to follow Lord?¡± Lisa asked, not understanding. She was extremely keen on persuading others to pledge their loyalty to Ange and didn¡¯t want to give up such a powerful Fallen Angel so easily. Negris was taken aback: ¡°Absolutely not, her beliefs are too strong. Having her in the team would be like having a ticking time bomb. The minute there¡¯s something she disagrees with, she¡¯d turn against you without a second thought. It¡¯s too risky. There can¡¯t be someone with beliefs that strong in a team.¡± ¡°What do you mean?¡± Lisa pondered. ¡°What I mean is, the people on our team, when Ange tells them to farm, they should get into the field barefooted without hesitation. Otherwise, I¡¯d rather not have them.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t want to farm! There¡¯s Aunt Cow¡¯s manure in the fields. I am not stepping into that field!¡± Lisa red up. Chapter 298 - 194: Brought a Gift for the Adult_2 Chapter 298: Chapter 194: Brought a Gift for the Adult_2 ¡°Analogy, analogy, if you don¡¯t want to do it, don¡¯t do it. Ange wouldn¡¯t be happy if you did anyway. What if you identally trampled and ruined it? What I meant was that obedience is more important than power.¡± ¡°Anyway, I won¡¯t do farm work. Anything else is fine.¡± ¡°Then you can go and pick manure with Little Angel.¡± ¡°Ah! I¡¯ll kill you!¡± So, all the followers present saw a shocking scene. The kind-hearted and caring sister-like Lisa started chasing and beating Bronze Dragon. There¡¯s a new bounty at the Mercenary Guild of Rnd City: Find a stone that can create air bubbles at high wind speeds. The reward is one hundred Demon Crystals. Almost the next day, someone brought a stone to im the reward. Because you can trade anonymously through the Teleportation Array, the reward initiator doesn¡¯t even have to go to the Mercenary Guild personally. You just need to connect to the public Teleportation Array of the Mercenary Guild, pay somemunication and teleportation costs, and pay the reward in advance. ¡°Is it that convenient?¡± Negris couldn¡¯t believe what he was seeing, as Lisa was operating in front of the Teleportation Array, he said unbelievably. ¡°Of course, if it¡¯s not convenient and confidential, who would issue a bounty through the Mercenary Guild? Themission is fifteen percent. For a reward of one hundred Demon Crystals, I have to pay one hundred and fifteen Demon Crystals, plus three Demon Crystals for teleportation fees. It¡¯s a total loss,¡± Lisa said painfully. n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om The stone that was teleported over was indeed the Air Bubble Stone. The final hurdle to Ange¡¯s visit to the Holy Kingdom was thus solved. ¡°How is it? Is this the one? If it is, then I¡¯ll confirm it. If not, the stone has to be returned, and the reward will continue,¡± Lisa said. ¡°What if I switch the stone?¡± Negris curiously asked. Lisaughed, ¡°The Mercenary Guild is responsible for appraisal. If we switch the stone, they will directly terminate the bounty, pay the reward to the other party, and this Teleportation Array will be cklisted.¡± ¡°They also appraise? Then the fifteen percentmission is not too high. It is indeed the Air Bubble Stone we need. Can we add more to the reward, ask the person who imed the bounty, where these Air Bubble Stonese from? One is too few. If we frequently travel to and from Heaven in the future, more of these stones would be beneficial.¡± ¡°That¡¯s possible.¡± Another one hundred Demon Crystals were added to ask about the origin of the Air Bubble Stone. Soon, the other side replied that the mercenary whopleted the bounty wanted to talk to them personally. ¡°Hello, boss, I can provide you with arge number of these stones. It only costs five Demon Crystals per piece.¡± A sincere voice came from the other side, and it sounded a bit familiar. Negrisughed in anger. He offered a bounty of one hundred Demon Crystals because it mighte from another ne. Any object, even a stone, from another ne could be worth a hundred or so Demon Crystals. But as long as there¡¯s a way to obtain it, it¡¯s just a piece of stone. Perhaps in other nes, it¡¯s just a stone that can be found anywhere. You want to sell a stone for five Demon Crystals? ¡°One hundred Demon Crystals, I want all the information about this stone. If you¡¯re not willing to tell us, then we¡¯ll continue to post rewards. Of all the mercenaries in the world, you¡¯re probably not the only one who knows the origin of this stone.¡± ¡°Why bother? It¡¯s too tiring and troublesome to get it yourself. You might as well buy from me. At most, I can give you a little discount. Four and a half Demon Crystals for a stone, how about it? Four? Three, the lowest is three, can¡¯t be less. Hey, why are you so stingy? One per one, one Demon Crystal is the lowest.¡± Negris really wanted to cut off themunication, but the more he listened, the more familiar this voice became. He held back his temper and continued to listen and think about where he had heard this voice before? ¡°Why are you more stingy than an Elf? Okay fine, one hundred Demon Crystals then. I¡¯ll tell you which ne produces this kind of stone, but how you¡¯re going to get there and whether you can find this kind of stone when you get there, I can¡¯t guarantee that,¡± the voice on the other side said. Elf? Negris suddenly remembered why the voice was so familiar. He tentatively asked, ¡°Silver Coin?¡± ¡°Ah? Who are you?¡± The guy on the other side got scared, and his voice became panicked. It felt as if he was about to trade with a tavern maid, and the boss suddenly called out his name. ¡°Find a safe ce, I¡¯ll look for youter,¡± Negris said cautiously. This connection is with the Mercenary Guild¡¯s Teleportation Array, which is not safe. Silver Coin also realised this point, and he quickly guessed who was on the other end of the line. Being talked to in this tone and with the confidence to be able to reach him at any time, it could only be Anthony or Lord Ange. The person speaking was that underdeveloped Bronze Dragon. While Silver Coin was looking for a safe ce, Negris couldn¡¯t help butin to Ange, ¡°Why does Silver Coin have Air Bubble Stones, and you didn¡¯t know? Isn¡¯t he your fervent disciple?¡± Ange tilted his head, ¡°Can¡¯t farm.¡± Negris was so irritated that his beard bristled, ¡°So you¡¯re saying that because you can¡¯t use them for farming, Silver Coin might have mentioned it to you, but you didn¡¯t remember, right?¡± Ange nodded. Negris was powerless. He suspected that many things were being overlooked by Ange. If it had nothing to do with farming, he wouldn¡¯t pay it any mind at all. It seemed usible. Even though Silver Coin was his fervent disciple, and with the Elf¡¯s business permit and tax-exempt status, with Silver Coin¡¯s ability to scheme and manoeuvre, he would definitely prosper. He vaguely remembered that Anthony had mentioned it before, that Silver Coin was doing very well. Anthony even borrowed money from him, but Ange never talked about Silver Coin¡¯s situation. Chapter 299 - 194: Brought a Gift for the Adult_3 Chapter 299: Chapter 194: Brought a Gift for the Adult_3 n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Fanatics would never fail to report to him, the only possibility was that what they had to report wasn¡¯t of interest to him, and he didn¡¯t pay attention to it. Great, what he could have gotten with just a silver coin, the Air Bubble Stone, he now had to put in time and effort to im a reward from the Mercenary Guild, wasting time and more than a hundred Demon Crystals in the process. After finding a safe teleportation array, Silver Coin teleported directly to him. As soon as he left the Teleportation Array and saw Ange, he ran over in a flurry, excitedly shouting, ¡°Master Ange, your divine power is endless, your soul is at peace.¡± With his shout, a ghostly figure appeared from Silver Coin. The shadow looked like Silver Coin, but with a pile of Demon Crystals in his arms, a backpack on his back that was taller than him, and several bags in his hands, all filled with Demon Crystals. The Divine Soul is a manifestation of a fanatic¡¯s most devout belief. The image of Silver Coin¡¯s Divine Soul was simply greedy and money-obsessed to the extreme. The Divine Soul entered Ange¡¯s body. ¡°What, no, why can he awaken his Divine Soul? Howe I can¡¯t? How can he do it?¡± Lisa asked indignantly, wondering if Negris or Anthony had given Silver Coin some secret tips. ¡°Because, my belief in Master Ang is more sincere than yours,¡± Silver Coin said with a smile, while taking off his never-leave-his-side Goblin Grocery Store, and said, ¡°Sir, I have brought you some gifts, I don¡¯t know if you will like them.¡± Lisa sucked in a breath of cold air. God, when this damn goblin imed his sincerity was greater than hers, she was not convinced, but now he actually brought gifts for Master Ange? Gifts! Why hadn¡¯t she thought of that? Why had she never thought to bring gifts for Master Ange? In this moment, Lisa was so ashamed that she almost wanted to p herself. How did they, as believers, never think of bringing gifts for Master Ang? Don¡¯t they have hearts as believers! ¡°Sir, I have collected the seeds of almost all the crops of the Prime Material ne by myself, and also by cing bounties in the Mercenary Guild and Druid Guild. I hope you will like them.¡± Silver Coin presented arge hemp bag, full of small bottles, each with a few or even a dozen seeds, and the name of the seed and some simple information written on it, such as perennial or annual, grass or shrub, heat-loving or chill-loving. It was obvious that these were collected andbeled with great care. Lisa¡¯s heart thudded. She was doomed, Master Ang would definitely like these. Sure enough, Ange came over with a curious tilt of his head. After a quick count, there were more than one thousand six hundred and seventy different types of crop seeds, for food, medicine, economic purposes, almost everything that people had ever nted, Silver Coin had collected. Of course, a material ne could not just have these many nts. Silver Coin said, ¡°Those wildflowers and grasses that no one nts were not collected. If you want them, I will go back and organize people to collect them in the wild.¡± ¡°It¡¯s all over now. In Master Ange¡¯s eyes, Silver Coin has undoubtedly surpassed us all. We are going to lose Master Ang¡¯s favor.¡± Lisa thought despondently. Ange absolutely loved this gift. With more than one thousand six hundred crop seeds, he had more than a thousand things to y with. Ange unabashedly examined each and every bottle, then one by one, stuffed them into the Resting Camp. His meticulousness showed just how much he loved these things. Upon further inspection, Ange soon noticed one particr seed, because it had a faint scent of Holy Light. ¡°What is this?¡± Ange looked at the bottle which had a seed named: ntman. ¡°Oh, I remember this, it was from one of my bounties. Some mysterious guy imed it, he told me it was stolen from the curia, and if nted in the ground, it could grow into a person. He wanted to sell it for a hundred thousand Demon Crystals.¡± Talking about this, Silver Coin was angry: ¡°I don¡¯t believe it, I gave him ten gold coins to get rid of him. I asked him how to nt it, he said it has to be nted in the most sacred, and fertile soil, a condition that can only be fulfilled by the Holy Kingdom or the curia, clearly a scam. But the seed with a Holy Light scent is rare, so I just packed it up along.¡± Negris leaned over: ¡°You know he is lying and yet you wasted ten gold coins?¡± ¡°There was no choice, he looked like a pitiful old man, almost as old as me.¡± Silver Coin was in his nies this year, if he hadn¡¯t been slightly longer-lived being a Goblin, ordinary people of his age would have been considered to have a long life by that time. ¡°Huh? Something is off, you are being generous? But you got one thing wrong though, not having a way to verify doesn¡¯t necessarily mean it is a lie.¡± PS: After the third level, all the big shots are amazingly cool. Chapter 300 - 195: Dimensional War Fortress_1 Chapter 300: Chapter 195: Dimensional War Fortress_1 As the Resting Wind was about to blow, Ange rode Lightning up to the Holy Kingdom. In Lightning¡¯s mouth was a stick, with an Air Bubble Stone at the end. The stone is encased, and whenever Lightning bit down on the end of the stick, the case would flip open, activating the Air Bubble Stone. It had never had a chance to y with this before, so out of curiosity, it bit down a few times, watching the bubble flicker around its body before Ange pped it on its head. Lightning obediently closed its mouth. It never dared to talk back to Ange. For one, Ange wouldn¡¯t understand it, and two, if he did, he would definitely beat it. It knew very well who it could and couldn¡¯t offend. The reason Ange chose to ride Lightning instead of White Neck was because of Lightning¡¯s ability to hover in the air for extended periods. Arriving early at the barrier surrounding the Holy Kingdom, the Resting Wind had yet to blow. Lightning was bored, stamping at empty air and looking around aimlessly. Ange extended his Boundary-crossing Hand into the Temple of Rest, ying with it attentively. This time, the silver coin gave him many seeds, more than a thousand different kinds. His dilemma now was deciding which ones to nt first. When the Resting Wind blew, Lightning hurriedly opened the case, allowing the Air Bubble Stone in upwind position to activate. The triggered air bubble enveloped both Ange and Lightning. Thebined height of a man and horse was less than three meters. If they stood quietly, the bubble could cover them both. That¡¯s why he rode Lightning. The Holy Kingdom was the biggest structure for the wind to hit. The Resting Wind blowing at its barrier resulted in numerous strange transformations. Some of the wind streamed along the surface of the barrier like water. Some turned into swirling vortexes, spinning in certain areas while others circled half of the perimeter before crashing with other gustsing from the opposite direction. The barrier was not made of physical matter, but an energy structure. It had many kinds of linkages, dys, and stacking effects with the Resting Wind, to the extent that no one knew which effects were active when the Resting Wind blew a hole through it. After standing still for more than twenty minutes and still no sign of barrier damage, Negris, reflected upon Ange¡¯s body, sighed, ¡°The timing of the barrier breakdown is unpredictable. Without the Air Bubble Stone, there¡¯s no way to be here. If we had to stand here aimlessly for more than ten minutes without any damage, we¡¯d be screwed.¡± Lightning heaved a sigh and quickly chimed in, ¡°Exactly, it should give you a precise signal, saying it¡¯ll break in ten minutes if it indeed breaks in ten, not a second more.¡± Being alone with Ange was nerve-wracking and awkward. It didn¡¯t know if it should engage Ange in conversation or remain silent and not disturb him. This simr feeling of being with a higher-up was distressing. Negris¡¯sments were like a lifeline that it quicklytched onto, eagerly adding in its agreement. Although it thought it was agreeing, Negris felt mocked, ¡°Are you making fun of me?¡± ¡°No, I¡¯m not, don¡¯t talk nonsense.¡± Lightning hurriedly denied. In the midst of the hubbub, Ange suddenly leapt onto the barrier. It was clear he¡¯d found a weak point. He hammered at it until the barrier broke and they were able to enter the Holy Kingdom once again. Angended in the Arena of Gods the moment they arrived, letting everyone out first. Given theirst experience, they weren¡¯t afraid of unexpected dangers, so more people came along with almost everyone who was free joined. It seemed like no one was busy¡­ The za pavement had been liftedst time and Elf Beans were nted. After seven or eight days, the Elf Beans had sprouted and grew to the size they would be in about seven months. Because of Ange, Negris had also be somewhat skilled at farming. Looking at the beans, hemented, ¡°Their growth is good. They really don¡¯t need watering or fertilizing. This soil is extraordinary.¡± Without a word, Ange chose a corner, piled up a small mound of soil, and nted the second seed of ntman there. There were only two seeds of ntman. The first had been nted in the Temple of Rest which had a heap of Divine Country soil. nting the seeds in two different locations would enable them topare whether the environment or the soil was most important for growth. Compared to nting, Negris was more concerned about the Control Key. He took it out and asked, ¡°Is it sorted out yet? When it¡¯s done, let¡¯s go check the Control Key to see if it can control Heaven.¡± Lisa and Anna¡¯s eyes shimmered, filled with exhration. The Holy Kingdom soon would be controlled by the Undead God. It¡¯s thrilling just to think about it. They arrived at the holy temple, which was almost the core of the Holy Kingdom. The top was theunch array of the Heavenly Stairs, housed many Angel relics, and was also the control hub. n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om But the most critical area was even further down. Without the Control Key before, they hadn¡¯t been able to find this area. Now they had it, and as Ange walked into the holy temple, the floor before them sank quietly revealing a flight of stairs. Walking down the stairs, two heavily armored zombies led the way as usual. All went smoothly as they arrived at a circr room. The circr room stood with a dozen crystal pirs, each as high as two meters. With Ange¡¯s entrance, all these crystal pirs lit up. Not just them, but the whole ground also lit up. The entire floor was also made out of crystal, or perhaps some type of Crystal Stone. When it lit up, Ange saw something he recognized. ¡°A coordinate map? Wow, even more coordinates than the World Transfer Station, many of which are not avable at the Transfer Station. As expected from the Church of Light, truly impressive.¡± Lisa eximed in awe. ¡°Impressive is an understatement, it¡¯s not like the World Transfer Station. It can move ¨C look, those green dots above clearly indicate ces it can descend and carry out ne transfers. It¡¯s nothing less than a fortress for attacking other nes.¡± Negris marveled. Chapter 301 - 195: Dimensional War Fortress_2 Chapter 301: Chapter 195: Dimensional War Fortress_2 Everyone gasped. The Holy Kingdom is actually a war fortress in a different dimension? ¡°There are not many green dots, there are more red ones. Does red mean they cannot be transported? Why?¡± Lisa asked curiously. ¡°Either it¡¯s too far away, or there¡¯s a dimensional barrier. Take the Prime Material ne as an example. Its dimensional barrier is much thicker than this Holy Kingdom¡¯s. The Holy Kingdom simply can¡¯t get there,¡± Negris exined. Lisa asked, ¡°You mean it can¡¯t just hang upside down over our home like it is now? Doesn¡¯t the Resting Abyss have a barrier?¡± ¡°Of course not, even approaching can¡¯t be done, not to mention transporting. The Heavenly Ladder can¡¯t transport to very distant locations, so in the history of the Prime Material ne, you won¡¯t find any records of the Heavenly Stage or Heavenly Arrival. As for whether the Resting Abyss has a barrier? If it had a barrier, it wouldn¡¯t be called an abyss.¡± n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om The most significant difference between an abyss and a ne lies in the presence of a barrier. Those with barriers are called nes. Those without are called abysses. No dimensional barriers means it¡¯s a world without defenses, where anyone cane and go as they please, as long as they have a beacon or coordinates. Why does the Undead Empire build their transit stations in such defenseless abysses? Simply because there¡¯s no barrier. With barriers, the energy consumed by transportation would be multiplied several times or even dozens of times. If both dimensions have barriers, then the energy consumption would multiply again. For particrly thick barriers, weak points have to be found, otherwise the teleportation array would need to multiply its energy to prate the barrier. The Undead Empire purposely set up a transit station in a ce without a dimensional barrier, allowing people from all major dimensions toe here freely for trade, everyone gets what they need. The Undead Empire is confident because they are the greatest barrier in this ne. The Undead Empire has the confidence to protect the transit station, but Ange doesn¡¯t, so until now, the World Transit Station hasn¡¯t dared to open, as if it¡¯s guarding a golden trade route for a begging bowl. Of course, even if Ange had the confidence to open it, he wouldn¡¯t let it open, because the World Transit Station can¡¯t cultivatend. ¡°Can it be activated?¡± Lisa asked again. Negris took the control key from Ange, checked it, and said with a bitter face, ¡°I dare not touch it. I¡¯m afraid it will fall.¡± Firstly, He didn¡¯t know how to control the Holy Kingdom. Despite having the control key, there was no instruction manual or beginner¡¯s guide for how to use it. Secondly, the Holy Kingdom was stuck when descending. Who knew if it could still move? What if they messed around with it and it fell down, ruining the Resting Abyss? ¡°Ugh, can¡¯t we do anything?¡± As a former Saintess, a Forsworn, an old witch, Lisa was reluctant. The Holy Kingdom, a ce they now upy, the nest of the Gods of Light, and they couldn¡¯t do anything? ¡°We aren¡¯tpletely helpless, we can still check the coordinate system map.¡± Negris had just finished speaking when he saw Ange squatting on the floor, drawing circles with his fingers on the ground, and the entire coordinate system map moved back and forth with his fingers. He carefully examined every dot representing the nes and abysses. Negris leaned over to look at some introductions to the nes disyed on the coordinates, then nced at Ange, asking confusedly, ¡°What are you looking for?¡± ¡°Looking for a ce where we can grow crops,¡± Ange responded. ¡°Pfft¡­ I knew it¡­¡± Negris almost spat out blood. Apart from this, Ange would not be interested in anything else. However, his efforts were destined to be in vain. Suitable for nt growth, every ne definitely has a strong dimensional barrier. In the following days, Negris kept dragging Ange to try and figure out how to control the whole system, but with theck of information and instructions, their aplishments were few. One of the few achievements they made was activating one of the crystal steles. The Crystal Stele first showed some patterns made up of rays of light. After fluctuating for a while, a crying voice came from the crystal stele, ¡°Supreme Light, please grant me the power to heal everything and save my child.¡± The Crystal Stele kept flickering, and finally, some blurry images appeared on the stele. A two-three months old baby was crying loudly. Something had bitten off the baby¡¯s thigh, the wound jagged and bloody. A pair of rough hands tightly held the baby¡¯s wound, praying tearfully for a miracle to happen. The image disyed on the stele was from the perspective of the owner of these hands. It was blurry because his eyes were filled with tears. Buge was just an ordinary viger from a small vige. He devoutly worshipped the Gods of Light, prayed earnestly, donated monthly, redeemed his original sin, and prayed for peace for his children and descendants. Although he had never seen a miracle in his life, from childhood to adulthood, he firmly believed that the Gods of Light would protect him. As long as he was devout enough, the Light would protect his whole family. Three months ago, his wife gave birth to a daughter, but she died from excessive bleeding during a difficult childbirth, leaving him and his daughter to depend on each other for survival. The devout Buge did not me the Gods of Light for not protecting his wife. He only med himself for not being devout enough. For his daughter¡¯s health and happy growth, Buge served the gods even more devoutly. How could he be more devout? The priest told him that everyone was born with original sin. Because of sin, they were banished from Heaven and needed to redeem the sins on their bodies to return to Heaven. Chapter 302 - 195: Dimensional War Fortress_3 Chapter 302: Chapter 195: Dimensional War Fortress_3 n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om How can one be redeemed? The priest says: I don¡¯t know. Each person¡¯s sin is different. Perhaps it is greed, perhaps it isziness, only God knows. The only thing the priest knows is that donations are the best way to redeem the sins of the body. Every silver coin you donate has the potential to help three fellow believers. That is redemption. Buge, in a daze, donated most of his wealth and nned to work harder to make more money to donate. Carrying his three-month-old daughter, he came to the back hill to prepare to dig some mushrooms. Very few people eat mushrooms in this era. This food requires a lot of fat and spices; otherwise it¡¯s hard to eat and has little nutrition. Therefore, Buge¡¯s primary target is the holy mushroom, which, when dried and ground, has a strong hemostatic and healing effect. It is very popr among both the church and adventurers. Of course, Buge would not sell to adventurers. He intended to donate to the church to redeem the sins of himself and his daughter. He didn¡¯t notice that his daughter was actually smaller than the average baby, because he donated most of his money and couldn¡¯t buy enough milk. Bringing a baby up the mountain is even more dangerous. Leaving aside the snakes, insects, rats, and ants in the mountains, even the cold and damp air is enough to harm a baby. Nevertheless, Buge was convinced that doing this was good for his daughter. He believed the Gods of Light would protect him and his daughter. Then, he encountered a wolf. As he climbed the tree, the wolf pounced and bit off his daughter¡¯s leg. Buge held his daughter, wept in despair. With a wolf underneath the tree and his daughter grievously wounded, if not treated promptly, the three-month-old baby could die from blood loss alone. Buge unleashed a faith greater than he¡¯d ever had before, weeping and begging the gods to save them. Ange tentatively extended his consciousness towards the crystal stele, towards the image of the baby, towards the wound on the broken leg. With the Face Purification Technique, Ange could stop the bleeding of this kind of wound, so he attempted to use it. Buge, on the other end of the stele, suddenly felt a power flowing into his body, his hands were lifted uncontrobly, and a divine light emitted from his palm, wiping on his daughter¡¯s wound. The bloody wound visibly and quickly began to heal. ¡°A miracle¡­ a miracle indeed, protection of Light, protection of Light¡­¡± As Buge murmured, something started flowing incessantly into the crystal stele. ¡°God, save my daughter, save my daughter, I will donate all my possessions, to redeem my sins.¡± Buge said agitatedly yet devoutly. With a bit of hesitation, Ange reached his hands towards the stele, and surprisingly, his hands went through it. He curiously embraced the image of the baby in the monument and gently pulled it out. When his hands were pulled back, an extra baby appeared in them. ¡°Kvada, is this even possible?¡± Negris¡¯s eyes were about to pop out from their sockets. Can these crystals prate through space? Buge in the projection, naturally there was no baby in his arms. He was so thrilled that he knelt down on the tree, knocking his head on the bark, ¡°Protection of Light, eternal brilliance of the Gods, Protection of Light, eternal brilliance of the Gods¡­¡± As he was doing this, a wolf¡¯s howl woke him up. He looked down and saw several wolves under the tree, one particrlyrge and calf-sized one, was staring at him fiercely. Buge suddenly realized that he was still in danger and began to pray loudly, ¡°Gods protect me, grant me power, destroy the evil wolves.¡± The leading wolf, with a run-up, jumped, knocked Buge down from the tree, and bit off his throat. This time, there was nothing that could invoke the protection of Light for him. Negris floated up, Little Angel and Little Zombie came running, curiously staring at the fragile baby in Ange¡¯s hands, reaching out to poke but hesitating. Chapter 303 - 196 Plantman Sprouts_1 Chapter 303: Chapter 196 ntman Sprouts_1 Ange dripped the Holy Essence Liquid onto the baby¡¯s severed leg, continuously casting Holy Light as the leg slowly started to grow back bit by bit. Lisa held the baby with a pained expression: ¡°Oh dear, who could do this? A wolf¡¯s bite? Damned wolf, wait for Auntie to find some wolf skin to make you clothes. Who took you to the wolf¡¯s den? You¡¯re only three months old, how ruthless! Her father? Where¡¯s her father? I¡¯ll break his leg. What? The wolf killed him?¡± Negris curiously circled the crystal monument, voicing his uncertainty: ¡°Could this be the legendary Angel Descending Monument?¡± Luther leaned in to ask: ¡°Like a Holy Spirit Possession, like Shamara¡¯s?¡± ¡°Yes, devout magicians can summon angels to descend upon them, their strength surges dramatically, it¡¯s quite troublesome. This kind of surge is unpredictable. Some typically weak individuals, with the descent of an angel, can rip apart a Minotaur. It¡¯s hard to estimate the enemy¡¯s strength, so when battling with a magician of the Church of Light, one must unleash all their power.¡± After a moment¡¯s pause, Negris added: ¡°However, the Holy Spirit Angel that Shamara is possessed by, she created it herself.¡± ¡°She created it? She made a Holy Spirit Angel? Is she that powerful?¡± Luther¡¯s eyes nearly bulged out in shock. ¡°Otherwise, how could she be a Fallen Angel and a fake God,¡± Negris retorted. Luther eximed, shocked: ¡°I thought she was weak because she acted so obediently in front of Lord Nage, I was thinking of challenging her before. Who would¡¯ve thought she was so powerful? Right, I just broke through to bing a High-level Sword Saint, my realm is unstable, I need practice and testing, Lord Nage, please help me find a same-level opponent.¡± Negris scoffed: ¡°Wait until Ange beats you up, then you¡¯ll know why Shamara acts so obediently, and you¡¯ll surely be obedient as well.¡± n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Ever since Ange mastered the Ultimate Transformation Technique and Dragon God Transformation Technique, his fighting power had be immeasurable. Negris didn¡¯t have a clue how powerful Ange was now, anyway, he had already killed two Gods. The baby¡¯s severed leg had fully grown back. Once thest bit of skin and flesh were repaired, Ange released his mental control over the baby. Immediately, the baby began to wail, its voice clear and full of vigor, causing Lisa to involuntarily flinch, the cry almost simr to a Soul Impact. ¡°Oh dear, oh dear, what¡¯s wrong with the baby? Did it hurt? Did Uncle Skeleton hurt you? It didn¡¯t hurt? Are you hungry? Oh dear, where could I find breast milk? Vania, Vania.¡± Vania, who ran in like a bear, upon hearing Lisa¡¯s words, twisted her fingers nervously and shyly said, ¡°I¡­ I am still a virgin, I don¡¯t have any.¡± No one could be found who was able to nurse, not even a horse. None of the horses Ange had in the Resting Pce were of nursing age. Now, what could they do? The baby continued its relentless crying,pletely disregarding the situation. Lisa temporarily plugged the baby¡¯s mouth with her thumb and asked anxiously, ¡°What do we do now? Lord, do you have anything the baby can eat? You can¡¯t be considering bringing a cow up here, can you?¡± Ange took out a fruit. ¡°Hiss, a Fruit of Life from the World Tree? How do you have these? Did you stimte that sickly branch?¡± Negris gasped. Ange shook his head: ¡°It grew.¡± Negris couldn¡¯t be bothered to ask any more questions, given the curt two-word answer he received. The answers to these questions were better left to his own observations. After recalling from the Resting Pce and moving the Bronze Book to the field, he immediately saw the sick branch from the World Tree. After obtaining the Insect Ash Liquid, Ange transnted a sick branch of the World Tree to the field. Unlike regr World Trees, this branch was cut from the ancient World Tree and was already 91,000 years old. Now, the branch was entirely clear of the blemishes it once had. The buds and leaves were sprouting fresh and green, obviously indicating that the transntation was sessful. A fresh breakage pointed out where Ange had plucked the fruit he presented earlier from the branch. ¡°My God, Ange really cured the World Tree.¡± Negris had been prepared mentally when he saw the disease spots decreasing, but he was still greatly shocked when it was sessful. His old friend, the World Tree, had been saved. Seeing the projection onto his dragon form, Negris said with envy: ¡°The little guy is really lucky to eat the Fruit of Life from childhood, I hope he can have a long life just like an elf.¡± The little one stared with clear and wide eyes, clinging to Ange¡¯s finger forcefully, seemingly oblivious to what was said. At that moment, the Angel Descending Monument flickered again. A voice rang out: ¡°The omnipotent Lord, your followers are suffering from the gue, please save us, gift us the Holy Water, and exterminate the dreadful dysentery.¡± Along with this voice, another image appeared on the monument. It was from the first-person perspective again. In the center was a barrel filled with murky water. Surrounding the barrel, apart from the viewpoint of the first-person, was arge group of ragged humans, all bowing their heads around the barrel. ¡°This is the cleanest water we could find. A few days ago, during the flood, a lot of people and livestock drowned. Then, dysentery broke out. Everyone was vomitting and having diarrhea. We quickly couldn¡¯t hold out, almighty Lord. Buck, the faithful of Baki vige, lead the surviving vigers in offering their most devout faith. Please eliminate the dysentery and save us.¡± Chapter 304 - 196 Plantman Sprouts_2 Chapter 304: Chapter 196 ntman Sprouts_2 Old Buck¡¯s voice was filled with dejection and helplessness, on the brink of breaking into tears. He knew very well that his actions were pointless. In the decades of his devotion to the Light, he had prayed tens of thousands of times, and never had he seen a miracle. He didn¡¯t know if it was due to hisck of faith, or the Gods of Light were simply indifferent to the likes of him. But why did the old noble Lord Hull, who never prayed, receive miraculous blessings? He had fallen from his horse and been paralyzed, yet his condition mysteriously cured. Thest time they met in town, he almost got whipped for blocking his horse. But even knowing that miracles are impossible, what could Old Buck do? This was their only hope. They could not even drink clean water. The ce was teeming with unsubsided floodwaters, making it difficult to find clean firewood to boil the water. People had to drink the murky raw water, and many of them started vomiting and having diarrhea. What else could they do aside from praying to the gods? Rather than dying in desperate and resentful circumstances, it was better to hypnotize oneself with prayers and gain fleeting peace before sumbing quietly to death. Old Buck, who had lived for more than half his life, no longer begged for miracles. He only wished to lead everyone to a peaceful death. As the believers in the image prayed, strands of holy light gathered on the crystal monument, slowly forming a transparent crystal. ¡°A Holy Crystal?¡± Negris recognized it at once. Shamara had exchanged several Holy Crystals before, but they were all ck. Now, he finally saw a white Holy Crystal. ¡°So the Holy Crystals are formed by the faith of believers, isn¡¯t that the Faith Elemental Force? The same as Ange¡¯s Soul Crystal? What about Shamara? How did she get her ck Holy Crystal? Does she have believers too?¡± One question after another arose in Negris¡¯s heart. Ange made a gesture towards the Holy Crystal, and it flew into his hand. After examining it for a moment, he put it away in the Temple of Rest. Seeing his actions, Negris knew what he was thinking and hurriedly cleared the space in front of the crystal monument. In the spirit of fair exchange, since Ange took the Holy Crystal, naturally he had to give something back. Ange brought forth the Holy Light and reached into the monument. Old Buck jumped up in excitement, holding up his right hand in panic and disbelief: ¡°It¡¯s¡­ it¡¯s lit. It¡¯s lit.¡± Old Buck, who never thought he would witness a miracle, held up his panicked right hand, not knowing what to do: ¡°What should we do? It¡¯s lit, it¡¯s lit. The Gods of Light have answered us.¡± Negris murmured to himself, thinking: Response from the Gods? Wishful thinking. These crystal monuments are being used by the Holy Spirit Angels. Given the intelligence of the Holy Spirit Angels, it¡¯s probably more like an automated response. The rest of the vigers were also stunned. Old Buck was too overwhelmed by the event and didn¡¯t know what to do, let alone them. Ange tilted his head and moved his hand towards the barrel. Before he knew it, Old Buck¡¯s right hand was forced on its own into the water barrel. The hand in the water emitted a holy glow and the murky water turned clear rapidly. Even the mud that had sunk to the bottom of the barrel was thoroughly cleansed. Before long, a barrel of crystal-clear water, even cleaner than well water, appeared in the barrel. Old Buck and the vigers tremblingly gathered around the barrel, mumbling: ¡°We¡¯re saved, we¡¯re saved.¡± As the image gradually disappeared, Negris kept circling the monument and murmuring: ¡°This monument is quite strange. It assists with the projection of power. Normally, projecting power to the Prime Material ne would cause a loss of at least tenfold, but with the assistance of the monument, the loss is much less. Ange, how much less is the loss when you project power onto the silver coinpared to using the monument?¡± Ange silently calcted for a moment, then replied: ¡°Five times less.¡± N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°Tsk tsk, five times less. No wonder no one can defeat the Church of Light. Other people lose more than tenfold in projection, while they only lose a few times. No wonder the Holy Spirit Possessions are so powerful. Even if you, Ange, were to possess the silver coin yourself, you would not be able to defeat a priest with Angel¡¯s Descent.¡± Negris sighed. The prosperity of the Church of Light was not random. They even had an advantage in projecting power. Just as he was speaking, the monument lit up again. ¡°Tsk, here ites again. Business at the Church of Light sure is busy, huh?¡± As he spoke, the monument disyed an image. It was still Old Buck and the group of vigers. ¡°O, Almighty Lord, your people are suffering from the torment of hunger. Pray, save us and bestow bountiful food upon us¡­¡± Old Buck gave the sick vigers holy water, which almost instantly took effect. Their vomiting and diarrhoea stopped, and they started moring with hunger. The disaster-stricken vigers, drenched and weary, clung to theirst straw of hope, once again offering their devout belief, praying for divine mercy. Another Holy Crystal was forming. Perhaps due to the sess of the previous prayer, their faith was more steadfast, hence the crystal formed more rapidly. Ange grabbed it and turned out a bag of grain, stuffing it into the stele. A bag of grain abruptly appeared before Old Buck. Old Buck was stunned. It was one thing to receive a response from the gods for the first time, but how could the Gods of Light be so responsive? This isn¡¯t right; this doesn¡¯t match the descriptions in the Holy Code and legendary epics, does it? Ange¡¯s responsiveness made Old Buck question his life. Yet, the bag of grain was factual. After opening it, he found it full of plump, fresh grain. Chewing the raw grain, Old Buck found it a bit unptable. Then, a viger with an oily face sidled up and asked tentatively, ¡°Old Buck, should we pray to the gods again for some firewood? Raw grain tastes awful.¡± Old Buck nced at him and said, ¡°As long as you harbor faith, the Light will respond to your prayers. Go on.¡± The oily viger withdrew with a sheepish smile, ¡°Would the gods really respond to me, hehe, hehe.¡± He was self-aware after all. The crystal stele darkened and lit up again, terribly busy. Unsurprisingly, the faith base of the Church of Light is too solid. They have billions of believers who pray anywhere and anytime. Among them are many with unwavering faith. One stele is never enough to handle them all. After Ange process a few more times, Negris stopped him, ¡°Alright, alright, I roughly understand the function of these ste now. Don¡¯t respond to them anymore. Otherwise, they will think it¡¯s the favor of the Gods of Light and will focus all their faith on the Gods of Light.¡± Ange shook his head. ¡°What do you mean by shaking your head?¡± Negris asked. ¡°It¡¯s here, shifted here.¡± Ange stared at something, and the Ring of Bnce appeared slowly behind his head. ¡°Shifted to the Ring of Bnce? The prayers you¡¯ve answered, the Faith Elemental Force, all came here?¡± Negris asked, astounded. Ange nodded. ¡°But¡­ but this isn¡¯t divine power, can you use the Ring of Bnce to steal the faith of the Light system, like Shamara did, a false god?¡± Negris asked. ¡°No, they¡¯ve always been¡­ aimed here.¡± Ange pointed to the Ring of Bnce, speaking with exasperation. He didn¡¯t know how else to exin it clearly. Luckily, Negris was ustomed to Ange¡¯s way of speaking and guessed, ¡°You mean, after you¡¯ve answered them, these believers¡¯ Power of Faith is always directed towards you?¡± Ange nodded. ¡°Kvada, if that¡¯s the case, you are not stealing their faith, you are stealing their believers, you have undercut their foundation.¡± Negris said, taken aback. Although Shamara stole faith, she was still within the Light system. Ange, on the other hand, was undermining it at its very roots. Just as he was about to say more, Feilin hurriedly ran in, excitedly announcing, ¡°Master, the ntman has sprouted! The ntman you sowed has sprouted!¡± ¡°Sprouted?¡± Ange was somewhat surprised since the one nted in the Temple of Rest hadn¡¯t sprouted yet, even after several days. The one that he had recently nted hadn¡¯t been in the ground a day, and it had sprouted? ¡°However, the shoot seems a little wilted. Master, pleasee and take a look.¡± Feilin urged anxiously. Chapter 305 - 197: Cultivating a God, New Godly Body_1 Chapter 305: Chapter 197: Cultivating a God, New Godly Body_1 The ntman sprouted, wilted, then died. Ange tried to revive it with Insect Ash Liquid and Essence Bug Ash Liquid, but to no avail. ¡°What¡¯s going on? It wouldn¡¯t be a problem if it didn¡¯t sprout, but dying just after sprouting? Let¡¯s ask Anthony.¡± Negris said. Two seeds of the ntman, one nted in the divine soil of the Resting Camp, the other here. The one at Resting Camp didn¡¯t germinate, no signs of life at all. The one in front of him would be better off not sprouting at all, since it died as soon as it sprouted, faster than a heart attack. Ange was notified and rushed out from the temple, but within a few minutes, the sprout was dead. This was highly unusual. This thing came from the Church of Light, might as well ask Anthony. In the Consciousness Space, Ange called out to Anthony, dragging his consciousness in. ¡°ntman? You¡¯re not referring to the God Seed Project, are you?¡± Anthony asked uncertainly after listening to the description provided by Negris. Negris breathed in sharply: ¡°God Seed Project? Such a domineering name? What¡¯s going on?¡± N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°Well, you¡¯vee to the right person. I suspect no one in the Church has any knowledge of the details, not even the Pope, because I burned the records.¡± Anthony said smugly. ¡°During the era where Gods and Kings were still present, a Pope in the Church had a sudden thought: Can we spawn a Divine Spirit just like the Tree of Life?¡± Anthony started his narration. The Pope who came up with this idea not only thought about it but also took action. He secretly summoned a group of loyal subordinates, going all out to get a fruit from the Tree of Life. Then, he employed a lot of Druids and devised various Secret Techniques to cultivate a bunch of seeds. ¡°The entire process was very intricate andplicated. Although they did produce some results in the end, he was killed by the Gods soon after. His name was erased.¡± Negris felt the urge to vomit blood: ¡°Killed? The Gods killed him?¡± He thought he would hear an epic saga filled with twists and turns, but then he heard that the Pope was murdered. ¡°That¡¯s right. Weren¡¯t we supposed to kill him? He was already deserving of death in the eyes of the Gods when he got such an idea.¡± Anthony said as if it was the most normal thing in the world. ¡°And then?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Then I burned the records. I burnt down the entire library and scripture storage of the curia. I came across the project here. The name ¡°God Seed Project¡± was quite frightening, so I flipped through it.¡± said Anthony. Negris was speechless for a while: ¡°Even though you did that for the sake of protecting the Resting Abyss, I still want to beat you up. You destroyed so many historical records and knowledge.¡± Anthony nced at him sideway: ¡°Lord of Knowledge, I advise you to abandon that idea, you won¡¯t be able to defeat me.¡± ¡°Why do you have to be so annoying when you talk, just like Lightning!?¡± Negris was so angry that he wanted to jump up and smack him on the forehead. Anthony hurriedly continued: ¡°The history recorded by the Church of Light was distorted. It¡¯s not a big deal if it¡¯s burned. As for the Druids, several of them were Elves, quite long-lived. When I burned the records, they were still alive. Since there were no records, slowly nobody knew what they had done. In the end, they were all released from their soft detention. I saved them.¡± ¡°They¡¯re still alive? Are they alive now?¡± Negris perked up. ¡°Of course not. The lifespan of an Elf is at most 1,300 years. They were already four to five hundred years old when they were captured. More than a thousand years have passed since then, so they¡¯re long dead. I was constantly reincarnating at that time, and I didn¡¯t pay much attention to them. I vaguely heard that they were nting some ntman in some restricted area, so when you mentioned the ntman, I thought of them.¡± At this point, Anthony couldn¡¯t help but ask: ¡°How do you know about these things? I doubt even the Church nowadays would remember. I burned those records thoroughly.¡± Negris recounted how he had acquired two seeds by paying ten silver coins and a gold coin, how his party had heard about the divine soil and hade up to nt, and how one seed had ended up dead. Upon hearing this, Anthony grew furious: ¡°What!? You went to the Holy Kingdom for fun and didn¡¯t tell me? Do you have no conscience? I wanted to go up there for a long time but couldn¡¯t fly, and now that you can, you don¡¯t even tell me? You just wait for it!¡± Vehemently severing the Soul Contact, Anthony disappeared. Not long after, Ange indicated a motion with a change in his expression: ¡°Anthony is here, we should wee him.¡± ¡°How are we going to greet him? There¡¯s no Resting Wind now, and even if there is, it might not break the barrier. Do you want us to pick him up first, and thene down when the Resting Windes? How dare he?¡± Negris grumbled abrasively. Ange cocked his head as if he was listening to something, then said: ¡°He said, the Stairway to Heaven, it can be used to pick him up.¡± ¡°Pick someone up? The Stairway to Heaven can do that? I thought spirits were able to fly along the stairway on their own.¡± Negris was taken aback by this information. Upon activating the Stairway to Heaven, and after some fiddling, a figure appeared at the end of the stairs. He stepped out of the beam of light trembling, surprised all over, he looked far into the distance with an astonishing expression on his face. ¡°Sigh¡­¡± Negris let out a long sigh: ¡°He has been pretending for too long. Due to the long-term influence, he probably has developed the mentality of a devout believer deep inside. It¡¯s quite normal for him to loseposure when he steps into the legendary Heaven.¡± Before he finished, he heard Anthony cursing out loud: ¡°Damn it, why is this ce so ugly? Is this really the Holy Kingdom?¡± Chapter 306 - 197: Planting Gods, New Divine Body_2 Chapter 306: Chapter 197: nting Gods, New Divine Body_2 Negris nearly bit his tongue in surprise. ¡°I thought it would be grand and spectacr. Turns out it¡¯s all arranged geometric objects and sculptures made of stacked stone. Monotonous in color, randomly arranged,cks depth. The Gods of Light are missing a God of Construction or a Goddess of Beauty in their midst.¡± With a shocked expression, Anthony quipped, ¡°The most aesthetic part happens to be this square. The crops nted haveyers, arranged neatly, just mismatched with the overall look, like a messy patchwork.¡± Negris whispered, ¡°The square was dug up by Ange.¡± With a serious face, Anthony said, ¡°No wonder it¡¯s full of beauty. The other buildings are ruining the beauty of the square.¡± ¡°¡­ Now I know why you always easily ascend to the position of the bishop,¡± Negrismented, shocked. Anthony wanted to take a tour of Heaven, but Negris held him back. ¡°Since we¡¯re here, why not investigate why the seedling died first?¡± ¡°Do we need to investigate that? Who killed the pope whounched the Seed God project? Gods, the soil here carries the will of the gods. This kind of heretical seed will surely be purified,¡± Anthony remarked. Without dy, Ange reached into the Temple of Rest, dug up another seed. The seed in the temple was also nted in divine soil, it wouldn¡¯t have also been purified, right? However, after digging it up, the seed was perfectly fine, lively and vibrant. The husk had even cracked, presumably about to sprout before long. ¡°It¡¯s strange, there are no signs of purification at all. The soil inside the Temple of Rest is also divine, we refer to it as God Soil,¡± Negris added. After digging up the previously wilted seedling to take a look, even the husk had visible signs of Holy Light burns. Apparently, the Holy Power content in the soil was too low, which allowed the seed to persist until sprouting. However, the seedling was too weak, far weaker than the seed, and had burned to death soon after sprouting. n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Anthonypared the two, grabbed a handful of soil from the ground and sniffed it. Then, he asked, ¡°If they are the same kind of soil, it¡¯s impossible not to have signs of burns. Ange, did you do any special treatment to the soil when you brought it in?¡± Ange thought for a moment and answered, ¡°I was afraid of fungi and insects, so I purified it.¡±While speaking, he showed his hands, casting a Holy Light. Negris and Anthony looked at each other, their eyes lighting up at the same time. Anthony said, ¡°That should be the reason. Your Holy Light has purified the intent of the gods in the soil, so it won¡¯t burn these heretical seeds.¡± Negris added, ¡°At the same time, it also purified some other things in the soil, causing this seed to be ¡®first¡¯ nted but hasn¡¯t sprouted until now.¡± So that¡¯s why, once the cause had been identified, Ange rented the seed back into the God Soil of the Temple of Rest. ¡°Alright, now I¡¯m going to take a tour around Heaven. Looking at theyout here, where do the people of Heaven live? Do they live on the other side? Have you met any of them?¡± Anthony quickly spotted the same problem as Shamara. Negris didn¡¯t know what to say and rubbed his nose, awkwardly suggesting, ¡°You better go and see for yourself.¡± Negris¡¯s words made Anthony sigh deeply, ¡°Sigh¡­since you¡¯ve already said this much, there¡¯s probably nothing good to see. There have been records of many people being guided to Heaven, but never has one returned. I assume they all have been turned into nutrients for Heaven.¡± Negris flew over and patted his shoulder, not knowing what else to say. Anthony sighed again. Suddenly, his expression changed. He pulled out a magic crystal card from his pocket. There was a symbol on it that was blinking. He quickly pressed that symbol and then listened attentively. There was no sound. It was amunication at the soul level. The action of listening attentively was just for Ange and Negris¡¯ benefit, to avoid them thinking he was daydreaming. It wasn¡¯t long before Anthony lifted his head, ¡°Polk found the valley where the druid who had once held the Seed God n was imprisoned.¡± ¡°Really!? This quickly?¡± Negris was overjoyed and quickly asked, ¡°Where is it?¡± Ange also cast a curious nce. A druid with the Seed God n, he liked it. ¡°Seed God¡± was also a kind of nting. ¡°In the Northern Wind Divine Mountain Range,¡± Anthony replied. ¡°I asked him to rush over through the Teleportation Array. There happened to be one there, so it will be quick.¡± Negris immediately frowned, ¡°How could they hold him there? It¡¯s a freezing, barrennd, the least conducive environment for the druids. The seeds could freeze to death.¡± Anthony gave a bitter smile, ¡°Isn¡¯t that a basic strategy? Water mages held in deserts, earth mages imprisoned in water cells, wind mages buried in the ground. It¡¯s all about keeping you away from familiar environments. If you put a druid in a forest, could you even hold them?¡± ¡°Uh, makes sense, it¡¯s like you can¡¯t keep a male dragon in a ce with females,¡± Negris recalled a proverb from the Dragon n. Anthony took a quick nced at it, hurriedly taking two steps away. It was only then that Negris remembered that he was a male dragon too¡­ ¡°I¡¯m an exception¡­¡± Negris tried to justify weakly. ¡°But what on earth is going on? Did Polk find a location? What did he find?¡± ¡°He¡¯s still on the move. The valley is full of ice and snow. Luckily, he¡¯s rather light, otherwise, he would have sank into the snow,¡± Anthony replied. ¡°There are quite a few traces of houses on both sides of the valley, but they¡¯re all buried in snow. It doesn¡¯t look like anyone has been living here,¡± Anthony observed. ¡°Polk sensed something under the snow, a strong energy reaction,¡± Anthony added. Anthony suddenly raised his head, shocked, and said, ¡°Polk¡­ is dead.¡± ¡°Dead?!¡± Negris was startled and immediately asked, ¡°What happened?¡± Anthony swallowed hard and sent a sequence of images to Ange and Negris using his soul. In the snow-covered valley, the ck Knight galloped, his horse¡¯s hooves falling heavily in the snow and leaving only shallow footprints. All around was a vast expanse of white. Aside from some buried buildings visible near the mouth of the valley, there were no signs of life. The silent valley seemedpletely lifeless. Suddenly, Polk felt some fluctuations, rhythmic and powerful like a heartbeat. The fluctuations came from the snowy ground. In the depths of the buried valley, Polk dug up the heavy snow and soon found a flower bud. It was arge bud, pure white and shiny, glowing with a holy light. As Polk touched the flower bud, a white smoke arose. This was genuine Holy Light. Almost simultaneously, a thought focused on Polk. The bud bloomed, and a robust man rose slowly from the flower, his body shimmered with fluorescent light as he emotionlessly looked at Polk. The next moment, the man leapt out and punched Polk. The spiritual image abruptly ended there. Negris was dumbfounded. ¡°Is that a Divine Body?¡± The man¡¯s body emitted a fluorescent glow that was unmistakably divine. Anthony nodded with a bitter and heartbroken expression. Polk was dead, and he hadn¡¯t been able to save him. Moreover, the sudden appearance of a Divine Body meant significant trouble. The Church of Light was currently godless, though Anthony likely didn¡¯t know that thest standing Libra had been killed by Ange not too long ago. Regardless, at present, there was a vacant position for a god in the Church of Light. Anthony could boldly split the church and covertlymit sphemous acts. However, the sudden appearance of a Divine Body posed a new problem. If it has inherited the deity of the Gods of Light, what would they do? It was not a joking matter, considering even Ange could inherit the Undead Godhood¡­ ¡°No, we can¡¯t let it live. I¡¯m going back first,¡± Anthony said to Negris before turning away. Anthony vanished using the Heavenly Stairs, leaving Negris to turn to Ange and suggest, ¡°Maybe, we should also follow? This Divine Body seems to be newborn. It would be best to kill it early. If it inherits the deity of the Gods of Light, trouble will follow. The Church of Light could potentially escape Anthony¡¯s control and turn against us. They¡¯ll definitely seize this ce back then.¡± Ange suddenly raised his head, pointing to the Square of the Gods and asked, ¡°This ce, seized back?¡± ¡°Uh, well, although the Holy Kingdom is worth a great deal more than your brokennd, but yes, this ce¡ªthend where you nt things¡ªthey would seize back,¡± Negris affirmed menacingly. Ange turned and crouched down, emitting a long soul cry. With a rumble, the Little Angels, Little Zombies, Purple Skeleton Titans, Lightning Horses and others, who had been scattered around and ying, came rushing back. Ange quickly crammed them all into the Temple of Rest. ¡°Stop Anthony first, tell him to wait,¡± Negris hastily said. Chapter 307 - 198: Extra Soul Shard_1 Chapter 307: Chapter 198: Extra Soul Shard_1 Anthony enveloped himself in his cape. Under him was a grumbling undead horse: ¡°I only let you mount me because of Polk¡¯s death. As soon as the fighting is over, get as far away from me as you can.¡± ¡°Yes, yes, yes, thank you. I¡¯ll leave as soon as we¡¯ve finished fighting. But in the meantime, could you exert some extra effort? The enemy is a divine body, I can¡¯t handle it by myself.¡± Anthony replied jokingly. Lightning, carrying Ange, kept curiously peeping over at them. ¡°What are you staring at, you silly unicorn. Keep your eyes to yourself or I¡¯ll devour your soul.¡± The undead horse red at Lightning, cursing fiercely. Lightning grinned, revealing a set of white teeth and a dismissive smile. It ignored the undead horse and asked Anthony, ¡°Your wife?¡± ¡°Huh?¡± ¡°What!?¡± Both the undead horse and Anthony were taken aback. Anthony hurriedly denied, ¡°No, no, don¡¯t talk nonsense.¡± The undead horse angrily retorted, ¡°You foolish creature, the undead don¡¯t have genders, idiot.¡± Lightning ignored it again and posed another question to Anthony, ¡°Your daughter?¡± Anthony gave a bitter smile, ¡°No, again not. Even though I raised her, she never listens to me.¡± ¡°That¡¯s alright.¡± Lightning employed his signature skill ¡®Face-Mocking,¡¯ and, looking sidelong at the undead horse, slowly and clearly mouthed: ¡°Du (sound muted).¡± ¡°Say that again, you stupid horse. Say that once more!¡± The undead horse was furious, letting out an angry soul-shaking roar. ¡°Du (sound muted)¡± Lightning repeated, no matter what it said, even if it called you ¡®mom¡¯, you would be infuriated. Because its expressions were way too provocative. The undead horse at once swerved in anger and was about to charge. But in the next second, the de of a scythe was lowered between them as Ange looked at it, tilting his head. The undead horse shuddered violently; it suddenly recalled what Anthony told it and kept its rage in check despite breathing heavily. N?v(el)B\\jnn Anthony, wiping away his cold sweat, patted the undead horse¡¯s neck to soothe it. He then covertly made a ¡®please¡¯ gesture towards Lightning who arrogantly snorted and decided to let it go. You dare to huff and puff around Lord Lightning with such temperance? Those with poor tolerance should never argue with Lightning. It dismisses your rebukes, but itsebacks hit you straight in the heart. The two horses raced swiftly, and soon they reached a valley. Seeing the icyndscape of the valley reflected on Ange, Negris wondered aloud, ¡°In a ce like this, they could cultivate a divine body? It would be amazing if they can even grow grass here.¡± ¡°Even if I didn¡¯t see it with my own eyes, I wouldn¡¯t believe it either. Are the Druids that incredible? Did they actually sire a god?¡± Anthony said, his voice filled with disbelief. Druids, those farmers of the fields who deal with mud, crops, and forests every day. Whether sunny or rainy, they work tirelessly and are just like typical old farmers. Even the Elves are no exception. ording to legends, powerful Druids have tremendous skills. They could dominate an entire forest, transform into a deity, and defeat gods with the power of a god. But those are all just legends. Thest time Anthony heard about Druids was around the time of the Spring Breeze Cup nting Competition. Could this unnoticeable profession have brought forth a divine body? The divine body is different from gods. The difference is the divine quality. Without divine quality, it¡¯s just a powerful shell. But once it develops divine quality, especially given that today the Gods of Light have fallen, it would instantly be the Master God, or even the sole God which would spell trouble. However, no matter how formidable the divine body is, it was brought forth by the Druids who, in this case, were the true freaks. Anthony patted the undead horse¡¯s neck, saying, ¡°My old friend, scout ahead for us.¡± The undead horse nced at him and grumbled, ¡°Call me by my name, ck Horse!¡± The undead horse howled, raised its front hooves and stomped. Where its hoovesnded, a rush of death spread and three or four ghosts crawled up and flew quickly towards the valley. ck Horse?! Lightningughed out loud, the undead horse indeed suited the name. Following the ghosts, they cautiously entered the valley. The journey was tranquil and before long they arrived in front of a snow pit. At the bottom was a giant withered bud, frozen and frost-covered on the surface, but the divine body was nowhere to be found. ¡°Has anyone spotted him?¡± Anthony asked. Both Ange and the undead horse shook their heads. Lightning did the same. ¡°Master, please protect me,¡± Anthony said as he pulled out a piece of cloth and a crystal ball. The cloth was inscribed with various sacred symbols, not unlike a holy shroud, but with different patterns. He spread the cloth on the snowden ground and put the crystal on it. Anthony then began intoning an arcane incantation. Ange too began his enactment, using his powers to summon Negris, Little Angel, Little Zombie, and then the Purple Skeleton Titans. They quickly spread out and prepared themselves. No matter how arcane the incantation was, as long as it wasn¡¯t new, it wasn¡¯t a problem for Negris. After listening for a while, it wondered, ¡°That¡¯s the Shaman¡¯s Spirit Prayer Technique, isn¡¯t it? Will it work? Are you nning to save Polk?¡± Anthony finished reciting the long incantation and was holding a tiny lump of ck energy in his hand. He pped the ck energy into the crystal ball before replying, ¡°It could, but it is uncertain how much it could save.¡± Negris disagreed, ¡°Even if you retrieve some soul fragments, what¡¯s the use? They¡¯re already shattered. Even if you reim them, they wouldn¡¯t be Polk anymore.¡± Chapter 308 - 198: Extra Soul Fragment_2 Chapter 308: Chapter 198: Extra Soul Fragment_2 ¡°Sigh, yes, but what can we do? We save what we can. As long as he retains some of his past memories, he is still Polk. At worst, I can ¡®tell¡¯ him more when the timees,¡± Anthony spoke helplessly. ¡°Kvada¡­¡± Negris paused for a moment before cursing uncontrobly. He had understood what Anthony meant with his ¡®tell¡¯. He was nning to shape Polk¡¯s memory. If you lost your memory and the first person you met upon waking up told you, ¡°I¡¯m your father¡±, there¡¯s a high probability you would believe them. Anthony was now preparing to gather Polk¡¯s soul shards and use them as a foundation to reshape a soul. As for whether this soul was the original Polk? If it possesses parts of Polk¡¯s memories and the rest is filled in by someone else, then it¡¯s Polk. Ange suddenly asked, ¡°Soul shards, right?¡± Caught off guard by the sudden question, Anthony nodded subconsciously, ¡°Yes, Polk¡¯s soul shards.¡± Ange slowly raised his hand and drew a circle, saying, ¡°There¡¯s a lot.¡± As he moved, the entire valley stirred up a sort of ¡®wind¡¯ that was drawn towards the central point of the circle he had traced in the air. This ¡®wind¡¯ was not a physical phenomenon, but rather one that existed in the realm of souls. Only the Undead could sense this flow of energy. When Ange reached the halfway point of the circle, the center point had already ignited into a lively me. Once hepleted the circle, the me solidified, stronger than several Soul Fires, before it was all indiscriminately absorbed into the Crystal Ball. Anthony was a little flustered, ¡°So many? And you even lit the Soul Fire¡­ Sir, did you collect all the soul shards? Polk on his own could not have released this many shards.¡± Ange nodded, ¡°A lot.¡± ¡°Why are there so many soul shards? Did many people die here? This could be problematic; this is alluding to a mishmash monster,¡± Anthonyined. There were just too many soul shards, exceeding the total amount Polk could have released. There were definitely a lot of soul shards that did not belong to Polk. If they were all summarised in a Soul Fire, wouldn¡¯t it be a mishmash monster? But, none of this was Ange¡¯s fault. Even if there were other shards here, the Spirit Prayer Technique would gather them all. Ange had merely widened the range of umtion. With this, he could gather morepletely. He could just slowly weed out the excesster; he was an expert in this. Holding the Crystal Ball close to him, Anthony continued to stroke it, mumbling to it with his forehead pressed against it: ¡°Polk, Polk, you¡¯re Polk, the loyal and brave Polk¡­ huh, this one isn¡¯t his, nor is this one. Discard, discard.¡± Soon, Anthony suddenly looked up, ¡°Sir, we may have stumbled upon a treasure. These soul shards, they belong to the Druids who were imprisoned here. Once I¡¯ve sorted out Polk¡¯s soul shards, the remainder will be yours.¡± The light in Ange¡¯s eyes zed, and even Negris couldn¡¯t suppress his excitement, ¡°Really? Hurry up, is there anything about the primal deity in it?¡± ¡°It¡¯s not that quick. It¡¯ll take a long time to sort out Polk¡¯s shards. This technique is quiteplex and has to be taken slowly. However, I devoured a few shards earlier, and the residual information gave me a rough understanding of the situation here.¡± ¡°After I burned the curia¡¯s documents, flocks of priests started dying off. A couple of centuriester, the church gradually forgot about this ce. Without any funding, the guards that could escape did. Those who couldn¡¯t simply settled here and became friends with the original Druids who had been in custody. This ce turned into a vige.¡± A few Elf Druids never gave up on the primal deity project. Perhaps they believed they were cultivating the World Tree. With the Druids¡¯ power, this valley turned into a lush, bird-filled, fragrant, and food-filled Happy Kingdom where residents settled. Thus, they multiplied over several generations. As the Elf Druids one by one sumbed to death, the human vigers that had lost their protection began to struggle to survive. In and of snow and ice, survival wasn¡¯t easy. The valley¡¯s poption dwindled every year, resulting in the sight we see today.¡± The old man who sold us the seed for a silver coin, maybe he was thest survivor of this valley. They had the seeds cultivated by the Druids, but couldn¡¯t grow the legendary ¡®ntman¡¯. Cornered by starvation, they had no choice but to sell. ¡°That¡¯s more or less it. Some is acquired from shard memories, some is from my inference. Let¡¯s first locate the Divine Body and we can study this slowlyter.¡± He wrapped the Crystal Ball in a cloth and tucked it into his ring. Anthony stretched out a hand towards the withered flower bud, shouting, ¡°The divine pronounces, my gaze sees transpired time¨C the Eye of Time!¡± N?v(el)B\\jnn As he shouted thest word, a white light emerged from his eyes. After studying it for a while, the light felt less bright. Anthony looked awkward, ¡°No, the divine¡¯s Eye of Time cannot observe the divine¡¯s body. ck Horse, can you sense it?¡± ck Horse shook its head. Little Angel suddenly pointed and chirruped, ¡°Ah!¡± Negris asked, ¡°Can you sense it?¡± Little Angel nodded and darted towards the cliff. The two sides of the valley were nearly vertical cliffs, at least sixty or seventy meters high. Climbing up would lead to a mountain peak. Following the ridge of the peak, they chased after Little Angel. After a while, they noticed something up ahead. Chapter 309 - 198: Extra Soul Fragment_3 Chapter 309: Chapter 198: Extra Soul Fragment_3 A Level Six Earth Ice Beary dead in the snow, half of its body missing. You could see some bite marks at the edges of the remaining half, but the fatal injury was in its head. ¡°It died less than half a day ago. Its skull was smashed in, and there¡¯s residual Holy Light in the wound. It must have been the Divine Body. He chewed on half of the Earth Ice Bear,¡± Anthony said after inspection. ¡°Does the Divine Body need to eat?¡± Negris asked, it was beyond his ken. Anthony curiously retorted: ¡°Do you need to eat after bing a god?¡± ¡°Uh, of course, I eat a lot,¡± Negris said. N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°Then he might also need to eat, but it¡¯s not a necessity. If it were, he wouldn¡¯t have left half of the Ice Bear; he¡¯d have eaten it all.¡± After some analysis, they continued their pursuit. They chased it for hundreds of kilometres, gradually leaving the mountainous area. The temperature rose, the ice and snow melted, and a dense forest appeared on the distant horizon. Seeing the forest, Anthony could not help asking: ¡°Did it really run this way? Are we sure we¡¯re not lost?¡± Little Angel turned back and red: ¡°Ao!¡± Little Zombie also narrowed his eyes: ¡°Ao!¡± ¡°No, no, not doubting you, just double-checking,¡± Anthony hurriedly waved his hand. Lightning couldn¡¯t help but lean over, asking quietly: ¡°Do you understand Aoaonguage?¡± ¡°Ah? Do I need to understand anynguage? Isn¡¯t their meaning written all over their faces?¡±Anthony asked, confused. He then turned to Negris: ¡°Lord Nage, pursuing like this will get us nowhere. We need to confirm if he ran in this direction first.¡± Negris looked troubled: ¡°How to confirm?¡± Ange suddenly pointed towards the forest, where Little Angel had been leading them, and said: ¡°The scent of Holy Light is over there.¡± Little Angel had been worried about leading them astray. But now that Ange had also mentioned it, they decided to give it serious attention. They agreed to venture into the forest at once. Looking at the dense forest, the Purple Corpse frowned: ¡°Lord, how about we go back first? We hate forests.¡± It was indeed not good for too many people to enter the forest together. They could easily get separated, and it would be hard to find each other again. Moreover, the size of the Purple Skeleton Titans would make it really inconvenient for them in the forest. Ange sent the Purple Skeleton Titans back to the Resting Pce. Lightning opened the way, with Little Zombie, Little Angel, Bronze Dragon, Anthony and ck Horse following in a line, whilst Ange stayed in the rear. In the Ice Region¡¯s forest, the trees were tall, robust, and thriving. Everyone felt they had walked into a world of Lilliputians, where each fallen tree felt like climbing over a mountain. They hadn¡¯t gone very far when Anthony, the only human among them, began to pant. He prepped himself with two Divine Arts and briefly stopped to ask: ¡°It seems we¡¯ve entered the Elf¡¯s territory already, right? What the hell is that guy doing running into the forest?¡± Nobody could answer his question, so everyone just ignored him. Only Ange came over and curiously looked at his feet. Feeling thoroughly baffled by Ange¡¯s scrutiny, Anthony asked: ¡°Sir, what are you looking at?¡± Before Ange could reply, a strange voice from beneath his feet said: ¡°Probably looking at me. You¡¯re stepping on my hand.¡± Anthony jumped in shock, stepping back quickly. From the pile of fallen leaves, a Magic Pattern Elf, trailing magical patterns, emerged. One after another, Magic Pattern Elfs revealed themselves from the undergrowth, dry leaves, tree crowns, and rock crevices. They drew their bows and arrows, aiming at every person present. Chapter 310 - 199: The God of Life Wants to See You_1 Chapter 310: Chapter 199: The God of Life Wants to See You_1 ¡°Do you have a pass?¡± The Magic Pattern Female Elf, who was almost stepped on, shed a smile and drew her curved de, performing a sword trick with her hand, and asked courteously. Everyone collectively shook their heads. n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Do you have an invitation?¡± The female elf thought for a moment and asked. Everyone shook their heads. ¡°A token? A letter of introduction?¡± The female elf questioned. They shook their heads. ¡°Well, there must be someone you know? Name an elf you know. Otherwise, I¡¯ll be in a difficult position. If you rush in without anything, I would have to fight you!¡± She said angrily. Negris eyes brightened, he quickly replied, ¡°Yes, we know Gardia and Kael¡¯danil.¡± Hearing these two names, the female elf became furious, ¡°Damn it! Dare to call our beloved queen by name?! Die!¡± The female elf raised her curved de, ready to attack, fiercely cursing, ¡°You can still turn back now! Otherwise, I¡¯ll strike! My swordsmanship is very powerful.¡± Everyone exchanged nces. It was clear that the female elf was not out to harm them, at most to scare them away. Suddenly, Ange remembered something and turned over his hand to pull out a badge. ¡°Oh! Is this¡­?¡± The female elf had her face change upon seeing it. She quickly backed off, put away her curved de, kneeled on one knee and said respectfully, ¡°I am very sorry for my earlier offense, esteemed guest. I am Jelica, a Night de Elf and Guardian of the Border. Wee.¡± ¡°Huh? Is that an esteemed guest badge?¡± ¡°Does the esteemed guest badge look like this? Have you seen it?¡± ¡°I¡¯ve never seen it. How could I have? There are so few who can be our esteemed guests. Might not see one in a lifetime.¡± Upon hearing this, the Night de Elves around them broke into murmurs and whispers. After receiving those rewards from the elves, Silver Coin kept some business permits and tax exemptions. Nonmercial items like the esteemed friend badges were all given to Ange. Anthony looked at Jelica suspiciously and asked in a puzzled tone, ¡°So you¡¯re sure this badge is genuine? Don¡¯t you need to verify it? And¡­¡± Ange¡¯s straw hat had broken, so he was now d entirely in his Soul Armor, surrounded by an eerie ck mist, and had an Undead Horse apany him. Instead of being frightened by this, the Night de Elves put away their weapons upon seeing the badge. Would they not need to verify its authenticity? Were they not afraid of the Undead? ¡°Hehe, do you think the esteemed guest badge needs any verification? When the guest presents it, the God of Life tells us through whispers of the forest that it is authentic. An esteemed guest is one approved by the God of Life, not anyone who holds a badge can be called an esteemed guest of the elves.¡± Jelica said, her respect seemingly only intended for Ange. Turns out, this badge probably just triggers the whispers of the forest, like sending a message to ask the World Tree: are these people guests, or not? If not, then throw them out. World Tree replies: Yes, they are. The World Tree not only told them these were guests, but also informed them of who these guests were. Jelica bowed and addressed Ange: ¡°You must be Lord Ange. Wee to Elf Forest. I am Jelica, a Night de Elf, protector of the border. Do you have any instructions?¡± Ange tilted his head. Negris, familiar with the situation, replied, ¡°We are chasing an enemy. He killed an ice bear on the snow mountain and then ran into the forest. We want to find him.¡± Jelica instinctively said, ¡°Impossible. No one can break into Elf Forest under the guard of the Night de Elves. Every tree, vine, flower, and grass here is a sentinel of elves. No one can sneak in.¡± Everyone involuntarily turned their gaze to Ange and Little Angel. They were the ones who said the divine body had run into the forest. Just then, a ¡®yowl¡¯ from deep within the forest sounded. Jelica¡¯s expression changed: ¡°It¡¯s the Night de Leopard. One of ours has been injured.¡± Immediately, she turned to where the sound wasing from and dashed away. The Night de Elves had a strange way of moving. They shot forward, blended into the forest when they hit the ground, and then started blinking in and out, disappearing into the distance. You could barely catch a clear sight of them. It wasn¡¯t just her, elves emerged everywhere on the ground and from the trees, like ghostly specters, twinkling in the distance. Anthony frowned and turned to Negris, ¡°God of Knowledge, can your Soul Perception sense them?¡± The Undead¡¯s Soul Perception is the best counter against stealth. Negris shook his head: ¡°I can when they move, but once they stop, they be part of the forest¡¯s background. I can¡¯t sense them. You nearly stepped on one of them just now and I didn¡¯t even notice.¡± ¡°How did the Lord discover her?¡± Anthony asked Ange. Ange tilted his head slightly, puzzled and replied, ¡°I saw.¡± Well, after Ange said that, everyone understood. Ange saw. The others couldn¡¯t see because their abilities were not enough. While talking, everyone followed the elves in the chase. Soon enough, sounds of intensebat came from the front. Upon getting closer, they saw a sturdy bald human locked inbat with Jelica. Jelica was waging a fierce attack with both her curved des, shing them on the bald human¡¯s body. But the bald man¡¯s body was as firm as steel. The des swung at him only sparked. After dozens of shes, the de of the curved sword had actually curled. Chapter 311 - 199: The God of Life Wants to See You_2 Chapter 311: Chapter 199: The God of Life Wants to See You_2 The bald human danced with his hands, creating a gust with each motion. Even though his hands couldn¡¯t touch a single hair on Jerika, he didn¡¯t seem bothered at all. His eyes were emotionless, neither happy nor sad nor angry. Underneath him, a Night de Leopardy with its spine broken, whimpering softly with teary eyes. Twang! A bowstring reverberated as a strong arrow was lodged in the body of the bald human, its head shattered, and was deflected away. Jerika took this opportunity to attack between the man¡¯s legs, targeting his weak spots when her curved de couldn¡¯t cut through his body, demonstrating her abundant experience. The bald man did not dodge or parry, he just swung a punch towards Jerika¡¯s throat. Jerika¡¯s upper body bent backwards, making a 90-degree angle, and her curved de subversively aimed at the bald man¡¯s armpit. Most reinforcement skills like petrifying skin, are vulnerable in the armpits and lower body areas. Clearly, Jerika was experienced. However, her experience was ineffective against the bald man. As her knife de dragged past his armpit, a string of sparks was created. Twang! Another bowstring sounded as another strong arrow aimed for the bald man¡¯s eyes. There were countless exceptional elf archers in the Elf n. Even amongst the Night de Elves who were not adept at long range, there were quite a few. The timing and the velocity of the arrow was urate and swift, it drilled into the bald man¡¯s eye, making a thunking sound simr to shooting into hardwood. A cheer went up from one of the elves, but they quickly realized they had celebrated too early. Unfazed by the injury to his eye, the bald man swung a palm that, if itnded on the stomach of the 90 degrees bent backwards Jerika, could disintegrate half her body. In a desperate move, Jerika blocked downwards with both arms, and a shield emerged. However, in advanced fights, attackers can be straightforward. The bald man¡¯s palm shattered the shield without any tricks, and continued towards Jerika¡¯s t lower abdomen. Just when his hand was about to make contact, a purple-golden palm wedged itself between him and Jerika, arresting the momentum of his palm. Ange, who had transformed into Steadfast Bone, stopped the Divine Body¡¯s sword palm, and simultaneously, threw a punch towards his cheekbone. The Divine Body, expressionless, swung a fist with his other hand, which collided with the Boundary-crossing Hand. A simple exchange of punches, without any tricks or changes, but the impact was astounding. N?v(el)B\\jnn Jerika was pped to the ground by this force, spitting out a mouthful of blood. The next moment, she was hooked by Ange¡¯s foot and thrown out of their fighting range. On Ange¡¯s left hand, which had just blocked the punch from the Divine Body, the skin split, leaking golden blood. Unaffected, the Divine Body retreated slightly and swung another punch. Ange¡¯s Hand of Locke met this, and bang! Their fists collided again, like the impacts between two Giant Dragons, and the immense shockwave sent everything flying around. The Divine Body¡¯s other arm split too, dripping golden blood. But these injuries did not bother the Divine Body, its torn flesh and split limbs were still swinging back as if unharmed. In a mere six seconds, he exchanged seventeen punches with Ange, full of raw power, devoid of any fancy techniques. After the initial punches, the flesh of both fists had exploded and scattered, leaving only the bones. The Divine Body finally couldn¡¯t resist and was pushed back by Ange¡¯s punch. Almost at the instant he was retreating, Ange let out a great roar, and a Soul Impact hit him, making the Divine Body lurch backwards. Ange¡¯s right hooknded on Divine Body¡¯s left temple,pletely shattering the left side of his face and revealing the bones beneath. The Divine Body was sent flying, ploughing through several big trees before scraping the ground and creating a deep trench beforeing to a stop. Everyone around, both elves and humans, watched open-mouthed. Ange and Divine Body¡¯s head-on method was crude andcked aesthetics and strategies. Yet, each punch was as shocking as a thunderbolt, containing terrifying destructive power. It left everyone trembling with fear. Even a mere brush would be enough to result in a severe injury. Ange rushed towards where the Divine Body had fallen quickly. He saw a beam of light shooting out of the Divine Body, disappearing into the depths of the forest in a sh. Anthony and Jerika followed suit. Jerika spat out blood again, angrily ring at the disappearing light. ¡°Chase¡­ we can¡¯t let him escape¡­ awaken the forest, don¡¯t let him run¡­ cough, cough, cough¡­..¡± Speaking urgently, Jerika slumped over and started coughing severely. The previous impact probably had injured her internal organs. This demonstrated how terrifying was the sh between Ange and Divine Body. The mere shockwaves of their fight injured Jerika, a Night de Elf. One of the Night de Elves, took out a horn from her belt and blew into it forcefully. The deep sound of the horn reverberated far and wide. In no time, rm arrows were shot from the distance, making sharp sounds as they flew into the forest sky. It was followed by a series of rm arrows, spreading the emergency like ripples on a water surface. ¡°Cough, cough¡­the entire forest has¡­ cough¡­ awakened. Let¡¯s see where you escape now, honored guest. What are you made of? How can you be so hard?¡± Jerika asked in bewilderment. Without answering, Ange cast several Face Purification Techniques on her. ¡°Eh? Holy Light Therapy? Are you from the Church of Light?¡± Jerika was taken aback. Negris flew over,ughing, ¡°Ask the God of Life these questions. If they are meant for you to know, he will tell you.¡± Chapter 312 - 199: The God of Life Wants to See You_3 Chapter 312: Chapter 199: The God of Life Wants to See You_3 ¡°Ah? Confidential? Never mind then, I know nothing.¡± Jerika waved her hands hastily. Whimpers of pain echoed around, emanating from the Night de Leopard with a broken spine. Jerika nced at Ange and made an embarrassed request: ¡°Esteemed guest, is it possible to heal a Night de Leopard with a broken spine? If you can, could you please heal it? We will offer everything we have.¡± The Night de Leopard was not just a mount, but also a family member andpanion to the Night de Elves. Ange nodded, first tucked his Divine Body into Temple of Rest, and then moved to the side of the Night de Leopard. He first scanned with his soul to determine the location of the fracture, then severed the leopard¡¯s nerves at the spot, unveiled the broken bone, dripped essence fluid on it, healed the broken bone with Holy Light, allowed the flesh to heal again. After a series of dazzling procedures, the Night de Leopard stood up again. Inside the vige of the Night de Elves, they brought out aged Moon Juice Wine, picked fruits and nuts, and warmly entertained their esteemed guests. N?v(el)B\\jnn Jerika pped the wooden table, her face flushed, and shouted: ¡°Drink up! Can¡¯t handle it because you¡¯re men? I know you humans, it¡¯s always the men who work and fight just like our female elves, no cking, drink! Cheers!¡± Jerika lifted her wooden bowl and drained it in one gulp, disying her boldness. The only human, Anthony, turned red-faced with blurry eyes, evidently overwhelmed by the elf¡¯s enthusiasm, waving his hands repeatedly: ¡°No more, can¡¯t drink anymore.¡± ¡°Drink, we elves are hospitable. How can you experience our warmth without drinking?¡± ¡°No more, will vomit if I drink more.¡± ¡°Vomit and continue drinking, rinse your mouth with some Moon Spring water, good for the stomach. The Moon Juice Wine is delicious and doesn¡¯t go to your head. You¡¯ll wake up refreshed after a good night¡¯s sleep. Then wake up with Moon Juice Wine and drink again.¡± ¡°Are you really elves? I think even dwarves can¡¯t drink as much as you.¡± ¡°No way, we¡¯re just excited as we have honored guests. Here, cheers.¡± Under Jerika¡¯s enthusiastic hospitality, Anthony quickly slid down to the ground. Some non-human entities were enjoying the spectacle on the side, periodically fetching Moon Juice Wine for Ange to purify. Ange¡¯s hand extended into the Temple of Rest, moving slowly. Inside the Temple of Rest, a solitary skeletal hand traced over the Divine Body. As Holy Light swept over, the damaged areas quickly healed. A white ghost, the Little Ghost, trailed behind the Holy Light with both its tiny hands, cheerfully roasting itself. Suddenly, a breeze stirred in the forest, rustling noises resounded. The spirited Jerika paused her drinking, cocked her ear to listen, and quickly turned to Ange, remarking with some disbelief: ¡°Esteemed guest, the God of Life wishes to meet you. May I ask if it would be convenient for you?¡± The God of Life wanted to meet Ange and was actually asking if it was convenient for him? How influential was this guest? Ange withdrew his Boundary-crossing Hand, looked at Negris, as Negris nodded, he, too, nodded. Anthony, who had just drunkenly slumped to the ground, casually sat up and hurried them: ¡°Hurry up, go meet the God of Life.¡± The Little Ghost inside the Temple of Rest, which had been chasing the fluttering Holy Light, suddenly realized the Holy Light had disappeared. Anxiously, it spun in circles around the ce where the skeletal hand had vanished, eventually stopping helplessly. Its whole form exuded disappointment and loss. Chapter 313 - 200: How to Reject Her Nicely?_1 Chapter 313: Chapter 200: How to Reject Her Nicely?_1 Jerika performed a shoulder tap ritual, ¡°We must continue to guard the border, so we can¡¯t apany you to the Holy Land. You should go by yourselves; the forest will show you the way.¡± Afterpleting the ritual with everyone, when it was Anthony¡¯s turn, she also tapped his shoulder, but her little finger pointed upwards, not even ncing at Anthony. After he walked away puzzled, Anthony couldn¡¯t help but ask, ¡°God of Knowledge, do you know what that gesture means? Why was it only directed towards me? Is she interested in me? That¡¯s not good, I haven¡¯t been interested in women for many years. Although this elf maiden is quite attractive, women are too troublesome. I prefer to be by myself. How should I reject her?¡± Negris chuckled, ¡°You read too much into it. She¡¯s mocking you for acting like a male elf, who in their society is considered ¡®lesser¡¯. Elven society is matriarchal, with female elves wielding power and strength while male elves are considered fit for lesser roles. The gesture she used is the same as when you humans mock someone as ¡®girly¡¯. She was mocking you for acting girly, probably annoyed at your cheating tricks while drinking.¡± Anthony, however, didn¡¯t get angry. Instead, he realized, ¡°So that¡¯s what it meant. Still, drinking is indeed not good; it affects my reflexes and punch speed. Size doesn¡¯t matter. You, in your past life, were ¡®big¡¯ yet you never used it.¡± ¡°Kvada, I¡¯m going to kill you!¡± Negris, fuming with anger, jumped up and swung his tail towards Anthony. Lightning and ck Horse guffawed withughter, while Ange, Little Angel, and Little Zombie watched on,pletely bewildered. Thus, the group, amidst all the bustle, stepped into the depths of the forest,pletely unaware that the path they had trod was quickly being covered up by wildly growing grass and vines. After a few minutes, there was no trace left of it. Traveling further, Ange suddenly pat Lightning¡¯s nape, who immediately stopped and looked around, puzzled. Anthony also stopped and started looking around suspiciously. He soon sensed something wasn¡¯t right and called out sternly, ¡°Who¡¯s there?¡± The whole forest suddenly shook, as if a light breeze just blew past, creating a shushing noise. An elderly voice replied, ¡°It¡¯s me.¡± ¡°God of Life? Didn¡¯t you ask us toe to you? Why did youe out here instead? You¡¯re being too polite,¡± Negris said, taken aback. ¡°You guys¡­ took too long,¡± The God of Life¡¯s voice carried a hint of helplessness and disdain. ¡°What¡¯s the rush? Don¡¯t you have over nine thousand years left to live? Even if I were reborn, I might not outlive you. Why are you in such a hurry?¡± Negris seemed to dismiss the urgency, a hint of jealousy creeping into his voice. The God of Life sighed, ¡°That¡¯s under normal circumstances. Now, I¡¯m sick, I won¡¯t live that long.¡± ¡°What? You¡¯re dying? Really?¡± Negris was shocked and said anxiously, ¡°How much longer do you have? With your sudden hurry to see us, can¡¯t wait a few more days?¡± The God of Life slowly said, ¡°Perhaps, I might wilt in around three thousand years¡­¡± ¡°Still have three thousand years? Whew, then why are you in such a hurry, you scared me.¡± Negris heaved a sigh of relief. The God of Life calmly replied, ¡°However, I have a feeling¡­ that my consciousness, it will dissipate in the near future¡­ if I don¡¯te, the only thing you¡¯ll see is a giant tree devoid of life.¡± Negris nearly bit his tongue, cursing the damn tree. Even now, he couldn¡¯t get his words out without gasping for breath. Why couldn¡¯t he say everything all at once? He forced himself to calm down, having numerous thoughts in an instant, acknowledging countless possibilities. The death of the World Tree would undoubtedly lead to a chain reaction, shaking the whole ne¡¯s structure and could even cause drastic turbulence. Firstly, once the elves lose the World Tree¡¯s protection, they will quickly be a second-rate species. This is not a joke. The elves maybe long-lived, individually powerful, with an array of Truth Bearer elites, but they are too naive. n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Thepetition among species is brutal, survival of the fittest. The ne was filled with powerful species like the Dragons, numbers like the Orcs, technologically advanced like the Goblins, warlike Dwarfs, but in the end, only the humans and elves stood their ground. Elves were able to rival humans purely because of the World Tree¡¯s protection. Without the World Tree, they will quickly fall into the ranks of second-rate species like the dwarves. Their fate will be worse than the dwarves, as their beauty will lead to the hunting and capturing frenzy by humans. They will be ves and ythings, and eventually be reduced to hiding in forests. If they do not wish to embrace such a dismal fate, the elves must wage war to wipe out humans before the World Tree¡¯s influence runs out. But elves will never do that; they are too naive. Of course, humans are not easy to provoke either. It¡¯s not yet known who would go extinct first. So, if the World Tree dies and no new World Tree takes its ce to continue protecting them, the elves¡¯ fall is inevitable. Actually, not just Negris realized this, the Elf Queen Gdriel and the elven elders saw thising as well. That¡¯s why they were in a rush to nurture a new World Tree. Unfortunately, if it hadn¡¯t been for Ange helping them grow a batch of saplings, they wouldn¡¯t even have found any traces of a new World Tree. However, even though a new World Tree has been grown, it¡¯s still unknown whether it can be the new God of Life or continue to protect the elves, given the new World Treecks self-awareness. Chapter 314 - 200: How to Reject Her Nicely?_2 Chapter 314: Chapter 200: How to Reject Her Nicely?_2 Negris originally thought that the elves had over 9,000 years to wait casually, and in the worst case scenario, they could ask Ange for more saplings. However, when the God of Life suddenly told it that the dissolution of consciousness was imminent, the predicament became significant. n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om ¡°So¡­ what should we do? Is there anything we can do to help you?¡± Negris waspletely at a loss, and then suddenly thought of something, looking at Ange. ¡°Birth, old age, sickness, and decline are all part of life, there¡¯s nothing that needs to be assisted,¡± the God of Life said in a calm andposed manner, not bothered by the fact that he was ¡®dying¡¯. ¡°But aren¡¯t you worried about the elves?¡± Negris asked. The God of Life replied indifferently: ¡°The elves are just one of the species that symbiotically exist with me, no different from the other nts, snakes, insects, rodents, and fungi. Ah, they are smarter, they should take care of themselves.¡± Upon hearing this, Negris realized he had misunderstood. Because of the elves, most people tended to regard the Tree of Life as the guardian deity of the elves,pletely forgetting that the World Tree not only protected the elves but the whole forest. It is the guardian deity of the forest. To it, there is no difference between the elves and other species in the forest. The only distinction is their intelligence. However, unicorns also possess wisdom, as do Night de Leopards and Bear Goblins. No wonder when the elves were mentioned, it appeared indifferent, nor did it care about the elves¡¯ restriction on the loss of seeds. Perhaps it regarded all of these as part of life. Otherwise, why couldn¡¯t it have birds and beasts carry the seeds away? If it¡¯s not worried about the elves and doesn¡¯t need assistance, then why did it urgently reach out to them? To bid them farewell? Negris didn¡¯t think he held that much importance and felt helpless as he asked: ¡°So why did you summon us?¡± ¡°Two things¡­¡± The God of Life slowly said, which made Negris anxious. He feared it would pass away with unfinished words. ¡°Firstly, what is this? I sense my aura on it. Whom did I crossbreed with?¡± As the God of Life spoke, a sphere of light was ¡®snatched¡¯ by an invisible force and brought over, hovering in front of Ange and others. The sphere of light, although ¡®captured¡¯, was restless, darting rapidly, struggling to escape the control. The familiar aura immediately allowed everyone to recognize it. It was the ¡®Divine Spirit¡¯ that escaped from the Divine Body ¨C the literal spirit of the God. ¡°You caught it? As expected, nothing in the forest can escape your notice,¡± Negris said. ¡°What is this thing?¡± The God of Life asked with curiosity. Negris exined the n of the Seed God. ¡°So it is. This unnatural thing should disappear.¡± The God of Life said indifferently. As soon as the words faded, a force acted upon the ¡®Divine Spirit¡¯, shattering it into pieces. Negris screamed internally: What a waste! Why didn¡¯t you give it to us? Such a good research sample and energy source. However, he didn¡¯t dare say it out loud. The God of Life had dered it to be against thews of nature, and they couldn¡¯t oppose it, especially since there was no time. On the other hand, Ange kept beckoning, guiding those fragments over. Little Angel hopped around, capturing the scattering fragments of the Divine Spirit, as if catching butterflies. ¡°The second thing is, I want to see the new Tree of Life.¡± The slow and leisurely voice of the God of Life echoed. Negris noticed that the God of Life referred to the Tree of Life rather than the World Tree, making him pause. Could he be referring to Little Sapling? How did it know about Little Sapling¡¯s existence? How did it know that Little Sapling was with them? ¡°The Tree of Life you mentioned is¡­?¡± Negris asked tentatively. ¡°It¡¯s with the Undead God. The Tree of Life¡¯s aura is on it. It has been with you, but I can¡¯t sense its existence,¡± said the God of Life. Ange took out Little Sapling. Little Sapling had gotten used to sudden environmental changes and seemed a bitzy. However, it quickly became excited because of the significantly different surroundings filled with life auras. It immediately crawled to the edge of the pot, peeking around to see many trees, grass, and flowers, as well as a huge life aura. This made Little Sapling excited, waving its branches and leaves, and sending out this message: Grow¡ªstrong¡ªlong¡ª One could almost hear the amused tone in the voice of the God of Life: ¡°Ha ha ha, such a lively Tree of Life, just as lively as I was back in the day.¡± ¡°Hehe, stop messing around, you said it yourself, you weren¡¯t aware when you were little.¡±, Negris immediately debunked the God of Life¡¯s lie on the spot. ¡°Uh, did I say that? You must have remembered it wrong, you¡¯re getting old.¡± The God of Life categorically denied it. A surge of thought focused on the Little Sapling, this kind of focus, made the Little Sapling even more excited, waving its branches and leaves: hoo ¨C growing ¨C hoo ¨C growing The God of Life seemed like a worldly-wise old man who suddenly saw his little grandsoning and was so happy that he almostughed when he spoke: ¡°Hehe, such vitality, this is the real Tree of Life. After I perish, you will be the only Tree of Life in the world.¡± Negris suddenly felt a touch of mncholy, a super life that had lived for more than 91,000 years was about to disappear before his eyes, and he couldn¡¯t do anything about it. Is eternal life really so difficult? Even the god who is known as Life can¡¯t do it? ¡°Growth and death is thew of nature, I can¡¯t defy it, but I can give you a small gift.¡± As the God of Life spoke, a green light spot suddenly appeared in the air and slowly drifted towards the Little Sapling. However, before it fell on the Little Sapling, Ange reached out his hand to hold the green light spot and asked, ¡°What is this?¡± He behaved just like a parent stopping someone else from randomly feeding his child a snack. ¡°Some experiences and knowledge from the growth process, some environments that form experiences have already disappeared. It might not encounter these environments when it grows up, so it will be difficult to gain the same experiences. Maybe these experiences will be useful to it in the future.¡± The God of Life unusually spoke a long sentence. With this exnation, Ange understood. The God of Life¡¯s initial growth environment was unique, and the Little Sapling might note across it, and therefore, could not generate the same experiences. But if it unexpectedly encounters the same situations without any experience to rely on, it can possibly lead to an ident or even death. Just like the disease the God of Life is suffering from now, if the Little Sapling encounters it in the future, it would have the experience to deal with it. When nts face various pests and diseases, they mainly rely on scale and evolution to cope, allowing those unlucky ones to wither and die, while the lucky ones evolve resistance and thus survive. Obviously, the World Tree cannot adopt this method, so the experiences umted by the God of Life are very important to the Little Sapling. Although the God of Life said so, Ange still carefully examined the green light spot, and only when he confirmed it was harmless did he put it on the Little Sapling¡¯s head. The Little Sapling stared nkly at the green light spot going into its body, tilting its head in confusion. Everyone gathered around, curiously observing it. As soon as the Little Sapling saw so many heads crowding in front of it, it immediately stopped being confused and started waving its branches and leaves and pointing at Negris: hard ¨C grow ¨C hard ¨C grow ¨C ¡°It doesn¡¯t seem to have changed at all, it¡¯s still as clueless as before.¡± ¡°Hehe, look around.¡± The God of Life¡¯s tone carried a touch of pride, it was so unbelievable, a super life of 90,000 years would still produce such emotional changes. Everyone turned their heads to look around, and they saw all the nts growing madly at a speed visible to the naked eye. Well, this fast-forward version of the Little Sapling is still a Little Sapling. They thought it might awaken some new abilities, but sadly it didn¡¯t. Negris, disappointed, discussed with Ange. After getting Ange¡¯s consent, he said to the God of Life: ¡°We might perhaps be able to cure your illness, allowing you to live until the end of your life.¡± Ange also reached into the Temple of Rest to prepare to cut a piece of the healing branch of the World Tree to show the God of Life. But as soon as his hand reached in, he realized something was wrong. The bald and muscr Divine Body actually stood up, reaching out both hands towards Ange¡¯s hand like he was warming himself by a fire. Little Ghost? Ange looked around but didn¡¯t see the Little Ghost. He tentatively summoned the Holy Light. A pure and innocent expression appeared on the face of the Divine Body. Excited, he moved his hands closer to warm up by the Holy Light, but his bald head and muscr body made the expression look a bit silly. Ange moved his hand bone, the Holy Light drifted to the left, the Divine Body followed to the left, it drifted to the right, the Divine Body followed to the right. when Ange¡¯s hand moved too fast, the Divine Body became anxious and grabbed Ange¡¯s arm in a hug. Chapter 315 - 201 What Have You Done to the God of Life?_1 Chapter 315: Chapter 201 What Have You Done to the God of Life?_1 N?v(el)B\\jnn Clutching Ange¡¯s hand bone, the shiny god¡¯s body continuously slid down, finally dropping to the ground. However, while the divine body dropped, a white little ghost didn¡¯t, it separated from the body and clung tightly to Ange¡¯s finger. Ange felt a bit peculiar, could such a tiny thing actually control the divine body? But it was clearly at its limit. Holding onto Ange¡¯s finger, it noticed no light was being emitted. It couldn¡¯t help but protruding a finger and nudged the finger it was clutching. Ange had to resort to casting holy light, bathing the little ghost in it. Ha~ the little ghost breathed out contentedly, holding firmly onto Ange¡¯s finger. Ange suddenly understood why it could control the divine body. It was his own energy feeding it. Clearly, it was depleted now, rendering it immobile. But it was already very impressive. After all, the divine body was a powerful structure that could even confront steadfast bone. It took numerous punches from Ange to just break two arms. Such a divine body, driven by a little ghost? If he kept recharging it, could it continually control the divine body to tame the wilderness and farm? He¡¯d try itter. Having decided, Ange cut off a little piece of a healing branch of the World Tree. It was the diseased decay he had cut off the God of Life. He saw it at once. Newly grown branches of the World Tree didn¡¯t have such age. ¡°You¡­ you really cured my disease of withering, how did you do that¡­¡± the God of Life spoke slowly. Ange took out a bag of worm ashes. ¡°Such intense vitality, perhaps I can give it a try, would you sell these to me¡­¡± Even at this time, the God of Life still maintained a rxed tone. Negris hastily responded: ¡°Sure, sure, no problem, alert your elves below, to lift flight restrictions, so we can fly straight to you.¡± ¡°Flying is too slow,e here.¡± The God of Life spoke leisurely, as he did so, the surrounding lush trees and grass retreated to the sides, revealing a path. This retreat startled the Little Sapling. It thought the trees were withering, so it fervently tried to grow, but s, its power was no match for the God of Life, the forest still split open. Flying is slow? Negris and Anthony looked at each other in confusion. Was there a teleportation array nearby? Following the path through the forest, the more they advanced, the lusher the trees became. They shielded the space above, making them feel like they were walking in a circr tunnel made of entangled tree branches and vines. After walked for about three or four kilometers, the path suddenly opened up to a wide tform. The tform felt like a huge tree trunk. It was surrounded by dense leaves. Sunlight filtered through the leaves and the edge of the tform was enveloped in thick white mist. Looking down from the edge, it seemed bottomless. ¡°Where are we? It seems we¡¯re on a tree, the floor is all vibrant wood.¡± The undead horse stomped on the ground a few times with its hooves. The God of Life¡¯s voice arose: ¡°Stop treading on me¡­¡± ¡°Er, this is you? Sorry, I¡¯m really sorry.¡± The Undead Horse quickly apologized and started to tap the ground with its hooves, trying to tten the hoofprint it left. ¡°This is you? How did we get on your body? What happened? We hadn¡¯t been walking in the forest for long, we were still thousands of kilometers away from you.¡± Negris was taken aback, and Anthony also looked back in astonishment at the passage they had juste through. But there was no passage behind them anymore, only arge tree hole was left, one that could be seen right through to the end. ¡°I temporarily established a space passage. Come this way.¡± As he finished speaking, a small elf flew over, circled around Ange and others, and then flew in a certain direction. Negris and Anthony were astounded. They were not shocked by being teleported thousands of kilometers in a blink of an eye. As a formidable God of Life, teleporting them to another ne wouldn¡¯t be a big shock. What shocked them was the silent transition during the whole process. They felt absolutely nothing and yet they had been entirely moved through space. It was as if they were just walking a few kilometers, which was the most terrifying part. Even they, at their level, didn¡¯t perceive the space switching. Ordinary people, even if they passed through the passage, would only think they had walked a few kilometers, oblivious that they were actually already miles away. Amid their astonishment, a tree branch suddenly dangled a ripe and sweet-smelling fruit in their path. Lightning instinctively licked its lips. It had tasted this kind of fruitst time. Although it only ate the flesh and all the seeds were hollowed out, it had remembered the sweetness ever since. It wanted to eat the fruit as it looked at it. Just as the thought arose, a white figure darted over, grabbed the fruit, and plucked it down. The Little Angel, clutching the fruit, scurried back to Ange and held it up high with both hands. As soon as Ange took the fruit, Lightning swooped in: ¡°My lord, you only want the seeds inside, right? Can I have the rest?¡± Ange shook his head: ¡°Not for now.¡± And then he tucked it into the Temple of Rest. Soon, they all went down a spiral staircase formed by a twist of giant branches, entering a hollow tree hole, simr to the kind of hollow in a decayed tree trunk, just hundreds of timesrger, like a deep pit. Chapter 316 - 201 What Have You Done to the God of Life?_2 Chapter 316: Chapter 201 What Have You Done to the God of Life?_2 Quickly reaching the bottom, the material of the ground indicated to everyone that they were still within the trunk of the World Tree. There were semi-independent hollows around them, filled with all sorts of items. The voice of the God of Life sounded, ¡°I don¡¯t know how you value your possessions, but these are items lost or presented to me by beings over thest tens of thousands of years. I don¡¯t know which items are valuable. You can choose as you please, or even take them all. I don¡¯t know if these items are sufficient to exchange for the medicine to cure my withered disease.¡± Negris and Anthony were already dumbfounded, and tremblingly responded upon hearing these words, ¡°Enough¡­ enough, these items of yours¡­¡± ¡°The Angel¡¯s Wand, the Pope¡¯s Scepter, the Holy Spirit Badge, the Pdin Badge, the Holy Scripture¡­¡± ¡°The me Dragon Stone, the War God¡¯s Hammer, the Steel Demon¡¯s Heart¡­¡± ¡°Arcane Magician¡¯s Manual, Truth Mage¡¯s Manual, Swordsman¡¯s Secrets¡­ you have piles of them where others would only have a single copy¡­¡± ¡°Unbounded Crystals, the core of Space Artifacts, you have five bags of them. Star Realm Gems, Positioning Stones of the Void, you have a bag of them¡­¡± ¡°Fine Gold, Mithril, Magic Copper, Magic Crystals, Thunder Wood¡­ every magic material I know of, you have them here¡­¡± After inventorying the items around them, Negris and Anthony were so shocked they were unable to speak. They had to take a few deep breaths to calm themselves beforementing, ¡°These are all treasures, but why are so many of them broken! Many are broken!¡± n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Broken? It¡¯s probably because they¡¯ve been here too long. Some items, made of inferior materials, have turned to dust after tens of thousands of years.¡± The God of Life replied calmly. ¡°Damn it, tens of thousands of years¡­ couldn¡¯t you have created a constant boundary or sealed them up?¡± Negris was so heartbroken he could barely speak. Whether it was the Pope¡¯s Scepter or the Steel Demon¡¯s Heart, all were genuine. From the emblem on the Pope¡¯s Scepter, Anthony even recognized it as the one first used by the Pope, saturated with holy power and formidable in strength. But right now, it was just like a piece of rotting wood, casually ced there, with no power resonating from it. The Steel Demon¡¯s Heart was the same, rusty all over, with the internal structures rusted into a lump, unable to be moved at all. Items as extraordinary as these would not be so easily damaged even if left in the mud. Three to five hundred years wouldn¡¯t be enough to corrode them. The issue is, the Pope¡¯s Scepter was lost four thousand years ago. Those were still in better condition. Some items made from organic materials, like pearl nes, Dragon Teeth Bracelets, Dragon Scale Armor, have long since turned to dust under the erosion of time, leaving their original shapes unrecognizable, like the pile of ash in the corner. ¡°Oh, that¡¯s ash. It¡¯s the remains of an angel¡¯s bone I picked up seventy thousand years ago. I didn¡¯t expect it to have turned into ash.¡± Seventy thousand years ago¡­ so even holy relics would turn into ash. Given enough time, even divine weapons cannot withstand entropy. All man-made objects were so damaged they no longer retained their shape. In response to Negris¡¯ heartbroken question, the God of Life simply replied, ¡°This is a part of nature, there¡¯s no need to stop it, it¡¯s not like they¡¯re of any use to me anyway.¡± ¡°So, is there anything of value? Can they be exchanged for the medicine? If not, I can have the elves look for what you need.¡± The God of Life saidnguidly. Negris nced at Ange. Ange nodded and started to move the Insect Ash. Negris hurriedly said, ¡°Let¡¯s leave the value of the items aside for now. Just cure yourself first, quickly. Don¡¯t take your time. It would be trouble if your consciousness dissipates mid-sentence.¡± ¡°Alright¡­¡± Ange transferred out more than ten tons of Insect Ash, causing the heartbroken Negris to cry out, ¡°Is this enough? These things are already out of production. We should use as little as possible and only enough to cure you. Any more would be a waste.¡± Ange moved his jaws as if wanting to say something but was interrupted by the voice of the God of Life, ¡°Bring out a bit more. What you¡¯ve brought out is not even enough to sprinkle around my feet.¡± Having heard this, and recalling the size of the Tree of Life ¨C the mere diameter of its trunk was measured in kilometers, he didn¡¯t know if emptying Ange¡¯s inventory would be enough to scatter around the tree¡¯s foot. ¡°Then just sprinkle half of it.¡± Negris said painfully. Ange, however, didn¡¯t stop and continued to transfer until all the Insect Ash in his possession was exhausted. What he had left on hand were only some refined Insect Ash Liquid and Essence Bug Ash Liquid. But he didn¡¯t feel they would go extinct. He had already mastered the method of breeding the insects, and there were insect seeds in the pit of the Resting Camp. As long as there¡¯s an appropriate ce, he could breed more insects to burn for ash. The Insect Ash was lifted by an invisible hand. Its storage bag ripped apart, and the Insect Ash inside formed into a stream and drifted away. Having delivered the goods, Negris felt justified in selecting his reward. However, he felt that thebined value of all the items here did not quite match the value of the Insect Ash, because in his mind, the Insect Ash was already out of production. Since Hermorthos was dead, there weren¡¯t any more Insect Gods or bug hunters to kill. Who would have thought that Ange had made seeds out of the insects? Man-made items couldn¡¯t be preserved, but those items naturally formed, such as Fine Gold Mithril and Star Realm Gemstones, were still perfectly preserved. After all, they had existed since the day they were formed, which was a lot longer than just tens of thousands of years. Chapter 317: 201 Chapter 317: 201 ¡°Five baskets full of Unbounded Crystals, take them all, as they¡¯re useless to it anyway. Star Realm Gems, take them all too, as it can¡¯t make use of them either. Fine Gold Mithril, again, take all of it ¨C it can¡¯t forge it anyway.¡± Negris muttered under his breath, meanwhile, his little ws busy tossing the stuff to Ange. ¡°Do you want these weapons and equipment as well? They¡¯re all rotten and devoid of any power.¡± Negris asked. ¡°I do, I do.¡± Anthony quickly replied: ¡°I know some artifact restoration specialists. I will take these back and have them restored, then auction them off as antiques, or use them to gain favor with the curia. As the Favored One of the God who found the lost holy relics of the curia, wouldn¡¯t it be reasonable for me to be the Pope of the Divine Church?¡± ¡°Reasonable, yes.¡± Negris remarked disdainfully, and pretended to throw those relics over, scaring Anthony so much that he quickly knelt: ¡°Don¡¯t bother, Lord of Knowledge, I¡¯ll collect them myself.¡± He carefully packed up the relics and stuffed them into his mantle. After the hustle and bustle, they had packed up everything of value from the Tree of Life. This somewhat consoled Negris. He would feel dissatisfied if they didn¡¯t scour thoroughly. Most of the items were broken; the only useful things were the raw materials. At this moment, the voice of the Tree of Life sounded, carrying a hint of fatigue: ¡°I have sprinkled the powder on my roots, and I can feel the endless vitality. It is revitalizing the life within my body and curing my branches¡¯ withering disease. I feel unprecedentedly tired. I may need to fall into a deep sleep for a while to digest this life force, I¡¯m afraid I am unable to send you guys off.¡± ¡°Alright, alright, you go and sleep while we leave,¡± Negris said, ¡°Oh right, let¡¯s pick a few more Fruits of Life.¡± It didn¡¯t look like Negris was going to stop until he hadpletely stripped the God of Life. But the God of Life didn¡¯t respond. Perhaps it had already fallen asleep. It must have superb sleep quality, falling asleep right after speaking. Everyone began to scatter around to pick the Fruits of Life. This was a good item ¨C not only does it contain the seeds of the World Tree, but the fruit itself is also rich in nutrients. Consuming it regrly can prolong life. Who knows what price it would fetch in the human world. While they were picking, suddenly, a leaf fell down. Leaves started falling, rustling as they descended inrge quantities. It seemed that the so-called deep sleep of the Tree of Life triggered leaf shedding? An array of leaves drifted down. Soon, the treetop was bare, leaving only the branches and trunks, opening up the view within a blink of an eye. Regretfully, Negris remarked: ¡°It¡¯s fine for the leaves to fall, but why did the fruits have to fall too! Now we have no more to pick. Ange¡­¡± As Negris called out for Ange, he realized that Ange was looking towards the outside of the treetop. Following Ange¡¯s gaze, he only saw an enraged Elf Queen Gdriel. Besides her, there was the High Priest Kandel transformed into a giant eagle, numerous Two-headed Chimera Knights, over a dozen Elf Arcane Mages, a Truth Mage, and three Elf Archers who were treading on the air¡­ Almost all of the strong elves had appeared. They surrounded the treetop in a circle, ring at Ange and the others with anger. Gard¡¯s eyes seemed to be shooting fire as she gritted her teeth and asked: ¡°What have you done to the God of Life?¡± n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Faced with such a formidable line-up, Negris was horrified and asked fearfully: ¡°Could it be¡­ didn¡¯t the God of Life tell you what was going to happen?¡± Chapter 318 - 202: The God of Life Dislikes Elves_1 Chapter 318: Chapter 202: The God of Life Dislikes Elves_1 Negris¡¯s heart was filled with dread, as he thought of a horrifying possibility: the God of Life considered elves to be one of the countless creatures coexisting with it. Would it deliberately tell the elves that it was going into dormancy? Would anyone tell a gecko living in the corner of their house that they were going to sleep? The answer should be no. So could these elves think that they were the culprits causing the God of Life¡¯s current state of being? A Night de Elf ran out of the treasure cave and loudly reported: ¡°Your Majesty, everything from the ancient treasury is gone.¡± Negris felt terribly guilty, as though even holy water couldn¡¯t cleanse him. As expected, Gard was furious. He bellowed: ¡°So you killed the God of Life just for these treasures?¡± Negris grimaced and said: ¡°If I say the God of Life is fine and just in slumber, would you believe me?¡± Gard sneered: ¡°Do you think I would?¡± ¡°I¡¯ll wake it up to exin everything to you. Hey, hey, wake up, wake up,¡± Negrisnded on the tree trunk and stomped his feet. Yet the giant creature was in deep slumber and not easily awakened. Would a sleeping person be disturbed by the sound of ants stomping their feet? At least you¡¯d have to saw off a few of its branches, but clearly they had no chance to do anything like that. Anthony made a slight move, deliberately or unintentionally, and whoosh, the whole space darkened as if night had suddenly descended. Ange could sense the Fire Element, Wind Element, Light Element near him, all being suppressed, as if bound by something. The power to suppress all of this came from a beautiful female elf behind Gard. She was dressed in a white robe that perfectly entuated her curves. With her silver-long hair, tall figure, fair skin, and eyes tightly shut, she stood still in the air, like a beautiful goddess. Negris swallowed, totally taken aback by this female elf, struggling to say, ¡°The¡­ the Forbidden Magic Domain, who is she?¡± Anthony also swallowed: ¡°The nemesis of mages, the scourge of the elements, the God of Truth and Law, Aestolia.¡± ¡°So many titles, we¡¯re doomed,¡± Negris chuckled bitterly, ¡°Elves have such terrifying cards up their sleeves? Even Forbidden Magic Domain can be controlled by someone?¡± ¡°No, she¡¯s just short of being called an anomaly because she¡¯s blind,¡± Anthony whispered. ¡°What?¡± Negris looked again at Aestolia. He initially thought she was too proud to look at anyone else, but it turned out she was blind. The Forbidden Magic Domain has suppressed all elements. Light couldn¡¯t prate, and teleportation was impossible. Even if Anthony opened up Holy Blessing now, they couldn¡¯t teleport out. ¡°Arrest them, and anyone who resists shall be executed immediately!¡± Gard roared angrily. The Tree of Life was dead, and the god of elves as well. That the enraged elves did not execute them on the spot was already a show of utmost restraint. But Ange couldn¡¯t possibly let them apprehend him. He lightly bent his knees, ready to transform, but was held back by Anthony. Anthony directly spoke within his soul: ¡°Sir, y along with me.¡± Ange tilted his head in confusion, but soon saw Anthony lifting the Little Sapling from his head, holding it high above him and threatening: ¡°Back off immediately, or I¡¯ll drop it!¡± Once lifted off Ange¡¯s head, the Little Sapling felt a bit lost but soon found a new target. It instructed Gard vigorously with its branches and leaves: Grow hard grow hard There was a strange sense of unease seeing that the Little Sapling perched atop of Ange¡¯s head. A skull wearing a flower pot, what did that mean? But now, as the Little Sapling ryed its message, Gard quickly had a realization, his body stiffening with shock: ¡°The God of Life?! Be careful!¡± ¡°Stand back! Or I¡¯m gonna drop it!¡± Anthony roared ¡®threateningly¡¯. ¡°Don¡¯t, don¡¯t, be careful, we¡¯ll step back, and you be careful,¡± Gard pleaded urgently, agitated and apprehensive while he slowly moved back. The others were the same, retreating in fear, except for Aestolia, who just stood there. Kael¡¯danil, in his eagle avatar, caught Gard¡¯s eye. They looked at each other and saw the surprise and exhration in their eyes. The God of Life, the newly born God of Life. Heavens! The World Tree, which had always been unable to produce consciousness, had led them to despair. They did not expect to suddenly see a little Tree of Life. Could this be the God of Life reincarnated? ¡°Let go of the Tree of Life. If not, you will be the enemy of all elves. We will spare no effort to hunt you down and hang you,¡± Gard warned loudly. ¡°Shut up. Tell her to remove the Forbidden Magic Domain. The moment a light appears, I will drop it. Hurry, or I¡¯ll pluck its leaves,¡± Anthony shouted. Gard was panting heavily and ring at Anthony with eyes filled with rage. But Anthony was unwavering, his hand slowly moving towards the Little Sapling in the flower pot. In his mind, however, Anthony was panic-stricken. He quickly asked Ange, using their soul link, ¡°Sir, if I pluck a leaf or two, will they grow back?¡± Ange uncertainly replied, ¡°I don¡¯t know.¡± Fortunately, they didn¡¯t have to make such an attempt. Just as Anthony¡¯s fingers were about to touch the Little Sapling, Gard spat out, grinding his teeth with each word, ¡°Ais, remove the Forbidden Magic Domain!¡± The pitch-ck space regained light. All the elements began to flow again. Aestolia turned her head in Anthony¡¯s direction. Even with her eyes closed, she seemed to be observing something. Anthony instantly felt a strong thought focused on him.N?v(el)B\\jnn Chapter 319 - 202: The God of Life Dislikes Elves_2 Chapter 319: Chapter 202: The God of Life Dislikes Elves_2 Anthony pointed at the Little Sapling with his finger. Rarely did anyone touch the Little Sapling other than Ange. Curious about the finger touching it, the sapling gently raised a leaf that touched Anthony¡¯s fingertip. Anthony felt a cool stream creeping into his body from the point of contact. He didn¡¯t know what kind of aura it was, but it felt pleasant. However, Anthony didn¡¯t have time to explore this feeling and shot a defiant re back at Aestolia. Aestolia nodded, her face conveying a ¡®I¡¯ll remember you¡¯ expression, and backed away. Anthony quickly cradled the Little Sapling in his arms, fearing he might drop it identally. His recent show of defiance wasrgely for the elves¡¯ benefit. Only after he¡¯d secured the pot in his arms did Anthony dere loudly: ¡°Firstly, the Tree of Life is not dead. We found the cure to its wilting disease and poured it into the soil. The drug started working, sending it into a slumber.¡± Saying this, Anthony quickly added, ¡°Give them that branch we cut earlier. Also, do any of you have a Teleportation Scroll?¡± Negris quickly tossed the branch they had cut earlier, and said, ¡°You¡¯vee to the right person for that question. Ange, get the scrolls.¡± Ange brought out arge pile of scrolls, one for each person, even Lightning. But at this moment, Lightning¡¯s mother leaned out, saying sternly, ¡°Lightning,e back! This is no joke. They killed the God of Life. The elves won¡¯t let them off easily. Come back, I can plead with His Majesty on your behalf.¡± Lightning rolled his eyes, ¡°I told you, the God of Life didn¡¯t die. Those elves just like to panic and make wild guesses. We wanted to help, but they treated us like criminals. They are too stuck up. The God of Life won¡¯t like them.¡± As he spoke, Lightning mped a scroll between his hooves and bit into it effortlessly. His action conveyed his alignment with Ange¡¯s side. Unless the misunderstanding was rified, it would mean aplete rift with his mother, turning them into enemies forever. Everyone began tearing their teleportation scrolls. While waiting for the scrolls to trigger, Anthony continued, ¡°Secondly, we saved the God of Life, and you treat us like this. When the God of Life reawakens, I will ask it to punish you.¡± ¡°Thirdly, this is Little Sapling, our partner, not your Tree of Life.¡± n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om ¡°Fourthly, the Undead God doesn¡¯t fear battles but dislikes misunderstandings. We will let you off this time. Once you understand the truth of what happened, you cane and apologize to us.¡± As Anthony finished speaking, the teleportation scrolls started working one after another. sts of white light red up, one by one engulfing everyone present. The elves, who had surrounded them tightly, could only watch helplessly as Ange and his associates were teleported away one by one. Thest to leave was Anthony, with the Little Sapling in his hand. The elves looked at each other in bewilderment, at a loss. After a while, Gard was the first tond on the tform, followed by Kael¡¯danil, who changed back from an eagle to a young woman. Three elven archersnded too, followed by Aestolia. Kael¡¯danil was the first to speak, ¡°That Little Sapling truly is a Tree of Life. I sensed the overwhelming vitality in it. It¡¯s full of curiosity about the world and is not a reincarnation of the God of Life but a newly born Tree of Life.¡± Kael¡¯danil was extremely excited, ¡°I now know what a newborn Tree of Life looks like. It¡¯s so cute! It waved a leaf at us¡­ did you see it? Did you?¡± However, Gard was troubled by another critical question and didn¡¯t have time to heed the High Priestess. Instead, he turned to Aestolia and asked, ¡°Ais, do you think we can believe their words? Did the God of Life really not die?¡± ¡°I believe so. The God of Life isn¡¯t that easy to kill. If they really did it unnoticed and right under our noses, their strength is unfathomable.¡± Aestolia closed her eyes and calmly responded. ¡°But, all its leaves have fallen. I¡¯ve never seen the God of Life go bald. It didn¡¯t die even in this state?¡± Gard turned to Kael¡¯danil and inquired. Kael¡¯danil hesitated before answering, ¡°In theory, the tree won¡¯t necessarily die if all its leaves fall off. As temperatures drop in winter, many nts lose their leaves to conserve water during their hibernation period. However, if the Tree of Life will die or not, I honestly don¡¯t know. It often doesn¡¯t respond to my prayers. Now, I don¡¯t know if it doesn¡¯t want to deal with me, or if it¡¯s really hibernating, or dead.¡± At this moment, a Chimera Knight flew up and reported, ¡°We¡¯ve found some powder on the ground. It must have been sprinkled not long ago.¡± He presented a small amount of the powder as he spoke. Gard examined a bit of the substance and muttered, ¡°Could they really be treating the Tree of Life? Is this medicinal powder?¡± ¡°It could also be poison,¡± Aestolia pointed out bluntly. Indeed, it could be medicine, or it could be poison. Who could definitively say they were applying medication, rather than poisonous substance? Gard picked up the branch the opponent had thrown. There were really no traces of disease on it. ¡°Perhaps it was just cut from a healthy part of the Tree of Life. The cut still looks quite fresh,¡± Aestoliamented. Indeed, a single branch proved nothing. They, unlike the Tree of Life, had no capacity to discern whether a branch had been freshly cut from their body, healed of a previous affliction, or had been cut some time ago. ¡°So what do we do now?¡± As a Queen, Gard¡¯s capability for decisive judgement was unquestionable, but at this point she too was somewhat at a loss. ¡°Find them, restrain them, treat them well, and wait for the Tree of Life to wake up. If the Tree of Life can be awakened, you apologize to them; if it can¡¯t be awakened, bury them in the ground as fertilizer,¡± Aestolia stated calmly. Kael¡¯danil hesitated slightly, ¡°Is that okay? What if they truly came to heal the Tree of Life?¡± ¡°The Tree of Life, should not fall into the hands of others. The Tree of Life, belongs to the elves,¡± Aestolia interjected curtly, her tone suggesting that this was simply a matter of fact. This realization struck Gard: ¡°Yes, the Tree of Life cannot fall into the hands of outsiders. It belongs to the elves. Let¡¯s get moving. Even if they¡¯ve taken refuge in the abyss, we must find them.¡± Gard mounted her Great Unicorn and rode off into the distance, while Aestolia seemed to be buoyed toward the horizon by an invisible hand. Three elves, each holding a bow, loosed an arrow into the distance. The arrows trailed ropes, and as they shot off, the elves pulled the ropes, leveraging the arrows¡¯ momentum tounch themselves into the sky. Watching herpanions receding into the distance, Kael¡¯danil sighed wistfully, ¡°Is this why Lightning said the Tree of Life doesn¡¯t like elves?¡± After speaking, Kael¡¯danil flipped backward, the delicate elf woman transforming into a giant eagle. She soared into the sky in pursuit of Gard. Soon, giant arrows began to shoot into the sky and the entire Elf Forest erupted into activity once more. The elves¡¯ unusual behavior alerted humanity. Top officials from all nationsmunicated with one another, inquiring if anyone had inside information on the elves¡¯test antics. This was the elves¡¯ second bout of strange behavior in the past two years. They were spoiling for an inter-dimensional war, which made everyone uneasy. However, it wasn¡¯t long before the human nations received a notification from the elves: ¡°Our target is the abyss nomads of the desert. Please stay calm and do not harbor them; otherwise, we will consider you an enemy.¡± No one was willing to antagonize the elves for a group of abyss nomads, especially given the vast scale of elven forces on disy. Unless every human nation on the continent were to unite, there was no stopping this warfront. The Chimera Corps, Pterosaur Corps, Unicorn Corps, Moose Cavalry Corps, Elf Magician Corps, and Magic Tank Unit¡ªthe elves had mobilized nearly all their elite forces. What was more terrifying, however, was that the elves had gathered all their Truth Mages and Arcane Magicians, including Aestolia and over a dozen others. With this force capable of fighting an inter-dimensional war, Gard arrived at the Fallen Dragon Lake. F nervously handed her a letter. As soon as Gard saw the first sentence after opening the envelope, she couldn¡¯t help but burst intoughter. Chapter 320 - 203: Missing his place_1 Chapter 320: Chapter 203: Missing his ce_1 ¡°We¡¯re running off, don¡¯t worry about us, if you dare,e fight me.¡± Gard burst into grudgingughter as he saw this sentence, ¡°Alright, alright, wait till Ie over to fight you.¡± ¡°Are you angry? We¡¯re angry too. We shouldn¡¯t have saved the God of Life, should¡¯ve just let it die and spare ourselves from your ungrateful Elves who return kindness with ingratitude.¡± ¡°Why can¡¯t you see such a simple truth? No. What do you want? Do you think we can¡¯t guess? No. The Tree of Life belongs to itself, not to you Elves.¡± The second and third paragraphs of the letter brought Gard some shame and feelings, so their thoughts were crystal clear to others. However, this shame vanished at section four ¡°You have many men, and home advantage, so why not send someone for a solo challenge, the loser must run around the World Tree naked, dare you?!¡± Among the other side, including Ange, Negris and a bunch of guys, the only one dressed was Little Angel, what¡¯s the meaning of naked running for them? The fifth paragraph: ¡°I see you dare not, we¡¯ll take our leave first, when the God of Life wakes up, we¡¯lle back, by then we will use you Elves of rudeness in front of it.¡± ¡°Take good care of the crops, property, and people we left behind, if they fail harvest, go bankrupt or die because of you, the God of Life will surely punish you, the Undead God won¡¯t let you go, the God of Knowledge will curse you.¡± ¡°If you can¡¯t do this, we¡¯ll mail a leaf from the sapling each month, until it turns bald, hope you take the hint.¡± The letter ends here, underneath are some random traces, as if several guys were fighting for the pen and ink whileposing this letter. ¡°What does the letter say?¡± Kael¡¯danil, seeing Gard finished reading, leaned over to ask. Gard handed the letter to her directly, stared nkly at the faraway Goddess of Beauty City and the World Tree. After Kael¡¯danil finished reading, she stated with surprise: ¡°There¡¯s still crops? I¡¯ll go take a look.¡± She jumped backward, transformed into an eagle, and soared into the sky. Soon she found arge rice field by Fallen Dragon Lake, picked one at random and look carefully, her expression changed greatly. Aestolia was the third one to receive the letter, her fingers softly glided across the parchment, and the words came to life like as if touched by her. Soon, Aestolia ¡®read¡¯ the whole letter with her fingers. ¡°What should we do?¡± Gard asked worriedly. Aestolia smiled faintly: ¡°Can you locate which ne they¡¯re in?¡± Gard shook his head: ¡°Though the general area can be determined, the specific abyss is hard to determine. It may take several or even dozens of years, searching one by one, we need to invest a lot of manpower and resources, and there may be casualties.¡± ¡°Then until you find them, take care of what they left behind.¡± Aestolia suggested. Gard hesitated a bit: ¡°Is that okay? There¡¯s a sentence in the letter that¡¯s true, the Tree of Life belongs to them. Is it okay for us to strive so desperately to seize it?¡± Aestolia smiled faintly: ¡°This is a question for you. Can you, or the Elf n, bear the cost of losing the God of Life?¡± Gard shuddered and shook his head immediately: ¡°We can¡¯t.¡± As the Elf Queen, she knew very well the weakness of the Elf n. Without the God of Life, the Elf n is likely to face extinction. ¡°So now you only have two choices, at all costs, seize the sapling while it¡¯s still small, cultivate it well, it may not remember that it was stolen. The God of Life once said that it has no memory of the events from ten thousand years ago, so it doesn¡¯t know how we Elves were born.¡± n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Gard fell into contemtion, after a while he asked: ¡°And the second one?¡± ¡°Build a good rtionship, wait till it has the ability to shelter the Elf n, then pledge loyalty to it.¡± Aestolia answered. Compared with the first choice, the second one sounds more like a joke, Gard said disapprovingly, ¡°Stop joking.¡± Aestolia gave a faint smile, without any rebuttal. Gard took a deep breath, reached a decision: ¡°Let¡¯s settle for this, take good care of their fair crops temporarily, put all our efforts into finding their location in the abyss, seize the sapling at all costs, the Tree of Life must belong to the Elves.¡± With a whoosh, an eagle swooped back and transformed into Kael¡¯danil: ¡°It may not be that simple, take a look.¡± Gard looked nkly at the harvested rice, being a Giant Dragon Hunter, what could she understand from a rice stalk? She looked puzzled. Aestolia touched it but couldn¡¯t figure out anything either. ¡°This is what I picked from the side of Fallen Dragon Lake, theke water is salty, these are saltwater rice crops.¡± Kael¡¯danil said anxiously. Every profession has its own expertise, neither the Giant Dragon Hunter nor the God of Truth and Law understood the key point and asked, ¡°Is it valuable? Rare? It seems that human food cannot be grown in salty water, right?¡± ¡°Unprecedented, it¡¯s a new crop, a crop that can grow in salty water and saline. apletely new crop, no one is certain they can ¡®take care of it¡¯ well.¡± When talking about ¡®take care of it¡¯, Kael¡¯danil emphasized her tone particrly. Now, Gard and Aestolia understood the key issue, a whole new crop, and it¡¯s a saltwater one, even Kael¡¯danil doesn¡¯t have the confidence ¡®to take care of it¡¯, then who can? Chapter 321 - 203 Missing Him Now_2 Chapter 321: Chapter 203 Missing Him Now_2 What if they don¡¯t care for them properly and the crops die? How could they maintain a good rtionship then? Now that Ange and the others were forced to flee, they must be harboring a lot of resentment. And when the elves manage to kill off their new crop, they¡¯re sure to despise the elves. ¡°Are they valuable?¡± Gard asked. If they¡¯re not valuable, letting them die isn¡¯t a big deal. How much could grain be worth? They could justpensate double, triple, or even tenfoldter. n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Kael¡¯danil nodded, suppressing his excitement, ¡°Let¡¯s put it this way, a fifth of the world¡¯s cultivablend belongs to saline-alkali soil. If these crops can be promoted, it¡¯s as if the world has suddenly gained an extra fifth of arablend, enabling it to support an additional fifth of the world¡¯s poption.¡± A shiver ran through Gard¡¯s heart, and a phrase shed across his mind¡ªpriceless treasure. ¡°How about we apologize to them, offer reparations, and invite them back?¡± Kael¡¯danil suggested. Gard and Aistolia both rolled their eyes in unison at her suggestion. Of course, Aistolia did not have whites in her eyes to roll, but her expression was universally understandable. The mighty elf army retreated in a huff, leaving only a squad of elf druids, led by Kael¡¯danil, and a squad of chimera knights. The druids led by Kael¡¯danil were naturally there to look after the Saline Demon Rice¡ªa thankless task. The elves were not ustomed to the desert climate, but these elf druids willingly endured the hardship because they were caring for an unprecedented new crop. In the Holy Kingdom, the Square of the Gods, Ange stood in the tilled farnd, gazing nkly in a certain direction from time to time. Luther, who had juste up from the Resting Abyss, saw this and asked worriedly, ¡°Lord, are you still like this?¡± With a helpless sigh, Negris replied, ¡°Yes, he misses hisnd.¡± ¡°Damn elves! You should have taken me with you back then, so I could have chopped all of them on the spot!¡± Luther said indignantly. ¡°Really? Next time I¡¯ll bring you along. There aren¡¯t many elves. Three archmages, one of whom knows the Forbidden Magic Domain, a dozen or so Arcane Magicians, one Giant Dragon Hunter, three god archers, and a magic user armyprising a few hundred people¡ªthat¡¯s all,¡± Negris said in feigned excitement. For every additional point he made, Luther¡¯s face twitched involuntarily, his embarrassment impossible to quell. He quickly changed the subject, ¡°Lord Nage, do you still have the Upgrade Beans? Anna is stuck at a bottle neck. She wants to try using the beans to break through the Great Swordsman level.¡± Negris spread his hands out: ¡°They¡¯re all gone. Ange took them to nt.¡± ¡°What!? No more? What do we do now? Anna is sozy. Without the beans, she wouldn¡¯t bother making an effort to break through. She may be stuck at a High-level Sword Fighter and won¡¯t level up again.¡± Luther scratched his head and said: ¡°Lord, maybe I should push her a bit. Steal her nket while she¡¯s sleeping, snatch her toilet paper in the restroom, flick sand at her while eating to force her breakthrough. I just worry it might hurt our sibling rtionship.¡± Negris was almost speechless: ¡°Breakthrough¡­ can it be achieved through such means?¡± ¡°Of course, it¡¯s to stimte potential,¡± Luther was a bit eager. Whether she breaks through or not doesn¡¯t matter, it sounds thrilling. ¡°No, no, that would hurt feelings. Just exchange some more with the Evil God, Ange.¡± Negris proactively took over the matter of the Upgrade Beans. Firstly, to spare Anna from her unreliable brother¡¯s torment, and secondly, to give Ange something to distract him from overthinking. The farming skeleton was feeling rather ambitious now. Before, having a piece ofnd to cultivate satisfied it. But now, it wasn¡¯t enough. It constantly yearned for the vast fields and wastnds around Fallen Dragon Lake and Lake Ind. Naturally, Ange understood that he couldn¡¯t go back to the elves in the short term, so he didn¡¯t say much. Just asionally, when working with the crops in the fields, he would suddenly stare nkly in a certain direction, thoughtfully. It was a heartbreaking sight. ¡°Ange, where¡¯s that Evil God statuette? Bring it out and exchange it for some Upgrade Beans. Anna is about to level up, and it would help her breakthrough.¡± Ange nodded, took out the Evil God statue, and ced an Elf Bean on it. With a whoosh, a fluffy w immediately reached out and pressed on the Elf Bean, hooking it back in. Immediately after, the small w came out again, forcefully tapping on where the statute¡¯s palm would be, and even tightened into a fizz. Negris and Luther exchanged nces and hesitantly asked, ¡°Is¡­ is it angry?¡± ¡°It seems so. Angry about what?¡± ¡°Angry that we didn¡¯t ask it for Upgrade Beans for such a long time?¡± As soon as these words were spoken, everyone felt it was a bit absurd. A grand Evil God was angry because no one asked it for Upgrade Beans? Ange took an Elf Bean and tapped on the clenched little fist. The little fist remained clenched and did not let go. Ange tried again, loosening a little bit, then tried again, loosening a bit more. Seeing that it was about right, Ange nestled the Elf Bean between its ws. It gently clutched, then slowly retracted its ws, looking at its speed andck of strength, one could tell it was reluctant. Once retracted, the little ws extended out again, pping the area where they had just deposited the beans. Ange ced another Elf Bean, and by the time he got to the fourth one, a little w stretched over, and there was an additional Upgrade Bean in its hand. ¡°Huh, wasn¡¯t it five in exchange for an Upgrade Bean? Why has it be four now?¡± Negris asked in confusion. Luther spected, ¡°Could it be that it¡¯s been so long since thest exchange, it thinks we are dissatisfied with the price, and it¡¯s voluntarily raising the price for us?¡± ¡°Possibly, but what do you think it does with so many Elf Beans? Eats them?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Well, if it¡¯s an Evil God that needs to fill its stomach with Elf Beans, how many would it need a day? We haven¡¯t exchanged with it in so long, and it hasn¡¯t starved,¡± Luther replied. Then Ange picked up an Elf Bean and channeled elemental energy to scorch its skin, quickly engraving a few small characters: ¡°Are you hungry?¡± The Elf Bean was hooked away, and the fluffy little w immediately reached out again, but as soon as it did, it retreated, probably having noticed the characters on the bean. Several minutester, the w came out again with a piece of ck stone in its palm, upon which two shaky characters were written, ¡°Very hungry.¡± ¡°It can understand humannguage, ask if Elf Beans can satisfy its hunger,¡± Negris said excitedly. ¡°Can Elf Beans make you full?¡± Ange carved the words onto a bean and put it in its paw. ¡°Delicious.¡± The small w stretched over, there was still a ck rock in its palm. ¡°Do you eat other things?¡± ¡°Other things are delicious.¡± This sentence didn¡¯t have any punctuation, but Negris guessed it must be a question, otherwise it wouldn¡¯t correspond to the previous question. ¡°What else have you eaten?¡± This question made the little w hesitate for quite some time. After a few minutes, the w stretched out bearing a ck stone, upon which was crookedly drawn a fluffy head tilting, its eyes expressing confusion. Apart from the stone, there was another Upgrade Bean. Although engaged in conversation, the Evil God hadn¡¯t forgotten the principle of exchange, giving an Upgrade Bean back for every four Elf Beans. This soul-like painting style made Luther and Negris burst outughing: ¡°It seems it doesn¡¯t know what else it has eaten. We could try offering different things and see if it wants them.¡± After thinking, Ange pulled out a small, glowing fragment. Negris grabbed him in a fright, ¡°What are you trying to do? This is a fragment of a divine spirit, what do you want it for?¡± The soul within the Divine Body escaped, but was caught by the God of Life and crushed on the spot. The scattered Divine Spirit was unreservedly gathered by Ange. Together with arge piece that the Little Angel had gotten, most of the Divine Body¡¯s soul ended up in Ange¡¯s hands. ¡°There¡¯s lots.¡± Ange pulled out a handful, all of them fragments of the Divine Spirit. The piece he had just brought out was less than a sixtieth of what here. ¡°Then be thrifty, don¡¯t waste it.¡± Negris had to let go. A divine spirit fragment was put on the holding hand, the little w quickly seized it and pulled it back. Several secondster, the w came out again bearing a huge handful, probably holding seven or eight Upgrade Beans. It threw them down, retracted, and grabbed another handful to stretch over. A tiny fragment of the divine spirit exchanged for two handfuls of Upgrade Beans, a total of sixteen. ¡°That¡¯s too many, we don¡¯t need that many. Ask if you can exchange for something else,¡± Negris suggested. Ange carved the words ¡°Exchange for something else¡± on an Elf Bean, cing it along with a divine spirit fragment on the holder. There was no action for several minutes. Everyone was not in a hurry. Negris had figured it out by now; when the little w stopped moving, it was either hesitating, unsure of what to exchange with, or it was assessing what would be the worthwhile exchange. The little w reached over again, clutching something in its hand. Its ws were flexing and bending as if it wanted to give something but was hesitant to do so. However, it eventually spread its hand open. On itid a ck crystal shard, about half the size of a fingernail. Chapter 322 - 204 Can’t Bear The Pain To Eat Anymore…_1 Chapter 322: Chapter 204 Can¡¯t Bear The Pain To Eat Anymore¡­_1 Negris¡¯s eyes widened instantly, impatiently took the fragment, held it in his hand for a detailed inspection, then eximed in shock, ¡°This is, this is Chaos ck Crystal! This is Chaos ck Crystal!¡± Ange tiled his head, as Luther leaned forward, looking puzzled, ¡°What¡¯s Chaos ck Crystal? What¡¯s it used for? Is it a gemstone? Is it more precious than the gemstones on my Dragon Pattern Steel Core Mithril Iy Magic Rune Covered Earth Forged Gemstone Enhanced Piercing Enchantment Two-handed Sword?¡± As Luther spoke, he pulled out his two-handed sword to show off. Negris rolled his eyes, ¡°You don¡¯t have to say the full name every time. Just say ¡®two-handed sword¡¯, everyone understands.¡± ¡°No.¡± Luther refused. ¡°Then you all won¡¯t be able to experience its power.¡± Negris took a deep breath, saying: ¡°Alright, then this piecees from the Undead King, the eternal ruler of billions of the undead from eight hundred abyss and unending deadnds, who punches the Gods of Light and steps on the realm lords, is a fragment of the Undead King.¡± Luther was stunned, ¡°A fragment from the Undead King?¡± ¡°Yes, do you feel its power now?¡± Luther shrank his neck and nodded, looking like a quail. A fragment of the Undead King? Why would the Evil God have a fragment of the King? Is the King dead? ¡°Ask it what this is, see if it knows.¡± Negris told Ange. The question was etched onto an Elf Bean, Stone was thrown back from the other side: ¡°Delicious.¡± ¡°This Evil God must be a foodie, everything tastes good to it, ask it why it doesn¡¯t eat this.¡± ¡°Can¡¯t bite.¡± Four more Elf Beans shot over, a bean was brought over in its paw, but it was not an Upgrade Bean, instead, it was another kind of bean. ¡°This Evil God has a really good memory, even remembered that we don¡¯t want Upgrade Beans. Ask it what kind of bean this is?¡± Negris said. Ange reached out to catch the bean, but when he closed his hand, it was empty. He showed Negris. ¡°Elf Beans are gone?¡± Negris immediately understood. Ange nodded. ¡°No way, you had over a hundred left before, you must have nted them all over the ce.¡± After ncing at the Elf Bean nts on the Square of the Gods, Negris said: ¡°It¡¯s fine if there are none left, we have enough Upgrade Beans as is. Maybe try giving it a fragment of Divine Spirit again, see if it has any more ck Crystal Fragments.¡± Ange put another fragment of Divine Spirit as per the suggestion, but instead of receiving ck Crystal Fragments, the small paw threw over three handfuls of new beans. ¡°Could it be that there¡¯s only one piece of ck Crystal Fragment? It can¡¯t bite it and it¡¯s useless to it so it threw it to us?¡± Negris guessed. They used several more fragments of Divine Spirit to trade for a few more handfuls of new beans, amounting to about forty in total. They ced another fragment of Divine Spirit, but the Evil God¡¯s little paw reached over, then suddenly stopped. The original fissure wasrge enough for the whole arm and paw to reach through, but for some unknown reason, the fissure has shrunk and the paw could not reach out, only managing to squeeze two ws through; a pair of short, stubby ws that resembled a small pair of scissors. Unable to reach, the paw withdrew, and the fissure disappeared. No matter how many items they ced on the palm-support of the Evil God statue, the little paw never appeared again. ¡°Could there be an energy limit for this kind of fissure? It can¡¯t be opened after the energy is used up?¡± Negris guessed. With the Evil God¡¯s paw unable to reach, they couldn¡¯t verify the guess right away, so they put it aside for now and everyone focused their attention on the ck Crystal Fragment. ¡°Are you sure it¡¯s really a fragment of the King?¡± Luther asked quietly. As for why he whispered, he himself didn¡¯t know why; he was just instinctively lowering his voice. ¡°How would I know?¡± Negris also instinctively lowered his voice: ¡°I¡¯ve never seen a broken Undead King, but it looks simr based on its color and texture.¡± N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°Is there a way to verify it? Smash it with a hammer?¡± Luther suggested. ¡°Are you mad? What if it shatters? Without the infusion of the King¡¯s soul energy, even if it is a real Chaos ck Crystal, it may not be able to withstand the hammer.¡± Negris argued. ¡°Then what should we do? We can¡¯t just go by your word. We need to rify this issue. Is the King really dead?¡± Luther stated seriously. Negris sneered, ¡°Even if this is Chaos ck Crystal, it doesn¡¯t necessarily mean that the King is dead. Do you think a broken body equals death? You underestimate the Undead King.¡± ¡°Yes, yes, yes, but we also need to find a way to verify¡­¡± Before he could finish, Ange suddenly reached out and took the ck crystal fragment. He held it in his palm, and Soul me rose from his hand, enveloping and burning the ck Crystal Fragment. After a while, Ange suddenly flipped backward, and the whole person did a somersault, thennded smoothly on the ground. Why was he suddenly somersaulting? Negris and Luther were baffled, and murmured: ¡°What are you doing?¡± ¡°Can¡¯t transform.¡± Ange said, then he stuck the ck Crystal Fragment into the crevice of his Boundary-crossing Hand¡¯s palm. Negris perked up, he finally realized what Ange was trying to do, he was attempting to use Ultimate Transformation to turn into the entity that the ck Crystal belonged to, but he couldn¡¯t do it. What does this mean? Ange could turn into both Steadfast Bone and Dragon God, but couldn¡¯t turn into ck Crystal, didn¡¯t this imply that¡­ ¡°It might just be ack of affinity. You should keep it on you for now, get familiar with it first, then try againter. Of everyone in this world, you¡¯re the only one who can verify whether it¡¯s a fragment of the King¡¯s body.¡± Negris said excitedly. Ange nodded, gathered the new beans and stashed them inside the Temple of Rest. Chapter 323 - 204 Can’t Eat Anymore Due To Pain……_2 Chapter 323: Chapter 204 Can¡¯t Eat Anymore Due To Pain¡­¡­_2 But as soon as the Boundary-crossing Hand entered the Resting Pce, some strange changes urred immediately, and Ange was taken aback. Negris noted the irregrity and hurriedly asked, ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± ¡°It¡¯s melting, fusing into my hand, and, and, and¡­¡± Ange was at a loss for words, unsure how to describe it. Nagris was anxious, so he withdrew into his own body and flew over to take a look. When he got to that isted handbone, he immediately saw a ck Crystal Fragment slowly dissolving into the handbone. Negris noted another anomaly, turning to look in the direction of the Resting Pce. Among the pce group, another pce had lit up with mes. Now, there¡¯s no need to question it any further ¡ª even if this ck Crystal Fragment wasn¡¯t a fragment of a monarch, it was certainly a product of the Undead Empire. It resonated with both the Resting Pce and the Boundary-crossing Hand, not only merging into Ange¡¯s hand but also activating the third pce, a building that resembled a crown. The Resting Pce consists of one main and four attached buildings. The main hall is the Undead Temple, where Ange¡¯s Undead Godhood is stored at the peak. N?v(el)B\\jnn Next is the Bronze Book Tower, sealing Negris, and then the Pce of Steadfast Locke, where they found the remains of Steadfast Locke. Except for the Bronze Book Tower and the Pce of Bones, they could not enter anywhere else, including the main temple. Everyone knew that the current Resting Pce was iplete and required many items to restore it to its original state, such as the Liquid of Breath of Death, which bnced the sense of death within the Pce. And then the graves. No one knew why they went missing or how to bring them back; it should be noted that countless Undead were sleeping within the graveyard. Finally, the third Pce was activated, leaving only thest attached pce and the main temple. Before exploring new areas, Ange first brought in the Little Angel, the Little Zombie, and Luther, then went towards the crown-like pce. As they walked, Negris asked, ¡°Do you know who this crown belongs to?¡± Ange shook his head. ¡°Those worthy of building their own pce in the Resting Pce are, of course, immensely powerful beings, like Steadfast Locke, like the God of Knowledge.¡± When speaking about himself, Negris emphasized his tone. Unfortunately, none of the three reacted to Ange¡¯s statement, but Luser was supportive and replied, ¡°Wow, the God of Knowledge is impressive.¡± Negris proudly continued, ¡°And also the Witch King and the Saint of the Undead. This crown belongs to Witch King Durroc.¡± Ange nodded. ¡°Witch King Durroc is also a formidable fellow, but he¡¯s not as famous as Steadfast because he¡¯s not as significant. Since he¡¯s not very well-known, I don¡¯t have much understanding of him.¡± Having listened attentively for a long time, only to hear such things, Luser could not help but sneer, ¡°Could you just have said that you don¡¯t understand him directly, instead of saying that he¡¯s not famous?¡± Ange nodded. In this way, the group of people stepped into the Witch King¡¯s Pce. Compared to the crude Pce of Locke, Durken Pce bore a touch of royal grandeur. As soon as they entered, they were greeted by arge dark gate carved from precious metals, with exquisite engravings. However, the carvings were all of agonizing faces, twisted souls, so vivid and detailed that it felt as if they woulde to life at any moment. Within the pce, there were reliefs, gold and silver, statues, furnishings, carved beams, and painted rafters, all beautiful and extravagant. Yet, none of them could move. In the main hall, which was like the lobby of an opera house, there was a row of windpipes on the front side, which appeared to be loudspeakers for some musical instrument. There was a soul piano on the left, and a row of steps on the right that probably were used for choruses. On seeing all this, Negris suddenly remembered something, ¡°That¡¯s right, I remember, Piero¡­ Anthony once told me that Durken was a soul conductor who loved to y music.¡± ¡°Music? Like hymns? Or the type that Minotaurs usually hum?¡± Luther asked in confusion. His understanding of music was mostly just the hymns from the Church of Light, something like ¡®Hallelu Messiah Poxia¡¯ and such. Or it could be the tune hummed by Minotaurs when they dance. Compared to the hums, Luther preferred their dances, which seemed to be called tap dances. When performed, the rhythm was upbeat with clear beats, very enjoyable, and it made onlookers want to join in. Unfortunately, ordinary people needed to put on specially made shoes to match the hoof beats of the Minotaurs. The Bronze Dragon shrugged, asking it aboutmon knowledge was alright, but asking it about music, wasn¡¯t that too much? Even the God of Knowledge didn¡¯t understand, others would understand even less; they didn¡¯t even know what the equipment in the hall was for. The only thing they could understand was the top hat and conductor¡¯s baton ced on the main table desk. The Little Zombie shuffled over quickly and grabbed them. ¡°This must be the conductor¡¯s hat and baton,¡± Negris remarked. As he finished speaking, he saw the Little Zombie ce the hat on its head. It was just a hat. Negris didn¡¯t mind if it was worn. He was about to say something when he saw Ange rush over swiftly. With a karate chop, Ange decapitated the Little Zombie. ¡°Ange, are you cra¡­¡± Negris thought Ange was going insane and was about to scold him when he saw the Little Zombie¡¯s head on the ground. Some ck, liquid-like material had engulfed it and was squirming non-stop. It quickly gnawed away all the flesh on the head, turning back into a top hat on top of the bald skull. Luther gasped, patting his forehead and cheeks in fright. Goodness, he had noticed the hat too. If the Little Zombie hadn¡¯t gotten to it first, he would have picked it up and put it on his head. Then, his head would be the one being gnawed by the hat. The Little Zombie, now headless, stretched out its arms, wobbling about like a drunk person. After a few rounds, it bumped into the Little Angel. On a normal day, the Little Angel would have punched it in the face, but this time, it didn¡¯t strike but steadied the zombie instead with a yell. The Little Zombie immediately stayed still and stood motionless in its original spot. Ange used a Pollinate Technique, blew the hat away, then picked up the Little Zombie¡¯s head and found a suitable joint to rece and reattach it to the neck. He then used the Face Purification Technique to activate the skin and flesh growth, regrowing the skin on the face. Though, the hair wouldn¡¯t grow back so soon. The newly grown skin was a bit tender. Luther couldn¡¯t resist poking it and said enviously, ¡°It¡¯s so smooth, even better than a face mask.¡± Thump! The Little Zombie punched him in the cheek. While the others were fooling around, Ange curiously picked up the hat. When the hat touched his hand bone, it instantly melted into a puddle, squirmed like jelly, and began climbing up Ange¡¯s hand bone. A Soul me rose from Ange¡¯s elbow, initially to stop the jelly¡¯s advance. However, the jelly immediately dived into the Soul me and stopped climbing. Instead, it started absorbing the Soul me eagerly. ¡°It¡¯s absorbing the Soul me. Does it feed on Soul Energy? What on earth is this?¡± Negris eximed in surprise. ¡°Don¡¯t even you recognize it?¡± Luther asked in astonishment. ¡°A creature that feeds on souls? Isn¡¯t it a Spirit Eater?¡± ¡°Spirit Eaters don¡¯t look like this¡­ No, you guessed correctly. It¡¯s something based on Spirit Eaters but modified.¡± Negris responded. ¡°Haha, I told you so. I was right, wasn¡¯t I?¡± Luther stroked his waist, grinning. Whispering to himself in suspicion, Negris questioned, ¡°Who could be so insidious as to modify a Spirit Eater into a hat and leave it here?¡± ¡°Could it be that Witch King Durken you mentioned?¡± Luther suggested. While they were making conjectures, Ange had already infused a huge amount of Soul Energy. At first, the hat jumped onto his arm to absorb the energy, butter on, Ange began pouring the energy directly into it. As for Soul Energy, Ange had a plethora. Recently, he hadn¡¯t used the Instant Death Halo, so he had umted a great deal of it. He wanted to see how much the creature could absorb. With a huge influx of Soul Energy, the jelly-like Spirit Eater kept shrinking. Rapidly, it shrank back into its original form of a hat. Ange still did not stop. The Soul Energy continued to pour in, causing the Spirit Eater to ze. Soon, the hat let out a ¡®burp¡¯, sounding like it had just burped after a full meal. At the same time, it sent out a message indicating its difort: I can¡¯t eat anymore¡­ Chapter 324 - 205: Turning Stone into Gold Suit_1 Chapter 324: Chapter 205: Turning Stone into Gold Suit_1 Can¡¯t eat anymore? Keep eating! Ange continued to force-feed, challenging the Little Zombie¡¯s resolve. Ange was furious. If it weren¡¯t for his quick reaction, most of the Little Zombie¡¯s body would have been eaten. If the Soul Fire in its heart were gnawed at, the Little Zombie would die. The Spirit Eater probably never imagined it would be stuffed with so much soul energy. After gorging, it sent out painful signals of fullness¡­ burst¡­ mercy¡­ Ange reached out his finger and formed a Soul Oath onto the hat. The Spirit Eater obediently allowed the oath to be inscribed on it, establishing a connection between its soul and Ange, integrating into the Soul Network. Some information also flowed into Ange¡¯s soul. After browsing the information transmitted by the Spirit Eater¡¯s hat, Ange looked up at Negris and said, ¡°Scarecrow Hat. He made it.¡± ¡°It? This hat made the Scarecrow Hat?¡± Negris found it strange, a hat making another hat? Ange shooked his head: ¡°Durken made it.¡± ¡°Oh, is he also an illusionist? Alchemist?¡± Negris casually inquired. It wouldn¡¯t be odd for Durken, the Witch King, to acquire all sorts of skills. An otherwise unremarkable Witch, incapable of defeating Steadfast Locke in a duel, what else could he do besides sleeping? Of course, he would dabble in anything that amused him. His behaviour of setting up his pce in the concert hall suggests that learning new skills is quite ordinary, nothing surprising. As expected, Ange nodded: ¡°He knows both.¡± Meaning, he masters both illusion and alchemy, possesses musical skills, and undoubtedly has high magical skills. He is a versatile Witch King. Ange picked up the conductor¡¯s baton, infused it with soul energy, and took out his cracked Scarecrow Hat. Gently, he touched the crack. The broken Scarecrow hat astonishingly began to repair itself. ¡°Wow, is this an illusion technique?¡± Luther eximed in surprise, assuming he had fallen under an illusion. ¡°Ah ah ah, I finally understand what they are. The Gold-touch Suit, this is a great treasure,¡± Negris admired. Luther asked confusedly, ¡°I thought you hardly know Durken? Howe you know about his suit?¡± ¡°Sigh, it¡¯s the cruel truth of life that the work is widely known, but the creator isn¡¯t. The Gold-touch Suit is famous, but no one knows it was made by him.¡± Negris sighed in understanding as everybody knew the God of Knowledge, but who cared about his deity title? Luther hastily asked, ¡°Just tell me, why is it so famous?¡± ¡°The Gold-touch Suit consists of three things: a Spirit-sucking Weird Hat, a Gold-touch Stick, and a cloak. The Hat is imbued with various secret techniques of alchemy that, once worn, grants proficiency in Alchemy. Through the use of the Gold-touch Stick, it¡¯s easy to create or repair alchemical equipment. Look closely, isn¡¯t the Scarecrow Hat fixed now?¡± Ange took off the Spirit-sucking Weird Hat and put on the Scarecrow Hat again. A sh of light appeared around his body, and the previously transformed human figure reappeared. ¡°It seems it really is repaired, this Gold-touch suit is quite convenient,¡± Negris marvelled. Ange nodded and casually ced the Spirit-sucking Weird Hat on Negris¡¯s head. ¡°Ah! What are you doing? It will devour me! Ah! Help! It¡¯s biting me, quickly take it off! Save me!¡± Negris felt the hat on his head squirming and thought he was going to be nibbled to bone like Little Zombie. A mournful message was released from the hat: stop eating¡­ idiot¡­ Upon closer inspection, the squirming hat had shrunk a bit and turned into a small top hat that just fitted Negris¡¯s forehead. It snapped securely onto the protruding part of his skull, like a custom-made fit. It seemed that the squirming wasn¡¯t trying to nibble him, but to adapt to his shape. Ange also stuffed the Gold-touch Stick into Negris¡¯s hand: ¡°It said, the more you know, the better you can use it.¡± Although the Spirit-sucking Weird Hat carried many secrets of alchemy, ordinary people couldn¡¯t use it properly. For instance, some skeletons had no concept of alchemy and could only blindly try to operate. Moreover, once Ange put on the Scarecrow Hat, he couldn¡¯t wear the Spirit-sucking Weird Hat, so Negris was the most suitable candidate to wear it. N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°You also think I¡¯m knowledgeable, right.¡± Negris¡¯s paws crossed at his waist, tail raised with pride. Having received a new toy, Negris immediately started experimenting with everything in sight, just like Ange when he found the Life Essence. A perfectly good table, with a tap of the Gold-touch Stick, creaked and turned into wood chips and copper nuggets. Ange spent quite some time rummaging around the pce yet found nothing of use. Of course, that was his opinion. Any of the exquisitely crafted luxurious items taken out would be considered artistically valuable. But s, if it couldn¡¯t be cultivated, it was considered useless. Leaving the Resting Pce, Luther joyfully threw in the Upgrade Beans. ¡°By the way, Ange, do you remember the luxury carriage? The one in the desert, the magician¡¯s one, what¡¯s its name?¡± Negris asked. Ange nodded and transferred out the luxury carriage. This carriage truly embodies the nobles¡¯ fondness for indulgence and luxury. The carriage not only has ovepping space but also an Ice Magic Array to cool down and maintain the mostfortable temperature. But these magical facilities consumed enormous amounts of energy. Just ordinary operations would require more than ten Demon Crystals every day. Chapter 325 - 205: Transmutation Suit_2 Chapter 325: Chapter 205: Transmutation Suit_2 Ten demon crystals, equivalent to one hundred gold coins a day, could buy more than ten tons of food. All this for a bit more space and afortable temperature. Therefore, after obtaining this carriage, Ange and the others never used it. It¡¯s not practical either. ¡°I wanted to modify it before, but I couldn¡¯t grasp some of the details. Now with the Gold-touch Suit, I know how to retrofit it. That¡¯s right, give me a few Unbounded Crystals and Star Realm Gems. Didn¡¯t you capture several Rainbow Stonesst time? Give them all to me, and watch how I make it pretty.¡± ¡°Oh, is it able to sow?¡± Ange asked. Negris¡¯s facial expression froze instantly: ¡°Can¡¯t you quit thinking about farming all the time? Isn¡¯t a high-speed, flying, teleporting vehicle good enough?¡± ¡°Oh, can it harvest?¡± Ange asked again. ¡°No! If you want a harvester, go find Vaguli.¡± ¡°Ah, it doesn¡¯t work. Just a heap of junk.¡± Ange nodded, turned his head and went to cook his Elf Beans, leaving Negris alone feeling lost. Originally, he wanted to modify this carriage, but now, he didn¡¯t have any interest left. ¡°Kvada, forget about modifying it, you can take it to plow yourndter on.¡± Negris said bitterly. Just then, Ange received a call for help from Lisa in his soul: ¡°It¡¯s bad, Lord, someone here has been infected with the undead virus.¡± Someone in the Resting Abyss was infected with the undead virus, this news was simply a thunderbolt out of a clear sky, shocking everyone into disorderly panic. By the time Ange had descended from Heaven, everyone had already gathered in Demon Valley, where they were crowding around a dposing half-rotted zombie. The zombie was tied with a rope, swaying back and forth. When it swayed to one side and sensed that the creatures in front were mighty, it immediately started rubbing towards the other direction. Then, when it reached the other side and found the creatures there were even stronger, it would curve away. If zombies were capable of thought, it would probably be crying now. Negris approached and surveyed, he then said, ¡°It really is the undead virus, where did you find it?¡± A human was brought up, seeing a group of undead staring at him, the entire body couldn¡¯t help but tremble. He replied with trepidation: ¡°Report, ¡­ Report to the undead Lords, this is my brother. The price of wood has recently dropped, so I wanted to make him a coffin. I went to the wilderness and searched for him several days, finally found him, but I don¡¯t know why he rotted like this. If it were not for the tag on his body, I wouldn¡¯t have recognized him. I brought him to New Dark Side City, and then got arrested by you.¡± Negris looked at Anna and Feilin, asking: ¡°Do you know him?¡± Anna nodded, ¡°Yes, he¡¯s from our Ice City, at least an entire street of neighbors knows him.¡± Then it wasn¡¯t an enemy infiltrating into the ne, and his brother was also a local resident of the abyss. Why did he get infected with the undead virus? Negris turned to Rogge. More than three thousand undead from the Dark City needed to be relocated to the Resting Abyss, and he had to be involved throughout the process since many undead only trusted Rogge. This virus was also the first to be discovered in the gathering ce of the New Dark Side City. ¡°Lord, you know this virus frightens ours to death, they can recognize it even when turned to ashes. We were so scared when we saw this human leading over a rot corpse, nearly killed him on the spot. Oh no, safer to burn it to ashes.¡± Rogge said with some emotion. The undead virus terrified them. Every undead creature, seeing the virus consuming their bodies, would rather die. If it weren¡¯t for the fact that they found Ange who can remove this virus, once it outbreaks, many of them might not be able to stand it andmit suicide. Some people wished to leave the Prime Material ne ande to such a barren abyss where not even birds shit. At the bottom of their souls, they all carry the subconscious thought to leave their infected areas and go as far as possible, yet few days after they finally settled down, they found that the virus reappeared. All of them were scared to death. ¡°Burning it to ashes is not safe either, we have to find the source of infection first. If we don¡¯t figure out where theye from, even if you burn all the corpses in the wilderness, it will be in vain.¡± Negris frowned. ¡°Could it be someone from Rogge¡¯s men who still carries the virus?¡± Lan spected. ¡°Impossible, if there¡¯s someone still carrying the virus, it would have broken out by now. It can¡¯t be that it infected some wild zombies and was discovered.¡± Rogge firmly said. The faces of Negris, Anna, Feilin and Lan all involuntarily turned serious: ¡°If it isn¡¯t brought by Rogge¡¯s men, then the problem is serious. Someone secretly invaded our world and released the virus in the wilderness.¡± With this spection in ce, everyone could no longer sit still. They started shouting, ¡°Get up, get moving! A carpet search is needed. Let¡¯s see if someone has snuck in secretly!¡± Arge-scale search spanning the ne started, with all creatures being mobilized. Whether human or undead, demon or minotaur, anyone capable of movement joined the search. Starting from the location where the rotten zombie was discovered, everyonebed through, ignoring no corner. If it were before, such an action would not have been possible in the Resting Abyss. There was barely enough food to eat, let alone spare energy and resources for an extensive outdoor search. But now, things are different. The advent of the World Tree farming area gave the abyss extensive farnd, more than enough to sustain the present poption. In reality, with the harvest of food and the abundance of resources, the number of newborns in the three human settlements has seen an explosive increase. Given time, Resting Abyss might very well regain the prosperity it had when the world transit station first opened. With enough food and resources,rge-scale non-productive activities like this can be carried out. During the day, things like the White Neck Bone Dragon and Lightning that can fly swarmed around. At night, wherever they ended up, they would dig a hole on the spot to hide. The search would continue the next day. After searching continuously for five days, Ange and his group hid in a hole dug by the Little Zombie to avoid the fierce Resting Wind at night. Ange hadn¡¯t experienced the wind in a while. These days, he sat quietly, his hand reaching out of the hole. Little Zombie and Little Angel sat on either side of him, mimicking his actions. Negris was chatting with others, he sighed, ¡°We found another thirty rotten zombies and skeletons. The virus really is spreading.¡± Luther got serious for once and said, ¡°We might need to thank the Resting Wind. Without it, the virus could have spread even faster. Of the thirty infected zombies and skeletons, twenty were found dead in the wild. They couldn¡¯t have spread too far, which reduces the spread speed. And¡­ it seems like Granny Lan is infected.¡± ¡°What? Granny Lan is infected? How bad is it?¡± Negris eximed. ¡°Not severe, just frightful. She was infected from her face. When she found her face rotting, she nearly burned everything nearby out of fear,¡± Luther said with some dread. ¡°Er, that¡¯s understandable. If Naeli found her face rotting, she would definitely give it a st with the Dragon Breath.¡± ¡°Sigh¡­ just like my mom,¡± Lightning sighed. ¡°Sigh¡­¡± The others seemed to recall something and sighed together. ¡°Oh right, I made some space rings. Want one?¡± asked Negris. After getting the Gold-touch Suit, it couldn¡¯t just sit still. Also, with Ange having plenty of high-quality materials, especially the stack of Unbounded Crystals, making a space ring was the easiest thing. However, since it wasn¡¯t a Space Mage, the rings it made can¡¯t be locked, anyone could open it. ¡°Yes, yes, yes, yes! Anna took my old ring ages ago. I¡¯ve got no ce to put my Dragon Pattern¡­ Bastard Sword.¡± Luther almost spoke the full name, but seeing everyone¡¯s murderous gaze, he hurriedly corrected himself. ¡°I want one too!¡± ¡°What do you need it for? Your hooves are so thick, there¡¯s no model that fits you.¡± ¡°Can¡¯t I hang it around my neck? If you don¡¯t give me one, do you believe I¡¯ll stand at your door and repeat the story of you and the sand maiden a hundred and eighty times?¡± ¡°When did I know a sand maiden? The one with a story involving the sand maiden is Luther!¡± Negris was so angry it almost jumped up. Lightning sneered, ¡°I know, but others don¡¯t. After repeating it a hundred and eighty times, someone will believe it.¡± Negris was so angry that his beard curled up. It grudgingly handed over a space ring. Just then, Ange, who had been extending his hand into the Resting Wind, suddenly said, ¡°There¡¯s a sound in the wind.¡± n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om After saying that, he jumped up, pulled out an Air Bubble Stone, and rushed into the wind. Chapter 326 - 206 Staring Contest_1 Chapter 326: Chapter 206 Staring Contest_1 A ¡®sound¡¯ carried in the Resting Wind came from far away. It wasn¡¯t the kind of sound one would hear with ears, rather, it was a message simr to how a Little Sapling would ¡®try hard to grow? The message in the Resting Wind roughly meant: get out of the way my fur is messed up Ange sprinted with an air bubble, and quickly, almost suddenly, bumped into another one. This was a massive bubble. The Resting Wind blew here, but it quietly circumvented it, forming a windless space resembling the World Tree. The source of this bubble was a Giant Beast. It had a huge body, about sixty meters in diameter, entirely covered in fluffy fur that propped it up into a ball. This ball was just there, its Big Mouth gaping, letting out a silent roar at the Resting Wind: get out of the way my fur is messed up The Resting Wind surprisingly obeyed and circled around it. With the fuzzy ball at its center, a range of two hundred meters in diameter experienced much milder wind, like being inside the protective circle of the World Tree Windshield Forest. Ange unsuspectingly invaded this bubble area, and locked eyes with the Big Mouth. The eyes of the Big Mouth blinked, blinked again, then it turned its head, continuing to roar silently at the air. It might have thought it was roaring, but Ange thought it looked more like a sigh. Regardless, the Resting Wind circled around it obediently. Ange was ignored. To a Giant Beast with a diameter of sixty meters, a human being was as insignificant as an ant. Whenpared to the Resting Wind, a human intruding into the bubble mattered little. Realizing the Big Mouth ignored him, Ange tiptoed out of the bubble, backed to the area where the Resting Wind prevailed, and crouched on the ground. He had the Little Sapling shielding him, so the Resting Wind evaded him, forming an approximately half-meter wide circle with the Little Sapling at the center. Inside this circle, he wouldn¡¯t be eroded by the Resting Wind. Ange¡¯s soul resided within his head, which was within this bubble¡¯s radius. As he crouched on the ground, more than half of his body was positioned inside the bubble and thus not harmed by the Resting Wind, as long as he remained still. Ange hunkered down outside the bubble, scrutinizing the Giant Beast. Aside from the World Tree, this was another lifeform he encountered capable of neutralizing the harmful effects of the Resting wind. Its fluffy appearance made it impossible to be a creature from the Resting Abyss. Where did ite from? As he observed, he noticed the fur beneath the Giant Beast start to stir. Two Pdins wearing weathered Holy Armour of Light crawled out, leading several ragtag zombies. A metal stake was hammered into the ground, and the zombies were tied to it. The two Pdins started digging a pit. After a while, the young Pdinined, ¡°Can¡¯t we just toss them in and be done with it? Why do we have to bury them?¡± The older Pdin tersely replied, ¡°Can¡¯t you hear the whizzing wind outside? Toss them in directly and the Dimension Beast will kill them instantly when it leaves.¡± ¡°They¡¯re already dead,¡± muttered the young Pdin under his breath, looking nonplussed. After digging for a while, probably finding the task too boring, the young Pdinined, ¡°Captain, what is this ce? Why do the higher-ups value it so much that they secretly ce corpse-eating fungi here?¡± The older Pdin sneered, ¡°What gave you that illusion? Do you think they would send just the two of us if they valued this ce?¡± The young Pdin wasn¡¯t happy, ¡°Captain, what do you mean by that?¡± ¡°Humans should know their limitations. With our strength, what significant task can we perform? This task is clearly not essential, whether we seed or not. Yet you¡¯re still upset? I¡¯m hoping to get such tasks everyday. If we seed, there¡¯s no credit, if we fail there¡¯s no me. Isn¡¯t that convenient?¡± ¡°You sly old fox,¡± muttered the young Pdin. He was still young and yet held ambitions to make significant contributions, to earn divine blessings, to wield influence, to rise rapidly, not to ept a life with little ambition like the older Pdin. Seeing the reaction of the young Pdin, the older one revealed a knowing expression and chuckled, ¡°Can¡¯t say it¡¯s not important either. Any task involving Dimension Beasts is indeed important. It seems the higher-ups want to nurture you.¡± ¡°Really? I knew it.¡± The young Pdin perked up, energized. His digging sped up significantly. No one told him that if the words of arade feel bad, they might be truthful. But if those words sound good and are easily epted, they might be fibs. When the topic of Dimension Beasts was brought up, the young Pdin seemed uneasy. He nced at the Giant Beast and asked in a low voice, ¡°Captain, why is such a huge monster so obedient?¡± The older Pdin chuckled, ¡°You got it wrong. When was it obedient? Try ordering it and see if it obeys. There must be an agreement between it and the higher-ups for it to act this way. Otherwise, even if you stood naked in from of it, sprinkled with salt and spices, it would still ignore you.¡± ¡°That¡¯s good, that¡¯s good. Ignoring me is best,¡± the young Pdin was relieved. The vigor from his youth was gone, and he sighed in relief, ¡°With one swipe of its w, it could squash us into meat pies.¡± Before long, the pit was dug. The two Pdins pulled up the stake, ced it at the bottom of the pit and tied the zombies to it. Then they dripped some sort of liquid on the ropes.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Chapter 327 - 206 Staring Contest_2 Chapter 327: Chapter 206 Staring Contest_2 In this way, the corroded rope will break in a few hours, freeing the zombies tied to it. They will then roam, spreading the carrion-eating bacteria on their bodies throughout the entire abyss. Just as the two pdins prepared to return to the fuzzy hair of the Giant Fur Clump, the long hair suddenly lifted, and a handsome knight d in ck armor, leading a sturdy skeletal horse, walked out from within the fur clump. Embedded within the hair of the Dimensional Beast is a dimensional passage. When its body spans two spaces simultaneously, this dimensional passage connects the two worlds. Many have sought to discover the actual shape of these dimensional passages, but the fur of the Dimensional Beast is too long. Despite numerous methods, the edges of the tunnel remain elusive. People only know that crawling into the hair and moving forward will lead you to another space. The sudden emergence of a ck-armored knight leading a skeletal horse startled the two pdins. The younger pdin¡¯s instinct was to draw his sword, but his hand had just touched the hilt when it was held down by the older pdin. The old pdin ced a hand on his chest in a respectful gesture, apologized, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, my lord, we did not mean to offend. We had not been informed of your arrival. May I ask your name, sir?¡± The handsome ck-armored knight leading the skeletal horse respectfully reciprocated the gesture, saying politely, ¡°I am at fault, as I came without notifying the frontline of the Land of Fallen. I saw the Dimension Beast and came over. I am Shadow Knight Julian.¡± ¡°The Shadow Knight who exists under the holy light? I¡¯m in your presence, sir.¡± The old pdin immediately knelt down, frantically tugging at the robes of the young pdin. The young pdin was a bit bewildered. Was the ck-armored knight leading the skeletal horse, the Shadow Knight, not an enemy? Shadow Knight? He had heard of that. Superior even to God¡¯s Knight, they are the knights closest to the gods under the holy light. Seeing the bewildered expression on the young pdin, Julian politely said to him, ¡°You should thank yourpanion. He saved your life. The moment you drew your sword before me, you were already dead.¡± The young pdin gasped as a strong fear welled up from within him, causing him to sit abruptly on the ground, wetting his pants in fright. The old pdin hurriedly pleaded, ¡°May your Grace spare us. The young boy did not mean it. Please leave him be.¡± The Shadow Knight respectfully nodded, ¡°Alright, a small ¡®reproof¡¯ would result in incontinence for a while. Be diligent in washing his trousers.¡± The old pdin¡¯s expression changed drastically, and he quickly lowered his head. This method of quietly inflicting ¡®reproof¡¯ on the young pdin showed that the power of this Shadow Knight was truly terrifying. Moreover, he was quite petty. Merely because of the instinctive drawing of a sword, he invoked the ¡®reproof¡¯, causing incontinence for a period of time? For the energetic young pdin, this was more painful than death itself. But he wasn¡¯t the young pdin¡¯s father, so what should he care? He needed to serve the petty Shadow Knight well to avoid being on the receiving end of his powers. ¡°Is there any task that your Grace requires our assistance with?¡± Julian replied with a smile, ¡°No need. You can leave. Let the Dimensional Beast stay here and wait for me.¡± The old pdin was eager toply, ¡°Yes, my lord.¡± He quickly helped the pdin with wet pants up and crawled back into the long fur of the Dimensional Beast. The Dimensional Beast lowered its head to nce at Julian but said nothing. It continued to struggle against the Resting Wind. Julian, leading his skeletal horse, walked to the edge of the void and gazed intently outwards. Unfortunately, he couldn¡¯t see anything. At its fiercest, the Resting Wind was pitch ck, as though the space outside the void was not a gust of wind, but wave upon wave of thick ink. Unless something glowed in the darkness like the angels, one couldn¡¯t make out anything outside at all. However, Julian stood there entranced, staring at nothing, like a wise poet lost in thought. The bone horse he led, however, was not as patient as he. It snorted andined, ¡°What on earth are you looking at in this pitch-ck darkness, damn it! Hurry up and set up the Delivery Magic Circle.¡± Hisposure shattered, Julian stuttered angrily, ¡°You¡­you¡­you vulgar!¡± ¡°Yeah, yeah, you¡¯re the refined one with armour that hasn¡¯t been washed in six years, always messing with this baffling stuff, making me apany you in the cold wind. Get to the main point,¡± the Bone Horse grumbled impatiently. ¡°What do you know!? The armour can¡¯t be washed; it would be ineffective if it gets washed. The strange wind is blocking many signals, and it¡¯s useless to remove them while the wind is still blowing, you jackass!¡± said Julian, his earlier pleasant mannerspletely gone, looking flustered as though he wanted to stamp his feet.N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°Signals not working? That¡¯s a bit annoying, so is this ce exactly¡­¡± Before Bone Horse could finish its sentence, Julian mped its mouth shut. Realising the situation, Bone Horse murmured in a low voice with his soul, ¡°Oh, almost forgot about the big guy.¡± After Julian loosened his grip from its mouth, it continued, ¡°Let¡¯s change the subject. How¡¯s Lord Dyson been doingtely? He seems quite agitated.¡± Mentioning this topic seemed to uplift Julian¡¯s mood, and he lightly smiled, ¡°Lord Dyson has suffered a severe setback on the Master ne.¡± ¡°Oh? Do tell me more, what¡¯s the matter?¡± asked the Bone Horse, light flickering in its eye sockets with excitement. ¡°Great Bishop Nik was assassinated, leaving a vacancy for the Bishop¡¯s position in the Western District. Lord Dyson rushed back to vie for it, hoping to return to the Western District. Despite his idealisation of the situation, his control over the Land of Fallen was iron-d, making a new Bishop useless,¡± Julian exined. ¡°While he moved back, he would have control over the Western District¡¯s affairs. Having the support of both districts, he was certain to seed the Pope once he passed away. Little did he know, Lord Anthony was even more formidable. He directly split the Eastern Diocese, established the Holy Church, and became the Pope. This almost caused Dyson a stroke.¡± Bone Horse¡¯s jaw began to tremble with excitement, ¡°Hahaha, is it true? Who assassinated Nik?¡± ¡°Who else could it be but Anthony?¡± ¡°But why would Lord Anthony want to kill Nik? He had a good reputation within the curia and was a well-respected man. The happiness index of the Eastern Diocese followers is far greater than that of the Western District,¡± Bone Horse asked confusedly. ¡°Because Nik attempted to assassinate Anthony, who, by some unknown means came back to life. He promptly consolidated the Eastern Diocese, threatened the curia to deal with Nik, and arranged manpower to kill Nik. A master of strategy indeed,¡± said Julian, reflecting on Anthony¡¯s careful plots and diversions. If Anthony had heard this conversation, he probably would cry out loud. He was innocent! Bone Horse had a goodugh, then asked with confusion, ¡°Now that Anthony has split off, doesn¡¯t that eliminate thepetition for Lord Dyson? Wouldn¡¯t taking over the Western District be much easier for him? Why is he so agitated then?¡± Julian responded with a slight smile, ¡°You¡¯re indeed naive. Now that Anthony has split off, if Lord Dyson takes charge of the Western District, it would mean that both the Land of Fallen and the Western District are under his control. Who would the curia then listen to?¡± ¡°Oh, I get it now. The Pope wouldn¡¯t allow such a thing. No wonder Lord Dyson is so angry,¡± said Bone Horse, sudden realization dawning on him. ¡°Yeah,¡± Julian sighed, empathizing with Dyson, ¡°What¡¯s the point of having the Land of Fallen? It¡¯s impoverished and remote, while the Master ne is like the real paradise. My heart aches for my homnd, for the adorable, fragrant beauties there¡­¡± ¡°Enough with all these, it¡¯s annoying!¡± Bone Horse yelled annoyed. While Julian was lost in reveries, the Resting Wind began to wane. As the wind strength decreased, the thing outside the bubble became clearer and clearer. Julian stopped confusedly, squinting toward the bubble¡¯s exterior. There was a shadow standing vaguely there. Is it a rock? Doesn¡¯t seem like it because there was some green at the top. As the Resting Wind gradually weakened, he finally saw the shadow clearly. It was a ¡®figure¡¯ squatting with its knees pugged up, a pot on his head in which a Little Sapling swung its leaves. The ¡®figure¡¯ was also looking back at them, their gazes met, in the standoff. Chapter 328 - 207: Your Favorite Elf Beans_1 Chapter 328: Chapter 207: Your Favorite Elf Beans_1 ¡°Ah!¡± Julian shrieked in fear, leaping back and drawing his sword with a clink. ¡°Whoa!¡± Ange also jumped backward, summoning the Scythe of Death. The Bone Horse suddenly brightened its eyes: ¡°The Scythe of Death?! Is this a Golden Skeleton? Hold still, let me handle this!¡± After the Bone Horse spoke, it stomped the ground vigorously. A me of energy emerged from its body and quickly enveloped its skeleton in armorization. In a blink, the skeletal Bone Horse transformed into a tall and robust ¡®muscr¡¯ Soul Warhorse. The Bone Horse¡¯s Soul Armor had a fascinating feature ¨C it would mold based on the shape of the being it protected. If it weren¡¯t for the ming eyeholes, one might have trouble telling that it was an undead horse. Ange tilted his head, removed his hat and the Little Sapling, followed by a surge of Soul me on his body. This quickly led to the formation of a Soul Armor in the shape of a straw hat and a cloak. ¡°Pfft.¡± The Bone Horse burst intoughter: ¡°Are you farming? With that outfit?¡± Ange nodded honestly, ¡°I farm, while you are ridden.¡± He stated a fact quite seriously. He was a farmer and the Bone Horse was typically ridden. However, being around humans had altered the Bone Horse¡¯s interpretation of these words. From a human perspective, being ridden wasn¡¯t apliment, which angered the Bone Horse.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Damn you! Take this! Savage charge!¡± The Bone Horse roared,unching a Soul Impact while simultaneously growing sharp horns from its head and spikes on its forelegs¡¯ knees before charging fiercely. The Bone Horse tilted its head forward, aiming for Ange¡¯s skull, while simultaneously bending its forelegs with the intent to thrust the sharp spikes of its knees. If it hit, it would certainly leave threerge holes in the bones of the victim. Thebination of Soul Impact and savage charge was indeed a brilliant technique, especially when the opponent is a Golden Skeleton. Human skeletons could never match up to horse skeletons due to the massive disparity in size. To control arger horse skeleton, one naturally required a stronger spirit. During a Soul Impact, a stronger soul held an advantage. The Bone Horse had already formed a Soul Heart, and its bones were gradually transitioning towards the Gold Level. Given time, it would be a Golden Skeleton Horse. Against a Golden Skeleton, the Bone Horse had an innate advantage. No Golden Skeleton had ever withstood its charge. The Soul Impact first stunned the opponent, then it would crash into them, trample them, and finally devour them. All these thoughts were pleasant, but what if its opponent didn¡¯t get stunned? Its powerful burst speed made the Bone Horse almost create an afterimage, charging out fiercely. Ange gently moved to the side and raised his scythe, letting Bone Horse crash onto the de of the scythe. Once the Bone Horse passed, it copsed, its bones scattered all around the ground. Julian was stunned. It took him a while to react. Did the spirit of his mount get reaped away by the opponent? Or was this some new technique? First break into pieces then suddenly counterattacks? In any case, Julian was confused. Initially, he had asked it to not move excitedly, but after just one round, it was disassembled. Was it some sort of prank? Ange retracted the scythe. His other hand stroked along the de, wiping off a burst of Soul me. A Golden Level Bone Horse certainly possessed a powerful soul, but even the strongest souls can¡¯t resist the Scythe of Death from the Undead God. ¡°Don¡¯t touch my horse!¡± Julian finally reacted with a loud roar. Ange suddenly felt a force acting upon him and turned his head, looking puzzled at the ground. This was the third time he had tilted his head, not an attempt at being cute, but in confusion, wondering why Negris didn¡¯t say anything. Although Negris didn¡¯t keep up, it could project its spirit onto him and answer his doubts at any time. However, it wasn¡¯t present. Without Negris guiding him, he failed to understand these new phenomena. For instance, the huge monster, and Julian¡¯s mysterious power. From the ground emerged numerous hands formed by the Breath of Death, gripping Ange¡¯s calves firmly. The ground seemed to melt, dragging Ange down. What was this? Wasn¡¯t their opponent a Pdin? Why was he riding a Bone Horse and using the power of death? Unfortunately, no one could answer him; he had to shake himself free first. He constantly performed Ground Cracking Technique under his feet, swiftly disintegrating the power on the ground. The hands made up of Breath of Death couldn¡¯t maintain their form and shattered instantly. Julian¡¯s eyes widened: ¡°Ground Cracking Technique? Breaking through my Breath of Death swamp? Is that even possible?¡± Of course, it was possible, but very strenuous, like building a bridge instead of walking around ake. ¡°Wait a minute, why can a Golden Skeleton use magic?¡± Julian reacted quickly. No sooner had he spoken than he sensed blind spots. He hunkered down, strode forward with his arms raised to form a shield from his arm armor. On the physical shield, ayer of shield formed by condensed Holy Light emerged. Julian ced his double-handed sword on the shield, stepped forward, and shadows of two souls shot out from his footfall toward Ange from both the left and right. Amazing, the power of death and Holy Light coexisted in him without conflict? Julian reacted quickly, but he underestimated something. The moment he stepped forward to charge, a row of exploding fireballs swept over him. The fireballs instantly exploded the two souls before hitting his shield. Julian immediately felt like he was facing an eighteenth-level hurricane at sea. The exploding fireballs producing a strong impact force shook him to the verge of losing his footing. Chapter 329 - 207: Your Favorite Elf Beans_2 Chapter 329: Chapter 207: Your Favorite Elf Beans_2 Feeling as if he was facing an entire brigade of wizards, Julian shouted and surged with fighting spirit, wielding his double-handed sword as if it were a single-handed one. With a flurry of power, he shed forward, cutting through the air. Bangbang! One after another, exploding fireballs were split asunder, but more fireballs continued toe, unceasingly. Crash! His Holy Shield broke, and a fireball struck his solid arm shield, creating a loud thud. ¡°Hagha!¡± Julian yelled again, his body glowing with thebined power of his fighting spirit and holy energy. The energy flowed into his shield and surged against the current. If the enemy was a wizard, Julian¡¯s choice would have been the right one ¡ª to close the distance between them as quickly as possible. But the problem was Ange wasn¡¯t a wizard. As Julian barreled forward through an onught of exploding fireballs, he swung his sword at Ange but was blocked by a precise swipe from a scythe. The angle between the scythes¡¯s de and the handle trapped Julian¡¯s sword, making it difficult for him to pull back. He decided on the spot to abandon his sword, stepping forward and swinging a palm down: ¡°Judgment!¡± A Sacred me erupted from where Ange stood while a ck de simultaneously formed in Julian¡¯s hand, shing downward. The Sacred me was holy fire while the ck de was Soul Armor. This mix of styles left Ange struggling to cope. Forced to call upon the Holy Light to envelop him and consume the Sacred me, he crossed his arms to block the ck de, then kicked out. Not quick enough, the only thing Julian could do was raise his arm shield in defense as Ange¡¯s foot collided with it, leaving a dent. Unable to resist, Julian was sent flying backward, crashing into the ground. Thanks to the buffer of Julian¡¯s arm, he managed to absorb the impact. He staggered back several steps and slid a short distance beforeing to a stop. He then looked up at Ange in disbelief, shouting: ¡°Light? A skeleton? Magic?¡± The Shadow Knight was a strange mix of Light power and the power of Death. But now, looking at the opponent he faced who was an even stranger mix ¨C a Holy Light Skeleton that could cast magic? What kind of monster was this? Clip-clop came the sounds of hoofbeats from behind. Negris, Little Angel, and Little Zombie, riding atop Lightning, caught up with Julian. Luther pursued on foot, nearly out of breath. ¡°Dimension Beast! Why would there be a Dimension Beast here? I understand why I couldn¡¯t project to Ange now. The Tranquil Dimension of the Dimension Beast has cut off all space-ss projection,¡± eximed Negris, smacking Lightning in the process. ¡°Dimension Beast or not, what are you hitting me for?¡±ined Lightning angrily, lowering its head and speeding up even more. On getting closer and seeing Ange safe and sound, Negris exhaled in relief: ¡°Good, Ange is fine.¡± They raced to Ange¡¯s back, dismounted, and took positions on either side of him, glowering at their enemy. Their imposing presence sent a message ¨C ¡®Who do you want us to bring down?¡¯. ¡°Ange, what¡¯s going on? Who is this guy?¡± asked Negris. Losing contact with Ange had worried Negris greatly. It was only because Little Angel and Little Zombie, each with a soul connection to Ange, were fine did Negris believe that Ange was safe for the meantime. But upon finding the Dimension Beast and an enemy dressed like the Church of Light, the situation had changed. Ange pointed at Julian and said, ¡°Shadow Knight.¡± He then pointed at a heap of bones on the ground, ¡°Mount, Bone Horse.¡± Lastly, he pointed at the Dimension Beast, ¡°Transport, Space Passage, virus-infected zombies, brought here.¡± Negris immediately understood: ¡°You¡¯re saying the pile of bones on the ground is a Bone Horse, this Shadow Knight¡¯s mount. They used the Space Passage of the sheltering Dimension Beast to transport the virus-infected zombies here?¡± Ange nodded. ¡°Well then, you¡¯re indeed the ones at fault! To resort to such devious poison! Take him down, cut off the source of the virus!¡± Negris yelled, yet his attention was mainly on the Dimension Beast. After yelling, he whispered to Ange, ¡°Is your Ultimate Transformation Technique ready?¡± Ange shook his head, looking at the Dimension Beast and said, ¡°Big cat.¡± Negris breathed a sigh of relief instantly, the Farming Skeleton was not too rash, it wanted to hold onto its cards. He was afraid that like Little Angel, it would start off with Holy Light sh, wasting its most powerful attack. Just as this thought crossed his mind, a beam of light flickered, illuminating Julian up front. Little Angel maintained a gesture of pushing its hands out, belched forcefully, finished work, and then turned to Ange with a smile, its face begging for praise. Ange reached out and patted its head. Negris sighed. As long as Ange continued to indulge it, Little Angel¡¯s habits probably wouldn¡¯t change. Looking helplessly at Julian, he was surprised to find that the Shadow Knight was not obliterated. It looked awful though; the flesh of the front half of his body had almost disappeared, leaving only a skeleton standing there. The flesh on the back was still partially preserved, but it was also riddled with holes. Negris had probably heard of the reputation of the Shadow Knights, a mysterious group that not only wielded the Power of Holy Light but also harnessed the forces of heretics, such as demons and the Undead. The heretical forces did not conflict with the Holy Light in them. Instead, theyplemented each other in a very peculiar manner. However, what Negris knew about Shadow Knights was limited at best. His knowledge relied on his followers. If theycked the knowledge, he couldn¡¯t add anything more to his knowledge base. To preserve a skeleton under the Holy Light sh was no small feat. It would be nice if he could help him gather his bones. Just as this thought crossed his mind, he saw the bone-only Shadow Knight moved. Standing upright, it made a ¡®Ho¡­ Ho¡­ Ho¡­¡¯ sound. It might be reciting some incantation or prayer, but because the body was shattered, and it could only tremble its throat. It didn¡¯t affect the effectiveness of his spellcasting. The broken body of the Shadow Knight was regenerating at an amazing speed. The flesh that was riddled with holes on his back grew back quickly, filling in the front of the skeleton. In a moment, the disfigured Shadow Knight regenerated himself to look human again. Before the flesh closed, Negris noticed that the Shadow Knight¡¯s chest was empty with no sign of the heart that should have been there. ¡°How can this be? The revival of the Witch¡¯s Life Box? No, it¡¯s different. The Life Box revives a new body, this is reviving the old body, but his heart is missing, and without finding his Life Box, it would be difficult to kill him,¡± Negris said. Ange lifted both hands, ready to st him to smithereens. The revival of the Witch¡¯s Life Box shouldn¡¯t be unlimited, otherwise, Feilin and Lan would be invincible. However, before Ange could raise his hand, Julian had already turned to run back. He ran madly towards the Dimension Beast, with lungs that had just regenerated, he shouted loudly, ¡°Dimension Beast, kill them for me, this is your favorite Elf Beans.¡± Julian flipped his hand, not knowing where he pulled out a small bag, and threw it at the Dimension Beast with all his might. With a whoosh, everyone felt as if their eyes had blinked, a huge paw reached out from the huge clump of hair, grasping the bag. Ange tilted his head, Negris frowned, they both felt that this paw seemed very familiar. The huge paw skillfully weighed the bag, pouring out the Elf Beans in it, six or seven beans about the size of a human¡¯s little finger. Compared to the enormous size of the Dimension Beast, the Elf Beans were like dust, but the Beast¡¯s eyes still squinted with joy. It extended a w, touched the ce near the Elf Beans, and all the beans instantly disappeared. Having received the Elf Beans, the Dimension Beast, which had always been indifferent to everyone, moved its gaze onto Ange and the others. In its round eyes, the pupil dangerously shrunk several circles. ¡°Be careful, it¡¯s going to attack,¡± Negris quickly reminded everyone. Ange suddenly reached out, also pulling out a bag, and threw it hard at the Dimension Beast. PS: This is yesterday¡¯s update.N?v(el)B\\jnn Chapter 330 - 208 Time for Seal_1 Chapter 330: Chapter 208 Time for Seal_1 Julian erupted intoughter when he saw the bag tossed across, ¡°You didn¡¯t just throw a bag of money at it, did you? That¡¯s a Dimension Beast, it doesn¡¯t like Demon Crystals. Dimension Beasts don¡¯t need to eat, they survive by devouring space. But they do feel hungry, and only Elf Beans can satisfy their hunger, so they like Elf Beans. They¡¯re not interested in money or bribes.¡± Negris knew that the bag wasn¡¯t filled with coins. The bag was a small pouch made from Holy Light Silk Cloth, primarily used for carrying Elf Beans, but¡­ ¡°I thought you said there were no more Elf Beans? How is it that there¡¯s suddenly so much!¡± Negris gasped, clearly remembering Ange stating earlier that there were no more Elf Beans. When did this skeleton start lying? Ange tilted his head: ¡°Not Elf Beans.¡± ¡°Not Elf Beans? Could it be¡­ you threw everything?¡± Negris¡¯ heart skipped a beat, he muttered under his breath: ¡°Spendthrift!¡± Ange nodded. The massive furball swiftly extended a paw and pinned the bag down, its eyes narrowed into a thin line. It lifted one small paw, curiously poking at the bag, sensing that its contents were different from Elf Beans. The bag¡¯s opening tore apart, revealing the pieces of Divine Spirit inside. The Giant Furball¡¯s eyes widened in shock; it turned its disbelieving gaze towards Ange, the eyes conveying a mix of astonishment and incredulity. Ange pointed at Julian: ¡°Kill him.¡± ¡°Hahaha.¡± Julian burst intoughter: ¡°What¡¯s this piece of trash? ss shards? The Dimension Beast would like this? Is it as dumb as a Giant Dragon? Dimension Beast, once you¡¯ve had your Elf Beans, eradicate these people!¡± Julian yelled out loud. His previous elegance and courtesy were nowhere to be seen. Then again, he didn¡¯t really have the luxury for decorum when he was stark naked ¡ª his Life Box could resurrect him but it couldn¡¯t retrieve his clothes and armor. But as he was shouting and turning around, he saw something that unnerved him. The Dimension Beast seemed to ignore him, its attention exclusively on the bag Ange had thrown over. It puffed up its chubby cheeks, appearing rather vexed. The Holy Light Silk Cloth had blocked the aura of the Divine Spirit shards, otherwise Julian wouldn¡¯t have mistaken them for mere ss shards. ¡°Hey! Dimension Beast? What are you doing? Finish the opponent! You¡¯ve already taken the Elf Beans.¡± Julian had a bad feeling about this, and couldn¡¯t help but start to panic. Arge paw emerged from the long fur, flicked, and a bag was hurled outnding at Julian¡¯s feet. Julian waspletely flustered. Usually, the Dimension Beast was fair and just in its dealings ¡ª a bean given for a task done, with no bias or deceit. But now, what was happening? Was it refunding the beans? Did the enemy offer more? The Dimension Beast¡¯s w pointed again at the bag Ange had thrown over, and four pieces of Divine Spirit shards floated up and vanished into its fur. n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om The Dimension Beast nced reluctantly at the bag, four beans floated out and into Ange¡¯s bag. After seeing those beans, Negris could finally confirm one thing. This Dimension Beast was indeed that Evil God, as these beans were the new ones it had given. Even now, Negris didn¡¯t know what those new beans were good for, as they couldn¡¯t find anyone to test them on. The Upgrade Beans were discovered identally by Luther. Fortunately, they weren¡¯t harmful. At the same time, Negris voiced his confusion: ¡°What does this mean? It only took four Divine Spirit shards and returned the rest? Does it mean that killing this Shadow Knight only requires four shards?¡± Negris had guessed right. After making the transactions, the Dimension Beast smacked Julian with its enormous paw, the man-sized limb squashing and vanishing Julian instantly. ¡°Sss, that¡¯s ruthless, howe there¡¯s no blood?¡± Luther drew in a sharp breath, then stood on his toes to get a better view. The Dimension Beast lifted its paw, but there was no blood or flesh underneath, Julian had vanished as if he was never there. Negris suddenly realized: ¡°He wasn¡¯t really squashed, he was banished. This Shadow Knight was smacked into a dimensional rift. That¡¯s worse than dying. If he died, his Life Box could revive him, but banishment via a dimensional rift, there¡¯s noing back.¡± Luther remarked, ¡°So the Dimension Beast is really strong?¡± ¡°Not necessarily. This is its innate ability. When ites to actualbat strength, I¡¯d say it¡¯s probably simr to me at my peak,¡± Negris said, afterparing carefully. Luther nced sideways at him,paring itself to the God of Knowledge at his prime, and calling it ¡®not so strong¡¯? Wasn¡¯t Negris somewhat misconstrued about his own abilities? Having his own pce in the Resting Camp, being the second dragon in the history of the Dragon n to kindle the Divine Fire, and he thought he was not very strong? Probably the shock he received from Locke and Ange was too great. As Negris and Luther were speaking softly, Ange and the Dimension Beast were staring at each other, curiosity shining in their eyes. The Dimension Beast wondered how it managed to bump into the very person its paw randomly plucked from the crowd. Ange was curious as to how the small paw of the statue god had be so massive that it was capable of simply smacking a person into oblivion. After a long gaze, the Dimension Beast opened its mouth and called out: ¡°Awooo!¡± Ange shook severely and responded: ¡°Aw!¡± The Little Angel and Little Zombie also became spirited and started to ¡®aw aw aw¡¯ in chorus. Luther looked shocked: ¡°The Dimension Beast knows Aoaonguage?¡± Negris smiled wryly: ¡°That¡¯s not Aoaonguage, it¡¯s its natural call.¡± Flying to Ange¡¯s side, Negris shouted at the Dimension Beast: ¡°Hello, can you speak humannguage?¡± Chapter 331 - 208 Time of Seal Expires_2 Chapter 331: Chapter 208 Time of Seal Expires_2 The Dimension Beast shook its head, and because its hair was so long, when it shook its head, the whole body seemed to sway. Negris watched until he became dizzy and hastily said: ¡°You cannot speak, but you can listen, right? I am the God of Knowledge, do you know me? What¡¯s your name? Where are you from? How old are you? What¡¯s your rtionship with the Shadow Knight? Why have you be so big? Are the small paws protruding from the sculpture your actual body? Why do you like Elf Beans? What is the purpose of the Divine Spirit Shards? Spatial Com¡­¡± Negris spouted a dozen questions in one breath. The Dimension Beast¡¯s eyes appeared clueless at first, then pained, and finally bewildered, its eyeballs seemed to be spinning in its sockets. Thud! Arge paw protruded from the furry beast, mming on the ground in front of it, howling, then revealing its ws and awkwardly writing: ¡°Ask it.¡± Ask it? Ask who? No sooner had Negris raised the question than he saw the Dimension Beast¡¯s big paw reach into a dimensional rift, its entire arm disappearing. The beast¡¯s arm fumbled in the dimensional rift, finally pulling out a naked, incredibly fit, human woman. When the woman was pulled out, she shouted angrily, ¡°You damn cat. I am bathing! Can¡¯t you summon me at a better time¡­ huh?¡± Before she finished speaking, the Dimension Beast put her in front of Ange and the others, and she could no longer continue swearing. Instead, she covered her sensitive areas with her hands. Luther quickly averted his gaze, reaching out his hand to fumble in front of him like a blind person, muttering to himself, ¡°What happened? Who is it? Who¡¯s there?¡± The female human let out a sigh of relief: ¡°Phew, he¡¯s blind, then we have ¡­ Soul Armour and a Reaper¡¯s Scythe, a Golden Skeleton? An Angel? A Juvenile Dragon? So tiny, is it malnourished? Soul Armour? Are these all not humans? That¡¯s good, that¡¯s good.¡± The female human, removing her hands and cing them on her hips, started fiercely reprimanding the Dimension Beast: ¡°You stupid cat, don¡¯t you know to check if I¡¯m busy before summoning me? It¡¯s all a huge mess¡­¡± Luther felt something moist on his nose, and wiping it, he found blood. Was he having a nosebleed? This was too intense for him. Unable to stay any longer, Luther fumbled around like a blind man, turning around and mumbling, ¡°I have things to do. I¡¯ll go first, don¡¯t bother seeing me out.¡± He then stumbled away. The Dimension Beast, somewhat vexed by its scolding, howled and with itsrge paw smacked the ground next to the woman. The woman finally calmed down somewhat, huffed a little, and then turned to face everyone again with a big smile, put both hands on her chest, and curtsied, ¡°Hello, Dimensional God¡¯s Servant Serene is at your service. I¡¯m pleased to meet all of my friends here.¡± Negris awkwardly scratched his nose. He¡¯d seen plenty of naked female dragons, but a naked woman was a rare sight, and he found it a bit unsettling. But he couldn¡¯t feign blindness like Luther and flee the situation, so he put on a brave face and replied, ¡°Hello, I¡¯m d to meet you. I am the God of Knowledge, and this is the Undead God.¡± Serene¡¯s expression froze, and she turned her head to look at the Dimension Beast. She thought it would just be some mortaling to trade with the Dimension Beast, but who knew she¡¯d be face to face with Gods? Looking at the Dimension Beast, she saw no signs of denial. Could it be that these two were actual Gods? Oh my, is it my responsibility as the representative of the God of Dimension to have a conversation with two Gods? Suddenly, she felt immense pressure. And she was stark naked, what should she do? How embarrassing! Would it be considered rude? ¡°Ah!¡± The Little Angel suddenly pointed at Serene and shouted. Ange tilted his head, puzzled, and took out a dress. The Little Angel snatched the dress and ran to Serene, lifting it up to dress her. The way he was trying to dress her was the same way Lisa and Lan had forced him to wear clothes before. Obviously, he was taking this opportunity to get his own back. Serene was first overjoyed. There was no need for the Little Angel to force her, she voluntarily took the dress. Feeling the material, Serene¡¯s eyes lit up, eximing in surprise as she looked at the dress, ¡°This material¡­¡± n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om What was this material? It was soft and silky to the touch, as light as air, yet didn¡¯t stick to her hand. As she tried on the dress, Serene sheepishly discovered that it was too small for her, she wouldn¡¯t fit into it. ¡°Your clothes?¡± Serene asked the Little Angel, pointing at the dress. The Little Angel nodded: ¡°Ah!¡± Then, looking motivated, as if wanting to assist, it reminded her of the time when Lisa and Lan had forced it to dress¡­ Serene bitterly smiled, ¡°It¡¯s too small. What a pity, what is this material? It feels amazing.¡± Negris pulled out his Spirit-sucking Weird Hat and Gold-touch Stick, tentatively saying: ¡°How about I give it a try?¡± He tapped the dress with the Gold-touch Stick. It was like magic! The Gold-touch Stick was mysterious. It was an alchemical tool, and paired with the Spirit-sucking Weird Hat, it had its own intelligence. It could realize some of the wearer¡¯s ideas within a reasonable range. It couldn¡¯t transform a stone into gold, but it could transform a stone into a stone chair. It couldn¡¯t transform a dress into a pile of cotton coats, but it could make the dress bigger. However, this ergement was achieved by stretching the fabric, so that when Serene put it on, her body was faintly visible through the dress. It was even more revealing than being naked, making her even more embarrassed. But no matter, as long as she had something on. The Little Angel, looking like it had aplished its mission, ran back to Ange, eager for praise: ¡°Ah!¡± Ange, a little perplexed, patted its head to praise it, although he really didn¡¯t understand what there was to praise. He himself didn¡¯t wear clothes, so why should others? Chapter 332 - 208 Time for Seal_3 Chapter 332: Chapter 208 Time for Seal_3 Negris nodded in satisfaction, simply putting on the bargaining item was enough. It didn¡¯t visually appeal to him ¡ª it was far from being explosive. Negris preferred the likes of Naeli with a bulging belly, and a long neck that would enable her to fly. ¡°The situation is like this¡­¡± Negris repeated the same question he had previously asked the Dimension Beast. Serena was surprised, ¡°Could it be such a coincidence? You have exchanged items through the statues before. Heavens above! It¡¯s all too much and so serendipitous! It must be the intervention of the God of Fate!¡± ¡°What is it called? I will not disclose its actual name, others call it the God of Dimension. How old? Well, you shouldn¡¯t casually ask a girl her age. It¡¯s truly impolite. Huh? You¡¯re asking about the God of Dimension? I don¡¯t know,¡± Serene replied, engaging in a question-answer session with Negris. After some conversation, Negris roughly understood the situation of the Dimension Beast. In some ces, this Dimension Beast was referred to as the Evil God, but its actual divine status was that of the God of Dimension. It usually liked to use its natural ability to extend its ws and exchange goods with others around it. Its favourite was Elf Beans, followed by various beans with special effects, such as Upgrade Beans, the true name of which was the ¡®Potential Activation Fruit¡¯. The consumer¡¯s potential would be stimted after eating and it was often used as a bedroom item, very popr amongst males. The Dimension Beast did not need to eat, it thrived off the energy of dimensional space. It was a born creature of the dimension. But it did feel hunger, so what could it do when it was hungry and could not be satisfied? Normal food could not fill its stomach, only the Elf Beans contained a hormone that created a sense of satiety for the consumer, thus giving the Dimension Beast the illusion of a full stomach. Consequently, it would travel around the world in an attempt to exchange goods for Elf Beans. Of course, it would also exchange other items. It had nothing better to do, and it profited from every exchange. A simple cycle of exchanges could appreciate a stone into a valuable gemstone. Thus, over time, it was gradually transformed into an Evil God, even acquiring its own priest. However, this priest was not of good temper. ¡°Am I the one with the bad temper?¡± Serena raised her voice, ¡°Look at how it treats me. It pokes and prods at me when I sleep, when I go to the bathroom, even when I¡¯m bathing. If I wasn¡¯t too timid to confront it, I would have shaved its fur off a long time ago. It infuriates me.¡± ¡°Yes, yes, yes, it went too far.¡± Seeing Serena on the verge of exploding, Negris hurriedly agreed with her, avoiding the risk of her giving up on the conversation. ¡°Why does it shrink during the exchange via the statue? Is that its true form?¡± ¡°Being smaller saves energy, and also, stretching suchrge ws may scare others,¡± Serena responded. Just then, the Dimension Beast roared in pain, its entire body being sucked down, its long fur clinging to its body, revealing the shape beneath the fur, which did indeed resemble a cat to a great extent. With its ws dug into the ground, its eyes widened, and it began to howl at Serena incessantly. It looked just like arge cat being dragged into a bath. But it was unable to resist the pull of the dimensional rift and was sucked in, disappearing entirely. n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Negris asked in shock, ¡°What¡­ what just happened?¡± Serena also looked surprised and said, ¡°It¡¯s nothing. It¡¯s just that the time of its seal has arrived. But it said something¡­ it asked for your help? It¡¯s asking you to save it. Do you have the ability to save it? Wait a moment! You¡¯re not really the God of Knowledge and the Undead God, are you?¡± Chapter 333: 209 – The Broken Heart of the Holy Spirit_1 Realizing this, Serene quickly crossed her chest in a gesture of respect, pleading, ¡°Great gods, please save this big cat. It¡¯s too pitiful. It was sealed by the Church of Light in the Land of Fallen, forced to work every day. If it doesn¡¯t work, there are no elf beans to eat. It¡¯s so pitiful, please save it.¡± ¡°How would we save it? It¡¯s so powerful, capable of breaking through dimensional space, yet it can be sealed. How are we supposed to save it?¡± Negris said hastily, winking at Lightning at the same time. Lightning immediately got the hint: ¡°Yeah, exactly. Look at us, old, thin, sick, disabled, but handsome. We haven¡¯t got the ability to save the God of Dimension.¡± It gestured at Negris when it said ¡®old¡¯, the Little Angel when it said ¡®thin¡¯, the Little Zombie when it said ¡®sick¡¯, the direction Luther had run off when it said ¡®disabled¡¯, and pointed at itself when it said ¡®handsome¡¯. Serene nodded in agreement: ¡°That¡¯s what I think, too. Maybe the big cat made a mistake. s, it even said that whoever could save it would be gifted its dimensional space.¡± ¡°Wait a minute!¡± Negris rubbed his little paw, its face showing an expression simr to someone contemting a silver coin, it asked, ¡°Are you saying, dimensional space? That kind of independent world¡¯s dimensional space?¡± Serene smiled and said: ¡°Yes, that¡¯s right. The kind that is equivalent to an independent world¡¯s dimensional space. This is the gift of the God of Dimension, it can tear pieces of space apart, then reassemble them into independent spaces.¡± ¡°How big is it?¡± ¡°A few hundred square metres, the big cat has been umting it for a long time.¡± Negris took a deep breath, although it didn¡¯t need air, it needed this action to soothe its inner turmoil: ¡°We need to discuss.¡± Turning around, Lightning¡¯s scrutinizing gaze fell on it, and it said warily, ¡°You have been tempted, Little Yellow Dragon.¡±
¡°Wait till you know what dimensional space is, you will be tempted too. Come here, let¡¯s discuss.¡± Negris called out. Ange, Little Angel, Little Zombie, Bronze Dragon, all sat on the ground huddled up, forming a circle. Lightning was too big to squat, so it lied down with its limbs spread out. However, seeing this formation, Negris felt it was stillcking, and shouted towards the direction Luther had run off, ¡°Luther,e back.¡± Luther, who had not gone far, ran back hastily. Seeing him unharmed and not blinded, Serene immediately realised what was going on and cried out angrily, ¡°Bastard, so you¡¯re not blind!¡± Luther braced himself and replied, ¡°Oh, fairdy, it seems you might have mistaken me for someone else? You must have seen my blind twin, who lost his sight at a very young age but insisted on training. Now he is a referee swordsman, he¡¯s the blind one.¡± Serene, steaming with anger, didn¡¯t believe such nonsense. Yet, she had no evidence, so she could only grind her teeth and say: ¡°Don¡¯t let me see your blind brother again, or else I¡¯ll cut it off!¡± Luther¡¯s legs went cold. Knowing he was in the wrong, he quietly joined Ange and the others in their circle. ¡°So here¡¯s the deal. If we save the God of Dimension, we will get a dimensional space. What do you think? Will we save it?¡± Negris asked, looking at Luther and Lightning. Among the people present, Ange¡¯s opinion was decisive. But what opinion could Ange possibly have? Anyone could guess what it would be. So it insisted on calling Luther back to discuss with Lightning. ¡°Er, Lord Nage, what is dimensional space?¡± Luther asked a bit embarrassingly. Don¡¯t me the boy for hisck of knowledge, dimensional space is such a high-level concept, even Lightning doesn¡¯t quite understand it. Its wide-eyed curiosity was obvious. ¡°You have all been to the Resting Pce, right? The Resting Pce is built on the basis of a dimensional space,¡± Negris said. Luther and Lightning were left confused for a while, taking some time to absorb the news. Luther asked incredulously, ¡°Are you saying, if we save the God of Dimension, we can get a Resting Pce?¡± ¡°No, no, just a space simr to the independent space of the Resting Pce. The Resting Pce is built on the basis of dimensional space. The area inside is several tens of square kilometers, a whole world. The Dimension Beast¡¯s space is only a few hundred square meters.¡± ¡°Moreover, the Undead King has used an iprehensible method to establish a Farm Barrier within, which means that a spatial boundary has been superimposed within the dimensional space. No matter howplex it is, it is based on the dimensional space.¡± Lightning and Luther understood, though Luther was still confused. He thought, a few hundred square meters of independent space ¨C his Space Ring was only a few cubic meters, it couldn¡¯t even fit a bed. But several hundred square meters? Wouldn¡¯t that be nearly the size of a small estate? Lightning, however, had already grasped the key point and said dismissively, ¡°And then? The Lord already owns a dimensional space which covers tens of square kilometers and you¡¯re seriously suggesting we should risk it all for a few hundred more?¡±
¡°We don¡¯t necessarily need it, but have you forgotten the Land of Slumber? For some reason it¡¯s missing. The Resting Pce as it is now is iplete. What would happen if wepleted these missing parts?¡± Luther and Lightning¡¯s eyes twinkled. They both saw the excitement in each other¡¯s eyes.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om The Land of Fallen is an undefended world simr to the Resting Abyss. It is the junction of all major nes, akin to a crossroads, a vital route. The best way to get to the Real Material ne or other ces is to jump through here.
Chapter 334: 209: The Broken Heart of the Holy Spirit_2 The Undead Empire was once very grand, its influence spread across dozens of nes, and it was popted by billions of beings. Suddenly, one day, their king was missing, and all were unable to contact the Resting Pce. What¡¯s next? The natural reaction would be to pay a visit. But when they arrived at the Land of Fallen, they found it was upied by the Church of Light. The Land of Fallen has pathways to the Resting Abyss and the human world in the Master ne. Humans reacted faster and took control of thend first. If the Undead wished to pass, they had to seize this ce. Thus, a war thatsted for over a thousand years began. What was initially the front line, the Land of Fallen, wasbatively converted into a diocese, where a Red Bishop was stationed. After a thousand years, countless bishops had been reced, and the current Red Bishop was named Dyson.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Although it was an independent diocese, Dyson¡¯s position could notpare to the two major dioceses in the Master ne¡¯s east and west sides. As everyone put it, this ce was like being with a mistress ¨C poor, far from home, harsh conditions, and bad treatment. Being far away from the curia, away from the power center, meant they couldn¡¯t seize any benefits and had to shoulder any me. Talents were unwilling toe, and those who came were unwanted elsewhere, eitherzy and incapable or insubordinate. Like Julian, who often acted independently that even Dyson couldn¡¯t control him. He imed this was: the freedom within the shadows¡­ Dyson dreamed of being relocated. He didn¡¯t want to die here. If he couldn¡¯t get himself reassigned while still young and be a strongpetitor for the Pope, he could only retire if he returned when old. Therefore, he worked hard¡­ ¡°I¡¯ve worked so hard, only to end up like this. Why? Why?! Anthony was clearly dead, why did he revive and be so much younger? What a ridiculous divine favor! Would I not know about the so-called divine favor? He must have used some wicked magic to be what he is now!¡± Dyson roared in fury. And before him, a projection of an Undead, a demon¡¯s projection. If Ange could see this projection, he would recognize, isn¡¯t this the demon from outside the ck Mountain Kingdom, goading the pest control master? The Undead and the demon remained indifferent in face of Dyson¡¯s rage. They conjured a table and two chairs. Sitting down, they picked up the tea and pastries on the table and began to taste them casually, asionally smacking their lips and givingments.
If it wasn¡¯t for the pitch-ck dungeon, and if they weren¡¯t the projections of an Undead and a demon, this would seem like a leisurely afternoon tea time. Dyson knew what these two were trying to convey. Wasn¡¯t he also ying the part? Seeing that they were not moving, he reigned in his angry manner and snapped his fingers. Behind him, two saintly dressed in pristine white carried a table and ced it in front of him. A third saint brought over a high-backed velvet chair. They poured tea, set up pastries, performed a silent salutation, and retreated. At this scene, the tea and pastries conjured by the Undead and the demon suddenly seemed less appealing. The Undead flipped his hand and scattered those illusions, drifting over to the table. Now it was Dyson¡¯s turn to be unflustered, as he elegantly tasted the afternoon tea and pastries. The Undead helplessly said: ¡°If you managed to assassinate him once, you can do it again. What¡¯s there to fear? Killing him will solve all your problems.¡± It turned out the culprit behind the initial assassination of Anthony was Dyson, not Nik. ¡°That¡¯s easier said than done. Anthony will no longer be alone like before. How many men do I have to assign to kill him? Plus, before, Nik was the scapegoat for me, now if he were to get assassinated again, the whole world would know it was me.¡±Dyson retorted impatiently. Of course, if only he had gathered sufficient intelligence. If he knew that Anthony had sneaked off to the Elf Forest just recently, he wouldn¡¯t have said so. ¡°So what if they know? The current situation is different from before. If you can eliminate Anthony now, Guiliani wouldn¡¯t me you. On the contrary, he might even credit you.¡± The Undead said. ¡°What you said makes sense, but what about manpower? The previous assassination took a heavy toll on me. Facing Anthony who¡¯s now on guard, I need at least multiple times the strength fromst time.¡±Dyson finally revealed his intention. The Land of Fallen¡¯s archbishop wouldn¡¯t possibly be unable to control his own emotions and rant. Everything he did earlier was a performance, pressuring the other party to offer him more support. To assassinate Anthony again, his own strength was insufficient. It wasn¡¯t safe to choose from the Church. Presently within the Church, those who idolized Anthony were numerous, especially after Anthony put forth that slogan: Purify the Light, Reshape the Church. In today¡¯s Church, whoever had even a bit of faith could feel the Church¡¯s corruption and degeneration. If they were not powerless, relied on the Church for wages and benefits, and had arge family to support, rebellion would have risen long ago. Anthony¡¯s Sacred Church gave church officials from the Western Region and the Land of Fallen an alternative, a way to first be independent, then remodel the Church from the outside in. Chapter 335: 209: The Broken Heart of the Holy Spirit_3 As the Undead said, the situation now waspletely different from before. If he could kill Anthony now, not only would Guliani not me him, but he would also bemended greatly. ¡°Of course we should support it. Everyone is responsible for eliminating Anthony. This church schismatic traitor should be bound to the fire execution frame and burned to death with the sacred me,¡± the Undead indignantly stated. However, his wordscked persuasiveness whenbined with its form shrouded beneath a shadowy cloak, enveloped by a dark aura. If there was a sacred me, it should be the first to get burnt. ¡°But well¡­¡± The Undead¡¯s tone shifted, ¡°Anthony does have a cluster of Holy Spirit Angels by his side. Do you think Anthony can fully control these Holy Spirits? If a higher-ranked Holy Spirit appears, will these lower-level Spirits obey it?¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn Dyson asked puzzledly, ¡°What higher rank? How high can it get? Even the four-winged Spirit is quite simple-minded and only knows how to emit Holy Light shes. What use does it have?¡± ¡°Hehe, what if it¡¯s a six-winged Wisdom Angel?¡± The Undead chuckled, extracting a box from its bosom. Dyson¡¯s expression grew stern. The box¡¯s lid was made of transparent crystal. Looking inside it through the crystal, arge piece of the Heart of the Holy Spirity quietly within. Half of it? Dyson raised his head in confusion, looking at the Undead. ¡°Here, I must mention our great Alchemy Witch Lord Durken. He invented the ¡®Broken Heart of the Holy Spirit¡¯. Do you know the properties of the Heart of the Holy Spirit? The broken piece will self-repair. But if the other piece is not entirely vanished, this piece will not heal. Do you understand what I mean?¡± Dyson shook his head. ¡°I knew you wouldn¡¯t get it. Lord Durken split and sealed a whole Heart of the Holy Spirit. He unsealed one half of it, which could temporarily transform into a six-winged Wisdom Angel. If you tell the Wisdom Angel that Anthony divided the church, what do you think she would do?¡± The Undead chuckled mischievously. Dyson perked up, but soon realized an issue, ¡°Temporarily? How briefly?¡±
The Undead casually replied, ¡°Several days? A few weeks? I¡¯m not quite sure because this half of the Holy Spirit¡¯s Heart had been missing for over a thousand years. It only recently healed, indicating that the missing half survived for at least a millennium. We don¡¯t know where it was sealed, but by the time you reach Anthony¡¯s ce, you can release the Holy Spirit¡¯s Heart to a lower-ranking Holy Spirit, which will be enough tounch an attack.¡± After a pause, the Undead spoke gravely, ¡°The Wisdom Angel is called Luna. Her memory is stuck at the moment her Spirit¡¯s Heart shattered. You have to remember this. If she catches on, she¡¯s not your helper anymore and will take your life directly, because she is the Supreme Holy Spirit Luna, who dared to kill even a god.¡± With trepidation, Dyson epted the box. In a certain underground space of the Land of Fallen, the head of arge cat suddenly squeezed through a spatial rift. Seeing no one around, it immediately settled down, its whole body puffing into a ball. Shortly after, a man, a dragon, a horse, a skeleton, an angel, a zombie, and a stunning woman stepped out of the fluffy fur in session. After everyone had exited, therge cat whooshed back into ce, and the dimensional rift disappeared. It had covertly moved Ange and the others, making sure not to be detected by the church people. Negris looked around and couldn¡¯t help but curse, ¡°Kvada, with so many locations to choose from, why did you choose this one?!¡± Serene asked puzzled, ¡°Isn¡¯t this what you demanded? A non-farming field, not a in, not a fertilend, which is why this area was selected as the teleportation site.¡± ¡°Kvada! Aren¡¯t those fields too? Even if they¡¯re abandoned fields, they are still fields. How can we cross them now? Someone is unable to walk across it!¡± Before Negris finished, he saw Ange excitedly rush out. Ahead of themy a parched and barren field thatcked water and had not sprouted a single de of grass. ¡°But, but, it¡¯s not justcking water, it has been deserted for so long, how can it still count as a field?¡± Serene was confounded by Negris¡¯s beration. Even though Ange loved farming, there¡¯s no way to nt anything without water. Chapter 336: 210: Receiving After 100 Years_1 Turning his head in the direction of the light, there was an opening not far off. Light streamed in obliquely from the opening. From the angle and size of the entrance, he could guess that the amount of sunlight this ce would receive daily would be insufficient. The nearby water vapor was thin, and the air was turbid, indicating poor air cirction. Normally, suchnds were seldom plowed for farming, and crop output would not be high. But Ange no longer cared. He hadn¡¯t sown anything for a long time, and his Soul of Farming was itching to get active. Oh yes, he had tended to the Elf Beans in the Holy Kingdom and various crops were growing vigorously in the fields of the Temple of Rest. The cultivated area was muchrger than what he had managed in the Temple of Rest for over a thousand years. However, after cultivating the fields near the Fallen Dragon Lake and on Lake Ind, Ange looked down upon such small tasks. Those two areas were so small that he couldn¡¯t even get warmed up before the work was done. ¡°Ooh!¡± Ange turned back and called to the Little Angel. The Little Angel eagerly ran over with the Earth Hammer and began pounding in rhythm. With the Earth Hammer, Ange had even neglected the Soil Loosening Technique. ¡°Ooh!¡± Ange turned and called to the Little Zombie. The Little Zombie raised its hands, forming a hoe, and quickly began digging. Soon, a ditch was dug out, with the soil being precisely disced to form two ridges on either side. Thanks to persistent practice, the Little Zombie had grown into an outstanding ditch-digging master. It could dig exactly where and how deep it was instructed.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om
¡°Ooh!¡± Ange called out to Negris. Negris reluctantly flew to Ange¡¯s side, allowing a basket to be slung on his back. At the bottom of the basket was a rotating device, from which a rope hung, pulled by Negris¡¯s short ws. Each pull caused the turntable to rotate once, allowing seeds to fall out one by one. The seeds would thennd on the ground at regr intervals as long as he flew along the furrows. ¡°Huh? Lord Nage, has the seed-sowing tool been upgraded?¡± Luther ran up curiously to watch. He had seen Ange sowing seeds before, either by carrying a bag with a hole in the bottom, or by the man¡¯s use of magic to scatter the seeds one by one. Now that Ange was also busy, he followed after Negris seeded the field and soaked the ground through like a sprinkler with his hands. After watering, Ange stepped on the ground, leaving a footmark. The whole process flowed smoothly, leaving Serene dumbfounded. Did they not need a water source? Was he really condensing water using magic? My goodness, had he lost his mind? Could he really elerate growth? ording to what the Blind Swordsman said, only three hours were needed for the crops to mature and be harvested? Serene originally had doubts about the Undead God and the God of Knowledge. But now, she believed them to be ¡®gods¡¯, the God of Farming! Ange excitedly unrolled the phosphates from the Temple of Rest, sprinkling them evenly into the furrows with the Pollination Technique to enhance the soil¡¯s nutrient level. He watered the crops twice during the process, and once the nts bloomed, he activated the Pollination Technique. After all these steps, three hourster, Serene saw a field of ripe grain, heavily hanging on their stalks. Serene walked absentmindedly to the edge of the field, staring nkly at the harvested crops. Her face showed an incrediblyplex expression, ¡°If we could grow our food this quickly, so many wouldn¡¯t have starved to death. My younger brother wouldn¡¯t have disappeared while searching for food, and we still don¡¯t know if he is alive or dead¡­ My parents¡­¡± She couldn¡¯t finish her sentence, choking back tears that started to well up. A strong, powerful hand rested on her shoulder. It squeezed gently, as if to transfer some strength to her. No longer able to hold back, Serene burst into tears. She grabbed the hand and gave it a sharp twist into a shoulder throw. Caught off guard, Luther was thrown onto the ground, feeling dizzy and disorientated.
After a few more sobs, Serene quickly regained herposure and helped the still dazed Luther up from the ground, ¡°Thank you, I feel much better after beating you up.¡± ¡°What¡­what realm are you in? Your actions were swift. And such strength?¡± Luther, who had already advanced to high-level Sword Saint, wouldn¡¯t usually be easily overthrown by an ordinary person, yet Serene showed no signs of any power or magic. ¡°I don¡¯t know, but ever since I sold my soul to the big cat, my strength has increased tremendously.¡± Serene made a flexing gesture with her arm, showing off her surprisingly well-toned biceps. Negris interjected, ¡°Divine Arts user. Simr to a Saintess priestess with Holy Spirit Possession, but Dimension Beasts naturally possess great strength and speed. These traits are reflected in her.¡±
Looking at Serene¡¯s arm, Luther drooled, wanting to touch it uncontrobly, ¡°So, you never practiced fighting? You have an exquisite frame, and your muscle membranes are perfectly tuned. You possess this high level of talent even without training. If you had undergone rigorous training from a young age, eating lots of vegetables, meat, eggs, and milk, won¡¯t you just take off?¡± Serene clenched her fist, warning the figure looming close to her arm, ¡°If you get any closer, I will make you take off.¡± Whoosh, a figure with a scythe flew past them. The crops neatly on the ground. After harvesting the crops, separating the grains, and burning the remaining straw into ashes to spread back onto the field, they repeated the series of steps they had followed three hours ago. With her emotions now calm, Serene couldn¡¯t help but ask, ¡°Are we nting again? If we are, I¡¯ll go first. When the big cat dragged me here, I was taking a bath, and now I¡¯m all sticky.¡± Negris replied, ¡°Wait a bit, once the sowing is done, we¡¯ll leave. There¡¯s no light at the entrance of the cave now, so even if we wanted to, we can¡¯t nt anything.¡± After a while, once Ange finished sowing the seeds and watered them thoroughly, he led the group out of the cave. Upon exiting the cave, they realized it was located halfway up a mountain, which extended endlessly on both sides like a great wall. Underneathy a vast and deste in, covered in a ck, ash-like substance that reached the ends of the earth. ¡°Is that¡­Breathing Soil?¡± Negris asked, looking at the ins below. Serene turned back and responded, ¡°Breathing Soil? No, that¡¯s Dead Ash, the ashes of the dead. When there¡¯s an abundance of Undead in one ce, this kind of ash forms on the ground.¡± ¡°Isn¡¯t that just Breathing Soil? How many Undead creatures are there here?¡± Negris wondered aloud. Serene shook her head in response, ¡°I¡¯m not sure. However, once Eternal Night descends, half of the Land of Fallen is swarming with Undead, densely packed like a bustling crowd. We live in that ce at the foot of the mountain that¡¯s free from Dead Ash.¡± Following Serene¡¯s pointing, Negris saw a narrow strip ofnd sandwiched between the Land of Death and the mountain range. Looking down from the mountain, the area appeared narrow, but it was in fact, quite broad. There was even a town there, without city walls to protect it.
¡°What!? You live there? Aren¡¯t you afraid of the Undead? Unprotected and exposed, a wave of Skeleton Zombies could easily wipe you out,¡± Negris eximed in surprise. With a surprised expression, Serene asked, ¡°Why would we fear the Undead? They don¡¯t tax us, and sometimes they even provide us with food because they¡¯re afraid we¡¯ll starve. All they ask is that we submit our bodies to them after death. With that agreement, we can live peacefully on thisnd. What¡¯s really scary are those parasites from the church. The refugees who fled from the other side of the mountain said the Church has been collecting taxes for the next hundred years.¡± PS: I¡¯m a bit tired and can¡¯t write any more, so I¡¯ll head to sleep. It seems that there are quite a few female readers. I¡¯d rmend the book ¡°Farming Iron Maiden¡± for those who are interested. You can find the link in the author¡¯s notes. Chapter 337: 211 Young man, are you interested in blind dating?_1 Chapter 337: Chapter 211 Young man, are you interested in blind dating?_1 Hearing this, Negris found it absurd yet logical. The cost of governing an undead society is very low, without a need for taxes to maintain it. If there were any shortage of supplies, such as minerals or grains, they would have low-level skeletons farm them, just like Ange does.
Farming skeletons like Ange cost almost nothing. Once they were taught how to farm, they could continue working for decades without rest. There is no need to enve humans as it would involve management costs, and providing necessary living supplies would be much more troublesome than dealing with skeleton zombies. The only thing the undead require is human remains, so they supply food from time to time, fearing their malnutrition. As per Serene¡¯s words, if it weren¡¯t for the undead¡¯s inability to produce much, they would breed all humans. As per the script, once humans mature, shouldn¡¯t the undead kill them to get the sturdiest corpses? No, instead, they say, ¡°The physically fit ones should breed. Without offspring, what¡¯s the point of having your corpses? Also, don¡¯t bear children without being able to raise them. The more intelligent a child is, the higher the chance it will awaken consciousness after death. A witch-aspect undead is worth more than ten thousand moronic skeleton zombies. So, nurture and educate them well. Child abuse will result in soul roasting.¡± Consequently, this absurd situation arose where humans living under the rule of the undead are content and prosperous, whereas those under human rule are struggling with poverty and disease. Many have risked crossing the mountains to escape here because they could no longer survive. People like Ange all have ways to descend the mountain ¨C those who can fly do so. For those who can¡¯t, like Little Zombie, they drill their pickaxes into the mountain, going down swiftly.
As Luther was about to ask if Serene could go down, he saw her leap down the cliff, grasping the protruding rocks to slow herself down. In this way, she gradually descended, quickly reaching the base of the cliff. Well, it seemed that a simple cliff would not hinder these people. As they descended disying their individual skills, Serene turned around and suggested, ¡°Let¡¯s have Little Angel stay. Otherwise, entering town might scare everyone.¡± ¡°It¡¯s fine. I¡¯ll talk to her, ¡®aow, aow, aow!¡¯¡± Negris turned to Little Angel and said. Then, with a teeth-gritting pping of wings, making Serene go pale, Little Angel tore off her wings and transformed into a cute little girl. After a long journey, they finally arrived in the small town. Serene introduced, ¡°Our town is called Bridgehead Town. There¡¯s a river outside the town, but it¡¯s dried up now. It will only flow after the Eternal Night starts¡­¡± As she was speaking, a Minotaur woman suddenly emerged from a hollow in the outskirts of town. She curiously observed Ange¡¯s group while greeting Serene, ¡°Hey, Serene, where did you go? Are these your suitors? Which one is your boyfriend? Is it the handsome young man with the sword?¡± Holding a sword? Luther looked around, it seemed he was the only one holding a sword. Was she referring to him? Handsome young man? She really has a taste. Luther¡¯s fondness for the minotaur auntie increased instantly. ¡°Oh my, Auntie Bull, what nonsense are you talking? These people have escaped from the west and I just happened to meet them,¡± Serene confidently denied. The Minotaur auntie¡¯s eyes sparkled, and she eximed while climbing out of the hollow, ¡°Really? He¡¯s not your boyfriend? How could you resist such a handsome young man? If you don¡¯t want him, Auntie will have him¡­¡± What? Auntie wants me? Looking at Auntie Bull, who was three times his size, Luther went pale. Is this the punishment for being too handsome? Fortunately, just as Luther was about to run away, Auntie Bull added, ¡°I will introduce him to Little Flower at the vige entrance. I¡¯m sure she will like such a handsome young man.¡±
Serene twitched a little, then forced a smile, ¡°Auntie Bull, you are joking. I was too shy to admit it just now, he is my boyfriend. We just had our blind date in the city, Little Flower should find her own.¡± Serene, leaning over and hooking Luther¡¯s arm, dragged him smilingly into the town. Auntie Bull grumbled, ¡°Child, what¡¯s there to be shy about? It¡¯s good to have found a man.¡± She then turned her attention to Ange and asked with augh, ¡°Young man, do you date?¡± What is dating? Ange didn¡¯t understand and shook his head. Unaffected by it, Auntie Bull turned to Little Zombie, ¡°Young man, do you date?¡± Little Zombie, d in soul armor and looking tall and sturdy, should have been Auntie Bull¡¯s first choice. But with his helmet on, she couldn¡¯t see his face and thus opted for the second best choice. If Ange shook his head, Little Zombie would undoubtedly follow suit. Auntie Bullughed and said, ¡°It¡¯s alright, it¡¯s alright. You must date before you get to know each other.¡± With Luther¡¯s arm wrapped around hers, Serene led everyone towards her house, saying somewhat awkwardly, ¡°I forgot to tell you all, our town has more women than men. So, robust men like you all are very popr. If you wish to stay, tell Auntie Bull, she can arrange dates for you. What do you think? There are many beautiful girls in the town.¡± When they returned to Serene¡¯s house, it was a low stone bungalow made up of various bs, pirs, and pieces of stone, all coated in mud. All the buildings in the town were built in this style, mainly due to the scarcity of construction materials. Not even a single piece of wood could be seen. The house was spacious but a bit gloomy.
After entering and closing the stone window, the room brightened significantly and a breeze swept through, bringing a hint of coolness. Serene looked around and startedining in distress: ¡°Oh dear, that dead cat dragged me away while I was closing windows and doors to take a bath. I haven¡¯t opened the windows for days, everything is now damp, and the bath water can¡¯t be used.¡± Luther perked up, pretending to be casual, looking inside, expecting arge bathtub. He was disappointed to find nothing more than a small wooden basin. ¡°Bath water? You bathe in such a small basin?¡± Negris asked surprisingly. Serene replied matter-of-factly, ¡°What else? The river here only rises during eternal nights. We usually cook with water from storage tanks. This basin of water was collected from dewdrops over several days. It got ruined before I could use it.¡± Looking at various tiny bugs floating on the water surface, Negris nodded in agreement and sympathetically said, ¡°It¡¯s really hard for you folks here; even we don¡¯t have it that bad. At least we have a constant water supply.¡± Although the Resting Abyss was always windy, underground cities were rich in water resources. At least they didn¡¯t have to collect water for baths. ¡°If you have a water shortage, how do you water the crops?¡± Negris asked. ¡°We rely on ponds and surface storage, as well as nighttime dew,¡± she replied. ¡°What do you mean by ¡®eternal night¡¯?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Oh, here we have sunrises and sunsets, but every three months, the sun doesn¡¯t rise for a month. We call this period ¡®eternal night¡¯. During this time, the river swells, the undead creatures move around and attack the defenses built by the church in the mountains. The eternal night ising soon. We need to leave here quickly, locate the ce where the big cat is sealed, and save it,¡± Serene said. Serene pulled out a small totem stick from under the bed and excitedly said, ¡°I found it. It can guide us to the ce where the big cat is sealed.¡±
This was the main reason they returned to town. After getting the required items, they prepared to leave. However, as they stepped outside, they saw over a dozen young girls, dressed attractively, standing shyly alone or apanied by parents and rtives on both sides of the alley, looking expectantly at Ange and the others. At this sight, even Luther couldn¡¯t help feeling startled and asked, ¡°Is this how blind dates work here?¡± The group panicked and fled, their hands full of handkerchiefs, not only Ange, Little Zombie, and Luther, but even Little Angel got several. ¡°The girls here are too enthusiastic,¡± Luther said, wiping away cold sweat. Serene shrugged, ¡°What can we do? All of our men are dead, and we have more girls than boys. They have to be enthusiastic if they hope to find husbands. ¡± Negris interjected, ¡°On the other hand, we have more men than women. Let me ask if anyone wants to migrate. We have plenty of bath water there.¡± ¡°Sure, I¡¯ll see if anyone is willing. Speaking of bathing, I should have had a bath before leaving. There¡¯s still water in the water tank. It¡¯s okay to use it up since ¡®eternal night¡¯ is about to begin.¡± ¡°No need. Ange can water you. Find a corner, let Ange pour water on you. It¡¯s way cleaner than using that small wooden basin,¡± Negris suggested, then he thought of another thing: ¡°Actually, you don¡¯t even need to bathe. Let Ange touch you once, his Purification will ensure you¡¯re perfectly clean.¡± Theyughed and joked, climbed up the cliff, and returned to the initial cave.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om ¡°It¡¯s almost dark. We¡¯ll rest here tonight and set off tomorrow,¡± said Serene. Although Ange and the others didn¡¯t need to rest, Luther, Lightning, and Serene did.
As soon as they returned to the cave, they saw several rats rummaging through Ange¡¯s field, constantly digging up the soil and picking out the seeds buried in. PS: This chapter is to make up for the one in the morning, continue typing. Chapter 338: 212: Haha, Caught an Undead_1 Chapter 338: Chapter 212: Haha, Caught an Undead_1 ¡°Roar!¡± Ange roared, releasing a raging Soul Impact. The skulls of field mice, each busy turning over seeds, exploded one after another, leaving a ground littered with death.
¡°Eh? Mice? How are there mice here?¡± Serene asked, taken aback. ¡°There are no mice here? How can such arge mountain range not have mice?¡± Negris was surprised. ¡°Of course not, I frequentlye up here and have never seen a single mouse. Look at how barren this mountain is, what could mice possibly eat to survive?¡± Serene exined. That made sense. Mice aren¡¯t Undead, and although they¡¯re known for their tenacity, they still require food to live. The mountains were full of rocks and nearly devoid of vegetation, so how could they possibly sustain mice? ¡°So, where did these micee from?¡± Inquired Negris, curious. A weak and flitting voice came from the depths of the mountain cave. The voice, timid and fearful, said, ¡°It ¡­ it was me who brought them over. I didn¡¯t know this was your territory, I won¡¯t dare to do it again, I promise.¡±
With the voice, a wisp of smoke emerged from behind a stone in the cave, its form wavering uncertainly, shrinking back as it drifted forward. ¡°An Undead?¡± It was actually an Undead. ¡°You used Soul Impact on it?¡± Ange shook his head. He hadn¡¯t noticed the other party at all. Under his Soul Impact, this Undead was no different from those mice, so naturally, he didn¡¯t notice it. Undead and witches belong to the high-level Undeads because they possess intelligence. Skeletons and zombies must reach the levels of Golden Skeletons and Iron Skin Zombies to gain intelligence, although it is rtively low. It¡¯s different for witches and Undeads; from the moment of their birth, they possess intelligence. If they reincarnated from other intelligent creatures, they could even retain memories and knowledge from their past lives. This gives them a greater advantage over skeletons and zombies, making them the backbone of the Undead. Almost all the high-ranking members of the Undead Empire are Undeads and witches, with few exceptions, such as Steadfast Locke. Among them, the number of Undeads is far less than that of witches. Witch City has several witches, including Feilin and Lisa, and the Ice City¡¯s Lan is also a witch. However, the entire Resting Abyss has no Undeads, highlighting the difficulty of the birth of an Undead. Undeads are the Undead creatures condensed purely by souls, and their souls are naturally purer than others. Even at a low level, they possess greater advantages than skeletons and zombies of the same level. However, this advantage did not manifest in front of Ange. A Soul Impact not aimed at it; Ange didn¡¯t even notice its existence, yet this Undead was nearly dispersed. Drifting in front of Ange, the Undead timidly said, ¡°I¡¯m ¡­ I¡¯m sorry, my Lord. I didn¡¯t mean to. I really didn¡¯t know this was yours. My pets were hungry, and I saw food on the ground, so ¡­ so ¡­¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om
¡°You¡¯re raising these mice? What¡¯s your name?¡± Negris asked. ¡°My lord, my name is Fe ¡­ Feirick.¡± Feirick replied. ¡°How did you end up here?¡± Negris asked. ¡°I¡¯m a merchant, preparing to go to the human domain to purchase goods,¡± Feirick responded. ¡°As a merchant, why do you travel with mice?¡± Negris asked, puzzled. Feirick hesitated for a moment, nced at Ange, and said helplessly, ¡°Sir, this is my secret. There are many rifts and caves in the Central Mountain Range. Although some are small, they can still be passed through. My pets can help me sniff out passable paths.¡± Unwillingly but honestly, Feirick answered. Negris ryed to Ange through his soul, ¡°He seems to have misunderstood something, probably mistaking us for local high-ranking Undead.¡± This was quite normal, Ange was a Golden Skeleton, and based purely on Soul Strength, he could suppress Feirick, let alone being the Undead God. In the Undead world, where levels are distinguished by Soul Strength, Angepletely overwhelmed him, scaring him was only normal. Understanding this, Negris knew what to do. He asked, ¡°You are a merchant, so what do you primarily deal with? Where are your goods?¡± Feirick reluctantly pulled out a Space Ring, thinking, ¡°I¡¯ve lost big this time running into a high-ranking king. Well, it¡¯s better to lose wealth than to invite disaster.¡± As an Undead merchant, Feirick¡¯s soul was not very strong, roughly equivalent to the level of an Ashbone Skeleton. For an Undead, this was considered the lowest level; any weaker, and the soul wouldn¡¯t be able to materialize. This was why Undeads were so scarce. Upon birth, they needed to have the Soul Strength of an Ashbone Skeleton. If they didn¡¯t have such strength, they wouldn¡¯t be able to be born.
But while Feirick had soul strength, he didn¡¯t have much fighting strength. As an ountant in his former life, his skills were useless after bing an Undead, making him less effective than an ordinary wizard. Although he had the Undead Holy Fire and could learn knowledge quickly, he didn¡¯t want to live under the rule of any Undead saints. Naturally, he didn¡¯t get any special opportunities. So, in the end, he decided to be a merchant. After all, he was immortal, and even if he lost money in his business, he couldn¡¯t starve to death. As a merchant, he had to go to the human world. The Undead didn¡¯t have anymercial interests; they slept through three out of every four months, only waking up and moving around during the eternal night. However, to reach the human world, the Central Mountain Range was a natural barrier. Humans had set up many warning towers, defense towers, and soul towers on top of the mountains which were designed to specifically oppress the Undead. Being an Undead himself, Feirick had a hard time crossing over. Chapter 339: 212: Haha, Caught an Undead_2 Chapter 339: Chapter 212: Haha, Caught an Undead_2 On the other hand, ordinary humans, who were not detected by the Soul Tower, could effortlessly cross over, as long as they evaded the nodes of the Defense Tower. Even if they were detected by the warning tower, it was unimportant.
The Soul Tower was an exception; its surveince range was too broad, and it specifically targeted souls. Therefore, even a High-level King would have difficulty resisting soul-targeted attacks from the Soul Tower. So, to traverse the Central Mountain Range, a new route had to be found. By chance, Feirick discovered that rats had a remarkable ability to find their way. They could burrow through ces that appeared bereft of paths, finding little ditches and furrows. As a result, he bred several rats as pets, using them to find pathways through the Central Mountain Range. He had returned to the Central Mountain Range and was preparing to take a rest, feed his pets, when he stumbled upon a newly cultivated plot ofnd. The moment he released his pets, they dug straight into the ground looking for seeds. ¡°I¡¯m guessing those humans downhill nted this. They won¡¯t binge eat much. I¡¯ll justpensate them with something elseter.¡± Feirick was already prepared to make amends when, out of nowhere, a High-level King burst in, enraged, andunched a Soul Impact. It was not just a Soul Impact; it was more like a Soul Storm, sweeping across like a tempest. He, who was originally hiding behind a stone was affected too. Had the stone not shielded him, if he took the blow head-on, he would have exploded instantly.
A High-level King like this was even more terrifying than the Undead Saints he had encountered in the past. Feirick didn¡¯t dare to think anymore. He obediently behaved, fearing that the other party might do something with his soul, leaving him with no tears to cry. As he was pulling out a ring from his smoky body, the little angel ran over curiously, wanting to poke it with a finger, but Ange stopped him. Only when he got closer did Feirick feel a terrifying Holy Light Power radiating from the Little Angel. Such terrible Holy Light Power? A saintess? This High-level King couldmand a saintess from the Church of Light? Feirick¡¯s heart pounded, and his movements sped up considerably. ¡°This is the Spirit Picture Book, and this is a human knight novel, a muted siren¡¯s song recording stone, a banshee¡¯s talisman, Chess of the Hero Against the Dragon, King Locke Poker, this is the Wraith rm Clock¡­¡± While introducing, Feirick dug out arge pile of strange goods. Negris curiously watched and couldn¡¯t help but ask, ¡°Why are most of them entertainment cultural products?¡± Feirick replied, ¡°These items sell well. I can¡¯t transport living essentials back, right? My Space Ring can¡¯t hold much, plus they won¡¯t be as lucrative.¡± Negris nodded. He understood Feirick¡¯s sentiment. For Undead, there¡¯s no need to eat, naturally, no need for food or items like pots and pans, not to mention bedding. The only necessities may be various entertainment products. After all, for eternal life, how to pass the time is the trickiest part. It¡¯s not like they can be sleeping all the time. Therefore, knight novels, stone records of songs, and chess cards have a good market. ¡°And what are the uses of the Spirit Picture Book and Wraith rm Clock?¡± Negris asked in confusion. Feirick nced at the Little Angel, moved closer to the Bronze Dragon, and whispered, ¡°Obviously, they are for that purpose. There are several series, including Duchess¡¯ Lady, Sleek Saintess, oh, and eighteen postures of the Transforming Dragon which are more suitable for you. These sell well to humans. Open it, and it will trigger a Spirit Imagination, lifelike.¡±
¡°Sir, as you know, the Undead are keen on the spiritual aspect and are best at drawing Spirit Picture Books. A book like this only costs three hundred Demon Crystals and is in high demand among humans.¡± Negris was so moved by hearing this, he got curious about the eighteen postures of the Transforming Dragon. ¡°As for the Wraith rm Clock, it¡¯s just an rm clock. Some humans are incredibly lethargic, having trouble waking up in the morning and sleeping at night. They need something to stimte them. Set the time and the wraith in the rm clock will wail at the set time. Even if they¡¯ve been asleep for ten days straight, they could wake up and feel cold from the top of their head to their feet¡ªvery effective.¡± ¡°It can be used during study times too. When the wraith wails, it ensures alertness.¡± Hearing this, Negris couldn¡¯t help but sympathize, ¡°Isn¡¯t that too cruel?¡± ¡°Rx, most people will throw it under the bed after buying and won¡¯t stick with it. In fact, those who persist don¡¯t actually need any rms,¡± Feirick said with a tone of having seen through it all. ¡°You¡¯re right. Do you have any other good stuff?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Umm, are these not to the grown-up¡¯s liking? I am just an ordinary undead merchant, these are the best items I have.¡± Feirick shook his ring, casually mentioning: ¡°In the ring there¡¯s just one bag of grain seeds left¡­¡± No sooner said than done, Negris and Ange leaned in, eagerly asking, ¡°What kind of grain seeds?¡± ¡°Uh, it¡¯s a type of grain that humans have specifically cultivated, adapting to the growth seasons of this ne, sow it during the eternal night, it sprouts after the eternal night ends, matures in two and a half months, and harvested before the next eternal nightes. It has an especially big root system, capable of taking root in deeper soilyers, doesn¡¯t need watering, it can grow solely on surface water, and has a very high yield, about two hundred twenty pounds per acre.¡± ¡°Two hundred twenty pounds per acre is considered high? We¡¯ll take this aspensation, let¡¯s forget about your disrespect this time.¡± Negris answered in surprise. Ange¡¯s hands have already handled grain seeds that have broken a thousand pounds yield per acre. Even Saline Demon Rice yields six to seven hundred pounds per acre, so hearing about two hundred twenty pounds being described as ¡®very high¡¯, is really iprehensible.
Feirick was on the verge of tears from the emotional impact, and asked in disbelief: ¡°Really? But this stuff isn¡¯t worth much¡­¡± A small bag of grain seeds is basically worthless, apart from making it a little difficult to cross mountains, it was just a little something he got from farmers during his travels. That such a high-level king didn¡¯t want anything else, just this worthless thing, was beyond him. He naturally didn¡¯t think that Ange was only interested in the grain seeds, but simply thought that this king was merciful, not wanting to bully him, which moved him immensely.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om In his rush, he ced the grain seeds into Negris¡¯s hand and nervously asked: ¡°Master, may I leave now?¡± ¡°Leave, where are you nning to go?¡± Negris handed the seeds to Ange and asked on the way. ¡°I n to go to the human world beyond the mountains.¡± Feirick said. ¡°Great, we¡¯re going that way too. You¡¯ve gone back and forth many times. You must know which route can be safely crossed over, right?¡± Negris said. Feirick was in a predicament, to be honest, he was not very willing, his mountain-crossing route was secret and if other people knew the route, wouldn¡¯t he get a bunch ofpetitors? At Negris¡¯s suggestion, Ange took out ten Soul Crystals and handed them to Feirick. ¡°Honorable king, I am very pleased to guide your way, rest assured. The routes I, Feirick, have explored are safe and hidden. I can absolutely safely take you to the other side of the mountain.¡± Feirick excitedly guarantees. ¡°But sir, you have too many men. Plus a horse. I¡¯m afraid not all ces are passable.¡± Feirick added. ¡°You¡¯re the horse. Your whole family are horses. Are you blind? Do you see what this is¡­¡± Lightning started banging his own head, but before he could finish, Ange stuffed him into the Resting Camp.
The rest of the people were also stuffed inside, Negris was no exception, leaving only Ange outside. ¡°The master¡¯s space is really vast. Let me speed up.¡± Feirick sighed. Some space items can hold living things, like the misceneous shop of the silver coin, which at first carried the World Tree sapling to find the elves, as long as you take it out before the internal air is exhausted, it will be fine. Can only sigh that Ange¡¯s space is veryrge, even a horse can fit in, and there¡¯s enough air to breathe. Following Feirick¡¯s guidance, Ange wound through several tunnels and crevices in the ground. They also climbed up and down along the mountain wall, finally, after six or seven hours, they crossed over the entire mountain range. ¡°I told you the route I guided is safe and hidden. Sir, cross this dense forest and you¡¯ll find the human Mushroom Town.¡± Feirick said. As soon as Feirick¡¯s words came out, suddenly a whistle sounded, and a bunch of Pdins emerged from the surrounding forest. The leading Pdinughed: ¡°Hahaha, we caught an undead! Huh, there¡¯s a man following him?¡± PS: Tired, I¡¯ve been working full hours for three months. I¡¯ve been writing for neen years and never worked this hard. Pandemic, mother-inw can¡¯te over, no one to help me with the kids, wailing!! Chapter 340: 213: The Pope (Anthony) sent me_1 Chapter 340: Chapter 213: The Pope (Anthony) sent me_1 ¡°Kvada! He called this a ¡®safe and secret¡¯ location! Dang it, Kvada! We shouldn¡¯t have trusted him; this untrustworthy undead.¡± Negris grumbled angrily inside Ange¡¯s soul.
Ange tilted his head, sweeping his gaze around. There were probably about twenty Pdins with amander who ranked at about Level 8, roughly as strong as the Made Team they had encountered before. However, these Pdins didn¡¯t seem as well-off as the Made Team. Their armor was old and damaged with some rusty spots. The patches of leather on cors and joints were frayed, and their weapons were in poor condition with many chips on the des. Feirick kept his calm; he manifested his physical form, knelt down, and took out five demon crystals. ¡°I believe in the Light. Here¡¯s my tax!¡± Negris was taken aback. Why did this scene feel so familiar? The leading Pdin came forward and picked up the demon crystals, weighing them in his hand. ¡°So, you¡¯re a follower of the Light. You¡¯re one of us, then. But the tax has increased, so you should pay more.¡± Feirick took out another demon crystal. ¡°This is a small business. It takes a little over a long time. If the tax is too high, I¡¯ll find another route next time.¡±
The Pdin quickly exined, ¡°No need, you brought someone with you this time. We¡¯ll give you a discount next time, given your devout heart.¡± Where did they see a devout heart in this undead exuding deadly air? The Pdin then turned to Ange. ¡°How about you? Do you believe in the Light? If you do, then pay your tax.¡± Negris sighed, ¡°Just pay it. Let¡¯s avoid the hassle. Give the same as Feirick.¡± So Ange took out five demon crystals, and now they were in trouble. ¡°Oh? A rich man? Hands up! I suspect you smuggled forbidden goods and possessed mass-destruction weapons. Open up your spatial magic artifact for us to check,¡± the leading Pdin dered. Feirick couldn¡¯t help grumbling in a low voice, ¡°Why would you give so many? I should have offered it for you. You should have said you didn¡¯t have any. Why did you expose your spatial magic artifact? Now we¡¯re in trouble. If we don¡¯t bleed a lot, these vampires won¡¯t let us go.¡± Negris roared inside Ange¡¯s soul, ¡± Kvada! I¡¯m infuriated! We were nning to get along with you guys, but you forced us to reveal our identities. Ange, show your Divine Riding Badge.¡± Ange took out Leonardo¡¯s Divine Riding Badge. ¡°Ah! A knight of the Gods! Oh, fishing executioner¡­ Lord above, I¡¯m sorry, sir! We didn¡¯t know who you were!¡± With that, all the surrounding Pdins dropped to their knees. The leading Pdin knelt on both knees, with a look of sincere fear on his face. He held up eleven demon crystals in his trembling hands, rapidly apologizing, ¡°We¡¯re sorry, sir! We didn¡¯t know who you were. We didn¡¯t mean to, please forgive us.¡± Negris roared directly into Ange¡¯s body, ¡°Have you never heard of taxing people at will just because you don¡¯t know their identity?! Which department are you from? I¡¯m going to report you to your boss!¡±
¡°Sir, you don¡¯t know our department?¡± the leading Pdin asked. Negris was taken aback. How was he supposed to know what department they were from? ¡°If I knew, would I still ask you? Speak up!¡± Negris responded impatiently. ¡°Sir, you¡¯ve offended us.¡± The lead Pdin threw the demon crystals toward Ange, leaped back, and yelled, ¡°Brothers, run! Don¡¯t get caught¡­¡± The surrounding Pdins sprinted in all directions before he could even finish his sentence, disappearing without a trace. The lead Pdin couldn¡¯t finish his words either, because as soon as he finished saying ¡®get caught¡¯, Ange grabbed his neck and lifted him up like a little chicken. Divine power erupted from the Pdin, but before he could do anything, Ange cast Holy Light on him, dispelling his divine power. The Pdin stared in horror, recognizing this as Devouring! The legendary Devouring could only ur when one person¡¯s power was overwhelmingly superior to another¡¯s. Realizing that the ¡®Knight of God¡¯ in front of him was far beyond his ability to resist, the lead Pdin¡¯s face turned ashen and he went limp. As soon as Ange put him down, he obediently knelt on the ground, face down.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Negris was also a little puzzled and asked in Ange¡¯s mind, ¡°Are you this strong now? Can you overpower a Level 7-8 Pdin single-handedly?¡± Ange tilted his head, clearly puzzled. Was it that hard? Negris gave up trying to analyze Ange¡¯s strength. This skeleton was growing strong just by gardening and studying a Druid handbook. Plus, he had collected so many pieces of Elf Druid¡¯s soul fragments, who knew what new abilities he had acquired?
Negris shifted his attention to the Pdin and asked sternly, ¡°Name.¡± ¡°Sir, my name is Brand.¡± ¡°Age.¡± ¡°Forty-three.¡± ¡°Gender.¡± ¡°Er, sir, isn¡¯t it obvious?¡± ¡°Answer when asked, no backtalk, p.¡± Thest word ¡®p¡¯ made Brand pause. Was he being told to p himself? Before he could figure out what was happening, Ange¡¯s p hadnded on his head causing a buzzing sound. ¡°Gender.¡± Negris repeated the question. Asking an obvious question and insisting on getting an answer is a part of obedience training. It can break down your resistance and condition you to answer other questions more freely. Chapter 341: 213: The Pope (Anthony) sent me_2 Chapter 341: Chapter 213: The Pope (Anthony) sent me_2 If he were notzy, Negris could ask him how old he was when he wet the bed. ¡°I¡¯m a man, I¡¯m a man.¡± Brand answered hastily. ¡°Why did youmit robbery on the road?¡± ¡°Well, sir, we were not robbing. We were only collecting taxes. You can¡¯tbel us like that.¡± Brand lifted his head, a mournful look on his face as he spoke.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om ¡°Quibbling, smack.¡± Ange once again pped his head, dazing him, his eyes nearly blurred with stars. ¡°Why did youmit robbery on the road?¡± ¡°¡­We¡¯re poor, but we are not robbers. The local troops levy an eleven percent tax. This is a power bestowed on us by the Holy Light, we¡¯re absolutely not robbing.¡± Brand vehemently denied any wrongdoing. Although what they were doing was essentially no different from robbery, and even possibly better than robbery, they firmly refused to admit it. If they admitted it, not only would he be finished, but the other people would also be finished, and it might even implicate their families. What a coincidence? He was now beginning to suspect that this was entrapment. Would a God¡¯s Knight disguise himself as amoner and cross mountains under the leadership of the undead? ¡°Poor?¡± Negris was genuinely surprised at such an answer. But looking at Brand¡¯s worn-out equipment, it seemed like a very straightforward reason.
¡°Doesn¡¯t your superior allocate funds? Is there no maintenance for your equipment?¡± Negris asked. When this question was raised, Brand couldn¡¯t help his eyes turning red: ¡°We haven¡¯t received our sry for several months, there has been no equipment maintenance for a few years. Even food and cloth have be scarce recently. It¡¯s getting difficult to survive.¡± ¡°Really? They don¡¯t even pay you? Have your superiors be corrupt?¡± Negris expressed his surprise. Brand nced at Ange, trying to figure out from the expression on Ange¡¯s face whether he was genuinely surprised or setting a trap. However, Ange¡¯s face was expressionless. Brand hesitated for a moment, then shook his head decisively: ¡°No, I heard it was because of the split in the Eastern Diocese of the Master ne, which led to a shortage of supplies. That¡¯s why we weren¡¯t paid.¡± Seeing that Brand shook his head with a grimace, Negris suddenly felt a touch of sympathy for these Pdins. Clearly, he was still worried that Ange was setting a trap and didn¡¯t dare to tell the truth. Have the lower echelons of the Church of Light be this cautious? Negris thought it would be good to have a sincere chat, and he spoke a few words in Ange¡¯s mind. Ange nodded, stomping his foot on the ground. Swoosh, three pirs of earth rose up, two short and one tall. The tall one quickly shaped into a tabletop. In a blink, a set of two chairs and a table took shape. Indicating Ange to take out some fresh beetroot, some varieties can be eaten as fruit when fresh and taste good. ¡°Sit, eat.¡± Brand looked incredulous. The shock, of course, came from Ange¡¯s ability, so fast that his elemental senses could barely register it. A description from the church perfectly fits this scene ¨C the will of God. God said, let there be light, and there was light¡­ God felt the room was too empty, so there were tables and chairs¡­ This was a high-level divine art, who was this God¡¯s Knight? He gingerly sat down, picked up a beetroot but did not dare to eat it, and nervously fumbled it in his hands. After a heartfelt conversation, Negris finally understood the situation of Brand and his fellow Pdins. ording to Brand, the personnel in the Land of Fallen were divided into garrisons and reinforcements. The reinforcements were troops from the Master ne that rotated every four months to help with the battle. These troops were well-equipped, well-trained, had good living conditions and were highly capable ofbat. Originally, all the troops were ¡®reinforcements¡¯ a thousand years ago. But as the battle reached a stalemate, particrly after the establishment of the Land of Fallen Diocese, some people stayed behind.
Some of these garrison personnel came and went, but some stayed on and brought their families and friends, even settling down to raise children. Decadester, their descendants became locals of this ne. The living conditions in the Land of Fallen were hard, supplies were scarce, and thend was barren. Additionally, the garrison suffered the most severe casualties, lost many elites, and over time, theirbat power significantly declined. The main force in the fight against the undead became reinforcements from the Master ne. The original garrisons were relegated to secondary defense forces, tasked with defending the long Central Mountain Range and human settlements. The few elite garrisons were all concentrated in the Holy Wall City to guard the front line before the endless night came.
Secondary defense forces naturally didn¡¯t enjoy good conditions. With the incurable corruption of the Church, allocations were made reluctantly, and cuts weremon. Faced with this helplessness, everyone had to be self-sufficient. But in the Land of Fallen, what method could be used for self-reliance? There were only a few undead merchants. If they caught one, they wouldn¡¯t dare to squeeze too much out of them, fearing that in the future, they would take their business elsewhere. Now, Brand¡¯s vige was short of clothes and food. Not only were their rations insufficient and in arrears, but their families and vigers were also starving. The Land of Fallen¡¯s productivity was not enough to supply so many people, mainly because it was the front line, and the Master ne continuously shipped in supplies. But a few months ago, the Eastern Diocese of the Master ne dered independence and called itself the Holy District. This was a great excuse. Although the amount of supplies sent by the curia had not decreased, local parasites had unanimously found excuses to increase cuts. Chapter 342: 213: The Pope (Anthony) sent me_3 Chapter 342: Chapter 213: The Pope (Anthony) sent me_3 However, after so many years, Brand had be ustomed to this. The vige tried to grow a little, he organized some people to collect taxes on the road, and from time to time he would raise a fuss with the higher-ups. Whatever he could squeeze out of them, he could barely make do and survive. Negris was shocked by Brand¡¯s description and didn¡¯t know what to say. When he was in the Master ne, he had some understanding of the corruption in the church from Anthony, Shamara, and F. But he didn¡¯t expect the situation in the Land of Fallen to be even more severe. This is the frontline, aren¡¯t they afraid that the defense line will be breached if they do this? ¡°Sir, are you sure you aren¡¯t a local garrison, sir?¡± Brand asked nervously, repeatedly asking this question, fearing that Ange was trying to trick him. ¡°I¡¯ve told you I¡¯m not. Not only am I not a local garrison, even my identity as God¡¯s Knight is fake. I¡¯m an ascetic monk from the Master ne, assigned by the Pope to secretly investigate the corruption in the Land of Fallen. In order to get the true situation, I had to put on a disguise.¡± As Negris spoke, he had Ange perform the Holy Light. He mentioned Anthony¡¯s name in front of the Pope, implying it was Anthony who sent them. They would seek a letter of appointment from Anthony when they are back, after all, the Pope of the Holy Church is still the Pope, isn¡¯t he? Pure Holy Light was the best proof of identity. Brand didn¡¯t doubt Ange¡¯s identity, he was just worried that it was a fishing operation. ¡°Let¡¯s go, take me to your vige.¡± said Negris. Meanwhile, he turned around to look for Feirick, only to find Feirick hiding in the distance behind some rocks, peering out nervously.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Forget it, ignore this undead merchant. Having him along would only be a hindrance. Brand reluctantly led the way. After a while, Ange suddenly turned and looked into the dense woods. In the depths of the forest, a Pdin with worn-out armor was anxiously peering in their direction. Seeing Ange had noticed him, he was startled and quickly pulled his head back behind the foliage.
Brand also noticed him, and called out with a bitter smile, ¡°Come on out, everyone. The lord has forgiven us.¡± Around twenty Pdins reluctantly emerged from their hiding ces. No one was missing, obviously, Brand had quite a reputation among them. None of them abandoned him to escape. One of the youngest knight attendants, leaning on a crutch, hobbled over and timidly called to Brand, ¡°Dad.¡± ¡°Your son? What happened to his leg?¡± Negris asked. ¡°He fell off a horse when he was little and shattered his ankle. Holy Art can only heal it, but it couldn¡¯t piece the shattered bones back together.¡± Brand said painfully, guiltily caressing his son¡¯s head. Negris asked in confusion, ¡°Don¡¯t you have Holy Essence Liquid? Why don¡¯t you use it? Even if the ankle were shattered, you could just amputate and regrow it.¡± Brand and his Pdin men looked at each other, ¡°Sir, are you talking about the legendary Holy Essence Liquid that can regenerate limbs?¡± Negris was surprised, ¡°Legendary? You don¡¯t mean to tell me you¡¯ve never seen Holy Essence Liquid before?¡± As he said this, Negris reached into his bag and pulled out a vial, ¡°I happen to have some right here, one thousand demon crystals per vial.¡± The expression on Brand¡¯s face changed from surprise to disappointment in an instant. ¡°However, if you cooperate with me in investigating the corruption, I¡¯ll give you this vial of Essence Liquid for free. It can cure your son¡¯s leg, how does that sound?¡± Chapter 343: 214 You are the Undead God, I am Steadfast Locke_1 Chapter 343: Chapter 214 You are the Undead God, I am Steadfast Locke_1 ¡°Er, Sir, shouldn¡¯t we prepare a bit?¡± Seeing Ange grabbing his child and recklessly drawing a knife, looking as if he was ready to get down to business, made Brand¡¯s scalp tingle. Just like that, he was going to start? No preparations? When he observed some priests performing high-level healing in the past, they always purified their bodies with fragrant baths, calmed their minds, cleared the surroundings, and only then dared to start. Sometimes, even with all these preparations, they could still fail due to various distractions. Ange hadn¡¯t made any preparations at all, and immediately went for a big move. By the look of it, was he nning to chop off his son¡¯s foot? Ange shook his head: ¡°No need.¡± He pulled Brand¡¯s son¡¯s foot towards him, ready to chop it off. Brand grabbed Ange, wearing a mournful expression: ¡°Or maybe we don¡¯t heal him, let¡¯s not.¡± In these times, a cut wasn¡¯t a trivial matter, severe bleeding could cause the body¡¯s blood to drain dry; given the poor sanitary conditions, even a small wound could lead to infections, ulcers, sepsis, and death. Let alone cutting off a leg. In the beginning, he agreed too quickly, without considering thoroughly. Now having thought about it, doing nothing may be better. His son was alive and well; if something went wrong during treatment, his son could die. The risk was too great, especially when seeing Ange¡¯s untrustworthy demeanor, which made Brand even more uneasy. Rather than taking such a risk, it was better not to treat him. ¡°Oh.¡± Ange responded nonchntly, but was interrupted by Negris. Negris spoke to him through his soul: ¡°No, he must be treated. He is already growing distrustful of you, you cannot let it go. You must cure him and break this distrust.¡± So, Ange¡¯s words became: ¡°Oh, you must be treated.¡±
Brand¡¯s son, Little Brand, was very brave and firmly told his father: ¡°I want treatment!¡± Brand thought it was better to limp than to take risks, but his son didn¡¯t think so. Little Brand saw it better to die than to limp for life.N?v(el)B\\jnn Little Brand understood very clearly: this Magician, who was much more powerful than his father, was treating him now. This was an opportunity that couldn¡¯t be sought after. Even if he made it to Holy Wall City, without potentially hundreds of demon crystals to grease the wheels, he wouldn¡¯t even be able to see a Magician eligible to treat him. This was a god-given opportunity that he must cherish. Looking at his son¡¯s resolute expression, Brand mournfully said: ¡°Or, could we, could we clean the knife a bit first?¡± Actually, under the purification spell, it didn¡¯t matter if the knife was clean or not. It wouldn¡¯t cause the wound to be infected or fester. But since the client had made this request, and there was nothing to lose, Ange invoked the holy light and casually smeared it on the knife. The rust and blood stains on the old, rusty knife all disappeared instantly under the smear of the holy light For some stains that had seeped into the material of the knife, Ange pointed his finger, and after a session of the face purification technique, it was clean again. This deed gave Brand slightly more confidence. Just as he was about to grit his teeth and look away, Ange swung the knife. Little Brand¡¯sme foot flew up before his eyes. Even if he saw someone else being chopped into seventeen or eighteen pieces, Brand could keep his eyes open without blinking. But this was his son! His legs weakened, and he almost sat down on the ground, fortunate to have someone behind him supporting him. Everyone was actually quite curious. They did not feel the same urgency as Brand, so they could observe more. ¡°Hey, Little Brand didn¡¯t even move. He didn¡¯t scream either. Doesn¡¯t it hurt?¡± ¡°The Holy Light must be soothing him.¡± Ange had experience treatingmeness for others. He had severed Little Brand¡¯s nerve early on, so there was no feeling of pain, of course, he wouldn¡¯t shout. Tossing aside the cut-offme foot, Ange opened the Holy Essence Liquid, poured it on the severed part, cast the face purification technique, and a miracle unfolded before the eyes of many pdins. With Ange¡¯s ability, growing a limb back from the base of the ankle would take about an hour. Throughout the process, he needed to continuously cast the face purification technique to make sure the growth process was not interrupted. If interrupted, the wound would scab over, and then he would have to scrape off the scab and start again, much more time-consuming andborious, causing more consumption and pain for the sufferer. That¡¯s why even a level 8 Pdin couldn¡¯t find anyone to treat his son. Who could perform healing magic non-stop for an hour like Ange? To achieve effectsparable to Ange¡¯s, it would require more than a dozen priests, along with the Holy Essence Liquid that would sell for over a thousand demon crystals. To mobilize such arge force, without three to five thousand demon crystals, it would be impossible.
Twenty minutes after Ange continuously cast the face purification technique, Brand had already knelt down, admiring Ange¡¯s figure from behind, murmuring his prayers. forty minutester, all the pdins knelt down, because Little Brand¡¯s foot had already grown back to his heel. Just like this, under the gaze of more than twenty pdins, Ange easily performed the miracle of regrowing a limb. Not until Little Brand got up, bouncing a few times with his newly grown foot, did he excitedly shout: ¡°Father!¡± Only then did Brande back to his senses. Standing up, he tidied his armor, knelt on one knee again, thrust his longsword into the ground, and spoke solemnly: ¡°Level 8 Pdin, Brand Augustus, I pledge my loyalty to you. Where your sword points, I shall follow.¡±
The vige where Brand lived was at the bottom of a cliff, at the junction of the ground and the cliff wall, naturally forming a sandwiched depression. Living here, the cliff could block some of the wind and rain. Adding some huts and pavilions could form an enclosed space, saving a lot of construction materials. Chapter 344: 214 You are the Undead God, I am Steadfast Locke_2 Chapter 344: Chapter 214 You are the Undead God, I am Steadfast Locke_2 The vige had a poption of five to six hundred people. Most of them were out working. The few that remained were the old, the weak, women and children, who were either chatting or ying around. Many of them were barely clothed. As soon as they noticed a stranger like Ange, they rapidly retreated into their homes. Brand awkwardly said: ¡°The vige is poor, resources are scarce, so many families only have one or two sets of clothes.¡± ¡°It¡¯s too harsh. Given these living conditions, why don¡¯t you try to improve it?¡± Negris asked. Brand responded with a despairing tone: ¡°We are incapable. All the economic lifelines and resources here are concentrated in Holy Wall City. Besides, the surrounding areas are barren, and surviving is already difficult. The vige is worrying about how to manage the food supplies during the Eternal Night.¡± ¡°The Eternal Night? Won¡¯t Holy Wall City allocate food?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Who knows? When the timees and the Undead knock at the gate, all manpower is focused on the front line. Who can spare the energy to care about our army¡¯s food and pay? If we don¡¯t prepare beforehand, it wouldn¡¯t be unusual for our vige topletely disappear after the Eternal Night.¡± ¡°Do you cultivate crops yourself?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Yes, and it just happens to be the time for harvest. The others have already gone¡­¡± As Brand was speaking, there was a sudden rumble of thunder in the sky. Brand¡¯s face turned pale: ¡°No good, it¡¯s about to rain. We haven¡¯t finished harvesting the crops yet. Excuse us, Sir, we need to leave for a while.¡± Having said that, Brand turned his head towards the other Pdins. Before he could give an order, the rest of the Pdins swarmed in a certain direction.
¡°Let¡¯s follow them.¡± Negris said. Before he could utter his words, Ange, who had grown restless, chimed in. He was interested in anything rted to farming and harvesting. However, watching these sprinting Pdins, Ange asked confusedly: ¡°They don¡¯t have horses. Why are they called Pdins?¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°¡­¡± Negris was a bit speechless: ¡°¡®Pdin¡¯ is a profession, including skills such as horsemanship and the ability to exert power while riding and so on. Theck of horses is probably due to poverty.¡± Ange followed them to the areas where the fields were located. The whole area was in chaos. Everyone was frantically harvesting the crops in the fields with wooden sickles, fearfully ncing at the sky from time to time. As the clouds in the sky became denser, everyone¡¯s expressions became increasingly anxious. However, how high could the efficiency be while harvesting with a sickle? Tired and sweaty, with limbs weak, they collected less than half after taking a break to look around. Based on past experience, it would take an entire day to harvest all the crops. Even if they worked hard, it wouldn¡¯t be possible to finish harvesting all the crops before the rain came. Even the joining of Brand and other Pdins did not significantly improve the process. They all held longswords, which were even less efficient than sickles for harvesting crops. Ange was excited and eager to join. Negris, who had a premonition, hurriedly stopped him: ¡°Don¡¯t be reckless. You are an Ascetic Monk right now. Don¡¯t use anything inconsistent with your identity. Don¡¯t even think about using the Scythe of Death.¡± ¡°Oh?¡± Ange tilted his head. Holy Light extended from both of his hands, forming into a sacred¡­sickle. With the Holy Light Sickle held upside down, Ange ran swiftly through the field. Wherever he passed, crops neatly fell down, saving even the effort of a second clean-up. They could easily be bundled and taken away. Negris didn¡¯t know what to say. Not until Ange finished harvesting all the crops did he say with a bitter smile: ¡°You can shape the Holy Light now. But all you can think of is making a sickle.¡± There were countless things that Holy Light shaping could do. The Sword of the Holy Spirit, the Staff of the Great Angel, the Scepter of the Pope, etc., all required Holy Light to shape. Well, unprecedentedly, the Sickle of Holy Light, on par with the legendary artifacts like Sword of the Holy Spirit, Staff of the Angels, was born. Everyone stopped what they were doing, staring in disbelief as Ange ran back and forth in the field. The vigers who didn¡¯t recognize Ange all turned their eyes towards Brand. Brand was so moved that he was brought to tears: ¡°The Master is helping us harvest. The Master is so kind and amiable. Quick, gather the crops. Don¡¯t waste the Master¡¯s effort.¡± With Ange¡¯s high-efficiency harvesting, the vigers just needed to bundle and carry away the crops. Everyone worked together to move all the crops into the warehouse before the first drop of rain fell. ¡°Thank you so much, Sir. If you hadn¡¯t helped us, we would have lost more than 40% of our crops. It would have been tough after the Eternal Night.¡± Brand offerted some refreshment, expressing his gratitude with tears in his eyes. Negris lectured: ¡°Since the harvest is so crucial, why are the twenty or so of you strong workers noting back to help?¡± Brand guiltily said: ¡°We would have made it back in time, if we hadn¡¯t bumped into you, Sir.¡± So, it turned out that they hadn¡¯t made it back in time because Ange had caught up with them!
At this moment, a one-eyed old woman from the crowd of onlooking vigers waved something in her hand at Brand. Brand went over to ask about it, and then brought back what the old woman had given him: ¡°Sir, the vigers are grateful for your help and have decided to present you with this precious ancestral treasure.¡± ¡°Ah? The ancestral treasure? That¡¯s too precious, we can¡¯t ept it. Please return it to this youngdy.¡± Negris immediately declined.
Chapter 345 - 214 You are the Undead God, I am Steadfast Locke_3 Chapter 345: Chapter 214 You are the Undead God, I am Steadfast Locke_3 ¡°Er, young girl?¡± Brand stuttered, looking at the old woman whose wrinkles could pinch a bug to death, he really couldn¡¯t associate her with a young girl. Never mind that, Brand directly opened the box in his hand, revealing a bone tool crafted from the Silver Skeleton¡¯s bone, with elegant demonic patterns on the surface and an aura of ck mist. It was as radiant as silver and as pure as jade. Brand was so scared that he quickly closed the box, his entire body trembling: ¡°I¡­ I¡­ we did not¡­ did not dare¡­¡± Ange tilted her head, looking confused at him. Seeing him stutter and not finish, she simply snatched it, took a few looks, and then tossed it into the Resting Camp. ¡°Ma¡¯am, this isn¡¯t ours, we have no faith in the Undead,¡± Brand finally managed to articte clearly. It was then that Negris understood why he was so panicked. Ange¡¯s identity was currently that of an ascetic monk dispatched by the Master ne Sect to investigate corruption. Yet, in a vige guarded by Pdins, she found a bone tool of the Undead. What crime would this be considered? Concealing heretical objects, punishable by burning at the stake. Negris then said: ¡°I believe you. As it turns out, this can serve as my spoils of war, I¡¯ll keep it. Just let that young girle over.¡± N?v(el)B\\jnn The old woman walked over timidly. She was too frightened to approach personally when she was offering the gift before, let alone now. Ange didn¡¯t mind, and just summoned the Holy Light to pour onto her. Ange had just joyously harvested a few pieces of farnd, not enough to equal the value of this bone tool. Ange, ustomed to equivalent exchange, naturally thought to pay her some money, but Negris stopped her. ¡°If you give her money, she has nowhere to spend it. It¡¯d be better to cure her eyes and treat her slight ailments. Look at how everyone around her is keeping their distance. She probably has some foul smell or something.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± After a few Face Purification Techniques, the old woman raised her head in shock. The treatment of the Face Purification Technique is all-around. Especially when Ange cast more than a dozen all at once, whether it worked or not, there was definitely enough of it. Considering the living conditions here, an elderly woman would surely have a bunch of ailments like rheumatism, gynecological diseases, skin diseases, cardiovascr diseases¡­ As long as these diseases were non-fungal or viral, the Face Purification Technique could cure them all. The old woman felt light all over her body. Her joints, which would hurt so much on rainy days that she couldn¡¯t sleep, now felt as light as if she¡¯d been bloodletted. My God, it¡¯s a miracle! The old woman couldn¡¯t help but kneel down. She had believed in the Light for her entire life, but this was the first time she truly felt its wonder. Afterwards, Ange opened her eyelids, dropped a few drops of essence into her eye sockets, and healed her eyes that had lost their eyeballs. All the vigers were astounded, ¡°Incredible! What a powerful Divine Art!¡± ¡°Little Brand¡¯s foot has also healed, it must have been thedy who healed it. It turns out not all church people are viins who only know how to tax us.¡± ¡°Thedy is an ascetic monk, I also want to be an ascetic monk.¡± ¡°I heard that ascetic monks can¡¯t live in houses, can¡¯t eat delicious food, and can¡¯t get married¡­¡± ¡°Then I want to be a clergyman, the kind that specialises in collecting taxes.¡± After Ange finished healing the old woman¡¯s illnesses, Negris has already studied the bone tool in the Resting Camp: ¡°This is amunication tool of the Undead connected to a different Soul Network.¡± ¡°Different Soul Network?¡± Ange asked, tilting her head in confusion. ¡°Yes, for example, the people of Steadfast Locke and Durken, if they wish to connect with each other, they can¡¯t do it through the Soul Network. They can only use tools and equipment.¡± ¡°Can it still be used?¡± Ange asked. ¡°Yes, there¡¯s no energy left. Inject some Soul Energy and you can use it. You should try.¡± Ange left the vige first, then took out the bone tool, infused it with Soul Energy, and activated it. ¡°Hey hey hey¡­¡± ¡°Received, this is the front-line transfer station. Who are you and who are you looking for?¡± Ange tilted her head and truthfully said: ¡°I am the Undead God¡­¡± ¡°Hehe, if you¡¯re the Undead God, then I¡¯m Steadfast Locke. Nutcase.¡± -Click- themunication was cut off. Chapter 346 - 215 Seems to be Angry_1 Chapter 346: Chapter 215 Seems to be Angry_1 ¡°I truly am the Undead God,¡± Ange resumed themunication and stated the truth. ¡°You¡¯re getting cocky, eh? Alright, alright, you¡¯re the Undead God, and I¡¯m your father. Isn¡¯t that how you humans like to insult others? Which deadbeat kid picked up this Communication Domino and started messing with it? Soul Crystals are so expensive, yet you dare to waste them!¡± Apparently, the person on the other end of the line mistook him for a human who had chanced upon the Communication Domino and was wantonly using it. ¡°But I really am the Undead God,¡± Ange uttered somewhat confusedly. When others didn¡¯t believe his words, the Farming Skeleton didn¡¯t know how to react. ¡°Shut up! If you really were the Undead God, would we still need to be stuck here, unable to go home for a thousand years? Buzz off! If you keep bothering us, I¡¯ll release crows after the Eternal Night to eat up all the grain in the surrounding viges. Then we¡¯ll see how you bastards starve to death.¡± The figure on the other side of themunication howled mournfully before suddenly cutting off contact. Ange and Negris felt each other¡¯s confusion through their shared mental connection: ¡°It seems like he¡¯s upset?¡± With the other party not believing their words and not knowing what else to say if they tried to call again, Ange could only temporarily put the bone domino away. ¡°Brand, pick two people, ande with me to Holy Wall City,¡± Negris instructed. ¡°Yes, Sir,¡± Brand acknowledged, then turned his head and yelled, ¡°Little Brand, Tiny Brandon,e over here.¡± Negris was dumbfounded: ¡°Hold on, how many ¡®Brand¡¯s do you have here?¡± ¡°Ah, we have about ten or so. We¡¯re all from Brand¡¯s family. Little Brand is my son, Tiny Brandon is my nephew.¡± Negris was speechless: ¡°You¡¯re way too casual with your names. Don¡¯t you worry about getting confused?¡± ¡°No, no, no, we don¡¯t usually address each other this way. My son is called Lame Foot, and my nephew is Iron Drum. Don¡¯t worry sir, they are the best warriors in our group.¡± Brand mistakenly thought that Negris was judging them, so he quickly affirmed with confidence. Anyway, all these names were quite unpleasant. Finding it too bothersome to argue, Negris instructed the three of them to line up. When they stood in a row, Negris noticed a problem: ¡°Your appearance¡­ It¡¯s slightly embarrassing, isn¡¯t it?¡± All three Brands shamefully dropped their heads. Brand wasn¡¯t too bad, but Little Brand was missing a boot. He had ame foot, so no boot would fit him. Tiny Brandon, on the other hand, was missing pieces from his armor; some ces were even exposing holes. ¡°This is what we¡¯ll do, I¡¯ll lend you three sets of armor. Return them to me when you¡¯re done.¡± Negris proposed, and Ange took out the Holy Spirit Armor Egg. They originally found one hundred and twenty Holy Spirit Armor Eggs in the Holy Kingdom. A few of them were given to Anthony, and the rest were thrown aside as there was no opportunity to use them. Brand, holding an ostrich-sized Holy Spirit Armor Egg, looked nkly at Ange. He clearly didn¡¯t recognize this high-end product. Even if he asionally saw someone wearing it, he wouldn¡¯t know what it looked like when it was shrunk into a ball. ¡°Take off your junk and then infuse it with holy power,¡± Negrismanded. Brand doubtfully removed his armor, while his son and nephew stripped down to their underwear in a few quick movements. As they infused it with holy power, the Holy Spirit Armor sprang open instantaneously, transforming into the shape of a metal angel. It faced Brand, and its wings closed around him, with a ¡®nk nk¡¯ sound, the metal pieces attached to Brand¡¯s body. Such a cool method of dressing up shocked the entire Brand family. The other pdins and vigers were watching from afar, this moment had stunned them and they gradually fell to their knees. Someone murmured, ¡°I saw an angel descend upon Brand!¡± With Ange¡¯s arrival, everyone in the vige had been shocked more than once. Most of them had never left the vige and their faith in the Light was often more of doubt than belief. Sometimes a priestess would visit the tributary, but they did not often disy miracles, often without any offerings, which could result in the vigers¡¯ dislike. As a result, they often didn¡¯t feel any shock. n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Many of their faiths in the Light was mainly dependant upon Brand and the other pdins. Now, what Ange had shown allowed them to truly feel the power of the Light. Other pdins were dying of envy. After they passed the pdin test, what they received were old, worn-out, second-hand armors. Some of them didn¡¯t even fit properly. Instead of making them look like holy knights, they looked more like defeated soldiers. But the Holy Spirit Armor was sacred, mighty, stunning, and full of power. They would be satisfied even if they could wear it just once. Then he brought out three horses, and Negris asked: ¡°You three can ride horses, right?¡± Brand sheepishly answered: ¡°We can ride, but not proficiently. We used to practice on donkeys.¡± ¡°That should work then. Each of you take a horse and go practice. Once you¡¯re good, we can leave. If not, we¡¯ll switch people. Afterpleting the task, these horses will be yours as a form of payment,¡± Negris said. The warhorses obtained from the sand thieves and the Dragon yer Knight Group had been idling in the Resting Camp for too long. They spent their days eating and sleeping, with no room for them to gallop, so they had put on quite a few rounds of fat. If they let this go on, these warhorses would be useless, so they had to think of a way to give them away or sell them. ¡°Thank you very much, Sir! We will definitely practice diligently,¡± Brand replied excitedly. A warhorse! In the Land of the Fallen, a horse was much more valuable than a person. All of Brand¡¯s belongings couldn¡¯t afford a warhorse. Chapter 347: 215 Seems to be Annoyed_2 Chapter 347: Chapter 215 Seems to be Annoyed_2 Dressed in Holy Spirit Armour, riding on robust horses, Brand and his twopanions, who were engrossed in their equestrian practice, began to exude a spirit of elite warriors. Apanied by three genuine pdins, Ange disguised as an ascetic monk and the God of Knowledge projected upon him, alongside the ¡®summoned¡¯ Unicorn Lightning, they all rushed towards the direction of Holy Wall City. Holy Wall City was not far, especially with the aid of horses, they could see the city, seemingly embedded into a mountain side, after a day and a night¡¯s journey. From afar, they could see a beam of lightunched from within Holy Wall City into mid-air, gradually weakening a few hundred meters above the ground and finally disappearing. ¡°What is that?¡± Negris asked. Now being projected onto Ange, Negris undertook the task ofmunicating, while Ange only needed to maintain an expressionless countenance. This well matched with his disguise, no one was suspicious about where the voice wasing from, since ascetic monks are known for their reticence ¨C the less they speak, the more devout their asceticism. ¡°Oh, that¡¯s the Guidance Stairway. Once connected to Heaven, the stairway there would, in turn, link to ours, allowing arge number of people to be transported at once,¡± exined Brand. Understood, so it was the receiving side of a teleportation array. ¡°What a pity,¡± sighed Negris. ¡°Sir, what is a pity?¡± Brand asked, baffled. ¡°Nothing,¡± Negris replied casually. He however thought to himself: what a pity that Heaven will never be linked here again, and this Stairway is now merely an ornament.
Upon arriving at the gates of Holy Wall City, Ange took out the Beast-Seeking Stick, ording to Serene, this stick could lead them to the location of the Dimension Beast. Unfortunately, this guidance was nar and unidirectional, not very intuitive, only indicating a rough direction. They had to reach the approximate location to ascertain the exact spot. If they took a wrong turn, the direction of guidance would change, if they went beyond the location, it would point backward. Standing where they were about to arrive at Holy Wall City, the Beast-Seeking Stick made a ny-degree turn, pointing to the left. Following the indicated direction, Ange and hispanions arrived at a massive settlement after a rapid trot of tens of miles. Only the term settlement could describe it, it did not resemble a town or city. All sorts of buildings, tents, and wooden sheds scattered around, with no obvious n or design. This was the back of Holy Wall City, where humans halted the attack of the undead. Here, they concentrated various supplies, produced all kinds of equipment, repaired armours and weapons, trained soldiers, and treated the wounded, among others. This was the arrangement nned by humanity over a thousand years ago, but a millennium had passed, and with the numerous reinforcements arriving and departing, the ce has undergone significant changes. Just like a room that had never been cleaned, over a thousand years, an innumerable number of upants havee and gone, some brought furniture, some bedding, some left books, all piled together and never disposed of, resulting in the present mess. With the growing poption in the Land of Fallen, it has now be a slum. The impoverished, their clothing scarce, their eyes vacant, would lie or sit by the roadside. Only when Ange approached did a slight spark return to their faces and they would hastily kneel and mumble something. The murmurs were low, barely discernible. Ange halted, using his consciousness to focus, making out what they were saying: ¡°Please be kind sir, bestow upon us food and health, wealth and glory, and may all our wishese true¡­¡± However, this kind of mumbling seemed more like a routine, devoid of any belief. From them, Ange could not feel the existence of any faith. As soon as Ange passed by, they would againy t, mumbling: ¡°May the holy bread be delivered soon, may the holy bread be delivered soon¡­¡± The holy bread was the relief food provided by the church every day, made by baking a mix of coarse flour and chaff. It was rough, unpleasant to taste, scratchy in the throat, but it would stave off hunger. These poor souls spent their days lying idle, waiting for relief, being idle again, waiting for relief, and so on, till they die¡­ Along the way, many simr impoverished souls could be seen, making Ange feel that they were more devoid of vitality than the skeleton zombies in Witch City. Only the young children seemed to retain some spirit. Despite the harsh environment, there were still innocent children ying around. Spotting Ange approaching, they would scatter in a flurry, hiding behind pirs and walls, and timidly watch from there. A two or three-year-old toddler with a rather thick neck, running too fast, tripped over and fell with a thud. This scared him into bursting into tears. A little girl of about seven or eight ran out of a nearby shanty as fast as she could. Rushing in front of Ange, she forcefully nodded her head in greeting, and only then, dragging the child who was crying, retreated to the side of the road, casting a nce at Ange. Upon seeing Ange¡¯s expressionless face, the little girl¡¯s heart beat frantically, and she rapidly nodded again, pressing the child¡¯s head, hoping he would also show respect by nodding.
However, the two or three-year-old child was too frightened to do anything but cry, which agitated the little girl to the point of tears. ¡°Nod quickly, the grown-up will be angry if we don¡¯t,¡± she pleaded. Ange titled his head in confusion, and said to Negris, ¡°I¡¯m not angry.¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Helplessly, Negris replied, ¡°Maybe it¡¯s because your face is too severe, you have no expression. If you want to show you¡¯re not angry, you should smile.¡± ¡°Oh,¡± Ange continued in the same expressionless manner, but tossing a beetroot towards the little girl, he said, ¡°I¡¯m not angry.¡±
The little girl looked at the juicy beetroot before her, and then up at Ange¡¯s expressionless face, in disbelief she said, ¡°Sir, what did you say?¡± She had heard him, but she did not believe that the expressionless Ange had spoken those words, she thought she had misheard. ¡°I¡¯m not angry, eat,¡± Ange repeated. Now she listened properly, her eyes fixed on Ange as she carefully picked up the beetroot and moved it towards her mouth. Throughout this process, she remained in disbelief but seeing Ange still expressionless, she took a bite of the beetroot with gusto. Ange was still expressionless, but now she understood, this man must have facial paralysis, he¡¯s truly not angry. Perhaps it was because of her narrow escape, or the sweetness of the beetroot, or perhaps it had been a long time since someone had treated her kindly, the little girl was tearfully touched. She chewed the beetroot vigorously, wiping her tears with her little hand before nodding towards Ange again. A Soul me rose from within her and shot directly towards Ange. Back in the vige of Brand, Ange had harvested not a few Soul mes, as he had performed several miracles. But those Soul mes had all been initially directed towards the Gods of Light and he had just managed to intercept them. Everyone thought he was an ascetic monk from the Church of Light, and everything he exhibited was the power of God. But this time was different, the Soul me was directed towards Ange. This little girl wasn¡¯t dedicating her belief to the Gods of Light, but to Ange. Ange nodded at her and continued onwards. Negris cursed within his soul, ¡°It¡¯s truly appalling. Conditions here are even worse than those in the desert oasis. At least Hope Oasis had human control, but here it seems like nobody is in charge. Many of the children have swollen necks, seriously malnourished; has the church really abandoned these people?¡±
¡°Swollen necks, is that a disease?¡± Ange asked in confusion. He had noticed that some children had rather thick necks and thought it was a characteristic of their race. ¡°It¡¯s a condition called goitre caused by malnutrition,¡± Negris exined. Just then, Ange felt something and looked back. They had already walked several hundred meters away, but looking back, Ange could see a handcart had arrived close to where the little girl stood. Two attendants dressed in white robes were arguing with the little girl, one of them snatched the beetroot from the girl¡¯s hand, picked two pieces of bread from the bucket in the handcart and tossed it into the girl¡¯sp. ¡°Do you really think someone like you deserves to eat beetroot? Go nibble on your holy bread. What¡¯s this about an important person? Where is this important person? You must have stolen this,¡± one of the attendants berated her, even lifting his foot, ready to kick her. The frightened girl quickly evaded his boot. A momentter, the girl¡¯s face lit up, and joyfully she shouted, ¡°Sir!¡± Following her gaze, they could only see a sneering unicorn carrying the expressionless ascetic monk, followed by three elite pdins. With such pdins as his attendants, this man might truly be an ¡®important person¡¯. Chapter 348: 216: Got It, Belongs Here_1 Chapter 348: Chapter 216: Got It, Belongs Here_1 The two attendants knelt down abruptly, speaking loudly, ¡°Greetings, sir. Are these yours? This lowlife stole your possessions, please forgive her. We¡¯ll take her away immediately.¡± Ange tilted his head, looked at the little girl who was trembling with fear, about to burst into tears hugging her brother, then nced at the two aggressively attendant, then suddenly said, ¡°You¡¯re lying.¡± A pure wave of holy power spread out. With a few snaps, several shacklesposed of holy light emerged from the ground, firmly binding the two attendants. ¡°Original Sin Shackles?!¡± The two attendants turned pale with fright, crying out in panic, ¡°Please spare us, sir, you¡¯ve misunderstood, we¡¯re innocent! We are attendants of God¡¯s Knight Samaran, we¡¯re not sinners.¡± ¡°Original Sin Shackles?!¡± Within Ange¡¯s soul, Negris eximed in rm, ¡°When did you learn Original Sin Shackles? How did you use it without uttering a Holy Word?¡± The shocking part for Negris was that Ange had unknowingly learned the Original Sin Shackles, but what surprised him more was that Ange didn¡¯t use Holy Words such as ¡®In God¡¯s name¡¯. God, he¡¯s using his own power to condemn these two because he is a god. His words are holy! But the issue is, he¡¯s an Undead God. Even if he can condemn them in his own name, what he should cast shouldn¡¯t be Original Sin Shackles, but the Evil Prison. Negris was baffled. He had lived for over ten thousand years and had never seen such a ridiculous situation. Ange was just as confused. He only felt these two humans were lying and had simply stated the fact. Why did these shackles appear? Original Sin Shackles? He remembered when he first encountered Nik, he had used them against him. However, they shattered upon contact, and Nik was horrified to find an innocent.
But back then, all he saw were light chains. Yet the current chains, he ¡®saw¡¯ their information as soon as he looked at them. The two attendants were bound by the ¡®Pride¡¯ and ¡®Greed¡¯ chains, and one of them had an extra chain of ¡®Lust¡¯. ¡°Why can I see these?¡± Ange asked with bafflement through Soul Contact. Negris responded, ¡°I wouldn¡¯t know. I can¡¯t use Original Sin Shackles. Ask Anthony.¡± Ange contacted Anthony through Soul Contact. Anthony confidently replied, ¡°I can¡¯t see, nor can I see the information on each chain. Why would anyone need to? I¡¯ll burn all the sinners no matter what sin they¡¯vemitted.¡± If Anthony could not see the information on the chains, then likely neither could Nik or even Pope Guliani. Ange was different from them. ¡°This proves even more that these shackles were cast using your power, Kvada. Who would dare say you¡¯re not from the Church of Light now? Even if you took off your hat and exposed your skeletal structure, no one would believe you¡¯re an undead. Can you do anything else?¡± Negris said.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Well then, now even if Ange took off his hat and told people he was an undead, no one would care. A being capable of casting Original Sin Shackles, even if he¡¯s a skeleton, is definitely a god¡¯s skeleton! Ange shook his head. He had no idea how he had cast it. He only felt that the two people were lying. While Ange was considering asking, the Original Sin Shackles tightened and began to burn. The holy mes seared the two attendants, causing them to scream in agony. All the people in this area were startled, and the listless poor gradually gathered. The eyes of the beggars lit up with added vigor and hatred, and they eagerly watched the screaming attendants with relief. The manager of this area was also alerted by this event. A group of knights rushed over, ruthlessly whipping the poor people in their path, ¡°Move, move!¡± and forcibly cleared a path. However, when they reached the front and saw the situation, the leading pdin¡¯s expression changed greatly. He immediately dismounted from his horse and knelt down in respect. The team members behind their captain were dumbfounded but quickly followed suit and knelt in respect. Then, without uttering a word, the leading pdin stood up with head bowed, led his horse, and retreated faster than on their arrival. After retreating to the outskirts of the crowd and leaving Ange¡¯s field of vision, the leading pdin sighed in relief and removed his helmet to wipe his sweaty forehead. One of his subordinates asked in confusion, ¡°Captain, what happened there? Do you know that man? Is he dangerous?¡± The leading pdin shook his head, ¡°I don¡¯t know the man, but I know the Original Sin Shackles. That was a trial.¡± ¡°Oh, so those chains were the Original Sin Shackles? Then why did we retreat? Shouldn¡¯t we help maintain order for him?¡± A young knight asked. The leading pdin looked at him oddly and mocked, ¡°So, you¡¯re innocent eh? Never peeked at the neighbor¡¯s aunt while she was bathing?¡±
The young knight¡¯s face turned crimson with embarrassment, but he retorted, ¡°Of course I have, I¡¯ve done more than just peek.¡± ¡°Tsk tsk, that¡¯s lust. Have you ever taken bribes? That¡¯s greed. Have you ever beaten those poor people? That¡¯s wrath. Have you ever not wanted to get up before eight? That¡¯s sloth. Liability feeds so many original sins. If that man uses you of having sins, can you guarantee your innocence? Help him? Or even watch? Go away, go far away, don¡¯t let him see you.¡± Chapter 349: 216: Got It, Belongs Here_2 Chapter 349: Chapter 216: Got It, Belongs Here_2 The young knight turned pale upon hearing this. At the same time, two dismal screams echoed from within the crowd and holy mes soared into the sky. The group of Pdins immediately turned around to leave in fear, but they didn¡¯t really go far. Instead, they dispersed hundreds of meters away to block othersing their way. ¡°Someone ahead is judging with the Original Sin Shackles. Are you sure you want to go?¡± Hearing this, anyone who did not consider themselves absolutely innocent quickly halted their steps. This resulted in a strange situation where Ange was burning people into ashes, yet none from the Church of Light were seen. Negris felt rather disappointed, having prepared several excuses only to have none of them put to use. While the Sacred me burned, Ange ced his hand on the little girl¡¯s brother¡¯s neck and initiated the removal of his affliction. This severe form of goiter caused by malnutrition could be easily cured by consuming more seaweed or sea salt. Unfortunately, not only was sea salt unavable here, but even regr salt was scarce and practically a valuable asset. In the Goddess of Beauty City, this removal technique would cost tens of thousands of Demon Crystals for only a small portion of the pigment deposits, yet Ange had to remove arge swollen nd from this boy. And just like that, the size of the boy¡¯s neck visibly reduced. Upon witnessing this, the awe in the onlookers¡¯ hearts deepened. Several parents with children suffering from the same affliction rushed up to Ange, unable to utter a single word but only bow their heads deeply. Pure Soul mes coursed through these parents, except for one thin-faced man, whose eyes were darting around suspiciously.
The Soul mes offered by these people were not directed at Ange, but he intercepted them nheless, not hesitating to return the same amount of energy. One after another, the children with swollen necks were healed by Ange. Once he reached the thin-faced man, he abruptly said, ¡°You are sinful.¡± The thin-faced man jolted in surprise, fearfully raising his head to look at Ange, his whole body went taut. However, several seconds passed, and no chains sprang up. He heaved a sigh of relief, and bowed his head in delight, ¡°I am not sinful, I am not sinful, hehe.¡± Perplexed, Negris asked, ¡°Why didn¡¯t it work? What sin did hemit?¡± ¡°This child is not his,¡± Ange said, pointing at the child in his arms. ¡°A thief? A child trafficker?¡± Negris was taken aback, ¡°That¡¯s not an original sin indeed, so the Original Sin Shackles can¡¯t be activated. What do we do? I don¡¯t like the look of him.¡± Apparently, there were people in the crowd who knew the thin-faced man and they couldn¡¯t hold back their anger at his gloating, ¡°You damn thief, iming you¡¯re sinless? You deserve a miserable death! He¡¯s stolen and sold so many kids, sir, he¡¯s a thief who specializes in kidnapping children.¡± Still gloating, the thin-faced man retorted, ¡°I have no sin, I have no sin, the Original Sin Shackles proved me innocent, hahaha¡­.¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn With a tilt of his head, Ange snatched the child and kicked the man in his chest, causing his chest to cave in and blood to spurt from his mouth. The man flew backward and died before he even hit the ground. With a thud, the thin-faced man¡¯s body thumped lifelessly onto the ground. ¡°Uh, wasn¡¯t he sinless? Why did you kill him?¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help but ask, startled. Confused, Ange asked, ¡°Am I not allowed to?¡± His counter-question jolted Negris awake, ¡°Right, what was I thinking, Kvada, we¡¯re not from the Church of Light. We don¡¯t have to follow their rule of judging before killing, do we?¡± This event was giving Negris a sense he wasn¡¯t alone in his illusion, that he was witnessing an Original Sin trial. Even the thief must have had the same illusion, believing that he would be fine if he had no original sins. What a joke, since when did the Undead God need to dere guilt before killing? After finishing everything here, Ange turned to leave. The crowd silently parted to make way for him, their eyes burning with admiration. No longer were their faces numb, with that zombie-like look, but instead they were filled with hope and excitement. Seeing this, Negris couldn¡¯t help but blurt, ¡°What¡¯s going on here? You, a skeleton, performing miracles in the name of the Church of Light, their newly instilled faith would only serve to strengthen the power of the Light.¡± Ange shook his head, ¡°I snatched it.¡±
¡°What did you snatch?¡± Negris asked, puzzled. ¡°All you seized was the Soul me. Did you also manage to snatch all the believers? Even if you left, their faith will still return to the Light.¡± ¡°I snatched it, brought it here.¡± Ange raised his index finger and the overstuffed Little Ghost securely perched on his finger, gave a long sigh of relief. Negris thought of an inconceivable possibility, ¡°Are you saying that you managed to snatch their Faith Elemental Force Networks?¡± Ange nodded affirmatively.
¡°How could it be?¡± After a moment of pause, Negris realized that why should it not be possible? To his belief, it was impossible only because it had never been done before. But does something that has never been done before mean it is difficult? Maybe it wasn¡¯t difficult. It¡¯s just that people used to guard it closely, and now that the Gods of Light are all gone, what¡¯s impossible about Ange ripping off a piece of the faithwork? Instead of debating about whether it¡¯s possible or not, better to ask how he did it. Ange tilted his head, ¡°Always could, F, snatched before, no link, but now have it.¡± Negris understood. Ange had always had the ability. He had even snatched it from F¡¯s followers, but at that time, there was no binding link. Now, there¡¯s the Little Ghost. After binding it to the Little Ghost, this piece of Faith Elemental Force Network would be permanently snatched away. ¡°Can it really be done this way? The Little Ghost is that incredible? Can it withstand such a massive force?¡± Negris was astonished. Ange shook his head, ¡°Can¡¯t, I snatched it.¡± ¡°Splutter¡­..¡± Negris choked, as if to imply that the Little Ghost would only be an intermediary, and in the end, Ange would still have the upper hand. After all, the Little Ghost couldn¡¯t handle such a huge force. If Ange didn¡¯t snatch it, it would only bloat up until one day it exploded. After passing through the slum-like assembly, Ange and his team reached a mine. Although teetering on the brink of starvation, the Abyss ne is a mineral-rich ne. It is rich in magical metal mines, such as Fine Gold Mithril and others. The mine right in front of them was a Magic Crystal Mine. Without having to go inside the mine, from afar, Ange spotted a big ball of fluff squatting in the cluster of buildings at the mine¡¯s entrance. A griffin soared into the sky and flew up from that cluster of buildings, heading in the direction of the Central Mountain Range.
¡°Huh, looks like a Griffin Station, there¡¯s also a teleportation array, plus a Dimension Beast. Is this a transportation hub?¡± eximed Negris. ¡°Thisplicates things.¡± A transportation hub was naturally heavily guarded, just like the world¡¯s transit station, it had twelve guardians, this ce was no different. A towering Soul Tower and more than a dozen Defense Pirs encircled the whole area. Personnel from elite units could be seen entering and exiting from the houses, evidently, there were guards posted there. There were also barbed fences and barricades tightly guarding the area. Considering the circumstances, how are they going to rescue the Dimension Beast? Before Ange could devise a reasonable n, a wave of intense teleportation fluctuations started. The teleportation array burst into brilliant light. Once the light faded,rge numbers of people were teleporting over. This group consisted of Pdins, Swordsmen, Guardians, Clerics, Priests, Saints, Archers. Their skill set was bnced and it was easy to tell that they were apletebat team. Aside from thesebat professionals, there was also a group of shabbily dressed women. Some were holding mending racks, while others carriedundry buckets, seeming like a group of cloth weaving andundering maids. After they were all lined up, they exited the transportation station in order. When they saw Ange and his impressive guards, they all measured them up and then bowed in respect. Ange tilted his head, he recognized a familiar face among the shabbily dressed women. The woman, noticing him, quickly averted her gaze and disappeared into the crowd. But it was toote, Ange had already seen her. ¡°Shamara? What is she doing here?¡± Negris was startled. ¡°Roar!¡± The Dimension Beast gave a mournful cry, as its eagerly anticipated savior, within its sight, abandoned it and turned away. Chapter 350: 217 It’s crying_1 Chapter 350: Chapter 217 It¡¯s crying_1 Shamara who was mingled with the women, sensing Ange following, quietly fell back to the end of the line. As they passed a building, she smoothly left the group and approached Ange. Ange said to Brand, ¡°You guys should leave.¡± Little Brand was astonished, ¡°Leave? Is that okay? Our mission is to protect you.¡± Before he even finished speaking, Brand lifted him by his cor, dragging him along, ¡°You are too talkative.¡± They kept walking until they reached a corner hundreds of meters away. They stopped only when Ange was no longer in sight. ¡°Fool, do you think the lord needs your protection? We are just here for show, to intimidate others. Know your ce; when the lord asks you to do something, just do it without asking. What if the lord is having a private meeting with a lover, and we hear things we shouldn¡¯t¨Cwe would all die,¡± Brand said sharply, filled with frustration at Little Brand¡¯s naivety. Shamara, who was mistakenly believed to be Ange¡¯s lover, reluctantly came over, ¡°What are you doing here?¡± Why was this guy seen everywhere! Shamara was absolutely exasperated in her heart. In the Resting Abyss, she took off in a hurry. She didn¡¯t want to see these people anymore, because she realised the longer she stayed with them, the more her beliefs and convictions wavered. Despite being heretics, their way of interacting and conducting their affairs were even purer than the purest child. Moreover, Ange possessed the purest Holy Light, which was fatally attractive to her. But a voice within her kept warning her: do not touch, you will die!
That¡¯s why Shamara left the Resting Abyss at the fastest speed, to stay away from these people. Unexpectedly, after running across two dimensions, she still bumped into them. This made her very discontent with the voice in her heart: Why shouldn¡¯t I touch it?! The voice inside answered: An error against God will be magnified. ¡°Rescue? What are¡­ you doing here?¡± This was also a question Ange wanted to know. Shamara hesitated and said, ¡°I felt Luna¡¯s breath. A voice in my heart told me that I could find answers here.¡± ¡°Luna?¡± Negris¡¯ voice echoed from Ange, ¡°Wasn¡¯t Luna already gone?¡± Shamara shook her head, ¡°I don¡¯t know. I only know that I may find answers bying here.¡± ¡°Your ability is really subject to chance¡­¡± Negris didn¡¯t know what to say. With no doubt, Shamara had awakened some kind of detecting divine technique, so her predictive ability was extraordinary. However, the things she perceived were too vague. It was worse than not having this ability at all because she didn¡¯t know how dangerous the things she detected were, and yet she plunged headlong into it. However, when used in the right ces, this ability could be very useful. ¡°So, where do you intend to go now? Into the city? What¡¯s your current status?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Yes, into the city. I¡¯m currently posing as a washerwoman, but the foreman keeps harassing me,¡± Shamara said, annoyed. ¡°How about this?¡± Negris proposed, ¡°You use your predictive ability to help us rescue people. Once we rescue them, we¡¯ll take you into the city.¡± Shamara hesitated as she looked at Ange, thinking of his pure Holy Light, and admitted that it would be easier to get into the city with him. Her heart moved. Mainly because the foreman of the washing team kept harassing her and it was nauseating. Having been a saint since childhood and being a target of the church for cultivation, Shamara had never experienced the ugliness of the church and the sufferings of the world. Faced with this situation, she felt helpless and disgusted. Unless she didn¡¯t want to get into the city, it seemed that she had no other choice but to endure it. However, being with Ange, his pure Holy Light was fatally attractive to her. She was truly worried that one day she wouldn¡¯t resist reaching out to steal Ange¡¯s Holy Light and would be defeated by him. ¡°Hey, Shamara, why did you stop? Why didn¡¯t you follow us?¡± A chubby man turned the corner and shouted at Shamara from afar. ¡°Don¡¯t you want to work anymore? We got a chance to go to the Land of the Fallen after a fiercepetition, you have to earn the teleportation fee even if you don¡¯t want to work. I just wondered why such a pretty girl woulde to the Land of the Fallen. Is it because you want a man? Here is a slum, there is nothing¡­¡± The chubby man kept talking as he walked towards her, reaching out to grab Shamara.
¡°I¡¯ll go with you to save people.¡± Shamara said, and then punched the foreman in the face, knocking him to the ground. She jumped on him and started to beat him up. The foreman was knocked unconscious and unrecognisable. Shamara stood up refreshed, turned to Ange and asked, ¡°Let¡¯s go. Who are we saving?¡± ¡°We¡¯re gonna save a Dimension Beast,¡± Negris replied. ¡°The one near the teleportation array?¡± Shamara had seen the Dimension Beast near the teleportation array as she hade out of the transport centre.
Bringing Brand, Ange took out ten Demon Crystals. Negris said, ¡°You guys find a ce to stay first. I have something to do. I¡¯ll look for you after I finish.¡± Brand immediately saluted, ¡°Yes, Lord!¡± He didn¡¯t talk much and turned around to lead his son and nephew away. After walking for a distance, the three men exchanged nces, revealing an expression of ¡®As Expected¡¯. ¡°Did you see? Do you remember what I said just now? Forget what you saw. Don¡¯t tell anyone what you saw, not even in your dreams.¡± ¡°Yes!¡± After seeing off the Brands, Ange and Shamara went directly into the mining pit. With thousands of years of mining, the ores were long exhausted, leaving nothing but an abandoned mine. Some poverty-stricken people who didn¡¯t even have a house hid in here. As soon as they spotted Ange, they either scattered like a frightened bird orid dead still. Entering the mine tunnel, there were no more people. The impoverished weren¡¯t in the habit of going deep into the mine since the paths went on and on in all directions, dark and slippery. They didn¡¯t even have torches for illumination, so if they went too deep, they could easily get lost and starve to death in the mine. Entering the unmanned mine tunnel, Ange immediately summoned the Bronze Dragon, Little Zombie, Little Angel, Luther, and Serene, who had been suffocating. ¡°Heh heh heh¡­¡± Luther gasped for breath intensely as soon as he was free: ¡°My lord, the air here is suffocating.¡± ¡°I feel the same way, I can¡¯t breathe.¡±Serene added. ¡°Living beings are so troublesome. Forget it, you guys don¡¯t need toe out again, just put them back.¡± Negris said helplessly. Luther instantly shook his head: ¡°We would prefer going outside. Please don¡¯t put me back in there where it¡¯s too boring.¡±
The Resting Camp was too dull. During hisst bout against Nik, Luther had been holed up in there for half a month. He really didn¡¯t want to stay anymore. The total area was just a few dozen square kilometers, most of which was grim Breathing Soil and pces. Standing in such a ce for a while made them feel dehydrated. Only the vicinity of the farm was suitable for living beings like him due to the Boundary. But the farm had only three thousand acres. Everything was within sight, and there was nothing interesting to do. Just then, Shamara invoked a ball of ck Sacred me and pped it on Serene¡¯s back. ¡°Hiss¡ª¡± Serene took a deep breath, and eximed in surprise: ¡°Hey, I can breathe now!¡± Only then did Negris recall: ¡°Oh right, you¡¯re also a living being, how can you breathe?¡± ¡°It¡¯s just a small blessing.¡± Shamara said dismissively, invoked another Sacred me, and pped it onto Luther. Luther was able to breathe freely again and gave Shamara a thumbs up. ¡°Alright, now tell me your n. How are you going to rescue the Dimensional Beast? Hurry up and finish so that you can take me into the city. I feel like something is about to happen there.¡± Shamara said, frowning. ¡°We weren¡¯t sure what to do initially. The guards there are too strict. But now that you¡¯re here, we can try approaching it through the underground mine.¡± Negris suggested. ¡°Me? I¡¯ve never been here before. How would I know which mine path we could use to get closer?¡± Shamara asked in surprise. Negris chuckled, ¡°Of course through your predictive ability! Come on, tell me, can this mine path get us closer to the surface where the Dimensional Beast is sealed?¡± Shamara gasped for breath and almost fell, ¡°You¡¯re not asking me to try one path at a time, are you?¡±
Negris nodded as though it was a matter of course. Having no choice, Shamara had to try out each mine path. Every time they prised into a new path, Negris would ask her the same question: ¡°Can this mining path get us closer to the surface where the Dimensional Beast is sealed?¡± She¡¯d either shake her head or nod. Thest time she nodded, they entered a dead end. ¡°Huh, is that it? A dead end?¡± Negris asked in surprise. Shamara paled and pointed upwards. The predictive ability was a Divine Technique, and each expenditure was actually quite significant. By the time she reached the dead-end, she was exhausted. Ange ced his hand on her shoulder, releasing Holy Light. As the pure force flowed into her body, she felt invigorated, and her eyes sparkled with distinct eagerness. However, she quickly gritted her teeth and shut her eyes, trying her best to shift her attention, for the voice in her head was warning her again. After replenishing her with a bit of energy, Ange flew up and touched the rock above him. Negris suggested, ¡°Ange, it¡¯s your move now. Your Ground Cracking Technique is too lowly for just loosening the soil. Its best application is for digging tunnels. With your delicate control, limit the range of the fissures within a circle and dig all the way up.¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Ange felt the earth elements in the rocks and stirred them up. Then, with a sudden jerk, the rocks above copsed silently and started to crumple down. After the rocks had fallen and a human-sized circle appeared, the inside was clean while the outside waspletely undamaged. Both Shamara and Serene startled at the scene and suddenly understood what Negris meant by ¡®delicate control¡¯.
Ange crawled into the hole, stretched out his hand to the top, and released his Ground Cracking Technique. The rocks crumbled and fell down. Moving further bit by bit, after thousands of Ground Cracking Techniques, Ange touched a man-made foundation. Probably nobody had ever cast thousands of Ground Cracking Techniques consecutively, so no one would ever think that an enemy could tunnel from underground. This was a mining area, filled with hard rocks below the ground. Even if someone was digging, it was impossible to do so stealthily without making any noise. After touching the stone, Ange fell down the hole. ¡°How¡¯s it going? Did you get through?¡± Negris asked. Ange nodded then said, ¡°It¡¯s crying.¡± PS: I want to cry too. I ate the wrong food ¨C the red chili-oil boneless chicken feet and spicy hot pot of extra blood ¨C I almost couldn¡¯t make up the chapter tonight. Chapter 351: 218: You Stepped on My Head!_1 Chapter 351: Chapter 218: You Stepped on My Head!_1 The Dimension Beast was crying, howling in deep sorrow. The person it had been desperately waiting for just turned away and left. It curled itself into a ball, howling with nobody paying it any attention. Its keepers were going mad. They tried to cheer it up using its favorite Elf Beans, but there was no response. This creature, a giant beast with a diameter of over fifty meters, may lookrger due to its thick fur, but its actual size was still far from small. If it didn¡¯t want to interact with people, usual coaxing methods wouldn¡¯t work. While the Dimension Beast ignoring people on normal days wouldn¡¯t be an issue, the situation was different today. A specialmissioner investigating Julian¡¯s disappearance had arrived and needed the beast¡¯s cooperation. What is the purpose of a keeper? To appease the Dimension Beast and make it cooperative. If even that can¡¯t be achieved, what¡¯s the use of the keeper? Just as the keepers, sweating profusely, were growing desperate, an ascetic monk bearing bare feet and dressed in a worn-out magic robe arrived at the outer seal. He asked, ¡°Is it still unwilling to cooperate?¡± ¡°I apologize, Lord Drake, I don¡¯t know what¡¯s wrong with the Dimension Beast today, it¡¯s not usually like this.¡± The keeper answered, even adding a little defense for the Beast. Drake¡¯s face was expressionless: ¡°Perhaps it has done something guilty. Let me handle it.¡± The keeper¡¯s heart thudded at Drake¡¯s words. That was hardly aforting statement. Had Drake just used the Dimension Beast? Drake approached the outer seal and found its core. He stood barefoot upon it.
Holy Light radiated from his body, as though alive, flowing down like liquid into the seal¡¯s core. As the Holy Light filled it, the entire seal slowly began to glow. The Dimension Beast might ignore the keeper¡¯s attempts at soothing it, but it could not ignore the activation of the seal. It let out a howl, retreating to the other side of the seal, its eyes warily locked onto Drake. Gazing at the beast, Drake said coldly, ¡°Your eyes are still full of wildness. Have we given you too much freedom? Don¡¯t forget, you are a captive. Our leniency should not be turned into capital for your whims. Where did Julian go?¡± ¡°Howl~¡± The Dimension Beast cried out. ¡°Don¡¯t make noises people can¡¯t understand, those depraved individuals have spoiled you. They let you get away with just acting cute, rolling around, and howling without speaking, cooing all day long.¡± Drake expressed his distress. He had seen far too many people, indulging in desires and pleasures, decaying and falling into despair. They started with petting cats and walking dogs, then grew bolder, entertaining Devil Beasts and beast-people. Now, they were even treating a creature like the Dimension Beast as a pet. It was simply outrageous. ¡°I will ask you once again, where did Julian go?¡± Drake asked. ¡°Howl!¡± The Dimension Beast called out again. Drake stomped his foot, the seal brightening significantly. A wave of electric light emitted from the seal, striking the Dimension Beast. The beast¡¯s body puffed out, its fur standing on end. Its eyes rounded in shock, smoke curling off its body. With a thud, it copsed to the ground, melting into a puddle. ¡°The seal is not just a cage, but also a tool for punishment. Sadly, it¡¯s been so long since it wasst used that everyone has forgotten its true purpose.¡± Drake murmured.N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°I¡¯ll ask you one more time, where did Julian go? Why did his life signs vanish after he passed through your Space Passage? Who killed him? Was it you?¡± Drake asked sternly. ¡°Howl, Howl~¡± While it was still a ¡®howl¡¯, incredibly Drake seemed to understand the meaning behind it: ¡°You didn¡¯t kill him? Can you swear it upon the Holy Light?¡± The Dimension Beast nodded vigorously, its eyes sincere. Indeed, it didn¡¯t kill him, it only banished him. ¡°Your eyes tell me that you¡¯re telling the truth, but I can feel that you¡¯re hiding other important information. He wasn¡¯t killed by you, but died because of you,¡± Drake said. The Dimension Beast frantically shook its head.
¡°Your eyes have be insincere, you¡¯re lying. Tell me, how did you cause Julian¡¯s death?¡± Drake asked. The face of the Dimension Beast twisted up. It found that in Drake¡¯s gaze, it seemed to be unable to hide any secrets; all were seen through by the other party in an instant. What to do? Betray its teammates? Give up Ange and those people along with their dimension? To confess or not to confess? Go ahead and confess, anyway, those people won¡¯te to rescue it anymore. Hmm, expose you all, let these wicked people destroy your home. The Dimension Beast was struggling internally, its mental scale gradually tipping.
Just then, Drake, who was growing impatient, stomped his foot forcefully. Normally, his stomp would activate a penalty seal, and electrocute the Dimension Beast, but this time, he stomped, and with a click, arge hole unexpectedly appeared in the ground, and the unsuspecting Drake fell in. Drake¡¯s strength cannot be underestimated, and his reaction is far from slow, but it was just too sudden. Even the most skillful Sword Saint couldn¡¯t avoid getting caught off guard. Caught off guard, Drake stomped himself into the pit, then felt he had stepped on something and stopped his fall, his hands propped against the edge of the pit. After stabilizing his body, Drake quickly looked down and astonishingly saw a bald skull, he had stepped on this skull¡¯s head. Ange had long removed his hat because while opening the hole from above, falling rocks could easily damage the straw hat, so he now appeared as a skeleton. The stepped-on skull faced upward, mes of anger burning in its hollow eye sockets, and its lower jaw was moving, making an angry sound: ¡°You stepped on, my head!¡± That ¡®head¡¯ word was roared out by the skull, and Drake felt like he was hit by an invisible giant hammer, his vision went ck. He instinctively closed his eyes, silently chanting in his heart: ¡°Steadfast!¡± The damage brought about by the Soul Impact quickly subsided, sacred mes rose up around Drake, transforming into Holy Armor that d on him, simultaneously, his foot stomped downward forcefully. A purple-golden skeletal hand intercepted his foot, with a thunderous bang, a violent shockwave exploded within the pit, like a Magic Egg squeezed into a cannon barrel, with a loud boom, Drake was sted into the air. Whoosh! Drake swiftly spread two pairs of wings behind him, one pair of True Wings and one pair of Light Wings, instantly halting his momentum. The surrounding Followers of Light, who witnessed this scene, caused a ripple of astonishment. Most people actually looked down on Drake, who was inly dressed and barefooted, because he seemed too inconspicuous.
Only at this moment did they realize, the person they belittled was such a terrifying existence ¨C an ascetic monk embodiment of a Four-Winged Angel. Six-Winged Archangels are all known and embodied, such as Wisdom Angel Luna, four-winged angels already represent the highest level of Holy Spirit Possession, and generally, physical bodies can not withstand this power. Only ascetic monks, devoted worshippers who enjoy the torments could easily bear the power of a Four-Winged Angel. However, as the crowd marveled at the powerful ascetic monk, when he looked down the pit tunnel, he saw a scene that scared him witless. The explosion in the pit not only blew him into the sky but also knocked the skull down. Yet, the one who actually entered the pit was a Four-Winged Angel, a true Holy Spirit Angel, not his possession variant. That true Holy Spirit Angel was spreading its four wings, ready to unleash its power. PS: Making up for the chapter this morning. Chapter 352: 219: The Undead are Attacking the City_1 Chapter 352: Chapter 219: The Undead are Attacking the City_1 A beam of light shot out from the pit, illuminating Drake. In the final moment, Drake wrapped his wings around his body. What would happen when the Holy Light sh of a Four-Winged Angel hits an Ascetic monk who was also possessed by a Four-Winged Angel? The result was clear. Both sets of Drake¡¯s wings vanished, his true wings shattered, and his Holy Armor was damaged, but his body was intact. It was already rather decent. Under the Holy Light sh of the Little Angel, his injuries were the least serious. Drake lowered his arms shielding him, spat out a mouthful of blood, and shattered the ne on his chest with a palm blur. A circle of white light spread out. The wounds on Drake¡¯s body, the gaps in his wings, the cracks in his Holy Armor, all were quickly healed. At the same time, Drake looked down to see the Little Angel staring at him curiously, seemingly surprised that he was still alive despite her full-on attack. Ange pulled away the Little Angel and took her ce. Looking up, he saw the Scythe of Death slowly emerging from his hand. ¡°Why is there a Golden Skeleton here? Why is there a Four-Winged Angel mixed with it? Why is there a pit here? All the negligent go on the Fire Execution Frame!¡± Drake ground his teeth. Who would have thought little pitfalls would exist in safe zones with Defense Towers and Soul Towers. Of course, it doesn¡¯t seem that somebody secretly dug it, but rather people here were ck in their duties and didn¡¯t even notice when somebody dug a tunnel.
As a lifelong Ascetic, he hated those who dodge responsibility, arezy, andck capabilities. When he finished dealing with the situation here, destroyed the Golden Skeleton, and captured the Four-Winged Angel, he would also heavily punish the negligent folks here. As he had this thought, Drake suddenly noticed a juvenile copper dragon appearing next to the skeleton. Drake was shocked by the appearance of a distressed Juvenile Dragon apanying an angel¨C¨Cit reminded him of one term¨C¨Cassassin, the team of assassins with Nik.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om If it was really assassins, does that mean, apart from the angel and the copper dragon, there might also be a unicorn, iron constructs¡­? And the most fearsome one, the Innocent Man who rushed over, trampling on nts on his way to kill Nik, who is immune to Holy Word Technique. As soon as Drake realized this, he got really careful. He started shouting without turning his head: ¡°Soul Tower, prepare¡­¡± Just after he said this, he heard a clear and rhythmic ¡®Gluglu¡¯ sound, and a series of rmed cries echoed nearby. In that split-second, Drake recalled something. He earlier had been standing at the seal¡¯s center, then stomped, causing a copse. Does that mean the seal could also be copsed? If the seal copsed, would it be invalid? And would the Dimension Beast regain its freedom? Drake turned his head slowly and indeed saw a big fur-ball smiling wide at him. ¡°I¡­¡± As soon as Drake opened his mouth, arge furry paw swung out from the fur-ball, pping Drake onto the ground like a fly swatter. When Ange carefully poked his head out from the pit, the only thing he could see was arge fur-ball, furiously scraping at aid body. The wings of the body were in pieces, and the bones probably were crushed, but the person was not dead. ¡°Roar!¡± Ange roared at it. The fur-ball turned its head to look, pointed itsrge paw at Drake, and roared unhappily. ¡°Roar!¡± Ange pointed hisrge hand at the Soul Tower. This time, the fur-ball realized what was happening. It dragged Drake toward the pit and then hurled itself over. Ange was startled and quickly retracted back into the pit. How could he withstand being struck by such a Giant Beast? Ange retreated inside the pit, and Drake slid back in while the flying fur-ball rapidly shrank. From a fifty-meter diameter fur-ball, it became a half-meter long round-faced, fat cat. However, just as it fell into the pit, a beam of ck lightning struck it¨C¨Cthe Soul Tower, Point Kill!
The cat let out a piercing scream. Its body crashed into the pit, hit the wall, bounced, and kept bouncing down like a ball. ¡°Roar! Roar! Roar¡­tha¡­¡± The cat, which had copsed into a ¡®half¡¯ shape on the ground, couldn¡¯t get up for quite some time. Serene struggled to lift it up, only to find its eyes spinning, totally dizzy. ¡°Run, run quickly, where to?¡± Negris shouted, finally looking at Shamara.
With Shamara¡¯s Predictive Ability, they didn¡¯t worry about getting lost or trapped in dead alleys when running to the underground tunnels. Shamara quickly took the lead, vanishing into the distance. But even if they didn¡¯t run, they would probably be fine for a while. After all, a Four-Winged Angel possessing an Ascetic monk had been caught by Ange and others. Without gathering a power surpassing that of a Four-Winged Angel, the Church people wouldn¡¯t dare to pursue. After running an unknown distance, the cat in Serene¡¯s arms finally moved. It weakly lifted its head and meowed weakly. Chapter 353: 219: The Undead are Attacking the City_2 Chapter 353: Chapter 219: The Undead are Attacking the City_2 Negris saw the situation and quickly shouted, ¡°Wait a minute, the enemy can¡¯t catch up with us for now. Let¡¯s see what¡¯s going on with the Dimension Beast. It seems a bit off, it wasn¡¯t killed by the Soul Tower, was it? Don¡¯t die yet, you haven¡¯t paid yet.¡± ¡°Meow~¡± Therge cat made a weak sound, then rubbed its fluffy head backward, leaning against the firm yet soft ce on Serene, without moving. ¡°What does that mean?¡± Negris didn¡¯t understand its words. Ange suddenly said, ¡°Its¡­ soul¡­ is damaged.¡± ¡°What? Soul damage is troublesome, what do we do now? Wake up, wake up, how many?¡± Negris shook therge cat hard, he stretched out his left paw and extended two of his ws. ¡°Meow, meow,¡± Therge cat meowed twice. ¡°Did the two meows mean two? It¡¯s troublesome if it can¡¯t even count. It has be stupid.¡± Negris exhaled, and teased. Luther asked puzzledly, ¡°Eh, sir, isn¡¯t this two?¡± While saying this, he bended and stretched his two fingers. Negris gave him an annoyed look, stretched out his paw, and flexed his ws one by one, including those that were bent: ¡°One, two, three, four, this is four, got it?¡± Luther suddenly realized he was being tricked, and looked at Negris resentfully. After an examination, therge cat was still mentally alert, just a bit dizzy, like it had Meniere¡¯s syndrome, it couldn¡¯t even stand up.
¡°It¡¯s already very good. It¡¯s not dead yet after being hit by the Soul Tower, only it can handle it. Ordinary creatures would have perished. The Soul Tower does massive damage to the undead creatures, and it¡¯s not small to the living creatures either, it¡¯s very lucky.¡± Negris said. After hearing this, the worried-looking Serene was relieved and hugged the huge cat tighter, almost suffocating it. After examining therge cat¡¯s condition, Negris turned his attention again to Drake. This ascetic monk got dragged and knocked around by Little Angel, and was injured all over. After being scratched by therge cat, his whole body was broken, soft like a worn out sack. Even so, he was not dead, staring at everyone with cold eyes. ¡°This guy is also not right. Turn him over,¡± Negris flipped him over, pulled apart the root of his wings, and couldn¡¯t help but furrow his brows. He saw clear suturing marks at the root of his wings. When his idea went further, the wing skeleton and scap were even showing signs of old bone hypersia. When bone fractures and then heals again, bone tissue will proliferate around the fracture to strengthen the bone. The current situation shows that the scap and wings were not originally like this, they grew together through smashing, splicing, and healing. This inconceivable splicing method is not something ordinary people can do. But thinking about Ange¡¯s Face Purification Technique, it wouldn¡¯t seem difficult to achieve this. This ascetic monk must have used this method to possess the True Wings of an Angel. ¡°I thought so. How could a human possibly possess an angel¡¯s true wings? It turns out that they are patched together this way,¡± Negris said with sudden realization. ¡°It can be done that way? Hasn¡¯t he be a frankenstein? This is a method of the undead,¡± Shamara was surprised to say. ¡°Ignorance.¡± Drake, who had been silent and limp all the way, suddenly interrupted: ¡°This is Lord Dyson¡¯s magnificent masterpiece. Don¡¯tpare it to those filthy undead. It allows us mortals who have lost their wings to have the ability to fly in Heaven again.¡± ¡°Dyson did it? How dare he sew the sacred True Wings of an Angel onto the filthy human body! This is sphemy! Damn it, I¡¯m going to burn him to death,¡± Shamara cried out in anger. ¡°How arrogant, dare to utter Lord Dyson¡¯s name directly! Heretical, you will all be reduced to ashes on the Sacred me,¡± Drake shouted angrily. Serene cursed, ¡°The one who should be burned to death is you. You caught my kitty. It¡¯s so cute and pitiful that it doesn¡¯t even dare to kill a bug. But you caught it, electrocuted it, and tortured it. You ruthless non-humans.¡± Negris and Luther turned their heads away awkwardly. If Serene saw how the Dimension Beast ¡®charged¡¯ fees and pped people into another dimension, she would definitely not dare to say this. Your kitty is pretty fierce. ¡°Heh, the Holy Spirit is immortal, and the Holy Body is indestructible. I am just curious as to what kind of people you are. If I am not mistaken, you must be the assassins who killed Lord Nik, aren¡¯t you? Where is the unicorn and that killer machine? Where is the Innocent One?¡± Drake asked. Negris stalled, ¡°You¡¯re saying, your sacred body can no longer die? And you can run away?¡± Drake barked, ¡°Answer my question first, where¡¯s the Innocent One? The unicorn and the Iron Construct?¡±
Everyone¡¯s gaze shifted towards Ange. Drake furrowed his eyebrows, ¡°Are you the unicorn?¡± ¡°Pfft!¡± Everyone burst outughing, how could the skeletal Ange remind anyone of a unicorn? ¡°The Innocent One is a skeleton? A dirty, evil skeleton? No way!¡± Drake yelled in disbelief.
¡°What¡¯s so strange about that? Just now, a child-abducting thief was also deemed innocent, and couldn¡¯t stimte the Original Sin Shackles. It¡¯s not always urate,¡± said Negris dismissively. Luther asked, ¡°Is it possible that he did notmit a sin because the Lord did not perceive it as a sin?¡± ¡°Uh, it¡¯s possible¡­then its arbitrariness is huge. Whoever the Lord deems sinful, is sinful?¡± Negris felt this spection was unreliable, and continued: ¡°There¡¯s another possibility, those kids were not kidnapped, but bought. If they were sold by their biological parents, the sin doesn¡¯t fall onto the thief.¡± Serene suddenly sighed, ¡°Maybe this can¡¯t be considered a sin. Selling the kids might give them a chance to survive, whereas with their parents, they might not. Our world is too poor.¡± Drake was puzzled by their conversation. From their words, could this skeleton sentence others? Confused, Drake decided not to question it any further, leaving them with a threat: ¡°All of you heretics, I will note down your names in the heretic register and use all my power to purify you!¡± After finishing his sentence, Drake¡¯s body lit up with tiny sparks of light. Just then, a hand suddenly pressed against his shoulder and power surged in. Drake instantly realized that the light on his body was contaminated. The ignited points were no longer pure white, but dark mes instead. Looking back, it was Shamara whose hand was on his shoulder. Drake gasped, his face finally showing panic: ¡°Power of Fall? Corruption! You¡¯re the Fallen Angel Shamara!¡± Shamara nodded and said, ¡°I hope you won¡¯t be burnt to death when you return.¡± ¡°No! No, get your hand off, withdraw the Power of Fall, I don¡¯t want your power, I don¡¯t want it!¡± Drake cried out in terror, his usual indifference and calmpletely faded.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Unfortunately, Shamara didn¡¯t stop, and the continuous surge of power didn¡¯t cease until hepletely vanished.
¡°Let¡¯s hope he won¡¯t burn when he returns.¡± Everyone chuckled, seeming to relish in his misfortune. Cradling therge cat, everyone ran wildly through the tunnel led by Shamara. As they proceeded, they suddenly felt a draft of air. ¡°There¡¯s air, there might be an exit.¡± Everyone shouted excitedly. Luther said, ¡°We should have taken Feirick with us, his rodent¡¯s pathfinding ability is top-notch.¡± Following the airflow, the group soon exited the tunnel. In front of them was a pitch-ck night sky. There were no stars in the sky, but rainbow-colored ribbons of light drifted down slowly. ¡°Eh!? Has eternal night befallen?¡± asked Serene in surprise. The arrival of eternal night was imminent, expected within a few days, but no one knew which specific day until it suddenly descended ¡ª sometimes at night, sometimes during the day, always abrupt. The only distinctive feature was those slow-descending ribbons of light. ¡°Eternal night has arrived, the Undead will soon besiege the city.¡± Chapter 354: 220: How Did This Skeleton Come?_1 Chapter 354: Chapter 220: How Did This Skeleton Come?_1 On the other end of the Central Mountain Range, the Minotaur aunt was collecting mushrooms in the field. Mushrooms, bothcking in nutrients and costly when used in sauces, were not a popr food among them. ording to the legends, there were people in the Master ne who particrly loved mushrooms. They would saut¨¦ them in butter and add some seasonings, it tasted very good. The Minotaur Aunt had always wanted to taste that so she started asking around about what butter was¡­ Although mushrooms did not taste good, adding them to y could help to stave off hunger without bloating the stomach. Before the arrival of eternal night, the Minotaur Aunt would always dig some mushrooms, mix it with y to make y cakes, paired with half the amount of the usual grains, it was enough to feel full. By saving half the grains, surviving through the Eternal Night became simpler. As a child, the Minotaur aunt never understood why a month-long darkness wasbelled as Eternal Night ¨C not until she experienced hunger for the first time. Then she understood. In the darkness of hunger, every second felt like an eternity. From then on, the Minotaur aunt¡¯s favorite pastime became cooking. Her second favorite pastime ¨C matchmaking. As she was gathering mushrooms, the Minotaur aunt unknowingly drew closer to the Land of Deathly Silence. Suddenly, the sky turned dark without any warnings, multicolored rays of light fell from above, dyeing the sky in a rainbow of colors. The Eternal Night had arrived. Along with the advent of Eternal Night, the earth began to tremble slightly. Suddenly, a pale hand-bone pierced through the soil and touched the Minotaur aunt¡¯s hoof. ¡°Ah!¡± She gave a startled jump. With a strong kick, she flung away the hand-bone and jumped back a few steps. However, when she saw what was kicked away clearly, she was not scared anymore. Padding her chest, she said: ¡°You scared me to death, can¡¯t you give a warning beforeing out?!¡±
A gray skeleton missing one hand came out of the ground. Hearing the Minotaur aunt¡¯sint, it turned its hollow eye sockets her way and opened and closed its jaw a few times. ¡°Over there.¡± The Minotaur aunt casually pointed at the hand bone that she had kicked away. She didn¡¯t know if it understood it or not. The grey skeleton managed to get up using one hand, walked towards its hand bone, picked it up, attached it, then stood in ce looking lost. Not far away, another skeleton was stuck halfway out of the ground ¨C either buried too tightly or due to some other reason. It was struggling and struggling to free the rest of the body from the soil. The Minotaur aunt quickly walked over, and enthusiastically said: ¡°Here, let me help.¡± She ced hands under the skeleton¡¯s ribs and gave a strong pull. While the upper body was pulled out, the lower body remained in the ground. With a crack, the skeleton split into two. The half skeleton propped itself up, gave a dazed look at the lower half still buried in the ground, then turned to look at the Minotaur aunt. The Minotaur aunt was very embarrassed and apologized, ¡°Sorry, sorry¡­¡± she apologized while stepping back a few steps. After creating a distance, she turned around and ran away. The skeleton¡¯s lower jaw moved in silent usation. Eventually, it crawled over and started to excavate the ground to dig out its lower body. As the Minotaur aunt ran, hands skeletons erupted from the earth one after another. A legion of ashen skeletal frames emerged from the ground, creating a white carpet stretching out to the horizon. The Land of Deathly Silence, empty just a few minutes ago, was quickly filled with skeletal zombies. Seeing such a sight, the Minotaur aunt was thunderstruck and started to run faster. As soon as she ran into the town, she began to beat the stone drum fervently: ¡°It¡¯s here, it¡¯s here! The eternal night is here, and the Undead Tide is upon us. Come and see!¡± The vigers, who had been waiting for this day, quickly grabbed their stools or climbed to their rooftops to witness this spectacr and dazzling scene. For the living creatures on the east side of Central Mountain Range, the undead were an unavoidable part of life. Instead of living in dread and fear, they found it easier to live happily and enjoy the experience. After all, the undead didn¡¯t kill. The undead creatures had no desires or needs, and there were a limited number of intelligent high-level undead, so they didn¡¯t consume much. They possessed infinitebor power and could be easily satisfied, so they had no need to oppress the living.N?v(el)B\\jnn To put it inappropriately, the living creatures on the east side of the Central Mountain Range were more like free-range pets. No one oppressed a group of pets, and some would even asionally feed them. And here theye. Six Corpse Witch Horses, their eyes aglow with red light and hooves aze with blue fire, race forward, pulling arge carriage from the Land of Deathly Silence. The vige elder quickly rushes up to greet them, calling out loudly: ¡°Oh, is it the Great Sage? May your soul be undisturbed.¡±
The carriage stops in front of the vige elder. Out steps a majestic elder mage, with white hair and a long beard, wearing a robe and carrying a magic wand. He removes his hat in response: ¡°May you also be in good health, erm, body health I mean. Let me think, this is Bridgehead Town, right? Are you the 21st Camo? From the time I met your ancestors till now, it has been 21 generations. How¡¯s your health? When are you going to pass away?¡± ¡°Great Sage, aren¡¯t you just persuading me to die early? That¡¯s not a good blessing.¡±ined the 21st-generation Camo Vige Chief. ¡°What¡¯s wrong with dying early? Just look at your body, your bones are osteoporotic.¡± The Great Sage patted Camo Vige Chief¡¯s shoulder with distaste.
Then he asked, ¡°So? How was the harvest these past few months? Do you have enough to eat?¡± Camo Vige Chief quickly answered: ¡°Thanks to your blessings, the harvest was good, we have enough to eat, we should be able to get through this eternal night.¡± ¡°That¡¯s good, that¡¯s good. I¡¯ll ease up on you then. I don¡¯t know if the other viges have had a harvest. A single grain of surplus would save a life. Since you have enough grain, I¡¯ll leave you some extra salt. It¡¯s getting harder and harder to mine salt, so there will be less and less salt in the future. Conserve it.¡± The Great Sage said with a mix of happiness and helplessness. ¡°Oh, there¡¯s less salt? What should we do?¡± Camo Vige Chief seemed a little lost. But when the Great Sage took out the bag of salt, he took it smoothly without any hesitation. Every year, when the eternal nightes, the Great Sage rides in his chariot to provide relief to everyone. If a vige has a poor harvest, the Great Sage will leave some grain. If a vige has enough grain, he will leave some extra salt. Compared to grain, salt is more precious. Because while grain can be grown, salt can only be obtained from the Great Sage or smuggled in by the Undead traders from the west. The consequences of a salt shortage are severe. Hearing that there was less salt, Camo Vige Chief was instantly rmed. But apart from the rm, there was nothing he could do. If it was something even the Great Sage couldn¡¯t handle, then there was no way he could do anything. You can¡¯t dig for salt yourself. If the Skeleton Zombies couldn¡¯t mine salt, then humans definitely couldn¡¯t either. ¡°Alright, is there anything else you need help with here? If not, I¡¯ll move on to the next vige.¡± The Great Sage asked. ¡°Oh yes, yes. The water well we mentionedst eternal night, we have gathered the materials. Would you please help us dig a well? Then we won¡¯t have to wait for the water level to rise during the eternal night to get water.¡± ¡°Digging a well? Sigh, it¡¯s not particrly useful. The water table is shallow. You¡¯ll have water for the first month; for the next two months, you¡¯ll stillck water. In the end, you still have to store water. Okay, where are the materials?¡± Although he grumbled about the futility of it, the Great Sage still went to where the materials were piled up, waved his Magic Wand a few times, and a mound of earth quickly rose from the ground, rising non-stop. After it rose to a height of more than ten metres, the mound tilted to one side, forming a deep vertical hole to reveal the water table.
The Great Sage waved his Magic Wand again, the materials float up on their own, as if an invisible hand was holding them ¨C Hand of the Mage. The floating materials went into the well, rapidly providing support for the well walls to prevent them from copsing. ¡°Alright, let me repeat, the well isn¡¯t going to help much, you still need to store water regrly. Don¡¯t end up dying of thirst when you run out of water.¡± The Great Sage admonished. ¡°Yes, yes. I know it¡¯s not much use. We mainly want to extend the water storage time. During the eternal night, everyone rushed to the river to get water, it¡¯s too dangerous. With the well, it would be much safer to get water from there.¡± said Camo Vige Chief. ¡°Fair enough. Alright, I¡¯m leaving then. May you pass away soon.¡± Without looking back, the Great Sage waved and headed for his carriage. Camo Vige Chief was annoyed, and said: ¡°Goodbye, may your soul be disturbed.¡± Just as the Great Sage was about to board his carriage, a horn-like sound echoed from the direction of the Land of Deathly Silence: woo The Great Sage paused, looking in that direction, he muttered to himself: ¡°Eh, why is the skeleton here?¡± Chapter 355: 221: The New Generation of Undead King_1 Chapter 355: Chapter 221: The New Generation of Undead King_1 On a small elevated mound, a towering dark purple-golden skeleton bent its body and gave a horn-like roar. The whole earth seemed to boil, and countless skeleton zombies were surging forward following the roar.
Behind it, rows of golden skeletons, heaps of silver skeletons, squads of iron skin and copper skin zombies, all stood in line. The most conspicuous amongst them was a giant skeleton standing three meters tall. The word ¡®strong¡¯ used to describe a skeleton might sound a bit strange, because after all, a skeleton consists only of bones, what could possibly make it strong? But this skeleton was, indeed, robust. The joints were bulky, the bones were solid, even the fingers and toes were short and stout. Everything about it spelled rugged. This was a golden skeleton ¨C three meters tall, robust and sturdy. Despite its formidable potential, it stood cautious and restrained, crouching just like a quail. ¡°Move along, please. Careful!¡± Bewildered, the golden skeleton made efforts to shuffle around its peers, apologizing in a confused manner.
identally using a bit too much force, a snap! and the head of an Ashbone skeleton next to it was pulled off. ¡°Ohhh, it fell off¡­¡± The golden skeleton said with remorse and guilt, and speedily ambled over to pick up the head of the Ashbone skeleton with the intention of reattaching it. But as soon as it picked up the skeleton¡¯s torso, with a crack, it snapped two of its ribs. Probably from a bit too much effort. ¡°Ohh, they broke¡­ I¡¯m sorry¡­¡± Apologizing guiltily, the golden skeleton tried one more time and yanked forcefully. With another crack, the skeleton¡¯s lumbar vertebrae snapped off. The golden skeleton¡¯s voice was close to tears, ¡°I knew it¡­ I¡­always mess up¡­ I¡¯m such a dimwit¡­¡± The Great Sage passing by, seeing this scene, couldn¡¯t help but say, ¡°Big Bone, just dump it in a pile.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Responding and called Big Bone, the golden skeleton hurriedly dumped the heap of bones it was carrying. In the process, another arm bone got dislocated. Crunch crunch, the severed head of the Ashbone skeleton rolled to the neck vertebrae and reattached itself, grasping the dislocated arm bone and reestablishing it, crawling a few paces ahead with both arms, beforeing to the realization that it was missing something. Grappling the lower end of its own figure, the Ashbone skeleton, without bothering to reassemblepletely, scrambled a safe distance away with a roll, then turned its direction and looked toward Big Bone, silently opening and closing its jaw. Scratching its head, the golden skeleton mumbled in a dejected tone, ¡°Sorry¡­¡±n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om The Great Sage said helplessly, ¡°Big Bone, you should act harsher. Just show a bit of aggression, and these low-level skeletons will not dare approach you. You have too much force and are too overpowered; little taps or knocks will disassemble them.¡± ¡°Oh¡­¡± Big Bone responded, hung his head in disappointment for a moment, suddenly lifted his head up, started waving its hands around and made a spooky and ferocious face with wide-open jaws, going ¡®yow yow¡¯ with loud shouts.
Finished doing that, it asked, ¡°Am I scary?¡± The Great Sage nearly lost it and burst intoughter, while trying to maintain a serious face by saying, ¡°Scary, way too scary, I¡¯m terrified!¡± All the while, he began to radiate his imposing authority, an undeniable force for ordinary skeletons, with the instant result that surrounding low-level skeleton zombies moved and scattered, leaving a gap of several meters. ¡°Yow~yow~¡± Big Bone thought it had sessfully scared them off, and continued idly scaring around. The Great Sage shook his head and floated toward the purple-golden skeleton saying, ¡°Harvey, howe you are here? It¡¯s been nearly three hundred years since you set foot on the frontlines.¡± Turning around, the skeleton named Harvey nodded at the Great Sage, ¡°A few days ago, inside amunication domino, a person imed to be the Undead God.¡± ¡°Oh, you mean that one. It¡¯s fake. Pretty clear a human child found themunication domino and initiated a random voice message.¡± Responded the Great Sage. He had also heard about thatmunication. At the time when the voice on the other end was solemnly iming he was the Undead God, the Great Sage had had a weird feeling. He wondered what the Undead Empire was like now, and what the King¡­ how was he doing. Harvey shook his head, ¡°I¡¯m not referring to the human but to our soul, that frontline transit station soul.¡± ¡°Oh, Yeah, hehe. Young souls are usually more agitated and that¡¯s pretty natural. Those at the transit station are either neophyte undead or witches, mostly less than a thousand years old and most originated in this ne. It¡¯smon for them not to be able to control their emotions, you shouldn¡¯t take it to heart,¡± The Great Sage responded. Harvey turned around and looked him in the eye with a strange tone, ¡°Great Sage, you can¡¯t possibly think I am here toin, can you?¡± ¡°No way,¡± the Great Sage shook his head, ¡°the new Undead King, Lord of Mourning, purple golden skeleton Harvey, what could possibly cause someone of your stature to travel this far just for that? There must be something important; what brings you here?¡±
Harvey didn¡¯t answer immediately but looked up at the sky as if he was contemting something. The Great Sage also followed his gaze upwards, but apart from the dangling light band, the sky looked no different than usual. After a long pause, Harvey suddenly said, ¡°What do you think, is the King still there?¡± Taken aback by the question, the Great Sage hesitated for a moment before responding, ¡°He¡¯s possibly, presumably, probably, maybe¡­ gone, who knows? Haven¡¯t we talked about this before? Why bring it up now all of a sudden?¡± ¡°Then why didn¡¯t we disappear along with him?¡± Harvey questioned. ¡°Err, we all felt the severance of the soul connection at the veryst moment. Perhaps the King used some kind of power to forcibly disconnect the soulwork, allowing us to survive,¡± exined the Great Sage. This topic was something they had debated mutually a few thousand times over the course of the first three hundred years and had alreadye to a consensus. Right now, the Great Sage was just spitting it out repetitively just as regurgitating already learned materials. ¡°So, I am merely the new Undead King? I cannot be the King¡¯s most loyal warrior like Locke?¡± Harvey expressed his regret. Pausing momentarily, Harvey continued, ¡°We havee to an understanding that the King is no more. Breaching the human defense, getting back to the Resting Pce would be meaningless. So, I¡¯ve been toozy toe to the frontlines all these years, instead I would rather stay peacefully asleep, strengthening my bones.¡± ¡°But having heard the fervent shout of that young soul, I¡¯vee to realize that I was mistaken.¡± ¡°We¡¯vee to mutual understanding, confirming the absence of the King, but the young souls have not, they perhaps believe that, the Undead Empire still exists.¡± ¡°Merely being stood up to by the humans. Break through the defenses, and they¡¯d be able to reach the Resting Pce, be in the presence of his majesty, and be subjects of the King.¡±
¡°For these young souls, I think it¡¯s time for me to make a move. Seven hundred years ago, when I had just breached the realm of the Lord of Mourning, my power hadn¡¯t fully stabilized. Now, I have stabilized and truly be the Lord of Mourning; the human defenses cannot hold me off.¡± ¡°The time hase for the Resting Pce to wee its new Lord.¡± PS: I cannot dy it anymore, I¡¯ve almost lost my perfect attendance¡­ease with the aows! Chapter 356: 222 The Lord of Mourning -!_1 Chapter 356: Chapter 222 The Lord of Mourning -!_1 After the eternal night descended, the western edge of the Central Mountain Range; the human territories, started bustling with activity. Soldiers,borers, and farmers with their varying quality weapons and equipment suddenly appeared from nowhere. They brought with them all sorts of carts, gathering from all around.
The Teleportation Array, akin to an energy charging cycle, continuously shone with the glow of teleportation. Countless griffins shuttled back and forth in the sky, carrying people to and fro. The only idle and perplexed ones, and not knowing what to do were Ange and his group. With Serene holding a big cat, Shamara holding a washing basin, and Luther running out to steal three white robes. Dressing himself in one and the Little Zombie and Little Angel in the others. Surprisingly, with the pure and innocent Little Angel draped in a white robe, she looked every inch a pure and innocent holy maiden. Ange donned a straw hat, let Little Angel ride on Lightning, with these changes in appearance, they transformed into a team escorting a holy maiden to the Holy Wall City. Amidst the chaos and disarray, they were not conspicuous at all. On the contrary, many people even paid respect to them on their way. They located the ce where Brand and others were lodging, and asked them to lead the way.
Little Brand was a bit confused, wondering ¨C How did they return with so many people? Before he could even ask, he was dragged aside by his father, who said to him ¡°Follow sir¡¯smands¡±. As Brand and his son, alongside his nephew, started leading the way. Negris was packed back into the Resting Camp. Out of them all, this stunted Bronze Dragon was the most eye-catching. Negris looked at Ange and marveled. ¡°These church people are really cunning, they are very good at observing people¡¯s expressions.¡± Shamara deeply felt this too: ¡°They are no longer pure, every one of them is clouded by their desires and obsessions. Everyone has learned to intrigue, forgetting their original mission, without believers or people in their hearts¡­ The purest Holy Light I have only seen on you guys, yet you are Undead Heretics¡­¡± ¡°Oh, so that¡¯s why you becamepletely corrupted after meeting us, it turns out it¡¯s because of this.¡± Negris suddenly understood. Under the guidance of the three ¡°elite¡± pdins of Brand, and under the special aura of the unicorn-riding Little Angel, Ange¡¯s group entered the Holy Wall City without any trouble. However, once they entered the city, they are once again at a loss. They look at Shamara, ¡°Where do we go now?¡± Shamara was at a loss too, the voice in her heart told her toe to the Holy Wall City. However, it did not specify which part of the Holy Wall City she should go to. Maybe it¡¯s not yet time, hence she can¡¯t sense anything yet. Now the Holy Wall City was basically a huge military camp, all activities in the city made way for the military. Soldiers, priests, clergy, archers were all bustling about on the streets. Their confusion was soon noticed by someone, a knight on horseback rode towards them and shouted from afar: ¡°Does the honored gentleman in front belong to the holy maiden squad? Holy maiden squads can be on the city wall now, currently only the fourth city wall has space, this way please.¡± Negris muttered to himself, ¡°This feels like watching a y, needing seats?¡± When they climbed up onto the city wall, they found out what those ¡®spaces¡¯ were ¨C defensive positions.
Below the straight city wall, it was the endless Land of Deathly Silence. Thend was now filled with Undead, looking down from the city wall, countless twinkling blue lights could be seen, those were the eye sockets of the skeletons.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om The city wall was divided into sections, each a hundred meters apart. Every section was required to have a holy maiden in charge, the holy maidens could do many things¨C blessings, prayers, inspiring the troops, and, when necessary, even act as the main fighting force with Holy Spirit Possession. In addition to this, each section was allocated an equal amount: priests, clergy, swordsmen, shield-bearers, archers, catapults, crossbow arrows¨C evenly distributed. But Negris was a bit confused, ¡°Aren¡¯t there only a dozen or so holy maidens in your church? Why does it seem that no one recognizes us? And they¡¯re randomly allocated, there¡¯s no need for trained cooperation? Just find an empty spot and slot in a holy maiden?¡± ¡°Otherwise? We are always very busy, and can¡¯t confirm who wille, so whoever arrives, fills the position. And who told you the church¡¯s holy maidens are only a dozen or so? Ones like me who are currently working are only a dozen or so, those still learning, younger ones, retired ones, and ones already married, add up to a hundred. As long as they can do Holy Spirit Possession, they are all considered as a holy maiden.¡± ¡°Oh, I see. There are about a dozen currently working, dozens in reserve, but also only about a hundred in total, you can¡¯t really not recognize them all?¡± ¡°Because they are not in the same ne, some people have nevere to the Land of Fallen. Each holy maiden who has their own team of clergy and God¡¯s Knight will have their own badge. The badge has a Highest Mobilization Order. Whenever the Highest Mobilization Order shes, everyone must put down whatever they are doing, ready to be drafted at any time.¡± ¡°But, ever since the Undead¡¯s offensive started to weaken 700 years ago, they used to have a Purple Gold Skeletonmanding the whole field. The church had to use all their might in order to resist the Undead¡¯s aggressive assault, and every offense and defense battle resulted in heavy casualties for the church.¡± ¡°Purple Gold Skeleton? There¡¯s a Purple Gold Skeleton on the other side? Howe Anthony never mentioned this?¡± Negris shrieked in horror. ¡°Yes, the Purple Gold Skeleton. Maybe he also doesn¡¯t know, this was told to me by Juliani, he said, since the church¡¯s scriptures often caught fire for no reason, some important things are no longer written in scriptures but passed verbally. Some things not even the bishops of each ce know of, moreover, the Purple Gold Skeleton has not appeared for 700 years now.¡± Chapter 357: 222 The Lord of Mourning – ! _2 Chapter 357: Chapter 222 The Lord of Mourning ¨C ! _2 Ange and Negris exchanged a thought, both remained silent. Why would the scriptures inexplicably catch fire? Could it be that someone had be aware of this hundreds of years ago and started to guard against them?n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Indeed, they had burned so many of their scriptures that if they did not take precautions, the people of the church would indeed be fools. Seven hundred years ago, Anthony was still struggling and nning in the Master ne. He had never been to the Land of Fallen. But the more critical reason was that he did not want the undead to strike back. If hundreds of millions of undead flooded into the Master ne, the Master ne would copse. Due to this mentality, Anthony avoided the Land of Fallen in his early days. Even when someone broke through the Mourning and became the Purple Gold Skeleton, he was unaware. ¡°Not until seven hundred years ago did the purple golden skeleton disappear inexplicably, and from then on, the undead¡¯s offensive intensity gradually decreased year by year. Nowadays it¡¯s almost routine, not all mobilizations have to be actuated under the Highest Mobilization Order, only those who are willing to respond, and those who are not, do not have to.¡± ¡°However, everyone is still very willing to respond because this is not only a chance to build meritorious service, but it also provides an opportunity to expand connections. Look.¡± At Shamara¡¯s gesture, the city wall was indeed bustling with people, holding cards made of silver and gold, approaching suitable targets, exchanging conversation, and quickly bing familiar with one another. Someone saw Ange and his group and came over to pay a visit, then Brand handled it skillfully. In no time, he had collected several cards. Suddenly, there was amotion near the staircase not far away. Quickly, people gathered there and eximed in shock, ¡°My god, the people from the Eastern Diocese havee.¡± ¡°What? Anthony¡¯s people dare toe? Didn¡¯t he be independent?¡±
¡°Yes, he became independent, but he did not im to be the emperor. He is still just an archbishop, recognizing the authority of the curia as orthodox. But until the evil god¡¯s forces lurking within the curia are eliminated, he refuses to obey orders issued by the curia.¡± ¡°Who is leading the team?¡± ¡°The ck Mountain Duke, the new ck Mountain Duke, the steward of the new Earth Hammer.¡± ¡°Oh? Wasn¡¯t the ck Mountain Kingdom part of the Western District? How did it be Anthony¡¯s territory?¡± ¡°This¡­ this¡­ Lord Anthony is very resourceful.¡± ¡°Hey? You just called him Anthony, now why are you calling him ¡®sir¡¯?¡± Ange and Negris exchanged their thoughts again, bing aware of who it was. Sure enough,ing from the city stairs was an elite troop. Taking the lead was the illegitimate son of the ck Mountain Duke, who called himself the ck Mountain, a character they had met in Rnd. Compared to his previous destion, ck Mountain haspletely transformed, wearing luxurious equipment and exuding nobility. Following him, an elite troop of soldiers appeared, their armors made everyone gasp in awe, ¡°Elf Magic Armor? My god, did the ck Mountain Duke rob the Magician¡¯s Guild? He can afford to equip his soldiers with Elf Magic Armor?¡± ¡°Even with money, it¡¯s impossible. Without connections, where can you buy so many Elf Magic Armors? Elves would never sell to you.¡± Possibly aware of or anticipating such whispers, a goblin ran up with a passionate smile on his face, offering a business card and saying, ¡°I have these armors. If you need them,e to me.¡± While others¡¯ cards were made of silver or gold, this goblin¡¯s was wooden and thick, like a wooden que. Many showed disdain and disgust when he handed it over, ¡°These goblins are really stingy.¡± Reluctantly epting the cards due to the goblin¡¯s enthusiasm, their expressions changed as soon as they touched the wood. The powerful could feel the pure life force from it, while the weaker could sense a refreshing breath. Upon closer inspection, there was a circle of symbiotic vines around the edge of the wooden card, alive. This kind of nt is known for coexisting with strong life forms. Does this wooden que possess a strong vitality? Having associated it with the elf magic armor worn by the warriors, everyone instantly realized what these wooden ques were: ¡°World Tree ques? My God, you¡¯re using the World Tree as a business card?¡± ¡°Hehe.¡± The goblin revealed a dumb smile on his face: ¡°We have many of these at home. They¡¯re not worth much, not much.¡± All of them felt tricked. There was only one World Tree, and the elves treasured it. This goblin dared to say that ¡®we have many at home, they¡¯re not worth much¡¯?
But anyway, having used the World Tree as a business card demonstrated the goblin¡¯s strength, which got everyone excited. Before long, the goblin hade over. He saw a crowd formed at a distance but couldn¡¯t make out how many people there were or who was among them. The only thing he recognized was the butt of a horse, but he couldn¡¯t see the head. White horses weremon, so the goblin didn¡¯t overthink. He exchanged name cards with Brand and few others, then left. Only when the goblin had gone far did the onlookers disperse. Serene and Shamara, who had been forcibly pulled over to block the view, asked in confusion: ¡°What was that about, do you guys know that goblin?¡±
Negris didn¡¯t feel like exining and just replied casually: ¡°Yeah, we owe him quite a bit of money.¡± ¡°I see.¡± Realizing this, Serene quietly moved away from Negris, hugging therge cat tightly. Shamara, however, pulled out two Holy Crystals and put them into Ange¡¯s hand: ¡°That¡¯s all I have.¡± Ange cocked his head in confusion. Why would she give him Holy Crystals suddenly? Just as he was thinking of giving them back, Little Ghost, who had been twining around his finger, pounced out, tightly clinging to one of them. Negris felt terribly awkward. He casually remarked that they owed the goblin money and Shamara actually gave them money to repay the debt. Were all the people Ange knew simple-minded like this, not even distinguishing jokes from facts? It was fine to give money, but dealing with Ange, an equivalent exchange skeleton, would undoubtedly require giving something in return. ¡°Just keep it and repay her with something elseter.¡± Negris said helplessly. There was no way not to take them now, as Little Ghost had already melted one-tenth of one Holy Crystal, causing it to shrink. After that, itid down, breathing a deep sigh of relief. ¡°So it eats Holy Crystals?¡± Shamara said curiously. She had seen Little Ghost before, but she didn¡¯t understand its way of existence. A holy ghost? It seemed absurd just to think about it. ¡°Hoooo~~~¡± The sound of the horn suddenly resounded from the Land of Deathly Silence outside the city wall, causing an immense stir as if the ground was a carpet, with the Undead slowly parting in response, paving a path straight to the Holy Wall City. The Holy Wall City had no gates. It was a narrow pass where two mountain ranges met, forming a recess. The Church of Light had built a wall of around seven hundred to eight hundred meters right at the entrance, setting up various Defense Towers and protective shields, firmly guarding this ce. The open path pointed directly here, and on the other end, everyone saw a purple-gold figure.
¡°The Lord of Mourning¡ª¡ª!¡± A hoarse, distressed voice, like a eunuch separated from his treasure, shrieked out this name with an unparalleled sharpness and fright. The city wall suddenly fell silent, then confusion ensued. Most people had no idea what the Lord of Mourning represented. They looked at each other in confusion and whispered amongst themselves. On the high tform behind the city wall, Archbishop Dyson sprung forward, his eyes filled with Holy Light. He set his gaze on the purple-gold skeleton at the end of the ¡®path.¡¯ His whole body began to tremble as he muttered: ¡°Why is it here? Why? It hasn¡¯t appeared for seven hundred years, why did it appear during my tenure? I %#£¤@*#¡± After cursing a few times, Dyson shouted in a shrill voice, on par with that of the rmed eunuch: ¡°Maximize the protective shield, maximize it, the Soul and Defense Towers to maximum capacity, add Demon Crystals, add them quickly! All weapons at the ready, everyone be prepared, be prepared for the Holy Spirit Summoning at any moment, quickly, quickly! If you don¡¯t want to die, move quickly!¡± Everyone could hear endless fear in Dyson¡¯s voice. Just as Dyson was shouting, the purple-gold skeleton moved. Chapter 358: 223: Finish the Fight, Go to Sleep_1 Chapter 358: Chapter 223: Finish the Fight, Go to Sleep_1 The Purple Gold Skeleton marched, its toe bones dug deeply into the earth. The ground couldn¡¯t bear the instant burst of force from the skeleton. Therefore, before it surged, a circle of purple glow emerged, causing the earth to shatter. This purple glow stabilized the ground, and provided a steady base for the terrifying force exerted by the Purple Gold Skeleton. With one push, it shot out like a cannonball. With each step covering a distance of dozen meters, its speed dramatically increased. Like a cannonball, the Purple Gold Skeleton dashed towards the city wall, making purple ripples with each step.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Most people didn¡¯t recognize the Lord of Mourning, but the tone and pitch of Dyson¡¯s voice made them realize the seriousness of the situation. Almost immediately, the Soul Towers were pushed to their maximum capacity. There were four Soul Towers in Holy Wall City, two on the city wall, and two on the second-floor tform behind the wall. Each tower was strictly guarded forbidden grounds. Once inside, one would witness a terrifying scene ¨C innumerable skulls stacked inside. Every skull was ced within a small array. There might be tens of thousands of these tiny arrays. When the power of the Soul Tower was pushed to the extreme, these arrays all lit up, and the dormant skulls set ame. Everyone assumed that the Soul Tower was merely a tower killing souls, but few knew that it was those undead souls that powered the Soul Tower. These skulls, left with nothing but their head, had no consciousness. They were merely used as sources of energy. While each individual spirit was not very powerful, thebination of tens of thousands of these spirits could generate a soul lightning that even the Dimension Beast wouldn¡¯t be able to withstand. If a Dimension Beast couldn¡¯t manage to bear the Soul Lightning, the Undead had even less chance of survival, especially with the additional damage suffered by the lone Purple Gold Skeleton. With the Soul Towers not needing to divide their attention, everyone eagerly awaited the effect of the Soul Lightning. Soul Lightning is merely a figurative term, its true form is a Soul Impact.
When massive soul energy impacts an enemy, it triggers a phenomenon simr to ck lightning. Hence, the enemy isn¡¯t hit by actual lightning, but the lightning that is generated upon impact. If the enemy is weak, it may not even induce this phenomenon. The body of the Purple Gold Skeleton was as if it had been struck by an invisible hammer, momentarily halting it. Several thick ck lightning bolts were triggered behind it, causing an explosion. One of the Soul Towers gave off countless mournful howls and thick ck smoke could be faintly seen rising from the top of the tower. The surrounding temperature dropped by three or four degrees. Inside the Soul Tower, the spirits within the tens of thousands of skulls exploded at once, turning into rising ck smoke, while a few descended towards the base of the tower, where a thickyer of ashes alreadyy. The pinpoint attack of the Soul Tower resulted in the tower¡¯s destruction, while the Purple Gold Skeleton was only slightly stalled before it continued its rampage. Bang! Bang! Bang! Three more ck lightning bolts impacted it, making it pause, and then pause again, finally stopping it in its tracks. The remaining three Soul Towers also spewed out ck smoke andpletely stopped working. Apparently angered by the interruption of its charge, the Purple Gold Skeleton stiffened and transformed. An intense Soul me burned and then solidified, creating a fierce Soul Armor on it. Now everyone realized that the Mourning Skeleton that destroyed four Soul Towers wasn¡¯t even armored? After summoning the Soul Armor, the Purple Gold Skeleton started to run again. The Soul Tower was a weapon humans extremely relied upon. Over the centuries, countless Undead had been killed by Soul Towers. Since it had quite arge attack range, building a Soul Tower on top of a mountain would prevent any Undead from crossing the ridge during both day and night. However, now, the weapon they trusted had repeatedly been destroyed and had only triggered their enemy¡¯s Soul Armor. Now everyone understood why Archbishop Dyson had screamed in terror. All simultaneously shouted, ¡°Stop him, attack! Attack!¡± Arrows, crossbow arrows, and stoneunchers all targeted the Purple Gold Skeleton. The defense tower sent out beams of light, illuminating the Purple Gold Skeleton. These beams of light resembled the Holy Light sh of the Little Angels but were a bit weaker. However, under the onught of so many beams, the Soul Armor on the Purple Gold Skeleton started to disintegrate, revealing the skeleton beneath the armor. Soul mes surged on the Purple Gold Skeleton, repairing the dissolving Soul Armor. Boom! Arge stone hit the Purple Gold Skeleton and exploded into dust, eliciting a few cheers. However, weapons like bows and catapults had low uracy. Despite the enthusiastic bombardment, only a few actually hit the Purple Gold Skeleton. A direct hit with a catapult suggested that the gunner was blessed by the Goddess of Fortune. However, the Purple Gold Skeleton emerged unscathed from the dust and smoke. The smoke blocked the beams of the defense tower, allowing its Soul Armor to recover significantly. Everyone realized that weapons like bows, crossbows, and catapults were ineffective against enemies of this caliber.
¡°Stop him, stop him!¡± Many people screamed shrilly, but how? The Little Angel, full of enthusiasm, wanted to surge forward. Although its true wings had been taken away by Ange, its light wings were raring to go. Ange quickly scooped it up and brought it back.
Chapter 359: 223: Finished Fighting, Time to Sleep_2 Chapter 359: Chapter 223: Finished Fighting, Time to Sleep_2 ¡°Huh?¡± The Little Angel cocked his head in confusion. ¡°Huh!¡± Ange growled back. ¡°Huh!¡± Little Angel¡¯s eyes brightened, vigorously nodding. The noises they made startled the Goblin who hadn¡¯t yet moved far away¡ªmaking him spin around quickly. Noticing Ange, the Goblin¡ªBig Mouth¡ªlet out a big yelp but quickly stopped, realizing something and then jogged over: ¡°Sir, what are you doing here?¡± ¡°Don¡¯t ask, just stay put,¡± Negris¡¯s voice echoed off Ange, ¡°and what about you? You never stay in one ce for too long. Even doing business in the Land of Fallen, impressive.¡± The Goblin was, of course, Silver Coin, and at Negris¡¯s words, he seemed confused: ¡°But I reported to you, sir.¡± No need to ask again. Most likely, themunication was cut off at Ange as he found Silver Coin¡¯s business uninteresting and couldn¡¯t be bothered to keep up. Negris sighed and simply said: ¡°Alright, you do what you need to do. Don¡¯t go too far though. If there¡¯s a need to run, we can take you with us.¡± ¡°Okay, okay, okay.¡± Upon hearing this, Silver Coin obediently stepped aside. The Little Angel was held by Ange, but the remaining Angels were free. One after another, they summoned Holy Spirits and unfurled their Light Wings.
At least six Angels, after their Holy Spirit Possession, could emanate the Holy Light sh. The six of them directed beams of light towards the Purple Gold Skeleton. The Purple Gold Skeleton swung its fists¡ªone punch after another¡ªand unbelievably deflected the beams of light as though they were simply balls to bat away. Everyone stared in disbelief. How could the Holy Light sh be countered just like that? Nothing was impossible to Ange, who watched unperturbed. Back then, the Little Angel single-handedly held back an enemy¡¯s Holy Light sh. As long as the approach was proper, breaking the Holy Light sh could be achieved. However, it was apparent that the Purple Gold Skeleton relied on brute force to break through. In the process, the Soul Armor on its hands hadpletely evaporated. Yet, some beings¡¯ bodies were far tougher than any armor¡ªthe Purple Gold Skeleton¡¯s bones tougher than the Soul Armor. The armor being shattered did not cause any harm to the creature. Suddenly, a booming voice resonated from the wall: ¡°God said: The Original Sin is a heavy shackle. Bind!¡± Sevenrge chains of light sprung from the ground, wrapping around the Purple Gold Skeleton. However, the Shackle of Original Sin couldn¡¯t stop the advance of the Purple Gold Skeleton. It only slowed it down slightly, dragging the chains until they broke. ¡°God said: At the end of your vision lies a wall separating other shores, unbreakable¡ªthe Wall of the Other Shore.¡± Suddenly, a wall of light appeared before the Purple Gold Skeleton. The Purple Gold Skeleton, without hesitation, charged directly into it.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om The unbreakable Wall of the Other Shore shattered with a loud boom, causing Dyson¡¯s face to pale as he spat out a mouthful of blood. As the enemy drew closer, the priests, Angels, and Holy Spirit knights on the walls joined forces. Columns of white light erupted from the ground, and balls of light rained down from the wall, engulfing the Purple Gold Skeleton. Yet, the Skeleton did not slow down. It continued straight towards the wall, enduring a barrage of attacks relentlessly. Even as its Soul Armor evaporated and revealed its skeletal frame, the creature did not stop. Nothing seemed able to stand in its way, in its longing for the wall¡­ A God¡¯s Knight stepped forward and loudly dered: ¡°Knights blessed by God, the time hase for your sacrifice! May the Holy Light guide our path forward!¡± With that, he jumped from the wall. The knights around him did not hesitate to follow. Inspired, several God¡¯s Knights jumped as well, but many more hesitated.
The first God¡¯s Knight to leap down led his men to meet the Purple Gold Skeleton, their collective strength forming a Sacred Charge! In front of them, a light shone brightly¡ªit truly seemed as though the Holy Light was guiding their way forward. And then, they collided with the Purple Gold Skeleton. Ever seen a bowling ball hit pins? Heroism couldn¡¯t transform into power. Their battalion was crushed and strewn about like they¡¯d been run over by a chariot. Following the initial wave, the rest of the God¡¯s Knights stopped in their tracks, despair seeping in. The enemy was too terrifying¡ªthey felt like bugs about to be crushed under a wheel.
¡°Hallelu ¨C Messiah ¨C Poxia ¨C Sisma ¨C Amaka¡ª,¡± a despairing God¡¯s Knight rang his chest te while singing a hymn. He stood in the direct path of the Purple Gold Skeleton, ayer of white light condensing around him¡ªHoly Blessing. Under his lead, the remaining God¡¯s Knights also stepped into line, casting Holy Blessing. ¡°This is the Wall of Divine Blessing! Long live the God¡¯s Knights!¡± someone screamed hoarsely. Bang! The Purple Gold Skeleton crashed into the Wall of Divine Blessing, then into the city wall. If one could have slowed down to see, at the point of impact, the city wall first indented. The stone around it waved like water, continuously swelling and spreading under the pressure, before finally exploding. But everything happened too fast. No one could see clearly¡ªthey only saw the crash, the explosion, and the gaping hole in the wall amidst the billowing smoke. Ange and the others were on the city wall in area four, far from the point of impact in area one. But they still felt the force of the impact, struggling to stand steady on the shaking wall. Those who managed to keep their footing stared anxiously at the point of impact, dimly making out therge hole. The city wall was breached¡ªwhat now? Chapter 360: 223: Finished Fighting, Go to Sleep_3 Chapter 360: Chapter 223: Finished Fighting, Go to Sleep_3 Something popped out from amidst the rolling thick smoke and thudded onto the ground. Upon closer inspection, it turned out to be a purple gold arm. Could the Purple Gold Skeleton have fallen apart? Before everyone could begin celebrating, a Purple Gold Skeleton emerged from the smoke, picked up its own arm, clicked it back into ce, and flexed it. It raised its right hand and eximed in surprise: ¡°Where¡¯s my middle finger?¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn On its palm, only half of the middle finger remained. The other half was missing. Ange turned to look at the Dimension Beast. The giant cat had somehow gotten down from Serene¡¯s arms and was digging its little paw into the spatial rift, scratching out a piece of finger bone. Seeing Ange watching, it hastily rattled the bone, casting its gaze seemingly innocently here and there with its two little ws hooking onto it. Ange continued to stare at it. Unable to bluff any longer, the Dimension Beast retracted its ws under its belly, then gave a few quick tugs. Next, it used its left paw to push the bone fragment forward. The retrieved finger bone contained two sections. Now, one section each could be allocated. Ange bent down, picked it up, and agreed to the trade implicitly. The Dimension Beast sighed in relief, put away its piece of the finger bone, and jumped onto Ange¡¯s shoulder in one move. Holding onto Ange¡¯s head, it propped itself up to have a far sight. The Purple Gold Skeleton searched for its middle finger for a while, but it couldn¡¯t find it. Not bothering further, it turned around with its back to the city wall and began to howl towards the Land of Deathly Silence: ¡°Woo~~~¡± Afar on the ground, the carpet formed by the undead began to writhe like a tide rushing forward.
The Purple Gold Skeleton muttered: ¡°Time to sleep after the battle,¡± then began to hobble back, not even ncing at the city wall behind it. The defensive line that humans have held for over a thousand years was just like that- broken. The skeleton who managed to break it acted as if it had aplished something trivial and wanted to go back to sleep. However, judging by its limping figure, things were probably not as easy as they seemed. On the tform behind the city wall, Dyson could no longer stand because his legs had gone weak. He looked dazedly at the retreating Purple Gold Skeleton and mumbled: ¡°Is¡­this the power of the Lord of Mourning? Is it really so terrifying?¡± Someone came over from behind to support him, saying: ¡°Sir, it¡¯s time to leave.¡± ¡°Leave?¡± Dyson was taken aback: ¡°Where to?¡± His subordinate replied: ¡°Back to the Master ne for continued defense.¡± Dyson asked dazedly: ¡°Can it still hold?¡± ¡°Of course, the Master ne has a powerful dimensional barrier. It¡¯s easier to defend. Besides, sir, isn¡¯t returning to the Master ne what you¡¯ve been wanting?¡± With that, Dyson¡¯s eyes brightened. Indeed, from this perspective, the fall of the Land of Fallen doesn¡¯t seem so bad. ¡°Let¡¯s go!¡± Dyson, who had regained hisposure, rushed to the Teleportation Array with his loyal subordinates. However, evacuating everyone in such a short period was impossible. Before all the people of Holy Wall City could leave, the Undead Tide had already surged up and poured into the city through the broken wall. One of the undead saints drifted at the forefront, shouting loudly: ¡°Don¡¯t kill indiscriminately, they are all resources. Just capture them.¡± Big Bone cautiously avoided others and walked along the wall, so as not to knock off anything. However, it soon bumped into another Golden Skeleton who was also walking against the wall. Big Bone waved its arms with its teeth bared: ¡°Roar~¡± It was ready to scare the other party into giving way. The Golden Skeleton looked at it, tilted its head, and suddenly waved its hands at Big Bone: ¡°Roar Roar!¡± Chapter 361: 224: Is Nursery Technology Outdated?_1 Chapter 361: Chapter 224: Is Nursery Technology Outdated?_1 Ange had the misfortune of running into a doltish skeleton and was quite exasperated. He quietly walked along the wall, intending to leave Holy Wall City, then either wait for the Undead Tide to recede or for the eternal night to pass and then look for a teleportation array to leave. There must be other teleportation arrays in the Land of Fallen that could take him back to the Master ne. If worsees to worst, he could wait for Big Cat to recover and then return via the space passage. Unexpectedly, he ran headlong into a three-meter-tall giant golden skeleton. The other party possessed a Soul Heart that was several times stronger than an ordinary golden skeleton, matched with a robust body, itsbat power was probably quite formidable. Unfortunately, it wasn¡¯t quite bright, as it snarled at Ange after opening its jaws and shaking its ws. Ange thought it was speaking in Aoaonguage and naturally, he snarled back. As it turned out, it was just howling, trying to frighten (or act cute), there was no meaning to convey. The misunderstanding went back and forth a few times between them, and Ange gave up, pushed it aside and headed east. The Undead Tide has now surged into the western side of the Central Mountain Range, resulting in fewer undead creatures on the east side. Ange nned to spend some time in Bridgehead Vige. Surprisingly, the doltish skeleton followed him. With a dull voice, it started talking: ¡°Hello, my name is Big Bone. What¡¯s your name¡­¡± ¡°Haven¡¯t seen you before, have you just awakened?¡± ¡°Where are you going? Harvey told us to go west¡­¡±
¡°Well, fine, don¡¯t go. After all, Harvey is not our king¡­¡± ¡°Why is your left hand bone purple like Harvey¡¯s? Are you one of Harvey¡¯s people?¡± ¡°¡­¡± Ange didn¡¯t really care, but Negris projected on him couldn¡¯t take it and said, ¡°Stop following me!¡± ¡°Who are you? Why are you on him?¡± asked Big Bone. ¡°Eh? You can detect me?¡± Negris was astonished. It had projected itself on Ange many times, but this giant golden skeleton was the first to notice it. Big Bone nodded, ¡°Harvey has one too, but it doesn¡¯t speak.¡± ¡°You mean, there¡¯s a consciousness like me on Harvey? Is Harvey that purple-gold skeleton?¡± Negris questioned. ¡°Yes.¡± ¡°Then why are you following us?¡± Negris asked. ¡°You scared me,¡± said Big Bone. ¡°When did we intimidate you!?¡± Negris involuntarilyined. What in the world, when did Ange ever intimidate it? ¡°Aoao,¡± Big Bone mimicked with open jaws and waving ws. ¡°Weren¡¯t we just scaring you back because you were scaring us?¡± Negris was getting frustrated. This skeleton was simply trying to frame them. ¡°I was scaring you,¡± Big Bone said happily. ¡°Yes, you scared us, we only intimidated you in response,¡± Negris asserted. ¡°You scared me,¡± Big Bone repeated. Negris realized he was being led around in circles by this silly skeleton. It scared them, they intimidated it back; it then followed them because they intimidated it. Why was he being dragged into this loop? ¡­ Who was the real fool, exactly? Nevermind, let it follow. Negris was left speechless.
Ange turned around and continued walking in front, Big Bone hurriedly followed: ¡°Hello, my name is Big Bone. What¡¯s your name¡­¡± To prevent this doltish skeleton from repeating the same question over and over again, Negris reluctantly replied: ¡°My name is Negris, and this is Ange.¡± ¡°Oh, nice to meet you, my name is Big Bone.¡± Big Bone responded. ¡°We know, we know. You¡¯ve said it several times. Big Bone, why are you following us?¡± Negris asked, even though it was him who kept repeating the same question.
However, Big Bone did not give the same answer but said joyfully, ¡°You¡¯re not scared of collisions.¡± ¡°??¡± What kind of odd reply is this? Not afraid of collisions, so it follows? Why doesn¡¯t it go follow that purple-gold skeleton? Naturally, it was fated that normal people wouldn¡¯t understand. Big Bone was a fragile skeleton with a wounded heart. But with it following like this, it was inconvenient for Ange to return to Bridgehead Vige. So he decided to climb the mountain and return to the cave located halfway up the peak which they had visited before. As soon as he approached the cave, Ange heard an unusual noise. ¡°Rats?¡± Could it be rats digging at his seeds again? As he approached quickly, Ange gathered his power, ready to unleash a Soul Storm at them. However, when he charged into the cave, he saw a group of elderly, weak, women, and children instead. The elderly, women, children, all very weak, were resting by the edge of the cave, leaving the central area where the crops were nted untouched. The light in the cave was inadequate, and the nted crops had barely sprouted. The crowd all screamed in fright at the sight of a golden skeleton charging in aggressively, crying out and scrambling to retreat deep into the cave. An undead drifted over and blocked Ange¡¯s path, snapping at him, ¡°Don¡¯t hurt the humans, get out!¡± Ange tilted his head. He recognized this undead; wasn¡¯t this Feirick? How did hee back? And with so many elderly and weak humans?n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om However, the other party didn¡¯t seem to recognize Ange, which was normal, as Ange had taken off his hat. As a higher-order undead, facing a golden skeleton, Feirick still had a bit of a psychological advantage, hoping his stern admonishment would make the other party obediently retreat, otherwise, it will be trouble.
A golden skeleton going crazy would be unstoppable by a counting undead like him, and all the humans here would die. Right after Feirick finished speaking, a dull voice came from outside the cave: ¡°Don¡¯t climb so fast, wait for me.¡± Then a three-meter-tall giant golden skeleton, scraping the cave ceiling, crawled in. Chapter 362: 224: Is Nursery Technology Outdated?_2 Chapter 362: Chapter 224: Is Nursery Technology Outdated?_2 Its arrival terrified the humans even more. Screams and cries echoed in the cave, converging and racing towards the cave entrance. Big Bone was stunned by the screams, dumbly watching the humans in the cave for a few seconds before reacting: ¡°Ah! There are so many people!¡± Then he turned and ran. ¡°¡­¡± ¡°¡­¡± Negris helplessly said, ¡°Ferick, it¡¯s us.¡± Hearing this voice, Ferick immediately responded, ¡°Lord Nage? Why have you turned into a skeleton?¡± Negris, tired of exining, retorted, ¡°Never mind that for now, what¡¯s going on with you? Why are there so many humans? And why did you bring them here?¡± ¡°Ah, Lord, it¡¯s like this: these are all the families and friends of my customers on the opposite mountain. The Holy Wall City has fallen, and everyone is terrified and didn¡¯t know what to do. Although the undead have been announcing everywhere that the Undead Army does not kill, everyone is still very scared, so they entrusted their families to me,¡± Ferick exined. ¡°We walked over the mountain and we¡¯re very tired, so I led everyone to rest here for a while. Don¡¯t worry, Lord, I¡¯ve repeatedly warned them not to trespass on your territory,¡± Ferick vowed. Negris swept his gaze over the humans. None of them were in good shape, their lips cracked, their eyes vacant, weak and listless.¡±
¡°What¡¯s going on? Is there no water?¡± Negris asked. Ferick responded, ¡°Yes, we left in such a hurry that we didn¡¯t bring enough water. The water we did bring was long gone, and there¡¯s no water source on the mountain. Possibly, there might be water in some gaps between the rocks, but I usually don¡¯t drink water and don¡¯t pay much attention. It¡¯s toote to find it now, we just have to endure until we get to the foot of the mountain.¡± Negris looked at the humans, concerned, ¡°Can they make it down the mountain? Going down the mountain is far more difficult than going up.¡± ¡°Ah, we¡¯ll try our best,¡± Ferick sighed helplessly. With so many elderly and weak, even an undead like him couldn¡¯t look after them all. As they spoke, the humans in the cave, who had been terrified before, gradually calmed down. They were only startled in the first ce. Those who were willing to flee with an undead creature were not especially afraid of the undead. Seeing that Ange did not seem to tear them apart, they gradually quieted down. Among them, a seven or eight-year-old boy, perhaps too thirsty to bear any longer, suddenly ran over and held up a Soul Crystal to Ange, ¡°Can I buy water from you?¡± Ferick gaped, ¡°Tiny Brandon, how do you have a Soul Crystal?¡± ¡°Pfft, what did you call him? Are you from the Brand family?¡± Negris spluttered, couldn¡¯t be that much of a coincidence, could there? Were there actually vigers from Brand Vige here? ncing carefully, there were indeed. Several faces were familiar, clear acquaintances, but he could not recall their names. Tiny Brandon responded, ¡°My grandfather gave it to me.¡± ¡°Your grandfather, couldn¡¯t possibly be him, could it?¡± Negris asked. Ange reached out and pulled out Brand, Little Brand, Tiny Brandon one by one. These people named their children so randomly. As soon as Little Brand emerged, he eximed, ¡°Snot Worm, what are you doing here?¡± Tiny Brandon screamed in delight, ¡°Dad!? Dad!? Howe you suddenly appeared?¡± Little Brand also found many familiar faces from the vigers in the refugees, and ran over in surprise and worry. As they were all acquaintances and had even given money (Soul Crystal), Ange had to fetch a bucket from his space dimension. He performed magic to fill it up, like pouring water. Fearing anyone might contract the gue, Ange carried out a Purification spell, transforming the water in the bucket into Holy Water. To the parched refugees, the sound made by Ange performing magic to pour water sounded like music. Everyone turned to look at the same time. When Ange filled the bucket with water and cast Holy Light, everyone was stunned and fell on their knees, muttering, ¡°This¡­ is this the Holy Skeleton? God, he creates water out of thin air. Is this a miracle?¡±
People who are hungry tend to have particrly strong faith, and the same goes for those who are dying of thirst. Ange could only sense a wave of pure Soul mes being thrown at him. And all these Soul mes were directed at him, not the light. Ange tilted his head in confusion. Why had this change urred? Could it be because of the name ¡®Holy Skeleton¡¯? When it came to matters of faith, even Negris was at a loss, so he was more so. He threw his doubts aside, toozy to think. Brand, who stood beside him, observed everyone¡¯s deep reverence and heard the calls for a ¡®Holy Skeleton¡¯, his expression was incrediblyplicated.
Having been to the Resting Pce, he naturally knew what the skeleton in front of him was ¨C not some ¡®holy skeleton¡¯ at all. It was the biggest boss of the Undead Empire. However, as a shrewd man, he also realized that no matter who Ange was, there was nothing he could do about it. Blow the whistle? Given the current circumstances, even if he shouted aloud that this was the big boss of the Undead Empire, would anyone believe him? Thinking about the miracles that Ange had demonstrated while harvesting crops in the vige, even ordinary people who had been to the Resting Pce might not realize Ange¡¯s true identity, like his two stupid sons and nephew. Others might not believe him, but his fate would be sealed. He was sure to die a clean death, not even a soul would be left behind. The fact that Ange dared to let him in and out meant that he had a way to keep his mouth shut. After pondering, it seemed that there was only one path left. Brand drew his longsword and knelt on one knee, saying earnestly, ¡°Lord Ange, Brand swears his loyalty to you.¡± There were no empty terms like light and holy, just a simple oath. However, after his Soul me entered Ange¡¯s body, a new symbol formed in his soul ¡ª a mental connection was established between them. Negris couldn¡¯t feel this mental connection, but he was very happy with Brand¡¯s move, and praised, ¡°You did the right thing, or else the next time you wouldn¡¯t be able to get out.¡± ¡­ Main ne, Fallen Dragon Lake, Kael¡¯danil rolled up his trousers, squatting on the ridge with a miserable face, tears welling but not falling. There was not an iota of the grace of a high-ranking elf priest left in him. The sound of clopping hooves rang out as a unicorn carrying Gardnded, asking with surprise, ¡°Lan Dai, what¡¯s wrong?¡± Kael¡¯danil turned his head and said to Gard with a mournful face, ¡°Your Majesty, please bring Ange and the others back. I¡­I¡¯ve killed their rice.¡±
¡°What?! Killed it?¡± Gard¡¯s eyes widened in shock. The unicorn, too, widened its eyes in disbelief, as if hearing something incredible. Kael¡¯danil, the high-ranking elf druid, the one who cares for the World Tree. If druids were ranked in the world, Kael¡¯danil would undoubtedly be one of the best. There was hardly anything in the world she couldn¡¯t cultivate, so how could she have killed the rice? Kael¡¯danil had a dejected look on her face. Her confidence had taken a severe blow. Although she couldn¡¯t grow the World Tree seedlings sessfullyst time, that was not strange. What would be truly surprising was if she had seeded. That was probably due to Ange¡¯s good luck in encountering the right environment, which had nothing to do with ability. But this time, what she faced was Saline Demon Rice, which, though saline, was still rice. The processes of flowering, filling, and pollination, were all within Kael¡¯danil¡¯s grasp. The yield she obtained in the end was 20 percent higher than Ange¡¯s cultivation. When she took over, half of the growing period had already passed, yet she was still able to increase the yield by 20 percent. If she managed it throughout the growing period, wouldn¡¯t an increase of 40 or 50 percent be a piece of cake? Kael¡¯danil, brimming with self-assurance, selected and cultivated the best Saline Demon Rice after harvesting the crops. The idea was good, but the reality was, she couldn¡¯t sprout a single seedling.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Could my seedling cultivation technique be wrong?¡± Kael¡¯danil asked, somewhat uncertain. If it had been any other method that had failed, she would have been able to ept it. However, the fact that she couldn¡¯t sprout seedlings, like with the World Tree, this made her begin to doubt whether her seedling cultivation technology was outdated. Chapter 363: 225: Dare to Burn My Fields? _1 Chapter 363: Chapter 225: Dare to Burn My Fields? _1 Kael¡¯danil never would have imagined that there existed a crop in the world that needed the blessing of the Little Sapling to germinate. Of course, it wouldn¡¯t grow without it. ¡°What do I do? If they die, the God of Life will be very angry.¡± Kael¡¯danil was almost in tears. Now that their rtionship with Ange had turned out this way, the Elf n bore all responsibility. They had even bitten the hand that feeds, in a manner of speaking. Initially, when they saw the God of Life losing all its leaves, they panicked and got angry. But now, two monthster, the facts had proven that Lord Nage did not lie. The Tree of Life had indeed not died. Beneath the surface, the branch was tenderly green, its condition unprecedentedly good. Even those diseased branches were showing signs of improvement; the grey spots on their bark were fading, even disappearing. Lord Ange truly was healing the God of Life. And yet now, the Elf n not only terrified the God of Life¡¯s savior and made him flee, but also killed the new crop they cultivated. When the God of Life awakens, just how angry will he be? If it were an ordinary crop, it wouldn¡¯t have mattered. They could justpensate, even tenfold. With the elves¡¯ wealth and bravado, they wouldn¡¯t really care about money. But the problem was, they could notpensate for this. The Saline Demon Rice, a high-yielding crop grown unprecedentedly in salty soil. If it died, it would not only be a loss for Ange but also for all living species. Although there were no urate statistics, at least 20% of the ne¡¯s arablend was alkalinized. That meant if all were to be cultivated, the total arablend of this ne would increase by at least 20%. The entire ne, an increase of 20%, could sustain hundreds of millions more people. This was a seriously scary number.
And that was just the alkalinizednd. It didn¡¯t even take into ount the marshes and shallow waters along the coastlines. If they were to be utilized as well, it would undoubtedly be a divine artifact that could change the entire continent¡¯s situation. Now, this divine artifact was soon to be killed off by her. Aside from everything else, the guilt of being a druid who killed off a new species was enough to make her cry. Gard¡¯s expression also turned heavy. He¡¯d heard Kael¡¯danil repeatedly emphasize the importance of the Saline Demon Rice. If it really died, evenpensating with her life would be useless. ¡°What do we do now?¡± Gard asked.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om ¡°Find Lord Ange and apologize to him.¡± ¡­ The Elf n started searching the world for Ange. Meanwhile, the Ange they were looking for was squatting on a stone tform, watching humans process rice. And he realized that humans had plenty of ways to hull grains. Of course, there were the traditional pestle and mortars, but there were also things like rolling mills where you put rice between two t stones and then pressed and slid the upper stone by force. There were also rollers, hammers, and such. Even if each method was inefficient, there weren¡¯t any shortage of hands. After somemotion, they had a pile of hulled rice. Everyone put the rice into a bucket and started to watch Ange eagerly. They no longer found the skeleton horrifying but rather warm and a bit handsome. After all, who wouldn¡¯t look handsome when they pull out a bucket of water and rice in a time of thirst and hunger? s, there was no pot. Cooking the rice became another challenge. Ange, however, didn¡¯t find it difficult. He poured water into a wooden barrel, covering the rice by a palm¡¯s height, and then mobilized the Fire Element. In no time, the water in the wooden barrel started to boil. Nagris came over and said, ¡°Be careful. Don¡¯t set the barrel on fire.¡± After summoning Brand and the other two, Ange had also conveniently ¡®summoned¡¯ the rest. Everyone thought it was summoning, including Brand himself. They didn¡¯t think Ange was reaching through space to pull them out from another dimension, which was apletely different challenge. Seeing thisbination of people with varying identities, dragons, horses, humans, cats, and even a saint, Brand had already be familiar and didn¡¯t even feel like asking about them. If any viger had doubts, he would immediately go warn them, so everybody got used to this group. Of course, Ange wouldn¡¯t burn the barrel. He controlled all the Fire Element within the bucket¡¯s range, which only contained water and rice. Once activated, the heat was rapidly transferred into the water. As long as the water didn¡¯t dry up, the wooden barrel wouldn¡¯t catch fire. The heat caused the water to boil, heating the rice. Soon, the rice in the barrel turned into gruel, bubbling deliciously.
All the people could not help but gather around, hungrily eyeing the barrel full of gruel, and swallowing their saliva. ¡°It¡¯s so thick! If you put the spoon in, it won¡¯t sink. It¡¯s too thick! I¡¯ve never had such thick gruel at the festival of Holy Light. Can we eat it yet?¡± ¡°Yeah, yeah. Who gets to eat such thick gruel? Only the nobles in Holy Wall City can afford such gruel. If it was up to me, I wouldn¡¯t dare to use so much rice.¡± Some women¡¯s eyes were gleaming as they exchanged whispers. In this barren ne, many people had never seen food steamed with pure grain. Whether porridge, rice, or bread, everything was mixed with a lot that could fill the stomach.
Such as wild vegetables, tree bark, moss, mushrooms, and even white mud. They made one meal¡¯s worth of grain stretch to two or three meals. Nobody cared about the taste anymore, as long as they could fill their stomachs. If they didn¡¯t mix everything together, they would finish the grain but couldn¡¯t finish the rest. The bucket of gruel that Ange cooked was something they didn¡¯t dare to cook even during the grandest festival. The only time they could eat such food was during the Holy Light Festival. The grand cathedral in Holy Wall City would issue free Holy Bread from the monks, priests, and saints. It was the best food that most people could eat in their entire life. Chapter 364: 225: Dare to Burn My Field?_2 Chapter 364: Chapter 225: Dare to Burn My Field?_2 If Ange¡¯s pot of porridge could be shared amongst them, the best food in their hearts might just be this pot of porridge. However, as the porridge was boiling, Ange did not stop, but kept cooking, a lot of vapor evaporating, leaving less and less porridge in the pot. At this sight, many people couldn¡¯t help but worry: ¡°Still cooking? It¡¯ll dry up if he cooks any more!¡± ¡°Uh, Lord Skeleton, are you trying to cook the legendary rice?¡± ¡°Rice? The legend says that even if you stick a spoon in it, it won¡¯t fall over, it¡¯s made entirely of grain, and a few bites could keep you from hunger for days?¡± The topic of rice was suddenly stirred up, everyone, enduring their hunger, excitedly discussed the legend of ¡®rice¡¯, which had been exaggerated countless times. Their words reached Negris¡¯s ears, and he found it both amusing and pitiful. Even the daily food of the Master ne could be deified. One could only imagine what the everyday life of these bottom-dwelling residents of the Land of Fallen was like. Thinking of therge-necked children in the slum, Negris said, ¡°Add some salt, or it¡¯ll be nd. You still have some of the little fattymb pickled meat left, right? Cut a few slices of that.¡± Even Brand couldn¡¯t stand it anymore and leaned over to whisper, ¡°Sir, did you just say salt?¡± ¡°Yes, salt. What¡¯s wrong?¡± Negris asked, puzzled. Fallen Dragon Lake is a saltke, and there are natural salt-alkalinds by theke. If one needs salt, they just need to dig it up. Ange has dug up a few bags and kept them in his space.
Actually, when they were in the slum, Negris wanted to give the little girl some salt, but he was afraid that she would be robbed, so he didn¡¯t take it out. Brand said with emotion, ¡°It¡¯s too precious. The salt here is almost more expensive than gold.¡± Soon the rice was cooked, vored with a suitable amount of salt and pickled meat, many were salivating over the fragrant dish. Having no bowls, Ange molded rice balls and handed one out to each person to gnaw on. Many shed tears of happiness, and Ange harvested arge amount of pure Soul me. With this pot of rice, these humans¡¯ affection for Ange soared, already starting to call him Lord Skeleton. Once everyone had eaten their fill, Brand and his men began escorting the vigers down the mountain. Serene warmly invited them to settle in Bridgehead Town. In the Land of Fallen, viges with too few inhabitants can¡¯t survive. After the eternal night, the first ces to disappear are always those viges with scarce human poptions. Not long after leaving the cave, they saw the bored Big Bone loitering past, ogling in the direction of the cave. Negris flew over and asked curiously, ¡°Why haven¡¯t you left yet?¡± ¡°Is it you?¡± Big Bone instantly recognized, this was the consciousness that was attached to Ange earlier. ¡°It¡¯s more convenient this way, but you? Why are you afraid of humans?¡± Negris asked in confusion. Big Bone replied dejectedly, ¡°Too fragile, they fall apart, I can¡¯t put them back together.¡± Negris was taken aback, ¡°You mean, human arms, heads, and the like, they fall off and can¡¯t be put back together, so you¡¯re afraid of breaking them?¡± Big Bone nodded. ¡°You¡¯re really a kind skeleton, but you should stay away, preferably not following us.¡± Negris tried to persuade it to leave. ¡°No, you guys will hurt me.¡± Big Bone adamantly clung to this point. But seeing the humanse over, Big Bone ran away again. It seemed they had attracted a nuisance. Big Bone kept following them from a distance, never getting close to the humans, but also refusing to leave. Negris was at a loss, hoping this naive skeleton would get bored from hanging around too long and leave on its own.
Unfortunately, before that hope coulde true, he turned around to find that Little Zombie and Little Angel were missing, and when he turned back again, the two little ones had somehow run in front of Big Bone, hollering at it, saying who knows what. Negris¡¯ heart was in his mouth. Little Zombie was one thing, but Little Angel was now a real angel, and she possessed genuine Power of Holy Light. She was innately ipatible with the Undead. He prayed they wouldn¡¯t start fighting. pping his wings, he was about to rush over, but then Big Bone opened its hand, and Little Angel hopped onto its palm, then leapt onto its shoulder and sat down. ¡°Ahh!¡±
¡°Aow? Don¡¯t understand, my name is Big Bone, what¡¯s your name?¡± ¡°Aow!¡± ¡°You¡¯re called ¡®Aow¡¯? Nice to meet you, I¡¯m Big Bone.¡± ¡°Aow Aow!¡± ¡°Aow Aow!¡± It was as evident as chalk and cheese, but miraculously, these three could string together a conversation. In the end, Little Zombie also climbed onto Big Bone¡¯s shoulder, and Big Bone carried the two around in a mad dash.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Is this how it works? This is how you make friends?¡± Negris was dumbfounded. Once he confirmed they were not going to fight, Negris felt relieved and flew towards Ange¡¯s position. Mid-flight, the Communication Domino around his neck suddenly rang. ¡°Ladies, gentlemen, zombies, skeletons, hello there. After three hundred years ofpanionship, it¡¯s time to say goodbye. The mission of the front-line ry station has officially ended. We have broken through the human defence line, seized the entire Land of Fallen, and opened the way home. Resting Pce, here wee.¡± The enthusiastic speech was made by the same fellow who had cursed Ange for being crazy. The Communication Domino fell silent for a while before a feeble voice rang out: ¡°This is No. 3 Ry Tower, don¡¯t you know that after we capture the Land of Fallen, we need to invade the Master ne to return to the Resting Abyss? We need to check if the World Transfer Station is intact. If it isn¡¯t broken, we can send the request, and wait for the response from Resting Pce before we can enter it, right?¡± ¡°What?! There are so many stages? Oh God, how long do I have to wait to return?¡± The voice of the guy who cursed Ange for being crazy sounded like he was on the verge of tears. ¡°How long? The Master ne has a ne Barrier, which is much harder than the Land of Fallen. It took more than a thousand years to conquer this ce, it may take about three thousand years for the Master ne, who knows?¡± The weak voice replied.
¡°Three thousand years?! I¡¯ll get bored to death! I don¡¯t want to, I quit.¡± ¡°If you don¡¯t want to work, just tell the Great Sage. Someone will rece you.¡± ¡°Can you quit?¡± The guy who called Ange crazy was utterly dumbfounded. ¡°Of course, you can. There¡¯s nothing wrong with that. Just say the word.¡± ¡°But the guy who sent me here said: if you don¡¯t want to work, wait till you¡¯re dead.¡± ¡°Are you still alive?¡± ¡°I¡­¡± ¡°Hello? What? Hello? Have you run away?¡± No matter how much the weak voice called out, the guy who called Ange crazy never responded again. ¡°He ran so fast. What a waste. The perks at the ry tower are so good, yet some don¡¯t want to work. Thend near the ry tower is yours, if you¡¯re bored, raise some pets or shelter some humans, cultivate thend, grow crops, build a town and it would be lively. Speaking of, buying salt. Anyone who has salt, please contact me at the No. 3 Ry Tower.¡± As soon as the words ¡®cultivate thend and grow crops¡¯ were spoken from the Communication Domino, Negris felt another presence in front of him. His heart sank and he sensed trouble. Sure enough, looking up, he was met with Ange standing before him, the Soul mes in his eye sockets nearly bursting out as he stared intently at the Communication Domino. With a lot of nerve, Negris said, ¡°We¡­we nt when we get back to the Master ne, okay? The soil there is richer.¡± Ange shook his head: ¡°There are elves.¡±
Summoning his courage, Negris said: ¡°Should we nt when we get back to the Resting Abyss? There are no elves there.¡± Ange shook his head: ¡°The soil is not fertile.¡± ¡°But it¡¯s too dangerous here. Who knows if that Harvey will find us and burn your fields?¡± Negris tried to persuade, ¡°The Land of Fallen, do you know what kind of ce this is?¡± This was a ne recently unified by the undead with the Lord of Mourning lurking around. It was extremely dangerous. Negris never imagined that Ange would entertain the idea of farming here. But on second thought, Ange hadn¡¯t really farmed since he was expelled from the Master ne by elves, and there wasn¡¯t another ce with a better soil condition than here. Realizing these points, Negris knew he was in trouble ¨C the Purple Gold Skeleton might not be able to stop Ange with his farming spirit¡­ Sure enough, Ange¡¯s skull emitted a fierce Soul Fire, speaking in a threatening tone, ¡°Dare to burn my field?¡± Big Bone, who was ying with Little Angel and Little Zombie, suddenly felt a chill down his spine and instinctively turned his head to look over. Chapter 365: 226: The Businessman’s Tricks_1 Chapter 365: Chapter 226: The Businessman¡¯s Tricks_1 Ange was ordinarily just a skeleton, if flung into the wilderness, he would presumably either squat somewhere or wander around, indistinguishable from themon skeletons. Without Negris pointing out anything to him, he wouldn¡¯t probably bother to move.
However, as soon as ites to sowing, his initiative bes extraordinarily strong. The first thing he does is find the Big Bone to inquire about the ry station¡¯s location, then he hurries off with his team, leaving behind a bunch of bewildered refugees and Serene, who is holding the big cat. The big cat jumps down from Serene¡¯s embrace, turns its head and roars at her, then runs in the direction of Ange. Its slightly stumbling steps reveal its weakness. Big Bone looks back and roars, the big cat swiftly nods in response, jumps onto Big Bone¡¯s palm, and scuttles up his arm. It quickly crawls to the top of Big Bone¡¯s head, flops down, its flesh and fur hanging down, neatly covering its brain case. Big Bone says with concern, ¡°Be careful, I am very strong, I might hurt you.¡± Negris, hearing this up ahead, smirks and whispers: ¡°If you could hurt a Dimension Beast, you would certainly have to be stronger than a Purple Gold Skeleton.¡± ¡­
No. 3 Ry Tower is located 120 kilometers from Holy Wall City. Following the 40-kilometer coverage range, a ry tower is set up every 40 kilometers to transmit the signal of the Communication Domino. This is the third one, its master is named riant. After over six hundred years of operation, a small town has formed near No. 3 Ry Tower, housing more than a thousand people. riant had just fed the Ry Spirit and was leisurelying down. As he arrives at the base of the tower, the housekeeper meets him: ¡°Sir, the old man from town came to visit you just now.¡± ¡°Oh? Where is he now?¡± ¡°He just left,¡± replied the housekeeper. ¡°Did he say what it¡¯s about?¡± riant asked. The housekeeper replied, ¡°It¡¯s about the salt again, all of it was finished a few days ago. Now, the townsfolk are increasingly feeling fatigued, they can¡¯t work on some of the heavier tasks.¡± ¡°Sigh, I¡¯ve already sent out a purchase request, I don¡¯t know when there will be a response. Let everyone hold on a little longer,¡± said riant in distress, but without harboring much hope. Because the primary source of salt came from humans, and now with humans being driven out, their source has been cut off. Although humans fleeing in panic left behind many supplies, including salt, but when it¡¯s all consumed and without new supplies, the humans under his care will still die. Not only had riant to ponder about the salt shortages now, but also had to consider whether he could continue to foster these thousand plus townsfolk? If he can¡¯t afford to keep them, does he kill them all? Or let them fend for themselves?
Since six hundred years ago when riant was dispatched here to manage No. 3 Ry Tower, these humans and their ancestors have been relying on him for survival. Guarding the ry station is a very tedious job. One always has to stay near the tower, cannot go too far, and one cannot fall into a deep slumber. Unlike other undeads who, when bored, can sleep off their time, sleep until everything is spinning, and then wake up feeling as though no time has passed at all. They can¡¯t do this, they need to stay awake at all times, feeding the Ry Spirit every day, keeping the ry station working continuously. As long as one ry tower stops working,munication will fail. Staying awake for a year or two is fine, but when it goes on for too long, it bes so boring that you¡¯d want to die, many people would begin to develop mental issues. So, the welfare at the ry tower is very good, as long as you feed the Ry Spirit well and don¡¯t let it strike, even if you overturn everything near the ry tower, no one bothers. It is virtually your privatend. ording to a ry tower¡¯s forty kilometers coverage range, everything within a diameter of forty kilometers bes your domain, which is such an expansive area. ording to riant¡¯s self-consoling words, ¡°The area I rule over, if ced in the Master ne, would at least be considered an earldom.¡± Of course, if it was possible, he would dly swap his vast territory for even just a manor in the Master ne, let alone for an Earldom. When he got too bored, riant initially was clueless about what to do, until one day, when a farmer came to visit him with his wife and children, they asked if they could settle in his territory. There was a river here, which would flood during eternal night, making it a suitable ce for farming and settling. riant, who had been bored for too long, was naturally very weing. He personally helped them dig a well, build a shack, and guided them to settle in. riant¡¯s enthusiasm spread from one person to ten, and from ten to hundreds. As a result, more and more people came to settle here and slowly, this ce became a small town.
As the number of settlers increased, riant found himself no longer as bored as before. In his spare time, he could chat with the town elders, y with the children, help in repairing the houses and wells, help in harvesting crops, and even enjoy watching the light band together during the eternal night.N?v(el)B\\jnn Moreover, humans have a strong ability to survive. Given a space, they would farm and produce their own food, procreate, and reproduce. riant actually didn¡¯t provide much help, he had merely granted them a piece ofnd, and it slowly became a small town. Chapter 366: 226: The Way of the Merchant_2 Chapter 366: Chapter 226: The Way of the Merchant_2 The only thing that humans can¡¯t do on their own is probably acquiring salt, they can¡¯t buy salt, they need riant¡¯s help.
Regrettably, in current circumstances, riant also can¡¯t acquire salt and in the foreseeable future, salt will be scarcer and scarcer. Even other daily necessities will be fewer and fewer. By then, will the Land of Fallen be capable of supporting so many living organisms? What a headache! Having been living together for 600 years, riant can¡¯t just sit and watch everyone die. To save everyone, salt is needed, even food. As years of farming went by, crops yield in the town has been declining year by year. For the past decades, he¡¯s had to buy from outside to fill the gap. If this continues, the food shortage will grow bigger. But increasing food production in the Land of Fallen is not something easy, what to do? Can¡¯t think about it, thinking only brings soul pain. The steward came back all of a sudden, speaking with a weird expression, ¡°Uh, sir, there¡¯s someone here to see you.¡±
This steward is a descendant of the first farming family that riant took in. He and his ancestors have always served as riant¡¯s stewards. They have seen all sorts of bizarre and grotesque Undead, why would a visitor result in such an expression? riant asked curiously, ¡°Who is it?¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°A goblin.¡± Goblin? Of course, there are goblins in the Land of Fallen, those creatures who worship money and engineering, wherever there is the scent of gold coins, they are there. But here at the No. 3 Ry Tower, there isn¡¯t the scent of gold coins. riant is as poor as a church mouse, except for some Soul Crystals umted over a long period, he can¡¯t offer anything valuable, so no goblin has visited him in 600 years. Of course, they might not be able toe here. Goblins are primarily centered in the human¡¯s Holy Wall City. riant, with intense curiosity, met the visiting goblin which wore a warm smile on its face, ¡°I apologize for the abrupt visit, I heard you need salt? The Silver Chamber of Commerce is at your service, but the human¡¯s Holy Wall City has been overrun, Soul and Demon Crystals and other hardmodities are not so valuable anymore, would you be willing to consider an alternative method of payment?¡± After hearing what the silver coin said, riant was dumbstruck: ¡°Is there such a good deal?¡± ¡°Of course, salt is here, as long as you provide a feasible method, all of these are yours. Because we heard about your needs from the Communication Domino, and that¡¯s why we came. My boss wishes to have a private territory like yours to sow crops,¡± the silver coin said sincerely and truthfully. As a Goblin Merchant, the silver coin had long mastered the ability to speak thenguage of each race, the moment he saw riant, he knew how to deal with such an honest and good-hearted old man. ¡°Aren¡¯t you afraid I¡¯ll rob you?¡± Seeing the silver coin, unashamedly ced a bag of salt, riant was shocked. This goblin doesn¡¯t seem strong, how carelessly he acts, has he no sense of caution? The silver coinughed, ¡°Of course not, unless you only need this bag of salt and don¡¯t want any more in the future, otherwise no one would cut off their own supply lines, and moreover¡­¡±
When he said ¡®moreover¡¯, the silver coin closed his eyes loudly and called out, ¡°Boss, this guy says he wants to rob our salt!¡± As soon as the words fell, riant instantly felt the goblin before him changing, a very terrifying presence descending on him, the next moment, the silver coin opened his eyes, the gaze in his eyes seemed like they could freeze riant¡¯s soul. After what seemed like forever, riant felt someone waiving palms in front of him. After a few ps to his face, he finally came to his senses and asked nkly, ¡°Why did you hit me?¡± The silver coin apologized, ¡°Sorry, sorry, I genuinely apologize, my boss was too heavy-handed, and you were hurt, my deepest apologies, this Soul Crystal is topensate, please don¡¯t take offense.¡± While saying that, he grasped riant¡¯s hand and deposited a Soul Crystal into his palm. riant holding this Soul Crystal took a while toe back to his senses, remembering what happened just now, this goblin seemed to have called his boss and shot him an angry re¡­ riant had a cold shiver, the Soul Crystal in his hand felt as hot as a heated metal, quickly refusing to ept it. My god, projecting over here, and just one nce stunned him, what kind of being is this? Can he ept money from such a being? Doesn¡¯t he want to live? riant was ovee with fear, no wonder this goblin carelessly revealed a bag of salt worth more than gold, could it be that his backer is that formidable? riant wanted to cry, why would he say something like that? Oh, God, he hopes that such a powerful being will not take it to heart, he didn¡¯t mean any harm, he just wanted to remind that goblin. Seeing riant¡¯s face, on the verge of crying, the silver coin quicklyforted, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, don¡¯t worry, my boss won¡¯t take it to heart, take this, use it for recovery, if you don¡¯t it¡¯ll feel like you¡¯re looking down on me.¡± As he said this, he forcibly stuffed the Soul Crystal into riant¡¯s palm. Soul Crystals are not only currency, but also condensed soul energy. Absorbing it can heal soul injuries, which is exactly what riant, who had just been ¡®red at¡¯, needed.
If he doesn¡¯t ept it, afterward he probably would have to use his Soul Crystal to heal. The losses incurred would stay in his mind for a long time and would not benefit future interactions. Chapter 367: 226 – The Way of the Merchant_3 Chapter 367: Chapter 226 ¨C The Way of the Merchant_3 However, thepensation cannot make up for what he needs the most, such as salt, which needs to be used as a bargaining chip in the next stage of the trade. If it¡¯s given to him now, its rigid demand will drop.
So, being a merchant actually involves numerous tactics. ¡­ A few hourster, Silver coin leaves the ry tower, mounts a bone horse and trots away. Ten kilometers away, he rides into a ditch on his bone horse. At this moment, there are a bunch of things crouching in the ditch, including humans, dragons, skeleton zombies, angels, and unicorns. Upon seeing Silver coin return, Negris was the first to ask: ¡°How did it go?¡± ¡°Done, ry tower number four is ours now, we¡¯ve already reported it, and they¡¯re just waiting for the handover. That guy who was cursing Lord Ange, he can¡¯t wait to leave the ry tower, and he¡¯s urging us toe over and take over.¡± Silver coin said excitedly.
Negris was somewhat skeptical: ¡°Just like that?¡± Silver coin nodded: ¡°If you find the right direction, it¡¯s that simple. We have no clue about the situation, so we think it¡¯s difficult. But ording to riant, it¡¯s not difficult at all, as there are few people who can handle staying at the ry station, they change every few decades, and now there¡¯s a guy who doesn¡¯t want to do this anymore, and we can take over with just a report.¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help asking out of curiosity: ¡°How did you think to tackle this from the No. 3 Ry Tower side?¡± Silver coin asked in confusion: ¡°Isn¡¯t this basic operation? He has needs, and we approach from these needs, turning it into him needing something from us. If he has no needs, we can always create needs for him.¡± ¡°Makes sense, let¡¯s go and take over, I wonder what kind of guy that nag is.¡± ¡­ In the wilderness, two bone horses are pulling a carriage at full speed before it suddenly stops. An Undead floats out, identifies the direction, and goes back to the carriage: ¡°The No. 4 Ry Station will be reached soon.¡± In the carriage burns a brazier, the mes of which form the face of a demon. If Ange were here, he would certainly recognize this demon as the Lord of Terror who had onceunched a gue of bugs in the ck Mountain Kingdom. ¡°Perfect timing, our terrifying ghost just took form, and it needs a powerful soul to parasitize. There¡¯s nothing more suitable than the Ry Spirit on the ry tower. Take advantage of the turnover time of this ry tower, let¡¯s seize its Ry Spirit. Even the Great Sage, would not be able to figure out who took the Ry Spirit,¡± the Lord of Terror said. The Undead hesitated, and said: ¡°Are you sure? All Ry Spirits are connected, they are essentially souls and belong to Harvey¡¯s people. If we mess with the Ry Spirit, won¡¯t Harvey find out? If he projects his will over here, I¡¯ll die a horrible death.¡±n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Lord of Terror said, ¡°That¡¯s why we need to take advantage while they¡¯re handing it over. There¡¯s a brief period during the transfer when the Ry Spirit will be dormant. During that time, no one can control it.¡± ¡°Really? Howe you, a demon, understand these things better than me, an Undead?¡± asked the Undead with skepticism.
¡°If you¡¯re willing to exchange your soul, I¡¯ll tell you,¡± the demon said with a tempting tone. The Undeadughed in a cold and sinister way. The carriage got back on the road and rushed to the No. 4 Ry Tower. In another direction, Luther and Shamara looked at each other, watching the lightning in front of them, burdened with five things. Even Big Cat was lying on Lightning¡¯s head, hugging the unicorn horn. Their destination was also the No. 4 Ry Tower. At this pace, they might meet Lord of Terror at the base of the tower. Chapter 368: 227: Can a Stupid Skeleton Invent Magic?_1 Chapter 368: Chapter 227: Can a Stupid Skeleton Invent Magic?_1 From a bird¡¯s-eye view, a horse-drawn carriage and a unicorn were racing forward at a ny-degree angle,ing closer and closer, until they eventually intersected at the apex.
The undead and demonic face on the carriage turned in shock, gazing at the ¡®horse¡¯ that brushed past them. Atop this ¡®horse¡¯s¡¯ head sat arge cat, its back held an armored figure, a little girl, a skeleton, and a brass juvenile dragon. All of them squished together, eyes fixed on the carriage, shifting their gazes ording to the alternating positions of both parties. Finally passing each other, the carriage went from the left side of the other party to the right, the four atop the horse turned their heads with a swift whip, continuing to watch them intently. The undead was shocked, was this still a horse? The demonic face on the brazier blinked, muttering softly, ¡°Why does this all seem familiar? Where have I seen them before?¡± The undead reacted with astonishment, ¡°You recognise them? They¡¯ve turned, they¡¯reing back again. Do you owe them money? Why else would they dare to chase my carriage?¡±
In the Land of Fallen, those who possess bone horses and carriages are always the high-level undead and witches, such as the Great Sage. To be daring enough to chase after one high-level undead in the wilderness would mostly be due to owing them a significant sum of money, otherwise, who would be audacious to do such a thing? The undead spoke, found no response, turned its head and saw that the demon face on the hearth had extinguished, nowhere to be seen. The undead was genuinely stunned, had even this slippery demon run away? It just ran without a word, could it be that it recognized something terrifying from that pile of things? The undead immediately became alert, his spirit shed through the scenes he had just witnessed. What could it be that was terrifying? The big cat on top of the horse? How scary could a single cat be? The little girl? A sweetly soft and cute little girl, what could be frightening about her. A golden skeleton is quitemon, also not that scary. The only unusual ones left were the brass juvenile dragon and that armored man, juvenile dragons aren¡¯t scary, but the presence of a juvenile dragon, wouldn¡¯t that imply an adult dragon? But shadows of the adult dragon couldn¡¯t be seen, wouldn¡¯t scare off the Lord of Terror. Could it be because of that armored man? Right at that moment, Lightning, bearing five, caught up, effortlessly running parallel to the carriage. Six heads nted, gaze fixed on the undead. At the very end of the line, the bronze juvenile dragon opened its mouth and said, ¡°Hello, could you tell us which way leads to the fourth ry tower?¡± The undead¡¯s heart jolted: Could it be such a coincidence? At this very moment heading to the fourth ry tower, could they be the ones to rece the ry tower?n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Without changing expression, he asked, ¡°You are going to the fourth ry tower? What a stroke of luck, I was nning to pass by the fourth ry tower as well. You can follow me on my journey, might I be so bold as to ask, why are you heading to the fourth ry tower?¡± Negris responded truthfully, ¡°The night watchman at the fourth ry tower doesn¡¯t want to continue his task, so we¡¯re going to rece him.¡± As expected, normally, the ry towers wouldy abandoned for years on end, rarely visited by anyone. Running into one now, who else could it be but the recements?
However, the undead inspected them: ¡°Who among you is the recement? The night watchman is responsible for feeding the ry spirit. If the spirit is too weak, it wouldn¡¯t work. Moreover, only one spirit could feed it, the ry spirit recognizes only one soul, any other soul that approaches would hurt it.¡± Out of the group, the undead decided that just the skeleton and the armored man fit the features of the undead the most. The rest seemed to be very lively, how would they be able to feed the ry spirit? Negris pointed at the zombie at the very front, ¡°This one.¡± That answer fit into the undead¡¯s understanding. After a while, a tower appeared on the horizon, the undead pointed at the tower and said, ¡°That is the fourth ry tower.¡± ¡°Oh, thank you very much, we¡¯re lucky to have bumped into you, else we might have missed it based on our directions. Thank you very much, may I know your name?¡± Negris politely asked. This had caught him off guard, he was still able to remember asking for someone else¡¯s name. ¡°We¡¯re all travelers in the Land of Fallen, there¡¯s no need to make a note of each other¡¯s names¡­ good bye.¡± Nonchntly waving his hand, the bone horse sprang forward towards the horizon, speeding up, thanks to the undead¡¯s guidance. Once Ange and the others were out of sight, the carriage screeched to a halt with a sudden jolt, the undead incarnation popped up from the roof of the carriage, gazing in the direction of the ry tower. Ange and the others had already shrunk to a tiny white dot, moving towards the base of the ry tower. Suddenly, the fire in the pan reignited, the mes reforming the face of the Lord of Terror. The undead immediately cursed, ¡°You demon, you can¡¯t be trusted, you ran so quickly. Was it so scary that you had to run?¡± ¡°I was afraid they would find me, that unicorn is very sensitive to demonic aura.¡± The Lord of Terror exined.
¡°Unicorn?,¡± said the undead, confused. Where did the unicorne from? ¡°Could it be you didn¡¯t notice that the horse they were riding was a unicorn?¡± The demon retorted in surprise. ¡°It wasn¡¯t a horse? What about its horn?¡± The undead appeared confused. ¡°That cat was covering it¡­¡± Both the undead and the demon exchanged a nce, sensing an unreliable vibe from each other. ¡°Enough talk, let¡¯s hurry on, lest we miss the ry spirit¡¯s resting period during the handover.¡± The demon urged. ¡°What about you?¡± Asked the undead. ¡°I¡¯ll stay here and watch the carriage, lest someone steals it.¡± The demon responded. The undead snorted, grumbling reluctantly, ¡°I have to do everything, you are just a mere car watcher.¡± Chapter 369 - 227: Can a Stupid Skeleton Create Its Own Magic? _2 Chapter 369: Chapter 227: Can a Stupid Skeleton Create Its Own Magic? _2 Although he said that, the wraith voluntarily drifted towards the ry tower. Watching the spectral figure of the wraith disappear into the distance, the demon¡¯s expression slowly grew serious, thinking to himself: ¡°If you knew that among that pile of stuff there was something that could elerate life, you¡¯d probably demand to see the car. What rotten luck. How could I run into these guys again? Fortunately, he¡¯s a wraith. He won¡¯t be affected by the haste of life, and he¡¯s also a powerful magic tutor. I hope he doesn¡¯t end up thoroughly suppressed like those bug trainers.¡± While the wraith and the demon were conversing, Ange and his group arrived under the ry tower. From quite a distance away, they could see a witch standing on her toes, staring wistfully. Upon seeing Ange and his group, she greeted them as if she were greeting her family and rushed over. Of course, this was her reaction before she saw them clearly. Once she did, she stopped confused, ¡°You¡­ Are you that poor?¡± Five fellows riding one horse, you¡¯ve got to be pretty poor to pull something like that off. ¡°Huh? Not poor, oh! Our horse is powerful.¡± It took a moment for Negris to process the question. Then, floating up, he patted the horse¡¯s bum, saying. Just as the words left his mouth, the horse kicked him square in the body, sending him flying off like a ball, ¡°Who are you calling a horse!¡± Negris flew back, fuming, ¡°I will deal with youter!¡± Turning to the witch who had greeted them, he said, ¡°Hello, we¡¯vee to take over the ry station. My name is Nage, and what¡¯s yours?¡± The witch looked Ange and his group up and down, her eyes full of suspicion and disbelief, ¡°My name is Holcuk. Are you really here to take over for me? Can you handle it?¡± Having wished for a release for so long, Holcuk was only asking out of formality. Whether or not the neers could handle the job was none of her concern. Once she verified the identities of Ange and the others, she led them into the ry tower without another word, heading straight for the top floor. Can you imagine what it feels like to watch over a tower in the middle of nowhere for thirty years only to have someone elsee to rece you? You would not want to stay a second longer, right? That is exactly how Holcuk felt after being there for three hundred years. As for whether someone might deceive her, or do something to the ry spirit, she wasn¡¯t worried in the slightest. Once you understand what a ry spirit is, such concerns seem impossible. The ry spirit is the most valuable thing in a ry tower. It is essentially a spiritual being without intelligence. However, its soul strength is incredibly high, dozens of times stronger than high-ranking undead such as wraith saints or golden skeletons. Yes, dozens of times. The range covered by a golden skeleton¡¯s thought is at most a few kilometers, but a ry spirit can cover as far as forty kilometers. Thanks to the ry spirit¡¯s long-range coverage, within its thought coverage range, messages sent out viamunication domino can reach all areas covered by the ry spirits. But if you ignore these functionalities, a ry spirit is essentially a super spiritual body that can cover a range of forty kilometers with its thoughts. Want to harm it? It could possibly explode your soul just by ring at you. If the ry spirits were intelligent, they would definitely be a very scary group of entities in the Undead Empire. But the most, most, most critical reason why nobody dares to mess with them is because they are Harvey¡¯s subjects. Although theyck intelligence, they do have memory. Whoever harms them, gets remembered and reported to Harvey. Heheh, say your prayers. The Lord of Mourning has taken note of you. So Holcuk really didn¡¯t think that anyone would harm a ry spirit, unless they didn¡¯t want to live. As for her as a watchman, her job wasn¡¯t to protect the ry spirit, but to feed it soul energy periodically, replenish its daily consumption, and keep it working every day. Otherwise, these unintelligent spiritual bodies, they love to sleep. Without anyone giving them orders, they could easily fall asleep. The group arrived outside a door in the midsection of the high tower, and Holcuk searched around until she found a switch under a pile of cobwebs. Embarrassed, she said, ¡°I haven¡¯t used it for hundreds of years, I almost forgot where it was.¡± After cleaning the dirt off the switch, Holcuk pressed it hard. Uh, it was stuck. ¡°It can get stuck?¡± Negris curiously looked over. The global ry station had not been used for more than a thousand years but never got stuck. Both the teleportation array of the Undead Temple and Demon Valley broke down, but once they were given soul energy, they auto-repaired. He never saw a construction of the undead empire getting stuck that has this auto-repair ability. Awkwardly pressing hard, then harder, and harder still, Holcuk, if still alive, would probably be sweating profusely. It took a great deal of effort to finally press down the switch. He muttered, ¡°It¡¯s been unused for so long. After you take over, remember to oil it every few decades.¡± As the switch was pressed, the entire ry tower gently vibrated. After a while, they all suddenly noticed that the strong spiritual presence above their heads quieted down. n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om In reality, everyone could feel the strong spirit of the ry tower from the moment they approached it. Except for Ange, everyone else felt quite oppressed. Even Little Angel, who was usually hopping around, had calmed down quite a bit. Now, this oppressive feeling had disappeared. With the disappearance of the oppressive feeling, a ball of grey fog, almost silently, started drifting from the bottom of the tower, slowly moving up along the body of the tower. Chapter 370 - 227: Can a Stupid Skeleton Invent Its Own Magic?_3 Chapter 370: Chapter 227: Can a Stupid Skeleton Invent Its Own Magic?_3 Holcuk waited a bit longer before he pushed the door open and continued to climb towards the top of the tower. Soon, everyone reached the top and immediately spotted the giant Soul me within the magic array. It was asrge as a washbowl. The Soul Fire of a normal Undead is only fist-sized. The Soul Fire of this Ry Spirit is at least a hundred times that of an ordinary Undead. With one look, Negris understood how the Ry Spirit worked, ¡°So that¡¯s how it is. No wonder it¡¯s so intense.¡± Holcuk was taken aback, ¡°How what?¡± Negris smiled mysteriously without answering. This is a good method. With this, Ange could also create such a powerful Spiritual Body. Why would he just tell anyone casually? Holcuk didn¡¯t ask further. His only thought right now was to hand over the situation as quickly as possible. He wasn¡¯t interested in anything else, so he took a step forward. Just then, a ball was thrown in from the window. It fell next to the Ry Spirit, exploded suddenly, and a thought rushed out, imprinting itself on the already dormant Ry Spirit. Everyone was shocked by this sudden turn of events. Ange was the first to react, rushing out the window in an instant, only to see an Undead hastily drifting down towards the base of the tower. Without hesitation, Angeunched an exploding fireball at it. The Undead formed a figure, revealing a surprised expression on its face. Obviously, it hadn¡¯t anticipated Ange¡¯s quick response. However, upon seeing Ange¡¯s exploding fireball, a sense of bewilderment and disdain crossed its face. Confusion for the fact that a skeleton was casting Magic. Could a skeleton actually learn Magic? He felt disdain because, could someone dare to use magic in front of him? He was a Necromancer Magic Tutor. The Undead casually waved its hand, and the iing explosive fireball dissipated ¨C Snatch. High-level mages can strip the enemy of its control over the elements through elemental interference and mental suppression. This method works better the further the magic is from the opponent and the closer it is to oneself. n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om ¡°Who would have thought that you, a dimwitted skeleton, could also learn Magic. Who¡¯s your teacher?¡± The undead asked curiously. Ange tilted his head, ¡°None.¡± ¡°No teacher? Then who did you learn your magic from?¡± The Undead was even more interested in Ange¡¯s teacher. To teach magic to a skeleton was an unimaginable feat. ¡°Self-taught.¡± Ange answered truthfully. The Undeadughed as if he had heard a huge joke, ¡°Hahaha, you won¡¯t even admit who taught you magic? Self-taught? You, a dimwitted skeleton, self-taught to cast magic? Then I must be the God of Magic! Let a real mage show you what magic is.¡± Ange¡¯s answer had angered the Undead. He stretched out his hand and swiped in front of him, and a batch of exploding fireballs identical to those previously cast by Ange appeared in front of the Undead. From this, it was clear that the Undead¡¯s level of magic was indeed extraordinary. What he cast was not a Level 4 Regr Burst Fireball, but a small, Level 2pressed exploding fireball. He managed to recreate it perfectly after only witnessing Ange cast it once, demonstrating his astonishing mastery of magic. He nned to use the same exploding fireball to st apart this shameless, lying, and dimwitted skeleton. Even though this was an incredibly rare skeleton capable of casting magic, it was hardly an excuse for it to go around spouting nonsense. Self-taught magic? He was a Magic Tutor himself and had never created his own magic. Just as he finished speaking, the Undead saw Ange make the exact same gesture, with his palm swiping forward, creating a row of exploding fireballs. Chapter 371: 228 Breath of Death: Shockwave_1 Chapter 371: Chapter 228 Breath of Death: Shockwave_1 If someone could cast a row of magic spells just with a swipe of their hand, regardless of the level of magic, that person is definitely not a rookie, because this involves elemental interference. If someone could cast more than two magic spells at a close distance, it means they have good elemental control. What surprised the Undead more was that he cast a line of twelve exploding fireballs, and the opponent cast a line of thirteen exploding fireballs, just one more than he did. Was it intentional or coincidental? The Undead hastily waved his hand; the explosive fireballs in front of him shot out swiftly, while his body rapidly retreated backward. Ange also waved his hand; the exploding fireballs in front of him urately met the Undead¡¯s fireballs, detonating them one by one, with the extra one shooting towards the Undead. As the Undead retreated, he waved his hand, drawing circles in front of him. Every time he drew a circle, an Arrow of Breath of Death would form in the center. The extra exploding fireball was detonated by the Arrow of Breath of Death, and more Arrows of Breath of Death were shot at Ange. Arrows of Breath of Death were his most proficient type of magic, not Fire Magic. He only wanted to humiliate the enemy earlier, but soon discovered that the enemy was not someone to belittle casually, so he immediately switched back to his proficient type. Arrows of Breath of Death continuously manifested, barraging Ange incessantly.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om This was actually a verymon magic duel routine for mages ¨C suppress with firepower, adapt to the situation, seize the opportunity, and finish in one wave.
However, this was ying right into the hands of a certain skeleton. The Undead was soon astonished to find that the skeleton¡¯s firepower was even fiercer than his own, with the number of exploding fireballs surpassing his Shadow Arrows. After mutually neutralizing each other, some exploding fireballs even broke through the Shadow Arrow curtain and closed in, only to swerve under the skeleton¡¯s gaze and m into the Undead. An semi-transparent shield appeared on the Undead, blocking the damage from the fireball. ¡°Kvada, what the hell is this skeleton?!¡± The Undead was so angered that he cursed in Magic Language. A grand Necromancer Magic Tutor was unexpectedly unable to suppress a skeleton in firepower? Telling that to anyone would be unbelievable. This cannot continue. Not to mention being at a stalemate with a skeleton, even if he can¡¯t achieve a quick victory, it would be detrimental to his reputation as a Necromancer Magic Tutor after all, it was a skeleton, a creature of low intelligence and unskilled in magic! Having already retreated quite some distance, the Undead crushed a bone card he drew out. Instantly, a ¡®huge¡¯ wraith rushed out from the card, wailing as it pounced on Ange. Why use the word ¡®huge¡¯? Because normally, wraiths are only the size of a fingernail, flocking in groups, wailing as they float back and forth. They are the lowest level spiritual bodies in the Undead world, a tiny bit of death atmosphere can breed arge amount, and a touch of sunlight can annihte arge portion of them. However, this wraith, which was normally the size of a fingernail, was now three to four meters in diameter and its volume had increased tens of thousands of times. Along with the wailing, simrly increased as well, was its wail. The greatest destructive power of a wraith is their wail. If a wraith appears in your room and you can¡¯t kill it, then it would circle around your ears and ¡®aah¡­ aah¡­¡¯ scream, depriving you of sleep and disrupting your peace of mind. If a drop of wraiths appears in a room, basically, the room bes unbearable. If it¡¯s a giant wraith, the sound it makes is not just a scream, but a skill ¨C Wraith Scream. The giant wraith screamed at Ange and the green soundwaves, visible only to the soul, bombarded Ange, hitting his soul. Ange blinked his eyes, showing no reaction. The giant wraith was taken aback, floated a few steps closer, and screamed again. Still no reaction? It floated a few steps closer again, floating and wailing all the way up to Ange¡¯s front, plugging Ange¡¯s ears and screaming there. Wraith Scream is a mental attack, if one¡¯s spirit is extremely strong, they can ignore its damage. Coincidentally, Ange¡¯s spiritual power¡­
Ange could ignore the damage, so he decided not to deal with it, but the Little Ghost on his finger couldn¡¯t. Unable to bear it anymore, the Little Ghost raised its head and screamed at the giant wraith: ¡°Roar!¡± Circles of sacred soundwaves bombarded the wraith, shrivelling it as if it was flesh in front of Holy Light sh, leaving only the essence of being burned by the holy light, which smelled like sun-dried quilts. The Undead, who was concentrating on brewing magic, was also surprised by this essence of the holy light, eximing in shock: ¡°Holy Light?¡± However, the Little Ghost was too small, still wrapped around Ange¡¯s finger, the Undead didn¡¯t see clearly, and didn¡¯t notice where this holy light wasing from, was there an ambush?
Involuntary, the Undead heightened his vignce. However, no matter how hard he thought, he would never think the source of the holy light was on Ange¡¯s finger. The holy light cast by the Little Ghost dealt additional damage to the Undead. The holy light Ange cast, because it was too pure, did not have this additional damage. The arrow was on the bowstring, the Undead didn¡¯t have time to investigate. He sharply lifted both hands to the sky, posing as if lifting the heavens, and shouted loudly: ¡°Sleeping souls, awaken, this is the paradise of the dead¡­.¡± Paradise of the Dead¡­ With the Undead¡¯s shout, ck smoke erupted from the earth. That was pure death atmosphere, under the eternal night, this was the time when the death atmosphere was most active. Chapter 372: 228: Breath of Death: Shockwave_2 Chapter 372: Chapter 228: Breath of Death: Shockwave_2 The earth trembled, and before long, dozens of ashen skeletal hands broke through the surface. Dozens of skeletons began to rise from the ground. Watching this, the undead fell into annoyance, grumbLing, ¡°Kvada, I forgot, Harvey summoned the whole army to attack the human frontlines.¡± The imposing power of Deadman¡¯s Paradise was halved due to these external factors¡­ The sparse skeletons could hardly be regarded as Deadman¡¯s Paradise, but the billowing breath of death did give them some sce. Clip-clop clip-clop, a sharp sound of horse hooves approached, two bone horses with still-burning soul mes in their eye sockets pulled a wildly galloping carriage. The speed toppled the carriage back and forth, a brazier inside bounced up and down repeatedly. The bone horses came to safeguard. The two bone horses pulling the carriage of the undead could not be considered horses, they were horse-shaped skeletons. Due to their size, their strength far exceeded human-shaped skeletons of the same level. But before they could charge over, a white figure emerged from the side,rge hooves stamped on the side of the bone horses, sending them flying. The horse and carriage rolled several times before hitting the ground, breaking apart and scattering the brazier. The two bone horses stood up and looked at who had kicked them. It was a horse, wearing a cap upon its head. The horse raised its forehoof, beckoning them with its hoof toe. The horse said in a grandiose manner, ¡°You¡¯re up against me, you skinny skeleton racks. Come on, let you taste the power of Lightning here.¡± The soul me shot out from the eye sockets of the bone horses, both hooves began scraping the ground. As the soul mes on their bodies surged, they slowly armorized their bodies. In no time, the two bone horses were donned in soul armor, transformed into robust undead warhorses.
The bone horses let out a snort, blue sparks sprayed out of their nostrils, staring at Lightning as if to say: ¡°Do we look skinny now?¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Lightning curled his lips, turned around and provocatively shook his rear end towards the bone horses: ¡°Come on,e and chase me, if you can catch me, then we will fight.¡± The bone horses were so angry that their spirits were about to spurt from their nostrils, and they charged at Lightning at full speed. The undead was frustrated; he had requested the bone horses toe and protect him, not chase other horses. With a thought, the bone horses had no choice but to turn around resentfully and galloped towards the undead, casting onest menacing look at Lightning. As they turned, so did Lightning; no horse was as agile as Lightning, whose hooves could even reach its forehead. In no time, Lightning had caught up and kicked the bone horses¡¯ backsides. They were finally forced to split up; one bone horse stayed to deal with Lightning while the other raced towards the undead to protect its master. The scattered skeletons also gathered around the undead; dozens of skeletons couldn¡¯t do much but serve as a shield. The undead was channeling the breath of death into his hands, then he locked his sight onto Ange ¨C Soul lock. Since he didn¡¯t have eyes, soul lock would be more urate. ¡°Engulf, the Breath of Death Mist¡­¡± With a simple incantation, part of the death breath transformed into mist and started to spread, quickly enveloping the position of the undead. Ange watched the mist with apprehension. He could no longer see the undead, and there was no way to soul lock his opponent. Could the mist block soul lock? The exploding fireball had to pause as well; this kind of tier-twopressed magic was not very effective against mages with strong shields unless great force was used to break the opponent¡¯s shield. Being unable to see his enemy made Ange anxious, and he instinctively reached into the Temple of Rest. He was facing a powerful mage for the first time and didn¡¯t have any experience in this regard. He didn¡¯t even know what the enemy wanted to do by covering himself with the Breath of Death Mist, he could only react as things happened. Some sort of energy was gathering rapidly in the mist. Suddenly, a ck pir of light burst out from the mist, illuminating Ange, and a cry of soul echoed from the mist: ¡°Breath of Death: Shockwave!¡± Ange felt as if he had been illuminated by the Holy Light, not just once though, the entire pir of light was rushing towards him to strike. If he was directly hit, it would certainly be more torturous than the Holy Light sh. So, he covered himself with the mist to unexpectedly unleash his ultimate move. The Breath of Death Shockwave not only struck Ange but also dispersed the mist, revealing the undead inside. The undead saw Ange in the enveloping ck pir and waved his hand excitedly: ¡°A done deal, feel the honour, ignorant skeleton. To use such a powerful move against you is your glory¡­ Kvada! Are you alright?¡±
The ck pir disappeared, only to reveal Ange standing intact on the spot, holding a purple gold skeleton in front of him. The Breath of Death Shockwave had all being hit onto the purple gold skeleton. The residue that passed through the gaps in the skeleton was broken and shattered, and it couldn¡¯t harm Ange but rather flowed into his body like the chill of the Resting Wind, nourishing Ange¡¯s bones. The undead¡¯s eyes widened, if it had eyeballs, his eyeballs would have fallen out. He murmured tremblingly: ¡°Purple¡­ purple gold body? Whose purple gold body is this?¡± This was a good question; regardless of whose purple gold body it was, they were in big trouble. In this world, there were only two Lords of Mourning, one was Harvey, and the other was Locke.
Chapter 373: 228 Breath of Death: Shockwave_3 Chapter 373: Chapter 228 Breath of Death: Shockwave_3 Purple Gold Body remained unscathed, but the effects of the Breath of Death Shockwave made it hot to touch and smoke slightly. Ange shook it a bit before returning it back inside the Resting Camp. If Steadfast Locke knew his skeleton was being used as a shield, he would probably rise from his grave to smash Ange¡¯s head in. ¡°Who¡­who are you!?¡± the Undead asked trembling. ¡°The Undead God.¡± Ange murmured in response, extending a hand, it immediately sweeping and creating a mist, obscuring the spot he was at. The Undead God? The Undead was bewildered. What did that mean? If Ange imed he was Steadfast Locke, the Undead might have been somewhat skeptical. After all, Ange had brought out a Purple Gold Skeleton. Only two Purple Gold Skeletons existed in the world. One belonged to Locke, the other to Harvey. Since Harvey was still alive, it couldn¡¯t belong to him. Thus, the Purple Gold Skeleton could only belong to Locke. But iming he was the Undead God, it was soughable that the Undead couldn¡¯t help but want to chuckle. If he wanted to scare someone, he shouldn¡¯t make such an unreliable boast. However, Ange¡¯s actions put him on alert again. The Breath of Death Mist? What was the skeleton up to? ¡°Are you trying to mimic me? Unfortunately, only one Breath of Death Shockwave can beunched at a time in a Land of Deathly Silence, because the death breath stored here has already been depleted by me,¡± the Undead jovially dered. Regardless if it was the Breath of Death Shockwave or ordinaryrge-scale magic, simr consequences would ur. The elements in an area would bepletely used up, leaving none for the next magic spell.
This is why Water Mages preferred humid environments and Fire Wizards loved the mouth of volcanos. The environment was half the battle when it came to casting spells. The death breath had been entirely consumed by him; even if the skeleton wished to imitate him, there was no death breath left tomand. Could he be simply attempting to obscure the view? Amidst the Undead¡¯s puzzling thoughts, an immense force pooled in the mist before abruptly emitting a column of ck light. ¡°How can¡­¡± The Undead only managed to let out a cry before being swallowed by the ck light column. Even the skeletal horse revolving in front of him vanished without a trace. Ange looked at the position where the Undead disappeared and then at his hand. The mes of the soul on his palm continuously burnt, transforming into a pure death breath. What is death breath? It¡¯s merely the energy of a diluted soul. Even if the death breath was consumed, one could simply use soul energy as a substitute, right? As the Undead God, Ange was abundant in one thing, and that was soul energy! Seems like the Breath of Death Shockwave was, without a doubt, the best trick up his sleeve. The limited amount of Magic Power he possessed only allowed him to cast one or two levels of other spells and, at most,press them to a fourth-level power: enough to touch an enemy¡¯s shield, but not brudge it. The Breath of Death Shockwave did not require much Magic Power, just arge amount of death breath. Almost as if it was custom-made for him. Realizing this, Ange felt a strong urge to return something to that Undead. The value of this trick was too great. But looking around, there was no trace of the Undead remaining. It had beenpletely obliterated.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Just then, a sh of white light burst from behind. Ange turned around to see a holy light column piercing out from the top of the ry tower, disappearing simultaneously with the horrific roar from the Ry Spirit within the tower. That¡¯s not good! Did Little Sky use the Holy Light on the Ry Spirit? Chapter 374: 229: Shaking With Force_1 Chapter 374: Chapter 229: Shaking With Force_1 The Ry Spirit is a powerful soul, although it¡¯s not conscious, it has instincts, then being hit by the Holy Light sh, if it hasn¡¯t died, it will surely retaliate immediately. Why attack such a strong soul which is without consciousness? Just don¡¯t provoke it. Hit someone else randomly again, gotta teach you a lesson when we get back. Ange was ready to hang the Little Angel and beat it, but just as he turned around, where the Undead disappeared, a pile of stuff suddenly burst out with a bang. There must be a Space Artifact on the Undead body, but this Space Artifact was directly obliterated by the Breath of Death Shockwave, the space inside burst open, and items stored in it were sted out. If Negris saw this, he would surely shout mistress to the Goddess of Fortune again, because the chances of a killing causing a space burst is very, very low. Any Dimensional Space is a powerful force. The most likely result after it bursts is to shred all the items inside, not to st them out. Unless there are high-energy items that can¡¯t be shredded in the Dimensional Space, or the space inside is extremely unstable, both are extremely rare. Even Negris has only seen this three to five times. Other things are not very noticeable. Ange¡¯s attention was all drawn to a box. It is a box with a transparent crystal cover, and there is a light inside as if it was solidified in the box, motionless. Why is there only half of the angel wing on the crystal cover and the box body made of unknown material? I don¡¯t understand, and now is not the time to understand either. Ange just nced at it and immediately grabbed it. The speed was so fast that most of the items that had been sted out hadn¡¯t even fallen to the ground yet. As soon as Ange flew back to the tower and looked, he realized that he had wronged the Little Angel. The Ry Spirit had be extremely terrifying, its soul radiating a strong killing intent, its whole body swelling hundreds of times, covered in solidified Soul Armor, turning into a monster with a diameter of two meters.
A huge spike condenses from the Soul Armor of the Ry Spirit, piercing it in front of the Little Angel. The Little Angel¡¯s big Light Wings curl back, wrapping it in, blocking the gigantic spike. The Little Zombie pounced on the Ry Spirit, the hoe in his hand ding-ding-ding on the Ry Spirit¡¯s body, chiseling the surface of the Soul Armor. A spike protrudes from the surface of the Ry Spirit, piercing the Little Zombie, piercing its Soul Armor, but being blocked by the strong flesh, it was knocked away. The Ry Spirit¡¯s situation is not going well either, constantly emitting ck smoke, residual Power of Holy Light is burning it, causing it intense pain. This sense of pain makes it even more raging, attacking another spike, which also sticks to the Light Wings shield of the Little Angel. The one that caused this damage is right in that pair of Light Wings. Finally seeing Angee back, Negris yelled as quickly as possible: ¡°A strong intent burst from that sphere, imprinted on the dormant Ry Spirit, recing the consciousness of the Ry Spirit, quickly kill it.¡± ¡°It can¡¯t be killed, run, this is a Ry Spirit, a spiritual body hundreds of times stronger than the Golden Skeleton, a nce from it could blow up our souls, run, run before itpletely takes control of the Ry Spirit.¡± The sound of Holcuk is several times louder than that of Negris. Having nurtured the Ry Spirit for three hundred years, he has a deeper understanding of the strength of the Ry Spirit. This kind of spiritual body cannot be understood with the concept of Undead. Even the strongest undead Saint of the Golden Skeleton, the Soul Strength cannot reach one-tenth of the Ry Spirit. I guess the whole Undead world, only Harvey could exceed the Soul Strength of the Ry Spirit. Oh, and the human Soul Tower. This kind of spiritual body, it¡¯s really impossible to use brute force to win, better run away, find more suitable people to deal with it. ¡°Run? Why run? I fixed it.¡± Negris asked puzzledly. ¡°Fixed it? How is that possible?¡± Holcuk turned his head and looked, only to see a scene that made his soul stand still. A Purple Gold Skeleton leaned in front of the Ry Spirit, allowing the spike of the Ry Spirit to keep hitting him. Spikes were sprouting everywhere, like a sea urchin.N?v(el)B\\jnn However, these spikes couldn¡¯t harm the Purple Gold Skeleton at all. The Purple Gold Skeleton stood steady, his fingers fired a red light, sizzling on the imprint of the Spirit of Terror in the Ry Spirit, slowly removing these marks that did not belong to it¡ªthe Spot-removing Spell. ¡°The¡­ The Lord of¡­ Mourning¡­ Ha¡­ Harvey, sir?¡± Holcuk thought it was Harvey. ¡°Haha, it¡¯s not Harvey, it¡¯s the Undead God. Oh yes, you once called him crazy in the Communication Domino, remember, Locke?¡± Negris said with a smile. Upon hearing this, Holcuk remembered something, his eyes widened suddenly, and he looked at Negris unbelievingly. During his three hundred years attached to the Ry Tower, he only lost his temper and called someone crazy once, because the other party imed to be the Undead God. Is he so unlucky? The only time he scolded someone, the other party was actually the Undead God?
Holcuk felt a bit weak in his legs and sat down on the ground. After the Spot-removing Spell removed the mark of the Spirit of Terror, the Ry Spirit slowly returned to normal, and Ange¡¯s transformation time as Locke had also arrived, and he turned back to his original form. Releasing Soul Energy to soothe the Ry Spirit, soon, the Ry Spirit became familiar with Ange. Under the influx of powerful Soul Energy, the damage it suffered from the sh of the Little Angel was slowly recovering.
Chapter 375: 229: Shook Forcefully_2 Chapter 375: Chapter 229: Shook Forcefully_2 After calming the Ry Spirit, Ange turned and said, ¡°It doesn¡¯t have a Soul Network.¡±
¡°Huh? What do you mean?¡± Negris asked in surprise. ¡°It doesn¡¯t have a master.¡± Ange rephrased. ¡°Impossible!¡± Negris floated over, shocked. ¡°Didn¡¯t you say it belongs to Harvey? Its master should be Harvey.¡± Negris circled around the Ry Spirit. He couldn¡¯t get any insights; the spirit of the Ry Spirit was too strong for his level. He couldn¡¯t even see its soul clearly, let alone detect any soul impressions inside. Without a soul imprint, it¡¯s masterless. It can¡¯tmunicate anything that happens to its master through a Soul Network. In this case, it¡¯s actually a good thing. If they were to infuriate Harvey, they would have to make a run for it immediately. He had already been considering how to escape.
¡°So you¡¯re saying, the news that the Ry Spirit is one of Harvey¡¯s followers is fake? Who spread this? But this is good news, we don¡¯t have to run away.¡± He finished speaking and turned to Holcuk, who was sneakily heading towards the stairs. ¡°You¡¯re not allowed to run either.¡± Holcuk hastilyughed, ¡°Why would I? I¡¯m only going downstairs to fetch tea for our guests.¡± Negris chuckled, ¡°Do you believe that after insulting the Undead God, you can leave unscathed? Two options: either submit to us or perish.¡± Holcuk immediately kneeled down, crying out, ¡°I submit, don¡¯t kill me.¡± From the moment he saw Ange¡¯s transformation, he knew that he would not be able to leave easily. His choices were to be locked up forever or to be killed; submission was actually the least damaging punishment, or rather a reward. How could submission to the Undead God be considered punishment? Not everyone gets this chance. Holcuk was a masterless witch; do you think he willingly decided to be a masterless witch? He simply didn¡¯t have anyone who wanted him. If someone was willing to ept him, he wouldn¡¯t have stood guard for 300 years. He was afraid Ange would kill him, but instead he offered to keep him. He didn¡¯t waste another second to pledge his allegiance. Without hesitation, Holcuk offered his soul oath. The Fire of the Oath floated towards Ange. The Little Angel flew up and caught the Fire of the Oath, giving a puzzled ¡®woof¡¯ at Ange. ¡°Woof.¡± Ange responded. ¡°Oh~¡± The Little Angel uninterestedly threw the Fire of the Oath onto the Little Zombie, and it disappeared into the Little Zombie¡¯s body.
A Soul Connection was established between the Little Zombie and Holcuk. ¡°This¡­¡± Holcuk was stunned. ¡°I¡­¡± He wanted to say, he intended to offer his Soul Fire to the Undead God, not a Little Zombie that couldn¡¯t even deal with the Ry Spirit. Could he get his Fire of Oath back? Obviously not. Negris flew to his side, patting his shoulder: ¡°It¡¯s all the same. They are one and the same. It doesn¡¯t matter who you pledge to.¡± Eyeing tears, Holcuk thought to himself that although he had intended to be a follower of the Undead God, he had now be a follower of a follower of the Undead God. He felt like he had been demoted several ranks. How could it be the same? Negrisforted him briefly and then lost interest in him. This is the healthy social structure of the undead. Not possible for the lowest-ranked skeleton to have a direct soul connection with a king. They must have their own lords, and the lords have their own kings. Only the king is directly connected with the king, forming a pyramidal social structure in this way. Without saying the advantages, the downside is when the king dies, the whole Undead Empire copses. Luther, Shamara, Big Bone, and others who had taken control of the Ry Tower finally rushed there. Only then Ange gathered everyone together, took out the box that had exploded from the undead, and said to Shamara, ¡°You might be looking for this.¡± Shamara immediately jumped up: ¡°Luna! Luna¡¯s scent!¡± Negris also jumped up: ¡°Where did you get this from?¡± ¡°Undead, killed it, it exploded out.¡± Ange said. ¡°Are you damn Romance God¡¯s lover? Only one box exploded? Where¡¯s the other stuff?¡± Negrisined unhappily.
¡°Outside,¡± Ange pointed out of the tower. With a whoosh, Negris shot out, followed by Luther and Shamara. After only a few minutes, they all came running back: ¡°Where? We couldn¡¯t find anything, did someone pick something up?¡± Ange tilted his head, missing? His gaze swept over everyone once, then he suddenly rushed over and dragged a big cat out from the corner. ¡°Meow!¡± The Dimension Beast wanted to run but was firmly caught by its hind legs. Ange shook the Dimension Beast vehemently by holding its hind legs, a bunch of various items cascading out. There were Soul Crystals, Demon Crystals, gold and silver coins, bone and magic artifacts, books, personal belongings, a few beads, and even a fire basin. He shook it again, causing a pile of elf beans, upgrade beans, some unknown beans, and a purple-gold finger bone to fall out¡­ When these beans fell, the Dimension Beast really panicked. It meowed loudly and tried in vain to catch them with its small ws. Only then did Ange let it go, throwing it to the ground. The Dimension Beast quickly pounced on the pile of beans and, with its paws as fast as lightning, quickly picked them all up before scrambling away. ¡°So it was the one who picked everything up. Let¡¯s check what we have here,¡± said Negris as he began picking up the dropped items. Shamara nced at them but showed no interest because none of it had Luna¡¯s scent.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om ¡°So, my intuition tells me that this box has something to do with it. What is this box and why does it have Luna¡¯s scent?¡± Shamara asked in confusion.
Without lifting his head, Negris replied, ¡°This is a Broken Seal invented by Durken. It can seal away any iplete powers. I suspect the Luna we met before isn¡¯tplete, and this box holds another part of her.¡± ¡°Luna¡¯s notplete? How is this possible? She was a perfectly formed six-winged angel.¡± Shamara said with shock. Negris finally lifted his head, replying, ¡°First, you must understand the mystical properties of holy spirit angels. They are not ordinary creatures. Even if only their skeletons remain, they can fully recover as long as they are bathed in holy light. Theoretically, as long as there is sufficient holy light, even if only a fingernail remains, she can still recover into aplete six-winged archangel.¡± Luther eximed in shock, ¡°But Lord Nage, isn¡¯t that like you!?¡± ¡°What, are you saying that I¡¯m a fingernail? I am a dragon scale, dragon scale, dragon scale!¡± Negris waved away and started pping Luther¡¯s head. Luther grabbed his head and thought to himself in grievance: Aren¡¯t they basically the same thing? Negris wasn¡¯t angry because Lutherpared him to a fingernail but because he himself hadn¡¯t remembered this detail. If Luther hadn¡¯t mentioned it, he wouldn¡¯t have recalled that his current body had been created just like that. Because the two scenarios are essentially different; angels recover by their own properties, while his recovery was due to Ange¡¯s healing. But the anger had to be taken out on somebody. He gave Luther quite a beating before he calmed down and squatted back down on the ground. Shamara helplessly asked again, ¡°So what do we do next? Do we break this seal? How do you break the seal? Can we break the box?¡± Negris replied, ¡°You have to think this over. If she remains sealed inside, she won¡¯t have any previous memories and she won¡¯t remember giving you wings. However, she would definitely remember the meaning of the holy light. If she recovers, the first thing she¡¯d possibly do is purify you, the fallen angel.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Upon hearing this, Shamara immediately set down the wooden box, pushed it toward Ange¡¯s feet and then retreated far away.
Ange had no choice but to pick it up and ce it back inside the Temple of Rest. Negris had mostly examined those items, he picked up the fire basin from the ground and said, ¡°The others are ordinary items except these few beads and this fire basin. This basin shouldn¡¯t appear in an undead¡¯s space artifact. Let¡¯s light it up and see.¡± Once the fire basin was lit, the mes burnt for a while, then suddenly shifted. Some kind of aura descended upon the mes, conjuring a face. A surprised voice came through, ¡°Eh? You¡¯re still able to light the fire basin, those guys didn¡¯t¡­ Mother¡­!¡± The demon apparently mistook the one who lit the fire basin for an undead. But when the image fully manifested, what it saw were faces of Ange and the others. It was taken aback and instantly tried to flee. A big cat suddenly darted out from in-between everyone¡¯s feet. It extended its ws into space as though it was preparing to pull over the demon. However, before the Dimension Beast could strike it with its paw, Ange¡¯s Boundary-crossing Hand had already gripped the mes along with the whole fire basin, lifting it up. Chapter 376: 230 The Night Watchman of the Land of Slumber_1 Chapter 376: Chapter 230 The Night Watchman of the Land of Slumber_1 A fire basin? A demon offering? A demon? Why does this aura seem a bit familiar? These thoughts just popped up in Negris¡¯s mind when he heard Ange angrily shout, ¡°Turus! You burnt my field!¡±
Negris almost fell to the ground, as he tried to restrain the furious Ange with a wry smile, ¡°It¡¯s not Turus, Not Turus. Turus is dead, dead.¡± This skull won¡¯t get over it, will it? Last time in the ck Mountain Kingdom, he called any demon he saw Turus. Now he sees a demon and calls it Turus again. Surely not all demons are Turus? Wait a minute, now that I think about it, isn¡¯t this that demon from the ck Mountain Kingdom? ¡°Is it you? The demon from the ck Mountain Kingdom?¡± Negris asked in surprise. The Lord of Terror, with a pained expression, asked, ¡°Who exactly is this Turus? Do I look like him?¡± Negris shook his head, ¡°Not simr, not simr. He¡¯s just a high-level devil. You can do a demon offering, so you¡¯re at least at the Devil King¡¯s level, right? How should we address you?¡±
¡°High-level Devil?! You guys can¡¯t even tell a high-level devil?! Are you bli¡­¡± The Lord of Terror wanted to curse ¡®are you blind?¡¯, but considering his own plight, he swallowed the remaining words. Negris was also quite embarrassed. Indeed, he was blind. Demons are one of the mostplex species, second only to insects. They not only have different forms, varying strengths, and different attributes, but also their methods of reproduction are often different. Subi are a kind of demon, and they have a more unique method of reproduction (6000 words omitted here¡­) So, for convenience, humans rank demons by their strength. The rankings are inferior demons, demons, mid-level high-level, Great Demons, which aremon demons. Above them are the Devil King and the Demon Overlord, which are not somon. Each of them is a king who controls a vast territory andmands thousands of subjects, equivalent to human gods and the truly powerful. Ange¡¯s mistake of equating a non-standard Demon God with a standard high-level demon, if not blindness, then what is it? ¡°I am the Lord of Terror, the Overlord of the Terror Abyss, what do you want to do?¡± The Lord of Terror asked grumpily. ¡°Lord of Terror? Are you a Demon Overlord? What are you doing here?¡± Negris asked before adding, ¡°What did you do in the ck Mountain Kingdom?¡± ¡°Are you questioning me? You should know, dealing with a demon requires paying a sufficient price. Are you prepared?¡± The Lord of Terror asked. Negrisughed, ¡°We¡¯re prepared. As long as you answer our questions, we¡¯ll let you go.¡± The Lord of Terror gave him a nce, ¡°This is just my projection, not my real body. Do you need to release me? Give something practical.¡± ¡°Even a projection is part of the power right? If you don¡¯t agree, should we squeeze it to pop?¡± Negris said confidently.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om
The Lord of Terror¡¯s face changed a few times, and finally, he sighed reluctantly, ¡°Mainly because I don¡¯t have much of my offering fire basin left. Forget it, I¡¯ll only answer three of your questions. After that, you have to put down my fire basin. Do you agree? If you agree, let¡¯s make a contract.¡± With his words, a phantom of a scroll slowly appeared, written with a demon inscription contract. The Lord of Terror exined, ¡°Do you understand Demon Inscriptions? Let me exin, this line is the names of the parties to the contract, this line are the agreements, answer three questions, this line is the reward, or say bonus, as long as I answer your three questions, you have to let go of my fire basin, not harming me in any way, and finally the signature. Any questions? If there are none, press your fingerprint on the signature.¡± Negris squinted his eyes and carefully read line by line. Seeing him taking too long, the Lord of Terror got a bit impatient, ¡°You¡¯re acting as if you understand, this is Demon Inscription, would we demons deceive you?¡± Negris nced at him, revealing a strange expression, ¡°What if I really understand? You demons im to never lie, but that¡¯s only a im. The subus I knew always says she¡¯s eighteen years old. Can you exin this Inscription to me?¡± ¡°Ah? Doesn¡¯t this line just say, not to harm me in any way?¡± The Lord of Terror stammered. ¡°Yes, yes, yes. This ¡®line¡¯ does mean that, but what about this ¡®sentence¡¯? What does it mean? You better think it through, I¡¯ve never seen a demon lie on a Demon Contract before.¡± Negris emphasized the words ¡®line¡¯ and ¡®sentence¡¯. The Lord of Terror¡¯s face turned as ufortable as if he had eaten feces, he grumbled, ¡°Pay an additional 600 Demon Crystals to the Lord of Terror¡­ So, you really can read inscriptions¡­¡± Negrisughed, ¡°It seems you demons really wouldn¡¯t lie on the Demon Contract, only hiding key information. Three questions for 600 Demon Crystals, are you a mage from the Legalist Guild?¡± The Lord of Terror became defensive, ¡°I am the Lord of Terror, the all-knowing Lord of Terror. It¡¯s your honor to have the opportunity to ask me questions. Two hundred crystals per question is very cheap, don¡¯tpare me to those foolish humans.¡± Thud! All-knowing?! Negris looked at the Lord of Terror, his eyes inevitably filled with intense fighting spirit: Kvada, dare to steal the prefix of my God of Knowledge?
Chapter 377: 230 The Night Watchman of the Land of Slumber_2 Chapter 377: Chapter 230 The Night Watchman of the Land of Slumber_2 However, after taking a nce at Ange, Negris began formting his ns and was about to ask the question he had been unable to answer: Where did the King go?
But before he could speak, the devil added, ¡°Aside from personal, private and unique matters, like where someone went, what color underwear they¡¯re wearing, or whether they¡¯ll be struck by a meteor while walking down the street, I can answer anything public or knowledge-rted. With just a small price, you can ace any test or assessment.¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn Geez, this guy not only wanted to steal the title of the God of Knowledge, he even stooped to doing what Negris refused to do. ¡°I don¡¯t have any money, just drop it.¡± ¡°Wait!¡± The devil quickly called out, every sentence about the Demon Crystal in the contract slowly began to disappear, ¡°This should be fine now, right?¡± ¡°Add the date and deadline.¡± Negris was still rather curious about why the devil appeared in ck Mountain Kingdom and how it got mixed up with the undead. After carefully examining the contract to ensure there were no hidden tricks, he pressed down his finger to sign it. The demonic contract dissipated, turning into specks of light that disappeared into Negris and the devil.
In the world of magic, there are many powers maintaining honesty and contracts. The Undead have soul oaths, living beings have loyalty oaths, wizards have magic contracts, and demons have demonic contracts. These were all bound by belief and rules, it was difficult to cheat. Even a prayer must follow the rules. Last time, someone prayed to the Undead God but did not fulfill his promise and ended up getting chopped by Ange. Soul oaths are maintained by soul contact, magic contracts are upheld by magic elements, and devil contracts also have counterparts to enforce them. There was no fear of breaking the agreement. However, devils often like to cheat and hide critical information. If you don¡¯t understand the Demon Inscription, it¡¯s easy to be at a disadvantage. Yet human nature is greedy and always hoping for a fortunate stroke of luck. Even when they know that they¡¯ll lose, they can¡¯t help but think they won¡¯t be that unlucky. After signing the contract, Negris was ready to ask questions: ¡°Are you in the ck Mountain Kingdom to exploit the insect disaster and then collect the fear from humans for something?¡± With a sharp look, the devil widened his eyes, ¡°Wait, you can ask questions like this?¡± This is equivalent to stating the answer before asking the question. Right now, the Lord of Terror really wanted to know how did he know so clearly. ¡°I¡­this¡­you¡­¡± The Lord of Terror stammered. ¡°You better think about it, the contract has been signed, and I even added a deadline. Can you bear the bacsh of the contract?¡± Negris proudly stated. He had been once despised by Shamara, so he quickly saw through the devil¡¯s intentions of avoiding deadlines. The Lord of Terror reluctantly submitted, ¡°I created a few Terrifying Ghosts to parasitize the Ry Spirits, did it seed?¡± He could faintly sense the presence of the Ry Spirits from the lower tower where he was. ¡°Oh, so you created that Terrifying Ghost,¡± Negris realized.
¡°So you mixed with the undead only to parasitize the Ry Spirits. But, how did they get their hands on this thing?¡± As Negris spoke, he motioned for Ange to bring out the box sealing Luna¡¯s Holy Spirit Fragments. The Lord of Terror practically wanted to cry, ¡°You can¡¯t ask questions like this! How many are these now?¡± ¡°One,¡± Negris replied. ¡°One hell! If I don¡¯t answer the previous one, it is default. If I answer the previous one, you will say the question is not established and the second one is the real question! You, little yellow dragon, are too sneaky,¡± The Lord of Terror burst into anger. Usually, it was him tricking others like this, but now someone used the same tactic against him. ¡°So, what¡¯s your answer?¡± Negris didn¡¯t deny using mischievous tricks. After all, what could he extract from only three questions? The Lord of Terror finally gave up. He discovered that the underdeveloped Bronze Dragon before him held far too much information and seemed to not be asking questions, but validating his own suspicions. ¡°The undead is the night watcher of the graveyard in the Land of Slumber, and he dug up this box in the graveyard,¡± The Lord of Terror replied. ¡°Land of Slumber!? Land of Slumber!¡± Negris eximed in surprise while Ange looked at the devil in his hand with renewed vigor. ¡°You meant the Land of Slumber? The Land of Slumber from the Resting Pce?¡± Negris asked solemnly, word by word. The Lord of Terror almost cried out, ¡°You know this as well? Who the hell are you? I don¡¯t know about any Resting Pce, but that¡¯s what the undead told me.¡± ¡°Where is the Land of Slumber?¡± Negris asked urgently, no longer worrying about asking the question properly.
The Lord of Terror quickly replied, ¡°I don¡¯t know, haha, that¡¯s three questions now, let me go.¡± ¡°Damn, I was in a hurry.¡± Negris pped his forehead, angered. He was too eager and failed to trap the question, allowing the opponent to simply say ¡°I don¡¯t know¡± as an answer. ¡°Release it. Burada, even though our deal is done, look, these gleaming magic crystals.¡± Negris gestured for Ange to take out some magic crystals. Ange casually poured out a small mountain of at least a hundred thousand magic crystals on the ground, causing the devil¡¯s eyes to nearly pop out. Chapter 378: 230 The Night Watchman of the Land of Slumber_3 Chapter 378: Chapter 230 The Night Watchman of the Land of Slumber_3 ¡°Look again, pure Soul Crystals.¡±
Ange crystallized another heap of Soul Crystals, his energy ever abundant. A Soul Crystal and Soul Energy are simply different forms of the same essence. Their conversion doesn¡¯t cause much loss. The demon, whose eyes were about to roll back, opened them wide again. ¡°And there are food, cloth, salt, fertilizer, Holy Essence Liquid, World Tree branches, Fruit of Life, Elf Beans, Upgrade Beans, um, and gold and silver coins. Do you want any of these? If so, you just have to pay the right price, and all these things can be yours¡­¡± Negris¡¯ voice was low and full of temptation. The Lord of Terror¡¯s eyes lit up and his gaze darted around these items on the ground. He wished he could scoop them all up. But when he heard ¡®price¡¯, he immediately snapped back to attention. This was the kind of talk he enjoyed tricking others with. Why did it feel like the roles had switched? Who was the real demon here? Be wary, don¡¯t be fooled, be wary, don¡¯t sumb to temptation. The demon reminded itself, but every time it nced at the pile of goods, it wavered slightly, finally abandoning all resistance. ¡°Just tell me what you want, I want this, this, and this.¡±
After some haggling, the Lord of Terror signed a tight contract. In its eyes, it was on the losing end, but everyone else thought it was fair. To a demon, fairness was equivalent to a great loss. Having asked all his questions, Ange threw three hundred Soul Crystals into the fire pit, where under the mes, the Soul Crystals slowly dissipated. Negris was pleased. Soul Crystals were now the least valuable thing Ange possessed. The daily influx of donations from the faithful had built up reserves of Soul Energy, not to mention the Instant Death Halo wasn¡¯t in use, so all that soul energy just umted. Despite the cost of hundreds of Soul Crystals, they obtained key information: ¡°The Land of Slumber was lost in the void, and that Undead was the graveyard¡¯s Night Watchman in the Land of Slumber. There are about a dozen others like him, but he was the most restless, dug up some stuff in the graveyard and ran, including Luna¡¯s Saintly Fragment.¡± ¡°He also gave an approximate set of coordinates. Following them might lead to the graveyard in the Land of Slumber, home to tens of millions to billions of Undead, preserved intact, because the Land of Slumber was established just to protect these corpses. Once we find it, we can regain the Undead Empire¡¯s most powerful force.¡± ¡°But the coordinates are too vague. We need a powerful Space Mage, and a Dimension Beast¡­¡± As he said this, Negris and Ange turned their heads to look at therge cat that was sneakily creeping over. Discovering it had been noticed, the big cat let out a ¡®meow¡¯ and dove towards the Fruit of Life on the ground. The Fruit of Life was the size of a washbasin, not much smaller than therge cat, but as it pounced, covering it with its fur, it disappeared. Getting to the Fruit of Life, the big cat turned to run, but it wasn¡¯t as fast as Ange, who grabbed its hind legs and yanked hard. ¡°Alright, we have the Dimension Beast. Now we just need a powerful Space Mage and we can start our journey to find the graveyard in the Land of Slumber. Once we find the graveyard, we might know why it was separated from the Resting Camp and what really happened back then.¡± ¡°Remember the Stripping Female Mage? Her Spatial Magic was incredibly strong, likely on the same level as a Magic Tutor. We can ask for her help, or maybe hire someone from the Mercenary Guild. What do you think?¡± Negris was full of enthusiasm, and couldn¡¯t wait to begin their adventure.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°No,¡± Ange refused outright.
Chapter 379: 231 Reward Staff of Heaven_1 Chapter 379: Chapter 231 Reward Staff of Heaven_1 Ange wanted to farm! Even the appearance of Harvey couldn¡¯t stop him from farming; nobody could deter him.
Ange took a quick aerial survey beforending. He then ran, scythe in hand, with the de pointed downwards, scraping the ground to mark straight guideline on the surface. As the Little Zombie moved along these guidelines, it dug straight ditches swiftly with its hoe. The dug-up soil was piled to the side, forming ridges, and naturally, a ploughed field with neatly arranged ridges and ditches took shape.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om The Little Angel, carrying the Earth Hammer, ran around in the field, smashing any sizable stones in sight. The Bronze Dragon flew around with a seed dispenser. Every sway of its w dropped seeds into the furrows. They buried the seeds, watered them, then stepped back and looked up at the sky. The sky was in perpetual darkness.
A mistake has been made. They needed to try again. They collected gravel and structured a drainage channel, moved the Luminous Moss over for breeding, and nurtured seedlings while cultivating the moss. They artificially raised the soil temperature indoors and provided suitable light for germination. Once sprouted, the seeds were transnted outdoors. Any which way this procedure was viewed, the workload was massive. Ange alone couldn¡¯t possibly manage it all. Ange ran in circles around the ry tower, pulling out the dormant Skeleton Zombies from the ground during his route, as if he was dancing. A sparse group of over three hundred skeletons, brought to the fields under Ange¡¯smand, instantly threw the ce into chaos. ¡°This won¡¯t work, Ange,¡± Negris interrupted. ¡°These skeletons have no souls. They are purely conjured by your King¡¯s Arrival. Directing them in a charge or sporadic assault is easy, but making them bend over to transnt crops is too hard on them. You could use telekinesis to micro-control three to five units, but managing this many? It¡¯s bound to get messy.¡± At Negris¡¯s suggestion, Ange attempted to control five of the skeletons and found it to be far more orderly than gathering a whole herd. But if Ange were to stop controlling the skeletons, they would cease any movement too. He singled out one sturdy skeleton, imbued it with the Soul Fire and thereby gave birth to a self-sustaining skeleton. Recollecting how his master treated him, Ange repeated the process on this skeleton and imparted all his farming techniques onto it. But Ange still underestimated theplexity of the task. The skeleton, despite having been imbued with Ange¡¯s farming techniques, was hopelessly lost when put in the field. ¡°Why is this happening?¡± a bewildered Ange pulled Negris over.
¡°Perhaps this skeleton¡¯s soul is notpetent enough to process suchplex information. It¡¯s just like an imbecile. Teach him all the magic knowledge in the world, and he¡¯ll still be unable to perform a single spell,¡± Negris spected. ¡°We can do it,¡± Ange referred to the skeletons at the farm, including himself, who were all low-rank skeletons. Why could he manage farm work but these skeletons couldn¡¯t? Was the knowledge he instilled wed? Negris looked Ange up and down, grudgingly saying, ¡°Although I¡¯m reluctant to admit it, in any way, your intelligence is not low. Sometimes, I seriously doubt if you¡¯re pretending to be foolish. Maybe you skeletons of the farm were specially selected, or created in an unconventional way, such as this¡­¡± Meanwhile, Negris pulled out a few globes. These were shaken loose from the Dimension Beast. They apparently housed spirits, like the one the Spirit of Terror was in. ¡°Upon investigation, I found that these globes can incubate souls. Put them in a ce where the Breath of Death is particrly strong, and they can incubate souls. This globe, for instance, already has a soul in it. In about three to four months, a Soul me would take shape.¡± ¡°How slow,¡± Ange responded, and reached out to ept them, throwing them into the Temple of Rest. A lonely hand floated to arge barrel, opened the lid, and tossed a globe inside. The barrel was filled with Liquid of Breath of Death, in which a Purple Gold Skeleton was immersed. After a moment of soaking, Ange withdrew the globe which now contained a new Soul me. As Negris held the globe, his was filled with mingled feelings. ¡°If only that undead met you earlier. Each of these globes carries soul fragments at different stages, clearly collected and incubated in batches by that undead using the breath of death. If it knew of someonevish enough to use the liquid form of Breath of Death to speed up soul incubation, it would surely weep on the ground for the time and effort it had wasted.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not sure what to call these globes, so for now, I¡¯m going to call them Soul Spheres. They bear the rune imprints of Durken, so they must have been created by Durken. This says something about the undead: he was probably a night guard at the graveyard of the Land of Slumber,¡± Negris continued to mumble.
However, Ange was not interested in what he was saying and just continued his maniptions; he channeled the sphere-incubated soul to a skeleon, leaving the sphere empty. He then tossed the empty spheres into the same barrel of Liquid of Breath of Death. After a short while, he fished them out. Sure enough, each housed a new Soul me. Like so, Ange obtained several dozen Soul mes. However, this incubation process significantly drained his Liquid of Breath of Death. Soon, hisst barrel of the precious liquid was left a notch less full, revealing part of Locke¡¯s skeletal skull, which looked eerily hollow. This was Ange¡¯sst barrel of Liquid of Breath of Death. If he didn¡¯t return to the Resting Abyss, it would be difficult to find more such refined liquid. Chapter 380: 231: Reward – Staff of Heaven_2 Chapter 380: Chapter 231: Reward ¨C Staff of Heaven_2 Alright, several dozens of Soul Fires would be sufficient for an experiment. Ange channeled all of them into the skeletons, reviving sixty undead skeletons.
After studying these skeletons, Ange found that their intelligence seemed to have improved slightly. Upon careful selection, there were particrly three skeletons that showed significantly high intelligence. Ange infused farming knowledge into them, and they managed to grasp some of it. The amount they mastered was not the key, the crucial point was whether they could put it to use. These three skeletons could carry out simple tasks like hoeing, transnting seedlings, watering, and sowing seeds. That was enough. Originally, the skeletons on the farm could only do these tasks. Ange acquired many abilities onlyter on. With the help of three additional skeletons, Ange elerated his transnting speed significantly. Coupled with Little Zombie, he now had five helping hands for transnting seedlings. As for why Little Angel wasn¡¯t included? It couldn¡¯t handle such delicate work, and it would be good enough if it didn¡¯t wreck the seedlings. Soon enough, rows of luminous moss appeared on the dark earth, glimmering brightly. Among the moss, thereid robust green saplings neatly in a row. Ange walked to the center of the farnd and stepped on it. Three hourster, all the saplings withered due to malnutrition. They turned yellow, unable to bear ears, and died.
Negris scratched his head and said dejectedly: ¡°It seems that the light intensity provided by the luminous moss is insufficient to meet the needs of the Instant Death Halo. Maybe we should stop nting for now and wait until the eternal night passes.¡± No one responded. Turning around, he saw Ange squatting on the ridge, resting his chin on his hands, calmly observing the farnd as if in contemtion. Little Angel and Little Zombie were squatting on either side of him. Big Bone was squatting aside, with arge cat resting on his head like a furry hat, creating a scene of tranquility and serenity. Witnessing this scene, Negris suddenly came to realization. That¡¯s right, they didn¡¯t need to eat, so it didn¡¯t seem important whether the crops grew or not. Identifying and solving problems might be where Ange found his pleasure. From nting luminous moss, holy mushrooms, beetroot, long-grain rice to the World Tree, Ange wasn¡¯t obsessed with what he nted. As long as he could farm, he was satisfied. As long as he could farm, where could the king have gone? Was the army of the Land of Slumber important? Not important. Even to Negris himself, it was not important ¨C he was merely trying to satisfy his curiosity. Realizing this, the depression in Negris¡¯s heart suddenly dissipated. He sighed, flew to the other side of the ridge, squatted down, and looked up at the dazzling sky. For the first time, he calmly watched the eternal night sky. The hanging streaks of light were the sole source of illumination during this eternal night. Even though they weren¡¯t all that bright, they were enough to outline the surroundings, much like a moonlit night. As he continued observing, Negris was suddenly struck by a thought and muttered to himself: ¡°Could these streaks of light be the turbulence ejected from a space rift?¡± Regrettably, there was nothing that could allow him to fly up and observe more closely, so he could only blindly guess. Just then, Ange suddenly turned to look into the distance, where a cloud of smoke came hesitantly from afar, seemingly ready to flee at any time. Only upon seeing Big Bone¡¯s prominent figure did the cloud of smoke speed up, calling from afar to announce its identity: ¡°It¡¯s me, it¡¯s me, my Lord, it¡¯s me, Feirick.¡± The cloud of smoke dispersed to reveal Feirick.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om
¡°Greetings, my Lords. What¡­ what has happened here? Isn¡¯t this Ry Tower No.4? How did it turn out like this? Is Holcuk here?¡± Feirick was baffled. As an undead merchant, he traveled incessantly. Though this ce didn¡¯t have much business opportunities, he would asionally pass by. It used to be a deste Land of Deathly Silence, how did it suddenly transform into its current state? Rows of neat farnd were equivalent to thousands of human habitations. But where were the people? How could human settlements appear out of nowhere? ¡°Oh, Feirick, thesends were just developed by us. Not a big deal, stop making a fuss. Why are you here anyway?¡± Negris casually said, with an ¡®it¡¯s-no-big-deal¡¯ attitude. Feirick took a good look at Negris, smiled awkwardly and rolled his eyes as if he didn¡¯t believe a word Negris said. However, he didn¡¯t dwell on it and answered Negris¡¯s question: ¡°My Lord, I have changed my status from a merchant to a staff member of the Trade Department under the Great Sage. I¡¯m in charge of trade-rted tasks. I came here this time to find channels to buy food.¡± Feirick eximed excitedly. As a weak and solitary trader, Feirick¡¯s biggest sorrow was not having any powerful backing. Anyone dared to pick on him, his speed in paying taxes when dealing with Brand indicated how ustomed he was to such treatment. Now, he had a chance to align himself with a powerful entity, and not just any entity, but the biggest one in the Land of Fallen¡ªthe Great Sage. Despite Harvey¡¯s greater strength, it was the Great Sage who managed the entire Land of Fallen. With the Great Sage as his backer, Feirick wouldn¡¯t have to worry about paying taxes while trading in the future! Negris sneered, ¡°You¡¯re only going legit because your business route got cut off, right? If you didn¡¯t switch sides, you wouldn¡¯t be able to run your business, since all your customers are gone.¡± s, the true reason was seen through at a nce. Feirick felt like he was about to fall apart as he confessed in disappointment, ¡°That¡¯s part of the reason, yes. We broke through the human defenses, and all the humans who didn¡¯t manage to escape were taken as captives. Who¡¯s left to buy my goods?¡± ¡°So what if nobody buys? You don¡¯t need to eat, are you afraid of starving to death? Now you¡¯ve turned to the Great Sage. You will be punished if you fail your task,¡± Negris reminded him.
¡°Yes, yes, we have quotas. We will be punished if we don¡¯tplete our tasks. Bronze Dragon Lord, you¡¯re so wise, you understand everything,¡± Feirick fervently agreed and praised. ¡°Ha ha, you certainly know the score,¡± Negrisughed, standing tall and proud. His tail, especially, was held high. ¡°To avoid punishment, I beg for your help,¡± Feirick took the chance to plead. Looking unsurprised, Negris asked, ¡°Want to buy grain?¡± Feirick nodded quickly in agreement, like a chicken pecking at grains. ¡°How did you think to buy grain from us? Do we look like we have any?¡± Negris asked, genuinely curious. ¡°Yes!¡± Feirick firmly replied, ¡°In that cave, you¡¯ve cultivated farnd, and here too, there¡¯s plenty of newly tilled fields. You¡¯re certainly good at farming. If even you don¡¯t have any grain, I really wouldn¡¯t know where else to find surplus food.¡± Negris nodded, praising Feirick for his keen observation. However, his tone shifted as he added, ¡°Pity we don¡¯t have any. We nted the crops, but nothing grew. The ones in the cave haven¡¯t even sprouted yet, and the crops here are all dead¡ªyou can look for yourself.¡± Feirick had already seen this when he arrived and sighed in disappointment, ¡°Even you don¡¯t have any? That¡¯s painful. It¡¯s terrible for the humans. Most of them have already left the Land of Fallen, so supplies will be greatly reduced or even cut offpletely in the future. The poption they could sustain before, they won¡¯t be able to sustain in the future. At least half will have to die. Starving to death is just too unbearable.¡± Negris was silent, confronted with this harsh reality. The Land of Fallen was barren and deste, unsuitable for living organisms, even worse than the Resting Abyss. At least in the Resting Abyss there was a proper day-night cycle. Here, there was a night every three months. The crops had toplete their life cycle within these three months, yielding a small harvest that couldn¡¯t satisfy the people¡¯s needs. Therefore, external support was necessary. For years, the Master ne had provided seventy percent of the food supply to the Land of Fallen, sustaining seventy percent of the poption.
This meant if supplies from the Master ne were cut off, at least seventy percent of the humans would starve to death¡ªit was a terrifying catastrophe. But Negris didn¡¯t dare to casually sell food. If massive quantities of food were provided, it would inevitably involve the Great Sage. How would he exin where the food wasing from then? Telling him that Ange had a Dimension Beast capable of traversing nes? What if the other party demanded he hand over the Dimension Beast? Don¡¯t forget why they were cornered here. Wasn¡¯t it because they couldn¡¯t get home? If they could traverse nes, would they need to be stuck here, desperately attacking human lines? Wouldn¡¯t it be easier to just teleport back to the Resting Abyss? ¡°The Great Sage even said that whoever could solve the food supply issue would be rewarded with the Staff of Heaven, a war trophy from over a thousand years ago. What a pity,¡± Feirick stated regretfully. Negris pricked up his ears, ¡°What did you say?¡± Chapter 381: 232 The cowardly spring breeze is unworthy_1 Chapter 381: 232 The cowardly spring breeze is unworthy_1 ¡°The Staff of Heaven? In your possession?!¡± In Ange¡¯s consciousness space, the newly drawn-in Anthony sprang up upon hearing Negris¡¯ words, excitedly asking. ¡°It¡¯s not with me; it¡¯s in the hands of the Great Sage in the Undead Empire. It was said to be a reward for apleted task. Why are you so agitated? Weren¡¯t you given a bunch of Great Angel¡¯s Staffs back at the Tree of Life? And anyway, what did you do with all those items?¡± Negris curiously inquired. ¡°How can they be the same?¡± Anthony said anxiously. ¡°Can these items even bepared? Those were just antiques. I had expertse in to refurbish them, preparing tounch a Lost Artifacts Exhibition and take it on tour in the Eastern Diocese, luring all the devout followers from the Western Region.¡± ¡°What¡¯s the difference?¡± Negris asked. ¡°I have a rough idea about the Staff of Heaven, but I¡¯m not sure, so I asked you. How about it, Anthony? Why not be one of my followers so I can update my knowledge base.¡± Anthony gave him a sidelong nce: ¡°In your dreams.¡± After a pause, Anthony turned serious: ¡°The Staff of Heaven is the key to Heaven.¡± A key? Both Ange and Negris instinctively looked at Ange¡¯s Boundary-crossing Hand. ¡°What¡¯s its use?¡± Negris hastily asked. ¡°From the descriptions in the Holy Codes I burnt, the Staff of Heaven can summon the advent of the Holy Kingdom,¡± Anthony recalled. ¡°I see, it can be used for spatial location, just like using you as a destination marker to descend into the Resting Abyss,¡± Negris guessed. ¡°Yes, that should be it. Furthermore, it can summon the Door of Heaven,¡± Anthony added.
¡°The Door of Heaven? Not the Steps to Heaven? So, you¡¯re saying it can open a portal?¡± Negris spected. Anthony nodded: ¡°It should be able to. Of course, it can also open the Steps to Heaven. In short, anyone who possesses the staff can freelymunicate with the Holy Kingdom. You said that the Great Sage is offering it as a reward for a task? As long as someone can solve the food problem, he will award them the staff?¡± ¡°Yes, that¡¯s what Feirick said,¡± Negris replied. ¡°What a meaningful reward. Tsk tsk, the Great Sage is as cunning and wise as ever,¡± Anthony praised. ¡°Heh, I haven¡¯t seen that old Undead for over a thousand years. I hope he won¡¯t mess things up. He dares to give out a Divine Artifact that can directlymunicate with the Holy Kingdom. He¡¯s not afraid that the Church of Light will get hold of it and summon the Holy Kingdom back,¡± Negris remarked sarcastically in response to Anthony¡¯s words. ¡°No, this task and reward are intended to bait the Church. Only the Church has the ability to resolve the food crisis in the Land of the Fallen. Only the Church would covet the Staff of Heaven. Even if others have the intention, they can¡¯t possibly transport food to the Land of the Fallen,¡± Anthony warned. At Anthony¡¯s reminder, Negris instantly understood: ¡°Right, the Great Sage wants to solve the food problem, and only the Church has the capacity to bring a lot of food into the Land of the Fallen. This reward is to attract the Church. They don¡¯t know that the Holy Kingdom is gone and that we have been nting Elf Beans in the Square of the Gods; so, the Church is sure to be interested in this reward.¡± Getting to this point, Negris¡¯ mischievousness resurfaced, ¡°What if the Church gets the Staff of Heaven and finds the Elf Beans on the Square of the Gods when they return to Heaven? Will theyunch a crusade against the Elves?¡± ¡°They will,¡± Anthony said with a bitter smile. ¡°At least I would respond with a crusade against the Elves. So, we must by all means prevent the staff from falling into the hands of Guliani, or it will be a big problem, and many people will die.¡± Negris nodded and asked, ¡°Doesn¡¯t the Great Sage fear that if the Church gets the staff, they will summon the Holy Kingdom to descend here and drive them back to the East?¡± ¡°To descend in the Land of the Fallen? Improbable, the sky above the Land of the Fallen is filled with space rifts; the Holy Kingdom simply can¡¯t approach it,¡± Anthony said. Negris got a shock, ¡°Really? Space rifts?!¡± It had been specting whether the inverted light bands it observed in the sky were the turbulent eddies of the space rifts. It hadn¡¯t expected to be right. After a series of exchanges and inquiries, Negris understood the details about the Staff of Heaven and discussed the corresponding actions with Anthony. Ready to break off the Soul Contact, Anthony suddenly remembered something and said, ¡°Right, all the Elves in the world are looking for Lord Ange, publishing apology letters everywhere, expressing willingness to ept punishment for their previous offences, and hoping to receive Lord Ange¡¯s forgiveness. Now the world is guessing who Lord Ange is.¡± ¡°The Elves are backing down? This soon? Did the Tree of Life awaken?¡± Negris said in astonishment. It had been just two months. How could the stubborn Elves capitte so swiftly? It was impossible unless the Tree of Life awoke andpelled them to submit. However, given the state of the Tree of Life before, it didn¡¯t seem possible that it could awaken in just two or three months. ¡°If they want to back down, they should. If they want to apologize, they should. They¡¯re dreaming. Ignore them and leave them hanging for a few months. Keep an eye on their situation,¡± Negrismanded. Negris was not nning to contact the Elves as of now. These Elves were too arrogant and uncontroble. At least not until the Tree of Life woke up and there was something to keep them in check.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om In fact, Negris had a pretty good impression of Gard and Kael¡¯danil, but the Truth Mage, who possessed the Forbidden Magic Domain, gave Negris a feeling of danger.
Chapter 382: 232 The cowardly spring breeze is unworthy_2 Chapter 382: 232 The cowardly spring breeze is unworthy_2 After severing the spiritual connection, Negris said to Ange, ¡°The Staff of Heaven can not fall into the hands of the Church. The Holy Kingdom is currently stuck above the Resting Abyss. If they regain control of the kingdom, we will be in considerable trouble. Do you have any solutions?¡± Ange tilted his head, pulling out a handful of seeds, ¡°Use these.¡± ¡°Pfft! Aren¡¯t those the high-yield grains you initially nted? Kvada, Ipletely forgot about them. In the harsh environment of soil and water erosion in the Resting Camp, you could mature them in the same season. If we change to fertilend, could you make it so they can be harvested in three months and maintain high yield?¡± Negris inquired. ¡°We could pre-grow them,¡± Ange replied. ¡°Kvada, you seem to have prepared well in advance what you wanted to nt here, just waiting for the eternal darkness to pass. So, what have you been so busy with these past few days, turning over thend and nting the Luminous Moss?¡± Negris had a feeling that it was in vain. Ange cocked his head, speaking truthfully, ¡°ying.¡± Spurts of blood would be coughed up, if there was any. The grain Ange cultivated inside the Temple of Rest was a genuinely high-yield crop. Over a thousand years, the fertility of the farms steadily depleted. To ensure the crops could be harvested before the end of each growing season, Ange continuously improved the grain varieties for a millennium. These grains cultivated under extreme conditions, once moved to fertilend outside, immediately demonstrated outstanding potency. Previously, Ange¡¯s fastest growth and harvesting speed was one and a half month. However, this rapid harvesting method led to lower yields, so after mastering the Instant Death Halo, the short growth time advantage was disregarded. Then came the Long-grain Valley with excellent taste and the Saline Demon Rice that can grow in salt water. As such, Negris overlooked this basic grain variety. Short growing time and rtively high yield, isn¡¯t this the perfect divine artifact for this ne?
What irked Negris the most was that Ange clearly knew what he wanted to nt, yet futilely busied himself for several days, causing Negris to worry about him. Fearing that this poor skeleton would be disheartened, nuts! For the following period, Ange was busy preparing and arranging the farnd. He adjusted the fertility and pH level of the soil, tilled, sterilized, purified, and added base manure, etc. To grow a good crop, the preliminary work was important. Some tasks may be cumbersome for ordinary farmers, but they were effortless for Ange, as long as he continuously cast Purification. So, in a part of the Undead¡¯s territory, there was ever-present fizzing sound apanied by the scent of a sun-dried quilt spreading around. The deep-seated stench of death was cleansed, and even tenacious microorganisms could not survive. Meanwhile, as Ange was preparing thend, in the slums behind the Holy Wall City, the Great Sage was also at his wit¡¯s end. There were too many things he had to deal with. At this moment, he deeply realized the disadvantage of having too few high-ranking undead creatures. For instance, he even had to personally handle interrogations now. ¡°This suspect, robbery, murder.¡± An undead underlingmanded several skeletons, leading a lineup of criminals and pointed at one of them. ¡°Robbery? Murder? Suspect, please raise your head. Did youmit these crimes?¡± Prompted by the Great Sage¡¯s question, the criminal lifted his head, his gaze became dazed, and he answered vacantly, ¡°Yes¡­ killed two¡­¡± The Great Sage had evidently used some spiritual interrogation technique and had extracted the evidence promptly. Hearing the response, he dismissed it, ¡°Off with his head.¡± Speaking of beheading, a Silver Skeleton moved the convict aside, gripped a bone dagger, and stabbed it from his jaw into his brain, stirring forcefully. The bone dagger entered the brain without damaging the skeleton¡¯s structure, swiftly killing him. This yielded aplete corpse. One could also stab it through the eye socket, but then the eyes couldn¡¯t be preserved. If this body were to be converted into a Witch, wouldn¡¯t they be a One-Eyed Witch? Even such details were carefully considered. The Undead Empire truly lived up to its name. ¡°This suspect, theft,rge amounts.¡± ¡°Sever his hand.¡± ¡°This suspect, sexual assault.¡± ¡°Off with his head.¡± ¡°This suspect, sexual assault, a little girl.¡± ¡°Throw him in the Soul Prison. Burn him to death.¡± The Soul Prison was a punishment worse than the death penalty. The soul would be set ame. Normally, creatures would faint or die from being set on fire.
However, Soul Prison burns souls, you can¡¯t lose consciousness or die easily. Being burned to death means that the consciousness in your soul is burned to the point where you can¡¯t recognize yourself anymore. Great Sage made his judgements swiftly. Under his mental pressure, these criminals admitted their wrongdoings one by one, very honestly. Judgement was just one part of it, the bigger issue was how to feed the captured humans. These years, the Great Sage has been tirelessly increasing the number of living creatures, trying to feed more poptions.
Some people think that the undead are immortal, never dying, evesting, but that only applies to high-level undead. Lower-level skeleton zombies may not die, but they do wear out. The bones and joints of normal humans are worn out by the age of fifty-six, and that is because they have skin and muscles for protection. The skeleton has no such protection. If it acts like a human, its joints and feet will wear out in about ten years. To protect these low-level undead to the maximum extent, the best way is to let themy still. Lying in the Land of Deathly Silence covered with Breathing Soil can greatly dy this wear and tear. But no matter how much you dy, a thousand years is the limit. Without new corpses to supplement, all undead creatures will eventually rot. Most of these undead creatures returned from various nes of existence a thousand years ago. Many of them are already in a state of decay. If this continues, I¡¯m afraid only those high-level undead with bones, flesh, and metal will be able to move. Therefore, living creatures are not the enemies of the undead, but the foundation of the Undead Empire. The undead are not the enemies of the living, but a new form of life after death. However, this interdependent rtionship has been gradually distorted by the propaganda of the Church of Light, and has be irreconcble. Why would the undead kill you? They don¡¯t eat people. This time, the retreat of the Church of Light left hundreds of thousands of living creatures in the Land of Fallen, humans, horses, and cows. This is a great fortune. The Great Sage doesn¡¯t care if his soldiers are human skeletons or Corpse Witch Horses, as long as they are undead. The only challenge is how to feed these hundreds of thousands of people. The supplies left behind by the Church of Light and the food avable from human viges in the vicinity can support them for a couple of eternal nights. But for sustainable development, the problem of food self-sufficiency must be solved. Otherwise, the end result will just be hundreds of thousands of corpses.
To solve this problem, the Great Sage didn¡¯t hesitate to bring out the Staff of Heaven, believing that the Church of Light couldn¡¯t resist. Solving the food problem would only add hundreds of thousands of living mouths to the Land of Fallen, but getting the Staff of Heaven was like getting the key to Heaven. Halfway through the judgement of the criminals, someone suddenly reported: ¡°Great Sage, there is a teleportation request on the Teleportation Array.¡± The Great Sage was energized and eximed: ¡°Here theye! You take over the judgement.¡± The Great Sage floated away excitedly, casually pointing at the undead who was brought up with the criminals. ¡°Me? Great Sage, I don¡¯t know how¡­ uh, okay, I¡¯ll judge. This one, murder? Cut off. ¡°This one, adultery? Hmm, chop it off. Chop it off.¡± ¡°This one, cheating, chop off.¡± ¡°This one, solicitation? Cut off.¡± ¡°Chop, chop, chop!¡± The Great Sage arrived at the Teleportation Array, eagerly expecting who the Church of Light might send to negotiate with him. With a sh of light, several elderly farmers appeared in the Teleportation Array.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om It¡¯s not the Church of Light? The Great Sage was taken aback. There was no hint of Holy Light on them. Seeing the Great Sage, one of the farmers said loudly, ¡°Is the gentleman in front the Great Sage of the Undead Empire? We are members of the Druid Guild. This is the inventor of the high-yielding grain variety that won the Spring Breeze Cup Druid Contest. Great Sage, we have brought you high-yielding grain seeds.¡± The inventor of the high-yielding grain variety snorted dismissively, ¡°There will be no Spring Breeze Cup in the future. That coward, Spring Breeze, doesn¡¯t deserve to have his name associated with the grain contest.¡±
Chapter 383: 233 I Really Like the Cemetery Grass You Gave Me_1 Chapter 383: Chapter 233 I Really Like the Cemetery Grass You Gave Me_1 Dobinki led the way, and despite his best efforts to hide it, an expression of disgust involuntarily spread across his face, especially when he saw the skeleton zombies. The asional arrogance and contempt emanating from him, the inherent superiority a city dweller feels towards a country bumpkin, annoyed the Great Sage. After all, Dobinki had blunt hands and feet and looked like amoner. What was there to feel superior about? The Great Sage himself was a very amicable undead. He personally drove to distribute relief grains and could hold a conversation with the mayor, the vige chief, even a minotaur. He was not arrogant at all. But what was his real identity? He was the Wise Sage of the Undead Empire, the wisest soul second only to the king. Even the stout Locke and Harvey wouldn¡¯t dare show arrogance in front of him. However, considering that Dobinki had brought high-yield crop seeds, the Great Sage felt he could tolerate such behaviour as long as it could solve the problem of food. The Great Sage never guessed that it was not the Church of Light that hade, but the druids. Like the disciples of the Church of Light, the druids were also naturally opposed to the undead creatures due to their ability to manipte life. Their instinctual aversion to the dead was why the Great Sage hadn¡¯t considered them at first. But now, Dobinki¡¯s arrival caused the Great Sage to rethink his position, and it instantly dawned on him that the druids might be the best people to solve the problem at hand. The Great Sage was now faced with a food shortage. As long as enough food could be produced, all the problems would instantly cease to exist. The crop yield in the Land of Fallen was barely above a hundred kilograms per mu due to various reasons. If the crop yield could be tripled, they would be self-sufficient. These druids imed they had seeds that could yield a thousand kilograms per mu and mature over a short growth period of three months.
A thousand kilograms per mu was ten times the current yield. If the yield could be tripled, that¡¯d be sufficient. If quadrupled, they would have surplus to spend. Even if there was a lean year, they would manage somehow. Step back a bit further; even if it couldn¡¯t be tripled, doubling the current yield would still save many lives. The group crossed the Holy Wall City and arrived east of the Central Mountain Range. The Great Sage pointed to thend ahead, saying: ¡°The west side is not safe right now. You can till thends here. Pick any vacant space you want. If you want my grave, I will immediately relocate to make room for you, as long as you can grow enough food before the next Eternal Night,¡± the Great Sage dered confidently. The Little Tree-stature of Dobinki shrugged with scepticism, ¡°We¡¯ll see. The soil around here doesn¡¯t look particrly fertile. If we can¡¯t produce a thousand kilograms per mu, it would be a wonder if we got five to six hundred kilograms. Let¡¯s look around some more, hopefully, we can find more fertilends.¡± ¡°No problem at all. Please, feel free to look around. Once you find something suitable, I will immediately have it cleared. Oh, Shadow Guards, do protect our esteemed guests. I have other matters to attend to and can¡¯t entertain you all the time. Please understand,¡± said the Great Sage. As the Great Sage mentioned the Shadow Guards, a few shadows surfaced to pay him their respects. With a shing red glimmer in their eyes, they fixated on individual druids, each one assigned to a druid, their figures slowly fading into oblivion. This was not protection, but one-on-one observation. With these Shadow Guards watching over them, the Great Sage dared to let the druids wander around freely. When the Shadow Guards appeared, all the druids were shocked, except for Dobinki, who didn¡¯t seem surprised. He didn¡¯t even nce at the Shadow Guards while he took a handful of beans from his bosom and scattered them on the ground. ¡°Life spirits who slumber in the earth, please hear my call, awaken,¡± Dobinki said with his left hand raised high, chanting aloud. In no time, the air around became moist, turning into a fine drizzle that seeped into the ground. In just a few minutes, the ground was thoroughly drenched, and the seeds that had just been sown sprouted and grew visibly, soon turning into a Little Tree.N?v(el)B\\jnn Once the tree grew, Dobinki stepped back to make room for the other druids. They quickly stepped in, hands beaming red and blue lights onto the Little Tree. Under the glowing lights, the Little Tree grew rapidly and soon became a short, waist-thick tree about half a person tall. The short tree suddenly came to life, with a thicket of roots unearthing themselves and entangling into two short legs, plodding forward. The Tree Herders, the druid¡¯s favourite helpers. The five Tree Herders moved in five different directions, taking their time. asionally, their feet extended into tree roots that prated the soil, analysing the condition of the earth. From time to time, they would pull up nts from the ground, roots and all, and nt them onto themselves, collecting local samples. However, once they stepped into the Land of Deathly Silence, they could no longer collect any nt samples. Even their roots were reluctant to prate the soil.
After he dispatched the Tree Herders, Dobinki¡¯s robe suddenly puffed up and magic power began circting around him. After about ten seconds, Dobinki did a somersault and transformed into an eagle. He soared into the sky, performing the transformation magic ¨C hawk. The other druids, being less powerful than him, took a minute to transform. Dobinki waited for everyone to finish transforming. Once they had all turned into eagles, they chose a random direction and flew off. One of the druids seemed to remember something and couldn¡¯t resist asking with worry, ¡°Sir, should we wait for the Shadow Guards? I am afraid we may inadvertently encounter other undead creatures¡­¡±
Chapter 384: 233 I Really Like the Cemetery Grass You Gave Me_2 Chapter 384: Chapter 233 I Really Like the Cemetery Grass You Gave Me_2 Dobinki replied without turning his head, ¡°No need, they are right beside you.¡± With Dobinki¡¯s words, the face of a Shadow Guard, vague and blurry, slowly appeared in front of the Druids, ¡°Don¡¯t worry, noble guests, we will ensure your safety.¡± Shortly after the Druids left, a goblin and an undead mounted on a bone horse returned to Holy Wall City. Before they even entered, they saw the Great Sage on his way back. Feirick hastily greeted, ¡°Great Sage, Great Sage, I¡¯ve found it, I¡¯ve found it. I¡¯ve brought a high-yield crop that produces a thousand pounds per acre.¡± The Great Sage looked at Feirick with a peculiar expression, ¡°You also brought a crop that yields a thousand pounds per acre?¡± ¡°Also?¡± Feirick was dumbfounded, ¡°Is there someone else who found high-yield crops too?¡± The Great Sage ryed the matter about the Druids. Before Feirick could reply, the goblin who arrived with him uproariously dered: ¡°Great Sage, please beware of liars. They casually imed to yield a thousand pounds per acre, but what proof do they have? They mentioned the Spring Breeze Cuppetition, but what proof do they have? What if the crops only produce a hundred pounds per acre? Great Sage, that would mean wasting a nting season. Millions of creatures would have to endure hunger for another four months.¡± Hearing the Goblin¡¯s heartfelt words, the Great Sage could not help asking, ¡°Who are you?¡± ¡°I¡¯m the President of the Silver Light Mercantile Company, Goblin Silver Coin. I hope you will like this modest gift I brought when I audaciously paid this visit,¡± Silver Coin enthusiastically said, presenting a box with both hands. The Great Sage was somewhat baffled. Someone was giving him a gift?
This was unprecedented for thousands of years. He was an undead, without a physical body, had lived for too long and craved nothing. People were unsure about what gift to offer, and so over time, they stopped presenting him with any. The Great Sage was now very curious. What could this goblin possibly give him? Demon Crystal? Soul Crystal? Or¡­ As he opened the box, he found a piece of dull, gray moss quietly lying inside. Feirick¡¯s disappointed voice echoed from the side, ¡°Moss¡­¡± Feirick had also been quite curious about what Silver Coin would gift the Great Sage. As an undead, he had a fair sense of what could move the undead. So he had been curious all along the way, but to his surprise, it turned out to be a piece of moss. Wasn¡¯t this an insult? The Great Sage, however, carefully picked up the moss and said: ¡°This is not ordinary moss; this is Cemetery Grass. I haven¡¯t seen it in a long time. The climate and soil of the Land of Fallen are not conducive to its growth. nting it around a grave can bring peace to the mind and dispel spirits. Wraiths are the most afraid of this. With it, no wraiths would dare to disturb you.¡± Upon hearing this, Feirick¡¯s eyes lit up, fixated on the Cemetery Grass. For Kvada, he could overlook everything else, but not wraiths, especially since he often wandered in the outdoors and was most likely to encounter them. Their constant noise was irksome. Killing a single wraith was easy, but to eradicate them all was a challenge. After a while, one or two would appear again from somewhere, ¡®Ahh ahh ahh¡ªahh ahh ahh¡ª¡¯ their cries extremely annoying. The Great Sage, with a nostalgic look in his eyes, said, ¡°The Cemetery Grass grows most lushly in the garden in front of His Majesty¡¯s Pce and inside the Underground city¡¯s Undead Temple. I haven¡¯t seen it in a long time. I really like this gift. How did you get it?¡± With a stone-faced expression, Silver Coin answered, ¡°I obtained it from the human mercenary guild when I was buying various novel items. I¡¯m delighted you like it.¡± Of course, it was not acquired from the mercenary guild. It was Ange who plucked it from the garden in front of the Temple of Rest. The Great Sage did not think it was plucked from the Temple of Rest, casually asked and let it slide, and carefully closed and packed the box back into his form. With the gift as a prop, the Great Sage found Silver Coin more amiable. Using a warm tone, as if talking to a nephew, he asked, ¡°Why do you think the Druids might be liars?¡± ¡°No, Great Sage. It¡¯s not that I think they are, but if they happen to be, the consequences would be severe. You would lose a nting season and possibly starve hundreds of thousands of people,¡± Silver Coin said solemnly. ¡°How many nting seasons can our food supplyst?¡± The Great Sage asked. ¡°But can you guarantee that if they turn out to be liars, you¡¯ll solve the food problem before the supplies run out?¡± Silver Coin asked. The Great Sage frowned: ¡°What do you mean? Speak straight, don¡¯t beat around the bush.¡± Even though the Great Sage¡¯s tone was somewhat rude, Silver Coin rxed even more. In general, people are only rude to those they are close to, which suggested that his gift had been effective.
¡°Great Sage, you need multiple insurance policies, like a tradingpany that can mobilizerge amounts of food and use a teleportation array to deliver it remotely, and a druid who has high yielding crop seeds and is confident in their ability to grow food in the Land of Fallen,¡± Silver Coin said confidently. ¡°You¡¯re sure you can mobilizerge amounts of food and send them to the Land of Fallen?¡± The Great Sage ignored the bit about the super productive druid. What a coincidence, two parties arrived at once. The Great Sage considered these add-ons as Silver Coin¡¯s bargaining chips. ¡°No problem. If we don¡¯t grow enough food, I¡¯ll get more from the Master ne,¡± Silver Coin confidently stated.
Of course, the Great Sage weed this. Just as Silver Coin had said, he needed multiple insurance policies. But he knew Silver Coin wouldn¡¯t work for nothing and must have a request in return, so he asked, ¡°What do you want in return?¡± Silver Coin was taken aback, ¡°Huh? Didn¡¯t we agree on the Staff of Heaven?¡± ¡°The druidse first. If they really can produce a thousand pounds of food per acre, the Staff of Heaven would have to go to them. You can choose something else,¡± the Great Sage stated this clearly. ¡°No, Great Sage, that¡¯s not fair. What if we can produce a thousand pounds per acre too? What if we produce a thousand and one pounds per acre? Why should the Staff of Heaven still go to them?¡± Silver Coin objected. ¡°It¡¯s not that easy to produce a thousand pounds per acre. As long as you produce more than they do, even just by half a pound, the Staff of Heaven is yours.¡± ¡°Great, it¡¯s a deal.¡± Silver Coin breathed a sigh of relief and said excitedly. Just then, the Great Sage¡¯s face turned pale, ¡°No good, they¡¯re fighting! They dare to hit my guests?! There are still people in the Land of Fallen who dare to disrespect me?!¡± The angry Great Sage mmed his foot on the ground. The ground squirmed with an aura of death, and a six-horse Undead Chariot slowly emerged, carrying the Great Sage like a streak of ck, speeding towards the horizon. His speed was even faster than flying. Watching the direction in which the Great Sage was leaving, Silver Coin and Feirick nced at each other, both shocked: ¡°Isn¡¯t that the direction we came from?¡± ¡°Oh no, they¡¯re fighting with the boss!¡± ¡­ Ange and the druids such as Dobinki, and the Shadow Guards were fighting. Why were they fighting?n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Of course, it¡¯s because they had their eyes on the plot ofnd that Ange had prepared. Thend was t, ploughed, and even had base fertilizer added. Even in the eyes of a druid, it was outrageously fertile.
Since the Great Sage had said that they could choose anynd here, and he would even move his tomb for them, they decided to choose this plot. So the Shadow Guards emerged andnded in front of Holcuk, indifferently stating: ¡°We¡¯re seizing yournd.¡± They thought this plot was Holcuk¡¯s. Who would have guessed that a skeleton had prepared these cultivatednds? Holcuk was stunned, as this plot wasn¡¯t his. So he hurriedly fetched Ange and passed on what the Shadow Guards had said. ¡°Rob mynd?!¡± A me erupted in Ange¡¯s head, and he swung the Scythe of Death in attack. The Shadow Guards were also rather taken aback. The one who this skeleton dared to defy was the Great Sage¡¯s confiscation order? All the Shadow Guards came out, surrounding Ange. Seeing this, Little Angel rushed over, Little Zombie rushed over, Negris rushed in, the Big Cat rushed over. Big Bone also roared and rushed over, ¡°Don¡¯t, hit, they¡¯re the Great Sage¡¯s guards.¡± Was it ¡®don¡¯t¡¯ or ¡®hit¡¯? What Big Bone said left everyone clueless. Chapter 385 - 234: The Druid Was Stripped Bare_1 Chapter 385: Chapter 234: The Druid Was Stripped Bare_1 ¡°No, no, don¡¯t fight!¡± Big Bone rushed over and gently shoved everyone, trying to pull them apart. The Shadow Guard¡¯s glowing red eyes widened dramatically. He quickly raised his hands to shield himself, but Big Bone¡¯s push sent him scattering apart. Ange also raised his hands to block Big Bone¡¯s other hand. He didn¡¯t move an inch while his feet skidded several steps back on the slippery mud. Big Bone was flustered, ¡°Oh, oh, I¡¯m sorry, I didn¡¯t mean to.¡± He then went running towards the scattered Shadow Guard, intending to piece him back together. N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°Lord Big Bone, I know it wasn¡¯t on purpose. Please don¡¯te closer!¡± The Shadow Guard quickly reformed a face and shouted anxiously, stopping Big Bone¡¯s approach. If Big Bone identally touched him again, he might not survive a second time, no matter whether it was intentional or not. Big Bone despondently stopped, scratched his head, ¡°I¡¯m sorry¡­ You guys are too fragile¡­ Ange and the others can take it¡­¡± The Shadow Guards didn¡¯t care about what Big Bone was saying as long as he stayed away from them. The leading Shadow Guard said, ¡°Lord Big Bone, the Great Sage has ordered us tomandeer fertilend for our Druid guest to cultivate. Is this your territory?¡± Scratching his head, Big Bone responded, ¡°No, it¡¯s Ange¡¯s.¡± Big Bone stepped aside, revealing Ange standing behind him. The Shadow Guard blinked in confusion. The powerful undead creatures in the Land of Fallen were few, and Big Bone was one of them. If thend belonged to Big Bone, it would be understandable, but why would an ordinary Golden Skeleton have so much farnd? But he didn¡¯t think too much about it and said, ¡°Golden Skeleton, the Great Sage needs to seize your farnd to let the Druid cultivate. Please cooperate.¡± ¡°No.¡± Ange refused. ¡°Golden Skeleton, I hope you will cooperate. This is themand of the Great Sage.¡± The Shadow Guard said sternly. ¡°No.¡± Ange denied again. Little Angel came running up and was picked up by Ange before she could make a move. The Little Angel turned around in confusion and pointed at the Shadow Guard, ¡°Ah!¡± Ange shook his head, ¡°Ah.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Little Angel dejectedly backed away. After being interrupted, the Shadow Guard was momentarily flustered. They had never encountered anyone who rejected the Great Sage¡¯smands before, so what to do now? But they didn¡¯t have to worry for long. They all stepped back as a shadow rapidly approached from the distant horizon. With a swing of its tail, it stopped right in front of them. The Great Sage climbed down from the carriage, vexed. But when he saw the scene, he immediately became bewildered, ¡°Big Bone? What are you doing here?¡± Scratching his head, Big Bone pointed at Ange and the others, ¡°New friends.¡± The Great Sage followed Big Bone¡¯s point to Ange and others. An ordinary Golden Skeleton, a human little girl, a witch, a Bronze Dragon, big cats, and in the distance, a humandy, three humans, a witch, a unicorn¡­ What an oddbination? Since they were Big Bone¡¯s friends, it seemed inappropriate to use force. Even the huffing and puffing Great Sage was scratching his head, turning to the Druid in the sky and saying, ¡°Honorable guest, thisnd has an owner. Would you please find another ce?¡± Dobinki¡¯s voice drifted down from the eagle¡¯s back, ¡°No, this soil is fruitful, the most suitable for nting crops. If we switch to another ce, it¡¯s unlikely we¡¯ll get a thousand pounds per acre.¡± Well, isn¡¯t it obvious? Ange imnted insect ash as the base fertilizer, mixed in bird droppings, added corresponding wood ash and crushed stones from the Earth Hammer. With Ange¡¯s experience of over a thousand years in cultivation, he carefully bnced the soil proportion and then purified the soil from vermin, mold, and other impurities using Purification. Dobinki would absolutely never find such suitable soil in a natural environment. He had never even seen such soil, so of course he wouldn¡¯t give it up easily. The Great Sage couldn¡¯t help but feel troubled. If Dobinki had any other reasons, that would be tolerable. But now that he had brought up the issue of not being able to produce a thousand pounds per acre, the Great Sage had to give it serious consideration. If not a thousand pounds per acre, then how much? Five hundred? Three hundred? One hundred? No matter how much yield they could achieve in the end, the Druids could always say: It was because you didn¡¯t give us thatnd, that¡¯s why the yield is so low; you¡¯re responsible. The me could be shifted easily. To avoid future excuses, it seemed like it would be better to seize thend for them, and maybe provide somepensation for Big Bone¡¯s friends. Thinking of this, the Great Sage turned his head, just about to say something, when the Bronze Dragon surprisingly spoke up. The Bronze Dragon gave a wry smile and said, ¡°Old Undead, do you recognize me?¡± Negris was attentively watching the Great Sage¡¯s expressions. Seeing his final expression, Negris knew something was wrong. Based on his understanding of this Old Undead, he suspected the Great Sage was preparing to use force. It would be fine for other situations, but seizing Ange¡¯s fields was absolutely uneptable. If they ended up fighting and identally killed the Great Sage, that would be troublesome. At this point, Negris couldn¡¯t afford to hide anymore, and started yelling ¡®Old Undead¡¯ instantly. The disrespectful address angered the Shadow Guards, ¡°How dare you!¡± Just as they were about to rush up to cut down the Little Yellow Dragon, the Great Sage stopped them, then he looked at the Little Yellow Dragon incredulously, shocked and unsure as he called out, ¡°God of Knowledge?¡± Chapter 386 - 234: The Druid Was Stripped Bare_2 Chapter 386: Chapter 234: The Druid Was Stripped Bare_2 Among those he knew, only the all-knowing Bronze Dragon would call him Old Undead. ¡°It¡¯s been over a thousand years, and you still remember me,¡± Negris said. Upon confirming that it was really the God of Knowledge, the Great Sage was even more shocked, so excited that his form started to waver: ¡°God of Knowledge, you¡­ you¡­ you¡¯ve lost weight! What are you doing here? Could the Resting Camp have¡­?¡± Negris knew what he wanted to ask, but he shook his head, fabricating a reason, ¡°I don¡¯t know about the state of the Resting Camp either, Piero rescued me.¡± If not forced to, Negris would rather not reveal his identity to these old-timers of the Undead Empire. He could ept Ange taking control of the godhood and bing the Undead God, but could the Great Sage ept it? Could Harvey ept it? What if they don¡¯t ept? What if they demand Ange to hand over the Resting Camp? The old-timers of the Undead Empire have a strong reverence for the Undead King that could not be erased. Could they ept seeing the Undead Godhood falling into the hands of a farming skeleton? Negris doesn¡¯t know. To avoidplications, he didn¡¯t want to identify himself, especially since they couldn¡¯t return to the Resting Camp anyway. But now he was forced to reveal his identity, so he had to fabricate a reason and coordinate the story with Anthonyter. ¡°Is it really you? How did you get here? What happened to you? My God, you¡¯re so thin, how long has it been since you¡¯ve eaten something?¡± The Great Sage flew over excitedly, feeling around on Negris¡¯ body. ¡°Stop touching, stop it, go away, go away, go away!!!¡± Negris rolled and kicked the Great Sage away. The Shadow Guards, who had never seen the Great Sage in such a state, changed their look, withdrew their weapons and quietly retreated to the side. Dobinki and the others were also left aside. The Great Sage and Negris huddled together, whispering about something. From time to time, they exploded with curses such as ¡®Bada¡¯, ¡®Old Undead¡¯, and ¡®Embryo Dragon¡¯. After about ten minutes, they seemed to havee to an agreement. The two parted ways, and Negris returned to Ange¡¯s side, whispering: ¡°Ange, the Great Sage offers two straw men in exchange for half of your farnd, with the ry tower as the dividing line, the east belongs to them, the west to us, and the Staff of Heaven goes to the winner of the contest. Do you agree?¡± Straw man? Ange touched the straw man hat on his back and nodded enthusiastically. If there was anything in the farm closest to him, it would undoubtedly be the straw man. However, after the soul of the Undead disappeared, the straw man quickly lost its magic power, and it was no longer able to transform, eventually decaying and crumbling, leaving only a hat. Ange hated others setting his field on fire and grabbing hisnd, but fair trade was fine, he could always plow morend. The straw men were more valuable than anynd. Negris breathed a sigh of relief. It was his idea to suggest the Great Sage bring out the straw men. Because he had thought about it, only something rted to farming could affect the farming skeleton. ¡°Are you confident about this? These men im to be high-yield crop cultivators of the Spring Breeze Cup Grain nting Competition. They can cultivate a thousand pounds of grain per mu, can you win them? The Staff of Heaven cannot fall into the hands of others,¡± Negris asked. If Ange wasn¡¯t confident, then he could only refuse thepetition and negotiate a ¡®friend deal¡¯ with the Great Sage to privately acquire the staff. In the worst case scenario, he could get Anthony to make a duplicate for the druids. Ange nodded his head. Then there was no problem. Negris flew back to ry the response, and on their end, the Great Sage had also talked it over with Dobinki. Dobinki didn¡¯t agree initially. The fertilend was precious to the druids, how could they let others have half of it? But when they heard that the other party wanted topete with them in crop cultivation and see whose crops are more productive, all the druids including Dobinkiughed. Their faces expressed an amused ¡®these kids are adorable,¡± and they immediately agreed. Negris left and returned, bringing back two straw men, straw dolls in human-form, wearing two straw hats. Both the straw dolls and the straw hats were much more exquisite than what Ange had seen before. A boundary line was drawn with the ry tower at the center, and Ange and the others retreated to the west of the line. After they had retreated, the druids, excluding Dobinki, came to the boundary, sowed seeds, and then cast their spells. With the rhythm of magic, the seeds on the ground grew rapidly, creating wildly growing thorny vines. Guided by the druids, they formed a wall enclosing thend to the east, which belonged to them. Lightning was summoned over. Big Cat, Little Angel, Little Zombie, Ange, and Bronze Dragon all lined up and crouched on its back, peeking curiously into the thorny vines. Negris murmured in surprise, ¡°Grows faster than your Instant Death Halo? Are real druids this powerful?¡± ¡°No, it¡¯s the seeds,¡± Ange responded. ¡­ After everyone dispersed, and when the druids might have fallen asleep, a shadow quietly approached the thorny wall. With a touch of a finger, a bud rapidly grew, bloomed, and bore fruit. The shadow gathered a heap of seeds. It then circumnavigated to another part of the wall and repeated the process, obtaining seeds from different nts. The next day when the druids woke up and saw the holes revealed by the prematurely wilted flowering fruits on the vine wall, they were utterly bewildered. ¡­ Before Eternal Night passed, Ange¡¯spetition with the druids couldn¡¯t begin, but Ange didn¡¯t mind one bit. He had discovered something else ¨C these druids were a treasure trove, carrying countless treasures on them. The thorny vines they brought out on the first day were a fast-growing nt. Under the druid¡¯s urging, it could grow into a wall in one day. Then, on the second day, they nted a tree. It was low and stout, with a rapid growth rate, and it could bear fruit within the day. The fruits were the size of a human head. They picked off those fruits and roasted them over the fire. After cooking, a grain-like aroma wafted out from the fruits. They contained a yellow, flour-like substance, and after roasting, they could be formed into a ball and eaten directly. ¡°Oh my God, that¡¯s starch, these fruits could serve as staple food,¡± Negris eximed astoundedly, sticking his head out of the window on the top floor of the ry tower. Ange and others followed suit, craning their heads out the window and watching curiously. Dobinki the Druid probably regretted setting the boundary at the ry tower. The vine wall was almost useless because the tower was higher, and every move they made was under scrutiny. Furthermore, this audience had really thick skin, or rather, no shame ¨C when told not to spy, they simply ¡®openly¡¯ watched instead. Hurriedly finishing their meal, the druids ran to another corner, sowed some more fast-growing seeds, and quickly conjured up a wooden house to hide inside when doing anything. When they all hid inside the wooden house, a shadow quietly approached the vine wall, peered through a crack, aimed carefully, and suddenly reached out. The hand disappeared before its body and reappeared beside the starch fruit tree several meters away, and plucked a fruit before disappearing. The shadow retracted its hand, which now held a fruit, and quickly made its way back to the ry tower. Once back in the tower, Negris couldn¡¯t help but exim, ¡°Using the Boundary-crossing Hand to steal, you really are¡­¡± During dinner time, seeing one less fruit on the tree, a druid exploded, ¡°Who the hell is stealing our stuff! Have you never seen a breadfruit before? If you haven¡¯t eaten it, just say it! I can spare you one. You thief, clumsy, shameless, no..sh*¡­¡± Lightning ran over excitedly: ¡°Who¡¯s cursing? Who¡¯s cursing? Great, watch me.¡± Taking a deep breath, Lightning stood on this side of the vine wall and started swearing, ¡°#$¡­ &¡­ *.. *¡­ (&¡­ ^¡­ *¡­ @¡­ %.. ¡­¡± In the face of Lightning¡¯s impassioned cursing, the druids hastily retreated. Unable to retaliate or out-curse them, and constantly being taken advantage of, the druids felt like they were going bald. Just as Ange had acquired six special seeds from these druids, dawn approached.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Chapter 387: 235: Witness the Real Skills_1 Chapter 387: Chapter 235: Witness the Real Skills_1 The Great Sage raced onward in the vehicle, heading for the Great Rift hundreds of kilometers away. On the tnd, a massive rift suddenly split open, as if some monstrous force had torn the earth apart. Surrounding and inside the rift were countless graves of various sizes. Some resembled little mounds of dirt, some had gravestones standing next to them, and some were simply left uncovered, bearing a stark resemnce to open gravesites. At the sound of hooves, some skeleton zombies poked their heads out from the open graves, their glinting eyes staring at the carriage speeding by. From the carriage¡¯s perspective, it appeared as though a myriad of glowing eyeballs was staring at it. Of course, the Great Sage had be ustomed to such scenes, not bothering to slow down and brushing past them at high speed. Entering the rift, there were skeleton zombies peering down from both sides of the cliff walls. The carriage made a swift U-turn, drifted for a few yards and came to a sudden halt. The Great Sage hopped off the carriage and quickly floated towards arge cave deep within the rift. As he entered the cave, he instantly saw a cluster of sacred light simmering away. Startled, the Great Sage eximed, ¡°Power of Holy Light? Servants of Light, prepare to meet your doom!¡± The hand holding the holy light gently closed, snuffing out the radiance. And then Harvey¡¯s voice sounded, ¡°It¡¯s me¡­.¡± ¡°Harvey?¡± The Great Sage immediately conjured a sphere of energy emitting spiritual fluctuations. The sphere radiated spiritual waves in all directions, reflecting off objects and bouncing back. Undead beings observe the outside world via souls, and the spirit fluctuation sphere could illuminate their world, functioning like a re.
Undead beings can actively emit spiritual fluctuations to observe the surroundings, but this approach easily draws others¡¯ attention, often leading to confrontations. So, in a world filled with undead creatures, what do you think would happen if everyone recklessly emitted spiritual fluctuations to peek here and there? Hence, the undead living in the Undead Empire understood a rule of etiquette: if you can¡¯t clearly see others, use a re to light them up. Soon, the Great Sage saw Harvey sprawling on a stone lounge chair in the darkness. ¡°So it really is you. What was that holy light earlier?¡± The Great Sage asked, puzzled. Without even bothering to move his toes, Harvey opened his right hand to reveal a cluster of holy light zing in his palm. ¡°You¡¯ve been hurt? What happened? Were you attacked by a servant of Light?¡± The Great Sage eximed in shock. They were currently hundreds of kilometers deep into the Land of Fallen, a region filled with undead all around for hundreds of kilometers. If a servant of Light could infiltrate this deeply to carry out an assassination on a Lord of Mourning, let alone injuring him, he wouldn¡¯t be an ordinary servant. ¡°During the city siege,¡± Harvey drawledzily. ¡°The siege? That¡¯s not right. I watched the whole thing. When were you injured?¡± The Great Sage recalled the siege and asked with confusion. ¡°When I hit the wall, a shadow burst out and struck me, knocking off my finger,¡± Harvey lifted his palm. Four fingers were made of purple-gold bones, and one of light-grey bone. However, that light-grey finger was riddled with holes from the holy light¡¯s burning. Harvey took a nce, found it unsightly, and plucked the finger off. He walked to the nearby cave wall and kicked at it. The cave wall had numerous humanoid indentations, each holding a Golden Skeleton. The kick dislodged one of the Golden Skeletons. The disoriented Golden Skeleton scratched its skull as it climbed up, looking perplexedly at Harvey.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Harvey pointed at his finger: Prattle prattle¡­. Without uttering a word, the Golden Skeleton raised its middle finger, grasped it with his other hand, pulled off the finger bone and handed it to Harvey before ambling out, leaving Harvey behind. Not long after, the Golden Skeleton came back with a silvered finger bone, clearly not knowing who exactly it had taken it from. ¡°You really are something. You even snatch your underling¡¯s bones, aren¡¯t you ashamed?¡± said the Great Sage, looking disgusted.
Harvey shrugged, saying helplessly, ¡°Can¡¯t help it. The grey bone I picked up was burned like this by holy light. If I don¡¯t rece it with a sturdier one, it will be burned down soon. I was actually hoping to get whatever bone I could find and refine it myself.¡± ¡°What kind of holy light is so overbearing that even you can¡¯t suppress it? After all these days, it¡¯s still burning?¡± The Great Sage looked closer and eximed in rm: ¡°No way, Fire of Mass Faith!¡± Harvey slumped back onto the stone lounger, giving the Great Sage a sidelong nce.
Used to Harvey¡¯s habit of saving effort whenever possible, the Great Sage started exining voluntarily: ¡°The Fire of Mass Faith is a particrly vicious me. Essentially, it means part of a faithwork is pinned on you. As long as these followers hold a devout belief in Light, their faith will continuously strengthen this me, searing your body.¡± Harvey asked, ¡°Can it be dispelled?¡± ¡°Very difficult, because it¡¯s formless. Furthermore, it¡¯s something many Disciples of Light dream of having. The Fire of Mass Faith is the seed of godhood. Those who possess it can gather followers¡¯ faith and gradually grow into new deities. But if this thing is nailed to your body, that¡¯s truly Kvada.¡± The Great Sage shook his head, unsure how to continue. However, Harvey had caught an important point, ¡°Be a god? They pinned a seed of godhood, something that could turn them into gods, onto me? The cost is too high, isn¡¯t it?¡± Chapter 388: 235: Witness the Real Skills_2 Chapter 388: Chapter 235: Witness the Real Skills_2 ¡°What¡¯s there to fear about high costs, as long as it can be recouped. Now, unless you abandon this body of yours, or find one of the Gods of Light to remove this Fire of Mass Faith for you, or else kill all these Disciples of Light, cutting off their faith, this fire wouldn¡¯t re up again,¡± the Great Sage said. ¡°Abandon my body? No way, I¡¯ve worked so hard to get it to this state, I¡¯m not giving up. The Gods of Light? Heh, who knows how many are still around. Killing all the Disciples of Light sounds easier, but it¡¯s such a chore. Forget it, I¡¯ll think about it. This tiny bit of Holy Light won¡¯t do any harm anyway.¡± Harvey stretchedzily, sinking into the stone chair in a morefortable position. Heaven knows how his skeletal frame could differentiate betweenfortable postures. His bones scraped the stone chair until it ked. Then he remembered something, ¡°What are you here for?¡± ¡°I¡¯ve met the God of Knowledge,¡± the Great Sage said excitedly.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Oh? Where did you meet him?¡± Harvey¡¯s spirits lifted, and he sat up in the stone chair. However, after the Great Sage ryed the circumstances of meeting Negris, Harvey immediately lost interest andy back down. ¡°Um, aren¡¯t you excited?¡± Harvey¡¯s unexpected reaction left the Great Sage a little flummoxed. ¡°Not excited, it doesn¡¯t want to meet us,¡± Harvey replied. ¡°What!?¡± The Great Sage had been so excited since meeting Negris, he hadn¡¯t had time to think things through. It was only when Harvey reminded him that he finally caught on. Indeed, Negris didn¡¯t want to see him, otherwise it wouldn¡¯t have revealed his identity only when he was about to force the issue. Furthermore, it was clear that Negris hadn¡¯t just arrived in the Land of Fallen. If he hadn¡¯t sought them out after all this time, he obviously didn¡¯t want to meet.
This was hard for the Great Sage to ept: ¡°Why doesn¡¯t it want to see us? I arranged for its droppings to be cleared, even itsmb meals are procured by me, and it didn¡¯t want to see us? Doesn¡¯t it know we miss His Majesty deeply?¡± ¡°His Majesty, is no more,¡± Harvey muttered absent-mindedly. If their monarch was still around, Negris would not have been so standoffish towards them. This change of attitude only confirmed their previous conjecture ¨C their monarch was gone. ¡°It said that Piero saved it. Something must have happened to the Resting Camp, otherwise it wouldn¡¯t have been able to leave the seal. However, it didn¡¯t say what happened, only that it didn¡¯t know,¡± the Great Sage furrowed his brows. ¡°Piero, huh¡­¡± Harvey too couldn¡¯t help but sit up: ¡°This guy is much more difficult to deal with than the God of Knowledge, too slippery.¡± Even the mourned Harvey felt that dealing with Anthony was challenging, at least lying down wouldn¡¯t cut it. ¡°So, what do we do now?¡± The Great Sage asked. Harvey hesitated for a moment, and reluctantly got up: ¡°Let¡¯s go see it first.¡± He reluctantly shuffled his way to the cave entrance, and the sky suddenly brightened. Harvey looked up and said, ¡°Eh, the eternal night is over. Forget it, I¡¯ll go see him during the next eternal night, I¡¯m going to sleep now.¡± Having found an excuse, Harvey turned around and went back, once again throwing himself into the stone lounge chair. The Great Sage stood there for a while, sighing helplessly: ¡°If only you were a bit more diligent, we wouldn¡¯t have needed over a thousand years to break the human line of defense.¡± From the depths of the cave came Harvey¡¯snguid voice: ¡°Can¡¯t do it, my lumbar disc is herniated, can¡¯t get up, the more active I am, the worse it bes.¡± The Great Sage drove back on his own, against the first rays of sunlight after the eternal night¡­ ¡­ As the first sunlight broke after the eternal night, Ange was getting ready, hugging a breadfruit. When the Druids were scared off by the lightning earlier, they left behind a saying, ¡®Stealing the breadfruit is useless, they can¡¯t cultivate the seeds¡¯, which seriously underestimated Ange. From the moment he watched them eat the breadfruit, Ange knew why there were no seeds inside the fruit ¨C because it wasn¡¯t ripe yet. Some fruit from certain nts only develop seeds once they¡¯re fully ripe, and evidently, the breadfruit is one of them. What the Druid had said was correct. Once a fruit without seeds is picked, it cannot grow again, hence, it cannot bear seeds.
However, Ange was no ordinary person. He could make a cut-off branch from the Tree of Life bear fruit. So why would he fear such an ordinary breadfruit? Pouring essence onto the fruit, the Instant Death Halo was activated, causing the once plump fruit to shrivel quickly. When opened, almost all of the starch inside was consumed, leaving only dozens of ck seeds. Ange picked a full seed and nted it in the east side of the ground. Around lunchtime, the druid parted the bamboo forest and entered the enclosed breadfruit tree grove. To prevent the fruits from being stolen, they had to nt bamboos to surround the breadfruit tree, making it impossible to see the tree even from the tower, hence preventing theft.
However, the druids did not realize that many bamboo shoots not yet out of the ground had been plucked. Parting the bamboo forest and counting the fruits ¨C none were missing. The druids kept track of the exact number of breadfruits on the tree. When the fruits for lunch were picked and just about to be brought out, the druid suddenly smelled the aroma of roasted breadfruit. This led him to involuntarily nce inside his arms. All the breadfruits were there. So, who was roasting the breadfruit? Following the scent, the druid reached the bramble wall. Speaking a spell, a vine from the bramble reached out and lifted him, allowing him a view beyond the wall. Immediately, he spotted that particrly annoying unicorn. Lightning was sitting on the field ridge, holding a roasted breadfruit in its front hooves. It bit a piece off and licked it continuously. Seeing the druid poking his head out, Lightning greeted him cheerfully, ¡°Hello, have you eaten? Are we arguing again today?¡± The druid, his face turning pale with anger, couldn¡¯t say anything. He just muttered to himself, ¡°You only stole one breadfruit, let¡¯s see what you will eat when you finish it.¡± However, such ¡®mumbling¡¯ was loud enough for Lightning to hear. After lunch, busying himself the whole afternoon, the druiding to pick the breadfruit again smelled the scent of the roasted breadfruit. When he climbed up the wall for a look, he found the unicorn sitting in the same ce as noon, ncing at him as it slyly extended its tongue, licking the inside of the breadfruit from a hole. The druid was so mad that he was about to explode. Heforted himself, saying, ¡°Don¡¯t get angry, don¡¯t get angry. It¡¯s the same fruit shell as before. He¡¯s just trying to annoy us by stuffing something else into it.¡± At dinner, the unicorn came again, carrying two breadfruits this time. It licked one and then the other.
The druid was infuriatingly mad. He roared, transforming into a giant bear and smashed the bramble wall in front of him, ¡°I will tear¡­¡± Just as he was halfway through his sentence, he saw many heads popping out from behind the unicorn, from a field ridge. An excited little girl was just about to climb out but was stopped by a gold skull holding her cor. Was this an ambush? A sense of unease hit the druid. He quickly changed his sentence, ¡°I will tear¡­ tear some wild vegetables, for seasoning back at camp.¡± The giant bear paw randomly grabbed two handfuls of wild grass from the ground, and then shrunk back, uttering an incantation as the smashed bramble wall slowly grew back again. When he reported to Dobinkiter, the druid said, somewhat aggrieved, ¡°Those things are obviously trying to provoke us into a fight. Then thepetition will end, and they won¡¯t be obligated to lose.¡± Dobinki felt the same way. They ¨C a group without any druids ¨C dared topete with them in farming, there was no way they could win other than resorting to underhanded tactics. However¡­ ¡°You said they have many breadfruits? It seems they¡¯ve managed to nt the breadfruit seeds, they do have some skills. We should also not let our guard down. If we lose to them, it will be embarrassing, so from now on, let¡¯s add another two hours of prayer.¡± Dobinki announced. The other druids sighed without any objection. Indeed, if they lost in farming to a motley crew of skeletons, a little girl, an embryo dragon, and a nasty-mouthed horse, it would indeed be embarrassing. When everyone else was asleep, Dobinki stealthily went to the location of the water buckets. These were dew collection buckets, used to collect nighttime dew for watering, which can save a lot of Magic Power. Dobinki took out a bottle and poured the ck liquid in it into the water, murmuring, ¡°It¡¯s time to show you what real skills look like.¡± Chapter 389: 236: Don’t Blame Me for Being Rude_1 Chapter 389: Chapter 236: Don¡¯t me Me for Being Rude_1 Ange took out a bottle of ck liquid and poured it into the bucket in a gurgle. Seeing that the color was still light, he took out another bottle, and poured three bottles in a row. He stirred it evenly, then began the detailed work.
He flicked his fingers, and the liquid in the bucket jumped up, following his actions and bounced towards a certain nt, then exploded. The mist sprayed evenly on the nt. This continued non-stop until all the nts were sprinkled with water fertilizer mixed with Insect Ash Liquid. Negris pped back and reported to Ange: ¡°Ange, those druids are continuously casting light on each nt. It seems to be supplementary lighting, but the light is only red and blue, which is a bit strange.¡±n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Ange quickly dropped the water fertilizer and ran to the top of the tower to look down. The druids were scattered around the farnd, each taking care of a portion of the crops. They emitted red or blue light from their hands, constantly brushing over the nts. Ange rested his chin on the windowsill, watching until the druids finished. Then he lifted his palm, held up a ball of white holy light, and turned his palm a few times. The color of the holy light began to change.
No, that¡¯s not right. Ange shook his hand, and then offered another ball of white light. This white light wasn¡¯t as soft as the holy light and was a bit dazzling. If you look at it for a long time, you will feel your eyes are sore. ¡°sh Technique?¡± Negris leaned over and said, ¡°It should not be sh Technique. They can persist for several hours, more powerful than the magic array used by Witch City. The consumption of sh Technique is too great, they couldn¡¯t possibly sustain it for so long.¡± As soon as Negris finished speaking, the white light in Ange¡¯s hand suddenly turned blue, and after a while, it turned red again. Negris frowned and looked for a while, then hesitated and said: ¡°It¡¯s still the sh Technique, but the elemental fluctuations are much less. Is it because they only emit red and blue light, so the consumption is reduced? But what is the use of this?¡± Talking too much is useless, you still have to experiment. Ange immediately marked out a small control zone in the farnd, part illuminated with red and blue light, part with holy light, and part nted with Luminous Moss for supplementary light. Seven or eight dayster, the differences were obvious. The crops exposed to red and blue light were much stronger in both grain stalks and leaves than those that only received holy light or were supplemented with Luminous Moss. ¡°It seems that these druids are quite skilled, not just eating and doing nothing,¡± Negris said. Its knowledge of culturing hasn¡¯t been updated for a thousand years. Nowadays, everything that gets updated belongs to Ange¡¯s school of thought. If Ange doesn¡¯t know, it doesn¡¯t know either. Neither the cultivation methods from a thousand years ago nor Ange have any knowledge about red and blue light, but now they do. Ange immediately expanded the irradiation range to the entire cultivation area, emitting light for two hours every day. But in the original control area, Ange increased the dose for them, and they were irradiated for eight or nine hours a day, almost all night under the cover of light, and then overgrown. It seems that supplementary lighting also needs to be regted. Ange continuously experimented andpared, and soon found the most suitable supplementary lighting time. In the condition of the Land of Fallen, supplementary light for three hours every day can make the crops grow the best. If it exceeds three hours, the crops are prone to overgrowth.
A weekter, Dobinki quietly came to the bucket again, picked out a bottle of ck liquid and poured it in. Seeing that there was still a little bit left in the bottle, he scooped up some water, rinsed it, and then poured it into the bucket, not willing to waste a drop. He was still muttering to himself: ¡°This is the second bottle. One bottle every seven or eight days. In the next two months, I have to put more than a dozen bottles in. This task is losing money. I have to raise the price.¡± On the other side, Ange also took out three bottles of ck liquid, didn¡¯t even look, just dumped them in, hastily stirred a bit, then started watering. As time passed day by day, during which Anthony found him twice and said that the elves were looking for him all over the world and were about to cry. Now the whole world is curious about who Lord Ange is and why he doesn¡¯t give the elves any face. Silver coin also found him several times, saying that the business environment here was too poor, and the supplies werecking. He had already organized people to produce self-rescue materials and hoped that Ange could provide some high-yield grains. Then he sent him a bunch of Evesting Spring Stones. In the Land of Fallen, the Evesting Spring Stone is the most practical. There are few streams here, especially in the third month after the eternal night, when surface water is almost exhausted, but the humidity in the air is very high. Throwing Evesting Spring Stone at the wind vent can condense water during the day. With the Evesting Spring Stone, Ange could save the consumption of magic in watering and have more time for supplementary lighting. So Ange gave Silver coin several tons of grain for seeding. In the third month, Silver coin dragged a plough back and told Ange, ¡°I have organized some people to dig coal, mine, build furnaces and cksmith shops. It took three months, and we finally made iron plows and various iron farming tools. My Lord, do you need any?¡± Ange shook his head. The Little Zombie is more useful than an iron plow. Negris was stunned: ¡°In just over two months, you have done so much? You have made ironware? You also know how to forge?¡± Silver coin scratched his head and spoke bashfully, ¡°My Lord, you are joking. How could I know how to forge, but someone does. I carried a bag of rice to the human camp and shouted ¡®who can forge iron.¡¯ My God, the people who rushed up almost tore me apart.¡±
¡°I almost got squeezed to death, and hurriedly shouted: Who can fight? Twenty or so fighters rushed over to protect me. Under their protection, I recruited a group of cksmiths, miners, furnace workers, farmers, and some who cook and wash clothes. The Great Sage dispatched me a group of zombie skeletons and several guards, saying that he will fully support my work.¡± Chapter 390: 236: Don’t Blame Me for Being Rude_2 Chapter 390: Chapter 236: Don¡¯t me Me for Being Rude_2 Negris asked incredulously, ¡°The Great Sage is fully supporting your work? What does he have to do with it? And he sent guards to protect you? Where are the guards?¡±
As Negris inquired, a shadow reluctantly emerged from behind Silver Coin, ¡°Here, sir.¡± It turned out to be the shadow guards who had previously protected the druids. ¡°You guys again? What did Silver Coin do? The old undead even let you protect him?¡± Negris asked in surprise. The Shadow Guard honestly replied, ¡°Reporting to sir, Lord Silver Coin is organizing production. The Great Sage said none of us have the organizational ability of Lord Silver Coin, so we must ensure his safety.¡± The Shadow Guards became very honest, they had no other choice, considering the dragon in front of them had a close rtionship with the Great Sage. Negris looked Silver Coin up and down, nodded, ¡°I see, Silver Coin¡¯s organizational ability is indeed strong, the old undead has a discerning eye.¡± How could it not be strong? Among Ange¡¯s many followers, only Silver Coin and Anthony could build amercialwork on their own without any worries.
Previously, because of the war, humans had no intention to organize production, and the Undead were incapable of doing so. Now, with an organizational powerhouse like Silver Coin, iron products could be produced in just over two months. With arge number of iron-made farming tools, more farnd could be efficiently opened up, and farming could be carried out more efficiently. With this, even without high-yield grain varieties, the food production could grow several times over. The problems that technology couldn¡¯t solve could be addressed through scale. The Great Sage suddenly realized that increasing productivity by one or two times could solve the food problem without the need for druids. Under these circumstances, how could the Great Sage not value Silver Coin? After discovering that he was a witch, he even tried to dig into Ange¡¯s corner, emphasizing that as long as Silver Coin was loyal to him, he could immediately control the Undead Army of the Land of Fallen. But Silver Coin firmly stated, ¡°I have a master!¡± Regardless, the capabilities of Silver Coin were evident. The Great Sage still ordered all units to support Silver Coin as much as possible, and even sent Shadow Guards to protect him. After hearing all this, Negris couldn¡¯t help but exim, ¡°Silver Coin, you¡¯re really amazing. The food problem was actually solved by you like this. When the output is low, increase the scale. When efficiency is low, update tools. The food problem doesn¡¯t necessarily need to be solved by food means, incredible.¡± Silver Coin, being praised so much, scratched his head in embarrassment, ¡°I just thought that there was no industry here,bor is cheap, and there are plenty of minerals, so I¡¯ve been busy with this. It¡¯s not about solving any food problem.¡± ¡°Unfortunately, your method is slow in taking effect. To increase the scale of remation, we have to wait for the next nting season. Otherwise, you would have won this game. Have you encountered any difficulties in your work?¡± Negris asked. If Silver Coin encountered any difficulties, Negris, as the God of Knowledge, could help him solve them. Silver Coin was stunned for a moment, ¡°Difficulties? I do have some. There is too little timber in this world. I have made a lot of hoe heads, but there are no trees to make hoe handles. Now everyone is binding the hoe heads on their hands, bending over and digging on the ground. It¡¯s so hard. If only there was bamboo.¡± Hearing the hoes bound to hands, Negris couldn¡¯t help but look at Little Zombie. Then hearing ¡®if only there was bamboo¡¯, he couldn¡¯t help but look at Ange, thinking to himself: Isn¡¯t this too coincidental?
Sure enough, Ange cocked his head. Negris flew over, hugged Ange, turned his head to Silver Coin and said, ¡°Silver Coin,e over here, I have something to talk to you about.¡± With the instruction for Silver Coin toe over himself, the Shadow Guard attached to Silver Coin could only reluctantly drift away and disappear into the side. Everyone returned to the ry tower, Negris¡¯s consciousness even retracted into the Temple of Rest. After looking at the farm, sure enough, he saw that the dozens of acres ofnd on the edge had already grown into a bamboo forest. ¡°Kvada, as soon as you cocked your head, I knew it! You must have nted bamboo.¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help but tease. He had just pulled out the druid¡¯s bamboo shoots, and now he had nted a bunch of bamboo. It would make the Druids mad. ¡°If you nt them outside, it¡¯s fine, but if you nt them inside your space, you can¡¯t just take them out. That will reveal your secret of having arge space. If the Great Sage finds out, it¡¯ll be directly connected to the Resting Camp, you understand?¡± Negris rarely seriously warned Ange. Ange nodded in agreement. He ran into the bamboo forest, swiftly matured a bamboo tree, and plucked its seed.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Holding the seed, he ran out, found a random spot to nt it, watering it, then cast a spell. His activity caught the Druids¡¯ attention. Some of them climbed the wall and couldn¡¯t help but curse when they saw, ¡°Damnit¡­ Lord, he¡¯s stealing our bamboo!¡± Wanting to curse, they were silenced by the re of the unicorn on the wall corner.
Dobinki¡¯s face turned green with rage. They not only stole their seeds, but also brazenly nted them in their presence. Infuriating! Suppressing his anger, Dobinki shouted, ¡°Friends outside, isn¡¯t this going too far? Stealing our bamboo and fruits? Those are fast-grow breeds we cultivated with our heart and soul. You are thieves!¡± Ange turned to look at him, nodded, and then scampered over towards the thorny wall. Upon reaching the wall, he jumped to its height, flipping his hand and leaving a bottle of the ck liquid on the wall. Falling back to the ground, Ange scampered back. An equivalent exchange was fair. After all, they had taken quite a bit from them, it was only right to return something of equal value. Looking at the ck liquid on the wall, Dobinki was a bit confused, ¡°What does this mean? Apensation? This a joke? A bottle of water for our carefully cultivated seeds¡­¡± Just as he was speaking, Dobinki cracked open the lid of the ck liquid, took a sniff, and hisplexion changed drastically. He could no longer continue speaking. The other Druids, hearing Dobinki curse, were thinking of continuing theshing, ¡°Exactly, you think a bottle of water can offset¡­¡± Dobinki kicked each of them down, refusing to exin and chased them back to the cabin. Shutting his cabin door, Dobinki took out his own ck liquid. While they were both ck liquids, Ange¡¯s was clearly thicker and filled in a different bottle. He sniffed both, their scents were simr, but Ange¡¯s had a stronger aura. Dobinki carefully dabbed a small amount on a twig. To his surprise, the dried up and cut twig began to sprout. ¡°Yin! This is the real Yin! Oh my goodness, this is real Yin, not the expensive and diluted stuff I have. Oh my goodness, where did this skull and crossbones get it from?¡± Dobinki began to tremble all over.
The special thing about the Essence Bug Ash Liquid is that it can bring the dead back to life, something ordinary Insect Ash Liquid couldn¡¯t achieve. From then on, Dobinki¡¯s attitude towards Ange changed drastically. He no longer mentioned Ange stealing his seeds, even offering more himself. He would scramble to the top of the wall, asking Ange if he wanted them and that they could exchange them for the ck liquid. This intrigued the other druids, wondering what this ck liquid was that could change the high and mighty Dobinki and even stoop to sell his seeds. But the seeds he brought out no longer caught Ange¡¯s interest. Either they were worthless, or Ange already had them. Lord Silver Coin had already collected thousands ofmon seeds from the Master ne. If they weren¡¯t Dobinki¡¯s cultivation, Ange likely already had them. Just as Dobinki was racking his brain, trying to dupe Ange for another bottle of Essence Bug Ash Liquid, the growing season wasing to an end with crops starting to mature. The Great Sage got the news, rushed over here immediately to personally witness the oue of thepetition. Under his witness, Dobinki¡¯s side harvested 800 pounds per acre while Ange¡¯s side harvested 1100 pounds per acre. Ange won with an absolute advantage. Dobinki¡¯splexion was sullen, he never thought he¡¯d lose, and so badly at that, ¡°It must be because of the Yin. I need to get more Yin. I¡¯ll ask if they¡¯re willing to sell first. If not, they can¡¯t me me for not being cordial.¡± Chapter 391: 237: The Empress is held Hostage_1 Chapter 391: Chapter 237: The Empress is held Hostage_1 Dobinki and his group reluctantly packed their things and left, with the remaining Druids muttering under their breath about ¡®cheating¡¯, ¡®ephemeral¡¯, ¡®one more time¡¯, clearly unsatisfied. Only Dobinki thought he understood the reason and kept silent, even trying to get close several times to ce massive orders for the ck liquid, only to be rejected by Ange. ¡°Golden Skeleton, I am a deacon of the Druid Guild on the Master ne. I have the right to rmend outstanding Druids to the guild. There are numerous benefits to joining the Druid Guild.¡± Ange cocked his head. ¡°Golden Skeleton, my rtionship with the elves is very good. I noticed traces of elf magic in yours. You studied under the elves, didn¡¯t you? Do me a favor.¡± Elves?! Trying to steal my territory? No way! Ange shook his head. ¡°Golden Skeleton, I have a high standing on the Master ne. With one word from me, wealth, beauty and status¡­¡± Dobinki suddenly realized what he was dealing with, nced down, and couldn¡¯t speak another word. ¡°Golden Skeleton, think twice. If you offend me, the consequences will be serious.¡± Dobinki finally couldn¡¯t help but start threatening. Ange cocked his head. Kvada, he couldn¡¯t continue the discussion, suspecting that the other party was a fool. Well, what else could you expect from a pile of bones? The Druids left in the end, taking everything with them, whether it was breadfruit trees or bamboo. They even buried the wells, not wanting to leave a trace.
But did it even matter? Ange had already stripped everything clean, especially those private seeds. They were not only the precious wealth of the Druids but also provided Ange with some mature ideas for improvement. After Dobinki and the others left, the Great Sage came and brought the Staff of Heaven. ¡°To activate this Staff of Heaven, you need a massive amount of Holy Light Power. At least six four-winged Holy Spirit Angels are needed to use it. Although I don¡¯t know where you caught a saintess from, you cannot activate this staff using her alone.¡± The Great Sage handed the staff to Negris and said, gloating. Saintess? Negris was taken aback, then turned to look at Little Angel. Apparently, he mistook the wingless Little Angel for the saintess. The real saintess, Shamara, had fallen from grace, losing her holy light aura and thus was overlooked. However, this also reflected from another perspective that the Great Sage had not carefully detected their details. Otherwise, a careful investigation would have revealed the nature of Little Angel and Shamara.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Let it be a misunderstanding, it was fine. After all, they were not nning on using Little Angel to activate the Staff of Heaven. Thinking of this, Negris pretended to be angry and said, ¡°You knew we couldn¡¯t use it, but you still offered it as a prize! You, Old Undead!¡± The Great Sage said apologetically, ¡°Originally, I intended to use it to entice the Church of Light, but I ended up attracting a group of Druids and you. Shall I exchange it for something else?¡± ¡°No, I want this one.¡± Negris¡¯s short ws quickly embraced the staff, then the Old Undead and the Embryo Dragon exchanged nces, bursting into cunningughter. ¡­ As the Great Sage left in his cart, he was filled with doubts. ¡°The Old Yellow Dragon seems confident that he can activate the Staff of Heaven. Why? Surely it cannot be that he has six Four-Winged Angels hidden?¡± Despite his doubts, the Great Sage didn¡¯t worry too much because the Staff of Heaven was a bait he had carefully chosen. It could not summon Heaven in the Land of Fallen, where the sky was full of spatial rifts. If Heaven were summoned, it would only be crushed. On the contrary, the Great Sage hoped to summon Heaven and grind the Holy Kingdom to pieces, depriving the Church of Light of a divine artifact for ne-projecting. Poor Great Sage, to this day, he did not know that the Church of Light had long lost their Heaven. For the past thousand years, the Church of Light had been unable to summon Heaven and could only summon spirits. Since half a year ago, they hadn¡¯t even been able to do thetter. After the Great Sage had left, the Staff of Heaven came into Ange¡¯s hands. After activating the Purification magic for more than three thousand times, the staff lit up. Ange felt a ton of information pouring into his soul. Almost instantaneously, he got the hang of using the Staff of Heaven. The Staff of Heaven was as long as an arm, with a sculpture of an angel, hands crossed and held to its chest, at the top. Ange gripped it tightly, and the tail end of the staff extended in a sh, tripling its length. Negris was circling the staff, the sudden extensions almost hitting his face. Grasping the extended staff, Ange hammered the tail end into the ground. Suddenly, the center of the hit point radiated the shadow of a Magic Array onto the ground.
However, there were no other changes for a while. After observing for a bit, Negris hesitated and said, ¡°Could it be that the ground is uneven?¡± Could be, a bunch of them started leveling the ground immediately, scraping it t and packing it firm, they tried again. As expected, the Magic Array reflected on the t ground lit up, releasing intense magic fluctuations. Luther didn¡¯t understand magic, so he quietly came over and asked in a low voice, ¡°Lord Nage, why does the ground need to be level?¡±
Chapter 392: 237: The Queen Held Hostage_2 Chapter 392: Chapter 237: The Queen Held Hostage_2 Negris acknowledged: ¡°A magic array is a very precise construction. Every inscription, every energy circuit, every structure has to be exact or it will fail. If the ground is uneven, the normally straight energy circuit and inscriptions would be distorted and, of course, it would not seed.¡± ¡°Oh, are there any magic arrays that are originally curved?¡± Luther asked. Negris gave him a nce: ¡°You mean to ask if there are magic arrays that don¡¯t have to be straight to work, right? This is a typicalyman¡¯s question. Of course there are ¨C curved ones, three-dimensional ones,yered ones¡­ but t arrays are the simplest. The simpler the structure, the less likely it is to make mistakes, and the higher the safety.¡± ¡°Oh~ So the world transfer stations would rather raise a tform to make it t for safety¡¯s sake, right?¡± Luther drew a conclusion and understood. The magic array projected on the ground tore open a ring of light. Ange leaned over and saw the stairway to heaven at the top of the temple. Looking down from the temple, he immediately saw the perfectly horizontal and vertical Square of the Gods and the Elf Beans growing in the square. Each nt was full of Elf Beans. Huh? The Elf Beans have fruited? Ange was shocked, quickly stepping through the ring of light and running towards the square. Seeing him squeeze through, Little Angel and Little Zombie naturally followed, and everyone squeezed through. Seeing the Elf Beans all over the ground, the big cat was ecstatic. It pounced on an Elf Bean, its little paws moving like lightning, dancing out afterimages, and in a moment, the entire Elf Bean nt was plucked clean. Ange quickly noticed this. Because of the special properties of the Elf Beans, they couldn¡¯t be picked with magic. It was easy to damage the buds and affect the next harvest, but picking by hand was the safest.
Ange followed behind the big cat, while Little Angel and Little Zombie held big sacks. When the big cat finished picking one nt, they would shake it out. ¡°Roar!¡± The big cat was furious and wanted to scratch someone. Ange pulled out two Elf Beans from the bag, one hand holding an Elf Bean, the other clenched into a fist.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om The big cat looked left and right and chose the Elf Bean. So, picking one tree rewarded two Elf Beans. After picking more than three hundred trees, the big cat gained over six hundred Elf Beans and was grinning so wide that its eyes became slits. While Ange was picking Elf Beans, Negris, on the other hand, was studying the ring of light: ¡°Is this the Teleportation Gate?¡± On the word ¡®gate¡¯, Negris emphasized the tone. The ring of light had a diameter of two meters, not small at all. Even Big Bone and Lightning could easily squeeze through. The inner part of the ring had a semi-transparent energy membrane. Because of this membrane, the ring of light was very stable, nothing like the violent and chaotic space rifts. If no one touched it, it would stay open quietly and only started to shrink and disappear after a long time. ¡°This is not good. The teleportation gate has disappeared. We can¡¯t return to the Land of Fallen.¡± Negris flew anxiously to Ange and said. Ange took out the Staff of Heaven: ¡°It can be opened again.¡± ¡°It can reopen the ring of light? And still open to the Land of Fallen? Is that amazing?¡± Negris asked surprisingly. Ange nodded: ¡°The array imprint is still there.¡± ¡°That¡¯s good. Otherwise, we would have to return through the teleportation array, and we would have to exin a lot.¡± Negris said. In the Land of Fallen, the teleportation gate disappeared, leaving only an imprint on the ground. It was already dark, and the engraving was hidden on the ground, not causing any ripples and so not very noticeable. Six or seven owls quietly flew over the ry tower. They circled the tower several times, one even flew into the tower for ap, but all they found was one unintelligent ry spirit and nothing else. The owlsnded and gathered, speaking in humannguage: ¡°Where are the people? Did they run away?¡± ¡°Seems like that. There are no belongings left. They definitely ran away.¡± ¡°Are you stupid? With a Space Artifact, even if they had belongings, they wouldn¡¯t leave them around.¡± ¡°There should be traces of life, right? The tower doesn¡¯t look like someone has been living in it.¡±
¡°We did find a lot of horse dung outside the tower.¡± ¡°Damn it, they ran so fast. Did they know we wereing back?¡± ¡°They¡¯re lucky this time. We¡¯ll settle the score with themter.¡± A few owls took off, flying furiously towards Holy Wall City.
Not long after they flew away, the array on the ground lit up briefly, then extinguished again. Because Ange, who was about to open the space gate and return, suddenly received a call from Anthony. ¡°My lord, the Elves have issued an announcement again. They said the God of Life invites Lord Ange to visit the Elf Forest.¡± ¡°The God of Life is awake?¡± Negris cheered up upon hearing the news: ¡°That¡¯s great, I¡¯m going to make those Elves pay for what they¡¯ve done.¡± They couldn¡¯t use the space gate to return to the master ne, so they directly descended through the Stairway to Heaven to the Resting Abyss, and then teleported to the dragonir in the Fallen Dragon Gorge through the teleportation array. Through the call of blood, White Neck and Naeli quickly returned to the dragonir. Everyone was very happy to reunite after a long absence. Naeli gave Negris a good beating. ¡°Don¡¯t we need to help?¡± Big Bone scratched his head and asked. ¡°No need, no need. This is their way of expressing their feelings.¡± Luther hid at a distance where Big Bone couldn¡¯t reach him and said. ¡°Their feelings are really good.¡± After some roughhousing, Negris, nursing his broken leg, asked Ange to heal him. Also, he asked the Dragon Speaker Sofia: ¡°How¡¯s the situation now? Have the Elves given you any trouble? Why are they so anxious to call us back?¡± Chapter 393: 237: The Empress as a Hostage_3 Chapter 393: Chapter 237: The Empress as a Hostage_3 Their knowledge of the elves¡¯ movements was acquired from Anthony, who was, after all, a figure within the church. His perspective on intelligence was surely in line with the church¡¯s interests, so his understanding of the situation could not be as thorough as that of Sofia, one of the parties involved.
¡°Not at all.¡± Sofia shook her head in denial. ¡°The elves have not been a hassle to us at all. They¡¯ve been utterly kind, helping us dig numerous wells and wind-water towers, consequently resolving the water issue in the oasis. They¡¯ve also given us several types of crops that are fit for desert cultivation. If it hadn¡¯t been for you, Lord, in healing our injuries and illness, these elves would¡¯ve offered us voluntary medical attention.¡± ¡°That¡¯s a relief. But what¡¯s a wind-water tower?¡± Negris inquired. ¡°It¡¯s a tower resembling a windmill, connected underground to a pit. When wind blows on it, water springs from the pit below. You simply have to apply a little pressure on a lever to extract water from the pit, which can be used for both drinking and irrigation.¡± Sofia continued to exin, ¡°ording to the elves, the air contains water elements. As the warmth of the air is directed to the windmill¡¯s paddles, the water elements are guided into the underground pit. Due to the cooler temperature in the pit, these elements gather and transform into water. This process of conversion of air to water is why it¡¯s known as a wind-water tower. In any case, this is the basic idea behind it.¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°The principle isn¡¯tplex, but it doesn¡¯t really resemble the style of the elves. Rather, it strongly reflects the approach of those mages in the Republic of Steris who prefer not to use magic power in situations where it¡¯s not necessary. These mages spend their entire days attempting to eliminate magic and elements. Quite inexplicable!¡± Negris uttered in bewilderment. ¡°Ah, the elves who constructed the wind-water towers told us the same, saying that although this isn¡¯t elven technology, it¡¯s particrly suitable for the desert environment.¡±
Negris nodded, indicating that he understood, and continued to ask, ¡°Anything else of note?¡± Sofia nced at Ange who had already donned his straw hat and hesitated before responding, ¡°The Great Druid of the elves killed Lord Ange¡¯s nts.¡± Killed? Ange felt a surge of rage rise within him at once, his gaze locking fiercely onto Sofia. ¡­ The entire Elf Forest, including the Queen¡¯s pce and the vicinity of the World Tree, was shrouded in ayer of green fog. All the elves who entered the fog lost consciousness rapidly only to be herded by a bunch of animals and thrown out. All animals were unaffected by the green mist, only elves were the exception. Now everyone knew that the God of Life was furious with elves. At the fringe of the fog, Gard held a cor, ready to put it around her neck. She was starkly conscious of the God of Life¡¯s wrath. This was the first time she could sense the mood of God of Life clearly, without Kael¡¯danil¡¯s paraphrasing. She felt this rage instantly erupt once she reported about the elves¡¯ actions towards Ange and his group. The message was clear: Get out! Not only did she sense it, but all elves did, including the elf guards stationed at the edge of the forest. Subsequently, the green fog began to disperse, and all elves were expelled from the area covered by the World Tree. The elves lived on the World Tree. Once the fog rose, they were all driven from their homes. Gard¡¯s hand
was held back by Kael¡¯danil: ¡°Are you sure about this? Once the life cor is put on, others will have full control over your life and will, and canmand you to do anything. Are you sure about this?¡± Gard managed a bitter smile, ¡°If not this way, how else can we regain Lord Ange¡¯s trust? He won¡¯t even grant us an opportunity to converse.¡± ¡°But you¡¯re our queen. Your status is extremely sensitive. This has undertones of the Elf n¡¯s submission to Ange, and our folks will not be content with this,¡± warned Kael¡¯danil. ¡°Ah, but it¡¯s precisely because of my status that I may plead for Lord Ange¡¯s forgiveness. I will abdicate and apologize to him in the former capacity of the Elf King. With me as a hostage, hopefully, they will believe in the sincerity of the elves.¡± said Gard. ¡°But¡­¡± Kael¡¯danil wanted to add something, but a gentle shake of her head from Gard silenced her. Gard had her hands on the cor about to put it around her neck when suddenly she felt a force, as if the air around her had been sealed. Her movements slowed. A white hand reached out, took Gard¡¯s cor and said, ¡°Your status is too sensitive. Let me be the hostage instead. A Truth Mage should be more than sufficient for that role.¡± Chapter 394: 238: Are You Also Compensation?_1 Chapter 394: Chapter 238: Are You Also Compensation?_1 The Elemental Deadnd, the God of Truth and Law, Aestolia had never felt as hesitant as she did today. The God of Life was angry and had expelled the Elf n.
The seriousness of this matter is equivalent to the Gods of Light abandoning their followers, the ancestral totems no longer protecting their descendants, the Dragon God disowning the prodigal Giant Dragons. All the elves felt the emotions of the God of Life for the first time. Previously, to grasp the will of the God of Life, they needed the High Priest to trante. Very few elves could directlymunicate with the God of Life. However, they could always feel the care of the God of Life, everywhere. When a young elf ying and falls from a tree or when a young elf gets lost in the forest,n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Or when they are thirsty and can¡¯t find water to drink, a gentle breeze would carry the scent of stream water. The care of the God of Life is everywhere, but only the High Priest and a few elves canmunicate with it. As a Being of Truth, closest to divinity, Aestolia had never felt the God of Life¡¯s power before. She had only experienced its routine care, which gave her an illusion. She believed that the God of Life was like the omnipresent elements, and as long as one had sufficient strength, one could control it.
Now, she finally felt the power of the God of Life, who directly expelled the entire Elf n. She also felt the emotions of the God of Life ¨C anger. Aestolia was evicted by a deer after she lost consciousness due to the green mist, despite casting all the protection magic she knew on herself. This greatly shocked her. It turned out that such powerful Beings of Truth could not hold a candle to the God of Life. Was divinity that powerful? Or was the God of Life particrly powerful? Or, perhaps, was the God of Life particrly powerful with regards to the elves? Although the green mist merely caused her to lose consciousness, the God of Life could have had the deer that pushed her out stomp on her head at any time. Despite being angry, the God of Life simply expelled the elves, not harming them. What Gard said was right. The God of Life¡¯s anger was triggered by what they did to Lord Ange. He journeyed a thousand miles to heal the God of Life and after seeding, the elves ungratefully pursued him, forgot the kindness showed, and acted arrogantly and despotically. The only solution now is to find Lord Ange, apologize to him, and gain his forgiveness. But Lord Ange wasn¡¯t responding to them, not even giving them a chance to talk. This was quite normal. Once the elves mobilized, they were terrifyingly powerful. If this wasn¡¯t about apologizing, but was a trap bait, they possibly wouldn¡¯t even have a chance to escape. If not for Anthony immediate response tost time¡¯s sudden incident, Ange and the others would¡¯ve surely not made it out alive. To get an opportunity to apologize, trust was significant. How could they put them at ease? The best way would be to offer up a significant elf as a hostage to them. If the elves made a wrong move, then the hostage would be killed.
The Elf Queen wasn¡¯t a suitable hostage. Her position was too sensitive. Her being a hostage felt like the Elf n surrendering to outsiders, something the proud elves would find difficult to ept. Aside from the Elf Queen, who else could be a significant enough hostage without causing unnecessary ruckus? Aestolia felt that she was more suitable. She was significant enough and wouldn¡¯t cause much spection. Most average elves didn¡¯t even recognize her. Moreover, she was the one who first suggested this, so she felt she should bear this responsibility. ¡°In conclusion, so here I am. This is the Life Ban Circle. If you hold it, you can control my life any time. This is the sincerity of the Elf n. We hope that for the sake of our sincerity, you will give us a chance to apologize.¡± Aestolia held up a bracelet with one hand, pointed to the cor on her neck with the other, and said to Negris. In front of Aestolia was only Negris. He was the most suitable for this task here, after all, it was just a projection. Even if the elves caught it, it would only be a loss of one body. Negris picked up the bracelet and asked, ¡°Has the God of Life awakened?¡± Aestolia nodded, ¡°Yes, he has.¡± ¡°How is his condition? Is he better?¡± Negris asked. He had expended a lot of Ange¡¯s Insect Ash, so he hoped it hadn¡¯t been in vain. ¡°He¡¯s fully recovered. All the grey spots have disappeared,¡± Aestolia replied. ¡°That¡¯s good to hear,¡± Negris nodded and turned his attention to the Life Ban Circle. The Life Ban Circle and the Life Core as a set. The Life Ban Circle can control the life and death of any creature wearing the Life Cor, whether they¡¯re human or the God of Truth and Law. However, putting the cor on isn¡¯t easy. The wearer must be fully conscious and absolutely cooperative for it to lock onto their life. If there¡¯s even a hint of struggle, it might not lock.
Without the life-lock, the Life Cor is meaningless. Besides the Life Cor, there were various lower-end control Magic Artifacts, such as ve Cors and Exploding Cors, but none of these can hold a God of Truth and Law. Negris yed with the Life Ban Circle for a while, ensuring it was the real thing and not a knockoff. Slipping the Life Ban Circle over his elbow, Negris said to Aestolia, ¡°I¡¯m going to test it out, are you ready?¡± Chapter 395: 238: Are You Also Compensation? _2 Chapter 395: Chapter 238: Are You Also Compensation? _2 The Life Ban Circle is real, and so is the Life Cor, but who knows if theye as a set? What if this ban ring controls a different cor, wouldn¡¯t that put us all in danger?
Aestolia nodded her head, then her whole body stiffened and her gaze lost its luster, for Negris had activated the ban circle. ¡°Hiss, this thing really works. It can even lock down a Truth Mage. The elves are really sincere. I could stab her to death with just one poke now.¡± Negris walked around Aestolia twice, and even poked her forehead with its tiny w. Upon releasing the ban circle, Aestolia¡¯s eyes regained their sparkle. Negris spoke, ¡°Alright, I now believe in the Elves¡¯ sincerity. Send someone to apologize andpensate. As for how the God of Life will punish you, that¡¯s none of my business.¡± Aestolia gave a wry smile, ¡°We¡¯ve been punished already. He drove us away.¡± ¡°Wow, that severe? Well done, no wonder you are so sincere.¡± Negris apuded with its small ws in admiration. ¡­
The Elves¡¯pensation was sincere. They transformed the environment around the Goddess of Beauty City, turning the originally barren desert area into an oasis. Aestolia said with her eyes closed, ¡°This would have been a difficult task, but you have the World Tree along with the Fengshui Tower, which simplified things.¡± Behind Aestolia, a multitude of elves were busy at work. Using boats, they broughtrger Fengshui Towers, diggingrger pits, or water wells. After the water wells were built and the Fengshui Towers were inserted, wind blew onto them, diverting the moisture carried by the wind down into the wells where it would condense, quickly moistening a vast area. The elves buried fertilizers around the towers and nted a seed at each tower. Under the stimtion of the Elf Druids, the seeds quickly sprouted and grew. Vine tendrils climbed along the Fengshui Towers, reaching the top and stretching towards the next tower and the World Tree along the lines pulled between the towers. These vines inteced between the water towers and around the World Tree, weaving a in the air, which then grew fluffy hairs that fluttered in the wind. Any mage who could sense water elements felt the moisture in the air being captured by these fluffy tendrils. The tendrils then directed the water towards the water towers where it was guided by the windmills into the water wells.N?v(el)B\\jnn The construction was overseen by an Elf Druid and a Goblin Engineer. The Goblin engineer spoke, ¡°The Fengshui Tower and Water Velvet are a perfect match. With the guidance of the Water Velvet, at least 60% of the evaporated water from the ground could be diverted back into the water tower, greatly reducing water evaporation and saving a lot of water elements. Oh, I am Herman, a director of the Republic of Steris Engineering Association. Is this Lord Ange? I¡¯ve heard a lot about you, it¡¯s a pleasure to meet you.¡± Goblin Herman looked at Ange with a curious gaze, failing to see what was special about him. Why would this seemingly ordinary human be apologized to by the arrogant elves? Apparently, Ange was unaware of his high fame in the human world and just nodded absentmindedly, leaving the rest to the Bronze Dragon.
Negris, realizing its role as Ange¡¯s spokesperson, took over the conversation, ¡°Republic of Steris? Engineering Association? I¡¯ve heard a lot about you. How long have you been established?¡± ¡°Ah? Republic of Steris? Or the Engineering Association?¡± Herman was a bit confused. Why was he suddenly asking these questions? Wasn¡¯t it enough to simply exchange pleasantries? ¡°The Republic of Steris has been established for seven hundred years, and the Engineering Association has been for six hundred years. It¡¯s one of the oldest professional organizations in the Republic.¡± ¡°Oh, it has such a long history, no wonder,¡± Negris mumbled, and then added mentally: no wonder it¡¯s unrecognizable. After exchanging a few niceties, Negris asked again, ¡°Was this Fengshui Tower your Association¡¯s invention? What¡¯s its daily maximum water conversion capacity?¡± Herman exined, ¡°Its maximum daily conversion volume can reach ten tons, and when paired with Water Velvet, it can reach thirty tons. In our Association, patents belong to the individual. This is an invention of Vaguli, a Goblin Engineer and winner of the Gear Award.¡± Negris and Ange shared a nce; Ange cocked his head and Negris had a puzzled expression, ¡°There are patents? If we know Vaguli, can we get a waiver on the patent fees?¡± Hermanughed, ¡°Hehe, if you could find Master Vaguli, I¡¯m sure he would be more than willing to waive the fees, s, rumors suggest he fell into the hands of ruthless sand robbers. The recent incessant battles in the deserts have led to much chaos. The engineering association has made several rescue attempts but has been unable to locate him.¡± Negris quickly turned around and shouted to the back, ¡°Call Vaguli over.¡± Soon, a tree nting machine drove over with Vaguli at the wheel. This tree nting machine had two huge wheels that were very wide, allowing it to move swiftly and smoothly in the sand. Behind the wheels were tworge tubes linked together. As the left wheel rotated half a turn, the bigger tube pierced into the sand. As the right wheel rotated half a turn, the smaller tube, following the hole created by therger tube, also burrowed into the ground, sliding a young tree into the hole through it. With another half-turn of the left wheel, the smaller tube loosened its grip and retracted, mping onto the protruding area.
Chapter 396: 238: Are You Also Compensation?_3 Chapter 396: Chapter 238: Are You Also Compensation?_3 With a half-turn of the right wheel, therge tube was loosened and extracted. Both wheels turned a full circle,pleting the tree-nting process, and a little sapling was nted deep into the ground.
There were people driving carts behind the nting vehicle, carrying water tanks to water the newly installed saplings. The nting vehicle swiftly drove past, leaving a trail of little saplings in its wake. Approaching Negris, Vaguli impatiently said: ¡°What do you want? If there¡¯s something, say it quickly. Don¡¯t disturb me while I¡¯m modifying the vehicle.¡± Negris looked up at the sky, ¡°Next month, I¡¯m thinking about reducing the ¡­¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn Before he could finish speaking, Vaguli quickly jumped down from the vehicle, rushed up to Negris, and sincerely grasped his hand: ¡°Lord Nage, the Engineering Department will always be your most steadfast supporter. Whatever the matter, you can entrust it to our care. If the Alchemy Department fails to deliver results, you can cut their budget.¡±
¡°Really? Can I entrust any matter to the Engineering Department?¡± Negris questioned. Vaguli pursed his lips and nodded confidently. ¡°Then why don¡¯t you negotiate with Mr. Herman about the Fengshui Tower? I¡¯ll leave that in your hands,¡± Negris said. ¡°No problem,¡± Vaguli said confidently, pping his chest. He turned and called out to Herman, ¡°Come on, brother! Let¡¯s chat on the side.¡± After leading Herman away, when he was sure Negris could no longer see them, Vaguli twisted his head and nced back, cursing together with Herman, ¡°Damn Budget Master.¡± After cursing, the two goblins looked at each other. They had a deep understanding of each other, their shared hatred for the Budget Master quickly bridging any gaps between them. The Fengshui Tower¡¯s job was merely to condense the water elements in the wind, funneling it underground. The true miracle was the Water Velvet, which turned wastnds into miracles, improving sandy soil. Every morning, the fluff of the Water Velvet would drop off. It shed the old, waterden fluff, growing new ones. Every early morning, one could see a thickyer of Water Velvet fluff mixed into the sand on the ground. With each step of arge foot, the fluff and sand would mix even more. The water retention of the sand improved by a hundredfold. The main reason why desert soil couldn¡¯t be tilled was the poor water retention of the sand. Even after a heavy downpour, the water would quickly drain away, leading to the desert drying up again within a few days. But the fluff from the Water Velvet was the best material for retaining water. Mixed with sand, the nature of the soil was improved. Apart from this, the stream of Water Velvet climbing the Fengshui Tower also formed arge shade, reducing the sunlight on the ground. With these changes together, the barren desert transformed into an oasis suitable for ordinary crops to grow.
Of course, all of this was possible because of the blessing of the World Tree allowing the crops to grow smoothly. After these transformations, Goddess of Beauty City had be a City of Forest in the desert. Of course, this was only part of the elves¡¯pensation. There were even more sincerepensations, such as¡­ ¡°What? You¡¯re also part of thepensation? No, no. After all this, just leave,¡± Negris quickly waved his hands in refusal. Aestolia smiled and said, ¡°It seems a blind God of Truth and Law does not meet your standards. But what about a God of Truth and Law who isn¡¯t blind? I know you can cure my eyes. If you can cure my eyes, I am willing to pledge my loyalty.¡± Chapter 397: 239: Humiliating me with Money? _1 Chapter 397: Chapter 239: Humiliating me with Money? _1 Aestolia¡¯s eyes were injured as a result of a magic bacsh while casting a Forbidden Spell, shortly after she had just promoted to an Arcane Magician. Bacshes of magic are serious idents. In minor cases, they result in injury, but in severe cases, they can cause a person to burst and die. Despite the price of damaging her eyes, she managed to survive. However, this didn¡¯t seem to be a bad thing. Although she lost her sight, Aestolia¡¯s perception of the Magic Elements became keener, and her understanding of magic became more three-dimensional and vivid. This resulted in a massive progression in her understanding of magic. She broke the boundary between the arcane and the truth, be a Truth Mage, and awakened the Forbidden Magic Domain, which is considered the nemesis of mages. She earned the title of the God of Truth and Law in the Elemental Deand. ¡°Perhaps because I¡¯m blind, I am more sensitive to the elements,¡± was Aestolia¡¯s conclusion. So now, she teaches her students to cover their eyes during their apprenticeship. However, every advantage has a disadvantage. Her blindness also became a hurdle in her progress, hindering her from reaching higher levels. Moreover, there were some awkward issues. Now, she perceives things through elemental fluctuations. Any object, in essence, has an elemental reaction, such as, the body of an elf contains arge amount of the Water Element. In her perception, these elves or humans are clusters of walking water elements. Land, wind, fire, light ¡­ all kinds of elements make up the colorful world in her perception. However, there is one awkward problem. Perceiving through elementscks many details ¨C a dirty face, a torn skirt, stepping on excrement¡­ As a result, one could often see a truth powerhouse walking around with grime, and because of her status, others would not dare to remind her, sometimes even assuming that it was merely her unique style. Later, she only moved about by floating, and before going out, she would use the Water Element to cleanse her body then dry it with the wind. She would do this regardless if she was dirty or clean, she¡¯d wash first and then discusster.
Actually, these minor embarrassments in life can be easily resolved by having a few attendants, or by marrying a few male elves to serve her. Given her status, this was entirely reasonable. However, she was not the kind of person who liked things walking around her. She did not even keep pets, let alone tolerate male elves, so she could only pay more attention by herself. If her eyes could be healed, these life inconveniences would be easily resolved. Especially in seven or eight hundred years, when she will be old, she wouldn¡¯t have to worry about not being able to care for herself. However, treating the eyes is not an easy task. Even the Church of Light, famous for its healing abilities, is able to regenerate limbs but cannot cure blindness.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Elves themselves are also adept at healing, but all the elves that are good at it have examined her and dered their helplessness. ¡°The magic bacsh caused arge part of the nerves behind your eyes to die. Simply restoring the eyes is not enough, you have to connect the nerves and the eyes. But these nerves are rted to the brain, any operation is very risky and can easily turn you into an idiot. So, unless you can revive these nerves, it is impossible to cure it,¡± Thest Great Druid concluded to her. Aestolia thought there was no hope for the treatment of her eyes. Is there any way to revive the necrotic nerves that connect to the brain? That is until recently, when she was staying in the Goddess of Beauty City, she discovered a teeth whitening treatment package¡­ ¡°Your teeth whitening package can restore nerves and regrow teeth. I¡¯m sure it can also treat my eyes. If you can heal my eyes, you will gain the loyalty of a truth powerhouse,¡± Aestolia confidently said. She was indeed very confident. She believed that no one could refuse this offer, no one could refuse the loyalty of a Truth Mage. Although the value of a Truth Mage cannot be measured in terms of money, there are some who are willing to make extra money. For example, Tyrone from the Republic of Steris. The cost for him to take action once is 500,000 Demon Crystal and he doesn¡¯t undertake any harm-rted tasks. For example, paying him to escort goods, protect a money lender, or help ¡®stoke the fire¡¯ while forging something, or help change the terrain while building a dam, etc. But asking him to kill or break into a city is not eptable. As can be seen, a true powerhouse taking action at least once values at more than 500,000 Demon Crystal. So how much does the loyalty of a Truth Mage value? Priceless. If it¡¯s the loyalty of an ¡®elf¡¯ True Mage, how much is it worth? Priceless, multiplied by sixteen times. Because elves live longer, the peak of their magic power is at least sixteen times that of a human Truth Mage. Typically, the longer I live, the more valuable it is. In many human knight novels, the strongest inheritance of the family is an ancestral elf¡­ It made one of her young friends she knows keep tempting her: ¡°Come and join me, I¡¯ll pay you a high sry.¡±
Of course, what treatment, loyalty and everything are all excuses. The real reason she said to Gard at the beginning was: ¡°Elves cannot be without the Tree of Life, use all means to capture it. If you can¡¯t capture it, establish a good rtionship, and one day in the future, ask your n to take refuge in it and pray for its protection.¡± This ¡®it¡¯ ¡­ Aestolia subconsciously looked to Ange¡¯s top of the head, where there should have been a flowerpot. Little Sapling would peep out from the edge of the pot, and prompt any unfamiliar objects to grow¨D Because she looked at the top of Ange¡¯s head and was distracted, Aestolia heard a sentence, but she thought she heard it wrong and subconsciously asked: ¡°What?!¡±
Chapter 398: 239: Insulting Me with Money?_2 Chapter 398: Chapter 239: Insulting Me with Money?_2 ¡°Can you farm?¡± Ange repeated his words. ¡°Farm?¡± Aestolia was stunned, wondering why such question popped up. She isn¡¯t a Druid after all, so she shook her head without hesitation. ¡°No need then.¡± Ange immediately responded. Those who couldn¡¯t farm, will not be needed.N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°Ah?! I ¡­ ¡± Aestolia showed an expression of doubting her life. Was it because she didn¡¯t know how to farm that Ange had refused the loyalty of a mage of truth? Did she hear that correctly? Do truth mages now have to learn farming to have a promising career prospects? Negris could not help but feel amused. However, it did not oppose Ange¡¯s decision. Even if she could farm, Negris did not want to get involved with this Elf as she always gave him a dangerous vibe. But such a blunt rejection seemed rude, so Negris quickly changed the subject, ¡°Hehe, he is joking. By the way, we didn¡¯t ask what your mage specialization is?¡± Aestolia was truly confused, she heard Negris¡¯ words and answered cooperatively: ¡°Natural Arcane.¡± ¡°Oh, you¡¯re an Arcane Mage. It¡¯s unfortunate, we currently don¡¯t need someone with that specialization. You can go back and wait for our call, we will contact you as soon as there¡¯s a need.¡± Negris said with a smile. Aestolia didn¡¯t know how to react, but if she had ever hung around the Human Mercenary Guild, she would have known this was a hypocritical polite phrase. She remained stunned for a while before realizing the meaning behind the words. She was rejected because she was a Natural Arcane Mage, her specialization was irrelevant, so the other party had rejected the loyalty of a mage of truth?
How could this happen? Although she was not really bent on offering loyalty, but if she was not epted, she wouldn¡¯t be able to stay by Little God of Life¡¯s side. Aestolia immediately became anxious: ¡°What type of specialization do you need? I have little understanding of each one.¡± Having knowledge in all? Such a big im! Even I, the God of Knowledge, don¡¯t dare to make such im. After thinking for a while, Negris came up with a challenging one, a specialization that they happened to need: ¡°We need an Arcane Mage who specializes in Spatial Magic.¡± Spatial Magic is probably the hardest to learn, because space is invisible and abstract. Unlike Elemental Magic, which can be mastered by sensing the elements present all around. What is space? It¡¯s an abstract concept. Some people manage to get lost while merely walking, having a poor sense of direction. And direction is the fundamental element that constitutes space. People with poor sense of direction will absolutely not be able to learn Spatial Magic. Negris couldn¡¯t believe that an Arcane Mage could also master the hardest to learn Spatial Magic. As expected, disappointment appeared on Aestolia¡¯s face: ¡°I can¡¯t use Spatial Magic.¡± ¡°Then I can¡¯t do anything for you.¡± Negris shrugged with a helpless expression. ¡°But I know an Arcane Mage who specializes in Spatial Magic. If I call her over to help, will you ept my loyalty?¡± Before Negris could refuse, she tilted her head back and sent out a shot of waves from her brow. Negris eyebrows furrowed. Now there¡¯s this operation? He¡¯d heard of substitution for exam invigtion, but not for a job application. Even if the Spatial Mage doese, he needs an Arcane Mage, not her. Now he was quite sure. This elf, she had ulterior motives. Okay, let¡¯s see what you¡¯re up to. Negris, with aplomb, tried to cross his small paws, but after a few tries, they were too short, and he could only put them around his waist. One second, two seconds, ten seconds, a minute had passed¡­ Aestolia looked up at the sky in confusion and said awkwardly: ¡°Maybe¡­maybe she got dyed by something.¡± Just as she was about to send another message, a series of screams came from the sky: ¡°Ah¡­ah¡­ahaaaaaaa¡­¡± A figure shed through the air, descending then disappearing, only to reappear at another ce, whimsically changeable.
Ange and Negris looked up to the sky, both of them feeling a sense of familiarity with the scene. Helplessly, Aestolia covered her face. However, not the first time this happened, she expertly stretched out the Hand of the Mage to steady the figure that was about tond. ¡°Phew..¡± The disheveled figurended in front of Aestolia and, after catching her breath, exined: ¡°Scared me to death. My positioning was urate, but I forgot about the height. It was too tall, my legs went numb.¡± After seeing the figure clearly, Negris eximed in surprise: ¡°Is that you!?¡±
The Female Space Mage turned her head, gave a puzzled look at Ange and the others, and hesitated before asking: ¡°You are¡­.¡± Without uttering a word, Negris let Ange pull out the Spatial Bag thedy had discarded. He said, ¡°You dropped this. We borrowed a few scrolls, hope you don¡¯t mind.¡± ¡°Eh, it¡¯s my Spatial Bag! How did you¡­ Ah¡­!¡± The Space Mage quickly realized where she lost her bag and what those people had seen. Her face turned red instantly, and she didn¡¯t want the Spatial Bag any more, quickly hiding behind Aestolia. Aestolia¡¯s gaze wandered between thedy mage, Ange, and Bronze Dragon, trying to understand something. Unfortunately, as if she was blind, she failed to discover anything. Once thedy mage had regained herposure a bit, Negris asked again: ¡°What about your Spatial Bag?¡±. ¡°Just throw it away,¡± the mage answered, her voice barely audible as she kept her face hidden in Aestolia¡¯s chest. ¡°It will be a waste to throw it away. If you don¡¯t want it, I¡¯ll empty it and use it to fill with bird droppings. Lately, I¡¯m having trouble transporting the bird droppings, the soil fertility is dropping a lot,¡± said Negris. The female mage¡¯s face wasn¡¯t red anymore, nor was she shy. Feeling aggravated, she briskly came over, snatched the Spatial Bag from him, and red fiercely at Negris. Bewildered by the re, Negris was at a loss. She was the one who had discarded it. Was it wrong to use it for transportation? What was there to be angry about? Using Spatial Artifacts for transportation is quite reasonable. However, Spatial Artifacts are expensive. Many people can¡¯t afford them, let alone using them to transport fertiliser. However, here was one that wasn¡¯t wanted! After this interruption, the female Space Mage ignored them and instead turned to ask Aestolia in a low voice, ¡°Great God, what did you call me here for?¡± The Female mage¡¯s eyes sparkled with adoration when she called Aestolia ¡®Great God¡¯. The one in front of her taught her a lot of magic knowledge and was the God of Truth and Law.
Aestolia smirked and replied, ¡°I hoped to pledge myself to Lord Ange, but because our professions don¡¯t match, they don¡¯t want an Arcane Magician, they want an Arcane grade Space Mage. Hence I thought of you to help me secure this opportunity.¡± With Aestolia¡¯s words, the female Space Mage¡¯s eyes grew wider as if she saw a ghost. Pulling Aestolia aside and after a whispered consultation, to ensure that Aestolia wasn¡¯t possessed, enchanted, soul-invaded, or under threat, the Space Mage finally said in a worried voice: ¡°But¡­ But I¡¯ve been quite busy recently, after all, something which requires an Arcane Space Mage isn¡¯t going to be a simple task, is it?¡± Negris nodded, ¡°It¡¯s not simple. We need to search for a specific broken space location in the dimensional space using vague coordinates.¡± The Space Mage rolled her eyes as she heard this, ¡°You use such professional terms, so you must know the difficulty of this task. You want me to die?¡± Negris quickly added, ¡°There are Dimension Beasts.¡± Spirits lifting, the female Space Mage couldn¡¯t help but get serious: ¡°Dimension Beasts? That doesn¡¯t sound life-threatening, but the risk is still too high. No, no, I¡¯m still young, haven¡¯t lived enough, don¡¯t want to take the risk.¡± ¡°The risk is when you can¡¯t receive any reward for notpleting the mission. If you can get the reward first regardless ofpletion, that¡¯s not risk, that¡¯s insurance. Say what you need as insurance? We can pay in advance.¡± Negris tempted sweetly. The female Space Mage gave him an unimpressed nce, disdainfully retorted, ¡°Try to bribe me with money? Do you think I¡¯m that shallow? Even if you put the Magic Crystal Mountain in front of me, I won¡¯t take a second look at it.¡± Chapter 399 - 240: I’m Willing to Do Anything_1 Chapter 399: Chapter 240: I¡¯m Willing to Do Anything_1 ¡°Why is your skin in such poor condition?¡± Lisa asked with a dismayed expression. ¡°Don¡¯t you ever wash your face? Large pores, dullplexion, rough skin, and ckheads¡ªoh my, how old are you? Sixty?¡± Hiludi was at a loss throughout the entire conversation, as if she were a puppet being manipted by Lisa. She didn¡¯t understand a lot of what the other woman was saying. When she had said ¡®even if you put Magic Crystal Mountain in front of me,¡¯ she simply wanted to find out if Lisa had a Magic Crystal Mountain. She might consider it if Lisa did have one. But Lisa didn¡¯t produce a magic crystal; instead, she brought in a delicate, youthful-looking woman who immediately took Hiludi¡¯s hand and began lecturing her. Lisa¡¯s criticisms were justifiable, as her skin was far more delicate than Hiludi¡¯s, like a freshly peeled egg. ¡°Sister, what are your secrets? Why is your skin so delicate?¡± Hiludi finally asked. ¡°It¡¯s all about skincare, of course. First, tell me how old you are?¡± Lisa asked in return. ¡°Thirty,¡± Hiludi replied. N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°Oh my, you¡¯re only thirty! Your skin looks like that of someone in their sixties or seventies. Don¡¯t you maintain your skin at all? Look at my face; I¡¯m over a thousand years old,¡± Lisa said in distraight. Unable to help herself, Hiludi looked over at Lisa¡¯s ears. She wasn¡¯t an elf, so what long-lived species could reach a thousand years? ¡°Tell me, how do you usually wash your face?¡± Lisa asked with a serious expression. Lisa¡¯s demeanor brought Hiludi the feeling of being a teenager, being interrogated by her tutor again. She hurriedly replied obediently, ¡°I just wash with water and dry off with a cloth.¡± ¡°Cloth? What kind of cloth? Hemp cloth or cotton cloth? Buckskin cloth? Silk cloth? How often do you change it? How do you wash it and let it dry?¡± Lisa pressed on with her inquiries. ¡°Ah?¡± Hiludi waspletely dumbfounded. She was only aware of hemp and cotton cloths. There are so many types? They need to be changed? And left to air dry? Isn¡¯t it enough to just wring it out after washing your face, and hang it up for useter that night and discard it when it¡¯s worn out? ¡°Oh heavens, that¡¯s your face, why are you treating it like that? Wring it out after washing your face? Use it until it¡¯s worn? My goodness, it¡¯s so dirty. The dirt on ites in contact with your skin, flourishing profusely, and thenes in contact with your skin again. Do you want your face to be ruined? With all the ckheads on your face, you certainly aren¡¯t using face wash,¡± Lisa added. ¡°Huh? What is face wash?¡± Hiludi asked, bewildered. ¡°Moisturising water? Toner? Face mask? Oh my, you have not used any of these, how have you been living in such a crude way? Exfoliation? Nail care? Hair care? None of these either? Oh, my Goddess of Beauty, you are simply wasting the body gifted to you by the Goddess of Beauty and missing out on the most beautiful sight in the world. Here, let me give you a full set of these treatments.¡± Without giving Hiludi any time to object, Lisa pulled her into the Goddess of Beauty City and opened the door to an entirely new world for her. Aestolia hurriedly followed them, as Lisa¡¯sments had also piqued her interest. Hiludi underwent the full set of beauty treatments ¨C nails, skin, hair removal, exfoliation, rejuvenating treatment ¨Cpletely bemused. Uponing face to face with her reflection in a mirror afterwards, she was shocked. Who was that beautiful person in the window? Hiludi is extraordinarily gifted. From a young age, she had been the focus of a lot of attention. She was so talented that she trained from being an apprentice to reaching the level of an Arcane Magician at the age of thirty. She was just one step away from the truth of magic. Moreover, she is a highly proficient Space System Magic Instructor. Learning such abstract magic is not easy and requires more time and effort. This has resulted in her spending most of her time studying in the Mage Tower, even running to the toilet. With even going to the toilet not getting any time, where would she have the time to beautify and dress up? She has been washing her face with clear water since she was young. She only found out the existence of face wash today. But nowhere else would anyone know, unless they had visited Goddess of Beauty City. Because these are specialities of Goddess of Beauty City. The facewash is made from purified Holy Water, mixed with a small amount of essence and soapnut extracts. It can produce rich foam, and the cleansing power is very strong. The raw soapnut extract has a slight irritation and harm to the skin, but it is repaired by the essence, so it can be used even on sensitive skin. After washing her face with facial cleanser, there is no more feeling of greasy stickiness on her face. Touching her face, she feels apletely different experience. Oh my God, why is her face so smooth? Hiludi couldn¡¯t help but touch her face and Aestolia also couldn¡¯t resist touching it. Then she asked, ¡°Is this facial cleanser for sale? How much is it?¡± ¡°Yes, it¡¯s fifty magic crystals a bottle. It can be used for a month,¡± one of the nearby maids quickly interjected. Lisa never responds to questions regarding price. As the publicly dered Goddess of Beauty Priest, she feels speaking about money would be beneath her dignity. Aestolia felt nothing out of the ordinary, but Hiludi involuntarily gasped. A small bottle cost fifty magic crystals? And it could only be used for a month? Isn¡¯t that daylight robbery? Lisaughed, ¡°It¡¯s much easier than robbing,e, lie down, let¡¯s take a look at your teeth.¡± Without waiting for a response, she pulled Hiludi down and continued her work. Hiludi did not want to think anymore and obediently opened her mouth. ¡°Your teeth are healthy, no need for orthodontics, but they are a bit yellow. We just need to whiten them,¡± Lisa said as she applied a spell to remove stains on Hiludi¡¯s teeth. Within moments the slightly yellow teeth regained their pearly white lustre and shone brilliantly. Once done with her teeth, Lisa stroked Hiludi¡¯s hair and said, ¡°Your hair is quite thin. Do you often lose hair?¡± Chapter 400: 240 Chapter 400: 240 At the mention of this issue, Hiludi couldn¡¯t help but tear up, ¡°Falling out, a lot of it falls out, particrly during test periods.¡± This might be an unavoidable problem for every young and promising wizard. Over-thinking, staying upte, eating food high in oil and salt, having unclean habits, and excess oleaginous secretions clogging the hair follicles¡­ Hiludi doubts whether her hair canst until she¡¯s forty. Many of her seniors barely pass thirty before they start to bald. To outsiders, wizards appear elegant in their floating robes, high cors, and pointed hats. However, Hiludi knows that once the hats are removed, most of them are bald. She doesn¡¯t want to be a bald person like her seniors. If it were actually to happen, she would rather shave all her hair off. However, the more she doesn¡¯t want to be bald, the more anxious she bes, and the more her hair falls out. She has consulted many wizards, regardless of schools, all iming to have no solution. ¡°If there was a solution, would we still be bald?¡± One irritated senior yelled at her. He felt that she was poking his wounds, just because she still had her hair. Now, Hiludi has learned to not dwell on this issue. If it happens, she¡¯ll just shave it all off. Unexpectedly, Lisa brought up this topic suddenly, causing all her worries to resurface. With a reproachful look towards Lisa, sheined, ¡°Why did you bring this up? It can¡¯t be cured.¡± Before she could finish her sentence, she heard Lisa say, ¡°Hair is a bit difficult; it needs adults to handle it personally. The effect will also be slower, needing a whole night. How about this? Rest here tonight? Sister can arrange a sand bath for you?¡± Hiludi swallowed her unspoken words and asked with a stunned tone, ¡°Can¡­ can it regrow hair?¡± Lisa replied as though it was the most natural thing in the world, ¡°Of course, this is the Goddess of Beauty City. If there was no hair, where would the beautye from?¡± ¡°I¡­ this¡­ Sister, let me catch up for a moment.¡± Hiludi took a deep breath, contemted for a moment, and suddenly asked, ¡°Sister, if I start believing in the Goddess of Beauty now, will it be toote?¡± ¡­ On the barrennd between East River and Goddess of Beauty City, Ange had obtained a lot of water velvet fluff. It was used to improve the water retention capacity of the sandy soil, and bird droppings and dragon soil were mixed in as fertilizers to enhance the soil properties. Different kinds of crops were nted in different plots, with the breadfruit tree ounting for the majority. This new crop, obtained from the druid, had the potential to be a new staple crop. It is particrly suited for desert environments due to its drought resistance, and can survive in sandy soil. During high moisture periods, it collects water in its trunk and fruit, and then consumes this stored water during the dry season to survive. It doesn¡¯t have many leaves, hence a low rate of evaporation, making it suitable forrge-scale nting. Bamboo was nted in small amounts for experimentalparison. However, even if it survived, he has no ns to nt bamboo in the desert; they consume too much water. After dropping Hiludi off with Lisa, he was kept busy here. Both he and Negris unanimously agreed that in terms of manipting people¡¯s hearts, Lisa¡¯s skills were 120 times superior to theirs. If even Lisa couldn¡¯t handle it, the person was definitely either resolute or a desirous dead object. To his surprise, while Ange was busy with nting, a transparent me suddenly zed before him. What was this thing? Ange tilted his head, about to reach out to touch it, but the Bronze Dragon rushed over and firmly held him back. ¡°The¡­ Fire of Mass Faith! What did you do!?¡± Negris asked, his voice trembling. Ange tilted his head. Negris quickly retreated two steps, dragging Ange with him. Yet, the transparent me floated over, following their retreat. ¡°Sure enough, it¡¯s your Fire of Mass Faith. What did you do to cause it? Did you nt something on the farm again?¡± Negris rushed back to the Resting Pce quickly, took a quick round around the farm but didn¡¯t notice any particr changes. ¡°Nothing has changed, so why is there Fire of Mass Faith? What did you do?¡± Negris was babbling incoherently, having repeated ¡®What did you do¡¯ three times, but Ange was still dumbfounded. ¡°What is this?¡± Ange tilted his head, and asked in bewilderment. ¡°Kvada, how can you not know what this is if you could ignite it? It¡¯s the Fire of Mass Faith! The precursor to Divine Fire, the precursor to divinity. If you can ignite it, you have the potential to light up the Divine Fire, attain divinity, and be a true deity!¡± Negris eximed in a frenzied manner. Ange tilted his head and said nkly, ¡°Aren¡¯t I one already? So are you.¡± Oh, right, why am I so excited? I¡¯m the God of Knowledge, a true deity, aren¡¯t I? Negris abruptly came to this realization with a start. It couldn¡¯t be helped. This kid had barely enjoyed a few days of godhood before getting captured. He could boast about it often enough, but he didn¡¯t truly perceive himself as a deity. Upon realizing this fact, Negris¡¯ temper quickly cooled down. He no longer lost hisposure, but he was still very excited. The Fire of Mass Faith ¨C besides the time he ignited his own divine fire, this was the second time he¡¯d witnessed the ignition of the Fire of Mass Faith. This¡­ is the beginning of godhood. The Fire of Mass Faith is the first step to bing a god. If a powerful being already has many followers in the world, like Negris used to, yet they still cannot ignite the divine fire, it¡¯s because they do not possess the Fire of Mass Faith. This me is quite mysterious. It can ignite on its own, or someone else can ignite it. This ¡°someone else¡± doesn¡¯t even need to be its devoted follower. N?v(el)B\\jnn ording to Negris¡¯s understanding, the Fire of Mass Faith is like a fulcrum; when it ignites, scattered faith coalesces together like they¡¯ve found a fulcrum, amplifying the Fire of Mass Faith. Once the me grows to a certain extent, it transforms into a divine fire, changes into a divine category, and creates its ownwork of faith. The Fire of Mass Faith is essential, which is why Negris was so envious when Ange got fervent followers ¨C because the Fire of Mass Faith would often ignite from the most fervent believers. But it¡¯s not always this way. For instance, Negris¡¯s Fire of Mass Faith ignited on its own. The Fire of Mass Faith of the Harvest Girl Goddess was ignited by nobles andndlords. In short, it¡¯s all very puzzling. Ange hadn¡¯t done anything; he just kept tilling the fields, yet for some unexinable reason, his Fire of Mass Faith was ignited out of nowhere. Was he the Goddess of Fortune? Was the me lit by the Goddess of Fortune? ¡°Touch it and see what it is,¡± Negris said. Ange extended his hand and gently tapped the transparent me. The Fire of Mass Faith whooshed into Ange¡¯s body, with countless pieces of information flooding into his soul. After remaining dumbstruck for quite a while, Ange turned around with a strange expression. Negris asked eagerly, ¡°Well? What¡¯s the situation? Who ignited the Fire of Mass Faith? What divine category? Any awakened Divine Technique?¡± ¡°Hiludi, Goddess of Beauty, no Divine Technique,¡± Ange responded. As he spoke, Ange held out his palm. Hiludi¡¯s face appeared on it, her eyes full of hope. A voice rose, ¡°Such a good thing, we should share it with our senpai. Is it toote to believe in the Goddess of Beauty now?¡± ¡°This sentence ignited the Fire of Mass Faith?¡± Negris asked skeptically, ¡°Why? What¡¯s the key? Good thing? Sharing? Or ¡®believe in the Goddess of Beauty¡¯?¡± Negris spected considerably but without more samples forparison, he still couldn¡¯t understand how Hiludi had ignited the Fire of Mass Faith. ¡°So, now you have dual divine category? Goddess of Beauty? What use is that?¡± Negris inquired. Ange shook his head, ¡°Three, God of Knowledge.¡± ¡°The God of Knowledge category is mine¡­¡± Negris raged, stomping in frustration. So pitiful, he was down to one category and this guy was still trying to steal it. But right after he said this, he remembered that, yes, he was Ange¡¯s subsidiary god, so theoretically, his divine category belonged to Ange as well. ¡°Kvada¡­¡± Things got a little out of control because Hiludi has ignited the Fire of Mass Faith. This was a huge gift and as per the principle of equivalence, Lisa couldn¡¯t use the ¡®free package¡¯ to entice the other party, she¡¯d have to opt for a direct giveaway. Lisa, who received Ange¡¯s instructions, was a bit taken aback, but she soonughed and said, ¡°Hiludi, how about a lifetime all-inclusive free package?¡± Hiludi was clueless that this was an equivalent offering. She thought Lisa was making demands, so the girl who had previously insisted she wouldn¡¯t even nce at the Magic Crystal Mountain immediately grabbed Lisa¡¯s hand, ¡°No problem, sis, I¡¯m up for anything.¡± PS: I seem to have the same problem as Harvey, a little disc protrusion in my waist, it hurts when I sit down. Chapter 401: 241: Someone Recites Its Holy Name_1 Chapter 401: Chapter 241: Someone Recites Its Holy Name_1 Ange breathed out the Fire of Mass Faith and stared at it curiously.
¡°You¡¯ve been staring at it for a while now, still not done? What¡¯s there to see?¡± Negris asked irritably. In his heart, a me of envy was burning fiercely, akin to the jealousy of a farmer who had toiled for half a year only to gather a bit of grain, upon seeing his neighbor casually hit by a mountain of grain. ¡°Its Soul me, it¡¯s a lot,¡± Angemented. ¡°A lot? How is a lot?¡± Negris asked anxiously. A plentiful Soul me meant a lot of believers. So a nascent Fire of Mass Faith that could not even be considered as a deity yet, where on earth would it get believers? ¡°More than the Undead Godhood,¡± Ange replied. ¡­..
Within Republic of Steris, the Steris Mage Tower. Although it was called the Mage Tower, it was actually a massive Magic Academy, with an total area of several hundred square kilometers. Scattered around were more than a dozen towers, interspersed with clusters of buildings that extended into the sea, with some buildings even constructed on top of the water. The Earth Magic Division Tower was also a massive group of buildings, centered around the tall tower. In front of the entrance square, space fluctuated, and a figure appeared. Some of the students meditating and reading in the square nced up, but soon lost interest. In the Steris Mage Tower, there weren¡¯t many magicians who could use spatial transport, but there were still several dozens. It¡¯s hardly something new for them. Whoever it was, must have been authorized. If it wasn¡¯t an authorized mage, the Defensive Arrayid out around the square would have been activated by now, charring the intruder to a crisp. Hiludi, holding up her dress, quickly ran towards the tall tower. A male Mage, dressed in a fluttering robe, graceful and wearing a high pointed hat, emerged from the tower. As soon as Hiludi saw him, her eyes lit up, and she ran over shouting, ¡°Senior Jack.¡± ¡°Eh! It¡¯s little Hiludi! Hi there, long time no see!¡± Although Mage Jack looked to be in his thirties, the fact that he called her little Hiludi indicated a significant gap in their ages. ¡°Long time no see, Jack. Take off your hat and let me see,¡± Hiludi requested. The expression on Jack¡¯s face changed, and the smile vanished from his face. He asked angrily, ¡°What do you mean by that?¡±
¡°Don¡¯t be angry, senior. I have something good to introduce to you, let me see your head first,e on,e on.¡± Hiludi shook Jack¡¯s arm to cool him down. This bubbly behavior, who could resist? Jack, annoyed yet helpless, took off his hat, quickly revealed the shiny bald spot on the top of his head, then swiftly put his hat back on. To Hiludi¡¯s delight, her eyes lit up, and she eximed excitedly, ¡°Senior, your bald spot is so shiny! This will make the effect more obvious.¡± Jack was resentful and said, ¡°What do you mean? I¡¯m over fifty, thete nights have made my hair thin out, it¡¯s all perfectly normal, isn¡¯t it? Don¡¯t be too smug, your turn wille.¡± ¡°No, it won¡¯t.¡± Hiludi looked smug as sheughed, ¡°look,lla,lla~~.¡± While humming a little tune, she parted her hair, showing Jack her head. Jack stared suspiciously for a moment. Hiludi¡¯s hair used to be thinning, but it never entirely fell off. Now, even if she grew some in, the contrast wasn¡¯t very stark. To a man, a wife with or without makeup looks the same. So how would he notice a younger sister¡¯s thinning hair? But a careful observation confirmed that her hair wasn¡¯t thin, it was not the forehead of a proper thirty-year-old female Mage. She must have used some crooked method. Jack became serious and warned her, ¡°What sort of witchcraft did you use? Hurry up and tell me, so I can rebuke you.¡± Hiludi immediately handed him a small card, saying, ¡°Senior, mention my name, and you¡¯ll get a 10% discount.¡± ¡­..
Initially, they ought to set out in search of the Land of Slumber, but the Dimension Beast was injured and sprawled on the ground. It indicated it needed to rest a while to recover, and couldn¡¯t perform any task. In the Dimensional World, the Dimension Beast and the Space Mage were the protagonists. As the cat wasn¡¯t healed, they definitely couldn¡¯t leave. However, Hiludi, who had just discovered a new world, couldn¡¯t calm down any longer. She embarked on a sales mission and returned to the Mage Tower. Such welfare must be shared with the seniors. The main point was that sales had amission, 5% cashback. And considering the price of these services, if she could find five seniors, she would have made her yearly supply cost. But she underestimated one thing. She could sell to seniors, but seniors could also sell to other seniors, yielding even better results. A few dayster, Jack ditched his high hat, his head full of hair, flouncing it around at every chance he got, appearing casually to show you. But the effect was indeed good. Everyone was used to Jack¡¯s balding condition, and now that he had a full head of hair, everyone thought he was wearing a wig. They all inquired as to where he bought it, and then he handed them a small card: ¡°Mention my name, and you¡¯ll get a 10% discount.¡± Hiludi originally nned to wait for Jack to return after the treatment, with a sample to prove the treatment¡¯s effectiveness before she would dupe more people. Little did she know that when Jack returned, he immediately became herpetitor, stealing all her potential customers. ¡°Kvada, miscalcted.¡± In a fit of rage, Hiludi found Jack¡¯s wife, then went and unted her face that was free of dead skin, wrinkles, and hair, and glowing from the skin whitening treatment. All those customers pulled in by Jack, theirmissions were handed right back by his wife. Next, Hiludi began focusing on female Mages and wives of male Mages, expanding upon that part of the market. To facilitate their consumption, she even used her spatial transport ability to go back and forth¡­ all in a day¡¯s time.N?v(el)B\\jnn Chapter 402: 241: Someone Recites Its Holy Name_2 Chapter 402: Chapter 241: Someone Recites Its Holy Name_2 Jack returned home to find his wife looking twenty to thirty years younger. His wife also stared at her husband, now with a thick head of hair and a charming demeanor, and passion instantly ignited between them.
The next day, they paid, tears in their eyes. ¡­ Negris, seeing more and more magic carriages parked in the Goddess of Beauty City, curiously asked, ¡°Why are there more and more wizards?¡± Lisa exined, ¡°We¡¯ve opened up the market in the Republic of Steris, where there are the most wizards.¡± ¡°Oh? A country founded by wizards?¡± Negris asked, knowing very little about this Republic of Steris. When it was taken away, that country did not even exist. During this period, more and more mages from the Republic of Steris arrived, most of them female mages and rtives of mages. You know, when women beautify themselves, they gossip a lot, talking about everything from family matters to weddings and funerals.
Now, Lisa was well versed in the Republic of Steris. She said, ¡°Yes, it was about seven hundred years ago. A wizard established a ce called the Steris Mage Tower on a penins at the other end of the desert. They rely mainly on ships formunicating with the outside world. The highest governing body is the Council, consisting of representatives elected or personally appointed by the masters of each Mage Tower.¡± ¡°At present, the Council has seven representatives who are all Truth Mages. ¡­¡± At this point, Negris gasped, ¡°Seven Truth Mages?¡± Among the tens of millions of elves, there were only three Truth Mages. The Republic of Steris, with less than 500,000 people, had seven. Were they wholesaling them? Lisa nodded: ¡°Seven, no more, no less. However, ording to them, now there are only three councilors: Emperor Blue Star, Dead Star Auburnli, and Giant Star Thunder.¡± ¡°I know Emperor Tyrone, he is the one who presided over the dimensional security meeting, and my grandnephew has fought against him. He is very powerful. But these titles like Death Star and Giant Star, they are strange. Is there anyone really named Death Star?¡± Negris was surprised. Lisa looked strange and said, ¡°Because Auburnli is a witch.¡± ¡°What, a witch? A representative of the Republic of Steris is a witch? How is that possible? Can the Church of Light tolerate it?¡± Negris was shocked. Lisa couldn¡¯t answer this question, so Negris quickly looked for Ange and brought Anthony into the conversation. ¡°Of course they can¡¯t stand it, but they can¡¯t beat it, so they have to endure it.¡± Anthony said casually.N?v(el)B\\jnn How could the Church of Light tolerate a government with heretics in the high ranks? From the establishment of the Republic of Steris, the church hasunched countless expeditions, subversion, assassination ns against it, just none of them were sessful. The location of the Republic of Steris was too remote, requiring a desert crossing of several thousand kilometers or going by sea.
But the Republic of Steris is made up of wizards, good at long-range attacks, forbidden city-ughter spells, Close quarter fighting. Whether it¡¯s and or sea invasion, the invaders are doomed to fail. Therger the expedition, the faster they die. As soon as the grain supply line is cut off, everyone starves or dies of thirst. The only effective method was to blockade it, no supplies allowed into the Republic of Steris. This pissed off the mages of the Republic of Steris. Nine Truth Mages used a group teleportation technique, making long-distance war raids and burning down more than a dozen churches, which eventually forced the church to sit down for negotiations. Since then, no one has dared to mess with the Republic of Steris, because of its open attitude towards non-human beings, as long as there are no egregious actions, they are wee in the Republic of Steris. In the Steris Code, the first rule was: Steris should always shine brightly ¡­ ¡°Wait a minute, didn¡¯t you say there were seven? How did it be nine? How many Truth Mages are there?¡± Negris asked. Anthony nced at it and slowly said, ¡°People, they die.¡± Throughout the seven hundred years of its history, the number of Truth Mages in the Republic of Steris has fluctuated, with the maximum being nine and the minimum as low as one or two. Most of them are Life Species, and when their life span is up, they die. ¡°The only one who has endured throughout history is Dead Star Auburnli. She is a witch. From the day the Republic of Steris was established, she has been a representative, supporting the entire republic during its darkest hours. She has single-handedly rebuilt many schools of magic whose lines of session had been cut off. If anything, this Auburnli is the mother of Steris.¡± Negris was stunned, this legend was too epic, right? Just as he was about to ask something else, suddenly, the entire Goddess of Beauty City resounded with an eye-catching rm. The rm wasn¡¯t triggered by the city itself but by a Steris Mage. As the rm sounded, everyone in the Goddess of Beauty City, regardless if they were bathing, washing feet, sand bathing, beautifying, or regrowing hair, as long as they were family members of the Steris Mage, they were all in a frenzy, running for their life.
¡°Hey, hey, hey, you haven¡¯t paid yet!¡± Lisa yelled horrified. ¡°Put it on Hildi and Jack¡¯s tab!¡± The escaping mages shouted without looking back, ¡°Run fast, the old witch ising!¡± The Steris Mages who rushed onto the street showed their powers, some crushed rings, some ripped open scrolls, and some, in groups of three or two, activated the teleportation array together, fleeing in a sh. In just a few minutes, the streets werepletely clear. The speed astonished Negris. This must be special training, right? With such a fast redeployment speed, if these mages were trained as a raiding force, they could easily take a city. The speed of closing arge city¡¯s gates might not even be as fast as their relocation speed. Chapter 403: 241: Someone Recites Its Holy Name_3 Chapter 403: Chapter 241: Someone Recites Its Holy Name_3 What¡¯s the deal with this old witch? Able to send an assembly of Steris Mages scrambling in terror? Above the cloud cover, a ck dot fell, plunging straight towards the Goddess of Beauty City. If no one stopped it, it wouldnd on the pce at the center of the city. With a thought from Ange, a massive figure soared into the sky from outside the city. The Bone Dragon flew over and picked up their group, then spiraled into the sky to meet it. The plunging shadow nced at the Bone Dragon and seemed to be a bit surprised, it abandoned its dive and hovered in the air. Getting closer, they could see clearly that the shadow was also a Bone Dragon, a beast about twenty meters long, bony skeleton exposed. Its skeletal wings were covered with a ck cloth, sewn together to catch the wind. This was a real Bone Dragon, more undead-like than Ange¡¯s dragon, which was covered in living skin. For differentiation, let¡¯s temporarily name the other dragon Cloth-winged Dragon. On its back stood a petite figure in a cloak, looking down in surprise at Ange and others, until the Bone Dragon rose to her altitude. Then she also saw Ange and Negris on the Bone Dragon¡¯s back, and she said in surprise, ¡°Bone Dragon? Skinned? Undead?¡± After finishing speaking, she remembered something and quickly took off her hood, revealing a small, wrinkled face, adding, ¡°Republic of Steris, Death Star, Auburnli, may I ask who you all are.¡± ¡°You are Auburnli?¡± Negris looked incredulously at the young witch. So the old crone was referring to her? Although she had a wrinkled face, the witch clearly had the features of a young girl. She must have died when she was only about fifteen or sixteen years old. Her mind hadn¡¯t fully developed yet.
¡°You have a good eye, this is indeed a Bone Dragon. I¡¯m Nage, this is Ange. May I ask, why have youe to our territory?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Nage? That name sounds familiar, where have I heard it¡­ ¡°Auburnli looked up and down at Nage, asking curiously, ¡°Are you also an undead? Why do you seem so fresh? Haven¡¯t you been dead for long?¡± Then her gaze turned to Ange. She eyed him suspiciously for a moment. She felt he was strange, yet she could not articte what it was. ¡°I¡¯m here because I discovered that my students have been frequently asking for leaves, staying out all night, and spendingrge sums of money. Is there some form of illicit, unclean activities going on here which is tempting my students, speak!¡± Auburnli starts, then suddenly shouts at the end. Negris felt a bit puzzled, scratching his head and asking, ¡°For example?¡± ¡°Do I have to spell it out for you? Gambling, drinking, paidpanionship, and so on. If such dirty things exist here, I¡¯ll tear this ce apart.¡± Auburnli said sternly. Negris finally understood why he had felt something was off. She was a discipline master, she was clearly here to catch truant students. No wonder those Steris Mages were so scared of the old witch that they would flee without even paying. Hahaha, it¡¯s just perfect timing, your student has ditched his payment, now it¡¯s time for the teacher to pay up. Negris¡¯s face immediately split into a smile, staring at Auburnli like she was a juicy piece ofmb.N?v(el)B\\jnn Auburnli looked at his expression and felt a familiar feeling bubbling within her. She asked, ¡°Your real name, isn¡¯t it Negris, is it?¡± Boom! Like a bolt from the blue, his divine name, someone has spoken his divine name! PS: With your advice, my back is much better. Chapter 404: 242 The Fall of the Gods, Stellaris Dims_1 Chapter 404: Chapter 242 The Fall of the Gods, Steris Dims_1 ¡°This is the Hall of Knowledge, the Gate of Truth, and behind is the statue of the God of Knowledge. I never understood why the statue looked so bemused, now it makes sense since it¡¯s a realistic depiction. You look exactly like it, it felt so familiar from the first look. That¡¯s why I casually asked and never thought I would trigger Truth¡¯s Murmur. I have called upon your godly name before, why didn¡¯t you respond? Do I have to shout your name face-to-face for you to answer?¡± Auburnli was leading the way, chattering incessantly, her tone filled with resentment. However, Negris didn¡¯t have the mood to entertain Auburnli¡¯s gripes. He was just staring at the intact Hall of Knowledge with an expression as if he was about to cry. Unbelievable, the Master ne actually still has a temple belonging to him, oh my god, his believers haven¡¯t forgotten him after all. ¡°Yes, yes, they didn¡¯t forget you, but they¡¯re all dead. This temple was built by my teacher through countless hardships. Unfortunately, it was of no use. No matter how much we prayed, we never received a response. Everyone thought you were dead, so they went about their business. I juste to clean up every few decades as a remembrance of my teacher.¡± With Auburnli¡¯s ongoing exnation, Negris roughly understood what had happened. Auburnli¡¯s teacher was a fervent believer in the God of Knowledge, but said believer only emerged nine hundred years ago when Negris was sealed and thus unable to respond to believer¡¯s call, all due to a knight novel. A young Auburnli¡¯s teacher once read a knight¡¯s novel, featuring a brief description of the God of Knowledge, suggesting that praying to the God of Knowledge during exams would potentially receive his protection and ensure sess. At the time, Auburnli¡¯s teacher was about to face the most important exam in his life, an exam that determined whether he could be an Intermediate Mage and receive a tripled allowance. So, he tried his luck and prayed to the God of Knowledge. Since Negris was sealed, naturally he couldn¡¯t respond to his disciple¡¯s prayer, so Auburnli¡¯s teacher naturally failed his exam. However, he didn¡¯t believe it was Negris¡¯ fault at that time and instead thought he wasn¡¯t devout enough since he only prayed a few times before the exam, hardly considered devout. Therefore, he believed that was why he didn¡¯t receive a response from the God of Knowledge.
Since then, Auburnli¡¯s teacher started paying attention to news about the God of Knowledge. Apart from acing exams, there was also Truth¡¯s Murmur, Enlightenment Aura, Spirit Enhancement, Staying Up Late, and other practical skills. He was simply a deity born to spread knowledge. If he could receive the protection of the God of Knowledge, he would surely be an Intermediate Mage in three years, a High-level Magician in five years, and a Great Magician in ten years. Sometimes, once a person bes obsessed, anything conflicting with this obsession would be subconsciously ignored. From then on, whenever Auburnli¡¯s teacher failed an exam, he would think it was because he didn¡¯t receive the protection of the God of Knowledge. He believed it had nothing to do with his own qualification, and even less to do with his ying around without reviewing before exams. As for why he couldn¡¯t receive a response from the God of Knowledge? It must be because he wasn¡¯t devout enough, and so he became more and more manic in his worship of the God of Knowledge. By the time Negris heard this, he was almost spitting blood, nearly killing him. Could it be that he didn¡¯t have any fervent followers in the past due to him always responding promptly? Promises were always kept, so the believers lost their awe. Was it that because it was too easy to obtain, it wasn¡¯t cherished enough? And in contrast, people like this one that couldn¡¯t get what they asked for, thus digging deeper into their obsessions, became more manic as their obsession grew stronger? Once a person bes obsessed, they find the motivation to do anything. Auburnli¡¯s teacher was only of average qualifications, but his obsession made him diligent and hard-working, eventually bing a high-level magician. Originally, ording to the evaluation of the Magician¡¯s Guild, he would remain at the level of Intermediate Wizard. But now, having broken through to high-level, he was a pleasant surprise. This, isn¡¯t it the protection of the God of Knowledge? Okay, in a situation where Negris waspletely unaware, the follower himselfpleted an act of God¡¯s Grace. From then on, Auburnli¡¯s teacher became even more fervent. In order to spread the faith of the God of Knowledge, Auburnli¡¯s teacher heard that there was a penins at the edge of the desert and surrounded by sea on three sides, where some desperate non-human species group lived and called themselves the Land of Steris.N?v(el)B\\jnn Auburnli¡¯s teacher traveled far to this ce, nning to spread the faith of the God of Knowledge amongst these people. Because he followed the God of Knowledge, he drew a mental portrait of Negris through various scriptures and legends, inheriting Negris¡¯ habit of teaching, always pointing out and guiding the beings gathered there. Eventually, some began to learn magic from him, Auburnli was one of them. Some people with mediocre talents were exemry teachers, especially since he worshiped the God of Knowledge. Corresponding to Negris¡¯ skills, he created many teaching methods. Such as Truth¡¯s Murmur, which he transformed into continuous nagging, nagging in front of his students every day until they mastered it. He didn¡¯t know whether it was a fluke or what, but he had taught quite a few outstanding students anyway. In addition to teaching, Auburnli¡¯s teacher also built the Hall of Knowledge, trying to get his students to also believe in the God of Knowledge.
Chapter 405: 242: The fall of the Gods, Stellaris dims _2 Chapter 405: Chapter 242: The fall of the Gods, Steris dims _2 At first, there were certain effects, but with his passing, people began to renounce their faith in stages. After all, not everyone is obstinate. After a few prayers without answers, dozens without responses, any prayers afterwards were merely for show. With the passing of Auburnli¡¯s teacher, the Hall of Knowledge grew colder and lonelier. As the students he personally taught one by one passed away, fewer and fewer people visited. Only Auburnli still remembered this ce. She asionally came to clean and remember her teacher¡¯s likeness. A me lit by the zealous believer slowly faded out. After Auburnli¡¯s teacher passed away, his students did not disperse. During that time, the Church of Light persecuted all kinds of heretics and pagans, many of whom escaped to this ce. Adopting her teacher¡¯s practice, Auburnli, along with her senior and junior fellow students, was very willing to teach anyone who was willing to learn. Over time, more and more wizards flocked here. Someone suggested building a Mage Tower. Thus, at first a simple Mage Tower was erected, which then continuously expanded over the following hundred years, and was finally renamed the Steris Mage Tower. It was a tough time. The hardest part was for Auburnli, the only undead among all the students. After her seniors and juniors passed away one by one, she was left to teach their students. With the increasing scale of the Mage Tower, prominent students kept on emerging. The tower even gave birth to Truth Mages, leading to its growing fame, and eventually bing a Holy Land for mages across all nes. Having repelled the church¡¯s expeditions several times, forcing them to negotiate, the senior members of the Steris Mage Tower felt it was time to establish a nation. The scale and power they had now was beyond what a purely educational Mage Tower could organize. And thus, the Republic of Steris was naturally established. From the time Auburnli¡¯s teacher arrived here, to the founding of the Republic of Steris, it took three hundred and twenty-four years. The efforts of seven or eight generations finally made Steris shine at the end of thisnd.
Hearing Auburnli recap the fragmented history and looking at the grinning bronze dragon statue in the hall, Negris felt a mixture of emotions, overwhelmed with bitterness. What kind of feeling was that? It felt like he was at a Goblin Guild lottery, where he won the third prize, and the person beside him, who borrowed money to participate, won the grand prize. What was it with your believers being more sessful than you? And that wasn¡¯t because he provided guidance, but because they randomly messed around,pletely without Negris¡¯s involvement. The achievements they obtained thus ended up even greater than what he had achieved himself. What was happening? When he was diligent and attentive, he did not have a single ardent believer. But when he was locked up and knew nothing, a passionate believer emerged, who not only cultivated a group of students, but also built a temple for him. Did this not indicate that everything he had done before was in vain, even counterproductive, and that it was correct to leave things alone? ¡°How did you, the God of Knowledge, be like this? If it weren¡¯t for the reaction to your divine name, I wouldn¡¯t believe it was you. How could you be so skinny?¡± Auburnli flicked her fingers lightly, and res floated away, lighting up the oilmps inside the temple, making the interior brightly lit. ¡°Ah, it¡¯s a long story. I was sealed and had no way to respond to your calls.¡± Negris said. ¡°I see. My teacher believed that it was hisck of dedication that made you not respond to him. ording to the scriptures he collected, you are the least pretentious god, always responsive, unless it¡¯s during a test.¡± Auburnli said with sudden realization.N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°I certainly won¡¯t help you cheat. I am the God of Knowledge, not the God of Cheating.¡± Negris scratched his nose, embarrassed. He was embarrassed because, in the past, the mostmon asion for believers to pray was during exams. Only at those times would they remember the God of Knowledge. ¡°By the way, I still don¡¯t know what your teacher¡¯s name was.¡± Negris asked. ¡°I don¡¯t know my teacher¡¯s actual name, but we all call him Red Star.¡± Auburnli said. ¡°Red Star?¡± Negris murmured. When the name came out, Negris suddenly felt that the temple was a lot brighter, as if small stars were converging towards him, finally forming a red star in front of him. Ange and Negris alone could see this star point, which Auburnli couldn¡¯t. Evidently, it was the power of faith at work. Negris nonchntly grabbed the Red Star, nning to examine it further once he was back. As he was about to leave, after flying about ten meters, Negris suddenly remembered something. He turned around and asked, ¡°Auburnli, are you a follower of mine?¡± Auburnli responded with an apologetic smile: ¡°I no longer believe in any deities. I have touched the profound mysteries of truth. I am the God of Truth and Law.¡± The reason why Truth Mages could be considered gods was that to some extent, they had the same power as the deities. They understood the mysteries of the world and roughly knew what being a ¡®God¡¯ entailed. How could they devote themselves wholly to weaker gods who might not even be as powerful as them? ¡°I knew it would be like this. When you invoked my divine name, I couldn¡¯t even obtain the slightest knowledge-feedback. Since you¡¯re not my follower, it¡¯s simple then. Your students have skipped on paying their bills because you came. You can help them pay.¡± Negris pulled out a long bill, where the parchment used to keep ounts hung all the way to the ground. ¡°What have they purchased? So much? Let me see.¡± Auburnli had taught countless students over the centuries, and she had asionally helped students pay their bills, so she was quite adept at handling such situations. She swiftly took the bill.
However, when she saw the total amount at the end of the bill, she couldn¡¯t help but yell, ¡°Why is this so expensive!? Are you just robbing them!?¡± Negris grinned, a familiar expression her eyes, and said, ¡°Faster than theft indeed, but this is the price. We clearly informed your students, and they all agreed to the price. There absolutely was no fraud.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t believe that anything can be this expensive. Did they buy divine artifact magic ornaments? Let me take a closer look. If I see one overcharged item, I will dismantle your ce.¡± An irate Auburnli said. ¡°Purify Skin, Tender Complexion, Whitening, Clean Teeth, Hair Regrowth? Health care?¡­ What are all these? How could you dare to charge so much for minor magical improvements on living creatures! I¡¯m going to tear¨C¡­¡± A furious Auburnli began ranting.
Before she could finish, Negris added a single sentence: ¡°Even witches can use.¡± Auburnli stopped in her tracks, nced at Negris, and then turned back to the list of services on the bill. After a while, she crumpled the bill forcefully, ¡°I will verify these things first with them. If they voluntarily consumed these services, Steris won¡¯t shirk the bill. I¡¯ll take this bill for now.¡± With her cloak billowing, Auburnli quietly arrived in the Goddess of Beauty City on the same night, confirming each item on the bill one by one. ¡­ Riding a Bone Dragon and flying from the Republic of Steris toward the Goddess of Beauty City, Negris stared at the flickering Red Star, sighing in regret. He had never imagined that the Republic of Steris had such deep connections with him. zing fanatics had established it, but s, Negris in his sealed state waspletely oblivious to it. As a result, the Divine Fire had extinguished, and there was no connection between Steris and him anymore. s! If he had perceived it, people would have likely grown disillusioned and would have not passionately believed in him. Now that he had some of the Red Star left, he had no idea what to do with it. Ange tilted its head. During their journey, Ange hadn¡¯t spoken a word, but it had heard their entire conversation. Seeing the regret in Negris¡¯s eyes, Ange asked curiously, ¡°Are you thinking of reestablishing your faith?¡± Ange¡¯s question took Negris aback. He quickly shook his head, ¡°No, not at all. I finally understood that I am utterly unsuited to being a god. Even a knight¡¯s novel seems to have a more significant impact than me.¡± ¡°In retrospect, I have always just enjoyed giving people advice, not aspiring to be any deity. It¡¯s better this way. I just feel it¡¯s a pity. I have never had any zealous believers. This advanced zealot, I don¡¯t even have the chance to respond to him. It¡¯s a true pity. I wonder what I can do for him.¡± Ange tilted its head and touched the Red Star. Suddenly, the Red Star emitted a dazzling light. An unwavering belief spread from the Red Star: Strength from the fall of gods, the stars dim, the Red Star still shines¡­Don the armor, wear the magic robe, the Heroic Spirit protects our homnd¡­
Negris gasped, ¡°It¡¯s a Heroic Spirit!¡± Chapter 406: 243: Hand Over the Naming Rights Immediately! _1 Chapter 406: Chapter 243: Hand Over the Naming Rights Immediately! _1 At the Resting Pce, the Bronze Book opened wide, reflecting Negris and a human d in war armor. The human¡¯s armor was unusually thick, like a heavy battle te, wrapping him like a can of iron and only revealing a pair of eyes and a mouth. A round shield hung behind the armor, the surface of which was adorned with a red pentagram. The same pentagram was embossed on the chest te in front. The holography of Negris grabbed at the seam of the armor worn by the Red Star Warrior, repeatedly asking, ¡°Gods¡¯ fall, Gods¡¯ fall, how did you know about the fall of the Gods?¡± The Red Star confoundedly muttered: ¡°Gods¡¯ fall¡­Gods¡¯ fall¡­ Red Star sh¡ª!¡± After mumbling for a while, his spirits suddenly surged up, alongside a burst of unyielding faith. He took a stride forward with crossed arms, which stirred up a dazzling red light, sweeping around like a light pir. With a huff, Negris hoisted him up, shook him vigorously, and tossed him aside. He then turned to Ange outside the Bronze Book and said, ¡°His divine wisdom is iplete.¡± The Bronze Book is the true form of Negris. The underdeveloped embryo dragon outside is just its projection. The Bronze Book itself is a divine artifact, an artifact that can seal deity. It has many areas to be explored, but its most basic function is that it can contain a deity¡¯s consciousness. Now, Negris has pulled the Red Star Heroic Spirit into the Bronze Book, providing him with a temporary ce to contain his consciousness. Without it, the Heroic Spirit of the Red Star would not even be able tomunicate. What a pity, even with a ce to stay, Red Star still cannotmunicate. His divine wisdom is iplete, and cannot be regarded as aplete consciousness. ¡°What a waste. I wanted to ask him about the meaning of the epic, ¡®Gods¡¯ fall, the Steris dim, the Red Star shines.¡¯ Is the Red Star referring to him? Who does the Gods refer to? How does he know about the fall of the Gods? Who told him? Or did he see it with his own eyes? ording to Auburnli, he is just an average mage with strong teaching abilities. How could he get information about something like the fall of the Gods?¡±
Negris muttered to himself. While he was speaking, the thick red light pir behind him sizzled and fired around. The Red Star was hopping and yelling, ¡°Red Star sh! Red Star sh! Red Star sh!¡± It seemed that the Red Star sh was also a technique? Pity, once he was taken out of the Bronze Book, he turned back into a little twinkling red star. Let alone performing the Red Star sh, he could not even talk. Only in the Bronze Book can he project the things in his consciousness easily, which is also more convenient for Negris to conduct research on him. ¡°Why is he wearing te armor? Isn¡¯t he a mage? Can he handle the weight of the te armor? Why did he be a heroic spirit? Heroic Spirits are collective beliefs formed by everyone¡¯s remembrance of heroes. Did he die heroically?¡± With doubts piling up, Negris tried to contact Auburnli. He first found the Female Space Mage Hiludi, but Hiludi didn¡¯t know where Auburnli had gone. He finally learned from idle chat with Lisa that a generous witch hade to the Goddess of Beauty City. When he went to see, all he saw was a beautiful Lolita who looked just like a doll. ¡°Auburnli?¡± It was hard for Negris to reconcile this adorable little Lolita and the wrinkled old witch, save for the height, they had nothing inmon. The little Lolita was also taken aback, covered her face with both hands, and said, ¡°You¡¯ve got the wrong person,¡± before trying to make an exit. But before she could reach the door, she was stopped by the Purple Skeleton: ¡°You haven¡¯t paid your bill! To prevent people from running out on their tabs, Lisa had called over the Purple Skeleton Titan.¡± The little Lolita reluctantly returned to the counter, taking out her membership card to pay the bill. Even though the Purple Skeleton can¡¯t defeat her, she can¡¯t just beat someone up to skip the bill. As soon as the membership card is pulled out, Negris came over, reading the tiny tiny letters on the edge of the card: ¡°Auburnli-Endel¡±. Auburnli snappily said, ¡°Just settle the bill. Why do you need to make a membership card? You guys have so many tricks.¡± Negris smiled and said, ¡°It¡¯s not us that have so many tricks. Without the card, we won¡¯t recognize what the customers look like. They look different when theye in and out, so we can only recognize the card, not the person.¡± Auburnli touched her own face, and fully agreed, a reasonable exnation. After Auburnli had paid the bill, Negris pulled her aside to a guest room, and asked Auburnli some questions he had. The answer was, the Red Star was originally a closebat Mage who always hit people wearing te armor. The Red Star sh was his unique skill. Carrying a metal Magic Wand, the head of the wand could emit stunning red light. Swinging it to hit people, the enemy¡¯s attention could easily be drawn to the head of the wand. Regarding that epic¡­ ¡°When the gods fell, Steris dimmed, and Red Star was shining¡­ I have never heard of it. Where did you hear it from? Heroic Spirit? What Heroic Spirit? Why would you suddenly ask about this? Have you seen a Heroic Spirit?¡±
Of course, Negris couldn¡¯t exin that they caught a Heroic Spirit on their tour of the Temple. He could only say that he read it from a book, which would make sense since as the God of Knowledge it¡¯d be reasonable for him to read a lot of literature. ¡°When the gods fell, Steris dimmed¡­ When the gods fell, Steris dimmed¡­ Where did he learn about the fall of the gods?¡± For a while thereafter, Negris kept mumbling this sentence to himself, sometimes pulling Ange to run to the Republic of Steris to look for relevant materials in the library.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om It has to be said that the library of the Republic of Steris is the mostplete ce for various historical materials in the world today. Other libraries, without exception, will be influenced by religion, war, fires, famine, and the likes of Anthony. They are all either destroyed by fire or ruined. ¡°Wow, such fun things happened back then? Oh, is that so? Ah, I get it.¡± Negris constantly expressed various exmations in Ange¡¯s soul.
Ange could only apany him in this boring endeavor. In this ce, he couldn¡¯t use the Boundary-crossing Hand to nt anything because he found that any spatial fluctuation would trigger an anomaly detection Array. Obviously, the Republic of Steris, this country established by mages, has a lot of experience in preventing abnormalities like magic space. This prevents enemies from invading this country through transportation and other methods. s, it was so boring; Ange just wanted to return to his field. Yesterday, he had just sprouted the Divine Wood and was preparing to use the Divine Wood as a stock to try to graft the Elf Beans. ¡°Divine Wood? What Divine Wood?¡± Negris asked in confusion. ¡°Heaven, square, dug up.¡± Ange said. Ok, Negris recalled. The Square of the Gods was turned over by Ange to nt Elf Beans, and the trees on both sides of the square were all cut down. Those were all Divine Trees that grow differently than ordinary crops. Who would have thought that Ange would be able to grow them? ¡°Are you sure about this? Grafting the Divine Tree¡­¡± Before Negris could finish speaking, there was a suddenmotion in front. It seemed that someone had started a quarrel. Ange went over to have a look and saw a group of people around a square pit within an area covered by a canopy. They were arguing and shouting. One party pointed at the other¡¯s nose and yelled: ¡°ept the reality, poor students of the Spring Wind. With your level, you are not qualified to give the crop contest the name ¡®Spring Wind¡¯. It should be named ¡®Dobinki Crop Contest¡¯. Hand over the naming rights now!¡± PS: The time difference has messed everything up. Ah, I knew I shouldn¡¯t have left the chapter unfinished. I originally said that if it got rmended, I¡¯d write more. Just publishing one chapter first, then continue writing. Chapter 407: 244: I Want to Play_1 Chapter 407: Chapter 244: I Want to y_1 Huh? What a coincidence? The two fighting parties actually know each other? Negris and Ange hurriedly walked over, casually pulling over a spectator who was dressedpletely differently, looking smug, and asked, ¡°What¡¯s going on?¡± ¡°Who are¡­? Stop dragging me around; my Silk Robe, immune to fire, it¡¯s very expensive¡­¡± The reluctant spectator they had pulled over grumbled, but as he turned his head and saw Ange¡¯s pass, he straightened up in fear, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Director, I didn¡¯t say anything.¡± On Ange¡¯s pass, a ck star was slowly pulsating. That was the mark of the Death Star; director Auburnli¡¯s title wasn¡¯t something to be trifled with. People were trembling with fear just from seeing a pass; the title of Director Auburnli wasn¡¯t just a title for show. Negris¡¯s voice came from Ange¡¯s body: ¡°Don¡¯t be scared. What happened?¡± ¡°Oh, it¡¯s an old event, it¡¯s very interesting. A student of the Spring Breeze Druid, who belongs to the Mage Farmer¡¯s Academy, is having a dispute with Dobinki¡¯s people. They challenge each other to duels every now and then. I don¡¯t even know how many times they¡¯ve fought.¡± ¡°Druid? Combat? A fight? Or a magic duel?¡± Negris asked curiously. Druids capable ofbat? Transforming into bears and fighting each other? ¡°No, they arepeting in a simted magic formation using illusion techniques, testing their breeding skills and climate control. Anyway, just various techniques to make crops grow faster and better,¡± the curious spectator exined. Hearing about the illusion simtion formation, even Ange couldn¡¯t help but squeeze to the front. The mages that he pushed aside were unable to speak fast enough and were pushed to the side. How could these weak mages resist the force of the Golden Skeleton? The Spectator in the Silk Robe saw that Ange had transferred his focus and quickly escaped. Arriving at the front of the pit, Ange finally saw the situation within the pit clearly. It was a rectangr pit, five meters long and ten meters wide, about one meter deep. At the moment, an illusion projected a river, rows of fields, and some proportionally shrunken crops onto it.
At this moment, the situation in the pit was clear. On the left were crops simted by Dobinki¡¯s students, a kind of vine nt. The vines grew wildly along the wooden frame, producing giant fruits that somewhat resemble breadfruits. On the Spring Breeze Druid student¡¯s side were still the original rice crops. Although heavy fruits had been produced, it was evident to the naked eye that the yield was definitely not as high as Dobinki¡¯s side. The numbers on the Illusion Magic Array also confirmed this fact. The yield per mu on Dobinki¡¯s side was a thousand jin, while only six hundred jin was shown on the Spring Breeze Druid¡¯s side; the difference reached forty percent. The student from Spring Breeze Druid¡¯s side was not convinced and said angrily: ¡°You are cheating. The cost of nting vine nts is high, their resistance is low, and their yield and starch content are also low, they are absolutely not suitable as staple crops. You guys are cheating.¡± The students from Dobinki¡¯s sideughed loudly: ¡°If you lose, you lose. Student of Spring Breeze Druid, do you not even have the courage to admit defeat? Did we limit the use of certain crops for thepetition? Did we set a cost constraint for nting? As for low yields? Open your eyes and see, our yield per mu is a thousand jin. If our teacher nts it, the yield will be even higher.¡± They then added: ¡°Moreover, the disadvantage of low starch content has been improved by our teacher. This vine-bred breadfruit has a high starch content. We estimated this using the fruit, and the simted magic formation has recognized and updated this data. Just admit defeat, hahaha.¡± Negris was stunned by what he heard. Because the students were revealing several pieces of information through their conversation, the simted data of this simted magic formation was actually based on real data, which meant that it could simte any crop grown in real life. Doesn¡¯t that mean that the simtion results would be incredibly urate? If it can be simted in the magic formation, does it mean there¡¯s a high chance of growing it in reality? Kvada, simted magic formation for nting? Has the magic of Steris be this advanced? Just this simtion formation alone could reveal the strength of the Republic of Steris. With the existence of this formation, their students only needed to practice in the formation to perfect their magic skills. Whereas other magic academies were still stuck with practising in reality. However, due to the limitation of their own magical powers, they could only use limited magic in practice, and they would be exhausted after a few times. This difference was not noticeable when it came to magic that required elemental affinity. However, for jobs like Druid and Alchemy that require a lot of experimentation, the formation is nothing short of a divine artifact. All you need to do is input various types of fertilizers, magic, materials, arrays, and other data, and then repeatedlybine them. Once sessful, you can take the results and test them out in reality. If it¡¯s sessful, it will save arge amount of time, energy, magic power, and materials. If it fails, you input the data from the failed experiment, adjust the simtion results, and make the simtions more urate. Why is Ange faster and better at breeding than others? Because he has a divine breeding technique¡ªInstant Death Halo. While others need an entire growing season to harvest crops, he can get the results in three hours, naturally making him faster. This Illusion Simtion Formation serves a simr role as the Instant Death Halo. It elerates crops through illusion, allowing for quick conclusions to be made. Oh, Kvada, this is a good thing indeed. Not only does Kvada think so, but Ange also murmurs, ¡°I want that.¡± ¡°Alright, we¡¯ll ask Auburnliter on how many we should buy,¡± Negris said.
Meanwhile, the students of Spring Breeze Druid had nothing to say as their faces turned pale. The opponents were right; there were no restrictions on which crops to use, or the production costs. It was natural for the opponents to win; they could only me their failure to consider thoroughly and limit things in advance. However, losing was one thing, but whether they could bear the mockery was another issue. How could the young and energetic students tolerate the mockery? The lead student of the Spring Breeze Druid loudly dered, ¡°That doesn¡¯t count! If you dare, let¡¯s have another round, but this time you are not allowed to use¡­¡± Before he finished speaking, hispanion behind him was desperately tugging at his clothes. He whispered into his ear, ¡°Brother, we have no more demon crystals.¡± Alchemy brings wealth, mage farming brings poverty, and elementalists bet their underwear. This epic phrase, sung countless times by bards, thoroughly dissected the situation in the Magic Academy.
¡°Alchemy brings wealth¡± because the poor can¡¯t afford to study alchemy. Just a Gold-touch Stick and the materials could consume all the wealth of a noble. The Sava pharmacist needed alchemy; all of the Viscount¡¯s property had been squandered by her, which gives you an idea of how much money it costs. However, if you manage to master it, alchemy brings wealth in a pouring stream. ¡°Mage farming brings poverty¡± and only those who are not poor can study mage farming. Just dealing with the wind and sun all day isn¡¯t something nobles and the affluent can usually bear. Even the Great Druids Dobinki and Spring Breeze look like old farmers, let alone ordinary mage farmers.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Poor mage farmer students can¡¯t even afford a second round of Illusion Simtion, as they have no more Demon Crystals. The lead Spring Breeze student was alternating between paleness and rage, clenching his teeth but unable to do anything. Without any Demon Crystals, the Illusion Magic Array cannot operate. Ange squeezed through the crowd, poured a bag of Demon Crystals on the operating table, and pointed at the Illusion Magic Array, saying, ¡°I want to y.¡± ¡°Huh? What does he mean?¡± ¡°Ah! It¡¯s the pass issued by the old witch, you all be quiet, that man is wearing the pass from the old witch.¡± ¡°But what does he mean? He pushed the Spring Breeze Druid¡¯s student aside. Does he want to challenge Dobinki¡¯s students?¡± Chapter 408: 245 Save me, sir!_1 Chapter 408: Chapter 245 Save me, sir!_1 Who the heck are you to challenge Dobinki¡¯s students? unting your wealth, hmph!? The bystanders and bothpetitors were filled with endless questions, but upon seeing the Death Star Pass hanging from Ange¡¯s chest, all doubts were involuntarily swallowed down. Doubting the Old Witch¡¯s guest? Not a good idea, right? What if she holds a grudge against us? We¡¯ll end up scrubbing toilets all day! Ange didn¡¯t give a hoot about what others thought, he just wanted to y this game. He pushed the Demon Crystal into the slot, studied it a bit, and figured out how to start it. He fed in a bit of Magic Power to activate the Simted Magic Formation. Swish, the well-kept farnd vanished, recing it was a plot of untouched wastnd with fluctuating numbers disying years, months, days, seasons, temperature, humidity, rainfall, and other data. Do I need to clear thisnd first? Following the steps he had observed from others, Ange fiddled with the control panel and some images materialized. Shall I Burn Wastnd here? After ncing at the soil description, Ange decided to go ahead with it and selected one of the images. A torch appeared on Ange¡¯s plot of wastnd in the pit. Ange could manipte this torch, igniting it at different spots to Burn Wastnd. The Burn Wastnd technique had its logistics, it wasn¡¯t about burning everywhere aimlessly. The fire had to progress from a point to a line to a surface based on the vegetation¡¯s moisture density. If the ignition spot was poorly chosen, the first burnt area could easily be a barrier, blocking the spread of fire and leading to patchy burnt spots somewhat like a measles spell. At this point, you have to sweep the torch across the patchy areas, burning them clean. Then you¡¯d realize that there¡¯s time limit for each ignition, you need to wait a dozen or so seconds between each try.
In the Illusion Magic Array, a dozen seconds would amount to half a day. By the time you¡¯ve cleaned up all the spots, days would have passed. Ange, however, did not make such rookie mistakes. Having Burnt Wastnds for over a thousand years, he could burn out a heart or star shape without a problem. He quickly cleaned up the wastnd, leaving just ayer of ashes. The twopetitors looked at each other, especially Dobinki¡¯s students, full of disbelief. If Ange fooled around, it would be forgivable. But clearly, he wasn¡¯t. If they didn¡¯t y, would they beughed at? Let¡¯s y then, it¡¯s not like we¡¯re the ones paying, the Demon Crystal¡¯s already in. The opponents also swiftly started to Burn Wastnd. However,cking practical experience, their vast theoretical knowledge didn¡¯t help them Burn Wastnd well. They didn¡¯t focus on these basics in theirpetitions and soon, theirnd was also patchy. Dealing with these unburnt areas wasted them several days. By this point, Ange had already moved on tond preparation.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om The process ofnd preparation was rich, involving, removal of debris, sun-bathing the field, applying base fertilizer and more, each needing a tailor-made approach. When Ange saw debris, his first instinct was to call the Little Angel, but then he remembered this was only a simtion. This meant he could only use methods within the Magic Formation. Obviously, there were no Earth Hammers in the Magic Formation, no one would use an Earth Hammer as a tool for debris removal except him and the first ck Mountain Duke. Unable to pulverize the debris, the fastest method was plowing, so Ange chose plowing. The soil condition was eptable, no need for sun-bathing, just a base fertilizer application would suffice. Ange viewed the avable crops, discovering many varieties including Primordial Magic Rice, Breadfruit Trees, and the Vine Breadfruit that his opponent had just used. Without a second thought, he selected Vine Breadfruit as he had grown the other two before and not this one, so he wanted to try this. After deciding on a crop, Ange naturally opened its information to study its habits. The holographic image of Vine Breadfruit immediately caused an uproar. One of Dobinki¡¯s students shouted angrily, ¡°Are you doing this on purpose? This Breadfruit Vine is a new crop bred by our teacher. Itbines the advantages of various crops while removing their disadvantages. It has the potential to be the next dominant food crop. You think you can grow it without having seen it before? You¡¯re underestimating us!¡± From an onlooker¡¯s perspective, Ange¡¯s actions did seem provocative. The student who had just lost his match was defeated by this crop; Ange promptly chose it. Was he nning to beat Dobinki¡¯s students with the same crop? Picking this crop, Dobinki¡¯s side could only win and had to win by arge margin. Otherwise, even if they barely won or tied, it would be counted as a loss.
You bred the crop, you¡¯re most familiar with its habits. If a newbie¡¯s yield is higher than yours, isn¡¯t that a loss? Isn¡¯t that provocation? Ange hadn¡¯t thought too much about it. He just simply wanted to try out a new crop. Tilting his head, he asked puzzledly, ¡°Oh, I can¡¯t? Alright then.¡± He promptly cancelled the Vine Breadfruit and chose the Magic Rice he was most familiar with. This action infuriated the opponents again. If he hadn¡¯t chosen the Vine Breadfruit at first, they wouldn¡¯t have cared. But now, after choosing it, he immediately switched crops under their ¡®threat¡¯. Even if they won, it could only be an ignominious victory.
Negris, projected onto his body, burst intoughter. Just with a decision to ¡®choose¡¯ and ¡®not to choose¡¯, Ange was able to infuriate the opponents, twice. It reminded Negris of when it had first met this skeleton. Chapter 409 - 245 Help, Sir!_2 Chapter 409: Chapter 245 Help, Sir!_2 The worst part was, Ange had no idea, he just had this kind of personality that irritated people. Ange chose Magic Rice; this was the crop he was most familiar with. Why was he so familiar with it? Because at the Fallen Dragon Lake, he conducted experiments repetitively, using Magic Rice as the mother nt and cross-bred it with other varieties of Saline Grass for tens of thousands of times. Keep in mind, any plot ofnd on the farm that has been farmed for thousands of years, even if the same crop is nted, will not be nted more than a thousand times. But he had done tens of thousands of cross-breeding experiments. No other crop could be as familiar to him as Magic Rice. The original Magic Rice already had a high yield, even the Great Druid Spring Breeze could grow more than 1,000 pounds per acre. However, he was not interested in fame, so he was toozy to go back and participate in the Grain Contest; otherwise, there would be no chance for Dobinki. Under Ange¡¯s repeated experiments and careful cultivation, the highest yield of the original Magic Rice had broken through to 1,300 pounds. Even if the other party maintained the previous yield of the breadvine, Ange could still win. If they had kept quiet and let Ange grow the breadvine, he might not have lost, because Ange didn¡¯t know much about the habits of the breadvine. Now their meddling caused Ange to switch back to the familiar Magic Rice, if they knew, would they regret and feel awful? Since it¡¯s his most familiar Magic Rice, Ange quickly got into a familiar rhythm. He germinated when he should, watered when he should, fertilized when he should, and by the time of the grain filling period, Ange did something that no one understood. When noon came, he pulled a over the rice field, shielding the rice. ¡°Why is he doing this? Shouldn¡¯t the grain filling period need the most sunlight? Why cover it up?¡± ¡°It¡¯s notpletely covered, there are holes, what¡¯s the use of blocking a part of it? Cooling down? Reducing light?¡± ¡°Unfortunately, after the sessful cultivation of Magic Rice, there hasn¡¯t been time forrge-scale promotion yet, is Magic Rice afraid of high temperatures during the grain filling period?¡± ¡°Is he messing around? Magic Rice was cultivated by our teacher. Who could know more about its habits than us?¡± ¡°Don¡¯t talk nonsense, from his operating methods, it couldn¡¯t possibly be messing around. Look, Spring Breeze Technique, Rain Transformation Technique, Bug Shepherding Technique, several are even our teacher¡¯s unique techniques, how can it be messing around?¡± ¡°Forget it, what unique technique? Our teacher would love every farmer in the world to learn his techniques. He¡¯s already printed leaflets to spread them all over the world for free. Which Druid in the world can¡¯t perform the Spring Breeze Technique? We have no advantage at all inpetitions.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t question the teacher.¡± The leading student of the Spring Breeze sternly scolded, and the rest of the students red at thisinant, obviously angering the crowd. While the students on the Spring Breeze side had the leisure to mutter, the students of Dobinki were suffering. They found that their progress was far behind Ange¡¯s, and the entire process was not ¡®beautiful¡¯. Yes, beautiful. A beautiful process should be smooth and uniform. However, when they started the Burn Wastnd, it resulted in a bumpy surface. Although this wasn¡¯t a major issue,pared to Ange, they immediately were at a disadvantage. The next step of clearing thend wasn¡¯t well-nned either, and the seeds nted were not as many as the other side¡¯s. This is a critical step because thend is not t, but rather, it has rivers, slopes, and gullies. How to n more nting area on this irregrnd requires experience. If others can sow sixty pounds of seeds, but you can only sow fifty-five pounds, the yield per acre is one-twelfth less than others from the start. As Ange¡¯s crops grew better and better, the pressure on Dobinki¡¯s students became greater and greater, they were stumbling along. When Ange started shading the sun, they started to panic because they found that they were beginning to not understand his operations. Was Ange more skillful than them? At the end of the simtion, in the Illusion Magic Array, Dobinki¡¯s side showed a yield of 1,120 pounds per acre, nearly 100 pounds less than the previous round. Clearly, they were affected by Ange during thepetition, resulting in lower yield. On Ange¡¯s side, the yield was shown to be 1,320 pounds per acre, a number that shocked everyone at the Magic Agriculture Institute. N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°How is this possible? How can the yield of Magic Rice be so high?¡± Whether it was Dobinki¡¯s side or Spring Breeze¡¯s side, there was a feeling of disbelief in their hearts. Even the students of Spring Breeze Druid felt more so, as they were familiar with Magic Rice. Magic Rice was cultivated by the Great Druid Spring Breeze, and they had been growing it for many years. They believed they knew its habits very well. The normal yield was also high, about seven to eight hundred pounds. They felt that the limit of Magic Rice was about this range. But how much yield is Ange getting per acre now? One thousand three hundred pounds, five hundred pounds more than their highest yield, nearly doubling it. Moreover, this was grown in the Simted Magic Formation, which records the most detailed data for Magic Rice. If it can be grown here, there¡¯s a high chance it can achieve the same yield outside. My God, who is this person? The Spring Breeze Druid never achieved a yield of a thousand pounds per acre before he disappeared, how can this person produce such a high yield? Of course, no one would dare to say that Ange was taking wild guesses now. If fooling around could yield such outputs, then what¡¯s the need for Druids? All of a sudden, everyone surrounded and began to inquire from Ange. Negris, sensing the situation was turning tricky, quickly urged Ange to escape, and since he was wearing the pass of the Death Star, although everyone was reluctant, nobody forcefully stopped him. They could only watch Ange walk away. The next day, Auburnli came to visit, her first question was, ¡°How did you achieve a yield of thirteen hundred per acre of Magic Rice?¡± Negris was aware Auburnli would visit. Given the situation, there must have been students who reported it and surely have contacted her because of the pass. Therefore, Negris was well-prepared. She brought out a skeleton, a nting guidebook, the Druid¡¯s Secret Law, a robe, some misceneous items, and finally led out a small child. ¡°This is how it is. We found a skeleton in the Fallen Dragon Gorge. We guess from these belongings that the skeleton belonged to the Spring Breeze Druid. This child is named YiYi, was adopted by Spring Breeze. When Spring Breeze died, this child survived alone in the Fallen Dragon Gorge, subsisting on Soul Moss and gaining substantial Power of the Dragon and now he is a dragon cub.¡± Auburnli looked at Negris skeptically, then carefully examined the skeleton, quickly sensing the residual consciousness carried on the skeleton. ¡°Really, it¡¯s Spring Breeze, he¡¯s dead?¡± Auburnli was stunned, somewhat reluctant to believe this. ¡°Yes, judging from his nting handbook, he should havee to Fallen Dragon Lake to search for saline nts, intending to cultivate saline Magic Rice. Here is the Saline Demon Rice we cultivated, yielding seven hundred pounds per acre,¡± Negris said, taking out a batch of Saline Demon Rice seeds. Auburnli looked nkly at the saline rice seeds. She was still trying to digest the news of Spring Breeze¡¯s demise and asserted that Spring Breeze¡¯sst wish had been fulfilled? ¡°You cultivated it?¡± Auburnli asked skeptically. Spring Breeze¡¯s efforts with the Saline Demon Rice was no secret; he had told her about it, and also said its development was extremely difficult. Without decades or hundreds of years of trying, it was impossible. ¡°Absolutely.¡± Negris put her hands on her hips, looking proud, ¡°I personally saw Ange cultivate it.¡± Auburnli thought for a moment before saying, ¡°I¡¯m going to go inform everyone of this news.¡± ¡°Go ahead. However, your Saline Demon Ricebines elf technology and needs the God of Life¡¯s blessing to germinate. We can get the God of Life to help you germinate it for free, but you need to sell me a few Illusion Simtion Formations.¡± ¡°We¡¯ll talk about thatter.¡± Auburnli left quickly after saying this. However, not long after she stepped out of the door, a strong energy response burst from the inside of the house. Startled, she hurried back in. She saw Ange emitting intense energy fluctuations, his body distorted the space in front of him, and strong energy kept pouring into the hole. When Auburnli returned, she saw a shimmering figure also entering the hole. Auburnli inhaled sharply, eximing in a shocked whisper: ¡°A Divine Calling?¡± Such a level of energy transmission constituted a Divine Calling¡ª the term for when a god bestows power on their saints. Could this seemingly inconspicuous mortal standing next to the God of Knowledge really possess such great power? Ange paid no attention to Auburnli¡¯s astonishment. All his attention was focused on reaching out to the point in his Divine Soul that belonged to Anthony. His Divine Soul had already been sent ahead. Because he heard an unprecedented urgent plea from Anthony: ¡°Master, save me!¡± Chapter 410 - 246: God Says to Cultivate the Land…? _1 Chapter 410: Chapter 246: God Says to Cultivate the Land¡­? _1 Anthony, desperately screaming for help, swung his staff and hit a Holy Spirit Angel on the head. The powerful hit knocked down this towering angel who was about one hundred and ny centimeters tall, indented arge portion of his face. He hooked the tail of his staff upwards, blocking a sh from another spirit. As the head of his staff went downwards, it struck forcefully on the instep, causing the creature to lose bnce. n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Anthony shouted, ¡°Help me, Your Grace!¡± He jabbed his shoulder into the angel¡¯s chest, sending it flying. The humans around were clueless about why these holy spirits suddenly went berserk, attacking Lord Bishop for no apparent reason. For a moment, they were at a loss, not knowing who to support. This was a routine prayer walk, where devout followers walked the streets, lighting candles or carrying Holy Light, slowly stepping down the main road, continuously singing praises for the gods. This was the Church of Light¡¯s regr Faith Elemental Force harvesting event. Organized at regr intervals, it increased the collective participation of the believers, making their faith more devout and steadfast. This activity was fundamentally different from those miracle meetings that exhausted resources, hence Anthony readily continued it. Unexpectedly, in the middle of the event, just as he arrived at the venue under the guard of twelve First Order ceremonial Angels, he had a sudden premonition and cleverly blocked the attack from these angels even before he had made his hypocritical speech. People nearby were astounded by Anthony¡¯s response. ¡°What the¡­ why are the Archbishop¡¯s martial skills so strong?¡± But soon they realized that something he couldn¡¯tprehend had happened, considering the Holy Spirit Angels who were just escorting him started to attack him. Given his cautious nature, of course, he immediately called out his backup. Ange¡¯s reaction was quick as well. He immediately transferred Anthony¡¯s Divine Soul. Suddenly, an iparable strong force surged into his body, and Anthony was enveloped by a holy glow. An imposing Bishop¡¯s robe superimposed onto him. The third Holy Spirit Angel, holding the Holy Sword, aimed directly at Anthony. A Sacred me suddenly erupted from the groundpletely swallowing Anthony. Anthony didn¡¯t feel any harm from the Sacred me nor did he care, because he was dumbstruck by his Divine Soul, involuntarily mumbling, ¡°Yo¡­ Your Grace, what have you done to my Divine Soul?¡± Anthony was a Mystical Warrior of Ange. The so-called Divine Soul is the soul, condensed from one¡¯s faith and thoughts, offered to God. As God controls his Divine Soul, He can easily decide his fate and can also bestow the Divine Soul with great power, returning it to him when needed. Because the Divine Soul was originally his offering, when it returns with the power granted by God, not only is the degradation less, the affinity is also high, and it will not seriously harm him. However, this was all theoretical. Amplifying the power of the Divine Soul requires God to expend His energy. God doesn¡¯t have so much spare energy. Under normal circumstances, the Divine Soul is much weaker when it returns due to the energy loss from oveing distance. But now, Anthony only felt that the Divine Soul possessing him was incredibly strong, much stronger than when he offered it. The powerful energy could not be contained and it gave out a sacrosanct glow, wrapping him up like a glowing Magic Crystal Lamp. Ange sent a puzzled thought. He answered, ¡°I simply fed it Holy Light.¡± It was just simply feeding it with Holy Light until it could not withstand it anymore. The Sacred me of the Holy Spirit Angel could not affect Anthony at all. The divine light he exuded neutralized all the harm from Sacred me. The bystanders gasped, instinctively eximing, ¡°Merging with Divine Soul! Merging with Divine Soul! The Archbishop summoned the Divine Soul, he is God¡¯s chosen!¡± Merging with the Divine Soul has a higher status than Holy Spirit Possession, because the former needs the approval of God while thetter, only the approval of Holy Spirit. Although, to outsiders, there wasn¡¯t much difference between the two. But to the insiders of the church, they couldn¡¯t think more differently. In thest more than one thousand years, the Archbishop and the priestesses have sessfully summoned Holy Spirit Possessions. Some people even know that the curia keeps a group of Holy Spirits, which has no rtion to God. Since Holy Spirits can be privately raised, naturally their status is lower. But Divine Soul cannot be nurtured individually, Anthony¡¯s Divine Soul descent definitely got God¡¯s approval. Of course, this is only some secret that knowledgeable people knew, such as Dyson hidden in the crowd, his face scrunched up like a bitter gourd. ¡°A Divine Soul Descent? Why did he get God¡¯s approval? How is this possible? Haven¡¯t all the gods fallen? How could this happen?¡± Dyson muttered in his heart as he couldn¡¯t let the person beside him overhear. Back in the Land of Fallen, the Lord of Terror gave him a box with the Holy Spirit Fragments of a Wisdom Angel, apanied by an Undead. A Six-winged Wisdom Angel, when she woke up, discovered that the church had split into two. How would she react to the Schism church¡¯s Anthony? Of course, she wanted to kill him on the spot. The Wisdom Angel nned to do just that, but Dyson stopped her, ¡°Lady Luna, there are many followers of the Evil God around the traitor Anthony. He has even deceived more than a dozen Holy Spirits and made them his ves. We should first test his protective power, then you can personally kill him.¡± Chapter 411: 246: God Says to Cultivate the Land…? _2 Chapter 411: Chapter 246: God Says to Cultivate the Land¡­? _2 The persuasion worked¡ªLuna blended into the crowd quietly,manding the Holy Spirits next to Anthony to attack. That quickly identified the protective power on Anthony; it was Divine Soul Descent. This is¡­ It might¡¯ve been better not to test, Divine Soul Descent made Luna confused. Can Anthony, of the Schism Church, still get the approval of the gods? This isn¡¯t the time to be confused, Dyson hastily stepped forward and proposed, ¡°It must be a disguise by the Evil God. Even you, cannot get a response from the gods, how can a mere mortal like Anthony, get a response from the gods, it must be a deception by the Evil God.¡± When Luna heard the word ¡®gods¡¯, her instincts felt rejection, but her memory had been reset and she couldn¡¯t remember anything that happened before, let alone remembering that she petrified Libra or the killing of her pet by the gods. All she remembered was that maintaining the order of the church was one of her missions. Before the Divine Soul merged, Anthony was able to go back and forth with the Holy Spirit Angel. After the merge, these First Order Holy Spirits couldn¡¯t stand a chance against him and six of them were knocked down in an instant. Such mastery of martial techniques threw the crowd into chaos, leaving them unsure whether to assist.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om It¡¯s her turn to make a move. Luna suddenly leaped into the air, spreading her Light Wings behind her back, which tore her mantle apart. Her Light Wings on her back solidified rapidly into pure white True Wings. Within a few breaths, the Light Wings transitioned from energy to actual wings. Then, holy radiance streamed out from the roots of the True Wings, forming two pairs of pristine Light Wings. Six-winged Wisdom Angel, descend!
¡°God bless, what on earth is happening? A Six-winged Archangel murdering Anthony? Luna?¡± All Six-winged Archangels were well-known figures. Everyone knew who it was as soon as they saw her. This was clearly Wisdom Angel Luna, but why is she trying to kill Anthony? Is it God¡¯s will? Some who sided with Anthony, thinking that he¡¯s the chosen representative of God, began to contemte retreat. Kvada, who needs help? Who¡¯s the True God? Who¡¯s the Evil God? Can¡¯t they just hang a sign up? They¡¯ve left everyone utterly confused. At such a moment of indecision, most people chose to watch the events unfold. Only Saint Patricia and her Saints did otherwise, collectivelyunching an assault against the Holy Spirits. Patricia¡¯s interests were deeply entwined with the silver coin¡¯s. Even if Anthony is evil, she has no choice but to continue this charade or else they will just be toys to please the high-ups of the church. Patricia¡¯s Saints dyed the Holy Spirits long enough for Anthony to get ready. Anthony stretched his palm towards Luna and shouted loudly, ¡°God says!¡­¡± Just as he spoke, Anthony felt a chill, he clearly saw Luna¡¯s energy intensity drastically rising as if about to burst free. ¡°Is it the Holy Light sh? But, what happened to me? Why can I ¡®see¡¯ energy intensities?¡± Anthony muttered. Luna¡¯s wide disy of wings showed clear intentions of employing Holy Light sh. But what shocked Anthony wasn¡¯t this, rather, it was himself¡ªhe felt able to ¡®see¡¯ the energy intensity on Luna with his eyes,plete with a clear color band indicator. The energy intensity on Luna¡¯s body was at the one-third mark on the color band. If it were to be converted, it would likely be around thirty-three percent. What does this mean? No, why can he see the color band? The surprised cries of people around him seemed to answer Anthony¡¯s questions. ¡°God bless, the Ring of Bnce! That¡¯s the ring used by the God of Bnce to weigh everything in the universe! The God of Bnce has descended!¡± Looking up, Anthony saw the ring, not only him, Luna also saw it, and she had no choice but to hold back, her nearly activated Holy Light sh. Because the Ring of Bnce and the Equal Cross were both Divine Techniques of Libra, the Holy Light sh would eventually reflect back on herself. She didn¡¯t know that Ange only managed to obtain the Ring of Bnce and not the Equal Cross. If her opponent was the true form of Libra, Luna would be confounded by it. Without resolve for certain death, it¡¯s rather challenging to counter the Equal Cross. But her opponent was Anthony, a mortal. Even if he activated the Equal Cross, what good would that do? A few shes would cut him down while she could heal. What about him?
Luna immediately abandoned the major attacks like Holy Light sh and rushed toward Anthony. The hand Anthony stretched toward Luna wasn¡¯t pulled back yet, so he went along and shouted, ¡°God says, let¡¯s start farming¡­?¡± Upon hearing this, not only Luna, but the surrounding spectators, and even Anthony himself, were bbergasted. Start farming? What the hell? Those were not his words, but God¡¯s. Who is God? Ange!
In an instant, Anthony, who had pieced together the entire plot, let out a bitter smile in his heart: Sir, at this critical moment, could you please stop fooling around? He hastily added, ¡°Even the most noble need to bend down! ¡ª Farming Momentum!¡± As Luna was charging toward him, she felt an overwhelming power acting upon her, forcing her straight back to bend involuntarily. This brought about a bizarre scene: Luna, bent at the waist, rushed toward Anthony as if she came to wee him instead of going into battle. Anthony swung his staff up from below toward Luna¡¯s face. Luna raised her hands to protect her face, her entire body hunching over as she was knocked back by the blow. Chapter 412: 246: God Says to Cultivate the Land…? _3 Chapter 412: Chapter 246: God Says to Cultivate the Land¡­? _3 People all around were shocked and baffled. They had never encountered a divine technique as strange and ludicrous as the Farming Momentum. ¡°Have any of you heard of it?¡± ¡°No, no, we haven¡¯t. Could this be a divine metaphor from the Light? Farming?¡± ¡°It is possible that it¡¯s a new divine metaphor? Has Anthony heard a new divine metaphor?¡± ¡°Good heavens, could he truly be the Favored One of the God?¡±n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Didn¡¯t he say so before? You¡¯ve always been sucking up to him, didn¡¯t you believe him?¡± ¡°Who would really believe him? Would you?¡± ¡°Whether I believe him or not, he shouldn¡¯t be farming. Has Anthony converted to Druid?¡± Luna was furious. While the Holy Spirit Angel did not possess various emotions, the exception was the Six-winged Archangel. Luna¡¯s emotions were intense. Such an insult by the Farming Momentum, that she actually had to bend over? ¡°No one can make Luna bend over! Not even God!¡± Luna ground her teeth and said in a biting tone, pausing between each word. As she spoke, her arched back slowly, but firmly straightened up. The sound of her spine fracturing could be clearly heard.
At the same time, the Sacred me surged on her body, rapidly healing her fractured spine. Anthony watched this with his scalp tingling. This Wisdom Angel was really tough on herself, using her own body to resist the divine metaphor? However, in the next moment, Anthony cried out in rm: ¡°No good, it¡¯s the Power of Fall. The Wisdom Angel has fallen. Everyone, listen to mymand, kill her!¡± As Luna resisted the divine metaphor, the pure Sacred me surging out of her suddenly tinted ck and spread quickly like ink. Now, no one hesitated anymore. It was clear that the Favored One, the Cardinal, Acting Pope of the Holy Church, God¡¯s spokesperson in the world, Anthony, was attacked by the fallen Six-winged Wisdom Angel. Everyone was confused just moments ago, but things were clear now. It wasn¡¯t toote to atone for their crimes by making a contribution ¨C attack! In that instant, countless Divine Arts, Magic, hidden weapons, and crossbows were hurled at Luna from all directions like a torrential downpour. Luna tried to move, but then, a loud voice echoed through heaven and earth: ¡°You are guilty!¡± A few thick chains emerged on Luna¡¯s body and held her tightly ¨C Original Sin Shackles. If she couldn¡¯t dodge, even the True God himself wouldn¡¯t be able to withstand this concentrated attack. The first wave of attacks obliterated herpletely. Confirming that Luna had been reduced to nothing, Anthony mopped his cold sweat and took a deep breath. It was too¡­close. Who would have expected that a Six-winged Archangel would attempt to assassinate him? Fortunately, he reacted quickly and called for reinforcements. How did Lord Angee to possess the Ring of Bnce? What did he do to the God of Bnce? And, this Six-winged Archangel, her strength doesn¡¯t match the rumors. Where¡¯s her Petrification Crossbow? Anthony, filled with questions, suddenly heard a deafening cheer and looking around, he saw followers of the Church, and onlookers, all knelt down, and worshipping: ¡°Divine Grace of Anthony, God¡¯s infinite favor. Following you, God will guide the way¡­¡± Anthony suddenly realized that he had created a grand scene. Wasn¡¯t this even more sensational than a miracle? As a result, the Soul me was flowing rapidly¡­ Lord Ange watched in a daze as the constant stream of highly pure Soul mes, originally dedicated to the Light because of Anthony, now flowed to him. Embracing the principle of not letting them go once they came, he collected them all and fed them to Little Ghost. At the same time, Negris was holding the box he picked from the Undead, staring at the Holy Spirit Fragments inside it, saying, ¡°They have restored! They have really restored! The Broken Seal of Durken really works!¡±
Chapter 413: 247 The Body of a Demigod_1 Chapter 413: Chapter 247 The Body of a Demigod_1 The Broken Seal is a very unique type of seal, it can seal a whole object in a broken state. Originally, this seal seems quite pointless. If you are going to seal something entirely, why seal something that¡¯s already broken? But when it¡¯s used on a Holy Spirit, what was once pointless bes advantageous. The Holy Spirit has a special ability to be reborn by bathing in the Holy Light. If you split the Heart of the Holy Spirit in half, store one half and let the other half bathe in the Holy Light to be reborn, and then roam around freely. If by chance it dies, hey, there¡¯s still another half stored, it will regenerate. Once it has regenerated, split it in half again, let it bathe in the Holy Light, and vo, you have a weapon that can constantly be reborn. Even this issue is taken into ount by the Broken Seal. After the Heart of the Holy Spirit is fully recovered, one tug on the lever, and the Heart of the Holy Spirit inside will be cut in half, with one-half spit out, and the other half continually stored, bypassing the process of ¡®splitting in half¡¯. The only downside is that an angel reborn using half of the Saintly Heart retains less than half of itsbat power. As for Wisdom Angel Luna, after her rebirth, herbat power may not even be one fifth of her peak. Because quantity changes can lead to quality changes, ack of half of the power makes it impossible to cross the threshold of qualitative change. Just like how the pain felt when hit with a five hundred catty punch is absolutely not the concept of twice that of a one thousand catty punch. This is probably why Anthony feels that Luna is somewhat weak. After all, a Six-Winged Archangel is an entity that exists on the same level as Steadfast Locke, her fighting power is akin to that of a deity. ¡°The recovery is a bit slow. How long will it take for it to fully recover?¡± Anthony, who has secretly teleported over, is standing in front of the Broken Seal, looking at the slowly growing Heart of the Holy Spirit under the transparent crystal, inquiring.
¡°Probably about a month or so.¡± Negris estimated the time.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°That¡¯s too slow, I¡¯lle back in a month. By the way, why can your lordship send the Ring of Bnce? Has your lordship mastered the godhood of Libra?¡± Anthony asked. He knew about Ange destroying Libra, but didn¡¯t expect that even Libra¡¯s ability could be transferred to him, had the lord fully mastered the Godhood of the God of Bnce? This is the God of Bnce, one of the Gods of Light. If he could be mastered, wouldn¡¯t stealing faith from the Light be much easier? ¡°Halfway, only snatched the Ring Bnce, which supposedly can weigh everything in the world, but we don¡¯t know how to weigh, and usually, I never see Ange use it. Probably it can¡¯t be used in agriculture.¡± Negris said. Anthony said: ¡°I¡¯ve tried it, I can see the enemy¡¯s energy intensity. My lord, can you see my energy intensity?¡± Ange turned his head and looked at him, saying, ¡°Green.¡± ¡°Green? What do you mean?¡± Anthony asked in confusion, he had seen a ribbon of colour, but he did not dare to get distracted during the battle, so he did not understand what it meant. ¡°Green, just ignore it. Yellow, be careful. Red, very dangerous.¡± Ange said. After the exnation, Negris and Anthony finally understood what was meant. Ange also saw a ribbon of various colours, with people tending towards green colour, blue colour, or orange colour, but all these can be ignored. Only if it tends towards yellow should one be alert, and if it tends towards red, it represents a lot of danger and one should be careful. In addition to energy intensity, Ange could also see weight, volume, and other data. It¡¯s befitting of the Ring of Bnce that can weigh everything. Such an ability ispletely wasted on Ange, it would be better off given to a tailor who can tell the customer¡¯s clothing size at a nce. The Heart of the Holy Spirit can¡¯t be recovered in a short time, so Anthony had to go back first ande back a monthter. During this period of free time, Negris got three Illusion Simtion Formations from Auburnli, two for Ange himself, and the third for Sava¡¯s potion and alchemyboratory. Pharmacy and alchemy are the professions that need this Simtion Magic Formation the most, so Sava was very excited and burst out: ¡°My lord, from now on, I¡¯m all yours, you can do anything to me!¡± ¡­ The Land of Fallen, Harvey woke up from his sleep, raised his hand in front of his eyes, and looked at the Holy Light in his palm: ¡°Why is this thing getting more and more vigorous?¡± The Fire of Mass Faith in his palm had grown a lot, and it was already causing Harvey a bit of difort, waking him up from his deep sleep.
¡°Should I go to see the Great Sage?¡± Harvey felt that this wouldn¡¯t work, he had to think of a way to deal with it. He finally managed to get up and went to the entrance of the cave to look: ¡°The sun is too strong, let¡¯s talk about it in eternal night.¡± Harvey mumbled and turned back, raised his palm, and blew a breath on it. The breath was the breath of the soul, like a cold current, it quickly froze the me in the palm. ¡­
The City of Light, the curia, the Holy Light Temple. Devotees often mention the curia, referring to the Holy Light Temple in the City of Light, which is the power center of the Church of Light, covers an area of dozens of square kilometers, and is an independent city. The Holy Light Temple is the center of the City of Light and the residence of the Pope. However, the Eastern and Western Diocese usually have their own temples, and people habitually call them the curia, although they won¡¯t write it that way. Whenever curia appears in writing, it always refers to the Holy Light Temple. Pope Juliani is the master here, although asionally, some people calls him Juliani in a slightly derogatory tone. Chapter 414: 247: Body of a Demigod_2 Chapter 414: Chapter 247: Body of a Demigod_2 In a corner of the temple garden, Guliani was meeting with Dyson. d in neat regalia, Dyson, solemn beyondpare, seemed a mereckey trailing behind the casually dressed Guliani. While strolling leisurely, Guliani sporadically said: ¡°Responsibility in the Western District is significant, and the situation isplex, crisscrossed with countless forces. It also borders the Elf Forest, making it a breeding ground for a myriad of potential errors.¡± ¡°Yes, yes, your Holiness, please rest assured; I will certainly handle all of it aptly,¡± Dyson responded, wiping the sweat from his forehead. Dressed in heavy ceremonial attire, and wearing a crown that felt like tens of pounds heavy, Dyson¡¯s neck felt like it would snap under pressure. Certainly, his strength could make him indifferent to the weight of his clothing. Yet, trailing behind Guliani, he didn¡¯t dare to tap into his power and had to bear it all physically. That wasn¡¯t an issue, but it made him sweat. At this moment, his back was drenched, his undergarments soaked through. Yet, Guliani continued to ramble on inconsequentially, his advice resembling neither instructions nor orders, simr to idle chatter with a lighthearted vige farmer. Dyson was dering his loyalty while rapidly processing Guliani¡¯s intentions. Guliani wasn¡¯t merely making things difficult for him, there must be something Dyson hadn¡¯t done to satisfy him. But what was it? Dyson had to carefully ponder over it. He had attempted to probe by dering generous donations and offering to relinquish some critical positions to Guliani¡¯s candidates, only to have Guliani deflect the conversation.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Clearly, his assertions had not addressed what mattered most to His Holiness. What could it be? Dyson was at his wit¡¯s end. He realized he had been in the Land of the Fallen for too long. He was out of touch with the Master ne,pletely unaware of what the Pope truly cared about.
Realizing this, Dyson sincerely expressed: ¡°Your Holiness, I have spent too much time in the wilderness of the Land of Fallen, fighting mindless Undead for so long that my thinking has dulled. I¡¯m unsure about the true interests of the curia anymore. Could you please enlighten me?¡± ¡°That¡¯s where you¡¯re wrong. Even when in the wilderness, one must always remember the real interest of the curia lies in its believers,¡± Guliani responded. Dyson¡¯s mind raced: Believers? So the issue lies with believers? What was His Holiness implying? Did he hope for an expansion of believers? It couldn¡¯t be ¨C the Bishop was already responsible for that ¨C there was no need to beat around the bush. He would simply have to say it outright. Was His Holiness hoping for a reduction in the number of believers? That could be arranged ¨C a few severe pandemics and famines would suffice. But what purpose would that serve him? After some contemtion, Dyson tentatively voiced, ¡°Believers are like lostmbs. They cannot see through the fog ahead and need guidance from the shepherd from time to time. I have spent too much time in the Land of Fallen and have sometimes be lost and would appreciate the curia¡¯s support. Perhaps reassign some devout priests to navigate the direction of faith.¡± Gulianiughed, nodding in agreement, ¡°We do indeed need to guide them constantly, else they might end up like Anthony, misguided by evil gods. You¡¯re doing well, maintaining a devoted heart. Don¡¯t follow in Anthony¡¯s footsteps.¡± Dyson¡¯s heart pounded in his chest. He understood what Guliani intended to do ¨C he wanted to steal faith! Moreover, he was already doing it. At that moment, Guliani¡¯s eyes bore into him with a golden hue, not even attempting to hide it from him. My God, golden pupils were at least a demigod¡¯s symbol. Had Guliani attained the body of a demigod? A panicked Dyson knelt, pressing his forehead against the ground, barely daring to move. That Guliani bore his golden pupils for all to see meant Dyson had only two choices ¨C survival or destruction? ¡°Please guide me, Your Holiness!¡± Dyson roared, without daring to lift his head. ¡°Go, lead the believers onto the right path.¡± Guliani smiled kindly as a scepter slowly appeared in his hand. ¡°Yes! Your Holiness!¡± Dyson got up and responded loudly, only then noticing the scepter in Guliani¡¯s hand: ¡°Huh? The Papal Scepter? Is this the old Papal Scepter? I thought it was lost? Where did ite from?¡± The mention made Guliani embarrassed: ¡°Eh, Anthony offered it.¡± ¡°What? Anthony offered it? Why would he¡­¡± Dyson was bewildered. Anthony was about to sever ties with the curia, why would he present the Papal Scepter, which held such great symbolic significance? ¡°Ah, I fell into that guy¡¯s trap. This is just a mock-up. He organized an exhibition of lost lesiastical relics. I don¡¯t know where he got a lot of lost relics. He exhibited them in the major cities of the Eastern Diocese, saying that these relics were spiritual, and only the truly recognized ones could use them, then he presented me with the Papal Scepter.¡± ¡°When I got it, it indeed was the Papal Scepter, but more than half of it was rotten, and then patched up. I had to use it. If I didn¡¯t use it, it would mean I didn¡¯t get the approval of the scepter, which really pissed me off.¡± Guliani¡¯s rare moment of uncontrolled frustration was starkly different from his usualposed papal demeanor. Dyson suddenly felt a sense of loss in his heart. He was still under Guliani¡¯s control, unable to resist, and yet Anthony was already ying the pope. Was this their difference?
¡­ After a full month, the Heart of the Holy Spirit within the Broken Seal finally recovered. Anthony, who had received the news long ago, came early to stand guard, waiting to witness the rebirth of the Supreme Holy Spirit, the Six-winged Archangel, Wisdom Angel Luna. He casually chatted with Negris: ¡°Sir, you should be careful recently. Dyson has been appointed as the Archbishop of the Western Diocese and has already started taking office. Once he consolidates the power of the Western Diocese, he will definitely cause trouble for you.¡±
Negris retorted: ¡°Why? We don¡¯t steal, we don¡¯t rob, we just mind our business in the desert. Why would they bother us?¡± ¡°If it were me, I¡¯d also start with you. Nomads from the Abyss, rootless and wealthy. I have heard rumors in the East that you guys have a lot of money in the desert, even minor beauty treatments cost tens of thousands of Demon Crystals. There are already people offering rewards for investigating your backgrounds.¡± Anthony said with a ¡®how are you so clueless¡¯ expression. After speaking, he added: ¡°Killing Nik was a brilliant move. The high-level members of the Western Diocese are inplete chaos and have been unable to elect a new bishop, so they are powerless to deal with you. But after Dyson takes office, it will be different. He is a powerful individual, there¡¯s no evidence, but I¡¯m certain that he was the one who attempted to assassinate me, not Nik.¡± ¡°Hmph.¡± Negris grumbled a couple of times, and said: ¡°Let theme. You said that the high levels are in utter chaos. Even if he takes office, it will take some time to consolidate power.¡± ¡°No, others might fail, but Dyson can seed. He did not return from the Land of Fallen alone, he brought back many powerful subordinates. The military strength of the Land of Fallen is acknowledged as the strongest among the three dioceses. I can¡¯t deal with him without some tricks.¡± Anthony solemnly said. Negris was a bit panicked by his words: ¡°What do we do about this? This is a desert, we¡¯re not afraid of assassinations. But it would be troublesome if he sends an army upstream. Though we have wiped out the Silver Knights, he will have to mobilize a forcerger than the Silver Knights to threaten us. Can he gather so many people in a short time?¡± Anthony nced at him: ¡°You underestimate the power of our diocese. All along, only the church¡¯s power has been directed at you. The church is good at manipting people¡¯s minds, not so good at organizingbat. If Dyson could convince the human kingdoms¡­¡± Just as he was speaking, a report interrupted Anthony. After giving permission, a Purple Skeleton Titan brought someone over. Shamara walked in timidly, asking with some hesitation: ¡°Sir, the voice in my heart tells me I should be here, is that correct?¡± Just after she finished speaking, thest bit of the Heart of the Holy Spirit in the Broken Seal finally restored, and a faint wave of energy dispersed. Chapter 415: 248 What is Your Pet?_1 Chapter 415: Chapter 248 What is Your Pet?_1 ¡°Are you some kind of bloodhound? You¡¯re very sensitive to this stuff, huh?¡± Negris said with a mix of helplessness and envy. Not everyone can awaken a practical divine technique. For example, Ange¡¯s divine technique, Instant Death Halo, sounds powerful, but it has no lethal force at all. It takes about three hours just to elerate half a year¡¯s time. If the enemy still has thirty years of life, you have to elerate for one hundred and eighty hours just to make them die of old age. Against long-lived species, it¡¯s an even more miserable situation. Of course, if used correctly, it is a divine technique, perfectly suitable for a farming skeleton like Ange. And then there¡¯s the Harvest Goddess¡¯ divine technique; can she increase the pregnancy rate with just a nce? Some divine techniques are less practical than the Reaper¡¯s Scythe and King¡¯s Arrival that the skeleton itself possesses. Shamara¡¯s divine technique is among the most practical ones Negris hase across, to an unreasonable extent. Who knew that Ange had the Broken Seal? Who knew who was sealed inside the Broken Seal? Even Shamara herself didn¡¯t know why she came, bute she did nevertheless. Situation being as it is, they can¡¯t just shoo her away. They could only let her hang around, watching them studying the Broken Seal. ¡°How should we proceed now? Should we cut it apart? If we don¡¯t cut it apart, I¡¯m afraid we won¡¯t be able to control the intact Luna,¡± Negris said. ¡°Let¡¯s cut. Better safe than sorry,¡± Anthony suggested.
Negris pulled a catch on the box, and the box split into two halves. Splitting into two wasn¡¯t the end of it. The two halves of the box astonishingly began to slowly regenerate, bing twoplete boxes in in view of everyone. From the outside, there was no difference between the two boxes, but only one of them had a catch that allowed it to be split in two. ¡°This box with the catch should be the primary one, and this is the secondary one. A box that can grow back after being cut in half? Durken¡¯s creations are simply astounding!¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help but marvel. Anthony was not impressed: ¡°Is that so great? Most of the things he constructs can self-repair, so it¡¯s not surprising that it can grow back. Also, is it more fantastic than the Lord regrowing a whole dragon body using just a scale?¡± ¡°Hmm¡­¡± Indeed, Ange¡¯s ability to regrow an entire body from a single scale and a bit of flesh and blood was far more astonishing than a box that could multiply into two. ¡°So what¡¯s the n now? Do we smash the box?¡± After some discussion, they unanimously decided to smash the box and retrieve the Heart of the Holy Spirit. After that, it was fairly standard proceedings with the ritual of the bathing in holy light for rebirth. Ange¡¯s Holy Light wasn¡¯t suitable, because it was too pure andcked the God¡¯s will found within holy light. Even if the restoration wereplete, all they would get would be an angelic skeleton only in appearance, like the initial Little Angel. In the end, they had to ask Little Angel. Little Angel¡¯s Holy Light could be used, but its power was insufficient to resurrect a six-winged archangel. However, it could borrow Ange¡¯s power. Ange¡¯s Holy Light, after a detour through the Little Angel, became impure holy light and shone on the Saintly Heart. Under the continuous illumination of Little Angel¡¯s Holy Light, three days and two nightster, Luna slowly opened her eyes, ¡°You sphemous heretics, what have you done to me? Die!¡± After a lot of effort to subdue Luna, Negris said self-consciously, ¡°Even when only one-fifth of her power is present, she is difficult to handle. At full strength, she might actually be able to wrestle with Locke.¡± ¡°Indeed, the Supreme Holy Spirit is especially designed forbat, of course she¡¯s powerful. But, what do we do? She¡¯s hard to control. The moment we let her loose, she goes on the attack,¡± Anthonyined with a headache. ¡°It¡¯s a pity that her memory has been wiped clean. When she woke up from the petrified state previously, she hated the Gods of Light so much, she even said that the Gods of Light killed her pet. We wouldn¡¯t even need to control her at all then.¡± As Negris and Anthony were chattering away, Shamara plucked a pair of Light Wings, ¡°Lord, I want to return her power to her. Some information is engraved in here.¡± Negris and Anthony exchanged strange looks, ¡°You don¡¯t tell us you had a premonition about this too, do you?¡± Shamara blinked her big eyes, maintaining an innocent expression. At this level, some things can¡¯t simply be chalked up to coincidence or fate, because they could very well be the definition of ¡®fate¡¯. The Light Wings were infused into Luna. The initially holy six-winged archangel was soon engulfed in a ck Sacred me, her eyes starting to look dazed.
After a good while, she furrowed her eyebrows, her aimless eyes scanning everyone and managed to mumble, ¡°What happened? Where am I?¡± ¡°Do you remember anything that happened?¡± Negris asked. Luna furrowed her eyebrows and answered, ¡°They¡­ They betrayed the Light¡­ And killed my pet. I petrified Libra¡­ But where is Libra?¡± ¡°Libra died. Do you remember anything else? Do you know who I am?¡± Negris asked.
Luna hesitated and responded, ¡°The God of Knowledge? Why did you lose weight and turned into a Corpse Dragon?¡± ¡°¡­.¡± Good, it can be confirmed. This Luna just ended her petrification period ¨C she is not a spirit whose memory has been wiped clean. Even though her memory did not remain intact, the circuits in her brain are the same; she is not like the usual inflexible angels. Speaking to Luna wasn¡¯t hard when she wasn¡¯t being rigid. She¡¯s called a Wisdom Angel for a reason ¨C she understood what Negris was getting at after he was only half done speaking. ¡°I don¡¯t know what happened. When the Gods disappeared, I was still petrified. My current memory is patchy, and I don¡¯t have a clear understanding of what happened. If you¡¯re hoping to obtain more information from me, you¡¯ll probably be disappointed. I might not even know as much as you do,¡± Luna confessed sincerely. Having anticipated this response for some time, Negris wanted only to gain more details. After all, some potentially useful information could be hidden in the minutiae. After an intensive and in-depth conversation, Negris finally understood why Luna had said the gods had betrayed the light. ¡°They sacrificed all the people in Heaven for the Light of Creation,¡± Luna said bitterly. With that brief statement, Luna confirmed Negris¡¯s long-standing spection. The Holy Kingdom had a long-standing practice of guiding believers, yet there were no traces of living people in Heaven. Where had all these living people gone? What is the Light of Creation? What does it mean to elevate? What indeed is Light? Does it refer to the Gods of Light themselves, or is it the ideal world that the believers long for? Luna clearly considered it to be thetter, which is why she thought that the gods had betrayed the light and the believers. Negris didn¡¯t even want to ask about ¡®elevation¡¯, it was definitely not a good thing. Only after milking Luna dry of all information she was privy to did Negris remember something peculiar and asked curiously, ¡°You mentioned several times before that the gods killed your pet. What kind of pet are we talking about here?¡± Luna hesitated for a moment before responding, ¡°A Holy Light Spirit.¡±
As if afraid they wouldn¡¯t understand, Luna quickly added, ¡°It may sound strange, for it to be both holy light and a spirit, but it truly is a spirit formed from holy light. The Power of Holy Light and the Undead spirit are perfectly fused in it. It¡¯s very rare¡­¡± They werepletely oblivious to the strange expressions on everyone¡¯s faces. PS: I don¡¯t know why, but I¡¯m so sleepy I can hardly keep my eyes open. Maybe I ate something wrong again? I better take a nap first.N?v(el)B\\jnn Chapter 416: 249: Making Progress_1 Chapter 416: Chapter 249: Making Progress_1 Everyone turned their gaze towards Ange. Initially, he was just standing there dumbfounded, uttering not a word. As their gazes shifted towards him, he wordlessly withdrew his finger into his bosom, covering it with his other hand. He had been listening all along, of course, and knew what everyone was saying. But when they mentioned Little Ghost, he pretended he hadn¡¯t heard. This reaction gave Negris much reassurance. This foolish skeleton wasn¡¯t entirely dimwitted. All those things he had been revealing were things he didn¡¯t care about. When something he cared about was mentioned, he would y dumb. While Ange pretended to be stupid, Little Ghost was truly so. She thought something had happened, and stupidly poked her head out, looking absently around her. Luna saw her in an instant. ¡°Little White!¡± Luna excitedly shouted out, making a move to rush over. Shamara tensed, ready to tackle Luna down.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Scared, Little Ghost quickly clung tightly onto Ange¡¯s fingers and looked towards the source of the sound. mes suddenly erupted on Ange¡¯s head, his gaze unflinchingly locked on Luna. Just as everything was about to spiral out of control, Luna suddenly halted and looked at Little Ghost in confusion, saying, ¡°This isn¡¯t Little White?¡± Luna had stopped, but Shamara couldn¡¯t help but continue her momentum, colliding into Luna and causing her to stagger. The situation was on a knife-edge. Without a doubt, had Luna rashly rushed over, Ange certainly wouldn¡¯t have been polite ¡ª either transforming into the Dragon God or Locke, andunching a series of attacks. Would Luna, whose strength was not even a fifth of what it was at her peak, be able to withstand it? This was uncertain.
Even though Luna didn¡¯t rashly rush over, if Little Ghost truly was her pet, Ange certainly wouldn¡¯t return her. If that happened, what would they do? Share custody of Little Ghost and be inws? The best result would be if Little Ghost wasn¡¯t hers. Negris hastily asked, ¡°So it¡¯s not really your pet?¡± Luna hesitated for a long while, then shook her head and said, ¡°No, it¡¯s not Little White. Their auras arepletely different. Where did you find her? Holy Light Spirits are extremely rare. I thought Little White was unique. But the Gods of Light are very reluctant to let spirits live. They killed her when I wasn¡¯t paying attention.¡± Negris, puzzled, asked, ¡°You¡¯re not reluctant? This is a spirit, the Undead. Even if it is a Holy Light Spirit, it¡¯s still a spirit. Why do you want to keep it?¡± ¡°Because it¡¯s cute,¡± Luna responded matter-of-factly. ¡°Look at her, so dazed and adorable. Are all Holy Light Spirits this cute? I would love to have another one.¡± As Luna spoke, she kept pointing at Little Ghost. Shamara nodded in agreement at her side. Negris and Anthony looked at each other, unable to understand their reasoning. They would risk a fallout with the Gods of Light just to keep a pet because it was cute? ¡°This thing belongs to Ange, so you can give up that idea. Let¡¯s talk about something else ¡ª like how we should reasonably charge you for bringing you back to life,¡± Negris said. Now it was Luna and Shamara¡¯s turn to look at each other baffled, ¡°You¡­ you want to charge for this? I have no money.¡± ¡°That¡¯s not right. We¡¯ve gone to great lengths to resurrect you and you¡¯re not even considering paying? No money is fine, you can sell¡­ yourself for hire,¡± Negris said with a smile. Reluctantly epting Negris¡¯ task, Luna left with Shamara. Turning back around, Negris hesitated before asking Anthony, ¡°Should we let her go just like this? Without any kind of binding agreement? Aren¡¯t you afraid she¡¯ll cause trouble for you again at some point?¡± Turns out that the person who was suggesting such dubious ideas behind the scenes was Anthony. Negris was simply a mouthpiece. ¡°I¡¯m not worried. A fallen Six-winged Archangel is definitely not my biggest headache,¡± Anthony said, grinning like an old farmer who had just ced a snake into a rabbit¡¯s den. ¡­ In the Resting Pce, at the edge of the farm, a single bone hand was flying alone over a rectangr pit. In the pit, an array of crops simted by Illusion Technique was ripe, and on the control table, a newly sprouted sapling of the World Tree was ced in the Array, undergoing aprehensive in-depth scan by the ordinance from all angles and multiple levels. This is the most effective way for the Illusion Magic Array to record crop data. As long as the crops exist in reality, they can be recorded as they are and simted. Of course, individual examples alone cannot formplete growth data. It¡¯s necessary to have enough samples forparison to obtain the most urate data. Here, ¡®real¡¯ means that it can grow in the Simted Magic Formation and in reality alike.
No Druid ever thought of logging the World Tree too, because in their perception, there is only one World Tree, not enough samples. In this world, only Ange could provide enough samples. After the World Tree sapling in the ordinance had finished scanning, Ange reced it with arger one. From seeds to sprouts, to three-day-old, ten-day-old, one-month-old, six-month-old, and finally to three-year-old, Ange scanned them all once. After the formation receivedplete growth data of the World Tree, it began simting. In the center of the pit, a World Tree slowly grew, gettingrger as time passed.
Since it was not a battle, there was no time limit. The World Tree kept growing and growing until it became a huge tree with a canopy diameter of tens of kilometers after a hundred years. However, Ange found a problem. The Illusion Magic Array was treating the World Tree as a typical nt for simtion. It needed water, sunlight, air, and an appropriate temperature to grow. The growth of the World Tree didn¡¯t stimte the growth of surrounding crops, nor was its growth promoted by the growth of nearby crops. This contradicts the characteristics of the World Tree. Apparently, the form couldn¡¯t simte this feature. Never mind, let¡¯s uproot it. Let¡¯s nt some Elf Beans, Divine Wood, and Soul Moss, and some Upgrade Beans. Ange scanned into the illusion array almost all crops he could grow. ¡°Stop ying, Ange,e over here and catch it!¡± Negris called out in annoyance from afar. Ange reluctantly pulled his hand out of the space. He stopped farming in the Boundary-crossing Hand and started to nt in the simting illusion array. After withdrawing his hand, Ange rushed towards Negris. Soon, he saw the target, a stealthy big cat. Seeing Ange rushing up, the big cat whooshed out from its hiding spot in the ditch, initiating a sprint mode and rushing to the distance. ¡°Roar! Roar!¡± ¡°Roar!¡± ¡°Watch the lightning!¡± Little Angel, Little Zombie, and Lightning came out from different ces, blocking its escape route.
With a ¡®meow¡¯ sound, the big cat struggled forward and collided with Little Angel. But before it could touch Little Angel, its whole body disappeared in the air and reappeared tens of meters behind Little Angel. The Dimensional Shimmer of the Dimension Beast. But before it couldnd, a bone-handy crossed the space and urately caught on its neck, hoisting it up in the air. A bunch of people ran over all at once. Little Angel even took it into her arms, pressing it against her neck, so much so that its tongue hung out. ¡°Let¡¯s see where you can run to. Even Dimensional Shimmer is able toe out, it should be pretty much recovered, right? Big Cat, it¡¯s about time we set off for the Land of Slumber. Don¡¯t think about procrastinating anymore, otherwise I¡¯ll seize all your Elf Beans.¡± ¡°If Durken didn¡¯t die, he¡¯s probably also in the Land of Slumber. He should know where the King has gone, right?¡± Chapter 417: 250 Can I Sleep Now?_1 Chapter 417: Chapter 250 Can I Sleep Now?_1 At the world hub, the Dimension Beast reluctantly hunched on the ground, its body swelling up like an intable balloon, expanding rapidly into a gargantuan creature about fifty meters in diameter. Albeit beingrger, its fur grew longer too, standing erect, making it look like a huge furball or a sea urchin. In fact, it wasn¡¯t too keen on this whole dimensional drift business. Even though it was a Dimension Beast, a native dimensional creature, the voyage was perilous; a slight slip and it could easily be lost in void space. It wouldn¡¯t die, but it could get lost, perhaps never return. Indeed, it did have believers. The Dimensional God¡¯s Servant Serenne could help it pinpoint its location but in the dimensional world, anything could happen. If it drifted too far away and couldn¡¯t sense Serenne, it wouldn¡¯t be able to find its way back. But, despite its reluctance, the big cat, as a man of its word, would keep its promise. It would carry out whatever it pledged, even with tears in its eyes. Awooo~~ Seeing the big cat nearly wailing, Ange walked over and pulled out a Fruit of Life. The furball opened its big eyes, took one look, and unimpressed, rolled its eyes away. Ange pulled out nine more Fruits of Life, piling up a total of ten. The big cat¡¯s eyes rolled back, nced at the pile, and hesitated a bit. Ange pulled out ten more Fruits of Life, a whopping twenty huge fruits all piled together.
The big cat¡¯s eyes went wide; staring intently at the pile, its body making a ¡®gluglu¡¯ sound. Ange pulled out a further ten fruits again. Adding ten by ten, when there were fifty fruits, the big cat swiftly stretched out its giant paw and smacked it beside the small mountain of Fruits of Life. Negris asked Serenne standing next to him, ¡°What does that mean?¡± ¡°Wait a moment, the big cat is considering.¡± Serenne answered, then, eyeing the fruits, she asked, ¡°What kind of fruit is this? And why is the big cat hesitating? Isn¡¯t it just a big, furry watermelon? Does it taste good?¡± Negris nced at her with a ¡®you¡¯re so naive¡¯ expression, saying, ¡°Yeah, why would it hesitate? Didn¡¯t it already agree to go with us? It would have to go even without a reward. What¡¯s there to hesitate about?¡± Serne couldn¡¯t help but pout: ¡°Well, sure, it¡¯s going, but if you don¡¯t bribe it, it will be the first one to run in case of danger. After epting your benefits, it can¡¯t run away anymore. Of course, it would hesitate.¡± ¡°¡­¡± He almost forgot that they don¡¯t have apulsory contract with the big cat. Indeed, if they were dumped in the dimensional space, it would be dangerous. It seems Ange unintentionally made the right move.N?v(el)B\\jnn Of course, Ange had no such intentions. He probably offered an equivalent reward just topensate for the big cat¡¯s reluctance. ¡°By the way, you have not yet mentioned what kind of fruit that is.¡± Following up, Serenne asked, noting that whatever could make the big cat hesitate surely can¡¯t be as ordinary as it seems. ¡°The Elf¡¯s Fruit of Life. Consuming it can slow down aging, prolong life, enhance skin beauty, and improve vitality¡­¡± Negris exined. Serenne¡¯s eyes widened, her face full of disbelief: ¡°Are you serious? You¡¯re not joking?¡± ¡°Of course I¡¯m serious, why would I, the God of Knowledge, joke with you? Otherwise, why do you think elves live so long?¡± Negris scorned. ¡°Is¡­ is there really a fruit that prolongs life in this world?¡± Serenne trembled with excitement. Her excess b shuddered, making people dizzy. Negris felt dizzy and said unhappily: ¡°Don¡¯t shake, don¡¯t shake, of course there is; the Fruit of Life is exactly that.¡± ¡°Can I buy one? How much? Can you sell one to me?¡± Serenne grabbed Negris¡¯s tiny w, coaxing him yfully with an alluring smile. Unfortunately, she was not up to Negris¡¯s aesthetic standards; his response was a hard no. ¡°Buy? Even if I sold you, we couldn¡¯t afford half of one. When the elves announced a bounty to treat the blight disease of the Tree of Life, they were only willing to offer one seed, and a single Fruit of Life contains thousands of seeds.¡± Although the elves were only willing to give out a single seed, it was not due to their stinginess. They could exchange it for several million Magic Crystals. They just didn¡¯t want to let the seeds leak out. Seeing Serenne¡¯s disappointment, Negris consoled her. ¡°Don¡¯t be too disappointed. Eating one or two fruits doesn¡¯t have much effect. Only regr long-term consumption can extend life. Even if you can indeed afford it, unless you eat it for decades, your life won¡¯t be extended much. It¡¯s better to eat a light diet for a longer life.¡±
He added further, ¡°Although one or two won¡¯t affect lifespan, the first fruit you eat will noticeably enhance vitality. Once vitality is enhanced, blood cirction bes vigorous, and metabolism quickens. It¡¯s quite effective for ailments like kidney pain, blood stasis, bad breath, nasal polyps, migraines, weak waist and legs, stomach flu, vertigo, and many others.¡± ¡°If your body has many minor issues, eating one can clear most of them up. Unfortunately, you can¡¯t afford it.¡± Negris said regretfully. Serenne squatted at the side, covering her heart, mourning for her own poverty. On the other side, Ange and the Dimension Beast finally agreed on conditions. The big cat swiped its paw, and the fifty Fruits of Life disappeared into its fur. It then spat out a fist-sized transparent crystal.
Ange picked up the transparent crystal, tilting his head in confusion. Before the Dimension Beast could exin, a figure blinked in front of them as Hiludi, the Terrifying Space Magician, appeared. Her eyes were glittering as she stared at the transparent crystal. Her head leaning closer as she flirtatiously fluttered her eyshes at Ange, hoping he would let her take a look at the crystal. Chapter 418: 250 Can I Sleep Now?_2 Chapter 418: Chapter 250 Can I Sleep Now?_2 Hiludi looked exceptionally beautiful today, having undergone a transformation as drastic as night and day, just like the difference between a disheveled, eye crust-d female wizard and a pure, gorgeous Light Saintess. The rough oilskin caused by frequentte nights had disappeared, reced by a tender, smooth, and moistplexion. Her greasy hair was also gone, reced by glossy, shoulder-length locks, thick and ck, a drastic change from her previous thin hair which used to cling to her forehead. A casual tie at the end of her hair made her look simple yet attractive. Unfortunately, she wasted her coquettish nce, as Ange pulled her head away, withdrew the crystal into the Temple of Rest, and asked, ¡°What is this?¡± ¡°Roar,¡± the Dimension Beast roared. Ange tilted his head, not understanding, so he turned his gaze to Hiludi.N?v(el)B\\jnn Hiludi annoyedly straightened her hair. Ever since her looks had drastically changed, she had been receiving lots of attention at school, which boosted her self-confidence. She would asionally disy her charm as Lisa had taught her, but to her disappointment, Ange and the others weren¡¯t falling into her trap. Even Lisa herself wouldn¡¯t have stood a chance. Depending on looks won¡¯t do. She must rely on her power. She said grumpily, ¡°That is a Dimension Core. It has the ability to anchor space and also summon this Dimension Beast. If you get lost in the Dimensional World, you can summon it by using the Dimension Core. The Core can also anchor a specific space.¡± ¡°In the Dimensional World, anchoring a specific section of space means that you¡¯ve imed it. No one else can enter it. If you have the ability, you can transform this space. If not, you can use it as a storage space, which is muchrger than the space in the space jewelry.¡± As Hiludi was speaking, both Ange and Negris instinctively looked at Ange¡¯s Boundary-crossing Hand. It harbored a Dimensional Space Positioning Transfer Bracelet. Perhaps the bracelet was created from a Dimension Core?
With the Dimension Core in hand, which allows for the summoning of a Dimension Beast in the Dimensional World, Ange gathered everyone into the Temple of Rest and followed Hiludi into the long hair of the Dimension Beast, providing insurance for their adventure. The inside of the long hair was pitch ck. They had definitely walked more than forty or fifty meters but still hadn¡¯t reached the other end. Considering that the length of the Dimension Beast was only about forty or fifty meters, if they walked this far without reaching the other end, it indicated only one possibility: the space had already switched. After walking for a while longer, Ange saw light in front of him, the long hair had disappeared, and he was standing on top of arge stone. The diameter of thisrge stone was probablyrger than several hundred meters. It was suspended in the darkness, with arge clump of hair dotting it, like a sea urchin on top of arge stone. Hiludi, who emerged first, started preparing her magic. In her palm, the shadow of a Magic Array emerged. She continued to adjust the Array, muttering to herself, ¡°Eight, nine, seventy-two, ny-nine, eighty-one¡­¡± ording to these calctions, Hiludi continued adjusting the Magic Array. When it was finally adjusted, an arrow appeared on the Magic Array pointing to a certain ce in the dark. The Dimension Beast bulged its eyes as if sensing something. Negris¡¯s voice came through for Ange, ¡°I lost connection just now. My projection will fail whenever space changes. So, where are we?¡± ¡°The Dimensional World,¡± Hiludi replied casually. Negris nced at the Magic Array in Hiludi¡¯s hand and said, ¡°You¡¯re calcting the orientation and coordinates, right? The circle tangent &#%@* times the intersecting line, plus the square root of the rtive time value¡­ ?&#@#%, the spiral motion trajectory at the distant end is the fastest, and the final value is ****.¡± Negris¡¯s casualments left Hiludi¡¯s jaw dropping. She calcted it herself and after half an hour, she finally obtained the same value as Negris. ¡°My God, are you the God of Math? Can you actually calcte the trajectory coordinates in your mind?¡± Hiludi eximed, her eyes sparkling with excitement. Negris replied disdainfully, ¡°What¡¯s so great about being a God of Math? Can it calcte spatial coordinates?¡± ¡°Yes, yes, you¡¯re far more formidable. So, this is the calcted value.¡± Hiludi held up the Magic Array for the Dimension Beast to see. ¡°Hold on, you spent almost half an hour just calcting. You need to factor in time variables,¡± Negris hastily said. ¡°Oh, oh, oh, time variables, let mepute it¡­ Ah, this won¡¯t work. The variables make me spend another half an hour, and then I¡¯ll have to add more variables. I¡¯ll never get it,¡± Hiludi fell into the ¡®calcting but getting nowhere¡¯ vicious cycle. In the end, it was Negris who stepped in. He spent just over a minute calcting the value, then marked it out on the magic array. The dimension beast looked at it for a while before suddenly giving a signal for Ange to hurry into its fur.
Traversing through the dense fur again, when they reappeared, they found themselves in a void, with no ground beneath their feet. They had no choice but to grab the fur of the dimension beast. The surroundings were no longer pitch ck, but filled with white light streaking across, interspersed with some other colors. It was very simr to the lights Ange had seen when she was being sent down from the heavenly staircase. One of the rays of light was about to hit the dimension beast, but it quietly turned a corner, bypassing the beast¡¯s position, and continued to streak into the distance. Hiludi was not scared but excited, saying, ¡°This is great. There are turbulent flows, so there must berge dimensional space fragments nearby. It could be what we are looking for. Look for any openings or such.¡±
These rays of light were the turbulent flows produced by the friction and collision of dimensional spaces. This scale of light rays signified the presence of arge dimensional space nearby. Ange looked around for a while before pointing towards the distance. The dimension beast squinted for a while, stretching its legs out of its fur, furiously paddling, and slowly drifting towards the direction pointed out by Ange. Another ray of light streaked past, bypassing the dimension beast and heading into the distance. Negris noticed that Hiludi was tense and rigid. ¡°What¡¯s the matter?¡± Negris asked with concern. Hiludi gave a bitter smile, ¡°I¡¯m scared. The spatial turbulence is terrifying.¡± ¡°Terrifying?¡± Negris looked at another ray bypassing the dimension beast and asked incredulously, ¡°What¡¯s so terrifying about it?¡± Hiludi smirked, ¡°It¡¯s not terrifying with a dimension beast around. My teacher¡¯s teacher was ripped to shreds by the spatial turbulence. She had already reached the realm of a Truth Mage.¡± ¡°A Truth Mage couldn¡¯t endure it? Is spatial turbulence that horrifying?¡± Negris eximed. ¡°Unbearable. Just like the most substantial dam cannot withstand a tsunami. These spatial turbulences are tsunamis to us. Their energy levels are too high. The magic we learn isn¡¯t meant to resist such immense power,¡± Hiludi replied. No wonder she had rejected the idea outright initially. It was only after knowing about the dimension beast that she began to consider it. In the dimensional world, only creatures such as the dimension beast, native to this world, could survive, like a fish hidden beneath the water during a tsunami. Student two
But this fish did not swim very well. It struggled for a while before finally approaching a dimensional fragment. This fragment had a gap four or five hundred meters long. After some friction with the void, a turbulent flow would be generated in no time, rushing towards the distant darkness. With a vigorous struggle, the dimension beast finally reached the gap. Its head dove right in, entering the dimensional space. As far as the eye could see, there were endless tombstones, organized in rows and columns, stretching all the way to the horizon. As soon as theynded, Negris immediately asked Ange to release it. Fluttering its wings, it flew to mid-air, looking at the grave markers covering the ground, Negris murmured in disbelief, ¡°It¡­ It¡¯s really the Land of Slumber. How¡­how is this possible? How is this possible¡­ ¡± There was a cracking sound, and not far away, a tombstone flipped open. A witch flipped over and sat up, grumbling, ¡°Who¡¯s weeping over there? Can¡¯t you let someone sleep?!¡± Chapter 419: 251: Is Durken Dead?_1 Chapter 419: Chapter 251: Is Durken Dead?_1 In the Land of Slumber, sleep was vital. If one couldn¡¯t sleep, the only thing left to do was to stare at the endless tombstones and contemte life. ¡°Didn¡¯t you know I have nervous insomnia and nightmares? I barely managed to fall asleep for once only to be woken by your wailing. I swear, it¡¯s too¡­ wait, who¡¯re you, invaders?¡± The Witch that got up cursing from the overturned tombstone didn¡¯t notice Ange and the others until the end of her rant. The instant she did, she spotted their oddities and her face lit up with excitement. ¡°Are you invaders? You are, aren¡¯t you? That¡¯s fantastic!¡± The excited Witch leapt from her tomb, releasing a soul-piercing screech ¡°Wake up, we have invaders! We have something to do!¡± Her soul-shrieking spread like a storm, and tombstones around her, whether flipped or slid open one by one, letting loose skeleton necromancer Undead who spread out like ripples. The Land of Slumber that was silent a moment ago, suddenly turned into a yground for the Undead as countless Undead beings flocked over, brushing shoulders, and waving around skeletal arms. Seeing that things were about to spiral out of control, Ange stepped forward, transformed, and roared. Steadfast Locke¡¯s soul roar spread violently, affecting all the Undead creatures nearby like being sted by a magical blow dryer. Their souls felt refreshed, it was as though they¡¯d been blown away. After the soulful roar, all the Undead stood still, utterly silent. One second, two seconds, three seconds passed. When the Undead beings came to their senses, they knelt before the purple-golden skeleton, their soulful shouts echoed, ¡°Locke! Locke! Locke!¡± The Witch who was awakened by Negris was shaking with excitement ¡°Lord Locke, Lord Locke! Is it you, Lord Locke? Have you finallye to save us? You didn¡¯t forget about us poor lingering souls, did you? Do you remember me? Do you remember me?¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn
The Witch knelt on the ground, stretching her hands forward, as if she wanted to hug Ange¡¯s leg. An underdeveloped Embryo Dragon stepped in between them and looked at the Witch thoughtfully, ¡°I think I remember you. Aren¡¯t you that¡­what¡¯s-her-name?¡± ¡°Bronze Dragon, you¡¯re such a cheapskate! Are you the Lord of Knowledge?!¡± The Witch cried out in shock. Negris coughed blood internally, screaming: When did being ¡®a cheapskate¡¯ be my characteristic? Do you know what ¡®cheapskate¡¯ means? I¡¯ll lock you with up with Lightning so that you can learn! ¡°I remember now, you are Night Watchman Dark Circle!¡± After a lot of pondering, Negris finally remembered who that was. Meanwhile, it was the end of Ange¡¯s transformation duration, and he turned back to his human form. The Witch stared at Ange nkly, lost. If it had only been Ange, the Witch would have doubted her eyes or wondered if it was some Illusion Technique. But the presence of the Bronze Dragon who called out her nickname sparked doubts instead. What happened? Why did Lord Locke change like this? ¡°Lord of Knowledge, my name isn¡¯t Dark Circle. I¡¯m Night Watchman Lamo. Long time no see, Lord of Knowledge, you¡­¡± Lamo, the Witch asked hesitantly. ¡°Indeed, where are your dark circles? Howe they¡¯re gone? Didn¡¯t recognize you for a moment there.¡± Negris asked surprised. Lamo replied with a bitter smile, ¡°Sir, I created the dark eye circles myself in memory of my cause of death- dying from insomnia. But now, after sleeping for more than a thousand years, I don¡¯t think I should have dark circles anymore. So, I stopped faking them.¡± ¡°Wheeze- So you do get grumpy when you wake up. Can you still suffer from insomnia even after you are dead?¡± Negris asked curiously. ¡°Of course I can; it¡¯s worse than before! When I was alive, I could faint when I couldn¡¯t hold it anymore, but not now. I¡¯m tossing and turning, unable to sleep. The thoughts in my soul erupt whenever I calm down, I can¡¯t sleep unless I sort them out thoroughly.¡± Lamo spilled out his miseries. Negris didn¡¯t know what to say. It¡¯s easy for Undead creatures to control their souls. Only those who can¡¯t control their stray thoughts could possibly suffer from insomnia. He didn¡¯t expect to encounter such an Undead creature. ¡°That indeed sounds painful. I understand. What is going on here?¡± Negris changed the topic. ¡°Sir, it¡¯s us who needs answers from you. Why did the Resting Camp disappear all of a sudden? We can¡¯t sense either Your Majesty or Lord Locke. For so many years, no one came looking for us, and we are unable to leave this ce. What exactly happened?¡± Lamo was eager to filter his queries back. Seeing his confused and bewildered appearance, Negris felt a chill in his heart thinking it might be troublesome if nobody here knew what had happened. ¡°Where¡¯s Durken? Is Durken here?¡± Negris hastily asked. Lamo nodded, ¡°He is.¡±
Negris let out a sigh of relief. That¡¯s good, as long as Durken was here, he would have a lot more information. However, before he could feel relieved, Lamo added, ¡°But Lord Durken, while exploring the method for leaving this ce, was torn apart by the lights outside, leaving only his Life Box.¡± ¡°Spew! Can¡¯t you just say everything in one go?¡± Negris spewed blood, surprised: ¡°As long as the Life Box is there, he can be resurrected. Where is he?¡±
Chapter 420: 251: Is Durken Dead? _2 Chapter 420: Chapter 251: Is Durken Dead? _2 Lamo shook his head: ¡°He¡¯s in the grave and cannot be resurrected. Lord Durken said that if he were to be resurrected, it would consume a lot of soul energy. This is a closed space, and with the consumption, a lot of souls would perish. So, he decided not to resurrect himself. He asked us to wake him up if we can get out.¡± Negris nodded. He might not have understood this before, but ever since Ange brought in the Liquid of Breath of Death into the Resting Pce, allowing it to freely evaporate, the level of death breath in the Resting Pce has reached saturation. Since then, Negris realized that death breath was as vital to the undead as air to the living. Without it, the souls of the undead would wither. If Lord Durken were to be resurrected, it would consume the limited death breath in here, and the remaining souls would wither and gradually perish due to theck of nourishment from the breath. However, now that Ange is here, Lord Durken is saved. ¡°Quick, take me to his tomb. Oh, where is Locke¡¯s tomb?¡± Negris hurriedly asked, also enquiring casually about the location of Locke¡¯s grave, perhaps he was still thinking about the toilet matter at the grave¡¯s head. ¡°Lord, this way please.¡± Lamo made a gesture to Negris. But when he turned to Ange, he instantly kneeled down: ¡°Lord, please!¡± The attitudes towards the Bronze Dragon and Steadfast Locke werepletely different. As Lamo led the way, Negris asked, ¡°I met an undead outside. I got this ce¡¯s coordinates from him. I heard he was a night watchman here. Is that true?¡± ¡°Yes, a guy who consorts with demons and sells souls, so he really managed to get out? I thought he was dead in the void. So, he ran out and managed to bring you, my Lord, here. In hindsight, he did a good thing. We should thank him,¡± Lamo said. ¡°Um¡­ we killed him.¡± Negris replied awkwardly.
¡°Great, I was thinking of thanking him then killing him. Consider him lucky.¡± Lamo said resentfully. ¡°¡­¡± Negris was scared when all the undead creatures around him woke up earlier, he didn¡¯t look closely. As he walked further, he noticed something strange. A lot of the graves were unopened and even the grass around them was withered, with sparse breathing soil near them. Negris pointed to the unopened graves and asked, ¡°What¡¯s the matter with those graves? Are they unupied?¡± ¡°Oh, they probably belong to some low-level undead creatures whose souls have withered and perished.¡± Lamo said, helplessly Negris gave a start and flew higher, taking in the sight and began to count seriously. It looked like a substantial amount, but after a careful count, only a little over twenty thousand undead creatures woke up. In the Land of Slumber, millions of undead creatures were supposed to be sleeping. Why did only so few wake up? Did the rest perish? Lamo nodded, confirming Negris¡¯s guess. Out of a few million undead creatures, only just over twenty thousand are left? Conditions here were worse than he anticipated, nearly at the brink of extinction. If he had arrived a few hundred yearster, would the undead here resemble the situation in the Resting Pce, reduced to a mere skeleton? Under Lamo¡¯s lead, Ange and his group arrived at a tomb. Lord Durken is the King of Alchemy, but his tombcks the mboyance of his pce. It was simply shaped like a sk, thinner at the top and thicker at the bottom. ¡°This is Lord Durken¡¯s tomb. But under the current circumstances, we absolutely mustn¡¯t wake him if we can¡¯t resurrect him. Oh, yes, Lord of Knowledge, do you have any preparations this time? Can we all escape?¡± Lamo tentatively asked. There are several implications to Lamo¡¯s words. Firstly, he wanted to know if Negris had any ways to get them out. Secondly, he wanted to know if there were any ways to revive Lord Durken. If there were none, then he shouldn¡¯t be awakened, otherwise Lord Durken would be even more grumpy when he woke up. Negris shrugged: ¡°I don¡¯t know if I can save all of you. We need to research. Wake him up first. Even if we want to resurrect him, we need his cooperation. If all else fails, we can bring his life box out.¡± Negris¡¯s words were nomittal, but it couldn¡¯t be helped. He did not share the soul contact that Durken and Lamo had, and couldn¡¯t speak freely. ¡°I¡¯ll do it.¡± Without waiting for Lamo, it flew to the tombstone and started knocking, ¡°Hello¡­hello¡­hello, Durken, are you home? I¡¯m the God of Knowledge, I¡¯m here to visit your grave,e out.¡± After waiting for a while without any response, Negris knocked two more times, then turned around in confusion. Lamo also looked puzzled, ran over, and knocked hard on the tombstone twice. Getting no response, he jumped up in fright and without another word, began to dig up Durken¡¯s grave, quickly revealing a Life Box.
The Life Box was a beautifully crafted magic box, which contained the heart of a lich. But when they opened Durken¡¯s box, they found a shriveled heart that had shrunk into a small clump, along with a bunch of small parts that were supposed to be in the heart but had now disassembled. Lamo¡¯s face turned deathly pale, ¡°Du¡­ Lord Durken¡­has gone extinct.¡± Negris felt a sense of absurd disbelief. Was the mighty and alchemical lich Durken really dead? What a joke! Although the situation in the Land of Slumber was not good, at least more than 20,000 undead were still surviving. As the king of the liches, Durken theoretically should¡¯ve lived longer than all souls, it was impossible for him to go extinct so early.
Even if he was really burnt out, he could still endure till the end by ruthlessly plundering the soul energy of other undead creatures. He even didn¡¯t have to be ruthless, because most of these 20,000 undead were without consciousness and intelligence, it was no different from picking a few cabbages to plunder their souls. But Durken did not. Instead, he allowed himself to be extinct. It was really puzzling. Had he suffered some serious injury? ¡°Let me see.¡± Negris signaled Lamo to give him the Life Box. Lamo handed it over, Negris studied it for a while but did not find out much. He casually handed it to Ange, and then asked Lamo: ¡°Did he leave any legacy orst words?¡± Lamo was nearly in tears, ¡°I just knew that our Lord had gone extinct, he didn¡¯t leave anyst words. As for his legacy, it¡¯s all here, should we¡­ should we dig deeper?¡± What a good idea, Negris immediately called the little zombie over and began to dig Durken¡¯s grave. Lamo was shocked by the zombie¡¯s fast, dog-like digging. He had never seen liches quite as nimble or quick. ¡°My god! How did he manage that? How could his joints be so flexible?¡± Lamo mimicked his own stiff joints, and spoke in surprise. Zombies are supposed to be rigid. Liches are essentially just intelligent zombies, so their movements can¡¯t be too flexible either.N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°Hehe, I¡¯ll tell youter.¡± Negrisughed with a hint of mischief. Would Lamo be scared if Negris tried holy purifying abilities on himter? Unfortunately, when they dug up Durken¡¯s grave, there was no legacy orst words. This was normal. The precious items would be kept in the pce. Who would put them in a grave? Negris was thoroughly disappointed. He had thought that if he found Durken, he might also discover where the king had gone. He didn¡¯t expect Durken to die, leaving nothing but a Life Box behind. And the Life Box couldn¡¯t speak. What should he do now?
He looked back and saw Ange was still holding the Life Box and observing it. Negris asked, ¡°Did you find anything? Any residual consciousness?¡± Ange shook his head. ¡°What are you still holding onto it for then? Put it down. After I bury it again, it will officially be a grave.¡± Negris sighed. Ange cocked his head, looking unsure, ¡°If the lich heart is dry, can I use it for resurrection?¡± As he spoke, Ange pulled out a bottle of Concentrated Holy Worm Ash Essence. Chapter 421 - 252: The War Tree Man Declares War on You_1 Chapter 421: Chapter 252: The War Tree Man Deres War on You_1 ¡°You are truly¡­ a genius¡­¡± Negris looked at the Dry Witch Heart in the Life Box, then at the Concentrated Worm Ash Essence in Ange¡¯s hand, and couldn¡¯t help but sigh. Insect Ash is a super magical fertilizer. The Essence Bug Ash Liquid, refined with Holy Water, can resurrect the dead and restore the characteristics of living organisms. The Essence Worm Ash bes Concentrated Worm Ash Essence after it has been purified through a purification spell and reduced by three bowls to one. The Concentrated Worm Ash Essence not only can reverse life sacrifices and save Oke, but it can also restore life to dead things, regenerating rotting teeth. The Witch Heart in the Life Box is now dead. If that was the case, it wouldn¡¯t be enough to surprise Negris. After all, the most important thing for the undead is memory. Being reduced to a skeleton is pointless; even if fully revived, it would still be a newborn skeleton. But this happens to be a Witch, and moreover, a Life Box. The Life Box of a Witch is prepared for the resurrection of a Witch after soul extinction. Lan from Ice City was resurrected using a Life Box. Not every witch can possess such a thing as a Life Box. Only rich and powerful witches have the wealth and ability to refine a Life Box. This clearly showed that Lan¡¯s previous identity was certainly not ordinary. Regrettably, she was burned to death by the church with holy burial cloths wrapped around her, and lost all her memories, not even remembering who she was. There was no burial cloth on Durken¡¯s Life Box. As long as the Life Box was revived, Durken would bepletely restored. Ironic as it may seem, of all the nes, only Ange could resurrect Durken. The appearance of other gods would be pointless. N?v(el)B\\jnn But what surprised Negris wasn¡¯t that Ange could do it, but that Ange realized so quickly that he ¡®could do it¡¯. Even he, the mighty God of Knowledge, hadn¡¯t dared to think in that direction, yet Ange was the first to think of it. If this wasn¡¯t genius, then what was? Of course he was a genius. Otherwise, it would suggest that Negris was foolish for not figuring it out sooner. Kvada. A few drops of the Concentrated Worm Ash Essence were dropped, and the shriveled heart, like a cypress leaf absorbing water, gradually expanded. Expanding to two-thirds of its size, Negris took out the gold-touch stick and touched the scattered metalponents. It was like an invisible hand grabbing these parts, automatically flying them to the heart and urately embedding them back to their original positions. Lamo behind him was surprised: ¡°Isn¡¯t that Lord Durken¡¯s Gold-touch Stick? How did it end up in your hands? Lord Durken alwaysmented not bringing his Gold-touch Suit. Otherwise, he might have been able to refine a teleporting device with the materials inside his cloak.¡± ¡°Materials inside the cloak? There are materials inside the cloak? Isn¡¯t a cloak merely for looking cool?¡± Negris was surprised, and casually took out the Gold-touch Cloak. He held the cloak with both hands and shook it, but there was no change. While there were inscriptions on the cloak, they obviously weren¡¯t space inscriptions. How could it hold things? Among the Gold-touch set of three, only the Gold-touch Stick and the Spirit Eater Hat had a use. The cloak had none, making Negris believe that the cloak was simply for vanity. ¡°Of course not! If the cloak is in your hands, then where is the Spirit Eater Hat? Where did you find it?¡± Lamo asked. Negris casually replied: ¡°I ransacked Durken¡¯s pce and found it there.¡± He then took out the Spirit Eater Hat: ¡°How does it work?¡± ¡°¡­¡± Lamo was silent, looking at him ufortably. Seeing that he was not talking, Negris urged: ¡°Speak.¡± ¡°Isn¡¯t it bad? What if Lord Durken wakes up¡­¡± Lamo said reluctantly. ¡°So what if he wakes up? I still have to charge him when he does. Is the Gold-touch Suit even enough to cover the resurrection fee?¡± ¡°It¡¯s not my business if you charge him, but if I tell you how to use it, he wille to me when he wakes up.¡± ¡°If you don¡¯t tell me, he wille to you when he wakes up anyway. We will say you obstructed us during his resurrection and cause him to have a missing arm or leg.¡± ¡°¡­My lord, you are ruthless. Cover the hat with the cloak, then reach inside the hat, and the space inside will be activated.¡± Lamo said. Negris was stunned. Such a cleverbination? No wonder he was unable to find out; no wonder it¡¯s called the Gold-touch Suit. It turned out that they had to bebined to activate all functions. Negris quickly covered the hat with the cloak and then reached in¡­ His hands were too short, so he directly put his head in and began to pull out items one by one. After a while of pulling out items, a surge of psionic waves suddenly erupted from Ange¡¯s position. Ange, being closest to the source, was shocked, and countless remnants of thoughts flooded into his soul. ¡°Damn it, the damage from the spatial turbulence is too severe, the Life Box is about to shatter.¡± ¡°What should I do? This is so embarrassing. Am I going to be sliced to death by spatial turbulence? What should I do? Those guys outside will dieughing.¡± ¡°Forget it, let¡¯s fool them for a while. Just say that the Breath of Death is depleted, and I cannot be revived for now. Let them wake me up when we leave.¡± ¡°Probably, we can¡¯t leave. The soul connection with His Majesty is cut off. It seems that His Majesty has failed, so he abandoned the Soul Network to prevent us from apanying him in his death.¡± ¡°It¡¯s a pity I didn¡¯t manage to grab the Gold-touch Suit. There are materials for a Space Gate in the suit¡¯s storage. Once assembled, it can be used to directly ess the World Transit Station.¡± ¡°The headstone is too ugly, not beautiful at all. When he constructed his pce, he should have used some of the scrap materials to beautify the tomb.¡± ¡°I really want to sing, but singing in the graveyard is too scary¡­¡± ¡°Lamo is crying again, he¡¯s suffering from insomnia, and doesn¡¯t let others sleep either¡­¡± Chapter 422 - 252: The War Tree Man Declares War on You_2 Chapter 422: Chapter 252: The War Tree Man Deres War on You_2 ¡°¡­¡± The lingering regrets explode, those embedded in the heart. The moment Ange restores it to a beating state, these regrets fully erupt. The information inside is tangled and chaotic, including grumbles, constant chatter, andints. Ange noted down only the valuable parts. Inside the Life Box, a vibrant heart rhythmically contracts and expands, as if beating afresh. A heart on its own, without any flowing blood, appears pale with a hint of yellow, simr to the color of the fascia. The smallponents embedded on it release faint fluctuations with every beat. Clutching the Life Box, Ange turned to Negris with a confused expression. The Life Box had been restored; what was he supposed to do next? ¡°There are two possibilities; either find a ce thick with the aura of death and leave the Life Box there. After one or two years it will sprout a body. The other method is to find a corpse, imnt the heart, and after a few days it will merge with the body to be a new witch,¡± Negris exined. Ange nced back inside the Temple of Rest. The Liquid of Breath of Death that bathed Steadfast Locke was almost depleted, otherwise, it would be perfect to simply drop the heart into it. He decided to put it aside for now and figure out a solutionter. After cing Durken¡¯s Life Box next to Steadfast Locke, Ange shared the information gathered from the lingering regrets with Negris. ¡°The materials for the Space Gate? Are these it?¡± Negris stretched out his neck and stuck it inside the Gold-touch Suit¡¯s space, retrieving some objects. Individually, they didn¡¯t amount to much, but when arranged together on the ground, Ange instantly recognized them: ¡°The glowing arch.¡± This so-called Space Gate was indeed the faintly glowing arch Ange encountered when he first left the Temple of Rest. So it was a Space Gate all along? There were several such Space Gates within the Temple of Rest, all leading to the world transit station. These arches could only be activated once the world transit station was up and running. So, it was a good thing Durken didn¡¯t bring the Gold-touch Suit. Otherwise, constructing the Space Gate would¡¯ve been more disheartening. After all, it wasn¡¯t until Ange entered the control room that the world transit station started operating. Without the luck of Purple Corpse, he wouldn¡¯t have encountered it. However, Ange wouldn¡¯t face this problem. With a slightmand, someone would activate the world transit station on the other side of the Resting Abyss. All that was needed for now was to assemble the Space Gate here. Negris picked up the Gold-touch Stick. One must admit, the Gold-touch Stick was indeed an exceptionally handy alchemical tool, especially when assembling Durken¡¯s inventions. Negris could use it without thinking, clicking randomly by channelling Magic Power, because the Gold-touch Stick contained records rting to these items so it could work automatically. If it was something not created by Durken, then Negris would have to use his ingenuity instead. Regardless, it was more efficient than working with bare hands. In no time, the Space Gate was assembled. Through Soul Contact, he ordered the activation at the world transit station, and the arch-like Space Gate immediately lit up with a faint glow. Lamo, in excitement, wanted to rush through the arch, but Negris quickly stopped him. ¡°Wait, Lamo. There are things we need to rify first. This person, is not Locke.¡± Negris pointed at Ange and exined. Lamo, puzzled, nced at Ange, then at Negris. Negris motioned everyone toe near the arch, including the shrunken Big Cat. Nodes ensured they could escape into the arch before the dozen Night¡¯s Watch led by Lamo, along with twenty thousand undead, could have any reaction. n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om ¡°Ange, remove your hat, raise your right hand, and reveal your godhood,¡± Negris boldlymanded. Ange removed his hat as instructed, raised his Hand of Locke, and exposed his Undead Godhood. ¡°This is Ange and not Locke. However, he has inherited Locke¡¯s power as well as His Majesty¡¯s Undead Godhood. Now, you have two choices. Either dedicate your souls anew to the Undead God, or stay here. We will find a way to transport some Liquid of Breath of Death here to prevent your souls from further drying up,¡± Negris stated. Negris certainly wouldn¡¯t permit these unrestrained undead to enter the Resting Abyss. This group included Lamo and twelve Night¡¯s Watch, each possessing the power of a Magic Tutor. The one that Ange killed in the Land of Fallen was an undead Magic Tutor. Each of these men, including Lamo, had abilitiesparable to that undead Magic Tutor. Additionally, there were twenty thousand undead. The undead who had survived up until this point were the most tenacious out of millions of simr beings ¨C the elites among elites. Among them, there were over a hundred Golden Skeletons. Due to the exhaustion of the Breath of Death, their current conditions were rather poor and weak. However, once they left this ce, especially if they arrived at the Resting Abyss, they would quickly be a formidable force under the nourishment of the Resting Wind. Without restraint, they could easily tear the Resting Abyss apart. Despite their familiarity, Negris wasn¡¯t going to allow an uncontroble force into the Resting Abyss. Lamo looked in disbelief at Ange¡¯s purple-gold arm and then at the undead god Ange revealed: ¡°Did you kill His Majesty and Locke?¡± he asked incredulously. Negris fell face first onto the ground as he eximed frantically, ¡°Of course not! How could we kill His Majesty and Locke? Are you mad?¡± Chapter 423 - 252: The War Tree Man Declares War on You_3 Chapter 423: Chapter 252: The War Tree Man Deres War on You_3 ¡°That¡¯s good then, how did you obtain the divine power?¡± Lamo asked again. The rest of the Night Watchers surrounded us, defensively. The previously harmonious and friendly atmosphere had vanishedpletely. ¡°I obtained it at the Resting Camp. Ange received the recognition of the divine power, and now, he is the new master of the Resting Camp.¡± ¡°What about His Majesty? What about Locke? The Great Sage? The Witch?¡± Lamo continuously asked. ¡°The king is missing, Locke is dead, the Great Sage is in the Land of Fallen, but who is the witch?¡± Negris told the truth. Lamo nced at him weirdly and said, ¡°Even if you lost to the witch, you don¡¯t have to pretend not to know her.¡± ¡°What do you mean? I lost to the witch? When did I lose to a witch? What did I lose? I don¡¯t remember,¡± Negris got confused. Suddenly a witch popped up and defeated him? Lamo showed an ¡®I understand, I understand¡¯ expression, nodded and moved on to the next topic: ¡°We need to discuss.¡± After he finished speaking, he retreated and began to consult with the others. If he hadn¡¯t shown that expression, it would be fine. But with that expression, Negris was immediately infuriated. What does he mean? What does he understand? Just when Negris was about to throttle Lamo out of frustration, a spark of inspiration suddenly shed through his soul: Could his memory about the witch have been sealed like the king¡¯s name? Lamo couldn¡¯t just make up a name for a joke. What he said likely existed, but Negris couldn¡¯t remember it at all. The most likely exnation was that his memory about the witch had been sealed. Just like the king¡¯s name. There were four subsidiary pces to the Resting Camp, besides his Bronze Book Tower, Locke and Durken¡¯s pce, there was one left. However, Negris couldn¡¯t recall, whose pce thest one was. ording to these rules, there surely was another existence on the same level as himself, Locke and Durken in the Undead Empire. He originally thought it might belong to the Great Sage. It couldn¡¯t be Harvey because a thousand years ago, Harvey was just a golden skeleton and didn¡¯t qualify to possess an independent subsidiary pce. However, he now discovered that he couldn¡¯t remember to whom the pce belonged. Was his memory blocked including the memory of this witch? Negris panicked. Kvada, Had the witch¡¯s memory been sealed in addition to the king¡¯s name? How much had been sealed from him? Lamo and the others finished discussing quickly: ¡°My Lord, I can dedicate my soul to you, but you need to lead me away and pass what I have seen to them. They will then make the final decision. If you deceive us, they will choose to sleep here forever.¡± As he was speaking, a Soul Fire began to float around Lamo. After passing through the Space Gate, the group appeared in the World Transfer Station. Ange threw Lamo off, allowing him to go around the Resting Abyss on his own. They then had someone restart the World Transfer Station and transported them directly to the Master ne. From the Abyss to the Master ne, Ange usually uses the small Teleportation Array in the Demon Valley because the activation of the World Transfer Station wastes too much energy and creates too muchmotion. Thest time they only turned it on for a little while and were found by the Purple Corpse. If it was turned on frequently, who knew how many people would discover it? The restart of the World Transfer Station was big news for many realms because it could be their only way to reach the outside world. However, since it was already running, another activation wouldn¡¯t consume too much energy, so Ange didn¡¯t bother running to the Demon Valley. n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Unfortunately, neither Negris nor Ange knew how many devices on the Master ne were detecting inter-ne transfers, especially the fluctuations of transfer strength like those from the World Transfer Station. Upon returning to the Goddess of Beauty city, Lisa quickly came to report: ¡°My Lord, thest batch ofpensation from the elves has arrived¡ª a War Tree Man.¡± As soon as Lisa finished, Negris couldn¡¯t help but shouted: ¡°Only one? A slow and dumb War Tree Man is of no use. Have the elves learned to deceive and waffle?¡± Just as the sound of Negris¡¯ voice fell, the ground shook and a huge shadow slowly overshadowed where Negris and the others stood. A deep voice emitted from above, slowly saying, ¡°Who are you calling slow and dumb?¡± Negris looked up and saw a hundred-meter tall colossal tree lean towards them. In its entwined branch-made hand was a huge rock, held high. It angrily said, ¡°Damn Bronze Dragon, you have insulted me. The War Tree Man officially deres war on you. Take up your weapons!¡± Chapter 424 - 253: Break it Apart _1 Chapter 424: Chapter 253: Break it Apart _1 Negris stretched out his neck, slowly, slowly, took the Little Sapling from Ange¡¯s hand, slowly, slowly, and ced it on Ange¡¯s head, ncing provocatively at the War Tree Man. The Little Sapling looked at the incredibly tall creature in front of it and got very excited, it waved its leaves: grow stronger¡ªgrow taller¡ªgrow stronger¡ªgrow taller¡ª The War Tree Man stared incredulously at his body as his bark slowly hardened, forming ayer of shell. Inside the shell were some vertical hollow passages. The branches on top of the shell curled up delicate buds, wrapping the tree crown like a shield of soft green curls. The War Tree Man immediately felt his body temperature drop drastically. He was close to overheating before, but because of the temperature difference, the air rose quickly from the hollow passages forming a chimney effect, rapidly draining the heat from his body. Simultaneously, the hardened shell isted the heat from the sun, preventing the water from evaporating from the surface of his body, causing the War Tree Man to cool down rapidly. The soft green curls of buds, shielded the fierce sun, like a fluffy hat, allowing him to adapt more to the desert environment . With these two changes, the War Tree Man, who was almost parched due to the sunlight, suddenly feltfortable. n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om However, all of these were unimportant now. The War Tree Man looked excitedly at the Little Sapling who created all of this. Both of his feet rooted instantly into the ground, propped his arms up, inclined his whole body forward, and a deep voice spoke, ¡°Tree Man Gore, pays respect to the God of Life.¡± Negris, asserting his right, pped his wings, took off, grabbed the leaves of the Little Sapling, and loudly questioned: ¡°Whose was going to dere war on us just now!?¡± As soon as Negris¡¯ paw touched the Little Sapling, the War Tree Man became anxious and subconsciously wanted to stop him. After Negris asked, he hurriedly denied: ¡°Not me, not me.¡± Negris was triumphant: ¡°You still can¡¯t beat me.¡± But when he turned around and looked, he suddenly panicked. He noticed that Little Angel, Little Zombie, Lisa, Anna, Hiludi, Auburnli¡­ all were staring at him fiercely. If it weren¡¯t for Ange being there, they might have jumped him and torn him apart. He forgot that the Little Sapling not only was the God of the Tree People but also everyone¡¯s darling. With an embarrassedugh, Negris quickly changed the subject and loudly said to Tree Man Gore, ¡°Who are you? Why are you here? Who sent you here?¡± Tree Man Gore responded in a deep voice: ¡°I am Tree Man Gore, a War Tree Man, the Elf told me toe. It said that there were people here looking for¡­¡±. As he was speaking, Tree Man Gore¡¯s gaze suddenly fell on the Little Sapling. As if he had remembers something, his deep voice suddenly rose with excitement and he changed his words, ¡°No, I came by myself. I want to serve the God of Life; this is my lifelong pursuit and dream!¡± ¡°¡­.¡± Everyone exchanged nces, this War Tree Man was not the same honest and faithful creature from the legends. And so, the War Tree Man took root in the city of the Goddess of Beauty, right next to the World Tree. Because of his size, he immediately became the tallest point in the city. Lisa didn¡¯t stand on ceremony and immediately sent people to build a tform at the top of the tree to use as a watchtower. ¡°Make sure you use soft wood for the structure, ce it where there are knots, bind it securely, otherwise, it will rub through my bark,¡± Gore didn¡¯t refuse when he heard about building a tform. He even enthusiastically gave tips. ¡°Why should I refuse? If you build a watchtower, will you send people to keep watch? That would be great, there will be someone to talk to.¡± ¡°Gore is most afraid of being bored. The forest is lively, and there are many animals to talk to. This ce is too hot and deserted. The Elf said there would be war, which is why I came.¡± ¡°Oh yes, I must serve the God of Life, that is my lifelong pursuit and dream!¡± Negris found that this Tree Man was simply a chatterbox, and he had no principles or a stand of his own. The words he just said could be denied and changed immediately. It was clear that the Elf had tricked him intoing here, but he insisted he came to serve the Little Sapling, even though he didn¡¯t know about the Little Sapling¡¯s existence before he came. But Gore managed to change his story without turning red or losing breath. ¡°Why are we the War Tree People? Because we were granted the mission of war and guardianship by the God of Life. We are Tree People, not the weak Tree Herders who graze nts for a living. War is our mission! Eliminate the enemy!¡± Only after this chat did Negris realize, the Tree People also have a ss hierarchy. Gore clearly looked down upon Tree Herders. ¡°Why is there only one of me? With the power of War Tree Man, one is enough to change the¡­ okay, it¡¯s because the other Tree People can¡¯t stand the heat, so they refused toe.¡± While saying this, Gore couldn¡¯t help butin: ¡°It¡¯s too hot here, I had to rest during the day and travel at night. I¡¯ve been on the road for over a month before I got here. I had to dig my roots deep during the day, otherwise, I can¡¯t absorb water, my bark is drying out and cracking.¡± ¡°It¡¯s much better now. The God of Life has given me the ability to adapt to the desert climate. Look at these hollow tubes; they can draw the air from my foot and expel it from the crown of the tree, taking out the heat. Now when the sun shines on me, I don¡¯t feel ufortable anymore, the God of Life, the eternal God.¡± Negris asked curiously: ¡°Why aren¡¯t you repulsed by the Little Sapling? It¡¯s not really a reincarnation of the God of Life, it¡¯s not the same as that old tree.¡± Chapter 425: 253 Break it Up_2 Chapter 425: Chapter 253 Break it Up_2 ¡°It¡¯s the same either way, a young or old God of Life, why can¡¯t there be two Gods of Life?¡± Tree Man Gore didn¡¯t really mind.
Upon hearing Gore¡¯s response, Negris suddenly found out that the followers of the Tree of Life aren¡¯t exclusive. Including the elves, they do not reject other religious beliefs, unlike the Church of Light, which sees all non-believers as heretics. Of course, although the elves don¡¯t exclude other religions, they tend to look down on other creatures, which makes them even more exclusive than the Church of Light. Dealing with such a chatterbox War Giant Tree, Negris easily got all the information she wanted, including the current situation of the elves. They are still in a state of exile, and the green mist continues to shroud the World Tree, preventing the elves from approaching, in other words, the World Tree has not forgiven them yet. After asking about the things she was interested in, Negris didn¡¯t want to chat anymore. But Gore still wanted to talk, so Negris quickly said, ¡°I¡¯ll find someone with a sense of humor to chat with you.¡± ¡°Someone humorous? That¡¯s great, I love chatting with fun people. The elves are too boring, none of them like to talk, not even that horse,¡± Goreined.
Horse? Negris was puzzled. Why would he mention a horse out of nowhere? There aren¡¯t any horses in the Elf Forest. Tree Man Gore didn¡¯t leave because there wasn¡¯t anyone to chat with in the Elf Forest, did he? However, despite her puzzlement, she still called over Lightning, who was resting in the Resting Abyss. From a few kilometers away, Lightning excitedly shouted, ¡°Wow, Chatty Gore, how are you here? Haven¡¯t the elves chopped you down for firewood yet?¡± ¡°Huh? Foul-mouthed horse? Why are you here? I was just thinking about you. Howe your horn has grown back? Hasn¡¯t anyone cut it off again? Humans outside really have good temperaments,¡± Tree Man Gore was also surprised. Well, now Negris understood who ¡°that horse¡± was. These two were clearly old acquaintances, and after a brief casual chat, they started bickering. Negris watched them for a while, and seeing that they didn¡¯t end up fighting, she decided not to interfere. Tree Man Gore even reached out to lift Lightning to the tform on top to make it easier for the argument. But Lightning did not ept this kindness and walked in the air around the giant tree, flying directly to the tform himself. ¡°They look like they know each other pretty well, as long as there¡¯s no fight, that¡¯s fine.¡± Negris left with relief. However, after a while she suddenly thought of a possible problem. Lightning and Gore are familiar with each other. They both are not like normal unicorns and tree people, maybe their acquaintance is what led to their strange behavior. So now they¡¯re together again, would their loose tongue and constant talking evolutions continue? Just dealing with Lightning is already a headache, if the foul-mouthed behavior evolves again¡­n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om The consequences are too horrific to imagine, gotta go, gotta go. The next day, the elves came to visit, with Aestolia closing her eyes and kindly asking: ¡°Lord Nage, are you satisfied with thepensation from the elves?¡± ¡°Very satisfied, very satisfied.¡± Negris was overjoyed, it must be said, when rich and generous elves sincerelypensate, it¡¯s quite satisfying and full of sincerity.
The elves had almost rebuilt the Goddess of Beauty City, transforming the barren desert city into a garden city, making it many times more livable than before. Previously, rich people who came for beauty treatments alwaysined about the city¡¯s environment and left as soon as they were done. Now it¡¯s different, many people are actually considering settling down here. Recently, more and more people have been consulting Lisa about settlement arrangements. The transformation of the Goddess of Beauty City actually carries another implication, as if the elves were dering to the outside world, ¡°I¡¯ve got this city covered.¡± Apart from this, there were also material possessions such as several million magic crystals, precious herbs, wood, minerals, etc. The total value was definitely over a hundred million. The elvespensated for this without batting an eye, how could Negris not be satisfied. Ange was even more satisfied because the elves had collected sixty thousand kinds of nt seeds for him¡­ ¡°So¡­¡± Aestolia said with a smile. Seeing her forced smile, Negris was even more satisfied. When this Elf first arrived, she never smiled, always had a disgruntled face, as if someone owed her millions. Look, now she can finally smile, her heart must be full of joy. ¡°I can talk to the God of Life, but our satisfaction does not mean that the God of Life will forgive you. I can¡¯t control the God of Life¡¯s will, understand?¡± Negris said. Aestolia¡¯s expression dimmed, and she nodded dejectedly. They certainly knew that the will of the God of Life was beyond anyone¡¯s control, but Negris¡¯s willingness to appeal on their behalf could surely recover a little bit.
Taking out the Magic Wand, Aestolia mmed it on the ground. A surge of magic unfolded, and an elliptical ring of light appeared in front of her. ¡°A portal?!¡± Negris was taken aback, scrutinizing Aestolia up and down in disbelief. Aestolia just stood there silently, not at all like someone who had just cast a portal, as if it was an insignificant spell. Negris didn¡¯t say anything, he stepped into the portal, Aestolia followed him in, and the elliptical light circle disappeared. Hiludi ran fast out of a house, her face full of green mask. She only had time to watch the moment the portal disappeared, and she didn¡¯t care about the mask smeared on her face, she eximed excitedly: ¡°A portal? A portal that has been lost for many years?¡± The magic of portal had been lost for many years, and as a Space Mage, she had never been able to master this Spatial Magic. Half an hourter, the portal opened again. Negris flew back and reported to Ange: ¡°Ange, I talked to the World Tree, we forgave the Elves.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Ange responded with an indifferent tone, he was engrossed ying with the seed that Elf just gave him. Things he wasn¡¯t interested in, even if he heard it, he would forget it in a blink of an eye. Negris was used to it, and continued to report: ¡°The World Tree removed the green fog, but it did not forgive the Elves and refused them from dwelling on it. It no longer offered the Fruit of Life to the Elves. The fruit now contains some newpounds which make Elves have diarrhea upon eating it, but it doesn¡¯t affect other animals.¡± ¡°Without the Fruit of Life, the Elves¡¯ lifespan will be greatly reduced. Their original lifespan is only about two hundred years, which is not even considered long-lived.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Ange responded in the same indifferent tone, continuing to fiddle with his seed. ¡°Anyway, this is it. The Elves have taken a lot of effort, yet they haven¡¯t received forgiveness from the World Tree. They have a headache waiting for them.¡± Negris said gleefully.
¡°Oh.¡± Ange responded again, paused for a moment, he suddenly looked up towards a certain direction, then sprinted towards it, and soon disappeared into the darkness. The Little Angel and Little Zombie, who had been ying around, quickly followed. Negris was stunned for a moment, then hurriedly fluttered his wings to catch up. After chasing for a while and finding that Ange and others had long since disappeared, he simply gave up the chase and projected himself onto Ange¡¯s form. Once projected onto Ange¡¯s body, he only felt a swift breeze. Ange burst into full speed, nearly catching up to Lightning. Soon he reached the edge of the Fallen Dragon Lake, and saw Rogge engaging in a fierce battle with three ck Warriors, the thundering sound of weapons colliding echoed continuously. Rogge, being the Dark Knight Emperor, although not as skilled as Anthony, was by no means weak, but the three ck Warriors he faced were equally strong. Two of them were of duke level, but one was a ck Knight Emperor on par with him. Fighting an Emperor and two Dukes with his own strength, Rogge was in grave danger. Seeing Ange arrive, he quickly cried out: ¡°Lord, save me.¡± Because Ange wasn¡¯t wearing his straw hat, the opponent¡¯s ck Knight Emperor said disdainfully: ¡°Humph, a Golden Skeleton? You¡¯re asking a Golden Skeleton to save you? You¡¯ve brought disgrace to the ck Warriors, disassemble it.¡± Thest sentence was addressed to the two ck Knight Dukes. The two ck Knight Dukes immediately abandoned Rogge and turned to charge at Ange. Their blurry faces were filled with cruelty. A Golden Skeleton, it would only take them a few seconds to disassemble it into fragments. Chapter 426: 254 Who is the Master Here_1 Chapter 426: Chapter 254 Who is the Master Here_1 Ange unsheathed his Reaper¡¯s Scythe, but before he could strike, a column of light shot from behind him, illuminating one of the ck Knight Dukes.
Turning around, he saw that Little Angel was keeping her hands in a pushing position, her Light Wings shattering inch by inch. Ever since she learned to summon Light Wings, she no longer needed True Wings to cast Holy Light sh, but it¡¯s power was reduced by half. However, what the ck Knights dread most is this type of pure energy attack, especially those that inflict additional damage, because the form of the ck Knights belongs to Soul Energy, which is most susceptible to burning by Holy Light. After being hit by the column of light, the ck Knight Duke evaporated into a puff of ck smoke and disappeared. The other ck Knight Duke became frightened and halted, the cruelty on his face reced with uncertainty. But seeing Little Angel¡¯s Light Wings shatter, his courage returned. He was taking a step when a column of ck light suddenly shot out from Ange¡¯s side, swallowing the second ck Knight¡¯s form¡ªBreath of Death: Shockwave.
As the ck light column disappeared, the ck Knight also vanished without a trace. Ange looked around puzzledly, only to see Little Zombie panting heavily on one side, his breath swirling with a thick mist of deathly aura. Seeing Ange look over, Little Zombie quickly straightened up: ¡°Roar~¡± ¡°Has Little Zombie learned the Breath of Death Shockwave?¡± Negris eximed in surprise. Indeed, in theory, as long as it was a skill mastered by Ange, Little Zombie could quickly master it too. Ange was naturally generous with Little Zombie, but the difficulty of Breath of Death Shockwave wasn¡¯t in the technique, but in the Soul Energy and the deathly aura. In ces where the deathly aura was thick, casting the Breath of Death Shockwave was easier. If not, they had to rely on the constant supply of Soul Energy like Ange. Where did Little Zombie get so much deathly aura from? These doubts arose in Negris¡¯s heart, but Ange was very calm. He didn¡¯t care why Little Zombie could use that move, as long as it worked. While Negris was in his own thoughts, Ange hoisted the Scythe and charged at thest ck Knight. The situation reversed in an instant. The Dark Knight Emperor was previously fighting three on one, but now he was left alone. The Dark Knight Emperor made a split-second decision and turned to run. Rogge, who also realized that thebat prowess of the Dark Knight Emperor was higher than his, decided that it would be foolish to try and fight a four on one battle, and also turned to escape. ¡°Trying to flee? Can you escape under the clear moonlight, your gallop like thunder?¡± Rogge bellowed with great emotion, as if reciting poetry while his eleration attack went off without a hitch. His de shed like liquid mercury, leaving no room for escape, and sent the enemy¡¯s arm flying with a ¡®swish¡¯.
Negris¡¯s heart skipped a beat, and he hurriedly said to Ange: ¡°It¡¯s over, quickly alert Anthony, Rogge must have read some weird book again.¡± As a soul with refined feelings and a tendency to mncholy, Rogge¡¯s greatest enemy was those mncholic books. If he read too much, he¡¯d sink into depression. In recent times, Rogge had been busy in the Resting Abyss arranging for thepanions from Dark City, and he likely read something weird in his free time. The enemy ck Knight abandoned an arm, sprinting faster and faster, so fast that he produced an afterimage¡­ or rather, it seemed like he had grown two extra legs and a horse¡¯s head to speed up. Under the ck Knight¡¯s speedy run, a horse appeared beneath him, galloping away with all four hooves. The ck Knight transformed into a ck Warrior, like a puff of ck smoke¡­ A giant fruit was urately thrown right in front of the Dark Knight Emperor, exploding like an exploding fruit. The seeds inside scattered around like shrapnel, covering arge area. The Dark Knight Emperor pped his palms to form a translucent shield. The seeds struck it, creating a session of dull noises, and then the seeds exploded.N?v(el)B\\jnn The explosion of the seeds wasn¡¯t mightily powerful, but the sheer number of them was able to diminish the shield. But it wasn¡¯t over. The dust from the exploded seeds spread like fog, covering arge area and shrouding the shieldless Dark Knight Emperor. The Dark Knight Emperor was overjoyed: ¡°Bless the Light!¡± And with a ¡®whoosh¡¯, he too disintegrated his form. With this fog as a cover, how could he be afraid of not escaping?
Pity, the Dark Knight Emperor was still inexperienced. By the time the fogged cleared, he found himself frozen in ce, unable to move. A unicorn crossed over, its horn sparking with electricity, and looked at him with shining eyes. The Dark Knight Emperor¡¯s heart dropped, a sense of despair arose: how could there be a unicorn? Unicorns are the nemesis of all creatures who hides their traces; a pure unicorn can see through all disguises. With a unicorn nearby, he couldn¡¯t escape by hiding, let alone now that he was mysteriously frozen. Thankfully no one heard his thoughts, otherwise, Lightning would say: ¡°That¡¯s the ability of a pure unicorn, what does it have to do with me, Lightning!¡± Lightning kicked him with one hoof; he saw a frozen human shape, which scattered all over the ground like sand. ¡°What kind of new fruit is this? It¡¯s so handy that it can even freeze the form of ck Knight.¡±, Lightning said, incredulous. A voice came from afar with the wind: ¡°Rubber Explosion Fruit; a new fruit bestowed upon me by the Life Giving God.¡± Chapter 427: 254 Who is the Master Here_2 Chapter 427: Chapter 254 Who is the Master Here_2 God of Life? Lightning looked up towards Ange¡¯s head, only to see the little sapling sprawled on the edge of the pot. A single leaf swayed with the night wind, seemingly asleep. Broken fragments of the ck Warrior scattered across the ground. Everyone pulled them together with their feet, forming a heap for crowd to gaze upon. ¡°Amazing! It even solidified the soul form. What tree gum is this?¡± Negris finally caught up and lifted a piece with her little paw, the texture feeling quite like that of a slime that¡¯s been chopped up. Rogge also felt somewhat guilty as he squeezed a piece and said: ¡°The power of the fruit is too terrifying; epassing such a broad area makes it impossible to dodge. Is this the power of the War Giant Tree?¡± Rogge was also a ck Warrior, there was no way he could avoid a fruit this big falling down. A deep voice echoed in the night wind from afar, ¡°War is upon us, you can trust the Tree People.¡± Everyone thought it was just a chatty Tree-person, they didn¡¯t consider that a fruit could take down a Dark Knight Emperor. What a jackpot. Negris excitedly said: ¡°You¡¯re really powerful. I¡¯ll bring you some farmpostter, how do I free him? I want to interrogate him.¡± ¡°Ah? I don¡¯t know, this is the first time I¡¯ve used this kind of fruit.¡± Gaur¡¯s words drifted over in the wind. Unable to assemble the scattered fragments, Ange finally took the Reaper¡¯s scythe and made a pulling stroke on the broken gel, drawing out a Soul Fire. Negris sternly and conscientiously asked the Dark Knight Emperor: ¡°How did you all get here?¡±
¡­ Anthony, who had been hastily summoned over, looked at the tightly bound Dark Knight Emperor in front of him, full of question marks on his face: ¡°Where did youe from?¡± ck Knights are man-made undead creatures, with that ¡®man¡¯ pointing towards Anthony. Anthony had created the resurrection altar and reversed life forms, turning the undead, energy beings, into half-material, half-energy ck Warriors. All ck Knights should have some connection with him, how could there possibly be three ck Warriors he doesn¡¯t recognize? The Dark Knight Emperor slowly said: ¡°I came from the Light. You heretics, release me now. Otherwise, the furious Holy Light will purify you all!¡± ck Warrior¡¯s words made everyone stunned: ¡°Church of Light? ck Warrior? Believes in light?¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help but ask: ¡°You say we are heretics, aren¡¯t you one as well? The Holy Light will still purify you.¡± ¡°No, I am simply a shadow under the light, the light always casts a shadow somewhere. We are responsible for purifying the filth that resides within the shadow.¡± Said the devout ck Knight. ¡°Oh, now I know who you are, a Shadow Knight. Do you know Julian?¡± Negris recalled the Shadow Knight that the big cat pped away to who knows where. The ck Knight nced at him deeply and said, ¡°So it seems, Julian died by your hands.¡± ¡°No, no, it wasn¡¯t us who killed him.¡± Negris denied, wanted to say something else but was pushed aside by Anthony. ¡°Lord Nage, stop interrupting, ask the important questions, this is getting on my nerves.¡± The usually calm Anthony was clearly rushed now, he wondered how the interrogation turned into a chat. After pushing Negris aside, Anthony stepped up and asked, ¡°How were you transformed into ck Knights? Where did the transformation take ce? Who performed it for you? Speak now or feel the touch of my soul trawling technique.¡± The ck Knight sneered and said, ¡°As long as the faith is devout, there will always be the light¡¯s radiance, you heretic tricks won¡¯t work on me.¡± Anthony scoffed and retorted, ¡°I wonder who the real heretic is? My Light shines brighter than yours.¡± As he spoke, he invoked the Holy Light and pressed it onto the ck Knight¡¯s head. The ck Knight was suddenly panicked: ¡°Such strong holy force! Could you be an archbishop? Who are you?¡± After a harsh torture and soul-searching, the ck Warrior was ultimately obliterated. Anthony also got the information he wanted. He slumped on the ground, panting heavily and said, ¡°I think I know what¡¯s going on. The Eye of the Craftsman can deconstruct the principles of what it sees. There must have been some reincarnation altar that the Eye of the Craftsman had seen, so it knows how to reincarnate the ck Warrior.¡±
¡°The Eye of the Craftsman?¡± Negris asked in confusion, ¡°Dwarf?¡± ¡°Yes, the Divine Technique of the Dwarven God of Forging,¡± Anthony replied. His tone was no longer as anxious as before, because he finally confirmed that he was not betrayed by those around him, nor did he leak his secrets. ¡°How did the dwarves get involved with the Church of Light?¡± Negris was astonished. ¡°What¡¯s so strange about that? The dwarves are now as poor as refugees. As long as there is wine, they can join forces with demons. My fake Earth Hammer was made by the dwarves, and I¡¯m keeping a few dwarves with me,¡± Anthony said.
¡°Are the dwarves really in such a bad state now?¡± Negris was shocked. These were the people, with the bloodline of the Titans, who were known as the children of the God of War and Forging, why had they fallen to such a state? ¡°It¡¯s a long story, let¡¯s talk about it next time. Lord, you are in trouble. Dyson has set his sights on the Goddess of Beauty City. These ck Warriors are his scouts sent to spy on the Goddess of Beauty City,¡± Anthony mentioned. Dyson is the Archbishop of the Land of Fallen Diocese. Because of his long-term war with the Undead, his forces can even be said to be the strongest among the three dioceses. Now that the diocese has fallen, many people have fled back. Where to ce these people became a big question. In the Master ne, brute strength is useless. Connections, reputation, savvy, are not things that these warriors can handle. Having fought with the Undead for a long time, they have be rather straightforward. In less than two months, they were conquered with money, beauty, and entertainment etc, causing many jokes. Dyson ascended to be the Archbishop of the Western Diocese and settled some people. But many more were unable to be settled. Like old saying goes, one hole for one carrot, to amodate one person, another had to be evicted from their position. Many people¡¯s positions are hereditary. The connections areplicated and intertwined like a web. Removing one person would impact the entire web and cause a strong bacsh. If they couldn¡¯t remove the old ones, could they increase their positions? No, the nobles and merchants wouldn¡¯t be happy, having adopted 10 people, and five more means double the burden, how could they be happy?N?v(el)B\\jnn As for why the burden increases by half but doubles? It¡¯s not that their math is bad, but you don¡¯t understand human nature. The old people were also unhappy, fearing that the neers would dilute their interests, they came together in resistance. For the sake of harmony within the curia, Dyson had to take a step back, and chose a ce that could amodate his subordinates and that was not part of the original curia¡¯s territory. He searched on the map and found the Republic of Steris. ¡°No, no, we can¡¯t provoke those magic lunatics. Cross it out.¡± The Republic of Steris was crossed out as a target from the list, and the fresh and tender Goddess of Beauty City became the only target.
At first, Dyson¡¯s subordinates were very resistant to this target: ¡°A new city in the desert? Are you trying to exile us? Lord Bishop, we¡¯ve followed you for so many years, we¡¯ve worked hard with you, you can¡¯t treat us this way.¡± Fearful of rebellion from his subordinates, Dyson hurriedly projected the magic 3D map. A three-dimensional illusion of the Goddess of Beauty City appeared on the table. This had been secretly mapped out by the church¡¯s spies, and apart from the newly nted War Giant Tree, it was exactly like a city ensconced in a forest. ¡°So beautiful. Is this really a city in the desert?¡± Those who had returned from the Land of Fallen could not resist such lush cities because the Land of Fallen was too deste. It was so deste that they felt close to the forest now. The environment is good and there¡¯s money. The abyss refugees have no roots, just like a big fat sheep ready for the taking. Everyone started salivating. ¡°But, aren¡¯t they under the protection of the elves? If we go after their city, won¡¯t we anger the elves?¡± someone asked hesitantly. ¡°Ha, we are targeting the elves. Over the past two years, the elves haveunched two wars, causing panic. They don¡¯t even think about who drove them into the Elf Forest. It¡¯s time to let them feel once again the fear of being dominated by humans.¡± Dysonughed: ¡°Destroy the Goddess of Beauty City, and if the elves dare to make a fuss, give them a profound lesson. This is also the will of the Lord, the Seth Empire and the Capricorn Empire have already prepared for war. The Master ne is the human¡¯s Master ne. They need to know who truly rules here.¡± Chapter 428: 255 The Third Plan_1 Chapter 428: Chapter 255 The Third n_1 ¡°This is a tough situation.¡± A group of people were sitting in a circle, listening to Anthony¡¯s analysis: ¡°If only the Church¡¯s forces are mobilized, it will be easy for us. But if they mobilize the Seth Empire and the Capricorn Empire, we will not stand a chance.¡± ¡°Why is that? We are thousands of kilometers deep into the desert, and even if the enemy has enormous forces, it wouldn¡¯t be easy for them to reach us. And we can ask for help from the elves,¡± Lisa expressed her skepticism. Anthony chuckled, not responding directly, but self-consciously: ¡°The Master ne is the human ne¡­¡± The Master ne, is the human ne. In the ne Safety Committee with seven seats, humans upy four seats. Elves hide in the forests, dwarves stay underground, the Dragon n traveled far across the sea, why do humans upy the most fertilends? Could it be that other species are too kind, willingly giving up the fertilend and hiding in cold and barren ces suffering?N?v(el)B\\jnn Perhaps only elves think this way, because they are more adaptable to forests and have the protection of the God of Life. However, for dwarves and the Dragon n, this is ridiculous. Compared to poption, other speciesbined cannot even reach one-tenth of the human race. In terms of production capabilities, they do not even have one percent of what humans have. In terms of organizational structures, humans are generations ahead. The Republic of Steris has already embraced republican governance, but elves and dwarfs are still primordial tribes, and the Dragon n is not even a tribe, just a big family. The only weakness of humans is theirck of unity. There are dozens ofrge and small nations in the Master ne, and if those small city-states are also counted, the number reaches hundreds. These nations do not live peacefully with each other. Some are even arch-enemies, and battles are frequent among them.
Thest time an empire met its downfall happened between the arch-enemies¡ªthe Tiwan Empire and the Seth Empire. It resulted in the deaths of millions, discement of ten millions, and theplete disappearance of the ten-million-poption Tiwan Empire from history. Theck of unity sometimes make humans seem less powerful than elves. The two recent elven movements has caused panic among humans, fearing that they might start a war. However, it is only a general situation. If the elves really instigate a war, humans will unite, and their momentum will bepletely different. On the whole ne, the only one worthy of uniting all humans¡­or at least more than half of the human race, is Guliani. ¡°If Guliani mobilizes human nations, let me tell you how they would fight this war. Firstly, an economic blockade,¡± said Anthony. ¡°Cutting off the economic rtions between the Goddess of Beauty City and the outside world, blocking the transportation of goods, food trade and so on, sealing off the entire desert,¡± Anthony continued. Thinking of the Goddess of Beauty City not providing beauty services, Lisa felt anxious: ¡°What¡¯s the point? We don¡¯t eat food, so what good would a blockade do?¡± ¡°You don¡¯t require food and daily necessities, but what about the citizens who live in the desert and the Fallen People? Half a year blockade will result in mass starvation,¡± Anthony responded. Ange suddenly raised his hand: ¡°I can provide, no one will starve.¡± ¡°Oh, I forgot, as long as you¡¯re here, indeed there wouldn¡¯t be starvation. But the blockade will still continue, aiming to prevent various supplies from being delivered, such as copper, iron, Demon Crystals, etc. They will blockade for half a year and then block off the river,¡± Anthony said. Negris gasped: ¡°You are so ruthless¡­¡± The two rivers flowing into Fallen Dragon Lake are all freshwater rivers originating outside of the desert. They¡¯re the main sources of freshwater for Fallen Dragon Lake. If they¡¯re blocked, the people in the Goddess of Beauty City will soon have no water to drink. Compared with food, fresh water is obviously more important. ¡°We have Fengshui Towers. If we build some more, we should be able to solve the problem of freshwater,¡± Lisa thought seriously and said. ¡°Fengshui Tower? What¡¯s that?¡± Anthony had never seen a Fengshui Tower. Even if he had, he wouldn¡¯t understand its precise parameters, so Negris had to exin. After understanding the purpose of the Fengshui Tower, Anthony eximed: ¡°This is a remarkable invention! It¡¯s not only useful in the desert but also on ships. If we install one on a ship, we wouldn¡¯t have to worry about the freshwater problem when sailing. It can also be used in the desert in the south. Any ce that has sufficient humidity butcks surface water can make use of it.¡± After a pause, Anthony continued: ¡°But it¡¯s useless, because the third step will address the issue of humidity in the wind. I would send arge number of wizards to the monsoonal sources bringing in the humidity, and drain the moisture from the wind, because even without the Fengshui Tower, ordinary wizards can also condense moisture. So, I would tackle the problem starting from the source.¡± ¡°Drain the moisture out of the wind? How is that possible?¡± Everyone was astounded by this unimaginable n. ¡°It¡¯s easy to achieve, just find ten thousand wizards. You don¡¯t need very powerful ones, third or fourth-level ones are sufficient,¡± Anthony said nonchntly.
¡°Ten thousand? And it¡¯s easy?¡± Negris eximed, as if Anthony was joking with him. However, Anthony nodded seriously: ¡°Yes, it¡¯s easy. When humans mobilize, they can deploy thousands of wizards. The Seth Royal Magic Academy has four thousand students and there are thousands of Magic Academies in the Seth Empire, at least over ten. The Capricorn Empire has less but still seven or eight.¡± ¡°And there¡¯s an even scarier organization ¨C the Magic Guild. As long as the price is right, the Magic Guild can organize over twenty thousand wizards in seven days. That¡¯s why I said, when humans mobilize, we don¡¯t stand a chance.¡±
Chapter 429: 255: The Third Solution_2 Chapter 429: Chapter 255: The Third Solution_2 Everyone looked at each other in bewilderment. Indeed, it was unlikely for Dyson to marshal such a massive force against the Goddess of Beauty City. However, the sheer scale of it still induced a profound sense of helplessness. And that was just one or two empires. What if all of humanity across the ne were to unite¡­?
While everyone was still reeling from the shock, Negris noticed that Ange had straightened his back. Ange rarely sat up straight. He only did so when he was focusing intently or when he heard something that piqued his interest. Negris leaned forward. Quietly, he asked, ¡°Ange, what are you thinking about?¡± Ange tilted his head and replied, ¡°So many people, how much food would be needed?¡± ¡°Heh, so that¡¯s what you¡¯re calcting? Do you really think you can grow enough food to feed all the beings in the ne?¡± Negris sneered. Knowing that Ange was pondering over such an impractical issue, Negris ignored him and continued listening to Anthony¡¯s analysis.
¡°Drain the water vapor, cut off the rivers. In just half a month, the Goddess of Beauty City could perhaps die of thirst. The rest would have to flee to the oasis. But one oasis cannot support that many people. If they spread out to different oases, it would give us opportunities to defeat them one by one.¡± ¡°The fourth step is bombing. Escorted by Griffin Knights, two-legged flying dragons and airships carrying incendiary bombs, fuel bombs, wax bottles, and simr items, flying overhead and dropping these onto the ground. Even if we have White Neck, Bone Dragon Naeli, it would be useless. We don¡¯t have enough of them and they can¡¯t break through the protection of the Griffin Knights.¡± ¡°The bombing and draining of water vapor will happen concurrently. Thenes the advancement of the main forces. Do you know why the Capricorn Empire is mobilized? It¡¯s because they are breeders of arge desert-adapted creature they call Capricorn.¡± ¡°One Capricorn can pull a sand sled at high speeds, each sled capable of carrying twenty soldiers. Able to travel a thousand miles in a day, ten thousand Capricorn could, within two days, deliver two hundred thousand soldiers here. How can we defend against two hundred thousand soldiers after being sealed off, water-deprived, and bombed for such a long time?¡± None of them could muster any words. The simple enumeration of data instilled a suffocating sense of powerlessness. It was no wonder why Anthony would say that the Master ne belonged to humanity. After analyzing the strengths of both sides, it was time to make a decision. Everyone¡¯s eyes fell on Ange. Only he had the power to decide whether they would fight or flee. Ange seemed taken aback, curiously tilting his head with an ¡®why are you all looking at me?¡¯ expression. This farming skeleton was distracted again. Negris had no choice but to say: ¡°Everyone¡¯s waiting for you to make a decision. Should we stick to fighting, or should we return to the Resting Abyss? If we return, we¡¯d definitely lose the Goddess of Beauty City.¡± Negris did not dare mention the farnds around Fallen Dragon Lake. He knew what Ange would decide if thosends were brought up. However, Ange didn¡¯t choose either of the options. He said, ¡°Kill the Pope.¡± Anthony looked shocked, suddenly standing up. ¡°Great idea!¡± He had spent a while exining everything to everyone, all based on the strengths of both parties, but had overlooked their main advantage.
No, that wouldn¡¯t do. Ange¡¯s words reminded him of this, and Anthony started pacing, reorganizing his thoughts. The others were confused by this sudden turn of events. Sofia leaned over and asked, ¡°What¡¯s going on?¡± Lisa exined, ¡°Lord Anthony had outlined two ns. Lord Ange disagreed yet proposed a third solution. Lord Anthony felt that it was better than his original ns hence he discarded his own and is preparing to explore the feasibility of Lord Ange¡¯s.¡± Sofia was shocked as if she had heard something ridiculous. Did Ange just reject Anthony¡¯s proposals? Wasn¡¯t Ange only practical when it came to farming? Even Lisa, a dedicated follower of Ange, thought it absurd. She would never dare to say that Ange was smarter than Anthony. When it came to cunning and trickery, all those present together were no match for Anthony. ¡°Our main problem now is Dyson and Guliani. We don¡¯t need to kill Guliani. Merely getting rid of Dyson will significantly reduce our threat.¡± ¡°Dyson¡¯s biggest advantage is his ability to orchestrate and mobilize human power, providing him with an absolute numerical advantage. But where do we have an advantage? Here!¡± Anthony pointed emphatically at Ange. ¡°Lord¡¯s storage space is our biggest advantage. We can stash everyone there, then pop out at Dyson¡¯s ce, and overwhelm him in one swift assault.¡± Everyone¡¯s eyes lit up as they began contemting the feasibility of this n. The Resting Camp is a divine artifact. It is an independent space with the ability to house living beings for long periods of time, a feat not offered by any other storage space. Even if some special storage spaces can contain living creatures, the energy consumption would be exorbitant, making it impractical forrge-scale personnel transfers. But the Resting Camp is an exception. In fact, storing and retrieving objects from it also consumes arge amount of Soul me. If you calcte the cost based on the consumed Soul me, only a few could afford it, for Soul me is exclusive to the gods.
In this respect, Dyson must be punishment from the Gods. A good n is one that everyone finds feasible after it has been proposed. Ange¡¯s n was clearly one with universal approval. Immediately, there were voices chiming in: ¡°Everyone should be equipped with a Teleportation Scroll. Once the mission isplete, they can immediately teleport away.¡± ¡°Ask Shamara for help. Her predictive ability can help us avoid most of the danger.¡± ¡°Get some equipment for the Purple Corpse to increase their attack power.¡± ¡°Bring Vaguli¡¯s Magic Egg Cannon. It might be useful during sieges.¡± ¡°Also bring those drugs that Sava made. Toss them into their drinking water when they¡¯re camping, and they won¡¯t be able to sleep at night.¡± ¡°¡­ are you referring to ¡®those¡¯ drugs from Sava?¡± While everyone was chiming in with details, Ange suddenly said, ¡°We need XXX million tons.¡± This bewildering statement left Negris puzzled. ¡°What are you talking about?¡± ¡°For that many people, we need XXX million tons of food.¡± As he spoke, the Ring of Libra shed behind him. Kvada, Negris almost went crazy. Everyone was discussing his n, and he was calcting the amount of food required?
¡­ Aestolia sat nkly on the chair, letting Ange do as he pleased. However, her fingers were unconsciously squeezing. It had been so many years since anyone had touched her at such close proximity. This made her feel uneasy and also left her with an odd feeling. Just as Ange touched her eyelids, she couldn¡¯t help but halt him, ¡°Wait, the condition to cure my eyes is really just to protect Lord Ange when necessary. I don¡¯t have to fight, do I?¡± Lisa hastily reassured her beside, ¡°Yes, you don¡¯t need to fight. Even if you just cast the Forbidden Magic Domain, that¡¯s fine. We know your difficulties. You represent the elves. We won¡¯t make things difficult for you.¡± Aestolia gave a wry smile, took a deep breath and said, ¡°Let¡¯s go. I¡¯m ready.¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn It was not about saving face for her, she was just uneasy. She used this opportunity to adjust her emotions. Ange¡¯s fingers touched her eyelids, making her want to stop him again. However, she suppressed this urge. She was about to regain her sight. The feeling was not simply joy but a mix ofplex emotions that made one not want to face it¡­ Ange pulled back her eyelids to reveal a hollow cavity where her eyeball had been. Ange flicked a drop of Essence Bug Ash Liquid onto the necrotic tissue deep within the cavity and then shone the Holy Light into it. Crystal clear eyes slowly grew within the cavity. Upon receiving the first sliver of light, the True Mage in the Element Kingdom, the formidable being with the Forbidden Magic Domain, couldn¡¯t help her tears. After Aestolia joined the team, Negris went to find Lamo. After a round in the Resting Abyss, Lamo confirmed Ange¡¯s identity ¨C the Undead God. Thirteen Graveyard Keepers offered their souls to Ange. An unprecedented powerful team was assembled and then packed into the Resting Camp.
Chapter 430: 256: Don’t You Want to Watch Together? _1 Chapter 430: Chapter 256: Don¡¯t You Want to Watch Together? _1 In Seth¡¯s royal court, Dyson was courteously helped onto a carriage, while exchanging polite farewells with Giuliani and the deities in the distance.
Then, the Emperor of the Empire, with a host of royals at his side, stood on the steps, looking at Dyson¡¯s procession, waving with a smile. It was a scene of joyous farewell and reluctant departure. Inside the carriage, Dyson continued to stick his head out of the window and wave, not sitting back down until the carriage had left the royal court. He then pulled down the curtain. As soon as the curtain was pulled down, his face fell: ¡°A bunch of old foxes, they¡¯re so infuriating.¡± In the shadow of the carriage, a figure emerged and nonchntly said: ¡°This is normal. The hunters won¡¯t let go of the hawks in their hands until they see the rabbits. Sir, we have to offer more benefits.¡± ¡°What benefits? A barren ce in the desert, what benefits can there be? Can¡¯t they uphold their spirit of dedication to Light, give money if they have money, contribute if they have power, and crusade against heretics?¡± Dyson vented irrationally. The shadow remained silent, hiding in the gloom until Dyson vented his frustration before slowly speaking: ¡°The beauty care projects in the Goddess of Beauty City cater to well-off nobles. Many would covet such a ce, especially those old men, wouldn¡¯t they want to rejuvenate and prolong their lives?¡±
¡°Although there is not yet proof that the Goddess of Beauty City can prolong life, based on the situation of Duke Leite¡¯s old mother, it can at least provide a high-quality life rather than being bedridden, unable to take care of oneself.¡± ¡°Someone is sure to be interested. We certainly aren¡¯t the only ones watching, it¡¯s just that everyone is hesitant to provoke the elves.¡± ¡°But reluctance to provoke is one thing, and watching us monopolize it is another. This time, because of the seriousness of the Pope, they are willing to move, but it¡¯s only to guard against the elves, they absolutely won¡¯t help us. Whether we can take the Goddess of Beauty City depends on us.¡± The constant analyzation of the shadow helped Dyson to cool down. He was rational but needed to vent his frustrations. ¡°Can we take the Goddess of Beauty City?¡± Dyson asked. The shadow slowly responded: ¡°Based on the current powerparison, as long as the elves don¡¯t interfere, it won¡¯t be a problem to take the Goddess of Beauty City. The strongest power in the hands of the abyss nomads is the self-proimed Goddess of Beauty, a fledgling deity. This kind of little God who popped up out of nowhere might be able to perform beauty and skin rejuvenation, but her fighting ability might not even be as good as a Truth Mage.¡± Dyson nodded. As an Archbishop, he knew too well about Gods and did not fear them blindly. As long as he had enough power, it wasn¡¯t impossible to kill a God. ¡°ording to reports, these people can impersonate the Power of Holy Light. When they perform the Divine Arts, the effect is exactly like the Holy Light, which fools a lot of people. Some people even thought they belonged to our church. Unfortunately, their Divine Arts don¡¯t have the effect of Holy Light, they can only deceive those who don¡¯t understand.¡± Dyson nodded. He actually already knew all of this, but hearing it again from someone else deepened his impression and sparked more inspiration. ¡°Like all abyss nomad, their backgrounds are tooplex, including humans, ck Warriors, Mixed-Blood Titans, Corpse Silver Dragons, goblins, you name it. It¡¯s hard for them to unite. We¡¯ve already sent people to spread rumors there, saying things like the ck Warriors want to do blood sacrifices with humans, humans want to skin dragons, Corpse Silver Dragons want to eat goblins, etc.¡± Dyson nodded, ¡°Hmm, conventional methods. Additionally, spread rumors that goblins have kidnapped ny-nine elf girls and n to sell them to underground brothels to see if we can anger the elves.¡± The shadow agreed, ¡°That¡¯s a good idea. While we¡¯re at it, let¡¯s spread rumors in the dwarf territories, iming that the Mixed-Blood Titans look down upon them and warn them not to im they possess Titan blood. We will try to iste them as much as possible. You¡¯ve said it before, at the Domain Security Conference, the abyss nomads got five support votes.¡±
After a round of discussion, the shadow asked, ¡°How do you n to deal with their God? Even the weakest God is still a God.¡± Dyson smiled faintly, ¡°My Lord had a fierce battle with Harvey before. This little God can be offered to my Lord for replenishment.¡± As he spoke of his Lord, Dyson¡¯s chest lit up slightly. Just then, Dyson felt the carriage slowing down before it finally came to a stop. They had just left Seth¡¯s royal court, so they were probably still on the edge of it. For a grand empire of several tens of millions, the defense of the royal court was extremely stringent. No enemy couldunch an attack at such a near distance unless it was a lone wolf-style attack. Dyson¡¯s own defensive power was not weak. Since Anthony imed to have been assassinated and Nik was actually assassinated, everyone with abilities within the domain had unanimously increased their defensive efforts. Dyson was no exception. He was sure that Anthony was nning something against him in secrecy, and he was doing the same. In fact, he had already made one attempt. Unfortunately, Wisdom Angel Luna didn¡¯t hold up so well, and she was forced to use the Power of Fall by Anthony, who then ughtered her. Right now, Dyson¡¯s protection was the strongest line-up he could afford, and having just left the royal court, it was impossible for anyone tounch an attack here unless Seth¡¯s royal court wanted him dead. However, such a possibility was extremely slim, so Dyson confidently opened the carriage window to ask, ¡°What happened? Why have we stopped?¡± ¡°Uh, sir, I don¡¯t know how to exin it. It would be better if youe out and see it yourself,¡± the guard next to the carriage hesitated. Puzzled, Dyson walked out of the carriage and the person in the shadows followed him.
The shadow was a man d in full armor with just a pair of eyes exposed. When he emerged from the shadows and revealed his face, it looked exactly like Dyson. Dyson walked to the front of the procession and looked ahead, immediately understanding why the guard hadn¡¯t known how to exin and had made hime out to see for himself instead. In the distance, several dozen Holy Spirit Angels huddled in a circle, peering curiously inside. Yes, dozens of Holy Spirit Angels, each with white wings on their back, emanating a sacred light. Among them, one Angel had particrlyrge wings, probably a Four-Winged Angel. These usually rare Holy Spirit Angels stood with their backs to Dyson¡¯s convoy, craning their necks to look into the center, where a sacred light was shining. Seeing this, wouldn¡¯t you be curious? Wouldn¡¯t you be shocked? Wouldn¡¯t you want to join in and see what was happening? The mages, priests, and saints in the convoy kept reporting: ¡°Safe.¡± ¡°Safe in the air.¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°Safe underground.¡± ¡°A horse with a fur hat a few kilometers ahead, safe.¡± Listening to the repeated utterances of ¡®safe¡¯, Dyson felt assured and craned his neck to look into the area circled by the Holy Spirit Angels. If the other party weren¡¯t Holy Spirits, he would have already used the Eye of the Wizard to see. Now, he could only signal to the guards to send someone over to have a look.
PS: I¡¯m a bit tired and experiencing some writer¡¯s block, so I will update just one chapter for now. Chapter 431 - 257: Red_1 Chapter 431: Chapter 257: Red_1 The guard who received the order hurried over, stopping at a distance and spoke quietly, ¡°Hi! Hi! I¡¯ming over, I¡¯m a guard from the Church of Light¡¯s Western District under Archbishop Dyson, I¡¯m one of you, I¡¯ming over.¡± While speaking, the guard cautiously approached, maintaining the same alertness as when entering a stable, to avoid being kicked. This particr guard was an experienced one, hence the caution. Holy Spirit Angels can at times be like twitchy horses that would easily send you flying if you came too close. Just as he was about to enter the circle the Holy Spirit Angels had formed, the outermost Angel turned to look at him as he sensed his approach. The guard¡¯s heart skipped a beat, he put on a forced smile, ¡°Lord, what are you all doing? Need any help?¡± Despite his words, the guard had an ominous feeling. The Holy Spirit Angel had an expressionless face, an empty gaze, just like the dead. Indeed, a typical Holy Spirit Angel usually wore a deathly expression all the time, but at least there was a glimmer of life in their eyes. But now they seemed truly lifeless. Upon hearing his words, the Holy Spirit Angels at the outermost circle stepped back and the rest nced at him before moving aside, gradually opening a path. The guard was quite astonished. Normally, these Holy Spirit Angels wouldn¡¯t bother with humans, or rather, they wouldn¡¯t acknowledge the existence of mere mortals. Unless you held a divine position, like a divine priest, pdin, bishop, they wouldn¡¯t pay you any heed. However, before he could express his gratitude, the path that had just opened revealed what the Holy Spirit Angels were surrounding. It was a kind of auncher with two rails. At the end of the slider, a spherical magic orb was spinning wildly. The overwhelming magical fluctuations radiating from it were almost unbearable, but they were all concealed by the radiant holy light emanating from a holy crystal beside, producing that sacred glow. The guard was taken aback for a moment, having not expected this situation. Dozens of Holy Spirit Angels gathered together; it had to be some significant event like the descent of the gods, right? But they were only surrounding a broken machine. The Holy Light wasn¡¯t emitted by the machine itself, but by the Holy Crystal beside it. Were they simply ying around it? However, in the next moment, he realized: Was it to assassinate Lord Dyson? But why would they huddle together to assassinate Dyson? Wouldn¡¯t a surprise attack by several tens of Holy Spirit Angels be more effective? Unfortunately, what he didn¡¯t know was that these were not true Holy Spirit Angels, they were merely skeletons in disguise. Ange had tried many ways, but couldn¡¯t turn these sacred bones into angel skeletons. Either he could use his pure Holy Light to restore the sacred bones into skeletons with flesh, or let Little Sky use the impure Holy Light to resurrect them into real Angels. But the real Angels were uncontroble and retained their original instinct to attack all heretics. As for the skeletons with flesh, their strength was only at the level of the Ashbone Skeletons, definitely incapable of casting Holy Light sh. Anthony had no choice but to use them as regr skeletons, diverting the attention of the enemies, and covering the true killing move. Yes, Anthony. Only he coulde up with such unexpected and cunning tactics. The instant the guard realized and attempted to warn the others, the Magic Egg Cannon fired. A magic egg the size of a watermelon smashed into the guard, instantly shattering him. The unstoppable magic egg then struck the distant convoy. ¡°Ambush!¡± The convoy¡¯s guards shouted at the top of their voices. Without a doubt, Anthony¡¯s setup was extremely misleading. A group of dozens of Holy Spirit Angels gathered together, who wouldn¡¯t be curious about what they were doing? But because they were perceived as Holy Spirit Angels, the opponents couldn¡¯t resort to ¡®impolite¡¯ methods of investigation like the Eye of the Wizard. Angering the angels would invite trouble, and being members of the Church of Light, they knew better than anyone how unreasonable these angels can be. Everyone was craning their necks to watch, even Dyson was no exception. They surely did not expect a ball to suddenly be shot out. ¡°Hand of the Mage!¡± A mage shouted, and the Hand of the Mage manifested mid-air, about to grab the magic egg. Whether it was to throw it back or toss it aside, either was sufficient to counter such physical attacks. But how could Vaguli neglect this w? The magic bullet pierced directly through the Hand of the Mage, making it impossible to grab. Whoosh¡­ whoosh¡­ whoosh¡­ The Hand of the Mage proved ineffective, and a shower of spells and Divine Arts weed the magic egg. After hitting the magic egg with a dozen rapid attacks, it exploded in mid-air, engulfing everything with a violent shockwave and wild elemental energy, flying out in all directions, tossing the knights in the front row of the convoy into the air. Vaguli, observing the effects from miles away using the Eye of the Wizard, pped his hands in excitement.¡± That¡¯s incredible. The aged branches of the World Tree are so efficient, their disintegration rate is much higher.¡± Mages and Priests of Divine Light raised their shields in defense, blocking the shockwave, and more vigntly surveyed the surroundings. ¡°Sky is clear.¡± ¡°Underground is clear.¡± ¡°Both sides are clear.¡± ¡°When did that horse get over here? It¡¯s fast! It¡¯s got lightning, It¡¯s not a horse, it¡¯s a Unicorn!¡± ¡°On guard, on guard, that horse is really fast. Bada, what¡¯s that thing it¡¯s dragging behind?¡± ¡°A Titan! It¡¯s dragging a Titan using thunder! My God, can a Unicorn and a Thunder Titan coordinate like this?¡± The ¡®horse wearing a fur hat¡¯ from a few kilometers away had nowe within a kilometer. It was leaving a trail of sparks and thunder behind, and the lights connected to the beings behind it. A half a dozen Titans, each three meters tall, were tied to these electroluminescent trails. They slid their way forward, harnessed to the lights. No one had ever seen a unicorn and a titan work together like this before. For one, real titans are seven to eight meters tall, too heavy for a unicorn to carry. Secondly, they bothe from different worlds; a titaning to the Master ne would only result in being clobbered to death. The size of the Purple Corpse is just right, and it is familiar with the lightning, allowing them to develop thisbination technique unintentionally. Under the swift pace of the lightning, the hundreds of meters distance vanished in a blink. By the time the convoy¡¯s guards reacted, the lightning had already dragged the titan to within less than five hundred meters. The Purple Skeleton Titan swung its hand and smashed out several magic eggs. The three-meter tall Purple Skeleton Titan was like a human-shaped eggunching tube. The magic eggs shot out like cannonballs, hardly any weaker than those fired from a Magic Egg Cannon. A single magic egg had already shaken the convoy. With so many magic eggs, how could the convoy dare to let them approach? They immediately focus fired on the magic eggs. Seizing this opportunity, the hat on the Unicorn¡¯s head moved, jumped to the ground and like an intable balloon, it blew up. Upon seeing this fluffy ball, Dyson and his men instantly recognized it: ¡°Dimension Beast! It¡¯s a Dimension Beast!¡± Dyson could no longer contain himself. What does a Dimension Beast represent? A Dimensional portal that must not be allowed to open. He stepped forward, mmed his staff into the ground. Dyson¡¯s voice echoed throughout the area, clearly reaching everyone¡¯s ears: ¡°The Lord said¡­¡± Before he could finish his sentence, another louder voice interrupted him: ¡°The Lord did not say!¡± The divine arts that hadn¡¯t fully formed were instantly interrupted by this voice. Dyson, gritting his teeth, shouted, ¡°Anthony! Come out!¡± Another louder voice immediately denied it: ¡°I¡¯m not him, I didn¡¯t do it. I¡¯m just a passerby who can¡¯t stand yourte-night shouting, don¡¯t talk nonsense.¡± Again, Dyson mmed his staff down: ¡°The Lord said!¡± ¡°You¡¯re talking nonsense!¡± ¡°The Lord said!¡± ¡°You are impotent!¡± ¡°The Lord said!¡± ¡°You¡¯re balding!¡± ¡°You are the one who is balding!¡± Dyson, driven by rage, removed his own crown, revealing his glossy forehead. Dyson had no choice but to do this. As the Archbishop, he must always wear his crown. If he did not debunk the rumor in time, once it spread, many people would sneak a peek at his head. By then, he would lose all his dignity. He wasn¡¯t as anxious when they spread rumors about him being impotent, but he couldn¡¯t tolerate rumors about him going bald. With an Archbishop of the same rank restraining him, Dyson was deemed useless, unable to use any divine techniques. With the enemy¡¯s strongest force rendered useless, Ange¡¯s side was even more ruthless. From the long hair of the Dimension Beast, a swarm of people poured out. Inside Dyson¡¯s convoy, someone had summoned an Angel. Its wings spread behind him as it flew up. A Breath of Death Shockwave swallowed the other party. A team of Pdins charged with their shields. More than a dozen Titans with new equipment rushed over. All the mages gathered together, under the leadership of a Truth Mage, madly converging elements. Suddenly, all the elements stopped. ¡°Forbidden¡­ Forbidden Magic Domain! Ais¡¯s Elemental Dead Zone!¡± The Truth Mage on Dyson¡¯s side turned deathly pale. Although they were both Truth Mages, the Forbidden Magic Domain was the bane of all mages. Without magic, they could only engage in closebat. Ange¡¯s side was well-prepared, they rush like a flood, overwhelming everything until they encountered the Wall of Divine Blessing. Several Pdins formed a human wall, casting the Blessing spell. n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Unnoticed by everyone, the armored man who had been following Dyson disappeared at some point. Just then, Dyson¡¯s chest lit up. Ange sensed something and looked up, murmuring, ¡°It¡¯s red.¡± As he murmured, scales sprouted on his body, rapidly wrapping around him. PS: This chapter should have been yesterday¡¯s, but I fell into a strange state. It¡¯s like, well, kind of like having my period. I just couldn¡¯t muster up any enthusiasm. I wish everyone a happy Mid-Autumn Festival. Chapter 432 - 258: Why, There’s no Soil? _1 Chapter 432: Chapter 258: Why, There¡¯s no Soil? _1 Dyson took a step forward, thumped his staff on the ground and murmured, ¡°The God says, the Fire of Mass Faith is an inextinguishable me, an unyielding faith. Let it burn eternally!¡± Anthony did not interrupt Dyson¡¯s murmuring, hence Dyson was able to finish the entire prayer smoothly, with a light growing brighter in his chest. Slowly raising his head, Dyson confidently looked into the distance and loudly proimed, ¡°Anthony, your greatest mistake was trying to kill me yourself and revealing all your cards! I will sacrifice an avatar to extinguish you all at once, taste my Storm of Faith!¡± As he finished speaking, a figure shed in front of him, a Dragon-Man covered in scales appeared before him, his finger pointed at Dyson¡¯s chest, making him freeze instantly. Dyson looked at the Dragon-Man in shock, what kind of creature was this? How could it be so fast? Looking at its scales, they seemed like dragon scales, but its shape was humanoid, was it an offspring of a colored dragon that bred with a human? As Dyson was pondering, his eyes unconsciously nced towards Negris, who was the only person he could move. Ange didn¡¯t have eyes, hence he couldn¡¯t move his eyeballs. The Space Dragon¡¯s skills solidified the space, Dyson couldn¡¯t move and the light on his chest ceased to intensify. Simultaneously at the position where Ange was initially, an ¡®Aoao¡¯ sound erupted. His speed was too quick, so much so that the sound only spread after he had moved. Hearing this ¡®Aoao,¡¯ Negris subconsciously looked towards the Dimension Beast, which seemed stunned. The Dimension Beast had learned Aoaonguage from the prolonged interactions with Little Angel and Little Zombie, but Ange¡¯s roar left it hesitating. Inparison, Little Angel and Little Zombie did not hesitate and echoed the ¡®Aoao¡¯ together. Alright then, the Dimension Beast leaped, lunged, and pped where Ange and Dyson were standing. When it lifted its paw, Ange and Dyson had disappeared. Negris lost control and copsed; he had disconnected. The Dimension Beast¡¯s dimensional banishment flung Ange to an unknown location, causing Negris¡¯ projection to fail due to the switching of the space. After a two-second pause, Anthony from a distance shouted, ¡°Don¡¯t let any of them escape.¡± After shouting, he covered his face and rushed forward with his staff, one attack per person, never missing any. The caravan guards, headless after the departure of their leader, were easily overrun by these fierce adversaries. After everyone was killed, Lamo and the Night Watchers harvested all the souls from the bodies, ensuring that these souls wouldn¡¯t divulge their information. After dealing with everything and leaving the bodies behind, everyone started using the Teleportation Scrolls to leave. They used almost a hundred scrolls. Any other faction would have gone bankrupt if they used so many scrolls, but Ange had silk and could carve them himself, hence he was able to splurge. After leaving the scene, Anthony managed to find the Dimension Beast and wanted to lift it up with its hind legs like Ange. Unfortunately, he wasn¡¯t Ange. The Dimension Beast allowed itself to be lifted by Ange without retaliation because it knew it couldn¡¯t win. But when Anthony tried the same, he was promptly pinned down by the Dimension Beast. After much persuasion, the Dimension Beast finally released him. As he awkwardly brushed off his clothes, Anthony asked, ¡°Where¡¯s my master? Where did you banish him to?¡± ¡°Aoao!¡± the Dimension Beast responded. Little Angel understood it: ¡°Aoao!¡± Little Zombie also understood it: ¡°Aoao!¡± Anthony didn¡¯t understand what it meant. With nobody to trante and Negris having disappeared after disconnecting, Anthony was the only one who couldn¡¯t speak thenguage. n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Anthony closed his eyes to sense the surroundings. He could sense Ange¡¯s presence, but it seemed to be too far away, with no response to his calls. ¡°The master is not in danger. Dyson¡¯s Storm of Faith didn¡¯t harm him. He¡¯ll probably return soon. He has the Staff of Heaven, which can teleport him back to the Holy Kingdom whenever he wants.¡± Anthonyforted everybody this way. ¡­ Ange and Dyson, who were sent flying by a p from the Dimension Beast, felt as if they were flying straight into the unknown like a ball. Suddenly, with a loud bang, something was smashed, and the surroundings brightened. Some particles of light drifted backward, and soon after, another bang urred, and everything brightened. Countless scattered lights illuminated them, and Ange realized he had fallen into the water. The time for his transformation was up, and the scales on his body rapidly retreated. Dyson also regained his freedom, the bright light on his chest looked as though it was going to break through. However, he was currently shocked at the water around him, his mouth moved slightly. Looking at his lips, he seemed to want to say, ¡°Where is this?¡± However, as soon as he opened his mouth, water began forcefully pouring into it, gagging back all his words. Suddenly, he didn¡¯t need to speak, the light on his chest shone through, exploding into countless Sacred mes, along with Dyson¡¯s body that quickly ignited as if supplying fuel to the mes, disappearing in an instant. The oing Ange could only manage to block it with both hands before he was engulfed by the Sacred mes. However, the Fire of Mass Faith was not causing damage throughbustion. It merely ignited a spark to locate the ceaseless faith of the followers, hence after sweeping past Ange, it focused solely on the Boundary-crossing Hand, as it was the first to get in contact with the Fire of Mass Faith. The Fire of Mass Faith sprayed out in a fan shape, a small part sprayed onto Ange while most of it scattered. The scattered part soon stopped as it couldn¡¯t find a target. Chapter 433: 258: Why, There’s no Soil? _2 Chapter 433: Chapter 258: Why, There¡¯s no Soil? _2 Dyson didn¡¯t hesitate to sacrifice a duplicate of himself, not to defeat a single enemy, but to wipe out all his enemies, especially Anthony. But now, where are all the enemies? There was only one left.
The Fire of Mass Faith, unable to find its target, turned back towards Ange, all converging into the Sacred me in the palm of his Boundary-crossing Hand. A little ghost popped out of Ange¡¯s finger, his cheeks puffed up as he fiercely bit the Sacred me. It was only a small bite, and it was so filling that the little ghost began burping, sighed out a breath, and then shrunk back. The Sacred me in the palm of Ange¡¯s hand showed no decrease in size. Negris¡¯s voice echoed in Ange¡¯s soul: ¡°Get out of the water first.¡± Oh, with a thought, Ange shot out from the bottom like a cannonball, breaking through the water and heading in the opposite direction of the iing light. In the water, the density of the Water Element made movement much more effortless than in the air. It wasn¡¯t long before Ange reached the surface of the water, shooting his entire body up into the air. Falling from the sky andnding back on the water¡¯s surface, the moment Ange¡¯s feet touched, the water quickly solidified, quickly forming arge piece of floating ice on which Ange stood, floating in the water.
¡°Where are we?¡± Negris asked urgently, the p of the Dimension Beast had sent Ange flying into god knows where, and also knocked him offline. Looking around, an endless expanse of water glimmered in every direction, as if they were in the middle of arge ocean. ¡°Are we at sea? Are we still in the Master ne?¡± Negris was surprised. It seemed like only the Master ne would have such a vast ocean made up of such a quantity of water. But Ange shook his head: ¡°No, the water isn¡¯t salty.¡± ¡°Freshwater? Where are we?¡± If it was freshwater, then it definitely wasn¡¯t the Master ne anymore. Instead, it would be a ne Negris had never heard of, because he had never heard of a ne with an ocean made entirely of freshwater. However, seeing the confused tilt of Ange¡¯s head, Negris gave up: ¡°Forget it, wherever we are just take out the Staff of Heaven, let¡¯s teleport back. The teleportation scroll probably won¡¯t work, I¡¯ve never heard of this ne before, it must be far from the Master ne.¡± Ange raised his Boundary-crossing Hand, and the Sacred me was silently burning in his palm. While it was still the Fire of Mass Faith, the Sacred me in Ange¡¯s hand wasn¡¯t smoking and fizzling like the one in Harvey¡¯s hand. Ange didn¡¯t even feel it harming him, but¡­ ¡°Can¡¯t reach it,¡± Ange said. ¡°What do you mean? Can¡¯t reach the Resting Camp? Then surely you can¡¯t get to the Staff of Heaven?¡± Negris asked. Ange nodded. ¡°Can it be extinguished? Is this Fire of Mass Faith set by Dyson? I heard him shouting about a Storm of Faith, can the Fire of Mass Faith be used as a weapon?¡± Negris asked.
Ange shook his head. ¡°Uh, what do you mean by shaking your head?¡± ¡°Can¡¯t extinguish, Dyson set it,¡± Ange spoke, uttering more words than usual. ¡°Ah? What should we do then? If you can¡¯t extinguish the Fire of Mass Faith, doesn¡¯t that mean your Boundary-crossing Hand will never be able to reach inside the Resting Camp?¡± Ange shook his head, and raised his finger: ¡°It can eat.¡± Upon the finger, the Little Ghost floated up, tilted its head in thought, probably unsure of what Ange meant by raising it, but it reacted quickly when it heard the word ¡®eat¡¯, and bit Ange¡¯s finger. Unfortunately, Ange¡¯s bones were too hard for the Little Ghost, who sighed and turned to pounce on the Sacred me, fiercely biting a piece off of it. The Sacred me didn¡¯t decrease, but the Little Ghost seemed satisfied, burping before dejectedly retreating back to Ange¡¯s finger. Negris scratched his head, wondering how long the process would take? However, they couldn¡¯t rush it, the Fire of Mass Faith was a spark that could ignite Divine Fire, it was not something easily extinguished. They would have been wiped out if it wasn¡¯t for Ange¡¯s quick reaction, who could expect Dyson would use something like a Storm of Faith. Ordinary people could do nothing about such mes. Once it sticks to you, it¡¯s almost impossible to get rid of and can only be watched as it grows stronger before eventually burning you to death. The fact that the Little Ghost could eat it was a pleasant surprise.
Dyson was guessing to use this grand move due to Anthony¡¯s presence. Who would have thought that Ange¡¯s Space Solidification,bined with the Dimension Beast¡¯s Dimensional Banishment, would break it? Both Ange and the Dimension Beast were indispensable. Dyson must now regret his move. Looking up at the sun, Ange put on a straw hat, the sunlight was too bright. The floating ice beneath his feet was quickly melting under the intense sunlight. Ange didn¡¯t bother to reinforce the ice, it was too hot on the ocean¡¯s surface, better to stay submerged. Besides, he couldn¡¯t drown anyway. Just before the floating ice melted and he fell back into the water, a shadow appeared in the distance over the sea. It hovered about a meter over the sea surface, moving at high speed towards Ange. As the distance closed, Ange could see the shadow clearly ¨C a ten-meter long Goblin Airship with wings and a tail but no balloon, instead it had sails. The flying sailboat was much faster than its balloon-carrying counterparts. It was soon upon Ange, and a woman leaned out from the deck shouting, ¡°Don¡¯t panic, I¡¯m here to rescue you.¡± Immediately after, a lifebuoy was thrown down from the boat,nding not far from Ange.N?v(el)B\\jnn The airship sped past him as if it couldn¡¯t stop. After moving some distance, it made arge U-turn, slowly reducing speed as it made its way back to Ange. It seemed as though the people on the boat had mistaken Ange for drowning and came over to rescue him. Chapter 434: 258: Why, There’s no Soil? _3 Chapter 434: Chapter 258: Why, There¡¯s no Soil? _3 Ange tilted his head, looking a bit lost, he didn¡¯t really fall into the water, there was no need for anyone to save him.
Negris advised, ¡°Why don¡¯t you y along? Lie on the lifebuoy, someone has gone out of their way to fly so far to save you, it¡¯s not nice to make them feel awkward. Take a rest on the ship, say thank you, then ask her where this ce is.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Ange jumped into the water to grab the lifeboat. The flying sailboat circled back, it reduced the sails and decelerated, the suspended height was also decreasing, and finally, the bottom of the flying sailboat touched the water surface. A hook protruded from the ship and hoisted Ange and the lifebuoy together. There were three people on the flying sailboat, two men and two women. After they had rescued Ange, a woman who looked like a young wife came up with a rough yet clean towel with an air of concern. ¡°Oh my, how did you fall into the water? Quick, dry yourself off, you don¡¯t want to catch a cold. The wind at sea is strong, there¡¯s ack of clothing and medicine, you absolutely must not catch a cold.¡± Ange took the towel that was thrust into his hands, wiping the non-existent water off his body. From the moment he was hoisted onto the ship, he performed Elemental Dispersion, leaving his bodypletely free of the Water Element. How could there be any water left on him?
However, under Negris¡¯s ¡®persuasion¡¯, he still took the towel and scrubbed a few times, then with curiosity, looked at the people on the ship, especially another woman who looked like a young girl and one of the boys because, astonishingly, Ange had met them before. ¡°The world really is too small¡­¡± In Ange¡¯s soul, Negris couldn¡¯t help but sigh.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Remember the adventurers who descended from the sky with umbres, speaking their rustic love words in the courtyard of the ck Mountain Kingdom¡¯s king? One of them was named Lily; both of those adventurers are now on this ship. Ange had met them, but they had not met Ange, so naturally there was no need for greetings. Ange¡¯s gaze turned to the side of the flying sailboat, because there was another item he was familiar with embedded there¡ªAir Bubble Stone. A handful of small Air Bubble Stones were embedded in the side of the ship. In the wind, they would form air bubbles, reducing the resistance of the flying sailboat. Could this be the reason why this flying sailboat could take off? Why were there so many Air Bubble Stones on this flying sailboat? These things are so expensive, had it not been for the silver coins he had, Ange would have had no idea where to buy them. The young wife noticed that after Ange boarded the ship he stood still, but he stared at the Air Bubble Stones. She immediately misunderstood, ¡°Are you here to mine Air Bubble Stones too? How did you fall into the water? Where is your vehicle? Don¡¯t worry, we¡¯re not far from the Floating Ind, I¡¯m Jelis, I¡¯ll take you backter. What¡¯s your name?¡± Ange did not answer, because something at the rear of the ship caught his attention, something even more eye-catching than the Air Bubble Stones that caused him, without even saying hello, to eagerly run to the rear of the ship. This was a very impolite move, others had saved him onto the ship, yet he ran around without uttering a word, not even his name. But seeing where Ange had ran to, Jelis suddenly wasn¡¯t angry anymore, because anyone who stayed here for a while would lose theirposure at the sight of the things on the ship. Jelis followed him over, with a small proud look she introduced, ¡°The ship¡¯s vegetable garden, haven¡¯t seen one, right? Haven¡¯t seen green vegetables in a long time, right? In this world, it¡¯sforting to see any green, s, it¡¯s too expensive, I can¡¯t afford to offer you any to eat.¡± Ange looked at this small piece ofnd full of colourful vegetables, and seriously asked, ¡°Why¡­ why isn¡¯t there any soil?¡±
Chapter 435: 259 Emp… Employer?_1 Chapter 435: Chapter 259 Emp¡­ Employer?_1 ¡°My sister saves a strange fellow who didn¡¯t say a single word of thanks. All he does is stare at those rotten leaves.¡± Ai Wei grumbled, her mouth twisted into a scowl.
He was the chubby adventurer who parachuted into the ck Mountain King¡¯s Court, only to get stuck on the rooftop by ident. Lily, on the other hand, had a different opinion, ¡°Not at all, he¡¯s quite handsome. Are you saying that my sister¡¯s crops are terrible? You¡¯re so dead.¡± ¡°Handsome, my ass. You need to reset your aesthetic criteria. Besides, if those aren¡¯t rotten leaves, then what are they? This cabbage she grows on the ground is as long as an arm, weighs three or four pounds. It¡¯s dry, yellow and has no taste.¡± Ai Wei retorted, getting agitated by the discussion. Lily sneered at him, ¡°I didn¡¯t see you hold back. It¡¯s always you who are eager to wolf down the most.¡± ¡°Um¡­¡± Ai Wei scratched his head, then said, ¡°If we don¡¯t eat vegetables, we will get rough skin, bad breath, bleeding gums, and easily fall sick. I eat them reluctantly.¡± While the pair bickered quietly at the front of the ship, Jelis, who was at the stern, giggled a bit but did not do much to introduce Ange further.
Though in the other ne¡¯s vast ocean, everyone was human and expected to help each other, Jelis felt a bit rmed at Ange who, without any malicious intent, managed to see through the key advantage of her vegetable patch straight away. Everyone could nt vegetables on the ship, but the ¡®soilless¡¯ technique was something she solo-researched and was quite valuable in this sea.N?v(el)B\\jnn Why was it only of value ¡®in this sea¡¯? Because the Master ne hadnd, even barrennd when tilled could produce more crops than her soilless vegetables. Soilless vegetables required frequent water changes. The sea in the master ne was salty, and fresh water was scarce. It couldn¡¯t be used for crop cultivation. Only in this freshwater sea, where freshwater was abundant and there was a strong demand for vegetables, did the idea of soilless vegetables hold any value. If they have value only in the ¡°sea,¡± it¡¯s the same as having no value. What was she hiding for? Once Jelis realized this point, she decided to exin openly, ¡°These are soilless vegetables. As long as you don¡¯t soak the stems and leaves in water, well, many nts can grow in water. Just make sure to change the water regrly. If it¡¯s foul, it could rot the vegetables. However, the vegetables grow slowly in water, and don¡¯t yield much, so we only nt them on the airship.¡± Ange crouched in front of the soilless vegetable box, observing it carefully. He showed no reaction to Jelis¡¯s exnation, nor did it seem like he heard her at all. Negris wasn¡¯t worried that Ange hadn¡¯t heard him. This guy was overly sensitive to nting matters. Usually, Ange didn¡¯t even react when Negris spoke to him. Negris understood his character, but others didn¡¯t. Hisck of reaction seemed impolite. Ange had already spoken, and Negris couldn¡¯t take his ce to respond, so he urged Ange, ¡°Show some reaction.¡± Ange tilted his head, turned to Jelis and said, ¡°Thank you.¡±
Jelis got a little annoyed. He didn¡¯t even thank her for saving him, nor did he react to her introduction of the soilless vegetables. Was he acting like a nobleman? Surprisingly, Ange suddenly turned his head and thanked her. Jelis was taken aback and quickly said, ¡°Oh, it¡¯s nothing, we are all human, we need to help each other.¡± At the same time, she came to a realization: this child was not rude but just slow on the uptake. Oh, poor kid. Ange, who had been deemed slow, was in fact keenly observing the soilless vegetables and their container. His ¡®Soul Heart¡¯ pulsed rapidly. With Jelis¡¯s exnation to guide him, he quickly figured out the key elements. The true value here was in the novelty of the method. Whether he had grasped the key elements or not, as long as someone told Ange ¡®we can also nt vegetables without soil¡¯, he would immediately deduce the specifics using contrast andparisons. That¡¯s how professional a farmer he was. Whether or not Jelis introduced him to the concept was not important, as Ange had already figured out that vegetables can be grown without soil. After he finished, Ange subconsciously reached into his pocket and started to dig. However, he remembered that the ¡®Fire of Mass Faith¡¯ was in his hand ¨C he couldn¡¯t put it into the Temple of Rest. Seeing the Holy Fire in his hand, Jelis asked in astonishment, ¡°Holy Fire? Are you a follower of the Church of Light?¡± Ange tilted his head. ¡°You look like such a dolt, never mind, do you want something to eat?¡± Jelis was annoyed. What did he mean by tilting his head, neither nodding nor shaking? However, she became a bit less cautious. In this dimension, the Church of Light was a reliable and trustworthy force she could count on. Ange shook his head.
She got even angrier when he shook his head: ¡°I see you can shake your head! Ah! You¡¯re driving me mad! Stay on your own, and do not touch my vegetables. I am off to adjust the sail.¡± Negris burst intoughter, another one has been exasperated by Ange. He loved this feeling, when everyone else annoyed with Ange, he felt content. But soon he noticed something that infuriated him ¨C Ange was munching down the Holy Fire. It would have taken the Little Ghost at least a month or two to finish the Fire of Mass Faith, but Ange finished it in two bites? Why didn¡¯t he eat it at first? Ah, he saved it for the Little Ghost. Then why did he eat it now? Ange reached into the Temple of Rest and pulled out a huge wooden barrel. Negris was furious, ¡°Kvada! You ate up the Fire of Mass Faith just to grab a wooden barrel? Are you nning to use this barrel to nt crops?¡± Chapter 436: 259 Emp… Employer?_2 Chapter 436: Chapter 259 Emp¡­ Employer?_2 Ange nodded slowly.
¡°Kvada, didn¡¯t you say it was impossible to extinguish? You¡¯re so active in gardening; why can¡¯t you put a little more effort when we get back? What will Little Ghost eat if you consume the Fire of Mass Faith?¡± Negris roared within Ange¡¯s soul. This skull lied saying it couldn¡¯t extinguish the Fire of Mass Faith while it was entirely capable. Now that there¡¯re crops to grow, it even extinguished the fire. How annoying is that. ¡°Ah~¡± Ange opened his mouth, the Fire of Mass Faith within him was burning fiercely, not extinguished, just moved to another location. Negris hesitated for a moment: ¡°If you can relocate it, then why don¡¯t you move the me and go back first?¡± ¡°Not fun,¡± Ange grumbled. ¡°Not fun? Not fun how?¡± Negris thought he had heard wrong and couldn¡¯t help repeating himself. An innocent guy like Ange speaks his mind?
Ange replied in a depressed tone: ¡°Running around, not getting time to nt, no fun.¡± Hey there! Negris¡¯s first reaction to Ange¡¯s emotional words was not anything else but excitement. This clueless skull doesn¡¯t have fun? Because it¡¯s not fun, he doesn¡¯t want to return so soon. He dodged the responsibility, said he couldn¡¯t extinguish the Fire of Mass Faith, but didn¡¯t mention he could relocate it. Is this considered a growth? Previously, Ange would pretend not to hear something undesired, but if Negris urged him, Ange would still obey.N?v(el)B\\jnn Now the good news is, he has started to avoid responsibilities. ¡°Haha, great, let¡¯s stay here, not go back, and focus on farming.¡± Ange¡¯s progress made Negris rejoice. Today he learned to avoid responsibility, the day after tomorrow he could learn to be cunning, the next day he could learn to deceive. He won¡¯t be a clueless skull much longer. Ange ced a bucket at the edge of the boat, beckoning with his hand, the water from the sea formed a cyclone, gushing into the bucket and quickly filling up. The others on the boat were stunned by Ange¡¯s actions, and Jelis urgently yelled: ¡°No, no, the flying boat will capsize.¡± As Jelis spoke, the flying boat slowly tilted. The bucket Ange brought out could contain at least about a ton of water. All four people and one skull on the boat weighed less than half of the bucket¡¯s weight, and it was ced on the edge of the flying boat. Ange moved the water-filled bucket down and put it into the Temple of Rest, and the tilted flying boat was instantly returned to its upright position.
¡°Wow! Rich folks!¡± Fat Alvi and Lily at a distance, eximing in a low voice. Jelis¡¯s expression turned stiff when she gasped. She suddenly realized that she seemed to have saved quite an important figure. He probably didn¡¯t need her help at all, and that¡¯s why he seemed impolite, as he didn¡¯t need modern manners. The ability to stuff such a huge bucket, along with the water into a storage space, indicates that Ange has arge storage space, and such a massive Space Artifact is costly. For poor adventurers like them, they could barely afford the smaller Magic Artifacts despite selling everything, and inside, the space is so small that it only fits a few Demon Crystals or gold coins. Such an artifact that could amodate a huge bucket is rare. If Ange had taken out this giant bucket earlier, it would have served as a natural buoy. He wouldn¡¯t have needed anyone to rescue him. ¡°By the way, I don¡¯t even know your name yet? We are the Moonship Mercenary Corps, under the Silver Chamber of Commerce, here to mine Air Bubble Stone.¡± Only then did Jelis remember that she didn¡¯t know how to address Ange, and subconsciously used a formal title, no longer daring to call him ¡®this kid¡¯. Silver Chamber of Commerce? Is this a coincidence? Negris couldn¡¯t help himself, and asked, ¡°Your chairman wouldn¡¯t happen to be Goblin Silver Coin, right?¡± The unexpected voice from Ange startled everyone, Jelis went into defensive mode and said, ¡°Who are you?¡± Negris hurriedly asked Ange to search, and found a ring. The ring was set with a silver coin, and a skull emerged from the silver coin. The eye sockets of the skull were iid with two sapphires. Seeing this ring, Jelis became more tense: ¡°Boss¡­Big boss? How are you here?¡± ¡°They¡¯re really Goblin Silver Coin¡¯s people? Did he give us the Air Bubble Stone that you mined?¡± Negris was inexplicably surprised.
It¡¯s one thing to run into those two kids from the ck Mountain King¡¯s Court, but they are Goblin Silver Coin¡¯s men, and Goblin Silver Coin¡¯s Air Bubble Stones were dug by them? Can everything be such a coincidence? Jelis no longer cared about the other voice from Ange, filled with the fear of bumping into the boss, she blurted out: ¡°Right, boss, we dug the Air Bubble Stones, but¡­ why are you here? Are you inspecting the work? We certainly didn¡¯t ck off. Chairman Silver Coin can prove that.¡± Who¡¯s the big boss? That¡¯s the owner of Chairman Silver Coin. The Silver Chamber of Commerce is a giant business currently, having operations in the elves¡¯nds. The Moonship under the chamber¡¯s jurisdiction is probably the lowest-level unit, even her flying ship is thepany¡¯s property. If the big boss says so, they have to swim back. A mere ring scared Jelis to the point she was shaking. Negris finally felt the power of the ¡®Silver Coin¡¯, and quickly reassured, ¡°No, we didn¡¯te here for work inspection. We¡¯re just passing by, yes, just passing by. We¡¯re very satisfied with your work, the Air Bubble Stone is handy.¡± Chapter 437: 259 Emp… Employer?_3 Chapter 437: Chapter 259 Emp¡­ Employer?_3 ¡°That¡¯s wonderful, that¡¯s wonderful. Come,e, boss please sit, please sit.¡± Jelis stopped raising the sail and enthusiastically beckoned Ange over. ¡°No need, no need, you go about your business, you don¡¯t need to cater to us.¡± Negris quickly said. As a homebody dragon, he particrly wasn¡¯t used to other people¡¯s enthusiasm, and neither was Ange. ¡°Alright, it¡¯s really time to raise the sail. If we stay in one water area for too long, those sea monsters will smell the scent ande chasing after, boss, you can take out the water bucket, it doesn¡¯t matter, an extra ton or two of weight isn¡¯t a big deal, but it should be ced in the center line to prevent tilting.¡± Jelis said with a smile. ¡°Oh.¡± Ange nodded, immediately taking the water bucket out again, cing it in the center line and fiddling with it on his own. ¡°So unfair, I can¡¯t even bring a few extra pounds aboard.¡± Fat Alvi, who was at the bow of the ship,ined quietly, but his voice was extremely low, fearing that Ange might hear him. Lily said nothing, but another young man on the boat leaned over and whispered, ¡°The airship is the consortium¡¯s property. If the airship is overloaded, I will throw you off first to reduce weight, and certainly not the boss¡¯s barrel.¡± He was in charge of the airship¡¯s maintenance, assigned to the consortium. To him, the boss¡¯smands were more efficient than Jelis¡¯s. ¡°You¡­¡± Fat Alvi was so furious he wanted to hit someone. As for Ange¡¯s carefree attitude as long as he had his vegetables, Negris couldn¡¯t bear to watch and simply chose not to, turning to Jelis to start a casual conversation: ¡°Are there sea monsters here too?¡± ¡°Of course, there are sea monster eels, a kind of creature with the head of a snake and the tail of a fish, bloodthirsty and savage, with a keen sense of smell. They can catch the scent of prey from dozens of kilometers away. If we stay in the water too long, they will chase after us. They can also control a kind ofrge sea monster, hundreds of meters long. Its destructiveness is extremely scary. A single jet of water can knock down our airship.¡± ¡°That powerful? Then we should run.¡± A hundred-meter-long sea monster sounded terrifying. Ange had just used Dragon God Transformation, and wouldn¡¯t be able to use it a second time until he had recovered.
Whether it¡¯s the Dragon God Transformation or Locke¡¯s transformation, both are actually the Druid¡¯s Ultimate Transformation Technique, sharing a recovery time. That is to say, Ange temporarily lost his ability to use his ultimate move. Jelis and the others were working hard to raise the sail. Although the sail was billowing, the flying ship moved quickly. Jelis exined, ¡°When a wind sail airship touches water, it¡¯s slow. It needs to first pick up speed. When the wings and water surface form a suitable angle, it will create a ground-effect which allows the airship to leave the surface of the water and speed up.¡± ¡°Oh~¡± Ange pretended to understand, and after responding he began to ponder: What on earth is ground-effect? Just as the airship was slowly picking up speed, a huge dorsal fin suddenly broke through the distant sea surface. A colossal creature, riding the wind and breaking the waves, slicing through the calm sea surface, rapidly approaching them. A halo behind Ange flickered and disappeared, and then he murmured, ¡°One hundred ten meters.¡± Jerika also heard the disturbance. She turned her head and began to yell in panic, ¡°God, what did I just say is here! Sea monster, huge sea monster, quick, throw something to reduce the weight. Boss, can you put away your barrel? Quickly! Throw away the soilless vats too, there¡¯s no time, if you want to survive, throw quickly!¡±n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om The young man responsible for the airship¡¯s loss instinctively looked at Alvi. Alvi didn¡¯t hesitate and clung to the mast. Ange was not pleased. He could put away the bucket, but they also wanted him to throw away the soilless vat? Wasn¡¯t it just that they couldn¡¯t fly? Chapter 438: 260: Does this Fat Guy Believe in the Goddess of Beauty?_1 Chapter 438: Chapter 260: Does this Fat Guy Believe in the Goddess of Beauty?_1 Ange stood at the stern, casting a pollen spell on the sails in front of him. What was originally a small spell of pollination turned into a jet-stream effect due to the high frequency of casting: whoosh whoosh whoosh¡­ The sails, which were already taut, caused their supporting masts to creak in protest. Everyone felt a shudder beneath their feet ¡ª the airship was elerating. Ange continued casting his spell, the pollen relentlessly assailing the sails. He had previously discovered that when a mass of whirlwinds all surge in one direction, it results in a suction-like effect, drawing in more air in the same direction. Therger the volume of wind, the greater the propelling force. The airship¡¯s masts let out agonized creaks as it continued to elerate. At a certain point, the entire ship suddenly lightened. Everyone aboard had already found something to hold onto to steady themselves. They had never experienced such swift eleration. Jelis even wondered if the mast would snap. Initially, she wanted to ask Ange to slow down, but then she remembered that he was the big boss. The trade associations were all his assets, as were the airships, so she felt she wasn¡¯t in a position to speak up. The airship suddenly lightened, leaving the water¡¯s surface. Freed from the water¡¯s drag, the speed of the airship soared, turning it into a true ¡®flying¡¯ ship. Negris extended his thoughts to survey the airflow around the wings of the airship. He soon understood. This was the ground effect. Thanks to the ground effect¡¯s vast uplift, the more than ten-meter-long airship, without an array, without a gas bag, without magic, could easily fly into the sky. But the ground effect is most potent just two or three meters above the water surface. Ground effect airships can¡¯t fly to great heights like goblin airships; they can only glide above the water¡¯s surface. Yet, this was already incredibly impressive. The speed of an airborne ship was on apletely different levelpared to vessels on water. The rate was at least seven or eight times faster, if not more than ten times. As soon as it left the water surface, the airship¡¯s speed skyrocketed.
However, Ange did not stop. He stretched both hands forward, casting small whirlwinds in session, inducing a constant surge of air to sweep forward. Jelis felt as if she were sailing in a typhoon. The wind whipped her face so ferociously that she couldn¡¯t open her eyes. She couldn¡¯t help but shout to Ange: ¡°Slow down! Boss, slow down!¡± The wind was blowing from the back to the front. Ange was upwind, so he couldn¡¯t hear what Jelis shouted. But he saw her mouth moving as if she were yelling something. There were sea monsters behind them, so they should be afraid of being overtaken. They must want to go faster. Ange nodded, extending his other hand as well. Casting with both hands, double the magic, double the wind force, double the thrill. ¡°Ah! Help!¡± It wasn¡¯t just Jelis who was screaming. Everyone onboard was shrieking in terror. Snake Fish Man Gluglu and his tribe were hanging onto the Sea God. Their palms were equipped with suction cups, enabling them to stick to smooth surfaces such as rocks, the bottom of ships, and the skins ofrge marine creatures. Gluglu¡¯s head would periodically emerge from the water only to be submerged again with the flow of the Sea God. Each time its head broke the surface, it could see the panicking airship in the distance. ¡°Gluglu, gluglu, the creations of humans are so valuable. Robbery is such good luck. The Sea God has blessed us with a feast to take home!¡± In the past, there were no humans in this realm. It wasn¡¯t until more than two hundred years ago that stories about humans began to appear in the legends of the Gluglu Tribe. These humans were stationed on sandbars where the Sea God couldn¡¯t venture into, but the humans¡¯ airships could. The world was vast above and beneath the water. Humans mainly lived on the water surface, while Snake Fish Men lived underwater, causing little disturbance to each other. However, should they chance upon each other, the Snake Fish Men wouldn¡¯t mind tasting something different. Furthermore, themodities made by humans are very valuable in the underwater world. Their smooth, fitting clothing is morefortable than the fish skin outfits of Snake Fish Men. Their weapons are sharper than their ws and teeth. Even the wood used in human airships is more regr than underwater vegetation. Therefore, humanmodities are very popr in the underwater world. Being able to pige an airship implies that even the ¡®toilet¡¯ that humans specifically use for excretion could be sold at a high price. ¡°I really don¡¯t understand what¡¯s wrong with these humans. Why do they have a proper ce for shitting? Isn¡¯t it easy just to poop into the sea? What a waste.¡± Gluglu muttered to himself and dove underwater again with the sea monster. By the time he surfaced again, the airship had disappeared. ¡°Human¡­where did they go?¡± Gluglu dazedly spent a long while in the same spot, his spirits only being reimed by the setting sun. Dozens of kilometers away, Ange finally stopped his magic when the airship¡¯s mast was about to snap. Fast enough, the airship dropped to a normal speed, swaying gently in the ongoing journey. Jelis and the others, their hair disheveled and their eyes vacant, stood up, their legs still trembling. No matter who you were, after riding an airship at breakneck speed for dozens of kilometers, you would share the same expression and only recover after quite some time. Jelis, who had been piloting airships for quite some time, had probably never imagined that one could ride an airship until their legs went weak.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om
¡­ When Jelis and the others recovered, they took control of the airship to fly towardsnding ground. Soon, arge patch of white inds appeared on the horizon. Each ind was a white pile of sand, rising above the water surface. Large and small, they dotted the calm sea area, probably numbering in the tens of thousands. Each ind was bare, devoid of any life or vegetation. asional wild grass was found on a few inds but most of the growths were malnourished.
Chapter 439: 260: Does this Fat Man Believe in the Goddess of Beauty? _2 Chapter 439: Chapter 260: Does this Fat Man Believe in the Goddess of Beauty? _2 There are shallow waterways between the inds. Small boats can dock here, and airships can fly in, butrge sea creatures over one hundred meters long, like the one we saw earlier, cannot enter these waters. As the airship ventured deeper, more unnatural objects began to appear. Some inds had tents, small wooden houses, or shanties, and others hadrge fish bones and such. Jelis began making introductions while they were flying, ¡°This is our base¡ªthe Myriad Isles Sandbank. Some say there are thousands of sandbanks here, but no one has bothered to count. No one is that idle.¡± ¡°Most of the sandbanks are barren. People tend to gather on the most abundant sandbank, which is the Light Sandbank. That¡¯s where they go to buy and sell goods.¡± Negris¡¯s voice emanated from Ange, ¡°Judging by the name, I¡¯m guessing this is the Church of Light¡¯s territory? What¡¯s their influence like here?¡± Jelis, who had gotten used to Negris¡¯s presence by now, and knew who he was, replied respectfully. This was Lord Nage, the man the Chairman Silver Coin respectfully referred to as the ¡®second boss¡¯, and a superior whom she couldn¡¯t reach even if she were promoted several more ranks. ¡°Correct. Boss, you¡¯re quite sharp. Indeed, the Church of Light manages thend there. As for their influence? Let¡¯s just say, they handle the minor stuff, and nobody pays attention to them for major stuff.¡± Jelis answered, currying favor earnestly. ¡°Oh? How so? Are there ces where they¡¯re present and still get ignored?¡± Negris asked curiously. Considering the Church of Light¡¯s propensity to dominate wherever they are, unbelievable as it sounds, whoever controls this area would surely be visited by the Church¡¯s Priest of Divine Light the next day for proselytizing, and then asked for donations once they have been converted, effectively a religious tax. If you refuse to join the church, you would be deemed a heretic. Then, the pdins and divine knights woulde knocking on your door preaching the doctrine. If they fail, thene the bishop, and angels spirits, they¡¯d preach until you join their faith. Jelis continued indifferently, ¡°This ce is full of adventurers. Nobody cares about such nuisances. If pushed to the verge, they kill them and then hide on a sandbank or return to the Master ne. They wait for things to die down before they venture out again. The numbers of the Church of Light here are limited, so they generally avoid causing public outrage.¡±
¡°However, having them around does garner some face-saving respect. In the event of disputes, people often go to them for mediation. Commodities and money transactions also take ce on their territory where it¡¯s safer, and then they take a transaction tax of sorts.¡± Having heard what she had to say, Negris paused for a moment. This setup seemed strangely familiar. The same situation was present in Resting Abyss back in the day. Back when the world¡¯s transit station was still active, undead creatures wielded the most power in the Resting Abyss. However, the undead didn¡¯t bother much with affairs unless they involved murders and robberies disrupting the trade route. When it came to sentient creatures, most disputes were trivial matters like theft, fights, affairs with others¡¯ partners, and so forth. As for such matters, typically people didn¡¯t want to go to the undead for arbitration. Their punishment often tended to be severe¡ªthey would kill, soul search, or cast you into the Soul Prison. That¡¯s when the Church of Light stepped in to fill the void. Back then, Lisa had the role of spreading faith in the Light, ensuring justice, and resolving disputes. It was simr to how imperial envoys were sent by different empires, with the difference being they had more trivial matters to deal with. In this ne, it seems that this situation has arisen because the Church of Light¡¯s power can¡¯t prate deeply. Upon figuring out the pattern, Negris quickly moved onto his next question, ¡°This ce is full of adventurers. What attracts all these adventurers here? Judging by therge number of Air Bubble Stones on your ship, could it be that you mine them here?¡± ¡°Yes, here, we have Air Bubble Stones, as well as sand gold, seafood, fish skins, and some special Crystal Stones found inside some sea beasts. Even one or two of these can make you wealthy, hence attracting a lot of adventurers.¡± answered Jelis. Negris was somewhat surprised. He had thought that Air Bubble Stones were produced only in nes where the Wind Element was particrly active, but he never thought it would be a water world. However, upon further thought, it made perfect sense. Even the most fierce Wind Element wouldn¡¯tpare to the density of water. If some ces exhibited particrly active Water Element, it would stimte the creation of such peculiar materials. ¡°What about you guys? Did youe to this ne because you wanted to strike it rich?¡± Negris asked. ¡°No!¡± Jelis dered proudly, ¡°We¡¯re not just anyone; we¡¯re members of the Silver Chamber of Commerce and belong to the Moonship Mercenary Corps. We have stable jobs with good benefits, even including five types of social insurance and a housing fund. My apologies, boss, this is what I say when I¡¯m recruiting.¡± ¡°Recruiting? So how many people are in your Moonship Mercenary Corps now?¡± Negris asked. Jelis awkwardly scratched her nose: ¡°Th¡­Three.¡± ¡°Three? Then he¡­¡±Negris cast a questioning thought over the four people on the ship, before finally settling on the damage control boy. The damage control boy seemed to sense Negris¡¯s gaze. He immediately straightened his posture and replied loudly, ¡°Reporting to you, sir, I am Mark, the airship¡¯s damage control officer and I belong to the Chamber of Commerce, not a part of the Moonship. I am responsible for managing and protecting the Chamber¡¯s assets, preventing intentional damage, and in dangerous times, I am to toss the troublesome fat guy overboard.¡± Fat Alvi turned red in the face, ring at Mark furiously. But due to the presence of Ange and Negris, he dared not explode. Negris was confused, his thoughts rotating among Mark, Alvi, and Lily who was murmuring reassurances. What caused this sudden dispute among them?
However, as long as they weren¡¯t physically fighting, Negris wouldn¡¯t intervene. He continued to ask, ¡°How many people does the Chamber of Commerce have here? When did silver coin send you over? Are you married and have children? How¡¯s the treatment? And the meals? Do you get days off? How are bonuses distributed? Do you have any dissatisfaction? Speak up, I¡¯m here to solve problems.¡± An absolutergendlord visiting the farmers in the field to express constion. The airship slowly moved forward. Arge sand bank appeared in front, unlike other bare sand banks, this one had a lot of trees, coconut trees, palms and other nts that can grow in sandy soil. Ange even spotted some malnourished date palms. Ange believed that the trees were malnourished, because he wasparing them to those found in the Oasis desert. Fat Alvi and Lily didn¡¯t share this opinion. When passing by a date palm, the glow in Fat Alvi¡¯s eyes was about to burst out, mumbling,¡±I really want to taste the dates. Compared to those rotten vegetable leaves, the dates are like a divine gift from the Goddess of Beauty!¡±
Alvi¡¯s words were said with a dedication, causing a soul¡¯s me to float towards the ¡®Goddess.¡¯ Who would¡¯ve thought that this fatty was indeed a devotee of the Goddess of Beauty? Ange epted the soul me and tossed a full date over to him. Fat Alvi clumsily caught the date and stared at it, then at Ange, and then at the shriveled fruits on the date-palm tree by the shore. He hesitated, swallowing his saliva.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om He quietly retreated a few steps back and whispered to Lily and Mark who had gathered around him,¡±What did the boss mean? Is it a reward for me? Why don¡¯t you guys have any?¡± Lily licked her lips, saying, ¡°The boss probably thought you were too embarrassing, even getting envious over those broken dates, so he rewarded you with a big one to let you broaden your horizons.¡± ¡°Hehe, if that¡¯s the case, I won¡¯t mind making a fool of myself a few more times.¡± After a silly giggle, he opened his mouth to bite the date, only to be met with two pairs of angry eyes. To avoid being beaten to death, Alvi split the date into four parts in sorrow. Everyone took a bite, and the airship immediately became filled with exims such as ¡®Delicious!¡¯ ¡®So yummy!¡¯ ¡®The dates I had before were just shit!¡¯. Just then, the airship suddenly jolted as if it had been hit by something. The water canal was wide, and there weren¡¯t many ships, so it was hard to collide without doing it deliberately. Since arriving here, Jelis hadn¡¯t paid much attention, she didn¡¯t expect to be hit in the midsection of the airship by someone now. The thing that hit the airship was a small rowing boat. The impact wasn¡¯t significant, and the airship wasn¡¯t damaged, but the people on the boat started yelling, ¡°Do you even know how to operate a ship? You can even crash in such a wide waterway? My big brother fell into the water and choked! You betterpensate us!¡± Negris was shocked, ¡°He hit you, yet he expects you to pay? Is he trying to swindle you?¡± With a grey face, Jelis gritted her teeth and said, ¡°Them again, do they really think I¡¯m so easy to bully?¡±
Chapter 440: 261: God of Farming?_1 Chapter 440: Chapter 261: God of Farming?_1 Jelis had a belly-full ofints and grievances to express, but before she could, she saw Ange walk to the edge of the ship, asking, ¡°What is extortion? Is it a sin?¡± The three adventurers on the small boat were stunned. They remembered this airship being used by a female adventurer with three children, so how had the crew changed? Moreover, Ange¡¯s question gave them a bad premonition. Who asks whether something is a sin upon meeting? This kind of tactic was reminiscent of the Church of Light. The lead adventurer hurriedly shook his head, ¡°We did not extort anyone; don¡¯t make false usations.¡± However, Ange responded, ¡°You lied, you are sinful.¡± Three chains of light suddenly appeared, binding them tightly. ¡®Extortion¡¯ was a term Ange didn¡¯t quite understand, but lying was definitely a sin. The three adventurers were shackled to the boat by the chains of light. They swallowed enough water to near drowning before the chains disappeared. Surviving the ordeal, they didn¡¯t dare say another word and quickly slunk away. Those who witnessed this scene on the river didn¡¯t dare to utter a word; they all pretended they hadn¡¯t seen anything. Were those the Original Sin Shackles? A cleric of such high rank hasn¡¯t appeared on this sandbar for decades. ¡°Um¡­¡± It wasn¡¯t until the three adventurers were out of sight that Jelis reacted, had her troubles been solved? She had been worrying about what to do. While these small-time extortionists weren¡¯t very strong, they were like sticky bullfrogs ¨C never causing harm but always proving annoying. They had an annoying habit of sticking to you, bing a major nuisance.
So, in order to avoid trouble, Jelis hadpensated them thest time they tried to extort her. But she hadn¡¯t expected this to encourage them, leading to a second extortion attempt so soon after the first. Ange had punished them using sacred means, the three had no choice but to leave. They were now branded as sinners. The people from the Church of Light would undoubtedly seek them out for a heart-to-heart discussion, until they had been talked into oblivion. Purifying a person of their sins was considered a great achievement. Ange had effortlessly resolved the issue that had greatly troubled Jelis. To Ange, this issue wasn¡¯t a problem at all. Jelis saw that the dockside was up, she quickly resupply and sorted her haul, before raising the sails and departing. Not much time had passed before a cleric rushed to the scene, stamping his foot in regret, ¡°Oh no, I came toote! Why was the Lord in such a hurry, he didn¡¯t even eat a bite before leaving?¡± What he regretted was not the meal but the opportunity to host a distinguished guest. ¡°Find out whose airship that was? Why would the Lord be on that airship?¡± The cleric quietlymanded his subordinates. It didn¡¯t take long for the servants to return with the information: ¡°It¡¯s an adventuring team called the ¡®Moon Ship.¡¯ The captain¡¯s name is Jelis.¡± While Jelis was posing as a Mercenary Group, with their scale they could only be registered as an adventuring team in the Mercenary Guild ¨C and a ¡®small¡¯ one at that. The cleric pondered, what value could an unremarkable small adventuring team have that it managed to attract the attention of such an influential figure who could wield the Original Sin Shackles? The cleric signalled his subordinates to move closer and quietly asked, ¡°Is this Jelis person pretty?¡± The subordinates quickly nodded, ¡°She should be, the way those people talked about her, their eyes weren¡¯t quite right.¡± The cleric suddenly realized, then quickly instructed his subordinates, ¡°Let¡¯s pretend we know nothing. From now on, show more respect to Miss Jelis and take extra care of her.¡± The subordinates all agreed promptly. The cleric, gazing at the distant scattered sandbars, muttered thoughtfully, ¡°These big shots do have a lot of interests, sailing on the sea, swaying with the wind?¡± Unaware that he was being mistaken as a big shot with an outside mistress, Ange was on his ¡®mistress¡± airship, heading back to the secret base of the Moon Ship. The range of these sandbars was vast, and their numbers many. After the small airship entered the water channel, it would be blocked by sandbars from all sides. Unless one entered the water channel, it was impossible to spot any human activity here. You could pick any ce that was concealed, yet essible from all sides, away from the main water channel to serve as a secret base. Jelis carved out a few dens here to store some supplies, and collected Air Bubble Stones and Dragon Saliva Incense. When she had a considerable amount, she would send it back to the Master ne.
The money she earned, of course, was kept in her Space Artifact.N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°We usually sleep on the ship. This ce is mainly used for storage. We have Air Bubble Stones, Dragon Saliva Incense, fish skins, etc. There¡¯s also a small Teleportation Array. But it¡¯s quite small, it can only transport small items. I usually save up enough Air Bubble Stones, then use the teleportation array to send them back. And the rest, like the fish skins and the Dragon Saliva incense, are sent back via the Church¡¯s teleportation arrays.¡± Jelis was enthusiastically exining her aplishments to Ange. Unfortunately, it was quite awkward, as Ange wasn¡¯t listening at all. Instead, he was examining a sandbar on the opposite side. It was a crescent-shaped sandbar. The middle part was submerged below the surface of the water, forming ake. The Crescent Sandbar encircled theke, leaving only a small mouth connected to the outer sea.
¡°Does the sandbar over there have an owner?¡± Ange suddenly asked. ¡°Huh? An owner? I don¡¯t think so. Ownership goes to whoever seizes it. No one oversees this,¡± Jelis replied. ¡°Oh, then it¡¯s mine.¡± Ange pointed at the sandbar across and stated seriously. When Ange inquired about the owner of the sandbar across, Negris had an ominous premonition. Indeed, even without asking, Negris knew exactly what Ange intended to do with it. Chapter 441: 261 God of Farming? _2 Chapter 441: Chapter 261 God of Farming? _2 ¡°This is a sand bar, all sand and not a single tuft of grass. Even if you im it, you won¡¯t be able to grow anything on it,¡± Negris said. ¡°I can,¡± Ange replied. Fine, then. Negris sealed his lips. At present, whenever the topic of cultivation came up, if Ange opined that something was possible, Negris wouldn¡¯t dare challenge him. As the God of Knowledge, he was no match for Ange in the realm of farming, lest he ended up feeling foolish. Gentle Wind carried Ange across to the opposite sandbank that was connected to the saltwaterke. With a few spells cast by Ange, piles of rubble transformed into a wall, blocking the gap. ¡°Closing the gap like that, what are you nning to do? You are not seriously thinking of turning thiske into a giant vat for soilless cultivation, are you?¡± Negris saw through Ange¡¯s intention at once. Ange nodded in acknowledgment. ¡°Tell me, how can you nt crops on the water surface, ensuring only their roots dangle in the water? Are you nning to build tforms across theke?¡± Negris queried. This skeleton was bing more audacious. He just found out that crops could grow without soil, and now he wanted to cultivate an entireke? Didn¡¯t he notice that Jelis¡¯s nting boxes all had covers? That was to support the stems and leaves. Ange extracted a fruit. ¡°Rubber Explosion Fruit? Did you steal Gaur¡¯s fruits?¡± eximed Negris, who promptly flew to inspect his own farm. Indeed, numerous Rubber Explosion Fruits were now grafted onto the World Tree. Ange shook his head. Even more ruthless than stealing fruits, he had plucked a bud from Tree Man Gaur and grafted it onto the World Tree. In the past, he had attempted to graft Elf Beans but was unsessful. However, grafting the exploding fruit proved highly sessful.
Negris watched with bewilderment as Ange went about picking the Rubber Explosion Fruits, digging a hole in the sand, filling it with water, squeezing the tree sap out of the exploding fruits and stirring it vigorously. Rapidly, the tree sap solidified into gel-like blobs resembling jelly. Ange repeated the process, digging about twenty simr holes, pouring in the same volume of water, but the amount of tree sap added varied, ranging from less to more. Once gel had formed in all the holes, Ange dug them out and threw them into theke. The blobs of gel were of simr sizes, but their weights differed. Some were heavy and sunk under the water, while the lighter ones floated on the surface. In ordance with the proportion of the gel that floated, Ange created a batch of simr gel. He then cut them into thin bs about two fingers thick, and punched holes in them. He took samples of various crops from the Resting Camp¡¯s farm, threaded the roots through the holes in the bs, and threw them onto theke surface. The gel bs floated on the water surface with the roots naturally dangling into the water through the holes. ¡°Kvada, that works?¡± Negris was bewildered. ¡°Didn¡¯t you just find out about soilless crops? Howe you are already so proficient?¡± Ange casually responded: ¡°Simted Magic Formation.¡± Negris flew out of the farm to the location of the Simted Magic Formation and indeed, the Formation had already simted plots of floating farnd. Apparently Ange had been quietly experimenting numerous times in the Simted Magic Formation. Negris was bbergasted: ¡°If only you were as professional in other fields as you are in farming, things would be great.¡± The sky gradually darkened, perhaps because Ange was present, Jelis and the others slept very soundly. Normally, they would take turns to keep watch. When they woke the next day, they were shocked by the sight of crops across the sandbar. In just a single night, the previously bareke was now home to rows of crops floating on the water. There were Magic Rice, vegetables, and various other crops. Ange virtually had transnted a sampling of each type of crop being grown on the farm here, as he was unsure which crops were suitable for soilless cultivation. As such, he had no choice but to give everything a shot. Sight of this woke everyone up instantly. Without even washing their faces first, they promptly dove into the water and swam over. ¡°Heavens, it¡¯s a miracle! Sir, how did you do it? How did you do it?¡± Upon reaching Moon Bud Ind, Jelis¡ªignoring her dress clinging to her, outlining her curves¡ªswam directly to Ange, anxiously seeking his exnation. Having tried soilless cultivation herself, she was no stranger to the technology and understood the challenges involved. Even disregarding theplexity, how was it possible to grow the crops sorge overnight? What magic did the lord employ? Ange was busy adjusting something called Insect Ash Liquid. After a single night¡¯s experimentation, he discovered a few major difficulties associated with soilless cultivation. The first being, ack of nutrients in the water.
The purer the water, the lower the nutrient content, rendering it unsuitable for crop growth. Hence, even aquatic nts were scarce in ces where the water was clean. nts simply won¡¯t grow when given clean water. However, if the water contains many impurities, there are nutrients, but the water easily bes spoiled and leads to root rot. How can the water be nutrient-rich but not spoiled?
Ange cast a Purification spell throughout theke all night, and now the entireke is filled with Holy Water. The water is clean, but where will the nutrientse from? Ange came up with an idea: Insect Ash Liquid. In the right proportions, this would be the best water fertilizer in the world. When the sun rose and shone on theke, Ange poured Insect Ash Liquid into the water. He drove Jelis and others far away, then stepped on the bank of theke. A miracle unfolded before the eyes of Jelis and the others. A variety of crops in theke began to surge, grow, bloom, fruit, and wither. Ange didn¡¯t stop the Instant Death Halo because he was conducting an experiment. He needed to select the most suitable crops for water nting and record the growth cycle and yield of all crops in soilless conditions. It¡¯s easy to calcte the growth cycle, but how do you calcte the yield? Does he need to pick the fruit and weigh it? No, the Ring of Bnce appeared on Ange¡¯s back and the weight and volume of the crops on the nts emerged before his eyes. ¡°Kvada, you¡¯re wasting your skills not being the God of Farming,¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help butin. As soon as his words fell, a Fire of Mass Faith appeared in front of Ange. ¡°¡­You¡¯re telling me this is the faith me of the God of Farming?¡± Negris asked, stunned. Ange nodded after absorbing it: ¡°Yes.¡± ¡°I¡­ignited your faith me as the God of Farming?¡± Negris murmured. Ange nodded: ¡°Yes.¡±
Stunned, Negris said, ¡°So now, you have the Undead Godhood, as well as the Fires of Mass Faith of the Goddess of Beauty and the God of Farming, right?¡± ¡°There¡¯s also the God of Knowledge,¡± Ange added. ¡°Why can you do this?!!!¡± Negris was so jealous that he almost went mad. Kvada, how could his casual remark ignite Ange¡¯s faith me? Indeed, from the Fire of Mass Faith to Godhood, many steps are required, such as lighting the Divine Fire, consolidating the godhood, propagating faith, solidifying one¡¯s divine position. Each stage could fail. However, the Fire of Mass Faith is the first step of it all. Ange tilted his head, unwilling to bother with it. He had enough of these godhoods and mass faith mes. One more or less did not seem to make any difference. On the contrary, he was more interested in the crops on theke. After this experiment, Ange found that Magic Rice and beets were the most suitable for soilless cultivation. And so, Ange happily began nting on the ind. In no time, he filled the entireke. He dragged the gel boards to the water outside and did not elerate the process, allowing them to grow naturally.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Because the outside waterway¡¯s water is running, the poured Insect Ash Liquid is quickly diluted and washed away. Eventually, Ange thought of a solution, to pour Insect Ash Liquid when making gel boards. In this way, the Insect Ash Liquid and the gel board will bebined into one, and when soaked in water, they will slowly release nutrients. More and more gel boards filled up the waterways between the sands, constantly expanding outwards. If someone were to fly over thiske, they would definitely think it was andmass because the waterways had been covered up and were no longer visible. Following the waterways and continuously nting with every passing day, nting enough to fill four months¡¯ time. How many acres he didn¡¯t know, but at least the initial Magic Rice and beets were ready for harvest. As he was happily growing his crops, the Master ne had plunged into chaos.
¡°My lord, my lord, please help me, I need a hundred thousand tons of grains in aid, I am willing to exchange them for people.¡± Anthony said urgently when he connected spiritually with Ange. Chapter 442: 262 Plane Right Certificate_1 Chapter 442: Chapter 262 ne Right Certificate_1 Anthony has been stressed outtely, to the point of losing clumps of hair. He was ready to wash his hands of it all and die, believing being one of the Undead would be much morefortable than being the Acting Pope. Despite a political career that stretched back a thousand years, passionate supporters, countless people who trusted him, Anthony still could not resolve the present issue ¨C famine. The Master ne was troubled by famine. ¡°The Master ne has always been tormented by famine, with minor outbreaks every year and major ones every five years. Epidemics re up asionally,¡± said Anthony with a grimace. ¡°Some noblendlords levy harsh taxes, leading to asional small-scale rebellions.¡± This wasn¡¯t asmon under Anthony¡¯s rule, but it was frequent in the Western District, which could exin their stagnant poption growth. Anthony¡¯s rule also experienced famine, but he would allocate, transfer, redeem, tax cut, lend, install payments, or even renege to redirect the umted wealth from the noblendlords to the victims or bankrupt farmers in ways that would not upset the overall bnce. If they can¡¯t pay back next year, they can take installments. If they still can¡¯t pay it back, they can reduce some taxes. If repayment is still impossible, policies could be adjusted. As long as people are alive, there is always a way to survive. However, all thesepromises were based on one prerequisite: there must be food. ¡°Thendlords are out of surplus now. Even if I seize their properties, I won¡¯t get much grain. Moreover¡­¡± Anthony said bitterly. A more troublesome issue was restraining him from using some brutal means such as plundering¡­ The Eastern Diocese had dered independence. They now referred to themselves as the Holy Church, and he was the Acting Pope. To convince the noblendlords to side with him, Anthony had made manypromises and concessions behind the scenes. Otherwise, despite his centuries-long secret plotting, few would take risks with him.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om
Essentially, Anthony¡¯s actions were a rebellion. If he failed, it was highly likely he would be beheaded. Without significant benefit, who would follow him? However, most of what he conceded were religious benefits. But at the same time, he couldn¡¯t resort to crude measures; otherwise, the whole Eastern Diocese would be in chaos. ¡°If I dare seize one family¡¯s property, others would definitely rebel. Everyone would think: Is Anthony going back on his word after he¡¯s secured his own needs?¡± ¡°Not only can I not seize property, but I also have to turn a blind eye to those hoarding resources. It¡¯s truly infuriating, isn¡¯t it?¡± Negris agreed, ¡°Indeed, it is. Especially since you¡¯ve spoken at length and the main person involved isn¡¯t even listening.¡± he pointed at Ange who, after pulling them into the Consciousness Space, was now distracted by farming. Anthony sighed, ¡°I¡¯m used to it. Lord Ange respects your opinions, just as he does with you, Lord of Knowledge.¡± This ttery was perfectly executed, making Negris¡¯ mood lift. However, after this lift, she began to scratch her head: ¡°But you are asking for too much, a hundred thousand tons, two hundred million pounds! If we eat sparingly, that¡¯s enough to feed millions.¡± ¡°Yes, but that is the size of the food shortage. This year started with a drought, then a hurricane, followed by a locust gue. The crops of the ck Mountain Kingdom were ruined and their refugees have flooded into the Eastern Diocese. The good harvests in the past few years led to an increase in childbirth. The poption in the Eastern Diocese has been surging for years now, and the burden bes heftier and heftier.¡± Anthony said distressed. In eras of poor transportation and low productivity, the poption is not always a wealth, but a burden. Take for example a popce of five thousand facing disaster. Transporting relief supplies to them is easy, even through wildnds. But if the disaster area increases to fifty thousand people, the difficulty of aid increases not tenfold, but perhaps fifty or a hundred-fold. The wilderness can¡¯t sustain such mass transportation. Roads need to be built, and those transporting goods need food and shelter. Most goods would be consumed on the journey; having 10% to 20% of them arrive would be considered a sess. So, the management difficulty of a nation with a poption of millions,pared to tens of millions, doesn¡¯t increase tenfold, but several dozen or a hundred times. In an era of low productivity, an excess of poption often signals the start of an empire¡¯s downfall. It is not until the industrial age that the advantage of poption could be transformed into productivity through education. Anthony was tasting the bitterness of overpoption. Now he was begging Ange for help, needing a hundred thousand tons. When he rescued the ck Mountain Kingdom previously, he only needed a thousand tons. However, this was a basic requirement. In his estimation, one hundred thousand tons was the minimum to get through this year¡¯s famine. If managed well, it might depress grain prices and force some of the hoarding nobles and crooked merchants to release some of their stock. But he held out little hope, Anthony had a rough idea of Ange¡¯s resources since he was part of the innermost circle, so Ange didn¡¯t feel the need to hide anything from him. The Resting Camp¡¯s farm, the two underground cities in the Resting Abyss, plus the two World Tree Protection Grove Farms along with the Hope Oasis and Fallen Dragon Lake. Of these, the grain yield of Fallen Dragon Lake should be the highest. But at the same time, it also had the highest poption, so how much grain could actually be spared was uncertain.
Chapter 443: 262 Plane Right Certificate_2 Chapter 443: Chapter 262 ne Right Certificate_2 Even if they have scoured these areas, it would not be possible to scrape together one hundred thousand tons of grain. Plus, the people in these areas need to eat, too. However, there¡¯s a need to address the dire situation. They can¡¯t just stand by and watch so many people die. If the famine is not controlled, at least a few million people in the Eastern Diocese will die. If you add the gue, tens of millions of people might die in theing months, and it would inevitably lead to unrest. Anthony had seen this happen many times in the past thousand years. In eras of insufficient productivity, poption was regted this way. What¡¯s different this time is that Anthony found himself able to struggle. After all, the Undead God was there. If not one hundred thousand tons, then fifty thousand would do. Even thirty thousand tons would not be impossible. Even if it¡¯s just ten thousand tons, it could save some people, right? ¡°Just get to the point. Don¡¯t exin anything else; Lord Ange doesn¡¯t care to hear it. Just say what you will offer in exchange for one hundred thousand tons of grain,¡± Negris advised Anthony. Anthony found this advice to be sound, gave Negris a thumbs-up in appreciation, and then turned to Ange, ¡°My Lord, I request your support of one hundred thousand tons of grain. I¡¯m willing to offer one hundred thousand people in exchange.¡± Negris, who had just given Anthony advice, exploded upon hearing this, ¡°Anthony, you¡¯re shameless. Not only do you want grain, but you also want to dump the disaster-stricken popce on us? How can you be so two-faced?¡± Anthony nonchntly replied, ¡°Lord Nage, you misunderstand. How could people be a burden? Among these hundred thousand people are craftsmen, farmers, young and strong men, women, and so on. They could perfectly make up for theck of poption under yourmand. Even if they breed naturally, it would take another five hundred years to fill the Resting Abyss.¡± ¡°Why would we want to fill the Resting Abyss?¡± Negris asked, confused. ¡°Where there are people, there is faith. If the Undead Temple has tens of millions of believers, my Lord could be a being like His Majesty. Perhaps that could unseal you,¡± Anthony replied.
Negris wasn¡¯t convinced by Anthony¡¯s arguments at first and sneered dismissively, forcing Anthony to switch tactics at thest moment. ¡°Unseal? The seal on the Bronze Book?¡± Negris asked in a despondent tone. Anthony fell silent. Negris had almost forgotten he was still in a sealed state. Being projected onto a dragon embryo every day, other than ack of physical sensation, seemed to have no effect on his emotional life; his rtionship with Naeli was getting better and better. The only problem was that Naeli was growingrger in size and often broke his bones. Although it wasn¡¯t painful, it was still very troublesome. ¡°Yes, don¡¯t you yearn for freedom?¡± Anthony asked. Negris took a deep breath, spat out words angrily in Anthony¡¯s face: ¡°I desire to be free of your nonsense! I¡¯m already far too old! Are you hoping I die when the seal is removed? What does freedom matter if I have no life left! If you want me dead just say so, let my great-grandson smother you!¡± ¡°No, no, no, Lord Nage. I meant, don¡¯t you want to unseal the Bronze Book? Not your seal, but the book¡¯s seal. It¡¯s a divine book, don¡¯t you want to wield it as a weapon? It¡¯s very powerful.¡± Anthony shielded his face from Negris¡¯s spit as they spoke in Ange¡¯s consciousness space. Although their images were virtual, it was still disgusting. Usually, when Anthony saw ingredients like dragon saliva in magic potions, he would refuse to consume them. Dragon saliva is just dragon spit, isn¡¯t it? How filthy. ¡°The book¡¯s seal?¡± Negris was stunned. ¡°Yes, the book¡¯s seal. The seal on the Bronze Book.¡± ¡°What can be done after it¡¯s unsealed?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Smash people with it. I don¡¯t know anything else, but if it can seal you, it should be able to seal weaker gods, right?¡± Anthony responded. Negris could not help but frown in contemtion, ¡°Are there gods weaker than me?¡± However, Negris quickly snapped back, ¡°Almost got tricked by you, Kobold. We¡¯re discussing your proposal of trading grain for people. You¡¯re not only trying to get rid of the burden but also get grain in return. No deal. Ange¡¯s grain does not grow on water!¡± Anthony shrugged, ¡°Then I¡¯ll have to buy it with money. How about two hundred thousand demon crystals?¡± ¡°Pfft, that¡¯s not even worth as much as one hundred thousand people. Are you trying to rip me off?¡± Negris replied. ¡°My lord, after all this is just grains, how much are you expecting to sell it for?¡± Anthony was also at a loss for words. Indeed, although grains are crucial, their prices are not high. Initially, Ice City purchased grains from the Master ne at merely one demon crystal per tonne. Anthony guessed the grains to be purchased are from Fallen Dragon Lake, and not across dimensions. Being able to offer two demon crystals is already a high price, at least five times the usual price of grains.
Items that do not involve gods and magic, and can be mass-produced, essentials needed by ordinary citizens, are certainly not expensive. Yet Negris obviously sees this transaction as insignificant, thinking it¡¯s not even worth a poption of a hundred thousand. ¡°How about a hundred thousand people plus two hundred thousand demon crystals then? If you¡¯re not satisfied with this price, then you¡¯re simply exploiting me.¡± Anthony muttered under his breath. ¡°Bah!¡± Faced with Anthony¡¯s attempts to y innocent even after gaining an advantage, Negris could only protest: ¡°I don¡¯t care anymore, ask Ange. I don¡¯t even know if he can provide a hundred thousand tonnes of grain.¡±
Anthony turned to Ange and said, ¡°My lord, I hope to purchase a hundred thousand tonnes of grain with a hundred thousand people and two hundred thousand demon crystals. Is that alright?¡± Ange tilted his head, soared directly into the air, and the Ring of Bnce appeared around him. He pointed to a piece of waterless magic rice in the waterway, saying: ¡°Seven thousand tonnes.¡± He then flew to another area, pointed to that region, and said: ¡°Fifteen thousand tonnes.¡± Flying and pointing along the way, tallying up the amounts, it quickly added to seventy-five thousand tonnes. Anthony was already stunned. How long has Ange been in this ne? How did he manage to cultivate so much grain? And they¡¯re even cultivated on the water surface? That¡¯s too miraculous, isn¡¯t it? The figure of 75,000 tonnes has already far exceeded his expectations. When Ange flew to a rice field that was not yet mature, Anthony hurriedly said: ¡°That¡¯s about enough, a little less is also fine, a little less is also fine.¡±n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Ange ignored him,nded directly on a floating gel board, stomped his footprints hard, and the rice field grew quickly, blooming, bearing fruit, maturing. Following the same process several times, Ange pointed to thest floating gel board and said: ¡°One hundred thousand tonnes.¡± Anthony¡¯s weary face turned into a mix of pain and joy. His joy stemmed from the resolution of the most headache-inducing problem, but the agony was, with so much grain, how was he going to transport them all back? A few dayster, a group of Pdins were teleported to the Light Sea ne, presenting a document to the person in charge on Light Ind, the slippery priest. ¡°Relocated? Why would you want to relocate us out of the blue?¡± The priest was incredulous. Although being sent to another ne, fraught with hardships andcking in entertainment, also meant being away from the hub of power struggles, no one to oversee them, life had been veryfortable. Why suddenly relocate them without any reasons? ¡°We also don¡¯t know, Father. We¡¯re just carrying out orders. These aremands personally issued by His Holiness Pope Anthony.¡± Said the Pdin with a stern face.
The priest hurriedly grasped the Pdin¡¯s hand. A little token of appreciation slid into the Pdin¡¯s sleeve unnoticed. The Pdin¡¯s expression softened a little, whispered: ¡°There¡¯s a big shot interested in this ne. There¡¯s not much to gain from this ce, so you better leave quickly. The big shot mentioned he will arrange a good position for you once you¡¯re back.¡± A big shot?! The priest immediately thought of the big shot on the swaying airship above the sea, apanied by a young female adventurer just four months ago. Could it be him? A ne where the Church of Light¡¯s influence is not dominating, was readily given up; within a few days, the several hundred people on the Light Sandbank evacuated cleanly, leaving only the adventurers behind. Then, two figures shrouded in mantles arrived here through the teleportation array. Instead of getting on a boat, they ran straight onto the sea, and a horse emerged under them, spreading a trail of death across the water all the way to the distance. ¡°Polk? Why are you two here?¡± They recognized the two ck warriors under Anthony¡¯smand. ¡°His Majesty has sent us here to present a gift to Lord Ange, the ne Right Certificate, which acknowledges this ne as belonging to Lord Ange in the name of the Holy Church. Unless you want to be an enemy of the Holy Church, do not deny its ownership. However, to avoid any suspicion, His Majesty has registered it under the name of the King of Mercenaries ¨C Vegetable Bone.¡± Polk knelt, lifting the object in his hand high above his head. Chapter 444: 263: We Are the Vegetable Bone Mercenary Group_1 Chapter 444: Chapter 263: We Are the Vegetable Bone Mercenary Group_1 ¡°Pffft! This crooked merchant Anthony! How dare he sell a ne that isn¡¯t his!?¡± Negris spit blood, he had never encountered such a shameless person. The Church of Light does not have the advantage here. Even with the Church unable to hold onto this ce, what use is there to certify the rights in Ange¡¯s name? The only purpose is that the forces of the Eastern Diocese will not harass this ce, but what about the Western District? Other adventurers? Will these brash adventurers really care about a deed issued by Anthony? However, it is notpletely useless. It is something like a diplomatic statement, indicating the holy church epts Vegetable Bone Mercenary Group¡¯s ownership of the Light Sea ne. In this case, as long as Ange can hold onto this ce by his strength, would those who can¡¯t defeat Ange naturally ept?n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Would those small forces that don¡¯t want any trouble simply pay their taxes obediently? Those brash guys, strung up by Ange next to the tavern¡¯s notice board, wouldn¡¯t the rest of the people think that they just had iting, instead of ming the ruler¡¯s abuse of power? This property deed is more like a ¡®banner of righteousness¡¯, symbolizing the recognition of another great power. It¡¯s like establishing diplomatic rtions, those small forces under the holy church would also naturally recognize Ange¡¯s property rights rather than seeking death. All this is based on the premise that Ange can control this ne. If he can¡¯t control it, issuing ten thousand certificates is useless, and if he can, the presence or absence of this thing doesn¡¯t make much of a difference. That¡¯s why Negris was furious. This thing, whether present or not, didn¡¯t make much difference. Yet it was given as a gift by Anthony, the only use of it probably allows them to trade openly with the Master ne¡­ ¡°Ah, Kvada, I get it. This crooked merchant Anthony wants to transport food! With this thing, the Light Sea ne can openly trade with the Master ne. He¡¯s clearly doing this for his own convenience, yet we owe him a favor!¡± Negris was so angry he wanted to fly over and beat him up.
A special vibration suddenly spread from Polk¡¯s body and soon Anthony¡¯s voice was heard: ¡°Just say whether you want it or not.¡± ¡°Eh? Projection?¡± Negris was surprised: ¡°Why is your projection so noticeable?¡± Negris himself also projects onto Ange; every time it¡¯s quite unnoticeable, if he doesn¡¯t make a sound, no one can detect that he¡¯s within Ange. ¡°Of course projection is noticeable, I¡¯m traversing nes. The further the distance, the more noticeable it is.¡± Anthony replied sulkily. ¡°Then why is my projection so small?¡± Negris wondered aloud. ¡°Because your spiritual power is like a vast deep sea, you cannot cause waves.¡± Anthony exined. Negris nodded: ¡°I noticed ¨C you are saying I¡¯m weak.¡± ¡°Lord Nage is wise!¡± Anthony shouted loudly. After a few light-hearted teases, Anthony turned directly to Ange: ¡°My lord, I have registered this ne in your name, from now on, you can nt whatever you want here. Do you need it?¡± Negris¡¯s heart sank, fearing Anthony had learned to grasp the main points. Sure enough, when Ange heard he could nt things, he immediately agreed and took the box from Polk¡¯s hand. ne +1. Polk excused himself after a bow, but not before Anthony¡¯s voice interrupted, ¡°Lord Nage, why did my Lord register in the Mercenary Guild as Vegetable Bone, you have no idea how embarrassed I felt writing that name on the property deed.¡± Speaking of this, Negris was also fuming: ¡°What can I do, all the nice names were taken, only this one could be used. Speaking of this, I almost forgot to ask you, why is it called King of Mercenaries Vegetable Bone?¡± ¡°Because all those whoplete ultra missions are called King of Mercenaries.¡± ¡°So if we hand in Locke¡¯s bones, would we have gotten a title?¡± ¡°You would get the title Dead Man¡¯s Head, and all the mercenaries in the world woulde after you, for the four hundred million Demon crystals.¡± ¡°Well forget it then,pared to Dead Man¡¯s Head, Vegetable Bone sounds much better.¡± ¡­
In the ground effect airship, Jelis looked towards the sandbars with a thoughtful expression, sighing lightly from time to time. Lily, Ai Wei, and Mark, three youngsters huddled together, whispering: ¡°Do you think Lord Ange isn¡¯t interested in women?¡± ¡°How is that possible?¡± Ai Wei said. ¡°How is it not possible? My sister is such a juicy mature woman, yet he doesn¡¯t even spare a nce at her, spending all day fiddling with those hydroponics, does that sound like a normal man to you?¡± Lily said indignantly.
¡°What¡¯s abnormal about that, if I were Ai Wei, I wouldn¡¯t spare a nce either, because I only have eyes for you, Lily.¡± Ai Wei pounded his chest and said sincerely. ¡°Don¡¯t say that, my sister is very beautiful.¡± Lily reprimanded, pping chubby Ai Wei¡¯s forehead. Ai Wei startedughing: ¡°You¡¯re even more beautiful.¡± ¡°Really? How am I beautiful?¡± Lily asked. ¡°You¡¯re energetic, straightforward, cute, whenever you smile, my heart melts, really, I¡¯m not lying to you.¡± Ai Wei said seriously. ¡°Really? Hehe, well, you¡¯re not too bad looking either, you¡¯re quite cute being round and all.¡± ¡°Hehe, you like round ones, I¡¯ll eat more then.¡± The crowd of three people became a huddle of two, with Mark initially nodding enthusiastically in agreement that Lily was right, and Jelis was indeed juicy and sweet. But as time went by, he found himself pushed to the side. Chapter 445 - 263: We Are the Vegetable Bone Mercenary Group_2 Chapter 445: Chapter 263: We Are the Vegetable Bone Mercenary Group_2 Listening to Lily and Fat Alvi¡¯s conversation, Mark felt as if he was about to lose, but he didn¡¯t know where he had gone wrong. At this moment, a burst of white light broke out from the distant sandbank. Jelis, who was in a daze, was the first to react. She mbered up to the top of the mast, looking towards the source of the light. In the ce of the sh, Ange was holding a staff, his whole body overflowing with the power of Holy Light. This Holy Light continually poured into the staff, causing it to grow brighter and brighter, then suddenly exploded, creating a sh akin to a re. As the sh faded, a group of strange creatures appeared in front of Ange. There were Titans, Goblins, Humans, Elves, and even a horse wearing a fur hat? Jelis had overheard the three young ones whispering amongst themselves. Seeing them usually dazzled by her, she was confused why Lord Ange never spared her a second nce. Could it be that he didn¡¯t like women? Now, seeing this scene, she couldn¡¯t help but amend her thought: or did he not like humans at all? Swoosh! Swoosh! Swoosh! A rush of wind suddenly sounded at her side. It was like the pping of wings. Turning her head, she saw an adorable little girl with wings on her back. Hovering stationary in rtion to the airship, she tilted her head looking at Jelis. Jelis froze instantly. She didn¡¯t find the little girl before her cute at all because that was a Four-Winged Angel¡­ The little angel brought Jelis and the others, including their airship, back to Ange and then bounced over to Ange, seeking praise. Ange patted its head seriously. It did deserve praise; at least it hadn¡¯t blown up the airship with one shot. Sunshine and beach, oh my god, and freshwater too? So, I can soak in the water all day without ruining my skin? Luther who had just been teleported over, quickly stripped down to his shorts and dove into the nearby water. The Purple Skeleton Titans also plunged into the water, Lightning dove in too. All those who weren¡¯t afraid of water, such as Witches, jumped in at once. ¡°Hey, hey, hey, don¡¯t just focus on having fun. Where¡¯s my body? Who brought my body?¡± Negris yelled in a hurry. For the past four months, Negris had been projected onto Ange as its body had been left in the Master ne and hadn¡¯t been brought over. ¡°I have it here.¡± Luther quickly ran over, pulled a dragon corpse wrapped in oil paper from the Space Artifact, threw it onto the beach, and then quickly ran back into the water. Ange unwrapped the oil paper to reveal Negris¡¯ body. It was covered in Breathing Soil. Thanks to the soil, the once vibrant and plump dragon corpse was now shrivelled and stiff. When Negris projected onto it, it found it couldn¡¯t move because the flesh had stiffened. Eventually, Ange had to use the Face Purification Technique to rehydrate the dragon corpse before it could move around. With the final sh of light, Lisa and the others were teleported. Upon seeing Negris, she asked, ¡°Lord Nage, what happened that requires us all to be summoned?¡± ¡°Anthony gave this ce to us. Now we need to control the teleportation array and the sandbank, conquer this ne, and get ready to receive. Around a hundred thousand people will being here through the teleportation array. We need to prepare their food, clothing, housing and transportation,¡± Negris exined. Upon hearing its words, everyone exchanged nces, then asked hesitantly, ¡°Here? This sandbank?¡± Luther was the first to excitedly shout, ¡°Really? Great! I¡¯ll build a seaside house here where I can enjoy the sea right outside my door and bask in the sun as soon as I open the window. For a child who grew up in the Underground City, such clean beaches and sunshine were unimaginable even in dreams. ¡°No, this whole ne. From now on, this ne belongs to us!¡± Negris announced loudly. After a brief silence, exmations erupted from the crowd, ¡°Really? An entire ne? Is Anthony really that wealthy?¡± However, after understanding the situation, everyone simultaneously cursed, ¡°Such a cunning businessman! Offering the ne to Lord Ange, yet we have to conquer it ourselves? If we can conquer it, why would we need his ¡®gift¡¯?¡± ¡°We had to negotiate for the territories we conquered? He¡¯s clearly just using us to dress up his illegal actions as legal!¡­¡± ¡°Fine, fine, after all, it doesn¡¯t cost anything.¡± Everyone soaked in the water, discussing and deciding on the n: as soon as they were done bathing, they would go and take over the Light Sandbank. After all, the people of the Church of Light there had already retreated, leaving behind only some adventurers. With no one organising them, the adventurers didn¡¯t pose much of a threat. As everyone chatted away, Ange began listening attentively. After a while, Ange raised his head and said to Negris, ¡°Someone prayed, asking me to bless their takeover of the sandbank so that it would go smoothly.¡± ¡°¡­¡± Negris didn¡¯t know what to say, ¡°Why this coincidence? Thest time was the same, wasn¡¯t it? The guy who nned to burn your field also prayed to you. As if it wasn¡¯t enough that there are not many followers of the Undead God, they all somehow also run into your scythe.¡± ¡°Rise and shine, it¡¯s time to move out. Someone¡¯s eyeing the sandbank. Let¡¯s crush them!¡± Negris kicked each of them out of the water one by one. When they haphazardly readied their gear and prepared to depart, he turned and noticed Ange, Little Angel and Little Zombie were missing. Negris had a bad feeling and when he arrived with the main force, he indeed saw a terrifying sight. The adventurers who had gathered on the sandbank were now lying scattered and groaning in pain. Following the trail of injured, they soon found Ange and the others. Ange had released his Soul Armor and was punching left and right. Little Zombie wasn¡¯t falling behind either, recing his hoe with a mace, seizing opportunities to run people down and beating them senselessly. Little Angel¡¯s hands were wrapped in Holy Light, forming two makeshift gauntlets, as he merrily pounded those obstructing their path. Perhaps because Ange had instructed them, everyone they hit was wounded but still alive. It didn¡¯t take long for Ange to break through the crowd and reach the Teleportation Array. For ces like the Light Sea ne, the most important thing is the teleportation array, the only conduit to the Master ne. Whoever controls the teleportation array controls the ne, at least in practice. Of course, if someone like Ange could use the Heaven¡¯s Ladder to bring in a massive squad, they could bypass the Teleportation Array. The sudden and total retreat of the Church of Light¡¯s people was a mystery. With all the adventurers unsure of what to do, some powerful figures inevitably had different ideas forming. But the Church of Light¡¯s people had only retreated by afternoon and it¡¯s still not night yet. Everyone had not yet managed to organize themselves. After long discussions and finally getting organized, just when they were about to seize the Teleportation Array, Ange and the two angels sprang to action. This wasn¡¯t a battle on the same level. Remote nes like this weren¡¯t usually operated by major mercenary groups and there were few powerful adventurers. Ange easily punched his way through them. n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om By the time Negris and his group arrived, all they could do was clean up the remnants. Having taken control of the Teleportation Array and sealed the several docks of the Light Sandbank, all the adventurers were herded together. Luther stood high above them, extravagantly disying his Energy Sword- the symbol of a High-level Sword Saint. ¡°Greetings everyone, we are the Vegetable Bone Mercenary Group, and we have purchased this ne¡­¡± Before Luther could finish speaking, the adventurers erupted into an uproar. ¡°Vegetable Bone? The super mercenary Vegetable Bone? I remember that name, it¡¯s so strange.¡± ¡°Bought the ne? From whom? Who sold it? Why buy it? Who has the qualification to sell it?¡± Amid the uproar, no one noticed that clear, transparent waterways teemed with small ck fish, gradually taking over the nearby waterways and surrounding the entire sandbank. asionally one or two fish surfaced, showing their heads that were starkly different from ordinary aquatic fish, along with a set of sharp teeth. Every ship floating in the waterway was quickly gnawed to debris amidst the rustling sounds wherever these fish swam. At the same time, as night fell and the sky gradually darkened, the ck fish seamlessly blended with the darkness. Anyone who fell into the water at that moment¡­ With the sandbankpletely surrounded by the ck fish, a handsome young man amongst the gathered adventurers wore an expression of victory. Chapter 446 - 264: No Wonder Ange is Excited _1 Chapter 446: Chapter 264: No Wonder Ange is Excited _1 With a sleepless night on Light Sandbank, the adventurers gathered here, after sincere and warmhearted discussions, epted the control of Dan Sea ne by the Vegetable Bone Mercenary Group with joy. Although the discussions were intense, and most of them were injured a little, they were all finally convinced under Ange¡¯s healing hands, especially when there was a Four-Winged Angel standing behind Ange, as well as five or six Titans carrying big sticks, they surrendered exceptionally fast. Once Negris brought out the ne Right Certificate signed by Anthony, the rest of the defiant adventurers had no choice but to reluctantly ept it. N?v(el)B\\jnn Nheless, there was a small incident during the takeover: ¡°Hmm, an underdeveloped Bronze Dragon!? Are you the one from the Goddess of Beauty City?¡± Negris hurriedly denied: ¡°No, no, I am dragonkin, also known as Little Dragon Man, I just look simr to bronze dragons. Did you say there¡¯s one in Goddess of Beauty City? That might be my sibling, I¡¯ll visit it and have some grilled mutton.¡± Having fooled them, Negris then whispered: ¡°Remember that guy, we¡¯ll capture himter, and prevent him from returning to the Master ne.¡± ¡°Yes.¡± responded Rogge and Lamo. With Ange¡¯s current strength, controlling a ce like Light Sandbank was a piece of cake. However, there were a lot of trivial tasks, and Ange didn¡¯t have any regr personnel for tasks such as registration, checking goods, and logistics arrangements. The only ones who could do these detail-oriented tasks were Lisa and her subordinates, but they were too slow. Eventually, Ange had to calcte all the details himself, he went to the ces with supplies, nced around, and came up with approximate data. Into the deep night, the adventurers were both hungry and sleepy. One of them grabbed something to eat, he went to the water¡¯s edge intending to take something out. Suddenly, a dark shadow sprang out of the water, bit onto his thigh, and tore off arge chunk of flesh. The adventurer let out a heart-wrenching scream, he might have been bitten on a blood vessel. Blood gushed out frantically as if being squeezed by magic, and it was impossible to stop it. Hisrades rushed up to drag him back, they opened up his wound, an examination immediately changed their faces: ¡°It¡¯s over, his leg¡¯s gone, bandage it.¡± Seeing this, the faces of the other adventurers turned solemn, everyone knew what injuries could be healed and what couldn¡¯t. A wound like this won¡¯t be healed without a bishop-level worshipper present. Even if there was a bishop present, they would not spend money to treat such a wound. Even though it could be healed, it would take all their savings, their legs were not worth that much. The injured adventurer was very clear about his own situation, so when his fellow handed him a rope, he used all his strength to tie it up tightly. ¡°What is it that injured you?¡± Hisrade asked. ¡°In the water.¡± The injured adventurer gritted his teeth and replied. The leg wound wasn¡¯t just a loss of a chunk of flesh, it decimated his livelihood. The fate of an adventurer who lost his legs, whether anyone would ept him, remained a question. They didn¡¯t belong to any major mercenary group, they couldn¡¯t afford to keep someone without contribution, most likely he would have to fend for himself. For a limping person, what kind of living could he make? At most, return to the vige like Old John, till a few acres of barrennd, marry a toothless widow. If they could have some children, there might be hope for old age. Unfortunately, he didn¡¯t even get a clear look at what attacked him. With a swoosh, a burst of Holy Light was shot into the sky. Upon hearing the screams, Ange and others hurried over. The darkness didn¡¯t affect Ange¡¯s observation. Heunched a shbang for the Purple Corpses, their vision was greatlypromised at night. ¡°There are things in the water, a lot of them.¡± said Ange, as he shot Holy Light into the water. The moment the Holy Light illuminated the canal, everyone was shocked to see the almost bursting canal was filled with densely packed shadows, each one showing their sharp teeth above the water. The power of the sharp teeth, the screaming adventurer had shown it well, a bite tore off arge chunk of flesh. Their biting force was even stronger than somerge carnivorous animals. Ange approached the wounded adventurer, checked his wound, and casually dropped a drop of Essence and a dozen casts of Face Purification Technique. This bishop-level injury healed instantly in front of everyone. Ange wouldn¡¯t normally take the initiative like this, he adheres an equivalent exchange principle, only when his followers are injured, he would actively heal. But today, Negris urged him, to try and minimize casualties, otherwise, it would have a negative impact on the takeover of control. Before anyone could react, Ange hadpleted healing, then he stormed into the canal. Like dropping into boiling water, the whole canal began to bubble. Not only were adventurers stunned, even Negris and Lisa were amazed at what Ange was doing. Was he trying tomit suicide? Of course, Negris didn¡¯t think Ange was trying tomit suicide, he just felt Ange was a bit too excited. ¡°Hahaha, is he trying tomit suicide or has he lost his mind? Or he took the wrong route?¡± A loudughter echoed through the surroundings. Looking in the direction of the voice, there was a figure slowly walking over, surrounded by countless little shadows. Without Ange¡¯s Holy Light, everyone had to use traditional means. A mage was chanting a spell and a Illumination Spell was cast into the sky. Under strong light, everyone finally saw those shadows clearly. The figure was wearing a cloak, his hood was down revealing a handsome face. Numerous monsters of the size of dogs but with fish heads were surrounding him, showing long and sharp teeth and ferocious expressions. Chapter 447: 264: No Wonder Ange is Excited _2 Chapter 447: Chapter 264: No Wonder Ange is Excited _2 The appearance of the monster startled everyone, making them instinctively want to retreat. Yet as they retreated, they found the crowd behind them pressing forward, blocking their way back. This made everyone start cursing angrily, ¡°Why are you pushing? Move back!¡± Behind them came a mournful voice, ¡°There are¡­ more this way.¡± ¡°Ha ha ha, you¡¯re already surrounded. But don¡¯t panic, as long as you don¡¯t make any drastic moves, my children won¡¯t hurt you,¡± the handsome figure said. ¡°Who are you?¡± someone asked loudly. Someone recognized him and said loudly, ¡°I remember him, he¡¯s that eunuch singer, what¡¯s his name, Paro.¡± The handsome Paro pinched his nose, saying in embarrassment, ¡°That was just a disguise to hide my true identity, don¡¯t worry about it, forget it, or I¡¯ll let my children gnaw on you.¡± The fish-headed frog-like monsters all made hissing sounds. Paro waved his hand and the monsters around him quickly quieted down. He said, ¡°Hello everyone, I¡¯m Paro, a beast tamer. I¡¯m pleased to meet you all. You¡¯ve been surrounded, so if you don¡¯t want to be food for my children, please, cooperate.¡± ¡°What do you want to do?¡± Negris asked curiously. ¡°Oh, I recognize you, little dragon-man. I want to do what you¡¯re doing. So that¡¯s how it works? Taking over a ne, you¡¯re really creative. I don¡¯t know how you made a connection with Pope Anthony, but I believe you would be more than willing to transfer the ne right certificate to me.¡± Paro smiled and said. Negris scratched his head and asked, ¡°Is it just you?¡±n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om
¡°No, also my children. You think you can defeat all my children?¡± Paro spread his hands out, smiling. As he moved, hissing sounds came from all directions. The Light Sandbank and nearby waterways were all filled with ck fish and those fish-headed frog-like monsters. ¡°There¡¯s no need to defeat your kids, just killing you would be enough,¡± Luther spoke in a coarse voice, stuffing a beet into his mouth, and then created an Energy Sword. ¡°Oh! A High-level Sword Saint? So cool, I¡¯m so scared,¡± Paro pretended to be scared with an exaggerated tone. Following his words, a fish-faced frog-bodied monster suddenly bit itspanion, cannibalizing its kind, growing legs, torso, hands as it ate. By the time it had consumed the fourth one, it had be a human being, with a handsome face like Paro¡¯s. The only difference was its monstrous and fierce eyes. When it opened its mouth, it revealed a set of sharp teeth. ¡°Unless you can kill all my children, killing me is useless, ha ha ha,¡± Paroughed loudly. Negris felt his heart tense, suddenly realizing something and shouted, ¡°You¡¯re not a beast tamer, you¡¯re an Insect God worshiper, a believer in Hermorthos!¡± Oh my god, Negris now understood what these monsters were. They were actually insects, which exined why Ange was so excited to plunge into the waterway. These were all insects! After growing the soilless rice in the water for four months, Ange¡¯s biggest expenditure was the Insect Ash Liquid. Ange had even started to dig out the heart of Hermorthos recently, ready to study how to mass produce insects. Ange was worrying about insects, and Paro was bringing it on his doorstep. If this wasn¡¯t perfect timing then what was? No wonder Ange was excited. So many insects, how much Insect Ash Liquid could they make by burning them all? Paro¡¯s face changed drastically, his eyes fiercely fixing on Negris. He felt a sense of indignation at his identity being unveiled and yelled, ¡°What gives you the right to mention the name of the Insect God, kneel!¡± ¡°Hehe, even Hermorthos wouldn¡¯t dare to say that I don¡¯t have the right. Even if I pee on it, it won¡¯t make a sound. Do you believe it?¡± Negris said with a grin, ready to urinate on Hermorthos¡¯ heart if the opponent dared to disbelieve. Perhaps sensing something, Lightning raised its head vigntly and looked around. Paro shouted angrily, ¡°Do you really want to die? Are you all not afraid of death? If I let my children loose, whoever they bite, I won¡¯t be able to control. I still need you to stay alive to help me control this ne. If you don¡¯t want to die, kneel down!¡± Negris and the others almost burst intoughter, but the other adventurers couldn¡¯t help but hesitate, looking at each other in uncertainty, unsure if they should kneel or not. The array of monsters across the hillside was rather intimidating. They were not familiar with Ange and didn¡¯t want to get involved in the conflict between both parties. Seeing everyone¡¯s indecision, Negris couldn¡¯t help but propose: ¡°Why don¡¯t you have your bugs back off a bit and leave some space for those who don¡¯t want to die? If ites to fighting, kneeling won¡¯t help them much.¡± Upon hearing this, Paro quickly demanded his bugs to clear out a space for any adventurers who wished to withdraw. Most adventurers who didn¡¯t want to die naturally chose to stay out of the conflict and retreated to the cleared area, which included the adventurer whose leg had just been healed by Ange.
Negris didn¡¯t mind their retreating; it was even better with them out of the way. ¡°Alright, everyone, let¡¯s start.¡± Negris ordered. The eager Little Angel was the first to spread her wings. A beam of light shone on Paro and erased him from sight. The former-monster-turned-man next to him had his ferocious gaze slowly shift to astonishment. Clearly, Paro¡¯s consciousness had transferred to this new body, but he seemed somewhat caught off guard; with so many bugs at his disposal, wasn¡¯t there any fear? Why were they so decisive in their attack?
¡°You¡­¡± he managed, but before he could continue, a pir of ck light ¨C the Breath of Death: Shockwave ¨C hit him and he disappeared once more. The prepared Lightning reared back and swung its head forcefully, sending its woolen cap flying off, revealing its single horn. The lightning that had been gathering was unleashed, striking down among the bugs and forming a web of electricity that moved outwards. Wherever the electrical web went, the incongruous fusion of fish-head and frog-body creatures straightened out and toppled over, lifeless. The cap that had been flicked away twisted in the air, extending its stubby limbs andnded neatly on the ground. Luther wielded his twin swords, charging into the mass of bugs. His swords created an imprable barrier, reducing the insects to flying debris. The Purple Skeleton Titans were hopping around. Their huge frames were not advantageous against these bugs, they could only hop as much as possible to prevent the bugs fromnding on them. No one paid attention to the shoal of fish-bugs that were still in the water and had not participated in the battle. Suddenly, without any signs, they flipped over, lifeless. Some fish-bugs that were still alive discovered the corpses of their kind and, without any hesitation, bit into them. After eating half of the dead bugs, they too fell over, dead. Their carcasses then became food for the other bugs. In this way, the fish-bugs in the waterways died sessively, rolling out like a tide, then there was nothing left of them but their husks. Negris quickly noticed this scene and took a sharp intake of breath: ¡°Did you pour insecticide into the water? Have you no conscience?¡± ¡°Conscience? What¡¯s that?¡± Ange brushed off a batch of fish-bug carcasses as he rushed out of the waterway, leaving a footprint in the sand. Paro, whose consciousness had shifted to some unknown corner, finally noticed that something was wrong. The strength of a bug master lies in war of attrition with the bugs¡¯ vast numbers. But if this continued, even a great number of bugs wouldn¡¯t seem sufficient, would it? Wanting to flee, the fish-bugs and frog-monsters received his message and began to retreat in a manner reminiscent of a receding tide.
¡°Don¡¯t let them escape!¡± Negris shouted. ¡°If they get into the sea, we¡¯ll have real trouble. They¡¯ll overrun this ne of existence, including your rice paddies.¡± This was a marine world, teeming with various marine life. If even a single bug made it into the ocean, it could easily amass another wave of bugs. Ange wouldn¡¯t have to farm anymore, he could devote his time to killing bugs. Ange pulled out something which was about the size of a watermelon and pulsated like a heart in his hand. As soon as the object appeared, all the bugs went insane. They stopped retreating and rushed towards Ange in frenzy. The Instant Death Halo couldn¡¯t kill all the bugs immediately. Despite Ange¡¯s best efforts, some bugs would still manage to bite into the heart in his hand. As soon as a bug bit into the heart, it seemed to melt and merge with it. Chapter 448: 265: Goddess Believer, Professional Farmer_1 Chapter 448: Chapter 265: Goddess Believer, Professional Farmer_1 The day was gradually breaking, and Ange was joyfully collecting insect corpses with Little Angel and Little Zombie. Each burned insect was indeed a super fertilizer. Negris and Lamo, however, were silently observing a cocoon on the beach. After Ange took out the heart of the Insect God, all the insects went mad and rushed towards the heart as if their lives depended on it. Despite using all his magic, Ange couldn¡¯t stop the insects. This made Ange profoundly realize that his firepower was far from sufficient¡­ In the end, he just managed to imprint a soul brand onto the heart before the insects submerged it. The insects bit on the heart, but instead of breaking it, they transformed into a liquid that stuck to the heart.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om The liquid umted increasingly, forcibly pushing Ange out and finally, countless insects stuck to the heart, forming a massive sphere with at least a ten-meter diameter. Unfortunately, they underestimated Ange¡¯s sense of responsibility. Taking advantage of the liquid not yet solidifying, Ange quickly scrapped away more than half of it, leaving a sphere with only about five-meter diameter. ording to the volume of a sphere, a five-meter diameter sphere has only one eighth the volume of a ten-meter diameter sphere. Finally, this liquid solidified into a five-meter cocoon. However, before it hardened, Ange peeled off two parts of the cocoon shell¡­ Throughout the process, the insects acted as if they had gone mad,pletely ignoring someone¡¯smands. Ange saw a human-shaped creature struggling constantly within the insect pile. Its handsome face was filled with horror as it was forced to rush forward uncontrobly and ended up stuck to the cocoon.
¡°It seems that the Insect God¡¯s attraction to the insects is of the highest priority.¡± Negris murmured to himself. ¡°What a magical thing, it is brimming with endless vitality, contrasting starkly with us.¡± Lamo touched the cocoon shell, scanned it repeatedly with his thoughts, and marvelled, ¡°Is it trying to regenerate using its heart? Does it have a Life Box like our witches do?¡± ¡°Probably not, its vitality is simply stronger. It¡¯s not the same concept as the witches¡¯ Life Box.¡± Negris analyzed. Upon finishing his analysis, Negris turned to Ange and shouted, ¡°Ange, I¡¯m not an expert in this. Call Sava over.¡± Ange nodded to indicate that he understood and continued to collect his fertilizer. It wasn¡¯t until an hourter that he pulled out the Staff of Heaven and opened a portal. The Staff of Heaven opened the teleportation function of the Stairway to Heaven. Those who are teleported need to gather at Demon Valley first, enter the Holy Kingdom through the Stairway to Heaven, then pass through a portal at the top of the temple. If they aren¡¯t at Demon Valley, they¡¯d need to teleport to Demon Valley first. Although it requires multiple hops and is time-consuming, it¡¯s still the most convenient method of transport. The pharmacist Sava, Minotaur Cook Vania, Award Master Gear Vaguli and others, as well as Oke, all came over as well. Sava was pulled in front of the cocoon to study it, Vaguli was dragged to the irrigation channel of the soilless rice to research a quick harvesting machine, and Vania was taken to the detention area to cook for the adventurers, who were temporarily still held captive, to prevent them from starving to death. However, Vania didn¡¯t start a fire. Instead, she gave each person a hard-as-stones biscuit and also beat up two adventurers who expressed dissatisfaction. Soon, everyone realized that Vania was not suitable to be a cook, but was better suited to be a prison warden. After establishing her authority by beating up two adventurers, she began to select two adventurers who could cook but clearly had littlebat power. They were to cook the meals. A group of adventurers who had been hungry all night and were parched from gnawing dry biscuits were finally able to eat a hot meal at noon ¨C boiled dry biscuits. ¡°It¡¯s good enough that there¡¯s something to eat, don¡¯t you see that our leader and our superiors are not eating!¡± Vania stood with hands on her hips, yelling. Those in the know gave her a few nces. They knew well that it would be a big problem if her own leader wanted to eat. Under the name of the Vegetable Bone Mercenary Group, Ange and the others began to take over the Light Sandbank. As long as they controlled the Teleportation Array, this ne was essentially in Ange¡¯s hands. Others coulde, but if they didn¡¯t pass through the Teleportation Array, they would need to find their own way in, a feat which isn¡¯t feasible for ordinary people. Where could they go if they teleported here? The sandbank here had already been taken over. Unlike the Church of Light, Ange had a convenient method to monitor all the sandbanks by burying a skeleton on each one. Teleport into the sea? Then they would have to figure out how not to drown. However, it was estimated that no major power would be interested in this ce. As far as the eye could see, it¡¯s all water. It was not cultivable, had no mines, and was remarkablycking in specialty products. No wonder there were only about a thousand adventurers here despite the Light Sandbank being established for over two hundred years.
Ange was busy disposing of insect corpses, Negris was busy studying the insect cocoon, and Vaguli was busy researching the harvester. Three dayster, Vaguli brought his harvester to Ange. ¡°Sir, please look at this. It¡¯s a simple rolling reaper. It first presses down the gtinous te to keep it at the height of the reaper. Then when the reaper rolls over it, the rear te pushes the rice to the shore naturally. Someone on the shore binds the rice straw, and that¡¯s it.¡± ¡°All you need to do is to drag the gtinous te over the irrigation canal and slide it into this slot. Sir, all the gtinous tes you made are of the same size. You just need to stick to this size in the future.¡± Vaguli exined. Ange tried it out and indeed found it very convenient. As he nted along the irrigation channel, he tied each gtinous te together with a rope during harvest. It was like pulling a parade of carts.
Chapter 449: 265: Goddess Believer, Professional Farmer_2 Chapter 449: Chapter 265: Goddess Believer, Professional Farmer_2 ¡°Make a few more sickles, harvesting a hundred thousand tonnes of grain isn¡¯t too difficult. Let¡¯s start gathering it ¡ª harvesting and sending it over to Anthony at the same time. With ample food supply, he¡¯ll find it easier to deceive people,¡± said Ange. Negris, with hands on his hips and smirking with schadenfreude, said, ¡°I want to know right now, how does he n on getting a hundred thousand people out of the Master ne?¡± Soon enough, Negris understood. ¡°What? A Holy War? These are heathens?¡± Negris stared at the farmers in the teleportation array, his eyes bulging in surprise. Humans, heretics in fact, were also present on the Master ne? ¡°Of course there are, plenty of them. Some small countries have exceptional terrain and sturdy defenses. Their faith is steadfast and it¡¯s difficult to convert them. These folks are Followers of the Harvest Goddess,¡± Saint Patri, an old friend of Silver Coin¡¯s and the one responsible for shipping people over and exining Anthony¡¯s n, chimed in. ¡°However, they¡¯ve also suffered a cmity this year. They moved to the Eastern Diocese, where it wasn¡¯t easy for the Lord to support them. After all, both the Eastern and Western Diocese were affected. If the Lord aided the heathens, his own people within the Church would dispute him,¡± she said. Negris nodded in understanding. The issue with the heretics wasplex. Even though the Followers of the Harvest Goddess were unharmed, aiding others in their time of need was likely to infuriate his people and lead to bacsh for Anthony. ¡°But His Majesty doesn¡¯t wish to see them die too. So, he¡¯s benevolently sent people to spread rumors that we intend to exterminate all of them to avoid wasting food, causing these heretics to live in fear,¡± Patri said, her tone a bit incredulous every time she mentioned ¡®heretics¡¯. It was apparent that she was the type that didn¡¯t care much about heretics and was merely fulfilling Anthony¡¯s orders. ¡°At the same time, His Majesty rallied the Church internally, announcing a Holy War against these heretics. He found a channel where one healthy heretic could be traded for a tonne of grain. So, he instructed the pious in the war not to harm the opponent¡¯s life or body,¡± Patri added. Negris burst outughing. ¡°What? That¡¯s possible? Two birds with one stone, shameless Anthony!¡±
Patri pretended not to hear as she continued speaking, ¡°Dyson found this trade to be profitable and demanded to be involved, but was rejected by His Majesty. Dyson then asked whether the deal should not be limited to heretics. He said that even if he could exchange a person for a tonne of grain, why not exchange believers? So, His Majesty wanted me to ask you, do you want the Followers of Light?¡± Negris responded with a smile, ¡°No, Anthony again wants us to raise and take care of people for free, how shameless.¡± Pretending she hadn¡¯t heard again, Patri continued, ¡°Then His Majesty sent people to the Followers of the Harvest Goddess to spread rumors that the Harvest Goddess was located here. Anyone arriving here could be well-fed and serve the goddess. His Majesty asked me to query if you would show a miracle for these people to misinterpret that you are the Harvest Goddess.¡± ¡°We can do that, but Ange would definitely not be so idle ¡ª Lisa, Lisa,e here, you are the best at ying these tricks.¡± ¡­. High Priest Dakwen was in despair as he eyed the sand dunes, waterways, adventurers, and all the strange beings around him. He knew he¡¯d been duped by the Church of Light. These people were here to trick and confuse, luring them here to face their doom. There¡¯s no way the Harvest Goddess could have left her footprints in this deste world, right? As a priest of the Harvest Goddess, Dakwen¡¯s faith was unwavering, and he would happily give his life for the Goddess without hesitation. However, this year, for some unknown reason, the goddess did not bless them, and theirnd did not yield a bountiful harvest. Could it possibly be that the Harvest Goddess had abandoned them? For ordinary believers, faith cannot be eaten. Hungry as they were, they felt no god was effective. Under their influence, Dakwen had followed them and escaped to thend of the heretics. The state of affairs for the heretics didn¡¯t seem to be any better. Rumors of them being wiped out were spread, then it was said they¡¯re being traded for foods. In the end, the rumor had be: the Harvest Goddess offered food to exchange for these devout believers.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Dakwen scoffed at the idea. If the Goddess really wanted to swap these believers, why not directlymunicate with this high priest? Why involve heretics as the mediator? But did Dakwen have a choice? No. The only thing he could do was to tell everyone that he would go and look for the goddess first, then return to inform them. If he doesn¡¯t return, they must not step into the teleportation array, better to fight the heretics than enter the array. At least then they would die on the Master ne, their bodies bing nutrients for the ground. Of course, he also held a slight glimmer of hope. What if the rumors were true? s, any trace of hope seems to havepletely shattered. In this barren world full of infertile sand, how could the Harvest Goddess have left her footprints? Just as Dakwen was indecisive about whether he should simply keel over right then and there, a long chain of gtinous panels, each sprouting rice stalks, slowly sailed past him in the waterways. On the first panel stood a young woman, d in a green dress, herplexion fair and beautiful, sharing a resemnce with the Harvest Goddess herself. As the panel glided past Dakwen, thedy flew up and floated before Dakwen and the others. Holy radiance shone from her, a loving smile adorning her face as she slowly said, ¡°You¡¯ve arrived.¡±
Chapter 450: 265: Goddess Believer, Professional Farmer_3 Chapter 450: Chapter 265: Goddess Believer, Professional Farmer_3 With her words, the green nts on the row of gel panels behind her suddenly started to grow rapidly. Not far from the shore, Ange quietly set down his footprint. For a more dramatic effect, he deliberately chose nts that were about to bloom and bear fruit. Under the Instant Death Halo, these nts suddenly bloomed and fruited, creating a very exciting visual effect. Under this backdrop, Lisa smiled and said, ¡°I will bring you the harvest.¡± This is the mostmon phrase in the Holy Code of the Harvest Goddess, which is a clear hint at her identity. If it hadn¡¯t been for the backdrop of rapidly growing crops behind her, this would have been, at most, a pleasant greeting, like the Church of Light¡¯s ¡®Holy Light bless you¡¯. But with the contrast of the crops growing rapidly behind her, even Dakwen could not doubt it anymore. Trembling with excitement, he knelt and worshiped, ¡°May the Goddess bless us! May the harvest be bountiful!¡± ¡­ Dakwen returned to the Master ne through the Teleportation Array, excitedly shouting to all believers, ¡°We have found the Goddess, we have found the Goddess. The Harvest Goddess has brought us harvest and magical Soilless Rice. Quickly, bring our farming tools and serve the Harvest Goddess!¡± Believers of the Harvest Goddess kept pouring into the Clean Sea ne. Ange quickly discovered that these people were taking away the jobs of his nting. The followers of the Harvest Goddess are the most professional farmers. After a couple of days of research, they started to understand the cultivation methods of the Soilless Rice. Moreover, their nting skills were far more refined than Ange¡¯s. Duringrge-scale nting, Ange couldn¡¯t be meticulous with every single seed. He used magic to nt, the spacing was enough, but it could not maintain the most suitable spacing like professional farmers.
If Ange randomly nted nine rows on a panel, they could nt ten rows. That¡¯s a whole extra row of output, that¡¯s a tenth! Well, the more refined operations of the harvest farmers reduced Ange¡¯s major role to merely regting the gel panels. As long as the gel panels were adjusted properly, the other tasks could be taken over by these farmers. Soon, floating gel panels filled all the waterways of the entire sand bar, only leaving a few main channels for ships to pass through. Ange lost his biggest pleasure¡­n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°You can¡¯t reim everything to nt yourself like you did in the Resting Abyss. You can¡¯t supply food for all these people. Let them nt. Otherwise, we can¡¯t afford to support these hundred thousand people.¡± Under the earnest persuasion of Negris, Ange gave up the idea of driving these people away to nt himself. He sulkily crouched on a sand bar at the edge, staring at the distant sea. Little Angel and Little Zombie crouched at his sides, with a big cat crouched on Little Angel¡¯s head. This was the outermost sand bar here. All that could be seen was water. The setting sun nted, and the surface of the water sparkled. Negris flew over, sighed, didn¡¯t know what to say. Given Ange¡¯s character, he was so idle that he was watching the sunset, it is imaginable how bored he was: ¡°Or you¡­¡± Before he finished speaking, he noticed a small dot in the distance rapidly erging. Looking at the shadow of the sail, it was clearly Jelis¡¯s Ground Effect Airship. The airship sped by at a height of two or three meters, the wind pressed down, stirring up a white water trail. But there was an evenrger water trail behind it, a massive sea creature was closely chasing the airship, the distance was closing. Good, something to y with. Ange flipped over, sat on Negris, and waved his big hand forward. Negris panicked, where was Lightning? He looked around, but didn¡¯t see Lightning. In reluctance, he flew up and headed in the direction of the airship. The chaser of the airship was the Sea God of the Gluglu Tribe, a hundred-meter-long sea monster. It looked a bit like an eel, but it was shorter and fatter, and unfortunately, it was not a Devil Beast. Therefore, when it encountered the invincible-bodied Steadfast Locke, its head was busted with just a couple of punches. Taking advantage of a few seconds left in the transformation, Ange grabbed the beast¡¯s neck and quickly dragged it to the shallow beach. The Gluglus attached to the sea monster were all shaken off. They nkly watched their ¡®Sea God¡¯, considered invincible, get its head busted within a few punches by the Purple Gold Skeleton and then dragged away. They all stayed stunned for a while before they came to their senses and scattered. ¡°Such a fat sea monster. These fats can be used asmp oil, these skins can be used to make clothes, this meat can feed a hundred thousand people for several meals. Haha, let¡¯s have an extra meal tonight.¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help butugh. Sana rode on Lightning and ran over here. The first thing she saw was the giant sea monster in front of her, and she jumped up excitedly, ¡°Sirs, did you all know already? You caught it so quickly? I was just about toe over and tell you all.¡± Negris was confused, ¡°Know what? What should we know?¡± ¡°That Insect God Cocoon is about to hatch, but it doesn¡¯t have enough heat. It can¡¯t break out of the cocoon and it¡¯s withering. I was just about toe over to notify you to find a way to catch some fish. Don¡¯t tell me you weren¡¯t ¡­¡±
PS: It¡¯s double now, please vote, owu~ Chapter 451: 266: Six Gods? What Six Gods?_1 Chapter 451: Chapter 266: Six Gods? What Six Gods?_1 Seemingly endless amounts of sea monster fat were ced on the cocoon, rapidly melting and then absorbed. The three-inch-thickyer of grease waspletely drained in just a few seconds. Didn¡¯t it need heat energy? Grease has a high calorie content, no need to eat meat, just drink the oil. As for the sea monster¡¯s meat, it was being continuously poured into a massive stone pot, boiling fiercely. The aroma of the meat was irresistible to anyone who caught a whiff of it. These days, even wealthyndlords didn¡¯t often get to eat meat. It was ironically the adventurers, constantly on the move, who were most likely toe across it. However, the opportunity to taste sea monster meat was quite rare. Vania pulled out a sack and scooped up a bowl full of salt. She poured it all into the stone pot. Even the adventurers couldn¡¯t help but swallow at the sight. The seas of the Light Sea ne were freshwater and abundant with fish, yet salt was scarce. Some adventurers had stayed here for years, eating fish every day. Their mouths had be dull with the vor, and the sight of so much salt made them yearn to rush up and have a taste. Vania tasted the soup to gauge the saltiness and, satisfied, moved on to scoop out some spices from several other sacks. The crowd of onlookers stirred. One person couldn¡¯t help but ask: ¡°Is this¡­ the execution meal? Will there be spices added too?¡± In the main ne, spices were incredibly precious, more valuable than gold. Even the nobility couldn¡¯t eat spices every day, which lead to the establishment of a banquet tradition called the ¡°Spice Feast,¡± where the wealthy donned their magnificent attire to enjoy spices together. The crowd consisted mostly of poor adventurers. Why would they have the privilege of tasting spices? The fear was that after the meal they would be executed.N?v(el)B\\jnn
This fear led to everyone needing the toilet in hurry. Little did they know that Vania had just casually decided to add the spices after Ange had casually set up a spice farm for her. Ange collected seeds for over a thousand varieties of crops for Silver Coin, the elf brought in over ten thousand. Surely everyone can understand the painful dilemma of having too many toys and not knowing with which to y? So Ange just casually asked everyone if there were any crops they wanted. Only Vaguli, Sava, and Vania raised their hands. Vaguli wanted a few types of timber for building constructs. When Ange ced Divine Wood, the World Tree, and bamboo in front of him, he immediately changed his statement: ¡°Nevermind, I suppose I could begrudgingly make do with these types of wood.¡± Sava was a pharmacist, she needed a lot of different medicinal herbs. But Ange didn¡¯t want to bother too much, so he nted only a few rare types and let Sava buy the rest. After all, she had a budget every quarter. Vania also wanted several types of spices. Even though there are many varieties of spices, Vania had only seen a fewmonly used ones. She wouldn¡¯t know how to use any others, so giving her more would be pointless. But having a fewmonly used species was pretty good. Sprinkle some cumin on the roast and some cinnamon on the soup, Vania¡¯s food could beat ny-nine percent of cooks on the ne. She could finally be considered a proper cook, not just a Minotaur warrior. The group of adventurers and Harvest believers cleaned out the meat soup and roast. When they found out that it wasn¡¯t an execution meal but just Vania¡¯s routine, she instantly became the most popr person in the Light Sea ne, second only to the Harvest Goddess, Lisa. In the end, even the people in charge of executions were less popr than those who were in charge of meals¡­ Those responsible for executions stood around the cocoon, watching it absorb the sea monster fat. Everyone could feel the joyous vibes emanating from it, reminding them of Little Sapling. Ange simply brought out Little Sapling and ced it on his head, allowing it to wave its leaves: Grow¨Cstrong¨C! The aura of the cocoon had indeed grown much stronger. After absorbing about two or three tons of fat, the cocoon snapped open revealing a chubby¡­ pony. It looked exactly like a pony, except its face and neck weren¡¯t as long, its limbs didn¡¯t end in hooves, and it had a pair of small wings and fine scales on its back. Everyone¡¯s gaze immediately turned to Lightning. Lightning, who was curiously inspecting the pony, was taken aback upon noticing everyone looking at it. ¡°What are you all looking at me for?¡± After saying this, it seemed to realize something and hurriedly protested, ¡°No, not me, I¡¯ve done nothing, don¡¯t me me!¡± Everyone also deemed it unlikely and turned back to observe. Lisamented, ¡°Those scales look kind of like Dragon Scales.¡± Everyone then looked towards Negris.
Negris was quite calm: ¡°I¡¯m a Dead Dragon.¡± True, Dead Dragons couldn¡¯t do anything. Everyone turned their heads back to observe again. The chubby Insect God was curiously eyeing everyone with its round, wide eyes. After a few nces, its attention turned to the broken cocoon shell. It opened its wide mouth, revealing rows of sharp teeth, and bit down on the cocoon shell. It easily crunched the shell to pieces and swallowed it. ¡°Many oviparous animals have a habit of eating their own eggshells. Could it be considered oviparous now? Weren¡¯t you saying it was an Insect God?¡± Sava asked curiously as she leaned in to touch the cocoon shell.
The chubby Insect God was naturally not polite. It opened its wide mouth to bite down on the inquisitive head. With so many sharp teeth, if Sava were bitten, she would likely lose her head and at best, could hope for a new life as a Headless Zombie. Ange gave a mentalmand, and the chubby Insect God suddenly stiffened. Its round eyes were full of panic as it realized that it couldn¡¯t close its mouth anymore. Chapter 452: 266: Six Gods? What Six Gods?_2 Chapter 452: Chapter 266: Six Gods? What Six Gods?_2 What to do? What to do? The Insect God was frantic, using its forepaws to hold its mouth, trying to close it, but no matter how hard it tried, its paws couldn¡¯t reach its lower jaw. Not until Ange released his soul control could it finally close its mouth. The Insect God seemed to understand its predicament, obediently lying down. Its eyes warily scanned its surroundings before ultimatelynding on Ange, instinctively conveying a ttering expression. It had clearly realized who was exerting soul control over it. Ange watched it behave obediently until the Insect God finally lowered its head, daring not to meet Ange¡¯s gaze anymore. Only then did Ange wave his hand, signaling it to continue eating. As the Insect God was gnawing on the cocoon, it was Negris¡¯s turn to take the stage. He flew in front of the Insect God and asked tentatively, ¡°Do you remember who you are?¡± The Insect God stared nkly at Negris, a piece of cocoon in its mouth. ¡°Do you remember your name?¡± Negris ventured again. The Insect God shook its head andy back into the cocoon, heartily chewing on it. Negris folded his little paws behind him, gave Ange a quick nce and then proimed to the Insect God: ¡°You are Hemel.¡± The Insect God looked up, the cocoon still in its jaws, its eyes nk. ¡°You are Hemel, Hemel is you, do you understand? From now on, if anyone calls Hemel, they are calling you.¡± Negris repeated its name three times in quick session.
The Insect God nodded nkly, and then buried its head back into the cocoon. To it now, nothing could be more important than feeding. Negris flew back and secretly consulted Ange, ¡°How was it? When I called its name, did its soul give any reactions?¡± Ange shook his head. ¡°It appears, then, to have truly lost its previous memory, or perhaps we could say it now possesses a new soul,¡± Negris concluded.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Ange¡¯s soul control enabled him to detect even the slightest fluctuations in the soul, so the Insect God¡¯spleteck of response to its name suggested it had no recollection of it. ¡°But it¡¯s a deity, isn¡¯t it true that it¡¯s incredibly difficult for them to lose their memory? Wasn¡¯t it said that it¡¯s difficult to kill a god? If their memories can¡¯t be preserved, can they still be considered difficult to kill?¡± Lisa approached, articting her doubts. Negris exined, ¡°The difficulty of annihting a deity refers to their ability, under the conditions of having arge number of devotees who harbor an unending faith in them, to reignite their Divine Fire even if they perish. Only if all the believers are exterminated could the deity be considered dead.¡± ¡°However, whether the deity that reignites the Divine Fire is the same entity raises questions. For example, it¡¯s much like you witches, theoretically, witches have Life Boxes and can be reborn numerous times. But what about the witches who cannot create a Life Box? Isn¡¯t their demise no different if their soul disperses?¡± ¡°It¡¯s the same with deities: there are many ways they can retain their memories, including sealing, engraving, and reincarnation. However, if a deitycks these skills and its divine status shatters, the newly reignited Divine Fire may lose its memories. Is it still the Insect God? Is it still Hemel?¡± ¡°Don¡¯t forget, this Hemel was originally just a farmer and only became the Insect God through a series of fortunate incidences involving breeding insects. In terms of skills, he might have fewer than you.¡± With sudden rity, Lisa admired, ¡°Lord Nage, you know so much.¡± ¡°It¡¯s nothing,¡± Negris replied indifferently, waving a hand and making a concerted effort to keep his tail from twitching with tion. ¡°You should study more about these theories. Now that you have the faith of the hundred thousand followers of the Harvest Goddess, we can try to usurp the faith of the Harvest Goddess and transform you into a false God.¡± ¡°This¡­ is it really this thrilling? I¡­ I¡¯m a bit scared.¡± Lisa, who had lived for over a thousand years and experienced a myriad of situations, couldn¡¯t help but feel a bit flustered, her legs trembling slightly. Bing a god? Even if it¡¯s bing a false God, that was something she had never contemted in her life. ¡°What are you scared of? Even if you be a god, you¡¯d just be a subordinate deity to Ange. Any benefits would still belong to him, you¡¯d merely be borrowing his power,¡± Negris replied, somewhat annoyed. Right now, it was just a subordinate deity. Any benefits were Ange¡¯s. Only pots were its own. ¡°Phew, that¡¯s good, that¡¯s good, if it¡¯s like this, that¡¯s good, I¡¯ll follow my Lord¡¯s instructions.¡± Lisa let out a great sigh of relief. The pressure on her disappeared instantly, and her legs stopped feeling weak. Heh, borrowing the Lord¡¯s power? Lisa was familiar with this concept. Plus, having a generous master deity like Ange meant there was nothing bad about being a subordinate deity, and there would be no stress to carry. ¡­
In the Holy Light Temple, Guliani was praying in front of the statue of God, a scepter in one hand and the Holy Code in the other. This religious exercise was a daily routine for the Pope. As he prayed, an invisible bridge was erected between him and the statue, with an unseen power transmitting between them. After an immeasurable amount of time, Guliani slowly opened his eyes, revealing a pair of golden pupils. His entire aura was brimming with an imminent force, like it was ready to burst out of his body at any moment. Guliani stood steadily, waiting for this impulse to recede, for the golden glow in his eyes to dissipate. Only then did he lower his hands and murmur to himself, ¡°My power is growing stronger. Once I gain control over divinity, I will bring down divine punishment and judge you, Anthony.¡± ¡­
Anthony was incredibly busy, his feet hardly touching the ground. With Ange¡¯s constant supply of food, Anthony suddenly felt more confident to suppress grain prices and deal with those profiteering merchants. Chapter 453: 266: Six Gods? What Six Gods?_3 Chapter 453: Chapter 266: Six Gods? What Six Gods?_3 Before all this, he issued a high-level administrative order demanding rigorous checks, forbidding a single grain of food from leaving the Eastern Diocese.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om
Then he started to continuously ship food from Light Sea ne, tantly letting soldiers and merchant convoys from various nations help transport the food. Almost overnight, the news that Archbishop Anthony had acquired arge amount of food spread throughout the entire Eastern Diocese, leading to fluctuations in grain prices. The noblendlords and merchants who hoarded grain swiftly took action, attempting to transport the grain to the Western Diocese where the prices were higher. But due to Anthony¡¯s administrative order, they couldn¡¯t move it. Seeing grain prices loosen day by day, some people, fearing they would get stuck with the food, had no choice but to sell it at a reduced price. As long as the price fell within a reasonable range, Anthony didn¡¯t refuse anyone; he took as much as he could get and borrowed money from the Silver Chamber of Commerce if his funds were insufficient. Kvada, if Negris found out, he would surely chastise Anthony again. This was beyond double-dipping ¨C it was triple-dipping.
As it was authorized, the Silver Chamber of Commerce nearly monopolized major human-elf trades, and due to the elves¡¯ abundance of mineral reserves, the Silver Chamber of Commerce had a strong cash flow. Anthony, on the other hand, was a quality borrower with a bunch of prime real estate in his hands. If possible, he would even dare to mortgage churches and temples. Of course, the Silver Chamber of Commerce wouldn¡¯t dare to ept those, they only took manors and mines, etc. With ample funds and the continuous purchase of grain, Anthony¡¯s confidence grew, his hand of cards got thicker, and his room for maneuver increased. All of this required only a bit of initial investment, and that hundred thousand tons of grain from Lord Ange was the lever that set it in motion. Now, by reallocating the food to nearby disaster-stricken regions, the Eastern Diocese had a chance to get through this year of disaster. However, all of these require meticulous paperwork. These past few days, Anthony had been signing documents, releasing grain, reallocating manpower, paying money, and so on. He signed until his fingers went stiff, and from time to time, he had to cast a Holy Light of Healing on himself. A shadow silently entered the room. Anthony immediately flipped the table in front of him, unleashed all his defensive abilities, and then shouted in his mind: Help me, Lord!!! Being able to silently enter his room, it was definitely not an ordinary person. In this situation, daring to assassinate him would mean they were extremely confident. No matter what, crying for help was the first step, and anyway, Lord Ange wouldn¡¯t charge him. The figure lightly caught the table, awkwardly saying, ¡°Uh, Lord Bishop Anthony, it¡¯s me.¡± Anthony took a closer look, ¡°Shamara, why is it you? Are you trying to scare me to death?¡±
Apart from an assassin, indeed only Shamara, who had predictive abilities, could sneak in without making a sound. The guards outside the room heard themotion and rushed in, but were immediately halted by Anthony, ¡°Don¡¯te in, close your eyes, get out.¡± Shamara was a Fallen Angel. Seeing her in his room, even the Holy Water couldn¡¯t cleanse Anthony. The guards hastily retreated, witnessing only the alluring figure, they suddenly realized: Damn, we¡¯ve interrupted Lord Bishop¡¯s good times. Shamara awkwardly said, ¡°I just wanted to find you and ask you to tell Lord Ange that we need six gods.¡± ¡°Six gods? What requires six gods?¡± Anthony asked, puzzled. Shamara became even more awkward, ¡°I don¡¯t know either. While training for Holy Spirit Possession with Luna, my power greatly increased, and this voice in my heart kept telling me we need six gods. Where am I supposed to find six gods? You go talk to Lord Ange about it.¡± ¡°Toote, you talk to him yourself,¡± Anthony said grumpily. Chapter 454: 267 Burn Your Grain_1 Chapter 454: Chapter 267 Burn Your Grain_1 Sometimes, Anthony didn¡¯t know whether to feel happy or sad. The summoning of the Master God should have been an incredible, unbeatable ultimate move. It should at least have taken some effort, some time to chant some sort of prayer, right?
No, Ange arrived as soon as he called. It happened so quickly that Anthony didn¡¯t even have the chance to cancel it. Seriously, could there be a more idle Master God? It was almost undignified. Of course, Anthony wasn¡¯tining, he was justmenting theck of pomp and ceremony. Next time, he would definitely think up an incredibly cool incantation andplete it before begging for help. A powerful aura appeared out of nowhere, and a holy light emitted from Anthony. The light was animate, slowly moving away from Anthony, its two ends gripped like a hammer, ready to be swung at any moment. A confusing piece of information reached the minds of the two people present. Despite being separated by a dimensional ne, they could feel Ange tilting his head in confusion. ¡°Six Gods, Lord, we need six Gods,¡± Shamara quickly stated. Ange¡¯s thoughts focused on Anthony.
Anthony spread his hands, ¡°I don¡¯t know, she just popped out and scared me. I thought she was an assassin, so I called for your help, my Lord. As for the six gods¡­ when did you sense this?¡± Thisst part was directed at Shamara. Shamara replied, ¡°Two days ago.¡± ¡°Be more specific.¡± ¡°Around nine in the evening, two days ago.¡± Shamara thought for a moment before giving a more precise time. ¡°Are you sure it¡¯s rted to Lord Ange?¡± Anthony asked again. Shamara nodded her head decisively, ¡°Yes, it¡¯s rted to Lord Ange. I sense that Lord Ange needs six Gods, but why six, I have no idea.¡± ¡°Two days ago at nine in the evening? Lord, what were you doing two nights ago at that time?¡± asked Anthony. ¡°Beating a god,¡± Ange replied. He was beating up Hemel, the Insect God, for biting Little Angel. Among those under Ange¡¯smand, there were a variety of beings ¨C dimensional beasts, giant skeletons, little zombies, the World Tree, and others. Many had a strong territorial instinct, but usually, they coexisted peacefully. The main reason being a clear pecking order. Every time a neer joined, Little Angel, apanied by Little Zombie, would have a heart-to-heart with them. If that didn¡¯t work, a fight would ensue. If they couldn¡¯t win, Ange would step in. Some creatures were smart, like Dimensional Beast and Big Bone, who had formed alliances early on. Some were not so bright and fought back. Insect God bit off one of Little Angel¡¯s arms, and in turn got sted by Holy Light sh. Little Angel then came back to Ange, and Ange gave it a good beating. So, two nights ago, he was busy beating up a god.
Anthony and Shamara exchanged nces, if anyone else had imed to be ¡®beating a god¡¯, they would assume it was a bluff, but with Ange, it was likely to be true. No wonder he needed six gods, one or two probably wouldn¡¯t satisfy his need to beat them up. ¡°You need six Gods because you were beating one up? Do you need the six to line up for you to beat?¡± Anthony frowned and shook his head, ¡°This doesn¡¯t add up. We might be missing some key information. For example, time in the Light Sea ne isn¡¯t the same as it is in the Master ne. One day there is two and a half hours shorter than our day. Two days ago, at nine o¡¯clock, it would have been mid-afternoon there. Lord, what were you doing then?¡± Ange tilted his head, ¡°Hatching a god.¡± That was when Hemel had just emerged from his cocoon. Anthony pped his hands, ¡°That must be it! Shamara merely has predictive ability, not prophetic ability. Something must have triggered her extrasensory perception. Lord, you were creating a god. Six gods ¨C perhaps you need to create six gods.¡± Ange counted on his fingers, then nodded, ¡°That¡¯s enough.¡±n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om After he finished speaking, the energy that was projected onto Anthony quickly faded, and Ange¡¯s presence disappeared. He had withdrawn. ¡°Err, Lord, could you give us a clue as to what¡¯s enough before you go? Don¡¯t just leave us hanging like that,¡± Anthony mumbled to himself. Of course, he only dared to mumble; he didn¡¯t dare to ask directly through a spiritual connection. Now he kind of understood why Negrisined about Ange from time to time; sometimes Ange really could be frustrating. ¡°Could it be¡­ six gods¡­ that¡¯s enough?¡± Shamara timidly suggested, ack of certainty in her voice. Anthony blinked, ¡°Even though it seems incredible, since you said it, it¡¯s probably true. What about now? Do you feel anything now?¡±
Shamara shook her head, ¡°I¡¯ve never been able to sense anything about Lord Ange, ever. It was only that night when we were practicing Holy Spirit Possession that I had a vague sense of something. Since then, despite trying, I haven¡¯t been able to sense anything.¡± Anthony nodded, ¡°It probably exceeds your capabilities. Anyway, enough about that. How have you been doingtely? Everything good?¡± Shamara smiled awkwardly. Anthony knew they weren¡¯t doing well from just one look. Despite one being a Six-winged Angel and the other a Fallen Angel, they were just two inexperienced girls who had little understanding of the world. Once brute force couldn¡¯t resolve their problems, they werepletely lost. Chapter 455: 267 Burn Your Food_2 Chapter 455: Chapter 267 Burn Your Food_2 Luna is the Holy Spirit, with Holy Spirit Armor and she can also possess Shamara, but they can¡¯t possibly run around in Holy Spirit Armor all the time, can they? And certainly not in their birthday suits, right?
If they wear clothes, they inevitably have to interact with other people, whether they steal or snatch them, it¡¯s not easy to find clothes that fit, let alone ones that aren¡¯t disgustingly dirty. Even if they didn¡¯t have an issue with dirty outerwear, and used Purification to make it wearable, what about underwear? Would one be willing to wear someone else¡¯s underwear after purifying them? Shamara certainly wouldn¡¯t. So, even now, she still wears the underwear she stitched from the silk cloth that Negris had given her when she was in Dark City. The quality of the fabric was very good, but since Shamara wasn¡¯t good at craftsmanship, the underwear is now, after several repairs,pletely out of shape. Who would have thought that underneath the simple dress of a cold and beautiful saintess, would be such deformed underwear? Luckily, no one has seen it, otherwise, Shamara would be so embarrassed that she would gouge out their eyes.
Beyond clothes, the food is also a hassle. Although her appetite is getting smaller and smaller, she still has to eat a bit every day. After gnawing on dry food and raw meat for a few months, she now misses the pastries in the curia. There are also numerous other little problems. Although they are still tolerable, they are definitely not ¡®living well¡¯. Now they mostly only venture out at night, trying their best not to interact with people, to avoid stirring up chaos. Previously, Shamara didn¡¯t restrain herself, but now she dares not. The Master ne is suffering from famine and pestilence. If she were to stir things up, it would definitely affect the overall situation of the disaster relief, and surely arge group of people woulde to get rid of her. That¡¯s bad enough, but Anthony would surelye to eradicate her, and maybe he could even convince Ange, then if Ange came for her, she wouldn¡¯t even have a chance to run. Because her predictive ability does not work on Ange, and in front of Ange, the voice in her heart would only crazily warn her not to make a move. Not daring to rashly take action andck of life experience, Shamara certainly isn¡¯t feelingfortable. Anthony kindly says: ¡°I want to rebuild the Fallen Legion. Would you like to join us?¡± ¡°Pff¡ª¡ª¡± Shamara spurted out, ¡®What is the Fallen Legion? Is it made up of those people whose divine power was plundered and corrupted by her? Now, Anthony invites her, the originator, to join the legion? Is he joking? Anthony says seriously: ¡°I am not joking, a group of people with the Power of Fall could aplish a lot under your leadership.¡± ¡°They won¡¯t ept mymand because it was me who made them Fallen.¡± Shamara retorted.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°They don¡¯t have to know your identity. This is a set of Holy Spirit Armor, just wear it.¡± Anthony took out a Holy Spirit Armor Egg and ced it on the table. ¡°Impossible, even in the armor, they will recognize me through the Power of Fall.¡± Shamara said.
Anthony smiled slightly. At this point, he was already 80% confident he could coax Shamara into his hands, because all Shamara spoke about were operational details, without directly refusing Anthony¡¯s proposal. ¡°We can do this, and this, and no one will suspect you.¡± Shamara was tongue-tied. Can that even work? She suddenly understood what it meant to be crafty and slippery. If she became an enemy to someone like Anthony, she could be yed to death without even knowing who was ying her. ¡­ Ange withdrew his power, then scratched his head. Negris hastily asked: ¡°What did you do earlier? Did Anthony cause any trouble? Did he cry for help?¡± After Ange told him everything, Negris frowned: ¡°Six deities? Why six? Why not seven, eight, or ten?¡± Ange tilted his head. Negris pped his wings and flew back and forth: ¡°You have now the Undead Godhood, count it as one, me, count it as another, Goddess of Beauty and God of Farming only have Faith Fire and can¡¯t be counted as deities, the Insect God counts as one, so now there are three.¡± ¡°Little Sapling is not a god, even though the elves call it the God of Life, but the power of the Tree of Life does note from faith, but from itself, its own power is even stronger than deities¡¯.¡± ¡°The Ring of Bnce, you only have one ring, no Godhood, so it doesn¡¯t count. So now you only have three gods unless you can ignite the divine fire of the Goddess of Beauty and the God of Farming.¡± Negris, counting his four ws, said: ¡°But that¡¯s only five, still missing one.¡±
¡°Lisa, Harvest.¡± Ange said. Although his tone was a statement, Negris knew it was a question mark, and he directly shook his head: ¡°No, stole the divine power, can be a fake god, but can¡¯t be a True God, cannot get Godhood.¡± ¡°Oh, what about this?¡± Ange said, and then reached into the Temple of Rest. Soon, Negris felt that his body ¡ª¡ª the Bronze Book was being quickly pulled and soon arrived under the World Tree at the edge of the farm. Negris suddenly knew that Ange must have nted something. There was a World Tree and arge bamboo forest there. Ange parted the bamboo, then pointed to a flower bud inside: ¡°This one.¡± The flower bud clearly resembled the one that sprouted a Divine Body in Druid Canyon, but it was much smaller, roughly the size of a washbasin. ¡°Kvada, are you growing a god?!¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help but gasp. Chapter 456: 267 Burn Your Food_3 Chapter 456: Chapter 267 Burn Your Food_3 Kvada, that skull, was stealthily sowing gods. Sure enough, what was sown in the bud wasn¡¯t necessarily a god, but it was indeed a quicker way to create one. After thousands of years of research, the elf Deru had finally made progress.
Unfortunately, the Divine Body was crushed by the God of Life. ¡°Are you sure you can raise a god? Only those with godliness count, you know,¡± asked Negris. Ange nodded in reply. ¡°That¡¯s enough, then. As long as we kindle the Divine Fire of the Goddess of Beauty and the God of Farming, along with this one, we¡¯ll have six gods. But what are we to do with six gods? Did Shamara say anything else?¡± Negris continued his questioning. Ange shook his head. Leaving the Resting Pce, returning to his own body, Negris continued to chatter, ¡°What are we to do with six gods? What are we to do with six gods?¡±
Ange suddenly made a move with the Divine Fire of the God of Farming, puzzled, he said, ¡°It is¡­ growing.¡± The Divine Fire of the God of Farming had grown a sizerger. It used to be a small me, the size of a fingertip, but now it was the size of a palm. ¡°What did you do? When did it start to grow? Did arge number of believers in the God of Farming suddenly appear?¡± Negris excitedly grabbed Ange¡¯s hand and asked, staring wide-eyed. The Divine Fire of the Goddess of Beauty hadn¡¯t changed before, so Negris didn¡¯t pay much attention to the Divine Fire of the God of Farming. He never expected it to suddenly grow. Ange pondered for a while: ¡°Seven days ago.¡± ¡°Why are you only mentioning an event from seven days ago now?¡± Negris was furious. This skull, unconcerned with anything outside of farming, didn¡¯t even mention that the Divine Fire had grown. Had it not been for this six-gods incident, who knows when he would have thought to mention it? Seven days ago, what had happened? They had started harvesting crops that day and then transported them to the Master ne for Anthony¡­ Thinking about the crops, Negris instinctively turned his head towards the farming area as white smoke slowly rose from that direction. Negris had a foreboding feeling and looked at Ange. Ange hadn¡¯t noticed yet, holding the Divine Fire of the God of Farming, he looked nkly at it.
How he wished Ange would never discover what had happened, or else this ne might explode¡­ ¡°Ange, don¡¯t get excited. Look over there.¡± It was inevitable and they would have to face it. Negris braced himself and spoke. Ange raised his head and with one nce, he dashed out, running out of the sandy in and onto the waterway. Initially, they thought he would sink, but he didn¡¯t. He was seen stepping on the air as if stepping on solid ground, walking in mid-air, he ran in a straight line towards the direction of the smoke. Negris didn¡¯t know what to say. Could this be Lightning¡¯s mid-air flying? In his haste, Ange improbably managed to pull it off. In the farm area, Gluglu and his tribe were dragging arge bag. They were sneaking underwater with floating boards, taking out stones from the bag and throwing them into the waterway as they swam. By the time they had swum a bit further, the stones reacted with the water, creating a sizzling explosion. The water around the stones quickly boiled and smoked, burning the gel on the water surface and the crops. They couldn¡¯t be burnt to charcoal but were being stewed into a mushy mess in the water. Before the stones and the water could react, Gluglu and his tribespeople had already swum far away, muttering as they swam, ¡°This is for killing Gluglu¡¯s Sea God, we¡¯ll burn your food, starve you all.¡± Gluglu had no idea that his actions were bringing trouble to the entire seabed.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om ¡°Damn it, we¡¯ve lost all the food, Anthony¡¯s disaster relief n can¡¯t proceed now,¡± looking at the pulpy mess on the water¡¯s surface, Negris immediately realized the serious consequences of the chain reaction. After losing sufficient food supply, all of Anthony¡¯s ns woulde to a halt. If food couldn¡¯t be replenished in a short span of time, the entire n would copse due to a chain reaction, Anthony¡¯s reputation would plummet, and he may even be kicked out from his position as the acting Pope. PS: Er, it seems today is my birthday, oh well, never mind, there are no holidays anyway, consider casting a couple of monthly votes or rmendation tickets as your gifts.
Chapter 457: 268: They Only Had Time to See a Pair of Feet_1 Chapter 457: Chapter 268: They Only Had Time to See a Pair of Feet_1 Why fuss over it? Because if Ange spared no expense, he could regrow the burned food within three to five days, wait until Anthony¡¯s gap was filled, and then slowly look for the guy who burned the food to settle ounts.
But Negris didn¡¯t dare to persuade him to do so, because Ange was about to explode, his head, hands, and eyes wrapped in furious soul mes. From his eye sockets, the mes of his soul nearly spurted out, creating intense fluctuations, constantly radiating towards the sea ahead. Undead observe the outside world through the soul. The fluctuations emitted by the soul touch matter and then reflect back. If the soul¡¯s fluctuations are very strong, they can see more things. But for Ange, it wasn¡¯t a matter of strength, but more like a searchlight. Wherever he looked, even the elements were affected by him, as if locked in his gaze. In the distance, on the calm surface of the water, a water monster quietly raised its head and nced in Ange¡¯s direction. Gluglu gave the tribe a strict order. As soon as the alkali stone wasid, they must run away immediately and never linger. It vividly remembered how Ange had killed the Sea God with just two or three punches after transforming. Against such an enemy, even a slow escape meant death.
If the Sea God Ange had killed wasn¡¯t from their tribe, Gluglu wouldn¡¯t dare provoke such an enemy. But now that the Sea God was dead, Gluglu¡¯s tribe was essentially disintegrated. Since they were disintegrated anyway, they might as well scatter in different directions after their revenge, which led to everyone running away in panic. However, among all the water monsters, there were always a few who were skeptical, curious, dismissive, believing that the sea could protect them, and humans couldn¡¯t reach them, particrly newly born water monsters. And so, one water monster had stayed behind. It poked its head out to observe the situation, wanting to see the frustrated looks on the faces of the humans whose food supplies had been burned. The moment it poked its head out, it was already locked onto by Ange. Now he knew who the culprit was. Ange¡¯s gaze instantly focused on the water monster¡¯s head. Under the drive of powerful soul energy, a blue dot emerged from the focus of Ange¡¯s gaze. Then, with a bang, the water monster¡¯s head exploded. ¡°Hiss¡­ Is this¡­ the Eye of the Gods?¡± Negris¡¯ eyes were about to pop out. The Eye of the Gods, amon name, as if it¡¯s a power all gods should possess. Indeed, the gaze of most gods is harmful. Ordinary people would be scared to death by one re, but none of them was the real Eye of the Gods. Only the ability to project power to the focal point through focused gaze like this can be called the Eye of the Gods; moreover, this focal point can prate the mist of space and time, reaching the farthest ends, even across different nes of existence. Of course, the farther the power is projected, the more it weakens. Negris was already numb. Ange¡¯s rage had forced out two of his abilities ¨C walking on air and the Eye of the Gods. Dare he try to advise Ange? If he dared to speak, it was possible that the next skill Ange would awaken would be to explode the dog¡­ Dragon Head.
So, Negris could only watch helplessly as Little Angel and Little Zombie ran over, were stuffed into Ange¡¯s space one by one, and then dived headfirst into the water. The big cat also rushed over, but seeing the ce where Ange dived into, it stretched out its paw and probed a few times, eventually giving up. It picked up a piece of loosely fizzing alkali stone that hadn¡¯t fully dissolved, and ran back quickly. As soon as Ange jumped into the water, he immediately felt himself enveloped by the dense water elements. The ocean is the ce richest in water elements, deep, vast and infinite. However, this meant nothing to Ange. No matter how plentiful the water elements were, he could only use level 2 magic. But because the frequency was too high, it was quite suitable for movement. One after another, Level 2 Water Arrow Techniques were fired by him towards the back, pushing his body to move in the water. The water resistance is tremendous. Even though Ange¡¯s speed is already catching up to regr fish, he still finds it slow. What to do since it¡¯s slow? He goes into tinker mode, continuously adjusting his posture, switching his magical technique, changing his direction, and constantly using the Ring of Bnce to calcte his speed. Eventually, he discovered that using wind magic for propulsion is faster than using water magic, and generating a force behind him for a counter thrust is faster than directing it towards his body. Therefore, whirlwinds rapidly spewed out behind him, their reaction force propelling him forward at great speed, surpassing some swimming fish. Everything he passed echoed with a bubbly noise, leaving a trail of bubbles in his wake. Finally, Ange took out the Air Bubble Stone.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Negris always thought that the Air Bubble Stone was a specialty of the Wind Element ne. Unexpectedly, it¡¯s produced in the Light Sea ne. The denser the water, the easier it is to trigger air bubbles, and it doesn¡¯t require as high speeds as air, nor will it drag too far. Ange held the Air Bubble Stone in his hand, and the air bubbles it stimted enveloped his body. He speedily raced across the waters, with a long trail of air bubbles behind him. Due to the air bubbles, his speed didn¡¯t slow down muchpared to flying in the air.
To have flying speed under the sea is an entirely different concept. In front of him, a school of fish formed a massive ball, who all swam swiftly. Any predator that dared to confront them would be promptly dodged, creating a huge gap. By the time Ange noticed them, it was toote. He head-on-collided straight into them. The usually agile fish didn¡¯t have time to dodge this time and were sent sprawling. Those hit by Ange turned belly-up from the impact, not knowing whether they were dead or unconscious. The high-speed Arrow-toothed fish have streamlined bodies, like a sharply-pointed shuttle, swimming like shot arrows. They are the kind of fish that never stop moving because they consume a lot of oxygen. Under normal circumstances, the oxygen in the water is not sufficient for them, so they have to swim rapidly to increase the flow of water through their gills to avoid suffocation. Even while sleeping, the Arrow-toothed fish don¡¯t stop moving. They are amongst the fastest swimming fish in the sea. But today, a school of Arrow-toothed fish watched in awe as an organism, they¡¯ve never seen before, sped past them, leaving a long trail of air bubbles behind as it vanished into the dark depths of the ocean. All they got to see was a pair of feet. Even though Ange had been racing about at full speed for half a day, he had not encountered those watery creatures that had been guing him. These creatures could not possibly swim as fast as he could. The only exnation was¡­he was chasing in the wrong direction. Realising he might have been heading in the wrong direction, Ange didn¡¯t stop. Instead, he continued to race forward. This ne was not big, and he didn¡¯t mind searching the entire ne to find those water creatures. However, Negris couldn¡¯t wait that long. Seeing Ange showing no signs of stopping, Negris, who was projected onto Ange¡¯s body, couldn¡¯t help but persuade, ¡°Ange, why don¡¯t we go back first? You¡¯ve been chasing for half a day already. There¡¯s no need to rush. Anthony needs us more urgently. If there¡¯s not enough food supply, things will get chaotic over there¡­¡± Just as Negris finished speaking, he suddenly felt something big move not far away ¨C like a gigantic palm. Negris thought he¡¯d seen wrong. He was projected onto Ange¡¯s body, and his perception was weak. Making a mistake was normal. But soon, he saw more ¨C a face, a huge face, then a neck, torso, and thighs.
As Ange kept flying forward, a gigantic stone statue slowly appeared before Negris. What he saw earlier was the hand of the statue stretching forward. ¡°Kvada, Goddess of Redemption! Why is there a statue of the Church of Light¡¯s Goddess of Redemption here? And it¡¯s massive!? Ange, stop. Let me take a look,¡± Negris cried. However, Ange didn¡¯t stop. Instead, he made a turn and headed elsewhere, as if something else attracted him. PS: Sorry for thete update, here¡¯s a chapter first Chapter 458: 269: What Do You Want as Compensation?_1 Chapter 458: Chapter 269: What Do You Want as Compensation?_1 ¡°Head back, where are you going? I need to examine the statue.¡± Negris urged Ange in desperation.
The size of the Statue of the Goddess of Redemption far exceeded Negris¡¯ expectations, so much so that he couldn¡¯t grasp it with a single nce¡ªwhen he saw a palm, he couldn¡¯t see the face. When one saw the face, one couldn¡¯t see its waist, and when they saw the waist, they lost sight of the palm. Indeed, this was the ocean floor, and the water severely limited his vision. But the statue was still excessivelyrge, so he anxiously wanted Ange to move closer in order to provide a clearer view. However, Ange didn¡¯t heed his request and turned towards the area behind the statue instead. With Ange¡¯s Soul Strength, his field of vision was considerably wider than Negris¡¯, and he saw much more, he had already noticed what was there. But the only thing that held his attention to such an extent that he ignored Negris was¡­ ¡°I knew it, Kvada. You can¡¯t resist when you see a farm, why is there a farm under the sea?¡± Negris cursed uncontrobly after he finally got a clear look at the location.
It was arge area of the ocean floor, clearly tended and organized into ¡®fields¡¯. Instead of furrows, the fields were configured with gravel pits positioned every three to four meters. Pits around one meter in diameter had been dug into the ocean floor, spaced three to four meters apart in neat rows and columns, extending as far as Negris couldn¡¯t see. Each pit was filled with fist-sized gravel, clearly different from the ocean floor¡¯s texture. The ocean floor was fertile silt, whereas the pits were filled with gravel that had clearly been transported from elsewhere. Most of the gravel pits were empty, only a handful of them had seaweed growing between the stones. The seaweeds were like strings of clear, moist grapes, forming clusters, the longest ones stretching for dozens of meters, swaying in the current. The seaweed grew from the gravel, extending its roots around the stones before plunging into the surrounding silt. Negris immediately saw the advantage of this formation, the seaweed roots could firmly attach to the gravels, and wouldn¡¯t be easily swept away by the currents, enabling it to grow as long as possible. If the seaweed was rooted in the silt, it would be swept away by the current once it grew to a few meters in length. The gaps between the stones also provided room for the root system to stretch out and absorb the nutrients from the fertile soil. This arrangement was certainly not a natural formation. It was painstakingly cultivated for seaweed farming, earning the title ¡®field¡¯. ¡°Can crops grow under the sea? Who cultivated these fields? Why are there only a few dozen, why didn¡¯t they nt it all?¡± Negris was filled with questions. Unlike before, Ange was no longer furious. He heard Negris¡¯ question and said: ¡°Field, sea field.¡±
¡°Yes, field, why are you grinning like an idiot, they¡¯re not your fields.¡± Negris responded, irritated. The only things expected to rescue Ange from his violent state were probably fields and farming. ¡°Learn to cultivate on our own.¡± Ange darted forward, stopping in front of one of the seaweeds. He examined it for a while before poking it with his finger. Under the effect of the Instant Death Halo, the ce where his finger touched began to wither and break. The broken part was carried away by the current. ¡°Has it not produced seeds?¡± Negris thought. He had been around Ange for long enough to consider himself a semi-skilled farmer by now. Ange tore off a piece, dragged it to the ocean floor, and nted it in the silt, then poked it with his finger. The seaweed quickly began to grow roots that prated the silt, growing rapidly. However, after a while, presumably due to ack of nutrients, it withered. Still, it confirmed that seaweed could propagate through cuttings. Without hesitation, Ange proceeded to tear off the dozens of stray seaweeds nearby, cut them into segments, and took them back inside the Temple of Rest. He then casually dug a pond, filled it with water, and soaked the cuttings there. Negris looked around, somewhat anxious. ¡°Ange, isn¡¯t this a bit problematic? These crops were clearly grown by someone, what if you take them all?¡± ¡°Pay.¡± Ange stated. Indeed, it was a solution, but what if others only wanted seaweed and not the money¡­ But with the pace of Ange¡¯s harvest, he could probably make up for it in about three hours by giving arge piece of seaweed field to the other party.
Well, let¡¯s justpensate. But how much is appropriate?n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Ange didn¡¯t care, even if Harvey came to chop him off now, he would finish his harvest first. While he was happily digging, Ange suddenly sensed a faint aura creeping towards him in the mud. The water flow concealed its movements, the elements weakened its aura, the darkness eclipsed its form, much like an octopus, a predatory color-changer of the sea floor, creeping quietly over. Such a small move naturally couldn¡¯t escape Ange¡¯s senses, but even though he sensed the other party¡¯s aura, it was not threatening to him. Ange didn¡¯t expose him, but just tilted his head to watch his movement. For the sake of concealment, the other didn¡¯t open its eyes as it moved. They feared their gaze or aura might alert the enemy. So, they just moved towards the general direction. When they were almost in the right position, it quietly raised its head, barely opening one eye. The sight scared it so much it jumped up from the mud, for it found the two empty eyeholes of the enemy right in front of it, staring at it in silence. Was it discovered?! The creature in the mud jumped up abruptly, revealing a metal baton it had been suppressing under its body, ready to hit Ange. But Ange was faster; with a swoosh of his hand, he snatched the iron rod from it. It swung the rod-holding hands before Ange, only to whip the air. Having lost its weapon, it was suddenly anxious and shouted at him, ¡°Give it back to me, you thief, give back my Starfall rod.¡± Speaking underwater was supposed to be impossible, but amazingly, it didn¡¯t expel air from its mouth, but a spray of water that diffused like sound waves, so that Ange could hear its voice clearly. Perhaps it should be she, not it. The attacker was actually a humanoid creature, just like a human being, with soft long hair, delicate features, and a tall and curvy body, even quite pretty. Of course, this was from the perspective of Negris. Ange couldn¡¯t tell if humans are pretty or not.
Some minor differences revealed the truth that she was not human, like the scales on her body, the webbing between her toes, the vertical eye lids, etc. She was a humanoid creature with marine characteristics. Starfall rod? Ange looked at the baton in his hand, wasn¡¯t it just a rusty iron rod? Why was it called the Starfall rod? Ange returned it to her. She picked up the rod and tried to hit Ange, but as soon as she swung it up, the rod was snatched back by Ange. ¡°Give it back to me, you little thief!¡± Ange returned it to her. She swung again, Ange stole it again. After a few times, she finally realized that she is no match for this skeleton frame. The next time she got it back, she burst into tears. ¡°You¡¯re stealing food from our whole n, we¡¯re gonna starve, you thief. Don¡¯t steal our food, please. Eat me instead, my meat tastes good.¡± She burst into tears, her mouth emitting at a very high pitch. The sound waves hit the water in front of her and generated arge quantity of air bubbles that kept rising up, making gurgling noises. Negris wanted tough, the sight of a head squealing and bubbling was tooical. But he could not, as Ange had stolen food from the entire n, and it would be inhuman tough at it¡­ Well, I am not human, so what¡¯s the point of being humane, hahaha¡­ ¡°Compensate, what do you want?¡± Ange¡¯s voice went straight into the female sea-person¡¯s mind.
Obviously, this female sea person was the owner of these seaweed crops. Ange was just waiting for a fairpensation, otherwise, she would have been annihted long ago. PS: This chapter was supposed to be for yesterday. Today¡¯s chapter is still under progress. Chapter 459: 270: Don’t do this, Goddess statues can’t grow anything_1 Chapter 459: Chapter 270: Don¡¯t do this, Goddess statues can¡¯t grow anything_1 Compensation? It¡¯s probably the most absurd words Alice has ever heard in her life. Compensation? The seabed has no such practice. However, she¡¯s heard that the Sky People from Whitesand Islet have such a habit. The term ¡®Sky People¡¯ refers to humans living in the air.
The underwater world is more about stealing, killing, and enving. Just now, Alice came, harboring a resolution to die, these seaweeds are the staple food for dozens of people in her tribe. If stolen or consumed, they would all starve to death. This kind of thing has happened many times. The Zaotian that once covered the entire seabed now is left with only dozens of clumps. It was said that there were thousands or tens of thousands of people in her tribe before she was born. But now, only a few dozen individuals are left, with her being the only remaining warrior. She used to be full of fighting spirit, believing that she would definitely protect the Zaotian. But now it seems that at most she can just drive away the fish that steal food. If she encounters Sky People, she doesn¡¯t even have the ability to fight back. What she didn¡¯t know was that not all Sky People are so abnormal. As for the notion ofpensation, the underwater world would have none of it. The moremon urrence would be to be caught and eaten. Creatures like the snake-fish aquabeasts, who cultivatedrge sea monsters, would prey on members of their tribe who were caught alone.
She froze; while Ange asked again, ¡°What do you want?¡± Gathering her courage, Alice responded, ¡°You¡¯ve taken our tribe¡¯s entire food supply. You need topensate us with food.¡± Ange reached into his bag and pulled out a bag of grain, handing it to Alice and asking, ¡°How many people are in your tribe?¡± As soon as the dry grain bag came out, it began to take in water and bubbles started to emerge. Alice, filled with doubts, poked a small hole in the bag and plump grains of grain started floating up. Alice¡¯s eyes bulged. She quickly covered the small hole, unable to believe what she saw. ¡°All these¡­ for us?¡± Ange nodded. A struggle appeared on Alice¡¯s face. After a moment, she gritted her teeth, ¡°Come with me.¡± She turned and swam into the distance. After swimming a certain distance, Alice was worried that the Sky Person might not keep up. She looked back, only to see Ange leisurely following behind her, leaving a trail of bubbles without showing any signs of fatigue. Turns out Sky People can swim? And breathe underwater? Alice assumed that the bubbles following Ange were due to respiration. Seeing that Ange could catch up, Alice quickly picked up speed. In not too long, she swam out of Zaotian and came to a barren rocky seabed, which looked like a giant rock, exposed at the ocean bottom, full of holes like a huge porous volcanic rock. Alice swam into one of the holes. Ange followed her in, swam through a narrow passage, and suddenly, his head emerged from the water.
This was an enclosed space that no water could flow into due to the presence of air, much like a bottle immersed upside down in water.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Unable to wait, Alice quickly opened the grain sack, scooped up the soaked grains, and took a big bite. ¡°Ah¡­ It¡¯s not even cooked¡­¡± Negris began to say something but his voice faded as he spoke. He realized that cooking wasn¡¯t possible under the sea, and even if he told her, she would still have to eat it raw. Luckily, Alice had good teeth. After chewing slowly for a while, her eyes began to shine brighter. She finally swallowed the grain whole, including the husk and germ, eximing excitedly, ¡°It¡¯s real food! I can taste the energy.¡± It wasn¡¯t the taste of energy, but the taste of starch and ¡®sugar¡¯. Of course, starch is high in calories, and high calories represent energy, so she wasn¡¯t exactly wrong. ¡°You¡¯re reallypensating us with food?¡± Alice¡¯s eyes sparkled with excitement. Food was much more valuable than the seaweed she grew. In her tribe, it could even save lives. Why was this so? Because rice has high energy. The seabed is dark,cking in photosynthesis. Very little starch is found in seaweed; it mostly consists of water, nt fibers, and protein. It¡¯s excellent for weight loss. If Aunt Minotaur ate seaweed every day, her fat rings would definitely disappear rapidly. But there¡¯s a problem. The seabed is cold, water is dense, and swimming burns a lot of energy. High-calorie starchy food, along with protein and nt fibers, is greatly needed to survive hunger. Among her tribe, being chubby is considered beautiful. Alice¡¯s slender figure in her tribe would be seen as ugly. It¡¯s not that she doesn¡¯t want to gain weight, it¡¯s just that there are no high-calorie foods to eat; she¡¯s starved thin. The highest calorie thing in the sea is the subdermal fat of marine life. Her tribe used to hunt some marine creatures for food, and there were quite a few chubby people then.
But now, as their numbers dwindled, they could only grow some seaweed at the bottom of the sea for sustenance. Of course, she would not understand the reasons behind this. These were conclusions Negris deducedter on. The main point was the severeck of sugar in Sea People. That¡¯s why they would light up at the sight of rice grains. In a long-termck of sugar, many low-blood sugar diseases would develop. For instance, many of her tribe members have hypoglycemia, easily fainting with too much activity. Regrly adding high-sugar foods could alleviate the symptoms, so that¡¯s why she said it could save lives. Ange nodded, found a dry spot in the cave, and continuously transferred grain. Then he asked, ¡°How many of you are there?¡± ¡°Si¡­sixty-four.¡± Alice stared in awe at Ange¡¯s ¡®creation out of nothing¡¯ ability, her reverence increasing a few notches: Sky People could materialize food out of thin air¡­ This misunderstanding continued for quite a while until Alice had earned enough money to buy her first Space Artifact. Afterpensating with enough food, Ange returned to the underwater zaotian, requisitioning a portion of it. Alice had no objections and didn¡¯t dare to raise any. After all, there were only around sixty members left in the tribe. Growing a few dozen seaweeds was enough for their consumption. Anything more would be impossible to manage and would be eaten by small fish. One by one, Ange nted the seaweed in the zaotian. Then he stomped on the ground, and the seaweed grew rapidly and sprouted roots due to the Instant Death Halo. Once the roots had grown, Ange removed his footprint, stopping the Instant Death Halo. The growth was too rapid. The nutrients of the seaweed clearly couldn¡¯t keep up.
After some thought, Ange made some mud in the farm, mixed it with diluted Insect Ash Liquid, formed it into balls, and then fired them. They soon turned into stone balls, simr to pottery. He dug another pit, filled it with pottery balls instead of crushed stones, and nted seaweed in it. The roots of the seaweed intertwined around the pottery balls and then prated into the mud, growing wildly under the Instant Death Halo. The original zaotian had seaweeds growing up to forty meters in length, but the one nted by Ange rapidly grew to over one hundred meters. Therger the volume, the greater the influence of the water flow. After it grew over one hundred meters, a strong undercurrent blew, and the seaweed was uprooted and washed away. ¡°You need a heavy object to press down the seaweed,¡± Negris pointed out. Ange nodded. However, the seabed was in. Where could he find something heavy? Looking around, Ange¡¯s eyes fell on the giant statue. ¡°Don¡¯t, don¡¯t do that. That¡¯s the Statue of the Goddess of Redemption, not a tool for nting things,¡± Negris tried to persuade him. Unfortunately, his persuasion was in vain. Ange made a pile of pottery balls at the base of the statue. This time, in addition to adding Insect Ash Liquid, he also added things like bird dung, Dragon Soil, and nt ash in an attempt to bnce the nutrients. Then he strung ropes between the legs of the statue, making a climbing. The seaweed clung to the, the rope tied to the statue¡¯s legs, dispersing the impact of the water flow. The only downside was that it looked a bit indecent. ¡°Kvada, if the people of the Church of Light see you disrespecting their goddess like this, they will surelyunch a holy war against you,¡± Negris scolded irritably.
Ange tilted his head in confusion, clearly unable to understand why borrowing a statue to press seaweed was considered disrespectful. After all, no one said it was disrespectful when he used the Ring of Bnce to weigh things. Having piled up arge pottery ball several meters in diameter, Ange only nted one seaweed because he found that seaweed floats in the water without any weight. As long as it can withstand the water flow, it can grow infinitely thick and long. Therger a single seaweed grows, the more efficiently it can utilize nutrients. nting more would be a waste. Just like that, a seaweed mass was cultivated by Ange. It grew longer and thicker, advancing all the way to the surface of the sea. The seabed here was only about five hundred meters deep. If the seaweed could grow to five hundred meters, it could indeed reach the surface. While he was busy,rge bubbles started rising from therge coral rock in the distance. When Ange swam over to check, he saw Alice and her tribespeople hiding a few dozen meters away from the rock. ¡°What is¡­ happening?¡± Ange swam over and asked. Alice¡¯s tribespeople were startled. They were all hiding covertly, but Ange spotted them in one nce. If Ange were an enemy, they wouldn¡¯t stand a chance. On the other hand, Alice knew about Ange¡¯s power and wasn¡¯t too bothered. She directly answered: ¡°The ocean is breathing. Every night, it exhales air, and a strong wind blows from inside the rock. We havee out to take shelter until the wind stops.¡± Does this happen every night? What¡¯s the principle behind that? Thermal expansion and contraction? Fascinating. Negris marveled at this wonderful physical phenomenon but didn¡¯t think much more about it. However, he soon noticed Ange staring at the bubbling rock, seemingly deep in thought.
Negris couldn¡¯t help but look a few times more and racked his brain, finallying to a conclusion: the bubbling rock probably couldn¡¯t be used for nting, right? ¡°What are you thinking? Can this reef be used to nt something?¡± Negris asked tentatively. Due to Ange¡¯s peculiar methods, he wasn¡¯t too confident. Even if he believed it was improbable, he had to ask Ange first to avoid embarrassmentter. Ange shook his head and said, ¡°Here, at night, wind blows.¡± ¡°Oh? Night, wind blows.¡± Negris looked up at the dark surroundings, uprehending. At the lightless bottom of the sea, it was impossible to distinguish whether it was night. ¡°Night, wind blows,¡± Ange repeated. ¡°I know, night, wind blows. Then what?¡± Chapter 460: 271: The Goddess’s Portable Divine Artifact_1 Chapter 460: Chapter 271: The Goddess¡¯s Portable Divine Artifact_1 It seemed like everyone had forgotten. That new-born deity who contended with Shamara for the Faith Elemental Force at a ce where the wind blew at night.
Originally, everyone thought it was in the Resting Abyss, so a bunch of people ran back to look for it, finding the Holy Kingdom, yet only found a Little Ghost and two petrified fellows. So they continued searching, finding the vige of the Elf Druid and the Divine Body that had sprouted there. However, there was no wind blowing at night in the vige of the Elf Druid, thus that Divine Body also wasn¡¯t the guy contending with Shamara for faith. The wind started to blow here at night instead. Could it be possible that the divinity is here? Ange didn¡¯t exin, but went straight towards that reef. ¡°Hey, Sky People, where are you going? Come back, it¡¯s too dangerous.¡± Alice shouted loudly, but she didn¡¯t dare pursue him. She could only watch helplessly as Ange disappeared at the biggest entrance of the reef. The reason Ange chose this entrance was due to the most bubbles bubbling up from here, gurgling, albeit very much like the air produced by the Magic Fish Tank made by magicians who keep fish.
¡°This material from the reef is very suitable for aquariumndscape. When I go back, I can dig some and sell it to the old magicians who raise fish.¡± Negris muttered. ¡°Okay.¡± Ange responded casually, pped the rock and picked a fewrge fragments to put into the Temple of Rest. It was originally just a random strike, after continuing to spring forward, but after a while, Ange suddenly circled back and looked at the reef¡¯s fracture surface. Negris took a sharp breath: ¡°This reef is alive?¡± Ange shook his head: ¡°Petrification Crossbow.¡± On the fracture surface, some texture that only appears in living organisms was revealed, but it had already petrified with marine organisms attached to the surface or dposition. If it wasn¡¯t for the ident breaking off a piece, it would be hard to discover these textures. Could it be possible that this reef was once a giant organism? This isn¡¯t an impossible thing, the Sea People can actually create hundred-meter long marine creatures, it¡¯s not rare that this reef is alive. If it belongs to a mollusk kind of creature, it can grow evenrger. However, Ange had to be vignt, soul energy surged out from him and rapidly armorized over his body. Once armorization waspleted, Ange rushed into the bubbles. The channels and holes on the reef continuously spewed out air bubbles, blowing away the water. As soon as Ange entered the channels, he immediately felt a strong rush of air blowing at him, blowing off the humidity on his body and pushing him backward. Ange gently invoked magic power, guiding the wind to blow from the sides of his body while he pressed against the wind to move forward.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om
After entering, Negris became more certain. This was indeed the interior of a giant marine organism, and it was most probably a m. The outer reef being its shell? After entering the interior of the reef, they saw a huge space, with many unusually shaped stone columns supporting this space. Countless holes were dug out from the inner walls with some debris in some holes, clearly indicating someone was living there. Looking at the number of holes, at its peak, the interior of the reef could amodate thousands, if not tens of thousands of people. The lower half of the space was filled with water, with many air bubbles bubbling up and spewing out from all directions through the channels and holes. By tomorrow, when the wind stops, seawater would surge in and rise until it was higher than all the water channels before stopping. The air inside the space would bepressed into the upper half and remain un-submerged. This un-submerged part was the main living area for the Sea People. On this level, there was a statue of the Goddess of Redemption. Her hands were spread on her right shoulder as if pulling an invisible rope. Perhaps there used to be a rope, but now it might have rotten or fallen off. In any case, the rope was no longer visible. The statue maintained such a dragging pose, staying put there. Ange followed the direction of the invisible rope and jumped into the bubbling water, sinking down and soon saw a huge pearl. ¡°Impossible!¡± At the sight of the pearl, Negris already shouted: ¡°It can¡¯t be a pearl, how could organic matterst so long? It should have decayed a long time ago.¡± The pearl is formed by the mollusk¡¯s secretion of nacre, which encapstes it. This pearl material degrades and dposes easily, so there¡¯s practically no chance of a thousand-year-old pearl existing. Indeed, it wasn¡¯t a pearl. Ange confronted the air bubbles, touched the pearl and found it to be a stone. Perhaps it was once a pearl, but it had long since petrified.
¡°Another Petrification Crossbow. It seems the Church of Light has done a lot of modifications here.¡± Negrismented. The stone ball had a diameter of about seven or eight meters. Ange pushed it and with the buoyancy of the water, he was able to move it easily. Negris threw his consciousness towards where the air was emerging and discovered another seven or eight meterrge hole there. Could this stone ball have blocked thatrge hole? Negris¡¯s consciousness returned to the stone ball and he immediately found a golden rope lying on the ground underneath the stone ball. When they descended, they didn¡¯t notice it because it was always suppressed by the stone ball. ¡°Ange, pick up that rope. Could it possibly be the item that the Statue of the Goddess of Redemption was dragging?¡± Negris wondered aloud. Ange picked it up, nced at it, didn¡¯t notice anything special and packed it into the Temple of Rest. ¡°Wow, Ange, you¡¯ve picked up a treasure. That¡¯s the Rope of Redemption, a divine artifact of the Goddess of Redemption.¡± Negris was envious after checking the rope in the space. How was this skeleton¡¯s luck so good? Wherever he went, he could pick up treasures. Was he the bone of the Goddess of Fortune? Ange tilted his head: ¡°What¡¯s its use?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t know, but it should work for tying up people. However, it seems broken and has lost its divine power. Let me repair itter, and you can infuse some divine power into it. Gosh, I told you your luck is good. You bumped into a god like me who knows how to use the Gold-touch Stick. Ordinary people wouldn¡¯t have been able to repair this divine artifact.¡± Negris boasted. Ange nodded: ¡°Can use it to tie up seaweed.¡± ¡°¡­¡±
After diving a round beneath the water, apart from the broken Rope of Redemption, there was no other harvest. After confirming this point, Ange finally focused his attention on therge hole bubbling with air. Judging from the airflow and duration of therge hole, this hole definitely leads to a huge space, or even another ne. Should they go inside and check? After considering it for only two seconds, Ange made his decision. He pushed the stone ball to roll into therge hole, bead to bead, just fitting tightly into the hole, blocking the emerging air. ¡­ ¡°What? The food stocks were burned?¡± Back at the Master ne, Anthony jumped up from his chair after receiving this news. He quickly closed his eyes, called out to Ange, but as expected, he got no response. Ange was furiously chasing the Fish Snake Water Creature who had burned his food. Realizing that there¡¯s no saving the situation, Antony took a decisive decision, ¡°Get moving, get moving quickly. Immediately initiate the Phoenix n!¡± Chapter 461: 272: Subordinate becomes the Lord, it’s too late to run_1 Chapter 461: Chapter 272: Subordinate bes the Lord, it¡¯s toote to run_1 Ange had never been a curious skull. He was content with his lot, willing to tend his plot ofnd for a thousand years. Apart from farming, other things did not interest him. He was not even curious about the whereabouts of the king. Still, he did ask Negris this question because, among all other things, the king¡¯s location was the only thing that could arouse a smidgeon of his interest. If he didn¡¯t know, then it¡¯s as if he had never asked. Had the cave been a small space, he would have peeked in and then left. However, the cave might be a vast space, even another world. Ange had no interest in that. He has no desire to explore new worlds; outside, there was seaweed waiting to be nted. He sealed the hole and left the reef. Alice came to him immediately. Today, the ¡®Breath of the Sea¡¯ ended too early. It usuallysts a whole night. This change must have something to do with Ange. ¡°I plugged it up,¡± Ange said. Alice looked shocked: ¡°You could move the stone ball?¡± Ange tilted his head, was it difficult? He easily pushed it and stomped hard a couple of times after cing it inside the hole, ensuring it was firmly in ce. Watching Ange¡¯s receding figure, Alice murmured: ¡°The Sky People are so powerful. Are all Sky People this powerful?¡± Ange moving a stone ball with a seven or eight-meter diameter didn¡¯t mean Alice could. Not even underwater. Even if the entire n worked together, they could only push the ball with difficulty. They could not stabilize it, and it would spurt out as soon as the wind blew in the night. Eventually, the Sea People gave up on sealing the leak. They timed it well so that everyone would leave at nightfall and return the next day when the wind stopped.
It was still the time for the gusts of wind, yet no bubbles were arising. Apparently, the hole had been thoroughly sealed. To be sure, Alice and her n didn¡¯t return to the reef until the next morning. They dived into the pool below to see¡­ ¡°Alice, that Sky Person is so terrifying. He shoved the entire stone ball in there, only leaving less than half a meter exposed. Even when our n was at its peak, with everyone working together, we could only just block the hole with at least three metres left sticking out. Even arge sea monster couldn¡¯t blow it open,¡± a nsman said apprehensively. Now they understood why the only warrior in their n was so respectful towards a Sky Person. ¡°Alice, does this mean we don¡¯t have to flee at night in the future?¡± a nsman suddenly realized. No one liked leaving home at night, sleeping outside before returning, feeling unsafe and worried. Moreover, it was troublesome. They could endure one or two days, but living like this for a lifetime is torturous. ¡°That seems to be the case¡­¡± Unexpectedly, Ange casually solved a significant issue for them. Filled with gratitude, the Sea People decided to send Alice on a mission to deliver some shells as gifts. Alice, carrying a bag of shells, arrived at the seaweed field. Not seeing Ange, she began wandering around, looking for any sign of him. While searching, she vaguely saw some objects floating ¡®in the sky¡¯. From the seabed, her view of the sky was, naturally, slightly upwards. ncing up, she saw arge object with tentacles drifting vaguely, extending all the way to the sea surface. ¡°My god, what huge tentacles! Is that a Sea Demon? Has the Sky Person been caught and eaten?¡± Alice quicklyy down in the mud and nervously watched. However, after a while, Alice noticed something was not right. The swinging of those ¡®tentacles¡¯ was too regr, consistent with the fluctuations of the water flow. It did not look like independent movement but more like it was drifting with the waves. Could it not be alive? Gathering her courage, Alice sneaked closer to the ¡®tentacles¡¯ and was then met with a shocking sight. It was not a tentacle but a piece of seaweed. ¡°How¡­how¡¯s that possible? A piece of seaweed grew this long in two days? Has it been feeding on male seahorses?¡± Alice murmured. Legend has it that male seahorses had the effect of nourishing Yin and strengthening Yang. Like humans tapping into adrenaline, these seahorses provided an energy boost, making consistent consumers grow faster. Two days ago, there was no seaweed here when the Sky Person hadn¡¯t arrived. There was no doubt that the seaweed¡¯s emergence had something to do with the Sky Person. But no matter their rtionship, it was impossible for the seaweed to grow this high in two days. Was magic involved? Realizing it was only seaweed, Alice was no longer hiding. She swam around, and when she reached a certain height, she noticed the base of the seaweed was wrapped around the Goddess statue. ¡°This Sky Person. He¡¯s disrespecting the Goddess. I¡­¡± a conflicted expression appeared on Alice¡¯s face. The Sea People living here undoubtedly had some connection with this statue and the Goddess of Redemption. They may even be part of the Guardian n.
As the name suggested, Guardian ns were beings protecting the deities. Their mission was to guard the statues, tombs, miracles, and other deity-rted things. Alice remembered when she was young, the elders in the n would tell her about her mission during training. Protecting the Goddess¡¯ statue and keeping it clean, destroying creatures that disrespected the statue, and so on.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Now, is it time to sacrifice for the mission? After contemting for a while, Alice sighed, ¡°Forget it. We haven¡¯t cleaned the Goddess¡¯s statue for years; we¡¯ve already failed our mission. Let there be disrespect if it must. Besides¡­ it does look quite nice.¡±
Because Ange had wrapped the between the statue¡¯s legs, the seaweed naturally grew to cover the lower half of the figure. From a distance, it looked like a green dress. Chapter 462: 272: Subordinate becomes the Lord, it’s too late to run_2 Chapter 462: Chapter 272: Subordinate bes the Lord, it¡¯s toote to run_2 Afterforting herself for a while, Alice swam upwards following the seaweed. As she swam closer to the surface of the sea, the light grew brighter. Alice closed her eyelids and left only a narrow slit to see through. The seaweed extended all the way to the surface of the sea, where it floated and grew into arge area, making it look like an ind when viewed from the water¡¯s surface. As Alice emerged from the water, she noticed that the side of the seaweed that floated on the surface of the water was sun-bleached to a whitish color and had even sprouted flowers. Flowers? Alice had no idea that seaweed could grow flowers. Looking around, Alice soon spotted Ange. He was meandering on the ¡®ind¡¯ formed by the seaweed, walking as if on t ground, and from time to time, gesturing towards some strands of seaweed that obediently floated towards him. Inspecting, registering,paring, Ange fell into his most familiar rhythm. As he predicted, the chlorophyll-rich seaweed, once reaching the surface, underwent photosynthesis with the sunlight and indeed produced starch. What Alice thought was the part of the seaweed that was sun-bleached was actually the starch. In the past, Ange didn¡¯t understand these specialized things. The knowledge the Lord instilled in him was only about normal soil nting, roughly the same level as that of a professional farmer. These pieces of knowledge were obtained from the notes of the Spring Breeze Druid Loui and the scattered fragments of souls in the druid vige. The seaweed was a type simr to sea grapes, cluster after cluster, connecting into arge string. Once it reached the surface, it expanded in a disordered manner, branching out a lot, growing from a single stem into a cluster.
After receiving sunlight, the produced starch caused the ¡®grapes¡¯ to whiten and harden. Plucked, they looked like individual fruits. Ange picked up one ¡®grape¡¯ that was about seventy to eighty percent white, drove out its moisture, and then ground it into a powder to examine its condition. These actions were a bit off the mark, and Negris couldn¡¯t figure out what Ange was up to, quickly asking, ¡°Ange, what are you doing? Why are you grinding every single one into a powder?¡± ¡°To check the ripeness, if it¡¯s overripe, it¡¯s not tasty,¡± Ange exined. ¡°Pfft, you¡¯ve never eaten it, how can you differentiate whether it¡¯s good or not?¡± Negris asked in amazement. ¡°The notes say that the more starch, the tastier it is. It needs to be picked in time. If it bes overripe, it will shrivel up, but now it¡¯s alright,¡± Ange said, while crushing the floating gel board, leaving a footprint behind. For this footprint, Ange had specifically taken out a gel board from his spatial dimension, or else he wouldn¡¯t have known where to leave his footprint. Negris kind of understood Ange¡¯s intention, daringly, he was researching the stage at which the starch content was highest to determine the best harvest time. Too little starch meant the nt was not yet mature, but if the nt was overripe, the starch would transform into nt nutrients, causing a waste. So, every crop requires a choice of proper harvesting stage. After thinking for a while, Negris, feeling overwhelmed, just noted everything down forter understanding. Setting the problem aside, Negris rxed and looked around through his consciousness, quickly spotting Alice, who was sticking out half of her head and eagerly gnawing the seaweed. After getting closer, Alice didn¡¯t know why, but she suddenly felt extremely hungry and couldn¡¯t help but bite the seaweed in front of her. After crushing the footprint, the seaweed¡¯s growth slowed down, and Ange also rxed a bit. Facing a new crop, he had been very focused when he activated the Instant Death Halo, in order to prevent him from missing any details. Now that he rxed, he felt as if someone was calling him in the darkness. Following the soul contact, Ange¡¯s consciousness extended towards the direction of the calling, quickly encountering the extremely anxious Anthony. Ange tilted his head, ¡°You¡¯re looking for me.¡± ¡­ In the Master ne, at a secluded resurrection altar, Anthony was meticulously preparing. On the altary a body that looked exactly like Anthony, but much younger, probably only about twelve or thirteen years old. The phoenix, also known as the undead phoenix. The so-called phoenix project was his continual resurrection and rebirth n.
In the past, resurrection through rebirth required careful selection of the body. Now, it¡¯s unnecessary. Ange, during his spare time, had prepared an extra one for him. It was cultivated from his own tissues, but growth stopped when it reached adolescence. If Anthony were to rebirth into this body, even if he stood before others, no one would associate him with Anthony. However, Anthony did not want to be reborn. Because once reborn, he had to give up everything and start again. Although there were many conveniences he could leverage, in the end, he would have to start over. The best solution would be to get in touch with Ange and let Ange help him solve this big problem.
But as time went on, Anthony grew increasingly anxious, to the point of getting blisters on the corners of his mouth. Even with the Instant Death Halo, it would take Ange five to six days to produce a hundred thousand tons of food. Three days have already passed. If he starts nting now, it will take at least eight days. By then, it would be toote. He was originally manoeuvring amongst the major powers, already walking on thin ice, now with the crucial food supply cut off for eight or nine days, his whole n was bound to copse. With his prestige and connections, he maintained the current situation. Once it copsed, he would immediately be a rat crossing the street, everyone wishing to hit him. No amount of prestige would be useful then. It would be better to take the opportunity to flee and start all over again. Before today, he called out for Ange in hopes that Ange could save his life. Now, he calls out for Ange mainly to bid farewell, as even if Ange starts nting now, it would be toote. As long as Ange is there to cover for him, even if he has to start all over again, Anthony firmly believes he would live an even better life than this one. Moreover, he was now a bit hesitant. Should he transform into a human being and continue to create chaos in the Church of Light? Or should he simply transform into an Undead or ck Warrior, and once again pledge allegiance to the Undead God? For more than a thousand years, Anthony has grown tired of being human. What to do? Undecided, Ange¡¯s voice echoed in his heart: ¡°You¡¯re looking for me.¡± ¡°Oh, Lord, I finally found you. You¡¯re not in trouble, are you? I¡¯ve been so worried because you didn¡¯t respond to my calls,¡± Anthony said with emotion. With a hiss, Anthony¡¯s consciousness was pulled into the Consciousness Space. Negro¡¯s taunting voice echoed: ¡°Now I understand why you could be the Archbishop. You¡¯re already in a fix but still remember to tter.¡±n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om
¡°Hehe, Lord Nage, it¡¯s not ttery. It¡¯s sincere emotion from the bottom of my heart and soul, signifying my loyalty to the Lord,¡± Anthony said sincerely. Huh? This reaction isn¡¯t right. The food was burned, Ange disappeared, Negris thought Anthony would be in a panic and anxious, but he didn¡¯t expect him to be still in the mood for ttery. Did the food problem get solved? ¡°Hehe, it¡¯s toote, it won¡¯t work anymore. I¡¯m preparing to activate the rebirth n. Even if we start nting now, the first batch of food won¡¯t be avable for several days. My borrowing from the Silver Chamber of Commerce, Merchant¡¯s Guild, and the Mercenary Guild is about to be due, and without at least thirty thousand tons of food, I couldn¡¯t cover this gap¡± ¡°Once I default, my credit will copse instantly. When creditorse knocking, it¡¯ll be toote for me to run.¡± Negris said in a puzzled way: ¡°You are a prestigious acting pope with so many men under you, why should you fear creditors? Can¡¯t you just kick them out? You couldst at least ten days or half a month, right?¡± Anthony replied with a bitter smile: ¡°The people under me have already be the creditors due to my operations. After the credit copses, the first toe knocking will be them. Even Patricia has her loan out.¡± ¡°Pfft ¨C you¡¯re too¡ª¡± Negris didn¡¯t know what to say anymore. Now he understood why beingte for a few days was uneptable. If he doesn¡¯t run now, he may not be able to when the timees. Anthony sighed helplessly, ¡°I had no choice, without sufficient funds, I couldn¡¯t mobilize so much manpower and food. As for borrowing Patricia and the others¡¯ money, I wanted to make sure they earned something, so they devote more to their work. who would have thought that someone would dare set Ange Lord¡¯s fields on fire.¡± Hearing this, Ange said: ¡°Can it be reced with something else?¡± Anthony was taken aback: ¡°Rece it? Rece it with what?¡± Ange, stepping on air, slowly ascended to a higher point, looking down from above, his gaze swept over the whitening seaweed, and as the Ring of Bnce shed across his body, a string of numbers appeared before his eyes: ¡°One hundred and fifty thousand tons¡­bread algae.¡± Ange decided to name this seaweed ¡®bread algae¡¯.
Chapter 463: 273: Lighting the Divine Fire_1 Chapter 463: Chapter 273: Lighting the Divine Fire_1 The starch content of seaweed isn¡¯t as high as rice, but it doesn¡¯t need to be husked, and all told, it could be equivalent to around one hundred and twenty thousand tons of rice.
Ange decided to grind them into powder. Inside the Temple of Rest, the Bronze Book was holding the Gold-touch Stick, flying around, with a golden ropeid on the ground. Negris manipted the Gold-touch Stick, asionally touching the rope with it. In a while, Negris started toin, ¡°No energy left, no energy left, Soul Energy.¡± A sole hand flew over and touched the Gold-touch Stick, and a pure stream of Soul Energy started to pour into it. After repeating the process several times, the Bronze Book discarded the Gold-touch Stick, and opened its pages wide and took a tired pose, ¡°I¡¯m exhausted, repairing this damn rope takes too much effort, wish I¡¯d not have imed I could fix it.¡± Luckily the bad-mouthed horse wasn¡¯t there, otherwise, it could choke Negris, it¡¯s not using its energy. Without Ange¡¯s continuous supply of Soul Energy, it wouldn¡¯t even be able to repair the rope.
Ange pulled out the Rope of Redemption, infused it with holy power, and threw it into the sea. The Rope of Redemption instantly became an energy rope, infinitely extending, following Ange¡¯s gaze and wrapped therge clump of seaweed floating on the water¡¯s surface. Thanks to the existence of such a divine rope, otherwise, Ange would have no idea how to haul this lump of seaweed back. ¡°The Rope of Redemption isn¡¯t meant to be used this way~~~¡± Negrismented a few times and then gave up. In batches, the seaweed was hauled back, spread on a few sandbars. The exposure to the scorching sun and Ange¡¯s wind-dry treatment, dried the seaweed in a day. It was crammed full in buckets. Little Angel came over and smashed it with the Earth Hammer. There, it turned into powder. ¡°My¡­ Earth Hammer can be used like this? You might as well open a flour factory yourself.¡± Negris said. Husking rice and grinding flour is not an easy task nowadays, it usually takes a rural housewife most of half an hour just to grind the rice needed for the family to eat. Grinding flour is even more time-consuming andborious. If there was a low-cost husking and grinding ability, just starting a flour factory could make a fortune. However, using the Earth Hammer to grind, it might take a couple of hundred years to pay back its cost. Restarting the Teleportation Array, watching the continuous flow of flour being transported, Anthony breathed a sigh of relief. It seemed that his credit was temporarily saved. If it was not saved, all the measures he put in ce would be invalid. At that time, not to mention bringing down grain prices, all his subordinates who trusted him and invested money would revolt. As food continued to be transported to the Master ne, Ange also continued nting seaweeds. He directly nted in the shallow waters near the sandbars, no need to be several hundred meters long to reach the water surface, saving fertilizers and making harvesting easier. Don¡¯t look at Ange for producing a hundred thousand tons of seaweed in two or three days, he used Instant Death Halo and Insect Ash Liquid to pile it up. The seaweeds he nted now he didn¡¯t intend to elerate, let them grow slowly, it could be harvested in about four months, and continuously reaped afterward.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om
Busy like this, after twelve days, Ange suddenly stopped, took out a bunch of Fire of Mass Faith absent-mindedly. The Fire of Mass Faith is sort of like fireworks, light like radiation, but now this fire has changed, it became a me, a strange fluctuation spread out. Most people were oblivious to this waveform, but Negris, Lisa, and Big Cat all raised their heads simultaneously looking towards Ange, Little Ghost also peered out a little, dazedly looked at the me. In the seaweed people¡¯s coral reefs, the entire reef suddenly vibrated, and all seaweed people looked simultaneously at the umted water below space. Only saw the water trembling and waves rippling, some bubbles emerged, with the increasing vibration, suddenly, a stone ball was sprayed from the water, sshing a column of water, apanied by the screeching sound of the air. However, the surrounding water quickly submerged the column of water. The screeching sound turned into the gurgling sound of bubbles, wildly bubbling out. The stone ball that had been sprayed into the sky crashed back and once again spewed a column of water. Only now did the seaweed people react, cried, and ran outside, ¡®The Sea¡¯s Breath¡¯ which hasn¡¯t blown for many days, arrived suddenly in broad daylight. Not long after the people ran out, a woman emerged from a bunch of bubbles. She had a beautiful face, her eyes held a pair of golden pupils, blonde long hair, fair skin, a tall and healthy physique, just like a marble statue suddenly came to life. Wrapped in a holy glow, she floated up from the water, the holy light flowed on her skin, turning into a pure white gauze skirt. She barefoot, slowly step out from the water, stepping on thin air, came to the side of the statue of the Goddess of Redemption.
Her golden eyes looked around on the statue, with some confusion murmured: ¡°My¡­ rope?¡± Having searched in vain for her rope, she closed her eyes, then abruptly opened them, her gaze went into the water. Her golden pupils shone brightly, the gurgling bubbling bottom of the water was seen by her clearly. Regrettably, there was still no rope. ¡°Who stole my rope?¡± After hesitating for a bit, she decided to give up. She lifted her skirt and pulled a one-handed hammer from underneath: ¡°Forget it, use this¡­ who was it? Who lit the divine fire.¡± ¡­ Negris, Little Angel, Little Zombie, Lisa, Shamara surrounded Ange, encircled on the fringe were the lightning and its hat poking out. Chapter 464: 273: Ignition of the Divine Fire_2 Chapter 464: Chapter 273: Ignition of the Divine Fire_2 Everyone looked curiously at the small me in Ange¡¯s hand, their faces filled with shock.
¡°Is this¡­ the Divine Fire?¡± Shamara squeezed her hands incessantly, feeling an uncontroble urge to reach out, but something was stopping her. ¡°This is indeed the Divine Fire, but why is it here?¡± Negris asked irritably. What a strange coincidence, the moment Ange ignited the Divine Fire, Shamara teleported here through the Teleportation Array. It must have been her Predictive Ability at y again. Shamara, somewhat stunned, said, ¡°I felt something good was going to happen here.¡± Negris, both envious and jealous, said, ¡°Your Divine Technique is really useful. Next time something good happens to me, remember to tell me.¡± Shamara breathed out a sigh and quickly agreed, ¡°Alright, alright.¡±
She had benefited too much from Ange and felt a bit ashamed. If she could help Ange and others with her Predictive Ability, she would be very happy. After a few brief words, everyone¡¯s attention turned back to Ange¡¯s hand. The burning question was, why did Ange randomly ignite the Divine Fire? Even Ange was clueless, ¡°I don¡¯t know. I was farming, and it ignited.¡± Hands on her hips, Negris mulled, ¡°This is the Torch of the God of Farming. You¡¯ve mentioned before that it was growing. Why has it suddenly ignited now? Could it be because you¡¯ve been sowing crops and that made it grow? Impossible, crops can¡¯t generate Faith Elemental Force. Did you feel it grow when you were cultivating seaweed?¡± Ange shook his head. ¡°Could it be because you¡¯re so good at sowing seaweed that the Sea People started worshipping you? That¡¯s not right. There are only a few Sea People, even if they have devout belief, it¡¯s not enough to ignite the Divine Fire. Besides, the Torch was growing before those Sea People even met you.¡± Negris mused to herself. After ruling out these possibilities, Negris suggested, ¡°There¡¯s only one possibility left. You sold the grains to Anthony, he distributed the grains, and the faith dedicated by those believers who received the help ignited the Torch of the God of Farming.¡± ¡°Is it really possible?¡± Lisa asked curiously. ¡°The disaster victims may not know that you cultivated the grains. How could they dedicate their faith?¡± To dedicate faith, one must at least know who they are worshipping ¨C a God¡¯s name for example. Only by sharing themon belief can the Faith Elemental Force tie the unconscious believers together to form apletework. When Anthony distributed the grains, he wouldn¡¯t tell everyone that these were Ange¡¯s crops. The disaster victims would only thank the Church of Light and worship the Light if they wanted to worship anything. How could any power possibly feedback to Ange? Negris shrugged, she didn¡¯t know either, but this was the most likely reason after ruling out all the impossible ones. It was simple to find out. Keep selling the grains.
¡°Grow some more grains. After Anthony has distributed the previous batch, check whether the Divine Fire has intensified. If it has, hold off for a bit. If it hasn¡¯t, sell another batch to Anthony to distribute. Test it a few times like this, and we can basically confirm whether it¡¯s due to people consuming the grains you grew.¡± After Negris finished speaking, she couldn¡¯t help mumbling to herself, ¡°This really is a brand new topic. Another model of achieving Godhood?¡± Ange nodded. Testing andparison, these were things he was familiar with. But this led to a new problem: ¡°Not enough Soul Energy.¡± Although Ange possessed the Undead Godhood, he was absolutely theziest Undead God, never spreading his faith. If it weren¡¯t for his capable Holy Woman Lisa and zealous believer Oke, the legacy of Undead Godhood might have been broken. But no matter how capable Lisa was or how zealous Oke was, if the God himself didn¡¯t care, the results wouldn¡¯t be significant. The Undead Temple currently had roughly forty thousand believers in the Resting Abyss. There were about fifty to sixty thousand believers in the Hope Oasis and surrounding Oasis Sand People. The rest maintained their habitual reverence for Naeli. The poption near the Goddess of Beauty City was growing, but many of these people were the Fallen People who once worshipped the Light, and then were corrupted. Despite this, however, most of them did not change their faith. Ange had stolen the faith of these people. Adding them all together, the number of believers from whom the Undead Godhood could receive faith wasn¡¯t two hundred thousand. For a fierce religion, two hundred thousand believers wouldn¡¯t actually be counted as few. Squeeze them a bit, show some miracles, hold more group rituals, and two hundred thousand believers could be used like a million. But Ange was aszy as a salted fish, let alone performing miracles or holding ceremonies, he wasn¡¯t even keen on spreading faith.
But, isn¡¯t this the style of the Undead Temple? The previous king was also quitezy. The Undead Temple was basically left unattended, even the priests sweeping the floor were skeletons. You can imagine howx the spreading of belief was. The Undead King didn¡¯t care about faith, because he had the Soul Network. The undead beings connected to him through the Soul Network were constantly offering their power to him. Faith Elemental Force was just an addition, it didn¡¯t matter whether it was there or not. But Ange¡¯s soulwork was also notrge, and now, those connected to him could be counted on two hands. The power gained from both aspects was not substantial, and Ange had been spending it rather generously recently. His energy consumption was greater than his ie. If he followed Negris¡¯s advice and grew another batch of crops, he would not have enough soul energy. ¡°I told you before, gather more believers when you have the chance. It¡¯s not a problem to have many believers, but you wouldn¡¯t listen, farming all day everyday.¡± Negris had no solutions to this problem and could only grumble. With a ssh, a sound of water rose, apanied by an ultrasonic-like vibration. Everyone turned their heads and saw Alice emerging from the water channel, screaming for help in Ange¡¯s direction. Behind her, dozens of sea people emerged one after another, swimming quickly towards the sandbank. Alice¡¯s tribe only had dozens of sea people. Judging from the situation, was the whole tribe seeking refuge? Ange¡¯s gaze passed over Alice and her people, andnded behind them. As if sensing Ange¡¯s gaze, a beautiful woman slowly emerged from the water, standing barefoot on the water surface. Golden pupils, white skirts, blonde hair, bare feet, holding a hammer, sacred yet strange.
Seeing the one-handed hammer in her hand, Negris eximed, ¡°Life-saving Hammer? Are you the Goddess of Redemption?¡± Excitement appeared on Shamara¡¯s face, and she couldn¡¯t wait to yell, ¡°Luna!¡± Luna¡¯s phantom floated up from her body, seriously saying, ¡°I see her, be careful, the Goddess of Redemption is not easy to deal with.¡±n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Having said that, the figure of Luna enveloped Shamara, engendering the Holy Spirit Armor, a pair of True Wings and two pairs of Light Wings. While others had difficulty summoning a single Holy Spirit, the one fusing with Shamara was a Supreme Holy Spirit, a Six-winged Archangel, Wisdom Angel Luna. Shamara excitedly said, ¡°It¡¯s her, it¡¯s her, she¡¯s the one who stole my faith.¡± As she said this, she was about to rush forward. Just then, a beam of light shot out, illuminating the Goddess of Redemption. The little angel opened her light wings, pushed forward with her palms, and had a delighted expression, she could fight again. As the light faded, half of the Goddess of Redemption¡¯s body disappeared. Negris was stunned, ¡°Is she so weak? Is she really the Goddess of Redemption?¡± Before the words were finished, a column of ck light appeared, the little zombie hastily retaliated with a Breath of Death shockwave.
After the light beam disappeared, the Goddess of Redemption disappearedpletely. However, the aura of the Goddess of Redemption did not disappear, but was rapidly increasing. A projection gradually revealed where her body had disappeared. Ange looked at the light figure, and suddenly said, ¡°She seems to be transforming the damage into power.¡± Ange¡¯s words made Negris tremble, recalling a legend, ¡°Redemption, it¡¯s redemption, this is the divine technique of the Goddess of Redemption.¡± Chapter 465: 274 Majestic Door_1 Chapter 465: Chapter 274 Majestic Door_1 Upon hearing Negris¡¯s shout, Shamara staggered, nearly falling to the ground. After regaining her footing, Luna deactivated her armorization and emerged from Shamara¡¯s body. With a shocked expression, she asked, ¡°God of Knowledge, where did you hear such an outrageous tale?¡± ¡°Ah? Is it not true?¡± Negris froze momentarily. The legends came from the shared knowledge of the believers; he had never met the Goddess of Redemption himself. ¡°Of course not, such an extraordinary capability, even the God of Light doesn¡¯t have. However, it¡¯s true that she can absorb others¡¯ attacks. The heavier the damage she takes, the faster her strength increases. Do not attack her recklessly. Otherwise, nobody will be able to handle her.¡± Luna advised. ¡°Oh, Ange, do not attack her rashly. Especially do not transform,¡± Negris quickly warned Ange. Obviously, Negris knew that the ability to absorb damage was a perfect counter to Ange¡¯s transformation. If he transformed and obliterated the Goddess of Redemption with a single punch¡­ As soon as his transformation time psed, the Goddess of Redemption would have recovered, using the power absorbed from Locke to punch him¡­ So, unless there was a guaranteed killing blow, he must not transform. After advising Ange, Negris quickly asked, ¡°Is there any way to deal with her!?¡± ¡°You need to exhaust her. She can only absorb fatal damage, not non-lethal damage. Keep weakening her and then tie her up.¡± With that, Luna vaulted onto Shamara¡¯s back again. Her body transforming into light, armorizing onto Shamara, Luna was about to charge at the Goddess of Redemption, intending to reduce her strength.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Just as she started moving, a row of fireballs lined up in a straight path, shooting past her to strike the glowing silhouette of the Goddess of Redemption. The sessive fireballs exploded, chipping away at the glow.
The Goddess of Redemption, who had been gracefully recovering with her head held high, immediately held her head and turned to run. Yes, she literally turned tail and ran. The hem of her glowing gown was kicked into ripples as she fled across the water¡¯s surface in the direction of the open ocean. Ange gave chase, fireballs constantly forming at his side, aligning in a formation before shooting her way. The Goddess of Redemption dodged and darted as she ran, but Ange¡¯s gaze and lock-on never shifted, the fireballs arcing erratic trajectories through the air. From Ange¡¯s perspective, a distinguished goddess suddenly targeted them. She boasted a divine technique that could convert the damage of others¡¯ attacks into her own power, truly formidable and horrifying. Now, it was tricky. How should they counter her? Everyone quickly sought a solution. However, no one considered the situation from the Goddess of Redemption¡¯s position, considering her inner feelings. The inner monologue of the Goddess of Redemption went something like this, ¡°For the love of Light! The Undead God! The God of Knowledge! The Six-winged Fallen Angel! It¡¯s Luna, oh goodness, the Wisdom Angel who knows everyone¡¯s weaknesses! How did she fall from grace?¡± ¡°On the Undead God, I felt another aura of divinity, a twin-body god? No, there¡¯s another ember of faith, is it Trinity? The woman in the gauze skirt also has an aura of faith and a Dimension Beast? For the love of the Light, have I stumbled onto the temple of heretics?¡± Despite her outward calm, she was panicking inwardly. She only came because she sensed a ripple of the igniting divine fire. She didn¡¯t anticipate an inadvertent intrusion into a den of gods. Her panic led to her being struck by the two big attacks from the Little Angel and Little Zombie. It was hard enough to recover a bit before the Undead God charged at her with a chain of low-level magic fireworks,ing at her with astonishing frequency. Her first thought wasn¡¯t that the enemy only had low-level magic. Her very first reaction was: Disaster, the enemy knows my weakness! Run! Any god who stumbled into a den of gods would react the same way unless they possessed the confidence and power to single-handedly challenge all, like Steadfast Locke. Run? Ange immediately gave chase. If she walked on air, so could Ange. If she flew into the sky, so would Ange. If she sought refuge in the sea, Ange dived in as well. As she dove into the water, the Goddess of Redemption realized she had made a mistake. Ange¡¯s speed in the water was several times faster than hers. He was enveloped in an air bubble and moved at a speedparable to that in the air. Fireballs were useless in the water, however, so Ange switched to water arrows. Gripping her tight, the Goddess of Redemption grit her teeth and turned around to fight back. Ange quickly pulled away and kept attacking from a distance. Wait, doesn¡¯t this situation seem familiar? ¡°Turus! You burned my field!¡± Ange remembered and a torrent of rage gripped his mind. The frequency of his magic attacks elevated even further. Ever since he was unable to suppress the bugs thest time and they took a bite at the heart of the Insect God, Ange consciously ramped up his firepower. His level 2 magic could reach a frequency of ten shots per second. Now triggered by the Goddess of Redemption, the speed increased even more to thirteen shots per second.
His level 2 magic was not ordinary, it waspressed and even upgraded, amplifying the destructive power of level 2 to level 4, even 6. No matter what kind of god it was, as long as the concepts of physics and energy applied, being hit by level 4 and even 6 magic attacks, thirteen times a second, she would definitely have to run for her life. Before turning to escape, the Goddess of Redemption tossed out her Life-saving Hammer. The hammer was notrge in size. Still,pared with Ange¡¯s low-level magic, it was a divine artifact. A casual throw of this item was enough to unleash divine power.
Wherever the Life-saving Hammer passed, the seawater vaporized, forming air bubbles, leaving a straight vacuum trajectory as it shot towards Ange. Chapter 466: 274: Majestic Door_2 Chapter 466: Chapter 274: Majestic Door_2 From here, one could sense the terrifying power of the divine might. Judging by the impact, the Life-saving Hammer could easily demolish a mountain peak. Its speed was also extremely fast, like supersonic speed breaking through a sound barrier, leaving behind an umbre-shaped trace, the tip of the umbre heading straight for Ange. Ange only had time to block the hammer with the Hand of Locke, but the tremendous force still sent him flying backwards, shooting upward like a water jet and eventually crashing up to the sea surface, still continuing to fly, diagonally upwards into the sky. Ange resisted the hammerhead with the Hand of Locke, reaching out with the Boundary-crossing Hand to grab the hammer handle and give it a forceful twist. The Life-saving Hammer flipped instantly ¨C the hammerhead behind and the handle in front causing the force of trajectory to be disrupted, making it spin abruptly. Ange gripped the hammer tightly with both hands, being spun around several times before graduallying to a halt. Remembering Negris¡¯s warning, Ange did not use his Ultimate Transformation. Thus, he was now countering the Life-saving Hammer with his own strength. Fortunately, he had the Boundary-crossing Hand and the Hand of Locke, otherwise his hand bones would have shattered long ago. Despite the struggle, he ultimately did not transform, neutralizing the power of the Divine Artifact with his own strength. Once he stabilized himself, Ange shoved the hammer into Resting Camp and plunged back into the ocean. However, all he could see were streams of bubbles; the Goddess of Redemption was nowhere to be found.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Ange followed the trail of bubbles and arrived at the entrance of the underwater cave inside the reef ¡ª the boulder he used to block the cave had fallen aside. Since there were no gurgling air jets in the cave now, it was filled with water. Ange swam in, swam for about ten kilometers and suddenly felt something was wrong. He had originally been swimming downward, but now he was suddenly swimming upwards ¡ª the direction of gravity had changed.
Ange was well-experienced in this change in gravity. Whenever he rode the dragon to and from the Resting Abyss and the Holy Kingdom, there would be a gravity line. Whenever he crossed it, the direction of gravity would change. Now that the direction of gravity has changed, it means the end of the passage must lead to a huge world, huge enough to change gravity. Ange did not proceed further, but returned to the reef, used the boulder to stop the hole again, and then came out, walking on the reef. While walking on the reef, he continuously cast the Soil Loosening Technique into the reef, followed by the explosive Forming Technique. The whole reef crumbled and crashed down, firmly burying the big hole and the rock ball together. Having destroyed Alice¡¯s home, how should hepensate? On his way back, Ange was thinking about this issue. When he got back to the sandbank, however, he found out that the Sea People were gone. ¡°Where are the Sea People?¡± Ange asked. ¡°Over there.¡± Lisa pointed in a direction, then asked, with concern, ¡°And the Goddess of Redemption?¡± ¡°She escaped. I crushed the Sea People¡¯s home and blocked the hole she came from.¡± Ange told her. Ange, unsure of what to offer aspensation, found Alice already on her knees by the time he arrived. Before he could say anything, Alice pleaded excitedly, ¡°Lord Ange, allow us to follow you, to be your vassal race. Let us settle here, we can nt seaweed for you. Please grant our request.¡± Upon arriving at the sandbank and seeing the seaweed nted all over the shallow seabed, Alice fell in love with the ce at first sight. Compared to the cold, dark, deste, and silent ocean floor, the environment of the shallow sea was simply paradise. Not only was there a seaweed prairie, but there were also various types andrge quantities of fish. Living here, food and drink wouldn¡¯t be a worry, plus there was sunlight and beach ¡ª it was simply wonderful. Before, this was the Sky People¡¯s territory, and Sea People or sea creatures that tried to approach were killed. Now that this was Ange¡¯s territory, if they could be vassals to Lord Ange and receive his protection, could they settle here? As for the task of the Sea People protecting the goddess¡¯ statue? As soon as Alice saw the seaweed tangled around the goddess statue, any semnce of duty she felt evaporated. With only about sixty of them left, what mission are they talking about? Even the gods couldn¡¯t protect themselves¡­ However, Alice worried that Ange might not ept them, more than sixty Sea People who had nothing to offer besides growing seaweed. Would the powerful Sky People find them a burden? ¡°Alright.¡± Ange agreed, nodding his head. He¡¯d been wondering how topensate Alice¡¯s family. Since they intended to settle on the sandbank, giving them a home seemed a good solution. Huh? Was their master so easy to persuade?
Having received Ange¡¯s permission, Alice went off to settle her people. The others immediately surrounded Ange. Shamara hesitantly said, ¡°Lord, I feel that we should follow them.¡± If anyone else had said they ¡®felt¡¯ something, the group would have scoffed. But when Shamara said she ¡®felt¡¯ something, they had to take it seriously. Negris asked, ¡°What do you feel?¡± Shamara grimaced, and said, ¡°I can¡¯t quite exin it. Especially when it rtes to Lord Ange, I feel nothing at all. This is beyond my abilities. Except for the one time when Luna was possessed by the Holy Spirit and I performed extraordinarily, I usually don¡¯t feel anything. However, the new god who stole my Faith Elemental Force, the Goddess of Redemption, she shouldn¡¯t be a ¡®newborn¡¯.¡±
Negris was taken aback and said in a shocked voice, ¡°You mean, the other end of the tunnel may hide the secret of the ¡®rebirth¡¯ of the Goddess of Redemption? If she can be reborn, what about the other gods? The three main gods, the God of Light, the Creator God, the Supreme God?¡± Bits of frown lines appeared on Shamara¡¯s face as she muttered, ¡°How can I feel that? I can¡¯t even predict anything about Lord Ange¡­¡± Beings beyond her power were impossible for her to foresee, but she could foresee her own fate. She had a premonition thating here would bring about good fortune. But now it seemed that the ¡®good fortune¡¯ had not yet urred. ¡°How about¡­we go over and take a look?¡± Negris suggested hesitantly. Ange reluctantly crowded everyone into his space, then set off alone. Although he very much wanted to continue his nting, under Negris¡¯s persuasion, he had no choice but to go back the way they hade. ¡°I should¡¯ve known better than to step on it.¡± Looking at the copsed reef, Ange murmured in annoyance for the first time. It was as easy to copse it as it was difficult to dig it out now. At the seabed, none were as nimble as he; they could do nothing and Ange had to do it himself. He dug out one piece, two pieces, three pieces¡­ His continuous efforts of tossing away the shattered reef consumed the better part of a day before a tunnel leading to the cave was formed. He ended up staring at the spherical stone with frustration. It was universally known that pushing a ball into a hole was easy, but pulling it back out was hard. And he had stuffed it in particrly tightly this time. In the end, he had to smash the cave destructively to remove the stone ball. Having ruined the cavern to remove it this time, the stone might not fit as tightly next time. Ange swam more than one hundred kilometers through the tunnel before crawling out of a well. This was a big well, with a diameter of seven to eight meters. The water level was more than ten meters below the well¡¯s opening, where a Minotaur aunty was drawing water. Set of stairs were spiralling around the well. Each time she filled a bucket, she would pull the rope with great force, indicating the people above to hoist the bucket up. ¡°Hurry up, hurry up, get moving faster, it will be evening soon. The wind is going to rise. If we are not swift enough in storing water, no one will have water to drink at night, except their pee.¡±
¡°Huh, why are there Minotaurs here? No water at night? Does that mean because of the wind at night, the water from the well will be sprayed elsewhere, leading to a water shortage? Could it be that this is the only well for water?¡± Negris had been projected on to Ange all this while, conjecturing upon hearing the words. Ange sprang out of the water. The Minotaur aunty screamed, picked up the hem of her dress, and fled up the spiral staircase of the well. All the while, she yelled, ¡°Water monster! Water monster! Ah, water monster, help, run!¡± All the buckets above the well fell down. The heads of those who had been gathered around the well disappeared all at once. Only echoes of the Minotaur aunty¡¯s cries were left to reverberate through the empty well space. Ange ascended into the air as if stepping on airflow. Before the Minotaur aunty even left the well, he had already flown out. Coming out of the well, Ange saw an imposing gateway and a building that he was utterly familiar with. Chapter 467 - 275: Pick it Up and Start Smashing_1 Chapter 467: Chapter 275: Pick it Up and Start Smashing_1 In a secluded corner, the Goddess of Redemption walked into a cave. With a slight wave of her hand, the cave entrance disappeared, leaving no trace behind. Even if anyone saw the Goddess enter here, all they would encounter upon arrival was a rocky wall. This was clearly not a sort of illusion technique to deceive, but a Boundary. Having passed a small, dark cavern, the Goddess of Redemption suddenly found herself in the middle of a picturesque valley. The sun gently spilled its rays, the breeze rustled, and the ground was nketed in green grass. It made for a serene and pleasant scene. But the Goddess of Redemption had no mood to enjoy such beauty. Instead, she rushed forward, striding into a grand hall with a worried expression. From the grass to the specially-made divine tiles of the temple, it only took a single step. Suddenly, you would be standing within a tranquil, bird-chirping valley on one side and a sacred, majestic temple on the other. The goddess walked barefoot on the tiles, pacing back and forth while troubled. ¡°What to do?¡± she murmured. ¡°The rope is gone, the hammer is gone, and what if the Undead God catches up?¡± After her moment of worry, the Goddess of Redemption appeared to summon her courage and softly said, ¡°Let me see what weapons I still have. With my current power, I can control two Divine Artifacts.¡± As she spoke, she waved her hand lightly, and crystal cabs started to magically emerge from the tiled ground. Rows upon rows stretched into the depths of the temple, beyond what the eye could see. In every cab, there were Divine Artifacts, Soul Devices, and Holy Artifacts each emanating radiant colors or shrouded in dark energy, all in various shapes and designs. It was a dazzling disy one could lose oneself in. She strolled through these cabs as if shopping at a marketce, her steps light. As she browsed, she frowned again, ¡°These are all lower-level items. None of them are as useful as the Lifesaving Rope and the Life-giving Hammer. What do I do?¡± Artifacts have their own levels, and let¡¯s not even mention Soul and Holy devices. A good Soul Device is not any less valuable than a Divine Artifact, but it is typically bound to its owner. For example, items like the Scythe of Death, Undead Flute, and Boundary-crossing Hand are inherently tied to their owners¡¯ Soul Energy and cannot exist independently. Therefore, the ones disyed here are some unusual Soul Devices of rtively low grade. Concerning Holy Artifacts, they are tools with divine providence for the faithful. Could they be better than those employed by the Gods themselves? However, of course, exceptions do exist¡­ After much thought, the Goddess of Redemption picked out a pair of boots. As she was barefoot, she eagerly slipped them on, murmuring, ¡°The Evasion Boots, in case the Undead God catches up, I can run faster.¡± She continued browsing until she reached thest crystal cab at the very end. Within the cab was a cross-shaped item with a main rod inserted into the ground and another rod attached horizontally to it. However, this horizontal rod could move. It had trays suspended from both ends, making it resemble a mono-leg bnce scale. ¡°I¡¯ll use you, Equal Cross. If the Undead God catches up, at least we can go to our doom together,¡± the Goddess of Redemption said with augh. ¡­ At the Resting Pce, those who Ange brought in had gathered around out of boredom, listening to Luna recount a tale. Luna ungracefully squatted on the clod, saying, ¡°The Goddess of Redemption is the most troublesome amongst the Gods of Light, excluding the three Master Gods. Herbat power in itself is not very strong, but if I were her enemy, I¡¯d rather fight three Garrixes than face the Goddess of Redemption.¡± Garrix was the zing Angel from the rumors who supposedly met his demise along with Steadfast Locke. However, this rumor was clearly false. Steadfast Locke¡¯s skeleton found in the pce wasn¡¯t killed by someone. There were only three Six-winged Archangels, namely Wisdom Angel Luna, zing Angel Garrix, and Strength Angel Whoever. They all possess powerparable to the Gods of Light. n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Any Archangel tasked with fights has morebat power than non-warfare gods such as the God of Bnce. However, the value of a god is not reflected in theirbat capabilities. For example, with the existence of the God of Bnce, even the Undead King who is so strong, doesn¡¯t dare to confront him. Admittedly, the Undead King could kill him with a punch but would have to die alongside him. Unfortunately, the God of Bnce encountered the Dragon God Transformation that nullified him and met an unbearably miserable end in Ange¡¯s hands. Divine Techniques have countermeasures against each other. Each has its advantages, but the Goddess of Redemption has far more benefits. ¡°Redemption, redemption, saving of lives, and rescuing from distress. Not only can the Goddess of Redemption absorb the damage inflicted upon her, but she can also absorb the damage afflicted to others. No one knows how many people she has saved, and since we are not ordinary people, we don¡¯t generally offer mundane gifts like gold coins or Demon Crystals. So, most give her Divine Artifacts, Soul Devices, treasures, and the like. As such, no one knows how many Divine Artifacts the Goddess of Redemption has in her possession.¡± Luna was animated as she narrated, ¡°But the most troublesome part is that she has an ability to store absorbed damage and release it at a suitable time. For example, my Petrification Crossbow, after it fired a Petrification Beam that turned the enemy to stone, she can absorb the damage done by the Petrification Beam, store it in a crystal cab, and then use it against me.¡± ¡°Though the Petrification Beam absorbed from others wouldn¡¯t be as potent as the original, even if its strength is reduced to a third, it can still petrify someone. No one knows what weapons or skills she might employ. If she happens to encounter something with a restraining attribute, it can be quite troublesome.¡± Everyone present was stunned by this, especially Negris, who was terrified. ¡°Isn¡¯t she invincible then? Carrying a bunch of sealed Divine Techniques and a pile of Divine Artifacts, she just needs to smash whoever she sees. Regardless of their attributes, out of ten items, surely a few would not be restrained.¡± Chapter 468 - 275: Pick it up and Smash it_2 Chapter 468: Chapter 275: Pick it up and Smash it_2 Little Angel¡¯s eyes shone as she listened, her small head bobbing in eager agreement. Clearly, she too wanted to do the same ¨C grab the described object and start smashing things with it. Luna said, ¡°Of course it¡¯s impossible. Whether it¡¯s a divine artifact or a divine technique, both need divine power to drive them. The divine power of the Goddess of Redemption is almost the weakest, even less than me¡­ I used to be powerful. With her power, she isn¡¯t capable of carrying all divine artifacts and techniques with her.¡± When Luna spoke about herself, she paused slightly. Only then did Negris remember that the Luna in front of him wasn¡¯t in herplete form. Actually, not just Luna, but also the Goddess of Redemption, the Undead God, and even itself, none of them were in theirplete form. It was unreasonable to measure the current gods based on their past data. Among all the nes, the only one who had not changed was the Tree of Life. However, it wasn¡¯t a god, or rather, it didn¡¯t deign to be one. The Tree of Life was a super-life form, possessing a force more powerful than the gods from birth. The faith dedicated to it by the elves was like donating to a billionaire. Therefore, while the Tree of Life still lived, the other gods had all vanished, save for those who had been sealed away. ¡°So does that mean that the disappearance of the gods is rted to the Faith Elemental Force?¡± Negris murmured in analysis. ¡°This God of Redemption was newly born. Does that mean she also disappeared before, and only recently was reborn? Could she have retained her memory, knowing why the other gods disappeared?¡± Everyone¡¯s eyes lit up. Little Angel¡¯s eyes also lit up. She picked up the Earth Hammer and swung it around wildly, several times preparing to throw it, scaring the Earth Hammer into a frenzy. ¡­ By the side of the well, Ange stared nkly at the familiar building and gate in the distance. What was his most familiar building? Resting Camp? Bronze Book Tower? World Transit Station? Undead Temple? Goddess of Beauty City? No, the structure he was most familiar with was the stele of the Farm Barrier, located right in the center of the farm, a construction that resembled both a monument and a tower. Little birds would build nests on it, and the skeletons from the nearby fields would pile up things like harvested straws around it, so it was always half-buried, exposing only a fraction at the top. Eventually, the skeletons of the farm dispersed, and Ange became the only being capable of movement there. After needing arge amount of straw forpost and ashing, he slowly removed the objects around the stele, revealing its entirety. It was originally an unremarkable object, but even an unremarkable thing can be extremely familiar after a thousand years. So Ange recognized the construction at a nce ¨C it was a stele, indicating that this was a Farm Barrier. The location of the well was at the fringe of the Farm Barrier. One could enter the Barrier¡¯s scope by crossing a fence. The Farm Barrier covered approximately three thousand acres. Half of the fields had been levelled and houses built, with the rest being farmed, sporadically nted with crops. Small sheds were scattered among the fields, presumably for the convenience of tending to the crops nearby. It was simr to the straw loft that Ange had built himself with straw. The living beings here ate, lived, and cultivated within the range of the Farm Barrier, as other ces were not suitable for survival. As far as the eye could see, there were only gray rocks, even the sky was made of rock. It was like being inside a gigantic hollow rock. Everywhere was pitch ck, only the range within the Barrier had sunlight. Inside the Barrier, the residents already knew about Ange¡¯s arrival and were quickly gathering, carrying ragged farming tools, shouting loudly, and rushing towards him. Seeing this scene, Negris, who was projected onto Ange¡¯s body, eximed in astonishment, ¡°So¡­ so many minotaurs, they¡¯re so skinny.¡± There were at least a hundred minotaurs gathered. Males, females, old, young, all hade charging over in a torrent. Ange took out Little Angel and Little Zombie. Ten minutester, over a hundred minotaurs were kneeling on the ground with ck and blue faces, their farming tools held above their heads, bellowing in pain and fear. Ange took out everyone one by one. Negris immediately circled the Farm Barrier, incredulously saying, ¡°It¡¯s exactly the same. Why is there a Farm Barrier here?¡± Ange tilted his head, thought for a while, then walked into the crowd of minotaurs, picked the weakest one, took out a bag of grains, and asked, ¡°Why is there a farm here?¡± The Minotaur¡¯s eyes bulged in disbelief, looking at the full bag of grain, he excitedly asked, ¡°For¡­for me?¡± Ange nodded. The Minotaur opened his mouth wide, about to plunge into the sack of grain. n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om But the Little Zombie pounced on him, knocking him over with one shoulder and screeched at him. The Minotaur looked from the Little Zombie to Ange in confusion. What did he mean? Could he speak humannguage? Negris asked, ¡°Answer the question: why is there a Farm Barrier here?¡± The Minotaur blinked his innocent eyes. Left with no other choice, Negris patiently exined, ¡°Do you know what a Boundary is?¡± The Minotaur shook his head. That¡¯s it. If it didn¡¯t know even a Boundary, how could it know about the Farm Barrier? Negris raised his head and turned towards other minotaurs, ¡°Anyone knows? Whoever can answer this question will earn this bag of grain.¡± The Minotaurs looked at each other, each face showing an eager expression, but none of them piped up. Ange was asked to dig out more grain by Negris, one bag after another until five bags of grain were revealed. Finally, a Minotaur couldn¡¯t hold back and rose up, ¡°Sir, we don¡¯t know what a Farm Boundary is, but we do know a ce where you might find an answer. If we take you there, would you split this grain among all of us?¡± When Ange looked, it was that aloof minotaur aunt from the well. ¡°Sure, no problem, lead the way.¡± Even if the Minotaur aunt hadn¡¯t said this, Negris still intended to aid them, seeing their skeletal figures, looking like undead grass-eaters. The Minotaur aunt looked at the grain bags piled on the ground, swallowing her saliva. With great difficulty, she turned her head and led Ange and the others towards the other end of the farm. As they walked, the sound of her stomach rumbling like thunder echoed, sounding like a drum. Obviously ustomed to it, the Minotaur aunt skillfully yanked her pants, immediately shutting up her belly. ¡°This is¡­ too miserable.¡± Negrispared it to the Minotaur aunt of Witch City and Bridgehead Town, plus Vania, the cook, and suddenly felt that the one before him was the most pitiful. Negris promptly motioned to Ange to get out a beet, ¡°You are leading us, you should not be run out of strength. Eat this to fill your belly first. By the way, what is your name?¡± The Minotaur aunt, being too engrossed with the beet that she couldn¡¯t even hear Negris¡¯ words, her eyes were like being sucked in, unable to pull away. Left without a choice, Negris forcibly shoved the beet into her hand, finally drawing her attention back. ¡°Really¡­ really¡­ really for me to eat?¡± The minotaur aunt¡¯s voice trembled a little. ¡°Yes yes yes, eat it.¡± Negris said with abination of pity and resignation. Luther now only eats fresh beets which are then coated in honey, and he meticulously peels off the skin and others, leaving only the translucent part, which is then dried into dried fruit as a snack. Living a life of luxury like Luther, while others are eating dirt in other ces, is simply too unfair. Negris spitefully resolved to deduct his snackster. The Minotaur aunt was energetically gnawing the beet, and didn¡¯t have the time to answer Negris¡¯ question. She carried on biting and walking until they reached a stele located at the edge of the farm. Negris had a hunch why an answer could possibly be found in this ce. It was because there were carved writings on the stele, only that they were inscribed in demonic scripts, and it wrote, ¡°Exile of the Divine Bovine Race ¡­¡± Just as Negris read this far, Ange suddenly stepped forward, the Scythe of Death swung across the stele. Chapter 469: 276: Ill Vomit if You Chase Me Again_1 Chapter 469: Chapter 276: I¡¯ll Vomit if You Chase Me Again_1 Negris blinked, looked at Ange, then at the scythe, and asked in confusion, ¡°Why are you trying to chop it down? It¡¯s not the Demonic Monument. It¡¯s just a stele, aren¡¯t you mistaking it for Turus again?¡± If Turus¡¯ soul knew about this, it probably would regret its past actions. Ange¡¯s grudge from his burned fields hasn¡¯t been forgotten. But Ange didn¡¯t pay any attention to it, instead, he was carefully observing. He raised both feet, where Soul me surged, slowly pacing with every step leaving a ming footprint on the ground. Looking at Ange¡¯s stance, Negris was skeptical. Before it could say anything, some smoke appeared from nearby, and a face formed, giving an awkwardugh, ¡°Hehe, been a while. How have you all been?¡± ¡°Lord of Terror!¡± Negris¡¯ eyes popped open wide. Not only was there a literal demon, but it was an old acquaintance ¨C the Lord of Terror. The same Lord of Terror that caused the insect gue in ck Mountain City and lured the sleepless guardians in the Land of Slumber ¨C the haughty Lord of Terror was now being forced out of a decayed stele by Ange? How to put it? Given that he is referred to as the Lord of Terror, he must be at least of a Demon King level being. In other words, he¡¯s the god among demons. And indeed, he had done many outrageous things, such as leading the Guardians from the Land of Slumber, resurrecting the pest controller, initiating the insect gue in ck Mountain, summoning the hellhound, and even creating the Terrifying Ghost. All these deeds proved that he was a bona fide Demon King. He also imed to be the ruler of the Terror Abyss, a title that would lead anyone to believe he was an overwhelmingly powerful lord of his realm. And this decayed stele, where the inscriptions had ¡®peeled off¡¯, was less impressive than the thatch-roofed house at the entrance of the vige. Yet, Ange managed to force the Lord of Terror out from here, akin to forcing a realm lord out of a thatch house.
What on earth happened? Why was the situation so downgraded after a few months of not meeting? The Lord of Terrorughed awkwardly too. The smoke formed a pair of little hands, rubbing them together as he said, ¡°Why are you here? Hehe, wee.¡± His tone was as polite as it could be ¨C a stark contrast from his arrogance at the fire basin. Negris hesitated before asking, ¡°Aren¡¯t you the ruler of Terror Abyss?¡± The Lord of Terror replied, ¡°Yes, yes, yes. This ce is the Terror Abyss.¡±n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°¡­¡± Negris turned his head and looked around. This ce was the interior of a massive rock, surrounded by stone walls. But Negris¡¯ spirit could not reach the end, so he was unable to see the walls. His understanding was solely based on Ange¡¯s description. But everyone knew about Ange¡¯s descriptive skills, as in it¡¯s not scary at all after hearing him. ¡°You don¡¯t find this scary? Wait till those godlike cowse crying to you when they¡¯re hungry, then you¡¯ll know what¡¯s terrifying!¡± the Lord of Terror retorted. Godlike cows? Everyone unconsciously turned to look at the Minotaur Matron. She had just finished munching on a beet the size of a watermelon, her face smeared with beet juice. When she saw everyone looking at her, she was startled, hid her huge hand behind her, wiped her butt, and shed a toothy smile. Nothing seems terrifying after all. Everyone turned back. The Lord of Terror also noticed the Minotaur Matron and said in surprise, ¡°You¡¯ve been eating beets? Where did you get them?¡± Negris interrupted irritably, ¡°Don¡¯t change the subject. What was the deal with the insect guest time? Why were you able to instigate it? Is this ce your real body?¡± The Lord of Terror nodded, and obediently answered, ¡°The gue wasn¡¯t my doing, it was the pest controller who initiated it. I merely gave him some small pointers.¡± ¡°That¡¯s not correct. He had died. You were the one who resurrected him,¡± Negris argued. ¡°No, no, no. He resurrected himself. I just gave him some pointers, advised him on how to prepare and sessfully sign a pact, and charged a slight processing fee,¡± the Lord of Terror refuted. ¡°I see¡­ You¡¯re a scammer! Just like Anthony, deceitful,¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help but curse. This gimmick seemed all too familiar. Not long ago, Anthony had the same n, using silver coins and Ange¡¯s food to get other people¡¯s money and food. Had it not been for disaster relief, Anthony would have been the biggest scammer in the history of the Master ne.
¡°No, no, no.¡± The Lord of Terror quickly denied, ¡°I simply charged a reasonable consulting fee, because knowledge is the greatest wealth. If I hadn¡¯t told him what materials to prepare, he would be dead. Isn¡¯t it reasonable to charge a small consulting fee and processing fee?¡± ¡°Reasonable my¡­¡± Before Negris could leap up and smash his head, it suddenly remembered something and deted like a punctured ball. It realized that it was doing the same work as this demon, yet Ange never paid it. Negris¡¯s sudden dejection attracted everyone¡¯s concern. They all gathered around him, inquiring about his condition. Even Little Angel came over and patted his forehead.
¡°Oh, oh!¡± After Little Angel finished her barking, she turned around and spread her wings towards the Lord of Terror. Before the Holy Light sh, Negris swiftly held back Little Angel, saying helplessly, ¡°I¡¯m a Corpse Dragon, I¡¯m naturally cold. It¡¯s not his fault. It¡¯s not his fault.¡± The two barks of Little Angel meant pletely chilled¡¯, which meant to her that it was dead. No one knew who taught her thatpletely chilled meant death. ¡°Huh?¡± Little Angel tilted her head. Chapter 470: 276: Ill Throw Up If You Chase Me Again_2 Chapter 470: Chapter 276: I¡¯ll Throw Up If You Chase Me Again_2 ¡°It¡¯s nothing, truly nothing, I was just thinking about other things, but I¡¯ve figured it out now,¡± Negrisforted the Little Angel by gently rubbing its head. I was just overthinking things. They are now all in this together, and by nature, they are unlike this demon. Even a carefree fellow like the Little Angel cares about this, it¡¯s a genuine feeling. Seeing that everything was indeed alright, the Little Angel shook its head and punched Negris right in the eye. Then, with a bounce in its steps, the Little Angel ran up to Ange, patting its own head as if it¡¯s expressing ¡®look how cool I am¡¯, until Ange gave a nod of approval. With his hand over his face, Negris held back bothughter and tears. He had forgotten that only Ange could give Little Angel a head rub. However, the Little Angel¡¯s punch brought Negris to his senses. He turned to the Lord of Terror and cracked his knuckles, ¡°You¡¯ve got nerve, trying to deceive me? I almost fell for it.¡± After all, he¡¯s an old dragon that¡¯s been alive for thousands of years. How could he easily get swayed by emotions? Now Negris realized that he had fallen for this demon¡¯s trickery. The Lord of Terror grimaced and took a step back, ¡°It wasn¡¯t intentional, really! It¡¯s a habit, us demonsmunicate like this, naturally generating psychological waves.¡± ¡°Nonsense, do you take me for a fool?¡± Negris attacked, but the Lord of Terror quickly turned into a patch of smoke and knocked Negris back. Negris couldn¡¯t even take on a patch of smoke, which was quite embarrassing. As others stepped in to help, the smoke vanished. Trying to flee? Ange took a step forward and the ground erupted with fiery footprints. Invisible waves of energy spread outward. With each step leaving a fiery footprint, Ange gave chase. It seemed like he¡¯s running after something unseen. It took a sudden turn, and so did Ange ¨C speeding up abruptly.
After several minutes of relentless pursuit, the blood-curdling cries of the Lord of Terror finally echoed ahead, ¡°I¡¯ve run so long, aren¡¯t you tired?¡± ¡°We¡¯ve got no grudges against each other. Please stop chasing me!¡± ¡°Are you mad?! Why is your spirit so resolute?!¡± ¡°Stop chasing me, or I¡¯ll throw up!¡± The Lord of Terror was chased unruly. He didn¡¯t notice the burning footprints left by Ange, stumbling right into them. At first, the others were confused, as they only saw Ange running wildly in the dark, leaving behind numerous footprints on the ground. Even Shamara couldn¡¯t hold back her curiosity, quietly asking, ¡°What is Lord doing? Is he simply running around?¡± Luna replied in a whisper, ¡°He¡¯s casting a. Those prints he made are from his soul power, enhancing his senses. This demon must be merging its own blood with the earth, able to teleport freely in this area. Once it escapes our perception range, it will be much harder to find it.¡± ¡°So Ange is now using soul power to cast a and gradually limit the demon¡¯s moving space.¡± Shamara asked, ¡°Can he keep up? I only see Ange alone. I¡¯m worried he might lose it.¡± Luna shook her head: ¡°I can¡¯t sense the demon either, but I doubt Ange lost it. Based on his character, he wouldn¡¯t do something futile.¡± Shamara fell silent for a moment before suddenly saying, ¡°Luna, can you teach me how to fight?¡± Luna was dumbfounded: ¡°Teach you? You don¡¯t need it. Once I possess you, you¡¯ll have ess to all my fighting techniques. There¡¯s no need to learn. But why do you suddenly have this thought?¡± Shamara replied dejectedly, ¡°I¡¯ve realized that my understanding of battle was too superficial. I thought it was all about punches, kicks, swords, and magic. But now I see, battles can be fought with such cunning tactics. If it had been me, I wouldn¡¯t have detected the enemy. Or I¡¯d have fallen for the trickery from the start.¡± Luna nodded, ¡°Yes, I¡¯ve noticed that a strong stubbornness resides within you. If you were the one bewitched just now, you would definitely have rushed toward the Holy Light in a frenzy again. There is no effective solution to mental attacks. The only way is to stop them from speaking.¡± Luna never could have imagined that her words today would eventually shape the ¡®Silent Angel.¡¯ Whenever an enemy tried to speak, Shamara would detonate and yell ¡®shut up¡¯ before unleashing her grand attack. ¡°Your current shortfall is not in your skills, but in your experience. When I have time, I¡¯ll impart more of my battle experiences to you. But that may not have much significance,¡± Luna said. ¡°Some people have an innate sense of battle. Even when facing unfamiliar enemies, they can quickly devise countermeasures. They also know their own power very well. This is something that no amount of knowledge and experience canpensate for. Just consider the God of Knowledge,¡± Luna muttered to herself. It seems like someone was talking about him? Negris turned his head doubtfully, a clear fist print on his face.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Shamara understood in an instant; battle techniques were useless. The God of Knowledge had all the techniques and knowledge, yet no one could defeat him.
While they were chatting, the pursued Lord of Terror had begun to panic, blindly crashing into one of Ange¡¯s footprints. The me on the footprint surged into the sky, revealing a blurry figure, who was then struck by Ange¡¯s scythe. The ming figure shattered, leaving only a soul me on the scythe. After a torturous interrogation, the Lord of Terror even confessed what he had eaten the night before.
The Lord of Terror was indeed a Demon King, and this ce was indeed the Terror Abyss. Once, it was a hot underground world filled with magma until the day the Undead King arrived. One of the Undead King¡¯s servants, a Purple Gold Skeleton, obliterated him with a few punches, leaving behind only a Demonic Monument. At first, the Lord of Terror was delighted because the Undead King didn¡¯t touch his monument. He nned to resurrect after the undead creatures departed. However, the Undead King¡¯s underlings brought five gods and a human, a Space God. The Lord of Terror recognized a Goddess of Redemption from the Church of Light amongst them. At the king¡¯smand, they constructed and opened the majestic door, allowing all the magma in the space to pour out. The Undead King departed through the majestic door alongside the magma, leaving only the Purple Gold Skeleton to guard the area. For a period afterward, the five gods and the Space God obediently maintained the open door. The Purple Gold Skeleton didn¡¯t harm them, but rather provided for their needs. To provide fresh food, he summoned a Witch King to create a Farm Barrier, then captured a group of Minotaurs to farm. The process took twenty years until all the space¡¯s magma was drained. At thest moment, the human Space God rebelled, closed the majestic door, and fled. In a fit of rage, the Purple Gold Skeleton killed all the gods and pursued the human but never returned. ¡°That¡¯s not right,¡± Negris said with doubt. ¡°You say these minotaurs were captured by the Purple Gold Skeleton, so why does the stele read ¡®Exile of the Divine Bovine Race¡¯?¡± The Lord of Terror confessed awkwardly, ¡°I made that up hoping to deceive you. I didn¡¯t expect you to discover the truth.¡± Negris realized, ¡°So you couldn¡¯t resurrect because all of the magma space energy was drained. You could only create a projection to deceive.¡±
Embarrassed, the Lord of Terror admitted, ¡°Yes. Many people hoped for unearned gains, so when they found out about me, I projected to them, teaching them how to benefit without working and took a small processing fee.¡± ¡°Tsk, tsk, if you¡¯re taking processing fees, it can¡¯t be called unearned gain, right?¡± Negris responded. Despite his calm exterior, his heart was already in turmoil as he stared at the majestic door. ¡°So, the king went into this door and that¡¯s why he disappeared? Where does this door lead? Why did they need so much magma? How does it open?¡± Negris was thinking these thoughts excitedly, turning his head to call Ange when he realized that Ange was gone. ¡°Kvada, he must have run off to farm again.¡± As expected, Negris found Ange in the Farm Barrier. The guy was farming in the Minotaur¡¯s field while the Minotaurs happily watched, holding a heap of grain and vegetables. Chapter 471 - 277_1 Chapter 471: Chapter 277_1 This was the second farm barrier Ange had ever seen. It was roughly the same size and almost identically structured, giving him a feeling ofing home. He had been itching to nt something for a long time. Seeing that the Minotaur had turned the fields into a mess, with sparse crops showing signs of malnutrition, he felt uneasy. Years of cultivation had led to a loss of soil nutrients, soilpaction and degeneration, resulting in decreasing crop yields. The Minotaur aunt was chewing on a sweet beet, and unleashed her grievances when her energy was at its peak, ¡°We really can¡¯t help it. This ce is a closed world, filled with stones and nothing else. We¡¯re lucky just to survive. Thanks to the asional fish swimming in the well, or else we would have starved a long time ago.¡± Negris reviewed the Minotaurs¡¯ conditions and couldn¡¯t help but show sympathy: ¡°Indeed, the conditions are extremely harsh. It¡¯s a miracle that you guys managed to survive.¡± Not only did they manage to survive, but they also managed to maintain their poption. Originally, there were more than 200 Minotaurs, and even after a millennium, a hundred or so remained. This was definitely a miracle. ¡°What hardship are you talking about? If I hadn¡¯t scammed them with food and fertilizers, they would have starved a long time ago,¡± the Lord of Terror, who was tightly bound by the Lifesaving Rope, retorted unwillingly. The shouts of the Lord of Terror suddenly reminded Negris of something, ¡°Ah, right, when you took payment, you epted not only Soul Crystals but also ten bags of grains. Could those grains be for them? Do you have such a kind heart? What can ten bags of grains do?¡± The Lord of Terror grumbled: ¡°Did I have a choice? Have you ever seen a bunch of cows surrounding your stone, constantly mooing? Day and night, in shifts. If I don¡¯t feed them, they won¡¯t stop. This ce is enclosed and vast, they moo, and the entire world hears. They even threatened me, saying they¡¯ll poo on my stele if I don¡¯t feed them.¡± Probably no Devil King had had such a repressive experience as the Lord of Terror. After the space magma was released and the overall temperature of the space decreased, it lost its ability to rebirth by utilizing the earth¡¯s veins and could only huddle inside the Earth Monument. If the Minotaurs really pooed on its monument, it could do nothing. When the Minotaurs were starving, they could do anything. And even if it came down to a fight, it would not be able to defeat over 200 Minotaurs without its powers. What choice did it have but to pay for peace with grain? ¡°Ten bags of grains won¡¯t do much, but I couldn¡¯t give too much. If I did, they¡¯d only take more and I¡¯d end up feeding them even more. As long as they fish a bit more, work harder to nt things, they wouldn¡¯t starve. So every once in a while, I give them ten bags of grains. Enough to keep them from starving but not enough to cause trouble. That¡¯s enough.¡± The Lord of Terror spoke sullenly, his words full of a deep understanding of the nature of cows, worthy of a demon that toys with souls. ¡°I was originally nning on getting the recipe for Insect Ash so they could fertilize and grow their own food, and free me from this chore. But keeping insects turned out to be worse than keeping cows, so I gave up,¡± the Lord of Terror sighed helplessly. Negris just realized, so that¡¯s why it had gotten involved with those pest controllers. Regardless, this abandoned Divine Bull Tribe that had been left here had been lucky to meet Ange before their extinction. Taking care of an extra hundred or two hundred Minotaurs was not a problem for Ange. Besides, the agriculture technology of the Divine Bull Tribe was still quite good. Given that they have been in this enclosed environment for a thousand years, it was already quite impressive that things were still growing in the soil. Ange did not start nting right away but began by tilling thend. He brought back some hardened magma, and Little Angel crushed it one by one with the Earth Hammer and sprinkled it evenly over the ground. N?v(el)B\\jnn He also moved over leftover fish bones from the Minotaur¡¯s meals and crushed them into powder. The fish bones were clearly saved by the Minotaur on purpose, probably for fertilizing the soil. There was no ash from nts or wood, but Ange sprinkled some insect ash on top, along with bird droppings. Then Little Zombie quickly turned the soil, mixing these well-proportioned fertilizers into the soil. Farming is a profound science, and in order to master it, intelligent life forms have developed systems like Druids, Harvest Goddesses, and the Divine Bull Tribe. How much fertilizer to apply, when to apply fertilizer, when to add more, how different crops require different amounts of nutrients, and how to adjust ordingly. These were all dedicated to producing more food faster and better. Although the Minotaurs were of the Divine Bull Tribe, being trapped in this closed-off ce, they naturally didn¡¯t have the resources or conditions to delve into these studies. As time passed, the knowledge passed down from their ancestors gradually faded away, bing outdated. They stood thereughing, watching Ange in anticipation of a theater. But once Ange got started, they soon fell silent: This man, he really knows how to farm, even better than us Minotaurs¡­ Though they sort of understood tilling and fertilizing, they became confused when Ange moved on to nting and light supplementing techniques. But when the Instant Death Halo stepped in, they were simply aghast. In a short span of eight hours, the Fire Dragon Fruits, red and vibrant as mes, bloomed and bore fruit. They hung on the fleshy vines, gently emitting the vibrations of the fire element. ¡°Hissss, did you really manage to grow Fire Dragon Fruits?¡± Negris asked in astonishment. Just as its name suggested, Fire Dragon Fruit was a fire elemental nt. It was fiery red all over, resembling a me, and egg-shaped. Those who didn¡¯t know better thought it was a dragon¡¯s egg, hence it was named Fire Dragon Fruit. Chapter 472 - 277_2 Chapter 472: Chapter 277_2 In fact, even the eggs of the fire-based Red Dragon are calcium white. Red eggs must be deformed or hybrid. But it doesn¡¯t matter if the Dragon n denies it, the people who have seen the Fire Dragon Eggs can be counted on one hand. As they kept mentioning it, the name was set. It¡¯s a type of elemental nt with strong fire elements. If a fire wizard eats a small piece, they can replenish their fire elements. If they eat a whole one, they can enhance their elemental affinity. Keep eating, and they will be the fire element themselves. A wizard who continually supplements their diet with various elemental nts is sure to make twice the progress in their magic cultivation. This is why powerful wizards are known to be ¡®made of money¡¯. The impoverishedmon folk hardly get the chance to practice magic. If they can¡¯t even afford to eat elemental nts, they are never going to catch up to others. This is the second type of elemental crop that Ange has grown, the other being the Elf Beans. However, Elf Beans can only satiate hunger and are required inrge amounts. A few dozen Elf Beans have no other use than as cat toys. The Fire Dragon Fruit is different. A Fire Wizard would definitely be willing to spend a third of their monthly sry to buy a Fire Dragon Fruit each month. Ange has grown over two thousand acres of Fire Dragon Fruit. Since these are elemental crops, they need ample space to grow, so the yield per acre is only sixty. Yet, with over two thousand acres, it has produced a total of 120,000 fruits. ¡°You¡­ this¡­ abnormal¡­¡± Negris didn¡¯t know what to say. The Fire Dragon Fruits that were usually auctioned off one by one in the market were suddenly appearing before him in the hundreds of thousands. Besides calling it ¡®abnormal¡¯, he didn¡¯t know what else to say. ¡°If he only grows Fire Dragon Fruits in the future, he could¡­ be richer than the church.¡± Luna muttered. The Lord of Terror struggled to poke his head out of the pendant and said, ¡°What a pity, all the volcanic energy has been used up, so no more fire-element crops can be grown.¡± ¡°Hmm? Is that true, Ange? Does growing Fire Dragon Fruits consume the fire elements in the soil?¡± Negris asked. His knowledge about cultivation needed updates from others. Since Ange had just started growing the second elemental crop, it was natural for him tock such knowledge. His previous followers didn¡¯t even understand such high-end knowledge, since they were not druids. How could they understand elemental nts? ¡°It¡¯s not the fire element, it¡¯s the fire essence.¡± The Lord of Terror interrupted him and grumbled, ¡°Those are the essence produced by the earth veins, necessary for creating fire elements. Without the essence, these earth veins would no longer produce fire elements, and I would never go back again.¡± ¡°Oh, no wonder Ange never grows Fire Dragon Fruits. But what are you thinking about? You want to go back? Dream on. If you can¡¯t grow anything, Little Zombie will eat you up. We don¡¯t ept souls that can¡¯t cultivate in our group,¡± Negris threatened. What a unique threat. If you can¡¯t cultivate, you get eaten? The Lord of Terror began to shiver. Indeed, Ange never chooses to grow elemental crops because they consume elemental resources, some of which are non-renewable. Once they are used up, they are gone. However, this space is different. The earth veins here contain massive amounts of fire essence. Although theva has been extracted, it created fire elements that cannot be amodated here. Even the strength needed for the Lord of Terror¡¯s rebirth could not be met. It would be a waste to keep it. Rather than wasting it, why not grow crops that usually can¡¯t be grown and make full use of the resources? After harvesting this crop, Ange eliminated all the nts, leaving only one. Like many other nts, the Fire Dragon Fruit also develops seeds once it ripens. When the fruit is mature enough to be harvested, it is the sweetest and the elements are the most abundant, making it the most suitable time to harvest. However, the seeds inside are not fully developed at this stage. The nts grown from them are small and of lesser quality. The nt must be allowed to fully mature so that the nutrients inside the fruit and the elements are used up. Only then can the best seeds be obtained. Of course, some nts have well-developed seeds when they are the sweetest. This is because these nts need to attract birds and beasts to eat the fruits, helping them disperse the seeds to even farther ces. After thest Fire Dragon Fruit was ripened, Ange moved in front of the boundary marker of the farm. The silent Lord of Terror began to speak again, ¡°Look, the three hundred soul crystals I exchanged from you were all consumed here. They have been used for thousands of years and are almost rotten. Fortunately, Durken created them and they can be replenished through soul energy.¡± ¡°You know Durken?¡± Negris was surprised. ¡°Of course. Who doesn¡¯t know Durken? I also know the God of Knowledge and Steadfast Locke,¡± said the Lord of Terror. Negris said, ¡°No, you¡¯ve been talking about the Purple Gold Skeleton all this time, if you know Steadfast Locke, wouldn¡¯t you recognize that Purple Gold Skeleton?¡± The Lord of Terror paused before answering, ¡°That Purple Gold Skeleton is not Steadfast Locke.¡± Boom! Negris felt like his soul was exploding. The Purple Gold Skeleton apanying the king wasn¡¯t Steadfast Locke? Then who was it? Were there three Purple Gold Skeletons? Harvey was promoted only after the king disappeared, meaning that besides Steadfast Locke, there was another Mourning Skeleton with the king in those days? ¡°Lamo, Lamo! Come quick.¡± Negris hurriedly called out to Lamo and the other watchmen, who were souls that had survived from the era of the king, surely they would remember what happened then. However, no matter who it was, none could recall the existence of a second Lord of Mourning, for under the king there was only one. Negris¡¯s memory had been tampered with, but had everyone¡¯s memories been altered? That was impossible. The king could not have had such spare time. Plus, the existence of a second Lord of Mourning wasn¡¯t something that needed to be concealed. The only possibility then was, ¡°You saw wrongly.¡± ¡°Did I remember it wrong?¡± The Lord of Terror hesitated as all the watchmen unanimously denied the existence of a second Purple Gold Skeleton. Could he really have been mistaken? n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om At that moment, a strong fluctuation of soul energy came from Ange¡¯s direction. They turned to look and saw Ange, both hands pressed against the boundary stone, with his body wrapped in mes of soul energy, like a fire man, as soul energies surged into the boundary stone unceasingly. Rumble, rumble¡­ rumble, rumble¡­the ground of the farm began to gently tremble, like a minor earthquake, with dust bouncing amidst the shaking. ¡°What¡¯s going on? Ange, did you break it? Stop first.¡± Negris hastily said. The farm¡¯s barrier had been there for a thousand years, left unmaintained for a long time. With such a big movement, he feared it was going to break. Ange replied, ¡°No, justparing.¡± Upon hearing Ange¡¯s response, Negris understood. To make aparison, there had to be at least two items. Besides this one, there was another farm boundary inside the Temple of Rest. Ange was certainly reluctant to experiment with the one in the Temple of Rest, so he started with this one. If nothing went wrong, he would surely take action with the one inside next. Rumble¡­rumble¡­ As more and more soul energy was poured in, the dpidated boundary stone slowly ¡®recovered¡¯. Not only did it return to its original state, looking brand new, it even grew a little taller. ¡°Eh, did the farm expand?¡± Negris, noticing something, suddenly asked. Everyone followed his gaze and looked in the distance, indeed noticing that the farm boundary was expanding. Ange stopped the energy input, circled around the farm, and then said, ¡°Three thousand, six hundred acres.¡± He possessed the Ring of Bnce, so his calctions were absolutely urate. This meant that after being infused with energy, the boundary of the farm had expanded by a full six hundred acres, an increase of twenty percent. ¡°Boundaries can expand? What¡¯s the maximum expansion? If it can expand indefinitely, doesn¡¯t that mean you don¡¯t need to look for farnds everywhere, and the space inside is enough for you to nt?¡± Negris was astonished. Ange shook his head, about to say something, when suddenly a ¡®pop¡¯ sounded, as if something had ruptured, and a howling sound emerged. Looking up, they saw at a great distance a grand gate, at the center of which a hole the size of a fist appeared, and violent wind was violently pouring in. The minotaurs cried out, ¡°It¡¯s getting dark, the wind¡¯s rising, quickly gather the clothes.¡± Then they scattered in all directions. Chapter 473: 278 Six is Alright, Five is Ok Too? _1 Chapter 473: Chapter 278 Six is Alright, Five is Ok Too? _1 The grand door had only a fist-sized hole, but the wind pouring through was incredibly strong. A stone thrown into it instantly vanished, as if sted away by a high-pressure air gun. Even their mental wills were powerless against this formidable gust, incapable of reaching the hollow in front of them. Ange tried to use an Air Bubble Stone to shield the forefront, but it was instantly shattered. ¡°The wind¡¯s power is too great. We need to find a way to open the door. Arger area under the same wind volume will reduce the wind force, then we can pass through,¡± Negris said. But how could the door be opened? ¡°We need to find the Space Mage. After all, this door was built by the Space God and five deities, right? We should get a Space Mage to examine it first.¡± As they mentioned the Space Mage, all present thought of the screaming figure ripping its own clothes. ¡°Also, notice that there are six energy slots and one control slot. Hmm, Shamara, are you saying we need six deities? And isn¡¯t that wrong? The Lord of Terror (???) spoke of only five gods and one human, right? Why are there seven slots?¡± Negris circled the grand door several times, indeed finding the six energy slots and the control slot. Any magical structure required energy, and the more massive the structure, the more energy it needed to be operated.
Just like a world transfer station. If one wanted to fully activate it, a massive amount of magic crystals are required, and this would fluctuate based on the amount of goods being transported. Although Magic Crystal Soul Crystal could provide enough energy, the power might be insufficient. Therefore, the grand door didn¡¯t use Magic Crystal Soul Crystal for energy supply, but instead, had six energy slots. ording to the Lord of Terror, the human deity and five gods powered this door, but why were there six energy slots? Could it be that six was just right, and five would also do? Was this why Shamara perceived the need for six gods? Shamara blinked innocently, not knowing how to answer Negris¡¯ question. Predicting the need for six gods was already a challenge for her. After much debate with no conclusion at hand, they couldn¡¯t open the door straight away. Reluctantly, they returned to the farm, preparing for the Space Magic Instructor, Hiludi, toe over for an inspection. However, no sooner had they settled down at the farm when they were driven to flee once more. The Minotaurs had be ustomed to such scenes, sleeping soundly despite the howling wind. Once they fell asleep, everyone else understood why they could sleep despite the strong wind. ¡°Kvada, the snoring of these cows is even stronger than the wind,¡±ined those who could hear as they covered their ears. They began to understand why the Lord of Terror couldn¡¯t bear them. He¡¯d rather resort to deceit thanpromise with them. Moreover, it wasn¡¯t just the noise of hundreds of cows mooing at you; their snoring alone in front of the stele could drive anyone insane. Especially with the sharp wind whistling from afar and the on-and-off snoring of cows from close-up, twofold assault caused double difort. Plus, they had eaten their fill, meaning their snoring was exceptionally loud. ¡°All frequency sound, is like a sound spell. I can¡¯t stand it anymore. I¡¯d rather go God ying. Let¡¯s go, let¡¯s go find the Goddess of Redemption.¡± ¡°Let¡¯s go, let¡¯s go.¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn Those with sensitive hearing fled, those without also had to follow. A group of people began to search for the Goddess of Redemption, preferring to y gods over staying here. Even if the Goddess of Redemption racked her brains, she wouldn¡¯t have guessed that her desperate situation was caused by a group of Minotaurs. The wind pouring in had to find outlets in the sealed space, such as wells. When the air pressure in the space reached a certain level, the water in the wells would be slowly pushed down, seeping into the Light Sea ne via the reefs, from which Sea People had already moved away. In addition to wells, some hidden ces were also pried open, such as the tunnel leading to the Garden of the Goddess of Redemption. The biting wind blew into the garden from the tunnel, causing flowers, grass, and trees to sway and rustle.
The Goddess of Redemption had resumed her regr task of collecting and arranging. Dusting the crystal cabs, a non-existent task, was her favorite chore. ¡°La,,~¡± she hummed a tune as she cleaned, dusted, and carefully arranged the cab. Then stepped away to have a look, returned to readjust, ensuring that everything was ced perfectly in the center before satisfactorily closing the lid. The wind came in and brought many unfamiliar scents. The Goddess of Redemption paused, and with a wave of her hand, all the crystal cabs immediately retracted underground.
She quickly tidied her dress andposure, and then slowly sat down. As she moved, a chair materialized behind her. First the seat, then the base. Both were exceptionally exquisite in material and craftsmanship. As she sat down and leaned back, the backrest of the chair also materialized. It was a splendidly golden, exquisitely crafted high-backed chair. If any devout follower of the Church of Light were present, they would instantly recognize it as the Throne of Light. Even non-believers could identify it. Negris cautiously entered the room and immediately recognized the Throne of Light. He initially approached with extreme caution ¨C this ce was, after all, the domain of a god, the so-called Divine Realm, where a god¡¯s power could be maximized. Chapter 474: 278 Six is Alright, Five is Ok Too? _2 Chapter 474: Chapter 278 Six is Alright, Five is Ok Too? _2 At the same time, the gods are the ones who understand their own divine realms the best. They are capable of fully utilizing every aspect and feature of their realms. Just to take a simple example, the mere fact that water flows upstream could disorient many and affect their power. Because of this, Negris volunteered to scout ahead. After all, it was just a projection of himself, so dying was of no consequence. Besides, it was the God of Knowledge and had the ability to understand the peculiar aspects of divine realms. But it came as a surprise when all they saw was a regr garden and nothing more. There were no independent rules, no forbidden defenses, no dangerous boundaries. To be honest, even if a little bunny wandered in, it wouldn¡¯t be harmed in any way. Could it be that the Goddess of Redemption had other, more formidable, defenses? Negris was taken aback, thinking that he hadn¡¯t fully grasped the Goddess of Redemption¡¯s arrangements. He didn¡¯t dare to allow Ange and the others to enter just yet and, so, kept on flying into the temple until he came face to face with the Goddess of Redemption seated on the Throne of Light. ¡°Why are you alone? Where are the others?¡± the Goddess of Redemption asked in confusion. ¡°They are outside. They didn¡¯t dare to enter. What about you? Are you also alone?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Not exactly. I just thought it wasn¡¯t necessary to summon them, so I didn¡¯t bother.¡± With a wave of her hand, the bricks behind the Goddess of Redemption sunk and a few things crawled out. A Lava Demon and a steel structure three meters tall, a suit of armor, and a sword all came crawling out.
Leaving aside the demon, which was just amon Great Demon, the structure turned out to be a Guardian Avatar. After it climbed out, it reached its right hand out towards Negris and then stopped moving. The Goddess of Redemption looked very embarrassed, running over to give the construct a swift kick before reluctantly saying, ¡°It¡¯s out of energy. It runs on soul energy, and I can¡¯t replenish it.¡± As for the armour, it was Holy Spirit Armour, which should have been worn by a Holy Spirit Angel. But there was none, and the armour alone stood there lifelessly assembled in the shape of a human being. The sword floated by itself with soul energy burning on its de. A strong soul wave spread from the sword: ¡°Give me blood¡­give me soul¡­¡± The sight left Negris dumbfounded. This was not what the Goddess of Light should summon as her aids. His reaction made the Goddess of Redemption even more embarrassed. She stammered out, ¡°It¡¯s not what I wanted. These are the only things in my collection that can still be activated. I told you. It¡¯s useless to summon them.¡± The Goddess of Redemption could not possibly store Holy Spirit Angels or Saintly Priestesses in her collection. The only things she could store were all these peculiar items. After over a thousand years, these four¡­ well, actually three things are what¡¯s still active. Even if they were summoned, they wouldn¡¯t be able to resist the Undead God, God of Knowledge, a six-winged fallen angel, a dimension beast, etc. She regretted going out so aimlessly. The Goddess of Redemption initially thought she was dealing with a new-born deity kindling the Divine Fire. She had no idea she would end up walking into a den of gods. Truth be told, even when all the Gods of Light were around, it was rare to gather so many deities. The Goddess of Redemption waved her hand, and the emotionless Lava Great Demon walked over to drag the Guardian Avatar aside. The armour and sword also moved to the side to stay out of the way. Seeing the Goddess of Redemption put things away, Negris finally let down his guard and allowed everyone to enter. They had herpletely surrounded. Unbeknownst to them, Ange had already amassed impressive power. Just showcasing it could scare quite a few people. At least, the God of Redemption had given up any thoughts of resisting. She smiled and asked, ¡°We have no quarrel, yet you destroyed my shell and invaded my divine realm. Isn¡¯t that unreasonable?¡± What?! Everyone was taken aback. The plot had taken an unexpected turn. Why were they the ones being questioned? However, upon reflection, they realized she was right. After the Goddess of Redemption emerged from the sea, she was immediately bombarded by the Little Angel and Little Zombie¡¯s potent attacks. Then, Ange chased her down and she was forced to retaliate by throwing her hammer, which Ange ended up snatching away. They had invaded her home aggressively, surrounding her with an intent to kill. It was indeed very unreasonable. If this were a knight¡¯s tale, they would be the viins defeated by the adventurers. After a stunned silence, everyone gathered and whispered, ¡°I think we were a bit too much, maybe we should just let it go.¡± ¡°Yeah, yeah, we are so many, picking on a goddess, it does not sound good.¡±
¡°True, she didn¡¯t harm us, she barely got her head out of the water before getting hit by Little Angel, and now we¡¯re blocking the entrance to kill her, it¡¯s a bit too much.¡± Everyone was whispering, if the Goddess of Redemption hadn¡¯t questioned them, they wouldn¡¯t have realized that they were the ones who started this conflict, not the other way around. Seeing everyone discussing so earnestly, Shamara was dumbfounded. They were the Undead, heretics, and the Church of Light wouldn¡¯t rest until they were wiped out, but they were actually discussing whether it would be too much to treat a Goddess of Light this way? If it were the old Shamara, she would have judged them without saying a word, and she wouldn¡¯t think it was excessive.
Seeing Shamara¡¯s bewildered expression, Lunaughed and said, ¡°Do you still remember what I said? The Undead King better defines ¡®light¡¯ because they don¡¯t have suchplex thoughts. They won¡¯t pity you for your beauty or target you because of your identity¡­¡± Before Luna finished her sentence, Negris had also finished their discussion: ¡°We have decided, let¡¯s just kill her to avoid trouble.¡± ¡°Pff¡­¡± Luna almost fell to the ground, Bada, these guys have noplex thoughts, but they hate trouble. Everyone once again surrounded the Goddess of Redemption. Ange made a gesture and a row of explosive fireballs appeared in front of him. The Goddess of Redemption smiled faintly and spread her arms. Behind her appeared a phantom image of a one-footed scale: ¡°Do you recognize what this is? Hurting me is hurting yourself.¡± Negris¡¯ eyes popped out, ¡°Equal Cross? Why do you have the Equal Cross?¡± The Goddess of Redemption breathed a sigh of relief. The God of Knowledge did recognize the Equal Cross. She was afraid that others wouldn¡¯t, the Equal Cross was used to die together, but she didn¡¯t want to die with others. If the other side didn¡¯t recognize it and insisted on fighting, what¡¯s the point of dying together? Wouldn¡¯t she still fall? Only when the other side recognizes this thing and knows its power can the Equal Cross have deterrent power. ¡°Then you should know its function. This is the redemption fee paid by the God of Bnce. It can equally transfer the damage to the attacker. If you kill me, you will die too.¡± When she said this, the Goddess of Redemption was looking at Ange. Among so many people present, the only one capable of killing her was Ange. Negris made a strange expression on his face and had Ange reveal the Ring of Bnce. This time it was the Goddess of Redemption¡¯s turn to widen her eyes: ¡°The Ring of Bnce? Why is it with you?¡±
¡°Because we killed the God of Bnce. The Equal Cross is useless to us. Even the original Equal Cross of the God of Bnce couldn¡¯t stop us. You think yours will?¡± Negris said with a smile. However, while saying this, his heart was a little unreliable. The God of Bnce¡¯s Equal Cross was useless, but if it wasbined with the Goddess of Redemption¡¯s damage absorption, the situation would bepletely different. Ange couldn¡¯t kill her in one punch, he had to weaken her bit by bit. But in this way, he couldn¡¯t use the Dragon God Transformation, because its duration was too short. It couldn¡¯t be used when weakening her, and all the weakening would be reflected back on him. Despite this, Negris still appeared confident. He knew the key point here, but the Goddess of Redemption didn¡¯t. What if he scared her off? Indeed she was scared. The Goddess of Redemption¡¯s face fell. The Ring of Bnce behind Ange was a real deal. If the Bnce itself was dead, could her non-original Equal Cross work?n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om ¡°How about, you give the cross to him so he can form a set, and we let you go?¡± Negris took the opportunity to propose. The Goddess of Redemption¡¯s expression was changing. In the end, she gritted her teeth, stamped her foot, and activated the Evasion Boots. Chapter 475 - 279 - It Never Said That_Word 1 Chapter 475: Chapter 279 ¨C It Never Said That_Word 1 Until thest moment, the Goddess of Redemption didn¡¯t want to activate her escape boots. It would be easy for her to flee, but difficult to carry her collection with her. For someone who valued her collection as much as her life, it was the equivalent of cutting her own heart with a small knife. In the years toe, whenever she saw simr items, she couldn¡¯t help clutching her chest, her heart bleeding: ¡°Oh, I¡­ I used to have this.¡± Butpared to her life, these things seemed less important. Run, she decided, she could always collect againter. As soon as the escape boots were activated, the Goddess of Redemption¡¯s figure blurred, sinking into the ground. Ange was prepared and lunged forward; the Boundary-crossing Hand was triggered. The Goddess of Redemption flung her Equal Cross at Ange, as if throwing a hammer. Ange paused; the Equal Cross wasn¡¯t activated, what use was throwing it? He caught the Equal Cross with both hands, which swiftly transformed into a ball of light, sending Ange flying back a distance. Huh? Ange scrambled to hold this ball of light. While in the hands of the Goddess of Redemption the Equal Cross was a physical object, but why did it turn into a ball of energy in his hands? What was the principle? However, he could grab the light and deftly held the energy ball. The Goddess of Redemption, sinking underground, gave him a surprised look, thenpletely disappeared. Perhaps surprised at how Ange could grasp the light. Ange just managed to stabilize the light and incorporate it into the Ring of Bnce, by the time he looked up, the Goddess of Redemption had vanished. N?v(el)B\\jnn The others were hesitant to attack the Goddess of Redemption. Weak attacks were useless, and strong ones might be absorbed by her. They could only stand by helplessly as she disappeared into the ground. ¡°What a pity, she got away.¡± Negris, patting his muscr waist, said regretfully. Luna, however, disagreed: ¡°There¡¯s nothing to regret. I¡¯ve told you before. Among the Gods of Light, the Goddess of Redemption is the hardest to deal with. No matter how you fight, you can¡¯t kill her. She carries many divine artifacts and possesses a bunch of messy skills. Killing her is not easy at all. Look at Steadfast Locke, he has tried to kill her once, but she still managed to resurrect.¡± With this reassurance, Negris felt relieved. Since Locke couldn¡¯t kill her, it was reasonable that she escaped. ¡°At least, Ange has seized the Equal Cross. Ange, how is it? Can you use the Equal Cross?¡± Negris turned to Ange and asked. Ange tilted his head and answered: ¡°I can only use it once.¡± While talking, the Ring of Bnce appeared behind him. The central part now featured a cross-like scale. The arms of the scales and the main bar intersected with the ring, forming the true image of Libra. ¡°So that¡¯s what Libra is. But it¡¯s a pity that it can only be used once; it¡¯s meaningless.¡± Negris said regretfully. The greatest significance of the Equal Cross was not to perish together with the enemy, but its deterrent power. It¡¯s more useful to let others know you have this power than to actually use it. A weapon is most frightening when it¡¯s ced on the rack. But how can it disy its deterrence if it can only be used once? Once disyed, it is gone, equivalent to throwing away the only weapon on the rack. ¡°So, did we make this trip for nothing? No, we can¡¯t return empty-handed or we will be blessed by the God of Misfortune. Hurry up and look for any spoils of war.¡± Negris urged. Luna paused, ¡°None, I think? I know the God of Misfortune, and he never said so.¡± Negris acted as if he hadn¡¯t heard, and the others were already charging excitedly into the temple. Who cared whether the God of Misfortune had said so or not? They had traveled a long way and couldn¡¯t return empty-handed. Little Angel was the first, sniffing around like a little puppy. Once it found a target, it punched the ground, breaking the floor tiles and revealing a crystal cab beneath. Inside the cab was a pair of holy light-emitting gauntlets. Smashing the crystal cab, Little Angel picked up the gauntlet, tucked it away and dashed off to the next tile. The second fastest was Little Zombie, who ran straight toward the sword that was puffing out Soul mes and yelling, ¡®Give me blood¡­ Give me souls¡­¡¯. The Empty Armor stepped forward, a punch aimed at Little Zombie. Little Zombie protected its head and rammed into the armor with its shoulder, a ck aura emanated from its shoulder during the collision. The Empty Armor copsed on the spot at the impact. So forceful? The constantly shouting sword suddenly decreased in volume, changing to: I¡­ I¡­ I¡­ Little Zombie picked it up, let his Soul Energy flow in it and mixed in his will. ¡°As you wish, my lord¡­¡± The sword melted into a shield, with a ferocious and terrifying face protruding from the front. Carrying this shield, Little Zombie ran around like a heavily armored knight. All the colored tiles in the temple were turned upside down, revealing the Goddess of Redemption¡¯s collection. So abundant and valuable that Negris almost popped out his eyes. ¡°Kvada, we¡¯re rich, Kvada, we¡¯re rich.¡± That was the only sentence Negris was muttering as he flew back and forth. To the Goddess of Redemption, these treasures were too rudimentary, only worth collecting, but not very practical. However, for the Purple Skeleton Titan, the Night Watchmen, Rogge and his subordinates, they were just right. The high-tier artifacts were not quite usable for them, like those divine artifacts; they were piled up, unimed by anyone. Chapter 476 - 279: It Never Said These Words_2 Chapter 476: Chapter 279: It Never Said These Words_2 Luna also looked down on these items, while Shamara had her eyes on a few. Yet, the Little Angel picked them all up in an instant. If anyone dared to snatch them from her, she would squawk loudly. The Purple Skeleton Titans transformed, each wielding a Thunderbolt Javelin. ¡°A Thunderbolt Javelin? The weapon of the Gold Titans? Where did you find these? So many?!¡± Negris asked in amazement. Pointing to a far corner, the purple corpse indicated a basket: ¡°Found them over there. Ten plus of them, all stuck in the basket.¡± ¡°Although they¡¯re not particrly good weapons, they suit you guys perfectly. They can absorb surrounding Thunder Power, and fully release it after striking a target. They¡¯re essentially disposable long-range weapons,¡± said Negris. ¡°However, for you, its ability to absorb Thunder Power is more meaningful. Hold it, absorb its thunder power, and it can promote your evolution. It doesn¡¯t necessarily need to be used as a disposable weapon,¡± Negris added. These Purple corps were all Mixed-Blood Titans and possessed the bloodline of the Thunder Titan but couldn¡¯t control the Thunder Power. They usually resorted to brute force in battles. Real Thunder Titans were massive creatures, standing more than ten meters tall, imbued with overwhelming Thunder Power. Every movement they made was thunderous, and meleebat with an adult Bronze Dragon was never a problem. However, having the bloodline of Thunder Titans meant that the Purple Skeleton n could continue evolving. Once she awakened the Thunder Power in her bloodline, it was not impossible for her to be a real Thunder Titan. While the Thunderbolt Javelin was disposable for Thunder Titans, for the Purple Skeleton n, it was the most appropriate weapon. They could not only reuse it but also absorb the Thunder Power to strengthen themselves and get closer to bing real Thunder Titans. Of course, the desire was beautiful, whether it could seed was another matter. It was like every Dragon-blood member wanting to evolve into a Giant Dragon, but hardly anyone ever seeded. ¡°Everyone, don¡¯t put away your stuff just yet. Let me tally up everything first and distribute them reasonably ording to your particr characteristics. Don¡¯t just grab the highest-level ones. And I¡¯m talking about you, Little Angel. Hand over the stuff for me to count,¡± Negris roared at the Little Angel in Aoaonguage. The Little Angel was holding a pile in her arms, bulging and uncertain how many pieces she took. She didn¡¯t budge when Negris didn¡¯t raise his voice, but the moment he did, she clutched the things in her arms tighter and took off running. ¡°Ange, Ange, hold her back, let me count the things she has grabbed. Ange, Ange?¡± He called a few times, but there was no response. When he looked back, Ange was nowhere to be found. ¡°Where did this fellow run off to? Does he also have fields here?¡± Negris flew to the garden following the sensed direction, and immediately spotted Ange who was collecting various nt seeds in the garden. If it were a crop that had already bloomed and bore fruit, Ange would pluck them directly and collect them. If they hadn¡¯t yet bloomed, he¡¯d stomp on the ground, and the nts in the garden would grow rapidly,peting to bloom and bear fruit. There should be a lot of valuable crops in the garden of the Goddess of Redemption. Realizing this, Negris did not stop him and quietly waited for his collection work to finish. When everyone left the divine realm, the entire realm had been tragically turned over. Some people got weapons, some got armor, some got seeds; everyone was satisfied. Of course, those highest-level divine artifacts that everyone could not handle, all eventually ended up with Ange. He was toozy to look at them and stuffed all of them into the Resting Camp recklessly. When they returned to the farm, the wind had stopped, and the small hole on the magnificent gate also disappeared. Lisa stepped in and asked the Minotaurs: ¡°Would you like to leave this ce? If you worship the Undead God, you can eat your fill.¡± Hearing they could eat to their content, the minotaurs almost squashed Lisa. Stuffing the Minotaurs into the Resting Camp, Ange pressed the boundary monument of the farm with the Boundary-crossing Hand. He pushed the entire boundary monument into the Resting Camp. When it appeared inside, it was next to the farm there. With the boundary monument gone, the outside farnd¡¯s barrier copsed with a loud rumbling noise. The soil on the ground turned into powder and kept copsing until everything disappeared, revealing hard igneous rock. Inside the Resting Camp, the newly appeared boundary monument also shook loudly. Thend originally covered with Breathing Soil was forcibly squeezed open by the normal soil. It pushed further and further, reaching wider and wider. Forty odd hourster, a normal field forcefully appeared next to where the farm used to be. The area was the same as on the outside, totaling three thousand six hundred acres. ¡°This does not seem to have been formed by transforming the originalnd. Instead, it appears to have been squeezed out within the Resting Camp. In other words, the Resting Camp has increased its area by three thousand six hundred acres out of nowhere? This is too incredible! What does this boundary marker do?¡± Negris wondered aloud in surprise. ¡°Could it be a dimensional space? Why don¡¯t we dismantle one and see?¡± Lamo suggested. The space within the Resting Camp could be filled using dimensional space. The original reward for rescuing the Dimension Beast was several hundred cubic meters of dimensional space. However, a few hundred cubic meters of space had almost no meaningful effect whenpared to the Resting Camp. Even when introduced, there was hardly any noticeable change. So much so, that Negris began to regret it. A space of a few hundred cubic meters may be insignificant for the Resting Camp, but as an independent space, it would be extremely valuable. It was hard to find a space artifact that had so much space. If they knew Hiludi at that time, they could have used her help to seal the space in some magic artifact, which would have resulted in an artifact that had several hundred cubic meters of space. It could hold anything and they wouldn¡¯t have to keep piling everything on Ange. Unfortunately, regrets were in vain. Once it is added, it cannot be disassembled again. That¡¯s just the way it was. But now, the Resting Camp had an extra three thousand six hundred acres of space, equivalent to 2.4 square kilometers, a significantlyrge area. It was clear that the boundary of the Resting Camp had expanded. Therefore, the boundary marker did not transform thend of the original boundary into a new one, it expanded to create this area. Aside from dimensional space, it seemed no other thing could achieve this. However, the moment Lamo suggested his idea, he immediately sensed a dangerous thought focused on him. Quicklying to his senses, he promptly changed his words: ¡°Of course we can¡¯t dismantle it, how could we? Such a precious thing must be well preserved.¡± n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Ange looked at him, half-believing and half-doubting for a while, and then eventually chucked him out, not allowing him into the space for quite some time. The expansion of the farm barrier waspleted forty odd hourster, and Ange and his group had long since returned to the sandbank. The minotaurs were so attracted by the sea as soon as they were released that they plunged right in after testing the water. They had never seen so much water in their lives, as their wells could only provide water for half a day. Because the wind would blow away the water, even when it stopped, it would take most of the day for the water to rise to the well mouth. They also needed the water from the wells to irrigate their crops, which led to a severe water shortage for the minotaurs. Seeing so much water, they were so excited that they were about to go crazy. Luckily, the Sea People were there to watch them, otherwise it would have drowned several minotaurs. The Sea People were taking care of the seaweed, the Harvest Goddess¡¯s believers were tending the soilless rice, the chosen strong men formed the guard to guard the teleportation array, and everything was running smoothly. After some time, out of one hundred thousand believers of the Harvest Goddess, over sixty thousand had been transported. This speed was quite fast considering it was cross-dimensional teleportation. Correspondingly, about sixty thousand tons of grain had also been transported. Going back and forth, the teleportation array was continuously busy. Under such high intensity operation, Lisa was very worried that it might break down. This teleportation array differed from the world transfer station, as it didn¡¯t have an automatic repair function. As long as it was fed with soul energy, it could freely restore itself, and it didn¡¯t matter even if it broke down. But for the time being, it couldn¡¯t stop for maintenance. Anthony was waiting for the food to save lives. They simply used the method of sending people once and transporting the grain once in turns to cool down. As soon as the new batch of people were transported, priest Dakwen, waiting on the side, quickly stepped forward. He led them out, but as soon as they had left the teleportation array, a pale middle-aged man suddenly fell to his knees, copsing onto the ground. Dakwen chuckled, ¡°He must be teleportation sick. Come here, have a drink of water to soothe yourself, don¡¯t worry, you¡¯vee to the world of the Harvest Goddess, here is the most delicious¡­¡± some people are carsick, some are seasick, and naturally, some are teleportation sick. This kind of space transfer would easily cause headaches and dizziness, it¡¯s normal to feel dizzy and nauseous. But before Dakwen could finish his sentence, the pale middle-aged man suddenly opened his mouth and threw up a pile of bright red stuff, then fell back and quickly lost consciousness. When Ange and Negris rushed over, a pale Dakwen said tremblingly, ¡°My¡­ My Lords, we are in trouble. I suspect they have contracted some new gue, there are many people in this batch who show symptoms.¡± Chapter 477: 280: The Four Horsemen of the Apocalypse_1 Chapter 477: Chapter 280: The Four Horsemen of the Apocalypse_1 gues, wars, famines, and the undead are the Four Horsemen of the Apocalypse in the Church of Light¡¯s propaganda. Their arrival would bring apocalyptic disaster. Thest one, the Undead Empire staunchly denies. To them, their Undead Cmity is just a form of warfare, a controble one, not a cmity in the true sense. Yet, if anyone dares to defy them, they surely would hasten the arrival of their doomsday. Whether the Undead Empire admits it or not doesn¡¯t matter. What matters is that everyone believes it. Among the disasters listed alongside the Undead Cmity ¨C gues, wars, famines ¨C all of them terrible in their own right, the gue is considered the worst. There was once a region heavily afflicted by gue. Two-thirds of its tens of millions of inhabitants died. All systems of government copsed in this region; only the isted viges managed to survive. Ever since then, this region has beenposed primarily of isted city-states, with numerous self-governing territories. With millions of people living across over six hundred city-states and territories. Each with its City Lord, controlling a smaller poption than some of therger empires. This region is now referred to as the Bird Union, hinting at the numerous city-states resembling a collection of bird nests. The cause of this unique political feature is the gue. The Church of Light managed to expand across the Master ne, bing the primary religion. The gue yed a crucial role in this because the Power of Holy Light has a distinct purifying effect. The most effective way to deal with a gue is through purification: clean drinking water, clothes, bedding, living environments, all of which can reduce the spread of the gue. The holy radiance can also eradicate the source of the gue. As a result, wherever there is the Church of Light, gue can be controlled; otherwise, the gue will rampantly spread. In such situations, the Goddess of Redemption, Harvest Goddess, God of Disease, God of Healing, and many more deities prove inefficient. To eliminate gues, the most crucial measures are istion and purification, controlling the source, and preventing the spread.
Over time, people began to convert to the Church of Light while those who refused either secluded themselves in isted regions, forming their societies, or perished. gues, wars, famines often reinforce each other. gues lead to famines, which in turn instigate wars. These wars then trigger gues and famines. Once it starts, it will spiral into a world of chaos. Anthony invested a considerable effort to keep the famine under control and prevent it from spiraling out of control, at least not to an extent that would incite more famines and gues. However, his efforts seem futile. The followers of the Harvest Goddess were infected, carrying the gue to another ne. Another troublesome aspect of gues is their unpredictability. No one knows what the next gue could be. Unlike wars and famines, which can be anticipated with preparations made for grains and equipment ordingly. Take the current situation as an example. A patient vomits a lump of bloody substance then copses to their death, leaving Dakwen at a loss, unable to recall what gue this could be. Could it be a brand-new gue? If so, it spells trouble. Developing a cure might cost many more lives before ites to fruition. This is where the God of Knowledge, Negris, needs to step in. Negris came over full of confidence, but soon he wore a troubled expression on his face. ¡°What kind of gue is this? I¡¯ve never seen it before.¡± A gue that even the God of Knowledge hasn¡¯t encountered is undoubtedly a new form of the disease. ¡°If I cannot identify it, it surely is a new gue. Does anyone know anything about it? If not, I will start investigating.¡± Negris nced around. He looked at Luna, Lisa, and Lamo, everyone except Ange since it wasn¡¯t rted to agriculture and Ange most likely wouldn¡¯t know. ¡°Insects.¡± Ange chimed in after a brief nce and left it at that. ¡°Insects? What insects? Are you familiar with this gue? Get out of here. This is a gue, not a fertilizer for your crops.¡± Negris responded in irritation. What is this creature thinking, connecting every situation to insects? Does itck fertilizer again? Ange ignored him, stepped on the ground, and soon, the bright red fluid began to shift, forming small specks. These specs, even smaller than mosquitoes, came alive and wriggled, crawled out of the fluid, and took flight. They barely reached a foot in height before they dropped like raindrops to the ground, their lifeforce devoured by Ange¡¯s Instant Death Halo. Soon, a pile of tiny insect corpses covered the ground¡ªeach one as minute as dust. But their sheer number piled up into a frightening mound. Negris gasped, reminded of the first encounter with the bug exterminator and the sand thieves used for incubating eggs. When Ange cut open those sand thieves, their bodies burst with eggs the size of fingertips. Could these red blobs also be eggs? Are they too tiny to discern, making them look like sticky fluid? As the insects continued to hatch, the pile of fluid grew smaller. When only a tiny bit remained, Ange deactivated his Instant Death Halo.
Without the Instant Death Halo speeding up their hatching, the hatched insects took flight, looking for something alive instead of dying instantly. But Ange activated the Instant Death Halo, forcing living things to retreat hundreds of meters away. All that remained in the vicinity were non-living things. Finally, Ange fetched a live fish from the waterway and tossed it over. The insects flew towards the fish, their mouthparts jabbing into it. Ange walked over and lightly touched his finger to the fish. After a while, the fish spat out a lump of bright red sticky fluid.
Negris paled: ¡°Can every insecty eggs? Doesn¡¯t that make every individual a source of transmission?¡± The earlier creatures designated for incubating eggs had eggs imnted by bug exterminators. But now, any insect capable ofying eggs could spread them. If they sting any living creature, they can use it to incubate eggs. The spread rates would be uparable to the previous insect gues. Moreover, these insect eggs are so small they¡¯re barely visible to the naked eye. It¡¯s easy to mistake them for sticky fluid. If they are not incinerated on the spot and allowed to hatch, they will be a new source of transmission. Negris realized the gravity of the situation. Based on this situation, no one could tell how many of the transported people have been stung by the insects. Bearing in mind these insects are even smaller than mosquitoes, even if they bite, it wouldn¡¯t cause much concern. Then, many of those people probably host insect eggs in their bodies. They have no idea of how many followers of the Harvest Goddess are infected. How about the Master ne? In famine-stricken regions, how many people are infected? If they can¡¯t be cured before they vomit the fluid, their lives will end the moment they spit out the fluid. In reality, once they show symptoms like pallor, their bodies have already suffered extensive internal damages, irreversible even if cured.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°What do we do now? When they¡¯re inside a person¡¯s body, your Instant Death Halo won¡¯t kill them. It will only speed up their hatching. Do we have any specific cures? This isn¡¯t an insect gue anymore; it¡¯s an insect-borne gue. If we can¡¯t find a cure, the Master ne might lose two-thirds of its poption again.¡± Negris worriedlymented. Ange tilted his head, thought for a moment, and took out a vial. ¡°Try this.¡± PS: More in the morning Chapter 478: 281: Anthony Surrounded by Victims_1 Chapter 478: Chapter 281: Anthony Surrounded by Victims_1 ¡°Isn¡¯t this an insecticide? Can it be used as a medicine?¡± Negris asked hesitantly as he took it. Ange tilted his head, somewhat baffled, he didn¡¯t know about this, he only knew: ¡°Bugs, kill bugs.¡± First, he pointed to the slime on the ground, then to the insecticide, this simple logic, he of course understood. Negris sighed, ¡°Yes, yes, bugs, kill bugs, what if you kill a person too? Where¡¯s Sava? Get someone to find Sava. I¡¯d better ask Sava about this.¡± Just then, Ange suddenly started running, rushing to a human with a pale face on his side, with the holy light in his hand, he stuffed it into his mouth. All of these humans had shown symptoms of the worm gue. To prevent the gue from spreading, they were concentrated here, waiting in pain. To prevent them from escaping, Dakwen had arranged for them to be surrounded, with bows and crossbows subtly aimed at them, sternly warning them not to run around, as the Lord was studying a method to cure them. Those who dared to escape would be shot on the spot. It wasn¡¯t Dakwen¡¯s fault for being heartless. Any leader, when faced with a gue, must make some cruel and helpless choices. They couldn¡¯t let them scatter and infect everyone else, could they? These patients were anxious, on one hand, fearing they would be deserted by everyone, and on the other, enduring the difort caused by their bodies¡¯ abnormalities. They were being tormented both physically and mentally. Ange suddenly darted over, offering the holy light into apanion¡¯s mouth, which immediately shocked them. They screamed, stood up and tried to run away.
Lisa floated up andmanded with authority, ¡°Kneel, you must not be disrespectful in the presence of the Master God.¡± Negris looked at Lisa in surprise, because he could feel some fluctuations of divine power in her voice. All the Harvest believers who heard her voice felt weak in the knees. An invisible majesty spread out, forcing them to kneel involuntarily. ¡°Is this the awe of a god? Lisa¡¯s progress is so fast. The stolen divine power has enabled her to manifest divine awe, hasn¡¯t it?¡± Negris was surprised in his mind. The awe of the Harvest Goddess had the greatest deterrent effect on Harvest believers. The infected patients were also Harvest believers. They all kneeled together and could no longer run. But it wasn¡¯t long before they understood. The Goddess Lisa was saving them. Ange¡¯s holy light wasn¡¯t intended to kill them. On the contrary, if they ran around, they would be executed on the spot. They could see clumps of holy light being stuffed into the patient¡¯s mouth by Ange. The clear light slid down the throat, going to the chest, to the abdomen, and then disappeared. When the light reached the abdomen, it illuminated a shadow that did not belong to human organs. It squirmed in the abdomen, and around it, many of the shadows that belonged to human organs were seriously damaged. If not treated, even if his worm gue is cured, he won¡¯t live for long. Ange immediately switched to the Face Purification Technique, stuffing clumps of holy light inside. They could see that the damaged areas were healing quickly. But the Face Purification Technique doesn¡¯t have a purifying effect on the worm gue, it even has an amplifying effect. As the damaged areas healed, the thing that didn¡¯t belong to the human body grew evenrger. Ange frowned, staring at the shadow illuminated by the holy light and muttered, ¡°Troublesome, can it be, purified?¡± This was originally a question, but as soon as his words fell, Lisa, Oke, Anthony in the Master ne, and Silver Coin in the Land of Fallen, all felt some changes simultaneously. Silver Coin and Anthony didn¡¯t know where this change came from and could only be puzzled, but Lisa and Oke were witnessing Ange¡¯s actions firsthand. The first clump of changed holy light was seen being stuffed into the patient¡¯s mouth. It went down the throat to the abdomen, and when it touched the thing that didn¡¯t belong to the human body, the patient opened his mouth wide, let out a sigh of relief, and a puff of scorched smoke came out of his mouth. The thing that didn¡¯t belong to the human body immediately shrunk slightly. Lisa eximed, ¡°Heresy! Lord has defined heresy! The Lord has defined the worm gue as heresy!¡± The Church of Light¡¯s holy light has an extra effect on Undead and Demon, because the Gods of Light have defined Undead and demon as heresy. But Ange¡¯s holy light has no special effect on other creatures, because Ange has never defined heresy.
Now Ange suddenly finds these worm gues to be very troublesome and wants to purify them. What does this mean? If a god finds it troublesome, then is it heresy? Under Ange¡¯s definition, his power instantly gained additional damage to the worm gue. This sounds like an incredible thing, but for a divine being, this is the most basic ability. You only need to think about it in your mind. Of course, this is not without its drawbacks. Firstly, Ange¡¯s holy light will be impure. Secondly, the worm gue can also inflict damage on him. This damage is rtive.
The Face Purification Technique can heal internal damage and also inflict damage on the worm gue. Only one type of holy light is needed to heal and purify together. After stuffing in five or six clumps of holy light, the patient coughed out puffs of ck smoke and hisplexion gradually became ruddy. Off in the distance, Sava, who was hurrying over, was discussing with Negris.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om ¡°In theory, the insecticide is harmful to insects and not very harmful to the human body. If it¡¯s diluted to a certain extent, it should be able to kill the worm gue inside the body.¡± Sava said. ¡°Don¡¯t talk about what should or shouldn¡¯t. Quickly go find a patient to try it on, try a small dose. Ange is watching, they should not die.¡± Negris said: ¡°The sooner the better. If we wait for the worm gue to damage the body before treating it, we¡¯ll need to coborate with the healing mage.¡± If only diluted insecticide is needed, the worm gue would be easy to treat, just distribute the medicine. But if they need to coordinate with a healing mage, things will beplicated. The number of people saved definitely won¡¯t be many. ¡°Oh, oh, oh, how many patients are there now? At what stage is the disease developing? I need someone to work with me, someone who can infiltrate the body with their thoughts for me to record the various stages of disease progression, separating light, severe, critical, and urgent, different stages can be treated with different methods.¡± As expected of a pharmacist, once he entered his zone, he immediately appeared much more professional than Negris. But when they got to the patients, they quickly became dumbstruck. ¡°You¡­ you¡¯ve cured all the patients?¡± Ange nodded. There were only forty or fifty patients who had showed symptoms. After he defined the holy light, it only took six Face Purification Techniques to cure a patient, fifty patients only needed three hundred rounds of Face Purification Technique, so he could treat them all in just a few rounds. Negris and Sava looked at each other, where could they conduct their experiment if all the patients were gone? Sava was dumbfounded: ¡°Does that mean we don¡¯t need to do the experiment?¡±
¡°No, we still need a specific drug. What if the Master ne also has an outbreak of worm gue?¡± Negris said. If there was no specific drug and the Master ne really had an outbreak of worm gue, who would treat the millions of patients, would all of them have to be treated by Ange? ¡°What now? Ask Anthony if there¡¯s a worm gue happening over there. If there is, let him send some patients over.¡± Negris said helplessly. Ange made a soul contact with Anthony, and after a while, he said, ¡°He¡¯s surrounded by refugees, asking me to save him.¡± Chapter 479: 282 Listening to the Parable of God_1 Chapter 479: Chapter 282 Listening to the Parable of God_1 Pope Anthony¡¯s chariot was set up in the disaster-stricken area, in front of the temporary shelter for the survivors. At least 300,000 victims were located at the junction between the River Valley in and the forest. More survivors heard this and uprooted their families to make their way here. Some say that Anthony has gone mad. A substitute Pope,ing to such a messy and dirty ce, with poor standard of living, a lot of messy work to do, where nothing is elegant, with foul smells everywhere, not to mention theck of good sleep at night. Suchmentse from people in Anthony¡¯s Guard Corps. Although most of the Guard Corps are carefully selected, loyal men chosen by Anthony, many of them are in fact noblendlords, brought up in luxury. They have no problem giving orders, but when ites to getting their hands dirty,ints are sure to be heard. But Anthony was busy all day long, unable to hear suchints. Over the past thousand years, every now and then, an Archbishop who cared for the people would emerge in the Eastern Diocese, some named Anxini, or Anbeini etc. They had simr mannerisms.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om With these examples, while people stillined, they did not dare to shirk from their work. In famine relief, the most important thing is to maintain food supply, stabilize public sentiment, and ensure fair distribution. As long as these three aspects were done well, evenrge numbers of victims won¡¯t cause chaos. Food supply can fluctuate. After all, you can survive either on two meals a day or just one. But distribution must be fair; you can¡¯t have one person eating two bowls and the one behind eating one. That would certainly cause trouble. At the same time, everyone must be reassured that people are cared for and efforts are being made to provide relief. A bit more patience, and we can get through this crisis. The best way to reassure the victims is to see the Archbishop, or the Substitute Pope in his crown and regalia, continue to deliver more food on-site.
So whenever Anthony had time, he would rush to the relocation site. It is not just for show; after all, he is also an Archbishop. He has the support of the Master God who regards divine power as expendable. As such, he could use Purification and Face Purification Technique as much as he wished. So he wandered around, treating the wounded victims personally. The incessant Holy Light, the wounds healing at a visible speed under the Face Purification Technique, the dirty, clotted drinking water turning clear and transparent under Purification, the scratches, burns, and blemishes on the faces restoring to their original state under the Face Purification Blemish Removing Technique, even rejuvenating them by several years ¨C all spoke of miracles. What divine grace! Every day, prayers were constantly offered to Anthony, as though at a grand prayer meeting. Of course, these Soul mes were all diverted to Ange. If the Gods of Light were still alive, they would surely wonder: Business seems good, why am I not profiting? As long as Ange ensured a stable food supply, Anthony could ensure the smooth running of the entire relief operation. Once winter is over and next year¡¯s nting season arrives, these hundreds of thousands of people would be a preciousbor force, no longer a burden. At that time, he could make use of the various means of production that he bought cheaply in the disaster years, such as plows and fields, to reap profits. After paying off various debts with the grain produced, dividends could be distributed. If there were any surplus, it would be given to the survivors. With the preparation of various living supplies, and having money in their hands from the leftovers, the survivors would be able to make purchases, so a wide variety of businesses would flourish. The hundreds of thousands of people would constitute arge consumer market. Whoever invested the most this year would get an evenrger share next year. Under this operation, merchants would gain wealth, nobles would get grain, victims would receive relief, and the local economy would revive. A win-win situation for everyone while gaining arge amount of production materials at a low cost. Negris often criticized Anthony for benefiting from both sides, while for Anthony, it was nothing more than a usual urrence. However, these ns all depended on Ange¡¯s stable food supply, and the absence of other unforeseen circumstances. But when someone brought a sickly looking patient to him, and the patient vomited a substantial amount of bright red phlegm in front of him, and he noticed the unnatural pallor on the faces of many of the victims who brought the patient to him, Anthony knew that trouble was at hand. ¡°Save me, save us, Lord Bishop, Your Holiness the Pope, please save us.¡± The survivors fell to their knees, crawling over to clutch Anthony¡¯s leg. ¡®ng¡¯, the loyal guards around him had already drawn their longswords, keeping the survivors at bay. At the same time, they shouted harshly, ¡°It¡¯s the gue, protect His Holiness! Everyone step back or die on the spot!¡± ¡°Priest, Purify!¡± ¡°Mage, Dispel, Shield, Maintain air pressure!¡± ¡°Knights, hold your breath, Holy Light Guardian, drive them away.¡±
The usually calm guards instantly transformed into bristling hedgehogs, quickly making defensive arrangements as if facing an assassination attempt. It was indeed like an assassination, even worse because they were dealing with a gue. Anthony didn¡¯t even try to stop the harsh actions of the guards, instead, he just weakly said, ¡°Do not hurt anyone.¡± When he saw the patients excrete a ball of red mucus, Anthony knew he couldn¡¯t help them. In his thousand years, he had dealt with countless epidemics, but he had never seen this one before.
Something he hadn¡¯t seen before signified it was new. New, signified that there was no existing treatment. No treatment, signified that everyone had a chance of getting infected. He was under the protection of the Undead God, capable of resurrection, worst-case scenario, he bes the ck Warrior again, but the people under hismand can¡¯t do that. In this situation, he couldn¡¯t expect his men to be gentle with the survivors. It was already quite good that they didn¡¯t hurt anyone. However, the reaction of the guards only panicked the survivors even more. Hearing the word ¡°gue¡±, they clung to Anthony like drowning people grabbing a life buoy. Soon, more survivors from nearby rushed over, unknowing victims from afar also started to gather. Along with Anthony¡¯s order of ¡®do not hurt anyone¡¯, they were soon ringed in, unable to escape. This drove the guards mad. Each second they stayed put them at risk of infection by this unseen gue. But as Anthony had instructed them not to hurt anyone, they could not fight their way out. All they could do was let the mages erect a protective shield, while the priests continuously performed purification spells; at the same time maintaining the air pressure inside the shield, making sure no outside air seeped in. But this was not sustainable. The head guard anxiously turned to Anthony, hoping he would authorize a way out. But Anthony seemed lost in thought, as if listening to something. The guard captain tensed, he swallowed his words and made a silence gesture to everyone else, saying in a low voice, ¡°Quiet, His Holiness is receiving a divine message.¡± It was as if a mute spell had been cast. The word ¡®divine message¡¯ was whispered repeatedly. It spread afar causing even the surging crowd to fall silent. Receiving a divine message? This was a divine miracle not witnessed in anyone¡¯s lifetime. Unfortunately, although it was a divine message, it was unclear from which god. After what felt like an eternity, Anthony finally opened his eyes, met with the gaze of countless desperate eyes.
Anthony smiled slightly, appearing calm andposed before saying, ¡°The Gods have heard our suffering, help will arrive soon.¡± Anthony¡¯s words immediately calmed the agitated crowd. Not long afterward, from the distant sky, a figure flew toward them, its back adorned with tworge ck light wings. Chapter 480: 283 Dark Angel of Mr. An_1 Chapter 480: Chapter 283 Dark Angel of Mr. An_1 ¡°Shamara, it¡¯s the Fallen Angel Shamara, the Fallen Angel is here!¡± The crowd let out a wave of terrified screams. Fallen Angel Shamara had once topped the ne Hot List for quite some time, and her corrupted Fallen Legion made people¡¯s hearts flutter with fear. What would it feel like if someone, who you have worshipped the light for your whole life, suddenly appears and has the ability to corrupt your faith? As soon as you are corrupted by her, you will no longer be pure and no longer recognized by the light. What would that feel like? It was like a Minotaur suddenly rushing at you, brandishing a broom smeared with dung. The mere thought of it was enough to make your scalp tingle. For a period of time, Shamara had be the most terrifying force to all Disciples of Light. Everyone took diligent note of her characteristics and retreated at first sight. Now, this terrifying entity flew swiftly towards them, her massive ck light wings pping, trailing a ck wake in her path. Hovering above where Anthony was, Shamara slowly fluttered her wings. Her eyes radiated a ck light and a smile hung at the corner of her mouth. She spoke loudly, ¡°Foolish people, prayers cannot save you. Awaken and follow me, breaking free from the shackles of the light.¡± This inexplicable, promation-like speech left the disciples trembling with fear, dreading that they would be corrupted if they listened any further. Only Anthony wanted to crack up inside. Where the hell did Shamara find that script? Itcked enough tenor to be an opera and if she spoke a few more lines, she would surely be exposed. Luckily, she didn¡¯t have to recite more. A loud voice rang through the sky, ¡°Silence, fallen soul! The light is not something you can desecrate. ck Angel of the Ascetic Monk An, I am here to judge you.¡±
Along with this voice came another Fallen Angel wearing holy Spirit Armor. His face was hidden behind a mask, and he had two pairs of ck wings. He flew in swiftly from a distance. ck Angel? Ascetic monk? An? While everyone was still puzzled, the ck Angel and Shamara were already engaged in a fierce battle. Every move they made unleashed powerful energy fluctuations. Even at several kilometers away, one could still sense the astonishing power of their blows. The ground shook from mere residual power, overturning many people. After a few rounds ofbat, no one doubted their power anymore. Shamara, with her two wings, didn¡¯t seem to be a match for the four-winged ck Angel. After a fierce battle, she retreated in disgrace, with the ck Angel hot on her heels. They disappeared toward the end of the valley. Seeing this, Anthony raised his arm and shouted, ¡°Great, it¡¯s the ck Angel under Ascetic Monk An who¡¯se to our aid. They must have done it on God¡¯smand. Thank the gods, light prevails!¡± He was shouting this, but Anthony couldn¡¯t help but sneer inside, ¡°Damn it! Who came up with this alias? Gettingzy by losing a single word?¡± The disciples were stunned, then overjoyed; Anthony¡¯s words gave them a new perspective, making them believe that the ck Angel was on their side. ¡°Thanks be to God, light prevails. Thanks be to God, light prevails.¡± Everyone couldn¡¯t help but cheer. As everyone cheered, a man wearing a cloak floated in the air, stepping over the crowd¡¯s heads and walking up to Anthony. Anthony hurriedly ordered the shield to be removed, stepped forward excitedly and bowed, ¡°I am Anthony, the Shepherd under the Light, d to meet you, Sir An.¡± Oh god, inside the circle of hundreds of thousands of Disciples of Light, he was saluting the God of Undead. It was such a thrill to think about it. If their identities were exposed, would these disciples tear them apart? Ange nodded, not returning the courtesy, and immediately said, ¡°Gather the sick.¡± Though Ange appeared aloof and indifferent, no one around felt offended or found it unreasonable. Ascetic monks are supposed to be indifferent; if they were polite, it would be truly unusual. Even if they happened upon the Pope while going to the toilet, they wouldn¡¯t bother to greet him. Though ascetic monks are revered, they exist outside the jurisdiction of the whole curia, not controlled by anyone. Because some ascetic monks might spend their entire lives in asceticism without ever stepping into the world of mankind. Some would even take in students without reporting to the curia, therefore their identities remained unrecorded. With such a haphazard practice, aren¡¯t they afraid of people impersonating ascetic monks? No, because their Holy Light was their God-given certification, and their power represented God.
Theoretically, ascetic monks strengthen their physical bodies through asceticism to bear the power of God, acting as God¡¯s emissaries. If anyone wanted to impersonate, they would be easily found out since real ascetic monks hardly have any worldly desires. Anyone with a slight desire for power is not a true ascetic monk. Those who aim for power and wealth wouldn¡¯t impersonate ascetic monks, even less so those who seek sensual pleasure. Only those with ulterior motives would try to impersonate, but God would never certify them. A so-called ascetic monk who can¡¯t use the Holy Light is definitely a fake.
Yet Ange, this imposter, suffers even more than the genuine ascetic monks. Hecks not only the seven emotions and six sinful desires, but even the ability to breathe. Furthermore, his Holy Light is so pure that it outshines the genuine stuff. While the patients were being brought together, Ange hurled a ball of Holy Light onto the red-colored mucus, purifying itpletely. He then continues to bombard the patient who spewed the mucus with balls of Holy Light. At this time, the patient had already stopped breathing, but it hadn¡¯t been long. He wasn¡¯tpletely dead; Ange could still sense his consciousness hadn¡¯t dissipated. With nothing else to do, Ange threw down the Face Purification Technique to restore his damaged organs. He then gathered the Thunder Element, ced it on the man¡¯s chest, and released it. The motionless body shook violently as Ange shocked it, drawing a long breath, with his heart restarting and he came alive. Ange was somewhat surprised; when he had used this technique on Negris, a Bronze Dragon, he had struggled immensely due to their high magic resistance, to the point he had to insert his hands into their throats and discharge electricity from within. Who would¡¯ve thought that humans, with their lower magic resistance, would be so effective. What was this, the legendary Resurrection Technique! A miracle! The believers around them all gasped, dropping to their knees. Even Anthony¡¯s legs turned jelly, almost copsing onto his knees. Arge number of symptomatic patients were subsequently brought over. Ange nced over them, dividing their conditions into four stages: mild, severe, critical, and urgent. The mildly infected were asymptomatic. These people had not been brought forward, but he couldn¡¯t help but assume arge number of the surrounding crowd were also infected, but hadn¡¯t yet shown the symptoms. Severe cases were those already showing symptoms. Those who were brought to him were, at a minimum, suffering from severe infection. Critical cases were those who had already suffered organ damage. Even with the eradication of the parasites, their damaged organs were not sufficient to sustain them. Urgent cases were those on the verge of coughing up mucus.
Ange first quickly healed a dozen of the urgent cases, then took out an insecticide and handed it to Anthony: ¡°Give it to them in different proportions.¡± Anthony nodded and passed it to the head of the guard, ¡°Give it to them in different proportions.¡± The head guard also nodded, turning to hand it to his subordinates, ¡°Different proportions, feed them.¡± After receiving a murderous look from Anthony, the guard didn¡¯t dare to pass it on to others. Instead, he gathered a few underlings to prepare the mixture. Originally, he intended to hand it to the cook, as diluting or adding seasoning would be the cook¡¯s responsibility. Sava had already written the proportions on a piece of paper, just needed to add water. Soon, they prepared the medication waters in different proportions. They divided the severe cases into over a dozen groups, each group consisting of seven or eight people. Every group received the same proportion of medication water, then drank it. The group given a one percent concentration had no reaction. The group given a fifty percent concentration immediately began frothing at the mouth, three dying on the spot and the remaining four barely hanging on to life. Regardless, Ange had been prepared for this and sequentially smothered them with Holy Light, like coins didn¡¯t matter. Even those who had stopped breathing were revived, and their internal parasites were purified. With Ange¡¯s miraculous safety, the patients did not resist the experiment at all. In fact, they eagerly awaited a reaction so they could receive Ange¡¯s treatment and bathe in the Holy Light. After someparisons, Ange learned that a 3 percent concentration of the insecticide was the most effective in treating severe cases without causing any harm to the human body. The same proportion was equally effective for the critical cases. However, they needed a healer nearby. Otherwise, even if the parasites were eradicated, the patients would still die. Now, it was time to showcase the miracle. For the following five days, Ange stayed here, tirelessly treating patients in critical conditions whose internal organs were damaged. Despite the low intensity of the purification technique, Angie¡¯s unbroken, five-day-long casting, was a miracle in the eyes of the believers. Long live Ascetic Monk Ange!n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om
Just as Ange tirelessly treated the patients, he came before a patient lying on the ground. As soon as he squatted down, the patient before him suddenly sprung up, his fist rushing towards Ange¡¯s face. Ange responded quickly, grabbing the patient¡¯s fist. The patient revealed a sinister smile, saying, ¡°Interfering busybody, the Insect God extends its greetings. Offer up your flesh and blood.¡± As he spoke, the patient¡¯s hand melted, enveloping Ange¡¯s palms and surging upwards. Chapter 481: 284 All bones? Wheres the meat?_1 Chapter 481: Chapter 284 All bones? Where¡¯s the meat?_1 Pest Control Master Porterus was excited, he had seeded. As soon as he touched the flesh of his enemies, his insective poison could instantly infect their bodies. The infection happened at such a fast rate that even if one were to chop off their hand on the spot, it would be of no use. As soon as the infection touched anyone, it would use their flesh and blood to proliferate even more toxins until they were poisoned to death. Unexpectedly, he had poisoned an ascetic monk, an unorthodox monk from the Church of Light whom not even the Pope couldmand. He had managed to poison him, and all it had cost him was a puppet bug-infested body. Usually, those infected by puppet bugs had slower and stiffer movements. But surprisingly, the ascetic monk himself treated the patients. Porterus had never seen such amoner-friendly clergyman in his life. The big shots of the Church always traveled in luxurious carriages, their residences were located in clean, spacious areas of the wealthy. It was rare to see them stepping into such dirty and disordered ces, let alone personally treating the poor and the victims of disasters. This was a great opportunity. By killing such a beloved monk in public, gnawing him to the bone, he would deal a huge blow to the Church of Light. If they couldn¡¯t protect their own monks, how could they protect the Disciples of Light? All these thoughts shed through Porterus¡¯s mind. But then, he noticed something was wrong. Why was the monk¡¯s hand so hard? Where was the flesh and blood? Porterus, realizing he couldn¡¯t bite into the monk, looked up in shock at Ange. Ange turned his hand and grabbed him, pushing him straight down into the Temple of Rest. Negris anxiously protested, ¡°Cover it up! Use some Holy Light to cover it! Your Boundary-crossing Hand trait is too conspicuous, anyone would recognize it.¡±
¡°Oh.¡± Ange responded, as a strong Holy Light burst out from where his arm had disappeared, dazzling everyone and making it hard to keep their eyes open. Immediately after, he quickly pulled the Boundary-crossing Hand back. All anyone saw was Ange¡¯s arm suddenly disappearing and then bursting out with a brilliant light as if his hand had been inserted into the Holy Light. The one who had attacked him had disappeared. The whole scene happened in a sh, and many people couldn¡¯t react in time, let alone see clearly. Even if they had been able to see clearly, it didn¡¯t mean they could recognize the Boundary-crossing Hand. Negris had simply been overly cautious; even recognizing it as the Boundary-crossing Hand would not be strange, couldn¡¯t ascetic monks use the Boundary-crossing Hand too? It was not unusual at all for the ascetic monks to aplish something that space mages could do. No one was surprised. Yet, they found the sight of Ange inserting his hand into the Holy Light and the enemy disappearing to be quite dazzling. Everyone cheered without hesitation, ¡°Blessed by the Holy Light, long live Lord Ange!¡± Ange turned and went back into the tent with the patient who was temporarily stable. Anthony quickly followed him inside and ordered his guards to stand outside and keep their distance. Then he activated the silence and interference boundaries. The silence boundary was meant to prevent sound from spreading, and the interference boundary was to prevent mental probing. After these preparations werepleted, Anthony signaled Ange to put him inside the Temple of Rest. Upon entering the Temple of Rest, they came to a corner of the new farm, where a small horse, covered with thin scales and showing a mouthful of sharp teeth, was chewing on something. Before ity a huge pile of a variety of things. For instance, shells, bones of chickens, ducks, fish, sheep, cows, and horses, hooves, stems, roots, tubers of crops, basically parts that normal beings wouldn¡¯t eat. Trashing these would pollute the environment, so these things were given to the Insect God to process. Who would have thought that the grand Insect God Hermel would be a waste manager today? However, the Insect God didn¡¯t mind. It was only the tender and fatty parts that it felt were not chewy enough and were slurped down instantaneously. The only thing it never foundcking in chewiness was fat, which was high in calories and could fill it up after consumption. Porterus who had been just shoved in, sat paralyzed on the ground, shivering all over, clueless. Hermel didn¡¯t need to do much, just a nce at him every now and then was enough to render him weak and powerless. This body was not Porterus¡¯s original. He had employed a special method to synchronize his consciousness within it. Even if Ange were to st this body, he wouldn¡¯t get hurt. He couldn¡¯t be harmed via his spirit, inflicting damage by an attack on his consciousness. This method of synchronizing consciousness allowed Porterus to be fearless before the Gods of Light. He was confident that even if he killed the ascetic monk, the Gods of Light would not be able to touch him. What Porterus didn¡¯t anticipate was ¨C Is the Insect God here?
No, or rather, there¡¯s an Insect God here. He discovered that this Insect God didn¡¯t seem to be the one he knew. Regardless of whether he knew him or not, an Insect God was an Insect God. For his unique synchronization method, the Insect God held superior control. In other words, the Insect God controlled his body, and his original form through this special synchronization method. Porterus was on the verge of tears. Even if all of the Gods of Light appeared before him, he wouldn¡¯t feel as hopeless as he did now. The Insect God had gotten him. A dejected Porterus soon saw a group of people surrounding him, a golden book floating in front of him.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om
The Gold Book? Porterus stretched his hand to touch it. For many creatures, reaching out for things that are shiny is an instinct. The cover of the Yellow Book opened and pped away his hand, cracking open to be bigger than a person, smashing onto the ground. From the opened pages, a Bronze Giant Dragon¡¯s giant head leaned in, as if it was about to emerge from the book, while in the corner of the pages, was a man in red star armor, peering out. After examining Porterus for a few moments, Negris¡¯s voice echoed: ¡°You say that the Insect God sends his greetings to us, which Insect God? This one?¡± Porterus shook his head vigorously. ¡°So you mean, there¡¯s a second Insect God, huh? Haha, which little bug is involved? Where is your headquarters? Who else is there? Did you invent this gue? The method of projecting your consciousness is quite peculiar, how did you do it? Tell us quickly, or I¡¯ll feed you to the little horse,¡± Negris threatened. Lightning shouted angrily, ¡°Who are you calling little horse?! It¡¯s not a little horse, it¡¯s a little bug!¡± ¡°Alright, alright, little bug it is, I¡¯ll feed you to the little bug,¡± Negris quickly corrected, not wanting to be berated by Lightning for a month because of such a trivial thing. Porterus obediently said, ¡°The gue had nothing to do with me, my consciousness projection uses puppet worm¡¯s information pheromones. There are male and female puppet worms, if you imnt them into the bodies of the opposite gender, you can sync their consciousness. Our headquarters is in ¡­¡± Right at this moment, Porterus suddenly started to melt. His skin and flesh were melting off like wax. This sudden and unexpected change terrified Porterus, and he started to scream desperately: ¡°Oh Insect God Mattis, spare me! I was forced to do this, I didn¡¯t want this, I¡­.I¡­.¡± Hermel tilted his head and bared his teeth. Boom! Porterus¡¯s body exploded. This was the effect of two Insect God powers colliding within him. Obviously, his body couldn¡¯t handle the amount of force at their level.
¡°Uh, did he get found out? Mattis? So, there really are two Insect Gods. Did he say where their headquarters was? Elf? Elf what, elf forest? If the bugs¡¯ headquarters is in a forest, then it really will be troublesome,¡± Negris muttered to himself. PS: I need to take my son to get vinated. Chapter 482: 285 Noble Person? _1 Chapter 482: Chapter 285 Noble Person? _1 Shamara, the new resident of the Fallen Legion, donned her Holy Armor, covered her face, and fluttered her signature quartet of ck light wings as she descended. Two knights d in ck armor beat their chests in salute to her and reported: ¡°Lord Dark Angel, Lord Anthony and Lord Ange are awaiting your arrival.¡± Shamara nodded without changing her expression, but sweat already started to form in her palm. It was her first time presenting herself as the Dark Angel before others. Pretending to be something she¡¯s not, to deceive others was challenging for someone as virtuous as her. Thankfully the Holy Armor hides everything, even her facial expression from others. ¡°Hold on, don¡¯t be nervous. Go.¡± The voice of Luna resounded in Shamara¡¯s ear.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Shamara stepped towards the camp, passing several sentinels, and receiving salutes a dozen times before finally arriving at the main tent, where Ange and Anthony had been waiting for her. After all the outsiders left, and it was only them, Shamara lifted her visor and sighed heavily: ¡°I¡¯m suffocating, Lord Anthony. Can I stop pretending to be the Dark Angel? I¡¯m really bad at this. I¡¯m scared of being discovered.¡± Shamara agreed to Anthony¡¯s n to rebuild the Fallen Legion, but now she felt it was too difficult. She had never lied in her life, but now she had to maintain a pseudo identity, and every word out of her mouth was a lie. She was extremely troubled, she would rather hunt dragons alone. ¡°Oh?¡± Anthony narrowed his eyes as he smiled: ¡°If it¡¯s truly too difficult, then don¡¯t do it. It¡¯s indeed difficult for someone as pure, honest, and upright like you to deceive others.¡± Anthony¡¯s words hit right in her heart. She is someone righteous who would rather suffer herself than lie.
Anthony frowned and said: ¡°But after all, Luna is not human. There are times when she may overlook certain things. For instance, when the weather is too hot, she certainly wouldn¡¯t think to seek shelter. Instead, she would think ¡®It¡¯s only 50 degrees, let¡¯s keep going,¡¯ and then everyone would be exhausted from the heat.¡± Luna¡¯s phantom form couldn¡¯t help but appear and retorted: ¡°I¡¯m not that stupid.¡± ¡°Just a metaphor, a metaphor. Let me change it. For example, when a woman is ufortable during those few days of the month, she definitely wouldn¡¯t be as considerate as Lord Nage, who arranges for things like sanitary pads.¡± said Anthony. Shamara¡¯s face turned red, but she felt empathetic. When she hid in Dark City, she was able to avoid running around bare-bottomed thanks to the sanitary pads arranged by Negris. She immediately blurted out: ¡°Lord Nage is truly a friend to women.¡± The image of Negris being projected on Ange was dumbfounded. With just a few words, he unexpectedly gained the title of ¡®Friend of Women¡¯? ¡°Most of these people were corrupted by you, they can¡¯t go back to their hometowns or the church. Some of them were even taken in by Goddess of Beauty City, but they ran back. They still yearn for the light in their hearts. Those people need to be taken care of.¡± said Anthony earnestly. Negris couldn¡¯t help but curse: ¡°Yearning for light my ass, aren¡¯t those people specially selected by you? That castrati singer Sandri is a loyal follower of Ange, you picked him too.¡± Negris was infuriated by the fact that this guy could twist ck into white, dead into living. What was obviously contamination was painted by him as yearning for light. Listening to this guy¡¯s words is a mistake. You could be sold without even realizing it. But his words hit home with Shamara. As a saint who longs for the light. She was stubborn, unwilling to lie or connive. Hence, she persisted in believing that the gods had disappeared due to the Holy Spirit Possession. Therefore, she was persuaded to step down by Guliani. But in the end, her desire for the holy light was so strong that she awakened the Power of Fall. From any perspective, she seems to be more saint-like than those who choose topromise under pressure. She corrupted those people to seize the holy light. However, due to a few words from Anthony, she felt obligated to those people. Failing to take up this responsibility would be akin to disappointing those believers longing for the light. Then she remembered Luna¡¯s non-human characteristics, just as Anthony said she wouldn¡¯t even know to use a tampon when bleeding. Compared to these considerations, her inner fear seemed to be nothing serious. Seeing the expression on her face, Anthony knew she had wavered and he seized the opportunity to say: ¡°Luna, after all, is a holy spirit and her limits are already set. But you are different. You are the God Thief, as long as you steal enough followers, the holy light will be yours.¡± ¡°The¡­ The holy light is mine.¡± Shamara mumbled, a glitter of determination in her eyes. She pulled her mask back down. From now on, Shamara was the true Dark Angel. Anthony wore a faint smile. Despite being decades old, Shamara was as naive as a baby in his eyes. He has lived for a millennium, he could see right through the cause of her fear. The fear vanished into thin air after a conversation about responsibilities and yearning.
Afterforting Shamara, Anthony hurried to the point. He briefed everyone about the situation concerning the Insect God, Mattis. ¡°That insect exterminator only said ¡®Essence¡­¡¯, I don¡¯t know what the ¡®essence¡­¡¯ refers to. I¡¯vepiled a list of all the ce names in this realm that start with ¡®Essence.¡¯ Take a look and see which one resonates with you the most.¡± Anthony suggested as he handed over a piece of paper. Chapter 483: 285 Noble Person?_2 Chapter 483: Chapter 285 Noble Person?_2 Shamara took a look and saw a long list of ces starting with ¡®Elf¡¯ written on the paper: Elf Forest, Elf Canyon, Elf Ind, Elf City, Spiritual Institute¡­ and so on and so forth. ¡°Mattis? Elf Forest, I have a bad feeling about this.¡± Shamara pointed first at the Elf Forest. Anthony thought the same, that¡¯s why he put the Elf Forest foremost, because for insects, the Elf Forest is the most valuable, and the other ces starting with ¡®Elf¡¯ are not suitable for mass breeding of insects. As such, the God of Life might have a headache. An Insect God is hiding in its forest, and it did not even notice? Shamara returned the paper, Anthony grasped it in his hand, and then took out another piece of paper filled with signs, saying, ¡°Luther, tell me what you think these are, they are the symbols of the Goblin Trade Guild¡¯s third edition lucky charms of this year, which ones do you think are the lucky ones?¡± ¡°Lucky symbol? Luther? What is that?¡± Negris was confused. Lucky charms of the Goblin Trade Guild? Since when can goblins bless others? Shamara took the slip of paper, had a look, then looked up at Anthony: ¡°How much is the prize money?¡± ¡°Two hundred thousand Magic Crystals.¡± Anthony had a feeling he was seen through, and promptly replied. Shamara nodded, ¡°I think it wasn¡¯t Luther who asked, I won¡¯t tell you. But thank you, you let me know a way to make money. If I had known earlier that I could make money in this way, I wouldn¡¯t have needed to join theundry team.¡± What Shamara referred to as theundry team was the method she used to infiltrate the Land of Slumber. She was harassed by the team leader because of this. If she had two hundred thousand Magic Crystals, why would she need to resort to such means to get there?
Anthony sighed without changing his expression, ¡°Ah, you saw through me. The disaster relief has exhausted all the assets I could muster, and I still owe Silver Coin Commerce arge sum of money. I was nning to use the Goblin Trade Guild¡¯s lottery to repay some of the interests, but nevermind that. I¡¯ll think of another way.¡± Anthony sighed in regret, his face heavy as he turned to leave. Shamara firmly grabbed his sleeve and said moved, ¡°You are a noble person. This, this, and this, all have given me a feeling of luck. Hurry and use them to pay the interest.¡± Negris roared in Ange¡¯s spirit, ¡°Kvada, you¡¯ve mistaken the person! He tricked you! How can you not feel it? All the other premonitions are so urate, why can¡¯t you see people urately?!¡± Negris was anxious, equating the cunning and deceitful Anthony with a noble person? Then it, the God of Knowledge, is a pure dragon! Ange tilted his head, sending a thought to it, ¡°He did not lie.¡± Negris paused for a moment, then immediately realized what was going on and gasped, ¡°Kvada, can you even deceive divine techniques that foresee events?¡± Anthony did not lie, he indeed nned to use this money to repay the interest, which was why Shamara did not feel that he was lying. But the money was originally his n to scam for free, wouldn¡¯t it be normal to repay the interest? Holding the lucky symbols circled by Shamara, they left the residence of the Fallen Legion. Once they climbed aboard the carriage, Negris couldn¡¯t wait to ask, ¡°What are the lucky symbols that you got? How do I y? And is the reward as much as two hundred thousand?¡± Anthony exined the rules of the game, ¡°You can buy three symbols per group, each group of symbols is worth one gold coin, you can buy an unlimited number of groups. It¡¯s held once per quarter, if all three symbols match, that person is considered exceptionally lucky and will receive a Magic Crystal Reward of two hundred thousand.¡± Negris listened, wide-eyed and tongue-tied, often remarking that such a game exists? He has to admit, it suits Shamara¡¯s predictive ability perfectly. During the thousand years that it was sealed, there were more and more tricksing from intelligent beings. Nevermind that, without Shamara¡¯s predictive ability, it couldn¡¯t y this game with such a slim probability of winning. It quickly changed the subject, ¡°Is it confirmed that the Insect God is hiding in the Elf Forest? What do we do now? Are we heading to the Elf Forest?¡± Anthony shook his head, ¡°Is there a need for us to go to the Elf Forest? Wouldn¡¯t notifying the God of Life and the Elves do the job? They would turn the forest upside down.¡± Negris nodded, ¡°That makes sense. Alright Ange, notify the elves and the Tree of Life.¡± Ange nodded, pulled out a green object like an emerald tree core, along with a wooden sign. Anthony¡¯s eyes nearly bulged out when he saw the green tree core, he gasped in shock, ¡°This¡­ this¡­ is¡­ is this the legendary item? How did you get it?¡± ¡°Do you know what this is?¡± Negris asked in confusion.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om
¡°The Heart of Life, isn¡¯t it? It¡¯s the Heart of Life, right? The Heart of Life that is said to grant eternal life?¡± Anthony questioned excitedly. Negris rolled his eyes: ¡°The World Tree itself cannot live forever, how could it possibly grant eternal life to others? But you¡¯re right, it is the Heart of Life. The question is, how do you know about it? The old World Tree never gave it to anyone.¡± ¡°Huh? It hasn¡¯t given it to anyone?¡± Anthony was also puzzled: ¡°But it¡¯s widely believed that one can gain eternal life by obtaining the Heart of Life, even the elves believe this.¡± ¡°That must be nonsense. This is the core of the World Tree. It hasn¡¯t mentioned any other functions, except that holding it allows formunication with it. As for eternal life, it¡¯s definitely nonsense. The World Tree itself cannot live forever, it doesn¡¯t even outlive us.¡± Negris retorted.
Anthony then had his realization. Yes, only the undead are immortal. Could the Heart of Life possibly help someone transform into an undead being for eternal life? Lord Angemunicated with the Heart of Life through telepathy and spoke a few words to the wooden board. Not long after, Gard¡¯s voice came from the wooden board: ¡°Thank you, Lord Ange. Actually, we already had some suspicions, but we have not been able to locate it. The God of Life is unwilling to heed us, Lord Ange, could you¡­beep¡­¡± Before Gard could finish speaking, Ange swiftly ended themunication on the wooden board. Anthony paused for a moment before he could react, then he couldn¡¯t help butugh: ¡°Haha, even Gard has had a bad day. My Lord, you might be the first person to treat the Elf Queen in such a manner.¡± ¡°Never mind about the Elf Queen, let¡¯s talk about you. Ange left hisnd toe and help you out, what do you think should be offered in return?¡± Negris asked. Now, the pestilence in the resettlement area was basically under control. After the emergency treatment of critically ill patients, those with mild and severe diseases were starting to get better just by taking medicine. Even if there were a few severe cases, Anthony had enough healers under hismand and there was no longer a need for Ange to intervene personally. Now that everything was settled, it was time to settle ounts. Anthony grimaced: ¡°My Lord, can I owe you for now? Or could people be used as payment? Perhaps a couple of plots ofnd for you to cultivate?¡± In fact, Anthony had been thinking about this issue for some time. An equivalent exchange had always been Ange¡¯s principle, so he had been contemting what to return. Now, the biggest problem was not knowing what Ange needed. He has always believed that people are more important than money, but Ange didn¡¯t seem too interested in acquiring more people, and he was currentlycking money. He would need to wait until the second half of the year when the religious tax would provide him with money. But, if the disaster didn¡¯t recede, who would he collect the taxes from in the second half of the year? Ange shook his head: ¡°I¡¯ve received my payment.¡±
As he spoke, he raised his finger and a chubby little ghost emerged from it. It had gained a lot of weight after a while, currently looking like a round ball. ¡°You¡¯ve received? The Little Ghost? Don¡¯t tell me you took the entire beliefwork of those hundreds of thousands of people?¡± Negris was astonished. Ange nodded. When Goddess of Beauty City received those tens of thousands of Fallen People, Ange had stolen their beliefwork once, all connected to Little Ghost. He had snatched it from hundreds of thousands more now, and it won¡¯t be long before the Church of Light would be totally emptied by him. Hundreds of thousands of followers were far better than any Demon Crystal or treasures. Anthony had always been encouraging Ange to vie for people. If he could stealthily steal followers this way, it would prove to be a much better method. ¡°My Lord, shall we arrange for several more prayer meetings, now that you¡¯ve stolen their entire beliefwork?¡± Anthony suggested excitingly. Ange dismissively shook his head. Stealing believers wasn¡¯t as interesting as cultivating things, he wouldn¡¯t do it. At this point, Ange suddenly tilted his head and took out the same wooden board from earlier. The board was emitting an urgent ¡®beep-beep¡¯ sound. Ange clicked it open, only to hear the frantic voice of the Elf Queen: ¡°Lord Ange, suddenly loads of insects have appeared, we can¡¯t kill them all off, their numbers are increasing, they¡¯re devouring the forest, if this continues, the God of Life and the forest will bepletely devoured by them.¡± Ange quickly pulled out the Heart of Life, a thought from the World Tree came from it: Save me¡­ Chapter 484: 286: The Art of Flame River_1 Chapter 484: Chapter 286: The Art of me River_1 ¡°Save me¡­or not¡­¡± The God of Life¡¯s will gasped, almost causing Negris to fall over. ¡°What do you mean? Do you still want to be saved or not? What¡¯s the situation over there?¡± Negris yelled at the Heart of Life through his thoughts. The God of Life¡¯s will was leisurely, showing no signs of panic, but its message was quite urgent: ¡°These bugs, they¡¯re parasitic in my body and roots, you reminded me of that, and I went to check, they¡¯ve surfaced, gnawing at my trunk, and probably in two days, they will havepletely nibbled me clean.¡± ¡°Kvada, if they¡¯re going to eat you entirely in two days, why are you dawdling while talking to us? Get to the point fast, will you die if you do?¡± Negris, growing frantic, quickly asked Ange, ¡°Ange, move to the Elf Forest as fast as you can.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Ange opened the door and exited the carriage, took a few steps and pulled out the Staff of Heaven, ready to activate it. With a pop, a portal opened in front of him. Ange stepped in and vanished before everyone¡¯s eyes. The ones left behind were the Pope¡¯s guards and entourage, their jaws dropped in surprise. ¡°Was¡­was that¡­the Door of Heaven?¡± Someone quietly whispered amongst the group. Anthony had no choice but to step forward and jokingly said: ¡°Ha ha, Lord Ange has been summoned by the gods and has gone to Heaven. Keep this a secret, be sure to swear an oath of secrecy in the Chamber of Secrets when you get back, got it?¡± ¡°Yes, Your Eminence!¡± The guards unanimously shouted.
Anthony¡¯s words, ¡®when you get back,¡¯ ¡®go by yourself,¡¯ were very cleverly used. By the time they returned to the base camp, the news of Lord Ange being summoned by the gods, passing through the Door of Heaven and returning to Heaven had already spread. When the news spread, the curious onlookers, upon facing guards who had just sworn an oath of secrecy, began to concoct various versions of the legend in their heads. ¡­ Ange stepped through the teleportation portal, returned to the Holy Kingdom, bathed in the Holy Light, and was transported to the Resting Abyss again. Hisnding point was within the World Tree Windshield Forest; a few stepster, he ended up in Demon Valley. Through the teleportation array of Demon Valley, he teleported directly into the Elf Forest. Even though he had to teleport twice, it was the fastest way to reach the Elf Forest. Stepping out of the teleportation array, the first thing Ange saw was a sky filled with insects. These insects were extremely small, even smaller than mosquitoes, but they were everywhere. All the elves gathered around the teleportation array. Elf wizards raised a protective barrier, cutting off those fluttering insects. The ground inside the barrier was covered with insects, and there were a few skeletons left¡ªnothing but bones. Judging from the slender skeleton, it was clear that they belonged to elves. The elves had already suffered casualties under the onught of the insects, and that was inside the protective barrier. However, the main target of the bugs was not the barrier. They covered the sky and earth, diving towards the flowers, trees, birds, and beasts, and anything alive couldn¡¯t escape their coverage. If this continued, the entire forest wouldn¡¯t stand a chance against them and would be gnawed to nothing. Outside the barrier, several ¡®bug people,¡¯ their bodies enwrapped in insects, ran back. They were encased in insects, as if beekeepers covered in bees, only with more insects, densely packed, and much more revolting. Simultaneously, they all vibrated, and the insects on their bodies died from the strong fighting spirit, then dropped down pattering to the ground. As the insects fell off, a stunning face was revealed¡ªit was Elf Queen Gdriel and her guards. Ayer of fighting spirit shone on her, ensuring the bugs couldn¡¯t reach her skin. After shaking off the insects, Gdriel and the others rushed into the barrier, anxiously saying: ¡°We can¡¯t get through, there are too many insects.¡± ¡°What¡¯s the situation outside now?¡± Aistolia asked inside the barrier, her bright and sharp eyes shing. ¡°The small World Trees are almost devoured. The God of Life has released a white mist to keep the insects away, but I can see from a distance that its leaves are falling. If this continues, it will be bald again soon,¡± Gdriel said with deep unease. Suddenly, Gdriel and Aistolia turned their heads in unison, looking towards the teleportation array method. Obviously, they noticed Ange¡¯s arrival.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Lord Ange!¡± Gdriel eximed in delight, ¡°You really came fast.¡±
Aistolia also respectfully greeted him, her face showing aplex expression. Negris eagerly asked: ¡°What¡¯s the situation? How is the Tree of Life?¡± ¡°We don¡¯t know, we couldn¡¯t get through. There are too many bugs. Besides these tiny pests, there are somerge mantis-like humanoid insects, with very sharp scythes on their hands, which sneak attack us from among the insects.¡± Gdriel spoke with urgency and frustration. Not just her, but all the elves seemed to have a simr frustrated expression, as if they had seen a cockroach in the toilet.
Indeed, having insects cover the sky andnd was absolutely maddening. Negris turned to Ange and said: ¡°Contact the Tree of Life and ask about its situation. It says it¡¯ll be nibbled clean in two days, ask if it has any solution to eradicate these bugs.¡± ¡°What? Two days?¡± Gdriel and Aistolia were visibly startled at first. When they saw the Heart of Life in Ange¡¯s hand, they eximed in shock: ¡°Howe the Heart of Life is in your hands?¡± Ange replied casually: ¡°The old tree gave it.¡± The expressions on Gdriel¡¯s and Aistolia¡¯s faces were extremelyplicated. The Tree of Life¡¯s most precious core, which no elf had ever received, was given to someone else by the Tree of Life¡­ Chapter 485: 286 The Art of Flame River_2 Chapter 485: Chapter 286 The Art of me River_2 ¡°We¡¯re here.¡± Facing the tree core, Ange sent out a thought. ¡°I¡¯ve located the big bug. It seems to be immune to my attacks. Help me kill it. It¡¯s eaten so many things. My forest is being devoured. Save the forest,¡± proimed the God of Life. Listening to the God of Life¡¯s rambling words, Gard and Aistolia looked at each other. They had never seen the God of Life behave so human-like before. The God of Life they knew was everywhere like the spring breeze, but never so close to them before. Kael¡¯danil sighed quietly to himself: As expected, in the heart of the God of Life, we are no different than birds, animals, and nts. So the idea that ¡®the World Tree belongs to the elves¡¯ is merely our own fantasy. Nobody had time to deal with the feelings of loss in the hearts of the elves. After pinpointing the position of the Insect God, Ange put Negris back, summoned his Soul Armor, and was about to rush outside. ¡°Wait, I¡¯ll go with you,¡± Gard said. ¡°I¡¯ll clear the way for you,¡± said Aistolia. Before Ange could refuse, Aistolia left the protective shield. Her body was surging with endless Magic Power as she stepped out of the shield. The moment her toes touched the ground, a ring of fire spread out from under her feet, igniting all the weeds and dead insects in its path into a half circled line of fire. ¡°O spirits of me, hear my voice. Come,e to my side, be a river of me, and flood what¡¯s ahead.¡± Whoosh¡­ whoosh¡­ whoosh¡­ The rapidly gathering Fire Elementals let out whooshing sounds as they converged in front of Aistolia, burning toward the front, like a river made of mes, rolling forward. Negris took a sharp breath: ¡°The Art of me River!¡± As expected of the God of Truth and Law, her first move was to cast arcane magic, the Art of me River ¨C a progressively amplifying Forbidden Spell. Its initial power is not great, but once the mes have spread over arge area, burning more materials and creating more mes, it bes infinitely powerful and unstoppable. Given enoughbustible material, it can reduce a city to ashes. Ifbined with another arcane magic, the Art of Hidden me, the resulting hot wind can dry out an entire forest. But here, Aistolia simply wanted to clear the path with it. She gathered the mes in front of her, paving the way with a carpet of fire. Gard followed the mes out of the protective shield and plunged into the swarm of bugs. Looking back, she saw that Ange hadn¡¯t followed her. When she returned, she saw Ange¡¯s gaze fixed on the ashes on the ground, refusing to move. ¡°Sir, what¡¯s wrong?¡± asked a puzzled Gard. ¡°Is something off?¡± Negris was frantically persuading him in his soul: ¡°I¡¯ll save it for you, I¡¯ll save it for you. I¡¯ll have them leave all the bug corpses and ashes for you, okay? Hurry up, let¡¯s save the old tree first. Don¡¯t get distracted. Don¡¯t worry about the fertilizer at a time like this!¡± Gard had a puzzled expression. It never urred to her that Ange could be stopped by the insect ashes on the ground. Ange tilted his head and suddenly asked, ¡°Do bug corpses contain skeletons too?¡± ¡°Huh?¡± This sudden question stumped Negris, but he was used to it because Ange¡¯s thought process is different from others and often asks strange questions. But he didn¡¯t stay puzzled for long. At the same time as Ange asked the question, he firmly stepped on the ground. With a strong swipe and a slide of his feet ¨C King¡¯s Arrival. What Ange meant by asking ¡®do bugs also have skeletons¡¯ was, could he summon the bug corpses? The countless insect corpses on the ground surged like a wave, but Ange was instantly forced to the ground. One corpse is one strand of the soulwork. The billions of bug corpses in the area immediately tangled up Ange¡¯s soulwork. Luckily they were bugs. If these had been normal corpses, this amount could have exploded Ange¡¯s soulwork. Ange steadied his mind, trying hard to stand up. The bug corpses around him surged again, and a ripple spread out like a wave. No, it¡¯s too much, he can¡¯t stand up. Despite the small size of these insect corpses, their quantity is excessive, surpassing the number Ange can control. A Golden Skeleton normally has a limit to the number of corpses it can control. Three to five hundred is a lot, one to two thousand is the norm, and over ten thousand is overloading. It¡¯s unknown how many the Lord of Mourning can handle. Even if it were a hundredfold, it wouldn¡¯t exceed a million, practically filling the entire area that can be covered by the King¡¯s Arrival spell. Yet, within Ange¡¯s skill range, there are at least several hundred million insect corpses ¨C a totally different order of magnitude. ¡°Are you mad? Are you intending to summon all these insect corpses with the King¡¯s Arrival spell? Everything has its limit. With so many nodes, how are you going to connect them all? It will burst your soul!¡± Negris was shocked. ¡°And, what are you summoning them for? A pile of insect corpses, to feed them to the living bugs?¡± Negrismented cynically. The living insects are nimble, but the corpses summoned by the King¡¯s Arrival spell are absolutely not as agile as they were when alive. If they were human corpses, they might overwhelm their enemies by sheer numbers and total fearlessness. But the problem here is that their enemies are insects, their numbers greater than that of the corpses. What other uses could there be besides feeding them? Ange ignored him, and a huge ball of fire suddenly erupted above his head. The mes shot up several meters high, like a huge, zing torch, but its color was a dark blue. Uncontrobly, Negris eximed: ¡°Are you insane? Why are you unting your Undead Godhood? I understand now, Kvada, you don¡¯t n to summon the corpses, you want to collect the insect corpses, not wasting even a speck of insect ash!!¡± Using the Godhood as a node, the Soul Network spread out. Ange, with his ¡®giant torch¡¯, managed to slowly rise to his feet. Finally, the insect corpses around them started to move, gradually getting up and clumping together. Then Ange, utilizing the Boundary-crossing Hand, shoveled them into the Resting Camp. Negris ran out of words to say, all that effort for a bit of insect ash? Couldn¡¯t he aim for something higher! But considering Ange¡¯s nature, he was toozy to scold any further, weakly suggesting: ¡°Hurry up, leave the rest forter. Let¡¯s save the Tree of Life first.¡± However, Gard misunderstood: ¡°The master is collecting insect corpses? I understand, the insects feed on their own corpses, which leads to their evolution, right? Elves, follow mymand, burn the corpses!¡± Immediately, several elves cooperated. Some cast Tornado, some Fire Tornado, and together they fused the two, creating theposite magic ¡ª the Stormfire Dragon. Wherever the Stormfire Dragon passed, the insect bodies were swept up, then incinerated within the funnel, finally transforming into ash that sprayed into the sky and scattered evenly back down. Ange tilted his head, murmuring: ¡°They stole them¡­¡± Not only have they taken the corpses, but their efficiency is also high. Never mind, let¡¯s save the old tree first. Taking strides forward, Ange rushed towards the Tree of Life, diving headfirst into the pile of insects. Flying and crawling in all directions, nothing but insects. More insects clung onto the bodies of nts and animals, ripping and gnawing in frenzy. As living creatures were devoured, the number of insects grew exponentially. However, the insects couldn¡¯t gnaw on Ange¡¯s golden bones. Some blinded insects flew onto him, gave a mighty bite, and then spat out their shattered teeth with a ¡°krak¡± sound before angrily flying away. As he continued to run, he arrived at the stump of a gigantic tree. Looking up, he realized that all that remained of this mighty tree was a stump, the trunk and crown gnawed into a honeb pattern. ¡°Isn¡¯t this the World Tree we sold to the elves? Oh God, they gnawed it down to this? Where is the Tree of Life? Please, don¡¯t tell me it has been gnawed away too,¡± Negris eximed. Ange continued to charge on, but suddenly noticed a white fog began to umte around him, growing thicker and thicker.N?v(el)B\\jnn After a few more steps, Ange abruptly stopped, looking at the ground in front of him. Now, many of the insect corpses were covered in white ¡®flowers¡¯. Negris apuded, ¡°Fungus, it¡¯s a fungus. This white fog isn¡¯t fog, it¡¯s fungal spores killing the insects. Good method, as would be expected from the Tree of Life.¡± As he continued to press on, just about to break through the fog, a ck vine suddenly whipped over. Judging by its metallic luster, it was definitely no ordinary nt. Chapter 486: 287 Cutting the Tree, Cutting the Tree of Life_1 Chapter 486: Chapter 287 Cutting the Tree, Cutting the Tree of Life_1 Before Ange could react, a tall figure rushed over. His longsword pointed at the vine; a surge of vigorous energy abruptly exploded, grinding the vine to dust. The Giant Dragon Hunter, Gard, caught up with him unscathed, cloaked in his fighting spirit. Swinging his longsword, he bulldozed his way through like a heavy-duty war chariot. Without looking back, Gard plunged into the white fog. Soon, a series of screams arose from within. This Gard, who earlier imed he couldn¡¯t get through, actually meant he couldn¡¯t get through while leading others. Ange followed and quickly spotted the creatures emitting the screams ¨C giant mantis bug monsters. They looked remarkably simr to the ones they had encountered underground in Dark City, only muchrger. However, they were all now decapitated, their bodies torn apart, bloody and mangled. Thousands of insects swarmed over the remains, gnawing ravenously but their own bodies sprouted a plethora of white fungi. As they bit, one by one, they copsed. They finally arrived at the foot of the Tree of Life after dashing through the white fog. Gard held his longsword upside down, looking up at the Tree of Life. He saw that the trunk of the Tree of Life was now wrapped in ck, metallic-looking vines. The vines emerged from the ground, coiling around the trunk of the Tree of Life, climbing with all their might. They wound around the tree more and more, tightly. The position of the tree stump was almostpletely enveloped by these vines. Ange sensed a strange thoughting from these vines. The Insect God Mattis? That thought fell on Ange, seemingly observing him. Gard, however, has already been ignored. But this wasn¡¯t a wise move because the one being ignored was a Giant Dragon Hunter. Gard then leaped up, chopping at the vine with his longsword. These metallic-looking vines seemed incredibly hard, but under Gard¡¯s longsword, they were effortlessly ground into dust. His longsword was clearly no ordinary weapon, giving off a humming sound and vibrating at high speed with just a slight wave. Gard swung his longsword, mowing his way through. Wherever he passed, wood chips flew and vine segments were breaking; within moments, arge section of the metallic-like vine had been bluntly severed by him. Mattis couldn¡¯t bear it and swung his vine, stabbing at her. With a backhand flick, a burst of energy flowed through the sword, grinding the attacking vine into dust. However, there were too many vines. As soon as she destroyed one, two more whipped over. She destroyed these two, and four more swung over. Even therge section of vine she had chopped off was rapidly regrowing. It soon returned to its original state, showing no signs of Gard¡¯s attack. Gard looked up at the trunk, gasping in despair. With this rate of vine growth, it would be impossible to clear them all, even if it cost her her life. The Giant Dragon Hunter was extremely powerful, but she felt helpless against a wall of vines. ¡°Master, what should we do?¡± Gard turned and asked Ange. Ange titled his head, not knowing what to do. He hadn¡¯t expected that Mattis would exist in the form of a vine. Would insecticide work on vines?n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Ange pulled out a bag of insecticide, forcefully throwing it onto the vine. The outer packaging burst open, scattering the powdery insecticide onto the vine. Mattis¡¯ consciousness fell on Ange, then on the area where the insecticide had fallen. Its emotion seemed a bit lost. It seemed¡­ ineffective. ¡°Leave me be, save the forest.¡± The voice of the Tree of Life echoed in the air, slow andnguid as if in conversation. Negris quickly asked, ¡°Old Tree, how are you doing? Are you okay? How can we remove this thing from you?¡± The Tree of Life¡¯s leisurely voice responded: ¡°I cannot be saved. I was careless, thinking it was just a parasitic vine. There are so many things living on me, I didn¡¯t pay attention. Unbeknownst to me, it has fused with my trunk, using a strange insect to parasitize all the insects on me.¡± ¡°Ah, who would have thought that the insects crawling on me daily were being parasitized. You reminded me. After I examined them, I realized it was toote. All the parasitized creatures have be its spawners, instantly exploding with billions of bugs.¡± ¡°I enveloped a range of a hundred kilometers in diameter with a barrier. They can¡¯t escape for now, but don¡¯t let them spread out, or they¡¯ll devour the whole forest.¡± Negris took a sharp intake of breath: ¡°Hiss, a boundary of a hundred kilometers? But shouldn¡¯t you take care of yourself first? Without you, there would be no Elf Forest.¡± A boundary is good enough if it could house three or five people. The Farm Barrier is already very top-level construction, but it only has a range of a few thousand acres. The Tree of Life casually creates a barrier with a hundred-kilometer radius? What¡¯s the acreage equivalent of a hundred-kilometer radius? Such a massive boundary, supported just by the Tree of Life¡¯s power, but even such enormous power could not eliminate the bugs infesting it. Unbeknownst to anyone, Mattis¡¯ vine has already fused with the Tree of Life. This fusion was happening quietly. The Tree of Life couldn¡¯t possibly constantly monitor the changes in its body. There were too many organisms that relied on it to survive, from fungi to insects to elves, billions of individuals. How could it notice a single parasitic vine? Chapter 487 - 287 Cutting the Tree, Cutting the Tree of Life_2 Chapter 487 - 287 Cutting the Tree, Cutting the Tree of Life_2 The parasitic vine, along with most of the vines, relies on other nts for growth. This symbiotic rtionship ismon in forests. Why would a harmless parasitic vine care? Who knew that this vine is not a vine at all, and most of the insects are parasitized as well. Thinking back, the wilting disease I had was probably because of these vines and insects. They excessively drained my life force. The Insect Ash was effective against them, which is why the condition was alleviated. If it wasn''t for Ange''s discovery, and the continued parasitism, one day, they would drain me dry and I would fall ill with the wilting disease again. The Tree of Life was just toorge, the feelings were somewhat dull. When it concentrated, it sensed everything on its body in minute detail. But it was toote, the vine had entirely fused with its body and could no longer be removed by conventional means. Everyone could feel the sense of reliefing from the Tree of Life: "It is not that, the forests, simply forests, are homes for myriad creatures, and I am just one of them, only bigger." n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om "Birth, aging, sickness, and death are all parts of life, and I am no exception. The day deathes is inevitable. When a big tree falls, the little grass under its feet will grow even more luxuriant." "In this world, there is not just one Tree of Life. I am not a solitary creature. Younger life will continue to grow alongside them." Gard''s eyes reddened instantly as these words hit her heart. Indeed, the Tree of Life did not usually interact with them, but all the elves could always feel its care during their growth. Although it did not speak, it was always there beside everyone. Yet the words of the Tree of Life seemed to hint at leaving everyone. Could the enemy be really this strong? Was there no other solution? Before Gard could be emotional, Negris started to curse, not buying into the Tree of Life''s rhetoric: "What part of nature? Pah! If the insects gnaw the forest clean, would that also be part of nature? Then why don''t you remove the barrier and let them gnaw away?" Mattis agreed wholeheartedly, "Yes, yes, why not?" "I''ve been sick of your crap for a long time. Elves pick your fruits but don''t let the seeds be dispersed, you say it''s part of nature. Insects gnaw you, and you say it''s part of nature. Then if forests be deserts, and all insects, fish, birds, and beasts die out, can that also be part of nature? Why can''t you just go with the flow?" Negris cursed without noticing that Gard had already changed her expression drastically and was deeply shocked. From a young age, she had been educated never to let the seeds of the Tree of Life escape, to prevent other species from also having a Tree of Life. For her, this had already be a natural, undoubtable belief. When Ange grew the World Tree, it took a long time for the elves to adjust mentally, epting this reality due to the condition of the Tree of Life. But the seeds were still not allowed to spread. But Negris'' words made her suddenly realize a problem. Did they ever ask for the tree''s consent? No elf had ever asked that, they hadn''t even considered the question. On what basis did they decide if the seeds of the Tree of Life were allowed to spread? Thinking of this, Gard suddenly remembered the words constantly spoken by Kael''danil recently: the Tree of Life does not like elves. Now she understood why the Tree of Life did not like elves. Who would like a species that obstructs its seeds? "My God, what have we all done?" Gard muttered absentmindedly. Negris continued shouting: "Let me tell you, I''ve lived for more than ten thousand years, and out of all those I once knew, you''re the only one still alive. You mustn''t die. Stay alive for me. We''ll find a way to save you. You just need to cooperate. We have the God of Farming who''s good at transforming nature." Without waiting for the God of Life to reply slowly, he directly asked Ange, "What should we do? Is there a way to save it?" Ange pointed with his big hand: "Cut it down." "What? Cut the vine? There are too many, can we cut them all?" Negris asked. "No, cut the tree," said Ange. After saying this, Ange left a footprint and stretched out both his hands towards the Tree of Life. The Instant Death Halo activated at the same time a row of exploding fireballs swept past, hitting the Tree of Life. The vines wrapped around the tree trunk bore the brunt of the st and were blown into flying debris. Gard panicked and called out loudly, "Lord Ange, no..." Before she finished speaking, the voice of the Tree of Life suddenly echoed in her ear: "Listen to him..." Gard swallowed hard, her face turning red as she struggled to suppress her emotions. Listen to Ange? Even if Ange was targeting the Tree of Life, were they supposed to obey him? However, thismand was issued directly by the Tree of Life. If the Tree of Life was the God of the elves, this was divinemand. Was she going to vite it? Gard was stuck in a paradox: if God asked you to hack it down, should youply? The magic of second-level explosive fireballs was raining down on the trunk of the Tree like a chain of fire, cutting the vines down faster than they could regrow. After the vines were cleared, the exploding fireballs hit directly against the trunk of the Tree of Life, splintering wood and quickly hollowing out arge hole. "You''re serious? You really want to destroy the Tree of Life!?" Negris couldn''t help but cry out. He initially thought Ange was bluffing, but upon reflection, Ange was thest person to bluff¡ªhe probably did indeed want to chop down the Tree. The vines had already fused with the Tree of Life. If the Tree of Life was not destroyed, it would be impossible to eliminate these vines fully. From this perspective, Ange''s actions seemed reasonable. Now it was Mattis'' turn to panic. He atttacked Ange with theshing vines. Ange''s eyes focused on the vine, ready to adjust his explosive fireball. At that moment, a sh of sword light descended and shattered the thick vines. There was Gard, standing in front of Ange, biting her teeth and saying, "Giant Dragon Hunter, Gardia, I obey yourmand, Lord Ange." Given the paradox, Gard had chosen to follow the divinemand. Negris noticed her expression and couldn''t help but ask, "Is this hard for you?" With a blush on her face, Gard admitted, "For some reason, I feel suddenly hungry." Looking at footprints on the ground, Negris didn''t feel hungry though; inside the aura''s range, a few minutes would equal a whole day. But with an unseen wave ofmand, all bugs changed their direction and swarmed towards the Tree of Life. The legion of bugs had eaten everything in sight within the boundary, their sheer numbers making them look like a turbulent sea. Ange managed to make some time to pull out a few pieces of candied beets for Gard. As soon as she bite into them, Gard''s eyes grew wide. All the bugs in the forest suddenly went mad. Some chewed on flowers, trees, birds, beasts, fish; some had hit the protective shield; some gnawed at corpses of their own kind on the ground. But with an unseen wave ofmand, all bugs changed their direction and swarmed towards the Tree of Life. The legion of bugs had eaten everything in sight within the boundary, their sheer numbers making them look like a turbulent sea. The white fog had quietly disappeared at some point, leaving the bugs free to rush to the base of the Tree, entering into the Instant Death Halo''s zone. As they flew, the bugs dived to the ground one by one and died without warning after flying some distance. "What is happening, what is happening? Why are my children suddenly dying?" Mattis called out in panic. However, some of the newborn bugs lived long enough to cross the zone of the Instant Death Halo andnd on Ange''s body. Ange opened his mouth without turning his head, releasing rhythmic bursts of Soul Impact. The Bone Priest had used this technique against Hemel''s bugs. Ange''s soul was far stronger than the Bone Priest. Under the impact of the soul, the tiny bugs exploded in clusters. Nearly all of the bugs could not survive the Instant Death Halo and Soul Impact, and the vines thatshed out could not break through Gard''s longsword. The ongoing exploding fireballs hit the trunk and a question arose: would the Tree of Life be destroyed first or would Ange run out of magic power first? The question lingered until the Tree of Life caught fire, bing a towering torch reaching into the sky. Chapter 488: 288: It, the New God of Life_1 Chapter 488: Chapter 288: It, the New God of Life_1 ¡°It¡­ really burns?¡± Mattis murmurred, in utter disbelief. He¡¯d calcted that elves could not possibly destroy a tree. But he hadn¡¯t anticipated the sudden arrival of an unknown entity, burning the very tree they had initially intended to chop down. The flurry of exploding fireballs had set the tree alight. Could the Tree of Life burn that easily? If it were that simple, then over the course of ny thousand years, it would have been burnt countless times. But instead of stopping the fire, the Tree of Life seemed to elerate it. The trunk, with a diameter of thousands of kilometers, was now aze. It would take at least a couple of weeks to reach the core of the tree. But now, in less than half a day, the Tree of Life burnt like a massive fire torch.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om The elves didn¡¯t prevent this from happening. Their queen even sided with the unknown entity, thwarting Mattis¡¯s attacks. Not only could the vines not touch anyone, but the mantis bugs he had deployed were also being ughtered on the frontline. Even his powerful insect swarm, his biggest advantage, couldn¡¯te close to the enemy. They dropped dead around him, for no apparent reason. The few that managed to break through exploded into dust under the enemy¡¯s Soul Impact. What in the World? Weren¡¯t the elves aware of the destruction of their god? Mattis wailed. He felt the panic rise. The Tree of Life was aze. The mes enveloped him, and the parasitic vines attached to his surface had been thoroughly burnt. He waspelled to retract into the inner sections of the Tree of Life and its root system. Upon hearing his cries, elves gathered round, shouting to extinguish the fire and even demanded Ange to stop. Ange indeed halted. Then quickly, he summoned numerous Titan Giants, numerous Undead Magicians, and a plethora of Sword Saint Angels. His intentions were clear ¨C he was ready for battle. Then he stomped his foot ¨C the King¡¯s Arrival. The previously gnaw-nearly-bare skeletons around him, all rose. No one knew the number of animals in the forest. However, they were, past doubt, numerically superior to the elves. Having failed their escape attempts, they mostly ended up as food for the bugs, leaving behind only their skeletons. These skeletons were more in number than the current elven forces present. Thus, ironically, the elves now found themselves surrounded. Still, the elves stood indomitable, organizing themselves for a counter-attack. They were not ready to ept their deity¡¯s burning. Suddenly, the voice of the God of Life resonated, ¡°Ange, bring forth the Little Sapling.¡± Ange blinked, and held up the Little Sapling atop his head. He initially hadn¡¯t intended to bring out the little sapling, deeming it too perilous. But this was a request from the God of Life, so he had toply. As soon as the Little Sapling arrived, it saw the zing torch and was scared out of its wit. It began to wave its leaves and transmit intense signals: grow¡ª¡ªstronger¡ª¡ªgrow¡ª¡ªstronger¡ª¡ª ¡°Thank you, little one. I can feel your life force.¡± The Tree of Life slowly spoke. Its humorous tone was palpable. The Little Sapling, holding up its leaf, was stunned. The huge ming torch, ¡®spoke¡¯. Then, the voice of the Tree of Life echoed in the hearts of all elves, ¡°Henceforth, it shall be the new God of Life.¡± Most of the elves were hearing the voice of God of Life for the first time. Yet, none questioned its authenticity. The voice gave them a feeling of familiarity, akin to a gentle breeze while they frolicked on treetops during their childhood. The elves looked at each other, struggling to keep a control over their emotions. They couldn¡¯t dare to hold their weapons against their own god. With Ange holding up the Little Sapling, the elves didn¡¯t darey a hand on him. How could they possibly fight now? Mattis¡¯sst sliver of hope was extinguished. ¡°Madmen, madmen! I¡¯m withdrawing. Let it burn, burn this idiot tree to ashes; I¡¯ll find something else to inhabit.¡± Mattis¡¯s frustrated voice echoed. A deity who had existed for ny thousand years was ready to self-immte, only to destroy him entirely? Faced with this insane turn of events, Mattis had no alternative but to flee. As the roots of the parasitic vines detached from the Tree of Life and burrowed deep underground, Ange suddenly drew out Hemel. Hemel blinked, looking dazed and confused. It couldn¡¯t decipher Ange¡¯s sudden intentions of summoning it into action. ¡°Eliminate the bugs,¡± said Ange. ¡°Oh,¡± Hemel blinked. He bent over, swelling up his scales to reveal his wings. As his wings started osciting at a high frequency, they produced an intense hissing sound. A dozen breathster, the earth stirred, and innumerable bugs started crawling out of the soil. Some crawled, others flew, all converged towards Hemel. ¡°Sisi, so many bugs? Kvada, even if we burnt every inch of this ce, we couldn¡¯t ensure that every single bug was eliminated. A mere few left behind could multiply into a massive swarm in no time. It¡¯s bothersome,¡± Negris cried out in horror. Seeing the dense swarm of bugs crawling out, the elves felt their hairs stand. Was the forest beyond salvation? Would they be devoured by these bugs if even a few were left alive? Nheless, Hemel continued to send out his summons, attracting all the bugs to itself. Opening its Big Mouth, it chewed and devoured every bug that crawled up to it. As a fellow Insect God, Hemel naturally had an inherent advantage over the bugs. Had Mattis been present, he could have disrupted Hemel. However, with Mattis now on the run, all bugs nearbyplied with itsmands. Chapter 489 - 288 - It, the New God of Life_2 Chapter 489 - 288 - It, the New God of Life_2 Mattis was shocked. Another Insect God? Why? "No, it can''t annihte all the insect eggs. It must leave one or two for me, otherwise, I''ll have to start breeding all over again." Mattis, who had dived into the depths of the ground, had to drill back to the surface again. Insects all have lineages, and the ones bred by each wizard are different. Some reproduce quickly, have strongbat power, can fly or crawl. If a series of insects are all killed, it is not that easy to breed the same ones again. A wizard always has several useful insects in their pocket, which they breed when needed. But as he climbed to the area where the roots of the Tree of Life was, trying to parasitize the Tree of Life again, a speechless voice suddenly appeared in his mind: "Do you think I''m easy to be bullied?" Mattis was startled to find that his body was out of control, being dragged forcefully, violently, and rudely from the soil and pulled to the surface. The God of Life is the most powerful existence in this dimension. It has lived for more than 90,000 years and protected the entire Elf Forest. Last time, the Divine Body that blossomed escaped into the forest and was killed by it. In its eyes, ordinary gods were not much stronger than normal human beings. However, all things in the world have their checks and bnces, it was caught off guard and let Mattis parasitize on it. The reason why it could do nothing about Mattis was because they had merged into one. All the forces acting on Mattis would also act on it simultaneously. It couldn''t kill Mattis in its parasitic state because it couldn''t kill itself. But Ange chopped the tree directly without saying a word until it was honestly chopped, the trunk was burned into a huge torch, only the root system underground remained. In such a situation, there was no significant meaning to parasitic. So Mattis left the parasitic state, and the moment he detached, the God of Life was free again. It was easy to detach, but now that the God of Life was prepared, he still wanted to parasitize again? Did he think the God of Life was to be bullied? The God of Life was speechless and directly yanked him out from the depths of the earth. In this manner, he was hung in mid-air, all the vines contracted into a ball, like a vine ball. n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om The insect had been yanked out. It was time to extinguish the fire since cutting the tree was just for catching the insect. There used to be a kind of bird that loved finding insects on trees infested with insects. After the insects were eaten, the trees would no longer be infested with insects and could grow again. But sometimes the pecking was excessive; the tree died before all the insects were eaten. Ange is not this kind of bird. He just wanted to save the Tree of Life. In case he could not save it, he had to chop off the insects. "Put out the fire!" Ange shouted. It was challenging to start a fire; to extinguish it was even more difficult. Lamo waved his Magic Wand and quickly chanted a spell: "Oh spirits slumbering deep within the earth, spirits of the earth asleep, heed my call, arise." The ground rumbled and pieces of mud apanied by ck smoke rolled up, forming mud water monsters that wriggled towards the Tree of Life, sshing onto the tree. Where the mud covered, the mes were instantly blocked and could no longer burn. Not only Lamo, but dozens of Undead wizards also continuously cast spells. The Mud Water Monster was pushed to the area where the tree trunks were burning, covering an area of several thousand square meters. However, it didn''t take long for Lamo and the other Undead wizards to despair. A few thousand square meters seemed like a vast area, but it was just a small piecepared to the giant tree with a diameter of several kilometers. "This won''t do. Even if we burn out the tree, the mud may not cover one tenth of it," Lamo said. "Let''s do it! Elf Wizards, assemble!" Aestolia said. "Yes!" Hundreds of Elf Wizards gathered, and at the same time, more elves stood on the outskirts. Following Aestolia''s order, they mobilized the elements. Elves have an incredibly long lifespan. Even the ones without much talent, including Elf Shooters or hunters, can master some low-level magic in their almost thousand years lifespan. These low-level magics are not of much use, but their spiritual power can y a role in mobilising the elements. Arge number of elves can gather a significant amount of elements from distant ces nearby. Casting spells, elements are fundamental. Without elements, no matter how strong spiritual power is or how high the level of magic is, it doesn''t make any difference. With the assistance of arge number of elves, the nearby water elements soon became denser, and the humidity rose to a level that water dripped when you pinched the air. Hundreds of Elf Wizards, led by Aestolia, began chanting loudly. Water elements coalesce into raindrops, pouring down on the ming Tree of Life, spurting white smoke. These white vapours lifted, floated into the air and re-condensed into raindrops, pouring down again. Such cycles went on, with water elements continuously moving between the air and the ''torch,'' taking away arge amount of heat, evaporating a massive amount of steam, and cutting off as much air as possible. The massive ''torch'' slowly, slowly went out. By this time, it was already the afternoon of the second day. It had been a full forty hours since Ange came to the Elf Forest. "What a long battle it was." Looking at the Tree of Life that was turned into a burning stick, its surface charred ck, with only half left and its tree crownpletely disappeared, Negris let out a sigh. Chapter 490: 288: It, the New God of Life_3 Chapter 490: Chapter 288: It, the New God of Life_3 The elves were sprawled out on the ground, especially the mages, many of whom had exhausted their magic power and were sound asleep. Surprisingly, Gard seemed as lively as ever. For a dragon hunter like her, not sleeping for more than forty hours was a usual urrence. However, her face turned gloomy as she looked at the forest which was full of destruction. Everyone could feel the sadness radiating from her face. For the elves, it was an absolute disaster. Looking down from the sky, within a hundred kilometer radius centered around the World Tree, nearly all nts and animals had beenpletely consumed, revealing the bare ground. The number of elves living in this area once reached up to thirty thousand, but now there were only over ten thousand left. It was clear where those missing went. Besides the elves, almost all the creatures in this area were wiped out. The shadow leopards, white deer, monkeys, birds, fish, and so on were all left as bones. Since the existence of the Elf n, they had never suffered such heavy losses. In just under two days, tens of thousands of elves died. Gard felt so crushed inside. ¡°Your Majesty, please ept my condolences.¡± Negris pped his wings, trying tofort her weakly. Gard turned around, forced a smile, and replied energetically, ¡°Thank you, Lord Negris, and thank you, Lord Ange. We appreciate your support. The Elf n will always remember your help.¡± Negris quickly waved his hands and said, ¡°No need to thank us. We came to save the old tree, not to help you.¡± Gard frowned. His blunt words made her want to punch the bronze dragon. Realizing his indiscretion, Negris hurriedly added, ¡°We also wanted to help you.¡± Feeling awkward, Gard didn¡¯t know what to say. Negris¡¯s correction only made her more eager to punch him. ¡°What are your ns? With the current situation, you can¡¯t stay here. Do you have a ce to move to?¡± Negris asked. Gard gently smiled and firmly said, ¡°Where the God of Life resides, that is the homnd of the elves. We will rebuild it.¡± ¡°That¡¯s good. But the Tree of Life, being burnt to this condition, can¡¯t recover in a short time. You need to prepare for the long haul. If you need any help, just say it. Ange should be able to help a lot. Isn¡¯t that right, An¡­¡± As Negris was speaking, he turned his head to find that Ange was nowhere to be seen. ¡°Kvada, that skeleton wouldn¡¯t have¡­¡± As a sense of foreboding rose in his heart, Negris flew around the Tree of Life. Before long, he found Ange who was busy scattering seeds while the Little Angel and Little Zombie were burying these seeds into the ground. ¡°Kvada, at a time like this, you¡¯re still thinking about nting stuff?¡± Negris scolded with annoyance. Ange ignored him, making a footprint with a step, and the little sapling on his head began to enthusiastically wave its leaves. All of a sudden, the freshly nted seeds sprouted at an astonishing pace, growing voraciously. The countless insects that were burnt into ash rearranged and scattered in the air, leaving ayer of insect ash on the ground. This,bined with the ash from the burnt Tree of Life and the rainwater used to extinguish the fire, soaked the earth. Inside the range of the Instant Death Halo, countless nts began to grow madly. Gard was stunned by this miraculous spectacle, staring in disbelief. The charred half of the Tree of Life suddenly cracked open on the surface, revealing a small sprout from inside. ¡°I understand now.¡± Negris pped his hands in excitement, ¡°Life Force! The growth of nts can stimte the life force of the World Tree. If the forest is rented, the Tree of Life can be restored.¡± Gard¡¯s eyes brightened up at once. During the next few days, every elf in the forest was mobilized. They gathered nts from all over and relocated them near the Tree of Life, restoring the vicinity¡¯s vitality at the fastest speed. With the elerated growth of the abundant nts, the charred Tree of Life sprouted countless buds, radiating vibrant life again. However, the elves soon discovered that although the Tree of Life was recovering, it seemed that the God of Life was still unwilling to interact with the elves. No matter how Kael¡¯danil called out to it, there was no response. It didn¡¯t even react when young elves fell from the tree during y.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om The only change was that it no longer chased away the elves, it allowed them to live on the tree again. ¡°Perhaps, we should redefine the rtionship between the elves and the God of Life.¡± Kael¡¯danil said in a heavy tone. In the Light Sea ne, on the sand shoal, Negrismented to the green cores of the tree, ¡°You really aren¡¯t going back to the Elf Forest? You¡¯re really not going to take care of it anymore? If the elves find out that I¡¯ve taken you away, they¡¯re going to me me.¡± A sluggish voice came out of the tree core, ¡°I¡¯m not going back. I want a change of scenery to grow.¡± Chapter 491: 289: Participating in the Plane Safety Conference_1 Chapter 491: Chapter 289: Participating in the ne Safety Conference_1
From today onwards, a Tree Herder had joined the sandbank. With its two short legs, it wandered around leisurely, circling around the Soilless Rice and seaweed from time to time, appearing very content. ¡°Eh? Where did this tree persone from?¡± Luther approached and asked curiously. He turned and greeted, ¡°Hello, my name is Luther. What¡¯s your name? Do you know Tree Man Gore?¡± ¡°Hello¡­ Luther.¡± The Tree Herder responded leisurely, ¡°Call me¡­ Old Tree. The Gore you¡¯re talking about, is he a War Tree Man? If so, yes I know him, Talkative Gore¡­¡± ¡°Old Tree? That¡¯s a weird name. So Gore is quite famous then, every random tree person knows him. Oh, by the way, what species of Tree Person are you? Can you grow asrge as Gore?¡± asked a curious Luther. As he talked, he pulled out a box from his Space Artifact. The box was sealed. When he opened the lid, a gust of cold air rushed out. A mini Ice Seal Magic Array was spinning on the box lid, keeping the box at a low temperature at all times. The Tree Herder curiously looked at the box, even extending a branch to touch it. Luther exined, ¡°This is a cooling box, cool right? The mini Ice Seal Magic Array was carved by Lord Ange for me. It only needs a small amount of Demon Crystals to keep the box cold. Put your drinks in it, and they¡¯ll stay chilled. In the summer, you can take out a drink anytime and it¡¯ll be ice cold, utterly refreshing. What do you want to drink? There¡¯s juice and water, and beetroot juice too.¡± The Tree Herder was momentarily perplexed. ¡°Oh, this is one way of making friends. When us humans meet for the first time, we can shake hands, salute, have a drink, and then we¡¯re acquainted. When you tree people meet for the first time, what do you do?¡± Luther asked curiously.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om The Tree Herder pondered. He was not a real Tree Man and had never made friends with other tree people. After thinking carefully, he said, ¡°When Tree People meet for the first time, they exchange pollen.¡± ¡°Pft ¡ª¡± Luther, who had just taken a sip of juice, spit it out suddenly. He gave a thumbs up, ¡°Tree People are incredible.¡± Pollen is the gic material of nts. Exchanging it upon first meeting might not align with human morals. In the end, the Tree Herder chose juice out of politeness. However, instead of drinking it, he curiously studied it in his hand.
Luther didn¡¯t mind. He had dealt with non-human things so many times that he already had experience. Different species have different behaviors. An action that one species considers kind might be offensive to another. However, as long as it is an intelligent being, they can feel your expressed kindness. All Luther needed to do was to show kindness. If he identally offended someone, he would directly apologize and be careful next time. The Tree Herder extended a branch into the juice, stirred it a few times, and handed it to Luther, ¡°Not tasty, try this.¡± Luther was stunned. ¡®This¡¯? This was the juice he had given to the tree man, wasn¡¯t it? Did stirring it change the juice inside? Err, it seemed like you hadn¡¯t washed your branches¡­ He brought the juice to his lips and gently took a sip. Luther¡¯s eyes bulged out, his face turned beet red, as though he had just taken a sip of strong liquor. He held it in for a long while before he finally exhaled a long breath. With a look of shock on his face, he said to the Tree Herder, ¡°Such a powerful life force. Oh my god, I feel like I¡¯m about to explode. I feel so refreshed, as if my whole body is transparent, my spirits are at their highest. My god, what did you put in it?¡± ¡°Life Essence.¡± The Tree Herder answered. ¡°Wow, that¡¯s amazing, it¡¯s just magical. If you open a juice shop, you¡¯d definitely have great business. By the way, do you like fishing?¡± ¡°Fishing? Why should I fish?¡± ¡°It¡¯s fun, otherwise it would be so boring. Don¡¯t you usually fish? If not, what do you do?¡± Luther said, setting up two lounge chairs, opening a sunshade, and giving a fishing rod to the Tree Herder. The Tree Herder curiously observed Luther¡¯s actions, holding the fishing rod in his hand. Seeing that the Tree Herder didn¡¯t even know how to swing the rod, Luther quickly concluded that he was a novice. He immediately pped his chest and proposed, ¡°How about we have apetition? The loser treats the winner to a meal. You¡¯re a Tree Man, do you like fertilizer? There¡¯s a very nutritious type of fertilizer avable, I¡¯ll treat you to it if I lose.¡± Upon hearing it, the Tree Herder knew what Luther was referring to. He nodded and nted a branch into the water without using a fishing rod. In the clear, shallow waterway, fish were soon seen swimming up and biting at the branch. The Tree Herder pulled it up and beckoned with his hand. A small water ball floated up, encased the fish, and ced it by the Tree Man¡¯s feet. A branch was put in, and within seconds, another fish bit again. Almost immediately after putting the branch down, a fish bit. In no time, there were many water balls by the Tree Herder¡¯s feet, all filled with living fish. Luther stared in disbelief, ¡°What kind of bait are you using? It¡¯s miraculous, let me borrow some.¡± After half a day, Luther surprisingly became familiar with the Tree Man, a sight that left Negris bbergasted. ¡°Kvada, they could connect in such a way? I¡¯ve got to hand it to Luther¡¯s socializing skills,¡± Negris said jealously. ¡°He¡¯s friendly with Sea People, Minotaurs, there¡¯s no one he¡¯s not familiar with. Let¡¯s hope he won¡¯t pee his pants when he finds out the Tree Herder¡¯s identity.¡± Receiving no response, Negris turned his head to find Ange¡¯s arm sticking into the Chamber of Rest, asionally pulling out something. ¡°What are you doing?¡± he asked. nting things into the Resting Camp was routine, but why was he pulling things out? Chapter 492: 289: Participating in the Plane Safety Conference_2 Chapter 492: Chapter 289: Participating in the ne Safety Conference_2
Looking at what Ange has pulled out, there are two carriages, several magic tents, and some weapons and armor. Ange murmured, ¡°Sort it out, throw it away.¡±n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Are you throwing this stuff away?¡± Negris looked at those things, the two carriages were picked up from the leaders of those dragon-hunting sand thieves. He forgot what they were called, only remembering they had a fight within their own ranks, killed each other, and Ange picked up two magical carriages and several magical tents from their remains. At that time, Negris was shocked. The lifestyles of these nobles and wizards were too extravagant, and their carriages and tents were so luxurious. However, these luxurious items now seem insignificant. Ange has too many good things in his hands¨C for instance, just those Holy Shell Eggs alone are much better than most of the weapons and armor forged. Ange gave several sets to Anthony, who regarded them as treasures, often showing them off to beguile his subordinates to work for him. As for the luxury carriages, used purely for enjoyment, Ange had never used them before. So now that he¡¯s brought them out, it was clear he really intended to throw them away. What a waste, Negris quickly called to Luther, ¡°Luther, Luther, I am giving you two luxury carriages. If some blind girl fancies you, you can invite her inside.¡± Luther turned his head back and gave him a look: ¡°Thanks, but you can keep them. The next time you have a luxury airship, you can give it to me, otherwise, I won¡¯t know where to go.¡± Giving away carriages in the Light Sea ne? Negris was really generous. Could they actually drive it into the water? In the end, the wheels of the two carriages were dismantled and ced next to the Teleportation Array as a luxury hotel. Ange threw out all the things that were no longer useful, making room for thetest loot.
This trip to the Master ne was a huge gain for Ange, the biggest of which was the theft of hundreds of thousands of followers. The Undead Godhood only had several hundred thousand followers, but now it had more than doubled. The Soul mes that Ange received every day were now twice as much as before. The main reason was that these newly stolen followers were more active due to the cmitous environment. Then there was the trip to the forest. Besides abducting the God of Life, just the insect corpses alone made Ange feel the trip was worth it. Because of the sheer volume of insect corpses, Ange had the idea to tidy up the Resting Camp. Insect Ash is a super useful fertilizer. Ange had raised a batch of insects during a previous experiment, but the output of Insect Ash simply wasn¡¯t enough. The main reason was that the resources consumed in breeding them exceeded the value that could be obtained from them as fertiliser. For example, if you feed the insects ten tons of material and then spread their ashes on the fields, the crops can increase from ten tons to eighteen tons. The increase is only eight tons, which is a loss. Although worthless things like straw, bones and hair could be used to feed the insects, the total quantity would still decrease. Ange could not achieve self-sufficiency. With these tworge scale supplements, Ange could sustain for a longer time. While he was still busy, Ange received an urgent call from Anthony: ¡°Sir, Tyrone is calling for an emergency meeting on ne Security. I think he wants to ask about the Elves¡¯ matters. What happened to the Elves? They have sealed the forest and cut off allmunication. My high-altitude reconnaissance units saw arge torch burning in the Elf Forest, turning half the sky red. What happened? What stance should I take at the meeting?¡± Ange tilted his head, saying, ¡°The Tree of Life is burned.¡± ¡°Pardon¡­ What did you say? The Tree of Life burned? Really?¡± Anthony was in disbelief. Judging by how well he knew Ange, his repetition of the question indicates his shock. It¡¯s not that he didn¡¯t believe Ange, he just couldn¡¯t believe this happened. ¡°Yes, it burned.¡± Ange said. ¡°So what now? What¡¯s the situation with the elves? Aren¡¯t the elves going crazy? Who burned the Tree of Life? Have the elves found the perpetrator? Are they preparing for a holy war?¡± Anthony hurriedly asked several questions, each hitting the nail on the head. If the elves went berserk and sought revenge for the Tree of Life, the entire ne would descend into war. He must make preparations early. Anthony came up with a few response strategies in his mind. They could either organize a human force to fight the Elves, eradicate the crazed Elves, or find the perpetrator and draw the Elves fury onto them. Killing the perpetrator would help the elves vent their anger. Or maybe¡­ But before he finished contemting the possibilities, one of Ange¡¯s statements almost made him spit blood, ¡°I saved it, the Elves are nting trees.¡± ¡°Pardon¡­ Do you mean that you saved the Tree of Life?¡± Anthony asked, ¡°What do you mean the Elves are nting trees?¡± Ange nodded, ¡°The burnt tree.¡± ¡°So what now? What¡¯s the situation with the Tree of Life? How are the Elves feeling?¡± Anthony asked. Ange scratched his head, answering, ¡°The God of Life, left. The Tree of Life, became the World Tree.¡± Anthony didn¡¯t understand but forced a smile, ¡°Sir, where has Lord Nage gone? Why not bring me in to chat with Lord Nage?¡± Even the quick-witted and analytical Anthony, who has an uncanny knack for understandingplex situations anding up with intuitive understanding, was left puzzled by Ange. Chapter 493: 289: Participating in the Plane Safety Conference_3 Chapter 493: Chapter 289: Participating in the ne Safety Conference_3
Once in the Consciousness Space and after a conversation, Anthony was shocked: ¡°What!? You have kidnapped the God of Life? Oh my God, the elves will go mad.¡± Negris wryly smiled: ¡°Not just yet. After theirst incident, the old tree became angry and expelled them. They haven¡¯t bothered with the elves again since then. Now they can¡¯t distinguish between the Tree of Life and the World Tree, still thinking the old tree is mad at them. But one day they will find out, and I don¡¯t know if they wille knocking on our door then.¡± Anthony understood and summed it up: ¡°So essentially, the Elves lost their god, but they still don¡¯t know. The Tree of Life was set on fire, and what we have now is merely a World Tree, not the God of Life, right?¡± ¡°Right.¡± ¡°Well, now I know what to do.¡± Anthony said.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Negris wryly smiled: ¡°Don¡¯t let the cat out of the bag about us taking the old tree.¡± Anthony responded righteously: ¡°Oh Lord Nage, that¡¯s not fair. The God of Life has arms and legs, how can we call it kidnapping? It just happened to pass by and decided to stay as a guest.¡± Negris¡¯s eyes lit up: ¡°Exactly, our guest! We are treating it so hospitably. If the elvese looking, they¡¯ll have to pay us for our services.¡± Negris with his keen observational skills, exchanged a knowing smile with Anthony. Once Anthony finished speaking, he left. He had to hurry on to an interdimensional security meeting. Negris had just left when he saw a yellow figure soaring towards him. The huge head made it spin a few rounds. ¡°Stop, stop, stop! Naeli, be careful you don¡¯t scatter my bones.¡± Negris shouted. Naeli red: ¡°Are youining about my size?¡±
¡°No, no, you just need to lighten up a bit, my bones are breaking.¡± Negris quickly exined and changed the topic: ¡°Were you looking for me?¡± ¡°Oh right, Brooksmunicated with me through our bloodline, asking me about what happened in the Elf Forest and something about an interdimensional security meeting.¡± Naeli suddenly remembered her purpose. Negris thought for a moment, and said: ¡°Tell him, the Elves¡¯ Tree of Life was set on fire but was then restored. The elves are busy reconstructing after the disaster.¡± Negris didn¡¯t tell Brooks the full story, not because he didn¡¯t trust his great nephew, but because the Dragon n is far away from elves territory, the incident doesn¡¯t affect them much and knowing too many details might not be a good thing. ¡°Oh, got it. Rub my head a bit.¡± Naeli bumped her head, made Negris spin a few more rounds, then ran to the side to contact Brooks via bloodline resonance.¡± Negris had barely climbed up when Ange handed him a Magic Communicator. He heard the voice of Dead Star Auburnli as soon as he switched it on: ¡°Lord Ange, I recall that your rtionship with the elves is quite good. Do you know what happened in the Elf Forest? Lord Tyrone is about to convene a meeting, but we have no clue about what happened. If you have any news, we hope you can share it with us.¡± Negris felt a peculiar sensation, out of the seven interdimensional security members, three of them havee asking for information about the elves. Did they organize this security meeting? ¡°No, we should also listen to this meeting. Ange, let¡¯s project ourselves onto Anthony and take part in the meeting with him.¡± Chapter 494: 290: Are We to Kill All The Believers?_1 Chapter 494: Chapter 290: Are We to Kill All The Believers?_1
In the Republic of Steris, the Star Image Research Institute, and the Astrology Tower, Tyrone emerged rubbing his disheveled hair, climbed into the carriage, and irritably instructed: ¡°To the Mage Tower.¡± The carriage had no horses nor a driver, yet as soon as Tyrone gave the instruction, the carriage began to move, smoothly heading forward. Anyone who saw this scene would have no choice but to marvel: A new magic technique, self-driving? Upon arriving at the Mage Tower, Auburnli was already there waiting. Seeing Tyrone¡¯s messy hair as he alighted from the carriage, her face immediately hardened. Seeing her expression, Tyrone instantly realized his mistake. Hands pressed to his head, he retreated back into the carriage. Two minutester, he reappeared with his greasy, ky hair¡ªreminiscent of a bird¡¯s nest¡ªclean and smooth, his mage robe also neat and orderly. s, his split ends and the stains on the edges of his robe revealed this to be nothing more than a pretentious facade. However, he had done enough to pass muster. Auburnli couldn¡¯t possibly be expect him to have clean underwear too. There was no such rule. Auburnli red at him, grumbling, ¡°All of you, it¡¯s as if taking a bath or cleaning up is equivalent to losing your lives. You don¡¯t sweep or wash dishes. If you don¡¯t want to clean, hire a servant. It¡¯s not like you can¡¯t afford it. You present yourselves like refugees every day¡­¡± Tyrone intercepted this tirade with feelings reminiscent of his student years, fearing the control of the head of discipline. What¡¯s worse, the very same head of discipline that he dreaded back then was still holding sway over him. It was unbearable. In order to put a stop to this barrage of nagging, Tyrone quickly changed the subject: ¡°Aunt Auburnli, you seem to be getting more and more beautiful. Are the techniques in the Goddess of Beauty City really that amazing? Can they cure baldness? I¡¯d like to give it a try.¡± Normally, Auburnli would dismiss his attempts of shifting the conversation and might even scold him more strictly. But as long as the Goddess of Beauty City was mentioned, Auburnli would inevitably take the bait. With a re, Auburnli turned the conversation around to align with Tyrone¡¯s topic: ¡°You¡¯vee to the right person. The treatments for baldness in the Goddess of Beauty City are unmatched. They are even better than skin rejuvenation treatments. When you have time, go give it a try. The state of your hair ismentable and you¡¯re embarrassing us in the Republic of Steris.¡± ¡°Alright, alright, I¡¯ll go take a look when I have time.¡± Tyrone was about to breathe a sigh of relief when Auburnli immediately swung the conversation back: ¡°I know you think I¡¯m a fusspot, still treating you all like children. But you must give me some peace of mind, too. You all hole yourselves up in the tower all day, either meditating, star-gazing or inventing. You can¡¯t even keep mealtimes, let alone start dating, marrying, or having children.¡±
¡°I¡¯ve arranged blind dates for you, but each one of you dodged and didn¡¯t go. How are you going to get married and have kids? Do you want to see our people go extinct? Without progenies to inherit the wisdom of our predecessors, all of you will be culprits.¡± Tyrone felt upon the urge to cry. More dreadful than the head of discipline is the goddess of love, who is always strenuously urging you to get married. What¡¯s even scarier is that the head of discipline and the goddess of love are the same person. ¡°But we still have you.¡± Tyrone said with an awkward smile. The Steris Tower once lost its legacy and was reestablished through Auburnli¡¯s efforts. Therefore, in theory, all mages of the Steris lineage are her students. ¡°Hmph.¡± Auburnli scoffed: ¡°After serving you all, I still have to take care of your descendants? You all really don¡¯t stand on ceremony.¡± ¡°No, no! I hear you, Aunt Auburnli. Whatever you want, just say the word. I will summon everyone immediately to get it done for you.¡± Tyrone conceded. His usual tactic of changing the topic had worked numerous times but was futile today. Auburnli must have had some ulterior motives. ¡°It¡¯s not a difficult task; I want to reopen the Pce of Heroic Spirits and move the statues of the Red Star to this square. We can arrange a row of benches and parasols for students to rest and converse, so that they won¡¯t graduate without a spouse like you all.¡± Auburnli still couldn¡¯t avoid sneering at the end. ¡°No problem, no problem. I¡¯ll get the administrative department right on it. As for relocating the statues, Hiludi and I will handle it. But will it work? Will a row of benches pique everyone¡¯s interest in romance?¡± Tyrone said with skepticism.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Auburnli gave a small smile: ¡°You¡¯re not a professional in everything else. I¡¯ll find a professional to handle this. The Goddess of Beauty City will help when the timees. If everyone can find bliss under the gaze of these statues, our teacher, Red Star, would be very happy.¡± Tyrone looked solemn: ¡°Yes, the Red Star¡¯s radiance.¡± Once this was settled, Auburnli finally ceased her nagging and said: ¡°I asked a friend who is familiar with the Elves, and they told me that the Tree of Life had burned.¡± ¡°What? The Tree of Life burned? Why didn¡¯t you¡­¡± Tyrone was shocked. How is it that Auburnli did not inform him of such a significant event like the Tree of Life burning right away? Instead, she had spent so much time nagging him about getting married and having children. Could it be that having children is more crucial than the burning of the Tree of Life? ¡°It was saved. The Elves are rebuilding after the disaster,¡± Auburnli saidnguidly. ¡°Aunt Auburnli, don¡¯t pause dramatically when you speak. You scared me. If the Elves were in trouble, our dimension would be in chaos, and I would have no time for astrology. The movements of the Death Star have been oddtely. I suspect that the apocalypse might be upon us.¡± Tyrone grumbled. The Death Star that Tyrone was referring to was not Auburnli¡¯s title, but one of the stars in the sky that he had observed through astrology. In the Republic of Steris, each titled figure has a corresponding star in the sky. Chapter 495: 290: Are We Supposed to Kill All Believers? _2 Chapter 495: Chapter 290: Are We Supposed to Kill All Believers? _2
Auburnli nced at him and said, ¡°Ever since the introduction of astrology, people have been telling me about anomaly of the Death Star every few years. Even if there is an anomaly, you need to go on a blind date for me.¡± ¡°Yes, yes, as you say.¡± To avoid being nagged, Tyrone hastily agreed with Auburnli. Finally, they entered the Mage Tower and came to the meeting room. They turned on themunications within the teleportation array and connected to the nodes of the ne Security Conference. The signal lights representing Pope Guliani, Archbishop Dyson, and the Dwarven God of War were all lit, indicating that they had already connected to themunications. However, Tyrone was no longer in a hurry ¨C the news Auburnli brought him about the incident with the Elves had lessened his anxieties. He had no doubt about Auburnli¡¯s news sources and uracy. As a wizard who had lived for a thousand years, Auburnli¡¯s information channels were much richer than his. The three that were already lit were clearly as anxious as he had been earlier. Seeing that he had connected, the Dwarven God of War couldn¡¯t suppress his curiosity and asked, ¡°Lord Tyrone, do you know what has happened to the Elves? My Eye of the War God saw a huge fire zing in the Elf Forest, but I could not see what exactly happened. No one from the Elves responded when I tried to contact them, it¡¯s driving me mad.¡± Tyrone looked at the signal lights and said, ¡°There are two more people who haven¡¯t arrived. We¡¯ll start the meeting when everyone is here.¡± ¡°Oh, you humans are so troublesome. Just start talking, we can repeat it when they arrive. This is making me anxious,¡± the Dwarven God of Warined loudly. Tyrone didn¡¯t respond, and there were no sounds from Guliani and Dyson¡¯s ends either. The conference call went eerily silent, save for the sound of restless pacing from the Dwarf¡¯s end. The Dwarven God of War loved wearing his iron war boots, and they made loud sounds when he paced. Eventually, the lights representing Anthony and Brooks lit up. As soon as they lit up, Anthony¡¯s apologies frantically filled the space, ¡°Sorry, sorry, I¡¯mte. I went to inquire about the Elves, so I waste. I¡¯m sorry everyone, thank you for waiting.¡± Anthony sure knew how to talk. Even though he was also part of the Church of Light, Tyrone still couldn¡¯t bring himself to hate him. He quickly responded, ¡°It¡¯s alright, it¡¯s alright, I haven¡¯t been here long myself. You went to inquire about the Elves? Can you share your information with us? I want topare it with mine.¡± Brooks calmly said, ¡°I¡¯ve also found some information. You go first, Anthony.¡±
¡°Oh, it¡¯s like this, the Tree of Life caught fire,¡± Anthony revealed. ¡°What?!¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°What? The Tree of Life caught fire? So the fire that we could see all the way from half of the forest was the Tree of Life?¡± ¡°The Elves must be going mad.¡± Dyson, the Dwarven God of War, and Guliani all shouted in surprise at the same time. The shocking news left them unable to contain their reactions. ¡°But it was saved. The Elves are rebuilding now. The disaster area is about a hundred kilometers. More than ten thousand Elves died,¡± Anthony shared the news. Guliani, Dyson, and the Dwarven God of War all experienced a roller coaster of emotions. Tyrone and Brooks, however, were disying strange expressions: How is his information so simr to mine? Could our sources be the same? ¡°That¡¯s what I¡¯ve heard as well,¡± Tyrone said. ¡°Same here,¡± Brooks pondered aloud. The three parties¡¯ information all confirmed that the Elves had suffered a great ordeal, but it had been resolved and there were no ongoing dangers. Naturally, everyone rxed and this topic was concluded. Chairing the meeting, Tyrone said, ¡°Alright, the Elves issue is resolved. Does anyone have any new topics? If not, the meeting is adjourned.¡± ¡°Yes.¡± Guliani¡¯s voice rang out: ¡°We, the Church of Light, are presenting the following agenda together. It concerns the safety of the ne, I hope everyone considers it carefully.¡± Anthony had a big question mark in his mind: The Church of Light presented it together? Howe I don¡¯t know about it? Ah, I¡¯m not part of the Church of Light anymore, I belong to the Holy Church. Guliani continued, ¡°The Land of the Fallen is now entirely under control of the undead, to the west of the Central Mountain Range, which used to be our human territory. There is a vast area of weak dimensional barriers there. Building a teleportation array would easily allow transport to the Master ne.¡± ¡°However, there is no need to worry about this aspect. The teleportation array has limited transport capacity, and the undead cannot invade on arge scale in this way. What we need to guard against is the undead tearing a huge rift in space, letting them flood the Master ne through it, which would be its end.¡± ¡°Spatial rifts need to prate the weak points in the dimensional barriers. If the undead want to enter the Master ne this way, then the following ces are most likely to be breached: Saint¡¯s Edge Castle at the southernmost part of the continent, Dragon Ind overseas, Elf Forest, Dark City in the desert, Fallen Dragon Lake, ck Iron Fort, the snow-capped mountains, and other areas.¡± ¡°Our Church of Light has limited strength and we can¡¯t defend all ces. We hope everyone can organize forces and defend the weak areas of the barriers locally on their territories.¡± There was a lull in themunication in the meeting, then Anthony was the first to respond, ¡°The Holy Church will defend Saint¡¯s Edge Castle.¡± Brooks then responded, ¡°The Dragon n will defend Dragon Ind. There are actually many more weak points on the sea. If the undead dare to break through from here, it would be suicide. We, the Dragon n, will patrol all the major inds.¡± The Dwarf God of War quickly said, ¡°We¡¯ll be responsible for ck Iron Fort, not a single undead will leave the ck Iron Mountain alive.¡± Nobody made fun of him in the meeting, although Negris, who was projected onto Anthony, couldn¡¯t help but joke with Ange, ¡°Leaving alive is not allowed, can they leave when they¡¯re dead?¡± Tyrone was the fourth to respond, ¡°Steris will defend the Snowy Mountain Range. As for the Elf Forest, heh, the Tree of Life hasn¡¯t burned down. As long as the God of Life is there, no matter how many undead, they won¡¯t be able to get out of the forest.¡± Negris and Anthony both fell silent. What if the God of Life is no longer in the forest? After everyone had allocated their tasks, Guliani continued, ¡°Now only Goddess City and Dark City are left. Currently, a group of abyssal vagrants are upying Goddess City, and a bunch of undead are hidden in Dark City. If the Undead Empire decides to breakthrough from here, they will get support, so I propose we form an alliance army to eliminate the abyssal vagrants and undead in these two ces.¡± Negris felt a twist in his heart: Kvada is still on the Church of Light¡¯s radar? Tyrone said, ¡°Hmm, if there is a premise of the Undead Army from the Land of the Fallen, Goddess City and Dark City indeed need to be cleared¡­¡± At this point, a muffled sound was heard from Tyrone¡¯s side, as if someone had hit his head, but everyone thought they must have heard wrong. Who would dare to hit Tyrone¡¯s head? After a pause, Tyrone¡¯s voice continued, ¡°However, the abyssal vagrants and Dark City are minding their own business, there might be no need to organize an alliance army. A few people keeping a close eye should be enough.¡± ¡°No.¡± Guliani objected on the spot, ¡°How do weKeep an eye on them? Dark City is extensive, if arge space rift were to open, we would likely only notice it once hundreds of millions of undead havee flooding out. Goddess City seems to have an alliance with Dark City, so we must get rid of both together.¡± Themunication once again went silent. For such a matter, a decision definitely could not be made by one person alone, everyone needed to hear the advice of their subordinates. A few minutester, Tyrone said, ¡°Let¡¯s do it like this, we¡¯ll start voting for regtion no. xx on the ne safety, the proposal to organize an alliance army to clear out the abyssal vagrants in Goddess City and undead in Dark City. The Elves are absent, we¡¯ll vote first, if votes are tied, we can ask the Elves to break the tie.¡± Three minutester, the voting result came in, it was three votes for and against each. ¡­ In the Land of the Fallen, eternal night descended. Harvey left the cave, flicking off the annoying beacon of faith from his hand, ¡°I hate this thing, do I really have to kill all the believers to extinguish it?¡± Bending his body, the horn-like soul waves spread far and wide, making the Land of the Fallen boil once again. Chapter 496: 291 Harvey Wants to Play Dirty_1 Chapter 496: Chapter 291 Harvey Wants to y Dirty_1
The undead were all geared up, but the Great Sage was nowhere to be found. Harvey quickly summoned a wise follower and asked, ¡°Where¡¯s the Great Sage?¡± ¡°He¡¯s busy harvesting,¡± the follower replied. ¡°Harvesting? It¡¯s already impending nightfall and he hasn¡¯t finished? Where did he run off to?¡± Harvey asked, puzzled. When he finally found the Great Sage, he understood why he hadn¡¯t finished ¨C there was simply too much to harvest. ¡°What¡¯s going on? Why is there so much grain? Did you kidnap people to farm this much? You¡¯ve always been against enving living beings, haven¡¯t you? Did you change your principles?¡± Harvey asked, still puzzled. ¡°What nonsense? No, I farmed it as always. But what do you call this? Ah, optimization! Specific tasks for specific people, officer ountability, and reward for more work done ¨C all sorts of incentive strategies. Soplex. But the beings¡¯ enthusiasm was so high that they identally nted too much. You arriving now is just timely.¡± Harvey was stunned. What did he mean by ¡®my arrival being timely¡¯? ¡°Come on, help me harvest the crops of this field. It¡¯s just be nightfall and the dew hasn¡¯t fallen. If it does, the paddy will get sopping wet, and all our months of hard work will be wasted,¡± the Great Sage said, looking at the endless field in front of him. Harvey widened his eyes, or rather would have if he had eyes. His eye sockets almost exploded in shock. Pointing at his nasal cavity he asked incredulously, ¡°Me? Harvest the paddy?¡± ¡°Yes, only you can harvest all the paddy before the dew falls. Hurry up,¡± the Great Sage urged. ¡°I, the magnificent Undead King, the Lord of Mourning, the Purple Gold Skeleton Harvey ¨C you want me to harvest paddy? You¡­¡± Harvey said, outraged. The Great Sage squinted his eyes, a dangerous gleam shing in them. ¡°I haven¡¯t slept in five months, ving away to grow these crops. If the crop is spoiled by dew, all my hard work would go in vain. If you let my hard work go to waste, I¡¯ll ensure that you won¡¯t find peace.¡± Harvey shivered and quickly patted his ribs, saying, ¡°No problem, leave it to me. It¡¯s just harvesting paddy, no big deal.¡±
However, just as he finished, heined, ¡°But even if I go harvest, there¡¯s no way I can harvest so much paddy before dewfall. I don¡¯t know magic.¡± ¡°No, Silver Coin assured me that you could. Silver Coin, quicklye here and teach Harvey how to farm. If we¡¯re slow, dew will fall. If the paddy gets moist, it will easily rot. We don¡¯t have the conditions to dry it. If we pile it up for more than a month, I fear it will sprout. We need to quickly harvest it and move it into the cave, where the draft can blow over it.¡± A goblin jogged over, first removing his hat to show respect. ¡°Hello, Sir Harvey.¡± Harvey red at him, ¡°Are you the goblin who said I could harvest the paddy?¡± Silver Coin quickly denied it, ¡°No, no, no, I didn¡¯t say you could harvest paddy. I said only the most powerful skeleton could harvest so much paddy in such a short time. Are you the most powerful skeleton here?¡± Huh? This sounded nice. The most powerful skeleton? Who could that be except me? Patting his ribs, Harvey proudly confirmed, ¡°Yes, I¡¯m the most powerful skeleton here. Tell me, how can I harvest so much paddy in such a short time.¡± ¡°Oh, you see, I once saw a skeleton harvest paddy by wielding the Scythe of Death upside down while bolting across ditches. Do you have a Scythe of Death?¡± Silver Coin asked, a innocent look on his face. If one didn¡¯t know Silver Coin well, one would easily be fooled by his facial expression. Harveyughed, ¡°Not only do I have the Scythe of Death, mine is of Mourning Level.¡± Harvey gestured and a giant scythe appeared in his hand. ¡°How do I hold it? Upside down? Can I let my Golden Skeleton followers do it? They also have the Scythe of Death,¡± Harvey asked. Before Silver Coin could answer, the Great Sage urgently cut in, ¡°Don¡¯t let those idiotic boneheads step into my field! If theye to harvest, more will be trampled than harvested. Let me teach them a thing or two next season, but for this one, you¡¯ll have to help me. Hurry, we¡¯re running out of time.¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn With a sigh of resignation, Harvey ran into the field holding the scythe upside down. Darting forward, he left a trail of fallen paddy behind him. A few wise undead stood dumbfounded beside the field, watching their king dash into the distance, one foot deep, one foot shallow, one foot in water, and another in mud. There was no choice. Although Harvey was a higher level than the Great Sage, the Great Sage was a wise man who managed the entire Land of Fallen. And Harvey only knew how to ughter and sleep. If the Great Sage were to relinquish his responsibilities, the entire Land of Fallen would descend into chaos. Moreover, the Great Sage was vey annoying. If his hard work were to go in vain, Harvey wouldn¡¯t be able to sleep at all the next long night. The Great Sage would grumble and moan and Harvey wouldn¡¯t be able to find where he¡¯s hiding. Compared to that, the image of the king was insignificant. It was not a big deal to harvest. Heck, Harvey wouldn¡¯t mind even nting rice seedlings. Silver Coin said it right. In Harvey¡¯s hand, the Scythe of Death was a powerful harvesting tool. Running like the wind, he didn¡¯t step on a single stalk, yet managed to chop down the crops neatly. The Great Sage directed the stunned golden skeletons standing by the side of the field to gather the crops. While they couldn¡¯t handle the harvesting, they would be perfect for heavy lifting. A group of undead who were initially prepared for war were now being shooed into the fields, one foot in water and one foot in mud. The harvesting process was very fast. Within half an hour, Harvey had finished. There were even more lifters. Just as Harvey finished, they all followed suit, carrying away bundles and bundles of paddy. Chapter 497: 291 Harvey wants to cheat_2 Chapter 497: Chapter 291 Harvey wants to cheat_2
Thousands of skeleton zombies were seen holding bundles of rice,ing to Central Mountain Range, passing them to the mountains, and stuffing them into those ventted mountain caves. Even in eternal night, there was an incessant wind here that would gradually dry all the rice. ¡°What¡¯s going on? You still haven¡¯t told me how you grew so much grain. This much food is enough to feed a few hundred thousand people. Are there that many people here now?¡± Harvey shook the mud from his foot and asked. ¡°Hehe, let Silver coin exin.¡± The Great Sage, looking at the grains in the mountain caves, showed a sense of satisfaction from the bountiful harvest, he was toozy to talk, just staying there andughing foolishly. Harvey turned his gaze to Silver coin, who hurried forward to salute, exining, ¡°The production method here is quite primitive, organizational abilities are weak, workers¡¯ enthusiasm cannot be fully mobilized, and advantages cannot be utilized to increase production efficiency. After I straightened it out, productivity greatly improved.¡±n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Harvey stood there for a while before responding, ¡°I understand each word you said, but I have no idea what you are talking about when they are all together. Can you give me some examples?¡± Silver Coin rubbed his hands and exined, ¡°For example, incentivizing the workers. In the past, people here would nt enough to feed themselves, they never tried to cultivate more fertile fields due to war, grain species, eternal night, and food processing.¡± ¡°So I suggested, give the newly cultivated fields to the tillers. The more they work, the more they get. We provide the grains, are responsible for repurchasing, and help with processing, taking a little service fee and loss.¡± ¡°This way, everyone¡¯s enthusiasm was very high, they were working day and night. Because of the season, many of the newly opened fields were not used. Next nting season, there will be even more gain.¡± Harvey suddenly realized, then asked, ¡°Is grain species the new grain? What does food processing mean?¡± ¡°Oh, yes, those are new grains cultivated by the Master, that can mature in four months, the yield per acre is¡­ uh, hasn¡¯t been calcted yet, but it should be four to five hundred pounds, although it¡¯s a bit less ¡­¡± Before he could finish, he was interrupted by the Great Sage, ¡°Nonsense, an output of four to five hundred pounds per acre, how could that be a little less? The yield of our old grains was only just over a hundred pounds per acre, that¡¯s five times more, how is that less?¡± Silver coin shrunk his neck and muttered, ¡°For Master Ange, it is less if it¡¯s not over a thousand pounds.¡±
Considering the natural conditions on this ne, an output of four to five hundred pounds per acre is quite eptable, so Silver coin did not dwell on this issue and continued to say, ¡°As for food processing, it refers to shelling, grinding, baking, and adding ingredients.¡± ¡°When farmers shell and grind themselves, there is arge waste, and it¡¯s also very time-consuming, sometimes the amount they get after a long time is not even enough for one meal for the whole family. So I suggested using natural wind, water, and bone power to centrally shell and grind, and save them the trouble,¡± Silver coin said. ¡°Bone power?¡± Harvey was startled and confused by the new term, it took him a moment to understand, could it be the skeleton? Bone power? ¡°Is it meaningful to let skeletons grind up and waste, doing freebor for those humans?¡± Harvey asked unpleasantly. ¡°That¡¯s impossible!¡± Silver coin shouted, as if he had been insulted, ¡°I, Silver coin, do things, how could I work for free?! You¡­¡± The Great Sage quickly floated over andforted, pulling back Silver coin, ¡°Don¡¯t be angry, don¡¯t be angry. Harvey doesn¡¯t understand the ways here, don¡¯t quarrel with him.¡± ??? Harvey had a forehead full of question marks, what did he say wrong? Even if he did say something wrong, dared a small goblin to be angry? And the Great Sage is appeasing him? Damn, isn¡¯t he afraid that he¡¯d extract his soul and refine it? Harvey remembered, this goblin does seem to be not afraid of him, he salutes naturally when he meets him, and does not panic when a regr living creature encounters a skeleton. Realizing this, Harvey couldn¡¯t help but ask, ¡°Aren¡¯t you afraid of me?¡± Silver coin was slightly stunned, then said, ¡°Under the protection of my Master, I am not afraid of anyone.¡± Harvey¡¯s eyes lit up, ¡°Are you with the Church of Light? No, you don¡¯t have that annoying aura.¡± The magicians of the Church of Light, soaked in Power of Holy Light for many years, naturally carry an aura that is repugnant to the Undead, which can be smelled from several feet away. ¡°Ah? No, no, I am a witch.¡± Silver coin quickly said. ¡°What? You are a witch?¡± Harvey was shocked, his thought quickly scanned through. In the thought scan of the Mourning Skeleton, the state of Silver coin was revealed. Why didn¡¯t Harvey scan Silver coin¡¯s state at the beginning? Because Silver coin is a man of the Great Sage, the basic courtesy of the Undead Empire is not to scan others with thought, which is the same concept as lifting the skirt of others. However, facing this situation, Harvey didn¡¯t care about it anymore. A witch, why is he so alive? After scanning with his thought, it turned out to be a witch. How strange. ¡°Why are you so alive?¡± Harvey prodded at Silver coin¡¯s flesh, unable to believe what he was seeing. ¡°This is the power of my Master.¡± Silver coin proudly said. ¡°Your god can even make witches alive? Who is your god?¡± Harvey asked. ¡°My Lord, the Undead God.¡± Silver coin said. ¡°Puff¡­¡± Harvey burst intoughter, and the Great Sage standing beside him also couldn¡¯t help butugh. The Undead God was the godhood of the king, but the king himself had a soulwork already, which was a higher form of power than faith, so he didn¡¯t need the Undead Godhood much and let it develop naturally. Chapter 498: 291: Harvey Intends to Cheat_3 Chapter 498: Chapter 291: Harvey Intends to Cheat_3 n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om
The Undead Temple would casually send out a few priests, mostly Silver Skeletons. Just think about it, how would those clueless Silver Skeletons go about gaining followers? Hence, the Undead Godhood has always been rather obscure. But no matter how obscure it is, it still belongs to the King. Who do you think you are, some random nobody who just stumbled in here, daring to call yourself the Undead God? If those extremists from the Church of Light heard you babbling about the Gods of Light, they would tear you apart on the spot. However, Harvey and the Great Sage are not so extreme. They just burst intoughter: ¡°So you are the Undead God? That¡¯s great. Look at my hand. This is the Fire of Mass Faith. If your master is the Undead God, he should know who I am. Please ask him to help me extinguish these mes. If he can do it, then I will believe that he is the Undead God,¡± Harveyughed. The Great Sage also couldn¡¯t help butugh, ¡°My dear Silver Coin, you might not be aware, but the Undead Godhood belongs to the Undead King, our former ruler. You, pretending to be the Undead God, are a fake god who has sneaked into the temple of the real god. I hope you won¡¯t be deceived by him.¡± Silver Coin blinked andughed as well, a glint of gold reflected in his eyes, ¡°Wait a moment, let me ask. By the way, Lord Harvey, if we¡¯re able to help you extinguish the Fire of Mass Faith, what are you willing to give in return?¡± ¡°Well, of course, I¡¯d pledge my allegiance to the Undead God,¡± Harvey replied with augh. Silver Coin chuckled, ¡°Lord Harvey, please, no joking around. Let memunicate with my master first, and meanwhile, you can think about what you can offer.¡± Having said that, Silver Coin went off to one side, closing his eyes to summon Ange. It took a while for Harvey to snap back to reality; how dare Silver Coin talk to him this way and ask him to consider what he can offer as payment? Provoked into thought, Harvey couldn¡¯t help but follow this train of thought. Much to his surprise, he was stunned to realize, was he really this poor? ¡°Great Sage, apart from these bones, I don¡¯t really have anything else to offer,¡± Harvey whispered. The Great Sage scoffed, ¡°Just realizing this now? Even your chair is just chiseled from stone.¡±
Harvey scratched his head, hesitating, ¡°So, what should I do? What can I use as a reward?¡± ¡°Why bother thinking so much? You don¡¯t really believe this so-called Undead God, who just appeared from nowhere, could actually dispel the Fire of Mass Faith, do you? Just y along with him but be careful not to offend Silver Coin, this little goblin has some real talents. I have ns for him.¡± The Great Sage said. Harvey grimaced, ¡°True. Alright then, I¡¯ll offer the Eye of the Soul Thunderbolt that Lord Locke gave me as the reward. He can¡¯t take it away anyway.¡± ¡°You mean the lens of the Eye of Soul Thunderbolt? The Soul Device lodged in your eye socket that can unleash Soul Thunder? You have it?¡± The Great Sage asked in surprise. ¡°Yes.¡± Harvey responded proudly, he dug a lens out of the gap in his bones, and stuck it onto his eye socket: ¡°It¡¯s a lens specialized for us skeletons. Unfortunately, I can¡¯t operate it myself. Lord Locke gave it to me so that I couldmunicate with him. But now it¡¯s useless. No matter how many times I call him, I don¡¯t get any response.¡± The Great Sage sighed, ¡°That thing is so precious. Keep it safe.¡± ¡°I¡¯m not worried, no one can steal it. Let¡¯s see if they can really put out the Fire of Mass Faith,¡± Harvey retorted dismissively. How dare some random stranger casually im to be the Undead God? He¡¯s looking for a beating. If they can¡¯t put out the Fire of Mass Faith, Harvey won¡¯t show any mercy. He¡¯ll dismantle them on the spot and see whether Silver Coin gives up his faith. After Silver Coin finishedmunicating, he walked back over, ¡°Lord Harvey, my master said he can extinguish it. Have you decided what you want to offer as a payment?¡± Harvey pointed at his eye socket, ¡°This.¡± Then, he exined what the lens does. ¡°Oh, then you need to expose the Fire of Mass Faith on your hand, and also, take off the lens.¡± Silver Coin said. Harvey obliged with an attitude of just ying along. Whatever Silver Coin said, he did, just to avoidter usations of not cooperating once they fail. A momentter, a Divine Soul under the charges of Holy Light flew into Silver Coin and, pulling a sack out of Silver Coin¡¯s body, exited. ¡°Holy Light?!¡± Harvey and the Great Sage eximed. The Divine Soul reached out and effortlessly took away the Fire of Mass Faith. Was this the fire which had been burning Harvey for over four months? And it just got taken away by a Divine Soul? Still smiling, the Divine Soul¡¯s hand reached out again, this time aiming for the lens on Harvey¡¯s other hand. ¡°Alright, the Fire of Faith has been extinguished, now I¡¯ll collect my reward.¡± Silver Coin said with an excited look on his face. But just as the Divine Soul¡¯s finger touched the lens, Harvey¡¯s hand suddenly tightened around it. Silver Coin¡¯s face changed instantly, ¡°Lord Harvey, you wouldn¡¯t be thinking about going back on your word, would you?¡± Chapter 499: 292: Awakening of a Divine Technique_1 Chapter 499: Chapter 292: Awakening of a Divine Technique_1
¡°I¡­ I¡­¡± Harvey was so anxious he couldn¡¯t speak. Cheating? Me, the grand Undead King, the Lord of Mourning, the Purple Gold Skeleton, cheating!? ¡°If you¡¯re not cheating, let go; this is now imed by my Lord.¡± Silver Coin jerked hard and yielded no result. ¡°You used the Holy Light, you cheat, yes, you cheat.¡± Harvey suddenly thought of something and hastily spoke.N?v(el)B\\jnn Silver Coin chuckled, his expression as if looking at a fat sheep ready for ughter. ¡°Lord Harvey, you are mistaken. To know whether it¡¯s Holy Light, why not have a touch? Although it¡¯s simr, it doesn¡¯t harm the undead.¡± Silver Coin confidently presented a ball of Holy Light which he ced in front of Harvey to touch. Upon mention of Holy Light, Harvey realized he had blocked his own way by using Silver Coin of cheating¡ªthe same excuse won¡¯t work twice. Without touching, one could tell that it genuinely doesn¡¯t harm the undead. Harveycked the ability to lie boldly, unlike Anthony. Silver Coin said aloud, ¡°And furthermore, even if this is indeed Holy Light, it doesn¡¯t mean I cheated. We only agreed to dispel your Fire of Mass Faith, without specifying the method. Lord Harvey, as your Fire of Mass Faith has been dispelled, please don¡¯t cheat!¡± Silver Coin put an extra emphasis on ¡°cheating,¡± like a hammer hitting Harvey¡¯s heart, causing his grip to loosen subconsciously. Silver Coin exhaled, quickly grabbing the Soul Thunder spectacles and holding them close. Such is the gall of a goblin who would risk everything for money. Just like when he held a sapling from the World Tree, daring to venture alone into the Elf Forest. With facts to back up, he even dared to scold the Lord of Mourning. Of course, Silver Coin was so confident because he had Ange backing him. Even Harvey could not touch his soul, or else how could he dare to confront the undead, for fear of his soul being refined? Secondly, based on the information from the Great Sage, Harvey wasn¡¯t irrational. As long as there were reasons, he wouldn¡¯t squash you to death right away¡ª at least he¡¯d argue before doing so.
Lastly, Silver Coin was not stupid. As a goblin, he sought profit, not causing offence to clients. So he hesitantly proposed, ¡°Seeing that this object holds special meaning to Lord Harvey, I wouldn¡¯t want to snatch such a treasured item from you. How about this: If you could provide something of equivalent value, I¡¯d be more than pleased to exchange it with you.¡± Upon hearing this, Harvey who had been torn between regret and anger was overjoyed. Oh, how he regretted. The Soul Thunder spectacles held great significance to him and should not have been used as a bet. However, he was so poor that he had nothing else to offer. Moreover, he didn¡¯t believe Silver Coin could dispel the Fire of Mass Faith. For five whole months, Harvey was increasingly irritated by the Fire of Mass Faith. Initially, it was just a nuisance, butter, it kept waking him up. Throughout the process, Harvey tried every mean he could think of to get rid of it, even attempting to reduce its size, but to no avail. All he could do was to watch it grow stronger. Could an imposter of the Undead God do what even he and the Great Sage couldn¡¯t? He didn¡¯t believe, so he dared to bet the spectacles. Who could have guessed, the Fire of Mass Faith that had caught him off guard disappeared with a casual swipe by a Divine Soul, without even showing its face. He realized that he had underestimated the other gods. However, it wasn¡¯t easy to go back on his word. While he was reluctant to hand over the spectacles, the Lord of Mourning had to keep his promise. It seemed like two little people, one named ¡°promise keeper¡± and the other ¡°oath breaker,¡± were arguing in his head. One persuaded him to honour his promise while the other insisted on squashing the goblin. In midst of this struggle and regret, Silver Coin¡¯s words acted as soothing hands, instantly silencing the two little people, bringing tranquility to his soul and saved him from making a shameful move. ¡°Alright, alright, I¡¯ll exchange something of equivalent value, wait a moment, wait for me.¡± Harvey pondered hard, where could he find something of equivalent value to the Soul Thunder spectacles? Silver Coin smilingly said, ¡°Lord Harvey, you are indeed a man of your word. You can hold onto the spectacles for now, and present the equivalent itemter.¡± Harvey felt a refreshing breeze, Silver Coin¡¯s words were tooforting. An honorable soul, wasn¡¯t that what Harvey was? Because of these words, Harvey couldn¡¯t bring himself to break his promise. Further boosted by joy of regaining his prized spectacles, Harvey was in high spirits,pletely forgetting he was scolded by Silver Coin just moments ago and was focused on finding an item of equivalent value. From the side, the Great Sage wiped the nonexistent cold sweat off his forehead and secretly gave Silver Coin a thumbs up: ¡°I thought you really wanted the Soul Thunder spectacles. Although with Harvey¡¯s personality, he would genuinely give it to you, he would also bear a grudge against you. He would find a way to destroy your entity and snatch the item back, considering how significant it is to him.¡± Silver Coin chuckled lightly, how could he ever do such a foolish thing? Ange¡¯s Intent has already been projected onto him, along with Negris¡¯. As soon as the Soul Thunder spectacles were out, Negris would know what they were. Chapter 500: 292: Awakened a Divine Technique_2 Chapter 500: Chapter 292: Awakened a Divine Technique_2
This is a kind of Soul Device that can be attached to a skeleton¡¯s eye socket, enhancing the outward intensity of Soul Energy, and increasing the skeleton¡¯s perception range. Under the stimtion of a powerful soul, this release of Soul Energy could form an attack wave like thunder, hence it is called Soul Thunder. It is part of Steadfast Locke¡¯s equipment. There are two of them, Harvey only brought out one, the other one is probably still on Locke. Because it is a Soul Device, it can be brought into the soul, so we didn¡¯t see the other one on Locke¡¯s skeleton. It may have disappeared forever along with Locke¡¯s soul disintegration. This Soul Device that enhances perception, one can¡¯t say it¡¯s useless, but it doesn¡¯t have much effect, no value, and can¡¯t be used for growing crops. To offend Harvey for something that Ange is not interested in and also has no value, remembering his grudge? No way is Silver Coin that stupid. Now, after a round of preen and posture, not only did Silver Coin win Harvey¡¯s favor, but it will also obtain something of value that is not less than Soul Thunder lens. Moreover, it also got a piece of Fire of Mass Faith, achieving three results in one stroke, killing three birds with one stone.n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Having seen through his operation, Negris had to exim, ¡°What a con!¡± ¡°I¡¯ve thought of it, this, your god should be interested in it, a wonder¡ªthe Rainbow Door, wait for me a while.¡± After saying that, Harvey ran out of sight. About ten minutester, Harvey ran back, carrying two huge stone pirs, one in each hand. Both stone pirs are one meter in diameter and five meters high, muchrger than Harvey, but he carries them on his shoulders as if they weigh nothing, running back hurriedly like this. ¡°This, Rainbow Door, is worth much more than my broken lens.¡± To promote the Rainbow Door, Harvey spared no effort to describe his Soul Thunder as a ¡®broken lens¡¯. ¡°Your god should need to spread faith, right? Building wonders is the easiest way to touch people¡¯s hearts. Those guys from the Church of Light just made some tricky things to fool people, but the effect is not bad, look.¡± Harvey said, and drove the two stone pirs into the ground.
The Great Sage concentrated his Magic Power, the two one-meter-thick, five-meter-high stone pirs suddenly turned into a giant stone pir that reached a hundred meters high, scaring Silver Coin so much that he fell straight on his butt. Seeing this, Harvey burst outughing: ¡°Haha, shocking, right? A giant stone pir, a hundred meters tall, on the left and right, form the Rainbow Door, but it¡¯s actually fake, an Illusion Technique, you can feel it.¡± Silver Coin ran over and touched it, touching absolutely nothing, it was indeed fake. ¡°It will spray the water on the ground into the air to form mist. When sunlight shines on the mist, it will form a rainbow, so it¡¯s called the Rainbow Door. It¡¯s a pity it¡¯s eternal night now, there is no sunlight, otherwise I would have shown it to you. How about it? Its value should make up for my broken lens, right?¡± Harvey went on and on. Rarely do you see a Mourning Skeleton who is toozy to talk, being forced into acting like a pushy Minotaurdy salesman. Silver Coin looked ufortable: ¡°If it were a real wonder, it would be fine, but this is just an Illusion Technique gadget. Let¡¯s forget about it. Although extinguishing the Fire of Mass Faith has consumed a lot of energy from my Lord, who asked you to be Lord Harvey.¡± Harvey¡¯s heart warmed, and Silver Coin didn¡¯t have to say it, he almost forgot that the other party hade to save him. Dispelling his Fire of Mass Faith, this should have been something that he should thank the other party properly for, and he was trying to fob off with an Illusion Technique gadget, it was too embarrassing, it greatly undermined his identity as a Mourning Lord. But thinking about it, Harvey felt that, well, this face is still not enough, because he really couldn¡¯te up with anything else of value, the most valuable thing on him is probably his bones now. Realizing that Harvey might have squeezed out all he could, Silver Coin said: ¡°Lord Harvey, please help me put them inside.¡± he said, while opening his Space Artifact. A stone pir one meter thick and five meters long, even ten silver coins could not lift it, the only one who could easily carry it was Harvey. Carrying the stone pir, Harvey hesitated and asked: ¡°Can your Space Artifact fit such a big thing? What rank is it? It can amodate so much?¡± ¡°Yes, this is a Space Artifact made by my Lord, with a diameter of six meters, just enough to fit, any bigger won¡¯t work.¡± Silver Coin replied. With Star Realm Spatial Stone, Space Magic Instructor, Dimension Beast, and Ange¡¯s extremely high-precision control technique, creating such arge Space Artifact is not particrly difficult. Harvey was half-believing until he stuffed the two stone pirs into the space, he had to believe that Silver Coin indeed had arge space with a diameter of six meters. This is considered a superrge Space Artifact, in terms of value, it may be more expensive than his Soul Thunder lens. ¡°Your god can create such arge space artifact? Are you selling it? My space artifact isn¡¯t that big.¡± Harvey asked. ¡°If the price is right, of course I can sell it.¡± The silver coin said while taking off a ring from his hand, ¡°Here¡¯s a new one with a seven-meter diameter space inside. What price are you willing to offer?¡± Harvey fell silent. Once again, he was reminded of his poverty. He never needed to eat or drink before and had nothing to buy, so he had no idea what money was for. Alright, now silver coin has repeatedly made him realize the true meaning of poverty in just an hour. What else of value could I take out? Harvey scratched his chin and pondered deeply. ¡­ In Ange¡¯s heart, Negrisined, ¡°Why did you agree so quickly? It¡¯s just two illusion artifacts. They¡¯re not worth anything.¡± ¡°They can water things.¡± Ange replied. ¡°What? Water things?¡± thought Negris, questioning his own hearing. ¡°Water mist, for watering.¡± Ange insisted. ¡°¡­ I see. You n to spray water into the sky to form a mist that will then fall evenly, covering arge area. Where do you n to ce it?¡± ¡°Goddess of Beauty City.¡± ¡°That¡¯s great! ce it on either side of the river outside the city. When the guestse by boat, they will see two monumental stone pirs in the distance. Then, the water mist will spray out, reflecting a rainbow under the sunlight. The boat passing under the rainbow will be a spectacr sight. Combined with various miracles of the Goddess of Beauty, these guests will easily be die-hard believers of the goddess.¡± Negris analysed silently and finally roared: ¡°Such a perfect setup, and you only want to use the two pirs for watering nts! You¡¯re killing me!¡± Ange tilted his head, looking confused. The Rainbow Door was soon set up outside the Goddess of Beauty City, on both banks of the river. When daytimees and boats pass by, the stone pirs spray out water mist. Under the sunshine, a rainbow arches across both banks of the river, creating a beautiful sight. Only Ange felt it was a waste because he originally wanted to ce it on the waterless wastnd behind the Goddess of Beauty City. There was nock of water on the river banks. Unfortunately, he couldn¡¯t dissuade Negris, and it ended up on both banks of the river. However, after setting up the Rainbow Door, Ange realized that the Fire of Mass Faith belonging to the Goddess of Beauty grew incredibly fast, as if the faith in the Goddess of Beauty finally found a direction, swiftly gathering at the Fire of Mass Faith of the goddess. And thus, silently, the Divine Fire of the Goddess of Beauty was lit. When the Divine Fire was lit, Ange was in the Light Sea ne. A series of bubbles began to emerge in a corner of the sea. Not long after, the Goddess of Redemption¡¯s head surfaced, looking confusedly into the distance. ¡°Again? Who ignited the Divine Fire this time? Has attaining godhood be this easy now? Should we try to seize it?¡± After hesitating for a while, the Goddess of Redemption gave up on the idea. ¡°Never mind, it¡¯ll be troublesome if we encounter the Undead God again.¡± ¡­ Looking at Ange¡¯s Divine Fire of the Goddess of Beauty, Negris also murmured the same words, ¡°Kvada, has godhood be this easy now? He genuinely has three Godhood now.¡± To ignite the Divine Fire is to truly possess Godhood. Now, Ange indeed possesses the Godhood of the Undead God, God of Farming, and Goddess of Beauty, making him a bona fide Trinity God. ¡°Four, the God of Knowledge.¡± Ange interjected. ¡°Uh, yes, four, almost forgot. But what¡¯s the use of having four godhoods? Apart from the Undead Godhood awakening an Instant Death Halo, you don¡¯t have any divine techniques. What about the Godhood of the Goddess of Beauty? Has it allowed you to awaken any divine techniques? You can¡¯t call it Godhood if there are no divine techniques. Back in my day¡­¡± Just as Negris was boasting about his heroic past, Ange said, ¡°I¡¯ve awakened a Divine Technique.¡± PS: What kind of divine technique of the Goddess of Beauty would be grandiose, fit the character, and be suitable for farming? Chapter 501: 293 Broken Ugliness_1 Chapter 501: Chapter 293 Broken Ugliness_1
Located on a hillside south of Goddess of Beauty City is a cemetery, where the environment is beautiful, the scenery is remarkable, and the view is pleasant. From the hillside, one can overlook the entirety of Goddess of Beauty City.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om The hillside is clean and dry, open to the north and south, with rows of tombs hidden away in the low shrubs. When the wind blows from the north to the south, a fresh corpse can dry out in just a few days. Not only is this a cemetery, but it¡¯s also home to Undead creatures. The Skeleton Zombies, who work nearby, prefer to return here to rest after their early morning shift has ended, avoiding the sunlight to refine their souls and taking baths along the way. The Skeleton Zombies of Goddess of Beauty City are the most immacte corpses in all the dimensions, so much so that they could even be ced in a room. Just as dawn was breaking, Xi arrived at the cemetery entrance with clean deer hide cloths and linen in hand, stepping on an oil brush of sheepskin and waiting for the returning Undead creatures. Xi is an odd name, unlike any normal human name, mainly because it isn¡¯t really a name, but a nickname given to her by others that eventually stuck, so much so that even Xi doesn¡¯t know what it means. But she knows that whenever she hears the sound of her name, they are calling her. However, there usually aren¡¯t many people who would voluntarily seek her out. They would only call her by name just to bully her. But as she aged and her appearance became increasingly hideous, even the ones willing to bully her were gone. Upon seeing her, both young and grown up will flee. The adults were subtle about it and would quicken their pace while the children would let out a shriek and turn tail at once. Whenever she scared off some kids, she¡¯d often get beaten with a bat, which would have her running off cupping her head. Let¡¯s see just how hideous she is. Her face is crooked, with her right cheek higher than the left, which results in her eyes not being parallel. This asymmetry also applies to her forehead and mouth, making it difficult to find any symmetrical elements on her face. And, this has also led to her dental malformation and a leak in her lips. Apart from her ugly face, she has rough skin,rge pores, swollen joints, long hands and short feet. From a distance, she looks like the franken-creatures of lore, truly frightening for anyone whoys eyes on her.
On that hideous face, the only attractive feature might be her clear eyes. From a distance, several silhouettes were seen moving stiffly and slowly in the early dawn, soon reaching the entrance of the cemetery. Seeing these ¡®people¡¯, Xi revealed a smile; these were the only ¡®people¡¯ who wouldn¡¯t strike her upon seeing her smile. ¡°Morning,¡± Xi warmly greeted a skeleton that shuffled up in front of her. She didn¡¯t care whether the skeleton would understand or not, and then stomped on the air pump beneath her feet. Connected to the pump was arge leather bag, mped by two pieces of wood. With a stomp, all the air inside was squeezed out. Xi took a flexible tube, aimed the front of it at the skeleton¡¯s bones, and sprayed the high-speed pumped out air onto the bones. The soil, grass seeds, moisture, and dirt lodged in the joints, gaps and cavities were blown away by the high-pressure air. Seeing each dirty skeleton be clean under her hand, Xi¡¯s entire face was stretched into a smile, making her look even uglier. But that¡¯s okay. The skeleton zombies in front of her won¡¯t ridicule or hit her, instead, they will just walk silently into the cemetery. Xi didn¡¯t mind, this was her favorite job. She continued to spray air onto the second skeleton, then the third, until a zombie reced the skeleton. Cleaning a zombie was much more troublesome than cleaning a skeleton. She had to blow the stains and moisture off their body, brush off the stubborn filth, dry them with the deer hide cloth, then apply sheep oil, rub it in until the oil permeates their skin, then dry them again. The whole process was simr to leather maintenance. The cleaning of one zombie was more troublesome than cleaning ten skeletons, but Xi didn¡¯t care. She carefully cleaned each one, and each zombie or skeleton that came before her was enthusiastically greeted: ¡°Morning.¡± All of a sudden, a zombie let out a groan, ¡°Hur¡ª¡ª¡± Xi looked up, pleasantly eximing, ¡°Ah, it¡¯s you, Red Trousers, good morning. What kind of work were you doingst night?¡± The clothing on this zombie happened to reveal a piece of red trousers, hence it was called Red Trousers due to this characteristic. ¡°Hur¡ª¡ª¡± the zombie responded. Of course, Xi wouldn¡¯t be able to understand what was beingmunicated through a groan, but she could gather plenty of information from the body of the zombie. From the leftover grains of rice on the body, she inferred: ¡°You must have gone to separate rice grains. There¡¯s no mud on the bones of your feet, so it¡¯s not like you worked in a field.¡± Zombies fear water, and they wouldn¡¯t work on a field, but they can winnow rice, sun it out, and even carry huge bags. They have more physical strength than skeletons and they don¡¯t wear out easily. After half a day of busy work, Xi finally finished cleaning all the skeletons and zombies. She returned to her little hut, took out a piece of hard bread, toasted it over a charcoal fire to make it softer, and then carefully took a bite. A contented and satisfied expression adorned her face. Beforeing to Goddess of Beauty City, she had never been well fed, let alone eat a loaf of bread made of pure grains. Having a few mildewy pieces of ck bread was seen as a luxury. That ck bread, even after being toasted, was as hard as a rock and contained stones, debris, and other hard substances. If you weren¡¯t careful, you could break a tooth or cut your lips. Beforeing to Goddess of Beauty City, Xi didn¡¯t even know that bread could be without stones. Even now, she is careful when chewing her bread because of her past experiences. There were some sounds from outside the cemetery. Xi quickly pulled up her hood to cover her face, leaving only her eyes exposed. She sneaked out of her hut and hid in the bushes for further examination. Chapter 502: 293 Broken Ugliness_2 Chapter 502: Chapter 293 Broken Ugliness_2
In the distance, a group of people were walking up the hill. Leading the way, Lisa called out, ¡°Xi,e out.¡± If someone else had called her, Xi would not havee out, but Lisa was the exception. The only person in Xi¡¯s life who did not mock, hit, or scold her for her appearance, even tried to cure and beautify her. Xi¡¯s right hand had been broken. As a child, someone had kicked her, and she blocked it, breaking her wrist. Without money for treatment, her wrist had healed crookedly. After arriving in Goddess of Beauty City, Lisa broke Xi¡¯s wrist again to re-treat it, finally fixing her crooked right hand. Lisa tried to beautify her too, but the omnipotent Face Purification Technique had no effect on Xi. Instead, it seemed to make her even uglier.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om At the time, a pharmacist named Sava had said, ¡°Your ugliness is congenital. The more you try to treat it, the worse it gets. You can only maintain your current appearance now.¡± Xi nodded, no longer having any other thoughts. Later, Lisa arranged for her to stay here, where, no matter how ugly she was, the Skeleton Zombies wouldn¡¯t reject her, so Xi was very happy. Now Lisa and a group of people came to her. Although scared, Xi came out timidly. ¡°I¡¯ve seen you a long time ago. Come over, take off your hood, and let the adults see you.¡± Lisa said with a smile, she couldn¡¯t hide in the grass, or even under the dirt, Lisa had discovered her long ago. Xi cautiously squinted at the people around Lisa. The one at the front was an astonishing flying Bronze Dragon. Although she kept her guard up when it came to humans, she didn¡¯t feel the same towards the dragon. Curious, she nced over, and timidly lifted her hood. Negris, startled, looked at the face under the hood: ¡°This¡­ this is too¡­ how did she grow up like this? Didn¡¯t you ever do a beauty treatment on her?¡±
Although Negris was a Bronze Dragon, his aesthetics were normal. An asymmetric face like this would not be considered beautiful, and would likely be considered ugly even among half-beasts. Rather than not mentioning it, as soon as it was brought up Lisa felt like crying: ¡°How could I not have? I nearly changed her face.¡± Lisa said: ¡°Although the standards of beauty vary, some people think short hair and wide lips are beautiful, some people think high noses and deep eyes are beautiful, but as long as it¡¯s healthy, regardless of what it looks like, everyone can have their own beauty.¡± ¡°Purple Corpse, with such a big body and back muscles wider than Titan males, when she is training, a bunch of fitness enthusiasts are drooling and watching. If it weren¡¯t for the huge size difference, they are all ready to pursue Purple Corpse.¡± Thinking about the over three meters tall, veryrge figure of Purple Corpse, who could carry Lightning like a small horse and knead it in her arms, Negris shuddered at the thought of her pursued by a crowd of men with flowers, quickly shaking his head to get rid of the image. ¡°In my perception, the healthy ones are beautiful. But in the case of Xi, the healthier she is, the uglier she looks. The better the nutrition, the more conspicuous the ugliness.¡± ¡°For a while, I even sent her meat and sweets, and her face was oily, and e emerged. She was so ugly that it was a bit scary. Later, I didn¡¯t send her any, and her condition was better when she was gnawing on bread.¡± Lisa said regretfully. Sava raised his hand and said: ¡°I went back to look at the data and found that this situation is congenital and gets worse with age. The older the people are, the uglier they be. Many people do not live passed ten. I guess there¡¯s something in her body that produces an ¡®Ugly Element¡¯. The healthier she is, the more ¡®Ugly Elements¡¯ are produced and the situation is more serious.¡± ¡°Is there a potion that can cure it?¡± Negris asked. Sava shook his head: ¡°No.¡± Negris then turned to Ange and said: ¡°Alright, we found the person you wanted. The Goddess of Beauty can¡¯t cure her, and potions don¡¯t work either, it¡¯s time to use your Divine Technique.¡± Ange nodded, extending his hand towards Xi and made a grabbing motion in the air. Xi felt her body stiffen instantly and she couldn¡¯t move. From her body, an ugly phantom was ¡®grabbed¡¯ out by Ange. Without the cover of clothing, her ugliness was more apparent from the phantom. Her limbs were disproportionately shaped, her joints swollen, and some parts were bent, looking really unsightly. Ange made a few gestures towards the phantom, suddenly asking, ¡°What is Beauty?¡± At his words, everyone around broke into a cold sweat. ¡°You are the Goddess of Beauty, and yet you¡¯re asking what beauty is¡­¡± Negris said helplessly. Quickly, Lisa interjected: ¡°If it¡¯s a girl, like me, like Sava, like Katie, we are all beautiful, we more or less conform to a woman¡¯s aesthetics. But Purple Corpse is also beautiful in her own might. However, a Skeleton Zombie is not beautiful on a girl, while your golden skeleton may be very powerful, it doesn¡¯t conform to the aesthetics of a woman.¡± ¡°Oh,¡± Ange nodded, signifying understanding. His loosely clenched hand squeezed a few times, the phantom continuously changing, until it seemed like certain things were fixed in ce. Ange cocked back his other fist and hit the phantom, shattering it. Xi shook and sat down on the ground. One second, two seconds, three¡­ two minutester, everyone looked at each other: ¡°Is that it? There¡¯s no change at all.¡± ¡°Wasn¡¯t that supposed to be a Divine Technique?¡± Everyone was confused, whispering among themselves. Xi, who had fallen and gotten back up, looked the same. There was no visible change at all. Chapter 503: 293 Broken Ugliness_3 Chapter 503: Chapter 293 Broken Ugliness_3
¡°What¡¯s going on? Wasn¡¯t it a Divine Technique? Why isn¡¯t there any change?¡± Negris asked. Ange dumped a pile of food in front of Xi and stomped her foot energetically. It wasn¡¯t that there were no changes, but that the changes needed time to show. If it was just the power of the Goddess of Beauty, it might take several months for such changes to appear. Thankfully, Ange also had the Instant Death Halo. Under the aura of the halo, Xi quickly felt hungry, grabbing the food before her and munching away. As she munched, she felt her teeth fall out. With some force, she spat out a bunch of misshapen, broken teeth. How could this be? Subconsciously, Xi prodded her gums with her tongue, discovering new teeth had already grown. As she continued munching, Xi found her finger joints significantly smaller, her skin much softer too. She felt an unprecedented sense of rxation course through her body, like every shackle that had bounded her was broken one by one. Because there was no mirror, Xi herself didn¡¯t notice awe-inspiring physical changes. However, the onlookers were in utter shock, their eyes widening as they saw a hideous, almost beast-like figure morph into an extraordinarily beautiful woman right before their eyes, visible to the naked eye. This woman bore some resemnce to Lisa, delicate and luscious, slightly resembled Sava, tall and pure, and even had a bit of Katie, gentle yet passionate¡­ ¡°Kvada, Ange, did you reallybine the best features of these three into one?¡± Negris asked in disbelief.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Oh my God, sir, what kind of fist is this? Can you give me a punch? I¡¯ve always thought I¡¯m too short.¡± Lisa excitedly asked. ¡°Sir, sir, give me a punch, I feel I¡¯m too t,¡± Sava clung to Ange¡¯s arm, pleading with sparkling eyes. ¡°Sir, sir¡­¡± Ange shook his head, ¡°Ten times the soul me, and the power of the Goddess of Beauty.¡±
¡°Ten times Soul me? Is it the soul me of the Instant Death Halo times ten? And what is the power of the Goddess of Beauty?¡± Negris asked while driving away the almost-crazed women. Ange unveiled the statue of the Goddess of Beauty briefly, ¡°Its power, can be used two more times.¡± ¡°The power of the Goddess of Beauty¡¯s Statue? Can still be used two more times? Can it recover?¡± Negris asked. Ange nodded but added, ¡°Slow.¡± ¡°Then don¡¯t waste it. Don¡¯t worry about those people, just keep the Power of the Goddess of Beauty, and by the way, what¡¯s the name of this Divine Technique?¡± Since this Divine Technique required the special Power of the Goddess of Beauty, it couldn¡¯t be used casually. Ange tilted his head, thinking about a name. ¡°Sir,¡± Sava, who had been pushed to the side, raised her hand, ¡°The phantom you grabbed just now represents ugliness. How about calling it Ugly Breaking Fist?¡± ¡°Break your head.¡± Negris flew over and pped her on the head, ¡°How¡¯s your homework? I haven¡¯t felt any new knowledge entering the database recently. Have you been cking off? If you continue this way, I can cut your funding.¡± Sava immediately wore a sullen look, ¡°If you want new knowledge input, why don¡¯t you study by yourself?¡± ¡°You¡¯re the only believer of the God of Knowledge, who will study if you don¡¯t? Get going.¡± Negris shooed away Sava, who was sure she¡¯d receive a handful of assignments for suggesting a name, had she known, she would have kept her mouth shut. After shooing away the onlookers begging for a punch, Negris expressed his disappointment, ¡°What a pity, such a beauty enhancing Divine Technique has no real meaning, it¡¯s not as useful as your Instant Death Halo, and not fit for battle. You can¡¯t just punch an enemy and make them more beautiful, right?¡± Ange tilted his head in thought, ¡°It can be done like this.¡± Baffled, Negris withdrew his mind back in the Resting Pce, following the lone hand of Ange, and flew over to the farm. Ange reached into a bunch of rice in the field and pulled out a shadow image of rice stalks, and struck a punch on it. ¡°Huh! This Goddess of Beauty Fist can be used on nts too? What did you break?¡± Negris asked in shock. ¡°Short,¡± Ange replied. It took a while for Negris toprehend Ange¡¯s meaning: ¡°You mean, you considered ¡®Short¡¯ as ¡®ugliness¡¯, and you broke it? Can the nt grow tall then?¡± Ange nodded. ¡°This is a Divine Technique, indeed! This isn¡¯t for beauty enhancement; it can change the inherent shorings in species. This is a Divine Technique!¡± Negris¡¯s body trembled with excitement. Ange didn¡¯t understand why he was so moved. Ignoring him, Ange continued telekically elerated the growth of the ¡°shortness¡±-shattered rice nt. Very quickly, the crop that was originally 1.2 meters tall grew to about 2.3 meters high, taller than a person. It was no longer rice; it had be a rice tree. The rice spikes it yielded were unprecedentedlyrge; their production was heavier, at least 70 percent higher than when it was lower. Negris, who had been excitedly trembling alone for quite some time, flew over and asked, ¡°Ange, you still have one more use of Goddess of Beauty Fist, right?¡± Ange nodded, thinking about which ¡®ugliness¡¯ of the rice nt he¡¯d use hisst Goddess of Beauty Fist on. Without looking at his expression, Negris instinctively knew what he was pondering, and hastily asked, ¡°Based on the current speed, how long does it take to recover once?¡± Ange calcted the recovery speed of the power of the Goddess of Beauty and said, ¡°Two months.¡± ¡°That¡¯s too long. Ange, can you leave thisst Goddess of Beauty Fist for me?¡± Negris earnestly asked. ¡°You¡¯re a corpse dragon, it can¡¯t be used on you,¡± Ange shook his head. ¡°Not for me.¡± Chapter 504: 294 Demon Crystal Cannon Bombards the City_1 Chapter 504: Chapter 294 Demon Crystal Cannon Bombards the City_1
¡°Aooo!¡± White Neck, not used to being controlled, tried to struggle, only for Little Angel to jump up and p him on the forehead. ¡°Aoo!¡± Little Angel roared at it. ¡°Aoo¡­¡± White Neck whined pitifully. Ange held onto White Neck¡¯s phantom, kneading it for a while until he abruptly asked, ¡°How should I pound it?¡± Negris replied, ¡°The problem is with hatching. Some juvenile dragons have developed consciousness while still inside the egg and canmunicate with their parents. But due to difficulties hatching, they end up dying. It¡¯s heart-wrenching. It¡¯s an error, see if you can modify it. Make it so the young dragon¡¯s nerves don¡¯t connect to the eggshell. That way, even if the hatching is problematic, they could still break the shell.¡± Ange gestured for a while, but did not take action. Instead, he released his control over White Neck, saying, ¡°I don¡¯t know where I should pound, bring me an unhatched egg.¡± ¡°So you mean, you can¡¯t fix this defect through White Neck? Because you don¡¯t know what causes the difficulty in hatching, you need a stuck egg?¡± Negris tranted his remark. Ange nodded. ¡°Alright then, White Neck, call out to Brooks.¡± Negris instructed. White Neck shook its head, ¡°Aoo!¡± ¡°Kvada! I taught you to speak Dragon Language, and all you can do is ¡®Aoo¡¯? You can¡¯t even speak properly!¡± Negris grumbled in frustration. In truth, White Neck did understand Dragon Language, but it didn¡¯t use it very often and couldn¡¯t expressplex concepts using its bloodline¡¯s call. Having no choice, they sought out Naeli, who contacted Brooks. Brooks replied, ¡°We do have a few, but they¡¯re not stable. If they¡¯re moved carelessly, they¡¯ll die. Why don¡¯t you and Lord Angee over to Dragon Ind? I¡¯ll meet you near the coast, how about that?¡±
¡­ Rex was an ind about four or five kilometres away from the maind. You could see the opposite shore from here. This was the closest human city with a teleportation array to Dragon Ind. Ange walked out of the teleportation array with Little Angel, Little Zombie, Lightning, a big cat, and Luther in tow. Teleportation arrays charge both ways. Ange didn¡¯t have to pay anything to use his own teleportation array to teleport from Goddess of Beauty City, but he had to pay a fee on the receiving end. Receiving end consumes less energy, each person only had to pay a standard fee of five gold coins, or half a demon crystal. The amount of energy consumed by the teleporting end wasn¡¯t fixed. It was usually two or three demon crystals. If it was an internar teleport, ten or even twenty demon crystals could be required. The transaction between Light Sea ne and Anthony that involved exchanging food for poption cost Anthony two million demon crystals. This meant that for the fifteen thousand tons of food, Anthony paid twelve times the normal price. However, nobody was dissatisfied with this transaction. Due to the food shortages, food prices going up by seven to eight times was normal. Being able to buy food was already a great thing¡­ Luther grumbled, ¡°Isn¡¯t it half a crystal per person? Why is it five now?¡± ¡°You have a horse, and a horse counts as six people.¡± The cashier exined. Luther red at Lightning, dutifully handed over five demon crystals, andined, ¡°You¡¯re really expensive.¡± Lightning red back to the cashier and said, ¡°You are the horse. Your whole family are horses.¡± Once the group was a distance away, the cashier finally realized, ¡°That horse¡­ can talk? Am I hallucinating? But¡­its cap looks pretty good, where did they buy it?¡± Having left the teleportation array¡¯s area, Ange and his group entered a bustling world. After arriving in the human world, Ange had mostly stayed in the desert, hardly visiting any human cities. But even the cities he had visited weren¡¯t as crowded as Drake. This ce was simply packed, as far as the eye could see there were people. Drake was a very prosperous trade hub. Merchants, sailors, pirates, mercenaries, all sorts of people came here, some even from as far as the Republic of Steris. Goddess of Beauty City was only a half desert away from the Republic of Steris, but if you wanted toe here by sea, you would have to travel half the continent, a journey amounting to over ten thousand kilometers. If it weren¡¯t for magic and spatial storage artifacts, sea ships would never be able toplete such a long-distance voyage. The crew would all die of strange diseases on the way. Because of all the people gathering here, there were people in all sorts of attire. There were those who wore robes from head to toe, some who only hung a few pieces of cloth on their bodies and barefoot pirates. Of course, anyone with sharp eyes could tell that they were pirates, but they would never admit to it unless they bumped into them out at sea. The city was also abundant with thieves. Luther reached back and immediately caught a small wrist. He had caught a would-be thief trying to steal his spatial storage bag. The thief shed an embarrassed smile when he realized not only Luther but also Ange, Little Angel, and even the horse and the fur hat on the horse¡¯s head were looking at him. They had all noticed his attempted theft.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Chapter 505: 294: Magic Crystal Cannon Bombards the City_2 Chapter 505: Chapter 294: Magic Crystal Cannon Bombards the City_2
It doesn¡¯t make sense! As a distinguished Spring Noodle Hands, my movements are as fast as lightning, as flexible as a rope, and as swift as the wind. Even a Great Swordsman would find it hard to keep up with my movements. Could it be, all these people possess the sharp perception of a Sword Saint? ¡°Kid, what are you nning to do?¡± Luther asked, a little surprised yet also somewhat excited. A thief! In his life, he had never encountered a thief, let alone one bold enough to steal from him. My god, this was thrilling! ¡°Sorry, sorry, I just wanted to steal something. I messed up, my apologies. Can you let me go?¡± the thief said with a smile, although there was no sign of remorse on his face. Luther was puzzled. ¡°Letting you go just like that? Aren¡¯t you a thief? Why should I let you go? Shouldn¡¯t I take you to the sheriff?¡± The thiefughed. ¡°The sheriff? I know him, and I often get to meet him, but if you don¡¯t let me go now, you¡¯ll never see him.¡±n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om Instantly, Luther noticed that several strangers had casually gathered around them. He couldn¡¯t help butugh and squeezed with his hand. With a heartbreaking scream from the thief, Luther had turned his wrist into a real noodle, with the bones inside probably crushed into powder. ¡°Great, not going to see the sheriff? Then I can handle this myself.¡± Luther sneered, grabbed the thief¡¯s other hand, and gave another squeeze. Now the thief had two real noodle hands. Not only did Luther take action, but he also did so viciously. He relied purely on brute strength and showed no sign of energy radiating from him. To others, it looked like he had merely pinched the thief a couple of times. Why not use his energy? Of course, he was afraid to scare others. Several strangers who approached them quickly changed their expressions, reached into their clothes, drew out sharp spikes, and began to circle around them. Without any defenses, if these people were to stab them with the spikes, most would not be able to withstand the attack. A brawny man with bulging muscles appeared behind Luther and stabbed with his spike.
A soft little fist whacked the outside of his thigh. Little Angel¡¯s height only allowed striking at that level without jumping. It didn¡¯t matter where the punchnded. The brawny man cried out in pain, as if pped by a massive bear. Amidst the sound of cracking bones, he went flying through the air. He collided with a nearby stand, knocking over a table and smashing through a mud wall. He ended up lodged in a hole, unconscious and silent. Little Angel was excited and raised her fist, screaming triumphantly. Even after receiving help from Little Angel, Luther didn¡¯t feel ted. He shouted like a bigger kid whose toy was stolen, ¡°No help needed, I got this¡­¡± Before he could finish his sentence, another figure collided with a man who was approaching. The guy was sent flying. A quick nce was enough to identify this figure as Little Zombie. Instead of attracting attention by armorizing, Little Zombie simply used his tough, resilient flesh, charging like a tank. Luther didn¡¯t dare to continue speaking. One more word, and he would lose all of his hair. After a messy brawl, Luther, Little Angel, and Little Zombie, using their clumsy methods, managed to take down seven or eight gangs of thieves. Despite holding back a lot, with three of them taking on seven or eight gangs, holding back was of no use. At the end, Luther didn¡¯t even need to muster up any effort. He just allowed the opponents to strike his soft and weak body. The thrill stimted them into thinking they could win, and they brawled for several minutes. By the time they were too exhausted to lift their arms, Luther finally brought them down. It was pitiful! It was like they were forced into this. As someone who just wanted to live a quiet life, it was truly difficult to find a fight with their Lord Ange. Their brawl attracted everyone¡¯s attention. Unlike in other ces where people would flee, the people here seemed to be enjoying the spectacle. They made an arena by forming arge circle and watched enthusiastically as they munched on snacks. ¡°Oh my, they are struggling to deal with a few thieves. These outsiders are in trouble now.¡± ¡°Those thieves must be from the Noodle Brothers Association, right? I heard that the president of the Noodle Brothers Association has connections with the Canglong Pirates?¡± ¡°Let me tell you a secret. The leader of the Canglong Pirate Group is the younger brother of the president of the Noodle Brothers Association. They aid each other in their work, one robbing in the sea while the other deals in illegal goods on the ind.¡± ¡°Really? So what¡¯s with these thieves?¡± ¡°It¡¯s all part of the illegal trading. What¡¯s the difference between the stolen and the robbed? So, they support more thieves to earn some extra cash.¡± ¡°Doesn¡¯t the sheriff care?¡± ¡°Of course, they care! If someone catches a thief, they will step in, initially arresting you and verifying your identity. If you¡¯re a worthless mercenary or small businessman, they won¡¯t let you go unless you¡¯re bankrupt.¡± ¡°Uh, I was asking, don¡¯t they care about these thieves?¡± ¡°Haha, 40% of the thieves¡¯ loot goes to the Noodle Brothers Association, another 40% to the sheriff, and only the leftovers end up with the thieves. Why would they even care? As long as the victims aren¡¯t noblemen, high-ranking officials, or big merchants, they would not bat an eye. However, since these fellows have been beaten, the sheriff will soon step in.¡± Before the conversation was over, a troop of fully armed soldiers led by the sheriff push through the crowd, encircled Luther and Little Angel, shouting, ¡°Who¡¯s causing this public brawl here! Arrest them all and bring them back!¡± ¡°Right, right, arrest them. These thieves dared to steal from me, umm¡­ they stole from me, what are you arresting me for?¡± Luther asked in disbelief. Chapter 506: 294: Bombing the City with the Magic Crystal Cannon_3 Chapter 506: Chapter 294: Bombing the City with the Magic Crystal Cannon_3
¡°Uwful assembly and affray, go back and assist in the investigation. If it turns out as you say, we¡¯ll release you then,¡± the Sheriff exined kindly. Luther also smiled kindly: Trust you? No way. He nced at Ange without a trace, found that Ange did nothing, but there was still plenty of time. Let¡¯s go and see what they are up to. If they dare not to handle this case properly, he would tear down their sheriff station then. Luther, holding Little Angel and Little Zombie¡¯s hands, followed the Sheriff to the station. If he didn¡¯t hold them, Little Angel would start fighting right away, and that would be a mess. Not only did he have to hold their hands, but he also had to whisper, ¡°Don¡¯t start, wait till we¡¯re at the ce.¡± The group arrived at the sheriff station, the pretended thieves that had been brought back were locked up in another room. The sheriff smiled at Luther, ¡°May I ask where are you from? What are you doing here at Rex? How many people are you?¡­¡± Luther answered honestly. After the sheriff learned that Ange and others came from the desert, came for a tour, and there were only four people and a horse in his sight, his face darkened and asked, ¡°You were involved in uwful assembly and affray, viting localws. You need to go to jail and pay a fine. Would you choose prison or a fine?¡± Luther said, ¡°We didn¡¯t engage in a fight. They tried to steal from me.¡± ¡°Stealing? Bring the wounded here,¡± the sheriffmanded. Soon, seven or eight thieves were brought up, crying on their knees, unanimously dering, ¡°Sir, we are wronged. We were walking down the road, and they charged at us and attacked anyone they saw. They injured all of us.¡± ¡°Yes, yes, he even called us thieves, and said we were a gang. God, I was just out for grocery shopping, I don¡¯t know any of these people.¡±
¡°Yes, yes, we don¡¯t know each other. It was them who charged at us and injured all of us.¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om The thieves spoke unanimously. The Sheriff turned back and said, ¡°It seems, you are not involved in an affray but an assault. You¡¯ll be sentenced to flogging, but you can pay a fine to avoid it. Would you pay the fine or ept the flogging?¡± Lutherughed, ¡°Punishment, my ass!¡± Little Angel was the first to rush out, raising her small fists. A series of screams echoed in the sheriff station. Half an hourter, both the soldiers and the sheriffy on the ground. There were even several at the entrance. Almost all of them lying at the entrance had a big hoof print on their faces. Lightning stood at the entrance, blocking everyone from running out. They had already shown mercy, but it still onlysted half an hour. Luther was somewhat unsatisfied. He grabbed the sheriff, shoved him into a chair, and questioned, ¡°Do you usually collude like this?¡± The badly beaten Sheriff cried, ¡°I¡¯m sorry, sir. I didn¡¯t know. I won¡¯t dare to do it again.¡± Looking at him, Luther didn¡¯t find it interesting. There was no sense of aplishment in bullying these ordinary people. ¡°Fortunately, we are the ones who ended up in your hands. If it were otherw-abiding citizens, they would have been bankrupted by you. Don¡¯t be a sheriff anymore. Go home and be a cripple.¡± Luther broke the sheriff¡¯s leg and arm, kicked him aside. Just then, a shooting star streaked across the sky, falling not far away, there came a loud noise, violent tremors, a mushroom cloud rising into the sky, and intense elemental fluctuations. ¡°What¡¯s happening?¡± Everyone turned their heads to look in the direction of the loud noise. Negris looked at the huge mushroom cloud and said, ¡°It seems like a Magic Crystal Cannon? Did someoneunch a Magic Crystal Cannon into the city?¡± Luther grabbed the sheriff he just kicked aside, pointed in the direction of the smoke, ¡°What¡¯s over there? Who¡¯s firing the Magic Crystal Cannon?¡± The sheriff¡¯s face turned pale from the pain, he barely managed to look towards the direction of the mushroom cloud, his face turned even paler: ¡°That¡­that¡¯s the City Lord¡¯s Mansion. Someone is attacking the City Lord¡¯s Mansion with a cannon. It must be the pirates¡­ I see, it must be the ck Pirate Group, the mortal enemies of the Canglong Pirate Group. Last month, Canglong raided their den, they must be here for revenge.¡± ¡°ck Pirate Group? Who came up with such a casual name?¡± Luther said weakly. Suddenly, a bright light caught his attention. Looking up, his face turned white instantly. A Magic Crystal Cannonball was seen, tracing a parabolic arc across the sky, heading their way. Thending point was exactly where they were ¨C the sheriff station. When bombarding a city, the sheriff station would undoubtedly be the first target to get rid of. The Magic Crystal Cannon is the most potent magic weapon humanity has ever invented. Its power cannot be resisted by human power. Not even a High-level Sword Saint couldn¡¯t stand a blow from it. Even a Truth Mage, if caught off guard, can be shattered to pieces. The only option was to run. The Magic Crystal Cannon wasn¡¯t particrly fast, and itsnding point was predictable. Most masters could evade it, so the Magic Crystal Cannon could generally only be used to attack fixed targets. Luther instinctively wanted to dodge, but upon turning around, he saw that Little Angel, Little Zombie, Lightning, and Ange, all were staring nkly at the glowing Magic Crystal Cannonball. The only one who moved was Ange. Ange was seen stepping into the air, charging towards the Magic Crystal Cannonball with dragon scales crawling all over him. Negris, who was reflected on Ange¡¯s body, shouted anxiously, ¡°Are you insane? Why are you turning into a Dragon God? Time Stop and Space Solidification are useless. It will still explode when the timees, and you will die. Turning into Steadfast Locke would be much better than turning into a Dragon God!¡± Ange was too busy to heed him. He reached out with both hands and activated Space Solidification just before the Magic Crystal Cannonball could reach his hands. Chapter 507: 295: Celebrated Too Soon_1 Chapter 507: Chapter 295: Celebrated Too Soon_1
A ramshackle ship disguised as a grain carrier was anchored outside the dock, with its deck piled up with sacks of grain. With famine everywhere recently, grain was in high demand; the dockside harbor pilots¡¯ eyes lit up at the sight of the sacks, and without a thorough check, they hurriedly let the ship dock. However, once it docked, the ship showed its true colours. Many sacks of grain were tossed aside to reveal two Magic Crystal Cannons hidden inside. One was already aimed towards the City Lord¡¯s Mansion, ready to fire. The City Lord¡¯s Mansion was preparing dinner, and the City Lord and his family were waiting to eat. With a single shot, half the Mansion was blown into the sky. The second shot was aimed for the local security bureau. Without it, there would be no one to maintain order and the ind¡¯s unsavory characters could overturn the entire ce. On the deck between the two Magic Crystal Cannons, a woman in ordinary clothes, shouting with a machete in hand: ¡°Fire! Fire! st them for me! You dragon shits, dare to steal my home, I¡¯ll st you bastards. All over the ocean knows the rtionship between Drake and the Sea Dragon. Here it¡¯s like the Sea Dragon¡¯s den. Bomb it to rubble, let them see how they continue their dirty dealings!¡± After yelling, she added another sentence: ¡°Be careful with the aim, don¡¯t hit innocent people.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t worry, Captain ck Night Raven, there¡¯s no innocent person on this ind.¡± The first mate replied, continuing: ¡°A cannon shot will consume about two hundred Magic Crystals. The World Tree Dposer Stick costs five hundred Magic Crystals and can be used five times. In total, the cost of a shot is three hundred Magic Crystals. How many times are we going to fire?¡± The reason why Vaguli wanted to create a Magic Egg Cannon was because under the same power, it¡¯s cheaper and more concealed than the Magic Crystal Cannon. Each has its own advantages and disadvantages. ¡°Sss¡­,¡± the ck Night Raven winced in pain. She checked her pocket and gritted her teeth: ¡°Shoot another two rounds. Are we this poor?¡± The first mate gave her a scornful nce: ¡°If not, do you think I would choose to be a pirate? My home was robbed too. They wanted to divide the remaining money and disband the crew. But you didn¡¯t listen. If you fire two more rounds, that¡¯s six shots. You¡¯ll have shot out twelve hundred Magic Crystals, and there won¡¯t be any money left for disbanding. Think it through.¡± As soon as the first mate finished speaking, the ship shuddered, and the second shot fired, aiming directly at the security bureau. ck Night Raven¡¯s face turned pale and then white. A birthmark even appeared on her face.
The reason for the name Night Raven was because of the birthmark on her face that had been there since she was young. It would appear when she was particrly excited. One could only imagine how excited she was now. One shot of three hundred Magic Crystals, which is equal to three thousand Gold Coins. Each Gold Coin weighing twenty-six grams, then a shot was like throwing away around seventy-eight kilograms of gold. My god! She didn¡¯t even weigh seventy-eight kilograms herself, bones included. Gritting her teeth, ck Night Raven said, ¡°Shoot two more. Take down the exchange and the granary.¡± ¡°Alright, at your service my queen¡­err¡­ captain, is that a person? He¡¯s running towards the cannonball¡­err¡­he¡¯s hugging the cannon¡­he¡¯s hugging¡­hugging the cannonball.¡± The first mate was shocked at first, then started trembling, unable to articte his words. ck Night Raven also started trembling, ¡°He¡­ did he grip a Magic Crystal projectile? Is¡­is he still human? Wait, does he have scales on his body?¡± Ange in his Dragon God Transformation state was holding off the Magic Crystal projectile, a magical ball, bigger than a person. After two hundred Magic Crystals had dissolved into energy state, they were temporarily confined by some special power, then sped off. This was the principle of the Magic Crystal Cannon.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om However,pared to Vaguli¡¯s Magic Egg Cannon, the Magic Crystal Cannon wastes too much. The Magic Egg only needs eighty Magic Crystals to achieve the same power, reducing costs dramatically. Besides, it could also be air-dropped. Theunching tform could be simplified. In short, it costs far less than the Magic Crystal Cannon. If it were a Magic Crystal Cannon, it wouldn¡¯t need to be fired. Just carrying the Magic Egg to the target and detonating it would work. But whether it was a Magic Crystal Cannon or a Magic Egg Cannon, catching it barehanded seemed absurd. People who saw this scene couldn¡¯t believe their own eyes. Time passed by slowly. It took about five to six seconds for everyone to realize that the Magic Crystal projectile was not caught, but frozen. Because the energy glow didn¡¯t flicker, it was still, forming a picture. Even the creature in front of the Magic Crystal projectile was frozen in ce. The inhabitants of Drake Ind were varied, all sorts of persons resided there. Naturally, there were some with extensive knowledge. On seeing this, they began to yell: ¡°Space Solidification! The Red Copper Dragon¡¯s Space Solidification! He¡¯s got scales. He must be a transformed Red Copper Dragon!¡± When Negris heard themotion, he scoffed: ¡°Ignorant. It¡¯s Dragon God Transformation¡­Forget it, even the Giant Dragon hasn¡¯t been seen, not to mention a human.¡± The ck Night Raven and the first mate on the ship said, ¡°It appears¡­we seem to have hit someone we shouldn¡¯t have. What do we do?¡± ¡°What do you mean ¡®we¡¯? It was you who fired it, I don¡¯t even know you.¡± The first mate removed his bandana, rushed to the side of the ship, climbed over the side, and dived into the sea. ¡°You¡­ you don¡¯t even want your severance pay?¡± The first mate, who was loyal to her despite always having severance pay on his lips, ran away so decisively. ck Night Raven realized the seriousness of the situation, and instinctively turned to the second mate. The second mate shrugged and said, ¡°Captain, a powerful character who can catch a Magic Crystal Cannon bare-handed, his followers must be also very powerful. If we don¡¯t run now, there¡¯ll be no life left to spend the severance pay. Let¡¯s go.¡± As the second mate spoke, he rushed to the side of the ship and jumped into the sea, and the rest of the crew followed suit. Chapter 508: 295: Too Happy Too Early_2 Chapter 508: Chapter 295: Too Happy Too Early_2
¡°Makes sense.¡± The ck Night Raven ran towards the side of the ship, but instantly recalled something. She hurried to the Magic Crystal Cannon, unloading all the remaining Demon Crystals. Each cannon had more than four hundred crystals left, totaling more than eight hundred. This was the severance payment for everyone on the ship. With the Demon Crystals tucked away in her pocket, she ran to leap off the ship into the sea. Just as she jumped over the hull, a harsh grip tightened around her neck. Luther hoisted her up with a sinister smile, bringing her eye level and growled, ¡°Did you think you could st us with cannons and then run away? The ck Night Raven felt cold from head to toe. The Magic Crystal Cannon had a range of two kilometers; it was 1.3 kilometers from where they were to the security office. Less than twenty seconds passed between the moment the shell fell and the present moment. This means that the man before her had covered a distance of 1.3 kilometers in twenty seconds¡­ ck Night Raven wanted to cry: I was simply being a pirate. Why did I have to run into such a weirdo? The difference in levels was too great. When ck Night Raven was escorted back, thoughts of escaping didn¡¯t even cross her mind. She was docile as amb, especially when she noticed that the Magic Crystal Cannon had exploded in mid-air. The Magic Crystal Cannon had blown up, and Negris noticed that Ange¡¯s Dragon God Transformation hadsted twenty-three seconds. During the twenty or so seconds of Ange¡¯s Dragon God Transformation, a tiny point appeared in front of Ange every second. These points solidified as soon as they appeared, and did not expand. But thirteen points a second, constantly filling the space between Ange and the Magic Crystal Cannon shells. The moment the Space Solidification disappeared, the small points in front of Ange instantly transformed into explosive fireballs. Hard enough to rip the Magic Crystal Cannon shell to pieces, it sprayed out, breaking into a burst of fireworks. Thirteen per second, twenty-three seconds. That¡¯s 299 explosive fireballs. Negris was dumbfounded, ¡°Can you believe it? I considered hundreds of methods. For instance, using the Goddess of Beauty Fist to analyze its structure, or Elemental Deprivation to strip away its elements. I could never imagine that you would use Space Solidification to gather magic. Was it really that straightforward and crude?¡± Ange tilted his head, ¡°Practical.¡± ¡°What if the magic gathered is insufficient to offset the power of the Magic Crystal Cannon? It could still explode on you.¡± Negris said. ¡°If the power is less, I won¡¯t get hurt.¡± Ange replied.
Almost three hundred explosive fireballs were enough to offset most of the shell¡¯s power. Even if there was a little left, it wouldn¡¯t be enough to damage the Golden Skeleton. In this way, gathering fireballs could indeed be the most practical method. After a while, Luther returned, escorting ck Night Raven, ¡°Lord, it was this person¡¯s ship that fired the Magic Crystal Cannon.¡± Negris looked her up and down, doubtfully asked, ¡°Do we know each other? Why did you ambush us?¡± Although she didn¡¯t understand why Ange could make a sound without moving his mouth, ck Night Raven obediently hoarsely replied, ¡°I¡­ I just wanted to st the City Lord¡¯s Mansion and the security office. I did not mean to ambush you.¡± As she spoke, she secretly nced at the security personnel littering the ground, muttering, ¡°I suspect you are not amongst Drake¡¯s people either.¡± Drake doesn¡¯t have this level of powerful person on his side. Catch a Magic Crystal Cannon barehanded? That¡¯s got to be one of the steadfast warriors, right?n/?/vel/b//jn dot c//om ¡°So, it just happened that we were present during your bombardment, and we were identally hit in the process?¡± Negris asked. ck Night Raven nodded vigorously, like a chicken pecking for grains. Actually, Negris had the same guess. If they had indeed been the targets, they wouldn¡¯t have been bombed with the Magic Crystal Cannon; even if Ange wasn¡¯t capable of catching the shell barehanded, there would have been enough time before itnded for them to get out of the way. Besides, they were only in Drake¡¯s territory for barely half an hour. Who would be able to arrange a cannon ship that quickly to wait by the dock for them? And if the intention was to attack them, why bomb the City Lord¡¯s Mansion first? Based on these conclusions, Negris believed they were just unluckily involved. Kvada, he was bombed by a Magic Crystal Cannon for the first time in his life, and it was an idental bombing? ¡°So, how are you nning topensate us?¡± Negris asked harshly. Although she didn¡¯t mean to target them, they were still affected. They couldn¡¯t just leave matters as they were. It was time forpensation! ck Night Raven¡¯s face fell. She pulled out the eight hundred Demon Crystals she had just unloaded out of her pocket, sighing in her heart: the severance pay couldn¡¯t be kept after all. When ck Night Raven held up a bag of Demon Crystals, Negris almost jumped, ready to smack her. ¡°Are you insulting us? You think you can get rid of beggars with these few crystals?¡± ck Night Raven had a mournful expression, ¡°This is all I have, there¡¯s only this much left.¡± ¡°You are a pirate, right? Howe you¡¯re so poor? Didn¡¯t you justunch two Magic Crystal Cannons? Each one requires several hundred Demon Crystals, right? Are you lying to us?¡± Negris questioned suspiciously. ck Night Raven shook her head vehemently, ¡°Our base was just raided, so I came for revenge. Even if our base hadn¡¯t been raided, our normal operating capital is around two to three thousand Demon Crystals. It¡¯s not that much more than we have now.¡± ¡°So poor. How could you afford to buy the Magic Crystal Cannons?¡± Negris asked. ¡°I stole them, stole them. Someone was smuggling, and I intercepted it. I¡¯ve been afraid to use it until now.¡± ck Night Raven exined. ¡°Really? You¡¯re not lying to me?¡± Negris asked. ¡°It¡¯s true, I absolutely didn¡¯t lie to you. I swear by the name of the Dragon God that everything I said is true.¡± ck Night Raven promised earnestly. Negris¡¯ interest was instantly piqued, ¡°You still believe in the Dragon God?¡± ck Night Raven replied, ¡°No, but when swearing an oath, you always need a god to rely on. On these seas, swearing by the name of the Dragon God is the safest.¡± Chapter 509: 295 Chapter 509: 295
¡°Hehe, careful not to let the Dragon n Leader hear that, or he might swallow you whole. The name of the Dragon God is not one to be thrown about carelessly,¡± scoffed Negris. The ck Night Ravenughed awkwardly, ¡°How would that happen, how would it? How could such a personage as the Dragon n Leader hear a casual oath from me?¡± ¡°Hehe¡­¡± Negris was about to say something when a white firework shot up from the direction of the dock and exploded with a bang. Everyone looked towards the explosion, Luther asked in confusion, ¡°Why fire white fireworks? It¡¯s broad daylight, we can¡¯t even see what it is.¡± The ck Night Raven¡¯s face turned grim, and he responded urgently, ¡°That¡¯s the signal of the Canglong Pirate Group, the Canglong Pirates are here.¡±n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om The police station was situated on an elevation. Looking down from the surrounding wall, the dock was in full view. Four ck sails had appeared outside the harbor, each flying a white sail, charge into the port relentlessly. One of them drew parallel to the ck Night Raven¡¯s ship, a bunch of agile pirates suddenly jumped aboard. The firework¡¯s trails pointed to the ck Night Raven¡¯s ship, obviously shot by the pirates who had just boarded. Perhaps it was a signal of safety. On the second Canglong pirate ship, a wizard flew up, standing mid-air with hands behind his back as if held by an invisible hand, sliding forward in a rather grandiose manner. The sight of the wizard made the ck Night Raven even darker, ¡°A Level 8 Magician! Riley of the Wind Canglong, good heavens, why would hee in person? He definitely didn¡¯te after me. Yes, I heard he goes ashore every month to find female ves for rxation, and today might just be his day ashore.¡± ¡°My lords, if I am captured by him, please please kill me first, don¡¯t let me fall into his hands. It¡¯s rumored that he favors women my age the most, ying with them in different ways, tossing them into ve camps after he¡¯s done, and throwing them into the sea to feed the fish when he finally loses interest.¡± ¡°Oh Lord, I¡¯m somewhat of an infamous female pirate, I¡¯m sure I would be very popr. No, no, I beg you, end me first.¡± Whether it was the horrendous actsmitted by Riley or some sort of post-traumatic stress disorder from the ck Night Raven¡¯s past experiences that caused her to lose control, her panic cries confused Negris and Luther. Merely a Level 8 Magician, why was she so panicked as if she had never seen the world? Despite having witnessed Ange block cannonballs with his bare hands, she was still frightened by a Level 8 Magician.
But this was normal, just as telling somemoners about a divine curse might not faze them, but inform them they have been bitten by a snake, they would probably turn pale in fear because they knew what could happen from a snake bite. The ck Night Raven was brought here in a conspicuous manner, and the Level 8 Magician wasing straight at them. He floated in the air with his hands behind his back, his robe billowing, showcasing his proficiency with Wind Magic. Floating over the police station, he immediately saw Ange and his group and the ck Night Raven. When his gaze fell on the ck Night Raven, a hint of lust flickered in his eyes: ¡°Oh? Isn¡¯t this Captain Raven? What happened to your ship?¡­Oh, and aren¡¯t you a cute little girl, wannae y with uncle¡­¡± Before he finished speaking to the ck Night Raven, his attention was diverted to Little Angel. And before he could finish his sentence, Little Angel spread her wings and shed Holy Light. A pir of light instantly charred Riley and his words into carbon. The ck Night Raven stared eyes wide, almost popping out of their sockets: ¡°This¡­ this¡­ you¡­ you¡­¡± Lightning yawned: ¡°So boring. When will Brooks get here? I¡¯m dying of boredom.¡± Luther, arms crossed, nodded in agreement, ¡°Indeed, these people are too weak, none of them are worthy adversaries for the draw of my Dragon Pattern Steel Core Mithril Iy Magic Rune Covered Earth Forged Gemstone Enhanced Piercing Enchantment Two-Handed Sword.¡± ¡°A¡­ A¡­ A talking horse?!¡± the ck Night Raven stuttered out, tongue-tied. Lightning spared her a nce, but chose not to retort, toozy to entertain her. One after another, red fireworks shot into the sky. Like ants whose nest had been disrupted, the Canglong Pirates on all four ships rose into action. One of the three leaders of the pirate group, the Level 8 Magician Riley, was in spectacrly under everyone¡¯s watch. If they don¡¯t react to this, the Canglong Pirate Group might as well quit being pirates. Each of the four ships pushed out eight magic crystal cannons, a total of 32 magic crystal cannons, all of them aiming at the police station situated halfway up the hill. ¡°Ah, it¡¯s bing a bit of a challenge. Thirst for fresh blood, my Dragon Pattern Steel¡­ Core Sword!¡± Sensing the gaze of others, Luther thoughtfully swallowed the rest of the name. He drew out his longsword with a ng, and a radiant beam extended from the de, flickering inconsistently. The ck Night Raven, obviously a person who knew her stuff, started shivering again, ¡°A¡­ high¡­ high-level¡­ high-level Sword Saint!¡± Damn, the errand boy turned out to be a high-level Sword Saint! Who the hell are these people? Just as everyone was preparing to charge out and destroy the ships, a gold figure descended from the sky, diving straight at the four pirate ships, Dragon Breath sweeping across each of them. In the blink of an eye, all four ships were swallowed up by the Dragon Breath and burst into mes. Agonizing screams filled the deck, pirates who had been engulfed by the Dragon Breath jumped into the sea like dumplings being thrown into a pot. Unfortunately, even if they jumped into the sea, the Dragon Breath wouldn¡¯t extinguish. Those touched by the Breath would turn into skeletons and sink to the bottom of the sea. As the surrounding pirate ships went up in mes, the golden dragon turned around and flew back towards the police station. ¡°A¡­ A¡­ A dragon! Aren¡¯t you guys running?¡± the ck Night Raven started to shiver again. Not only did they not run, Luther started jumping and cursing, ¡°You shameless brute, Brooks! They were my targets!¡± ¡°Brooks¡­ Brooks? The Dragon n Leader?¡± The ck Night Raven suddenly recalled the name, somehow it sounded familiar to her. Then at the sight of a gold dragon, she instantly remembered the legend. Brooksnded in front of the police station and said to everyone, ¡°Sorry to keep you waiting, get on, I¡¯ll give you a lift. Oh, who¡¯s this girl? I haven¡¯t seen her before.¡± The ck Night Raven looked at the gigantic head looming above her. Her face twitched, and she remembered her earlier oath made in the name of the Dragon God, and how she had imed that someone like the Dragon n Leader wouldn¡¯t be able to hear it. Well, the Dragon n Leader was here now, what should she do? Would he swallow her whole? With this thought, she rolled her eyes and passed out. In that instant before she fainted, she felt somewhat relieved. Whether dead or alive, at least she wouldn¡¯t have to face everything while conscious. Unfortunately, her relief was premature. When she woke up and felt something hard beneath her, she instantly sprung up in shock: Am I¡­ lying on the dragon¡¯s back? Chapter 510: 296 Licking with the Tongue _1 Chapter 510: Chapter 296 Licking with the Tongue _1
The awakened ck Night Raven felt as if a threshold had been smashed, indifferent to everything, she casually asked: ¡°So you¡¯re the Dragon n Chief, the God of Knowledge, the Undead God, Goddess of Beauty, God of Farming, and a Dimension Beast?¡± As she named each one, she correspondingly made a gesture of invitation. Luther nodded repeatedly.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ck Night Raven didn¡¯t know how to react, finally, she flustered waved her hand: ¡°Whatever, assuming everything you said is the truth, what now? What will you do with me? Throw me down?¡± Luther chuckled: ¡°The whole reason we brought you up is to keep you from getting killed. Now there¡¯s no way we can put you down. So, you¡¯ll have to apany us to Dragon Ind.¡± ¡°You won¡¯t kill me?¡± ck Night Raven asked tentatively. Luther shook his head: ¡°Why would we kill you? You haven¡¯t offended us.¡± ¡°But¡­ But, I identally fired at you guys and I don¡¯t have any money topensate.¡± ck Night Raven faintly stated. Luther burst intoughter: ¡°Lord Nage was just ying with you. But seriously, you¡¯re really poor. Your entire fortune is only enough to fire four shots. Yet, you still dare to seek revenge on others? How did you even end up this poor while being a pirate?¡± ck Night Raven sheepishly responded: ¡°Uh, we primarily don¡¯t steal things.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t steal? Aren¡¯t you a pirate? How do you make money if you don¡¯t steal?¡± Luther was stunned. A pirate who doesn¡¯t steal? ¡°We earn passage fees and escort fees. As long as the value of the cargo on the ship is equivalent to one-thirtieth of the passage fee, we won¡¯t rob them. If they can pay up to one-tenth, we will even escort them to their destination.¡± ck Night Raven exined. Negris couldn¡¯t help but turn his head: ¡°Eh, that¡¯s a good idea. If there are more ships passing by, you could earn more, and potentially have a steady ie stream. So why are you still so poor?¡±
ck Night Raven awkwardly replied: ¡°Few ships, fewer people, we can¡¯tpete with others, the Canglong Pirate Group has stolen all our business.¡± ¡°Why don¡¯t you switch professions then?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Switching professions is not so easy. We can¡¯t do anything else apart from sailing. What else can we do?¡± ck Night Raven sighed. ¡°You can farm onnd. At least you wouldn¡¯t starve, unlike now, where you¡¯re both poor and in danger.¡± Negris suggested. ck Night Raven nced at him, seemingly shocked that he could utter such ignorant words: ¡°There are no taxes or forcedbor being a pirate, and you don¡¯t get exploited by the noblendlords. Farming onnd¡­ thendlords, would easily bankrupt us. How do you think we ended up at sea?¡± Negris blinked, looking at Luther, both were at a loss. These were obviously not things they could understand. Negris knew whatnd annexation was, but how it was done, and what happened to the peasants whosends were annexed, was beyond him. Not to mention Luther. The poption of the Resting Abyss had not even reached the point ofnd annexation. Upon seeing their expressions, ck Night Raven quickly realized, and muttered under her breath: ¡°So you guys arendlords too.¡± ¡°No, no, don¡¯t spout nonsense. I am clearly a City Lord.¡± Luther protested. Negris quickly changed the topic, asking again: ¡°So what¡¯s going on with your family now? You mentioned earlier that your nest was raided by the Canglong Pirate Group?¡± ¡°Yes, it was. There weren¡¯t many casualties, but our food was ransacked, and our fields were burned. We definitely won¡¯t have enough food this year, that¡¯s why we came out to buy grains. However, the recent grain prices are so high, and it¡¯s not even avable in the market. Now I know why they stole the grains. It was then that I got angry and decided to bombard them.¡± Negris asked puzzled: ¡°Aren¡¯t you afraid they will retaliate again? They already know the location of your nest, and can retaliate at any time.¡± ck Night Ravenughed bitterly: ¡°Do you think we still need to worry about retaliation when our food has been stolen and we can¡¯t buy grains? We don¡¯t even know how many of us will survive until next year.¡± The expressions of Luther, Lightning, and Negris turned serious. Could it be that this woman pirate, who looks naive, is carrying such a heavy burden for her future? How desperate must one be to utter words like ¡®We don¡¯t even know how many of us will survive until next year¡¯? Does she not want to be saved? No, she came out to buy grain. But considering the current situation, buying grain is not an easy task. Look, even Anthony had toe to Ange, and Anthony is the archbishop of the Eastern Diocese, the acting Pope of the Church of Light. Even he can¡¯t buy grain. Apart from robbery, pirates truly have no other options. ¡°How many people are in your family?¡± Negris asked. ¡°More than a thousand.¡± ¡°Oh, is that all? Well, we¡¯ll have Ange spare some for you.¡± ¡°Spare?¡± ¡°Err, I mean sell. We can sell you some. One thousand people, will two hundred tons be enough?¡± ¡°Enough, enough. We can¡¯t even finish that much in a year. We can also fish. You guys¡­ can you really sell me two hundred tons of grain?¡± ¡°Hey, I said a little bit. Our business starts from a hundred thousand tons.¡± Negris boasted, patting his waist. ck Night Raven realized that Negris wasn¡¯t lying, especially after arriving at Vortex Ind and seeing the megastructures filling the ind, she was even more convinced Negris wasn¡¯t lying to her. There was no need to. Someone who makes friends with giant dragons would never stoop to cheat her for two hundred tons of grain. After finding a clean cave and setting her down, Brooks quickly shrank and rapidly transformed into a human. He didn¡¯t seem too pleased to tell ck Night Raven: ¡°We really shouldn¡¯t have brought you here. I hope you can keep this a secret and not spill the beans.¡± Chapter 511: 296 Still Sticking Out the Tongue to Lick_2 Chapter 511: Chapter 296 Still Sticking Out the Tongue to Lick_2
¡°What? I can¡¯t mention it? Is bragging about visiting Dragon Ind off-limits? Then why did I evene?¡± ck Night Raven protested with wide eyes. ¡°Uh, fine. You can say whatever you want. If anyone asks, I¡¯ll just say you¡¯ve been here. But what¡¯s your name?¡± Brooks instantly understood. This human had no idea that she had actually visited Vortex Ind, not Dragon Ind? If she boasts about being on Dragon Ind all the time and misleads people, then letting her do so would be a good thing. ¡°ck Night Raven, Lord Brooks, my name is ck Night Raven, the darkest female pirate in the ocean, sir, you must remember me.¡± ck Night Raven¡¯s eyes were shining. The Dragon n Chief was so kind. Oh God, he was even willing to give her official recognition. Nothing else mattered. Once the news of her visit to Dragon Ind spread, her pirate group would instantly gain significant fame, and elite pirates would flock to join them. ¡°Alright, just don¡¯t wander around, I¡¯lle get you when it¡¯s time to leave.¡± As he spoke, Brooks beckoned at the sea, and a bluefin golden spearfish about the height of a person flew up and flopped into the cave. The spearfish was still alive, very fresh, flipping and flopping in the cave. Brooks continued, ¡°There¡¯s not much to offer here, so just eat fish the next few days. Don¡¯t wander off¡ª the ind is full of dragons. One careless step and you¡¯ll be squished.¡± ck Night Raven nced at the cliff outside the cave, below which was the pitch-ck sea. If anyone fell from here, not even the body would float up to the surface. And she couldn¡¯t fly, so where could she run? Unable to bear it, Lutherined, ¡°You¡¯re really something, you know. Who wees guests like this? You don¡¯t even have water.¡± After saying this, he took out his own water bag from his Space Artifact and ced it to the side. ¡°It¡¯s clean.¡± Then he took out some sauces. ¡°If you¡¯re having sashimi, at least provide some sauces. You guys live so rough.¡± After speaking, Luther drew his Dragon Pattern sword and made a cut on the fish¡¯s tail to bleed it. ¡°Hiludi has treated us to golden spear fish before and always stressed to bleed the fish. Do you giant dragons eat fish without bleeding them?¡± Since the fish had already been bled, Luther didn¡¯t hesitate to slice off arge piece, dip it in sauce, and eat it. ¡°This is really fresh. Everyone else should have some¡­¡±
When he turned around, he realized that everyone else had disappeared, leaving only himself and the ck Night Raven in the cave. Aside from him, only Lightning needed to eat, but Lightning was a vegetarian and preferred things like the tender sprouts from the Tree of World. Lightning would never eat raw fish. Feeling awkward, ck Night Raven said, ¡°It¡¯s just the two of us left. We can¡¯t fly. So why don¡¯t you just stay here? This fish should be enough to feed both of us.¡± The thought of staying in the same room with a stranger made ck Night Raven a bit shy. Luther quickly finished the piece of raw fish in his hand and ran to the cave entrance, saying, ¡°Hehe, you¡¯re the one who can¡¯t fly, not me. Goodbye.¡±n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om With that, he unleashed his fighting spirit, jumped out of the cave, and chased after Ange and the others. High-level Sword Saints can use their fighting spirit to fly short distances, which sometimes may be faster than mages. ck Night Raven blushed and mumbled after some time, ¡°He really doesn¡¯t know how to keep a conversation going. If he¡¯s still single, it¡¯s definitely because of his power.¡± Guided by Brooks, Ange and the others reached the tform in front of the hatching chamber. Almost all the giant dragons on Dragon Ind and Vortex Ind had gathered there upon receiving the message. They had surrounded the passageway leading to the hatching chamber, even flying in the air to crowd around, all eager to see the peopleing to solve the dragon egg retention problem. Then, they saw Ange and others behind Brooks and involuntarily showed disappointed expressions. What kind of lineup was this? A human? A little bronze dragon? A Holy Spirit Angel with its wings removed? A lively undead? A unicorn and arge cat? Could they really solve this grave problem that had perplexed the Dragon n for several millions of years? ¡°Oh my, Brooks, who did you bring back this time? Why aren¡¯t you introducing them? Let us see, what kind of big shot can solve the dragon egg problem? Surely not these humans and the small bronze dragon who is smaller than a dragon egg?¡± A sarcastic voice suddenly rang out. Brooks squinted his eyes, retracted his inner eyelid, and disyed a dangerous gaze. This voice belongs to the most sarcastic Red Copper Dragon among the giant dragon n¡ªMildit. Mildit has an awful personality. He likes to show off, is vain, adores glittery things, and loves to unt his children in front of the mother dragons with stuck eggs or lost children. Brooks¡¯ wife particrly disliked Mildit, especially during the time when the eggs were stuck; Mildit often infuriated her so much that she wanted to breathe fire and even requested Brooks to expel Mildit more than once. However, as a n leader, Brooks couldn¡¯t just expel a giant dragon just because his wife didn¡¯t like it. He could only pretend he hadn¡¯t heard anything. But recently, Brooks hasn¡¯t heard this name much because he had brought the Little Golden Dragon back. Mildit couldn¡¯t find any superiority here and likely went off to show off in front of other mother dragons. If his past actions were just an indication of his unpleasant personality, then his current actions are utterly vicious. On the way back, Negris had a chat with Brooks about Ange¡¯s New Divine Technique. Initially, Brooks thought that Ange could simply nurture the body with a nutrition solution and perform consciousness transfer, like White Neck and his child. However, Negris told him that Ange could directly remove the defect of the stuck eggs from the bloodline of the Dragon n so that the future generations of giant dragons wouldn¡¯t face this defect. Chapter 512: 296: Licking With The Tongue_3 Chapter 512: Chapter 296: Licking With The Tongue_3
What is this? It¡¯s the reincarnation of the Dragon God! This kind of grace to recreate the Dragon n, if Mildity were to say something wrong and upset Lord Ange, leading him to turn around and leave, then Mildity would be the sinner of the entire Dragon n. Just as Brooks was about to lose his temper, Negris suddenly burst into a heartyugh, ¡°Ha, isn¡¯t this Little Meledy? Haven¡¯t seen you for so many years and you¡¯ve grown so big? I¡¯m your Grandpa Naga.¡± ¡°Grandpa Naga?¡± Mildity was stunned. The familiar name, the familiar tone, not only her, but all the aged Giant Dragons in the Dragon n were beginning to remember something. Brooks immediately took the opportunity to introduce, ¡°This is Bronze Dragon Naga, the second dragon in the Dragon n to ignite the Divine Fire, hailed as the guiding light of the Giant Dragons, a deity that roams the ocean of knowledge, the all-knowing God of Knowledge!¡± Surrounding Giant Dragons were astonishment, and some older dragons began to say, ¡°I remember now, no wonder I found this Bronze Dragon familiar, his confused and dazed eyes¡­ they¡¯re just like old Naga!¡± The dragon speaking was obviously older, a rtive of Negris. ¡°Heh, heh.¡± Negris looked around, most of the older dragons seemed familiar, but it was not the time to reminisce. He then turned to Mildity and said, ¡°Little Mildity, when you were little, Grandpa Naga held you. I didn¡¯t expect you to grow so big so fast. When I held you, you peed on me. You almost got it on me. Now you¡¯re all grown up, has your digestion gotten better?¡± Negris asked out of concern. What? Peed? For a moment, all the Giant Dragons turned their attention to her. Mildity was stunned too. If it was something from her childhood, it was thousands of years ago, how could she remember it clearly? She wasn¡¯t sure if such an event ever happened. At that, Negrisughed and added, ¡°It was a puddle on the ground, you might not have seen, but you stuck out your tongue to lick it.¡± ¡°Eh~~~¡± All the Giant Dragons showed expressions of shock and disbelief.
¡°I did not! You¡¯re talking nonsense!¡± Mildity screamed. Whether she peed or not she can¡¯t remember but whether she licked it up she was sure she would remember. Even as young dragons, they hadplete memory as they matured in the dragon eggs. Negris was making things up, he was framing her.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Oh? Is that so? Maybe I remembered it wrong.¡± Negris insincerely apologized. But by now, Negris¡¯s apology and Mildity¡¯s denial were meaningless. All the Giant Dragons red with expressions of shock and schadenfreude. Some even showed confusion, as if asking: how could you have done such a stupid thing? Given Mildity¡¯s ill-tempered nature, none of the Giant Dragons sympathized with her. Instead, they looked thrilled, ready to spread the story widely. Without a doubt, Mildity would be socially dead among the Giant Dragon n from now on. ¡°Ahhh!!¡± Mildity screamed and flew away, probably not daring to return to Vortex Ind for a long time. Brooks stealthily gave a thumbs-up to Negris. My god, why had he not thought of this idea before? Mildity liked to show off, right? The next time she came bragging, anyone could just retort: ¡°Heard you licked your pee when you were little,¡± and see if she would have the face to stay. So, never offend those grandpas and grandmas. They can embarrass you for a long time just by mentioning an embarrassing incident from your childhood. Negris¡¯s prank on Mildity brought unexpected benefits for him. Surprisingly, all the Giant Dragons immediately epted him as the n elder who should have been long dead but was now reincarnated as an Embryo Dragon. Entering the incubation room, Brooks drove out the other Giant Dragons to be safe, then brought Ange to two dragon eggs in the corner. ¡°These two dragon eggs have been stuck for quite a while, I intended to bring them to you for help, Lord. But they are at a crucial stage and cannot be moved. I ask for your assistance. The Giant Dragon n will forever remember your kindness,¡± Brooks said seriously. Ange examined the two dragon eggs for a moment, then suddenly said, ¡°No need for the Goddess of Beauty Fist.¡± Chapter 513: 297: Stone Egg of Hundreds of Thousands of Years_1 Chapter 513: Chapter 297: Stone Egg of Hundreds of Thousands of Years_1
Ange checked the dragon egg and found that it didn¡¯t require the Goddess of Beauty Fist, nor even the re-nurturing of the Juvenile Dragon¡¯s body. Without any past experience for the first time, Ange now believed that there was a simpler solution using the first hand experience he had gained. He used the Purification on the surface of the dragon¡¯s egg, purifying the pollutants on the surface. With a few strokes, even the tiny insects that were not visible to the naked eye disappearedpletely. Ange¡¯s thoughts had already scanned the dragon egg in advance, choosing a spot that wouldn¡¯t hit the inner membrane neural line of the eggshell. He drilled a small hole and poured in Holy Essence Liquid. What were the main reasons for egg retention? It was because the nutrients inside the shell had beenpletely consumed. The development of the Juvenile Dragon had stalled, the nerves of the inner membrane couldn¡¯t break free and recede, leading to it being unable to leave the shell, until it eventually starved to death due tock of nutrition. To solve this issue was quite simple, inject nutrients into the eggshell, allowing the Juvenile Dragon to continue its development, and eventually hatch. This may sound easy, but the Giant Dragon n had tried for hundreds of thousands of years, but all attempts had failed. They had drilled small holes in the eggshell, spat saliva inside it. Dragon saliva was undoubtedly a highly nutritious substance. Unfortunately, the eggs spoiled the next day. They also injected water, minced meat, and various other types of substances into the eggshell, but none of them worked. ¡°We also tried injecting Holy Essence Liquid, but we didn¡¯t have that much, it was too expensive, and it still spoiled.¡± Brooks muttered softly. ¡°I know all that, but maybe the operation was wed. Did you notice that Ange had been using Purification the whole time? Purification was used on the eggshell, on the hole that was drilled, it was in a state of purification for almost the entire time, and that might be the key.¡± Negris said. Brooks nodded, ¡°It¡¯s as if it doesn¡¯t cost money. If this method really works, should I keep a couple of hundred priests from the Church of Light?¡± ¡°That¡¯s not necessary, the priests of the Undead God are much more useful, and only one is needed. I already have a suitable candidate, let hime to Vortex Ind to handle the purification.¡± Negris said. ¡°Just one? Will it be enough? Is it a human? I don¡¯t really want humans toe into the hatching room.¡± Brooks said.
¡°Ha, what if it¡¯s a dragonpanion?¡± Negrisughed. ¡°A Dragonpanion? A priest of the Undead God? How does that connect?¡± Brooks was somewhat surprised, ¡°Whosepanion? Isn¡¯t this being irresponsible?¡± Giant Dragons had to take responsibility for their dragonpanions. Companions who chose to worship other gods were seen as very irresponsible. Of course, not many dragons truly cared, but Brooks was the n Leader, he had to ask. Negris scratched his nose, awkwardly saying: ¡°It¡¯s Naeli¡¯s. You wouldn¡¯t believe how he became a dragonpanion. He also has deep roots with the Spring Breeze Druid Loui, and is now learning the Purification and Face Purification Techniques from Madam Katie. Kvada, wouldn¡¯t this lead him to convert to worship the Goddess of Beauty?¡± At the end, Negris was a bit tongue-tied, this little guy had quite a bit of divine favor. In the Goddess of Beauty City, not sure if it was a response to this sense of blood, the little guy who had been ying with the mud sneezed. The snot dripped down but he sucked it back in however, it started to drip down again slowly. The little guy elicited a bright light, wiped it on his face, purified the snot and the dirt in his nostrils, even the grimy grime on his face was cleaned, revealing a soft and tender little face. ¡°Ahh ahh!¡± The little guy roared energetically and continued to y with the mud. He was making a sickle, a small hand hoe, an owl. These things were pretty deep in his memory now, even though he had forgotten the things before he was three, he still remembered these. He molded the mud carefully, even adding wood texture to the handle. After kneading, he tried to pick up the object. The mud-made object naturally broke apart as soon as he tried to pick him. The little guy didn¡¯t feel discouraged, pouted, kneaded it again, tried to pick it up again, and the wooden handle naturally broke again, turning into powder and scattering. The wind blew, and the powder actually floated up. The handle, which should have been made from mud, was now broken into wood powder. He turned the mud into sawdust¡­ Ange tilted his head, sensing something. But he didn¡¯t investigate further, as there were too many things happening in his faith elemental forcework every day. If he investigated each one in depth, he wouldn¡¯t have time to farm anymore. After both the retained eggs were filled with Holy Essence Liquid, Ange felt the gratitudeing from inside the eggs: chirp chirp chirp¡­ He touched one of the eggs with his finger, and the Instant Death Halo was activated. The Holy Essence Liquid in the egg quickly consumed within half an hour, the eggshell made a crackling sound and a Juvenile Dragon broke the eggshell and crawled out from inside: chirp chirp chirp¡­ Like the form below, another half an hourter, the other egg hatched as well.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Both eggs were at the final stage of hatching. ording to the normal progress, they should have already hatched. However, Ange¡¯s arrival helped them cross the most crucial step. ¡°It¡¯s that simple?¡± Brooks¡¯ eyes widened in disbelief. He had watched the whole process of nurturing a Juvenile Dragonst time, which he felt was quiteplicated and took several days. This time it was okay, it was done in just half an hour. ¡°Where is it simple? Try it without eleration and see how long it will take you.¡± Said Negris, ¡°A total of twenty liters of Holy Essence Liquid, totaling two hundred thousand, two halos, let¡¯s also count you two hundred thousand, a total of four hundred thousand, do you pay in cash or work off the debt?¡± Chapter 514: 297: Stone Egg of Hundreds of Thousands of Years_2 Chapter 514: Chapter 297: Stone Egg of Hundreds of Thousands of Years_2
¡°Cash out, we have money now, four hundred thousand Demon Crystals, no big deal.¡± Brooks said with confidence. ¡°You¡¯ve got money? You found a mine? How did you make it? Cash is best. And while we¡¯re at it, settlest time¡¯s debt. You promised to work off the debt, but halfway through your wife dragged you back.¡± Negrisined. ¡°My old face isn¡¯t worth much¡­ fine, let¡¯s settle. We did find a mine. Hehe, you probably have no idea how abundant the resources are in the ocean. It¡¯s just some worthless rocks, they¡¯re everywhere.¡± Brooks stated. The Giant Dragons didn¡¯t care for Demon Crystals in the past because they didn¡¯t engage in any economic activities. Crucially, carrying Demon Crystals was only a nuisance. The real value of the crystals was in replenishing Magic Power and aiding cultivation. These perks were trivial for the Giant Dragons. To replenish their Magic Power, they would need to consume several tons of Demon Crystals each time. But now, Demon Crystals could solve their biggest headache ¨Cying eggs, so they suddenly became valuable. On Brooks¡¯ orders, countless Giant Dragons went searching and before long found Demon Crystal Mines on several inds. The overseas areas were untouchednds. There were even open-air Demon Crystal Mines. The Giant Dragons could uncover a heap of these with a few scratches from their ws. No wonder they dared to call Demon Crystals ¡®worthless rocks¡¯. ¡°Then mine some more. Oh, that won¡¯t do, if you mine too many and can¡¯t use them all, spending them in the human world could disrupt their economy. Nevermind, mine some and keep them aside, we¡¯ll cash in when we need to.¡± Negris suggested. While the two were casually chatting, Ange suddenly pointed to a dark round object in the hatching room and asked, ¡°Whose egg is this?¡± In the depths of the hatching room was a perfectly round stone that was half a person tall, stored amongst a pile of oddly shaped rocks. It didn¡¯t stand out. ¡°An egg? What egg? Isn¡¯t that just a stone?¡± Brooks and Negris were taken aback by Ange¡¯s assertion. It was as if a guest hade over and asked whose child the doll was, enough to scare someone to death. ¡°Egg.¡± Ange walked over, patted it, and found that it had petrified. ¡°This is a stone. How could there be such a round egg, don¡¯t make a joke, it¡¯s quite terrifying.¡± Negrisined. Since the Dragon n settled here, theyout of the hatching room had remained virtually unchanged, except for the wear and tear, which had significantly expanded the internal space. That change urred hundreds of thousands of years ago.
The heritage inheritance certainly would not record every round stone, so Negris didn¡¯t know how long this particr round stone had been here, but it had been here for at least ten thousand years. Because he himself had hatched here, and by that time, this round stone was already here. ¡°Look, it¡¯s round, the surface doesn¡¯t have the patterns characteristic of an eggshell, and it¡¯s so small. How could it be an egg?¡± Negris continued to object because if it were indeed an egg, the matter would be extremely bone-chilling. ¡°Egg.¡± Ange stated. ¡°The patterns have worn off.¡± While saying that, he took out the Essence Bug Ash Liquid, preparing to drop it on the round stone to prove his point. However, he was stopped by Negris. A range of emotions crossed Negris¡¯ face as he hesitated and looked at Brooks. Brooks was somewhat annoyed, waiting to see how Ange would prove that the round stone was an egg. If Ange failed, Brooks was ready to ridicule him. After all, this was utterly absurd. From now on, whenever he saw a round stone, would he have to wonder if it was an egg? Unexpectedly, Negris stopped Ange and looked back at Brooks, giving him a puzzling look. What the hell was going on? Brooks paused. ¡°What¡¯s the matter? Continue.¡± Brooks urged. ¡°What if it really is an egg?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Ah, impossible, how could it be an egg?¡± Brooks disbelieved. ¡°What if it is? Taking into ount the size of the egg and the fact that it has petrified over hundreds of thousands of years, if it truly is an egg, who do you think it could belong to?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Ssshh, the Dragon God?¡± Brooks took a cold breath, thinking of a possibility. ¡°What will be the consequences if it has the slightest connection to the Dragon God?¡± Negris led him on. Unable to help himself, Brooks began to pace about, murmuring, ¡°Keep it for worship, no one can touch it. You need to submit a report and get permission even to look at it.¡± After a while, Brooks turned to Negris and asked, ¡°What¡¯s your take on this?¡± Negris replied, ¡°I¡¯ll take away a round stone from here. No matter what happens to itter, whether it¡¯s broken, resurrected, hatched, or even if the Dragon God is revived, it has nothing to do with this rock.¡± On hearing this, Brooks started to whistle in shock. Undoubtedly, this was the best way to handle the situation. For a Dragon of Negris¡¯ status, taking a round stone from the hatching room waspletely reasonable. If it was confirmed to be an egg, trying to remove it from the hatching roomter would be met with the unanimous objection of all the Giant Dragons, who would want to consecrate the egg immediately. Any matter involving the egg would need to be backed up by a report and a request for permission. An egg that has been stored in the hatching room for hundreds of thousands of years could very well have beenid by the Dragon God. This is a relic of the Dragon God; no one could be disrespectful to it. But does this make any sense? Paying utmost respect to a stone?N?v(el)B\\jnn But what if Negris takes it away? Would it be resurrected? Hatched? Revive? Even if only a piece of skin or flesh was extracted, given Ange¡¯s ability, could he cultivate the creature inside? Chapter 515: 297: Stone Egg of Hundreds of Thousands of Years_3 Chapter 515: Chapter 297: Stone Egg of Hundreds of Thousands of Years_3
What if there truly is the Dragon God or its descendent inside the egg? My God, would it be the rebirth of the Dragon God? Thinking about this, Brooks pped himself andined, ¡°I was almost caught up in your assumptions. All of this is based on the presumption that it¡¯s an egg. What if it¡¯s just a stone?¡± Negris admitted helplessly: ¡°Although, I doubted him earlier, Ange has never been wrong. Even if he imed these stones are dragon droppings, I might believe him. Are you willing to risk it?¡± Brooks might not trust Ange as much as Negris does, but the frightening thing was¡ªwhat if¡ªit really was an egg? As the n leader, he would not be able to do anything with the egg. But if it was just a stone¡­ As Brooks left the incubation room with the two juvenile dragons, the whole Vortex Ind came to life. Negris seized the opportunity and eximed, ¡°I¡¯ve missed this ce and everyone here. The only thing I can¡¯t take away is the round stone in the incubation room.¡± When they returned to the cave, the ck Iron Crow was squatting next to the tuna, just staring at it nkly. ¡°What¡¯s wrong? Aren¡¯t you going to eat? Aren¡¯t you hungry?¡± Luther asked, concerned.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ck Night Raven shot him a nce, ¡°No knife.¡± Luther had left everything except his sword. Before being desperately hungry, the ck Night Raven would never resort to tearing into the fish with his bare ws. ¡°Come on, let me escort you out, there¡¯s nothing here to cater to you.¡± Brooks transformed back into his Giant Dragon Form, urging everyone. Everyone climbed onto Brooke¡¯s back and, soaring into the sky, Luther remarked, ¡°We could have teleported back, but Lord Nage said that he promised to sell you food. So we¡¯re going to drop off the food on your ind first.¡± The ck Night Raven¡¯s eyes welled up, gratefully uttering, ¡°Thank you all, thank you, my Lord, for remembering. This food¡­ it saved all our lives.¡±
¡°It¡¯s no big deal. Remember to thank the Undead God if you want to express your gratitude,¡± Luther responded casually. ¡­ While Luther was distracting everyone outside, Ange and Negris¡¯s thoughts had already retreated into the Resting Pce. The round stone was being ced into arge bucket¡ªthe Essence Bug Ash Liquid slowly dripped onto it. The stone¡¯s surface quickly turned white, revealing the texture of an eggshell. ¡°By Bada! It really is an egg. Why can¡¯t I find any information about this egg in its bloodline? Is it not from our giant dragon lineage?¡± Negris murmured. Now that they knew it was an egg, they didn¡¯t mind wasting the Insect Ash Liquid. Ange kept pouring until the Essence Bug Ash Liquid filled the entire bucket, submerging the whole egg. Under the soak of the Insect Ash Liquid, the ck shell surface kept shedding fragments, revealing a cream white material simr to eggshell. A strange wave spread from within the egg, hitting Ange head-on. Brooks, who was carrying everyone in flight, suddenly shuddered, looking around in confusion. The giant dragon of Dragon Ind, Naeli of the Goddess of Beauty City, White Neck¡ªall their dragon descendants, felt an involuntary shudder at that moment. Ange cocked his head, puzzlingly stating, ¡°I think I can undergo the Dragon God Transformation again.¡± ¡°What do you mean? Can you undergo the Ultimate Transformation? Or can you only do the Dragon God Transformation?¡± asked Negris. Whether transforming into Locke or into the Dragon God, there were always restrictions. After one transformation, it usually took several days to recover. Ange had already transformed once in Drake. And it had been just over a day since¡ªcould he transform again? Chapter 516: 298: Inside, There is a Spirit (This Book has Reached 1,000,000 Words)_1 Chapter 516: Chapter 298: Inside, There is a Spirit (This Book has Reached 1,000,000 Words)_1
Being able to transform into the Dragon God but not Locke, both essentially involve the Ultimate Transformation Technique. What could cause this discrepancy? Negris is at a loss. He can¡¯t sense any fluctuations from the egg-shaped stone and can¡¯t understand the situation Ange describes. Upon leaving the Temple of Rest and returning to his body, Negris notices Brooks behaving strangely, highly focused and incredibly alert. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Negris asks. Brooks hesitates, then replies, ¡°I sense something, but I don¡¯t know what.¡± This could be a severe problem. The Dragon n Chief, the God of Truth and Law, senses something but doesn¡¯t know what it is. This means something was able to evade his perception, a truly terrifying prospect. Who could have such ability? ¡°When?¡± Negris grows alert. ¡°Just now, but it¡¯s gone now,¡± Brooks exins. Just now? Negris hesitates after calcting the time. Could it be due to the stone egg? Ange mentioned some fluctuations, could they have caused this? Could fluctuations originating from within the Temple of Rest be felt even outside? If these fluctuations operate at the level of bloodlines, then it makes sense for them to be perceivable. With that thought, Negris asks, ¡°Was it only you who felt it? Maybe we should ask if others felt something as well.¡± Oh, right. Brooks catches on, but before he could send out a bloodline call, the dragons¡¯ bloodline calls reach him. Brooks listens carefully before stating, ¡°It seems like all dragons and dragonkin felt it. What could this mean?¡±
After conjecturing for a moment, Brooks suddenly turns to look at Negris on his back. Seeing Negris¡¯s calm smile, Brooks asks in shock, ¡°Is that really an egg? Has it hatched?¡± Negris smiles mysteriously, ¡°An egg? I didn¡¯t see one. I merely took a stone.¡± Despite Negris¡¯s outright denial, Brooks attains sudden rity. This discussiones to a close. Regardless of who asks in the future, they will all say the same story, that it was merely a stone that was taken. Uponnding on Crow Ind, Brooks and Negris share a conspiratorial whisper and seem to reach an agreement. ¡­ Crow Ind is a fat-ended, thin-waisted ind with hundreds of square kilometers of densely forested and rugged terrain. In the narrow bay at the center of the ind, well-protected by thend on its nks, safe from wind, highly secluded and with level ground, bes the nest of the ck Night Raven, home to thousands of people. However, the current settlements and farnd have been destroyed, leaving ragged, sallow-faced people scavenging for anything of value within the ruins. In the water channel of the bay, a few Snake People bearing human torsos and snake tails surface onto the beach, spearfishing bounty in tow. ¡°Dinner¡¯s ready! We have a big catch today, a tuna,e now while it¡¯s still fresh.¡± Human survivors light up with smiles and flock over. Some bleed it, some cut it, some start a fire. For the young and weak who can¡¯t eat it raw, grilling it would be better. Leading the Snake People, who made a small pit on the sand that fills quickly with water where he coiled into to prevent drying out, asks, ¡°What¡¯s the situation? Has the Captain not returned yet?¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°Not yet,¡± a middle-aged human replies anxiously, ¡°I don¡¯t know if the voyage is going well, whether they¡¯ll be able to buy food. If they don¡¯t bring food back soon, people are going to starve to death on this ind.¡± The leading Snake Person looks embarrassed, ¡°It¡¯s too bad there are so few of us Snake People. We can¡¯t catch enough fish. Otherwise, nobody would starve.¡± The middle-aged human quickly shakes his head, ¡°It¡¯s not your fault. Don¡¯t ever think that. You¡¯ve been very dedicatedtely. We humans wouldn¡¯t get by with just eating fish. You¡¯ve already helped us a lot. If it weren¡¯t for the fish you¡¯ve caught, many of us would have starved by now.¡± ¡°It¡¯s necessary,¡± the Snake Person gives a matter-of-fact reply, ¡°If it weren¡¯t for Captain ck Crow rescuing us and allowing us to live here, we would have been captured and put on disy ashore long ago. We¡¯re like a big family.¡± ¡°Yes, we are a family. To say any different would be to put too much distance between us. If ites to an irrevocable point, you need to prioritize yourselves. After all, you Snake People can live well in these seas. If we starve in the end, then it¡¯s the will of the Dragon God,¡± the middle-aged manughs sadly. Just as he finished speaking, a roar echoes from the sky: ¡°Bullshit! What does the Dragon God have to do with it! The Dragon God can¡¯t be bothered with your lives!¡± The middle-aged man, spotting the source of the roar, copses in terror. A colossal golden figure plummets from the sky, eyes wide in rage, clearly the source of the roar. This is the end, the man thinks. The giant dragon heard me bad-mouth the Dragon God. I¡¯m a goner. Just as it¡¯s about to hit the ground, the giant golden dragon ps its wings, whipping up a wild wind, blowing away all nearby humans and Snake People. The middle-aged human stammers, ¡°I¡­ I apologize, Lord Dragon God. I¡­ I was wrong. I shouldn¡¯t have spoken ill of You. Please, punish me. It has nothing to do with the others.¡± The golden giant dragon grumbles, ¡°Our reputation (as dragons) has been ruined by such talk. The ¡®will¡¯ and ¡®purpose¡¯ of the Dragon God, what the hell does that have to do with us? The Dragon God is far from leisurely.¡± Chapter 517: 298: Inside, theres a Spirit (This book has reached 1,000,000 words)_2 Chapter 517: Chapter 298: Inside, there¡¯s a Spirit (This book has reached 1,000,000 words)_2
¡°It¡¯s all because you don¡¯t do good deeds. This sea is so vast and yet it¡¯s within our territory. However, nobody cares about the lives of the people here. Who else should they curse if not you? If you really care about the Dragon God¡¯s reputation, you should be doing more good deeds, providing medicine, sending medical help. Only then will people sing the praises of the Giant Dragon. Maybe, you could unify the faith and reignite the fire of belief in the Dragon God.¡± Another voice chimed in, and a bronze juvenile dragon flew down from the back of the Gold Dragon. Then, several humans and a horse with a cap slid down from the back of the dragon. On seeing one of the humans, the middle-aged man¡¯s eyes bulged, ¡°Captain? Captain Night Raven? How¡­¡± ck Night Raven waved his hand, signaling him to remain silent, and then ordered, ¡°Pearls, bring out those hideaway pearls quickly. I¡¯ve bought grain, and they even deliver.¡± ¡°Oh oh.¡± The middle-aged man had a belly full of questions, but he held them back for the moment and swiftly fetched a bag that contained seven or eight ck pearls as big as chicken eggs. Negris took them into his hands and looked at them with disdain. ¡°They could fetch a considerable sum of money, but they¡¯re of no use to us. Well, let it be.¡±. These ck pearls of this size are precious and priceless. They are of no use to them, but for an equivalent exchange, they cannot just give things away. ck Night Raven had to offer something in return. This was the only thing she coulde up with at the moment, so she reluctantly epted it. The transfer of two hundred tons of grain sparked a wave of cheer among the crowd. Ange and the others gathered afterpleting their task. Negris said, ¡°Alright, we¡¯re leaving. Remember to give thanks to the Undead God.¡± Ange brought out the Staff of Heaven, opened the portal, and teleported one by one to the Holy Kingdom. Their miraculous disappearance sparked further awe among the crowd, and in the end, only a startled Brooks was left on the bay. ck Night Raven carefully apanied him, not understanding why Brooks was still lingering when the Lord had left. Brooks was startled because Negris was right. He used to have distain for such actions like providing medical aid and food. What¡¯s the use of that? Even if the total poption scattered across the sea was less than half a million, and all these people praised the Giant Dragon, what use would it be?
The Church of Light, being a major religious group with hundreds of millions of followers, still abides by the rules of the Dragon n when on the sea waters. Of course, once onnd, Brooks was as docile as a small lizard. Because their number is so small, the Dragon n didn¡¯t really care about the intelligent beings on the sea. Plus, they were dispersed over different inds, making it troublesome to help. But, as Negris said, the sea is under the power of the Dragon n. Nobody else can or dares to venture deep into the sea. But, if the Dragon n doesn¡¯t care about them, then no one else will. Wouldn¡¯t they be cursed for dying of hunger or disease? If there was no Dragon n, wouldn¡¯t someone like Anthony be trying to extend his reach into the sea? Another point is, are hundreds of thousands of believers really unimportant? Lord Ange also only has hundreds of thousands of followers, right? It seems like he can make it work. Should we incorporate them and establish a faith in the Dragon God? If operated well, it could reignite the fire of belief in the Dragon God¡­ Thinking of this, Brooks stood up, his huge figure casting a shadow over ck Night Raven. He smiled and asked, ¡°ck Night Raven, do you want to be sheltered by our Giant Dragon n, and rule dominantly over this sea territory?¡± There¡¯s such a good thing? ck Night Raven nodded vigorously, his head bobbing like a pecking chick. ¡°However, our dragon n only shelters believers of the Dragon God,¡± said Brooks. ck Night Raven nodded violently, then pointed to Brooks and shouted loudly, ¡°Everyonee over, the Dragon God, shields us, thank the Dragon God!¡± Across the sea, the Giant Dragon is supreme, and there are countless legends about them. Many old sailors have even witnessed the majestic sight of the Giant Dragon sweeping over the sea surface at high speed. Now this massive creature was taking the initiative to protect them, and the only requirement was their belief? Even when the Giant Dragons did not protect them, people at sea believed in the Dragon God. Even ck Night Raven, who didn¡¯t believe, would habitually swear by the name of the Dragon God. It was as if they didn¡¯t have to pay anything. Heavens, there¡¯s such a good thing? It must be the blessing of the Undead God, thank the Undead God! ck Night Raven was not stupid, of course, she understood why Brooks had taken the initiative to protect her. The Giant Dragon who had always ignored human beings, why suddenly protect her? Isn¡¯t it because of Ange and the others? Without Ange taking her to Dragon Ind, without the Bronze Dragon saying those words, this Gold Dragon would¡¯ve scared her. The others didn¡¯t understand, but since they already believed in the Dragon God, hearing ck Night Raven¡¯s shout, they all became overjoyed and quickly gathered around, kneeling and paying respects, including the several Snake People. Brooks noticed the Snake People, sniffing as he asked, ¡°You are Dragon thrift. Whose thrift are you?¡±n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om The Snake People said a name. ¡°Oh, it¡¯s that one. It has returned to the Dragon Tomb to sleep eternally. Otherwise, I would have to hold it ountable for neglecting its Dragon thrift,¡± said Brooks authoritatively. The few Snake People went limp at his words. The name they mentioned was regarded as their god in their legacy. But now, ording to the tone of the Gold Dragon, if their god hadn¡¯t died, it would have been held ountable? This Gold Dragon seemed really powerful. What is its background? Brooks blew a breath towards the few Snake People. Chapter 518: 298 Inside, There is a Spirit (This book has 1,000,000 words)_3 Chapter 518: Chapter 298 Inside, There is a Spirit (This book has 1,000,000 words)_3
A giant dragon¡¯s breath can incinerate a city, but most people have never seen another type of dragon breath, one that enables a dragon offspring to transform. The snake people felt just a spring breeze brushing their faces, which made their entire bodies feel good. Before long, they started to feel itchy all over. They rushed to a pile of stones and started rubbing themselves against them. By nightfall, they began to shed their skin. The snake people who shed their skin seemed as if they had been reborn. The upper part of their bodies that had been smoothly human-like, now sprouted small hard scales on the outsides of their arms, their waists, and their back, leaving only their chest and belly still smooth. With this change, their defensive power greatly increased. They found small sharp horns growing out of their foreheads, and to their shock, they found they could sense water element, with a little practice, their flexibility in water would greatly increase. Apart from this, their body size had also grown. Even though a snake person only shed its skin twice in its lifetime, Brucek¡¯s breath had allowed them to shed their skin for the third time. If this isn¡¯t a god, then what is? After having demonstrated such powerful actions in his giant dragon form, Brucek turned back into his human form, providing medical treatment and medications as per Negris¡¯s advice. This was the easiest way to win over hearts. Watching theirrades cured from the excruciating pain under Brucek¡¯s magic, their faith and devotion grew steadfast. ¡°Yo ho? So much food? Didn¡¯t we steal all your food? Where do you get them from?¡± a voice suddenly broke in. Looking around, they saw arge number of pirates d in waterproof outfits emerging from the sea in the bay, quietly approaching,pletely surrounding their camp. The ck Night Raven pped his leg, excitedly saying, ¡°It¡¯s the Canglong Pirate Group. Oh my, why am I so lucky.¡± ¡°Where is ck Night Raven? Who killed my vice-captain? Come out! What kind of sorcery did you use to summon the Gold Dragon? Hand over the magic artifact that you used for the summoning, or I will kill all your people!¡± shouted the pirate in the lead, who seemed to be the Captain of Azure Dragon. ck Night Raven suddenly understood, ¡°So he thought that you were summoned by me, Lord Brooks?¡± Inside his human guise, Brucek¡¯s eyes flickered, ¡°Let¡¯s just y along, take something and show it to him, and then call out my name.¡±
Nodding enthusiastically, ck Night Raven picked up a random stone from the ground, rushed forward and shouted, ¡°So you¡¯re the Captain of Azure Dragon? You know I can summon a Gold Dragon, so why did you dare toe to me? Don¡¯t you fear death? Look at this! This is the Dragon God Stone!¡± The Captain of Azure Dragon was taken aback by the insignificant-looking stone in ck Night Raven¡¯s hand, that had neither luster nor any magical fluctuation. After a moment¡¯s pause, he burst outughing, ¡°You want to deceive me with a lousy stone? Hand over the magical artifact, or I will kill everyone.¡± ¡°But this is it,¡± ck Night Raven brandished the stone in his hand. ¡°Lord Brooks! In the name of the Dragon God, I call out your name. Come forth, Gold Dragon Brucek!¡± Just as the Captain of Azure Dragon was about tough, he suddenly heard the dragon¡¯s roar piercing the darkness, and a huge golden figure, highly visible even in the dark, pounced towards him. Before being swallowed by the dragon breath, the only thought in the Captain of Azure Dragon¡¯s mind was: the damned stone really does summon the Gold Dragon¡ª Early the next day, the Canglong Pirate Group, now under new leadership, hoisted ck Night Raven¡¯s g and set sail slowly towards Drake Ind. ck Night Raven stood on the bridge of the gship, face beaming with happiness, ¡°Why am I so lucky all the time? I¡¯ll worship the Undead God from now on.¡± Behind him, the former Canglong Pirates, now his men, were looking at the stone in Raven¡¯s hand, their faces full of reverence. With the movement of the pirate group, there began spreading a legend about the Divine Dragon Stone that summoned the Gold Dragon across the ocean. Negris had no idea that their mere circumnavigation of the ocean would change the bnce of power in the ocean. Regardless, she had no time to care about it right now, for upon their return to the Goddess of Beauty City, Katie came to them with a child in her arms. ¡°Isn¡¯t that the dragonkin child that the Spring Breeze Druid adopted? What happened? Did he get into trouble? What¡¯s he holding? Straw? A straw-made owl?¡± Negris asked with confusion. Katie let out a bitter smile, ¡°I have no idea what he has done either, but he has shaped them into these forms using y. Little Bu, tell everyone. How did you do it?¡± ¡°y? Little Bu? y straw? What do you mean?¡± Negris was astounded.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Ange, who had been tilting his head watching the whole time, suddenly pointed to the straw owl, ¡°Inside, there¡¯s a spirit.¡± PS: It¡¯s thest day. I¡¯m using the monthly votes you guys have given me for a lottery. It seems I¡¯ve won something, not sure if it¡¯s real or not, will keep you updated when it arrives. Chapter 519: 299: Ranked Fifth Knight Group_1 Chapter 519: Chapter 299: Ranked Fifth Knight Group_1
Undead beings have a soul, but actually, it consists of two parts; the spirit, which is consciousness, and the soul, which is the vessel. What Ange is saying is that there is a consciousness in this straw owl. This isn¡¯t a rare urrence; some Soul Devices also have consciousness, such as the Earth Hammer, the Bronze Book¡­ The spirit in the straw owl is essentially the same as Negris. However, the moment Ange touched it, he immediately sensed a difference. This consciousness was murmuring: ¡°My child, take care.¡± ¡°The Magic Rice is almost sessful, I am not satisfied.¡± ¡°I am the strongest Druid.¡± ¡°Dragon feces really stinks¡­¡± Not one of these was new to Ange. He had heard all of this from the dying thoughts of Spring Breeze Skeleton previously. Ange tilted his head, pointing at the little one and said: ¡°This consciousness, it was created by him.¡± Only a manufactured consciousness would be so rigid and monotonous, but this was already miraculous. The little one had created consciousness. For now, it was uncertain as to what level this consciousness held, whether it had wisdom or not. However, for a child who has not studied anything to create a consciousness from the dying thoughts of a corpse, it was definitely not a trivial matter. Negris was stupefied. Whether it was the straw crafted from mud or the fabricated consciousness, neither was within the normal power system. Only Divine Arts could yield such miraculous effects. But could a child of a few years old define Divine Arts? Was this a joke?
¡°Little Bu, wait a minute, why do you call him Little Bu?¡± Thinking of a question, Negris turned to ask Katie. ¡°Did you name him?¡± Katie asked. Negris frowned, thinking for a while. He couldn¡¯t remember if he had given a name or if Spring Breeze Druid had named him. ¡°So, I temporarily call him Little Bu. Lord Nage, would you like to name him?¡± Katie asked. Negris shook his head: ¡°Forget about it. Let¡¯s call him Little Bu. It sounds pleasant.¡± Pausing for a moment, Negris continued asking: ¡°What did you mean when you said he formed the straw owl using mud? How can mud be shaped into straw?¡± Katie spread her hands cluelessly, ¡°I am not sure either. I just saw him shaping it and suddenly, it became a lump of straw.¡± Speaking of it, Katie asked Little Bu softly, ¡°Little Bu, how did you do it? Could you show Lord Nage?¡± ¡°Aoao!¡± Little Bu shook his head, clutching the straw owl tightly.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Negris was stunned. Why could everyone speak the Aoaonguage? Was it taught by Little Angel? He could understand the Aoaonguage. Little Bu was saying, ¡°One made, can¡¯t make again.¡± The general meaning was, he had already made one, and could not make a second one. Negris bent over in front of Little Bu and asked kindly, ¡°Little Bu, why did you think of making an owl?¡± Little Bu pointed to the straw owl and said clearly in themonnguage, ¡°Grandpa Wind.¡± The little one, who could hardly articte words, spoke these few words so clearly. Clearly, someone taught him patiently. Negris flew up sighing, ¡°s, this little one, he never forgot Spring Breeze Druid. Perhaps because Spring Breeze often shapeshifted into an owl, he mistook the owl for Grandpa Wind. It¡¯s pitiful. He remembers the things from the past.¡± Katie nodded, ¡°Yes, the poor kid. He would often wake up from nightmares, crying and holding me, saying poop smells bad. What kind of poop was it that he can still remember it?¡± Negris awkwardly scratched his nose, about to steer away from the topic when he suddenly heard the Aoaonguage behind him. Turning his head, Little Angel had already moved Little Bu to the mud nearby. Along with Ange¡¯s Little Zombie, they all knelt on their knees to form a circle. In the center of the circle, Ange began to pour water. Once done with the watering, Little Angel ¡®Aoao¡¯-ed at him. ¡°Aoao?¡± ¡°Aoao!¡± ¡°Aoao~¡± ¡°Bang!¡± ¡°Wahwah¡­¡± ¡°Bang!¡± After a round of friendly and enthusiasticmunication, Little Bu, with two ck circles under his eyes, grudgingly started to shape the mud. Despite iming he couldn¡¯t make another one, a new mud owl slowly took form in his hands. Negris did not know what to say. These beings that could only ¡®Aoao¡¯, theirmunication methods were more rough and direct. Katie was heartbroken, but she did not dare to say anything. She could only nervously twisted the ends of her clothes. After the mud was shaped into an owl, Little Bu painstakingly carved out the details. The eyes and feathers appeared vivid. Once all the details wereplete, Little Bu reached out to pick it up. The mud owl couldn¡¯t be picked up, of course. But when Little Bu tried hard to pick it up, the mud owl broke down into a lump of straw. ¡°Sss, it really changed from mud to straw. How is this possible? Could it be some Illusion Technique? Doesn¡¯t this mean a change in elements?¡± Negris gasped, whispering incredulously to himself. This kind of change from one substance to another already surpassed his understanding. He could not fathom how it was possible. Was it Divine Arts? Only Divine Arts could bring about such irrational transformations. Or perhaps, it adhered to another set of rules, the rules of the gods. With this thought, Negris hurriedly flew past Ange and asked, ¡°Is he your follower? Could you stop squatting? You¡¯re a grown-up, a god at that with everyone watching. Don¡¯t act like a child.¡± Chapter 520: 299: Ranked Fifth Knight Group_2 Chapter 520: Chapter 299: Ranked Fifth Knight Group_2
Only Ange would do such a thing. To think that a Trinity God is crouching on the ground watching children y with mud. Ange nods. ¡°Which deity is it?¡± ¡°The God of Farming.¡± ¡°I knew it.¡± Negris has an ¡°I knew it¡± expression: ¡°So is this considered defining a Divine Art now? Can you use this divine art?¡± Ange nods his head, kneads a bone out of the mud and picks it up. The mud-kneaded bone turns instantly into a bone made of straw. ¡°¡­Can it only change to straw? Can¡¯t it be something else? What use is it to turn mud into straw¡­¡± Negris sighs: ¡°I knew I shouldn¡¯t have any expectations.¡± Originally, he thought that Ange could be a little more powerful, maybe improve this divine art. After all, Little Bu is just a child under five years old. He can transform things into straw, can¡¯t Ange modify the art and transform them into something else? For example, into gold or silver? This is a transformation of elements, like turning the ¡®earth¡¯ element into a ¡®wood¡¯ element. It¡¯s a creation of a divine technique. However, of course, there is no such ¡®wood¡¯ element. Ange tilts his head in thought, picks up the straw bone and throws it to Lightning: ¡°Eat.¡± Lightning caught it in his mouth and asked while chewing, ¡°Why should I eat this? It¡¯s so hard to chew and prickly. I want to eat the sprouts of the World Tree.¡± Even though it was hard to swallow, Lightning chewed and swallowed it anyway. He thought that the straw Ange threw over was something special since Ange had made it. But after swallowing it, he found out that it was just ordinary straw, even the taste was exactly the same.
It had been a long time since Lightning, the dignified lord, had chewed on straw. He hadn¡¯t tasted it since he started following Ange, usually it would be at least beet leaves. ¡°Ugh, it really tastes terrible.¡± Lightning spat out saliva, spitting out some pieces that had poked his mouth. Only then did Ange speak: ¡°It¡¯s edible.¡± Negris understood what he meant and said in an annoyed tone: ¡°Yes, yes, it can be eaten and can be used to feed horses, mud into straw, for feeding horses.¡± This is impossible. Don¡¯t think that just because it¡¯s mud turning into straw and both are worthless, it doesn¡¯t need divine power. Consuming a lot of divine power just to turn mud into straw to eat? That¡¯s insane. For now, that¡¯s all that could be done. The real reason Ange was flustered was that he could only change things into straw. ¡°What about the spirit in this?¡± Negris pointed to the consciousness in the straw owl. After all, straw is just straw. It can¡¯t be used as a medium for consciousness for too long before it falls apart. We need to figure out a way to transfer it somewhere else. Ange took out a straw man¡¯s hat. He had collected many straw man¡¯s hats when he was on the farm, but most of them were broken until Negris got the Gold-touch Stick and fixed them. But by then it didn¡¯t matter anymore, there were many straw man¡¯s hats in Durken¡¯s pce. He transferred the consciousness into the hat and put it back on the straw owl. ¡°Yes, yes, this will do. The straw man¡¯s hat is the main part. As long as the hat isn¡¯t broken, if the straw falls apart, you can just tie it back together.¡± Negris nodded and said. The consciousness slowly fused with the hat. Suddenly, the straw owl transformed into a crude owl, a living one. However, anyone could tell that it was a fake because the intensity of the consciousness was too low. Everyone present could see through this illusion. Only Little Bu didn¡¯t care. He excitedly hugged the straw owl and shouted, ¡°Grandpa Wind.¡± Under the illusion of the hat, the owl spoke in a human voice: ¡°Dragon poop smells so bad¡­ I am the strongest Druid¡­ Take care, child¡­¡± Negris had a ck line on his forehead and turned around to remind them, ¡°Don¡¯t let Naeli see it.¡± Katie nodded her head without really understanding. There¡¯s an additional consciousness, but it¡¯s notplete, resembling more of an iplete spiritual body like ghosts and specters. However, its significance is particrly profound, because it was created by Little Bu. This is not the consciousness of Spring Breeze Druid Loui, but a consciousness given some simr behavioral traits by Little Bu based on his own memory. If anything goes beyond Little Bu¡¯s memory, it won¡¯t exist. For instance, in his perception, ¡®Grandpa Wind¡¯ is just an owl. He might not even remember how Spring Breeze Druid Loui looked like in human form. ¡°Train him well in the future. He¡¯s this formidable at such a young age, who knows what great things he can aplish when he grows up,¡± sighed Negris. ¡°Alright, should we send him to Steris Academy then? Hiludi mentioned there¡¯s an enlightenment ss, and three-year-old children can be sent there to receive magician enlightenment. She said it¡¯s best to learn Magic Language as soon as possible, children have the bestnguage talent. Mynguage ability has degenerated as I grew older. I wanted to learn Aoaonguage, but I couldn¡¯t learn a sentence. But he picked it up easily.¡± Katie babbled on. ¡°And also the enli¡­¡± Just as she was about to say something, a deep voice suddenly rang, ¡°Whoo whoo whoo ¨C Tree Man Gore ¨C Enemy spotted ¨C Engage!¡± The deep voice could carry very far, and the whole Goddess of Beauty City was instantly buzzing. Ange instantly levitated and looked toward the direction of Fallen Dragon Lake. Fallen Dragon Lake and the Great Rift form a line, looking like an exmation mark when viewed from the sky. Goddess of Beauty City was built on the in between the Great Rift and East River. Heading south for more than two hundred kilometers, you would reach the Hope Oasis. If the enemy came from the south, they would first have to go through the Oasis and the desert. The Oasis¡¯s economy is now very active, and the traffic is busy. Arge body of enemies could not silently cross the desert and Oasis, and attack Goddess of Beauty City from the south. It¡¯s also impossible to attack along the river course. East River¡¯s defense is of utmost importance. Some river sections even require manpower to pull the boat across. Large groups of enemies attacking along the river would be dreaming. The only direction that could silently be attacked is the west side of the Fallen Dragon Lake. Theke is several hundred kilometers wide and is as vast as the ocean. It¡¯s too easy to sneak in from any direction. Of course, Ange would not analyze that much. He looked this way mainly because Tree Man Gore was also guarding this way. Just then, Ange sensed Anthony¡¯s urgent call in his soul: ¡°Lord, Lord, I¡¯ve received information that the consumption of fodder by the Flying Dragon Knights has greatly decreased recently. I suspect that they have taken action. I don¡¯t know whether the target is me or you. Please notify Lord Nage to be vignt.¡± Ange replied: ¡°It¡¯s me. I see flying dragons.¡± On the surface of Fallen Dragon Lake, a dense crowd of flying dragons was flying almost skimming along the water surface, pressing towards the Goddess of Beauty City. Flying Dragon Knights, the fifth-ranked air-mounted knight group in the realm. Their force only totals a thousand, and their mounts are verymon flying dragons, a type of low-level dragon beast. However, even though they are low-level dragon beasts, flying dragons are six meters long, with an eight-meter wingspan. They can easily carry fully armed knights for long-distance expeditions. Unlike ordinary horses, horses need to rest after running for several tens of kilometers. Flying dragons don¡¯t need to. They can fly thousands of kilometers in one breath and can spit fireballs and bite enemies. Even if they fall to the ground, they are huge creatures that are six to seven meters long. When the number of these huge creatures reaches a thousand, their flight is like a cloud, a dense ck. Compared with such flying dragon knights, the flying wing knights they encountered before were simply a joke. Although the numbers were simr, their battle power was worlds apart. Although the battle power of Flying Dragon Knights is strong, they can only be ranked fifth among air-mounted knight groups because the first four are even stronger. For example, the first-ranked Giant Dragon Legion, the second-ranked Steris Mage Group, the third-ranked Double-headed Chimera Knight Group, and the fourth-ranked Gryphon Knight Dwarves. The Flying Dragon Knight Corps belongs to the Church of Light and is directlymanded by Guliani. Obviously, after being vetoed at the Dimension Security Conference, Guliani decided to execute the proposal to expel abyss nomads himself.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om The Dimension Security Conference is a regr meeting to coordinate the major powers of the dimension. But if one party does not abide by the agreement and insists on forcing it¡­ Then unless the other parties directly send troops and intervene with force, they can only scold them at the next conference. In the security meeting, Ange has four allies. There will be four people to help him scold, but he needs to disperse these Flying Dragon Knights first. Chapter 521: 300: Is the Dragon Beast Afraid of Dragon Prestige? _1 Chapter 521: Chapter 300: Is the Dragon Beast Afraid of Dragon Prestige? _1
The leader of the Dragon Knight Brigade, Captain Aimer, had a solemn look on his face, and remained silent. This perturbed his deputy, Shuyin, who asked, ¡°You seem preupied. Did you lose in cards again yesterday?¡± Airborne units, whilst in flight, face severemunication difficulties, which prevents them from executing intricate formations and coordinating maneuvers as seamlessly as their ground-based counterparts. The basic tactic is quite simple. Junior Knights follow their Lead Knight, Lead Knights follow the Knights, Knights follow the Great Knights, the Great Knights follow the Captain, who basically leads the charge. To reach the level of a Knight, one must be a High-level Sword Fighter who has the ability to shape-shift utilizing his battle energy. This season swordsman can do some things that the low-level ones can¡¯t. Like focusing their voice into a single stream and directing it at a target tomunicate while in flight. This tactic is advanced and is difficult to master for most. Only high-level Sword Fighters can provide the fundamental basis, but even they require long-term training to fully grasp it. Most High-Level Sword Fighters are not in the position to practice thisplicated and seldom used tactic due to their struggle for livelihood. Only these airborne knights would practice such tactic from an early age, and after they cross the threshold of bing a High-Level Sword Fighter, they are able to apply this skill immediately. Shuyin¡¯s voice was sent directly to Aimer¡¯s ear, as if he were speaking directly to him. Aimer shook his head and said, ¡°I don¡¯t y cards before a battle, nor do I think about anything unrted to the fight.¡± ¡°So it¡¯s about the battle then. Why do you look so serious? Is the enemy that strong?¡± Shuyin asked with curiosity. ¡°Don¡¯t you read the battle reports?¡± Aimer asked. ¡°That¡¯s why I am puzzled. Isn¡¯t it just a bunch of abyssal nomads? I don¡¯t think there¡¯s too much to worry about. With us all heading out, besides those air knights ranked on the leaderboard, who else can stop us?¡± Shuyin asserted confidently. Aimer shook his head patiently and responded, ¡°If there was nothing to worry about, would the King send us all out? Do you know how much grain is consumed daily when the entire army is mobilized? As we venture deeper into the desert ¨C or even take a detour ¨C do you realize how many soldiers will be needed to back us up? Do you think the enemy that we¡¯re making such huge expenditures to ambush is one we don¡¯t need to worry about? You¡¯re beingcent.¡± Although Shuyin didn¡¯t entirely agree, he straightened his face and said, ¡°Yes, Captain, you are correct. I was careless. The enemy that requires us to mobilize the entire army must not be ordinary. May I know if you¡¯ve analyzed anything from the battle reports?¡±
Aimer shook his head, ¡°These Abyssal nomads are strange. What I am going to tell you isn¡¯t mentioned in the battle reports.¡± Shuyin¡¯s interest was piqued. He knew that Captain Aimer, being an heir to a long-standing noble family, had ess to information far beyond his which was an upstart from a minor noble family. ¡°The leader of these Abyssal Nomads is Ange,¡± Aimer revealed. Shuyin was shocked. ¡°You mean the Ange that the elves were searching all over the world for?¡± ¡°Yes, it¡¯s the same ce that the Elves sent their whole force to, resulting in us being in level-four security for a month,¡± Aimer confirmed. Shuyin frowned, ¡°That doesn¡¯t make sense. From the scale of the Elves¡¯ forces, they were obviously seeking revenge. I thought they were about tounch a nar War. If this was where their target was, then why did they apologize to Ange afterward? Could it have been because they lost ¨C hence the need for apology?¡± Even as he voiced thest part, Shuyin found it ridiculous, the Elves losing? Aimer nodded. ¡°Not only did they apologize, they also had topensate. Did you see the Giant War Tree in the battle report?¡± Shuyin was taken aback and then grimaced as a gust of wind blew into his mouth. ¡°That can¡¯t be right. I thought the Elves only rented out those War Trees. Could it be that they rented one?¡±n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°No, only the lower-level War Trees are avable for rent. The one in Goddess City is a Super War Gigantic Tree which was only responsible for guarding the Tree of Life. In human terms, it would be akin to the Royal Knight Brigade or the Defense Legion,¡± Aimer exined. Without these descriptions, it would have been more difficult for Shuyin to understand. But as soon as he heard the analogy, heughed out loud. ¡°You mean those glittering dragon dung eggs?¡± Aimer¡¯s cheeks twitched with embarrassment. He realized his analogy was inappropriate. Regardless of the country, the Royal Knight Brigade or Defense Legion tended to be a ce for nobles¡¯ offspring to gain prestige. They were fully equipped, butcked fighting power ¨C like shiny dragon dung eggs that stunk to high heaven. ¡°The Super War Gigantic Tree is far from a dragon dung egg. It¡¯s the Elves¡¯ greatest asset. Capable of contending with even Giant Dragons, it possesses unparalleled firepower that¡¯s ten times more potent than lower-level War Trees. And I¡¯m sure you¡¯ve seen how deadly ten lower-level War Trees can be.¡± ¡°Crap, that exins why you had the Heavy Loading Squad bring all those incendiary grenades and ming arrows ¨C it was to crash this monstrosity,¡± Shuyin finally revealed the realization. ¡°But surely the existence of a single super War Gigantic Tree doesn¡¯t warrant such a heedful response?¡± Aimer chuckled, ¡°Because that might be the least of their power. Have you heard of the Fallen Angel Shamara? Well, it¡¯s been reported that Shamara has now sided with these Abyssal Nomads.¡± ¡°And, you know about the Silver dragon and the Bronze Dragon right? There¡¯s news that there are at least three Juvenile Dragons in the Goddess of Beauty City. One of them is underdeveloped, but the others are air-superiority capable. Furthermore, there¡¯s a mature ¡®strange¡¯ dragon, the species of which we don¡¯t know but it¡¯s about twenty to thirty meters long.¡± Chapter 522: 300: Is the Dragon Beast Afraid of Dragon Prestige? _2 Chapter 522: Chapter 300: Is the Dragon Beast Afraid of Dragon Prestige? _2
Shamara was one thing, but the giant dragons required caution from the adjutant, because their flying dragons were a type of dragon beasts, and the giant dragons held a bloodline suppression over them; just seeing a giant dragon, let alone confronting it, having the ability to maintain stable flight was already quite good. Furthermore, even if the flying dragons were trained and mustered the courage to attack the giant dragon, they were not a match for it. The adjutant turned to nce back, his gaze fell on a floating magic carriage that was in the rear. It was a carriage without wheels that could hover in the air. The carriage was shaped like a cobblestone, wider in the middle and thinner at both ends, round and smooth. Four griffins were pulling the carriage, flying at a slightly higher altitude than most of the flying dragons, smoothly and gracefully. ¡°So that¡¯s why you invited the Arcane Mage, Owenson. His elemental javelin can restrict the giant dragon.¡± The adjutant suddenly realized. Aimer nodded, ¡°They also have twenty or so mixed-blood titans, likely having the bloodline of the Thunder Titan, and there are a bunch of misceneous characters.¡± If Luther and Lightning knew that they were ssified as ¡®misceneous¡¯, they would certainly erupt in anger. The adjutant still could not understand ¨C after all, who were they? The Flying Dragon Knights! The fifth strongest aerial knight unit in the ne. Those who outranked them were not human forces. Even the numerically superior human force, the Steris Magician Group,prised creatures and elemental beings. Thus, the Flying Dragon Knights could also im to be the strongest human force. As the strongest human force, wouldn¡¯t they be able to deal with such an enemy lineup?N?v(el)B\\jnn ¡°I just want you to be cautious and not underestimate your opponent. If it gets too challenging, I won¡¯t be there.¡± Aimer spoke. ¡°Ourbat strength is not what I¡¯m most concerned about, it¡¯s the people behind them.¡± The adjutant asked curiously, ¡°We are directly under the reign of Guliani, who else could be more important than the Emperor?¡± ¡°You know the ne Security Meeting, right? Lord Dyson and the Emperor brought it up twice. When it came to dealing with these nomads of the abyss, none of the movements could get through. So it is certain they have connections with the Dragon n, the elves, and even Lord Anthony. Judging by the elves¡¯ actions, if we do not kill all these nomads in a single blow, the elves are likely to send troops to assistance and we might end up facing the two-headed Chimera Knights.¡±
The adjutant said confidently, ¡°That won¡¯t happen, how could they possibly withstand our attack? As long as there aren¡¯t dozens of giant dragons exerting their dragon¡¯s prestige and scaring the children. The Flying Dragon Knights are sure to ovee everything.¡± ¡°Hahaha, that¡¯s the spirit. Carry on and ovee everything because we are¡ª¡± The final sentence was shouted out by Aimer, his voice echoing with fighting spirit. The only response from his subordinates and the adjutant was an invigorated echo, ¡°The Flying Dragon Knights!¡± ¡°We are¡ª¡± ¡°The Flying Dragon Knights! Invincible in battle! Pressing on with courage!¡± They could already seend ahead, indicating that they had flown over Fallen Dragon Lake, which was hundreds of kilometers wide. The shore was covered in vast, orderly rice fields, their golden crops weighed down heavily, causing the stalks to bend. Some knights who had an understanding of agriculture couldn¡¯t help but exim, ¡°So many rice fields? Isn¡¯t this a saltwaterke? We were repeatedly warned not to drink the water from theke on the way here, then why are there so many rice fields?¡± Not everyone knew about the existence of saltwater rice. Just then, a row of ck balls was flung over from the distance, following a smooth parabolic trajectory and dropping into the formation of the Flying Dragon Knights. Aimer shouted loudly, ¡°Enemy attack! Scatter! Enemy attack! It could be exploding fruits!¡± Because of incident with the War Giant Tree near the Goddess of Beauty City, these balls flung over could likely be explosive fruits. Indeed, the balls flew over the formation of the Flying Dragon Knights and suddenly exploded in mid-air, scattering countless small ck specks in all directions. ¡°Ah!¡± Covered by the exploding ck specks, many Flying Dragon Knights cried out in horror. There were also quick-reacting Flying Dragon Knights who used their fighting spirits, or raised their shields, resisting these small ck specks. The sound of continuous nging reverberated as the ck specks failed to break their defenses. But before they could rejoice, the flying dragons beneath them staggered, wailing in pain. The small ck specks from the exploding fruits pierced the most fragile wing membranes of the flying dragons, instantly reducing their maneuverability, and in some cases,pletely incapacitating them. If they continued to fly, the pierced wing membrane would continue to tear, eventually forming arge hole incapable of holding the wind. The Dragon Knights scattered like a disturbed ho¡¯s nest. On the other end of the parab, Gore, the Tree Man, swept its other hand along the tree trunk, snatching up the explosive fruits as he passed by. It lowered its long arm to the ground, then swung its trunk. Being a War Tree Man reaching a hundred meters in height, it could swing with an amplitude of tens of meters. Coupled with the arm stretched to the ground, this constituted a lever force over a hundred meters long. The arm swung with great force, flinging the ten explosive fruits held in the hand like cannonballs into the distance. While hurling the fruits, Gore spoke to Ange and the others who had rushed over: ¡°So many flying dragons, everyone run quick, I might not be able to handle them. I¡¯ve stored up two hundred explosive fruits, ten per toss, and they¡¯ll be gone after twenty tosses. I can produce twenty fruits an hour, after I use up these stored fruits, I¡¯ll have to grow them slowly. You guys run, I¡¯ll hold them off.¡± ¡°Gore, changing your name, huh? Brave Gore, is it?¡± Lightning, carrying Ange into the air, responded with a smirk. Gore ignored it, and instead turned to Ange saying, ¡°Take care of God of Life.¡± Of course, Talkative Goler isn¡¯t brave, it¡¯s just willing to sacrifice everything for the God of Life. Lightning pouted, not used to its once verballybativepanion suddenly acting courageous. Ange took out the Little Sapling, put it on his head and then walked on air. He climbed onto Gore and left a heavy footprint, At the same time, the Little Sapling waved its leaves at Gore: Grow¡ªstronger ¡ª grow ¡ª stronger ¡ª ¡°Huh, what did you do to me? Suddenly, my sap is secreting so quickly, and the speed at which I grow fruit has also elerated. What did you do to me?¡± Gore asked, shocked, Ignoring Gore, Ange pulled out the insect ash liquid, mixed it with water, then used magic to shake it into mist and sprinkled it onto Gore. ¡°What kind of water fertilizer is this? My God, so much vitality, I suddenly feel so powerful.¡± Gore shouted in excitement, its roots thrust into the ground and it focused on throwing explosive fruits. Originally, it would take an hour to produce twenty explosive fruits, but with the help of the instant death halo, Little Sapling, and insect ash liquid, this was reduced to twenty fruits per minute. If Gore tosses ten fruits every thirty seconds, its fruits will be endless. Facing an endless barrage of explosive fruits, the Dragon Knights finally approached close enough to see the War Giant Tree. Aimer instantlymanded, ¡°Heavy-load dragons, ascend, drop the fierce fire oil and fire bombs, burn that tree.¡± With Aimer¡¯smand, some noticeablyrger flying dragons in the Dragon Knight group ascended. Just like humans have dwarfs and big guys, so do flying dragons. Therger ones are specifically picked out to carry heavier weapons, including the air raid¡¯s particrly useful fierce fire oil and fire bombs. They fly over the city, calcte the drop point, and let it fall. The force of the drop from such heights is enough to break through many city defenses and then the fierce fire oil detonates, turning the entire city into a sea of fire. This kind of weapon is also very effective for burning trees. A silver light and a yellow shadow swiftly swooped in, pouncing on the heavy-load flying dragons. This was White Neck and Naeli. Presently, both White Neck and Naeli had grown into giant dragons, about ten meters long. Though this size is considered young among the Giant Dragon n,pared to the seven or eight meter long flying dragons, they were noticeablyrger, and they also had a natural intimidating presence against the flying dragons. Seeing them swooping in, the terrified flying dragons scattered, avoiding the ces they attacked. The heavy-load flying dragons were distracted and for the moment couldn¡¯t fly above the War Giant Tree. Aimer didn¡¯t pay it any mind; the scattered Dragon Knights continued to press forward, like dark clouds looming toward the Goddess of Beauty City. In front of these dark clouds, a human riding a snow-white unicorn galloped toward the Dragon Knights, resembling a white rapier piercing the dark clouds. ¡°Hehe, quite a brave knight, he¡¯s mine,¡± Aimer smirked, about to stand up from the flying dragon, only to find that the dragon beneath him had started trembling. Do dragons fear dragon prestige? Looking at the flying dragons in the sky trying to avoid White Neck and Naeli, Ange suddenly understood as scales began to form all over his body. Would the dragon prestige of the Dragon God scare the flying dragons out of their wits? Chapter 523: 301: Scared to Death in Real Life_1 Chapter 523: Chapter 301: Scared to Death in Real Life_1
Aimer drew out his Dragon Pattern Double-handed Sword, heartily pulled at the armor on his chest, and with a ¡°crack¡± sound, a pair of wings spread from his back. The Winged Knights rank outside the top ten on the continent, but their wings offer significant advantages, enabling a knight to conserve a lot of energy while airborne. However, not all dragon knights are equipped with wings. Only the Great Swordsman or above, such as leaders or adjunct leaders of their squadron, and the Great Knights are equipped with wings. Unlike the cumbersome wings of the Winged Knights, the wings behind Aimer are as thin as cicada¡¯s wings, and are also flexible. This is why one must possess the strength of a great swordsman or above, to effectively manipte these wings. Years of practice and flexible control, driven by his own energy, the wings on his back can provide Aimer with agilityparable to a flying dragon. The dragon beneath him, which he had raised since youth, was closer to him than his wife, living and eating practically together. It was its trembling that immediately alerted Aimer that something was awry. His wings had just opened up, energy surged, and he took off into the wind. Aimer was the leader and also the most powerful dragon knight, possessing the strength of a high-level sword saint. He could briefly fly in the sky and with the aid of wings, his agility was no less than that of a flying dragon. Aimer¡¯s feeling was correct. Just as he left the back of the flying dragon, the trembling dragon finally couldn¡¯t suppress its fear any longer and, with a mournful scream, it turned and fled. Aimer had never seen hispanion so terrified, its cries seemed almost like sobbing. During training, the flying dragons would undergo a sort of adaptable training, such as a sudden appearance of an illusion of a giant dragon to scare them, to help them limatize to facing a giant dragon. Of course, not every dragon remained unscathed, some timid flying dragons would be frightened to death by the illusion. The illusion could replicate a giant dragon, but it couldn¡¯t replicate the dragon¡¯s prestige. The innate prestige of the giant dragon has the top deterrent effect on dragon beasts. Just two giant dragons alone caused the heavy-cavalry squad to break their formation.
Almost at the same time as the flying dragon turned and fled did Aimer sense a surge of threat. He gave a fixed stare and saw scales surging all over Ange, quickly changing him into a scaled humanoid creature. ¡°Dragonkin? I see, quite high-ranking then. It was able to scare my flying dragon. That means, if I wipe you out, my flying dragons can return to normal?¡± Aimer¡¯s tone was dripping with arrogance,pletely different from the vignt demeanor he exhibited earlier. Being cautious was due to sizing up the battle situation, while despotism was due to confidence in himself. Though he was not a Truth Mage, Aimer was a well-established high-level sword saint. In the sky, besides a Giant Dragon and a Truth Mage, Aimer did not believe there was anyone who could match him. Even if the opponent was a Truth Mage, once he got within a certain range, they couldn¡¯t outrun his sword. Ange arched his body, opened his mouth, and let out a clear dragon¡¯s roar. It was hard to imagine how his petite stature produced such a terrifying sound. Lines of blue waves appeared in front of him, which sprayed out tangibly. Aimer, who was the foremost target, propped up his hand in front of him, gathered his energy to shield himself, and at the same time used energy to seal his ears. However, the sound of the dragon¡¯s roar seemed to be substantial, just like a steel awl piercing through his eardrum, causing a slight ringing in his ears. But the most terrifying thing about a dragon¡¯s roar is not its volume, but the dragon¡¯s prestige contained within it, the majesty of the Dragon God, from the ancient ancestors millions of years ago, engraved in the lineage and power. The flying dragons at the forefront of the impact were all bulging their eyes, their pupils contracted, their necks swollen, their skin iron-grey, then they crashed from the sky. They were literally scared to death. A distance away, the flying dragons that hadn¡¯t been directly hit all screamed, dropping their heads and spiraling down. No matter how they were whipped by their knights, they refused to obey. Afternding, they folded their wings, adopting the most submissive posture as they knelt on the ground, their long necks and heads burrowed into the soil. Further away, other flying dragons also spiraled down but were forcefully restrained by their knights who scolded and tugged, attempting to halt their descent. Although they were stopped, they dared not move forward, and at the sight of Ange moving, they wailed and turned to flee. The outermost flying dragons were least affected, but the miserable state of their kin terrified them, leaving them hesitating, riddled with fear. Not just the dragons were terrified, all the Dragon Knights, including Aimer, were horrified. The fifth-ranked Knight Group was silenced by the enemy¡¯s roar? Even if the n Leader, Bruce, and several mature giant dragons came personally, there wouldn¡¯t be such overwhelming force. What was it?! Recing their flying mounts or opponents wouldn¡¯t result in the current effect. The ancient God of Dragons, the ancestor of all dragon n bloodlines, was resurrected in Ange, and the opponents just happened to have dragon blood running through their veins. A dragon¡¯s roar destroyed all of Aimer¡¯s confidence. He stared at Ange uncertainly. But there was no time for him to hesitate. After Ange shouted, he darted forward. With a leap, Ange appeared right before him covering a distance of dozens of meters, startling Aimer. ¡°Instant sh?! You¡¯re a Space Magic Instructor?!¡± Aimer shouted, his fighting spirit erupting, and the longsword shing upwards. Three shes were made in an instant, as if to tear the heavens and earth apart. But midway, they suddenly froze. Not only Aimer but Ange and the space around them also froze.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Space Dragon, Instant sh, Space Solidification. Only Aimer¡¯s eyes could move. He stared in horror as small dots appeared one after another in front of him, freezing quickly to densely fill the space between him and Ange. Aimer could do nothing. High-level Sword Saint or not, Energy Sword or not, air-de off the body or not, he couldn¡¯t move a finger. Time ticked by. Ange¡¯s roar took four seconds, Instant sh took half a second, and after eighteen and a half seconds, the frozen space resumed its flow. Aimer¡¯s halfway-drawn de directly collided with the erupting exploding fireball, instantly extinguishing it. The remaining fireball spewed onto Aimer, onto his armor, onto his hands, onto his protective aura of fighting energy. From the mes sprayed by the exploding fireball, a charred figure was sted out, drawing a parab towards the ground. Luther, who was watching the battle from the ground, couldn¡¯t help but shrink back. A High-level sword saint, clearly much stronger than him, couldn¡¯t even withstand a single move from his master? The initially watchful Dragon Knights dispersed in chaos, fleeing in every direction. Only a group of dragons with their heads buried in the dirt were left, and a dozen or so whose wings were punctured and unable to fly, probably adding up to over a hundred. Ange slowly descended among them. The scales on his body retracted, yet the residual aura still made these dragons shudder, like a flock of quail. PS: I can¡¯t keep up. Here¡¯s one chapter for now. I need to get some sleep. Chapter 524: 302: Its Not Called Fighting If You Dont Fight Back_1 Chapter 524: Chapter 302: It¡¯s Not Called Fighting If You Don¡¯t Fight Back_1
¡°What did you say!?¡± Guliani, who was enjoying his afternoon tea with the addition of the pricey frosted sugar, startled out of his chair. His sudden movement knocked over the small tea table in front of him, scattering the frosted sugar and tea leaves. The priests surrounding him took a nce at the scattered items with a look of regret. It was not surprising, the frosted sugar tea leaves were so expensive that even the pope¡¯s attendants like them rarely got a chance to enjoy it. Sugar, already a raremodity in this era, usually came as unrefined brown or ck sugar. So, the snow-white frosted sugar was extremely scarce, even rarer than Demon Crystals. As for tea, it was even more umon. It was a product of another ne, a small box of it cost a thousand Demon Crystals. The amount of tea spilled now probably cost several hundred Demon Crystals. Guliani disregarded these losses, grabbed the priest delivering the report, ¡°What? Say it again.¡± Even when he learned about Anthony¡¯s Schism Church, he hadn¡¯t been this shocked. ¡°The¡­ The Dragon Knights were defeated, Captain Aimer died in battle, half of the dragon beasts were injured and surrendered, the remaining ones are fleeing back here. They are terrified,¡± the priest reported with an incredulous look. While reporting, he repeatedly looked down at the battle report on the paper, showing his disbelief at the information written. ¡°Impossible!¡± Guliani snatched the report, ¡°Judging by the timing, the Dragon Knights should have arrived at the Goddess of Beauty City only two hours ago. Even if they were 2,000 flying pigs, they wouldn¡¯t be defeated within two hours!¡± Aerial battles are often swift yet prolonged. A moment of intersection between the two forces could decide life or death, making the battle swift. But if the enemy can¡¯t be shot down immediately, the battle would drag into a lengthy chase until one side exhausts its strength. A thousand Dragon Knights, even if the enemy had equivalent aerial forces, the battle couldn¡¯t be resolved within two hours. Even if those were 2,000 flying pigs, they couldn¡¯t be wiped out within two hours. Why 2,000? Because he included both the dragon beasts and the knights into the ¡®ability to fly¡¯ category. After grabbing the report, Guliani saw an unbelievable line: An enemy roared, causing chaos among the dragon beasts, scaring hundreds to death, hundreds to retreat, and hundreds more to terrify. Captain Aimer faced the enemy alone, but the enemy waved his hand, causing devastation for hundreds of miles, resulting in Aimer¡¯s death.
¡°Who wrote this report? Drag him to the Judgment Hall and burn him.¡± Guliani furiously pped the solid wooden table beside him, breaking it into pieces. No wonder Guliani was angry, what kind of report was this? Hundreds, hundreds, hundreds of miles¡ªcouldn¡¯t they provide a precise number? Was this a battle report or a poem?n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Yes, sir!¡± An attendant immediately responded and exited. After fuming for a while, Guliani said, ¡°Summon Lord Dyson.¡± It took Dyson more than half an hour to reach the curia. He was 2,000 kilometers away on the West Coast where people who had fled the Land of Fallen were currently settled. It was also the frontline for their operations. After the Dragon Knights¡¯ aerial raid, the ground troops would advance from there to take over the Goddess of Beauty City. Seeing the report, Dyson was astounded, ¡°Is this report exaggerating?¡± Guliani frowned, the detailed reports he received after Dyson¡¯s arrival made him less sure than before. Embarrassingly, he said, ¡°What if it¡¯s not exaggerated? What if it¡¯s true? What if we wronged the person who wrote the report? Uh, who wrote the report? Was he burnt? Tell them not to burn him.¡± The attendant who had previously taken the order hesitated, then said, ¡°Your holiness, it¡¯s toote. He has been burned.¡± ¡°Oh, you executed the order well, but unfortunately¡­ may he rest in peace in Heaven.¡± Guliani said sadly. Dyson read the rest of the report and sat down in a stunned silence, ¡°You mean, just one roar?¡± Guliani nodded, ¡°The Dragon chant, The Dragon God Transformation.¡± ¡°Brooks? He vited the treaty! He directly intervened in the continental conflicts!¡± Dyson fumed. Guliani had the same suspicion. A dragon chant capable of the legendary Dragon God Transformation could only mean that Brooks personally took action. The Dragon Knights, those nearby were affected, while those far away couldn¡¯t see clearly. They only saw a humanoid creature covered in scales. This creature resembled a dragonkin, many dragonkin looked like that. But the ability to wipe out dragon beasts with just one chant would only align with the legendary Dragon God Transformation. If Brooks knew that he¡¯d been med for such a heinous act while he was still on Dragon Ind, he would undoubtedly be astounded. ¡°Your holiness, we should convene a cross-dimensional safety meeting to strongly condemn this behavior of the Dragon n,¡± Dyson suggested. Guliani shook his head, ¡°You forgot our resolution did not pass? We won¡¯t get any support in the meeting.¡± ¡°So, what should we do?¡± Dyson sighed, it was a headache. Originally, he had imagined it beautifully: an unexpected raid by the Dragon Knights seizing the enemy¡¯s high ranks, then the ground troops would arrive to take over the territory and assets of the Goddess of Beauty City. The ground forces had been assembled, but the aerial team was defeated? What to do now? Guliani stared at him deeply and said calmly, ¡°The Goddess of Beauty City was your idea, saying they made lots of money from women and the bald. But you went to Seth Empire to fetch manpower and barely made it past the door before being ambushed by the enemy. You suffered heavy losses and scared the Seth Royal Family, halting their coboration.¡± Chapter 525: 302: Its Not a Fight If You Dont Fight Back_2 Chapter 525: Chapter 302: It¡¯s Not a Fight If You Don¡¯t Fight Back_2
¡°Now, I¡¯ve lent you the Dragon Knights, and the loss has been severe. You need to give me an exnation before I can exin it to everyone else,¡±n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Dyson hurriedly said, ¡°Your Majesty, give me another chance. Only after Goddess of Beauty City has been conquered can I provide everyone with an exnation. Even if you strip everything from me right now, I wouldn¡¯t be able to exin.¡± It was rare for Dyson to use such a ¡®debtor is the boss¡¯ tone with Giuliani; he must¡¯ve been pretty flustered. He was chased back from the Land of Fallen, with a bunch of followers that needed to be settled. He had used up every single copper coin in his pockets. His original n was to take over the Goddess of Beauty city to regain his losses. But others were quicker and more ruthless than him. He had just gone to discuss a potential n. Before the n was even decided upon, the enemy ambushed him on the road, causing him to lose one clone and frightening the Seth Royal Family. The Seth royal family no longer possessed the determination of their ancestors to go all out against the undead. Now, they had be a group of goblins that wouldn¡¯t make a move without seeing any gold coins. If Dyson couldn¡¯t hold the enemy back, they definitely would not supply troops. Well then, the scheme of borrowing troops to steal money and then use the stolen money to repay debts failed. Left with no other choice, he had to approach Giuliani. Initially, he did not want to seek Giuliani¡¯s help. If he could settle things by himself, only three-tenths of the profit would have to be given to the curia. But if Giuliani was to make a move, he would have to give away eight-tenths and bear all the costs and risks, which would be a great loss. However, the initial costs had already been paid. He was somewhat unwilling to give up just yet, and in the end, he couldn¡¯t resist seeking help from Giuliani. As long as Giuliani could make a move, the risk was quite minimal. Didn¡¯t expect even such a small risk to fail. Why is it so tough for him? Giuliani¡¯s intention was to let him bear all the losses. Dyson did not dare to refuse, but the loss was so big, half of the Dragon Knights, Dyson really could not afford it. ¡°What do you n to do?¡± Giuliani asked. ¡°I need to go back and do some research first,¡± Dyson said, frowning.
The enemy¡¯s power was far beyond what he anticipated. During the attempted assassination in Seth Royal Court, the enemy demonstrated a remarkable individual strength, and all the ck Warriors he had sent to collect information had disappeared, disying a strong anti-assassination capability. So he only dared tounch arge-scale attack with his troops, but now even the army¡¯s advancement had failed. Although there was a bloodline suppression factor involved, they couldn¡¯t possibly find another equally powerful legion and try again, right? Giuliani suddenly smirked mysteriously, waved his hand to dismiss everyone, leaving only him and Dyson in the room. After everyone left, Giuliani looked Dyson up and down and said smilingly, ¡°Actually, you could go in person.¡± The look in Giuliani¡¯s eyes made Dyson¡¯s spine stiffen. He was reminded of some rumors about Giuliani being weak. He didn¡¯t used to pay attention to such rumors. Which well-known figure in the curia was not rumored to be weak? Dyson quickly shook his head and said, ¡°No, that day, they demonstrated an overwhelming individual strength during the assassination attempt. Even if I am to send all my men, we might not be able to defeat them.¡± ¡°What if he is added? Your body is strong enough to hold his power.¡± As soon as he finished speaking, a tall figure emerged behind Giuliani, looking at Dyson without any expression. ¡­ Owenson¡¯s carriage, being pulled by a griffin, flew awkwardly over theke surface. The Fallen Dragon Lake, which was five to six hundred kilometers wide, took the griffin two to three hours to fly across. So the Pope at the curia, who was far away, had already received the news that he had not yet flown off the water surface of theke area. Owenson was terrified. The legendary Dragon God Transformation, there were actual Truth mages on the other side? Owenson really wanted to scold them in Magic Language. How did they gather their intelligence? Weren¡¯t they sending him to death? He was just an Arcanist. Although his Elemental Javelin was a deterrent to the Giant Dragons, it didn¡¯t restrain the Truth Level Giant Dragons. They could torture him to death using magic alone without transforming. Thank goodness he did not rush to the front-lines. As soon as Ange created the Frozen Space, he immediately ran away in response. Owenson abandoned the Dragon Knights and fled in a different direction on his own. After flying for more than two hours, they still hadn¡¯t left theke area, but they had long lost sight of other flying units. Owenson just rxed, thinking that he had gotten away, when he noticed a ck dot shing ahead of him. When he got closer, to his surprise, it was a woman standing on a giant Magic Wand. Owenson¡¯s heart squeezed, this obvious feature reminded him of a name instantly: Space Arcanist, Hiludi. At the level of an Arcanist, they generally have their own nicknames. For example, he was called Elemental Javelin. But Hiludi, being infused with both ¡®Space¡¯ and ¡®Arcanist¡¯, had a more valuable nickname than his. What a coincidence? Owenson stiffened his scalp and flew straight past Hiludi, stuck his head out awkwardly and greeted, ¡°Greetings to the elements, Space Arcanist, Elemental Javelin Owenson greets you.¡± Hiludi was looking at the sky, and immediately said on hearing him, ¡°Hello, hello, you¡¯re the one I was looking for. The Goddess of Beauty City has issued a bounty for you. The prize is a Beauty Tooth Set. Come with me.¡± Owenson was stunned. He understood the Goddess of Beauty City cing a bounty on him, but what the hell is a Beauty Tooth set? Is it for engraving teeth? Owenson watched Hiludi warily, reached out his hand, slowly grabbing an ¡®Elemental Javelin¡¯, made of condensed wind element, which looked like a long and slender tornado. Chapter 526: 302: Its Not a Fight If You Dont Fight Back_3 Chapter 526: Chapter 302: It¡¯s Not a Fight If You Don¡¯t Fight Back_3
Hiludi still held her head high, but she could sense the elemental changes, speaking directly: ¡°I would advise you toe with me. Our school¡¯s Death Star and Blue Star have also received bounties. I simply got here first because I ran faster. If they find you, they won¡¯t be polite.¡± Hearing these two names, Owenson was stunned. Did the Truth Mage actually ept a bounty? Blue Star was understandable as Tyrone openly bid for assignments, but did Dead Star Auburnli also ept a bounty? Auburnli was rumored to be undead; would she only ept dead and not alive? ¡°Lord¡­ Lord Typhoon only takes tasks with a reward of over half a million demon crystals, and doesn¡¯t takebat assignments, right?¡± Owenson weakly asked. Blue Star was Tyrone¡¯s code name in Steris, and Typhoon was his title. Hiludi replied, ¡°If the reward is a regrowth kit, he may make an exception. If you don¡¯t fight back, it¡¯s not abat mission. Do you want to fight with Tyrone?¡± Owenson almost coughed up blood. Was that how it worked? Not fighting back wasn¡¯tbat, so would fighting back be called self-defense? On one side was the Death Star, on the other was Tyrone, and then there was Hiludi. Owenson couldn¡¯t help butpare them. After a fewparisons, he suddenly realized. Why must he surrender? Couldn¡¯t he run? Hiludi wasn¡¯t a Truth Mage. ¡°You surely can¡¯t beat me either. Do you want to try?¡± As Hiludi sensed the fluctuation of his elemental power, she instantly knew what he was thinking. She warned him promptly, and at the same time, a ck spatial rift appeared in front of her. ¡°Dimensional.. Dimensional Sickle? No need to try, I surrender.¡± Owenson quickly dropped his Elemental Javelin, dispersed the elements around him, and promptly surrendered. The Dimensional Sickle was a kind of magic that even a slight scratch wouldn¡¯t heal easily. It was too risky. Hiludi breathed a sigh of relief. Although she was confident of defeating Owenson, it was too high here, she was afraid, persuasion was indeed the best. ¡­
Ange was treating the dragons with broken membranes. These dragons were already familiar with his breath and were as quiet as quails. After flying around, Negris returned andined, ¡°Counted them. There are 105 live dragons and 320 dragon corpses that could be resurrected into undead dragons. But what should we do with the live ones? We should just kill them all. Keeping them alive is not feasible. A seven or eight meters long dragon could eat the food for two to three hundred people. We can¡¯t afford to raise them.¡± A gorgeous human woman ran out and fell on her knees in front of Negris, beating her chest and saying, ¡°I, I¡¯ll raise them.¡±n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om By human standards, Gard was extraordinarily beautiful, but this woman was no less, with less delicacy but more coldness. ¡°Who are you?¡± Where did this beautiful womane from? She seemed familiar, but where had he seen her before? ¡°This is Xi.¡± Lisa said somewhat unnaturally. There was no helping it. Though she wasn¡¯t a jealous woman, Xi¡¯s beauty stirred envy, especially witnessing her transformation, Lisa felt unsettled facing her now. When will Lord Ange give her a fist too? Lisa had this thought. ¡°This¡­ is still changing? No wonder she looks familiar.¡± Negris looked at her, he didn¡¯t expect her to keep changing after they left, bing unrecognizable due to her beauty. But no matter how beautiful she was, it was useless. Negris said, ¡°I mean we can¡¯t afford to feed them, not that no one wants to. They need refined food.¡± Xi waved her hand and pointed at the corpses: ¡°Let me raise these.¡± Chapter 527 - 303 Three Divine Techniques_1 Chapter 527: Chapter 303 Three Divine Techniques_1 ¡°There¡¯s no need to feed the dead!¡± Negris sprayed Xi with spit right there and then. Xi, however, remained steadfast, even dragging over a corpse: ¡°I¡¯ve been nurturing it, it¡¯s intelligent.¡± The zombie nced at Xi, then at Negris, and finally towards Ange, before slowly kneeling towards Ange. ¡°Eh, intelligent¡­ witch?¡± Negris approached in surprise, giving it a detailed inspection. After some research, he found that this really was a witch, a witch that had only recently awakened its intelligence.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°You raised it?¡± Negris asked skeptically. Do the undead still need to be raised? Each intelligent undead creature is precious because they are so rare. Among millions of undead, only a few might possess intelligence. Dark City has over three thousand intelligent undead inhabitants. This was due to a millennia of time, built on a base poption of tens of billions. The average lifespan of humans in this era is only forty-something years. A thousand years of time has allowed for dozens of generational changes. ¡°Nurtured by me, it was initially dumb, but I talked to it, said a lot, and it gradually became intelligent,¡± Xi took the effort to exin, as if worried that Negris wouldn¡¯t believe him, repeatedly thumping on his chest. Negris indeed didn¡¯t believe: ¡°You¡¯re saying, you spoke with it, and it changed from a dumb zombie to an intelligent skeleton? Who are you trying to fool? If it was that easy, witches would be all over the ce. Alright, alright, I know, you want to care for them, fine. When they reincarnate, you can look after them.¡± Despite his disbelief, Negris still gave him this chance. Zombie dragons don¡¯t need to eat or drink, but they still require some maintenance. Now, the problem lies with these hundred or so living ones. Raising dragons isn¡¯t an easy task, otherwise, there wouldn¡¯t be just one dragon knight group in the entire ne. If they were easy to raise, they would have a bunch for transportation by now. They¡¯re timid, yes, timid. Otherwise, they wouldn¡¯t have been so terrified that tens or hundreds died on the spot. They easily get sick when frightened and can transmit various bird diseases. Secondly, their diet is very specific. They don¡¯t eat regr food, they only eat meat and things like soybeans. They also have particr requirements for how the food is processed, otherwise, they will have diarrhea. The Goddess of Beauty City doesn¡¯t even raise horses, let alone raising over a hundred dragons? Why not just kill them all and let them reincarnate as undead dragons. While he was contemting, he suddenly sensed a disturbance. Turning his head, he saw Ange pull out an illusion from thergest dragon and broke something on it. ¡°Kvada¡­ Goddess of Beauty Fist, you saved your Goddess of Beauty Fist, but used it here? You ¡­¡± Negris was toote to stop it, only murmuring. When rescuing Kadil from Dragon Ind, Ange didn¡¯t make use of the Goddess of Beauty Fist, because he had already found out the easiest way to deal with Kadil¡¯s problem. Bruce preferred to use this method because he could understand it. The Goddess of Beauty Fist was too profound, he didn¡¯t understand it. What if something else was broken when solving Kadil¡¯s problem, what to do then? No one is willing to use a technique that has not been tested over time on their own children. If there is a more reliable method, the more reliable one is definitely preferred. So Ange¡¯s Goddess of Beauty Fist was spared. Now, this hard-earned Goddess of Beauty Fist was wasted on a dragon, which was simply infuriating. However, while still steaming, Negris was already getting used to it. If one day Ange follows its way of thinking, it would probably feel ufortable instead. After sulking a while, it felt better, then asked: ¡°What did you break?¡± Ange said, ¡°A defect in its stomach.¡± ¡°Stomach defect? Does it have stomach problems?¡± Negris asked puzzled. This dragon,rge and robust, didn¡¯t seem to have any problems with its stomach at all. ording to his understanding of the Goddess of Beauty Fist, to change any defects, Ange must be aware of their presence. Otherwise, he wouldn¡¯t know where to start. How did he know that the dragon¡¯s stomach had a defect? ¡°It said, dragon, it made.¡± Ange said, then had people herd over 200 small fat sheep, and transferred several tons of grains, and several tons of seaweed, finally walking up to arge stone. This stone was taller than Ange, possibly weighing several tons. Ange hugged it and tried to lift it. Luther went over at a trot, offering his assistance, ¡°Sir, sir, let me help, everyone,e and help too.¡± However, before he could get close, Ange suddenly lightened his grip. A cloud of straw was thrown up in the air, the several tons stone, under the eyes of everyone present turned into a several tons of straw, enveloping Ange t beneath it. The volume of several tons of straw is much greater than the same weight of stone. Everyone was stunned, their jaws nearly dropped. Although they had all seen the straw owl that Little Bu had transformed, the scene absolutely couldn¡¯tpare to what Ange was doing now, the difference was too great. A several tons stone turning into straw right before their eyes, it¡¯s volume exploded tenfold, Ange exerted too much force and even tossed some into the sky. This contrast between heavy and light, small andrge was so astounding. ¡°It¡¯s¡­ it¡¯s a miracle,¡± Lisa muttered. As the former Holy Light Mrs., this scene had an especially big impact on her. In the Holy Book of Light¡¯s Genesis story, it described the Creator God turning y into rice. Although what Ange did was change stone into straw, the essence was the same. Both are about turning one material into another, a process of creation. The impact on Negris was even greater, not because the stone changed into straw, but those words of Ange¡¯s ¡®it said¡¯. Only Negris understood who this ¡®it¡¯ was. Chapter 528 - 303 Three Divine Techniques_2 Chapter 528: Chapter 303 Three Divine Techniques_2 ¡°Bloodline inheritance, are you saying that every time you transform into the Dragon God, your bloodline inheritance teaches you something?¡± Pulling Ange out of the hay pile, Negris asked impatiently. Ange had mentioned before that bloodline inheritance had taught him things, but at that time, he had never seen a Flying Dragon, so the bloodline wouldn¡¯t inherit those things. If this time he was facing the transformation of a Dragon Knight and only then inherited this knowledge, it would mean that every time he transformed into the Dragon God, he could awaken something new. Ange nodded. Negris pped his waist muscle: ¡°I knew it, that¡¯s why every time you transform into the Dragon God, you learn so many new tricks. You know a lot of things unrted to cultivation that I never taught you. It¡¯s all thanks to bloodline inheritance.¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Flying Dragon, it¡¯s wed, weak stomach, not vegetarian, discard.¡± Ange habitually blurted out a few words. ¡°Pfft, vegetarian?¡± Negris widened his dragon eyes in surprise. Are Flying Dragons supposed to be vegetarian? Isn¡¯t soy vegetarian? ¡°Not enough, grass is better.¡± Ange walked up to the Flying Dragon and pointed at its body. The Flying Dragon quickly grew hungry, hesitating as it looked at the little fat sheep and its surroundings. Normally, a knight and an attendant would personally prepare its food, but looking around, it seemed like no one was about to do this. Unable to bear the hunger, the Flying Dragon took matters into its own hands, opening its huge mouth towards a little fat sheep: Ah~~~ Ah~~~ Ah~~~ ¡°What¡¯s this idiot doing, just opening its mouth?¡± ¡°It¡­ seems to be waiting for the little sheep to walk into its mouth.¡± ¡°¡­¡± With no one to help it, the spoiled Flying Dragons, used to being fed, finally found its innate feeding habit just before starvation. It bit into a juicy little fat sheep, chewed it up, and swallowed it, fur and all. It ate dozens of little fat sheep one after another until Ange stopped it and directed it towards the dried seaweed. The Flying Dragon tried to snatch the little fat sheep several times, but was pped away by Ange each time. Ovee by hunger, it reluctantly started gnawing on the dried seaweed. After several bites, Ange tossed it a little fat sheep, then after several more bites of dried seaweed, Ange threw it another fat sheep. In just a few short minutes, the carnivorous Flying Dragon was force-fed to change its eating habits, making dried seaweed its main diet. For an ordinary Flying Dragon, such a drastic change in diet would cause digestive problems, but this Flying Dragon was fine. Not only that, but its teeth were also changing. It was growing more grinding mrs while its sharp canine teeth were significantly debilitated. Once its mrs had fully formed, Ange stopped feeding it dried seaweed and only fed it straw. No matter how much the Flying Dragon resisted, it started to enjoy eating the straw out of hunger. If it could eat straw, it could naturally eat other nts too. Ange brought some grass over, and the Flying Dragon ate it deliciously. With a strike of the Goddess of Beauty Fist, it forcibly turned the meat-eating Flying Dragon into a grass-eating Flying Dragon. Negris¡¯s eyes shimmered as he fully understood the implications. If Flying Dragons could eat grass, then just the grass on Dragon Ind could feed tens of thousands of them. Dragon Beasts, in fact, were livestock that the Dragon n raised, mainly for consumption. However, raising Dragon Beasts required a lot of meat, so they also raised some grass-eating sheep. As time went by, the Giant Dragons realized that if they were raising sheep to feed the Dragon Beasts and subsequently eat them, why not just eat the sheep directly? Therefore, the Dragon n eventually turned to raising herbivorous animals such as cows and sheep and drove away the carnivorous Dragon Beasts to fend for themselves. In his youth, Negris had pondered: Why had the Dragon God created a species like the Dragon Beast which ate meat and was hard to nurture? Now, he understood. The species created by the Dragon God wasn¡¯t perfect, or rather, it wasn¡¯t the perfect creature needed by the Dragon God. When Ange transformed into the Dragon God, his bloodline inherited the Dragon God¡¯s knowledge about Flying Dragons. Coupled with the fact that he had this divine technique called the Goddess of Beauty Fist, he was able to easily rectify what the Dragon God perceived as ws with just a single punch. This grass-eating Flying Dragon, as far as the Dragon God is concerned, is the perfect Dragon Beast. ¡°Then, you can also turn soil into grass, so eating grass is like eating soil, perfect.¡± Negris said irritably. Ange now has three divine domains, each with a divine technique: Instant Death Halo from the Undead God, Goddess of Beauty Fist from the Goddess of Beauty, and Element Conversion from the God of Farming. Each of them is unimaginably incredible. If divine techniques could be ranked, Ange¡¯s techniques would definitely be among the top, evenparable to the Harvest Goddess¡¯s Conceive with a nce. Negris used to find Conceive with a nce quite underwhelming, but he doesn¡¯t think so anymore. This divine technique is essentially a poption amplifier, capable of rapidly doubling the number of any species with the Harvest Goddess present. If the Harvest Goddess was still alive, Negris would spare no effort to invite her to Dragon Ind, to watch over the mating habits of the Giant Dragons. He hoped that Lisa could steal the Harvest Goddess¡¯s divine power. If she could also awaken the same divine technique, it would be fantastic. The grass-eating Flying Dragon was kept in istion, while the other Flying Dragons were driven to Lake Ind to stay temporarily. Adjusting the ws of one Flying Dragon didn¡¯t show any changes yet. To see the changes, the grass-eating Flying Dragon needed to give birth and pass down the adjusted bloodline to erge its own n. The changes would only appear after several generations. Chapter 529 - 303: 3 Divine Techniques_3 Chapter 529: Chapter 303: 3 Divine Techniques_3 However, if a single Grass Flying Dragon were to continue its bloodline, in one generation, all the Grass Flying Dragons would be its descendants. If they continue to breed with other dragons, their bloodline might be diluted, it¡¯s uncertain whether they would degenerate or not. If Ange doesn¡¯t want their bloodline to degenerate, he must modify several GrassFlying Dragons to allow their offspring to pair with each other. After a few generations, their bloodline will be far apart and there will not be any worries about inbreeding, thus increasing their numbers could be possible. Engrossed in his work, Ange suddenly felt a throb in his chest and immediately looked towards the south. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Noticing his abnormality, Negris hurriedly asked. Ange didn¡¯t say a word and directly pulled out the Bronze Book. When his body appeared on this ne, Negris also felt the throb: ¡°Divine Fire? Has someone ignited the Divine Fire?¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om The ignition of Divine Fire has a strange mechanism that seems to cause a throb that the entire ne can feel. Ange¡¯s Goddess of Beauty and the God of Farming¡¯s Divine Fire were lit on the Light Sea ne, so they were sensed by the Goddess of Redemption. The first time she rushed over, thinking it was just a neer who ignited the divine fire, yet unexpectedly bumped into the nests of several gods. The second time she was cautious and would not dare to go out. Now, Ange and Negris both felt the throb, someone had ignited the Divine Fire. ¡­ The curia had already entered its highest level of alert. The defensive shield was activated, the Spatial Disturbance Array started, all Teleportation Arrays were unable to operate, simrly, Instant sh and other types of spatial magic were also rendered ineffective. All defensive equipment was activated, every department was fully armed and waiting, but unfortunately, ordinary people couldn¡¯t sense the throb, they could only stay confused, and some evenined about the higher-ups panicking for little reason and causing unnecessary disturbance. Some people didn¡¯t understand that when big trouble was about to arrive, keeping everything as it was would be the best situation. Dyson watched the divine power sizzling in his hands, looking at the light shadow behind Guliani in astonishment: ¡°You, you all¡­¡± ¡°Hehe, you, a person who stole the fire of faith, are more abhorrent than us, aren¡¯t you?¡± Guliani leisurely said: ¡°How did these fires of faith end up in your hands, do you think you can hide it from me?¡± ¡°I, I, I¡­¡± Dyson stuttered, unable to speak. Yes, those fire thieves. The Gods of Light disappeared for over a thousand years, but during these thousand years, the Church of Light functioned as usual, devotees dedicated themselves faithfully. Couldn¡¯t they ignite a few fires of faith? Of course they could, but it was stolen, stolen by Dyson and his predecessors. They parasitized the Church of Light and imed themselves to be fire thieves, stealing all the seeds of fire that could help them ascend to godhood. Dyson even used extra fires of faith to ambush Harvey once. Unfortunately, they didn¡¯t have the ability to ignite the fires of faith and they couldn¡¯t aplish their dream- to be a god. However, looking at the sizzling divine power, Dyson found it hard to believe, because Guliani had helped him realize that dream and ignited his divine fire. ¡°Now you have a choice, serve our Lord, or die.¡± Guliani said with a smile, maintaining his usual genial image, but his words sent chills down Dyson¡¯s spine. Dyson looked at the specter behind Guliani, slowly kneeled down, bit his teeth and asked: ¡°Are the evil gods that Anthony mentioned you guys?¡± ¡°No, our Lord is merely a shadow of the light.¡± The corner of Guliani¡¯s mouth twitched: ¡°Anthony just made up an excuse and happened to be right.¡± Chapter 530 - 304: Lisa, a princess?_1 Chapter 530: Chapter 304: Lisa, a princess?_1 As a religion with tens of thousands of years of history, the Church of Light is riddled with internal factions, some of which are at odds with each other. The term heretic was once specifically used to refer to dissenters within the same religion, and often, heretics are more loathed than heathens. After the disappearance of the Gods of Light, outsiders perceive the Church of Light to be united and firm in their beliefs, but anyone sensitive within the Church can sense the undercurrents behind the scenes. Even someone as innocent as Shamara could feel the disappearance of the Gods, wouldn¡¯t others? Among the numerous Saintesses of the Church of Light, why was it only Shamara who stepped forward to make a fuss? Where were the other Saintesses? After the blockading of Heaven, one Holy Spirit Angel after another was handed over. Without the Holy Spirit, how were the other Saintesses able to summon a Holy Spirit Possession? Shamara built her own Fallen Angel, but did others build their own as well? If not, then where did these Angelse from? Anthony has an obtuse Holy Spirit Angel in his hands, and there are also obtuse Angels within the Silver Knights. So, wouldn¡¯t Dyson and Guliani have any as well? If someone took advantage of their obtuse nature and mass-captured Holy Spirits, could it be achievable? Anthony split the Church, yet the curia has been nonchnt, unable to provide an appropriate solution, with hardly any condemnation. All these signs indicate that the seemingly harmonious Church of Light has already split into factions, among which the Fire Stealers, belonging to Dyson, is the most malicious. When human nature is devoid of divine restraint, inner greed takes the upper hand. The creator of the Fire Stealers is untraceable, probably nine hundred years ago, someone discovered the disappearance of the gods because a new Divine Fire was born. The Fire Stealers secretly hid this Divine Fire. Some timeter, they noticed they were not receiving divine punishment. The Fire Stealers immediately grew bold, attempting to possess this Divine Fire and be a new deity. However, this is not an easy task, even preserving this Divine Fire is challenging, it¡¯s difficult for the Fire Stealers to achieve on their own. So, he brought in his subordinates. Since then, the Fire Stealers became an organization, absorbing members from within the Church of Light. Theirmon goal was to be gods. With the existence of the Divine Fire, absorbing members became easy. The Fire Stealers maintained a rtively small number, but each member was high-level within the Church. However, igniting Divine Fire is not an easy feat, even with a Divine Fire, it¡¯s as challenging as ascending the heavens. Over nine hundred years, the lineage of Fire Stealers has continued to Dyson¡¯s generation, yet not a single god was born. But the organization had its benefits. Members of the Fire Stealers were all high-level representatives of the Church, forming a small circle, sharing resources, moving up together, with simrities to the Mutual Aid Brotherhood within the Thieves Guild, thus, it never disbanded. By the time it passed down to Dyson¡¯s generation, nine hundred years had passed. Over nine hundred years, more than one or two Divine Fires were collected, many of which extinguished over time because they could not be ignited, and only five remain today. Bing a god seemed unattainable, Dyson was not very concerned about the Divine Fire, it was more like bait to consolidate the small circle, a carrot dangling in front of the other members, spurring everyone on. After years of manipting the Divine Fire, the Fire Stealers developed some ways to utilize it, most of which were impractical andckluster. The only powerful technique was the God yer. When a different divine power source hit oneself, even gods would find it troublesome. If it could not be expelled, it would continue to cause damage. When the Divine Fire grew to a sufficient level, it could even incinerate gods. However, the reality was cruel despite the promising conjecture. There were no more gods in the world.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om So, several hundred years since the conception of the God yer Fire, there had always been no suitable target until Harvey from the Land of Fallen took a hit. As an Undead, Harvey couldn¡¯t expel the Divine Fire, but for the Little Ghost who possessed the same origin of divine power, the Divine Fire was a major tonic. If Dyson knew that his God yer Fire was easily expelled by others, who knows what his reaction would be. Apart from that, he thought the Fire Stealers were hiding deep, but it seems that none of their actions eluded Guliani. Guliani was not only fully aware of their goings-on, he even effortlessly helped him ignite the Divine Fire. Wasn¡¯t this a miracle? ¡°Why¡­why are you doing this?¡± Dyson asked in confusion. Helping him ignite the Divine Fire, what was Guliani¡¯s gain? ¡°Didn¡¯t I tell you? You can make the trip yourself, but you¡¯re not powerful enough. I¡¯m just helping you gain a bit of power. Now that you have divine power, can you bring me the corpses of those nomads from the abyss?¡± Guliani asked. ¡°Really?¡± Dyson asked hesitantly. ¡°Don¡¯t we need to make some kind of oath or something?¡± ¡°No need, no need. You¡¯re a god now. Any pledge you make would be a divine pledge. You can¡¯t just casually make divine pledges. Even if we need to make agreements in the future, that would just be an alliance oath. We¡¯ll all be one of the Gods of Light.¡± Guliani said. Could there really be such good things? Dyson said: ¡°Well, I¡¯ll go first. I¡¯ll bring back the corpses of the abyss nomads.¡± After he finished speaking, Dyson slowly walked towards the door and made his way out. Throughout the journey, his vignce was at an all-time high, yet he safely left the curia and teleported back to his territory without any hindrances. Chapter 531 - 304: Lisa, a Princess?_2 Chapter 531: Chapter 304: Lisa, a Princess?_2 ¡°Am I really given the freedom? Has my Divine Fire truly been ignited?¡± Dyson examined the Divine Power sizzling incredibly within his palms and still found it baffling. Why on earth would Guliani do so? He¡¯s not even his father! Why would he assist him in igniting his Divine Fire? What¡¯s in it for him? He let him go without any restraint; Is he not afraid Dyson might seize the position of the Pope using his Divine Power? Unable to figure it out, Dyson felt his brain was about to explode. However, he didn¡¯t forget his mission, summoned his lieutenant, and ordered, ¡°Intensify intelligence gathering, be prepared for war. We¡¯re going to annihte the Abyss wanderers.¡± ¡°Ah? When?¡± the lieutenant asked. ¡°Maybe in three, five, seven, eight, or even decades. In any case, we need to show our posturing. As for when to start, we¡¯ll wait for the right opportunity,¡± Dyson responded. This was also what puzzled him. Guliani didn¡¯t demand anymitment nor did he impose any constraints on him. This meant Dyson had absolute control over the situation, could act whenever he wanted to, and could make preparations over the span of decades. Wouldn¡¯t Guliani eventually sumb under such circumstances? Unless, Guliani was confident about restraining him. As for how, Dyson wanted to see. ¡­ Hundreds of dragon corpses were transported back to the Resting Abyss, standing upright on the ground like a dish called ¡°gazing at the stars¡±. As the nightfall came, the Resting Wind started to blow with a moan. By the end of the night, more than a dozen corpses had the Soul Fire engendered within them, and tried to stand up wobbling. However, the dragon¡¯s physique was toorge, measuring about seven to eight meters long. Thus, the soul formed overnight was not enough to animate these bodies. At this point, it was Ange¡¯s turn to act. Engraving soul imprints, connecting to the Soul Network, burying into the Breathing Soil. After a dozen or so days, about twenty dragons would be able to stand up unsteadily. After engendering twenty dragons, Ange took a break, eximing, ¡°Kvada, this damn thing drains too much Soul Energy.¡± If he were to animate all these three hundred soul dragons, Ange might not have to do anything else for the next whole year ¡ª Imagine not being able to use the Instant Death Halo, not even the Goddess of Beauty Fist, let alone any Element Conversion. ¡°So what, if you don¡¯t want to? In return for a full year, you get three hundred Undead flying dragons. What¡¯s there toin about?¡± Negris retorted irritably. Don¡¯t underestimate these flying dragons. Ange may have scared them off with a single shout, but that was the might of the Dragon God, not their true power. If a real battle were to break out, they could potentially raze the entire city of Goddess of Beauty to the ground. Just by dropping mmable oil from the sky, they could give people a headache. And now, Ange could not appreciate these dragons? He didn¡¯t even want to give up a year¡¯s worth of Soul Energy? Compared to Soul Energy, these live flying dragons were not worrisome about food. The fish in the saltwaterke could feed tens of thousands of dragons without any issue. The dragons that were driven to Lake Ind were self-sufficient, going for fishing every day and living a carefree life. Xi had wanted to starve the dragons to death, but she didn¡¯t have that many dead dragons to feed them. Thus, she was driven to the Lake Ind to take care of them and incidentally became an excellent veterinarian. ¡°The dragons are now eating raw and cold food and are prone to intestinal problems. You need to pay attention to their treatments. If they die, it will be deducted from your payment.¡± Lisa admonished while teaching her the Face Purification Technique. ¡°Deduct as much as you want, you haven¡¯t given me any money anyway. If they die, they will be reincarnated as zombies and then I will raise them.¡± Xi responded nonchntly.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om The point is valid ¡ª go on then, if they die, it will save money. The initial goal was to save money. However, hundreds of flying dragons were entrusted to Xi¨C who had never had any breeding experience. Time flew by, and surprisingly, there were no deaths among the dragons, instead, many of the female dragons startedying eggs. Female dragons are not like hens; they cany fertilized eggs even without getting startled. ¡­ Around the Lake Ind, rows and rows of buoyant stic boards were anchored in the water. Ange, standing at the shore, swiftly poked holes in one of the boards then sowed the seeds. After he was done preparing, he pushed it into the water. When enough boards had been umted, he bound them together, dragging and anchoring them in the distant water. After this set of procedures, an iparably vast field of buoyant stic boards appeared, undting with the water surface around the Lake Ind. Negris hovered around Ange,ining out of boredom, ¡°Are we really not going to investigate who ignited the Divine Fire? There is an additional God in the Master ne, you know.¡± Ange shook his head, showing not the slightest bit of interest. ¡°Well, you¡¯ve ignited the Divine Fire twice yourself. There¡¯s nothing to be curious about. Still, spending your days sowing seeds, it¡¯s too dull. Aren¡¯t you going to look for something new to do?¡± Negris continued to ask. Ange pointed at the buoyant stic boards. ¡°New.¡± ¡°¡­Saltwater Soilless Rice, is it? You consider this new? If you sowed some fruit or something, then you could say it¡¯s new¡­I mean, aren¡¯t you supposed to do something you¡¯ve never done before, not nt new crops!¡± Negris quickly corrected himself upon seeing Ange retrieving a few fruit seeds. Ange looked at the fruit seeds in his hand. Aren¡¯t saltwater fruits new? Whether it is new or not, sow it. Ange squatted down and began researching techniques for saltwater cultivation and soilless nting of fruits. Negris wished he could tie a knot to his neck and then strangle himself to death. Why did he suggest this in the first ce? Now, even better, Ange has found something amusing. He won¡¯t probably move a muscle for the next dozen days or so. But Negris, he was bored! A resounding dragon roar echoed and all dragons, whether flying in the sky or perched on the trees, stood up or descended and gazed in the direction of the sound. But¡­that¡¯s not how a dragon greets, right!! The disbelieving Negris was left dumbstruck. Chapter 532 - 304: Lisa, a Princess?_3 Chapter 532: Chapter 304: Lisa, a Princess?_3 But does it matter? After all, these Flying Dragons had grown ustomed to this kind of sound. To them, the continuous cries were just dragon chants. A streak of Silver Light hastened over. Before White Neck coulde to a halt, Lisa impatiently leaped down from its back, anxiously speaking to Ange, ¡°My Lord, the situation is bad. War has broken out among the nations.¡± Famine, disease, and war are the legendary cataclysms that signify the end of the world. They rarely ur independently but often apany one another. Famine triggers wars, wars lead to diseases, and diseases lead to famine. Once the famine started, everyone predicted the inevitable arrival of war. Not every leader, like Anthony, was trying their best mitigating the disaster. The impoverished poptions, stripped of their possessions and livelihoods, were driven from their homes by the Noble Landlords, simply because they could not pay this year¡¯s tax. Thendlord¡¯s henchmen took thest bag of grain from the farmers, who pleaded, ¡°Please have mercy, this is thest of our family¡¯s food. If you take it, we will starve to death.¡± The Landlord responded, ¡°What do I care if you starve to death? You farm thend, I collect the tax. That is the divine right given to me.¡± Dispossessed farmers, starvingmoners¡ªthe numbers kept growing and they roamed thend, bing refugees. The city-states shut their doors, denying them entry. These refugees wandered to viges, and consumed everything that could be eaten. The local vigers, who initially could withstand for some time, could hold no longer. They had no other choice but to join the refugees, and seek sustenance elsewhere. Regarding the changes in maind affairs, Anthony was the most informed. Bored to tears, Negris suggested they consult with Anthony. ¡°In reality, if only these disaster victims were aided, to prevent them from impacting other areas, the situation wouldn¡¯t have escted. However, the upper echelons of the Wusu Kingdom are clearly fanning the mes, letting the situation worsen. They have even started driving the disaster victims towards the border, causing them to flood into the Kingdom of Luosha,¡± said Anthony with an air of confidence. ¡°It¡¯s clear that the Wusu Kingdom is intentionally manufacturing these distressing conditions, and then driving these victims into the Kingdom of Luosha.¡± Shocked, Negris asked, ¡°Are they insane? Causing a disaster within their own kingdom, and then driving the victims to another kingdom? How does this benefit them?¡± ¡°Haha, the benefits are innumerable. It could ease poption pressure, free up morend for the noblendlords to get richer. Arge number of disaster victims means cheapbor. In order to survive, a lot of people would sell their children or themselves and be ves of the nobility,¡± Anthony smirked. ¡°Furthermore, arge influx of disaster victims into the Kingdom of Luosha would increase their burden, and undermine the stability of their kingdom. Spies embedded among the victims could instigate, agitate and create problems.¡± ¡°If the Kingdom of Luosha seriously dealt with the relief effort, these problems would keep them preupied. Conversely, if the Kingdom of Luosha neglected the disaster victims and left them to their own fate, the moment a fraction of them starves to death, the Wusu Kingdom would have an excuse to invade Luosha. Even the curia may not intervene.¡± Stunned, Negris responded, ¡°Why? Why do this? Aren¡¯t the lives of these disaster victims worth anything? Even if they disregard human life, the poption still holds some value, right? Is it really necessary to actively create death?¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Regrettably, Anthony said, ¡°For thendlords who cravend, the poption holds no value because there are too many people. As long as there isnd, they can find people to cultivate it next year, maybe even cheaper ves.¡± While speaking, Anthony harshly pped something, saying resentfully, ¡°The failure of the Western District. They should have confined these greedy individuals. Damn it.¡± The church isn¡¯tpletely evil, because they can restrict even more wicked urrences. ¡°The rulers of the Kingdom of Luosha, in essence, are a bit more kind-hearted. They should ept these disaster victims, but it¡¯s a time of famine now, and without sufficient food, the Kingdom of Luosha can¡¯t do much. Oh, by the way, Lisa was the princess of the Kingdom of Luosha. Before bing a saint, she was the first in line to inherit the throne.¡± Chapter 533 - 305: Simply Invincible for Unlocking_1 Chapter 533: Chapter 305: Simply Invincible for Unlocking_1 Leaving Consciousness Space, Nage asked about this matter. ¡°How did you know about it?¡± Lisa asked with confusion, ¡°It was something that happened over a thousand years ago, I didn¡¯t tell anyone about it. Could it be Lord Anthony? Has Lord Anthony investigated me?¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°No, you¡¯re the only saint who was stranded in the Resting Abyss due to the suspension of the ne transfer station, such bad luck. So, he took a few more nces when reading out the register.¡± Negris said. Lisa covered her face, was she remembered as a saint because of her bad luck? ¡°Yes, I was once the first in line sessor to the Kingdom of Luosha. The current Grand Duke of Luosha should be my brother¡¯s 46th¡­¡± Lisa counted on her fingers for quite a while and said, ¡°His 46th heir, called Misha or something. But why are we suddenly discussing this? I just came to report on the unrest in the neighboring Wusu Kingdom.¡± Lisa¡¯s information was clearly outdated. The intelligence gathered by the clients in the Goddess of Beauty City was not as quick and timely as that of the Church of Light. Negris repeated the news he received from Anthony as well as Anthony¡¯s analysis and predictions. Lisa was immediately worried, ¡°Are they so cunning? That¡¯s despicable. When Wusu was founded, we even aided them. And now they scheme against my descendants? Lord, please grant me leave, I want to take two years off.¡± Negris was also anxious and made faces at her while continuously looking at Ange. As expected of Lisa, who was meticulous and understanding, she immediately grasped Negris¡¯ meaning. She turned to Ange and said, ¡°Lord, Lord Nage is bored, and he wants me to take you to Luosha for fun, and incidentally deal with those people from Wusu.¡±. Ange tilted his head and asked: ¡°Can we farm in Luosha?¡± Lisa ignored Negris¡¯ frantic attempts to signal her and honestly replied, ¡°Thend in the Kingdom of Luosha is mostly hilly and mountainous, with limited arablend. We can¡¯t grow crops.¡± ¡°Oh, then nevermind, you go.¡± Ange said, giving Lisa permission to take leave. Negrisined, ¡°Why are you so straightforward? Why not deceive him a little and get Ange to help you?¡± Lisa nced at him, ¡°Are you stupid? Deceive my own god? Right, Lord, can I buy some food from you?¡± ¡°Sure,¡± Ange nodded, ¡°You carry it yourself.¡± The food grown at Fallen Dragon Lake was not stored in the Resting Pce but in the Goddess of Beauty City. Lisa had the key, she could take whatever she needed. ¡°Yes, thank you, Lord.¡± Lisa responded with satisfaction. With Ange¡¯s words, it was like having a constant supply of food. With sufficient food, can¡¯t the Kingdom of Luosha handle some refugees? Just as he was about to summon White Neck, how could Negris, who was bored to death, give up this good opportunity. He quickly said: ¡°Thend of the Luosha Kingdom, others cannot cultivate, but you can. Your Soilless Rice, Gravel Mushroom, they can all be grown, right? At worst, we¡¯ll nt holy mushrooms there. Our current production of essence is falling behind, and the Giant Dragon will need it in the future. We have to nt more.¡± Ange nodded upon hearing this and asked: ¡°Is there plenty of water?¡± The Holy Mushroom was indeed a problem. The territory he currently controlled, Light Sea ne and Fallen Dragon Lake, were too sunny. They got abundant sunlight and couldn¡¯t grow Holy Mushrooms. Dark City was very suitable, but itcked water, whereas the production in the witch¡¯s underground city in the Resting Abyss had reached its limit. To further expand the production, other underground spaces would be needed. If development was necessary anyway, why not directly find a ce on the Master ne? If the Kingdom of Luosha was not short of water, then the hilly and mountainous areas should be quite suitable for mushroom cultivation. ¡°No shortage, no shortage, it¡¯s much more suitable than the underground city, at least there¡¯s no need to cast light with the fluorescent moss. This is great; if Lord acts, maybe we can defeat the Wusu Kingdom in a few weeks.¡± Lisa said excitedly. ¡°Ah? There¡¯s no rush, no rush, we can spend more time on it.¡± Negris quickly said. As long as it wasn¡¯t monotonous farming, it was willing to stay longer in the Kingdom of Luosha. Mobilizing people was the easiest task for Ange. He put everyone into the Resting Pce, then rode Lightning directly to the Kingdom of Luosha. By that evening, they already reached the vicinity of the kingdom¡¯s capital. On this ne, there were many small countries. Depending on the governing area, they were either duchies, earldoms, and the likes. If these were poption-dense areas, the size of the territory would be smaller, but if they were remote ces, the area would be especiallyrge. The Kingdom of Luosha was a remote, yet not impoverished duchy with arge national territory situated in mountainous and hilly areas. The ruler was the Grand Duke of Luosha, with a family lineage that hadsted for dozens of generations. Lisa was the eldest daughter of the fourth generation of the Kingdom of Luosha when it was newly established. She was also the first in line to seed the throne. ¡°You may not know this, but back when the duchy was just founded, my family was very poor. My ancestors used all their wealth to buy this dukedom status, and we had to conquer the territory ourselves. It took our whole family several decades of hard work to finally get a firm footing during my mother¡¯s generation.¡± Lisa beganining, ¡°We were so poor at that time. I had to share a dress with a maid because her mother was skilled in dyeing cloth. I asionally gave her some tips, which led to her being richer than me and had nicer dresses. If it weren¡¯t for the difference in status, I would have wanted to work for her mother.¡± Chapter 534 - 305: Unbeatable for Unlocking_2 Chapter 534: Chapter 305: Unbeatable for Unlocking_2 ¡°When theyter chose me to be the saintess, I immediately dropped my heiress title and gave it to my brother. Being a saintess was much morefortable than being a princess. However, in my third year as the saintess, a gold mine was discovered in our territory. My brother¡¯s life turned around instantly, and it was infuriating. Why couldn¡¯t they find the mine when I was there!?¡± Lisa grumbled, her tone was ofints, but everyone could hear the nostalgia in her voice. She hadn¡¯t expected that by the time she returned, more than a thousand years had passed. Sinceing to the Master ne, Lisa never talked about her family matters. She knew that after more than a thousand years, everyone and everything she knew were long gone to ash. Today¡¯s Kingdom of Luosha had nothing to do with her anymore. Unexpectedly, because of this, she started to get involved again. When she received news of the conflict in the Wusu Kingdom, she was quite panicked. Back when she was the heiress, the Wusu Kingdom was established with strong support from her family. She hadn¡¯t expected that after a thousand years, the descendants of Wusu would use such treacherous means to plot against her family. Lightning grinned, ¡°It¡¯s clear that your misfortune has messed up your family. As soon as you left, their luck turned.¡± A sh of coldness shone in Lisa¡¯s eyes, and she said with a smirk, ¡°Lightning, remember all your food is distributed by me. Aren¡¯t you afraid that one day I¡¯ll identally mix something in and make you rush to the bathroom till dawn?¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Lightning replied solemnly, ¡°Misfortune is just a form of luck. Lisa, your luck is so good that it seems like misfortune. Doesn¡¯t this prove that you¡¯re lucky? You still look stunning even after a thousand years.¡± ¡°I still look stunning even after a thousand years? Hmm, I like the sound of that. Keep talking.¡± Lisa grinned cheekily. ¡°Yes, beautiful sister Lisa.¡± Lightning hung his head, trying his best to tter her with his words. He felt his words were bing less effective. It seemed like everyone had a way to suppress him now. Oh, how he missed the neers. Insect God, where are you all? Guided by Lisa, Lightningnded in a valley thirty kilometers away from the capital of the kingdom. This valley was ordinary, nestled between two hills. Both sides were low cliffs, and the bottom was dense with shrubs. Lisa introduced, ¡°This is our family cemetery. Starting from my ancestors, all our family members are buried here. Even though I disappeared, they would put my relics in here. I need to find some of my belongings.¡± ¡°Uh, is that necessary? Would your descendants still recognize something from over a thousand years ago?¡± asked Negris. With a resigned smile, Lisa replied, ¡°What else is there to do? Do I go to them empty-handed and say, ¡®I¡¯m your great great great¡­aunt¡¯? They¡¯ll probably throw me out. Besides, it¡¯s been a thousand years. I need to psychologically prepare myself. After all, to me, they are strangers too. I hope seeing my ancestors¡¯ graves and my relics will trigger more memories.¡± Lightning brought up an idea, ¡°Do we want to resurrect or summon your whole family? We can storm into the Grand Ducal Mansion and introduce them. ¡®This is the first Duke of Luosha. This is the second Duke of Luosha¡­Ouch, don¡¯t hit me. Stop hitting!¡¯ Negris didn¡¯t feel any sympathy for Lightning, but he agreed with his suggestion. ¡°We can indeed look for some souls that haven¡¯t dissipated yet. Preferably ones that are more recent and revive them to ask about the recent situation of your family.¡± Lisa looked exasperated, ¡°Find the recent ones? Are we making wine?¡±. She couldn¡¯t beat up Negris like she did with Lightning, so she just chuckled, ¡°Alright, we¡¯ll look.¡± Soon, they entered a cave at the bottom of the canyon. Judging from the vegetation around the cave, it seemed like no one had been here for years. Lisa exined, ¡°Unless there¡¯s something special, people won¡¯te here after the burial of our family members, to avoid leaving traces that could be discovered. There¡¯s also a magic barrier in the cave. Unless you have the corresponding rune sequence, you can¡¯t open the barrier. If you try to break it forcefully, the whole cave will copse.¡± When they reached the back of the cave, there was a seemingly inconspicuous stone leaning against the wall. If Lisa hadn¡¯t mentioned it, no one would¡¯ve noticed there was an opening behind the stone. Lisa kicked the edge of the stone a few times, causing a slight magic wave, but the stone didn¡¯t move. After a few more tries, Lisa turned back with an embarrassed look and said, ¡°They¡­ changed the password.¡± It¡¯s not surprising, more than a thousand years have passed, who knows what has happened during this time, such as password leaks, or simply disliking the password set by their ancestors and changing it. ¡°So what now? Smash the entrance, the stone doesn¡¯t seem too thick.¡± Negris suggested. ¡°No, no, if we smash it, it will trigger a forbidden enchantment and the whole cave will copse.¡± Lisa urgently protested. ¡°No problem, Ange can handle it. We can retreat into the Resting Pce and let Ange transform into Locke, then we smash and run. Even if the whole hill copses, it won¡¯t damage the Mourning Skeleton.¡± Negris said dismissively. Lisa took a deep breath, thought for a while, and then yelled, ¡°It will destroy my ancestors¡¯ cemetery!!! I didn¡¯te here to rob graves!!!¡± Only then did Negris remember, this cemetery belonged to Lisa¡¯s family, they weren¡¯t here to rob graves, this was indeed an awkward situation. ¡°Then what should we do? Can you break the enchantment? Anything like a backdoor?¡± Negris asked. Lisa shook her head and thought for a while before saying, ¡°Forget it. I can¡¯t desecrate my family¡¯s graves for some mementos. Let¡¯s skip this. We¡¯ll confront them directly and say that we have a history with the former Saintess Lisa, and we specifically came today to help.¡± ¡°Yes, this n is better. Let¡¯s proceed with it.¡± Negris agreed. He didn¡¯t me Lisa for dragging them all on a futile trip. Any matter involving one¡¯s rtives is not easilyprehended. Deep in her heart, Lisa may not havee for the mementos, perhaps she just wanted to pay tribute to her parents. Who could understand these feelings? Hence, after the futile trip, everyone turned to leave. However, at this point in time, everyone heard a scratching noise, like sharp fingernails scraping across a stone. Lisa and Negris exchanged a nce, then they simultaneously looked at therge piece of stone. Everyone realized that there was something inside, but how can they disable the enchantment sealing the hole? ¡°We can¡¯t smash it, otherwise it will trigger the enchantment. What if I go find Brooks, Aestolia, and Vaguli, so they can disable the enchantment?¡± Lisa tentatively asked. ¡°Yes, no enchantment is unbreakable, only ack of skill. We can also see the folks at Steris Academy, they certainly have a deeper understanding of enchantments. Ange, wait, don¡¯t smash it, uh¡­¡± Just as Negris was speaking, Ange, who had been sowing seeds in the space with his hand, suddenly pulled out his hand, walked up to the stone and pushed hard. Before Negris could finish speaking, therge stone blocking the entrance was pushed by Ange into a pile of straw and fell into the cave behind. ¡°I¡­you¡­Bada, that actually worked? An element conversion broke the enchantment just like that? This technique is really invincible for lock picking.¡± Negris didn¡¯t know where to begin. The Instant Death Halo used for farming, the Goddess of Beauty Fist used to modify bloodlines, Element Conversion used to pick locks. Divine techniques aren¡¯t supposed to be used like this. Regardless of how they¡¯re used, as long as they work. Ange opened the door, but did not trigger the enchantment. From within the cave came a roar as an ugly zombie rushed out from the straw-filled grotto, swiping at Ange with it¡¯s metallical, sharp ws. Negris eximed, ¡°Not good, an Iron Skin Zombie!¡± Golden Skeleton, Iron Skin Zombie, both are undead creatures of the same rank. In terms of strength, the Iron Skin Zombie is even stronger because its skin is extremely tough. It¡¯s nearly immune to sword blows. This is just Lisa¡¯s family cemetery, the number of buried people isn¡¯t that many, at most a few hundred. There isn¡¯t enough soul energy. How could it summon an Iron Skin Zombie? Where did this zombiee from? Chapter 535 - 306: Defining the Harvest Goddess_1 Chapter 535: Chapter 306: Defining the Harvest Goddess_1 The floating Iron Skin Zombie was suddenly immobilized, as its head was gripped firmly. It discovered that its ws couldn¡¯t reach its enemy. After a few futile swings, Ange¡¯s arm remained slightly out of reach. The Iron Skin Zombie instantly redirected its focus, its sharp ws scratching at Ange¡¯s arm creating a screeching sound. After a few scratches, the Iron Skin Zombie suddenly realized it couldn¡¯t grip onto anything. Retracting its hand to check, it was astonished to find its nails were all ground down. Bewildered, it looked at Ange¡¯s pale arm, it didn¡¯t match the feeling it experienced when it tried to scratch him. The Iron Skin Zombie made another swipe, as its fingers cut across, it felt them sink into Ange¡¯s skin, only to scrape against something hard inside. Seeing the zombie¡¯s confusion, Ange removed his hat with his other hand, exposing his skeletal frame, along with his purple gold hand bones. The Iron Skin Zombie became even more dazed, it instinctively continued to scratch Ange¡¯s arm only to hear the screeching noise again. Its fingernails were ground down? Growling fiercely, the Iron Skin Zombie clenched its fist, smashing it into Ange¡¯s hand with all its might. No effect, after several failed attempts to move Ange, the Iron Skin Zombie looked Ange with its murky eyes and turned around, heading back into the corridor in silence. Watching the performance of the Iron Skin Zombie, Negris scratched his chin, stating, ¡°Hmm, it has intelligence, not a regr zombie, but a necromancer.¡± Ange pulled it out of the straw and everyone entered the cemetery. It was a vast underground space. The edges showed signs of human-made structures. Rows of stone coffinsy on the level ground, all of them sealed, except for one. The grotesque Iron Skin Necromancer was sitting by that open coffin, hugging its knees. Seeing Ange and his group enter, the necromancer gave them a haunting look, then got up and crawled into the coffin, quietly pulling the lid over itself. ¡°Well, it¡¯s sulking, huh? It must be my descendant. I¡¯ll go and discipline it.¡± Lisa said. She went over to the coffin, and with a hard pull, the hefty cover of the stone coffin slid open. The Iron Skin Necromancer was able to pull the coffin lid closed without issue, but when the delicate and pale Lisa managed to do the same, it was jarring. Lightning eagerly moved closer to Negris and whispered, ¡°The old witch is also a necromancer, what level is she?¡± Negris considering for a moment, replied, ¡°I didn¡¯t notice, but she does have a Soul Heart, so she should also be an Iron Skin.¡± ¡°That exins it.¡± Lightning had an aha moment, ¡°It really hurts when she hits.¡± The necromancer inside the coffin was also stunned. Seeing Lisa easily open the lid, he was momentarily lost for words. Lisa quickly grabbed its ankle and dragged it out of the coffin, berating, ¡°Which generation child are you? You¡¯re so rude! It¡¯s one thing not to greet people, but you even tried toy your hands on us? Who taught you that? I¡¯m going to teach you some respect on behalf of your ancestors. Tell me, which generation do you belong to?¡± Each insult was apanied by Lisa pping the necromancer¡¯s head. The Iron Skin Necromancer finally came to his senses, letting out a roar and tried to grab at her. ¡°Oh, you dare to fight back?¡± Lisa grabbed the Iron Skin Necromancer¡¯s hand, pulled it forward, knocked it to the ground, and stomped on its back. She then summoned holy light and started to smack its behind. The thick-skinned Iron Skin Zombie wouldn¡¯t feel any pain even if its butt waspletely battered, but don¡¯t forget, Lisa was once the Light Saintess. The holy light from her hand dealt extra damage to the undead. As she pped them, the Iron Skin Necromancer began to howl in pain. The Iron Skin Necromancer wailed in agony, reaching out desperately to grab Lisa. But with Lisa¡¯s foot on its back, like a giant stepping on it, the stiff-jointed necromancer simply couldn¡¯t reach her. Amid the screams, Lightning and Negris exchanged nces, and suddenly they realized something: ¡°Feilin fears his wife. Now we understand why.¡± ¡°Ahhhhhhhh!¡± The Iron Skin Necromancer refused to back down. It howled, its body suddenly bursting into soul mes. With a violent struggle, it managed to shove Lisa off and counterattack. Lisa was furious too, her anger resembling that of an elder scolding an unruly and rude child that refuses to change, making her wish she could beat it to death on the spot. Well, it seemed it was already dead¡­ It remained uncertain whether it could retain memories from its previous life. If not, this was merely an undead creature that had upied its descendant¡¯s body. Upon realizing this, Lisa¡¯s eyes shed determinedly. Gone was her hesitation, reced by a fiercely resolute look.N?v(el)B\\jnn A holy light began to shine from her body. A phantom image approached her through the air and gently enveloped her. Layers of armor wrapped around her, transforming into an exquisite suit of armor. In the hand of the armored figure, a stalk of grain¡­ Everyone was stunned. The Iron Skin Necromancer was stunned because it looked cool. Was she transforming to fight him? Lisa was also stunned. As the Light Saintess, she instinctively summoned the Holy Spirit when she unleashed her powers and this was rational. However, she had not summoned the Holy Spirit for more than a thousand years. Initially, she had been afraid to do so, andter, there were no Holy Spirits left. Now, when she unconsciously attempted to summon it, something actually possessed her and armorized her body? Negris was even more confused. Looking at the grain in Lisa¡¯s hand, he said: ¡°Grain of Harvest? Harvest Goddess? Did you summon the Harvest Goddess?¡± ¡°I¡­ I don¡¯t know.¡± Lisa hurriedly pushed the Iron Skin Necromancer onto the ground again, grabbed its legs, tossed it high into the air, mmed it back down, then tossed it up once again, and mmed it back down. After several rounds of this, the Iron Skin Necromancer was paralyzed and couldn¡¯t get up. Lisa had crushed its skeleton. It took only five seconds to finish it off. Lisa rushed over and showed everyone the armor on her body: ¡°Quick, look and see what¡¯s going on. When I summoned the holy light, I had a brain fart and decided to summon a holy spirit. Immediately, I felt something taking shape and being summoned.¡± Just as she finished speaking, the armor on Lisa began to dissolve into particles of light, rapidly disappearing. ¡°Eh, why did it disappear?¡± Lisa asked. ¡°You couldn¡¯t handle its power. You said you felt something taking shape? But you couldn¡¯t handle its power. What¡¯s going on? And why was the Harvest Goddess summoned by you as a Holy Spirit Angel?¡± Negris was also puzzled. The God of Knowledge can only convert known events into knowledge. If something never happened, it can¡¯t know how or why. Everyone huddled together, intently discussing Lisa¡¯s recent changes and asking her to repeatedly describe her sensations. Negris was utterly clueless, but Ange seemed to understand after listening, saying: ¡°Shamara, Gray Angel.¡± As if struck by lightning, Negris suddenly understood. He eximed excitedly: ¡°Shamara created Gray Angels. You didn¡¯t create a Harvest Goddess, did you? No, no, no. The Harvest Goddess¡¯s godhood is still intact because you can steal her divine power. Unless, have you defined what the Harvest Goddess is?¡± Chapter 536 - 307: Accelerating Body Metallization_1 Chapter 536: Chapter 307: elerating Body Metallization_1 Lisa defined the Face Purification Technique, demonstrating her tremendous creative ability. She stole the divine power from the Harvest Goddess, technically making her a pseudo-god. The hundred thousand harvest believers in the Light Sea ne had long since started to perceive her as an embodiment of the Goddess. Can the Harvest Goddess stimte the growth of crops? No, the Harvest Goddess can make crops abound and increase the growth of the popce, but she doesn¡¯t evene close to the impact of the Instant Death Halo. So, if a real Harvest Goddess and Lisapeted, most people would believe that Lisa is more like the Harvest Goddess. Under such circumstances, what¡¯s stopping Lisa from defining a long-gone deity? ¡°That¡¯s probably how it is. How long were you possessed just now?¡± Negris asked. ¡°About eight or nine seconds.¡± Lisa recalled. ¡°Next time you are possessed, summon it again to see what¡¯s going on,¡± Negris suggested. ¡°Okay, let¡¯s leave it at that for now, let¡¯s go, let¡¯s get out of here.¡± Lisa agreed. Everyone stood up, dusted themselves off, ready to leave, when a roar sounded from not far away: ¡°I¡­ am¡­ still¡­ here¡­¡± It was as if Lisa just recalled something, turning to the Iron Skin Necromancer and said, ¡°Oh dear, I almost forgot about you, sorry about that, what¡¯s your name again? Which generation descendant of Grand Duke Luosha are you?¡± The Iron Skin Necromancer rolled its vengeful eyes sarcastically, and finally conceded, ¡°Misha August Lisa, Grand Duke Luosha the 65th.¡± It had no choice; Lisa had thrown it around like a rag, dislocating all of its bones. It wasn¡¯t broken, but the dislocated joints rendered it unable to even crawl. If Lisa and the others just turned around and left, it could very well end up lying there forever ¨C ten years, a hundred years, a millennium¡­ or forever. After all, the undead can¡¯t die. This consequence was too terrifying; even as stubborn as it was, it did not want to stay lying down forever. Its voice was hoarse and the words were fragmented, sounding like the scraping of wood. Yet, the content of its speech had shocked Lisa beyond belief, ¡°Misha? The 65th Luosha Grand Duke? Weren¡¯t you alive just the year beforest? How did you suddenly turn into a necromancer?¡± ¡°Hold on, who did you inherit your middle name ¡®Lisa¡¯ from?¡± Lisa noticed something else. Nobility names are long andplicated, but they have a clear lineage, especially the family name and the middle name; the family name is inherited from the ancestors, the middle name is passed down from the elders. Of course, there are also various other sources, which can be a hassle when scrutinized. Regarding Lisa¡¯s family, the middle name can onlye from an elder in the family, does it originate from her?n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om As expected: ¡°It¡¯s inherited from the fourth generation Lisa, the Light Saintess.¡± The necromancer gave her a nce, probably thinking her focus was strange. Lisa squatted down, looking at it and asked, ¡°How many direct descendants does the fourth generation have?¡± ¡°Two.¡± ¡°What¡¯s the family motto?¡± ¡°Family are the people you spend the most time with. Spending time together leads to more friction, and because of that friction, those who would rather not mingle are fools.¡± Lisa asked some questions that only direct descendants would know, and this necromancer called Misha could urately answer. ¡°It seems you truly are my kin and haven¡¯t lost your memory, which is fortunate.¡± Lisa cheerfullymented, reconnecting its dislocated skeletal joints as she spoke. The Necromancer Misha frowned, ¡°I don¡¯t know you.¡± ¡°Hehe.¡± Lisa just chuckled, wisely postponing an exnation, and turned to Ange, ¡°I can¡¯t reconnect it, too many havee apart.¡± Ange approached, examining the Necromancer¡¯s entire skeleton. As an undead himself, there was nothing that understood skeletons better, especially a lower-level one who survived by recing parts of his skeleton. Ange and Lisa were easily connected, and the hesitant necromancer, Misha, slowly crawled up. She hesitantly gazed at Ange and Lisa, and casually moved two steps away before suddenly running off. The prohibition had been shattered, and knowing she couldn¡¯t beat theseds, she could totally make a run for it. Only a horse was in front of her, and it definitely wouldn¡¯t be able to stop her. ¡°Ahha!¡± Just as this thought crossed her mind, the horse surprisingly kicked sideways,unching her into the air. What kind of horse was this? Why could it kick sideways? The necromancer, Misha, unable to believe her eyes, stared at the oddly posed horse. This flying kick certainly wasn¡¯t a move a normal horse could pull off. The copsed necromancer still hadn¡¯t reacted, until Negris flew to her face: ¡°Hehe, pick anyone here, and you wouldn¡¯t be able to beat them. Don¡¯t even think about running¡­ Ouch.¡± Before he could finish his sentence, Misha punched him in the eye. He was wrong ¨C the only one the Iron Skin Necromancer could beat here, was him. Seeing herself not even able to defeat a horse, the necromancer, Misha, finally behaved and cooperatively copsed, disying a ¡®do whatever you want with me¡¯ kind of attitude. Lisa introduced herself smiling, ¡°My name is Lisa Augustus.¡± Necromancer Misha nodded. Now it was Lisa¡¯s turn to be stunned: ¡°Aren¡¯t you surprised?¡± Necromancer Misha replied, ¡°I do not know why you chose the same name as your ancestral family, but you should be sent by Robert since you are so familiar with the family secret, right?¡± Betweenughter and tears, Lisa said: ¡°I am your ancestor, Lisa Augustus, the Light Saintess.¡± Her remark received eye-rolling sarcasm from Misha: ¡°So, you mean to tell me that you are over a thousand and a hundred years old now, but still look like a freshly water-soaked yam cake ¨C soft and tender?¡± ¡°Hehe, you could say that,¡± Lisa responded with a smile. Misha¡¯s tone was clearly angry now: ¡°I know I look ugly now, but that¡¯s the fate of humans. When you die, you may not even have the chance to be ugly, as you might directly rot away.¡± Lisa realized this descendant seemed to have mistaken her for someone else¡¯s agent. If she continued this conversation, it would be meaningless. She had to perform some astonishing tricks. With a smile, Lisa initiated the illumination of the Purify technique and gently applied it onto Misha¡¯s bark-like dry hands. The effect of the Purify technique had been validated repeatedly. In Misha¡¯s horrific eyes, an ugly, skinny, eyeball-turbid mummy turned into a tall, white, moist, delicate, and robust-looking woman. As her body recovered, Misha slowly realized she was awkwardly exposed. She blushed and curled up. She hadn¡¯t been embarrassed when she was t, but she was embarrassed now. Lisa found it amusing andforted her: ¡°No need to hide, these creatures aren¡¯t human, so it¡¯s okay even if you are naked.¡± Even if she said that, she took out a set of clothes and draped them on Misha. ¡°Are you¡­ are you really my ancestor, Lisa Augustus¡­Great, Great¡­Aunt?¡± ¡°Are you really a necromancer? Have you really lived for over a thousand and a hundred years?¡± ¡°Are you really¡­¡± Misha, perhaps due to regaining a human¡¯s appearance, had be lively and asked Lisa questions one after another. Lisa patiently answered each question, even describing some of her personal items, and then opened her own stone coffin. If her parents had buried her belongings there, then the coffin must contain these items. This couldn¡¯t be faked. Aside from Lisa¡¯s parents, nobody knew what had been ced inside her stone coffin, and there were also no written records. However, as long as Lisa could ount for a small part of it, it would suffice in convincing Misha. ¡°Alright, we¡¯ve gone through my situation. Now let¡¯s talk about yours. Two years ago, you were the Grand Duke Luosha. Howe in less than two years, you¡¯ve turned into a necromancer and an Iron Skin ss at that? What happened? Was there something that elerated the metalization of your body?¡± Chapter 537 - 308 Opera Troupe_1 Chapter 537: Chapter 308 Opera Troupe_1 ¡°This is a legendary divine artifact that canmunicate with the Undead Empire. It possesses unparalleled power, able to disregard material entirely and strike at the soul directly¡­¡± Misha pulled out a ne from her chest, excitedly introducing it, but was interrupted by Negris before she could finish. ¡°Isn¡¯t this the ne of the lead singer banshee from the Howling Opera troupe ¡ª the Ne of the Wailing Voice? How did it end up with you? No wonder you¡¯ve been able to develop your iron skin within just two short years. It must be the Ne of the Wailing Voice. This object can strengthen the soul, and if there is still soul energy inside, it can replenish your own. Where did you pick it up?¡± Negris recognized this object, the Howling Opera Troupe, an opera troupeposed entirely of wailing banshees. Wailing banshees are a very rare type of undead, evolved from wraiths. They possess a certain level of intelligence and are most proficient at using Soul Impact. Because they¡¯re so rare, they haven¡¯t managed to be an independent undead species. However, their formation mechanism ispletely different from that of the undead. Theoretically, they should be ssified as a separate branch of undead. These rare wailing banshees were gathered to form an opera troupe. The purpose of their opera troupe was not to sing songs. When more than a dozen wailing banshees gathered and chanted the undead¡¯s music, all souls would be excited. Specifically for the Undead Army, all the skeleton zombies would be like ignited rockets and overwhelm all enemies. When they began to sing the luby of the night, all souls would beforted. Specifically, the soul energy would recover faster, and the wounds of the soul would heal. For mncholic souls like Rogge, if a banshee sang to him every day, he would absolutely not be depressed. This is a unit that encapstes encouragement and healing, belonging to¡­ witches? When he thought of this, Negris couldn¡¯t help but frown. He had lost most of his memories about witches and was not entirely certain. Misha was dumbfounded, at a loss for words. She felt like she had taken an antique to be appraised, and a Minotaur woman on the roadside recognized it at a nce: ¡°Hey, isn¡¯t this the dragon-pattern steel core mithril magic patterned earth-covered burned gem-enhanced brilliant-enhancing scrubbing board that was just releasedst week?¡± ¡°I, I bought it, from a flea market.¡± Misha stuttered. The situation was that Misha, blessed by the Goddess of Fortune, bought a ne at a flea market which turned out to be an artifact of the banshee lead singer of the Howling Opera Troupe in the Undead Empire. Originally, ording to knights¡¯ novels, she should have defeated her rival with the help of the soul device, married the prince, and reached the pinnacle of life. Unfortunately, this Ne of the Wailing Voice waspletely useless while she was alive. It was only after she died that it began to strengthen her soul, allowing her to reincarnate as a witch, strengthening her body and turning her into an Iron Skin Necromancer in just two short years. However, Misha did not think this was a blessing. If not for the Face Purification Technique, she would consider this a curse, even if it allowed her to regain her freedom and leave. She would have to go on living forever with a strong, ugly, and shriveled corpse-like body. But with Lisa¡¯s arrival, she was willing to believe this was a blessing. Thinking about it, she died at her most beautiful age, under the Face Purification Technique, she would always maintain her appearance. Wasn¡¯t this the legendary eternal youth? ¡°This is a blessing from the Goddess of Beauty,¡± Lisa said with a smile. ¡°Ah? Aren¡¯t you the saint of the Church of Light?¡± Misha asked in surprise. ¡°I used to be. Now, I am a saint of the Undead God, a priest of the Goddess of Beauty, and an incarnation of the Harvest Goddess,¡± Lisa said. The more Misha heard, the wider her mouth opened, mumbling, ¡°Your rtionships are quiteplicated.¡± ¡°Hehe, let me introduce you, this is Lord Ange, the Undead God,¡± Lisa introduced. Misha nced timidly at Ange, too afraid to greet him. She had already experienced the might of Ange earlier and despite her very best, she couldn¡¯t even move one of his fingers. ¡°This is the God of Knowledge, Lord Nage.¡± Lisa introduced Negris. Misha quickly waved her hand at Nage, ¡°Hello.¡± Greatness, out of all the people present, two are Gods, truly walking alongside Gods. No wonder she had no strength to fight back, Misha looked enviously at her great-great-great-great¡­aunt. ¡°You thought we were sent by Robert earlier, who is this Robert?¡± Lisa asked. Upon hearing this name, Misha, who was somewhat ufortable, instantly got furious: ¡°A despicable man, I must kill him!!¡± Misha inherited the title of Grand Duke Luosha in this generation. ording to the convention, the Grand Ducal Mansion would choose a young and promising, yet rootlessmoner as the husband for Misha. Rodette was selected by her parents among numerous applicants, and was personally picked by Misha as her fianc¨¦, a Level 6 Swordsman. Given Robert¡¯s young age and his originating from a in family, bing a Level Six Swordsman was already a considerable achievement. Since turning sixteen, Robert had been taken to the Grand Ducal Mansion to receive corresponding education in preparation to be a suitable husband for the female Duke. Robert was diligent and carried a burning work ethic. With ample nutrition and high-intensity training, his abilities soared, quickly entering the realm of a Level Nine Swordsman. He also excelled in cultural studies, learning various aristocratic etiquettes and knowledge. He learned to write and calcte, and gained a certain ability to organize and n. However, Robert had some habits that Misha absolutely loathed ¨C greed, stinginess, whistleblowing, but her parents thought that it was just a natural tendency of children brought up in a civilian family. They believed that these habits would slowly disappear once he gained wealth and power. The bad habits of Robert indeed seemed to slowly disappear. Recalling now, it was not that he had changed, but he had learned to hide. This kind of hiding made him earn the trust of Misha¡¯s family, and everyone was waiting for Misha to turn twenty-one and throw a grand wedding for them. But misfortune struck. Just as Misha¡¯s birthday was approaching, her parents, the 64th Grand Duke and Duchess Luosha, died suddenly due to illness. Misha suspected her parents were poisoned, but the inspection by the medical officers indicated it was a myocardial infarction. Amid the grief and sorrow, Misha buried her parents with enduring sadness. She thenplied with her parents¡¯ wishes, marrying Robert, yet she never found the courage to consummate their marriage. Two years went by like this. When Misha went to the ancestral tomb to pay homage to her parents, she was ambushed and killed on the spot by Robert.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om When she woke up, she didn¡¯t know how much time had passed. She had been ced in a stone coffin, covered by a heavy lid. Misha struggled to push open the lid, only to find the stone door tightly closed. So she stayed and lived in a pile of stone coffins, watching her own flesh wither, until the arrival of Ange and his group. ¡°This is outrageous, let¡¯s go and kill him.¡± Lisa was so angry that her hair stood on end. Misha hurriedly stopped her great aunt, ¡°No, Robert has the military power of the duchy. We can¡¯t approach him just by ourselves.¡± Although there were more than two ¡®people¡¯ present, after hearing titles like the ¡®God of the Undead¡¯ and ¡®God of Knowledge¡¯, Misha wisely didn¡¯t consider them as ¡®people¡¯. Lisa waved her hand dismissively: ¡°Don¡¯t be scared, Lord, call everyone out, let¡¯s tten this Robert tonight.¡± Then, Misha was agape as she saw Ange miraculously produce an ¡®army¡¯ out of thin air. Chapter 538 - 309: The Plan is Too Complicated to Use_1 Chapter 538: Chapter 309: The n is Too Complicated to Use_1 ¡°How should we push this forward? I suggest we charge in screaming, chopping down anyone who dares to obstruct us. Wipe out all obstacles, and we¡¯ll have it down.¡± ¡°Isn¡¯t that a bit too barbaric? How about we let Rogge sneak into the Grand Ducal Mansion and take out that Robert or whatever his name is.¡± ¡°That¡¯s too simple. Let¡¯s just blockade the city gates and have Sister Vania call out, saying: ¡®The heartless one,e out. You fathered my child.''¡± ¡°Huh, you¡¯re as shameless as Lord Nage? That¡¯s so shameless it¡¯s beautiful. But would people believe that Vania is a Minotaur?¡± Everyone clearly remembered the incident from years ago when Negris posed as Naeli¡¯s child to trick her into revealing herself. After a round of discussion, the n was formed. Misha was dumbfounded: ¡°That¡¯s it? That¡¯s it? We¡¯re about to attack the capital of a duchy, isn¡¯t this n a bit too simple?¡± Lisa Augustus dismissively replied: ¡°Simple? It¡¯s alreadyplicated enough. If it gets any moreplex, we¡¯ll have to bring in Lord Anthony. But it doesn¡¯t matter, as long as Lord Ange is here, a mere duchy is no issue. We can just march right over it.¡± ¡°Anthony?¡± Misha¡¯s attention was drawn by the other name: ¡°Archbishop Lord Anthony from the Eastern Diocese?¡± Lisa realized she¡¯d misspoke: ¡°Oh no, oh no, Lord Nage, I¡¯ve revealed Lord Anthony¡¯s identity.¡± Misha wasn¡¯t one of Ange¡¯s subjects and didn¡¯t have apulsory soul connection. Technically, she was an outsider. Anthony¡¯s identity was too sensitive to be known by an outsider, which could cause a lot of trouble. But was Lisa really so careless? Luther swiftly transformed his energy into a sword, demonstrating his power as a high-level Sword Saint, said menacingly: ¡°Then we need to silence her by killing her. Let me send this beautifuldy to her next life.¡± Negris flew over, berating: ¡°Don¡¯t be so rash as to resort to violence. Now there¡¯s only one option left, make the Soul Oath and swear allegiance to Ange.¡± Reluctantly, Misha offered her Soul Oath and rather unwittingly became one of Ange¡¯s subjects, avoiding having to be killed to keep the secret. Now that she was one of them, there was no need to hide anything. Lisa said: ¡°Yes, that Anthony. He¡¯s also one of Lord Ange¡¯s subjects. Now, he¡¯s dered the Eastern Diocese independent and founded the Holy Church. Currently, he acts as the regent Pope.¡± Misha¡¯s head was about to explode. How did a small duchy in such a remote corner get involved with the regent Pope? The Church has split? What on earth happened during the two years she was dead? Under the cover of night, they arrived at the capital¡¯s gate by daybreak. Lisa attached the True Wings to the Little Angel and instructed: ¡°Wait a second. You take the twelve lower-rank angels and block the gate. Don¡¯t talk, just act aloof. At my signal,unch an attack on the guy I¡¯m pointing at, got it?¡± ¡°Awooo!¡± Little Angel affirmed. Among everyone, Lisa was one of the few who couldmand Little Angel, because all of Little Angel¡¯s dresses were prepared by Lisa. If they waited for Ange to arrange it, Little Angel would probably be running around bare-bottomed. At dawn, when the city gates were opened, everyone leaving the city found the gate blocked by a line of Holy Spirit Angels. The leader was a Four-Winged Angel, followed by a line of two-winged angels. To the left of the Four-Winged Angel was a woman radiating a holy light, beautiful and gentle. To the right, was a cloaked figure concealing their entire body. They blocked the gate, allowing no one out and said nothing. They ignored any inquiries from the city guards, maintaining a proud and indifferent demeanor. The city¡¯s inhabitants panicked. Such an array, even the Saint¡¯s Edge Army would panic. When Lord Anthony returned, he was only escorted by twelve lower-rank angels without even a four-winged higher rank angel. Soon, Duke Robert arrived at the city gate. The cloaked figure made a gesture at his appearance. Lisa stepped forward, divine power surging around her, carrying her voice steadily to the ears of everyone present: ¡°The fourth generation sessor of the Kingdom of Luosha, Lady Lisa Augustus, was called by the grace of God to be the Holy Maiden of the Church of Light. Her life was a pure one, a life of light. She dedicated her life to spreading the light¡­¡± After a bout of self-praise, Lisa¡¯s tone shifted: ¡°I am the Messenger of the Church of Light, carrying thest wishes of the Holy Maiden Lisa. When her family is in danger, she hoped the Gods would lend their protection and punish those who scheme against her bloodline. Today, her descendants called out for help, and so, we¡¯vee.¡± At this, Lisa gestured towards the cloaked figure beside her. The cloaked figure pulled their cloak away, revealing Misha¡¯s lively face. Robert wore a look of horror. Impossible! He had killed her himself. He had checked she had no breath left, physically ced her into a stone coffin. Even if she somehow survived, she would have suffocated due to theck of air in the coffin. How could she still be alive? Could it be¡­ Foreshadowing thoughts of resurrection, rebirth, divine grace, and more shed through Robert¡¯s mind.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Is it really Duchess Misha? Isn¡¯t she supposed to be dead? Didn¡¯t Lord Robert say she was assassinated and her body was taken away.¡± The guards, wizards, soldiers around Robert stared at him, unconsciously stepping back slightly. Lisa pointed at Robert and dered: ¡°God says: Those who harm my people will turn to ashes.¡± ¡°Yeah!¡± The Little Angel spread her wings excitedly, pushed forward with both hands, and a beam of light aimed urately at Robert. Poor Robert did not even say a word before he was reduced to ashes. Taking a step forward, Lisa loudly proimed: ¡°Is there anyone else associated with Robert? If not, then please kneel and wee your Duchess Misha August Lisa¡¯s return.¡± Lisa deliberately called out Misha¡¯s full name, particrly emphasizing the middle name ¡®Lisa¡¯, to tell everyone that she was protected. The city gates and walls all kneeled in unison. Misha was stunned. Was it really that simple? It seemed their borate ns on their journey here were far tooplicated, there was no need for them. The ¡®army¡¯ hiding behind saw this and Luther said with regret: ¡°It¡¯s too easy, howe they didn¡¯t resist? Now my sword can¡¯t even drink fresh blood.¡± All of them were disappointed. Only the Little Angel was satisfied. Under her escort, Misha returned to the Grand Ducal Mansion. Two years have passed, things have changed since shest saw the mansion. All she could see were unfamiliar faces. Misha did not dare to return to such a mansion. Who knows whether it would suddenly catch fire in the night? She looked around and suddenly saw a familiar figure. His head was hanging low, avoiding her sight. He was limping, heading into the alley. Misha ran after him, shouting: ¡°My most loyal guard, Clero, where are you going?¡± Clero turned around, smiled bitterly, and said: ¡°I¡¯m sorry, Duchess Misha. Seeing you return safe and sound, I am relieved. But unfortunately, I no longer have the ability to protect you.¡± Clero¡¯s face had several scars, reminiscent of a centipede. Both his legs were uneven one longer than the other and an arm atrophied in front of his body. He was panting after finishing his sentence, an obvious sign that he had some serious lung injury. Misha, emotionally overwhelmed, said: ¡°It was Robert, wasn¡¯t it? He did this, right? It was because of me. If only¡­¡± ¡°No, it was my own impulsiveness. The day you didn¡¯t return, I went to question him and was beaten by his people. I shouldn¡¯t have been so impulsive. I should have stayed patient, find out what happened, and thene to rescue you. Now, I am disabled and can¡¯t protect you anymore. I¡¯m sorry.¡± Clero said regretfully. Lisa looked at them both skeptically and her face lit up with an auntish smile. ¡°Disability is not a big deal. This kind of injury is easy to handle. But Clero, you¡¯ve got to first tell me, what¡¯s the nature of your rtionship with my niece?¡± ¡­ ¡°From here to there, a region of 60 kilometers long and wide, Misha has already designated it to us for mushroom farming. The terrain here is good, surrounded by mountains on three sides, crossed by a river. There are water, trees, stones, and ample humidity.¡± ¡°Furthermore, she gave us the Ne of the Wailing Voice. Kvada, the Little Angel disyed one holy light at the city gate, and in return, we received 3,600 square kilometers ofnd and a soul device! We really hit the jackpot, it¡¯s even better than robbery.¡± ¡°Little Zombie,e here, put it on. Ange, infuse a bit of soul energy into the ne. Little Zombie has been a bronze spirit for a while now and is about to break through. Let¡¯s use this to speed up.¡± ¡°But Little Zombie has only been born for slightly more than two years and has already reached the bronze level. Seems like following you, his leveling speed isn¡¯t slow.¡± ¡°Huh, isn¡¯t this the Undead Ode? It seems to be the second stanza that follows the Earth Hammer Undead Ode.¡± Negris pointed at the runes on the ne chain, saying in surprise. Ange took out the Earth Hammer and put it next to the ne. The Earth Hammer protested, ¡°What is this thing beside me? Is it of the same rank? Don¡¯t lower my value, take it away, take it away.¡± Ignoring it, Negris looked at the runes and analyzed: ¡°It does seem to be the second stanza. Let¡¯s try to sing it and find out?¡± Chapter 539 - 310: The Undead Symphony is Sung Like This_1 Chapter 539: Chapter 310: The Undead Symphony is Sung Like This_1 The undead spirit and the indestructible soul, cross the river of death, the wind of rest is yesterday¡¯s mor, the future lies in the darkness ahead, break the darkness, the new world of immortality, break the darkness, the endless fall¡­ ¡°What kind of bizarre lyrics are these? They are filled with the unexined sorrow and mncholy. It¡¯s as though something is being said, yet nothing is being said. The message contradicts itself, what¡¯s this about breaking the darkness, but falling endlessly? Isn¡¯t breaking the darkness supposed to be the onset of endless light? Goodness, the endless light could be modified to be a hymn.¡± Negris critiqued with an expression as if he was getting teary-eyed from too much spice. Among those present who had a knack for music¡­ Vania. Yes, Vania, the Minotaur cook. She happened to be the most musically talented being under Ange¡¯smand and sang wonderfully because she enjoyed humming while cooking. And she has a fulsome voice, loud, and wide-ranging, whether it¡¯s a dwarf¡¯s battle song or a eunuch¡¯s falsetto, she could perform a snippet. Of course, the highest musical talent was the castrato singer Senlide, who Ange had inadvertently created, but he was not present. Left with no option, despite their current standard, they pressed ahead like leading a duck onto a perch. Vania tried singing, ¡°It might be for the sake of matching the rhythm of the song, let me try ¨C Undead Spirit ¨C cough, cough ¨C and eternal¡­ No, this won¡¯t work, Lord Nage. The notes don¡¯t match, I can¡¯t follow the tune.¡± Negris pondered for a moment, then suggested, ¡°Perhaps this song is for the undead, and should be sung in themonnguage of the undead? Hmm, is there amonnguage for the undead?¡± Everybody nced at each other and, finally, all eyes fell on Ange. Ange tilted his head and opened his mouth: ¡°Roar¨C¡± Boom! All the undead present felt like their souls were hit by a bolt of lightning. It didn¡¯t matter which syble Ange yelled. The important thing was the wave of soul energy that was felt. The wave of soul energy expanded outwardly with everyone clearly feeling the thunder-like drum beat resonating, and ethereal singing voices that carried over. Undead spirit¡ª The indestructible soul¡ª Cross the river of death¡ª Everyone felt their souls speeding up, their focus bing more concentrated than they had ever experienced. Rising within each soul was an intense desire for battle¡­ ¡°Turns out, the Undead Melody is sung with the soul. The soul is themonnguage.¡± Negris mumbled in realisation. The wind of rest is yesterday¡¯s mor, the future lies in darkness ahead¡ª As Ange sang this part, everyone felt as if they had returned to the Resting Abyss. Around them was the howling winds, and aheady infinite darkness. However, strangely, they didn¡¯t feel the usual anxiety that was associated with being engulfed within the Resting Wind. Instead, they found tranquility, akin to listening to the gentle patter of rain against the windowpane. The howling wind seemed like a hand, soothing their souls and quelling their desire for battle. ¡°Kvada, it¡¯s indeed a strange contrast. The lyrics didn¡¯t seem to imply this, so why does it feel different when sung out? Singing with the soul¡­¡± Break the darkness, a new world of immortality, break the darkness, fall endlessly¡ª The lyrics had reached their most contradictory part; breaking the darkness, followed by an endless fall. Initially, it seemed exceedingly strange, but as they reached this part of the song, Negris felt his soul overwhelmingly drawn downward, as if he were sinking into an abyss. However, he quickly felt a certain force supporting his soul. The two opposing forces caused the fire of his soul to recede. Boom! Negris¡¯s body burst into soul me, and so did Little Zombie. Two points of light were also seen igniting amidst the distant trees. ¡°This¡­ My Soul Heart has consolidated?¡± Negris eximed in shock. His bronze juvenile dragon body was essentially an undead body, with a Soul Fire inside but no consciousness. Negris projected his consciousness onto the Bronze Dragon, controlling its actions. Since it didn¡¯t require physicalbat, Negris didn¡¯t pay much attention to the strength of the Bronze Dragon¡¯s soul; after all, it was unbeatable. He believed it didn¡¯t matter how strong it was as long as it was sufficient. Surprisingly, under the resonance of the two Undead Melodies, the Bronze Dragon¡¯s Soul Fire consolidated into a Soul Heart. The Soul Heart was a sign of higher undead beings. Undead beings at this stage were respectively known as the Golden Skeleton, Iron Skin Zombie, Witch King, Undead Saint, and Dark Knight Emperor. ¡°Eh, can the soul of the body be upgraded to a Soul Heart in just two years? I haven¡¯t been hibernating and refining it that much.¡± Negris suddenly thought of a question. The transition from Soul Fire to Soul Heart requires a long period. For example, Feilin still doesn¡¯t have a Soul Heart, even though he has been a witch for over a thousand years. However, witches generally learn magic, and their strength is determined by their level of magic. The strength of their soul only affects their recovery speed. Not only did they evolve, but the other undead beings¡¯ souls had also been greatly refined. They had all made significant progress. ¡°I understand now, this ¡®fall¡¯ doesn¡¯t have the meaning we understood. It represents a contraction inward, an endless contraction. Diving inward endlessly is the state of the Soul Heart, isn¡¯t it?¡± Negris had an epiphany. Luther tugged Negris: ¡°I understand what you¡¯re saying, but what are those two things?¡± He pointed towards the two light points in the forest while speaking.N?v(el)B\\jnn Chapter 540 - 310: The Undead Symphony is sung like this_2 Chapter 540: Chapter 310: The Undead Symphony is sung like this_2 At this moment, a transcendent song drifted from the direction of the light points. ¡°I have already stopped breathing¡ª¡± ¡°But I am not yet dead¡ª¡± ¡°The Soul me takes the ce of life, I must escape before the dawnes¡ª¡± Everyone was shocked, not just the undead, even living beings like Luther¡¯s Lightning, felt the impact. Lightning murmured, ¡°What a beautiful song! I feel like my soul has been touched. Who is singing?¡± Everyone turned their gaze towards the distant forest. When Ange was singing just now, Negris and Little Zombie had ignited their Soul mes and almost simultaneously, the two distant light points had kindled. ¡°I have only myself left¡ª¡± ¡°Friends and family have all left me¡ª¡± ¡°Wearing the cloak of night¡ª¡± ¡°Concealing my decaying skin¡¯s secret¡ª¡± Lisa suddenly clutched her chest; these lyrics were piercing her heart. I am alone, family and friends have gone, d in thick attire, hiding the secret of my dry skin. When she first became a witch, looking at her skin gradually bing dry, Lisa was so frustrated that she wanted to explode. Rage and regret filled her, stirring a strong impulse tosh out. Thanks to Feilin, who took all her venting. He stayed with her, soothing her until time wore everything away. For the sake of her own beauty, Lisa tried countless methods, she even painstakingly smoothed and bonded her skin. The soulful song, like heavy hammers, struck everyone¡¯s heart, making everyone¡¯s mood sink into despair. Only Ange and a few others were a bit confused. Why were everyone upset? The Little Sapling was broadcasting enthusiastic messages: Grow! ¡ªStrong! ¡ªGrow!, trying to bring back their vitality. Unfortunately, its enthusiasm couldn¡¯t counteract the stirring impact of the song on the souls. Oh, where should I go? My body is already breeding maggots¡ª Oh, where should I go? I am full of doubt about the world¡ª ¡­ The cessation of breathing is not the end of life, the peace of the soul is the beginning of death¡ª ¡­ Oh, where should I go? My soul is at peace ¡ª (in the ce where the Resting Wind blows) Oh! ¡ª (The Undead are born here) Oh! ¡ª (This scene is etched in my memory) Negris couldn¡¯t help but exim in astonishment, ¡°There are even harmonies, they are so professional. I know what these two are, Wailing Banshees. Why are they here?¡± No one noticed Negris¡¯ murmur. Everyone was immersed in the beautiful singing, and the chorus wasing soon. The song gradually became cheerful. Come on, baby, congrattions on your immortality¡ª Release your power¡ªn/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Ignite your Soul me¡ª Throw off all shackles, let you be your new self¡ª Everyone was immersed in the beautiful singing, and their bodies couldn¡¯t help but move to the rhythm. Lightning was even dancing lightly. If it had participated in a formal dressagepetition, it would have been hard not to win the championship. Recovering from the song, everyone walked towards the two light points. As they approached, everyone could see clearly that these were two spirits. The two spirits also came towards them, but after seeing thebination of Ange and his friends, they hesitated and seemed to want to turn around and run. ¡°Don¡¯t run, don¡¯t run, I¡¯m dead, not alive.¡± Negris quickly took two steps forward, revealed his Soul Heart, and flew towards the two spirits. The two spirits quickly greeted Negris and then asked doubtfully, ¡°But you¡­¡± ¡°Magic, a kind of magic. I¡¯ll show you with a corpseter. By the way, you are Wailing Banshees, aren¡¯t you? Why are you here?¡± Negris asked. The two Wailing Banshees looked at each other and shook their heads, ¡°I am Dolly, and this is Dumi. We don¡¯t know why we are here. We seem to have been here for many years, wandering aimlessly until just now. A voice woke us up, who woke us?¡± The gazes of the two Banshees swept over the group and finally fixed on Ange. Without saying anything, they had already recognized Ange¡¯s aura. Kneeling down solemnly, they said, ¡°Thank you for giving us a new life.¡± Ange tilted his head. ¡°Get up, get up, by the way, are there only two of you? Where are the other Banshees? You are from the Howling Opera Troupe, right? You Wailing Banshees always act collectively, why are only two of you left?¡± Negris asked. The two Banshees looked at each other and shook their heads, ¡°We don¡¯t know. We only remember the witchdy saying: The Soul Storm ising, sleep, hoping you wake up one day. Then it was now, but before this, we seem to have been hovering over thisnd already.¡± ¡°Soul Storm? What Soul Storm? And the witch?¡± Negris asked anxiously. Oh god, it¡¯s so hard. He finally heard something different from these Wailing Banshees, but what is a Soul Storm? Even the witch cannot bear it? Why did she make them sleep? Could sleep resist the Soul Storm? However, the expressions of the two Banshees had cooled down. They red at him angrily, ¡°You dare to call the Witch by her name directly? How audacious, you lizard!¡± One of the Banshees seemed to want to open her mouth, but when she nced at Ange, she held herself back. If it weren¡¯t for Ange, she would probably have cursed this audacious Bronze Dragon with Fear Technique. ¡°Er, it¡¯s me, it¡¯s me, the God of Knowledge, the Bronze Book, Ange, get me out.¡± Among those who are most qualified to call the Witch by her name directly in the Undead Empire, he could be counted as one. Chapter 541 - 310: The Undead Symphony is Sung Like This_3 Chapter 541: Chapter 310: The Undead Symphony is Sung Like This_3 Ange brought out the Bronze Book, scaring the two sirens into kneeling quickly: ¡°We pay our respects to the Lord of Knowledge, we didn¡¯t know it was you, please do not me us.¡± Negris naturally wouldn¡¯t bother with them and continued to question them: ¡°Where¡¯s the witch? Where did the witch go? Why are you guys here?¡±n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om The two sirens looked at each other, shook their heads and said: ¡°We were invited by humans to attend a music festival. On the way back, the Great Shaman seemed to have received some information and became deeply worried. She eventually stopped and put us into a deep sleep, mentioning something about a ¡®Soul Storm¡¯. When we regained our consciousness, we saw you. We have no idea where the Great Shaman has gone.¡± Disappointed, it seemed that getting more crucial information from these two sirens was impossible. Perhaps because of this, Misha found the Wailing Voice of the lead singer here. It¡¯s possible that other sirens also existed here at some point. Over a thousand years have passed. Some might have dissipated in unfortunate circumstances, some were eliminated and purified by humans, others may have died under the sun, all are possibilities. ¡°Never mind, let¡¯s farm. There might be other sirens nearby. Let¡¯s look for them while we farm.¡± Negris said. Ange quickly pulled out the Earth Hammer and handed it to the Little Angel. The Little Zombie, whose soul had leveled up, materialised tworge hoes, and they all rushed off to farm. Negris turned to the two sirens and asked: ¡°What about you two? Would you like to follow us? If you do, you¡¯ll have to pledge the Soul Oath to Ange.¡± These two were affiliated with the Great Shaman, and were on the same level as everyone else. Negris couldn¡¯t force them to pledge their souls. However, if they willingly pledged, then there would be no issue. In case the Great Shaman is not dead, no one can me him. The two sirens didn¡¯t hesitate much before pledging their Soul Oath. After all, not just anyone can perform the Undead Symphony. Ange could do it, and had even bestowed upon them new life, so pledging their souls was a given. Especially now that they knew a thousand years had passed, the Undead Empire was destroyed, and they didn¡¯t have a home to return to, they had no option but to offer their souls. However, after pledging the Soul Oath, they were taken inside the Temple of Rest for a tour. Only then did they understand that the Undead Empire was now left with just Ange and Negris. Ange, along with everyone else, was ¡®happily¡¯ cultivating mushrooms. Gravel, clean loam, moist air, mild sunlight, and Kvada ¨C it was simply a mushroom paradise. After a couple of days, Luther and the others grew bored and began shirking their duties. ¡°This is so boring. Weren¡¯t we supposed toe here to help Granny Lisa take down the Wusu Kingdom? Why hasn¡¯t anything happened?¡± As soon as they finished speaking, the hurried sound of horse hooves echoed through the forest. A knight bearing multiple scars on his face galloped up to them, stopped in front of Lisa and saluted, dering loudly: ¡°Mydy, the Wusu people are here.¡± It was Clero, now healed from his disabilities, who went on to pay his respects to Ange after reporting to Lisa. It was this man who had cleanly amputated his leg, whittling it down until it was even, then reattached it. Throughout the whole process, Clero felt no pain at all. He was able to walk once it was attached, it was simply miraculous. However, Lisa looked at the scars on his face andined: ¡°Clero, aren¡¯t you going to do something about the scars on your face? They look terrible.¡± Clero gave a small smile: ¡°No, they serve as a constant reminder of the serious consequences of making mistakes.¡± PS: Theplete lyrics of the ¡°Undead Symphony¡± are below. Lyrics by: Thulium Shadow Thanks to toy5545 and the powerful Werewolf for the rewards. Chapter 542 - 311: Cant Sweep Clean_1 Chapter 542: Chapter 311: Can¡¯t Sweep Clean_1 Ur Mountain Pass is the border of the Wusu Kingdom and Kingdom of Luosha. It has now be a refugee camp, with as many as thirty thousand refugees crammed into this area, waiting for rescue.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om The night temperature in the mountains is very low, and the wind at the mountain pass is even more intense. Every morning, some refugees be stiff from the cold and are taken to the back for help. But speaking of help, all the refugees know what is the fate of those taken away. Most likely, they are dumped into a ditch and feed the wolves. But everyone doesn¡¯t have the heart to pity them, because they might be the next to be taken away. This morning, several more frozen bodies were lifted from the camp, two of which were tightly together. The bigger one is a sixteen-seven-year-old boy, holding a ten-year-old girl in his arms. Probably, they were siblings. The scavenger lifting the bodies sighed, ¡°Poor kids. The boy gave all the clothing to his sister. If only there was a fire. We need to bring back more firewoodter.¡± The younger scavenger in the carriage also sighed, ¡°But what¡¯s the use of bringing back more wood? These kids can¡¯tpete with the adults in the camp. In the end, women and children are the ones who suffer. ¡°We can only do what we can. What else can we do? Bring as much wood as you can. Maybe a little more will make a difference,¡± the older scavenger sighed. As scavengers, besides sweeping the streets, their mostmon job is body collecting. They should have lost their empathy long ago. But since the influx of refugees, in just one month, they have cleared hundreds of bodies. These tragedies mostly happen to women and children. Even if you are heartless, you would feel sorry for them. The young scavenger kicked the gravel on the ground bitterly, angrily questioning, ¡°Why don¡¯t they just let them all in rather than blocking them at the mountain pass here? Why not take them somewhere more sheltered?¡± An older scavenger smacked him on the head, ¡°Are you crazy? Do you know how many Wusu spies are hiding in there? Plus, if they alle in, it would be impossible to block the city. Do you want your family to be refugees like them?¡± The young scavenger rubbed his head, sulkily replying, ¡°Isn¡¯t that a bit exaggerated? Weren¡¯t Wusu always on rtively good terms with us?¡± ¡°Damn, these refugees were driven here by them. What a joke! Don¡¯t spout such nonsense again, or I¡¯ll report you,¡± the older scavenger cursed. When their vehicle came to a forest, a group of young and strong men and women in white robes swiftly approached. They carefully transferred the bodies from the carriage to the stretcher, and politely told both scavengers, ¡°We¡¯ll take it from here.¡± Then they added seriously, ¡°When you transfer the bodies, please be gentle. When the bodies are damaged, it bes much more difficult for us to save them.¡± The young scavenger was just about to rebut, but the older scavenger stepped in front of him and quickly promised, ¡°Yes, yes, sir. We will be careful.¡± They turned back, and once they couldn¡¯t see the men and women in white robes, the young scavengerined, ¡°Save them? They¡¯re long gone! They don¡¯t even have the decency to blush at their lies.¡± The older scavenger shook his head, as if irritated by the naivety of the younger one. ¡°Who told you a stiff body can¡¯t be saved? Have you ever seen a body talking to you with maggots dropping from his face? You haven¡¯t seen everything in this world. Don¡¯t be nosy. Curiosity killed the cat.¡± However, the older scavenger, who thought he knew it all, was wrong. Those ¡®stiff bodies¡¯ were moved into a cave by the men and women in white robes. They were ced on clean beds and then came forward one by one, chanting, ¡°Lord Ange, please give me strength! Purify!¡± A holy light shined from their hands. The light passed over the bodies of the siblings, and their originally bluish skin gradually returned to normal. After casting two lights, the first person in a white robe was a bit tired. He stepped aside for the second one to continue, until both siblings were fully recharged. Then, another person in a white robe came forward and forcefully pressed his hand on the boy¡¯s heart, her hand went so deep that his chest caved in. Then he yelled, ¡°Lord Ange, please give me strength! Rebirth!¡± Under the power of Rebirth, his chest swelled, and his heart contracted sharply, then started beating again. With the steady cirction of blood, the boy¡¯s face regained its color, peaceful breathing returned, and soon his eyes fluttered open. Since his death hadn¡¯t passed 24 hours, or maybe even an hour, his soul and memory weren¡¯t damaged. Upon opening his eyes, the boy saw the people in white robes using holy light to heal his sister. Soon, his young sister¡¯s heartbeat and breath were also restored. Observing the white robes and the holy light, the boy was reminded of a myth, and asked, ¡°Are you¡­ Are you angels from the Order of Lighting to save us?¡± One of the elderly people in white robes turned back, and gently smiled at him, ¡°Haha, yes, but we¡¯re not angels. We¡¯re just priests. Remember, we serve Lord Ange.¡± Chapter 543 - 311: Cant Sweep Clean_2 Chapter 543: Chapter 311: Can¡¯t Sweep Clean_2 Although Kebos didn¡¯t understand why Lady Lisa would order them to disguise themselves as Priests of Light, he didn¡¯t care much, as they were still spreading the great name of Master Ange. Kebos was once amoner in Ice City, destitute and cold, unable to afford a coffin for his parents, until Lord Ange¡¯s arrival. Lord Ange brought food and the World Tree, not only providing them warmth and satiation, but asional beetroots to enjoy. When they were sick, someone would heal them, when they died, someone would bury them. Even coffins were avable for their deceased parents, rumored to be imported from the human world made of jujube wood. No longer needing to wander across barrennds in search of their ancestor¡¯s remains, this was a prosperous era they could have never imagined. Henceforth, Kebos became a devout follower of Ange, and after various tests, he eventually became a priest of the Undead Temple. All the robed men and women here were priests of the Undead Temple, reporting directly to Lady Lisa, but their immediate superior was High Priest Ork. Now that Lady Lisa¡¯s not around, he can only resort to reporting to High Priest Ork. Kebos found the young boy who was dutifully sweeping the cave floor and respectfully said, ¡°High Priest Ork, we treated thirty refugees today, most of whom were saved, but a few of them have stubborn diseases that our abilities cannot handle. We need your personal assistance.¡± Ork scratched his head: ¡°Alright.¡± Kebos continued to report, ¡°Among these people we¡¯ve treated, most are poor civilians, but two or three of them were brought here due to old injuries ring up. Looking at their wounds, they are predominately caused by des and swords. After treating and interrogating them, it turns out they are spies from the Wusu Kingdom hiding in the refugee group. I interrogated them and here are their recorded confessions, cross-checked and with inconsistencies highlighted.¡± As he said this, he tried to hand the documents to Ork. Ork shook his head, ¡°I can¡¯t read it, give it to Lady Lisa.¡± Kebos expected this reaction, as High Priest Ork was notoriously uninvolved, much like their Master God, Ange. After briefing him on daily routine matters, which Ork listened to and then ignored, Kebos followed him to the treatment area. Nearby caves have been modified into a settlement area, a treatment area, and an emergency aid area. Patients not in need of emergency aid would stay temporarily in the treatment area until healed, then they¡¯d be moved to the settlement area. With Ork¡¯s arrival, several patients suffering from chronic diseases were healed one by one and were then transferred out. In the end, there was only one spy left. ¡°This is one of the three spies we found. We¡¯ve treated the other two, but this fellow has a hard mass near his heart. No matter how we attempt to heal it, the mass does not shrink. It is already pressing on his blood vessels. If not treated, he will die soon,¡± exined Kebos. Ork leaned forward to apply the Holy Light at the position of the spy¡¯s heart. The spy smirked mockingly, ¡°When did you servants of Light be so merciful? What¡¯s the difference to you whether or not I¡¯m healed? Years ago, I was kneeling in front of your temple cradling my daughter. But because I couldn¡¯te up with twenty gold coins, you chased us into the alley. My daughter slowly perished in my arms. What kind of ¡®kindness¡¯ are you pretending to show today?¡± Ork was taken aback for a moment, shaking his head and honestly replied, ¡°That¡¯s not our problem, we¡­¡± He was trying to say they weren¡¯t the Church of Light, but he got kicked by Kebos who interrupted, ¡°You¡¯ve misunderstood. We¡¯re not trying to save you¡ªit¡¯s just that our Lord hasn¡¯t returned yet and we didn¡¯t want you to die prematurely.¡± ¡°Sure enough, Light¡¯s servants are always so heartless. You¡¯ve been feeding off themon people for so long, you¡¯ve forgotten mercy and kindness. When you say that I¡¯m a spy, it¡¯s not urate. I¡¯m not like the other two. I have another title¡ªDeath Soldier, and my death is my destiny!¡± As he said this, the spy (Death Soldier) clenched his chest as if crushing something. His body tensed, veins popping and eyes wide open with rage. Kebos was startled, ¡°That¡¯s not a growth, it¡¯s an imnted object. God, I checked before, and there was no sign of anything foreign. This must have been nted near his heart when he was young. As he grew, it merged with his heart, thus it wasn¡¯t detected. This is a Death Soldier raised right from childhood.¡± ¡°You guessed it.¡± The Death Soldier¡¯s figure erged as though he were a raging beast, throwing a powerful punch at Ork¡¯s head. Despite being unarmed, the sheer force and speed of that punch could burst a man¡¯s head instantly. Ork looked like a frail boy confronting the brute force of a feral beast, yet his face disyed no panic as he took a step forward. Instantly behind him, a ck hole ripped open, and a golden skeletal hand emerged, catching the punch that the Death Soldier had thrown. Another skeletal hand reached out from the ck hole. Perhaps annoyed by Oke¡¯s blocking its path, the hand forcefully pushed him aside, and then a golden skull crawled out from the hole.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om The Death Soldiers were stunned. They were supposed to kill the servants of Light. Why had a skeleton appeared? Without giving them any time for thought, the Bone Priest thrust his hand directly into a soldier¡¯s chest, pulling out a hard object which was a crystal ball about the size of a horse¡¯s eye. At this moment, the crystal ball was shattered, with a liquid flowing out from inside. It was believed to be a potion that enhanced the potential of the Death Soldiers and induced their berserk transformation. The hard object was located directly above his heart. As the object was pulled out, his heart was damaged. The Death Soldier wanted to struggle on the brink of death, but couldn¡¯t move, dying with a face full of confusion. I was clearly about to kill the servants of Light, so why did a skeleton appear? With the death of a Death Soldier, the scene calmed down. Only then did Oke and Kebos notice that the Bone Priest looked rather messy, with his body covered in hardened lumps of bird droppings. Oke scraped at the priest¡¯s bones and asked with confusion, ¡°What happened?¡± The Bone Priest¡¯s empty eye sockets moved over to Oke. He remained silent for several seconds before speaking slowly, ¡°You should have¡­ summoned me¡­ earlier.¡± Apparently, since the Bone Priest killed the Insect God, Hermel, he had been left in that cave all along.¡± Oke slightly tilted his head, ¡°You said it doesn¡¯t matter where you are.¡± The Bone Priest replied with a somewhat dejected tone, ¡°Couldn¡¯t clean up.¡± The cave where Hermel had stayed was high and spacious, filled with rubbish. Without the Insect God, bats would asionally fly in and defecate mid-air. In the beginning, the Bone Priest would use ¡®Soul Impact¡¯ to kill these bats. However, their bodies would then fall and be an even bigger pile of rubbish. After sweeping them to one side, they would rot and breed bugs that would crawl all over the ce. No matter how he swept, the Bone Priest couldn¡¯t clean the cavepletely, which greatly troubled him and even made him lose his hair. ¡°Oh, do you want to go back?¡± Oke asked. ¡°Yes.¡± Oke opened the summoning channel again. The Bone Priest stepped into it and reappeared in the familiar Undead Temple. A plump Minotaur auntie was watering the sacred mushrooms there. She seemed happy to see the Bone Priest, ¡°Good day, Sir Bones. Long time no see. How have you been?¡± After greeting him, the Minotaur auntie left, carrying her bucket. After all, the Bone Priest wouldn¡¯t respond. Instead, she had to be careful not to let the sacred mushrooms grow into the precincts of the temple, or he would chase them away with his broom. Not long after she walked away, she heard the sound of sweepinging from the temple again. ¡­ The priests of the Undead Temple had arrived outside the refugee camp early, and Grand Duke Luosha¡¯s troops were also well-prepared, just waiting for the Wusu Kingdom¡¯s army to walk into the trap. The whole n was made by Anthony, the acting Pope of the Holy Church. Misha even had the chance to meet this legendary figure in person. One day, Misha, along with some high-ranking individuals from the kingdom, brought the designed n to Ange and Lisa. There, they found a mysterious man draped in a cloak. The mysterious man lifted his hood, introducing himself, ¡°I¡¯m Anthony. Nice to meet you. I¡¯ve looked at your n, and to be honest¡­ it¡¯s too cruel.¡± ¡°I would like to ask you one question. Do you n to block the people of Wusu at the border, watch theirnds being annexed by nobles, turn civilians into refugees, and allow an endless stream of them to eat and drink at your expense, or die within your territory?¡± Chapter 544: 312: Really, the Ghost is Shouting_1 Chapter 544: Chapter 312: Really, the ¡®Ghost¡¯ is Shouting_1
Am I really so cruel? Misha began to question her life after being interrogated by Anthony. ¡°When you have the ability to save lives, but choose not to, that¡¯s cruelty. Especially when your inaction may result in evesting problems. Countless innocent lives are waiting for your rescue while you stay safe and sound in your own territory, oblivious to their agonizing cries at your borders. Without your food supplies, do you know how many people will starve to death?¡± Anthony asked in sorrow. Misha¡¯s mood sank, and she shook her head. Anthony sighed: ¡°I am not aware of the precise situation in the Wusu kingdom, but based on the conditions in the territories under the control of the Holy Church, we may be seeing food shortages affecting up to five percent of the entire region.¡± Five percent? That doesn¡¯t sound too bad. Huh? The Holy Church? Anthony? You mean he¡¯s the acting Pope! Only then did Misha realize who the enigmatic man in the hood standing before her was. Anthony noticed Misha¡¯s slight disbelief and shook his head: ¡°This is not just about five percent. When five percent of the poption in this worldcks food, it means the price of food can be inted indefinitely until five percent of the poption starves to death.¡± ¡°Adding to that, issues such as food hoarding, unequal distribution, inconvenient transport, wartime chaos and so on, these factors can multiply that number by several times. In order not to be part of that percentage, people driven to starvation can do anything cruel, like eating a Minotaur.¡± Vania seemed to be hit by a wave of cmity, her bulging eyes looking around in confusion: Why would they eat a Minotaur? Lisa, Negris, Rogge, and the others all fell silent. They understood Anthony¡¯s implications¨Cif people could resort to eating a Minotaur, they could do other things, like cannibalism. If it ever came to that point, starving creatures would undoubtedly be capable of such actions. Rogge suddenly said: ¡°In the past, when the Undead Empire faced such situations, they would directly initiate the Undead Cmity. Instead of having people turn against each other, it was better to send them on their way.¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Everyone from the Resting Abyss turned to look at Lisa; they all knew that Feilin had almost made a simr decision when the Witch¡¯s Underground City was threatened by a food crisis. Feilin was ready to initiate the Undead Cmity. Anthony continued: ¡°Although there is a shortfall, does it mean we don¡¯t do anything? We can implement food control measures, crack down on food hoarding, organize food production recovery, find alternative food sources. As long as it¡¯s managed well, we can totally bridge a five percent food deficit.¡± ¡°With proper control, we can ovee the deficit. But all these measures require efficient organization and equitable distribution. If you are content with merely keeping the enemy at bay, you might as well be abandoning the peasants in Wusu, which could equal up to twenty-five percent of the poption. With the poption of Wusu at five million, this could potentially result in more than one million deaths.¡±
Misha felt as if her legs had turned to jelly. The number was too massive; it left her staggered, all these people could die because of her¡­ but that¡¯s not her concern, is it? Misha struggled and said: ¡°But if I send troops into Wusu, it will be my loyal soldiers who pay the price. What if we fail?¡± Oh ho, a clear-headed consideration. A worthy leader. Anthony nodded approvingly: ¡°Your concerns are justified, but not at present, because we have got your back.¡± As he spoke, Anthony moved towards Ange¡¯s back and started patting his own chest with authority, showing that the ¡®we¡¯ he referred to included Ange as well. Ange had no interest in fighting, it would interfere with his farming, so he quickly grabbed the back of Anthony¡¯s clothing and pulled him back. Anthony drew his head back in embarrassment and chuckled. ¡°Hahahaha¡­¡± ¡°Ahahaaha!!¡± Seeing Anthony embarrassed, everyone burst intoughter, particrly Negris, whoughed the loudest, ¡°So what you ther all day long, Ange isn¡¯t buying any of it.¡± Anthony scratched his head in embarrassment andughed along. Misha watched in trepidation. Is it okay for them tough like this? Wouldn¡¯t his Holiness the Pope be angry? How is it that his holiness¡¯ status holds so little weight among this group? After all theughter, maybe because it was rare to see Anthony embarrass himself, Luther, in high spirits, stepped forward, patting his longsword and said: ¡°Lord Anthony, I¡¯ll help you, my Dragon Pattern Steel Core Mithril Tailed Demon Pattern Terra y Burnt Aiyo Aiyo Sword and I will help you.¡± Before he could finish his sentence, Luther found himself scrambling for cover in a hail of punches, but he still managed to finish pronouncing the full name of his sword. Lightning pped his chest with his hoof: ¡°Lord Anthony, I¡¯ll help too.¡± After all the fooling around, everyone gathered their belongings and prepared their equipment. Looking at them, it seemed more like they were bored out of their minds and wanted something to do than really wanting to help Anthony. Watching this ¡®army¡¯, Misha couldn¡¯t help but be moved. She knew full well the strength of the Wusu kingdom from being neighbors for so many years. If Ange and his men were to help, they indeed could seize Wusu kingdom at a meager cost. Doing so, she wouldn¡¯t have to station so many troops at the border or reallocate food supplies for relief. Exactly as Anthony said, there¡¯s a deficit in food across the entire region, and Misha was no exception. The Kingdom of Luosha is not a food-producing nation, and in the past, they bought their food. The pressure of maintaining food supplies was massive, but for this reason, they built severalrge grain fortresses and thus possessed abundant food resources. But who knows when this crisis will end? No ie and everything is outgoing; even thergest grain fortress couldn¡¯tst more than a few years. Chapter 545: 312: Really, the Ghost is Shouting_2 Chapter 545: Chapter 312: Really, the ¡®Ghost¡¯ is Shouting_2
The most efficient solution is to resolve the issue once and for all. Plus, it was Wusu who badgered her with the refugees first, forcing her to step in. As long as she¡¯s fighting under the banner of ¡®rescuing the refugees¡¯, she will have the moral high ground. No one can condemn her. She grits her teeth and decides to do it. After thorough deliberation with Anthony, Misha agrees to summon her troops in two days and then begins her preparations. Once Misha left, Negris flies over. He bends his short ws and nudges Anthony with his elbow, ¡°What are you up to? Don¡¯t tell me that you¡¯re really doing this out of kindness, to help the disced farmers in Wusu.¡± Anthony shrugs: ¡°Of course, I¡¯m just that kind-hearted a person, what else?¡± After his little jest, Anthony puts on a serious face. ¡°On one hand, I want to solidify my ce in the Western District, the geographical locations of both Wusu and Luosha are critical. On the other hand, I despise Wusu¡¯s tactics. They¡¯re deliberately causingnd acquisitions. If everyone starts doing it, themon people of the Western Region will have no way to survive, they¡¯ll either be ves or starve¡±. ¡°Ah, you¡¯re fearing the domino effect. Everyone following suit will be troublesome.¡± Negris understands, he also now knows why Anthony, amidst all the busyness, summoned him to the Kingdom of Luosha specifically after hearing about this incident. It was inconvenient for Anthony to get over here. First, he had to teleport to the Resting Abyss and then take the stairway to heaven. From there he used the portal in heaven to finally arrive here. Back and forth, he had to spend a lot of resources.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°The whole realm is like an activated Magic Egg right now, a ticking time bomb. If the news about Wusu¡¯s actions bes public, it might set a terrible example. The unscrupulousndlords and aristocrats may see this and think, ¡®Ah! So, we can do this? Not only can we remove surplus poption but also take over theirnds. We can gain a lot of cheapbor by forcing the refugees onto ourpetition and having them drain their resources.¡¯ ¡°I¡¯m already seeing such symptoms in my district. I¡¯ve killed three Grand Dukes and a King, no one else dares to pull such moves now. But when the timees, help me get through to the Lord. I¡¯m running low on grain.¡± Negris turns his nose: ¡°You go speak to him.¡± Anthony walks over to speak with Ange. After he said a few words, Ange suddenly stands up, excitedly howling a few times and starts to gather Little Angel and Little Zombie etc. Negris was left dumbfounded. When Anthony came back, he couldn¡¯t resist asking in a low voice, ¡°What did you tell him? Wasn¡¯t he supposed to be farming? Why is he looking so excited?¡±
Anthony shrugs: ¡°I told the Lord about arge saltke in Wusu Kingdom, theposition of thatke¡¯s salt is different from the salt we eat. With the druid¡¯s knowledge, he can use it as a fertiliser, a substitute for wood ash.¡± ¡°Pff¡­,¡± Negris spits out in general, looking Anthony up and down in shock, ¡°So I see, you intentionally yed the fool back there. If you had mentioned this potassium saltke, Ange wouldn¡¯t have refused. But you didn¡¯t, you intentionally made a fool out of yourself. Even though it was utterly embarrassing, it allowed you to blend in with everyone else, even Luther Lightning feltfortable joking with you, I¡¯m starting to understand how you climbed to the top position after every Rebirth.¡± Anthony smirks enigmatically, ¡°An insightful person once said, ¡®Even when aplishing great deeds, one must do so as ¡®one of our own¡±.¡± ¡°Which wise person said it? Howe I¡¯ve never heard of it?¡± Negris frowns, Is there a wise saying even he, the God of Knowledge, has not heard of? Anthony smirks triumphantly, ¡°That wise person is named Piero.¡± ¡°Kvada, that¡¯s you!¡± Negris gets angry. Anthony is actually in a dangerous position, distanced from the core circle. Plus, his identity is very sensitive, creating a barrier between him and everyone else. If this continues, it will cause a rift. It¡¯s only because the circle revolves around Ange and everyone in it isn¡¯t a bunch of petty people, that this hasn¡¯t happened yet. His rtionship with Ange is solid, rooted in unwavering faith. Otherwise, he would have been flooded with rumors and nder. He¡¯s seen that too many times in his millennium-long life. Life is mostfortable here with Ange. But that¡¯s not to say he shouldn¡¯t work on maintaining a better rapport. Sometimes, making a fool of oneself can help build camaraderie. He prided himself on hisworking skills. But by the evening Anthony¡¯s pride had vanished. ¡°What? The Lord invaded the Wusu Kingdom and defeated their army? He only had three people with him? Little Angel, Little Zombie and Lightning? Plus a potted sapling? Was¡­ was my n tooplicated?¡± ¡­ The Grand Duke Lainate of Wusu led his troops, driving the refugees onward. When they came across any dead bodies on the road, they simply used their swords to flick the bodies into roadside ditches or into the grass and trees, toozy to bother collecting them. The Duke¡¯s deputy hesitates, ¡°Isn¡¯t it a bad idea to just leave the bodies like this? What if they turn into Undead and start attacking?¡± Lainate dismissively waves his hand, ¡°There¡¯s no need to worry, we fear nothing living, why should we fear the dead? They¡¯re just Undead, we can kill them again if need be.¡± The deputy who must have read one too many knight novels doesn¡¯t seem to agree. But instead of arguing, he changes the subject, ¡°Can we really push these many people into Luosha? What if Luosha shuts down their borders? We¡¯re all cavalry, we can¡¯t defeat infantry in mountainous regions.¡± Lainate smirks, ¡°Do you think your Grand Duke is a clueless noble, who only knows how to steal pretty women?¡± Chapter 546: 312: Really, the Ghost is Shouting_3 Chapter 546: Chapter 312: Really, the ¡®Ghost¡¯ is Shouting_3
The deputy¡¯s eyes bulged in shock: Could it be? Lainate coughed ufortably, ¡°Although I asionally act in absurd ways, this isn¡¯t the case this time. You should ask everyone if they now have more fertilend after driving away those lowly people.¡± ¡°Long live the Grand Duke! We vow to serve the Grand Duke loyally!¡± The excited cavalrymen following along shouted. If you want people to serve, you must first feed them well. This was a famous quote from Lainate¡¯s grandfather, the previous Grand Duke Wusu. Even though Lainate was uninformed and acted absurdly, he had a cavalry that was loyal and obedient. The deputy also shouted excitedly because he got even more. ¡°Conquer the Luosha, I¡¯ll give you morend titles, more ves. I heard the Luosha n has beautiful women, let¡¯s divide all the women in her family among us,¡± Lainate shouted. ¡°Divide! Bestow! Long live the Grand Duke! Woo woo woo!!!!!¡± The morale of the cavalry was greatly boosted, they shrieked loudly. Amidst the shrieks, a prolonged ¡®ah¡¯ could be heard. The deputy officer looked at the spot where he had just kicked a body off the road. It seemed like the bushes there had moved a bit, but upon a closer look, nothing was found. Lainate continued, ¡°Closing down the borders doesn¡¯t scare Luosha. Do you know the new-appointed Duke Robert of Luosha? He is amoner who married into the Ducal Family. The nobles under him are not very obedient, so Robert contacted me, hoping that I can support him. He will open the doors for me then.¡± The deputy officer¡¯s eyes widened in shock. No wonder Lainate was so confident, the reason lied here. Lainate was about to say something smugly but suddenly felt irritated, he couldn¡¯t help but swear, ¡°Who¡¯s that howling over there? Shut up!¡± Everyone did not notice that ¡®ah¡¯ sound initially, but as the screaming cheers of the cavalry slowed down, that ¡®ah¡¯ became clearer. Amon sound of ¡®ah¡¯ wouldn¡¯t irritate people unless shouted directly into their ears.
However, this ¡®ah¡¯ sounded very irritative, it felt like someone was scratching steel wire inside your soul. Everyone looked towards the direction the sound wasing from. The deputy officer even stood up on his horseback to see farther, but what he saw made him gasp, ¡°Du¡­Duke, it seems like a ¡®ghost¡¯ is howling, an¡­ undead!¡± Lainate also immediately stood up on his horse and looked into the distance. Over the half slope in the distance, two slightly transparent figures were wailing with their heads tilted back. Behind them, a figure was constantly casting magic. And around them, humanoid shadows flooded in from all corners. Ange¡¯s Purify was directly casted into the corpse¡¯s body, not emitting any light. This saved more effort since there were too many bodies around him. Ange¡¯s King¡¯s Arrival, amplified by the two Wailing Banshees, expanded rapidly. The fallen bodies along the way were all summoned by him. Lainate would never have guessed that the refugees he drove to their deaths would be vengeful spirits seeking his life. Originally, he nned to rush over and kill them all. But Ange remembered Anthony¡¯s n: The traces of the undead and foreign forces must not be exposed. Otherwise, this rebellion against tyranny would turn into a foreign invasion or Undead Cmity.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om So Ange gave each body a dose of healing, making them appear as lively as ever. All over the mountains and ins, lively, fearless, and pain-immune humanoid shadows ran towards Lainate¡¯s cavalry. The Banshee¡¯s wail suddenly changed, a voice that pierced straight into the heart and soul rose as if whispering into your ear. I have stopped breathing¡ª But I have not died¡ª The soul me reces life¡ª I must escape before the emergence of the dawn¡ª ¡­ The lively corpses, as if injected with adrenaline, rushed into the formation of Lainate¡¯s cavalry. The deputy officer saw, to his horror, the body that they had kicked off the road earlier had gotten up and was rushing towards him. As long as all the people are killed, nobody will know that they were killed by the undead. Chapter 547: 313: Application to Reopen World Transit Station_1 Chapter 547: Chapter 313: Application to Reopen World Transit Station_1
Looking at a heap of very much alive ¡®people¡¯, Anthony didn¡¯t know what to say. ¡°Um, sir, are there any survivors?¡± Anthony didn¡¯tin about the messed-up n, instead, he asked the most crucial question. If there were survivors, he would have to adjust his n ordingly. When a leader disrupts a n, it¡¯s surely a wise move. Shouldn¡¯t you adjust your strategy to align with the leader¡¯s? Would it make sense if the leader had to adjust to your n? Ange shook his head: ¡°We have¡­a dead one?¡± Ange was not sure how to describe it, there was no survivor, but there was a dead man who could talk. What should that be called? The deputy of Lainate was brought forward, his neck bitten with a significant gap. It seemed like all the blood in his body had been drained from this wound, clearly he was very dead. However, at that moment, he had a terrified look on his face, his eyes dull, and aplicated gaze at everything. ¡°Eh, has he be a witch already? So soon?¡± Anthony wondered aloud.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Two wailing banshees emerged from behind Ange, respectfully bowing: ¡°We¡¯ve sped up his transformation, Your Majesty Piero.¡± Anthony was a passionate fan of the Howling Opera, in the Resting Abyss of Kvada, apart from the opera, there wasn¡¯t much to do. So he knew these banshees, but he couldn¡¯t differentiate them, so he vaguely nodded: ¡°Oh, it¡¯s you guys.¡± Taking the deputy for interrogation, Anthony quickly pieced together what had happened in the early morning. When Lainate was marching towards the border while boasting, the corpses scattered on both sides of the road had quietly risen.
Throughout the dark night, an unknowable number of corpses fearlessly swarmed over. Lainate¡¯s night march was somewhat hidden, but now the darkness had be the corpses¡¯ greatest camouge. It was unlikely that unarmed corpses could break through their defensive line with a direct charge. But now, by the time the corpses on both sides jumped on them, many had gotten dragged before they could react. Some high-level swordsmen shed at the corpses rushing at them and prepared to continue the charge, only to find in horror that theirpanions who had just been dragged down were now getting up, attacking them with expressionless faces. A terrifying legend emerged in their minds:rades turned into enemies, souls harvested, this was the Undead Cmity! The more robust individuals stopped trying to organize a counter-attack and instead, protecting Lainate, tried to break out. However, in the chaos, Lainate¡¯s head had somehow disappeared. Rogge, a qualified shadow guard, was overlooked by everyone. However, as long as he was there, he would stand by Ange, proving to be far more reliable than self-proimed followers like Luther. In the midst of the sessive encirclement, they beheaded the enemy leader. No one would dare do this except for the Dark Knight Emperor. Run, was the only thought left in the mind of the Wusu cavalrymen. Unfortunately, their wrongdoing was too significant. There might¡¯ve been tens of thousands of corpses on the way. Even if they stood still, they could block the mountain road entirely. Some began to fly. Pop, pop, pop! A series of fireballs in the sky turned him into a ball of fire. Some tore open a teleportation scroll, the exploding spatial fluctuation made him a preferred target, a beam of light shone on him. ¡°Kvada, it¡¯s a Holy Spirit Angel, why are the Holy Spirit and the Undead mixed together? Did we offend both the Light and the Undead?¡± Some people cursed and wailed. Teleport scrolls were the best life-saving tool that the Wusu cavalrymen could bring with them, but not everyone had one. Those who took them out were either sted by the Little Zombie¡¯s Breath of Death shockwave, stabbed to death by Rogge hidden among the crowd, or reduced to ashes by Ange¡¯s explosive fireballs. By the end of the night, not a single one had escaped. Then there were tens of thousands of very much alive ¡®refugees¡¯ on the road. Anthony sighed: ¡°My n was too conservative. I prioritized secrecy. Sigh, the enemy was too easy. After all, they are a small country in a remote area with only a few wizards. Well, let it be.¡± Misha, who had just arrived, was stunned when she heard Anthony¡¯s words, for she was also considered a small remote country in Anthony¡¯s mouth. However, she was powerless to refute his words because her homnd was even weaker, dealt with by Little Angel using just a Holy Light sh. Anthony turned to Lainate¡¯s deputy who was still in a trance, asked: ¡°What will you do? Either you lead us, go capture those feudalndlords. Or we catch you, throw you to thosendlords, telling them you¡¯re a witch?¡± Lainate¡¯s deputy was startled out of his trance, and hurriedly said: ¡°I¡¯ll lead you, I¡¯ll lead you to catch people.¡± The rest went smoothly. A group of people transferred from the Dark City, disguised themselves as disced farmers among the thousands of newly risen corpses, and besieged the capital of Wusu Kingdom. The army of the Kingdom of Luosha, under the banner of disaster relief, entered the Wusu Kingdom, captured all thendlords and nobles, and handed them over to the ¡®rebel farmers.¡¯ Strangely, the ¡®rebels farmers¡¯ got the ¡®result they wanted¡¯ and dispersed one after another. The Grand Duke of Luosha led his troops into the capital, dering that the Grand Duke of Wusu was brutal and unkind, killed by the ¡®rebellious peasants.¡¯ The Wusu Kingdom was temporarily under the administration of the Grand Duke of Luosha. The children of the Grand Duke of Wusu temporarily stayed in the Grand Ducal Mansion, waiting for the situation to stabilize, and then inherit the title of the Grand Duke. Everyone praised the Grand Duke of Luosha for his character ¨C taking advantage of people¡¯s danger, he was indeed the modern God of Kindness. Chapter 548 - 313: Application to Reopen the World Transfer Station_2 Chapter 548: Chapter 313: Application to Reopen the World Transfer Station_2 To everyone¡¯s shock, the entire family of Grand Duke Wusu was poisoned that very night. A servant stood forth, confessing his responsibility for the death of the Duke¡¯s family. He vehemently condemned the Duke¡¯s family for their cruelty, maltreatment of servants, kidnapping of women and a host of other crimes. Subsequently, he stabbed himself to death. The sight of the servant driving a sharp knife into his neck and the subsequent spilling of ck blood shocked everyone present. Most assumed he was beyond saving, yet the servant¡¯s body was foundter that night in the City outskirts at the Luosha Military Camp. With a cheerful, ¡°How did I do?¡±, he epted their medical treatment. Any Witch, after ingesting a bellyful of chicken blood and shing their own neck, then using soul energy to expel the blood from their stomach could replicate this scene. With no heir to Grand Duke Wusu, a seemingly ¡®reluctant¡¯ Grand Duke Sharo could only take over the military authority and territory of the Wusu Kingdom. Registration of citizens, farnd allocation, food control, and the organisation of production processes remarkably restored calm to the Wusu Kingdom within a few weeks. ¡°Truly, it isn¡¯t that remarkable. I followed Duke Wusu¡¯s approach, eliminated part of the poption to free up more resources. Only I tackled thended gentry instead. It¡¯s easy to keep calm with resources in abundance, evenly-distributed. Given our current circumstances, having a full belly is more than enough for most,¡± sighed Lord Anthony. Misha, who had learned much during this time, quickly jotted down Anthony¡¯s words: a full belly. Anthony looked at what she had written, his nose twitching with annoyance, ¡°I¡¯ve said so much and you noted down only three little words?¡± Misha stared at him with big, innocent eyes. Laughing and shaking his head, Anthony said approvingly, ¡°Very good at ying dumb, and you did note down the crux of what I said. Not just that, your mind is sharp, your determination strong. Your heart harbors enough cruelty, you protect your own and are not scared to cross lines. With no restraint of moral shackles, given time, you will no doubt surpass me. I can¡¯t help but wonder how your mentors managed to groom you with this mindset. That is an achievement indeed!¡± With a faint smile, Misha responded, ¡°No one taught me, that mindset was born during the two years after my death. When I was alone in a cave, watching my own body dposing, unable to leave or sleep, despite being already dead.¡± Anthony lightly patted her head, ¡°Only two years, after two centuries, you¡¯ll forget it all. You¡¯re already an Undead.¡± Misha blinked in confusion not quite grasping what Anthony was implying. Not bothering to exin, Anthony quickly changed the topic, ¡°Where is Lord Ange? I was hoping to buy more grain from him.¡± Of course, he was at Salt Lake. After a few days, Ange had figured out the characteristics and handling methods of the potassium salt and was transferring it into the Temple of Rest. However, theke of potassium salt was too vast. Even if he filled the entirety of the Temple of Rest, it would still not even hold one-tenth of its total volume. When Anthony found him, Ange was amusing himself with the green algae in the saltyke waters. ¡°Is this¡­algae? No way, this is all salt! How salty must this water be for the algae to still thrive?¡± Even the world-wise Anthony was taken aback. On the surface of the white, potassium salt-coveredke, the water teemed with green algae. Ange pointed at it, and the algae began to grow at a rapid pace, quickly burgeoning into arge clump. This was not Anthony¡¯s field of expertise, so he switched to discussing the grain purchase. ¡°My Lord, I would like to purchase an additional hundred thousand tons of grain,¡± Anthony stated. Ange shook his head, ¡°At the moment, there isn¡¯t any.¡± With the harvest season not yet over and crops not ready for reaping, Ange didn¡¯t have that much grain at hand. Of course, he could use the Instant Death Halo to encourage crop growth, but that would require an amount of soul energy he didn¡¯t dispose of at the moment. There was no way he could elerate the growth of a hundred thousand tons of crops. Anthony nodded, understanding Ange¡¯s predicament. Ange had always been straightforward, and if he said he didn¡¯t have it, he didn¡¯t. And so, Anthony shifted the topic, ¡°In that case, My Lord, I request the activation of the World Transfer Station.¡± ¡°Are you crazy?¡± Negris jumped up at the idea, ¡°What if we let beings from other dimensions know that the World Transfer Station is open, and they attack?¡± Anthonyughed lightly, ¡°It¡¯s not the same now as before. With our strength, who can prate into the Resting Abyss now?¡± Negris was taken aback for a moment but quickly realized, ¡°Yes, who can prate? The Holy Kingdom is gone.¡± Negris was not actually afraid of the World Transfer Station, as it was guarded by twelve deities, formidable mechanical constructs left from the era of the Undead Empire. Anyone who tried to invade the Resting Abyss through the World Transfer Station would be ttened by the deities the moment they exited the teleportation array. What Negris was most concerned about was the Holy Kingdom. This entity could move in the void and appear outside the range of the World Transfer Station at any time, sending in troops. But the problem now was that they had upied the Holy Kingdom. As long as they didn¡¯t invade other dimensions, who would dare to invade them? Even if someone dared, without a void fortress like the Holy Kingdom, who could send in troops on arge scale? Sending them in one by one was akin to courting death. So, they could open the World Transfer Station now, and announce the return of the Undead Empire. However, Negris frowned, thought for a while and shook his head, ¡°Let¡¯s forget it, we don¡¯t really need the Transfer Station. The small teleportation arrays we have are enough now.¡± Anthony nodded, ¡°I know. If it weren¡¯t for bulkmodities like food, the small teleportation array would indeed be enough. To transport 100,000 tons of food, I spent several million Demon Crystals. If the World Transfer Station were open, the cost of teleportation could be reduced by a tenth. Even if transshipment is required, one-fifth of the cost would suffice. Only by opening the World Transfer Station can I buy arge amount of food from other dimensions.¡± Negris shook his head. ¡°How about this: turn off the marker that indicates the World Transfer Station is operational. That way, only teleportation arrays that have registered coordinates beforehand will disy the World Transfer Station¡¯s presence. More than a thousand years have passed, how many of those teleportation arrays are still in existence? Even if there are some left, we can simply tell them that a new teleportation array has been built over the site of the old World Transfer Station.¡± After thinking about it, Negris said, ¡°This method indeed is much safer, but still unnecessary. You¡¯re better off finding your own food channels. Once a deal is struck, we can briefly open the World Transfer Station to receive the delivery, then shut it down again.¡± ¡°Good! This is a great idea.¡± Anthony pped his hands, gave a thumbs-up, and praised. Negris looked at him with a skeptical gaze, ¡°Is that your original goal?¡± ¡°No, no. It¡¯s because Lord Nage is considerate and hase up with a better n,¡± Anthony quickly rified, and handed over a piece of paper, ¡°This is a deal I brokered with another dimension for 10,000 tons of food. The transaction is scheduled for this time tomorrow.¡± ¡°Kvada, you even set the time, and you still im it wasn¡¯t?¡± Negris¡¯s nose twitched in indignation. Anthony showed no embarrassment, and continued, ¡°This is what I was thinking: if the teleportation cost can drop by 90%, even with single transshipment, it¡¯s still just 20% of the original cost. We can charge 50% of the original cost, with 30% as a usage fee for the Transfer Station. How about it?¡± In other words, the original transportation cost of one million would now drop to two hundred thousand, but they would charge five hundred thousand, three hundred thousand of which would be the usage fee.N?v(el)B\\jnn This seemed like a pretty good deal, opening up the World Transfer Station, and charging use fees for it. No business would be easier than that. However, Negris kept his guard up and pulled Ange aside to ask Silver Coin via soul contact. Upon hearing this, Silver Coin instantly objected, ¡°No, no, absolutely not! That¡¯s way too much of a loss for us. We cannot consider our own on cost, but rather how much the other party saves on theirs.¡± ¡°Even if the shipping cost doesn¡¯t change, we are dealing in bulk trades. We are saving a lot of time, and time is money.¡± ¡°Using a small teleportation array, it would take him dozens of days to transport these 100,000 tons of food. With the World Transfer Station, it would only take a day. He could save a lot of manpower and materials, all of which are cost factors. Why should we reduce the shipping cost?¡± ¡°And we¡¯re only profiting by 30%. All costs of wear and tear, maintenance, and security are in this 30%. We might even end up making a loss. Therefore, shipping costs cannot be reduced. At most, in consideration of familiar rtions, we can give Lord Anthony an 80% discount.¡± Chapter 549 - 314 God Asks: Do You Know How To Grow Veggies?_1 Chapter 549: Chapter 314 God Asks: Do You Know How To Grow Veggies?_1 The next afternoon, within the Resting Abyss, at the World Transfer Station, everyone was on high alert, ready to receive supplies from the XX ne, which, of course, had a name. However, this held no meaning, as everyone knew it by a different name. Unless every individual shared the ne¡¯s coordinates forparison, Anthony took out the coordinates forparison. Unfortunately, in the coordinate system of the World Transfer Station, no record of these coordinates existed. This might be a new ne. So for now, they named it the Mary ne, since the person on the other end coordinating with Anthony was named Mary. As for how they obtained the coordinates? They were bought from the Adventurer¡¯s Guild. Those ubiquitous adventurers could sell you anything you wanted. The other side had already sent a sample for his review, indicating that ten thousand tons of food were avable for sale. If the transaction went smoothly, they could supply hundreds of thousands of tons of food in the future. Being a food-producing ne, their food production far exceeded their consumption, hence the surplus for sale. Anthony had made several deals with them using ordinary teleportation arrays. Each delivery had been prompt, but a hundred or two hundred tons could be transported through an ordinary array. However, for transactions involving tens of thousands of tons of food, using an ordinary array would result in a significant loss. Ange¡¯s hundred thousand tons of food were sent using an ordinary array, which had depleted Anthony¡¯s resources. If he continued this way, he would need to borrow money. That¡¯s also why he had to haggle with Ange, he was broke. Unfortunately, his ns were shattered by the silver coins. Now, owing 80% of the transportation fees, he finally received Ange¡¯s approval to activate the World Transfer Station. However, he didn¡¯t mention the transportation fees to Ange. Instead, he said: ¡°Sir, the nts of every ne differ. Some of them are extinct on our master ne. We might find some special ones, like male sterile strain or drought-resistant female strain which could be cross-bred. We could make it a priority in our negotiations with them.¡± Anthony was clueless about the terminology he used. He had asked a few druids just before his departure, thinking it might persuade Ange. However, Ange nced at him and shook his head. Huh? Did the sir not agree? Anthony was stumped. He considered every obstacle but never thought Ange would refuse. Normally, Ange was quite amicable. For a Master God, Ange was almost too ¡®approachable¡¯ to be a deity. Why didn¡¯t he agree? What factors had he overlooked? Anthony pondered, trying to resolve these issues. However, Ange said: ¡°This matter seems to be important to you. I agree.¡± Anthony was stunned for a while before responding, ¡°Sir, you mean, you agreed to open the World Transfer Station because it¡¯s important to me and not because of the nts?¡± Ange nodded. Anthony was stunned for a while, and his nose felt a little sour. Casually, he said, ¡°I can¡¯t thank you enough, sir.¡± Ange cocked his head and reached into the Temple of Rest again. Negris flew to Anthony¡¯s side, jabbed him with his elbow, and said: ¡°It¡¯s rare that he has agreed to do something without a fair trade.¡± Anthony let out an awkward smile, ¡°Really? I¡¯ve embarrassed the sir by making an exception, I am deeply ashamed. My loyalty to the sir is as pure as holy light. No, I can¡¯t let Sir Ange make an exception. I will sell some of the temples when I get back to repay sir¡¯s kindness.¡± Negris sneered, ¡°Don¡¯t you think using ¡®Holy Light¡¯ here is a bit weird?¡± ¡°Is it? No, the holy light belongs to the sir, don¡¯t change the subject, did you hear what sir just said? Hurry up and open the World Transfer Station for me.¡± After the first attempt with the World Transfer Station, it hadn¡¯t been activated again. That time, it had directly connected to the long-lost Purple Corpse, achieving a 100% connection rate. This gave Negris a clear understanding of the poprity of the World Transfer Station, so he dared not start it again. During the Undead Empire era, the World Transfer Station was the center of attention for all realms. There were always individuals trying to connect to it. When there were too many connection requests, it was even necessary to queue and wait for its call. Even though over a thousand years have passed, some teleportation arrays were still stubbornly sending connection requests, awaiting its response. However, with time, many arrays saving the World Transfer Station¡¯s coordinates were too damaged to start, resulting in fewer and fewer connection requests. Of course, the coordinates could be recorded and sent to a new teleportation array to send a request. However, for a new array that hasn¡¯t connected before, the coordinates had to be inputted each time. Only when the connection is sessful will it be recorded in the coordinate diagram, and then it can be sent with just one click.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om However, many teleportation arrays may not even have a coordinate diagram. Theoretically, after shutting down the identifying sign of the teleportation array, what the other party sees is just a teleportation point. If it doesn¡¯t have a coordinate diagram, it doesn¡¯t disy a name. It¡¯s very safe. For instance, thest time it was activated, the news about the opening of the World Transit Hub didn¡¯t leak out; it was just the call from the Purple Corpse that scared Negris. But lord, times have changed. When the World Transit Hub was initially opened, the Resting Abyss had only just managed to solve the food problem. But now? Now, there are hundreds of thousands of people, armed and¡­well, horseless, but there are dozens of Purple Skeleton Titans, a dozen Night Watchers, tens of thousands of elite Undead, all kinds of sophisticated equipment, including, but not limited to, Holy Armor, Great Angel¡¯s Staff, and so on¡­ Eh, why is it all looted from the Church of Light? More importantly, Ange is now a three-in-one god. Who dares toe over and blow it up! To be safe, everyone remained on high alert. Even Petersburg was put back on his original Divine Seat, chatting casually with Lightning: ¡°You may not know, back in the days, we¡¯ve blown up so many things, Lords of the Abyss, Elemental Lords, nameless gods; You can¡¯t even count them all. My spring-loaded iron fist, nothing can withstand, my body, utterly indestructible¡­¡± h h h a whole bunch. Lightning curiously asked: ¡°When your fist bounced back, did you ever hit yourself?¡± Petersburg murmured: ¡°Yes¡­don¡¯t ask about such depressing things.¡± ¡°No, I¡¯m happy, you say it out to cheer everybody up, how did it hit? Where did it strike?¡± Lightning suddenly got excited. Negris, who was watching them chit-chat on the side, couldn¡¯t help but say, ¡°Have you guys noticed that those guards who stay still for an extended period be chatterboxes? Petersburg is like that, so is Tree Man Gore.¡± Anthony shook his head, ¡°Doesn¡¯t seem like it. Those running around are just as talkative, like Lightning.¡± ¡°Is that a lot of talk from it? To me, it sounds more like it has a foul mouth.¡± Negris grumbled. After some idle chatter, the agreed time finally arrived. The pirs of the teleportation array slowly lit up. Now, the World Transit Hub no longer required Ange and Negris¡¯s personal operation. Soon, the Transit Hub ran at full speed, a sh of light flickered, and within that light appeared arge number of weird figures. It¡¯s unreadable what they are, but they¡¯re definitely not the agreed ten thousand tons of food. At the same time, a loud and arrogant voice resounded from the light: ¡°Greedy mortals, ten thousand tons of food has made you open up your home. What you may be weing is not food, but death! I, Lord of Abyss sgow, leading the Nightmare Legion, officially arrived¡­ Eh?¡± From the moment those strange figures appeared in the light, Anthony¡¯s upright back unconsciously slumped, feeling despondent. Was he fooled after all? Considering Anthony¡¯s astuteness, couldn¡¯t he have noticed some clues? He did. For instance, the packaging weight of the food was not uniform, bag materials varied, the grain grades were mixed, and it seemed more like it was ¡®gathered¡¯ from various channels. But Anthony was willing to take this risk because he really needed food. When the heart desires nothing, one is not deceived. If there are things you earnestly wish to obtain, then you¡¯re full of ws. But what if you¡¯re deceived? Strike it Badaaaaargh! Anthony snapped upright, his eyes zing with intense light like two magical crystalmp bulbs, staring ahead while radiating a holy light. Ange, standing next to him, was stunned for a moment, tilting his head as he took a step forward, his head aglow with the me of the soul. He sensed from Anthony a strong conviction, praying for his power. Embracing Ange¡¯s strength, Anthony¡¯s divine soul was entirely poured into Anthony¡¯s body. With each stride, a circle of light rippled from Anthony¡¯s foot. From that circle of light, Ange felt signs of a life eleration¡ªa courtesy of the weakened death aura. Step by step, a figure of light emerged slowly from Anthony. Simultaneously, he raised his scepter, his resonant voice echoing across the field¡ª¡±The Lord said: Do You Know How to Grow Crops!¡± Chapter 550 - 315: Going to the Fertile Field_1 Chapter 550: Chapter 315: Going to the Fertile Field_1 Imagine the feeling when you¡¯re all pumped up to kill, set fire, rape, and loot, and someone suddenly asks you, ¡®Do you know how to grow vegetables?¡¯ And the voice is so loud, like someone yelling beside your ear. It¡¯s like going to a bar, flirting with a sexy maid, taking her to the room for a steamy dance, stripping off in the dark, and then she suddenly stretches out her hands and yells at you: look at my nail polish! It glows in the dark! Makes a man want to drop dead. Who could dare talk to sgow like that?! As the Lord of the Abyss and the leader of the Nightmare Legion, sgow isn¡¯t pulling this stunt for the first time. A demon¡¯s old job is lust seduction, but sgow¡¯s ambitions run deeper, he wants not just the heart, but also wealth, territories, ves, life¡­ everything you possess. First, he tempts the adventurers, these people are the most well-informed and can spread the word about a ce with dimwits flushed with cash, luring more to fall into his trap. Then sgow would screen his targets, he doesn¡¯t want those penniless fools. He was only interested in those who¡¯re rich and influential with territories. But how to distinguish such a potential target? Simple, consider what they need. If a person needs beautiful jewels, he¡¯s probably a vain human or a giant dragon. If he needs power, he¡¯s likely a greedy weakling. Only those who need loads of food, cloth, and various production tools are the real wealthy grandees. Anthony, in every aspect, was such a perfect target that estimated by sgow. First of all, Anthony was rich. He paid without hesitation in the several probing transactions they had, indicating his deep pockets. God knows Anthony was just trying to secure his supply chain, so he paid promptly. In dimension-crossing trades, there were few projects where payment was swiftly made like this. Most were subject to endless dys, deductions upon deductions. Often, the final payments from thest transaction got dragged into the next. If there¡¯s no next time, even the unsettled payments couldn¡¯t be collected. There¡¯s even more frustrating scenarios, such as exaggeration. They start by sending a message saying they want one hundred thousand bolts of cloth and give a low offer, asking for a hundred bolts as samples. Once the samples are shipped, they¡¯d smear with anticipation, only for no further orders toe. Upon contacting them after spending money to connect, they¡¯ll respond: Oh, didn¡¯t I just order one hundred bolts? Can the price of one hundred thousand bolts be the same as that of one hundred? They use the wholesale price of one hundred thousand to trick you into handing over a hundred bolts of cloth, causing you to waste time and effort preparing for the remaining ny-nine thousand nine hundred. Of course, such an example is quite extreme. Seldom does a supplier prepare the stock without even receiving a deposit. However, it does exin the risks and difficulties of cross-dimensional trade. Those who can pay promptly are definitely the super-rich. Secondly, Anthony¡¯s order was for grains, ten thousand tons of it, neither too much nor too little. Too much would suggest a lot of people he might not be able to handle, too little would suggest not much value in the target. As for theter demand of several hundred thousand tons, sgow took it as a bluff. Lastly, sgow had a special ability called ¡®power sensing¡¯. As long as he talks to someone, he could perceive that person¡¯s power level. For instance, a Truth Mage¡¯s power level is definitely different from an Arcane Magician¡¯s. The thing that he feared most with this ability was encountering a Magician. Those Magicians can increase their abilities tenfold with a simple merging with a divine soul. He could perceive the ¡®one¡¯ when they talk but not the ¡®ten¡¯ after the merging, which was quite troublesome. However, he had a solution, such as spheming the gods. When talking to Anthony, he¡¯d asionally curse: ¡°All the Gods of Light are stupi¡ª (bleep) .¡± Anthony empathetically said: ¡°Yes, yes, yes, they¡¯re all idiots.¡± For instance, the Goddess of Redemption of Ange, who tried to rob the Divine Fire and ran headfirst into it. ¡°The Harvest Goddess is stupid.¡± ¡°Right. Stupid.¡± ¡°The Dwarven God of War is stupid.¡± ¡°Uh, friend, do you have a shortage of vocabry? Use a different word, the Dwarven God of War is crude.¡± ¡°Oh, crude, what does that mean?¡± ¡°It means rough, impetuous, and loves to fight.¡± ¡°Oh, I see, sounds a bit like me, the God of Knowledge is stupid.¡± ¡°Right, right, right. The God of Knowledge is stupid. The Undead God is always farming.¡± Having insulted all the well-known Gods, sgow was sure the other party was not a Magician. A Magician wouldn¡¯t dare utter a sphemy to the Master God, let alone casually mention a God¡¯s name, unlike Anthony. What about the possibility of being a believer of some obscure Gods? If they¡¯re obscure, undoubtedly they¡¯re weak gods, so who cares what they do? Assuming that he had correctly understood the opponent¡¯s power, sgow personally led a group to directly teleport over but then was abruptly asked if he knows how to farm. God, even if he was asked if he knows how to cross-dress, he wouldn¡¯t be this surprised. When he saw who asked him the question, sgow was stunned. In front of him was a six-meter-tall divine soul, holding a scepter and emanating holy light. The saintly attire, the pure radiance, the majestic aura. This¡­ isn¡¯t this the infamous Church of Light with the most followers and the strongest strength amongst all dimensions? Wait a minute, Anthony scolded the Light Gods the most, how could he be from the Church of Light? The Church of Light would have been challenge enough, but the one standing before him, the Divine Soul, was even more powerful than sgow. His senses reliably informed him that he couldn¡¯t withstand a single blow from this adversary. Instinctively, sgow stammered out, ¡°No, it¡¯s not possible.¡± ¡°Off to the fields with you.¡± The Divine Soul¡¯s staff swung downward. On the spot, sgow grabbed the two Devil Beasts beside him and flung them outward. The Divine Soul¡¯s staff twattered, twisting and avoiding the two Devil Beasts, continuing its path towards sgow. Its trajectory and force changes so subtle it was nothing short of exquisite.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om This sight was inherently contradictory, after all, a staff shouldn¡¯t be used to strike people, much like an extremely rotund dragon attempting to dance, it was utterly absurd. Frantically, sgow formed his dual hands into ws. But he was aghast to discover that the power of the molten earth waspletely non-existent. How could there possibly be the molten earth here? This interdimensional hub was a massive floating tform, its foundation entirelyposed of buildings, solely there to guard against demons. sgow had other tricks, of course, but there was no time left. The only thing he had time to do was open his mouth, spewing a mouthful of molten fire onto the Divine Soul. However, the Divine Soul radiated with holy light, splitting open the molten fire, crashing into sgow¡¯s face. His whole face copsed, sgow transformed into a statue of charred rock, crashing to the ground and shattering. Between the shattered fragments, hotva drained towards the centre of the fragments. ¡°Trying to flee?¡± A great Earth Monument was thrown over,nding in the pile of charred rocks, causing the ground to shake. A wave of terror erupted from the Monument. Demons have so many tricks, and Negris was well prepared, he directly dug out the Lord of Terror¡¯s monolith. Only a demon knows how to deal with a demon. The Lord of Terror was excited and thrilled, ¡°Hehehe, darling,e onto my monument and be a part of my body.¡± The power of the earth was nowhere near as concentrated as the true demonic power. Oh god, after over a thousand years, he finally had the chance to be reborn. ¡°Lor¡­ Lord!?¡± sgow¡¯s fear came from within the charred rocks. He was merely a Great Demon, the Demon King was a level above him; in his current state, he had no way to resist. Without willing it, the boilingva flowed towards the Earth Monument, bing part of the Lord of Terror. The rest of sgow¡¯s followers were left stunned; it all happened so fast. To describe it as such would be a considerable understatement, but in reality, it only took just about ten seconds. They had just teleported in, and by the time the light had faded and they could see clearly, their Great Demon sgow had already been crushed to death. Then, Anthony¡¯s Divine Soul, holding his staff, aimed at each of the petrified demons and asked: ¡°Do you know how to grow vegetables?¡± A shake of the head. Crushed. Dead. ¡°Do you know how to grow vegetables?¡± ¡°Mer¡­ Mercy! Please¡­¡± Crushed. Dead. ¡°Do you know how to grow vegetables?¡± ¡°I can learn, sir, give me a chance, I can be a qualified ploughing ox.¡± A demon, with two curved horns and broad shoulders, looking quite ¡®bullish,¡¯ pleaded ingratiatingly. ¡°Good, stand aside for now.¡± Anthony moved his staff away. The remaining demons quickly caught on to the secret of survival, shouting incessantly, ¡°Sir, sir, I can learn, I can learn!¡± Luther sheathed his Dragon Pattern Steel Core sword,menting, ¡°Again, I was too slow; my sword, if you keep this up, you might rust.¡± Nodding in profound agreement, the Little Angel pped his wings, ¡°Rust.¡± ¡°Huh? You learned another word? Come,e, say it again.¡± Negris flew over in surprise. This was the third word the Little Angel had learned, the third word in addition to ¡®scream¡¯ and ¡®call¡¯. ¡°Scream!¡± The Little Angel sucker-punched him in the eye. ¡°It seems I was hallucinating. I must have heard wrong.¡± Negris covered his eye and mutteredints as he flew away. Anthony¡¯s Divine Soul refreshing returned to his body, dispelling his feelings of being tricked. Then he turned to the approaching Negris and said thoughtfully, ¡°A Great Demon daring tomit interdimensional robbery, it seems that over the years, the power levels of the various dimensions have greatly declined.¡± ¡°Indeed, who would dare to randomly traverse dimensions tomit robbery like Steadfast Locke used to, back in the day? And for such weak beings to dare to do so and survive, it¡¯s unthinkable now.¡± Chapter 551 - 316 The Pope Wants to Buy Grain from Us?_1 Chapter 551: Chapter 316 The Pope Wants to Buy Grain from Us?_1 After interrogating those surrendered demons, everyone had a deeper understanding of the current dimensional situation. ¡°Ah, we made a mistake. We fell into our own preconceptions, thinking that each dimension was still the same as before, full of powerful beings. But now, none of the major dimensions have a Lord-level being. What¡¯s left are these weaklings, even a Great Demon dares to invade our dimension.¡± Negris said. Different systems have different rankings. Most of the Abyss Dimension is inhabited by demons, so their Demon Lord is equivalent to their God. At the level of Gods, the power varies greatly. Some weak God can¡¯t even defeat a Great Demon, while some strong God can create new worlds. And those missing Monarchs: ¡°They were all taken out by a Purple Gold Skeleton.¡± ¡°Locke?!¡± Everyone thought of that name. ¡°No, it doesn¡¯t necessarily have to be Locke. Have you all forgotten about the other Purple Gold Skeleton that was with the King?¡± Negris asked. Lamo reluctantly replied: ¡°But the King didn¡¯t have a second Purple Gold Skeleton, in the ancient empire, only Lord Locke was the Lord of Mourning, although His Majesty did have a pet, but it wasn¡¯t a skeleton.¡± ¡°But the Little Demon insists that there is a second one, because it recognizes Locke, that Purple Gold Skeleton isn¡¯t Locke, you don¡¯t believe it, ask it.¡± The Lord of Terror, known as the Little Demon, had its monument brought over and nted into the ground.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om The Little Demon described the situation earnestly and repeatedly assured that the Purple Gold Skeleton was not Locke. Combined with the ounts of the captive demons, it was confirmed that the skeleton was indeed not Locke. ¡°So, does it mean that His Majesty has two Lords of Mourning under hismand, who both turned against the Abyss and killed all the Demon Lords?¡± Lord Anthony summarized. ¡°What if,¡± Negris spected, ¡°His Majesty deployed both Lords of Mourning? Locke went to kill the Gods and the Great Angels, and the other went to kill the Lords of the Abyss? Otherwise, where did the Harvest Goddess go?¡± Hiss¡­ This guess was somewhat shocking. Why would the Undead King want to kill all the Gods and Monarchs? Of course, these were just spections, no one knew if it was true. But the current situation was that the Abysscked Monarchs, a Great Demon dared to dominate, and the Church of Light¡¯s intelligence system was failing and such important information wasn¡¯t discovered.¡± ¡°It¡¯s not necessarily that they didn¡¯t find out, maybe they did but deliberately hid it, perhaps monopolizing it for themselves.¡± Lisa spected. ¡°That¡¯s right.¡± Anthony said with regret: ¡°That¡¯s exactly what I wanted to do. If I had known this, I would have sent my people to the Abyss Dimension.¡± After regretting for a while, Anthony turned to Ange and asked: ¡°Lord, can we leave the World Transit Station open now?¡± Ange shook his head. Anthony had long expected Ange to refuse. The World Transit Station couldn¡¯t be used to grow crops, keeping it open was a waste of Demon Crystals.¡± ¡°Then can I asionally borrow it? When I need to transportrge amounts of resources.¡± Anthony asked. Ange nodded: ¡°Yes, everyone can, if they pay in silver coins.¡± ¡°Great!¡± Lisa was the first to jump up: ¡°I want to move Goddess of Beauty City back, or rather, rebuild one.¡± ¡°Oh my! Now we can connect all our territories into one entity.¡± Current territories controlled by Ange were scattered, with only Oasis Dark Side City and Goddess of Beauty City connected to each other. Communication and exchange between other ces across dimensions was too inconvenient. If everyone could use the World Transit Station, it would be as if they had a cheap mode of transport. Anywhere could be connected, food from the Light Sea ne and Fallen Dragon Lake could supply everywhere, the Resting Abyss wouldn¡¯t need to spend as much cost on growing food, it would be easier and more efficient. The cost of growing food on the Light Sea ne under the management of followers of the Harvest Goddess, was extremely low. If the cost there was ¡®one¡¯, then the cost in the Resting Abyss would be ¡®twenty¡¯. The difference was huge. Even if it cost some demon crystals to transport, it was more cost-effective than growing in the Resting Abyss. The environment, terrain, mineral deposits, climate in each territory were all different. The best approach was toplement each other¡¯s advantages, rather than growing food everywhere. The Goblins have a saying: if you want to earn Gold Coins, first build a Gold Road, and the World Transit Station, is a dazzling Gold Road. When everyone learned of this news, especially the Silver Coin in the Land of Fallen, he immediately contacted Anthony through Ange: ¡°Lord Anthony, what should we do now? Have you solved your food problem?¡± ¡°No, those demons don¡¯t really have much food at all, their early trades were nothing more than scams.¡± ¡°I see, Lord Anthony. I was so worried when I heard you were short of food, I couldn¡¯t sleep all night, racked my brains, even got blisters on my mouth from anxiety.¡± Silver Coin was not as sinct when speaking with Anthony as he was with Ange, he babble on and on without getting to the point. Anthony squinted his eyes: I don¡¯t believe you at all. ¡°So, I counted this year¡¯s food production that very night, then calcted next season¡¯s consumption, and found that we have a surplus of 150,000 tons of grains¡­¡± Before Silver Coin could finish speaking, Anthony subconsciously lunged forward: ¡°Sell it to me.¡± Chapter 552 - 316: The Pope Wants to Buy Grain from Us? _2 Chapter 552: Chapter 316: The Pope Wants to Buy Grain from Us? _2 ¡°I was thinking the same, Lord Anthony, your affairs are my affairs. I¡¯m stressing about this¡­¡± Silver Coin started to bber again. ¡°I owe you a favor.¡± Anthony, of course, knew that this crooked merchant was scheming and quickly interrupted him. ¡°You¡¯re too polite, my Lord. I¡¯ve instantly consulted the Great Sage. He refused. He said he wasn¡¯tcking money, didn¡¯t want books, doesn¡¯t eat fruit, isn¡¯t interested in pretty boys or beautifuldies, doesn¡¯t need ves¡­¡± Anthony was suddenly in pain ¨C this was someone who desired absolutely nothing.N?v(el)B\\jnn Dealing with the Undead has always been notoriously difficult. For me, it¡¯s better. I started as a human who reincarnated into an undead. Although I¡¯ve lost interest in eating and drinking, my interest in entertainment has increased because it¡¯s too boring. But it¡¯s different for the native Undead such as Steadfast Locke who could sleep for hundreds of years. His Majesty wouldn¡¯t wake him unless there¡¯s a fight, he doesn¡¯t have any needs. Of course, the Undead still have needs, like Soul Crystals. But where is Anthony supposed to get Soul Crystals? If he has so many Soul Crystals, it would be better to use them to trigger the Instant Death Halo with Lord Ange, then they could grow hundreds of thousands of tons of food in a minute. Thinking about it gave him a headache, so he simply stopped. Silver Coin, having been around the Great Sage for a long time, knows better what thetter wants. He said a lot, but it was just to show how much work he had done and how difficult it was. He wanted to squeeze out more benefits, but Anthony would not indulge his bad habits. ¡°If you don¡¯t start speaking, I¡¯ll send someone to block the sewers of those estates that I¡¯ve mortgaged to you with mud, glue the keyholes, fill their water pools with dung, and infest them with termites.¡± ¡°¡­You¡¯re brutal.¡± Silver Coin grimaced, ¡°I said that I can let my customers collect some information about Resting Abyss, so the Great Sage agreed. Now the problem is what information we have about the Resting Abyss that we can reveal.¡± ¡°Scumbag! Merchant!¡± ¡°Merchant!¡± The first sentence was Negris cursing, the second was Anthony cursing. The Resting Abyss is theirs now, the buyers of the grains are also them, revealing any information also depends on them. Isn¡¯t this like trading information about the cement of the furniture in their own home for negotiation rights? ¡°It seems like the Great Sage really wants toe back, so what do we do? What information should we give to him?¡± ¡°Just tell him, the World Transfer Station has stopped, and the Resting Wind has blown. Everyone retreated into the Underground City, Witch City is experiencing famine, the farnds of Ice City are burned by the demons, reveal to him the situation before Lord Ange arrived.¡± ¡°That can work. We can simply shovel a bag of soil that has been swept by the Resting Wind tofort his longing.¡± ¡°Or we could simply bring him back. Now that we have the World Transfer Station, we can teleport him back without going through the Master ne.¡± ¡°Are you crazy? Can we control Harvey? He¡¯s the Lord of Mourning.¡± ¡°Uh, you¡¯re right. Harvey probably won¡¯t swear allegiance to Ange. Let¡¯s drop that idea.¡± After the discussion was over, the following matters became smooth. They teleport a bag of soil from the Resting Abyss here. This kind of soil, which has been swept by the Resting Wind for many years, can¡¯t be faked. The Great Sage will know as soon as he touches it. ¡°Is there really a famine in the Resting Abyss? How many people are there now?¡± the Great Sage inquired. ¡°There are about five thousand in Witch City, fifty thousand in Ice City, four thousand in Demon Valley, indeed there is a famine. Feilin is getting ready to trigger an Undead Cmity. Uh, Feilin is the City Lord of the Witch City, a witch,¡± said Silver Coin. The Great Sage nodded, ¡°I believe these messages are true. You even know the name Feilin. Back in the day, he was an employee at the World Transfer Station. I¡¯ve seen him a few times when I projected my consciousness. They called our projection state the ¡®Observer,¡¯ quite a fitting name.¡± Strong undead creatures like the Great Sage, when they are bored, asionally project their consciousness into some low-level Skeleton Zombies, using their bodies to wander around observing the development of nes. Of course, mainly out of boredom. There aren¡¯t many who can do this, only a few like His Majesty, Locke, Durken, the Great Sage, the Witch, etc. have this privilege. Once, Locke projected into a skeleton and was inexplicably cut down by a group of demons, which made him want to take revenge. Just when he just crawled out of the grave, Rogge and other death knights came back, reporting with the head of the demon, ¡°My Lord, we have avenged you.¡± ¡°What, you want me to help you get revenge? I¡¯m finally having some fun, and you steal my monster!!!¡± Locke¡¯s roar almost shattered Rogge and the others¡¯ souls. ¡­ One hundred and fifty thousand tons of food were crammed into the teleportation array in batches. Operated by Silver Coin himself, they were teleported over one by one. Without needing to be moved, they were directly diverted to the main ne and transported to Lord Anthony¡¯s territory. The world transfer station only served as a transit point. But because of this transit, the consumption of demon crystals decreased linearly by 80%. Originally, a single teleportation required ten demon crystals, but now two teleportations only needed two. Anthony immediately distributed the food, alleviating the food crises in several food-deficient areas. Ange, who was fixing the World Tree, suddenly stopped and pulled out his nting God Statue, saying to Negris, ¡°It has grown.¡± ¡°It grew again? What did you do?¡± Negris flew over, looking at the visibly more vigorous nting God Statue and asked with a frown. ¡°Food,¡± Ange said with certainty, ¡°Silver Coin, the food.¡± Negris said, ¡°So, the batch of food from Silver Coin led to the growth of your nting God Statue?¡± Ange nodded. This was not the first time the nting God Statue had grown. The time it ignited was also due to food. From then on, Ange and Negris kept this in mind. But what they didn¡¯t expect was why the food grown by Silver Coin could also erge the nting God Statue? ¡°Could it be that any food grown by your followers can erge the nting God Statue? And the food bought back by Anthony is obviously to be distributed to the followers of the Church of Light. They don¡¯t believe in the God of nting, so why can it erge your statue?¡± Negris muttered to himself, bewildered. After a while, he suddenly eximed: ¡°Kvada, does that mean the God of nting is stealing the power of the Gods of Light?¡± Ange suddenly raised his hand, with scales flipping up on his palm¡ªDragon God Transformation. However, Ange didn¡¯t fully transform, just changed a palm and interrupted it. As the scales retracted, Ange said, ¡°I can transform for twenty-six seconds now.¡± ¡°Increased by three seconds? Why can you use the power of the God of nting to extend the transformation time of the Dragon God Transformation?¡± Negris was puzzled, ¡°Does that mean as long as the nting God Statue grows, you can continue to extend the Dragon God Transformation, or even the transformation time of Locke?¡± ¡°And to grow the nting God Statue, you just need to grow food for others to eat? That makes sense. The God of nting should be the one who grows food for others. If you¡¯re just growing things that no one eats, that would be the God of Nature.¡± ¡°Forget it, you don¡¯t have any food to test this theory now, go nt your crops. Produce more food, we¡¯ll try againter.¡± Unusually, this was the first time Negris advised Ange to farm. Usually, he could only persuade Ange to ¡®stop farming all the time¡¯. Ange nodded. Just as he was about to go back to farming, Anna rushed over in a hurry: ¡°My Lord, something terrible has happened. An unknown origin is requesting a connection with the world transfer station.¡± ¡°So what if they request? What are you panicking about?¡± Negris said grumpily. Since they had decided to open the world transfer station for everyone¡¯s use, it meant that it would open from time to time. Open it often, and someone would find it eventually. Negris was already aware of the situation in other nes and was no longer particrly worried about the transfer station. The gods and lords were gone. The left-over Great Demons, if they dared to cross the nes, would be instantly crushed by Petersburg. They were mentally prepared and had contingency ns. Just ask clearly upon request and decide how to handle it. There was nothing to panic about. ¡°But, but he says his name is Guliani and he wants to buy food from us.¡± Anna said anxiously. ¡°What¡­ What did you say? The Pope wants to buy grain from us?¡± Chapter 553 - 317: Tree Man Gore has a Child_1 Chapter 553: Chapter 317: Tree Man Gore has a Child_1 ¡°Pfft! Guliani wants to buy grain?¡± Anthony, who was pulled into the Consciousness Space, burst intoughter immediately. ¡°That¡¯s what he said, the Shepherd of God, Guliani.¡± Negris said in bewilderment, finding it utterly absurd. You, the Shepherd of God, buying grain from a bunch of Undead? ¡°Wait a minute, is he buying grain from you or from the World Transit Station?¡± Anthony suddenly thought of a crucial issue. Negris asked in confusion, ¡°Is there a difference?¡± ¡°Of course there is. In many people¡¯s eyes, the World Transit Station is not exclusive to the Undead. After all, humans were the ones managing this ce back in the day, and personnel from various dimensions were stationed here, such as Lisa, who was sent by the Church of Light for a long-term stay. So, is it possible that Guliani is sending a purchase request to the World Transit Station?¡± Anthony spected. ¡°Er, it is possible, but it¡¯s just a request to buy grain. Why would he use his own name? Especially when he specifically mentioned ¡®The Shepherd of God¡¯, isn¡¯t that openly telling us that he¡¯s the Pope?¡± Negris asked in confusion. ¡°If he didn¡¯t say he¡¯s Guliani, who would pay attention to him? Would you? Would you casually close the World Transit Station?¡± Anthony retorted. That makes sense. If you¡¯re operating a long-term open Teleportation Array, it doesn¡¯t really matter if you state an unknown identity, you can always request to connect again next time. It¡¯s possible that the World Transit Station isn¡¯t often opened. What if it never opens again? To increase the chances of them paying attention to him, Guliani directly stated his own name and the title ¡®Shepherd of God¡¯ which carries special significance. ¡°So, what do we do now?¡± Negris asked. He was the God of Knowledge, not the God of Deception. He wasn¡¯t exactly proficient in this kind of plotting and scheming.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Anthony asked, ¡°Do you have grain?¡± Shake of the head. ¡°Then what else can you do? Tell him you don¡¯t have grain, then hang up. The grain shortage in the Western District is much more serious than it is here, but Guliani doesn¡¯t care. To him, a hundred thousand casual believers are worth less than a thousand fanatical believers. Famine, war, and gue are the perfect opportunities to breed fanatical believers. So his purpose in buying grain is most likely to probe the situation.¡± Anthony sighed. Negris¡¯ soul tightened upon hearing this. He knew all too well the power of fanatical believers. Oke was a prime example of such a believer. An ordinary man who had no power of his own, but he had managed to borrow Ange¡¯s power by burning his own life, ying the Insect God. How did Oke be a fanatical believer of Ange? It was because of the gue. His sister was on the brink of death and was saved by Ange. Since then, he had followed Ange¡¯s beliefs with fervor and devotion. A spiteful remark made by Ange in a moment of anger was taken as a divine decree, and he did everything he could to fulfill it. That was a fanatical believer. If Hemel could retain his consciousness from his previous life, he would probably be filled with regret. But since his rebirth, he has forgotten most things and is now being fed to be a omnivorous insect pig. One fanatical believer is already so powerful, what would a thousand do? But thinking about the method of breeding fanatical believers, Negris couldn¡¯t help but frown. Could it be that Guliani didn¡¯t provide disaster relief in order to use this opportunity to cultivate more fanatical believers? While Ange¡¯s side was guessing Guliani¡¯s purpose, Guliani¡¯s side was also guessing the situation on Ange¡¯s side after receiving the reply of ¡®no grain¡¯. Dyson analyzed respectfully, ¡°Upon hearing Your Majesty¡¯s name, they did not refuse immediately. Clearly, they know of Your Majesty¡¯s prestige, and they do have grain on hand.¡± The way Dyson approached Guliani hadpletely changed. After all, he was the current leader of the Fire-Stealer, while Guliani was the founder of the Fire-Stealer, a Fire-Stealer who had lived for hundreds of years since the day the group was established. Or perhaps: a God! Bing a god by stolen faith, isn¡¯t that the ultimate goal of the Fire-Stealers? Dyson had thought that no one had seeded in all these hundreds of years, but as it turns out, the first generation Fire-Stealer had seeded. If Anthony knew that someone else was continuously reborn just like him, he would probably curse: You giarist! As for why no one else seeded afterwards? ¡°I misled you, see, you¡¯ve seeded now, haven¡¯t you? You, you are a god now too.¡± Gulianiughed. It turns out that the person who first got on the carriage locked the door, preventing others from getting on. Now that Guliani had opened the door a crack, Dyson zoomed in. Bing a god wasn¡¯t difficult, at least not for the Church of Light. The vast number of believers was the source of all power. With power, faith could be cultivated, and the Divine Fire could be ignited. It should have been a simple process, but it was distorted by the first person, causing everyone to be led astray. Dyson should have been angry, but now that he was the second person to squeeze onto the Crystal Carriage, he wasn¡¯t angry anymore. Instead, he felt admiration for Guliani. When too many people are squeezed onto the carriage, the seats on the carriage won¡¯t be worth much. After finishing the analysis, Dyson respectfully withdrew. Guliani¡¯s expression, however, became more solemn. Having been reborn countless times with the power of an evil god, he had lived for hundreds of years. His understanding of the Resting Abyss and the World Transit Station was far from shallow, unlike the current generation, like Leonardo from the Saint¡¯s Edge Army, who deemed it a backward Abyss Dimension. Chapter 554 - 317: Tree Man Gore has a Child_2 Chapter 554: Chapter 317: Tree Man Gore has a Child_2 ¡®Backward¡¯, my ass! That¡¯s the gateway to the Undead Empire. So, the reopening of the World Hub represents what? The resurgence of the Undead Empire? He purposefully requested food under his own name, and the response confirmed several things. They know the name Guliani, they are not isted, they have contact with various dimensions, even the Master ne. They have food, and arge amount of it at that. Otherwise, upon hearing his request, they would not have reported back but simply refused. Of course, it could also be possible that they reported back precisely because of his name, but chances are slim. Thirdly, why does the Undead Empire have such arge amount of food? Could it be that the current rulers of the World Hub are not the Undead Empire? Guliani¡¯s eyes shed with eagerness. The World Hub, what a golden road! Having control over it would mean controlling the jugr of all the major nes. Standing up, Guliani quickly made his way to the secret room to report to some powerful being. ¡­ Ange has cut down most of the World Trees as they grow toorge, each World Tree has the ability to shelter a settlement of tens of thousands of people. There are currently only a few hundred thousand people in the Resting Abyss. Ten trees could handle that. If the excess trees aren¡¯t cut down, the World Trees willpete with each other for life force and space, resulting in none of them growingrge. By removing the excess trees and creating spaces, the remaining ten trees can continue to grow. They could eventually reach the height of the Tree of Life, sheltering the entirety of the forest. ¡°Ay-yo, they¡¯re all cut down? What a pity.¡± Anna, Feilin, Ti, and others watched as each towering tree was felled, the expression on their faces visibly pained. Thanks to the emergence of these World Trees, the barren Resting Abyss gained some greenery. Various crops began to grow, and even the livestock started to survive. Despite the harsh Resting Wind, the amount of life in the Resting Abyss is actually more abundant than it was a thousand years ago, when there was no Resting Wind. Those living here understand the profundity of this change the most. ¡°It¡¯s not a pity.¡± A Tree Herder, inexplicably clothed in a grass skirt, came walking over. God knows who made this grass skirt and tied it around the Tree Herder¡¯s waist. Tree Herders are tall with shorter legs. They have a seductive sway in their walk when viewed from behind. Feilin, who had some idea of the Tree Herder¡¯s identity, quickly trotted over and discreetly removed the grass skirt. ¡°There¡¯s no need to feel sorry. The downfall of a tree nourishes the entire earth. The life force they release nourishes sturdier life forms. This is the best oue for them.¡± As he spoke, the Tree Herder waved his hand. The entire sky turned green. Green radiance began to descend from the sky, and rings of verdancy began to spread from the fallen tree trunks. Anna said in astonishment, ¡°Is this¡­ Life force? Why can I see life force?¡± All of a sudden, Ti pointed into the distance and asked, ¡°If they haul the trees away, does that mean they¡¯re taking away the life force?¡± The Tree Herder turned to look and saw a poorly developed dragon, working with a dozen Titans to saw up the fallen World Trees and rapidly haul them away. They didn¡¯t even leave behind the tree bark or leaves. The World Trees, where each grain of pollen is valuable, why would you leave it on the ground? Upon noticing that the Tree Herder was watching, the underdeveloped dragon even turned its head and waved a greeting. Feilin noticed the Tree Herder¡¯s hands swelling into firm fists, but whatever he thought of caused his hands to slowly rx and he turned around to leave, swaying his hips as he trotted away. Feilin, disappointedly watching the Tree Herder¡¯s retreating figure, murmured ¡°Aren¡¯t you going to give it a beating? It even took away my wife, beat it up.¡± However, the Tree Herder, not looking back, did not walk toward a World Tree and merged into the tree trunk. Not long after, the Tree Herder emerged from a World Tree on the Light Sea ne¡¯s sandbar. Looking from a high vista down at the sea level, it casually said after a while: ¡°It seems¡­ that it has fulfilled its promise of seeding for me everywhere. I¡¯ll forgive it.¡± Murmuring to himself, the Tree Herder retreated back into the tree, only to emerge again shortly after from the World Tree in the Goddess of Beauty City. Tree Man Gore sensed something and turned his head around in surprise. With a wave of his hand, the Tree Herder flung a branch from his hand, reaching it out to Gore. The Tree Herder then stepped onto the branch, twisted and turned, and walked through the air towards Gore. Once he reached Gore, the Tree Herder scanned the surroundings and located several budding points. The branch was then ced on these points, and before long, a seed the size of a watermelon emerged. After the same process was repeated until ten seeds were produced, the Tree Herder took them and hopped back onto the World Tree, where he vanished inside. Throughout the entire process, Gore and the Tree Herder remained silent. However, excitement was shown clearly on Gore as his body trembled. He murmured to himself, ¡°Do¡­ do I have little tree-people now?¡± His murmured whisper was like a lightning bolt in clear skies. In less than half a day, everyone in the Goddess of Beauty City knew that Tree Man Gore had offspring. Ange, befuddled, held the ten War Tree Man seeds which the Tree Herder had thrown to him. The seeds of the War Tree Man were extremely rare; the entire elf race probably didn¡¯t even have ten.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om By the time he snapped out of his daze, the Tree Herder had already slowly twisted and gone far away. ¡°This Tree of Life, always full of surprises,¡± Negris muttered. He then asked, ¡°What do we do with these? Where should we nt them? Wait, we can¡¯t just nt them randomly. Otherwise, even once they grow, we won¡¯t know whether they will obey it or us.¡± Despite their good rtionships, Negris would never let other people control key positions, such as the world¡¯s transit stations. Once these tree-people had grown up, would they listen to the Tree of Life or to them? ¡°But I can¡¯t nt them,¡± Ange shook his head. ¡°What? You can¡¯t nt them?¡± Whether he chooses to nt or not is one thing, but not being able to nt is another matter. How could Ange not be capable of nting these War Tree Men? He had even nted the World Tree. Ange didn¡¯t reply. He arranged the War Tree Man seeds into a circle, and ced the Little Sapling in the center. The Little Sapling became excited upon seeing the seeds. It had been a long time since it had seen such familiar items brimming with life force, and it enthusiastically waved its leaves: Grow ¡ª strong ¡ª Grow ¡ª strong ¡ª The seeds of the Tree Men cracked open, and from these cracks, buds quickly came forth and grew into vigorous nts. Grow ¡ª strong ¡ª The buds swung back and forth, growing swiftly, then uncontrobly began to unfurl their true leaves. The Little Sapling had not received such strong feedback in a long time. Usually, no matter how hard it tried, many things just refused to grow. Grow ¡ª strong ¡ª Grow ¡ª strong ¡ª The young tree-people buds, now about the same height as the Little Sapling, also began to wave their leaves in ardent response: Grow ¡ª strong ¡ª Grow ¡ª strong ¡ª All eleven nts moved vigorously, making the scene very lively. Negris finally understood. ¡°So you mean you can¡¯t nt like this? These War Tree People need the initiation of the Tree of Life. Does this mean that these tree-people will listen to the Little Sapling in the future? If that¡¯s the case, we can go ahead and nt them.¡± But where should they be nted? At the Holy Kingdom, the four corners of the temple altar had been forcefully dug out, and four War Giant Trees were nted in. Ange activated the Instant Death Halo, and the War Giant Trees began to grow rapidly. The fertile soil of the Holy Kingdom was the most suitable for the growth of the War Giant Tree, a magical nt that could grow without fertilizers. Yet, Ange still added fertilizers. Under the Instant Death Halo, the War Giant Trees began to wave their leaves, sending out messages of ¡°Hungry ¡ª Hungry ¡ª Hungry.¡± In less than ten days, the War Giant Trees had grown taller than the temple. After they reached such a height, they began to grow horizontally, increasing in thickness and stiffness. Negris grumbled unhappily, ¡°You had no energy to grow food crops but suddenly have energy to grow these random nts. What¡¯s the point of nting them here? Are you afraid that someone woulde here? All the gods are already dead¡­¡± Negris was the God of Misfortune, and before he could even finish his sentence, the portal on the top of the temple was activated. A graceful figure stepped out from it and, upon seeing Ange and Negris, they all froze. Chapter 555 - 318 - Changing the Divine Rune Certification_1 Chapter 555: Chapter 318 ¨C Changing the Divine Rune Certification_1 ¡°You¡­y¡¯all, did I walk into the wrong room?¡± She looked around as she asked, but inside she was fuming: What kind of mistake is this, why are they in my house? Why!? She was enraged inside, but after looking around, she acted as if she suddenly understood: ¡°Sorry, sorry, I¡¯ve gone the wrong way. I¡¯ve gone the wrong way.¡± Saying this, she was ready to leave. A huge fruit came crashing down with a whistling sound. The recently grown War Tree Man was immediately put to use, and the exploding fruit was thrown at it. A War Tree Man is dozens of meters tall. They are still in their juvenile stage and can¡¯t grow to the hundreds of meters height of Gaur, but the temple is not that spacious, ced at four corners, they already envelop the temple tightly. The diameter of an exploding fruit reached two meters, even taller than the entire Goddess of Redemption, if one gets hit by it, it¡¯s as if being hit by a frying pan. The Goddess of Redemption raised her hand and pped the fruit. The fruit exploded upon impact, and the seeds and juice inside sttered out, then got blocked by a semi-circr shield. Where the shield blocked, not a single drop could seep through. But where the shield didn¡¯t cover, the sticky juice scattered all over the ground, making it look slippery. The Goddess of Redemption couldn¡¯t help but roar in fury, ¡°Why are you here like this? This ce is clearly a fortress of Heaven, why!? Why can I find you everywhere! Can I not leave!?¡± Negris scratched his nose, somewhat embarrassed. Listening to her, it seemed like they were bullying a kind-hearted peasant woman. But it also seemed like ever since they met, they had quietly chased the Goddess of Redemption away. Ange didn¡¯t seem embarrassed at all. He drew out his scythe and charged forward, stepping on the scattered juice, he swung his scythe. Seeing this, the Goddess of Redemption leapt to avoid Ange¡¯s scythe, but she ended upnding in the juice and slipped at once, ending up t on the ground with a thud. ¡°Not good!¡± She rolled over and over, narrowly avoiding Ange¡¯s continuous swings, rolled out of the range of the juice, and as the juice was about to solidify, she violently shook it off with a surge of power. The exploding fruit not only physically attacks with its seed but its juice can also solidify and immobilize people, acting like a sticky rat trap. After shaking off the sticky juice, the Goddess of Redemption couldn¡¯t help but exim: ¡°Why don¡¯t you slip!?¡± She had waited for Ange to step on the juice before daring to do the same, she didn¡¯t expect to lose her bnce as soon as she stepped on it. Ange lifted his foot to show her that the soles of his feet didn¡¯t have a trace of juice on them, he was walking on air. The Goddess of Redemption was not good at fighting, and if she had even a little bit ofbat experience, she would not have overlooked this point. ¡°That¡¯s not fair, get down here and fight me if you dare.¡± the Goddess of Redemption was making a fuss unreasonably. Ange tilted his head in confusion: ¡°You can fly.¡± ¡°No,e down and fight.¡± the Goddess of Redemption continued to make a fuss. Negris suddenly thought of something, and asked loudly: ¡°You¡¯re not trying to dy time, are you? Waiting for the Holy Spirit Angels to rescue you? They¡¯re all dead.¡± ¡°What!? They¡¯re all dead? That¡¯s impossible, isn¡¯t it?¡±The Goddess of Redemption¡¯s wild usations confirmed that she was indeed waiting for backup. ¡°Yes, we have taken over Heaven and even started farming in the square.¡± Negris pointed to the square below. The Goddess of Redemption was reminded by Negris and finally took a look at the Square of the Gods below from the top of the temple. The sight shocked her. The wide, t Square of the Gods had been dug up, the white stones had been piled up on the sides revealing a dark, fertile soil underneath, full of all kinds of crops, especially Elf Beans. A big cat was going through the Elf Bean nts, picking only the ripe beans, and it looked mischievous. A big cat? Negris also noticed that cat and immediately shouted: ¡°Big cat!¡± The big cat got scared and with a swoosh, jumped forward, right into a dimensional rift. Disappeared¡­disappeared¡­disappeared¡­ Even a cat here is so freakish, who are these people? Despair was apparent on the Goddess of Redemption¡¯s face. She screamed hysterically: ¡°Ah!!!¡± and made to throw herself at Ange. A beam of light shone on her, swallowing her up. The Little Angel¡¯s Holy Light sh burst the Goddess of Redemption into countless lights, which slowly fell down. A Goddess thus vanished. ¡°Do we have to be so dramatic about this? You are a god, even if you are faking your death, do it naturally.¡± Negris retorted discontentedly.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om A deity of light sted by another light attribute Holy Light sh? Who would believe that if they heard it? But this is the Holy Kingdom, and the Goddess of Redemption must be more familiar with the situation here. If she¡¯s faking her death, it isn¡¯t easy to uncover her. What to do? Negris looked towards Ange. He saw Ange pull a Little Ghost from his finger and toss it towards the position where the Goddess of Redemption burst. The Little Ghost floated and gazed nkly at Ange. ¡°Goo~¡± Ange pointed to the ground. The Little Ghost¡¯s eyes sparkled, and then it took a deep breath: Goo~ Its entire body seemed to inte like it was filled with air, it dived into the ground headfirst. Negris was overjoyed: ¡°Finally, one that doesn¡¯t make wailing noises.¡± But he didn¡¯t find joy for long when he remembered another problem: ¡°Does that mean I have to learn goo-goonguage now?¡± ¡­ The Goddess of Redemption was struggling to dive deeper into the ground. As the Goddess of Redemption, she obviously wouldn¡¯t die so easily. Even if she only had a hint of consciousness or a strand of Divine Power left, she could redeem herself. The only difference would be the length of the time taken. Chapter 556 - 318: Changing the God Mark Verification_2 Chapter 556: Chapter 318: Changing the God Mark Verification_2 She¡¯s familiar with the state of God¡¯s Fortress, knowing exactly where it is safe. As long as she escaped there, they couldn¡¯t capture her unless they turned Heaven upside down. The question now is, why are these people here? What¡¯s the situation in Heaven? Are all the Holy Spirit Angels really dead? It wasn¡¯t easy for the Goddess of Redemption to find a way back. Who could have imagined that the fortress of the Gods would be upied by the enemy? While pondering, the Goddess of Redemption suddenly felt a warning in her heart. Before she could react, a white light swept over her, gripping her consciousness tightly. The power of this white light was immense. Once trapped, the Goddess of Redemption found it impossible to break free, being tightly held and dragged to the ground. ¡°Let go of me!¡± ¡°Gulp~¡± ¡°Let go of me!¡± ¡°Gulp¡¤gulp~¡± Iprehensibly, the Goddess of Redemption was forcibly dragged to the ground. Little Ghost tossed her onto the ground, shrank and floated towards Ange. Ange extended his finger, and ittched onto him tightly. ¡°That, that is¡­ a Holy Light Ghost?¡± The Goddess of Redemption asked in a daze. Although Holy Light Ghosts are rare, they¡¯re not nonexistent. But why was this Holy Light Ghost so strong? She was dragged back without any power to resist. Ange nodded, feeding all the unnecessary faith fire and divine fragments to Little Ghost, including the faith fire robbed from Dyson Harvey, fragments of divinity, etc.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Ange had no idea how much divine essence Little Ghost had ingested, but it was bing incredibly powerful. The Goddess of Redemption murmured, ¡°Why¡­ do you have so many valuable things¡­¡± Ange tilted his head, suddenly said: ¡°You are sinful.¡± The Goddess of Redemptionughed immediately: ¡°You want to judge¡­¡± Before she finished speaking, several Original Sin Shackles sprung up from the ground, tightly binding her. Her physical body was blown to pieces, and the Goddess of Redemption was currently in an energy state. Yet, she was still tightly bound by the Original Sin Shackles, even her form became immobilized. ¡°Impossible! Why do you have the Original Sin Shackles? What sin have Imitted? How could I possibly have sinned?¡± The Goddess of Redemption eximed in horror. Ange merely felt that she had sinned, but he could not specify what kind of sin it was, so he leaned in to check: ¡°Jealousy, Greed, Wrath.¡± ¡°I¡­I¡­I¡­¡± The Goddess of Redemption kept stammering, her eyebrows knitted tightly in thought, then agonizingly twisted. After a long while of deep pondering, the Goddess of Redemption summed up with a calm demeanor: ¡°I¡¯m jealous that you have so many valuable things, I want them as my own, I was greedy, I was angry the moment I saw you here, I sinned.¡± With each admission, a shackle broke away from her, and after admitting ¡®I sinned,¡¯ all the Original Sin Shackles broke, and the Goddess of Redemption slowly stood up. ¡°p!¡± A crisp p sounded from the side. Turning her head, she saw Negris excitedly pping his own nk. Seeing everyone¡¯s gaze, it awkwardly said: ¡°I got too excited, this is truly Divine Combat. He said you sinned, you repented your sin, bing sinless. Kvada,w againstw, the meaning of Divine Combat is to define thew, allowingws to erase the enemy.¡± My god, after thousands of years of being a god, Negris finally understood the true meaning of Divine Combat. Others had graduated, and it had barely entered the door. What¡¯s there to get excited about? Aren¡¯t you a god too? The Goddess of Redemption gave it a disdainful nce, saying in a self-abandoning tone: ¡°I am leaving. Nothing can stop my self-redemption. If you want to kill me, then kill me. Even if only a slight Divine Soul remains, I can be reborn. Kill me if you dare.¡± As she spoke, she took a step forward. Just as her toes were about tond, a crack for a teleportation portal had opened. Back then, her Divine Soul was also blown up. She had been hibernating in a corner of the Light Sea ne for a thousand years, yet she was reborn. Why not spend another thousand years to reborn anew? It could be an opportunity to avoid this guy. He was like a curse of ill fortune, always bumping into him no matter where she went. ng, a bronze book fell from the sky, mming open. Shrinking, the Bronze Book flew back into Ange¡¯s hand. When he opened the book again, there was an additional befuddled Goddess of Redemption inside. Negris was also stunned, looking down at the Goddess of Redemption under his feet. In the Bronze Book, it was in its true form, a fifty-meter-long Bronze Dragon. The Goddess of Redemption wasn¡¯t even as big as its ws. Behind it, the heavily armored Red Star looked on curiously. Upon realizing that this was one of the Gods of Light, it became excited and shouted, ¡°Red Star, Shine!¡± A reddish beam shot onto the Goddess of Redemption. The Goddess of Redemption screamed, throwing out a hammer. What? Life-saving Hammer? Wasn¡¯t it stolen? The Goddess of Redemption was stunned for a moment before quickly recovering, realizing that anything could be brought into existence here? Immediately, she became excited. She threw out a te, a cleaver, a spat, then a pillow, a shoe, weapons of all sorts ¨C all shimmering with a divine aura or a deathly one. None of it was simple stuff. The Red Star Heroic Spirit was bombarded and had to retreat hastily. Negris irritably stepped on them, asking peevishly, ¡°Why did you seal her in this? No, why can you seal her in this? Despite the Bronze Book¡¯s ability to seal gods, why do you know how to use it? Even I don¡¯t know how.¡± Chapter 557 - 318: Change Divine Rune Authentication_3 Chapter 557: Chapter 318: Change Divine Rune Authentication_3 ¡°She ran,¡± Ange responded with conviction. ¡°It¡¯s fine that she got away. You could¡¯ve obliterated her instead of trapping her here. If you destroyed her, she might take hundreds of years to resurrect. But now that she¡¯s trapped here, can I ever be at peace?¡± Negris raged, ¡°Wait, how were you even able to use it?¡± Ange cocked his head, ¡°Just Soul Energy. p.¡± ¡°Is it that simple? Pour in soul energy and smack her in?¡± Negris asked, surprised. As he tried to channel his soul energy into the Bronze Book, he was soon taken aback, ¡°Why isn¡¯t there a reaction?¡± Ange replied, ¡°Weak soul.¡± Pfft¡­ Comparing soul power with the Undead God, who could possiblypete? The Goddess of Redemption, upon being let go by Negris, no longer acted agitated. As for the Red Star Heroic Spirit, he had long retreated to some obscure corner. ¡°Is this a sealing space? How did you manage to do it? Can I still leave here?¡± The Goddess of Redemption, without any shred of politeness, manifested a lounge chair, tea table, and juice. Shey down, eyes closed, in utterfort as she asked. Her Divine Realm could simrly manifest a lot of stuff, giving her a sense of familiarity. ¡°Erm, this is the Bronze Book¡­¡± Negris began to exin. But before he could finish, the Goddess of Redemption cut him off, ¡°I know, the Bronze Book. You¡¯re the God of Knowledge.¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Conversing with these old deities was indeed nice, sparing one from lengthy exnations. ¡°So, can you let me out?¡± The Goddess of Redemption continued her line of questioning. Ange shook his head. Negris seemed to havee to terms with the situation. He borated, ¡°We originally had no grudges against you. In our previous encounters, you were the one who suffered. If you managed to escape, that¡¯s fine. But now, we upy this space. Yet, you can freely enter and exit. What if the next time you sneak in, we aren¡¯t here?¡± ¡°Thankfully I came back to nt trees, otherwise, you would have stolen it back. ept your fate. We¡¯re not letting you out,¡± he said grimly. The Goddess of Redemption gritted her teeth, expressing her desperation, ¡°As long as you promise to let me go, I can teach you how to change the Divine Mark Certification and control methods. Otherwise, even if you seal me, another God of Light might resurrect and still have free ess here.¡± ¡°All the Gods of Light are dead,¡± Negris dismissed casually. ¡°Are you sure about that?¡± The Goddess of Redemption challenged. ¡°¡­I can¡¯t be sure.¡± Negris hesitated. Who could really be sure? The God of Bnce, the God of Redemption, they¡¯d encountered both. Who could guarantee there wouldn¡¯t be a third God of Light resurrecting? After a quiet exchange with Ange, he turned back and said, ¡°Alright, you teach us, and we let you go.¡± ¡°Swear it, make a Soul Oath. Once I teach you how to change the Divine Mark Certification and control methods, you¡¯ll let me go. He has to swear it, not you.¡± The Goddess of Redemption pointed at Ange, realizing that this Bronze Dragon¡¯s words were not reliable. Ange tilted his head, kindling a Fire of Soul Oath. A Soul Oath can be used to pledge loyalty to a stronger being or to form various agreements. It¡¯s bound by the soul, and any living being with a soul cannot disobey. Its binding force is even stronger than a divine oath. A Soul Oath can bind a Divine Spirit, but a divine oath relies on a god for enforcement. The Goddess of Redemption verified the oath, and only then did she feel assured to transmit the method of ¡®changing the Divine Mark Certification and controlling the Heavens.¡¯ Having read through the entire method, Negris cursed, ¡°Kvada, you cheat! You need the control key to change the Divine Mark Certification, and the Staff of Heaven to control it. You¡¯ve concealed vital information, you deceitful being! Are you a demon?!¡± The Goddess of Redemption brandished her Fire of Oath with pride, ¡°The oath merely states that you would ¡®let me go¡¯ after teaching you ¡®how to change the Divine Mark Certification and control the Heavens.¡¯ Whether you can do it or not isn¡¯t covered by the oath.¡± Negris kicked her in rage, booting her out of the Bronze Book. Angry, right? Just be angry. Hm, go ahead and be annoyed, you have to let me go anyway. The Goddess of Redemption shot Ange a nce, just in time to see him pull out two familiar objects, one of them being the Staff of Heaven. Ange brandished the staff, then gave her a kick, sending her through the just-opened portal. Chapter 558 - 319: Dare to Eat It All_1 Chapter 558: Chapter 319: Dare to Eat It All_1 The Soul Oath is invible. Sure, some can deceive their own soul, thus cheating the Soul Oath, but there¡¯s no way someone as straightforward as Ange could seed in doing it. This requires skill on par with someone like Anthony. As for the Lord of Terror? Such subpar skills, only reaching the level of standard demonic tricks. So the Goddess of Redemption was booted out, narrowly escaping with her life.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡­ ¡°So this is the inside of the Holy Kingdom. Turns out you must take the Celestial Staircase to get in. And here I was thinking about digging a hole,¡± meditated Negris as he just emerged from the Celestial Staircase. The Holy Kingdom is an inverted semi-circle, hanging over the Resting Abyss, its t side covered in structures. Squares, temples, all on this in, surrounded by a protruding barrier that makes it a perfect circle. They¡¯d never been inside this ¡®bowl¡¯ before because they couldn¡¯t find an entrance. Was it solid? If they had enough time and manpower, Negris intended to dig a tunnel to see what was underneath. No one knew what was inside the Celestial Kingdom. If it was solid that would be one thing, but what if it wasn¡¯t? Now it knew why they couldn¡¯t find an entrance. It had to be essed through the Celestial Staircase, which could directly transport beings inside without a door needed. That¡¯s right, the Celestial Staircase could transfer between dimensions, so isn¡¯t it easier to be transported inside? Here is a massive underground space, as if the interior of the ¡®bowl¡¯ has been hollowed out. From the spot where they were transported, a metal pathway stretched out into this void. In the middle of the space, a spherical iron ball was suspended. It glowed with a sacred radiance and had a diameter of several tens of meters. The shell of the sphere, covered with various intricate, exquisite demon symbols, was slowly shing. Seeing those demon symbols, Negris couldn¡¯t help but frown. Others might not recognize them, but he did. All were indicative of seals, shields, or limits. They were array systems for demon symbols, densely assembled. ¡°So many sealing demon symbols? What in the heavens? Even if you wanted to seal the God of Light in there, you wouldn¡¯t need so many symbols,¡± Negris blurted out. The number of demon symbols doesn¡¯t directly corrte with their effect, but having an adequate number is necessary for the effect to ur. In any case, the densely engraved symbols on the sphere¡¯s shell were truly intimidating. The sphere wasn¡¯t a single unit. Instead, it was formed by many irregr patches welded together, with gaps between them. These gaps were bolted together by massive rivets, leaving openings where the rivets didn¡¯t reach. The sacred glow emanated from within those cracks. A total of eighteen massive iron chains held the sphere aloft, chains in all directions securely fixing it to the end of the pathway. These massive iron chains appeared not only to serve the purpose of suspending and securing, but also formed an energy circuit. asionally, the demon symbols on the chains would glow, transporting a stream of light somewhere along the chain. After seeing all of this, Negris was disappointed. ¡°That¡¯s it? They dug such a huge underground space just to hang a ball? Decorating it with a bunch of sealing symbols just to impress? For a moment there, I thought the God of Light was sealed inside.¡± While grumbling he flew in front of the huge iron sphere, peering into the cracks between the sphere¡¯s shell. With the sphere¡¯s diameter being several tens of meters, the gaps between the shell were quite wide. For Negris, with his small stature, there wouldn¡¯t be a problem even if he wanted to crawl in. However, when he took a peek, Negris slumped and plonked down to the ground with his wings drooping. Ange looked at him confusedly. ¡°Light, light, light¡­¡± Negris, uncharacteristically flustered, was pointing and stuttering, struggling to articte aplete sentence. Light what? Ange peeked and as soon as his eye moved over the gap, he could immediately sense a powerful force contained within the sphere, not leaking out at all. Only when Ange peered from the gap could heprehend its terrifying nature. The God of Light, the Creator God, Supreme God ¨C the Trinity of the Master God, is sealed inside,¡± Negris finally managed to utter. The God of Light? Ange tilted his head, confused. ¡°The God of Light, Creator God, Supreme God ¨C the Trinity¡¯s Master God, they¡¯re sealed in there.¡± Negris took another peek, then dered it definitively. Ange tilted his head again, still not understanding. Negris had to exin in detail, his voice betraying a suppressed excitement. ¡°The Church of Light has three Master Gods: the God of Light, the Creator God, the Supreme God. I thought they were all real entities, but it seems not. They¡¯re more like tools for gathering faith. After collecting the faith of believers, it is distributed to the Gods of Light. What a brilliant idea!¡± Negris praised, pinching his ws together. How did the Gods of Light unite? This had puzzled Negris during his studies on bing a god. There is a human saying: it¡¯s not about all of us earning one gold coin, it¡¯s whether some earn a hundred while others only one. A system that cannot distribute fairly is hard to maintain. That¡¯s why many religions have only one god, but the Church of Light is an exception, they have many Gods of Light. How did the Gods of Light cooperate without internal disputes? Now Negris had found the answer. The three Master Gods were just tools to distribute Faith Elemental Force, and they were ¡®Trinity¡¯; three names but only corresponding to one godly existence. Chapter 559 - 319: Dare to Eat It All_2 Chapter 559: Chapter 319: Dare to Eat It All_2 Now, this Divine Aspect is sealed here and seems to be the energy source of the Holy Kingdom, providing energy for the kingdom. ¡°Kvada, indeed, only the Divine Aspect of Light has the power to drive this Holy Kingdom. We¡¯ve found the energy source,¡± Negris sighed. The fame of the three Great Gods of Light is tremendous; it¡¯s unthinkable that they don¡¯t exist, that the Divine Aspects are merely tools and energy sources,cking independencepared to the Gods of Light like Libra, the Goddess of Redemption. However, the God of Light probably doesn¡¯t have any consciousness and wouldn¡¯t care about Negris¡¯s feelings. After an inspection, he found that the Sealed Iron Ball was very sturdy, possibly specifically made to contain the Divine Aspect of Light. Therefore, the Divine Aspect is very stable inside. asionally, energy is transferred to various parts of the kingdom throughrge chains, maintaining the integrity of the barrier. If it needs to move, probably the energy is supplied from here. Even the Stairway to Heaven can use the energy here, it¡¯s just that Ange has not learned how to control it yet. ¡°Yes, yes, control. Hurry, Ange, quickly get certified in the runes so we can upy this ce.¡± Negris excitedly said. In the past, the Holy Kingdom was just a space fortress inverted on top of the Resting Abyss. Even though it could be driven to other dimensions for wars, it was just a fortress. But now it¡¯s different. The Divine Aspect of Light is also inside, so if we take over the kingdom, does that mean we also take over the God of Light? Of course, it¡¯s not as simple as Negris thought. The Divine Aspect of Light is too massive. It can drive a fortress to fly anywhere and even support a dimensional barrier. Its power level exceeds Negris¡¯s imagination. Let alone upying it, one can¡¯t even probe it with thoughts. ¡°Alright, being able to drive the Holy Kingdom Fortress is also good. We can fly into the void to have a look¡­ Kvada! What are you doing?¡± As Negris was murmuring, he turned and saw a startling scene: Ange actually poked a finger into a gap in the iron shell. His yelling scared Ange, who subconsciously withdrew his finger. On the finger, a sacred ghost holding a ball of light, was also startled and turned to look at Negris like Ange. While watching, it casually stuffed the light into its mouth and then yawned contentedly. Negris helplessly said: ¡°Don¡¯t poke around randomly; I haven¡¯t studied it carefully yet. What should we do if you poke it until it explodes!¡± Ange tilted his head in confusion, bent his finger, and knocked on the iron shell, making a solid, muffled sound. It¡¯s so solid; how could it possibly explode? ¡°¡­you knock when I tell you not to poke. Never mind, go get the rune certified.¡± Negris weakly said. If he keeps arguing with this skeleton, he might just drop dead from frustration. After sighing for a while, a thought urred to Negris. He quickly looked at Ange¡¯s finger: that ghost just now, it wasn¡¯t trying to gnaw at the Divine Aspect, was it? Ange pulled out the Staff of Heaven, searched around, and found a hole at the end of the passage. He stuck the staff in it and simultaneously contacted Little Angel via Soul Contact. In the control room of the temple, Little Angel and Little Zombie were sitting opposite each other, boringly staring at each other. Right when they were about to fight, Ange sent a message. Little Angel jumped up and pped his palm on the Control Key. The underground iron shell lit up, and the power of the Divine Aspect spread through the eighteen iron chains. Where the Staff of Heaven was inserted, with it as the center, a magic array lit up on the ground. Layer afteryer of illusory figures floated up, constructing a three-dimensional illusory part around Ange, including a coordinate system he had seen before. ¡°Hiss, it turns out this is the real control room. No wonder there was no option to move it upstairs. Don¡¯t touch anything!¡± Negris hugged Ange tightly. He had been on guard against this skeleton. He always pressed randomly, even at the World Transfer Stationst time. Although the result was good, and they managed to bring back the Purple Skeleton Titans, what if he pressed the wrong button? If he pressed the wrong button, would the Holy Kingdom fall and shatter the Resting Abyss? ¡°Hurry up and get the rune certified. Don¡¯t touch anything,¡± Negris said. As long as they came here and activated these illusions, rune certification became extremely simple. It¡¯s no different from the magic rune certification. Some high-level magic items required magic rune certification. Only when the magic rune was certified could the item be activated or used, such as the Space Ring. God marks worked in the same way, they authenticate the soul or mind. The correct phrase should be ¡°soul authentication.¡± Once the God marks had been authenticated,dders to Heaven could be summoned externally to open the teleportation gate. ¡°It doesn¡¯t matter, with the Staff of Heaven, you can open the teleportation gate at any time. Look quickly and find out how to lock the gate to keep the Goddess of Redemption and the like from entering,¡± Negris said. Ange searched and several symbols appeared before them, one of which was a familiar symbol of a ring and a bnce scale. ¡°Is this the symbol of the God of Bnce? Are these symbols representing the authenticated Gods of Light?¡± Negris was surprised. The ring bnce symbol was lit, and there was also a symbol of two tightly sped hands holding a sword with angel wings ¨C it was also lit. Negris pointed to the symbol of the sped hands: ¡°Could this be the symbol of the Goddess of Redemption? Then whose symbol is this?¡± Ange shook his head and then made soul contact with Anthony.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°A sword with angel wings on its back? That¡¯s the symbol of the Judgment God,¡± Anthony replied. ¡°Judgment God?¡± Negris gasped, ¡°These lit symbols, do they represent that they¡¯re all alive? No, the God of Bnce is dead, but you seized his Ring of Bnce.¡± ¡°The Goddess of Redemption is also alive. These lit symbols probably indicate individuals that are still receiving Divine Power. They do not necessarily have to be alive. They might be simr to you, maybe the Judgment¡¯s Sword was stolen by someone too. Hurry up and remove their authentication,¡± Negris urged. Ange shook his head: ¡°I can¡¯t.¡± ¡°Damn Kvada, I¡¯ve been tricked again by that deceiving Goddess of Redemption,¡± Negris cried out in anger. Indeed, everyone has authenticated God marks, they had theirs authenticated even before you, who are you to delete theirs? In this way, the goal ofpletely controlling the Holy Kingdom was unachievable, anyone who had authority could open the teleportation gate. What should we do? It was like having a timer bomb over our head, it didn¡¯t matter if we didn¡¯t know before, but now that we know, if it isn¡¯t settled, we¡¯d be worried all day, fearful about someone barging in. Just as Ange is deep in thought, he suddenly heard a buzzing sound. Looking up, he saw his fingers emitting a red light that was directed at the God marks. ¡°Ah, your removal spell can erase magic marks and the like, could it also erase God marks?¡± Negris rejoiced upon realizing. However, his joy was too premature. Under the red light emitted by the removal spell, the God marks were absolutely unaffected. ¡°Forget it, we¡¯ll just nt a few more War Trees around the temple. We¡¯ll crush whoever dares to enter,¡± Negris conceded. Ange shook his head, he stepped forward decisively, scales started to appear on his body ¨C Dragon God Transformation. Space solidified for 26 seconds, with 13 shots of removal spell per second. 330 shots of the removal spell¡¯s red light were frozen before the God marks. When the solidification was lifted momentarily, everything was sprayed onto the God marks. Negris opened his mouth wide in amazement, any invulnerability was a sheer result of insufficient firepower. Once powerful enough, everything can be eradicated. The moment the God marks were erased, a powerful wave of consciousness rushed over, a bit shocked, a bit clueless. But before it could respond, it waspletely cut off and kept out the door. Negris felt a chill run down his spine, ¡°As thought, the symbols light up to indicate they¡¯re not dead. That consciousness must be the Judgment God, right? Damn it! He has never shown himself before. If we hadn¡¯t discovered this, we might have been undermined any day.¡± ¡°Let¡¯s go, let¡¯s get out of here. When time is restored for you to transform tomorrow, we¡¯lle back and erase these symbols,¡± Negris suggested. Ange nodded in agreement but remembered something. He jogged over to the iron ball, reached his hand into it and pulled out a sparkling light which Little Ghost held with his hand, rushing it into its mouth. Negris grumbled, ¡°Eat, eat, eat! If you¡¯ve got guts, feed it the whole Divine Aspect.¡± Chapter 560 - 320 Someone Knocks on the Door_1 Chapter 560: Chapter 320 Someone Knocks on the Door_1 He wasn¡¯t sure if he could consume it all, but everyday he took a nibble, after about a dozen days, Ange hadpletely cleared up all the glowing and dim divine glyphs inside it. From then on, the Sacred Kingdom truly belonged to him. After authenticating the glyphs, Ange could easily pass through barriers and enter or exit the Sacred Kingdom freely without needing to use the heavenly stairs.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om After discovering this, Ange eagerly made everyone go through the same glyph authentication. ¡°Hehe, I also have a glyph now, look, isn¡¯t my symbol beautiful?¡± Lightning ¡®thought of¡¯ a unicorn head symbol, highlighting its long horn. ¡°What glyph? It¡¯s just soul authentication. The horn is too long. Someone might mistake it for a hoe.¡± Negris retorted unhappily. ¡°You are the hoe, your whole family are hoes! This is a unicorn horn, unicorn¡­¡± Just as he was speaking, Little Zombie manifested his own symbol¡ªa hoe. Lightning nced at Little Zombie, then at his own symbol, and silently shortened his horn a little. Anthony rushed over, not knowing whether tough or to cry as he watched everyone busily and happily ¡®drawing¡¯ their symbols. This was just a matter of thought, it was soul authentication. But the Sacred Kingdom¡¯s system insisted on this additional symbol¡ªa glyph mark. It definitely set itself apart from ordinary soul authentication, and it certainly added a touch of ss. Many people were stumped, as most of them didn¡¯t have an artistic bone in their body. Even when using their brains, they couldn¡¯t think of a suitable symbol. Little Zombie and Little Angel were fine, they simply used a hoe and a fist respectively. It was troublesome for ones like Lisa and Luther, Lisa wanted something beautiful to represent the Goddess of Beauty. It also needed to represent the Harvest Goddess and include her own face. The result was an unspeakably messy amalgamation of every idea. Luther wanted to showcase his charm, and chose to highlight his Dragon Pattern Steel Core Mithril Iy Magic Rune Covered Earth Forged Gemstone Enhanced Piercing Enchantment Two-handed Sword¡¯s traits. Thus, the resulting symbol was a sword that wasrger than his face. Anthony couldn¡¯t help butugh and cry: ¡°One day when there are schrs specializing in glyph studies, you guys will drive them to tears. It¡¯s better to keep it simple. Ange¡¯s symbol is a good example.¡± Ange¡¯s glyph was a simple intersection of a sickle and a grain of rice, a simple yet powerful representation. In the end, it was Anthony himself who designed the glyphs for thosecking creative talent, which finally aplished the entire authentication. In reality, for glyph authentication, Anthony did not need toe in person. Because he and Ange share a soul connection, he could just send over the symbol and soul wave, like Silver Coin, who sent over his symbol¡ªa sparkling gold coin. The main reason Anthony came in person was to bring gifts. ¡°My lord,st time you sang the Undead Anthem and uplifted everyone¡¯s souls. So, I went to the Judgment Hall to specifically look for items that were sealed away by the Church of Light as heretical. I wanted to find if there were any records rted to the Undead anthem. I was indeed able to find something.¡± As he said this, Anthony brought out an iron book. The so-called iron book was a very ancient record-keeping tool made of thin copper or iron tes threaded together, the texts were inscribed on them. This item was very rare, because bamboo and woodshavings were easier to make and preserved longer. Copper and iron would rust over time and were hard to preserve. Therefore, more often it appeared as a sacred offering, like this book in front of them. Six iron tes were spliced together in this ck, rust-less iron book. On the first page when folded up, the word ¡®witchcraft¡¯ was engraved. ¡°Witchcraft?!¡± Negris¡¯s eyes widened in shock. Is this something from a witch? He hastily opened the book, all the pages were nk, but from the traces on them, it seemed like someone had forcibly erased whatever was on top. ¡°Where are the letters?¡± Negris hurriedly asked. ¡°They were wiped off. In the Judgment Hall, all heretical items are sealed, destroyed, and eradicated.¡± replied Anthony. ¡°So, you¡¯re saying that this is a gift? Giving a characterless iron book is equivalent to giving a carriage without a horse. What¡¯s the difference?¡± Negris said unhappily. ¡°Don¡¯t be impatient. Although the characters on the iron book were wiped away, there are still rubbings on record. I found the original rubbings,¡± said Anthony as he extended his hand. The shadow of the rubbings of three iron pages appeared in his hand. Anthony exined: ¡°I couldn¡¯t bring the original rubbings and could only memorize them. I was only able to look for thirty seconds and only remembered the first three pages.¡± Negris leaned in to look closely at the rubbings and asked puzzledly: ¡°Wait, what do you mean? You were able to take the iron book, but not the original rubbings? You were only allowed to look for thirty seconds? Who dares limit your time?¡± Anthony helplessly spread his hands: ¡°There¡¯s nothing to do. The Judgment Hall is a peer to us. Even though I dere myself as deputy Pope, even Giuliani, the acting Pope, would have to abide by their rules when he is in the Judgment Hall, because it¡¯s the only department governed solely by the Judgment God. The other Gods of Light have no control over them. By the way, did you ask me about the symbol of Judgment God a dozen or so days ago?¡± ¡°Now that you mention it, I remember. A few days ago when we were wiping off the divine glyphs, the symbol of the Judgement God was illuminated. When wiping it off, a thought was projected over. It¡¯s very likely that Judgment God is still alive or has been reborn.¡± Negris said. Chapter 561 - 320 Someone Knocks on the Door_2 Chapter 561: Chapter 320 Someone Knocks on the Door_2 Anthony nodded, ¡°He should still be alive. Do you remember when I mentioned that after the disappearance of the kings and the gods, a miracle had urred? That time, the Judgement God descended. It¡¯s because of that event, I have not dared to mess around all these years.¡± The dragon and the man exchanged a nce, both reading the thoughts in each other¡¯s eyes. However, in the next moment, Anthony shook his head: ¡°No, no, The Judgment Hall only judges heretics, they don¡¯t care who the Pope is. As long as I allocate funds on time, they never interfere with my affairs. Even when I go to their warehouse, they don¡¯t cause any problems. There¡¯s no need to provoke such an enemy. At worst, I can make several more visits and transcribe the rest of the pages.¡± ¡°What about the Judgement God?¡± Negris asked. Anthony showed a conflicted expression: ¡°Is that really a good idea? Do we have the power to kill a god yet? The Judgement God.¡± He had witnessed the formidable power of the Judgment God before. This god, who is dedicated to judgment, is not as weak inbat as the Libra Redemption. Now knowing for certain that they¡¯re alive, they were considering killing him. But, did they have such power? Negris pondered for a moment, then nodded: ¡°You¡¯re right. Sigh,tely we¡¯ve been getting a bit full of ourselves. After securing the Divine Aspect of Light, we started looking down on the other gods. If, like you said, he is a god who has not been reborn, then he could still retain the strength he had over a thousand years ago, which is not something we can easily handle. By the way, when was thest time he descended?¡± ¡°About a half-century after I infiltrated the Church of Light. When Hemel¡¯s insect gue broke out, it was the Judgement God who descended to cleanse it,¡± Anthony recalled. Suddenly, the entire Holy Kingdom quaked. ¡°What happened?¡± All turned to look at Ange in unison. Ange tilted his head: ¡°Someone¡¯s knocking.¡± Was the knocking really that loud? Everyone returned to the top of the temple. At thending of the stairway to Heaven, a burst of light was repeatedly exploding, causing tremors that spread throughout the entire Holy Kingdom, causing the massive kingdom itself to continuously quake. Someone was trying to teleport in, but without proper authentication or the Staff of Heaven, they were blocked by the interdimensional barrier. A name shed through Negris¡¯s mind: ¡°The Judgement God? Sigh¡­¡± He realized how ridiculous his thinking had been earlier. They were considering provoking a veteran god capable of assaulting interdimensional barriers. He was indeed getting carried away. However, after Ange transformed into Locke, he could break the interdimensional barrier bare-handed. He wasn¡¯t sure who would be more powerful. ¡°Well, that¡¯s a relief. His divine rune has been erased. He¡¯ll never be able to get in again.¡± Negris let out a sigh of relief. The shaking continued fifteen times beforepletely ceasing. It was surmised that whoever it was had given up, realizing they couldn¡¯t break through the interdimensional barrier. ¡°There¡¯s one question. If he hasn¡¯t died in more than a thousand years, why hasn¡¯t hee back here?¡± Negris asked in confusion. Anthony shrugged: ¡°How would I know? Perhaps all the other gods were dead and he was bored on his own. Or maybe he got hurt and went to recuperate somewhere. Or perhaps he was scared.¡± ¡°Scared?¡± Negris was astounded. ¡°Yes, one of the Lords of Mourning went to kill the Lord of the Abyss. Locke went to kill the Great Angel. Who went to kill the gods? It could have been Locke or perhaps His Majesty acted personally. So maybe he was scared.¡± Anthony shrugged. ¡°All of this is just conjecture. Or perhaps the next time he knocks, we should let him in and ask?¡± No matter how much spection there is, without the main figure confirming it, it remains spection. Anthony left three pages of iron book rubbings and returned first. If there is anyone busier in the world, Anthony could at least vie for the top three spots as he hasn¡¯t had a good sleep in a long time. Ange recorded the Undead Symphony from the rubbings, but did not sing it. Singing requires Soul Energy and he currently didn¡¯t have enough even to grow crops. It would have to wait. Thus, Ange resumed his usual routine of farming, farming, and more farming. If no one disturbed him, he could continue indefinitely until every piece of his territory was full of crops. During this time, chaos erupted in the Western District of the Main ne. The turmoil in the Western District was anticipated by everyone. Anthony had made preparations early on, sealing all the neighboring gateways and turning a blind eye to the situation. Without sufficient food, the crisis in the West could not be resolved. The only solutionid in the history books. All Anthony could do was to seal the gates to prevent the famine from spreading to the Eastern Diocese, while desperately sending requests for food aid to every major ne. Any extra would be sent to the western border. Along the border, he set up many refugee camps, providing shelter for arge number of starving people.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om He also called on the followers in the coastal areas to change their diets and eat more seafood, thus saving grain to be sent ind. Wheat Silver Coin sold him 150,000 tons of food. If handled well, as he did in the Eastern Diocese, it could save many lives, but unfortunately it was not so. Dyson did not have the meticulous handling ability, he couldn¡¯t even manage an equitable distribution. Anthony sent him 50,000 tons of food, and it was all distributed to his followers on the same day. As for average believers and the public, they got nothing. Anticipating this, Anthony decided against sending any more aid when there was surplus. Instead, he sent it directly to the refugee camps. The camps were in chaos and poorly managed, but they saved more people than Dyson did. This damned Archbishop of the Western District. In order to solve this severe famine, Anthony proposed to hold a ne Safety Meeting and criticized Dyson: ¡°How many people have starved to death because of the mess in your diocese? Can¡¯t you have some shame and do more? If you have a problem with your ability, step aside and let someone more capable take over.¡± Dyson refuted unsatisfiedly: ¡°This has nothing to do with me, I just took over the Western Diocese recently. This is all the problem left by Nik, he has already returned to the arms of the gods, if you have any issues, you can go to Heaven to find him.¡± I just came back from Heaven, and you guys wouldn¡¯t believe. Anthony murmured in his heart, then turned his guns on Guliani: ¡°Your Holiness, is this the man you chose, pushing all the responsibility onto his predecessor?¡± During the Teleportation Array meeting, where faces cannot be seen, Guliani¡¯s face was already turning dark. He had always resolved internal disputes within the church internally. Even matters like Anthony setting up his own Holy Church were not meant to be discussed in safety meetings. Anthony was simply being ruthlessly blunt. Guliani, deeply pained, asked: ¡°Can¡¯t we talk about thister? Does it have to be in this kind of situation?¡± Return to the Curia? I probably wouldn¡¯t live toe back out. Anthony mumbled, continuing his rant: ¡°If you can solve the problem, do I need to argue here? Teleportation Arrays are so expensive, everyone else can solve their problems, but the person you chose cannot. Is it your judgment that¡¯s faulty, or is it the ability of the person you chose?¡± Guliani was roasted to the point of being speechless. If there was noparison, if everyone was just as bad, there wouldn¡¯t be much to say. But Anthony¡¯s actions were too outstanding. The entire ne was short of food; why was there no famine in Anthony¡¯s Eastern Diocese? Could it really be an issue of capability? Dyson responded indignantly: ¡°You conspire with the evil gods to continuously buy food. Of course you can manage this situation. If you¡¯re really able, why don¡¯t you share where you¡¯re buying your food from? I¡¯ll buy it too, and see if I can solve it!¡± ¡°You¡¯re the one who¡¯s linked with evil gods, you ipetent Kobold. You¡¯re just smearing others because you can¡¯t handle your own duties.¡± Anthony retorted. ¡°You¡­you¡­you¡¯re an ipetent pig!¡± Dyson had no experience in insulting others, and he was left speechless for a while before managing to call Anthony a ¡®pig¡¯, a nickname without any offensive impact. Gard, who was getting tired of their feud, interrupted: ¡°Enough, I didn¡¯te here to listen to your squabbles. Squabble in your own Church if you want. If you want to buy food, I know a source you could try. They can grow the Tree of Life, they can nt saline-tolerant rice, and they have an amazing nting technology.¡± Anthony was inwardly devastated, he knew exactly who Gard was referring to. He also wanted to say that all the food there had been bought up by him, but unfortunately he couldn¡¯t. Officially, he had no connection with Ange¡¯s forces. Now he was in trouble. His original n was to dupe the elves. Among those present, perhaps the only ones with surplus food were the elves. Unexpectedly, Gard had already tipped them off. What was he supposed to do now? Chapter 562: 321: Forever Lost The Vote of The Dwarf_1 Chapter 562: Chapter 321: Forever Lost The Vote of The Dwarf_1
Anthony initially wanted to trick the Elves, as he knew they had some war reserves including Elf Beans that could feed hundreds of thousands of people for a month. Of course, the Elves would not give up their Elf Beans, but Anthony intended to use the beans as a starting point to secure some other foodstuffs from the Elves. If they refused to sell him the Elf Beans, they could perhaps sell him some nt tubers or dried fruit, right? Especially one type of tree called Pink Palm. Once it¡¯s cut open, the heartwood inside can be eaten directly, and when dried and pounded into powder, it can be used as flour. As for the wild vegetables and sprouts that sprung up all over the mountains after rain, the Elves could not possibly exhaust the supply. If people were mobilized for foraging, they could sustain many. The Elves¡¯ utilization rate of the forest resources was astoundingly low. If the Elves could not spare the manpower, Anthony would be more than happy to dispatch hundreds of thousands of people into the forest to work for themselves.N?v(el)B\\jnn Food was an urgent need, and at this point, only the Elves had surplus supplies. Seizing the opportunity before Gardia could mention the name, Anthony hastily interrupted, ¡°Your Majesty, by your description, are you referring to the Abyss wanderers in the desert? Many of the Fallen People I have taken in were those who fled from there. They¡¯d already bought up all the food of the Abyss wanderers. If you are referring to them, I¡¯m afraid they won¡¯t be able to provide any food either.¡± The reason Anthony ming their food shortage on the Fallen People was mainly to prevent Guliani from ming him afterwards. He was the dignified Archbishop of the Eastern Diocese, the acting Pope of the Holy Church, and absolutely could not have any ties with the Abyss heretics. That was a red line. Even if he werepelled by circumstances today and not held ountable, should any problem arise in the future, his enemies would grasp this stain to attack him, which would be quite troublesome. However, ming it on the Fallen People seemed a safe bet as their origin was well known, and the responsibility entirelyy with Shamara. His sheltering these people was merely out ofpassion and love, forgiveness and kindness; it could only be regarded as a merit and never as a mistake. It was a tough situation for him. But no wonder, considering his knack for concocting such perfect excuses after having been an adept maniptor for over a thousand years. Gardia was a little puzzled when she¡¯s abruptly interrupted. She was, of course, referring to Ange. Due to Little Sapling and the Tree of Life, the Elves had been constantly monitoring Ange¡¯s situation. They knew that Ange had nted another batch of Soilless Rice in Fallen Dragon Lake. Whether it was Saltwater Rice or Soilless Rice, it was beyond the understanding of the Elves. Kael¡¯danil has applied several times to serve Little Sapling, but due to some recent significant changes among the Elves, and with Ange not responding to her requests, she had not managed to make the trip yet.
Would Gardia not understand Kael¡¯danil¡¯s intentions? Serving Little Sapling was certainly her sincere desire, but more so, she wanted to study the Saltwater Rice and Soilless Rice, which were fatally attractive to the Druids. Kael¡¯danil believed that the crops must have been cultivated by Little Sapling because only the God of Life had the ability to change the nature of species. With the Tree of Life, Ange should have food supplies. Although it was absurd for the Church of Light to buy food from a group of Abyss refugees, Gardia would be happy to serve as a middleman, willing to break even, or even take a loss, as long as she can get closer to Little Sapling. However, to her surprise, Anthony informed her that the food of the Abyss wanderers had been bought up? What should they do then? Gardia regretted, ¡°So they¡¯ve already bought out all the supplies? That¡¯s a real shame.¡± The Elves have lost an opportunity to get closer to Ange. How could this be? You lost an opportunity, but people on my side could die, Anthony urged, ¡°No, Your Majesty, you can do something about it, please sell me some Elf Beans.¡± Gardia frowned at his words, ¡°Lord Anthony, the Elf Beans are our life reserves. It¡¯s too much of you to request such a thing.¡± Elf Beans were war reserves, but who were the Elves preparing for war against? The Elves are straightforward but not stupid, Gardia certainly had some savvy. ¡°Then sell me some other foodstuffs, Axe Potato tubers, Pink Palm stems, anything really, as long as it¡¯s edible,¡± Anthony smoothly proposed. ¡°Axe Potato tubers? We don¡¯t eat those, how can we sell them to you? It¡¯s too hard to harvest them. And as for Pink Palm, that¡¯s a tree, can you even eat it? Absolutely not, it takes decades for a tree to mature, we can¡¯t sell that to you,¡± Gardia responded. Although they couldn¡¯t see each other¡¯s expressions over the Teleportation Array meeting, Anthony was toozy to maintain a polite expression anyway. His eyes nearly rolled back into his head. Just listen to what she¡¯s saying? ¡®We don¡¯t eat those things¡¯ ¡®Harvesting is too hard¡¯ Clearly, they¡¯ve never been hungry. Wait till they¡¯re famished, then see if they¡¯ll eat it. The beautiful Queen Gardia crouched on the field munching on Axe Potato and beet leaves would definitely be a sight to behold. ¡°I could send people to harvest it. And Pink Palm, Your Majesty, you¡¯ve never eaten it, right? It¡¯s a fast-growing tree, matures in three years. It¡¯s only tasty if it¡¯s less than three years old. After that, it bes tough. The powder inside hardens, good for making ropes perhaps, but certainly not edible,¡± Anthony exined. Gardia didn¡¯t respond for a while. She probably went to check the information. After about ten seconds, she mumbled her agreement, ¡°How do you know our forest better than us Elves? We do cultivate Pink Palm, we can sell you some, about ten thousand cubic meters.¡± ¡°That¡¯s not enough, Your Majesty, the yield rate of Pink Palm is less than half. Can ten thousand cubic meters yield three thousand tons of food? Most of it is nt tubers. Once you find the right spot to dig, they must be all over the ce. If you find it troublesome to harvest, I can send people to dig,¡± Anthony offered. Chapter 563: 321: Forever Lost the Vote of the Dwarf_2 Chapter 563: Chapter 321: Forever Lost the Vote of the Dwarf_2
¡°Sure, fine,¡± Anthony grumbled to himself. ¡°I¡¯m so much better than you because I¡¯ve got this divine statue of nting and the Tree of Life. And, oh, did I mention, my Master God actually bothers to farm.¡± Gard paused awhile before saying in his serious, bassy voice, ¡°The forest is not just inhabited by us elves. There are many other species flourishing in it. I can¡¯t just dig out a piece ofnd and sell its wares to you, and neither can I let you into the forest.¡± Anthony had anticipated this, so he replied at once, ¡°If the forest isn¡¯t just yours to control, why do we have to stay out? Surely we can tip-toe in and dig up a few Axe Potatoes, can¡¯t we?¡± No,¡± Gard stated simply. ¡°Then sell me some more groceries,¡± said Anthony, ying the rascal. Against such persistently shameless pestering from this seasoned trickster, Gard, a two-century-old naiad, was quicklypelled to sell him several tons of mixed grains. After a bout of animated exchanges, the Dwarven God of War, silent until now, suddenly asked, ¡°Anthony, is the Western District under your jurisdiction?¡± ¡°No.¡± Anthony replied, taken aback. ¡°Then why do you push so hard?¡± the Dwarven God questioned. ¡°Ah, it¡¯s a matter of life and death, surely! If people are in danger, why should we care whether I¡¯m in charge? Let¡¯s concentrate on saving them.¡± Anthony retorted. The Dwarven God of War fell silent. How could Anthony allow him to remain silent? Instead, he quickly probed, ¡°Lord Copper Hammer, would you sell me some food?¡± ¡°We hardly have enough for ourselves,¡± retorted the Dwarven God of War, his voice resonant like a deep, rich bowl.
¡°Really? All you need to do is cut down on your drinking, then I¡¯m sure you¡¯ll have enough. I know you keep three times your daily food requirement to brew booze. Sell it to me,¡± Anthony said. ¡°Keep dreaming!¡± even through the teleportation array, you could hear the fury in Copper Hammer¡¯s voice ¨C his tirade, his jump up from his chair, his angry stomps at the ground. Anthony¡¯s request for liquor gouged at the dwarves¡¯ raw nerve. They could live without food, but not without booze. The grain they used for brewing each year was several times what they consumed as food.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Go easy on the booze, guys. You¡¯re all developing rhinophyma and alcoholic liver disease. Cutting back will do wonders for your health. Sell me a bit,¡± Anthony pleaded. After incessant pestering, Copper Hammer was cornered into selling twenty thousand tons of grain. Silence fell as no one dared speak lest they be forced to sell their grain. Amidst the hushed silence, Dyson proposed dissolution of the previous decision ¨C the expulsion of the Abyss wanderers. ¡°During our previous meeting, Her Majesty wasn¡¯t present. The vote on the proposal ended in a three-to-three draw, so the decision was muted. However, now that Her Majesty is here, I propose a revote,¡± Dyson said. If previously Dyson had proposed the expulsion of the Abyss wanderers, it was for his ulterior motives. However, now, he was acting out of sheer desperation. The Western District was genuinely suffering a food shortage. To make matters worse, the refugees from the Dragon Knights were reporting in unison that rice was bountifully growing along the shores of the Fallen Dragon Lake. If they could expel the Abyss wanderers and repurpose the shores of the Fallen Dragon Lake, they could at least alleviate some of the food shortage. As for Anthony¡¯s im that the Abyss wanderers¡¯ food supplies had been sold out, Dyson didn¡¯t make anything of it. Of course, Anthony had twisted the hands of the Elf Queen and the Dwarven God of War to shell out their grain. But did he really think they¡¯d support him? Thought Dyson. Dyson and Guliani weren¡¯t working together. Dyson had brought forth the proposal without consulting with Guliani in advance. As soon as Dyson¡¯s proposal was out, Guliani¡¯s face turned white and he muttered, ¡°Idiot.¡± ¡°Following the guidelines of Archbishop Dyson, let¡¯s revote on the decision to expel the Abyss wanderers. Voting begins now.¡± Said Tyrone as he finally broke his long silence with a restrained cough. He then fell silent again, so smooth he escaped Anthony¡¯s grasps. However, nobody could me Tyrone. The poption of Steris was a meager few hundred thousand. Even if each of them didn¡¯t eat a single morsel, they wouldn¡¯t have much to offer. As the chairman of the safety council, he couldn¡¯t let himself bleed out. His best bet was to stay incognito and out of Anthony¡¯s sight. Another one keeping a mantle of silence fell was Brooks ¨C he hadn¡¯t uttered a single word. Everyone hurriedly dispersed after casting their votes. Dyson, left alone, gloomily stared at the result ¨C two in favor, five against. The proposal had been rejected. But why had the votes in favor decreased from three votes to two votespared to thest time? ¡°Idiot, do you think Copper Hammer was scolding Anthony for meddling too much when he asked those questions? No, he¡¯s scolding you. It¡¯s your territory, so why didn¡¯t you, the owner, speak up and let Anthony worry instead? It¡¯s because you don¡¯t care about human lives, fool. In the future, we might lose the votes from the dwarves,¡± said Guliani as he reconnected the teleportation array, cursing furiously. ¡°What?¡± Anthony was happily receiving tens of thousands of tons of food from the elves and dwarves. Although the quantity was not high, it could brunt off the scarcity for a few more days. Even one extra day would be precious, because the harvest season was just around the corner. ¡­ Ange¡¯s bony hand was floating around a plot in the second farm, watering and fertilizing the entirely new breed of beetroot. Because of the climatic reasons, the fields outside either had passed the sowing season or were already sown. Only the two farms inside the Resting Camp were left. Due to the boundary, the climate was a bit different there and they could still continue growing things. As such, this ce more and more became the only joy left for Ange. Unfortunately, the area of the two farms whenbined, only added up to over six thousand acres. He didn¡¯t dare grow crops with a long growth period, so he had to sow some fast-growing new varieties, such as fast-growing beetroot. Through long periods of iteration and optimization, the growth speed of beetroot has been optimized to a somewhat frightening level. If the beetroot matured in sufficient sunlight, it could be harvested every five days, and could continue to harvest throughout the nting cycle. The Minotaurs love beetroot, the leaves of beetroots have now be the staple food of the Minotaurs, and have been nted on arge scale in the Light Sea ne. However, beetroot is not just leaves that can be eaten. The more delicious part is the rootstalk, super sweet, which can either be eaten raw or used to squeeze out the sugar to make alcohol. Hence the problem is, do you want the leaves or the rootstalk? ¡°Minotaurs eat the leaves, Luther eats the rootstalk. If you harvest the leaves, the rootstalk will easily go powdery. If you don¡¯t harvest the leaves, the growth period of the rootstalk is too long. So you¡¯re now trying to cultivate a new variety that can continuously be harvested for leaves without the rootstalk going powdery?¡± Negris asked. Following Ange, Negris felt his knowledge about cultivation increased drastically and he could now easily use various professional terms. Ange nodded. ¡°Even if we have hundreds more of Luthers, they still can¡¯t outeat the Minotaurs. What about the rootstalks that were harvested from those beetroots previously?¡± Negris asked. Ange pointed at a pile of breathing soil in the distance. For the older varieties of beetroot, if leaves were harvested during the growth period, the rootstalks turned wrinkly and hard to eat. It would be a waste to throw them away, so Ange buried them all in the breathing soil, nning to feed them to the worms. However, now even after eating rice straw and aquatic nts, Hemel still can¡¯t keep up. As the area of cultivation continues to expand, it¡¯s foreseeable in future that Hemel won¡¯t be able to keep up with the pace of crops being produced. These wrinkly roots of beetroot might nevere into use. ¡°Or we can try to use it for brewing. I heard that dwarves love alcohol. We can brew alcohol and sell it to dwarves, and exchange it for the food in their hands,¡± Negris suggested. This was simr to what Anthony had thought of. Ange nodded, dug out the beetroot rootstalk, used the purification technique to clean it, then casually threw it into a purified barrel, and filled it with Holy Water. It has to be said that Ange had an inherent advantage in brewing alcohol. At least when ites to sterilization, no one canpare to him. If the brewing process isn¡¯t clean, the wine might not ferment but instead, might rot. He casually grabbed a bottle of alcohol that dwarves love, mixed it with the beetroot root, and then pointed his finger at it. Under the influence of the Instant Death Halo, the yeast rapidly broke down the sugar in the beetroot root, proliferating inrge amounts. Only after it reached a certain amount did Ange poured the alcohol, now full of yeast, into the barrel and sealed it for fermentation. Ange started working, and the two female demons, Dora, and Dumi began their routine performance. The Song of the Departed drifted through the air of the Resting Camp. The song soothed the soul, invigorated the spirits, and made the soul more focused. Moreover, having some background music made the work less tedious, so Ange didn¡¯t stop them. They usually sang like this, but today, they had only just started singing for a while when an impatient stranger¡¯s voice echoed, ¡°What the hell are you singing?! Can¡¯t you let people sleep!¡± Ange and Negris simultaneously tightened their souls. Who was it? This was the Resting Camp! Chapter 564 - 322: The Divine Power is Dispersing_1 Chapter 564: Chapter 322: The Divine Power is Dispersing_1 A witch climbed out of a barrel not far away, groggy and still half-asleep. He nkly looked around, then nkly stared at Ange and Negris. He yawned and mumbled, ¡°Must¡¯ve been dreaming.¡± With that, he retreated back into the barrel. After a pause, the witch suddenly jutted his head out again and eximed, ¡°This isn¡¯t a dream! Kvada! Who put me in water! Uh, no, it¡¯s not water, is it the Liquid of Breath of Death?¡± He grabbed a handful of the Liquid of Rest and sniffed it, expressing shock, ¡°How did I get so much of this Liquid of Breath of Death?¡± Then he turned to Ange and Negris, asking surprisedly, ¡°Who are you two? Doremi, were you two singing just now?¡± Two wailing banshees floated over and gave their respect, ¡°Peace, Lord Durken.¡± ¡°What happened? Why am I soaking in the Liquid of Breath of Death?¡± Durken said, trying to climb out of the barrel, but was pushed back by Ange. ¡°Impudent!¡± Durken cast a fierce re at Ange. Ange looked at him with skepticism; seeing no reaction from Ange, Durken was also surprised. He stared even harder, until his eyeballs were about to pop out, but Ange still didn¡¯t react. Negris leaned in with a beaming smile. ¡°Durken, do you know who I am?¡± Durken looked Negris up and down, then asked, surprised, ¡°A bronze dragon? Did Nage have a baby?¡± With a thump, Negris banged his head against the barrel. ¡°It is me! It is me, Nage!¡± ¡°Alright, alright, just looking at your sulky face, I know who you are. Was just joking with you,¡± Durken dismissed with a sneer. ¡°What happened? Who¡¯s this guy? He¡¯s not affected by my re? How could an outsider get into the Resting Camp?¡± In the Resting Camp, to strengthen management, all subordinates of the undead were given cross-management, meaning Durken could boss Locke¡¯s subordinates around and witches could boss Durken¡¯s subordinates. The subordinates of the rest of the three sub-temples, besides those of Negris who didn¡¯t have subordinates, could all reciprocally exert pressure on one another. Those that Durken couldn¡¯t push back were outsiders, or the king¡¯s direct subordinates. Negris said with a smile, ¡°Why would it be an outsider? Couldn¡¯t it be the lord himself?¡± Durken squinted suspiciously, a dangerous look shed in his eyes, as he coldly said, ¡°You betrayed the king?¡± He tried to jump out of the barrel again, but Ange¡¯s hand held him down firmly. ¡°It¡¯s the sessor personally chosen by the king¡¯s godhood, what nonsense are you spouting?¡± Negris retorted, banging his head on the barrel again. ¡°Sessor? What happened to the king?¡± Durken asked, shocked, then frowned, ¡°No, no, let me think. Howe I remember being at the cemetery, then the cemetery got cut off from the temple¡­¡± Negris said, ¡°Think again, after the disconnection, what happened to you? Did you go find a route?¡± Durken sat back in the barrel, thinking hard. As long as he didn¡¯t leave, Ange would release his restraint. The just-awakened Durken was somewhat confused. After pondering for a while, he finally straightened out his thoughts, murmuring, ¡°I remember the king cut off soul contact, there was a violent shake, the cemetery disconnected from the temple, I went into the void to find a way, I was hit by a spatial current, then¡­¡± Suddenly, Durken eximed, ¡°I died?¡± Negris nodded. ¡°You guys resurrected me using my Life Box?¡± Durken asked. ¡°Your Life Box was broken and shrunk,¡± Negris projected the broken and shrunken heart that had just been dug out of the grave. Being an alchemist, Durken immediately recognized that his Life Box, which he had crafted himself, was now beyond repair. ¡°This is my Life Box? Are you joking? You guys resurrected me using this, don¡¯t lie to me. Let me go, I need to get out,¡± said Durken, clearly upset. He thought Negris was tricking him by iming the unrepairable Life Box was his own. Immediately, he was pushed back by Ange once again. Durken looked at Ange with a smile, ¡°Let me perform a magic trick for you.¡± No sooner had he said that, his body instantly turned into a cloud of smoke with a bang. Ange, looking puzzled, reached out and grabbed the ¡®air¡¯ above the barrel, then stuffed it back into the barrel. The ¡®air¡¯ in the barrel materialized into Durken who looked astonished, ¡°You can see me?¡± Ange cocked his head, looking somewhat bewildered. How could he miss such a big lump? Seeing Ange¡¯s actions and expressions, Durken was provoked. He growled, ¡°Don¡¯t be socent, I¡¯ve just woken up and am not all here, wait till I¡¯m back to myself then I¡¯ll teach you a lesson.¡± Negris leaned in and cheerfully said, ¡°You won¡¯t have a chance. He has inherited the king¡¯s Undead Godhood. Now he is the master of the Resting Camp.¡± Durken blinked, looking at Negris. Seeing Negris wasn¡¯t joking, his expression involuntarily grew solemn. ¡­ ¡°It¡¯s been a thousand years?¡± ¡°All the souls in the Resting Camp are gone, leaving only a farming skeleton?¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°Kvada, what kind of luck is this? Even the Goddess of Fortune wouldn¡¯t have this kind of luck.¡± ¡°Locke is in the barrel next to me? Locke? Locke! How did you die! You died so tragically! Wake up, Wake up!¡± Chapter 565 - 322 - The Divine Power is Fading_2 Chapter 565: Chapter 322 ¨C The Divine Power is Fading_2 ¡°The Witch also disappeared, likely gone forever. Now only I remain as a trusted aide to our three Majesties?¡± ¡°You? You don¡¯t count, you¡¯re a captive.¡± The offhandment angered the Bronze Dragon enough to make him want to fly off in a huff. After some conversation, Durken managed to figure out what had happened. ¡°So, standing in front of me is Lord Ange, an Undead, nting, Beauty, Trinity God?¡± Durken¡¯s expression was akin to someone having a huge watermelon shoved in his face, his mouth gaping open in shock. ¡°Right, he also has two Insect Gods under hismand, half of a god of harvest who¡¯s a fake, and what else? Sigh, there¡¯s too many, I simply can¡¯t remember everything. They¡¯re like cabbages.¡± Negris said with a sigh. Durken couldn¡¯t help butugh, ¡°You¡¯re such a poor liar.¡± Negris shrugged, offering no exnation. He would wait until Durken discovered he wasn¡¯t bluffing and scare the shit out of him. ¡°We¡¯ve discussed our matters; it¡¯s your turn now. What actually happened back then? Why did His Majesty disappear?¡± Negris asked. Durken copied his nonchnt manner, ¡°How would I know? The graveyard suddenly shook, two dimensions splintered apart, I was still sleeping in my grave and suddenly I couldn¡¯t return. By the time I wanted to contact the king, he had already severed the soul contact.¡± ¡°Did His Majesty say anything when he severed the soul contact?¡± Negris asked. ¡°The King seemed to say that he was entering the Void Gate and wasn¡¯t sure if he would be able to return alive, beware of the Soul Storm.¡± Durken recalled. Void Gate? Ange and Negris exchanged a look, both thinking of the magnificent gate located deep beneath the sea in the Light Sea ne. The Witch and Durken both mentioned the Soul Storm; what could that be? Baffled, Negris put that query aside for now and instead turned to Durken, asking: ¡°That¡¯s the situation. Now Ange is Lord of the Pce of Rest, you were saved by Ange. Considering our past close rtionship, you have two choices, submit or perish.¡± Is that what they call choice? Durken stared wide-eyed at Negris for a moment before smiling, ¡°Let me perform a magic trick for you.¡± After some thumping and banging, Durken was hoisted by Ange, protesting loudly, ¡°Not fair, why is my soul so weak? If you dare, let me go let me rest for a few hours, gather the Mourning Souls then we will fight.¡± Negris said irritably, ¡°You¡¯ve never mourned before, you¡¯ve just resurrected, having a Soul Fire is already pretty good, and yet you¡¯re thinking about Mourning Souls.¡± Durken had not yete to terms with the reality that he was just a newly resurrected Witch, with both his soul and body brand new. What he thought was a powerful magic trick was useless due to the gap in strength of souls. Hence, Ange was confused about what he was trying to do. Negris spoke seriously, ¡°No more joking around, Durken. His Majesty has disappeared, and there¡¯s a good chance he¡¯s gone for good. Ange is now the new Lord of the Pce of Rest. Either you choose to submit your soul to him, or we¡¯ll have to seal you in temporarily until His Majesty returns.¡± Durken knew this ce even better than Ange, if it wasn¡¯t for the soul-binding restraint, he would have been running wild. He wasn¡¯t the same as these Wailing Banshees. They couldn¡¯t even let him out because the World Transit Station was his creation, most of the technology utilized by the Undead Empire came from Durken. Who knew where he had backdoors? If he didn¡¯t submit, they would have no choice but to seal him off or kill him. Durken¡¯s expression turned somber. ¡­ Durken had no choice, once he confirmed with the Wailing Banshees and Lamo that it indeed was over a thousand yearster, he promptly submitted his Soul Fire to Ange. A thousand years had passed, the king had not returned. Either he was gone forever or trapped somewhere. He couldn¡¯t possibly choose to be sealed just for a slim chance, what if the king neveres back? Back in his pce, Durken quickly began to fuss, ¡°Kvada, who stole my backup Gold-touch Suit!¡± Negris slung the cloak over his shoulders, put the hat on his head, and waving the Gold-touch Stick, flew over, ¡°How can you call it stealing? I just picked it up because no one seemed to want it.¡± Durken said irritably, ¡°No one wants the poo on the ground, but I don¡¯t see you picking it up to use.¡± Little Zombie scurried over, his Soul Armor transformed into a long-handled clipper. He looked from side to side but saw no poo, so he tilted his head in confusion and looked at Durken. Negris burst outughing, ¡°How do you know no one picks up poop? It¡¯s natural farm fertilizer.¡± Durken was bbergasted, something about this conversation seemed off. Deciding not to dwell on it, Durken turned to Negris and said, ¡°I don¡¯t mind about the cloak and the hat, just give me back the Gold-touch Stick.¡± ¡°No way. Make another one. The Gold-touch Stick is too useful to give back. Not only will I not return it, but I also want you to teach me how to use it more precisely.¡± ¡°You make it sound so simple. It¡¯s made of Fine Gold Mithril with Star Realm Gem and a branch from the World Tree. I can find Fine Gold Mithril easily enough, but the Star Realm Gem and World Tree branch, where the hell am I supposed¡­¡± Durken grumbled irritably, until a World Tree branch as thick as an arm floated in front of him, along with a handful of Star Realm Gems. ¡°Kvada, did the Tree of Life also die? Or did you chop it down, a branch this big?¡± Durkin stared incredulously at the size of the branch. ¡°Also, what¡¯s with all these Star Realm Gems? Why are there so many?¡± ¡°We chopped down a lot of World Trees, so we have as many as you need. If you want, you could even use the World Tree to make coffins.¡± ¡°Yeah, right. Like I¡¯d believe you.¡± Durkin snorted dismissively, ¡°Lend me the Gold-touch Stick for a little while. I¡¯ll give it back once I make a new one.¡± ¡°I want the new one. I don¡¯t want your second-hand goods,¡± Negris responded. ¡°Even if it¡¯s new, I¡¯ve still touched it. Take it or leave it.¡± Durken said irritably. Having the Gold-touch Stick, Durken practiced his alchemy easily and quickly crafted a new Gold-touch Stick. If he didn¡¯t have the Gold-touch Stick, he would have to carve the wood, then transcribe the magical patterns, carve the base, pinch the filigree, iy it, and connect the circuit¡­. Seeing how easily he was able to create it, Negris brought over a bundle of World Tree branches and said, ¡°Help make one for my follower.¡± ¡°Are you nuts? You want me to make one for your follower? How many followers do you have?¡± Durken nearly exploded in frustration. ¡°One,¡± Negris said reluctantly. Durken froze for a moment, not saying anything. He quickly made another Gold-touch Stick and handed it over, patting Negris on the shoulder. With the Gold-touch Stick, alchemy was no longer such a troublesome task. As long as he had sufficient materials, Durken could quickly create a full set of gear. Just resurrected, both his soul and body seemed weak. He needed to craft some good items quickly for support.N?v(el)B\\jnn Naturally, good equipment needed good materials. He then realized, ¡°How do you guys have everything? Unbounded Crystals? Starfall Iron? Air Bubble Stone? Divine Wood? Uh¡­ what¡¯s this? Faith Elemental Force¡­ this is a divine gemstone? You guys grew this? Divine gemstones can grow?¡± Only then did Ange realize that the divine gemstone they had been growing on the farm had matured. Describing it as ¡®ripe¡¯ was probably not urate; it would be fairer to say that it could exist independently from its bud. ¡°Is it ripe yet? Do we have six divine gemstones now?¡± Negris suddenly remembered something and excitedly asked. Ange nodded, but he didn¡¯t look excited. Even if they had seven divine gemstones, he still had no interest. He knew there couldn¡¯t be any farnd behind that grand gate. ¡°Are you talking about the Void Gate?¡± Hearing what Ange and Negris were discussing, Durken asked curiously. ¡°Right, speaking of the Void Gate, ording to eyewitness ounts, His Majesty entered it and never returned. Do you know what¡¯s behind it?¡± Negris asked. ¡°It¡¯s the void. It¡¯s a gate to the void, as for which part of the void, I have no idea. But haven¡¯t you noticed, this divine gemstone is dissipating, it has shrunk a bit since just now.¡± Chapter 566 - 323: Can You Produce Hundreds of Thousands of Bags of Grain? _1 Chapter 566: Chapter 323: Can You Produce Hundreds of Thousands of Bags of Grain? _1 The three of them dropped everything else to squat on the ground in a circle, watching the godhead slowly dissipate. ¡°Why is this happening? Can an undefined godhead not exist independently?¡± Negris asked curiously. This godhead was grown from the ground, not ignited by the fire of faith. That is to say, it had never been defined and was nk. The faith elemental force of the Harvest Goddesses from humanity¡¯s longing for harvest; the elemental force of the Undead Godes from people¡¯s pursuit of immortality; the power of the Gods of Light originates from people¡¯s yearning for light. This godhead had no faith source. Could it be that it was not able to maintain its form because of this? ¡°How would I know? I¡¯m not a god. Oh wait, you are one, aren¡¯t you? Even though you only have one follower,¡± Durken casuallymented, which made Negris roll his eyes. As the godhead dissipated, shrinking by half, one of the four auxiliary pces in the distance, thest unlit Witch¡¯s Pce, suddenly lit up. ¡°Huh, the Resting Camp has stopped? That¡¯s it, I understand now,¡± Durken, noticing the state of the Resting Camp, eximed as if he realized something. Negris quickly asked, ¡°What¡¯s it? Tell me, tell me quickly.¡± Curiosity was eating at him. The Pce of Locke had started inexplicably, Durken¡¯s pce started inexplicably, and now the Witch¡¯s Pce also started inexplicably. It seemed that there was no connection between them. The Pce of Locke started because of the Liquid of Breath of Death, but the Witch¡¯s Pce started due to the energy dissipation of the godhead. Does that mean that these pces could start if they were infused with corresponding energy? And what energy does the main pce need? Durken exined, ¡°When I initially designed the Resting Camp, I constructed it using a method of multiple superimposed dimensional spaceyers. Although they appear to be on the same ne, in reality, each pce belongs to its own separate dimension. The Resting Camp can only operate normally when the energy of space remains bnced.¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om After some thought, Durken pped his hands and said, ¡°In order to avoid the loss of any single energy, like if the monarch isn¡¯t home, causing imbnce, I designed several safeguards. Out of seventeen types of energy, as long as seven remain bnced, there won¡¯t be any problems. With seventeen basic energies, it¡¯s not possible to lose eleven at once, is it?¡± ¡°In addition, spatial material exchange also needs to follow the principle of equivalent exchange. If you want to take something out, the same material or energy must be put in.¡± As Durken said this, Ange tilted his head, and Negris pped his ownteral muscles saying, ¡°I see, no wonder every time Ange transfers crops out, he has to infuse soul energy.¡± ¡°Soul energy? Transfer crops?¡± Durken asked, puzzled. After Negris exined, Durken frowned and said, ¡°You¡¯re talking about the Dimensional Space Positioning Transfer Bracelet? What¡¯s the ratio? That doesn¡¯t make sense. It¡¯s probably a problem with dimensional bnce. Under normal circumstances, transferring matter doesn¡¯t require that much energypensation. So much soul energy for just tens of pounds of crops? You guys really have money. Don¡¯t you use World Transit Stations?¡± Of course, they did. Currently, therge-scale crop transfers from the farm were done through World Transit Stations. Even the fertilizers were moved in the same way. ¡°So you¡¯re saying that thingsing in and going out through the bracelet should be proportional to the World Transit Stations? Have we been wasting money all this time?¡± Negris asked, feeling a pang of financial pain. Durken nodded and then, ignoring the Little Fat Dragon drawing circles on the ground, continued, ¡°I put in so many safeguards, why did the Resting Camp still stop? And why didn¡¯t it copse entirely?¡± After pondering a while, Durken seemed to understand, ¡°The monarch left, as did the witch Locke. Then the graveyard ruptured and most of the mass instantly disappeared. That¡¯s why it stopped. But why did it just stop and not copse? If the loss was this significant the ovepping dimensions should have certainly copsed. What did you guys do at that time?¡± Durken was puzzled. For example, a bridge that originally needed seven piers to hold up was built with seventeen. It was assumed to be foolproof. Who knew that more than eleven piers would copse at once? However, the bridge was still maintained; only the entrance and exit were closed. Compared to why over eleven piers copsed, Durken was more curious about how a bridge with less than seven piers didn¡¯t copse? ¡°What can I do? I was sealed in the book,¡± Negris replied. Durken looked at Ange, who tilted his head, ¡°Farming.¡± ¡°Oh right, you used to be a farming skeleton, almost forgot about that. Maybe I slept too long, my memory isn¡¯t very good,¡± Durken scratched his head and said frustratedly, ¡°That¡¯s not right either. How much could a single skeleton farm? Surely not for a thousand years. And the crops can¡¯t be kept that long, they would have rotted.¡± As he spoke to this point, Durken noticed the strange expression on Negris¡¯s face. Then he looked at Ange, ¡°You really farmed for a thousand years?¡± Ange nodded. Durken sucked in a breath, ¡°Good lord, a skeleton can be so¡­diligent? What happened to those crops?¡± When he learned that Ange had stored the harvested produce in a cer, Durken sprang to his feet, pacing back and forth with his hands behind his back. After pacing for quite some time, he sighed and said, ¡°Now there¡¯s only one reasonable exnation. The farm boundary is the incremental part of the bnce point of the entire Resting Camp. You kept farming, and the matter that grew was stored outside the boundary in the cer. Over a thousand years, the incremental part just happened to maintain the stability of the space.¡± Chapter 567 - 323: Can You Produce Hundreds of Thousands of Bags of Grain? _2 Chapter 567: Chapter 323: Can You Produce Hundreds of Thousands of Bags of Grain? _2 Having said that, Durken himself started to go crazy: ¡°Kvada, it can¡¯t be possible. Just because you keep nting stuff, you maintain the bnce in such a huge Resting Camp? Is it just a little bit left?¡± In the end, there was no way to verify it. During their chatter, everyone arrived at the Witch¡¯s Pce. ¡°The witch still lives as simply as always,¡± Durken eximed. Negris didn¡¯t speak. Most of his memories about the witch were lost, and he couldn¡¯t remember what she was like. This also raised a question: why would the Undead King erase these memories? It was indeed too simple. The Witch¡¯s Pce could be seen at a nce. It was empty without even a table. At least there was a table in the Bronze Book Tower¡­ Two banshees floated to the center of the pce and began to chant softly. The sound suddenly became extremely ethereal. The interior of the pce seemed to have some kind of design rted to wave fields. Not only did the sound be more ethereal, but the soul energy carried by the sound became incredibly solid. That is, the power of manifestation increased. Although everyone was standing in different positions, anyone could feel as if the banshees were right in front of them. After the banshees finished singing a song for the deceased, they suddenly switched tunes: Undead Spirit and Indestructible Soul, crossing the river of reincarnation ¡­ Negris was surprised: ¡°Huh, the Undying Chapter? They can sing the Undying Chapter now?¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om The Wailing Banshee could not sing the Undying Chapter, because this was a song chanted with the soul. However, with the boost of space, they managed to sing it out, causing a weak soul resonance. This was why the Undying Chapter could enhance the soul. If it did not cause a soul resonance and was just treated as a poem, anyone could hum a few lines. There was a humming sound from the side. When they turned their heads, Durken had already conjured a lounge chair from somewhere, lying on it and humming to himself. Just then, Ange suddenly tilted his head, as if he was listening to something. Negris was already used to it. When Ange did this, it was generally because a believer was calling him. Only a few people like Lisa, Silver Coin, Purple Corpse, Oke, Anthony, etc., could directly call him, and they could be counted on one hand. Oke usually just reported and rarely disturbed Ange. Purple Corpse generally didn¡¯t need to find Ange. She and her ns dug up a bunch of Thunderbolt Javelins from the Goddess of Redemption¡­ Hardly any enemy could withstand their barrage. Without having to ask, when Ange turned his head, Negris impatiently asked, ¡°It¡¯s Anthony again, isn¡¯t it? Calling for help?¡± The person who most often called Ange recently was Anthony, often crying out ¡°Lord, save me!¡± Only Ange was so agreeable. If he were another deity, he would have punished him already. Ange nodded, ¡°He said there is faith, that I should go and reap.¡± ¡°Not crying for help, but to reap faith? Is he this good?¡± When Ange arrived outside the city of the ck Mountain Kingdom on the Master ne, he only saw a refugee camp stretching to the horizon and a crowd shouting excitedly for the protection of the Light. Anthony quietly came up and said anxiously, ¡°Lord, there are agitators in the crowd, too many for me to handle. Many people have been incited. I want you to walk through from the sky, dropping food along the way to calm everyone¡¯s emotions. If you find agitators, judge them on the spot.¡± The projection on Ange, Negris couldn¡¯t help but curse, ¡°Kvada, I knew you were not that nice. You are calling for Ange to save you again.¡± Anthony awkwardly said, ¡°And might as well reap some faith along the way. There are now forty to fifty thousand people gathered here, and there are always people secretly instigating things¡­ I was already prepared, but they still caught a loophole. Now, only you can pacify them. Distributing food alone is not enough¡­ You have to judge those instigators on the spot, frighten others, only the Original Sin Shackles of the Lord can do it.¡± Anthony also knew the Original Sin Shackles, but he had to rest a bit after using it once. There were too many instigators in the crowd, and he was afraid he wouldn¡¯t be able to handle it. Besides, the name ¡°Ascetic Monk An,¡± with the spread of the believers, was now more effective than his Archbishop standing in for the Pope. Don¡¯t think of the Archbishop standing in for the Pope as very impressive, but when the crowd is raging, people prefer to trust the kind old priest in the local block, and the identity of the ascetic monk is not so high above. ¡°Step aside, let me take a look.¡± A voice unfamiliar but somewhat familiar to Anthony sounded from Ange. Durken projected onto Ange. Don¡¯t think that only Negris can project. Everyone was in the Temple of Rest, everyone had a soul-level connection with Ange, and as long as Ange agreed, Durken could also project. ¡°Hiss ¨C what¡¯s going on? Such a strong Power of Light, are these people Disciples of Light? You guys are going to reap the faith of Disciples of Light? Did I hear that right?¡± Anthony remembered something and asked in disbelief, ¡°Lord Durken?¡± ¡°Do you know me?¡± Durken asked in surprise, his thoughts swept over Anthony, ¡°Hiss, such a strong Power of Holy Light? This is at least an Archbishop, right? What¡¯s going on? Are you betraying the Light, or are you surrendering the Light?¡± Chapter 568 - 323: Can You Produce Hundreds of Thousands of Bags of Grain? _3 Chapter 568: Chapter 323: Can You Produce Hundreds of Thousands of Bags of Grain? _3 ¡°Hehe, Lord Durken, it¡¯s me, Piero.¡± Anthony chuckled. ¡°Eh, you¡¯re Piero? The Undead Piero who built the Reincarnation Altar? You¡¯ve be a servant of Light?¡± Durken asked. If Anthony and Negris share a general familiarity, then his rtionship with Durken is extremely intimate as Durken was the one who taught him the basics of constructing the Reincarnation Altar. ¡°No, no, no, my heart belongs to the Undead. In life, I am Lord Ange¡¯s man, and in death, I remain his soul. Lord Durken, when did you wake up? I¡¯ll chat with youter, would you please calm the people here for me first?¡± Anthony said hurriedly. Ange, of course, is quite willing to harvest Faith Elemental Force. Currently, he is in dire need of Soul me. If he had an unlimited supply of Soul me, he would be able to suppress the famine on the Master ne easily. Back then, he was able to produce one million tons of seaweed rice in just two to three days.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Adjusting the appearance of the straw hat illusion to that of Ascetic Monk An, Ange made his way step by step above the crowd. ¡°Ascetic Monk An, it¡¯s Lord An, it¡¯s Lord An!¡± Some people who had seen Ange or heard of the fame of ¡®Ascetic Monk An¡¯ began to shout excitedly. Ange dropped down a bag of grain. The crowd instantly went wild, some were shouting Ange¡¯s name excitedly, while others franticallyunched themselves onto the bag of grain, starting a scramble. The scene immediately devolved into chaos, people pushing and shoving, grabbing and snatching, and those who were weak and starved were quickly trampled underfoot. Seeing this scene from afar, Anthony felt a tightness in his heart. He miscalcted. If a stampede caused by the scramble for food resulted in casualties, not only would he not be able to harvest faith, but Lord Ange¡¯s prestige would also suffer. Too many people, too much confusion; even Anthony couldn¡¯t think of a good solution in a short while. At this moment, everyone who was pushing, fighting, or who had fallen, felt as though they had been blown by a gust of wind, abruptly brought to their feet. Using the Pollination Technique, Ange treated the pushing crowd as flowers. By using a second-level Pollination Technique on each person, it felt as if each person had been lifted high off the ground by their armpits, instantly suspended in mid-air. Those who had fallen were also picked up, those bent over were straightened, and the chaotic crowd quickly resembled a neatly organized field, all standing straight. Everyone who had been lifted was bewildered: what was going on? Some still tried to bend over to grab the bag of grain, only to be pulled back up again. Now everyone understood: no scrambling was allowed. Nobody dared to scramble anymore. Everyone knelt on the ground worshipping and praying, ¡°Long Live Lord An! Lord An, grant us food!¡± ¡°Long Live Lord An! Lord An, grant us food!¡± Countless surges of Soul me came pouring into Ange¡¯s body. Ange manifested another bag of grain but did not throw it down; instead, he held it in his hand, seemingly lost in thought. At this moment, an agitated voice rang out: ¡°Lord An, what are you putting on a show for? One or two bags of grain, what can they do? There are hundreds of thousands of us here. Even if everyone gets one bag, it still wouldn¡¯t be enough. Can you conjure hundreds of thousands of bags of grain?¡± A cold spark shed through Anthony¡¯s eyes as he murmured, ¡°It¡¯s him. He¡¯s the agitator. More people will join him soon, and then they¡¯ll instigate the crowd together. Lord An, charge him with a crime and judge him.¡± No sooner had Anthony finished his words, several voices echoed in agreement, ¡°Yes, Lord An, can you manifest hundreds of thousands of bags of grain?!¡± ¡°Lord An, can you manifest hundreds of thousands of bags of grain?¡± ¡°Lord An, do it, do it!¡± Under the instigation of these people, the mood of the crowd began to shift. Indeed, no matter how amazing Lord An was, could he really conjure hundreds of thousands of bags of grain out of thin air? Chapter 569 - 224: Hand Kneaded Bread_1 Chapter 569: Chapter 224: Hand Kneaded Bread_1 Ange lifted his head, looking around in confusion. From this moment on, all the iing me Souls carried the same message: Change! Change! Change! Ange hadn¡¯t had such arge harvest of Soul mes for a long time. The people before him were noticeably more excited thanst time, as the instigation of others brought many people to the brink of emotional explosion. This was a state of fanaticism as described in all Divine Arts. Driven by this fanatic emotion, the Soul mes offered by many people were thick,rge, and dense. One of these could equal to dozens of general believers. Their faith was extremely devoted and unified. This was why many religions liked to hold gatherings and festivals. Even the Harvest Goddess had a half-month long harvest festival. Amidst the torrent of Faith Elemental Force, Ange¡¯s gaze returned to the bag of grain in his hand. He had realized a problem when he took it out earlier. Even if he threw all the stored food in the Temple of Rest, it would not be enough to appease everyone. He remembered rice couldn¡¯t be eaten raw; it could choke people to death. What could he do to let everyone eat directly? As he pondered, the symbol of a grain stalk and the symbol of the Goddess of Beauty lit up before his eyes. Upon Ange¡¯s thought, the Divine Power of the God of Farming and the Goddess of Beauty in his soul started rotating synchronously. Ange forcibly tossed the sack of grains into the sky. Change! The grains tossed into the sky transformed into dark bread and fell, hitting everyone on their heads, faces, and chests. Anthony, who was far away, jumped abruptly: ¡°Great Wishing Spell?¡± In another direction, a man in the refugee pile almost jumped as well: ¡°Great Wishing Spell? Impossible! Is he actually an Ascetic monk? I thought he was just a swindler found by Anthony.¡± The Great Wishing Spell, Great Prophecy Spell, and the Echo Technique were amongst the supreme Divine Techniques of the Church of Light. These were the most powerful abilities a believer could master. The next step would mean bing a god.n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om However, even Pope Guliani was unable to master any of them. The crown of the Pope was somewhat hollow due to this. Originally thought to be a swindler found by Anthony, he surprisingly used Great Wishing Spell which even the Pope couldn¡¯t master. This was beyond the level of an Ascetic monk; he was now a strongpetitor for the position of Pope. The incredible scene stunned everyone. Those who were fortunate enough to catch the dark bread subconsciously took a bite. The taste was mediocre but not bad. For the hungry people, the satisfaction brought by a full stomach surpassed everything else. Moreover, these were personally created by ¡®Lord Anthony¡¯. The transformation was beyond anyone¡¯s imagination. Many people could not even think about whether Ange could create hundreds of thousands of bags of food. Ange flipped out another bag of grains, tossed it into the sky, and it turned into bread again. It fell, and those who tried to grab it were immediately held back by Ange. Anthony and Durken, reflected on him, were astounded. Finally regaining theirposure, they muttered, ¡°Ange, when did you learn the Great Wishing Spell?¡± Ange tilted his head and replied: ¡°No, it¡¯s abination of ¡®Beauty¡¯ and ¡®Farming.¡¯ Negris was even more shocked: ¡°What? Combination Divine Technique? Abination of the Goddess of Beauty and the God of Farming?¡± In theory, there were Combination Divine Techniques. When one masters two contradictory Divine Techniques, employing them simultaneously would result in inconceivable changes. But the theory is after all a theory. Negris had neither seen nor heard of any Combination Divine Technique. Even gods possessing two Divine Techniques were rare. From this perspective, Negris was somewhat fortunate; he had several Divine Techniques, such as Pass All Exams, Truth¡¯s Murmur, Enlightenment Aura, Spirit Enhancement, and Staying Up Late¡­ But the Combination Divine Technique that Ange used was monstrous. A bag of grains turned into a pile of bread out of thin air. A rough estimate suggested that the mass increased at least threefold, meaning twenty pounds of grain turned into sixty pounds of bread. Why did the mass change now when the Element Conversion of the God of Farming, turning soil into straw, did not alter the mass? ¡°Added water,¡± Ange replied, ¡°and their faith.¡± Negris was taken aback again: ¡°You mean, you included the believers¡¯ faith as well?¡± Ange nodded. ¡°Isn¡¯t this the Wishing Spell then? The Wishing Spell of the Goddess of Beauty and God of Farming?¡± Negris murmured. Some people didn¡¯t understand why the Divine Technique of the God of Farming was Element Conversion which could turn soil into straw. But Negris was only shocked, not surprised because it fit the logic. The God of Farming turning seeds into giant trees essentially was a type of Element Conversion. But when it came to turning grains into bread, he couldn¡¯t understand. Was it due to thebination of the Goddess of Beauty Fist and the prayers of the believers? Bags of grains transformed into bread fell down onto everyone. Those who received the bread were either curious or hungry and began to gnaw at it. Those who had yet to receive any were anxiously waiting for the bread bestowed by Ange. For a while, no one caused trouble. Only then did Ange have the leisure to look at the people who incited themotion, saying: ¡°You have sinned.¡± Sanctified chains sprang up from the ground, binding them. The Sacred me burnt and swallowed them up in an instant. ¡°Sacred me Burn? They must havemitted grave sins,¡± Negrismented in surprise. Chapter 570 - 224 Hand-Kneaded Bread_2 Chapter 570: Chapter 224 Hand-Kneaded Bread_2 In the slums of the Land of Fallen, Ange has also used the Original Sin Shackles on two attendants, but he didn¡¯t give them too severe a punishment. Why would he directly use the Sacred me Burn this time? ¡°Incitement of the masses is a serious sin, but let¡¯s not talk about that first. Let¡¯s talk about why you guys can use the Original Sin Shackles?¡± Durken was filled with questions. From the moment he woke up, his eyes had not had a break. Ange¡¯s existencepletely overturned his cognition. What Trinity God, Element Conversion, even mastering the Divine Art of Light? Oh, Kvada. ¡°If you ask me, then who do I ask? I just taught him the Purification Technique, who knows why he could produce so many variations, I want to know that, too.¡± Negris said grumpily. Negris had this doubt a long time ago. He, more than anyone else, wanted to know the answer. Thinking about it, the only possibility was Lisa and Anthony. They helped Ange define the Holy Light. However, such an unrepeatable event was impossible to verify, unless he could find another one like Ange and teach him the Purification Technique once more, to see if he could produce as many variations. Within the Sacred me, those who incited emotions wailed miserably, but they were firmly locked by the Original Sin Shackles and could not move. A few of them burst out with Holy Light, extinguishing the Sacred me on their bodies, which surprised people. Among these sinful people, were there actually practitioners of Divine Light Magic? Unfortunately, it didn¡¯t matter. They revealed their inner cards but still couldn¡¯t break free from the shackles. The extinguished Sacred me relit. These people panicked and begged for mercy: ¡°Let me go, please let me go. It has nothing to do with me. It was Dyson who ordered us to do this.¡± The believers were in an uproar when they heard these words. Ange was a bit puzzled. He didn¡¯t want to know who did it, why were they telling him this? He continued to conjure bread, leaving those inciters to turn into ashes in the Sacred me. To conjure hundreds of thousands of bags of grain wasn¡¯t easy, but to conjure hundreds of thousands of loaves of bread was not too hard. Especially in this situation, the expended Soul me and the Soul me gained were not proportional at all, all he needed was to consume a bit of grain. The Prayer of the God of Farming required Soul me and grain but now, when he stood in the open air, continuous Soul me surged towards him. Every time he conjured bread, waves of Soul me roared. He only needed to spend one-tenth of that, plus twenty catties of grain and the water vapor condensed in the air, to conjure sixty catties of bread. At the beginning, he had to consume the grain stockpile in the Temple of Rest. But after that grain was consumed, it was reced by the grain transported by Anthony. He didn¡¯t need to cost anything and was just earning Soul me. This wasn¡¯t good, this didn¡¯t conform to the principle of an equivalent exchange. Ange was a bit distressed but he couldn¡¯t remedy it for the moment. He could only silently keep it in mind, and make up for it to Anthonyter. If Anthony knew this, he would probablyugh his head off if he found out that Ange had put this extra ie on his ount. The whole process of transforming bread continued for the entire day. In the end, everyone was tired and even if anyone wanted to instigate, it definitely wasn¡¯t going to happen. Not to mention, the traces of those dozens of Sacred me Burns were still there. Those provocateurs not found among the crowd were now as silent as cicadas in winter. Even if they were threatened with knives, they might not dare to show themselves. After all, being stabbed to death by a knife was much morefortable than being burned by the Sacred me. With no one causing trouble, Anthony smoothly brought in the food, preparing porridge, noodles, and roasted bread tofort the victims. There was still enough food for the time being and it was enough for everyone to eat for a while. However, in order to stretch the food supply, Anthony reduced the daily amount. Everyone was semi-starved, and opportunistic people seized the opportunity and stirred up trouble once again. Thanks to Ange, the Original Sin Shackles deterred those who wanted to stir things up. The unbelievable act of creating bread shocked all the victims. Without these measures, it would have been hard to appease everyone. Ange reaped a lot of Soul me and contentedly entered West City of the ck Mountain Kingdom, where the ck Mountain bastard child, whom he had met once in Rnd City, was now wearing a robe of governance and respectfully greeting him alongside Anthony. The ck Mountain Kingdom originally belonged to the Western District. Because of the gue of locusts, the entire kingdom fell. In the end, a bastard child who had lifted the Earth Hammer ascended to the position of duke. Why did the kingdom have a royal court? Because a certain Duke of the ck Mountain married a princess of the royal family. This bastard child calls himself ck Mountain. With a ceremony presided over by Anthony, he was entrenched in the Western District. If we also consider the Kingdom of Luosha and the Wusu Kingdom administrated by Luosha, Anthony has already embedded three wedges in the Western Region. The Duke of ck Mountain respectfully saluted, but Ange¡¯s gaze fell on the Earth Hammer at his waist and lingered for a few seconds longer. Once back inside the tent and away from the others, Anthony couldn¡¯t hold back anymore. He pulled out a bag of food and cajoled, ¡°My lord, my lord, can you do it again? Do it again, please. I couldn¡¯t see clearly because it was too far away.¡± The Negris projected onto his body also intervened, ¡°Let me out, I want to see it with my own eyes. I can¡¯t get a clear feel from the projection.¡± In the end, Ange let everyone out, unsealed the bag of food and grabbed a handful of grains. With just a rub of the hand, he transformed the grains into a long loaf of bread. Luther took the bread with a dumbfounded look and bit into it forcefully, ¡°It is¡­ real bread? It¡¯s edible, bread made from just a hand rub? My lord, are you trying to take Vania¡¯s job?¡± Lisa pped his head, snatched the bread, disdainfully took off the piece he bit off, broke it into small pieces, and divided it among everyone who could eat. Linking this level of divine arts with Vania really showed ack of vision. After everyone had a taste, they each gave their ¡®genuine¡¯ reviews: ¡°Wow, it¡¯s delicious. It melts in my mouth.¡± ¡°Yeah, it¡¯s so good. I¡¯m moved to the point of shedding tears.¡± ¡°One bite fills my mouth with the aroma of wheat, as if my soul is ascending.¡± Lisa irritably scolded, ¡°Can you please be more sincere when givingpliments?¡± Regardless of its taste, bread made by just a hand rub was an unimaginable divine technique, and it even tripled the food. If it wasn¡¯t for the consumption of Soul me, Ange could feed everyone. Unfortunately, such ability can only be used when the crowd isrge. If the crowd was too small, then the donated Soul me wouldn¡¯t be enough topensate for the consumption, resulting in a loss. Anthony also gnawed on a small piece of bread, and only after swallowing it, did he pay his respects to Durken, ¡°Lord Durken, it¡¯s been a long time.¡± Durken evaluated him up and down, then hesitatingly asked, ¡°Are you really Piero?¡± After infiltrating the Church of Light for a thousand years, Anthony had fully taken on the guise of a religious fanatic. Even if he imed to be undead, not everyone would believe him. ¡°It¡¯s really me, you see.¡± Anthony picked up his staff and swung it around, frightening everyone enough that they retreated several meters. Who on earth would twirl their staff like a sword? ¡°I believe, I believe. Be careful not to hit me, I¡¯m still weak from just waking up.¡± Durken had to believe him. The two old acquaintances caught up on old times till they had nothing more to say. Given the richness of Anthony¡¯s experiences, it would take several million words to write them all out in a book titled ¡°The Dark Knight Emperor infiltrates and bes Pope of the Church of Light.¡± Compared to Anthony, Durken¡¯s life was much simpler: woke up in a graveyard, explored the void, got killed by the chaos¡­n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Alright, there was no point in continuing the conversation. Speaking only about oneself seemed a bit boastful. Turning to Ange, Anthony gratefully said, ¡°My lord, thank you so much. If you hadn¡¯t stepped in, I wouldn¡¯t know how to wrap things up. It was really disgusting. I am doing this to help Dyson with their disaster, but they still pull these stunts. Do they really wish their people would all die?¡± Ange tilted his head. Knowing that Ange wouldn¡¯t care about this, Anthony casually finished his statement before switching topics: ¡°By the way, the Copperhammer Dwarves have sent over twenty thousand tons of food, whispering to me ¡®I¡¯m a good guy.¡¯ They even said that if I could offer an equivalent amount of alcohol, they would be willing to sell me all the grains reserved for brewing. It¡¯s rare, even dwarves are disgusted by Dyson and Guliani¡¯s actions.¡± Originally, Anthony just wanted to share a thought, even the allies of enemies were showing me goodwill. But as soon as he finished, Negris¡¯s strange face caught his attention. ¡°Uh, my lord, you don¡¯t also brew wine, do you?¡± Ange nodded. ¡°How does it taste?¡± Ange tilted his head. How would he know, he doesn¡¯t drink. Anthony said seriously, ¡°Uh, the thing is, if the wine is good and the quantity is decent, I have confidence I can trick the dwarves into letting me see their War Chess relics. That¡¯s because the Dwarven God of War has a special ability to record every major battle.¡± Chapter 571 - 225 He Plans to Give Money_1 Chapter 571: Chapter 225 He ns to Give Money_1 On the outskirts of Rnd City, at Riverside Town, dawn was just breaking. Desperate ves were driven forth, lining both sides of the road. Each ve bore an expression of sorrow, yet even more sorrowful were the ve traders¡¯ faces. Ange walked along the road, curious about the scene unfolding before him, with the equally curious Luther trailing behind him. very has been in existence from time immemorial, Rnd City has a ve market filled with contract ves who have sold themselves and captured individuals from different races, such as dwarves and elves. Of course, elves cannot be openly sold in the market; they can only be covertly traded in the ck market, as the elves fiercely suppress such sales. But the audacious and unscrupulous ve-traders who dared to defy even the Pope wouldn¡¯t care about the elves, would they? The very act of suppression only pushed the trade of elves from the open to the hidden, consequently raising the price of elves and making their trade even more profitable, causing an influx of desperate ve merchants willing to risk capturing more elf ves. Small mercenary groups now and then would seize the lucrative opportunity, given that one elf could fetch tens of thousands of Demon Crystals ¨C enough for retirement. The elves once negotiated with the Pope to send their own task forces into human territories to eliminate the ve traders dealing in elves. However, they often found their intelligence to be wed and unreliable, leading them to mistakenly attack legitimate businesses. In addition, thesew-enforcing elves would be targets for ve traders themselves. Even trips to the necessary room were risky. In the end, the elves were left with no choice but to minimize contact with human territories. Any necessary dealings were handled through intermediaries like mercenaries. Contrastingly, dwarves hardly cared if their kin became ves. As long as they weren¡¯t brutalized or harmed, they couldn¡¯t care less. Moreover, some dwarves who had grown tired of dwelling in the mountains would descend to an inn for a drink, passionately pat their empty pockets and dere, ¡°I have no money. I would sell myself for a drink each day even if it means bing a ve.¡± Impressively, these self=selling dwarves made demands that exceeded those of contract ves. Given the enormous food and drink consumption of these dwarf ves, fewmoners could provide for them, and their selling price was quite low. As they were rarely requested, they were seldom captured. In bad times, they were turned away, freeing the traders of the burden of their sustenance. Elves couldn¡¯t resort to such tactics as the dwarves, simply because elves, even male ones, were too alluring. Anyone purchasing elves did so for purposes other thanbor. Elf trading was driven into the ck market, and Riverside Town was one such ck market. However, ofte, not just illicit goods were sold in Riverside Town. Due to a sharp spike in bankruptcies, a horde of individuals were turning into contract ves or ves. Contract ves were bound by a contract that once fulfilled, would release them from the status of ¡®ve¡¯ to freedmen ormoners. On the other hand, ves had no human rights left. They were nothing more than possessions, with the distinction between the two being that one is human and the other an object. But when faced with starvations, few cared whether they were being sold as humans or objects. Being sold to a ve trader at least ensured a meal. However, as more and more people fell into very, ve prices drastically declined and hence impacted the profit margins of ve traders. Famine also led to ntation owners and nobles turning their tenant farmers and serfs directly into ves, cutting out the need for ve traders and thus eliminating the brokers¡¯ fees. The traders benefited less and less from the trade of ves, yet the ves still needed food. Unseble ves meant potential loss and even more worry for the traders. In the past, ve traders with conscience would tear up the contracts and set the ves free at this stage, but the ones with conscience were few and far between. A man with conscience wouldn¡¯t be a ve trader in the first ce, would he? The more ruthless traders would ¡®dispose of the merchandise¡¯. However, they did not dare to do so this time around. Word had been secretly spread by envoy sent by Anthony, substitute Pope of the Eastern Diocese, stating that anyone who dared ¡®dispose of the merchandise¡¯ would have their entire family murdered. If the ves could not be sold, they were to be sent to refugee camps by the border. Anthony¡¯s quiet threats of ¡®murdering entire families¡¯ were far more effective in terrifying the traders than the threats of the Elf Queen. If Anthony dared to cause a schism in the church, was there anything he wouldn¡¯t dare to do? If the traderscked a conscience, Anthony would simply ¡®impose¡¯ one on them. Hence, many ve traders seemed to have developed a conscience overnight, reluctantlym selling ves with the gloomiest of expressions and sending those unseble to the border once the contracts were torn. Riverside Town, a ck market turned ve market, was on the brink of bing a regr marketce due to the influx of ves. With more sellers than buyers, both ves and traders watched Ange and Luther with anticipation as they entered. Some slightly attractive ve women coyly fluttered their eyshes and postured enticingly to catch Ange and Luther¡¯s attention.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om It was, however, a bridge too far. Upon seeing Ange, Negris and Durken struck up a conversation. ¡°We should buy some dwarf brewers and have them brew the ale that dwarves love.¡± ¡°Are you daft?¡± Durken asked. ¡°Huh?¡± Negris froze in confusion. ¡°Why do we brew ale? We do so to watch the recorded games of dwarf chess, a holy ce to dwarves where outsiders are typically unwee unless offered an irresistible enticement. Let me ask you this, if the ale were brewed by dwarf brewers, why would the dwarves refuse? They could easily brew it themselves,¡± Durken questioned. Chapter 572 - 225 He Plans to Give Money_2 Chapter 572: Chapter 225 He ns to Give Money_2 ¡°Uh, that makes sense, what should we buy then?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Buy everything, whether it¡¯s dwarves, elves, or humans, those who can make wine and those who can drink wine, buy them all. We can afford it. As for the quality, we just need topare a few different kinds.¡± Durken advised. Right, they could afford it. Even if they bought all the winemakers in the world, Ange could afford it. Why bother fretting over this? After browsing around, it was time for Luther to step up. He slowly levitated into the air, disyed his solidified energy, and loudly announced: ¡°My master seeks the best winemakers and wine tasters. Who can provide us the best? My master is willing to pay a high price.¡± All who saw the figure of Luther couldn¡¯t help but cry out: ¡°A high-level Sword Saint?! Oh my god, a high-level Sword Saint¡¯s master? Who is this important person?¡± ¡°Wine makers? Do we have any wine makers?¡± ¡°Quick, quick, what does ¡®wine taster¡¯ mean? A drunkard? Do those dwarves count?¡± The market suddenly descended into chaos. The energy sword is the symbol of a high-level Sword Saint and is quite rare. Usually, it¡¯s a symbol of followers of powerful wizards. Could this Sword Saint¡¯s master be a Truth Mage? Durken and Negris huddled together: ¡°Letting Luther disy his power was to act as a credibility endorsement for his words. Otherwise, if you just jumped out and said you wanted to buy the best winemaker, who would know what ¡®best¡¯ means? Now that his high-level Sword Saint¡¯s strength is disyed, everyone knows and they won¡¯t just bring any old rubbish to you. Otherwise, these greedy merchants would bring a bunch of dwarf drunkards to you, uh¡­¡± Looking at a bunch of dwarves with hangovers being rushed in, Durken nearly choked: ¡°Did I underestimate the level of greed of the merchants in this era?¡± Negris nodded in agreement: ¡°Indeed, they¡¯re quite greedy, almost ck like a silver coin.¡± Far away in the Land of Fallen, the silver coin sneezed out of nowhere. Possibly sensing someone cursing him, he quickly kneeled down and started to pray devoutly. The master of a high-level Sword Saint¡­wants to buy ve winemakers, this news shocked all the ve traders. Wave after wave of ves rted to winemaking were brought before Luther. Luther epted everyone, including that bunch of dwarf drunkards. These dwarves might not know how to make wine, but after drinking a lot, at least they¡¯d be able to distinguish which wine tasted better. They could be used for taste-testing the final products. Of course, the prices shouldn¡¯t be too high. Just as Durken had said, buying all of them wouldn¡¯t be a problem. They weren¡¯t special ves and couldn¡¯t fetch a high price. Even if they bought all the ves here, it would only cost a few tens of thousands of Demon Crystals. As for some special ves, one could cost tens of thousands of Demon Crystals. Seeing their generous spending, some big traders behind the scenes were having other thoughts. A skinny ve trader approached, leaning in to whisper to Luther: ¡°Elves, elves, interested? Young, beautiful Dark Elves.¡± ¡°Dark Elves?¡± Luther was surprised: ¡°How much? Let me see.¡± He had seen plenty of elves, but what were Dark Elves? ¡°Twenty thousand Demon Crystals.¡± ¡°That expensive?! You might as well rob someone!¡± ¡°You get what you pay for. Have a look at the goods first. Tender and soft with a great figure. Definitely worth it.¡± A few strong ves brought a tent over and after it was set up, two burly women led a creature wrapped in a cloak into the tent. It seemed that this was the way to check the merchandise. Very professional. Ange and Luther went in and saw a tightly bound elf with dark skin and intricate tattoos all over her body, ring at them fiercely. Ange tilted his head. He actually recognized the elf. It was one he had seen at the Mercenary Guild hall in Rnd City. How did she end up a ve? Her skin was dark, her hair messy, and her skin was rough. She was far from the elves Luther had seen before. Luther pursed his lips and turned to look at Ange. He was prepared to refuse. Twenty thousand demon crystals for an elf of this caliber? It would be more worthwhile to invite Kael¡¯danil over; the High Priest of the elves had been constantly requesting to serve Lord Ange. Unexpectedly, Ange just nodded in agreement. Hiss ¡ª¡ª Does the Lord favor this style? That¡¯s great, now I know what type of gift to bring in the future, Luther thought delightedly. Without hesitation, he handed over twenty thousand demon crystals. Ange¡¯s food supply was low, but he had abundant demon crystals, having emptied the elves¡¯ reserve and Antony¡¯s treasury. Now, he even had to borrow money from the Silver Coin. Moreover, he had the state treasury of the ck Mountain Kingdom, the earnings from the City of the Goddess of Beauty, the profits from the Silver Light Mercantile Company, etc. His cash flow might be greater than that of the Magician¡¯s Guild and Mercenary Guildbined. The ve trader had never encountered a customer who paid so readily. Don¡¯t they haggle over the price? Upon receiving the money, the trader pulled out a brand, tearing it in two ¡ª half for Luther and the other half intended for the dark elf. The dark elf showed a fearful expression, struggling to avoid it. ¡°What is this?¡± Ange curiously asked. The brand emitted a certain fluctuation, slightly simr to a soul brand. With the High-level Sword Saint¡¯s master asking, the ve trader quickly answered: ¡°My Lord, this is a ve brand. Once imprinted, even the soul of the ve will be bound by the brand, making them absolutely incapable of resisting or defying yourmands.¡± Ange stretched out his hand, and the ve trader quickly passed the brand which Ange then began to examine. As he studied it, the brand was disassembled. The ve trader suddenly found it difficult to react: ¡°My Lord, this¡­.¡± ¡°What is it? Go bring another one out quickly.¡± Luther, terrified of embarrassing Ange, hurriedly reprimanded: ¡°What¡¯s wrong with the Lord ying with your brand? He¡¯s not lowering your status, is he? He bought a ve for twenty thousand demon crystals, aren¡¯t you willing to spare a few more brands? Speaking nonsense, do you believe I¡¯ll kill you?¡± The ve trader hastily replied with a smile: ¡°My Lord, these ve brands are custom-made and onlye with high-priced ves; there is only one.¡± ¡°Then what should we do?¡± Luther menacingly asked. The trader catingly replied: ¡°This ve is quite violent. It¡¯s not easy to control her without the brand. How about the Lord covers some extra costs to leave her here for a month? Once we have the brand ready, we can deliver her directly to your home. Rest assured, the whole process will remain confidential.¡± ¡°There¡¯s no need.¡± Ange shook his head. He had already understood this brand upon breaking it apart; it was merely a type of soul brand. But it was far inferior to the soul brand of the undead, being unable to control even thoughts, and could only limit physical features such as weakness and lethargy. ¡°Just be careful not to release her casually, she¡¯s extremely violent¡­.¡± The ve trader warned as he retreated from the tent. But before he could finish his sentence, he saw Ange cut the rope, liberating the dark elf. ¡°This¡­¡± But before he could finish his thought, the ve trader turned heel and left. After all, he had been paid, and if the ve managed to escape, it wouldn¡¯t be his problem. Who knows, if he manages to capture her again, he might manage to sell her another time. Ange spent less than forty thousand demon crystals for a total of six hundred ves, including a dark elf for twenty thousand and the rest under twenty thousand. The dwarves were a little more expensive, but on average, each ve only cost him thirty-three demon crystals. However, this was still a high price. Ange¡¯s extravagance had caused quite a stir in Riverside Town, and some people even harbored other thoughts. They gathered early on the road leading out of town, wanting to see how Ange and Luther were nning on taking away more than six hundred ves, and see if there were any opportunities to make a profit. The next morning, many people discovered that there were numerous bodies in the woods outside the town, even the river¡¯s upstream was littered with bodies. The corpses were recognized as part of hunting teams from several major ve merchants in town. The castles of these major ve merchants were breached, their wealth plundered, their ves liberated, their guards killed. ording to the freed ves, the ones who broke into the castles were a group of armed giants and a foul-mouthed horse.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om On the route north, Negris couldn¡¯t help butugh bitterly: ¡°You had so many others to provoke, but you had to provoke him. He was willing to pay generously, but now, you saved his money and even made him many times richer. Was it necessary?¡± Afterwards, the several major ve trade businessmen were dragged away to be buried. Looking back, Ange¡¯s hand had disappeared ¨C he was fermenting wine in his spatial realm. ¡°He was willing to pay.¡± Negris shook his head as he spoke. Chapter 573 - 226 I also want to watch_1 Chapter 573: Chapter 226 I also want to watch_1 Through the teleportation array at Rnd City, Ange and hispany returned to the City of the Goddess of Beauty the next day. Along the way, he had conveniently brewed a batch of beetroot wine and brought it out for those Dwarven ¡°wine connoisseurs¡± to taste. Upon taking a sip, the Dwarven wine tasters immediately scrunched up their faces. Despite their grimaces, they finished off every drop of the wine. Seeing this, everyone else also frowned. Negris flitted over and asked, ¡°How was it? Is the wine good?¡± The drunken dwarf, pointing at Negris, chuckled, ¡°Ha ha, Little Fat Dragon, let¡¯s catch you and roast you¡­¡± ¡°Lightning!¡± Negris shouted to his rear.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om The Lightning, who was graciously rubbing his forehead under the Purple Corpse¡¯s yful wrath, promptly ran over and gave a powerful shock to the drunken dwarf, instantly snapping him back to sobriety. ¡°How was the wine? Good?¡± Negris asked with a beamy smile. The dwarf obediently shook his head. ¡°Then why did you drink it all?¡± Negris asked, puzzled. The dwarf quickly replied: ¡°But it¡¯s wine! How could we waste it? Even if it turned sour, we need to drink it, otherwise, it would be disrespectful to the god of wine.¡± He even licked his lips after speaking. His actions clearly showed that it wasn¡¯t about respect or disrespect, but he was simply a glutton for wine. Negris shook his head, disappointed: ¡°Useless. Oh well, let them go.¡± Wine tasting is about discerning good quality. If you consume everything in sight without any regard for quality ¨C guzzling down even spoiled brews ¨C how could you appreciate good wine? These dwarfs clearly weren¡¯t qualified wine tasters. As Negris turned to leave, though, he felt his thigh being sped. A burly dwarf with a face full of beard squeezed out a ¡°friendly and kind¡± smile which nearly scared Negris: ¡°My Lord, don¡¯t fire us! We promise to drink less from now on. We¡¯re all dwarf warriors ¨C strong, ferocious, and invincible. If you keep us, we won¡¯t let you down!¡± ¡°Huh? I meant to set you free, not fire you. What¡¯s gotten into you?¡± ¡°No, no, no, we don¡¯t want freedom! We want wine! Give us wine! We are the most ferocious dwarf warriors, invincible!¡± The dwarf showed off his biceps and patted his chest to signal their toughness. Negris was left speechless. In order not to lose their jobs, the dwarfs clung desperately to Negris¡¯s leg, almost breaking it. In the end, he agreed to keep the dwarf warriors in return for 10 kilograms of wine per month, as well as providing their food and amodation. Long after, the dwarven leader, Copper Beard, revealed why they insisted on staying. It was because the wine brewed by Lord Ange was potent. Although it didn¡¯t taste great, it was strong enough to floor all of them. Normally, they could drink up to five kilograms of the strongest human-made liquor before drunk. But the horrible tasting brew was a one-time thing. The second batch tasted normal, the third was delicious, and by the fourth, they couldn¡¯t find enough words to praise it. The potency remained the same, of course. Especially the aged beetroot wine, which gave the dwarfs so much strength that their power increased by a level every time they drank it¡ªmuch like Luther chewing on beetroot. ¡°Is this the human distilling furnace?¡± Durken circled the distilling furnace a few times, understanding each part¡¯s function. He then took up the Gold-touch Stick and materials and began to touch them. What was rough became refined, what was heavy became light, what was perplexing became simple. Before long, the distilling furnace was as good as new. ¡°How is it? Is it eptable?¡± Durken asked humbly. After all, this was a functional piece of equipment. He could improve it, but whether the changes were appropriate would be judged by the professionals. The professional, a sixty-year-old human sommelier, eyed the upgraded distilling furnace with glowing eyes, nodding emphatically, ¡°Yes, yes, more than eptable! A magical distilling furnace¡ªI never dared hope for such a thing in my life. It¡¯s so expensive¡­ you¡¯re wasting¡ª¡± he stopped midsentence, correcting himself, ¡°¡ªyou¡¯re sovish.¡± Upon hearing this, Durken nced at him and tapped the sommelier¡¯s head with the Gold-touch Stick. All his hair fell out at once, leaving a bald sommelier. Indeed, not many were willing to use the magical distilling furnace to brew wine. One furnace¡¯s life span could make an entire batch of wine, and even if all of it was sold, it would not recoup the cost of purchasing the furnace. But Ange didn¡¯t care about that. He even made the core part, the Dposition Rod, out of a branch from the World Tree. This extravagant behavior was enough to make Durken want to punch someone. However, seeing the space filled with branches of the World Tree, Durken gradually got used to Ange¡¯s luxury. Twenty furnaces were lined up in a row, with Ange using the Ring of Bnce to measure all the ingredients going into each one, ensuring that the materials added to every furnace were consistent. Each apothecary jar went through a Purification to ensure cleanliness. Then came the control group. The Instant Death Halo could be a divine technique coveted by all sommeliers. It reduced the entire change process into a short period¡ª ingredients could be sealed in the morning and have wine ready by the afternoon. Ange used wheat, rice, beetroot, Dream Grass, Moon Grass, Kelp Rice, the Fruit of Life, World Tree Nectar, Axe Potato, and more as ingredients, paired ordingly with Moon Spring Water, Holy Water, well water, and seawater. He paired this with strains of the Moon Spring Wine, Dwarven spirit, and several other human liquors, crossed pairs, and repeatedparisons. There were several hundredbinations of these elements. With twenty furnaces in use three times a day, the test would be over in just over ten days. Ange had once spent a few months cultivating ten thousand strains of the Gramineae nt to derive salt-water resistant rice, so this task was nothing inparison. Chapter 574 - 226: I Also Want to Watch Together_2 Chapter 574: Chapter 226: I Also Want to Watch Together_2 ¡°This Dream Algae Rice Wine is delicious, not too strong, with a sweet taste, like fruit juice, suitable for people with low alcohol tolerance.¡± Luther held his wine ss, swirled the light red wine inside and pretended toment. Purple Corpse used a small oak barrel as a cup, had a big gulp, andughed, ¡°I love this Moon Grass Barley Wine, it¡¯s fizzy. Once you take a sip, bubbles burst in your mouth, filling it with barley fragrance.¡± The Great Shaman sipped on the rice honeydew wine, said nothing, just stared into the distance, humming an unknown melody, as if among the untamed wilderness, there was a Shadow Leopard howling in the distant night sky. A bunch of drunken dwarves, eyes shining, scooped a cup from this barrel, another cup from the other barrel, took a sip here with their eyes glowing, and another sip there with their eyes glowing. Don¡¯t expect them to pass judgment; they¡¯re too upied. Lightning was sneakily choosing the cups left untouched by the dwarves, sticking out his tongue to lick the wine, spat out the ones that were too strong, and upon finding a tasty one, immediately bit on the wine ss, then shouldered the dwarf aside to snatch the cup. The dwarf, drunk and annoyed, turned around huffily, but upon seeing that it was Lord Lightning, immediately suppressed his anger. Dwarves fear nothing but ack of wine, which, over these few days, has evolved into ¡®fear Lightning when there¡¯s no wine¡¯. Nothing, not like Lightning has ever gotten them so intimidated. Lightning would rather argue than fight, while dwarves would rather fight than argue, but they can¡¯t beat Lightning in a fight. Hence, they could only endure Lightning¡¯s cuckolding, from dawn till dusk, it was so unbearable that they¡¯ve grown afraid of Lightning since then. Looking at everyone¡¯s reaction, Ange felt that his brewing endeavor must have been sessful. ¡°It¡¯s too sessful. After drinking this wine, what are we going to do if we can¡¯t get any more in the future?¡± the Copperbeard Dwarf asked. Negris asked, ¡°If you were the Dwarf King, which wine would you like the most?¡± ¡°I love them all, love them all!¡± Copper Beard hastily replied. ¡°Isn¡¯t there one that you like the most?¡± Negris asked. Copper Beard thought for a while before reluctantly answering, ¡°If I have to pick one, it¡¯ll be the beetroot wine. It¡¯s funny, and it makes me feel full of strength after drinking it. It would be even better if it could be a little stronger.¡±N?v(el)B\\jnn Hearing this, Ange took a bottle of beetroot wine, cast a decontamination spell on it, and removed the water as an impurity. In a blink of an eye, the volume of the wine was reduced by one-third. Copper Beard took a small sip, his eyes turning red but held back and said, ¡°Make it stronger.¡± Ange cast the spell again, further reducing the volume of the wine by one-third. Copper Beard took another sip, took a deep breath, then gulped down arge mouthful, and belched loudly. His body began to swell. ¡°I¡¯m raging! Ahhhh!¡± Copper Beard¡¯s body erged significantly, his height shot up to 5.2 feet, his skin turned stone-like, his beard stood up straight each, his eyes glowed red, and between breaths, tiny lightning sparks flickered at the tip of his nose. Negris watched in surprise. ¡°Bloodline awakening? Dwarf rage? The embodiment of War God?¡± Durken shook his head, ¡°No, not as extreme as the embodiment of War God, just the rage.¡± Legend has it, dwarves too have the bloodline of Thunder Titan. Of course, the Thunder Titan vehemently refused to recognize them as they were too short. But when a dwarf¡¯s bloodline awakens, their height will increase to over 5.2 feet, and they might even awaken their raging abilities, eventually leading to the embodiment of the War God. Once at the stage of the embodiment of the War God, dwarves can exercise the power of Thunder and swing the Thunder God¡¯s hammer to chase away their enemies. That power would be nearly as formidable as the Thunder Titan throwing javelins. That¡¯s why it¡¯s said they have the bloodline of Thunder Titan. ¡°Ahhhh, I¡¯m so hot,e fight me.¡± Copper Beard feverishly spun around on the spot, his reddened eyes ring around. Though clearly irritable, he was still quite lucid and resisted ring in Ange¡¯s direction. ¡°Arghh!¡± Little Angel was already charging at him with the Holy Light Gauntlet. With thud after thud, the match was evenly fought, Copper Beard kept growling because, unlike Little Angel, he felt pain. Such a test wouldn¡¯t measure actual power, so Ange jumped in, pulled Little Angel back by the neck. Little Angel was kicking around furiously, not willing to submit, ¡°Arghh!¡± Little Zombie immediately stepped forward, patted on his chest, ¡°Arghh!¡± The two shed and began fighting. Luther came forward, used fifty percent of his power to have a go with Copper Beard, the fightsted half an hour until Copper Beard¡¯s raging effect dissipated. ¡°That¡¯s good, that¡¯s good. An ordinary dwarf could hold his own against a High-level Sword Saint using fifty percent of his power after just one sip, I don¡¯t believe the dwarves wouldn¡¯t be interested in this wine,¡± said Durken. Negris nodded in agreement. It¡¯s not just wine anymore, dwarves would view it as a raging potion, a power booster. As he turned around to discuss brewing this kind of wine, he saw Ange taking out another bottle of wine and adding something to it. ¡°What else are you adding?¡± Negris asked, puzzled. Ange opened his palm to show him, it was an Upgrade Bean. ¡°Haha, you¡¯re adding that too? Won¡¯t they explode?¡± The highly potent beetroot wine had Upgrade beans added to it? Luther himself had used these beans to quickly rise from being a beginner to a high-level yer. Chapter 575 - 226 I Also Want to Watch Together_3 Chapter 575: Chapter 226 I Also Want to Watch Together_3 Ange crushed, blended, and sealed it, then ced his finger on it, equivalent to a year of cer aging. He then singled out a dwarf approximately on par with Copper Beard and had him drink it. The dwarf went berserk, only to rupture a blood vessel from the strength of the alcohol after a bout of activity, nearly dying. Had it not been for Ange, he surely would have died. ¡°See, it doesn¡¯t work. The alcohol is too strong. Perhaps we should use the previous recipe,¡± Negris said. ¡°No.¡± Durken had a different opinion: ¡°Brew everything, just a little less of the beetroot wine, and least of this kind. The regr dwarves can¡¯t handle the alcohol strength, but surely the Dwarf King can?¡± ¡°Oh? Isn¡¯t that risky? What if he can¡¯t handle it? If the Dwarf King dies from our wine, it will drive the dwarves mad.¡± Negris expressed his concern. Durken shook his head: ¡°If dwarves are the kind I used to know, as soon as they have the beetroot wine and learn there¡¯s a stronger version, they¡¯d definitely want to taste it; you wouldn¡¯t be able to stop them. All we have to do is keep ourselves out of it.¡± If alcoholics knew about stronger drinks, even if they knew it was poison, they couldn¡¯t resist tasting it. Otherwise, there wouldn¡¯t be dwarves stealing blood-consuming potions to drink. Lord Anthony agreed wholeheartedly with Durken¡¯s view and was very satisfied with the effect of the beetroot wine. ¡°With so many types of wine, I refuse to believe the dwarves won¡¯t be willing to lend us their battle chessboard. They wouldn¡¯t lose a piece of flesh just for looking.¡± Copper Beard was greatly surprised when he received a visitation request from Lord Anthony and ¡®Ascetic Monk An.¡¯ Although he had recently sent twenty thousand tons of food over as a goodwill gesture, he was amazed that Anthony was bold enough toe onto his turf. Did Anthony trust him that much? Copper Beard is the current Dwarf King, self-proimed Thunder God of War, but he knew the truth: the Dwarves no longer had a god. Once, the dwarves had two deities, the War God, and the God of Forging. s, they had all disappeared a thousand years ago. Now, him calling himself the Dwarven God of War was nothing more than a bluff. Not only did Anthony visit in person, but he also brought several carts of fine wine. ¡°This is Dream Algae Rice Wine, this is Moon Grass Barley Wine, this is Dewdrop Wine, this is Beetroot Wine; just a small token of goodwill, I hope Your Majesty will not find it disrespectful.¡± Anthony introduced: ¡°This Beetroot Wine is particrly suitable for the descendants of the War God. It can trigger a frenzy, vastly boosting your strength.¡± Copper Beard¡¯s eyes lit up looking at the various types of wine. Already unable to restrain himself, he held back and asked, ¡°Lord Anthony, you are too kind. If you have a request, don¡¯t hesitate to mention it. Any request within the abilities of us Dwarfs will definitely not be declined.¡± Dwarfs are only straightforward, not foolish. If a grand cardinal deigns to personally bring gifts, it can¡¯t possibly be a casual visit. Just tell them what you want, get it over with, and then drink away! ¡°Uhh, maybe we could drink first¡­¡± Copper Beard¡¯s attitude kind of disrupted Anthony¡¯s rhythm.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om ¡°No, let us discuss first. Anything we can¡¯t do, you can take the wine back.¡± Copper Beard said sorrowfully. Anthony understood Copper Beard¡¯s worry. He presumed it was the wine being drunk, and then Anthony proposed something they couldn¡¯t do, impossible to vomit once consumed. ¡°It¡¯s not a difficult task. It¡¯s just that I want to look at your Battle Chessboard.¡± Anthony said helplessly. Dwarves can be stubborn; once a decision is made, they are not easy to change. In hindsight, it would have been better to let the merchants transport the wine for sale first, allowing the dwarves to sample these pleasant wines. Now, without even having a taste, they could refuse without any guilt. This was a miscalction, made in haste. Upon hearing this request, Copper Beard had a weird look on his face: ¡°That¡¯s not a problem, but I want to watch too.¡± Watching together was a reasonable request, but why would Copper Beard look so odd about it? It was only after Copper Beard had distributed the wine, drank a round to the point where it couldn¡¯t be vomited up, and then brought everyone to the Battle Chess relic, that Anthony understood why Copper Beard looked so peculiar: ¡°Kvada! You can¡¯t even activate the Battle Chess relic?¡± ¡°Yes, if you can activate it, take your time looking. Let me watch as well, I¡¯ve never seen a rey of a god¡¯s battle.¡± Copper Beard replied. Chapter 576 - 327: Activating the War God Chessboard_1 Chapter 576: Chapter 327: Activating the War God Chessboard_1 Everyone knew that the Dwarfs had the War God¡¯s Chessboard, a magical relic built by the God of Forging. It had the ability to simte various war scenarios, a miracle used for war game strategy and tactics. Anyone who enters the relic and gets injured or killed, is immediately unharmed once the war game ends. Not only can battle experience be racked up, but the war game also has a yback function wherein one can grow rapidly by watching the yback and summarizing experiences gained and lost. It was a divine artifact for anymander, allowing them to gain experience at a low cost. If they had to rely on actual battles to gain experience, the costs and consequences would be too severe; many talentedmanders could be killed on the battlefield before they could rise through the ranks. However, what no one knew was that the War God¡¯s Chessboard could no longer be activated. ¡°The War God¡¯s Chessboard hasn¡¯t been able to start since a thousand years ago. My grandfather was in power then. He took my father into the War God¡¯s Chessboard. By the time I had grown up though, the Chessboard couldn¡¯t be activated, and I¡¯ve never even seen a rey.¡± Copper Hammer guided the way forward while speaking in a muffled voice.¡± Ange and Anthony followed behind him, trailed by a team of twelve Thunder Guards, the Dwarf King¡¯s royal guard. Ange curiously observed them. Due to his encounters with the drunken dwarfs, he now had a basic understanding of the dwarf race. Compared to Copper Beard, these Thunder Guards were much taller, each one reaching one meter sixty, about the same as Copper Beard after his Berserking. ording to Copper Beard¡¯s description, dwarfs could grow taller only after their bloodline had awakened. Evidently, these Thunder Guards had awakened their bloodline powers. Butpared to their height, their equipment was even richer. Sturdy, heavy armor,rge duel axes carried on their backs, round shields on their arms, unknown equipment and small axes around their waist, horns on their helmets, spikes on their shoulders, and padding that was barely visible. They were armed to the teeth. The equipment weighed perhaps around two to three hundred pounds, which was heavier than their own body weight, yet they moved nimbly and flexibly, not affected by the weight. Besides their equipment, a piece of ¡®Thunder¡¯ was embedded on the position of their chest armor, slowly emitting a glow. Miniature sparks would asionally sh across it, and Ange could sense a ¡®fecund¡¯ aroma on it. Whenever lightning urred in the wilnds, the air would fill with a certain scent. Although Ange could not smell this scent, he could feel something different infused into the air. When it fell on the fields, the crops would grow more robust. If it were beans, their roots would fix these elements into the soil. Even in the following year, when other crops were nted, they would also grow more robust. This was the ¡®fecud¡¯ aroma. Seeing Ange stare intently at the ¡®Thunder¡¯, Copper Hammer said: ¡°Is Lord Anthony interested in the Heart of Thunder? Hey, you, show it to Lord Anthony.¡± The name of Ascetic Monk An had been spread throughout the entire universe after the disaster relief of the believers of the Goddess of Harvest. All upper echelons were curious about this suddenly appearing powerful ascetic monk. Unfortunately, the monk¡¯s system was independent of the entire Church of Light. Nobody could get more information, including Guliani. The curia simply didn¡¯t have a record of the ascetic monks. However, this was perfectly reasonable. The Shepherd of God only needed God¡¯s recognition. Was it necessary to register with the Shepherd¡¯s Guild?n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om The pure holy power on Ange was the best proof. Even Guliani couldn¡¯t doubt it. Especially after this recent incident where he appeased the disaster-stricken people by kneading bread, and then judged some instigators with Original Sin Shackles, Ascetic Monk An was not just an ascetic monk, but was fully qualified topete with Anthony, Dyson, and others for the papal election. All the data that could be collected was put on Copper Hammer¡¯s table early on. In order to establish a good rtionship with this mysterious ascetic monk, Copper Hammer was very happy to showcase the Dwarfs¡¯ pride, the Heart of Thunder. This was a magic equipment forged by the God of Forging, possessing the powerful Thunder Power. The chief Thunder Guard pped the Heart of Thunder forcefully, and with a click, the Heart of Thunder radiated brightly. The guard who activated the Heart of Thunder stomped hard, and electric sparks burst out from his soles, propelling him into the air as if aided by a push. He jumped and drew out his dual axes in midair. Electric shes exploded from his body, and the Thunder Power was channeled into dual axes. He first swung down creating an electric sh that struck a roadside statue. Next, the guard hefted his dual axes, descending from the sky. A surge of electricity gathered on the axe de and struck the statue in a thunderous disy. The statue was smashed to powder by what looked like a giant hammer made of thunder and lightning. ¡°p p p.¡± Anthony quickly apuded, while Ange icked his head. Copper Hammer ran over and gave a swift kick to the buttocks of the Thunder Guard, who was still maintaining his cool pose, and roared: ¡°Why are you smashing a statue when I asked you to show it off?! That statue has been around for hundreds of years, and it¡¯s still in such good shape! And why did you smash my statue?! Are you dissatisfied with me?!¡± Among the Dwarfs, there were many craftsmen and stonemasons, so the road was lined with statues, which were mostly of ancient Dwarven Kings and heroes. The statue that the Thunder Guard had just smashed happened to be that of Copper Hammer. The Thunder Guard, having taken the kick to his rear, fled the scene. Having been projected onto Ange¡¯s body, Negris had not dared to speak. However, he understood that the Heart of Thunder was likely an amplifier with the power of Thunder. Once activated, the enemy¡¯s attacks would carry thunder damage and could even be unleashed to cause long-range damage. Chapter 577 - 327: Launching the War God Chessboard_2 Chapter 577: Chapter 327: Launching the War God Chessboard_2 It¡¯s pretty useful. The Thunder Guards themselves are already quite powerful, capable of extreme rage, and, with the amplification of the Thunder Power, they might even be able to duel Luther one-on-one. There are twelve Thunder Guards here. If each one has the strength of Luther, that¡¯s equivalent to twelve High-level Sword Saints, a formidable strength indeed. After scolding the dwarves who were recklessly smashing things, Copper Hammer led everyone into the War God¡¯s Chessboard. Upon entering the War God¡¯s Chessboard, Ange was immediately struck by a sense of familiarity. ¡°Doesn¡¯t it feels like arger version of the Illusion Simtion Formation?¡± whispered Negris. Indeed, it did. Ange bought several Simted Magic Formations from Auburnli. One of them was kept inside the Temple of Rest, and you could y simply by reaching your hand in. Ange first simted in the formation. After a sessful simtion, they would grow the real thing, elerate its growth with the Instant Death Halo, and then import the growth data into the formation for the next simtion. In this way, the data in the Simted Magic Formation was updated very quickly. The druids of Steris Academy umted data on an annual basis, but he did it on a daily basis, yielding significantly more targeted results. He has already simted the growth environment of Divine Wood, Elf Beans, and God Flowers in the formation, and made a new discovery: grinding the withered Divine Wood into powder and mixing it in small quantities into the fungal mats could dramatically increase the yield of sacred mushrooms. The War God¡¯s Chessboard before him, looked like arger version of the Illusion Simtion Formation. The t ground was divided into square blocks by lines. If derived from his experience with Simtion Formations, once activated, all sorts of terrain scale maps would appear here. Copper Hammer, unaware that Ange had seen through the War God¡¯s Chessboard at a nce, assumed they had never seen one before, and took it upon himself to exin: ¡°This is the War God¡¯s Chessboard. Here, you can select different terrains, climates, and army strength to carry out battle chess simtions. You can simte individually, fight against each other, or team up topete. ¡± He pointed to some circr arrays at the edge and continued, ¡°Stand there to enter the battlefield.¡± After the introduction, Copper Hammer sighed regretfully, ¡°But since eleven hundred years ago, the War God¡¯s Chessboard has not been able to start. At that time, my grandfather was still in power. He dispatched our best dwarf craftsmen and even invited human Alchemists and Goblin artisans to study it, but they could not find the cause.¡± ¡°So, Your Majesty Copper Hammer, you¡¯ve never been able to start the War God¡¯s Chessboard, have you?¡± Anthony asked. ¡°Yes. If you can find a way to start it, I¡¯d be very happy,¡± replied Copper Hammer. ¡°Well, we need to study it first,¡± said Anthony, looking disheartened. Frankly, Anthony felt they had been shortchanged. These dwarves weren¡¯t straight-up, especially this Copper Hammer, trading several carts of fine wine just for something they couldn¡¯t even start. Once started, they had to watch it with these dwarves, meaning they paid a hefty price for the wine and might be able to view some previously inessible yback records. Bada, shouldn¡¯t they be the ones to pay instead? If the dwarf asked someone to repair the War God¡¯s Chessboard, payment would be obligatory. Regardless of the results, if someonees to work, they have to be paid, covering food, transportation, and dismantling costs. If an assistant is brought in, then the payment must be made for two persons. Now it was the other way around. They spent money, put in effort, and paid in kind to help the dwarves repair something. It was a lose-lose situation. It was their own agreement, and even with tears in their eyes, they had to give it a try. Anthony pulled Ange aside and began discussing with Negris and Durken, who were projecting onto Ange. ¡°How is it? Do you understand? Are you confident you can fix it?¡± inquired Anthony. Negris remained silent. For such things, Durken was the professional. Negris dared to makements when Durken was not around because even if he made mistakes, no one would know. Now, he didn¡¯t dare; he would be called out on the spot. ¡°This is too easy. Isn¡¯t it just an Illusion Magic Array? If there are materials, I can even build a new one. Let¡¯s go check the core.¡± Durken chimed in. For an Alchemist who built both the World Transfer Station and the Temple of Rest, the War God¡¯s Chessboard was indeed not a challenge. Looking at the core, he identified the issue at once. ¡°The Driving Core is missing,¡± Durken stated. ¡°Driving Core?¡± Anthony eximed, turning to Copper Hammer in the distance, ¡°Your Majesty Copper Hammer, where did the Driving Core go?¡± Copper Hammer, who was holding the head of the Thunder Guard who had smashed his statue and twisting his pointer knuckle against his forehead, responded without looking back: ¡°I don¡¯t know what you¡¯re talking about, everything is in its original ce.¡± Alright, there was clearly no help to be gained from the dwarves here. They would have to rely on themselves.N?v(el)B\\jnn After examining the vacant core position for a while, Durken concluded, ¡°Any Mechanical Construct, magic building, Teleportation Array, etc., requires a source of energy, which is the Driving Core.¡± ¡°The World Transfer Station I set up has several driving modes, which are the Demon Crystal, Soul Crystal, or directly using Soul Energy, so there are multiple cores for redundancy. If one fails, other modes can be used to drive it.¡± ¡°This Illusion Magic Array is not so advanced. It has a single drive nucleus and a single energy source. If it loses its only energy source, it can¡¯t start. After examining these divine scripts and energy circuits, the energy source should be Power of Faith, also known as Divine Power, Faith Elemental Force, and the likes.¡± Chapter 578 - 327: Activating the War God Chessboard_3 Chapter 578: Chapter 327: Activating the War God Chessboard_3 Negris was also observing andmented: ¡°This should be a Forging Divinity Pattern, the divine rune of the God of Forging.¡± ¡°Eh, you recognize the Forging Divinity Patterns? I could only roughly make out that it was some kind of divine rune, but I couldn¡¯t identify whose it is.¡± Durken was surprised. ¡°It¡¯s no big deal. As long as it¡¯s a well-known deity, there¡¯s no divine rune I don¡¯t recognize. But you¡¯re more impressive. You identified the problem at a nce.¡± ¡°It¡¯s nothing, it¡¯s nothing. It¡¯s way below the level of the World Transit Station. You are the impressive one.¡± After engaging in a mutual exchange ofpliments, Durken became worried: ¡°If we used a different driving method, activating it would be quite easy. But using divine runes isplicated. We must find someone who possesses the divine power of the God of Forging.¡±n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Anthony quickly turned to ask: ¡°Your Majesty Copper Hammer, can you find a believer of the God of Forging?¡± Copper Hammer was in the midst of an arm-wrestling match with one of his Thunder Guards. Upon hearing this, he replied: ¡°Already tried, it didn¡¯t work. Couldn¡¯t start it.¡± Once Durken heard this, he understood: ¡°The Divine Power is too weak. This type of driving core can¡¯t be activated by too many people at once. It¡¯s not that it couldn¡¯t work, if there was the synergy of the Magician Group¡¯s elemental abilities, it could be possible.¡± Operating such arge magic Array with only one or two people is definitely not enough unless you¡¯re like Ange who can directly utilize the Soul me. If the abilities are insufficient, then more people would have to contribute. But the problem of synergy arises when trying to rally numbers. Every wizard¡¯s power is uneven, to coordinate them to the same level requires rigorous and long-term training. If there isn¡¯t a well-trained group of divine arts practitioners, then one can only find a single devout believer of the God of Forging. ¡°Kvada, no wonder the dwarves couldn¡¯t start it. What believer can drive such a massive array all by themselves?¡± Negris mentioned. ¡°Yeah, actually, making an Illusion Magic Array so huge is meaningless. Making it the size of a chessboard would be fine. It not only saves effort but doesn¡¯t affect the projection¡­¡± ¡°You mean like this one?¡± ¡°Er, why do you guys seem to have everything?¡± Durken wondered. ¡°So, what do we do now? We can¡¯t possibly find the God of Forging to drive it in person, right? We don¡¯t even know if the God of Forging is still alive or not. Or should we demolish and rebuild another one?¡± ¡°We could rebuild another one, but there are no records. How about we take the previous half piece of nk divine rune and engrave the Forging Divinity Pattern of the God of Forging into it, and impersonate the God of Forging?¡± Durken suggested. The divine rune that Ange had grown had dissipated half of its energy, which had been used to start the Witch¡¯s Pce. After the energy bnce was reached, the divine rune didn¡¯t continue to dissipate, leaving half of it behind. ¡°Will it work?¡± ¡°Let¡¯s try.¡± This was an unprecedented conception, because there had never been a nk divine rune before. But the results were promising, and they seeded on the first attempt. cing the divine rune, the entire War God Chessboard began to operate. Copper Hammer stopped arm wrestling, hurriedly ran over, and asked in amazement: ¡°It really started? How did you do it?¡± Anthony mysteriously replied: ¡°The great power of Light, Your Majesty Copper Hammer, this involves the secrets of us, the Gods of Light. After watching, we will take away the things inside.¡± Copper Hammer reluctantly agreed, though he was somewhat regretful. ¡°Come on, start the yback, thest record of the divine battle, begin.¡± Copper Hammer, following the ancestral method, clumsily started the Array. A sh of light passed, and numerous silhouettes appeared within the square area. The War God d in the War God Armor and the God of Forging holding the Hammer of Forging appeared in the center. Across from them, two Gods of Light emanating holy light were confronting them. PS: Please vote at the end of the month Chapter 579 - 328: Forging Divinity Made? _1 Chapter 579: Chapter 328: Forging Divinity Made? _1 The World roars with the War God¡¯s wrathful growl, ¡°Despicable God of Shadows, why did you betray us!?¡± The God of Shadows appears like arge humanoid light bulb, gathered from the luminescence into a mass of shadows, simr to a person carrying a huge magicmp on their back. Because the light is too intense, one can¡¯t discern the details of the shadow, glimpsing only what possibly might be the movement of eyes and nose. The somewhat perplexed voice of the God of Shadows rings out: ¡°Why are you still alive?¡± ¡°The king, he sheltered us. The War God and the God of Forging formally pledged allegiance to the Undead King in exchange for his protection!¡± The War God roars. The voice of God of Shadows sounds, ¡°You, you¡¯ve abandoned the Light in favor of serving the dark wraiths. You are guilty.¡± The War God grows irate: ¡°Damn you, Kvada, you were the first to betray us. Say it, why did you betray us? Weren¡¯t we allies!?¡± ¡°In the presence of Light, only Shadows exist; there¡¯s no need for allies. The Faith Storming, I just need to borrow your two godhoods.¡± The God of Shadows responds indifferently. ¡°Ah! Go to hell! I¡¯ll smash your godhood first!¡± The War God angrily roars, while hurling the Hammer of Thunder at the God of Shadows. All one could see is a t-head hammer spinning, wrapped in fierce arcs of electricity, smashing towards the God of Shadows. A battle hasmenced between the War God, God of Forging, and the Shadow and Arbitration gods of the Church of Light.N?v(el)B\\jnn This is a fierce battle; the God of Shadows gets his head smashed by the War God¡¯s hammer, while he himself is also split in two after being hit with the Arbitration Sword. With the mighty War God killed, the God of Forging no longer stands a chance against the God of Arbitration and has his head chopped off. The dying God of Forging stares at the God of Arbitration in anger as thetter takes everyone¡¯s divinity, including that of the God of Shadows. Then, a beam of light from an unknown source exploded. The godhoods of the War God and God of Shadows were shattered on the spot; and both the God of Forging and God of Arbitration severely injured. The illusions gradually fading, everyone is left dumbfounded. They absolutely hadn¡¯t expected to witness such a record¡ªthe gods of the dwarves were deceived by the Gods of Light? The War God and the God of Forging pledged loyalty to the Undead King? The God of Arbitration used their divinity to resist the Faith Storm? ¡°What is a Faith Storm? Is it what His Majesty meant by Soul Storm? What is this thing? It shattered two godhoods on the spot and even injured the God of Arbitration who was hiding in the back? Is the God of Arbitration only injured?¡± Anthony murmurs. Then, a roar sounding from not too far exims, ¡°The despicable Gods of Light dared to deceive the War God and the God of Forging! Brothers, let¡¯s kill the Archbishop first and then smash the Church of Light!¡± The voice, the tone, is identical to the War God in the illusions just now. Ange thought the War God had been resurrected. But when he turns to look, Copper Hammer charges over with twelve Thunder Guards. Anthony felt a chill down his spine: ¡°Oh no, we are portraying the Archbishop and the ascetic monk roles, we¡¯ve be the enemy?¡± The collective charge of thirteen dwarves is formidable. The Dwarf King Copper Hammer with bulging muscles, hardening, grasps tightly the hammer in his hand, bursting out arcs of electricity. With his hands tightly on the hammer¡¯s handle, the Dwarf King leaps vigorously. The hammerhead rips apart massive arcs of electricity, as if ripping apart vast areas of space, then converges them all together, smashing down forcefully. If the demonstration of the Thunder Guard on the way here is considered a one on the strength scale, then Copper Hammer¡¯s blitz is at least five times more powerful. Anthony is terrified, when the power exceeds the normal level by multiple times, any more sophistication bes meaningless. Even if the hammer hits the ground next to him, the explosive force would be enough to send everyone flying. Just as Copper Hammer¡¯s hammer is about to strike down, Ange raises his hand. A purple-gold handbone seizes the hammer, and under the watchful eyes of everyone, Ange transforms into a purple-gold skeleton. ¡°The¡­ the Lord of Mourning?¡± Copper Hammer, hammer and all, is lifted into the air by Ange. He is shocked by this abrupt change. One, he¡¯s shocked that Ascetic Monk An suddenly turned into the Lord of Mourning, and two, he¡¯s shocked that the Lord of Mourning stopped his strongest attack barehanded. Kvada, is this an illusion? Am I still in the War God¡¯s chessboard illusion? Anthony rubs his hands together and says, ¡°Your Majesty Copper Hammer, we are allies, allies. Like the War God and the God of Forging, we have sworn allegiance to the Undead King.¡± ¡°Alli¡­ allies?¡± Copper Hammer mutters and let go of his hammer,nding on the ground. Ange puts the hammer into the Resting Pce and starts to bring things out. Dozens of Thunder Titans, Night Watchmen, foul-mouthed horses and the like, surround Copper Hammer. The transformation time is up. Ange reverts to his original form. Copper Hammer looks at him in fear, not knowing if Ange¡¯s transformation time had ended or if Ange, having taken control of the situation, had voluntarily changed back. Anthony responds with a bitter smile, ¡°Your Majesty Copper Hammer, who would have thought that such a thing had happened. The Gods of Light are despicable, they deceived the War God and the God Forging.¡± Copper Hammer responds subconsciously, ¡°Yes, despicable, betraying their allies.¡± ¡°No no no, Your Majesty Copper Hammer, it was the Gods of Light who broke the covenant, they deceived us.¡± Anthony emphasizes. Copper Hammer, sensing the surging holy power within Anthony, is a little lost. Chapter 580 - 328: Forging Divinity Made? _2 Chapter 580: Chapter 328: Forging Divinity Made? _2 After reading the records from the War God¡¯s chessboard, Copper Hammer was filled with boundless rage. The War God and God of Forging were plotted against by the Gods of Light? And their divinities were used to resist the Faith Storm? These despicable humans! Kill them! Without hesitation, Copper Hammerunched an attack against the Archbishop of Light and Ascetic Monk An, wanting vengeance for the War God and the God of Forging. To his surprise, they turned out to be The Lord of Mourning, effortlessly deflecting his strongest move, before telling him that they were on the same side¡­ This turned everything around too quickly; so much so that it was hard for him toe to terms with it. ¡°You¡¯re impersonating the Archbishop of the Church of Light?¡± Copper Hammer asked, bewildered. ¡°No, I am the Archbishop of the Church of Light, the substitute Pope of the Holy Church.¡± Anthony replied with an earnest smile and sincere expression. ¡°So¡­ you betrayed the Church of Light?¡± Copper Hammer asked. ¡°How could you say that? It was Light that betrayed us.¡± Anthony corrected. ¡°Right, right, it¡¯s Light that betrayed us.¡± For the first time, Copper Hammer felt the charm ofnguage. After furthermunication, Copper Hammer gradually confirmed one thing. Archbishop Anthony and Ascetic Monk An were indeed heretics of the Church of Light. But now, one was the Archbishop of the Eastern Diocese, and the other, a much-revered ascetic monk, with a good enough reputation to qualify for the election of the Pope. They should have been from different factions, but after watching the yback, they realized that the War God and the God of Forging had pledged loyalty to the Undead King, making them part of the same faction. ¡°Who would believe it if told that just yesterday, the Church of Light and I were allies, but today we are enemies. Yesterday, we were allies and today¡­¡± Copper Hammer sighed, ¡°we still are.¡± Changed factions, yet the ally remained the same. Who would believe that? ¡°Exactly, no one would believe it if you said it out loud. Also, we would deny it, calling it nder. Once we step outside, I will still be the Archbishop of Light and he will remain Ascetic Monk An.¡± Anthony said, with a hint of warning. Copper Hammer felt a sense of unease and hastily nodded in agreement. Right, who would believe it? There was no proof, so everyone would undoubtedly think he was spreading rumors.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om He realized he¡¯d have to keep his mouth shut to avoid offending his ally. However, it¡¯s challenging for a dwarf to keep a secret ¨C who wouldn¡¯t want a drink? Once drunk, he¡¯d probably forget whatever he¡¯d said. They extracted the Driving Core from the War God¡¯s chessboard, preparing to leave. Copper Hammer asked timidly, ¡°Considering we are allies, could you sell us the Driving Core?¡± Anthony nced at Ange, and seeing no reaction from him, replied, ¡°This is a divinity. What will you use to buy it?¡± ¡°Hiss ¡ª a divinity?¡± Copper Hammer¡¯s eyes widened like copper bells; he shook his head, ¡°I can¡¯t afford it.¡± After sending the others back to the Resting Pce, Ange and Anthony left the dwarves¡¯ territory. Watching their retreating figures, Copper Hammer hesitated, opening his mouth a few times but finally managed only to murmur, ¡°My hammer¡­¡± His hammer had been taken by Ange. It was the hammer of the Dwarf King, embodiment of all the forging skills of the dwarven race with top-notch materials and craftsmanship, it was gone, just like that. After the dwarves were out of sight, themotion between Negris projected onto Ange and Durken finally became audible. After watching the entire rey, their argument never ceased, focusing primarily on what the Faith Storm truly was. ¡°The Faith Storm is the same as the Soul Storm; it¡¯s just a different name.¡± Durken put forth. ¡°If the Faith Storm is the same as the Soul Storm, then what is the Resting Wind? We¡¯ve discussed before that the Soul Storm could be the Resting Wind. His Majesty warning the witch to be cautious of the Soul Storm is him warning her to be cautious of the Resting Wind,¡± Negris countered. ¡°That means our previous conclusion was wrong, the Resting Wind couldn¡¯t have caused such an effect.¡± Durken argued. ¡°Can it not be that the Soul Storm and the Faith Storm are two different things?¡± Negris asked, puzzled. ¡°No, if it was the Resting Wind, the King wouldn¡¯t have needed to warn the witch initially; only that peculiar sh should be feared,¡± replied Durken. Mentioning that sh, Negris¡¯s attention inevitably drifted. Toozy to continue debating the differences, he asked, ¡°What exactly was that sh? It was so peculiar; it exploded two divinities in an instant, even injuring the God of Arbitration hiding behind.¡± ¡°I can¡¯t tell, it was just a sh of light, who knows what it was,¡± Durken replied irritably. ¡°Huh, the damn War God¡¯s chessboard; it couldn¡¯t record more clearly. Even a door lock could record clearer,¡± Negris criticised. Unable to help himself, Anthony interjected, ¡°It may not be the War God¡¯s chessboard¡¯s fault; perhaps the sh of light was just like this.¡± ¡°What do you mean?¡± Negris questioned. ¡°I don¡¯t know exactly when the sh of light urred, but during the period the King disappeared, I didn¡¯t sense any anomalies. Meaning not everyone can see that sh.¡± Anthony exined. ¡°Not everyone can see it? So who can?¡± Durken inquired. His question seemed more like a guiding one, to steer their thoughts towards his query. Who could see it? What was missing during that time? The Gods! ¡°So only gods can see the sh?¡± Negris asked. Chapter 581 - 328: Forging Divinity Made?_3 Chapter 581: Chapter 328: Forging Divinity Made?_3 ¡°But why would the king warn the witch to be careful?¡± Durken muttered. Suddenly, a thought shed through the minds of the three: ¡°The witch has Godly Glyphs!¡± Anthony pped his thigh abruptly, unable to contain his excitement over this conjecture. If the Faith Storm, or Soul Storm, are the same thing, and they are targeting Gods, then the most likely possibility is that the witch possesses Godly Glyphs, which is why the king warned her to be careful. ¡°Alright, let¡¯s assume this for now and move on to another question. Why does His Majesty want to kill all the gods? Let¡¯s assume, under what circumstances would His Majesty need to kill all the gods?¡± Negris queried again. ¡°Could it be that he wants to, like the God of Shadows, use Godly Glyphs to withstand the Faith Storm?¡± Anthony spected. Durken, however, had a different opinion: ¡°The Faith Storm is likely a storm of belief power. Perhaps he wants to cut off the origin of the storm. Fewer gods mean fewer origins for the storm.¡± ¡°A chain reaction? Each Godly Glyph affected would provide energy for the storm?¡± Negris asked. Negris, Anthony, Durken, all are top intellects of their time, each with their own specialties. When they gathered together, they quickly came up with a heap of assumptions and conjectures. They had no idea which one was the truth. Ange listened quietly, his Boundary-crossing Hand had long reached into space, leisurely watering and fertilizing. People¡¯s joys and sorrows differ. While they chatted away fervently, Ange found their noise nuisance, nting was more fun. For a farming skeleton, nting is his main duty. After harvesting the Godly Glyphs, the God flowers wilted. Ange dug it up and nted new seeds. After some time, new flower buds grew, producing new Godly Glyphs. Without the Instant Death Halo to speed up the process, it would be a long one. The Elf Druids of the past had spent hundreds of years growing the Divine Body. However,pared to Godly Glyphs, Elf Beans will be his main nting target moving forward. After repeated simtions, he has summarized the various growing characteristics of Elf Beans. They can grow and sprout without the fertile soil of Heaven. This will greatly break the nting limitations. If Elf Beans could be grown in ordinary soil, it would be a food revolution, because one Elf Bean is enough to satisfy a normal person¡¯s meal requirement. Several rounds of Elf Beans in Heaven have been harvested. He now has enough seeds to expand the nting area of Elf Beans. But before that, he needs to store the half piece of Godly Glyph. The dried flower bud that has been dug up would be a good ce to store the Godly Glyph. After drying out, it has shrunk to the size of a watermelon, in the shape of a cypress ball, perfectly fitting the Godly Glyph. However, after digging it out, Ange found that the Godly Glyph had undergone some strange changes. ¡°It¡¯s grown?¡± Negris and Durken were called back. Ange nodded. The change was very subtle, maybe it had grown by one ten-thousandth, but it had indeed grown, instead of diffusing. Previously, if the Godly Glyph was left in the open, it would slowly diffuse, that¡¯s why Ange used the dried flower bud to hold it.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om But now, the Godly Glyph not only didn¡¯t diffuse, it even grew. And the fact that it didn¡¯t decrease was a change in itself. ¡°Could it be these divine inscriptions? Kvada, don¡¯t tell me you actually created God of Forging¡¯s Godly Glyph with these divine inscriptions.¡± Negris stammered, then couldn¡¯t help but excitedly say: ¡°If so, then you can relentlessly nt the nk God Statues and etch the divine inscriptions of the vanished gods. Wouldn¡¯t that remake all known Godly Glyphs? Conveniently, I know all the divine inscriptions. Let¡¯s do it this way.¡± PS: Only two days left, unused monthly tickets will expire. Chapter 582 - 329 I know how to pick farm fertilizers, do you? _1 Chapter 582: Chapter 329 I know how to pick farm fertilizers, do you? _1 As it turns out, Negris overthought things. Engraving divinity patterns could not turn a nk God statue into a Forging Divinity statue. Rather, after adding divinity patterns, the God statue became consolidated and would not dissipate easily, thus creating an illusion of ¡®growth¡¯. Regardless, with the God statue bing stable and no longer needing to be secured inside a flower bud, where was the most suitable ce to put it? The cksmith¡¯s shop in the Goddess of Beauty City was vast in size, fully equipped with everything from a magic furnace to a water-power forging hammer, all the way to a mechanical vehicle. It had almost all the advanced equipment one could think of. The money allocated to Vaguli each month was all invested here. Why would a goblin engineer pour money into a cksmith¡¯s shop? Could cksmithing work qualify one as a goblin engineer? Whether building a protective construct for the world travel hub or creating a mechanical harvester, each required iron and steel parts. Forging was, therefore, a part of a goblin engineer¡¯s daily routine. Perhaps to amodate him, the previous group of drunken dwarves wanted to be assigned here, which infuriated Vaguli: ¡°I don¡¯t need these crude and foolish dwarves here, take them away!¡± ¡°Who are you calling a dwarf! You short and thin ground rat!¡± Copper Beard, furious, rolled up his sleeves. ¡°What, you want a fight? Bring it on, I will take you all on by myself.¡± Vaguli ran back into the shop and emerged sitting inside a mechanical construct. It was a bear-like mechanical construct, burly and massive, standing over two meters tall. Vaguli sat in the open cockpit, moving his hands and feet. The bear-shaped construct mirrored Vaguli¡¯s movements. ¡°Being able to operate a mechanical construct is no big deal, why don¡¯t youe down and fight me one on one.¡± Copper Beard didn¡¯t call hispanions to help, but he was not reckless enough to challenge a steel construct. Just then, they felt a bright light beside them, as if a powerful magic spotlight had been switched on. Turning their heads, they saw Lisa, who had brought the dwarves over, grinning brightly. Her body surged with holy power as she rubbed her hands together and said, ¡°It seems like you all are ignoring me now?¡± After spending two days scrubbing toilets with the dwarves, Vaguli was both physically and mentally exhausted. He returned to his cksmith shop and lied down at a random spot. An engineer sleeping on the construction site was reasonable, and being single, no one would bother him. He could sleep anywhere as long as it wasfortable, even in the corners of his cksmith shop. A carpet smeared with engine oil was all he needed for a peaceful sleep. However, during his sleep, Vaguli felt something watching him and he suddenly opened his eyes. After searching for a while, Vaguli found something that didn¡¯t belong in the cksmith¡¯s shop ¨C a statue of the God of Forging. He kicked his goblin assistant and apprentices awake and roared, ¡°Who dared ce a dwarf¡­ a small man¡¯s statue here? Is this a provocation? Who! Who was it¡­¡± His assistant quickly said, ¡°It was Lord Ange.¡± ¡°Who is so considerate of me? So it was Lord Ange. Lord, you¡¯re too kind to me, even inviting the God of Forging to bless me. I¡¯m so touched, may the God of Forging bless me.¡± Vaguli said, pretending to be moved to tears. ¡°Lord Ange has left.¡± The assistant reminded him.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Vaguli stood there, speechless. After a while, he dejectedly said, ¡°Why would Lord Ange ce a statue of the God of Forging here? Couldn¡¯t he ce one of himself? We goblins are hardly under the jurisdiction of the dwarves. I would rather pray to the Undead God.¡± Despite his disappointment, he did not dare throw away something Ange had ced there. He decided to ignore it as much as possible ¨C out of sight, out of mind. Whether it was psychological or not, ever since the statue was ced there, his sess rate in forging or casting seemed to improve. His assistants and apprentices also shared the same sentiment; hence they often pay their respects, sneaking in a bow when Vaguli wasn¡¯t looking. Hearing that Ange was nning to ce the Forging Divinity God statue in a fitting location, the Bronze Dragon, in a yful mood, immediately thought of Vaguli. The thought of having a dwarf¡¯s statue ced within the territory of an atheist goblin engineer was exciting. Of course, it was precisely because Vaguli was an atheist that he dared to do this, lest he offended Vaguli¡¯s beliefs. Ange merely thought the God statue, with the Forging Divinity patterns engraved on it, should be ced somewhere rted to forging. After cing it there, he was fully invested in the cultivation of Elf beans. From his simtions, Ange discovered that there wasn¡¯t a suitable ce for cultivating Elf beans within his territory; the Elf beans didn¡¯t like sunshine and couldn¡¯t tolerate scorching sun. Among the ces he had been to, the most suitable ce for cultivation was the Elf Forest, where Elf beans grew naturally in the moist open areas covered with organic matter in the forest. Unfortunately, the Elf Forest was not his territory and thus the beans could not be nted there. The only ce with a simr environment was the forestnd in the Kingdom of Luosha. With some modifications and the introduction of some trees, one could tweak the environment and climate to be appropriate. Upon arriving at the Luosha Forest Land, he prepared the hillside and transnted the germinated Elf beans from the interspace. Then, he supplied the insect manure. The usual Insect Ash Liquid was made by burning insects into ashes and then extracting the nutrients for water part. However, the Elf beans didn¡¯t like this kind of manure. They preferredpost, where insects were fermented in the soil. So Ange patiently tested dozens ofpost groups with different proportions, finally selecting the most appropriate one, which was ced around the base of the nts. Chapter 583 - 329: I can choose farm manure, can you?_2 Chapter 583: Chapter 329: I can choose farm manure, can you?_2 After several days of hard work, they finally covered the entire hillside with elf beans. No sooner had he ceased to work, Anthony sought him out. In his conscious space, Anthony spoke to everyone with a strange look on his face: ¡°The Dwarf King just informed me that Dyson himself went to visit him, hoping to form an alliance and attack the Goddess of Beauty City. He asked if I should agree.¡± ¡°¡­¡± Negris didn¡¯t know what to say. ¡°That¡¯s really bad luck for him, you guys just left and he arrived. Didn¡¯t the Dwarf King blow his brains out on the spot?¡± The Gods of Light plotted against the War God and the God of Forging. If this happened in any other religion, it would spark an endless holy war. Dyson had actually sought out the Dwarf King? If his brain was sted open on the spot by the Dwarf King, it would be hrious. ¡°So he came to ask me if he should set a trap to lure Dyson¡¯s men together and then get rid of them all at once,¡± said Anthony. ¡°Is this¡­ is this an idea from Copper Hammer or from you? It doesn¡¯t sound like a straightforward Dwarf,¡± Negris wondered. Even when the Dwarfs had presented the fine wine and held back their terms, Negris had found it remarkable. They didn¡¯t seem like the typically blunt and straightforward Dwarfs. Anthony sighed: ¡°Yes, we underestimated him. But it¡¯s also normal. Once you¡¯re in a position of authority, even the most candid character has to be crafty. Today, the Dwarfs are not having an easy time, and they have to tread carefully to survive. If it wasn¡¯t a matter of faith, I would wonder if he would swallow his pride.¡± Negris paused. What could have made the straightforward Dwarf swallow his pride? Was it survival? After a moment, Negris thought of another issue: ¡°Why does this Dyson keeping after us? Didn¡¯t he fear us, even after we wiped out one of his Dragon Knight troops?¡± Anthony shook his head: ¡°I think it¡¯s precisely because of the Dragon Knight troop that he¡¯s after you. He probably thinks there¡¯s plenty of food here.¡± What was mostcking in the Western District currently? It was food. The fields by Fallen Dragon Lake that the Dragon Knight troop sawst time led Dyson to believe that the Goddess of Beauty City had food, and this solidified his decision to take the city. ¡°Won¡¯t he send people to investigate? The crops haven¡¯t ripened, and what¡¯s ripe has been sold out,¡± Negris said helplessly. ¡°¡­I think he did send someonest time. The ck Warrior was caught by Rogge,¡± Anthony said. ck Warrior, a first-ss intelligence gatherer and assassin, had disappeared without a trace once he was sent out. Dyson wouldn¡¯t dare to send anyone else now. For now, the City of Beauty and Fallen Dragon Lake had be an information ck hole. Apart from some hearsay, there was only word from those who had escaped from the Dragon Knight¡¯sst siege. Most people who fail tend to exaggerate their losses, inte the situation. Someone said there were abundant fields by theke, full of heavy rice grains. Someone said the rice field was floating on theke with golden grains stretching as far as the eye could see. Someone else said a giant tree in the middle of theke blocked the sun. Filtering out the obvious exaggerations, like fields floating on theke and the sun-blocking giant tree, Dyson confirmed one thing: there were vast fields by theke. Where there are fields, there can be grain. The Goddess of Beauty City has grain. Before, all Dyson wanted was the wealth of the Goddess of Beauty City. But now, he coveted the city¡¯s grain even more. Because Anthony made an effort to save the victims of the disaster, Dyson¡¯s apathy seemed particrly heartless. Voices of dissent against him had begun to rise in the countries suffering most from the disaster. After all, he had only just taken over the Western District and his foundations were unstable. With disharmonious voices arising, he waspelled to take appeasement measures. ¡°So he did send¡­ What do we do then? Maybe the Copper Hammer is right, we should just kill him and solve everything,¡± Negris suggested. Now, Dyson was the Archbishop of the Western District. Killing him and his men would create a power vacuum in the Western District, giving Anthony more room to maneuver. The current problem is, where does he get his confidence from? He knows Lord uses Dragon God Transformation, but he still dares toe. Could it be that he has found a way to restrain the Dragon God Transformation?¡± Anthony said. This was indeed a problem, everyone was wondering, when Ange suddenly informed Negris that someone was looking for him. Turned out it was Naeli. After a brief conversation, Negris returned to the Consciousness Space, saying: ¡°I think I know where Dyson¡¯s confidencees from now. Just now, Guliani sent a messenger to Dragon Ind, found Brooks, and presented the agreement signed between the Dragon n and humans years ago that the Dragon n should not interfere in human internal disputes. Could it be that he thinks Lord Ange¡¯s Dragon God Transformation is Brooks¡¯ trick?¡± ¡°Pfft¡­ Even Brooks doesn¡¯t know about Dragon God Transformation, how could he pull tricks?¡± Anthony burst outughing. ¡°Hmm, so Brooks decided to stay on Drake Ind recently and stay in his original form, creating an alibi. It¡¯s just right that ck Night Raven has sorted out the order of the ocean, Brooks will go to back her up.¡± At this point, Negris turned to Anthony and said, ¡°Speaking of which, when ck Night Raven was cleaning up the ocean, she confiscated a lot of food, cloth, and small dried fish, amounting to several tens of thousands of tons. She ns to donate them to the curia on Drake Ind in exchange for a few Knight of Honor titles.¡± The Knight of Honor is an honorary title, previously used tomend those who aren¡¯t part of the Church but have made outstanding contributions to it. However, with the disappearance of the Gods, this title gradually degraded into a means for the high-ranking members of the Church to umte wealth ¨C you could buy a title as long as you had money. ¡°No, no, no. Donate it to the ind, who knows how many of those parasites will intercept it there. Just donate it directly to me instead. I¡¯ll decree as bishop, and grant her one Grace Knight and one Knight of Honor title.¡± Anthony hurriedly said. Negris¡¯s wicked humor came again, grinning, ¡°Alright, I¡¯ll let Brooks tell her. Originally, she just wanted to buy a Knight of Honor title, but now it¡¯s changed to a Grace Knight title, that¡¯ll scare her.¡± You can purchase a Knight of Honor title, and regional churches can grant it, but only dioceses can grant the Grace Knight title, and the dioceses wouldn¡¯t be interested in just a little money. They are generally bestowed on those friends of appropriate standing.n/?/vel/b//in dot c//om Wait, that¡¯s not right. ck Night Raven unified the ocean, surely she¡¯s a person of ¡®appropriate standing.¡¯ As long as she showed ¡®friendliness¡¯, whether in the west or the east, they would be very happy to give her a knight title. Kvada, once again Anthony managed to ¡®benefit without cost.¡¯ After the discussion, finally, both Negris and Anthony turned to Ange, asking, ¡°Lord, what do you think?¡± No matter how much they discuss, the final decision was still left to Ange. If Ange doesn¡¯t agree, they would be at a loss. Anthony¡¯s own resources alone are insufficient to fulfill all the ns they¡¯d discussed. Ange, who¡¯d listened to the whole process, felt a little annoyed. This was already the third time such a thing had happened. The first time, before Dyson could evenunch his attack, Ange had led his people to eliminate him. The second time, Dyson didn¡¯t appear, only sending the Dragon Knight squadron. Now this was the third time, so annoying, interrupting his farming work, exterminate it! Having made up his mind, Ange went back to Goddess of Beauty City to prepare. Just as he had returned to the Goddess of Beauty City, an elf found him. Aestolia knelt respectfully before Ange, her eyes tightly shut, and said reverently, ¡°Lord Ange, please allow me to follow you. Truth Mage, Aestolia, begs to serve you.¡± Ange tilted his head, refusing, ¡°You don¡¯t farm.¡± ¡°Eh?¡± Aestolia was taken aback: ¡°I really have to farm?¡± Last time, Ange had turned her down with the same words. She had thought it was just an excuse. She, a dignified Truth Mage, was asked to farm? What a waste. But now he was saying this for the second time. With the way things were going, could it be that it wasn¡¯t an excuse? No, she couldn¡¯t let this go on. Aestolia pointed to Lisa, ¡°But she doesn¡¯t know how to farm either.¡± Lisa, who had been enjoying the drama, slowly straightened her back. Her eyes shed with fighting spirit: What¡¯s she trying to do by dragging me into this just because Lord is rejecting her? Is she thinking she can pick on me? Lisa lightly lifted her skirt, curtseyed, and smiled, ¡°I know how to pick farm manure, do you?¡± Chapter 584 - 330: Let Me Think About It Again _1 Chapter 584: Chapter 330: Let Me Think About It Again _1 Watching Aestolia delicately picking up the two-meter-long stick to poke at the farmers¡¯ manure containers gave everyone a profound sense of discordance. She is a Goddess of Truth and Law and, moreover, so beautiful. If the elves found out, would they be livid? However, the sight of a holy, delicate little angel flying around with a bucket brought a sense of harmony to everyone¡¯s minds. If even the Holy Spirit Angel isn¡¯t exempted, who does the Elf Archmage think she is? Lisamented, ¡°I thought she would back away from the challenge. I never expected her to be so determined. Now, I¡¯m in trouble ¡ª I¡¯ve deeply offended her. Why does she insist on serving the master?n/o/vel/b//in dot c//om Negris nced at the Tree Herder on Tree Man Gaur¡¯s body and mumbled, ¡°Elves¡¯ lives are tough. Their god has absconded. Moreover, she¡¯s not here to serve Ange. She¡¯s here to serve the Little Sapling.¡± The elves¡¯ lives are hard. The God of Life used to answer their prayers asionally, but now there¡¯s no response at all. No one knows if he has been burned to death or what. The elves are having a tough time after losing the God of Life. They are like a bunch of pampered children who have yet to grow up; without their protection, even survival became arduous. The Tree of Life is not just their god. It is a giant tree of resources, providing them with an endless supply of goods. Its branches can be used to make bows, wands, clothing, and its fruits are edible. When hollowed, it can provide shelter. As long as they had no special needs, elves could spend their entire lives living in the Tree of Life without getting their feet dirty. Even their offspring could y around carefree. The God of Life would protect her, preventing her from falling off the tree to her death. But recently, three elves have fallen and died, two of which were young, and one was an adult elf. Yes, without the protection of the God of Life, even adult elves could fall off the tree. So, the Tree of Life was no longer a safe ce to call home, and they had to move to the ground. In fact, they had already moved to the ground when the God of Life got angry and released a green fog. They retreated to the ground, but that was only a temporary measure. Now, they find that they might have lost their deity forever. The move from tree to ground was not merely a change in living conditions. It also increased their living expenses. Now they needed to assign some elves specifically to act as nurses and teach the young ones. In addition, beds, chairs, tables, pots, bowls,dles, basins, even tents, and curtains, all became necessities because there were mosquitoes and insects on the ground. When they lived in the Tree of Life, these harmful insects couldn¡¯t reach them. Since they don¡¯t produce these items, they had to buy them from humans. This forced many elves to return to the trees, disregarding the possibility of falling to their death. They had no choice but to be more careful and set up ropes to cordon off their activity areas. Most elves adapted well to tree life, providing they took suitable care of the young and elderly. However, this was just one of the issues. Without the protection of the God of Life, they had to adapt to various other changes. Previously, it wouldn¡¯t rain within the realm of the Tree of Life. All the rainwater would turn into mist, sprinkling evenly over all the crops. But now, it rains. Especially since the Tree of Life was burned, although Ange managed to save it, its leaves were far less lush than they used to be. The rainwater would seep through the branches and soak them, turning them into ¡®soaked elves¡¯. Here I need to exin, ¡®Soaked Elves¡¯ is a famous human painting depicting a delicate elf soaked from head to toe. With a startled look on her face, the delicate yet startled, shocked yet charming expression is widely acimed, regarded as one of the top ten works in human art history. However, elves are by no means delicate. But the problem is even the strongest elf, once soaked, is prone to illness. Oh, right. Illness. Now the chance of elves getting sick is much higher than before. Some elves even suffer from insomnia. In short, every aspect of their lives has been impacted. But they could ovee all these ¨C the only insurmountable problem was that the Tree of Life had ceased to produce the Fruit of Life. Elves are long-lived, with a lifespan close to a thousand years. However, what most people don¡¯t know is that only elves who have eaten the Fruit of Life can live for a thousand years. If an elf has not eaten the Fruit of Life since their birth, their lifespan would shrink to two hundred years. If the God of Life never returns, that would mean, from here onwards, all newly born elves will only have short lifespans. In the next few hundred years, newly born elves will age and die quicker than their parents. This will continue until all long-lived elves who have eaten the Fruit of Life are gone. It was only then that Aestolia truly realized how ridiculous her previous thoughts were. It was never that the God of Life belonged to the elves; it¡¯s the elves that couldn¡¯t live without the God of Life. Without his protection, their lives became unbearable. All elegance and delicacy are gifts from the God of Life. They are absolved of the most trivial concerns of survival essentials. Elves need not hunt or gather food each day, nor do they need to explore the forest or mine for resources. They don¡¯t need to deal with the hassles of childbirth and child-rearing and hence have plenty of time to be elegant and refined. Aestolia thought back to the parasites on the big trees ¡ª how simr are the elves to them? If it were the past, Aestolia would still hold the belief that: I am an Elf Archmage. I am here to serve the Little God of Life. You should feel honored and grateful for the benefits. The Novel will be updated first on this website. Come back and continue reading tomorrow, everyone! Chapter 585 - 330 Let Me Think Again_2 Chapter 585: Chapter 330 Let Me Think Again_2 She dare not think like that now. She was but an insignificant creature abandoned by the gods, or more pitifully, just a mere creature. It was her own doing, just like what Kael¡¯danil constantlyined about: the God of Life does not favor elves¡­ With such clear understanding, she approached this task with a positive attitude. Picking farm fertilizer? Big deal, she could do that. But¡­but¡­ the stench from the buckets sent shivers down her spine. Lisa had the advantage in this regard; she couldn¡¯t smell anything. Obviously, wielding a long stick was not going to lift anything, it almost knocked over the bucket. The contents sloshed about, spattering everywhere. Aestolia screamed and lunged several meters away, even though she was wrapped inyers of shield. Even sparks couldn¡¯t touch her. However, she didn¡¯t want them to touch her shield either. If she were to be touched, she would rather do without it. Even if the shield was invisible energy, it was disturbing. Luckily, she wasn¡¯t touched. She then smacked her forehead in realization. She had forgotten that she was a Truth Mage. There was no rule against using magic to do the lifting. Aestolia pointed her fingers, and a surge of strong elements flowed into the stick in her hand. Once Aestolia started tackling the problem with magic, things became simple. It was just a matter of lifting two wooden buckets with a stick. For a Truth Mage, this was too simple a task to require magic. The elements flowed into the stick, forcefully altering its Elemental Affinity. Normally, this would take a long time as the stick was made of ordinary jujube wood, not an Elemental nt. It had low Elemental Affinity and would require a lengthy period of Element infusion, or alchemy. But Aestolia liked the forceful approach. The stick wouldn¡¯t be needed for long, so she could afford to brute force it. The stick, with its altered Elemental Affinity, could now be moved using typical elemental maniption techniques. The stick flew on its own, plunged into the bucket, and started moving on its own. A lone stick, carrying two wooden buckets, floated away. Aestolia kept her nose covered and followed it floatingly. Well, she did it. But by the time she returned, Ange was nowhere in sight and everyone else was scattered in all directions, too busy to watch her carry the fertilizer. Aestolia felt dismissed and wronged. She pursed her lips, endured it, and encouraged herself, ¡°Does this mean I¡¯m allowed to stay? Alright, I¡¯ll stay.¡± As she was scouring the streets for Ange, she suddenly felt a shift in energy and swiftly turned her gaze towards a building in her vicinity. At the entrance of the building was a vibrant set of nails. ording to Lisa, this was a nail salon. A beautiful and adorable little girl stood at the door, admiring her glittery hands under the sun. Each angle gave the patterns on the nails a different look. It was very dazzling. However, Aestolia felt a strong aura from this little girl, one that put her on high alert. This was a mage of the same level as her. As Aestolia abruptly turned her head, the little girl sensed it too. She looked up and saw an elf. The little girl quickly pulled her hands back and slowly floated over, smiling, ¡°Hello, want a manicure?¡± Calling her a child!? She, a centuries-old elf, was being called a child by a little girl!? Before she could react, the little girl extended her glittery hand, giving her a card: ¡°Mention my name and get 10% off.¡±@@novelbin@@ Aestolia took a look and saw a in ck wooden card with a name written on it: Death Star, Auburnli. Aestolia immediately remembered the name. As a Truth Mage, she, of course, was familiar with the intelligence of strong individuals equal to her level, even if she had never met them personally. ¡°So it¡¯s her. No wonder she called me a child. Is this the Witch? How can she be so beautiful? Manicures? What kind of monsters inhabit this ce?¡± Aestolia eximed. In Goddess of Beauty City, she randomly ran into a creature as powerful as her. No wonder Ange had little regard for her service. At this moment, the floating Auburnli came back, waving at her: ¡°Come on, let¡¯s join in the fun.¡± When Aestolia followed Auburnli to the outskirts of the city, she saw that a majority of Ange¡¯s top-level forces had gathered. It was clear that there was going to be some major action. Aestolia felt tense, with the first thought in her mind being: If I perform well, I won¡¯t have to go back to lifting fertilizer. Auburnli also floated over enthusiastically: ¡°Are you guys going to fight? Count me in.¡± Ange nodded nonchntly. Negris looked at Auburnli and Aestolia joining in, a bit flummoxed. Undoubtedly, Auburnli represented the Republic of Steris, and Aestolia represented the elves. Coupled with Brooks, who had negotiated with the offshore forces, the Dwarf King and Anthony, who were secretly in collusion, didn¡¯t it mean that out of the seven powers in the interdimensional security meeting, five were participating in this action, preparing to deal with the sixth? Glory be, Dyson could now rest in peace. Unbeknownst to Dyson that he was the target, he was also preparing for battle. A few days ago, he had agreed with the Dwarf King to provide his high-end forces. The Dwarf King would provide aerial support and ground troops, and they wouldunch a surprise attack on the Goddess of Beauty City. Chapter 586 - 330 Let Me Think Again_3 Chapter 586: Chapter 330 Let Me Think Again_3 The Dwarf goat cavalry and Griffin knight groups were his most valued forces. However, with the lesson learned from the dragon knight group, Dyson didn¡¯t feel very secure, so he continued to reveal his cards. Through the teleportation array, he arrived in an unknown dimension. Stepping out of the teleportation array, what caught his eye was an endless sea of bleached bones scattered across the ins ahead. Dyson held his breath, casting a breath-holding spell on himself; this dimension had no air. Other than the undead and element creatures that didn¡¯t require air, living beings could not survive. Sensing the movement, a skeleton lying by the edge of the teleportation array raised its head to look at Dyson before lying back down. Dyson suppressed his Power of Holy Light, not daring to leak even a drop of it. Otherwise, if he startled the countless undead in the vicinity, he would meet a tragic end.@@novelbin@@ Leaving the teleportation array, he walked on. From time to time, skeletons would raise their heads to nce at him before lying back down. Dyson¡¯s appearance had been passed around by the king here, and everyone recognized him. Ange had actually seen the three types of undead that Dyson dispatched: Gold Tooth Gobang, the undead germ corpses thrown into the Resting Abyss, and the ck Warrior who infiltrated the City of the Goddess of Beauty. Dyson imed they were captives from the Land of Fallen, yet he never revealed who they were loyal to, not even to Guliani. Indeed, even with Guliani¡¯s help to ignite the Divine Fire, Dyson kept this matter hidden while exining many other things. Passing through countless corpses, Dyson arrived in an empty space in the center of the ins, devoid of corpses. From above, a vague imprint ¨C the Forgotten Mark of the God of the Forgotten ¨C could be seen. Within the range of this mark, a purple-gold skeleton sat on a raised piece ofnd, a fist propping up its chin, as if deep in thought. Sensing Dyson¡¯s approach, a purple me ignited within the eye sockets of the purple-gold skeleton. It looked up at Dyson, bewildered, ¡°Who are you¡­?¡± Familiar with this situation, Dyson responded adeptly, ¡°I am your servant, Dyson.¡± ¡°Servant? Who am I¡­?¡± the purple-gold skeleton asked in confusion. ¡°You are the Lord of Mourning, Steadfast Locke.¡± ¡°Steadfast Locke? That doesn¡¯t seem right. I dislike this name. Why am I here?¡± the confused purple-gold skeleton asked. ¡°You battled with the God of the Forgotten and were marked with the Forgotten Mark, making you lose many of your memories. Only the Undead God can help you restore them. I am the servant sent by the Undead God to serve you. Theckeys of the God of the Forgotten are once again on the move; Lord Locke, I need your strength to help me eliminate the enemy.¡± The purple-gold skeleton sat there in thought. After mulling over it for a while, it squatted down. After a long time, it finally voiced its frustration, ¡°I can¡¯t remember clearly, let me think some more.¡± Dyson sighed inwardly with pity. It was another failure. Of course, this purple-gold skeleton wasn¡¯t Steadfast Locke, but as it was marked by the Forgotten Mark, it didn¡¯t remember who it was either. As long as he kept repeating, perhaps ten thousand times until it epted the new identity he fabricated for it, he would fully control it. ¡°Take your time, don¡¯t rush. However, the dogs of the God of the Forgotten are about to break through soon, you must help me stop them,¡± Dyson said. The purple-gold skeleton began to ponder again. After a while, it seemed to have thought of something. Stretching out a hand, it only had four finger bones, and the pointer finger bone was missing. As it moved, a corpse suddenly crawled out from the ground. Its skin was deathly pale, and its expression was vacant, like a fresh zombie. However, the imprint on its forehead struck Dyson deeply ¨C was this the embodiment of the God of the Forgotten? Chapter 587: 331 Gods Power? Which God?_1 Chapter 587: Chapter 331 God¡¯s Power? Which God?_1
Leading the Skeleton of the God back, Dyson asked, ¡°Do you have a name?¡± The Skeleton of the God was puzzled for a while but after Dyson repeated the question, it understood that Dyson was trying to converse with it. Its soul trembled as it responded, ¡°I have forgotten.¡± ¡°Really? You have even forgotten your own name? Does the divine power even work after death?¡± Dyson grimaced, resigning to saying, ¡°Then I¡¯ll call you Divine Bone.¡± The Skeleton of the God remained silent, expressing no understanding. ¡°Divine Bone, Lord Locke has requested that you cooperate with me to eliminate the minions of the God of the Forgotten. Due to my unusual status, I am currently hidden within the Church of Light, collecting information for Lord Locke. I have to keep this a secret, hence why you¡¯ll have to do the work alone. I will guide you towards your target when the timees. Also, do you possess any abilities or skills?¡± Dyson asked. Divine Bone continued to look confused. ¡°I mean, do you have any kind of skills orbat strategies?¡± Dyson sighed. Dyson was already disappointed that he couldn¡¯t trick the Lord of Mourning intoing out. Now, he was saddled with this dolt. Judging by its demeanor, it appeared not very intelligent. When he noticed the divine seal on its forehead, Dyson was thrilled. A skeleton derived from a divine body should be quite powerful, right? But after a few words, he realized that a skeleton is, in the end, just a skeleton. After repeating his question several more times, Divine Bone finally understood what Dyson had asked. Suddenly, Divine Bone arched its body and started howling silently. Dyson couldn¡¯t hear this silent roar and was wondering what Divine Bone was up to when the ground began to boil. Countless skeletons began crawling out of the ground, sprinting towards his location. ¡°A skeleton summoning? How is that supposed to help?¡± Dyson murmured. Just as he finished speaking, a space rift emerged next to Divine Bone, out of which sprang a Golden Skeleton.
¡°Spatial summoning!¡± Dyson abruptly shouted in shock. It was just the beginning. Space rifts kept rapidly appearing around Divine Bone, from which emerged one Golden Skeleton after another, at least two dozen of them.@@novelbin@@ Upon arrival, these Golden Skeletons looked left and right before their gaze focused on Dyson. In many knight novels, summoners are described, and some of these low-level summoners are able to summon beings from other spaces to assist them in battle, a concept which is quite irrational. The power required to prate space is immense and beyond the reach of low-level summoners. Only extremely powerful Space Mages like Hiludi, an Arcane Magician, can quickly prate within the same ne. If wanting to cross into another ne, precise coordinates and rigorous calctions are needed. It¡¯s not something Hiludi can easily achieve. So, spatial summoning is definitely not an easy feat. Otherwise, the trade stations and Fortress of Heaven would lose their value. However, this Skeleton of the God managed to casually summon a group of Golden Skeletons to its side. Furthermore, it seemed far from exhausted, rather it seemed like it had run out of Golden Skeletons to summon. Could it be that Silver Skeletons did not pique its interest? As Dyson was pondering, he suddenly realized that the Golden Skeletons were all marching towards him. ¡°Don¡¯t attack! I am on your side!¡± Dyson conjured a Holy Shield in front of him, blocking the charge of one of the Golden Skeletons¡­ Luckily, Divine Bone quickly restrained them. Otherwise, dozens of Golden Skeletons would have torn Dyson apart, creating an unfortunate incident in history: Archbishop Dyson convokes reinforcements, only to be beaten to death by them. Thankfully, such a tragedy didn¡¯t ur. However, catching sight of his Holy Shield, Divine Bone looked curiously at Dyson. ¡°On a mission, on a mission. I¡¯m currently undercover in the Church of Light. It¡¯s normal for me to have learned a few Divine Light Magic tricks. Alright, let¡¯s go. We need to keep a low profile. I will lead you out of here.¡± Dyson took out various items such as leather armour, hoods, and targets from his storage ring, and meticulously cloaked Divine Bone and the Golden Skeletons from head to toe. He then teleported them to the Master ne. First, he decided to find a secret ce to hide the Golden Skeletons and then lead Divine Bone away. After making these arrangements, two days had passed. Dyson, along with Divine Bone, headed north of the ck Mountain Kingdom to reunite with the dwarf army. His body-double had already led his men to merge with the dwarf army to circumvent the ck Mountain Kingdom, andunch an attack on the Goddess of Beauty City from the edge of the desert. This time, all of Dyson¡¯s elite forces had been assembled. These were his confidants, whom he wouldn¡¯t usually mobilize without reason. The Land of the Fallen was holding back Harvey¡¯s Undead Army. Having undergone construction for over a thousand years, it was a force to be reckoned with. He had always thought that the Dragon God Transformation belonged to the Dragon n. If the Giant Dragon n did not interfere, Dyson felt that his forces would be enough to conquer the Goddess of Beauty City. He allied with the dwarves to minimize casualties. Guliani¡¯s ambassadors also issued a warning to the Dragon n, forbidding them from intervening in the continental struggles, hoping that Brooks would listen. However, if Brooks did notply, then¡­ When his excitement took over, he could feel a surge of power welling up within him. But at the thought of Divine Bone behind him, he immediately suppressed it. Just as they were about to reach their rendezvous point, Dyson noticed something odd. There were people tilling thend on the side of the road. Yes, tilling thend. Who on earth would be farming in such a deste wilderness? For the sake of discretion, Dyson had specifically chosen a secluded spot to the north of the ck Mountain Kingdom, separated by a mountain, where there was hardly any foot traffic. And yet, there were people farming here? Chapter 588: 331 Gods Power? Which God?_2 Chapter 588: Chapter 331 God¡¯s Power? Which God?_2
When Dyson spotted the farmer, the farmer detected them in return, looked up at him and then beyond him, his gaze falling on the Divine Bone behind him. The field was newly reimed, with tidy furrows neatly arranged in vertical and horizontal lines. It was clearly the work of an experienced farmer. Considering the scale of the field, it would have taken more than a day or two to aplish. Seeing this, Dyson breathed a sigh of relief. At least it wasn¡¯t a trapid for them but a real farmer at work. Dyson nced, then stopped paying attention. A humble farmer and the honorable Archbishop eyeing him, both were to his honor. Yet, the farmer kept staring at him, or rather, at the Divine Bone behind him. It was wrapped tightly from head to toe; Dyson wondered what the farmer could possibly see. Perhaps because it was wrapped so tightly that it incited the farmer¡¯s curiosity? Nevermind, a minor punishment, ¡°Fear!¡± he eximed The simplest one-word Holy Word Technique, fell upon the farmer as Dyson spoke it. However, the expected screams or fright didn¡¯t ur. The farmer tilted his head, his gaze finally returned to Dyson. Dyson frowned, a feeling of familiarity arising in him. That gaze, where had he seen it before? At that moment, an armored figure came from a distance, retreating with both hands in fists and waist bent. As it moved, it left a straight furrow in its wake. Soul Armor? Diggers? Dyson¡¯s mouth unconsciously opened in surprise. What the hell, using Soul Armor to cultivate fields? Isn¡¯t that luxurious? Hold on, this Soul Armor looks familiar, where has he seen it before? Dyson quickly got the answer when a Holy Spirit Angel carrying a bucket flew over.
Ange¡¯s ambush on Dyson had taken ce at night, inplete darkness. They had not clearly seen each other¡¯s faces, only sensing each other¡¯s presence which was hardly noticeable before a fight. However, the practiced gaze, the familiar armor, and the familiar Holy Spirit Angel, instantly brought back Dyson the scene from that day. He screamed in fright, ¡°Assassin! It¡¯s you all!?¡± Ange felt puzzled and tilted his head. He was actively tilling thend here, how did he be an assassin? When all the five major powers of the dimensional security conference conspired to assassinate Dyson, one of them, the Dwarven Army, was a coborator. Ange, the farming skeleton didn¡¯t have to do anything, just watching them scroll would do Would Ange waste time watching them fight? Of course not, he just happened to see a wastnd on his way, which was perfect for farming. So he brought Little Zombie and Little Angel here. While tilling half of thend, two beings came up, one human and one non-human. The non-human possessed an unmasked, mighty soul.@@novelbin@@ Ange had encountered the third strongest soul. The strongest was Harvey, the second was the Great Sage and the soul in front of him was third. While puzzled, the human suddenly used a Holy Word Technique on him? Why is it a ¡®question mark¡¯? Because Ange didn¡¯t feel any damage, so he doubted whether the other party was greeting him. However, the presence carried by this Holy Word Technique felt familiar, where had he seen it? Calling Little Zombie and Little Angel over, he quickly realized who it was after gesturing to Dyson, ¡°Dyson!¡± ¡°As expected, it¡¯s you guys! How did you know I would pass by here? There¡¯s a traitor!¡± Dyson stomped his foot in anger, pounded his chest forcefully and shouted to the Divine Bone, ¡°Kill them, they are assassins.¡± They¡¯ve put in a lot of effort to assassinate him. From cultivatingnd, hauling water, digging furrows¡­ almost fooled him. He was furious that his enemies had calmlyid out so many things. He never thought that they were merely farming. As he banged his chest, it seemed as if something broke. A stream of light began to flow from his chest, quickly enveloping his entire body and transforming into the dignified robe of an Archbishop. A scepter also appeared. As soon as the scepter appeared, he saw the armored man push forward with his hands, which were covering a hoe. His body¡¯s Breath of Death then surged. Dyson felt an ominous feeling, immediately nted the scepter into the ground, his body¡¯s Holy Light surged, and a ck light shone on him ¨C Breath of Death Shockwave. Little Zombie and Little Angel had picked up bad habits. Whenever they encountered a powerful enemy, they would start with their strongest attack. The ck light revealed a battered Dyson. His once-imposing robe was now tattered and looked as if it would shatter at any moment. Half of the hair and eyebrows on his body had been burnt off, still smoking and causing continuous damage. Holy Light caused additional damage to the Undead while Breath of Death did the same to the users of Light Techniques. Dyson frantically patted the smoking areas of his body, extinguishing the infiltration of the Breath of Death, and yelled at the Divine Bone, ¡°Quickly attack, kill them, they are the minions of the God of the Forgotten, attack now.¡± The Divine Bone, puzzled, tilted its head. This situation had somewhat exceeded its cognitive abilities. Was the one who used the Breath of Death Shockwave an enemy? Nevermind, he didn¡¯t want to think about it. Anyway, the King¡¯smand was to help him, so he should listen to him. The Divine Bone bent its body, its soul roaring. The roar of the soul turned into waves of shock that spread forward. The insects and such on the ground were all blown to pieces, but it was immediately interrupted by a beam of light. Little Angel spread his True Wings and transformed them into Light Wings. Stretching his four wings forward, he pushed ¨C Holy Light sh. Chapter 589 - 331 — The Power of God? What God? _3 Chapter 589: Chapter 331 ¡ª The Power of God? What God? _3 If someone had been keeping track, they would notice that the Holy Light sh of the Little Angel was growing more potent each time it was used. When the beam of light hit the Divine Bone, it instantly vaporized its armor and clothes, leaving only a skeleton behind. This skeleton was not burned by the additional damage from the Holy Light, but instead absorbed the residual Power of Holy Light, causing a faint light to emanate from the bones. This strange transformation made Ange tilt his head. The Little Angel also titled its head, looking at Ange with confusion.@@novelbin@@ The Divine Bone¡¯s roar was interrupted and it was forced to retreat several steps by the Holy Light sh, but it did not appear to be seriously injured and once again started growling. One by one, dimensional rifts opened, and Golden Skeletons emerged. The first thing the Golden Skeletons that came through the rifts did was to lock their gaze onto Archbishop Dyson, who was bursting with holy power. Dyson yelled out in frustration, ¡°I¡¯m on your side, look there, over there!¡± The Golden Skeletons looked nkly in the direction Dyson was pointing. They were Golden Skeletons, possessing a certain level of wisdom and ability to think. Although their intelligence weren¡¯t high, they weren¡¯t easily fooled. Clearly, this man radiating an obnoxious power was more like an enemy to them. Turning their heads, they saw Ange pulling out a massive Golden Skeleton. Big Bone rubbed its eye sockets, its deep voice grumbling: ¡°What do you want me to do? I was sleepingfortably.¡± Ever since Big Bone found out that Ange had Liquid of Breath of Death, it had fallen in love with bathing. Like Locke Durken, it enjoyed soaking in a barrel filled with Liquid of Breath of Death. However, due to itsrge size, there was no barrel that could amodate it. Therefore, it had to curl up with its knees hugged up to its chest, simr to arge figure who stole a child¡¯s bathtub. All the others had gone to ambush Archbishop Dyson. Only Big Bone was left in Ange¡¯s space who could move,pelling Ange to drag it along. Little Angel pointed at the Divine Bone: ¡°Roar!¡± Big Bone said hesitantly: ¡°Fight? That¡¯s not good. What if it gets broken?¡± Little Zombie pointed at the Divine Bone: ¡°Roar roa!¡± Big Bone helplessly said: ¡°Alright.¡± Turning towards the Golden Skeletons and the Divine Bone, Big Bone bared its teeth and ws, roaring fiercely. The Golden Skeletons looked at each other in dismay. Prompted by what they perceived as a challenge, they turned their gaze to Big Bone and the Soul Energy inside their eye sockets began to burn fiercely. With a sharp screech, over twenty Golden Skeletons charged forward. Big Bone sighed, resignedly striding forwards. ¡°Be careful, don¡¯t touch, hey, watch out.¡± Though it was yelling warnings, it kept swatting away the Golden Skeletons. Big Bone was a three-meter-tall Giant Skeleton. Its soul was naturallyrger than others, so even though it was a Golden Skeleton, it could take on several dozen regr Golden Skeletons in a fight. Dyson looked at the stationary Divine Bone and then at Ange who was also standing still. He sighed. ¡°Utterly useless. Looks like I have to handle this myself.¡± Things weren¡¯t supposed to be like this. Ideally, his avatar with arge army should be advancing on the Goddess of Beauty City. He had nned to release these Golden Skeletons at an opportune time, not stuck here alone. ¡°Well then, let me show you the power of a god.¡± Dyson sighed deeply, a special form of power erupting from him. Power of a god? What god? Ange reached out and pulled out the Life-saving Hammer of the Goddess of Redemption. After a moment¡¯s thought, he also took out the Hammer of Thunder from the Dwarf King, one in each hand. The Ring of Bnce materialized behind him. The divine runes on the ring were weird; they now featured some marks of sickles and rice panicles. PS: I¡¯m feeling quite downcast. My former leader and senior in the profession passed away yesterday. Sigh, he was only a few years older than me. Life is so fleeting. Some people asked me why I always write about skeletons. It¡¯s probably because I¡¯m afraid of death. I hope there¡¯s a new, evesting world after death. May his soul rest in peace. Chapter 590 - 332: The Purest is Nikola_1 Chapter 590: Chapter 332: The Purest is Nik_1 In the camp of the Dwarven Army, within an ordinary military tent, the core decision-making team under Ange was discussing there. ¡°This fort is very standard, with palisades, pitfalls, magic ground, anti-air crossbows, uninterrupted Eyes of a Mage¡¯s Eye, defence towers. It¡¯s well-organized, and any attack from any direction will encounteryered firepower. They are indeed the elites that retreated from the Land of Fallen,¡± Negris admired. Anthony grimaced, somewhat unimpressed, but he said nothing. Given the chance to arrange, he could make it better and tighter. However, he could not deny that the current setup, though less than perfect, was more than enough to handle their current situation. They were, after all, only encamped temporarily. Even Anthony had to admit that breaking such a defence in a short time would be quite challenging. If given more time, the enemy would upgrade their defence. It would not be easy to breakthrough without suffering heavy losses. Aside from failing to build a wall, they had constructed everything a temporary camp should have. But this was just a mere temporary camp. What were they on guard against? Dwarves? Unlikely, Dwarves could easily enter and leave their camp, and quite a few Dwarves had already entered to have drinks. If they were not guarding against dwarves, then their construction was a result of habit. The elites that withdrew from the Land of Fallen kept their former style and camping habits, per usual, constructing the camp as it now stands. What are the core elites? This is them. Though poverty-stricken, the Land of Fallen Diocese¡¯s army that was stationed on the front line against the Undead Army for a long time was well-trained, well-equipped, and of superiorprehensive quality. ¡°It doesn¡¯t matter how well the fort is built. We¡¯re not nning to attack the camp anyway. Once everyone starts marching, we¡¯ll rush over to cut them down,¡± the Dwarven King Copperhammer rasped. Anthony shook his head: ¡°If they keep this habit, you might not get that close so easily. They will surely maintain a certain distance from their allies while marching, maybe even break up into three segments. Even if they lose a part, their overall strength will not be greatly affected.¡± ¡°What should we do then? Should I send some people to infiltrate them and then suddenly start an attack?¡± Copperhammer asked. Anthony shook his head again: ¡°If too few people infiltrate, they won¡¯t be effective, and if too many people infiltrate, are you willing to risk their lives?¡± They weren¡¯t willing. The dwarves had not participated inrge-scale warfare for a very long time. Losing fifty people would already be considered a serious matter, and it would take some time for everyone to ept the loss of hundreds or thousands of lives. As Anthony had guessed earlier, if it weren¡¯t for the matters regarding the War God and God of Forging, Copperhammer, given his character, might have truly borne the insult as if nothing had happened. The Dwarves did not have the capacity to go to war against humans independently. This time, it could be regarded as the start of them pledging allegiance to Anthony.@@novelbin@@ While Anthony was not a servant of the Light, he had indeed be an archbishop. Now that he has established his own Holy Church, Copperhammer¡¯s cooperation could simply be seen as ¡®choosing sides within the group¡¯, rather than a betrayal of the alliance between the dwarves and the Church of the Light. Even the various monarchs and kings under the rule of the Church of Light might criticize Guliani: ¡°You can¡¯t even retain the loyalty of the obstinate dwarves, what use are you?¡± Not only could they avenge the War God and the God of Forging, but they could also support Anthony and help hollow out the Church of the Light. The dwarves would gain two powerful allies and wouldn¡¯t have to bear too much pressure, such as economic blockades. All necessities could just be bought from the Eastern Diocese under Anthony¡¯s rule, which is even more prosperous economically. After much thought, Copperhammer made the decision to fully side with Anthony, and his decision was fully supported by all the Thunder Guards. All of the Thunder Guards that have seen the rey of the ¡®War God¡¯s chessboard¡¯ were filled with rage, wishing they could head into human territory immediately and blow the heads off those servants of Light. However, all things considered, the dwarves are not in a good condition. They were no longer the Dwarven Empire that could rival humans. ¡°We could fly above them in airships and drop magic eggs.¡± ¡°No, if they are prepared, then aren¡¯t the magic eggs just weapons we¡¯re delivering to them? A single wind magician could blow the magic eggs off course. What if they end up falling on us instead?¡± ¡°We can have Lord Ais go down with the magic eggs while creating a Forbidden Magic Domain.¡± ¡°But what will happen when the magic eggs explode? Will Lord Ais be blown up too?¡± ¡°Could we send Rogge to take out theirmand?¡± ¡°Why don¡¯t we send Naeli instead? Always thinking of sending me to my death?¡± The discussions were all over the ce. Actually, it wasn¡¯t that they had no solutions to deal with these enemies. If they really wanted to, with two truth mages, a bunch of Arcane Night Watchers, plenty of Purple Skeleton Titans, several live and dead giant dragons, an archbishop who was also a mystical warrior, and a pseudo-demigod. Oh, and also a Fallen Angel. The name Shamara carried more deterrence to the followers of the Church of Light. Nobody wanted to be contaminated and turned into Fallen People. With these powerful fighters, they could force their way through the camp. The only reason they were here discussing was that they didn¡¯t want to do so mindlessly. In the end, Anthony said, ¡°Actually, Dyson is the core that holds this force together. Many of them have spent a long time in the Land of Fallen, growing up there since childhood. They no longer feel a sense of belonging to the Master ne. Without Dyson, they would crumble instantly.¡± ¡°All I need to do is send people to preach a bit and promise some conditions, and it would be easy to pull most of the people to my side. After all, serving the Eastern Diocese is also serving the Light.¡± Chapter 591 - 332 The Purest is Nikola_2 Chapter 591: Chapter 332 The Purest is Nik_2 At this point, everyone burst intoughter, the air filled with the atmosphere of joy. ¡°So, if we have the chance to pinpoint his location, we¡¯ll have Lord Ange take us there so we cane out of hiding and attack him,¡± said Anthony. ¡°Isn¡¯t Dyson right there in the camp across from us? I can go over and pay him a visit right now, with Lord Ange disguised as my attendant,¡± said Copper Hammer. Anthony shook his head, ¡°No, the one in the camp might not be Dyson. I¡¯ve seen three Dysons with different habitual movements in the Curia. One likes to purse his lips, he doesn¡¯t do it in front of others, but his lips have chronic bite marks.¡± ¡°The second one usually steps out with his left foot first, and the third one habitually wrinkles his nose. I suspect he used to have chronic sinusitis, which he has now cured but left behind the habit. I have only observed these three so far, I don¡¯t know if there are a fourth and a fifth.¡± Everyone listened in astonishment. How could he observe so much? Luther was unconvinced and asked, ¡°Couldn¡¯t it be the same person? These little movements can all appear in one person.¡± Anthonyughed, ¡°Of course, it¡¯s based on observation. Some small movements can ur in the same person, like picking at their feet or sneak peeking at the holy women and nuns, but these three small movements, once one appears, the other two will absolutely not.¡± Lisa couldn¡¯t help but exim, ¡°No wonder Lord, you were able to be the Archbishop.¡± ¡°Hehe, you just have to be attentive¡­¡± Anthony modestly replied, but before he could finish, Negris suddenly copsed beside him. ¡°Is it¡­ a disconnection?¡± After a while, Negris reprojected himself back into his body and said with mixedughter and tears, ¡°Didn¡¯t you say it was hard to find the real Dyson? Now he¡¯se to us himself, have Ange take care of him.¡± ¡°What? But didn¡¯t Lord go farming?¡± said Anthony, surprised. ¡°Yes, Dyson crossed hisnd and even used the ¡®Holy Word Technique¡¯ to ¡®greet¡¯ him,¡± Negris said with a bleakugh. Although Dyson clearly used the Holy Word Technique to intimidate him, Ange mistook it for a greeting. ¡°Could it be a stand-in?¡± Anthony wondered. Impossible. While they were all trying to figure it out, their Lord just quietly done it? ¡°Have you ever seen a stand-in with Divine Fire ignited? He also brought a Divine Bone Skeleton and more than twenty Golden Skeletons, let¡¯s go check it out.¡± A group of people rushed to the wilderness a few miles away, where a mess was visible everywhere. Golden skeletons were scattered everywhere, and the skulls of these skeletons, twenty or so Golden Skeleton heads, were gathered to one side in a pile. The Soul Fire still burned in these skulls, their jaws fluttering rapidly, as if swearing angrily about something. Because the skulls had been gathered to one side and there were no skeletal bodies nearby to reassemble, they could only futilely open and close their jaws. One of the skulls propped itself up with its lower jaw, and stubbornly moved forward, scraping a bit at a time. However, before it could get far, the Little Zombie ran up quickly, picked it up, and threw it back into the pile of skulls. After rolling around a few times, the skull ended up with the back of its head on the ground. Now, it couldn¡¯t even touch the ground with its jawbone, leaving only its hollow eye sockets to gaze at the sky. A pristine white skeleton remained intact, but it stunned still, not moving, as if frightened or something. Big Bone was carrying his own arm bone and chasing Little Angel around: ¡°Help me attach it, help me attach it.¡± There was a new pit at the edge of the field, and Ange was tidying it up, pushing the soil over. He had already filled half of the pit. At the bottom of the pit, Dysony in despair. His left shoulder had been crushed by a small hammer, the Life-saving Hammer of the Goddess of Redemption. His thighs below were crushed by the Dwarf King¡¯s Hammer of Thunder, and the Earth Hammer was heavily pressing on his chest, pinning him to the ground even with the Divine Fire, rendering him immobile. Only the descendants of ck Mountain Duke could lift the Earth Hammer, so why was this hammer in the hands of a Holy Spirit Angel? Why was the Life-saving Hammer of the Goddess of Redemption in the hands of the enemy? Why was the Dwarf King¡¯s Hammer of Thunder in the hands of the enemy? Why? He had asked this question earlier too, and the answer he got was: ¡°Snatched.¡± Despite the use of the Divine Fire and the power of God, Dyson had been incapable of withstanding three blows from his enemy. This should not have happened. He had long dreamed of igniting the Divine Fire, but why was he still so weak after lighting it? He was a god, after all. If the Goddess of Redemption and the God of Bnce heard his question, they would certainly sympathize. Even such an old deity was not a match for Ange, what could he who had just ignited the Divine Fire, be ssified as? Possibly hearing his mumblings, the Earth Hammer couldn¡¯t help but ask: ¡°What Divine Fire have you ignited?¡± ¡°You¡­you can talk?¡± ¡°I am a spirit, of course, I can talk. Ignorant much? What Divine Fire have you ignited?¡± ¡°You¡­your pressure is¡­making it hard for me to speak, I¡­I haven¡¯t awakened the Divine Technique¡­haven¡¯t defined the Divine Fire yet.¡± ¡°Oh, so you¡¯re a newbie god. Do you know who your opponent is? Nevermind, I won¡¯t say it, it would be too crushing. Have you heard about the Undead God?¡± Action contradicting his words, the Earth Hammer, who had just stated ¡®he won¡¯t tell,¡¯ quietly revealed all of Ange¡¯s titles, which left Dyson utterly disheartened. The guy he assumed to be a mere farmer was, in fact, a god from the abyss, how unlucky could he get? And to bump into him of all people? ¡°Is that really Lord Dyson? What¡¯s happened to you? Did a horse stomp on you? How did you end up like this? Should we call a Priest for you? Healthcare in the middle of nowhere is pretty pricey, you know,¡± a voice gleefully rejoicing over Dyson¡¯s misfortune sounded off, with Anthony¡¯s head popping up from the pit¡¯s edge. All these years, the Church had developed many businesses to make money, such as some wealthyndlords and businessmen living in the countryside instead of the city. Then priests and other clergy members with healing abilities could leave the city to provide treatment services on-site, with prices based on distance and danger level. ¡°Anthony!¡± Dyson hissed through gritted teeth.@@novelbin@@ But his anger was of no avail. Dyson¡¯s head was hacked off and taken away by Anthony, who nned God knows what con game. As for Dyson¡¯s Divine Fire and equipment, they all naturally went to Ange, as well as two storage rings. Ange used a dispelling technique to get rid of the demonic patterns on the rings and opened the storage space. The first ring had a standard array of bishop necessities, such as robes, ceremonial garments, seals, badges, and the likes. Even if the space wasid open for inspection, it would simply appear as the storage space of a devoted and incorruptible bishop. The second ring was different. It had all sorts of odds and ends, and the space was significantlyrger, filled with totem columns, masks, bone devices, and soul devices. If you only looked here, you would never imagine that this was the storage space of an Archbishop of Light. ¡°A lot of these things are quite old. What exactly is Dyson¡¯s background?¡± Negris ruffled through the space of the second ring, asking with curiosity. Lisa responded, ¡°Lord Anthony has mentioned that Dyson is likely the head of an inner organization within the Church of Light, the Pyrotheives. Lord Anthony had infiltrated the Pyrotheives in a previous life and knows many of their secrets.¡± ¡°Goodness, the Church of Light is riddled with holes without a god. Who would have thought that the leader of a ndestine organization could rise to the rank of Archbishop?¡± Negris sighed. ¡°Um, Lord Anthony did as well. It seems that among the three Archbishops, only Nik is the genuine one.¡± Lisa sighed as well. As a former Light Saintess, it was a bitplicated for her to see the Church fall into such a state. ¡°Eh? What is this?¡± Among a pile of assorted objects, Negris uncovered a piece of purple-gold finger bone. Ange took it and examined it, tilting his head. He removed another fingerbone from the space, and it fit perfectly with the newly acquired one upon putting them together. This was the one that had been traded from the Dimension Beast. Ange initially thought it was Harvey¡¯s finger bone, could he have been mistaken? Looking questioningly at the two finger bones, Ange faintly sensed some waves emanating from the bones, seeming to want to erase something from his consciousness. PS: Here¡¯s a fun fact, your monthly votes can get you a chance to participate in a lucky draw. I hit the jackpotst month and won a Harman Bluetooth speaker, the exact model I¡¯ve been drooling over but couldn¡¯t bring myself to purchase. The winning ticket was your monthly votes, so it¡¯s like a gift from you all. Thanks a lot. Please keep voting, hoping to snag another win next month. Chapter 592 - 333 Be your Lord Dyson_1 Chapter 592: Chapter 333 Be your Lord Dyson_1 In the human encampment, ¡®Dyson¡¯ was looking a bit pale, devouring pastries in a mad rush. He had suddenly felt a strange sensation of palpitation and weakness, suspecting that his blood sugar levels might be dropping. But even after eating several pastries in a row, there was no change. What was going on? Did he need to take medication? An underling rushed in, stumbling and stuttering, ¡°Lord, An, Anthony is¡­ he has arrived at the front of our camp. He requested your presence, saying he, as a fellow Archbishop and servant of the Lord, wishes to meet with Lord Dyson at the camp entrance.¡± ¡®Dyson¡¯s¡¯ face turned white as a sheet. He knew full well who he really was, and now Anthony wanted to see him? What was he supposed to do? ¡°What direction did hee from? Did the Dwarf King not notice at all?¡± ¡®Dyson¡¯, striving to calm his inner turmoil, withdrew his hand into his sleeve and pressed something inside it. His underling¡¯s face was a picture of absurdity when he replied, ¡°He came directly from the dwarf encampment.¡± ¡®Dyson¡¯s¡¯ knees went weak. Anthony hade from the dwarf encampment, what did that imply? Had the Dwarf King defected to Anthony¡¯s side? ¡®Dyson¡¯ fell silent for a moment, pretending to be deep in thought, while actually pressing the hidden object in his sleeve. It was an emergencymunication device, designed to be very concealed and barely causing any fluctuations. It was a surreptitious method ofmunication often used by gamblers to cheat at cards. However, the more covert the method, the fewer details it could convey. It was only capable of emitting slight heat, but that was enough to signal a crisis. Yet, although he had sent a message, no feedback came in response. ¡®Dyson¡¯ was left with no choice; he nervously asked, ¡°How many men did Anthony bring with him?¡± ¡°Just him.¡± ¡®Dyson¡¯s¡¯ eyes lit up immediately. ¡°Really? Just him? He is indeed daring. Assemble everyone and finish him at the gate.¡± The underling hesitated before saying, ¡°My Lord, Lord Anthony also mentioned that he knows your biggest secret. If you do not wish for it to be revealed, it would be best to go and meet him alone. Besides, even if we gather everyone, we might not be able to touch him. He positioned himself between us and the dwarf¡¯s encampment. If wee at him with too many people, he will surely run.¡± ¡®Dyson¡¯s¡¯ back turned ice-cold. His biggest secret? Had his childhood adventures of spying on the Minotaur neighbordy during her bath been discovered? Heck no, he was now ¡®Archbishop Dyson¡¯. Wait¡­ With hismunicator receiving no response, ¡®Dyson¡¯ felt an increasing sense of dread. Left with no choice, he had no choice but to step forward. In the distance, Anthony stood holding the Magic Wand in the open. In front of him was a basket covered with a ck cloth. It was unknown what it contained. Upon seeing Dyson, Anthony said nothing, simply pointed at the basket in front of him before retreating several tens of meters back. ¡°What¡¯s the meaning of this? Want me to check the basket? What¡¯s in it?¡± Dyson wondered aloud before signalling a subordinate. ¡°Go check what¡¯s in the basket.¡± But no sooner had the underling taken two steps forward than Anthony¡¯s voice echoed, ¡°I suggest you look for yourself. That¡¯s your biggest secret. If anyone else sees it, you won¡¯t live.¡± His underling hesitated, ncing back at him. ¡®Dyson¡¯ also hesitated for a moment, then gritted his teeth and decided to go himself. As he approached, he gathered his holy power, wary of Anthony. As the man had already retreated several tens of meters away, he figured there was no imminent danger. He could retreat in time if necessary. When he was close enough, ¡®Dyson¡¯ waved his hand, blowing off the ck cloth that covered the basket. The sight inside made him drop to the ground, sitting on his ass. He had found his own head inside. ¡®Dyson¡¯ recognized it instantly, the truth dawning upon him. He now understood why he had those feelings of weakness and why there had been no response from themunicator. The original ¡®him¡¯ was gone. The fluctuation of the Eye of the Wizard emerged from behind him in the camp. Clearly, someone had noticed Dyson¡¯s shock and released the Eye of the Wizard in order to see what was inside the basket. Startled, Dyson remembered Anthony¡¯s words about ¡®his greatest secret¡¯ and instinctively covered the basket with the ck cloth. He turned around and shouted, ¡°Who dares to conjure the Eye of the Wizard carelessly? I am discussing confidential matters with Lord Anthony. Are you trying to spy on the military situation? Drag him away and execute him.¡± ¡°Ah? No! I didn¡¯t¡­¡± A surprised shout echoed from the camp, which was quickly silenced.@@novelbin@@ Anthony strolled leisurely towards him, greeting him with a smile, ¡°Dy¡ªson.¡± He enunciated his name deliberately slowly, in a tone as if he were looking down upon him. But ¡®Dyson¡¯ was too flustered to care about that. Eyeing Anthony in a state of panic, he felt as if his throat had been gripped tightly by the hand of fate. Anthony smiled and said, ¡°Lord Dyson, it seems that this imposter happened to be intercepted by me. So, do you like my gift?¡± An imposter?!¡¯Dyson¡¯ stared wide-eyed at Anthony in disbelief. Anthony leaned in and whispered in a low voice, ¡°You can still be Lord Dyson, holding endless wealth,manding loyal warriors, with countless women of various races in your home, and having a supportive ally.¡± When Anthony mentioned the word ¡®ally¡¯, he patted his own chest. Dyson suddenly grasped the implication in Anthony¡¯s words ¨C his heart pounding uncontrobly. This was a path he had never envisioned before. Anthony continued in a low voice, ¡°Aside from Guliani, no one can tell the difference between you two. As long as I keep quiet, even Guliani is unable to deny your identity. You can enjoy everything that belongs to Dyson. They say that Lord Dyson has a penchant for mature beauties from all races. Do you like them?¡± Chapter 593 - 333: Be Your Lord Dyson_2 Chapter 593: Chapter 333: Be Your Lord Dyson_2 Anthony¡¯s tone was no different from those demons, causing a surge of anger in ¡®Dyson¡¯ that he could barely keep in check. However, suddenly thinking of something, ¡®Dyson¡¯ reluctantly shook his head. Anthony smiled and said, ¡°What¡¯s bothering you? Corrosion Scar?¡± As he spoke, he dug out a cup of pills from his arms. ¡®Dyson¡¯ softly responded, ¡°Rotting Scar.¡± While ¡®corrosion¡¯ and ¡®rot¡¯ seem to have simr meanings, the effects were tenfold. Nevertheless, Anthony was well prepared, taking out another bottle. ¡°An improved version.¡± ¡®Dyson¡¯ still shook his head, ¡°Just taking medication for the Rotting Scar won¡¯t work, scars will still form on the skin, it needs a special approach to eliminate.¡± Already prepared, Anthony pulled out a stack of vouchers¡ªvouchers for beauty spot removal treatments, only valid in the Goddess of Beauty City. In order to target the Goddess of Beauty City, ¡®Dyson¡¯ had read a lot about the ce. His knowledge was deeper than most. The secret information was unobtainable, but the scope and effectiveness of its operations could be gathered through regr means. The high-born women just back from the Goddess of Beauty City would certainly describe everything about it with great enthusiasm, bing the center of attention at social gatherings. ¡®Dyson¡¯ took a deep breath, at ease, then said in a hoarse voice, ¡°Lord Anthony, what do you need me to do?¡± Anthony smiled slightly, ¡°Just be a good Lord Dyson.¡± Dyson nodded, from now on, he was Dyson, no quotation marks needed. As for Anthony¡¯s words, he had understood them well. To be a good Lord Dyson, Anthony would notify him when something was needed. If he couldn¡¯tprehend such sentences, he didn¡¯t have the qualifications to be one of the ¡®recements¡¯. ¡°So, why are we meeting this time?¡± Dyson asked. Anthony looked at him approvingly, they needed to get their stories straight, thenughingly said, ¡°I discovered a secret of yours, which I used to threaten you into surrendering to me.¡± ¡°What secret?¡± Dyson asked. ¡°I don¡¯t know, just make up one.¡± ¡°When I was young, I peeked at the Minotaur Auntie taking a bath.¡± ¡°¡­your tastes are truly unique. Come, I¡¯ll yield a blow, so your decrease in power can also be exined,¡± Anthony said. ¡°Okay, go easy on me, Lord. I¡¯m just a high-ranking priest.¡± After saying that, Dyson suddenly stepped back and shouted, ¡°You think I¡¯ll yield to these rumors? How naive! Fist of Truth!¡± At the end of Dyson¡¯s shout, he was enveloped in Holy Light. Anthony was also wrapped in Holy Light, simultaneously shouting, ¡°You have no idea how to die, I gave you a chance, but you do not cherish it, God says! Go to hell!¡± The Holy Light emitted by the two of them enveloped their location. Camps from both sides could not see clearly, only heard continuous loud noises. ¡°Shield of Divine Blessing! Light of Judgment!¡± ¡°Wall of Sighs! Hand of Bnce!¡± ¡°God says: Under my gaze, all bes nothing, Eye of Nothingness!¡± ¡°God didn¡¯t say! Take my staff!¡± Boom! A loud noise, and a figure flew out from the ze of light. It was Dyson. Dysonnded, coughing up blood, and yelled loudly, ¡°Anthony, you are despicable! How dare you hit people with a staff!¡± The light subsided, Anthony, spinning his staff around ferociously, about to charge over, ¡°God says: it¡¯s okay to hit, this is the shepherd¡¯s stick.¡± Dyson struggled to get up, running back to the camp site. Seeing peopleing to aid him, Anthony helplessly stopped in his tracks. After Dyson returned to the camp, the story became ¡®Anthony threatened him with secrets to surrender, Dyson vehemently refused and was despicably wounded by Anthony with a staff¡¯. Neither did Anthony deny this saying, instead reproaching Dyson for being weak, incapable of withstanding even a single hit from his staff. As the Dwarf King had obviously leaned towards Anthony, the n to attack the Goddess of Beauty City was naturally put on hold. Dyson, once home, was immediately summoned by Guliani. Dyson¡¯s recement wasn¡¯t a traditional scapegoat. They could negotiate with the Lester Royal Court on their own, stroll around the curia, each with considerable powers at their disposal. Unless Guliani had Anthony¡¯s perceptive abilities, even he couldn¡¯t tell the real from the fake without the Divine Fire. Anthony had only realized they have at least three through some habitual small movements, but couldn¡¯t figure out who the real one was. Now it was clear, the one with the Divine Fire was the real one and had been killed. As for lighting the Divine Fire but still losing to Anthony, Guliani found this unsurprising. He understood too well what the Divine Fire was; lighting it without the Divine Awakening Skill was meaningless. After some exnations, Dyson somehow managed to fool him. ¡­ It was rare for Ange not to be working on the farm. Everyone was gathered around a piece of bone, getting wrinkles from all the brainstorming.@@novelbin@@ After bamboozling Dyson, Anthony returned to find everyone huddled together. Curiosity nudged him over. Patting Luther on the shoulder while peering into the circle, he asked, ¡°What¡¯s up? What are you all looking at?¡± Luther, frowning and lost in thought, turned back to Anthony, contemted for a while before saying, ¡°I forgot, yeah, what are we looking at here, beautiful women perhaps?¡± Spotting that bone in the circle, Anthony immediately sensed a force at work, making his heart skip. At once, he closed his eyes. When he reopened them, a ring of gold light shed through. Chapter 594 - 333 Be Your Lord Dyson_3 Chapter 594: Chapter 333 Be Your Lord Dyson_3 Shoving his way through the crowd, Anthony squeezed into the circle, nudged Negris, and asked, ¡°What are you looking at? What is this? A finger bone?¡± Negris furrowed his scaly brows and said, ¡°This finger bone is strange, it has some kind of peculiar power. What kind of power? Eh, what were we looking at here?¡± Negris also seemed to drift into a daze. Anthony looked at Ange and said, ¡°Sir, this seems to be the Power of the Forgotten. Are you affected?¡± Ange shook his head, as if sensing something. He nced at Negris, then lifted his head to look at the other confused people. Ange thought for a moment, then arched his body, letting out a soul-shattering shriek. The Soul Impact erupted like an invisible exploding fireball, causing everyone who was in a mental fog to break out in a cold sweat, abruptly bing fully alert. ¡°What happened? What happened?¡± ¡°What¡¯s going on? What am I doing here?¡± ¡°The finger bone, yes, yes, finger bone, whose finger bone?¡± Like people waking from a dream, they excitedly tried to figure out what had urred, and instantly scattered several feet away. Only Anthony, Negris, and Durken remained standing. ¡°A purple-gold finger bone, why does it still hold the power of the God of the Forgotten? Whose finger bone is it, Locke¡¯s? Or Harvey¡¯s?¡± Negris asked, puzzled.@@novelbin@@ ¡°Is it possible that it belongs to the third Lord of Mourning? The one the Little Demon spoke of, the one that was with His Majesty.¡± Anthony spected. Negris jumped, ¡°We all forgot who that skeleton was. Could it have been caused by the Power of the Forgotten? That skeleton fought with the God of the Forgotten, was affected by the Power of the Forgotten, causing us all to forget its existence?¡± ¡°Hiss, it can¡¯t be, could there really be such a strange Divine Technique? Being hit by the Divine Technique caused us to lose our memory? That doesn¡¯t make sense. It¡¯s like we¡¯re getting hurt from a fight we¡¯re not even part of.¡± Durken said. Anthony shook his head, ¡°No, I¡¯ve seen the records of the God of the Forgotten. The description of him is just like this, the Power of the Forgotten, makes everyone forget you, including yourself.¡± ¡°Could it really be so magical? Then why does this finger bone have the Power of the Forgotten?¡± Durken asked. Anthony frowned at the finger bone, deep in thought, ¡°I can¡¯t remember, huh, what were we just talking about? How much do I owe Silver Coin? I don¡¯t think I owe him any money?¡± Negris smirked, ¡°It¡¯s useless, even if you forget your own name, it doesn¡¯t matter, Silver Coin would definitely make you sign a contract.¡± Anthony awkwardly scratched his nose, ¡°I really have forgotten my surname.¡± The surname Anthony mentioned naturally is not from this life, Anthony XXXX, but the one from over a thousand years ago when he was human, it seems to be something like ¡®Finick Gbchilodris Gravatnabasek¡­¡¯, it¡¯s so long that even ghosts can¡¯t remember it. ¡°What made you forget your name? Ah, it¡¯s time¡­¡± Rogge suddenly popped up, sighing morosely. Anthony gave him a strange look and suddenly pped his chest, ck smoke billowed out, condensing into an Undead Warhorse. ¡°ck Horse, catch him, I¡¯ll treat him so he won¡¯t be depressed again.¡± While Rogge was being chased around, Ange picked up the finger bone, grasping it firmly in his hand. The finger bone had two parts, one part just obtained, the other had been exchanged from the Dimension Beast long ago and had been with Ange for a long time, thoroughly familiar. With that, Ange transformed into a brand new Mourning Skeleton and stood still for thirty seconds. After reverting to his original state, Ange tilted his head and said, ¡°His name is sh Feiti, I sense he¡¯s still alive.¡± Chapter 595 - 334: Not the Dragon God, but the Nemesis_1 Chapter 595: Chapter 334: Not the Dragon God, but the Nemesis_1 ¡°sh Feiti? Steadfast Locke? These native undead creatures sure have arbitrary names.¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help butment. As soon as Ange mentioned this name, Durken and Anthony fell into thought, as if their memories had been struck by something, some forgotten things gradually came back to them. On hearing Negris¡¯s words, Durken frowned and hesitated, ¡°It seems that I gave them their names, are you criticizing me?¡± ¡°Ah? No, no, no, by arbitrary I meant casual and freely given, the kind that sounds pleasant and nice to hear.¡± Negris hastily denied. ¡°Feel free to criticize. I just named them casually¡ªit is indeed arbitrary. What the name is doesn¡¯t matter, the important thing is the nickname. I remember now, ¡®sh¡¯ means that when it moves, it¡¯s like a sh of light.¡± Durken muttered. Negris nearly spat out a mouthful of old blood. Are you letting him criticize you or not? ¡°Yes, yes, I remember now, sh Feiti. When Lord Feiti made a move, it was like a sh of light. Everyone often couldn¡¯t see him clearly before they were knocked down.¡± Anthony also remembered something. Negris looked at them and asked perplexedly, ¡°Why can¡¯t I remember anything? Did I not know this sh Feiti before?¡± Anthony and Durken looked at each other and turned to ask Negris, ¡°You really didn¡¯t remember anything?¡± Durken said, ¡°It seems to get along well with you, and it only learned the ¡®sh¡¯ thing after you came. It said you told it the secrets of space and time, and now we all remember it, but you really can¡¯t remember at all?¡± Negris shook his head nkly, why can¡¯t he remember anything at all? No impressions whatsoever? Durken pondered and said, ¡°Now only one possibility is left. Unlike us, you didn¡¯t forget your memories because of the Power of the Forgotten, but they were erased by others.¡± The only one who would have the power to erase Negris¡¯s memory might be the Undead King, ¡°Why would Your Majesty erase my memory?¡± ¡°How would we know, perhaps you did something bad. For instance, you might have peeked at the witch changing her clothes, and Your Majesty erased your memory in anger.¡± Anthony guessed. ¡°I¡­I¡­I¡­¡± Negris mumbled for a long time and couldn¡¯t get the words out. Anthony¡¯s guess was reasonable and logical, otherwise why is it that he can¡¯t even remember the witch? Why did they only erase his memory? ¡°Have we forgotten something?¡± Negris wanted to deviate the topic, so he turned to nce at the White Skeleton standing not far away. Following his words, everyone else¡¯s eyes shifted and fell on the White Skeleton. ¡°That¡¯s really strange, we clearly saw it when we first arrived. Why did we keep ignoring it? It wasn¡¯t until the mention of sh Feiti¡¯s name that I remembered it.¡± Anthony frowned and said. Durken also frowned, ¡°It seems to have the ability to make people ignore it.¡± Who is Anthony, who is Durken, and who is Negris? Just choose one, none of them would ignore a special skeleton. What power made everyone ignore it? ¡°Look at its forehead, is that an imprint? It looks like¡­it looks like¡­what was that imprint again?¡± As he was speaking, Negris forgot again. Noticing that everyone¡¯s eyes were on it, the skeleton endured for a while, but ultimately couldn¡¯t bear it, and turned to run. ¡°Hey hey hey, careful, don¡¯t run around.¡± Big Bone called out for caution, and with one p sent it flying back. The Little Zombie rushed forward, a shoulder collision, sent it flying, and followed up attacking with the hoe in its hand. A series of nging blows sounded, sparking mes, the White Skeleton¡¯s bones just got a few white spots. The Little Angel¡¯s hands were wrapped in Holy Light, aggressively charging forward. The White Skeleton dodged left and right, but soon it was knocked down to the ground by the Little Angel and Little Zombie. Each of them grabbed a foot and dragged it back. ¡°This seems to be¡­this seems to be¡­ah, so annoying, Ange, do you have a way to shield its power? Every time I look at it I can¡¯t remember things.¡± Negris shook his head in irritation. The word was already on the tip of his tongue, but he couldn¡¯t blurt it out. Ange took out the Lifesaving Rope, tightly bound the skeleton, then wrapped it up with the Holy Shroud, only revealing the mark on its forehead. The Holy Shroud blocked most of the spillover power from the Power of the Forgotten. The impact wasn¡¯t serious, so they weren¡¯t forgetting words left and right anymore, and they could think normally.@@novelbin@@ ¡°This seems to be the Forgotten Mark, right? Why would there be a Forgotten Mark on a skeleton¡¯s head?¡± As Negris was saying this, he touched it, ¡°It¡¯s not carved in, it grew naturally.¡± ¡°This bone doesn¡¯t seem like a human bone, could it be¡­ could it be a bone of the God of the Forgotten?¡± Durken guessed. Anthony said, ¡°So Lord Feiti went to kill the God of the Forgotten, was struck by the Forgotten Mark, causing everyone to forget him. But the God of the Forgotten also died, and his bones turned into this skeleton?¡± Pulling down the Holy Shroud and revealing the White Skeleton¡¯s head, Anthony looked at it and asked, ¡°Is that right?¡± The White Skeleton tilted its head in confusion. Chapter 596 - 334: Not the Dragon God, but the Nemesis_2 Chapter 596 -334: Not the Dragon God, but the Nemesis_2 "Are you the reincarnation of the God of the Forgotten? What''s your name?" The white skeleton tilted its head: "I''ve forgotten¡­" "¡­" "¡­" "¡­" "Your divine power can still affect yourself, huh? I''m impressed. You might not be the God of the Forgotten, but the God of Forgetfulness." Negris irritably lifted the Divine Death Shroud, covering its face again. "What do we do now? Can you sense where sh Feiti is? Shall we go and bring him back?" Negris asked, turning to Ange. Ange shook his head: "I don''t know." "Well, never mind then. Let''s disperse." Ange shook his head and suddenly pulled out a Great Angel''s Staff: "Repair." "Eh, how do you still have a Great Angel''s Staff? Didn''t you give it to Anthony?" Negris was surprised. Anthony was also perplexed: "Yeah, I took it and had it repaired by those counterfeiters. Except for theck of holy power, no one can tell it''s broken. But quite a few devout believers havee to worship from other ces." Originally, Ange hadpletely emptied the warehouse of the God of Life. It was full of damaged equipment that had no value for repair, but it could still be visually repaired without further damage. "Goddess of Redemption." Ange said. Okay, everyone now knows, it was copied from the unlucky Goddess of Redemption. Compared to God of Life, at least Goddess of Redemption took care of her collection a bit. No item was too damaged to be repaired. Durken rolled up his sleeves and eagerly said: "Such a difficult task seems to only be up to me. I''ve never repaired the Great Angel''s Staff before. I wonder how much the fundamentals differ from a soul device?" Durken regretted his words soon. After finally repairing the Great Angel''s Staff, Ange brought out a Meteor Hammer. Once the Meteor Hammer was fixed, out came the Spirit Feather Bow. "Just how many treasures do you have? That''s enough, pass it to the God of Knowledge. Its vast knowledge will be good at alchemy and can definitely repair it well." Durken said, feeling dizzy. Feeling pity for him, although he was once a powerful existence with a subsidiary pce, he had just been reborn not long ago. His soul was too weak to handle high-intensity work. "No, no. Alchemy still needs Lord Durken. We''re counting on you." Negris deflected the issue with a merry diversion: "By the way, Ange, why would you want to fix these things all of a sudden?" Ange got straight to the point: "Useful." Indeed, it was quite useful. As soon as Dyson posed, Ange hit him with two hammers, added a strike of Earth Hammer by Little Angel and it was done. He had never realized before how convenient it was to have good equipment. He might as well repair all the junk at home, and whenever someone disturbed his farming in the future, he''d take them out and smash. Negris facepalmed: "You''re going to use these Divine Artifacts as hammers? You spendthrift¡­" Knowing that arguing would be futile, Negris immediately picked up the other equipment besides the hammer, stored them first. Otherwise, this farming skeleton would really use the Great Angel''s Staff as a hammer to hit people. Seeing Durken had fixed another piece, Ange brought out another one. Durken gestured with his hands and sat down on the ground: "No more repairs, let me rest for a few decades. Bada, I''ve been dead for so many years and it''s the first time I''ve felt nauseous from repairing equipment, huh?" Just as he finished speaking, Durken noticed that what Ange had taken out was not a piece of equipment, but a ball. Ange also realized he''d made a mistake. This was the egg he got from Dragon Ind, not equipment. He quickly put it back. "Wait a minute, let me see it. What is that? It can''t be an egg, can it?" Durken said. Negris curiously asked: "Why don''t you soak it to return it to life? See whates out. It could very well be the Dragon God''s egg." Ange took the egg out again. This egg was amazing. After Ange touched it, the duration of his Dragon God Transformation surprisingly increased. But that was one-off. No matter how much he touched it afterwards, the Dragon God Transformation didn''t change. The whole egg was ck as a rock, and only a small piece revealed white. That was where it had returned to life due to the concentrated insect ash liquid Ange had dripped earlier. Negris curiously asked: "Why don''t you soak it to return it to life? See whates out. It could very well be the Dragon God''s egg." Ange shook his head: "Not enough insect ash liquid." "How can it not be enough? The number of fish and insects just from the Clean Sea ne could be distilled into tonnes of insect ash liquid. How is it not enough?" Negris wondered. Ange shook his head: "Not enough, need to farm." "Alright, I get it. Because you need to farm, you''re not willing to use the insect ash liquid to soak it, right?" Negris said. Ange nodded naturally. Negris sighed, he knew it would be like this. Insect ash liquid is now the main fertilizer for soilless cultivation, and no matter how much, it''s not enough. As long as the fertilizer is sufficient, Ange can infinitely expand the nting area, because the Light Sea ne still has a lot of space avable for expansion. But he couldn''t possibly wait until Ange filled all the seas of the Light Sea ne with nts before dealing with this egg, right? This egg might be the Dragon God''s egg, which is very important to the Giant Dragon n. Negris didn''t want to wait too long. "How about this? You lend me some insect ash liquid, and I''ll revive it first, okay? Later, I''ll ask Brooks to bring something for those two Insect Gods to eat, and pay back the borrowed insect ash liquid, what do you think?" Negris suggested.@@novelbin@@ Chapter 597 - 334: Not the Dragon God, but the Nemesis_3 Chapter 597: Chapter 334: Not the Dragon God, but the Nemesis_3@@novelbin@@ Hemel and Mattis, these two Insect Gods, their most crucial task now is to produce Insect Ash Liquid for Ange. As long as they are fed enough, they can continuously produce Insect Ash Liquid. Ange still shook his head: ¡°Need a lot, once, unsessful, it will spoil.¡± Negris understood, he needed a lot of Insect Ash Liquid; there was only one chance. If it was unsessful, the egg would spoil. If that¡¯s the case, no wonder Ange didn¡¯t want to try lightly. Upon hearing this, Durken finally understood a bit and couldn¡¯t help but interrupt and ask, ¡°Wait, do you mean that the so-called Insect Ash Liquid can turn this petrified egg back to life?¡± After Negris confirmed it, Durken said with a weird expression, ¡°Although this Insect Ash Liquid is magical, why don¡¯t you think about it from other perspectives? I have heard that the Wisdom Angel of the Church of Light has a weapon called the Petrifaction Beam, is it possible that this egg got hit by some petrification skill?¡± Having said that, Durken added, ¡°If you think this egg is a fossil, then it must have gone bad before petrification, revival would also be useless.¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help but p himself on the face, ¡°Kvada, I¡¯m such an idiot, Shamara, Shamara.¡± He truly was foolish, why did he only think of Insect Ash Liquid? This is clearly a petrified egg, why didn¡¯t he consider the possibility of being hit by some petrification skill? Moreover, if this egg turned into a fossil due to the passage of time, then it must have gone bad before petrification. If revived, he would only get a rotten egg. It would be better to tackle this from the aspect of petrification skill. ¡°Shamara is the Fallen Angel, right? Why are you calling her?¡± Durken had already seen Shamara, so he was a bit confused about why Negris was seeking a Fallen Angel. However, when Luna separated from her, Durken was stunned, ¡°Howe you have everything? Even the Wisdom Angel has fallen?¡± Luna nodded at him, ¡°Hello, Alchemist Lord Durken, I am Wisdom Angel Luna.¡± ¡°You know me?¡± Durken was surprised. ¡°Of course, it would be a dereliction of my duty if I don¡¯t recognize my main enemy,¡± Luna replied. Durken scratched his nose awkwardly and muttered, ¡°I barely know you guys¡­¡± He didn¡¯t even know how many Gods there were in the Gods of Light. Luna behaved as if she didn¡¯t hear, crouched down to inspect the stone egg, and after a while, she said, ¡°It really looks like it was caused by the Petrifaction Beam. There are no hollows inside. If it were naturally petrified, there would be hollows and bubbles formed because of the decay of substance inside. You can try it, Lord Ange, the Arrow of Petrification is in your hand, you just have to adjust it to the mode that can remove petrification.¡± Just as Luna finished speaking, Durken couldn¡¯t help but exim, ¡°The Arrow of Petrification is in your hand? Howe I never saw you use it? Have the Arrow of Petrification, and you are still crafting the Great Angel¡¯s Staff? That¡¯s a Divine Artifact that can even petrify Gods.¡± Ange tilted his head, pondered for a while, then looked at his arm. There are two inconspicuous rings there, which were hidden by the Illusion Technique of the straw men; if Luna wasn¡¯t to mention it, he wouldn¡¯t have remembered those two rings. ¡°Forgot.¡± Ange patted those two rings, the rings sprung up instantly, and while making a clicking sound, theybined into a crossbow. Ange, following Luna¡¯s directions, adjusted the mode to remove petrification. Luna continued, ¡°Normally, I wouldn¡¯t use the function to remove petrification, because it is too energy-consuming. The energy it needs is ten times that of the Arrow of Petrification. Even for me, it takes a long time to gather enough energy.¡± Ange quietly poured in energy into it, while they mightck other things, they have enough Holy Light. The beam, filled with ten times the Holy Light, shot onto the stone egg. Just like the God of Bnce in the past, theyers of stone on the surface slowly peeled off. The moment the stone egg was purified, a wave of a Giant Dragon¡¯s heartbeat emanated outwards. Just likest time, but this time¡¯s wave was tens of times stronger. Ange suddenly dropped the Arrow of Petrification, his scales wriggled, transforming into the Dragon God and mmed a fist onto the egg. His move scared Negris into shouting, ¡°What are you doing? It¡¯s the egg of the Dragon God!¡± ¡°No, it¡¯s the mortal enemy.¡± As he said this, Ange¡¯s fistnded on the egg. Chapter 598 - 335: Arch Enemy, Buried_1 Chapter 598: Chapter 335: Arch Enemy, Buried_1 When Ange touched the egg and extended the time of Dragon God Transformation, everyone assumed the egg was that of a Dragon God. However, they all forgot one thing. What can stimte potential besides parental discipline? The answer is: a nemesis. For a girl, the moment of her greatest potential awakening is usually when a rat or cockroach suddenly leaps towards her. Fear of a natural enemy is often a more effective motivator than parental discipline. And inside this egg, lies the nemesis of the Giant Dragon n. ¡°Nemesis? Celius?!¡± Negris¡¯s scales stood on end in excitement. It was already a Corpse Dragon and only a soul projection at that, but the very thought of this name still elicited a stress response. This attests to the intimidating effect the name had on it. This name was intimidating to all members of the Dragon n. It was a fear of the nemesis etched into their bloodline. However, no living giant dragons had ever actually seen Celius. Just as every dragon knew how to perform the Dragon God Transformation but none had sessfully transformed. However, a farming skeleton achieved it relying on the transformation ability of a Druid. It was simply absurd. ording to legend, Celius was a giant snake that could swallow an entire ne with one gulp. Its favourite delicacy was dragon eggs, eating them one by one¡­ This tells us the absurdity of the legend. If a giant snake could swallow an entire ne in one gulp, how could it possibly savour dragon eggs one by one? Even if all the dragons were bundled together, they wouldn¡¯t make a mouthful. Therefore, Negris logically deduced from its knowledge that this legend was nonsense. It was very likely a story fabricated by the Dragon God to frighten the giant dragons and caution future generations. Physical fitness, though capable of enhancing one¡¯s physique, cannot, unlike concentration, allow one to touch upon the Transcendent. Awakening Extraordinary Genes is inherently dependent on the depth of one¡¯s concentration, and even after awakening, the benefits brought by entering concentration are particrly significant. Ice Sister curled her finger and a sh of frost passed by, isting Pei Jinye and the girl with the ponytail in a small separate space to prevent the forting conversation from disturbing their practice. ¡°Those who have memorized the textbook know that concentration is divided into four stages. The first stage is minor concentration, where one focuses their mental will, immersing themselves in their Spiritual World to cleanse their inner impurities. If you can easily reach this stage, then congrattions, your mental will has already far surpassed that of ordinary people. The second stage is Major Concentration, which gathers mental focus much fasterpared to minor concentration. Your willpower will grow several times stronger, and at this stage, first-level Spirit ss Transcendent people would basically not be able to harm you. As for the remaining two stages,mon concentration and absolute concentration, you¡¯ll naturally learn more once you get into Wu University. I won¡¯t mention them here; if you can reach the second stage now, you¡¯re already considered exceptionally talented.¡± While people felt regretful, they also aspired to achieve such levels, their gaze turning towards Wang Jing. They couldn¡¯t help but be curious whether she had entered concentration yet. But then, they heard Ice Sister let out a surprised sound, and all eyes followed hers¡ªto their surprise, she was looking at¡­ Pei Jinye?!!! Everyone was somewhat taken aback. Ice Sister raised her eyebrow with interest, ¡°It seems I misjudged. This kid is entering concentration even faster than Wang Jing, without making a sound!¡± Noticing that Wang Jing had not yet seeded in entering concentration, Ice Sister gestured for the students to look at Pei Jinye inside the barrier. ¡°Pay attention to Pei Jinye¡¯s breathing rate. He is currently in a state of concentration, his breathing at least three seconds slower than normal¡ªyes, nine seconds¡­ his state of concentration is perfect, watch closely¡­¡± Following Ice Sister¡¯s introduction, many ssmates began looking at Pei Jinye with amazement. ¡°Can he actually enter concentration?¡± ¡°I never noticed before, but Pei Jinye actually looks quite handsome¡­¡± ¡°He¡¯s quietly astonishing everyone.¡± In the back row. Pei Jinye¡¯s deskmate was shocked at this moment: ¡°I thought Brother Ye was just there to blend into the background¡­ but it turns out Brother Ye is so fierce!¡± Pei Jinye knew nothing about what was happening outside, as he was following a force within his body, fully immersed in his own dream. It was afort he had never experienced before. In his dream, he saw a white light orb. The orb emitted a gentle glow. He subconsciously reached out, and the moment his fingertip touched the orb, a multitude of tender green grass shoots broke free from the soil¡¯s restraint and burst into the deste gray world of his Spiritual World. He had never realized that practicing the Breathing Method could allow him to witness such a peculiar scene¡­ Fresh grass shoots spread across the barrenndscape, heralding a revival of all things! Unaware of how much time had passed, Pei Jinye gradually regained consciousness. He had an epiphany that everything in his dream was rted to the gene fragment he had just encountered, and he was curious how much stronger he could be if he merged with other genes. After the dream shattered, Pei Jinye slowly opened his eyes. The girl with the ponytail had woken up at some point, and was now sitting in her seat, staring at him with a deep and distant gaze. ¡°` Pei Jinye didn¡¯t know what she was muttering about and simply ignored her, turning his head to look at Ice Sister. ¡°So¡­ what do we do next?¡± He was too embarrassed to say that he had slept too hard and had a very long dream. Ange¡¯s cautious approach did not seem excessive to Negris. The mere mention of Celius was terrifying to giant dragons. The thought of ¡®bing infected just by looking¡¯ was utterly unfathomable. Such absurd allegations prompted Negris to close his eyes and refuse to look. The time of spatial solidification hade. All the exploding fireballs contained in the egg burst simultaneously, apanied by a dazzling Holy Light. Those standing nearby saw endless rays of light. But those who were at a distance saw fire and light gushing out together, instantly obliterating everything in front of them. The egg disappearedpletely without leaving a trace of smoke. Negris opened his eyes, not daring to look at Ange, but instead turned to Anthony in agitation and asked, ¡°How¡¯s it? Did it get erased?¡± ¡°It¡¯s erased. There¡¯s not even a bit left,¡± said Anthony, awestruck. Negris finally dared to turn and look at Ange. In front of Ange, there was no rock egg, no blood mist, not even the ground. It revealed a pointed deep trench that was emanating heat and the smell of purified Holy Light. ¡°Not a trace left indeed. You¡¯re amazing, Ange!¡± Negris loudly praised. However, Ange just shook his head, staring at the empty space in front of him. ¡°What do you mean? Why are you shaking your head?¡± Negris felt a ominous twinge in his heart. Only then did Ange realize that everyone else could not see what was in front of him. He quickly shared what he was seeing through psychic contact. Only those with a psychic link to him could see what he was sharing. In front of Ange, there was a writhing, snake-like objectposed of Soul me.@@novelbin@@ ¡°S¡­Serpent of Misfortune!¡± Negris cried out in panic, ¡°I understand now, I understand why you get infected just by looking. The Serpent of Misfortune is a force of belief. The nemesis of the Dragon n is another god. I¡¯m done for, I looked at it, I¡¯m infected!¡± As if hearing Negris¡¯s voice, the writhing Serpent of Misfortune suddenly paused, one end of it pointed at Negris. Though the Serpent of Misfortune appeared as only a rod-shaped object with no discernible features like eyes, when one end pointed at Negris, he felt as though he was being stared at. Chapter 599 - 335 - Natural Enemy, Buried_2 Chapter 599: Chapter 335 ¨C Natural Enemy, Buried_2 The next moment, the Serpent of Misfortune darted forward abruptly. The Serpent of Misfortune, being made up of the Power of Faith, is formless and extremely fast. Negris was taken by surprise when the serpent shot in front of him. Just as the serpent was about to touch Negris, it suddenly clenched up and stopped. It exuded an air of confusion. Turning its head, it saw Ange¡¯srge hand gripping its other end, causing it to be taut. The Serpent of Misfortune radiated an intense confusion, as if wondering how Ange could catch it ¨C after all, it was made up of the Power of Faith. Faith Elemental Force, Soul Energy, Soul me, and the Power of Faith are all practically the same thing. They¡¯re all forces from the ne of faith and essentially formless. If you aren¡¯t a god, you can¡¯t even see it, let alone catch it with bare hands. But anyway, since it¡¯s formless, what use is there in grabbing one end of it? Suddenly, the serpent¡¯s body stretched and wrapped around Negris. At almost the same time, everyone in the vicinity heard a voice on a spiritual level: ¡°Sweet little dragon, my favorite. Now add some fear, it will make the sweetness moreyered¡­ Yuck! Dead?¡± The title ¡®Serpent of Misfortune¡¯ scared Negris witless. His face was filled with ¡®Oh no, I¡¯ve been corrupted, my child with Naeli will turn into a snake¡¯. It wasn¡¯t until the serpent¡¯s ¡®yuck¡¯ that he woke up. ¡°Oh right, I¡¯m dead? I can¡¯t have children! Thank goodness, you almost scared me to death.¡± Negris quickly came to his senses, turning to look at the Serpent of Misfortune. The front end of the Serpent of Misfortune was writhing wildly, as if it had bitten into feces, the whole body emanating an aura of pain and difort. Expecting a sweet, tender dragon and getting retched, dried-up meat instead. That contrast and difort, it was indescribable unless you¡¯ve experienced it yourself. But before it could react, its whole body jerked tight, a powerful pulling force came from the other end, dragging it backwards rapidly. Ange was furious. If Negris weren¡¯t dead, if it was Naeli or White Neck here, this Serpent of Misfortune would have seeded. The bloodline inheritance of the Dragon God told him that the Serpent of Misfortune is the natural enemy of the Dragon n, very troublesome. Although he was already cautious, he was still attacked. He was angry! Feeling Ange¡¯s anger, the Little Ghost on his finger piped up, biting down on the Serpent of Misfortune with an ¡®ah¡¯ sound. ¡°Ah? What is this thing? Don¡¯t¡­¡± The Serpent of Misfortune suddenly started panicking because it felt that it was being rapidly consumed. The Little Ghost was slurping it up like noodles, swallowing vast amounts of it. The Serpent of Misfortune¡¯s struggles were futile. Its form was continuously consumed. While it kept elongating, its body became thinner and thinner, allowing the Little Ghost to consume it faster. The entire Serpent of Misfortune got sucked in. The Little Ghost took a deep breath, burped satisfiedly, and returned to hug Ange¡¯s finger. Shortly after returning, it lifted its head, huffed, and spat out a blue gemstone, feeling much better. Everyone quickly rushed over to examine the gem in Ange¡¯s hand. It was a round stone that lookedpletely blue up close. From a distance, the reflections within formed a blue vertical pupil, just like a snake¡¯s eye. ¡°A Thought Crystal?¡± Lord Durken was astonished. Soul Crystals and Holy Crystals are both Thought Crystals, materialized from Faith Elemental Force, Soul Energy, and the likes, as is this blue gemstone. Looking at it, Negris muttered: ¡°So, the natural enemy of our Dragon n is actually a god named Celius? His divine technique is the Serpent of Misfortune, and any eggsin by dragons who see it will turn into snakes?¡± Anthony frowned, ¡°That¡¯s vile, isn¡¯t it?¡± Negris shook his head, his mood having lightened considerably. The information ingrained in his bloodline was terrifying. Thus, when the Serpent of Misfortune appeared, he panicked,pletely forsaking the demeanor of the God of Knowledge. But if the opponent was just a god, it¡¯s apletely different situation. He¡¯s familiar with gods and doesn¡¯t find natural enemies that intimidating. The God of Misfortune is scary, but if it¡¯s just a divine technique, it¡¯s different. You can counteract divine techniques and many of them are quite underwhelming, like the Harvest Goddess¡­ Simrly, if the Serpent of Misfortune onlyes after eggs of the Dragon n, it¡¯s even more of a harmless situation. Trading with a Dead Dragon would be enough, even a dragon past its breeding age would render it useless. The fear originates from the unknown. Once Ange arrived at a point of knowledge he was familiar with in Negris, he immediately rxed. In fact, if it is a god, then killing it will be enough. Is Angecking in experience when ites to ying gods? The problem now is, how to find it? Negris turned around and asked, ¡°Do any of you recognize this Celius?¡± Durken said, ¡°What Celius are you talking about? I¡¯ve never heard of it. However, this snake¡¯s aura should belong to something like an Ancient God.¡± Anthony pped his thigh abruptly: ¡°Lord Durken is indeed right, I recall now. The Church¡¯s edited Ancient God Epic indeed recorded an ancient god capable of making a Giant Dragony snake eggs, named Celius, right?¡± ¡°Ancient God Epic? Where is it? Let me see.¡± Negris asked curiously, howe he had never heard of the Ancient God Epic? Anthony threw his hands up: ¡°It¡¯s been burnt.¡± ¡°¡­ You burnt it again, didn¡¯t you? You, civilization destroyer,¡± Negrismented sarcastically: ¡°Do you still remember the content then? Do you know where Celius is? How many ancient gods were recorded in it?¡± Anthony pondered before he said: ¡°I can¡¯t remember the exact number of ancient gods, but I do remember the two most powerful ones: the God of Life and the Dragon God are listed at the top of the epic.¡±@@novelbin@@ It¡¯s to be expected. The God of Life and Dragon God are not just in ancient times, but even now, are considered among the top existences. ¡°As for where Celius is, since the Church of Light unified the Master ne, any god that you can¡¯t find traces of should be in the Church of Light¡¯s God¡¯s Tomb,¡± said Anthony. The Church of Light¡¯s God¡¯s Tomb? There¡¯s such a ce? Where is it? ¡°Luna, Luna, where is the Church of Light¡¯s God¡¯s Tomb?¡± The God¡¯s Tomb is in the void, where all gods who have fallen at the hands of the Gods of Light are buried, whether they are ancient or new gods. All who do not believe in the Light are heretics, and from the very start, the Church of Light has been relentlessly crusading against all heretical gods. If there are still other gods alive, it¡¯s not that the Gods of Light don¡¯t want to crusade, but that they can¡¯t win. For instance, the God of Life is living just fine, the Gods of Light never thought to provoke it because they can¡¯t win. The Undead God, too, is getting on well, they can¡¯t win against it either. If Celius once existed, but there is no sign of him now, it¡¯s most likely that he¡¯s been buried in the Church of Light¡¯s God¡¯s Tomb. ¡°Is he dead then?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Yes, he may indeed be dead. Maybe he wasn¡¯t killed by the Gods of Light, but by your Dragon God. Otherwise, why ce a petrified egg in the dragon hatching room? To make all eggs hatch into snakes?¡± Anthony shrugged, ¡°Of course not, it was probably just to stimte your bloodline. Who could have imagined that Lord Negris could¡¯ve restored it? It was just an ident, you don¡¯t need to worry, the enemy of the Dragon n is gone.¡± It makes sense. If it were dangerous, the Dragon God wouldn¡¯t throw an enemy¡¯s egg into the hatching room, would he? ¡°Then why would it pass down such terrifying information through the bloodline?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Nonsense, if it¡¯s not terrifying, how can it stimte your bloodline?¡± Durken answered. ¡­ In an unknown ne, at the same moment when Ange shouted ¡®sh Feiti¡¯, the Purple Gold Skeleton, which was in deep thought, animated. It lifted its head in daze, murmuring, ¡°I seem to¡­be called Feiti? sh¡­Feiti?¡± Feiti slowly got up, pacing in confusion; something was waking up in his soul: ¡°Resting Camp¡­Soul Storm¡­Undead God¡­¡± ¡°Undead Godhood, will allow me to remember more things, where is the Undead God?¡± The Purple Gold Skeleton stayed in ce in thought for a long time, suddenly remembering something, he moved to a corner, rummaged for a while, and unearthed a statue. It was a sculpture of a man holding his hand in front of him, as Feiti removed a defective finger joint and ced it on the statue¡¯s outstretched palm. Soon, a furry little paw reached over and firmly held down the finger bone. Chapter 600 - 336: Exchange Something? What?_1 Chapter 600: Chapter 336: Exchange Something? What?_1 The little w pressed against the finger bone, giving it a squeeze, seeming somewhat hesitant. Feiti stretched out his hand, feeling puzzled, and prodded the little w. With a press, the flesh of the w sank in; when he released it, it popped back out. It was soft and fun to y with. After Feiti had prodded it a few times and was about to do so again, the little w swatted his hand away. In the end, the little w still took the finger bone away. When it stretched out again, it threw out a small bag of elf beans. ¡°No¡­¡± As Feiti was about to say something, the little w swiftly retracted. ¡°I don¡¯t want this¡­ask the Undead God¡­I don¡¯t eat¡­¡± Feiti looked at the empty statue¡¯s hand and was very confused. He didn¡¯t need to eat, so why would it give him elf beans? He just wanted to ask for information about the Undead God. But the little w had already retracted and could no longer hear him. What was he to do? ¡°I¡¯ve been tricked¡­¡± Feiti raised the hand that was now missing a finger. He sighed, picked up amon finger bone from the ground and ced it on the statue¡¯s hand. He had been too optimistic. How could an evil god possibly fancy amon finger bone? Feiti found some rocks and added them to the statue¡¯s hand, but there was still no reaction. And so, a lone figure wandered across thend, cing whatever new things it found on the statue¡¯s hand. But in this deste world, many things were without value¡­ ¡­ Ange filled the newly tilled farnd with crops. The soil here was fertile, surrounded by barren hills and rarely visited. Once cultivated, it could support many people. Actually, the Master ne had an abundance of undevelopednds. However, due to low productivity, the effort and returns of cultivating thesends were disproportionate. The noblendlords had no interest in this. They would rather drive out and annex thends of the peasants, because those were fertile grounds. This ce was only a few dozen kilometres away from the ck Mountain Kingdom, but to develop it, a road would be needed. How much would it cost to construct a road here? Even once the road was built, and farmers were relocated here, if the poption was too small, nothing could be aplished. If the poption wasrge, the investment would be enormous, easily leading to a noble¡¯s bankruptcy. Once the people were relocated, farnd had to be opened, houses had to be built for settlement, along with the variety of other preliminary investments; the cost would be tremendous. How about the return? The first year would certainly be pure expenditure. There would be some ie the second year, but it would definitely not cover the expenditure. Only after five, six, seven, or eight years could the ie and expenditure possibly bnce, and only then could taxes be collected. However, relying solely on taxes, the payback period for such preliminary investments might stretch to several decades. Everyone knew that cultivating wastnd was a century-long endeavor, but after truly calcting the cost, who would be willing tomit to such extensive cultivation and development? ¡°You¡¯re impressive. In a few days, you opened up hundreds of acres of wastnd. By using this area as a base, relocating a few dozen farmer families here, we can already harvest next year. After breaking even, we can gradually expand from this spot without needing much investment and build a town,¡± Negris remarked in admiration. Ange shook his head: ¡°No need to wait until next year.¡± He responded, pressing down to leave a footprint. He was saying: they didn¡¯t need to wait until next year to have a harvest. The farnd he opened up was nned ording to the maximum range the Instant Death Halo could radiate. In the beginning, the Instant Death Halo could only radiate over three hundred acres, but now it could cover six hundred acres, so he opened up farnd with six hundred acres in mind each time. With Fang Mu in the Infinite Tower, it was equivalent to having six or more Grandmaster Creators. It could fulfill all the Creator resource gaps of a faction, and have a substantial surplus. In addition to Fang Mu, the faction boasted a Master Creator and Jiang Weng, the Forging Spirit Grandmaster. The Forging Spirit Grandmaster could forge spiritual instruments for the Infinite Tower continuously, even capable of creating Ghost Devices. The Infinite Tower possessed high-end resources that were unmatched by other factions, and as an Earth Evil Spirit, Liu Xi could elevate the prestige of the Infinite Tower. This allowed the newly established Infinite Tower to bear the semnce of top-tier factions! This was the first time Qin Shao, Shui Miao and Shu Liangjun heard Fang Mu mention the Infinite Tower. They were aware of Fang Mu¡¯s identity as a disciple of Qixing. A disciple of a Grandmaster Creator represents the dignity of the Grandmaster Creator with his every action. Therefore, Fang Mu could not possibly make up the affiliation of his faction at will.@@novelbin@@ It indicates that it¡¯s true that Fang Mu ims to be from the Infinite Tower! However, it¡¯s unknown whether Qixing joined this faction or built it! Shu Liangjun had mostly been focusing on how to extend his lifespan over the past few decades, thus not giving much thought to other matters. Turning green at the swift realization, an outraged Sava eximed, ¡°Kvada! Who¡¯s cursing me!? This is a Sleeping Beauty¡­¡± She copsed to the floor before she could finish her sentence and began snoring soundly. Hearing themotion, Vania poked her head in. With an ¡®as usual¡¯ look on her face, she walked in, extended a hand, and checked for breathing. ¡°Mm, there¡¯s breathing. Throw her on the bed. If there¡¯s no breathing, find Lisa.¡± Muttering, Vania stripped Sava bare and threw her onto the bed. Chapter 601 - 336: Exchange Something? What?_2 Chapter 601: Chapter 336: Exchange Something? What?_2 When the dinner was brought in in the evening, Sava had already groggily sat up on the bed. The light from the Magic Crystal Night Light shone on her face, reflecting a smooth gloss. ¡°Eh, you¡¯re awake? What happened to your face? Why is it so tender?¡± Vania queried. Upon hearing the word ¡®tender¡¯, Sava suddenly jumped out of the bed and dashed over to the mirror: ¡°Wow, it is really tender! My Sleeping Beauty Potion worked? Wonderful, I¡¯m going to be rich, I¡¯m going to be rich!¡± Vania nced at her t abs, speaking exasperatedly: ¡°Can you put some clothes on first? Do you believe in the God of Knowledge, or rather, the god of gold coins? All you ever think about is getting rich.¡± Sava looked cheerful:¡±I believe in the God of Knowledge for the sake of getting rich, hahaha, I¡¯m going to be rich, I¡¯m going to be rich, Lady Lisa will give me a bonus,.¡± In her tion, Savapletely didn¡¯t notice that her weak connection with Negris just snapped with a snap. Negris felt something was wrong, looked at his true form and saw the Bronze Book gradually dimming. ¡°What¡¯s going on? What happened? Where¡¯s my follower? Sava? Sava? Are you dead?¡± Negris was frantic. Under his incessant urging, Ange had no choice but to teleport back to Heaven at full speed, then transported to Demon Valley, and finally took the Teleportation Array back to Goddess of Beauty City.
After a long, chaotic journey to theb, he pushed open the door to see Sava very much alive, sitting there smiling and humming a song. Everyone was taken aback when they rushed in. Under Negris¡¯s interrogation, it was finally clear what had happened. Negris, his scales standing on end with anger, rebuked her: ¡°Are you saying, you said, ¡®I believe in the God of Knowledge for the sake of getting rich¡¯?¡± Sava, looking awkward, put her head in and giggled: ¡°I said it casually, just casually.¡± ¡°You infidel, you infidel, you infidel.¡± Negris was so angry that he hit her head with his tiny ws as if it was filled with water, making a dull noise. Sava, feeling like she had done something extremely wrong from Negris¡¯s fury, didn¡¯t dare to talk back like before and curled up, clutching her head. Anyway, Negris didn¡¯t dare to hit her hard, so it didn¡¯t hurt. Durken, after watching for a while, seemed to understand something: ¡°This is your follower, you haven¡¯t taught your follower about the precautions about faith, have you? Where¡¯s your priest?¡± It was now Negris¡¯s turn to be embarrassed: ¡°She¡¯s my only follower.¡± Durken looked solemn: ¡°A single follower? Her? You didn¡¯t teach her anything?¡± Negris gave an awkward smile: ¡°How was I supposed to know that her faith is so weak, she says anything.¡± Anthony also followed them back, shaking his head upon hearing this: ¡°This cannot be taken lightly, she must be thinking likewise in her heart, this is sphemy against faith, more disgusting than heresy, an infidel, burn her. In the Church of Light, infidels are to be tied up to the Stake of Executions and burned for seven days and nights.¡± Sava was so frightened her mouth dropped open: ¡°Is it¡­ Is it that serious? I¡­ I just said that casually, Lord Negris, I believe in you, I sincerely believe in you.¡± Negris looked at the still-dimming Bronze Book and then came out and smirked: ¡°Fake, you¡¯re not sincere at all, you must not think so in your heart, just burn her.¡± Sava rolled her eyes and fainted. Anthony was amused, she pretended to faint, but her lower eyelids were still moving. He turned to Negris and said: ¡°Lord Negris, this won¡¯t do. What use is a single follower, and you don¡¯t teach her any rules, it¡¯s no different from free-range.¡± Negris spread his hands: ¡°What¡¯s the use of having so many followers, I can¡¯t teach them to grow vegetables, my most recent knowledge is about growing vegetables.¡± ¡°What¡¯s wrong with vegetables? Growing vegetables is knowledge too, just teach that. Do you remember the Spring Breeze Cup Grain Competition? Due to the drought, this year¡¯s Grain Competition is not just about yield, but also added a project about adaptability. You could participate in the Grain Competition with Lord Ange, and teach them vegetable-growing knowledge.¡± Ange, who was always sticking his hand in the space, finally lifted his head when he heard this. Whatever sh Feiti or the Gods of Light or Soul Storm or Faith Storm, Ange wasn¡¯t that interested, he found growing things more fun. Well, since Ange was interested, what point was there in Negris¡¯s opposition? The venue wasn¡¯t far, it was in the Republic of Steris, the time was the harvest season a monthter, but registration started now. Signing up for thepetition was quite convenient for Ange, all he had to do was find a little girl in Goddess of Beauty City. ¡°What? You guys are signing up for the crop contest? You guys? The Undead God and the God of Knowledge? Joining the crop contest?¡± Auburnli looked at Ange and Negris, with a doubtful gaze, advising, ¡°That¡¯s a professional contest. The highest yield per acre has already broken a thousand pounds. Although Lord Ange knows how to farm, it¡¯s better not to participate.¡± What she was implying was: Amateur yers shouldn¡¯t enter professional contests, you¡¯ll embarrass yourselves. Auburnli isn¡¯t one of us and isn¡¯t aware of many things. Naturally, Negris wouldn¡¯t bother exining, but simply said, ¡°What conditions are required to sign up? Just say it, we¡¯ll deal with the rest.¡± ¡°You really want to participate?¡± Auburnli asked seriously, and once confirmed, she waved her hand and said, ¡°What conditions are you talking about? What conditions are needed when I¡¯m here? Do you consider me dead, huh?¡± She paused then added, ¡°However, after registration, you need to bring a growth monitoring stone pir and insert it into yourpetition field. It collects data for half a month, which will then be input into the simted magic formation to simte. Make sure to insert it for exactly half a month, not more or less, and no cheating is allowed.¡±@@novelbin@@ ¡°I heard that Lord Ange can elerate the growth of crops, but that¡¯s absolutely not allowed, it would cause abnormal data.¡± Negris nodded to indicate he understood, ¡°OK, I got it. Where do we need to register?¡± ¡°You can register right here with me. I¡¯ll note it down for you. What name are you going to use for the contest? Here, this is the monitoring stone pir, once it¡¯s inserted into the soil, you can¡¯t pull it out, otherwise, the count restarts. It has to monitor for half a month, up until the harvest is finished.¡± ¡°Alright, what should we name ourselves? How about Spring Breeze?¡± ¡°No way, Spring Breeze for the Spring Breeze Cup? Trying to brand yourself?¡± Negris turned to discuss with Ange. After the two, infamous for their poor naming skills, thought about it for a while, they decided on, ¡°How about Saline Magic Rice Team?¡± ¡°You guys want to use Saline Demon Rice to participate? It¡¯s better not to use that name, others will prepare ahead of time specifically for you. Don¡¯t even mention saline, just call it salted fish.¡± ¡°Salted Fish Team? Sounds weird, but oh well, let¡¯s just go with that.¡± Ange and Negris looked at each other, and without any better ideas, they agreed to this name. ¡­ Lightning, having nothing to do, was wandering around, the ¡®fur hat¡¯ on its head suddenly moved, it shook its head hard, but the ¡®fur hat¡¯ stayedpletely still. ¡°What are you doing? Stop moving around.¡± A furry w stuck out from the ¡®fur hat¡¯, holding an elf bean and dangling it near Lightning¡¯s mouth. Lightning stuck out its tongue to lick off the bean, since it epted the bribe it said, ¡°Okay, fine, you can move.¡± The ¡®fur hat¡¯ started moving, two small paws constantly moving in and out, switching things around from the left to right, and right to left. ¡°Are you organizing your things? Why are they all elf beans? How many elf beans did you steal from the boss? Bribe me quick, or I¡¯ll tell on you.¡± The big cat had no choice but to submit to tyranny and offered another elf bean. Lightning licked it off in one go, then let out a burp. Two elf beans were enough to keep it nourished for a day, it didn¡¯t need to eat anything else. It could go back, eat a few sweet potatoes as dessert after dinner, then have some bubbly wine and it would be good. The big cat suddenly jumped down from Lightning¡¯s head. The sudden breeze left Lightning in a hurry, shouting, ¡°Where are you going? Come back quick, my head feels cold.¡± It seems, it really considered the big cat as a hat. The big cat ignored it, rushing off and quickly disappeared from sight. It quickly arrived in front of Ange, extending its paw, and ced it in front of Ange, ¡°meow~¡± Ange cocked his head, ¡°Trade? Trade what?¡± ¡°Meow~¡± As it spoke, it opened its paw, revealing a purple-gold finger bone tucked underneath. Chapter 602 - 337: Did you steal the kings divinity?"_1 Chapter 602: Chapter 337: Did you steal the king¡¯s divinity?¡±_1 Ange picked it up curiously, took out his own two sections, put them together, and formed aplete finger bone. A finger has three sections, and now he had them all. Negris leaned in, petting the big cat while asking, ¡°Why do you have an extra segment? Didn¡¯t you say you¡¯d run out before? You¡¯ve been holding out on us, haven¡¯t you?¡± ¡°Meow~¡± the big cat replied. ¡°I don¡¯t quite understand your dialect. Are you saying you just traded for it?¡± Negris asked, sounding uncertain. The big cat nodded vigorously. Its fur was too long, so its nodding motion looked like its head was moving up and down within a ball of fluff. ¡°Where? And how did you trade for it? Was it with Feiti?¡± Negris picked up the big cat and shook it a bit. ¡°Meow! Meow! Meow!¡± The big cat did a spin and kicked Negris in the face before running away. ¡°What was the trade?¡± Ange didn¡¯t pay attention to their quarrel and asked directly. ¡°Meow~¡± the big cat called out.
Ange took out an Unbounded Gem from his pocket and tossed it over. The big cat leapt nimbly and urately caught the gem in its mouth. Negris didn¡¯t chase it, knowing he wouldn¡¯t catch it anyway. He turned and asked: ¡°Hey, what¡¯s this?¡± He took out a plump grass from Ange¡¯s hand and shook it in front of the big cat.@@novelbin@@ The big cat was so excited that its entire head popped out from its fluffy fur. Its eyes were round and huge, and it dropped the Unbounded Gem it was holding in its mouth without realizing it. Still somewhat aware, it quickly picked up the Unbounded Gem and used a short-range teleport to appear in front of Negris, sitting obediently. Negris looked at the cat, then at the grass in his hand. Looking shocked, he muttered, ¡°This is too effective. What type of grass is this?¡± When the big cat was still an Evil God, it had traded with Ange using Upgrade Beans. It once brought an extra seed with it. Ange had grown that seed into a nt in his spatial farm. Since it had slipped through the cat¡¯s fingers, it must be something it likes, right? So Negris took it out on a whim to y with the cat, never expecting such a dramatic reaction. This wasn¡¯t merely a liking anymore; it was addiction. Can you believe the cat was even using spatial teleportation to get it? ¡°Meow~¡± ¡°You don¡¯t even know what it is, do you? Well, then let¡¯s call it Cat Grass. Do you want this Cat Grass?¡± Negris asked. The big cat nodded eagerly, spit out the Unbounded Crystal, and pushed it with its paw to Negris¡¯s front. Does it mean¡­ it doesn¡¯t want the Unbounded Crystal anymore, preferring the Cat Grass instead? Is this thing so attractive? Ange had grown several dozens of these nts from that seed. A look of a joyous capitalist spread across Negris¡¯s face: ¡°Big Cat, the Unbounded Crystal is yours. If you want the Cat Grass, that is easy. Help me find Feiti¡¯s location, and this piece of Cat Grass is yours.¡± Worried that the big cat wouldn¡¯t know who Feiti was, he turned and pointed at the finger bone in Ange¡¯s hand. The big cat pondered for a moment, then showed the four toes on one of its paws, meowing, ¡°Meow~¡± ¡°Five pieces of Cat Grass, huh? Let me talk to Ange about it.¡± After discussing with Ange, Negris agreed: ¡°Five pieces of Cat Grass, and you find Feiti¡¯s location for me.¡± ¡°Meow~¡± It¡¯s a deal. Payment first. As soon as the Cat Grass was handed over, the big cat impatiently snuggled it with all four limbs, bringing the top of the grass near its cheeks to take a deep sniff with an intoxicated look on its face. ¡°Can it be that miraculous?¡± Seeing this, everyone couldn¡¯t help but be curious. On the surface, this was a harmless, oversized, fat cat. But those who knew it were well aware that this was a Dimension Beast, a natural spatial creature capable of moving freely in the void, and traveling through space as easily as passing through a door hole. What on earth was this Cat Grass that could rapture it so? Turning to look at Durken, it was clear that he had the same thought. Their gaze finallynded on Luther. Were there so few living things around Ange that Luther was now relegated to the role of a test subject? Taking a new piece of Cat Grass, Luther sniffed it like the big cat had. He didn¡¯t feel a thing. ¡°Could it be that ordinary people don¡¯t smell it? Only Dimension Beasts can? Or perhaps only Spatial Mages can?¡± Durken spected. When it came to Spatial Mages, everyone simultaneously thought of one name: ¡°Hiludi, quick, find Hiludi. She should be in ss now, should we go to Steris Academy to look for her?¡± After giving the order, Lisa soon brought Hiludi over from the Oasis Sand Bathing Center. ¡°Wow, you actually got your points level up to seven? All expenses are reduced to 30%. Have you just decided to live here? Shouldn¡¯t you be back at school?¡± Negris was utterly shocked. The first shock was about how Hiludi got her points level up to seven? ording to this points count, she and her invited guests must have spent at least 20 million Demon Crystals in the Goddess of Beauty City. Basically, customers are only credited on her ount for their first visit. After that, everyone gets their own card, and their expenses count towards their individual points, entitling them to a discount. That means Hiludi must continuously bring in new customers, and only when their first-time expenditure reached 20 million Demon Crystals could she reach level seven. Dear God, just how many people has she brought to this ce? The second surprise came when Lisa said she had started living at the bathing center full-time. She had even booked a private booth in the sand bath area, eating and living there. As her points rank was high and she got significant discounts, living there cost only a tad higher than staying in an inn. Chapter 603 - 337: Did You Steal the Kings Divinity?"_2 Chapter 603: Chapter 337: Did You Steal the King¡¯s Divinity?¡±_2 She was a Space Mage after all. She rolled up all her belongings, rearranged a bit, and instantly added the space of a three-room apartment to the tiny room that was not much bigger than a bed. ¡°I feel more effective meditating buried in warm sand. What do you want to do?¡± Hiludi asked suspiciously, ¡°The points are mine, the room is mine, and you can¡¯t change the rules and drive me away.¡± ¡°Why would I drive you away? Do whatever you want; you can even build your own sand bathing area,¡± Negris said irritably. ¡°No need, it¡¯s better with more people. Anyway, why are you looking for me?¡± Hiludi asked. ¡°Here, smell this.¡± Negris pulled out cat grass. Hiludi moved close, looked at it, and sniffed it. Noticing nothing wrong, she cautiously cast a space perception technique. What was most important for a Space Mage? Spatial perception. It was like needing to watch where you were going. If you walked with your eyes closed, what would happen if bumped into a mountain or fell into a pit? Spatial perception was the ability to ¡®see¡¯ the ¡®path¡¯ within different spaces to avoid falling into pits. Falling into a pit while walking meant you could get back up. If you fell into a pit while traversing space, it could cost you your life. So, Hiludi dodged most magic, but she always paid attention to her space perception technique.
Upon sensing the cat grass, she sat down abruptly: ¡°Star-opening Grass?¡± ¡°Star-opening Grass?¡± Negris asked in confusion. ¡°There are stars in the sky that guide us at night, and there is star-opening grass in the void that guides us in the darkness. With it, I won¡¯t be afraid of getting lost in the void,¡± Hiludi said excitedly, getting up. ¡°A single grass?¡± Negris asked skeptically, implying that he was not convinced that a single grass could assist in locating in the vast void.@@novelbin@@ The void was continuously changing. Even the rtive positions of the nes changed constantly. Therefore, entering the void or teleporting to another ne without the teleportation array was very dangerous. ¡°Of course, it¡¯s not that simple. It needs to be refined to extract the substance that can make the spatial sense extremely sensitive. Sava, Sava, where is Sava?¡± Hiludi asked excitedly. As a Space Mage, her biggest problem was locating. It was like walking into a dark cave with countless side roads, very easy to get lost in. If she had the star-opening grass juice, she could spray a bit when she arrived at unfamiliar ces. It would remain in the space for a long time. Even if she got lost, she could use the spatial perception technique to locate and find her way back. If it was sprayed on her, it would draw a continuous perception line. ¡°Don¡¯t mention Sava,¡± Negris said angrily, ¡°She¡¯s dead, no need to look for her.¡± ¡°Ah? She died? When did she die? Where is she buried? I will go and leave a flower as a token of my grief,¡± Hiludi said with deep sorrow. But her attention was soon diverted by Ange¡¯s actions. He was seen grinding the star-opening grass, refining it, using a spot removal spell to eliminate some substances he knew, leaving those he didn¡¯t recognize. As soon as the purification was done, the big cat, which had been indulging in the cat grass on the ground for a long time, rolled up, its eyes flickering at the bottle in Ange¡¯s hand. Looking at it, you could tell that the star-opening grass¡¯s refining was sessful. At the big cat¡¯s strong request, Ange switched the cat grass to this refined juice, filled it into a crystal bottle, and ced a switch on the bottle. When the big cat¡¯s paw pressed it, some tiny vents would appear, dispersing the substance stored inside. The big cat was then seen squinting its eyes in intoxication, like a cat that had sniffed catnip. Suddenly, the big cat, in a trance with cat grass, got up abruptly and reached out its paw. Its posture clearly showed that it was reaching forward, but its paws didn¡¯t seem to extend out. It seemed as if the paws were reaching out to another ne directly from its furball. In a short while, it pulled out a bead. ¡°A resentful spirit bead? How did it end up here?¡± Durken recognized it at once. Such a bead ¡ª a Resentful Spirit Bead ¡ª could only form in environments heavily steeped in wraith energy. It had many uses, from alchemy and soul forging to offering sacrifices for reincarnation, and was worth far more than elf beans. Just as he finished speaking, a message echoed from the Resentful Spirit Bead: ¡°Don¡¯t consume it¡­ find¡­ the Undead God¡­¡± Ange tilted his head: You¡¯re looking for me? ¡°These thoughts, are they from Feiti?!¡± Durken¡¯s spirits picked up. Negris was equally excited: ¡°Quick quick quick, reply to it, ask where it is.¡± Durken erased Feiti¡¯s thoughts from the Resentful Spirit Bead, left his own, and had the big cat return it. After a while, the big cat brought the Resentful Spirit Bead back again, indeed inscribed with Feiti¡¯s new thoughts: ¡°I don¡¯t know¡­ who are you?¡± ¡°I am Durken, Durken, do you remember?¡± Durken asked. ¡°I don¡¯t remember¡­¡± Negris scoffed: ¡°Haha, you¡¯re pretty forgettable. Look at me! Isn¡¯t our rtionship the best among us all? It was because of me teaching it the mysteries of time and space that it finally understood. Feiti, I¡¯m Negris. Do you remember me?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t remember¡­¡± ¡°Hahahahahaha!!!¡± After somemunication through the Resentful Spirit Bead, everyone roughly understood Feiti¡¯s current situation. It had forgotten too many things. For now, it probably only remembered its own name, the Undead God, and the Resting Camp. ¡°Where are you now, do you know? What¡¯s at your location? Can you describe it? We¡¯ll think of a way to find you.¡± Negris said. ¡°I¡¯m not looking for you¡­ I¡¯m looking for the Undead God.¡± Feiti¡¯s reply left Negris speechless. ¡°Yes, yes, yes, the Undead God is with me. Hurry up and tell us about your environment and situation.¡± Negris impatiently responded. ¡°Lots of bones¡­ corpses¡­ weapons, armor, teleportation array¡­¡± ¡°Wait, teleportation array? You have a teleportation array there? Oh right, Dyson, Divine Bone, they can¡¯t transport without a teleportation array. Quick, quick, quick, start up the teleportation array and tell us the coordinates, do you remember how to start and adjust it? You don¡¯t remember? Come, I¡¯ll teach you.¡± Having a teleportation array made things easier ¨C whether it was Feiti teleporting directly here or Ange and the others teleporting there, it all depended on one coordinate. After some guidance, Feiti finally activated the teleportation array, and there was even no need for Ange¡¯s side to supply a Demon Crystal, as the teleportation array already had a Demon Crystal stored within it. The teleportation array glowed brightly for a moment, and when it appeared again, the sky and thend had changed. This was a gloomy world, without sunlight or sky, the air was extraordinarily thin, with only a thinyer on the ground. As for the thin air, there was no particle diffusion, so one could directly see the dark void. asionally, multicolored lights streaked across the horizon, beautiful like meteors. Outside the teleportation array, Feiti was standing in ce. It saw Ange at first nce and sensed the Undead Godhood on Ange. Ange naturally saw it too. Their thoughts brushed against each other in the air, and some constraint immediately opened in Feiti¡¯s soul. A steady stream of memories surged out non-stop, bombarding its soul and leaving it frozen on the spot. ¡°Frozen? What¡¯s wrong? Feiti? Feiti?¡± Negris eximed. ¡°Its soul fluctuation is very intense, what happened, just because it saw us? Too excited?¡± Durken spoke. ¡°It should not be, it doesn¡¯t even remember us. It¡¯s probably due to the Undead Godhood, isn¡¯t it? Didn¡¯t they say that the Undead Godhood can revive its memory? Is it regaining its memory?¡± ¡°Possibly, but what should we do? Wait?¡± ¡°Wait, what else can we do? Do you want a chair? A tailored lying bed, with a tail-shaped groove for your butt.¡± ¡°Ah, I remember those electric chairs at the World Transfer Station control room, those were probably your work, right?¡± Negris talked while lying on the tailored chair. After waiting for half an hour, Feiti, who was frozen on the spot, finally moved. Its gaze was fixed on Ange, it asked confusedly: ¡°Who are you? Why is the Undead Godhood on you? Did you steal the king¡¯s Godhood?¡± Chapter 604 - 338: The Logistics Warehouse of the Undead Empire_1 Chapter 604: Chapter 338: The Logistics Warehouse of the Undead Empire_1 Ange cocked his head, but before he could speak, Negris had already called out anxiously, ¡°No lies! The Undead Godhood chose Ange as its sessor.¡± Kvada, usurping the Undead King¡¯s Godhood? Who would dare to bear such a grave charge? Don¡¯t forget, besides Feiti, the Land of Fallen still has Harvey and the Great Sage, and millions of Undead. The Undead Empire was too vast in those days, no one knows if there are any souls still loyal to Your Majesty. For instance, did the witch disappear, or is she hiding? ording to spection, the witch should possess a godhood, so Your Majesty warned her to be careful of the Soul Storm. This is also why Negris has been reluctant to guide Harvey back. Theoretically, as long as the global transfer station is activated, Harvey can be teleported back.@@novelbin@@ The return of too many souls loyal to the Undead King would certainly lead to one question: who does the Resting Camp belong to? The Resting Camp is in Ange¡¯s hands. No one can rob him of it, but what if Harvey insists on having it?
It¡¯s best not to return for now until these issues are resolved. ¡°Impossible, why would the Undead Godhood choose a human as its sessor? He must have used some despicable methods, ah-¡± As he was talking, Feiti suddenly curved his body and let out a spiritual shriek. With his shriek, the entire ne was hit with wave-like echoes, the dead bodies from all around stood up, following his shriek like ripples, they stirred up waves of a corpse tide, slowly moving towards the teleportation array. The most frightening aspect of the Undead isn¡¯t the dreadfully strong Lord of Mourning, nor the immortal souls, but the undead corpse tide that doesn¡¯t fear death and is as endless as the sea. They rush at you fearlessly, allowing weapons to hack at their bodies, they never retreat. If you hack them to pieces, they fear nothing. If you make a mistake and get killed by them, you¡¯ll soon be part of them. The elite Golden Skeleton rode the aura of the King¡¯s Arrival, summoning all the dead bodies on the ground like a tidal wave. When they start moving, they be a cmity¡ªthe Undead Cmity. Turning Undead into a cmity, you can imagine, when people face them, they¡¯re as powerless as when they face naturally urring cmities. Not only that, with Feiti¡¯s shriek, space rifts started to open in front of him, but it¡¯s strange that nothing ising out of the rifts. Feiti was also puzzled, ¡°Where are my Golden Skeletons?¡± The divine bone skeleton didn¡¯t call them away, did it? Negris wondered to himself. Seeing the undead tide surging towards them, Ange suddenly curved his body: Roar-! His body erupted with raging Soul me. The corpses that were slowly starting to surge towards them suddenly slowed down in hesitation, and finally, they stoppedpletely. Feiti¡¯s soul surged with strong suspicion, ¡°You, you suppressed me?¡± ¡°Of course, Ange is the Undead God, and these corpses apparently don¡¯t belong to you directly, they would naturally obey the Undead God first. Don¡¯t worry, what did you say just now? You said ¡®the Undead Godhood would not choose a human to inherit¡¯? Do you think he is human?¡± Negris quickly stepped in between Feiti and Ange and said urgently. ¡°Not a human?¡± Feiti asked in confusion. Negris didn¡¯t know what to say, Feiti is the Lord of Mourning, although he didn¡¯t remember it, as the Lord of Mourning, he should have a dreadfully strong soul, stronger than divines, his spiritual power should naturally be dreadfully strong, yet now he can¡¯t see through Ange¡¯s Illusion Technique? Last time in the Land of Fallen, he didn¡¯t meet Harvey, so he wasn¡¯t sure, but now he¡¯s certain, Ange¡¯s monstrous spiritual power is higher than the Lord of Mourning. Whether Ange was this high from the beginning, or slowly became this high after inheriting the godhood, either way, it¡¯s amazing. ¡°What if he isn¡¯t?¡± Negris asked. Feiti paused for a moment: ¡°It doesn¡¯t matter.¡± Negris muttered to himself: ¡°Why didn¡¯t you take the bait, really, Ange, take your hat off and show him.¡± Ange took off his hat, revealing his skull form. ¡°Golden Skeleton?! Impossible! Scarecrow hat? Even more impossible, how could a Golden Skeleton have such strong spiritual power?!¡± Feiti eximed in disbelief. Negris shrugged, ¡°Maybe that¡¯s why the Undead Godhood chose him.¡± Feiti¡¯s astonished gaze lingered on Ange for a while, then turned to Durken, and finallynded back on Negris: ¡°So the Undead Godhood truly chose him, and he didn¡¯t steal it?¡± Durken had no choice but to speak: ¡°Feiti, what do you think? Is the Undead Godhood something you can steal if you want?¡± Makes sense, can the Undead Godhood be stolen as one pleases? That underestimates the king too much. ¡°He really inherited it? Why did the godhood choose him?¡± Feiti straightened up, his posture less aggressive, and his tone alsocked hostility. ¡°It¡¯s a long story¡­¡± Negris recounted the events of these years, leaving Feiti and Durken dumbstruck. Durken was also hearing some of these things for the first time. After listening to all these things, Feiti looked at Ange and said with aplicated tone, ¡°Farming skeleton? That¡¯s one lucky guy.¡± Negris shook his head, ¡°Not exactly lucky, although his luck is indeed good. But could you, for instance, nt things daily for a thousand years? Thanks to the Farm Barrier that helped to maintain bnce with the growth of matter, otherwise the Resting Camp would have copsed long ago, so he saved the Resting Camp.¡± Chapter 605 - 338: The Logistics Warehouse of the Undead Empire _2 Chapter 605: Chapter 338: The Logistics Warehouse of the Undead Empire _2 Whether it was good fortune or salvation did not matter, at least it proved that Ange was not a godhood that was seized, but a godhood that was recognized. Realizing this, Feiti muttered a word that no one could hear clearly and knelt on one knee: ¡°God of Immortality, may your soul persist eternally, unquenchable through the ages.¡± This was a ceremonious kneeling, expressing his respect for the Undead Godhood. After paying his respects, he stood up. Negris was somewhat disappointed. This was different from what he expected, yet it was reasonable. As the Lord of Mourning and the most loyal warrior of the Undead King, how could Feiti dedicate his soul to others simply because the Undead Godhood was transferred? Durken was forced into it. The newly reborn him would remain in eternal slumber if he didn¡¯t offer his soul. But it was just as well, at least the hostility from Feiti was gone. Now, Negris could ask more questions. ¡°Feiti, you know that His Majesty has disappeared, don¡¯t you?¡± Negris asked tentatively, trying to gauge how much of his memory had returned. ¡°I know.¡± Feiti nodded: ¡°I watched the King enter the Void Gate with my own eyes. You guys have even inherited the Undead Godhood, so the King probably didn¡¯t make it back.¡± ¡°Do you know why His Majesty went into the Void Gate? What was the Soul Storm about? Before that, it seemed His Majesty had severed the Soul Contact of all people, including yours.¡± Negris asked.
¡°Of course, he was going there to kill. It was too dangerous, the King said he wouldn¡¯t take me with him. So he asked Locke and me to wipe out everyone else to avoid a Faith Storm and cause a chain reaction.¡± Feiti exined. ¡°Enter the Void Gate to kill? Why?¡± Negris asked. ¡°From what the King said, some folks hid in the depths of the void, umted strength in very special ways,unched a Soul Storm, also called a Faith Storm, wishing to eliminate gods and kings at the level of faith. So, the King decided to strike first, and went there to butcher them.¡± Upon hearing this, both Negris and Durken were dumbstruck. Eliminating kings and gods together? My god, is the power of the Soul Storm so horrifying? It¡¯s not just horrifying, but also initiated by some ¡®guys¡¯? What sort of entities could initiate a storm that wipes out both kings and gods? ¡°I don¡¯t know, they call themselves evil gods.¡± At this point, they all simultaneously thought of a fluffy giant cat shaking their heads in disbelief. With its cute and cuddly looks, it hardly matched the image of an evil god. ording to Feiti¡¯s ount, Negris roughly understood. Somewhere in the void, a group of evil gods were trying to release a Soul Storm, or a Faith Storm, essentially a power at the level of faith, capable of directly affecting gods and kings. This storm appeared to span nes, affecting all within a certain range. It was an internar attack. To strike first, the King tried to locate where the Evil Gods were, got there ahead of time, and nned to eliminate those entities. Due to theplexity of the situation in the void, he didn¡¯t bring any of his loyal subjects with him. Instead, he let Locke and Feiti kill the rest of the gods first, to avoid the possible chain reactions when a Faith Storm happens. ¡°What kind of logic is this? To kill them first because he¡¯s afraid they¡¯d die?¡± Negris was bewildered. Durken shook his head: ¡°It¡¯s not that simple, the copse of faith can have a severe chain reaction. It affects many devout followers, especially when faith copses on arge scale, the consequences are unpredictable.¡±@@novelbin@@ Feiti nodded: ¡°That¡¯s what the King said too. He said that under a Faith Storm, each shattered godhood bes a new source of storm, affecting many followers. Just to be safe, it¡¯s better to kill them off first.¡± Negris felt a surge of emotion. From Feiti¡¯s casual words, he could vividly perceive the Undead King¡¯s might. Just for the sake of safety, to preserve devout followers, he could eliminate all the gods. Judging by the results, the King¡¯s decision was absolutely right. The disappearance of the gods has not caused any impact. Even now, many people don¡¯t even know that the gods have disappeared. The Faith Storm also hasn¡¯t caused any impact. In the Master ne, everyone is safe and sound, and the Resting Abyss is peaceful. However, the King didn¡¯t expect his two powerful subordinates to die or lose memory. The Great Sage was blocked in the Land of Fallen, Resting Pce was sealed because it wasn¡¯t opened and gradually stepped towards the edge of copse. As a result, the Undead Empire disintegrated. A thousand years had passed, the king had not returned, the gods were slowly reborn, a new Lord of Mourning emerged, the Temple of Rest weed its master again, and the Undead Godhood was inherited. These news were too shocking, Negris couldn¡¯t digest them for a while and had to change the topic temporarily, ¡°Feiti, what are your future ns?¡± ¡°Return to the Temple of Rest.¡± Feiti answered. ¡°That can¡¯t be done, Ange is currently the master of Ange¡¯s Pce. Without a soul offering, we can¡¯t let you return.¡± Negris stated. Not only did they prevent it from returning to the Temple of Rest, but they also forbade it from going anywhere else. If a Lord of Mourning appears in the Master ne, the result would be terrifying. No one could control it. If it became chaotic, Ange might not even havend for cultivation. Feiti casually picked up a skull, flicked a piece of Soul Fire into it, and threw it into a pile of bones. With a clinking sound, the skull quickly assembled into a skeletal corpse. Apart from half-body skeletons, the skeletal corpse was now the lowest in the skeleton hierarchy. Feiti¡¯s body froze for a moment, and soon, the skeletal corpse began to move, with Feiti¡¯s voice emanating from it, ¡°I have projected onto it, I will go back to take a look.¡± This was eptable, as a skeletal corpse wouldn¡¯t be able to do much even if it had some thoughts. ¡°Ange, Ange, Kvada, what are you doing again? It¡¯s dark and dry and cold here, what can you grow in the farnd here?¡± Negris was almost cursing in annoyance. While everyone was chatting, the damn skeleton took the opportunity to till thend again. But what could be grown on this deste ne without sunlight, water, and it¡¯s frigid? Ange pulled out some Soul Moss. ¡°Pfft¡­¡± Negris wanted to spit blood. There¡¯s no unsuitable climate, only unsuitable crops. Kvada, the environment here is indeed suitable for Soul Moss. It¡¯s dry and cold, and with so many corpses around, the Soul Energy is abundant, but it hadn¡¯t reached the concentration of the Resting Abyss where the wind of Breath of Death blows. ¡°We¡¯re about to leave¡­¡± Before the sentence was finished, they saw Ange stamp on the ground, and the newly nted Soul Moss grew rapidly. The skeletal corpse where Feiti had projected yarded at its lower jaw, murmuring, ¡°It seems that our new Undead God, Ange, is quite capable, can the Instant Death Halo be used like this?¡± Having cultivated a patch of Soul Moss covering several acres, Ange didn¡¯t continue. This kind of crop doesn¡¯t have many uses, and several acres should be enough for a long time, even considering the needs of Sava¡¯s newly invented sleep beauty potion. Stuffing the skeletal corpse, where Feiti had projected, into the Temple of Rest, Ange slowly steps into the air, scanning thend in front of him. On his back, a circle appeared ¡ª¡ª the Ring of Bnce. Ten thousand, a hundred thousand, five hundred thousand, seven hundred thousand¡­ wherever his eyes focused, there were in total seven hundred thousand corpses. Many corpses were d in broken armor or holding worn-out weapons. this ce was evidently an ancient battlefield. Not all of the seven hundred thousand corpses possessed a Soul Fire, possibly less than one-fifth had it. A remaining majority might have dissipated on their own, simr to those in the Land of Fallen. Undeads are not truly immortal. When they are in a closed space and their souls can¡¯t be replenished, they will slowly vanish. ¡°There¡¯s something.¡± Ange pointed suddenly at the end of the horizon. Under the illumination of his Ring of Bnce, in that area, the undead with ¡®souls¡¯ were rtively more numerous. Leaving the projected Feiti behind, who was still in a daze, the group flew to the end of the horizon, where they saw arge cluster of tents. These tents were already tattered and copsed, covering the things below. When one of them was flipped open, they were surprised to find that it was full of wooden boxes, and each row of tents had piled up hundreds of boxes, each containing objects wrapped in oil paper. ¡°Soul crystals!¡± Tearing open an oil-paper package, Negris shouted excitedly. ¡°Soul crystals!¡± ¡°They are all soul crystals!¡± Everyone started excitedly tearing open most of the oil-paper packages, revealing the intact soul crystals inside. ¡°Why are there so many soul crystals? My God, did the Undead Empire¡¯s logistics transport not food, but soul crystals?¡± Chapter 606 - 339: The Deep Foundations of the Undead Empire_1 Chapter 606: Chapter 339: The Deep Foundations of the Undead Empire_1 Negris had never apanied the Undead Army in battle, so she naturally didn¡¯t know what logistics were, and even thought undead didn¡¯t need logistics. ¡°You could do without logistics, but good logistics isbat power, you can¡¯t go to bed in the middle of a fight, can you?¡± Durken said. ¡°Good point, theck of logistics is the issue with Harvey and the Great Sage from the Land of Fallen. If they had enough Soul Crystals, the relentless assault could wear down the humans.¡± Negris agreed wholeheartedly. While they were talking, Little Zombie and Little Angel had already turned over all the tents, exposing the boxes inside. Ange¡¯s eyes swept past them, and with the Ring of Bnce simultaneously weighing, a specific amount was quickly obtained. ¡°Nine hundred boxes, one hundred thousand per box, ny million.¡± Ange said. ¡°We¡¯re rich, we¡¯re rich.¡± Negris excitedly said. Ange currently has around a million followers, belonging to the Undead God, the Goddess of Beauty, and the stolen portion of the Followers of Light and the Harvest Believers. On average, each person donates a Faith Elemental Force equivalent to about a fifth of a Soul Crystal per day. Of course, this is an average; some people give more, some less. For instance, someone like Oke can give dozens daily. Most people donate sporadically, sometimes more, sometimes less, sometimes not at all. After all, God is only a spiritual sustenance, not the entirety of life, and after a hard day¡¯s work, who has time to pray.
In this respect, the Church of Light does a better job, as prayers are mandatory before every meal, so the faith is usually quite devout with the stimtion of the scent of food. As for the other gods, theyck consistent rituals, and without long-term stimuli, the devotion of many followers is on the decline. Take the Harvest Goddess for example, during the harvest month, the number of Soul mes is very high every day. But once the harvest festival is over, the number of Soul mes drops continually, hitting rock bottom, and only increases during the next sowing and harvesting season. People won¡¯t remember the Harvest Goddess until it¡¯s time for the harvest. All in all, Ange¡¯s daily harvest of Soul Crystals is around two hundred thousand. The Soul Crystal here is just a unit of measure, and not the physical object offered by the followers. These ny million Soul Crystals are equivalent to Ange¡¯s ie for four hundred and fifty days ¨C indeed, it¡¯s an overnight fortune. ¡°There¡¯s one, a strange thing.¡± Ange pointed at a box pile in the distance, where there was a boxrger than those holding Soul Crystals. Upon opening it, it revealed something akin to a standing windmill. ¡°Durken, you made this didn¡¯t you? What is it?¡± Negris looked at it for a while, but couldn¡¯t recognize what it was, so she had to ask. ¡°It¡¯s a witch¡¯s windmill. Not my work, it¡¯s the witch¡¯s, and it can gather the Soul Energy from the surrounding space and refine it into Soul Crystals.¡± Durken replied. Negris was shocked: ¡°Refine Soul Crystals? Soul Crystals can be refined through a machine?¡± Durken shrugged, ¡°I¡¯d like to know too. The witch¡¯s creations never follow the rules, you¡¯ve got to ask her to know how she did it.¡± ¡°Where am I supposed to find her to ask? Can¡¯t even find a bone of hers, so why not just start the windmill and see how it refines?¡± Negris suggested. However, Durken shook his head: ¡°I don¡¯t know, the witch¡¯s methods are always very strange, there is no fixed pattern, and sometimes traps are set. Don¡¯t mess with it or you might be sted into the sky if something goes wrong.¡± Negris who was about to turn the windmill with her small ws immediately retracted her hands. ¡°So what should we do? We can¡¯t just leave it here. A device that can refine Soul Crystals, if we could start it up, wouldn¡¯t we have a steady supply of Soul Crystals?¡± Negris said with a sense of loss. ¡°That wouldn¡¯t happen, as Soul Energy is not infinite. Once the Soul Crystals in this area are refined, it will stop.¡± Upon saying this, Durken paused, and continued: ¡°As for whether it can be turned on, you can look around. The witch likes to prepare engineers for her creations. See if there¡¯s a mechanical engineer wrapped in oil paper around there.¡± Mechanical engineer? Negris was baffled. She looked around doubtfully and indeed found an oil-paper wrap buried in the ground near the boxes. She opened it up and it turned out to be apletely intact humanoid Mechanical Construct. Just around 1.6 meters tall, the humanoid Mechanical Construct had four arms, with a tool belt around its waist. It was wearing sses, and the left lens seemed to have a magnifying effect. This style, no need to ask, of course, was an engineer. Negris looked back at Durken, how was this Mechanical Engineer supposed to be activated?@@novelbin@@ ¡°I do know this. Turn it over, see the slot in the back? Look in the tool belt around its waist for a winding arm, take it, insert it, and wind.¡± Durken instructed. After winding for a while, there was no response¡­ ¡°Could it be out of energy?¡± Durken spected. Now it was Ange¡¯s turn. He ced his hand on the Mechanical Construct and infused it with Soul Energy, then Negris continued to wind. A mechanical sound of gears turning echoed inside the Mechanical Construct. Slowly, its eyes lit up. A ¡®beep¡¯, and it moved, stretching out its arms onto the ground and slowly getting up on its own. Slowly turning its head, the Mechanical Construct¡¯s eyes scanned everyone¡¯s faces. Upon seeing Durken, it produced a mechanical sound: ¡°Lord Durken.¡± Chapter 607 - 339: The Deep Foundations of the Undead Empire_2 Chapter 607: Chapter 339: The Deep Foundations of the Undead Empire_2 When it turned to Ange, it made a mechanical sound: ¡°A skeleton.¡± ¡°A corpse dragon, a zombie, an angel¡­beep beep beep, rm rm, angel detected, angel detected.¡± Its gaze circled over everyone, finallynding on the Little Angel, at which point the mechanical construct immediately initiated an rm. The Little Angel puffed out his cheeks and, in a sh, unfurled his light wings, but Ange scooped him up before the Holy Light could sh. ¡°Roar!¡± ¡°Roar!¡± The Little Angel defied, pointing a little hand at the construct. ¡°Roar! Roar!¡± The Little Angel sulked, turned his back, squatted on the ground, and angrily prodded the ground. Durken stepped over, raised his cape, and shielded the Little Angel. With the Little Angel out of sight, the construct¡¯s rms finally subsided, its gaze continuing to move.
Negris couldn¡¯t help but lean over and whispered, ¡°Is this thing that stupid? Couldn¡¯t it be a little smarter? Even a random undead wouldn¡¯t be this foolish.¡± ¡°Have you lost your mind?¡± Durken eximed in rm, ¡°This thing is buried as a backup. If you bury a soul, isn¡¯t that equivalent to imprisonment? The king would roast your soul if he knew.¡± ¡°Oh, oh, oh, right, right, right, I was wrong, it¡¯s too cruel to trap a soul in one ce. Although, I bet Ange would be quite happy if you trapped him on a farm.¡± Negris quickly apologized. He was not a natural undead, so sometimes he didn¡¯t react in time. If an undead really was sealed in a construct, wouldn¡¯t that be equivalent to indirect imprisonment? This is something that can¡¯t be tolerated in undead morality. Even for the Guardian Constructs, only Petersburg had consciousness. It wasn¡¯t that the others couldn¡¯t produce it, but to stay in the same ce for a long period of time was too cruel, and akin to indirect imprisonment for an eternal soul. ¡°Witch Windmill¡ªInspection¡ªIntact¡ªStart-up.¡± At this time, the construct had also discovered the Witch¡¯s Windmill. It immediately strode over for inspection and, having found it in good condition, pulled out its force arm from its back, inserted it into the windmill. ¡°Huh, is it that simple?¡± Negris wondered. Durken was also very surprised: ¡°It seems so.¡± With the rotation of the force arm, the windmill des also began to rotate. When it started to spin, everybody noticed that the des were hollow, they couldn¡¯t catch the wind, but they did manage to confine ¡®something else¡¯ in the air. When the des reached their peak speed, the construct stopped. Without it cranking the force arm, the windmill could now operate on its own. The des were extracting soul energy from the air to power the windmill, allowing it to continue to run, until there was enough excess to solidify into a Soul Crystal. Thirty secondster, a crisp sound rang out as if something had fallen off the base of the windmill. Upon opening it, behold, a Soul Crystal was there. ¡°Can it really extract Soul Crystals? How does it manage to do that?¡± Negris looked at the Soul Crystal, trying to prate the windmill with his thoughts. However, just like at the beginning, the core of the windmill was made of a material that blocked his thoughts, so Negris couldn¡¯t scan the inside. ¡°Should we dismantle it and take a look?¡± ¡°Yes, yes, I¡¯ve wanted to see for a while.¡± ¡°Forget it, forget it, it will be bad if we can¡¯t put it back together.¡± They hadn¡¯t talked for long before they heard another dinging sound. As more and more Soul Crystals were extracted, Negris calcted the rate: ¡°About one Soul Crystal can be extracted every thirty seconds.¡± ¡°This is rted to the concentration of the soul energy in this space. As the concentration decreases, the speed will slow down,¡± Durken said. ¡°Not too slow though. Sigh, how did the witch do it? What kind of existence is this witch, why can¡¯t I remember her?¡± Negrismented regretfully. Don¡¯t look at the extraction speed of the witch¡¯s windmill as being not fast, one every thirty seconds, only one hundred and twenty an hour, and less than three thousand a day if it ran non-stop. But what is soul energy? This is the power at the level of faith, the same thing as the Faith Elemental Force. In other words, the witch used this device to achieve what only gods can do. If it could extract Soul Crystals here, could it extract Holy Crystals if ced in the curia? Huh, good idea, it¡¯s worth a try. ¡°Ange, why don¡¯t we¡­¡± Turning his head, Negris got the shock of his life. All the boxes behind him were gone, and Ange was holding the little angel in his left hand and the Great Angel¡¯s Staff in his right. ¡°Roar!¡± Ange gestured with the Great Angel¡¯s Staff. The Little Angel stomped its feet in anger, ¡°Roar!¡± Ange mmed the Great Angel¡¯s Staff into the ground and clenched his fist. ¡°Roar!¡± The Little Angel stretched out its hand and pointed at the Great Angel¡¯s Staff. ¡°Roar¨C¡± Ange finally let go of it. The Little Angel picked up the Great Angel¡¯s Staff and quickly became excited. The earlier unhappiness was already thrown into the abyss. It began to swing the staff around and with a ¡°plop,¡± it sent an approaching Little Zombie flying. ¡°Roar!¡± The Little Zombie was angry and conjured a shield before charging over. The Little Angel, wielding the Great Angel¡¯s Staff, got into a tussle with the Little Zombie. Not long afterward, the Little Angel trailing a green-faced Little Zombie, came back with the Great Angel¡¯s Staff broken into two pieces and a dejected look on its face. ¡°Roar!¡± The Little Angel lifted the two pieces of the Great Angel¡¯s Staff in front of Durken. ¡°What? It broke? Did you hit it on a rock or something? This could break? No, no, I¡¯m not going to fix it, too tired.¡± Durken waved his hands in astonishment. The Little Angel cocked its head to one side, and quickly plucked a feather from behind it and presented it to Durken. ¡°Eh, a feather from a Four-Winged Angel. Oh no, I can¡¯t ept this, absolutely not. I absolutely can¡¯t ept your Angel¡¯s Feather.¡± Durken was declining with his mouth but his hand was quick to scoop up the Angel¡¯s Feather which promptly disappeared. ¡°Alright, leave it here,e back in half an hour to pick it up,¡± Durken said. Negris retreated back into the Temple of Rest and found the disappeared boxes. ¡°Those skeleton¡¯s are quick. Alright, it¡¯s all packed up now,¡± he said. No sooner had he finished speaking than a skeleton walked over, with Feiti¡¯s voice emanating from it. ¡°Eh, these boxes look very familiar. Where have I seen them?¡± ¡°This is the Temple of Rest. What¡¯s there that you don¡¯t recognize? These boxes have been here for a long time,¡± Negris bluffed. ¡°Oh right, okay then. I¡¯ve finished my stroll. Nothing has changed here, it¡¯s still the same as before. The King¡¯s pce is still unopenable and the Guardian God Emperor in front of the pce is also gone,¡± Feiti said. ¡°Guardian God Emperor?! What¡¯s that?¡± Negris asked. ¡°The Guardian God Emperor of the King¡¯s pce,¡± Feiti said, sending an image telepathically. It was a huge steel statue standing at the entrance of the main hall, with its hands supporting a sword on the ground, its face expressionless.@@novelbin@@ Negris started in surprise; he had never seen this thing before. There was such a thing at the entrance of the main hall? The Bronze Book whizzed to the front of the main hall where Feiti¡¯s transmitted image was. At this moment, the spot waspletely empty. The giant statue that was probably ten meters tall had disappeared without a trace. Even the imprints on the ground were covered by cemetery grass. If Feiti hadn¡¯t mentioned it, nobody would have known that there was once an iron statue here. This statue was the Guardian God Emperor, the level of which was clearly higher than that of the Gatekeeper God. Upon asking, Durken was shocked and said, ¡°That statue is a Guardian God? I didn¡¯t make it, I thought it was just a statue. Could Feiti have remembered it wrong?¡± Negris quietly said, ¡°Ange, put the Witch Windmill in, move it further away, then take Feiti out. Don¡¯t let him see the Windmill to avoid him iming it¡¯s his. These are all assets of the Undead Empire and belong to the Temple of Rest.¡± ¡°Okay.¡± Angeplied, stuffing the Witch Windmill in and lifting Feiti out. In response to Durken¡¯s question, Feiti shook his head, ¡°I didn¡¯t get it wrong. I fought with it and I lost.¡± ¡°Pfft¡­ Lord of Mourning, you couldn¡¯t beat the Guardian God Emperor? Kvada, was that statue that terrifying?¡± That seemed correct though, how could it be unguarded when it was protecting the pce of the Undead King? This powerful Guardian God Emperor has gone where? ¡°The Undead Empire really has a solid foundation,¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help but sigh. Why, why wasn¡¯t it him who inherited the legacy! That lucky skeleton! Negris¡¯s face started to twitch with bitterness. As they were chatting, Ange was observing the surroundings and suddenly pointed to the distant horizon and said, ¡°This ce is like Heaven.¡± Chapter 608 - 340: Even a Layer of Ground Has Been Dug Up_1 Chapter 608: Chapter 340: Even a Layer of Ground Has Been Dug Up_1 When Ange had flown up earlier to count the skeletons, he began to have doubts. The terrain here, and its size, resembled the Holy Kingdom quite closely, except that itcked the buildings and the dimensional barrier. ¡°Heaven? Heaven¡¯s fortress? Here?¡± Negris asked, puzzled as he followed Ange around, even going to the edge of the ne to gaze outwards. Indeed, it was a hemisphere identical to Heaven. If there were a dimensional barrier, it would transform into a perfect circle just like the Holy Kingdom. ¡°It really is identical, Feiti, what is this ce?¡± Negris asked. ¡°The Undead Fortress,¡± Feiti replied. ¡°The Undead Fortress? Why does it look like the Holy Kingdom?¡± Negris asked. Feiti responded somewhat disdainfully, ¡°Are you referring to those Holy Light bugs? Yes, this was stolen from them. They used to call it the Fortress of Light before the witch and I seized it and renamed it the Undead Fortress.¡± ¡°I nned to use it to approach their Heaven¡¯s Fortress from the void and jump over to seize it too. Unfortunately, I was stopped by the God of the Forgotten,¡± Feiti said, somewhat unwilling to ept this oue. Negris asked in surprise, ¡°Are you saying that this ne can move? In the void?¡±
¡°Of course¡­ Uh, I don¡¯t know if it can be activated. It was the witch¡¯s people who managed it. I was only responsible for fighting.¡± Feiti hesitated when he recalled that it had been over a thousand years ago. After searching around, they indeed could not find a ce tounch from. Could it be inside? But they needed Heaven¡¯sdder to enter it, otherwise, they would need to dig a deep pit. On second thought, they decided to forget it. They hadn¡¯t even figured out the Heaven Fortress, where would they get the time to dig pits? There wasn¡¯t even a dimensional barrier here ¨C if they were to seize anything, it certainly had to be the Heaven Fortress. That fortress also had the ability to move through the void. At the beginning, it had moved from the void to hover above the Resting Abyss. ¡°Let¡¯s leave it for future study. We should head out now,¡± Negris urged Feiti, eager to take his leave before anyplications arose, especially in case Feiti remembered the Soul Crystals. However, when he turned around, Ange and the rest were nowhere to be found. Negris massaged his throbbing forehead, ¡°What are they up to now? Those damn skeletons.¡± Sighing with resignation ¨C he was used to Ange¡¯s ways by now ¨C Negris took flight, mutteringints under his breath. As he rose into the air, he noticed Ange and the others herding the skeletons towards the center. Any skeleton thatgged behind was given a good clonk on the head by Little Sky, wielding the Great Angel¡¯s Staff. After driving all the skeletons away, Ange scraped the Breathing Soil on the surface and began to dig up the earth beneath. ¡°What are you doing?¡± A sense of foreboding grew in Negris¡¯s heart. This ce was the central area of the entire ne, equivalent to the Square of the Gods in the Holy Kingdom, where the fertile divine soil, suitable for growing Divine Wood, was located. Just as he suspected, Ange was indeed digging up divine soil and piling it up to the side. Negris felt on the verge of madness, ¡°You¡¯re not nning to scrape away all this dirt, are you? Do you know how heavy it is? How much Soul me it¡¯ll waste?¡± After hearing that, Feiti was also stunned, ¡°Digging up the dirt? This¡­ you guys didn¡¯te here to take away all my soil, did you? Then where should I sleep?¡± ¡°No, no, there isn¡¯t much of this kind of soil. Once you go beyond this range, it won¡¯t exist anymore.¡± Negris hurriedly reassured Feiti, fearing he would spark his wrath. Feiti wouldn¡¯t necessarily get angry, but he felt it was a bit excessive. They were even scraping off the surface soil? Anyway, when it came to farming, how could he give up? In order not to waste Soul Crystals, Ange took out a Demon Crystal and through the Teleportation Array sent three hundred thousand tons of divine soil to the world transit station. Thank goodness for the world transit station, saving at least ny percent of the Demon Crystals. The Skeleton also came along. Feiti projected onto it and saw the deste surroundings. He eximed in surprise, ¡°Why has the Resting Abyss be so deste? Where¡¯s the Gold Road? The Grain Road?¡± ¡°Didn¡¯t we already say not to follow us here? How did you manage to make it here?¡± Negris asked helplessly. ¡°You¡¯ve dug up all of my earth and you¡¯re not even allowing one of my avatars toe over for a visit? Then where should I sleep?¡± Feiti shot back indignantly. ¡°Alright, alright, take a look around. Just make sure that your main body doesn¡¯t cross over here.¡± Negris warned.@@novelbin@@ ¡°I know. I really don¡¯t understand why you¡¯re so wary of me. We used to be such good friends. You seem to have forgotten me,¡± Feiti responded sadly. They used to be good friends. He had even learned his brilliant techniques under the guidance of Negris. He never expected to be treated with such suspicion when they met again. It was truly heartbreaking. Negris felt extremely awkward. He had truly forgotten him. Who knew why the King had decided to erase his memory? The effects of the Forgotten Mark had been cleared, yet his memory couldn¡¯t be recovered. He¡¯d only learned about Feiti¡¯s affairs from Durken, but his private rtionship with Feiti was something Durken wouldn¡¯t know anything about. ¡°Perhaps it¡¯s an aftereffect of the Forgotten Mark. Maybe after some time, I¡¯ll remember. You follow me, don¡¯t wander off. People don¡¯t know you, and one punch could shatter you,¡± Negris said. Feiti, who had projected onto a skeleton, would definitely not be able to withstand much. Just as he was about to say something, Ange suddenly turned and gestured towards him, ¡°Get Anthony to transport the grain.¡± ¡°Transport grain? Where to?¡± Negris was stunned by Ange¡¯s abruptment. However, he quickly found out where. At Fallen Dragon Lake, Ange stepped forward and the salty rice by theke began to grow rapidly, skipping thest month of its growth period and quickly forming rice grains. The Instant Death Halo was only used for a quarter of its full power until the grain ripened. Ange then paused it, moved to another area, and activated it all over again. Like this, one Instant Death Halo could be used four times. Every six hundred acres at a time, at a frequency of one hour per use, Ange ripened all the rice around Fallen Dragon Lake. The Nachricht of the quickly arriving Anthony who copsed by theke, looking at the golden rice grains andughing loudly, an unmistakable sense of relief audible in hisughter. ¡°Hahaha, your timing was impable, sir. We were just about to deplete our grain reserves. If I didn¡¯t manage to procure any more, I would have had to use my trump card,¡± Anthonyughed. ¡°What? You have a trump card?¡± Negris asked in shock. All this while, he was witness to Anthony¡¯s anxiety and desperation, using every method in his arsenal to scrounge up whatever he could. Now he was saying he still had a method? ¡°Hahaha, just joking, just joking. What other method could I possibly have?¡± Anthonyughed it off, brushing the topic aside. ¡°I don¡¯t believe you. You don¡¯t seem like you were joking. You were definitely nning to make a move on someone,¡± Negris sneered. As he said this, Negris felt a jolt of realization. He knew who Anthony was nning to approach. At this moment, who else would have surplus grain? The Church of Light! PS: My wife has been under the weather with a cold and cough these past two days, which made us run around hospitals. She¡¯s been coughing through the night and it¡¯s disrupted my sleep. Having only slept fitfully, I¡¯m feeling a bit woozy and my mind is a nk. I¡¯ll update this chapter first and add more tomorrow. Chapter 609 - 341: Little Ghosts Big Mouth_1 Chapter 609: Chapter 341: Little Ghost¡¯s Big Mouth_1 Indeed, Anthony might well seed, because the current ¡®Dyson¡¯ is now just a ceholder. If the genuine Dyson yed along, overthrowing the Church of Light might truly be possible. However, the risk was considerable. Let¡¯s not forget that Anthony¡¯s power alsoes from the Church of Light; his followers still believe in the Light. Anthony could stir up divisions within the church, and people might follow. But if he showed signs of subverting the Church of Light, it would be uncertain whether they would stick with him. They might even turn on him, tie him up and deliver him to the curia for punishment. In any case, this was not a good idea. Anthony would not act recklessly unless he had no other choice, so his n was to brush the matter off withughter. Packages of food were bundled up, packed into grain bags, and transported in various ways to ces suffering from food shortages. ¡­ In a hidden world, two massive torches were burning. One emitted a holy glow, while the other was a pitch-ck me like ink. One ck, one white¡ªthey were exceptionally eerie. Guliani stood in front of the ck me, his expression slightly helpless. The ck me materialized into a face, shouting and spitting a spray of mes that narrowly missed Guliani. ¡°How do you even do things? Why are the number of sacrificed souls dwindling? Are you an idiot? You¡¯ve been saying ¡®soon¡¯ for thest two months. Harvest season is upon us, and you are still saying ¡®soon.¡¯ The famine is ¡®almost¡¯ over; is that what you mean by ¡®soon?¡¯&¡­£¤*#£¨@¡­£¤#¡± the ck me raged.
Guliani said helplessly, ¡°What can I do? Anthony has somehow procured yet another batch of food. His supplies have been unending for months. My people are telling me that the granaries are empty, but the next day, food miraculously appears again. I¡¯m starting to suspect that he has identified my informants and is purposely misleading them.¡± Guliani sighed. Seeing the ck me about tosh out again, he said, ¡°Stop the obscenenguage, or I¡¯ll smash all of your imprints.¡±@@novelbin@@ The ck me paused, its me somewhat solidified. It looked up and down at the smiling Guliani, wondering if he was joking. After a moment of hesitation, it said, ¡°Has your intelligence been affected by the possession of a pig-headed soul? Can¡¯t you think about how to handle such simple matters with your butt? Is that good enough? No obscenenguage.¡± Guliani took a deep breath and yelled in a low voice, ¡°What I mean is, stop insulting me, or I¡¯ll turn against you.¡± With his words, a divine power surged throughout his entire body, making his low roar powerful. The little shards before him could not withstand his power and cracked. The ck me froze, and after a while, it said, ¡°You shout at me? I grant you power, and you dare shout at me?¡± ¡°Okay, okay. When Lord Light awakens, say that again, and I won¡¯t shout at you,¡± Guliani replied irritably. Hearing the word ¡®Lord Light,¡¯ the ck me nced at the adjoining light column and quickly changed the topic. ¡°You should solve the problem. The souls offered for sacrifice are dwindling; when will Lord Light wake up?¡± ¡°I know, I¡¯m considering it, okay? You have no idea how slick Anthony is. He¡¯s like an ancient undead, cunning and deceitful. He can see through others¡¯ schemes instantly¡ªdo you know how many agents I¡¯ve lost to him?¡± Guliani was clearly extremely frustrated. ¡°In addition, the God of Arbitration is still alive. I dare not mess with your power; otherwise, I would have used it against him by now. Darkness against Light; under the properties of antagonism, I could forcibly erase him.¡± The ck me nodded sympathetically, ¡°Yeah, why hasn¡¯t that stubborn old God of Arbitration died yet.¡± ¡°While I dare not wield your power, I have found a vessel for you. It¡¯s Archbishop Dyson. He has been practicing divine arts for a long time, and I have ignited his Divine Fire. The vessel should be able to withstand your power,¡± Guliani revealed. ¡°Oh? He¡¯s kindled the Divine Fire? How did he do that?¡± the ck me asked. ¡°Of course, fueled by the Dark of the Light. It will take some time for him to consolidate the Divine Fire. It should be about ready now, Lord Dark. Here is the imprint.¡± Guliani presented a Crystal Stone, inside of which solidified a me-like object. The ck me looked at him and said, ¡°This isn¡¯t for me, is it? It¡¯s for yourself?¡± A hand made of fire reached out and took the imprint. Guliani didn¡¯t deny it; he just smiled faintly and said, ¡°I will order Dyson to visit Anthony. When the timees, please, Lord Dark, take care of this nuisance yourself. Otherwise, we might run out of time.¡± The ck mepsed into deep thought. Oh boy, Guliani had cleverly used the phrase ¡®running out of time¡¯ to entrap the God of the Dark. Should it take action? With Dyson¡¯s impending visit, both friend and foe, Anthony would be on high alert. Dyson was assured to die, and the God of the Dark would suffer a slight loss. However, it wasn¡¯t a big deal. It was the God of Arbitration that Lord Dark was worried about. If it provoked him, it might not find peace in the future. Also, being calcted by Guliani like this, Lord Dark couldn¡¯t help feeling resentful. It was taking the risk, and the only one benefiting from it was Guliani. He even shouted at the Dark Lord¡ªhow infuriating! These humans were too sly; it didn¡¯t want to deal with them at all. But if it didn¡¯t take any action? It was running out of time; with the arrival of the harvest season, the famine would be over. ording to this year¡¯s climate, it would be a bountiful year. This meant it wouldn¡¯t have an opportunity like this for the next few years. After much thought, Lord Dark gritted its teeth. Guliani left satisfied; he had achieved his goal this time. Although the God of the Dark was clearly angry, it didn¡¯t matter. As long as it still wanted the souls offered for sacrifice, it wouldn¡¯t stay angry for long. After all, the sacrificial souls were so sweet. If Guliani smashed all of its imprints, it would enjoy nothing. Before leaving, Guliani looked at the holy torches in the distance. Within the God of Light and Darkness, Lord Light was the ruler. The God of the Dark was just a shadow of the Light. It didn¡¯t matter if Guliani offended him as long as he didn¡¯t anger Lord Light. But Lord Light had been asleep for many decades; it was unclear when he would wake up. ¡­ ¡®Dyson¡¯, who had received Guliani¡¯s order, went to visit Anthony with doubts£­a natural pretext was to discuss the food issue. If it were the real Dyson, he would certainly never dare to do that. Now, the ceholder naturally didn¡¯t mind. He even contacted Anthony in advance to report the matter. Fearing that Guliani was plotting something, Anthony was fully prepared on the day of the visit. Thousands of men were lurking outside the tent, confident of dealing with any deity. However, nothing happened. Actually, something did ur, but not to ¡®Dyson.¡¯ When the God of the Dark used the imprint to project itself without a second word, it first saw not Anthony but the big mouth of Little Ghost. Chapter 610 - 342 - The New Storm Has Formed_1 Chapter 610: Chapter 342 ¨C The New Storm Has Formed_1 ¡°What the hell!?¡± The God of the Dark managed to scream out in shock before being swallowed by Little Ghost. ¡°What the hell!?¡± Negris, sensing something was off, also started screaming. Ange abruptly stood up with the Ring of Bnce emerging on his back. Dyson was killed, his Divine Fire naturally fell into Ange¡¯s hands. The Divine Fire and Divine Fragments that were of no use to him, were all fed into Little Ghost. But with too many good items, Little Ghost couldn¡¯t eat all of them at once. Hence, Dyson¡¯s Divine Fire was saved until now. Coincidentally, right when Little Ghost widened its mouth, the God of Dark¡¯s mind was delivered over. The me that had been lit by Guliani using the shadow technique of light had left a mark so covert, nobody could detect its existence before the God of the Dark had invested its shadow into it. So Guliani would not casually investigate Dyson¡¯s situation. In fear of causing an rm, he didn¡¯t expect to be deceived by a stand-in and, due to such a hrious mistake, failed to notice the Divine Fire falling into Ange¡¯s hands, then the God of the Dark bumped his head into it. If the God of the Dark faced such a situation, what would it think? ¡°Damn it! Guliani set me up!¡± Enraged, the God of the Dark unleashed its divine power, striking Little Ghost. Having swallowed the Divine Fire, the shockwave sprung outward from Little Ghost. It appeared as though Little Ghost had swallowed a Magic Egg that had exploded, puffing up its entire form, and releasing a great breath.
Ange hurriedly called forth the Holy Light and poured it into Little Ghost. ¡°Eh? It didn¡¯t burst? What kind of substance is this? A seal?¡± The God of the Dark was shocked and unleashed its full power for a second strike. Little Ghost puffed up once again, making a huge round balloon, yet about to burst. This not only shocked the God of the Dark, but also left Negris dumbfounded. Sensing the intensity of these two powers colliding, Negris¡¯s eyes bulged out: ¡°Is it so unbreakable?¡± Having withstood two divine power blows, was this the same Little Ghost that was on the verge of breaking just from puffing a breath? When did it be so abnormal? ¡°It might be because it had eaten too much divine power. Sigh, those wasteful things. I need to make every bit of my Four-Winged Angel feather count, but it recklessly consumes either divine fragments or divine fire. If I had those things, who knows how many artifacts I could have made. What waste.¡± Durken wasining with envy on the side. That¡¯s right. Having consumed so many Divine Fragments and mes of Divine Fires, it is now even digging into the three great Gods of Light. It¡¯s no wonder it became abnormal. However, what was the situation regarding the consciousness in this divine fire? ¡°I know, I know.¡± A skeleton on the side eagerly raised its hand: ¡°I know a guy who could leave a mark in the divine fire that we all missed, the Dark God of Light.¡±@@novelbin@@ ¡°The God of Light and Darkness? I¡¯ve never heard about it. Who is it?¡± asked Negris. ¡°That¡¯s a long story.¡± Feiti looked at Little Ghost and saw it puff up and release arge breath again without breaking. Ange kept pressing down on Little Ghost, the palm of his hand constantly sparking as the Power of the Holy Light streamed into Little Ghost, replenishing its spent energy rapidly. Ange was replenishing from the outside, and the God of the Dark was attacking from the inside. This had resulted in a stalemate. It seemed it wouldn¡¯t burst for a while. Feiti continued: ¡°You never heard of the Dark God of Light, but you¡¯ve heard of the God of Shadows, right?¡± ¡°It¡¯s him? The shadow of the Light? The ¡®Lord¡¯ of the Shadow Knights?¡± Negris was shocked. The God of Shadows was quite famous. It was not because he was powerful, but because he was very cunning, the only god who did dirty work among the Gods of Light. Though there were many gods with great battle power, like the God of Arbitration, they wouldn¡¯t attack you without reason. They only targeted heretics, apostates, or those who vited the Holy Laws. But the God of Shadows was different, it could make trouble from nowhere which was quite annoying. Even though the Church of Light never acknowledged the existence of the God of Shadows, the existence of Shadow Knights was iron-d proof. Ange had met a Shadow Knight before, that was when he first met Big Mouth, someone named Julian, wasn¡¯t it? It was that Shadow Knight who controlled Big Mouth, crossing nes to spread the Undead virus. This method was too vicious. If Ange hadn¡¯t had known Holy Light, the virus probably would have spread throughout Resting Abyss. ¡°So it¡¯s the God of Shadows? Then I know him.¡± Negris said. The noble God of Shadows, just like that, was swallowed by Little Ghost. Even though it was desperately struggling inside Little Ghost, Ange was on the outside pouring the Power of Holy Light into Little Ghost which was healing him quickly. As long as it didn¡¯t explode in one hit, Ange could quickly heal it. Puffing up, contracting, belching, puffing up again, contracting again, belching again. At some point, Little Ghost stopped expanding and just kept belching. ¡°Ha¡­urgh¡­ha¡­blegh¡­¡± Finally, it vomited out a pearl. Durken swiftly rushed forward, his eyes eagerly on the pearl, his face unusually flustered: ¡°Gem of the Divine Soul! This is the Gem of the Divine Soul! Lord, you have to give it to me, I can craft a super artifact with it.¡± ¡°Oh.¡± Ange handed over the pearl to him. Such generous behavior stunned Durken for a moment, taking it incredulously, hesitating: ¡°Really giving it to me? Don¡¯t you know what this is? Gem of the Divine Soul. There¡¯s a chance to learn the enemy¡¯s Divine Technique using it. You¡¯re just giving it to me?¡± Chapter 611 - 342: The New Storm Has Formed_2 Chapter 611: Chapter 342: The New Storm Has Formed_2 Ange tilted his head, about to reach out and take it back. ¡°No, no, no, the odds of that are too low. Give it to me, I¡¯ll refine it into a super artifact, which will significantly increase the odds of releasing her divine technique. Hand it over to me.¡± Durken regretted opening his mouth. If he hadn¡¯t said anything and just taken it, this awkward situation wouldn¡¯t have emerged. Seeing the regretful look on Durken¡¯s face, Negris felt likeughing at the self-inflicted situation Kvada had gotten himself into by talking nonsense to the dead skeleton. ¡°So the divine technique of the God of the Dark was stolen?¡± Seeing that Ange didn¡¯t continue to reach for the item, Negris promptly changed the subject, trying to present it as a done deal. ¡°It¡¯s not that easy. What was projected was only the power of the dark. Dyson¡¯s Divine Fire is still the main subject. We can only lose that part of the power.¡± Durken answered while slowly stepping back. Seeing Ange withdraw his hand, he let out a sigh of relief and said, ¡°I¡¯ll take it for refining. It will definitely be transformed into a super artifact. Kvada, the Gem of the Divine Soul, this thing is too precious. Sir, your pet is the real treasure. It can even crystallize divine souls.¡± Durken eximed with admiration. Little Ghost, feeling a bit dizzy from serving as a catalyst, yawned and slowly reduced in size, like a deting balloon. Eventually, it nestled back onto Ange¡¯s finger. After a short pause, it stuck its head out again and spit out another crystal. ¡°¡­¡± Durken and Negris nced at each other, both at a loss for words.
After a while, Negris finally said, ¡°This seems to be Dyson¡¯s.¡± Dyson¡¯s Divine Firebined with the projected power of the dark had solidified into two crystals. Yes, this makes sense. Feeling the impact, Durken and Negris grumbled ¡®damn luck¡¯ and ¡®the favor of the goddess,¡¯ walking away in frustration. Ange raised his finger to look at Little Ghost. Durken was right; for Ange, Little Ghost was just a pet. So he would feed it whatever he had, regardless of whether it wasmon or precious. From Durken¡¯s reaction, the crystals must be valuable. But it seems that Little Ghost isn¡¯t so simple. Could it really crystallize divine souls? He tilted his head in thought for a moment. Then, Ange reached out with his other hand, slowly poke Little Ghost, saying, ¡°Eat.¡± Little Ghost popped its head out in confusion, but when it saw the light at Ange¡¯s fingertip, it bit into it. ¡­ Negris and Durken looked at the third Gem of the Divine Soul that Ange handed to them, a ghostly look on their faces: ¡°You¡¯re saying, you fed the Instant Death Halo to Little Ghost, and then it spat out this?¡± Ange nodded. Durken sat on the ground with a thump, distressed: ¡°It¡¯s over, divine souls aremon now, they¡¯re not worth anything.¡± Negris scoffed: ¡°You¡¯re kidding, right? Not worth anything? It¡¯s a fortune.¡± The Goblin Trade Guild invented trade bills, which were used to settle advances. For example, if the Goblin Trade Guild¡¯snd was expected to produce ten million tons of grain next year, they could issue ten million trade bills, sell them cheaply, and then organize production. Since farmers andndlords could receive money in advance, they could better organize production and reduce risk. Grain merchants also enjoyed a reduced price for paying in advance. However, the weather was erratic. If the crops failed and grain prices skyrocketed, then the trade bills also increased in value, allowing the grain merchants to make huge profits even without selling any grain. On the contrary, if the harvest was abundant, grain prices would drop, potentially causing losses for grain merchants. The notion that greater abundance led to lower prices clearly came from the goblinmodity brokers. Durken, however, didn¡¯t have suchplicated thoughts. He simply believed that once rare materials lost their rarity, their value disappeared. This thought left him feeling stifled. However, once he examined the artifact Ange gave him, he realized something was off: ¡°This is not a Gem of the Divine Soul. The power seems to be sealed. How do you release it?¡± Ange took the crystal to the edge of a rice field. Crushing it and throwing it on the ground, he left a footprint. The Instant Death Halo was released immediately. ¡°Hiss¡ª¡ªThis is a Divine Technique Seal? You can seal divine techniques and release them at will?¡± Negris asked in surprise. ¡°It was.¡± Ange held up his finger. ¡°This¡­ This¡­ Little Ghost is too powerful. How did it do it? Try it again!¡± Negris urged. Ange shook his head: ¡°It¡¯s tired.¡± ¡°Ah, I see. Let it rest, rest first. Next time you seal a technique, remember to call me. I want to see how it can do it.¡±@@novelbin@@ Negris said hastily, practically begging, clearly afraid of disturbing Little Ghost. In the past, Little Ghost was generally neglected by Negris for its seemingly non-purposeful existence, only eating and not providing any benefits. Now, however, it has transformed into a coveted deity, like a god of exams that students pray to the night before, out of fear that a disturbed sleep would lead to a poor performance on their exam. Upon realizing Little Ghost¡¯s ability, the first thing Ange thought of was the Instant Death Halo. Negris had a different idea: ¡°Could you seal your Ultimate Transformation in this way?¡± Ange tilted his head. Negris whispered, ¡°Do you know who I was reminded of? Goddess of Redemption. She too could seal her own or someone else¡¯s divine technique for useter.¡± ¡­ In a secret world, a dark me that had dimmed a little bit just now suddenly red up again. Deep roars from the God of the Dark echoed throughout the space: ¡°Guliani! You plotted against me!¡± Chapter 612 - 342 - The New Storm Has Formed_3 Chapter 612: Chapter 342 ¨C The New Storm Has Formed_3 Guliani, who stepped into this space at the same time, was taken aback and quickly retorted, ¡°No! I didn¡¯t! Don¡¯t talk nonsense! What happened? How did I set you up?¡± ¡°You let my projection fall into a big mouth, causing the part of my strength that I projected to be consumed. You set me up!¡± A dark face, body, and limbs emerge from the dark mes, as if a person is emerging from the mes. ¡°No, absolutely not. I wondered why Dyson didn¡¯t stir when he went in, so I came back to ask you. Calm down and tell me what happened?¡± Guliani said sincerely.@@novelbin@@ ¡°How am I supposed to know what happened? I only saw a big mouth when I projected, and it swallowed me up. How could this be such a coincidence? The other party obviously prepared for me to fall into the trap, how could they possibly know I was going to project there if it weren¡¯t for you?!¡± If the timing wasn¡¯t so perfect, Dark wouldn¡¯t suspect. But it was too much of a coincidence. A second earlier, the opponent couldn¡¯t swallow its power, and a secondter, it would have reacted and could take back the power it projected. It just so happened that as soon as it projected, it was swallowed, as if everything had been calcted. Guliani was full of grievances, ¡°I really didn¡¯t, I am willing to swear an oath to God to prove my innocence.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t think I don¡¯t know, you¡¯re already a fake God, so the God¡¯s oath has no effect on you.¡± Dark¡¯s figure fully separated from the torch, transformed into a giant dark me, and pressed down towards Guliani. ¡°I really didn¡¯t, I¡¯m not lying to you.¡± While saying this, he didn¡¯t dare to ck off. He pped his chest, lights poured down, regardless of whether Dark believed him or not, first protect himself.
Just when the two were about to fight, a thought swept over their bodies. Dark and Guliani simultaneously looked towards the sacred torch. A face appeared on the sacred torch. ¡°Lord Light!? Oh God, you finally woke up.¡± Dark eximed excitedly. It had never thought that Lord Light could be so lovely. Before, it was always Lord Light who dealt with humans, and it was just a shadow under the holy light. In recent decades, Lord Light suddenly fell asleep, forcing it to deal with humans. It immediately found out how tricky humans can be, like Guliani, it couldn¡¯t tell if his words were true or false. Great, Lord Light finally woke up. Now, it can lie t under the holy light again, being an idle shadow. Guliani also quickly dropped his defense, kneeled and saluted, ¡°Greetings, Lord Light the God.¡± Lord Light¡¯s thought swept over him: ¡°You are Ryan Xiete, you have reborn.¡± ¡°Yes, Lord Light. The church has a traitor. I am trying to deal with it with Lord Dark, but Lord Dark misunderstood me. Please arbitrate for me.¡± Guliani said respectfully. ¡°No need, it¡¯s pointless. A new Faith Storm is brewing. All gods will face a new baptism. Whether there was betrayal or not no longer matters. Have you ignited the Divine Fire?¡± Lord Light asked. Guliani only felt a chill rushing from his tailbone straight to his heavenly spirit cover. Faith Storm? The legendary Faith Storm that wiped out all the gods? ¡°I¡­I didn¡¯t ignite the Divine Fire.¡± ¡°Then you are lucky, having a god¡¯s power is very dangerous under the Faith Storm. The more god power, the more dangerous. We, Light and Darkness, must¡­ go find an arbitrator. He survivedst time, perhaps he knows a way to resist the storm.¡± Chapter 613 - 343: Theyre Grilling Me_1 Chapter 613: Chapter 343: They¡¯re Grilling Me_1 For Ange, nting crops was his greatest joy, but it hinged on the climate. Now it¡¯s nearly the harvest season, which wasn¡¯t suitable for nting crops unless he was willing to consume his Soul me. However, Ange didn¡¯t like using Soul me for farming. He used the Instant Death Halo primarily forparison, not for merely elerating growth, unless he was running out of food. Only when he was alleviating famine in the Resting Abyss did Ange ze a trail of cultivation. It also happened in the Light Sea ne when Anthony needed food desperately, and also this time. Most of the time he activated the Instant Death Halo was for selecting rice varieties and crossbreeding cereals. It was also used during the selection and hybrid grafting of crops. If there wasn¡¯t a particr need, Ange preferred to let the crops grow naturally. Natural grown crops depended on the climate, which was Ange¡¯s specialty. He knew exactly when to sow seeds, when to fertilize, and when to pollinate. With the harvest season fast approaching, it was no longer a good time to sow. In the old days on the farm, he would have started looking for new bones to rece the worn-out ones after the crop harvesting, and then hibernate for the winter. But now, it¡¯s not necessary. The Golden Skeleton was sturdy, durable, and evesting. It would auto-repair if there was enough Breath of Death. If all else failed, he could just soak it in the Liquid of Breath of Death for a few days.
¡°So now that you¡¯re unemployed, stop thinking about nting and let Little Ghost try the Divine Technique Seal. If it works, you should seal a few more. Your transformation time is too short now,¡± Negris eximed. Yes, all the previous analyses were intended to expedite Ange¡¯s work on the Divine Technique Seal. Ange wouldn¡¯t think about suchplicated things; he would use it as and when needed. But that didn¡¯t negate the correctness of Negris¡¯s reasoning. Although he arrived at his conclusion after the fact, it was still aligned with Ange¡¯s actions and thoughts, despite being unrted to his motives. Reluctantly, Ange withdrew his hand from the spatial zone, extended a finger for Little Ghost to bite, then transformed. The transformation began at his fingertips, but Little Ghost halted its progress, restricting the transformation to only where it was biting. The change waspletely limited to the fingertip area. ¡°Kvada, this actually works?¡± Negris eximed. ¡°That¡¯s pretty impressive. How does it work?¡± Durken asked. ¡°I just came up with a brilliant idea. If someone wants to release a divine technique, just throw Little Ghost over to bite them, and they won¡¯t be able to release the technique,¡± Feiti suggested, raising his hand. ¡°Why do you always have to raise your hand when you talk? This isn¡¯t a ss,¡± Negrismented, utterly dumbfounded. Recently, Feiti had gotten into the habit of raising his hand before speaking, as if answering a question in ss. Kvada, he was the Lord of Mourning! Behaving like an attentive student put great pressure on those around him. ¡°It was you who told me to raise my hand before answering a question,¡± Feiti defended with righteous indignation. ¡°Me? When did I ever tell you to raise your hand? You¡¯re framing me.¡± ¡°When you were teaching me about the mysteries of space-time,¡± Feiti exined. ¡°That was years ago! Why didn¡¯t you raise your hand when we first met?¡± ¡°I just didn¡¯t think of it then. But I remembered it now.¡± ¡°Can you please stop doing this?¡± ¡°I can try, but it¡¯s an ingrained habit, and it¡¯s hard to change..¡± Despite what he said, Feiti raised his hand again.@@novelbin@@ Negris pounced, removed Feiti¡¯s right hand bone and said, ¡°Okay, that should break the habit.¡± Feiti raised his left hand and punched Negris right in the eye socket. Amidst their squabbling, the time for transformation came to an end. Little Ghost regurgitated a sealed Divine Technique Crystal. ¡°It really worked! How do we use it? Can we just crush it to use it? Can others use it too?¡± Durken asked. ¡°Ssshh ¡ª give it to others? What an innovative thought, Ange. If you can transfer your divine technique to others, all of us could transform into Locke or the Dragon God. Try it right away!¡± Negris eximed excitedly. It¡¯s certain that Ange himself could use it, but it¡¯s uncertain whether others could or not. Ange flipped over a soulless Golden Skeleton, casually stuffed a Soul Fire into it, not requiring the Skeleton to move, it could just lie there. He crushed the seal and tossed it onto the skeleton. However, the seal could not be absorbed into the skeleton. After bouncing on the skeleton a few times, it fell to the ground, faded and disappeared shortly thereafter. ¡°What a pity. It doesn¡¯t work. Is it because the soul is not strong enough?¡± Durken wondered. ¡°Not necessarily. It could be due to affinity. When Ange learned Locke Transformation he had to have a long affinity attunement with the scales to transform into the Dragon God,¡± Negris hypothesized. ¡°What if we sealed a Dragon God Transformation for you? You¡¯re a member of Dragon n, so you wouldn¡¯t need affinity attuning. Since you have soul contact with Ange, could you use the Dragon God Transformation divine technique sessfully?¡± Durken proposed. Negris couldn¡¯t help but respond: ¡°How does your soul grow? Your creative ideas are multitude! That makes sense, Ange, seal another Dragon God Transformation for me to test.¡± Ange shook his head: ¡°I can¡¯t transform.¡± ¡°Oh, right. You need recovery for the Ultimate Transformation technique. We can only try tomorrow,¡± Negris responded painfully disappointed. Not being able to verify a good idea immediately is like not being able to read a good book immediately or teach a smart student promptly, it¡¯s agonizing. ¡°My Lord, My Lord,¡± Ange tilted his head, sensing a call. He listened carefully ¡ª it was Anthony: ¡°My Lord, the grain distribution has started. Do you want toe over and collect the faith?¡± Chapter 614 - 343: Theyre Grilling Me_2 Chapter 614: Chapter 343: They¡¯re Grilling Me_2 An opportunity at distributing emergency rations was a grand chance to harvest faith, an opportunity that Anthony, of course, would not let slip by. Now that he had provisions, he not only nned to distribute them extravagantly but also intended to have Ange harvest faith in the process. All to avoid letting the Church of Light benefit from his good deeds. This was a matter they had already discussed together. Once they heard the preparations were about to begin, everyone set out immediately, heading for the refugee camp. Anthony had set up a number of refugee camps at the border of the Eastern and Western Districts, providing shelter for those who could no longer survive on their own. Anyone who could flee to the refugee camp was granted some life-sustaining food. However, the most devastated were often not at the border between the two churches, but within the Western District itself, ces where Anthony¡¯s influence could not reach. Yet it didn¡¯t matter. With refugee camps in ce, there was hope. Those who could no longer survive will do everything they can to escape, instead of resigning to their fate. There were numerous obstacles and dangers along the way. For instance, some noblendlords would rather let their farmers starve on theirnds than allow the disaster-stricken people to escape. The reason was that when a part of the poption died, the survivors would be cheapbour next year.@@novelbin@@ If they escaped, potentially all the people in their territory could flee, leaving no one to farm thend the next year. Thendlords could have even morend, but it would be pointless. In the end, they would have to spend money buying people from the ve market.
Faced with these inhumane noblendlords, Anthony used the simplest method ¡ª bounty rewards. The Mercenary Guild put up several bounties. The targets were those who hindered the movement of disaster-stricken people. The person offering the reward was Anthony himself. As the acting pope of the Sacred Church, his name was a guarantee of trustworthiness. Nobody worried that he couldn¡¯t afford the bounty. However, Anthony was truly penniless. He had borrowed all he could and pledged all he could. Before the grain was harvested, he was a penniless man who couldn¡¯t even pay interest. But he was cunning. The reward he offered was not money, but¡­ ¡°A chance for limb regeneration, for the head of Viscount Truk? Viscount Truk impedes the movement of disaster-stricken people, refuses to aid them, and leaves the public to starve to death. His crimes are heinous. Whoever decapitates Viscount Truk will receive a chance for Limb Regrowth.¡± ¡°My God, limb regeneration? The Great Restoration Technique? This is an Archbishop-level Divine Art.¡± ¡°Anthony was an archbishop before his reign. Could it be that he will make the move himself?¡± ¡°If a Viscount¡¯s head can be exchanged for the Great Restoration Technique of limb regrowth, what would the bounty for a Count be?¡± ¡°Huh, there really is one. Count Hess. This Count Hess had people pretend to be thieves and killed over six hundred civilians in his territory. The reward for his head is¡­ is¡­ a chance for resurrection? Resurrection?¡± The¡­ the legendary Great Resurrection Technique? Are you kidding me? Isn¡¯t it said by the Church of Light that the Great Resurrection Technique couldn¡¯t be used due to ack of materials?¡± ¡°Did Lord Anthony find the materials? See what conditions are needed. Let¡¯s take this task and resurrect my grandfather. My grandfather was a Sword Saint. He died early without teaching me the Sword Technique; otherwise, I would have long been a Sword Saint.¡± ¡°Even if you be a Sword Saint, you can¡¯t kill a count. Stop dreaming. Look at what conditions are needed¡­ death within a day?¡± Death within a day? There¡¯s no chance for my grandfather, he¡¯s been dead for fifty years.¡± It must be said that Anthony¡¯s bounty did cause quite a stir, but what was even more shocking was within the Church of Light. The reappearance of the Great Resurrection Technique, which had been lost for a thousand years, dealt a significant blow to all devout magicians. They imed to the outside world that they couldn¡¯t perform it due to ack of materials. But only these magicians knew the real reason: the Great Resurrection Technique had been lost long ago. About nine hundred years ago, the Church encountered some disasters. Many books were burned, and no one knew how to perform the Great Resurrection Technique. iming ack of materials was merely to save face for the Church. Now, Anthony surprisingly used this as a reward? Had he learned the Great Resurrection Technique? Upon hearing the news, some bishops, priests, saints, and saintesses who had had good rtionships with Anthony in the past came to see him at the Curia. Anthony naturally brushed them off with vague answers. But those who were persistent received his request for food and money donations. Most of the visitors chose to beat a hasty retreat after hearing this. Of course, Anthony knew nothing of the Great Resurrection Technique. He instead used Ange¡¯s Face Purification Rebirth Technique. The necessary material was Demon Crystal essence. Even if it consumed twenty litres, it would only cost two hundred thousand Demon Crystals, much cheaper than the typical bounty on a Count. As for casting spells, there was no need to worry. Ange could personally perform it under the name ¡®Ascetic Monk An¡¯ Of course, due to its time limit, the Great Resurrection Technique was just a gimmick; after all, who happened to die just a day ago and also happened to possess enough strength to kill a count? By using the mass Great Resurrection Technique and offering a reward for killing a count, a sensation would be created. The attention of the entire ne would be drawn to this matter, so as to spread it to the entire ne. Everyone would thus know: don¡¯t kill indiscriminately, don¡¯t obstruct the refugees¡¯ escape, and don¡¯t let too many people die in your ownnds, or else Lord Anthony would put a bounty on you. For many old wily foxes who had connections with the church, the punishment from the Church was far less deterrent than the Mercenary Guild¡¯s bounty. Their ancestors had often acted like this in the past. It wasn¡¯t the first year that there had been major disasters. There were also natural and man-made disasters before, like gues, earthquakes, and floods. Many people died then as well, and there was never any punishment. Obviously, the gods didn¡¯t care about these things. On the other hand, the bounty from the Mercenary Guild was tangible, especially after the beheading of Viscount Truk one night. Anthony personally rushed to the mercenary guild and performed limb regeneration for the person who came to receive the bounty. The reward recipient had their face covered, but their left hand was empty. Under the watchful eyes of all, Anthony led the said recipient into the healing room, and when they came out, they had their left hand back. The whole process urred under the witness of President Kage of the Mercenary Guild, who even saw with his own eyes the growth of the person¡¯s left hand. ¡°This is too magical, too magical, Lord Anthony! The great restoration technique is indeed very magical.¡± President Kage was utterly astonished. Anthony grinned and returned the nutrition fluid: ¡°It¡¯s the power of God.¡± He confidently allowed Kage to watch and was certain that even if Guliani stood there, they would not discern the difference between the Face Purification Technique and the Purification Technique ¡ª they were both Divine Arts after all. Unless a heretic was brought over, they would not be able to tell, from the absence of purification effects, that it was not the Purification Technique. Apart from this, they had the nutrition fluid. Nobody could recognize from a bottle that it contained nutrition fluid. Even if the treated person recognized it and brought back the nutrition fluid for a trial with the Purification Technique, they would not achieve the effect of limb regeneration. By then they would only suspect that they had misused the medicinal liquid and would not suspect the Purification Technique. ¡°Oh, praise the gods.¡± Kage quickly agreed and then tentatively asked, ¡°Lord Anthony, do you truly master the Great Resurrection Technique?¡± Anthony smiled slightly and took the question off course, ¡°How is it? Do you have someone who has died less than a day ago for resurrection?¡± On hearing this, Kage realized Anthony¡¯s cunning. His question was purposeful. If Anthony admitted, they would then have to reassess Anthony¡¯s strength. If Anthony didn¡¯t acknowledge it, it meant that his side had strong people who could use the Great Resurrection. The Mercenary Guild would have to reassess the strength of the Holy Church. These were all significant pieces of information, and there would be clients willing to pay a high price to purchase this kind of intelligence. Unexpectedly, Anthony evaded the question with a counter-question, neither acknowledging nor denying anything. When confronted with such a cunning¡­ and practiced opponent, the honest Kage said, ¡°If the resurrection slots can be transferred at will, some people are willing to ept the bounty and delegate us to indicate the revival targets.¡± Anthony looked at Kage approvingly. Good calction. In this way, the Mercenary Guild would control a Resurrection slot, which would be very significant. As for why someone would delegate them to point out? Well, the Mercenary Guild had countless ck-market teams. They didn¡¯t need to bother outsiders. After mulling over it, Anthony nodded, ¡°That¡¯s possible.¡± The very night he said it was possible, Anthony received the news ¨C Count Hess¡¯s castle was attacked, and the Count had gone missing. When Kage came to visit the next day, Anthony couldn¡¯t help but jest, ¡°You guys were quite quick.¡± Kage said with a wry smile, ¡°It wasn¡¯t us.¡± ¡°Not you? Then who was it?¡± Anthony was stunned. Kage replied with a grimace, ¡°I don¡¯t know, but someone hase to im the bounty. They brought along a coffin, erected a tent at the guild¡¯s entrance, and specified that the person inside the coffin be resurrected within the tent. Now the tent has been surrounded by mercenaries who heard the news.¡± ¡°Good lord, they¡¯re really putting me on the spot, huh.¡± Anthony said. Chapter 615 - 344: Catching an Evil Witch_1 Chapter 615: Chapter 344: Catching an Evil Witch_1 By the time Anthony arrived at the Mercenary Guild, a crowd of curious onlookers had already gathered around the tent at the entrance. For safety, Anthony¡¯s guards first cleared a gap in the crowd, then he and Ange went through and entered the tent. ¡°Ascetic Monk An, it¡¯s Ascetic Monk An! Could it be that the one who will perform the Great Resurrection Technique isn¡¯t Lord Anthony but Ascetic Monk An himself? That seems likely, no wonder¡­¡± Many in the crowd had seen ¡®Ascetic Monk An¡¯ before. Ange¡¯s appearance immediately set off a wave of murmuring. Negris, who was projected onto Ange, also whispered to Durken with a disgruntled air, ¡°So much for harvesting faith. I knew it, this Anthony wouldn¡¯t do anything that isn¡¯t profitable.¡± ¡°Huh? Not profitable?¡± Durken was somewhat surprised. ¡°He sold the Disciples of Light to the Undead God, the ones who are supposed to go to the Soul Prison¡­ um, they prefer the Fire Execution Frame.¡± This made Negris feel embarrassed, ¡°I was justining about him out of routine.¡± Profit or not, what Anthony is doing now is considered the most serious sin in religion. No deity could ever tolerate such actions. If the Gods of Light were still around, they would have torn Anthony apart already. Negris understood this, it was just voicing its routineints. On the contrary, if Ange really disregarded Anthony, the first one to panic would be it.
Upon entering the tent, their opponent had already been waiting inside and President Kage, who had returned earlier, was also present. The tent was big, arge military type, where a few hundred people could squeeze in if they wanted to. But now in the tent, there were ¡®four people¡¯, namely Ange, Anthony, President Kage, and a mysterious person fully covered in a cloak with only a pair of eyes exposed. In front of the mysterious person was a coffin, the kind with a small front and back, wider in the middle, divided into two halves, with the upper half that could be opened. In addition to this, there was also a bag beside the mysterious person¡¯s feet which, judging by the lumpy shape, probably contained a person. After sizing up the mysterious person for a bit, Anthony suddenly said, ¡°Long time no see.¡± The mysterious person was taken aback and quickly looked himself up and down, as if he had been exposed somewhere. But after a full circle, he found no breaches, he was wrapped up tight.@@novelbin@@ Realizing that Anthony might be trying to trick him, the mysterious person simply replied bluntly, ¡°It was you who posted the bounty, stating that anyone who brought the head of Count Hess could exchange it for a chance at resurrection, right?¡± Anthony responded with a smile, ¡°Indeed, as long as the death did not ur more than a day ago, it¡¯s possible.¡± ¡°What would happen if the death urred over a day ago?¡± the mysterious person asked dryly. ¡°Memory loss? Iplete consciousness? Turning mad? Alive corpse?¡± Anthony shrugged. The mysterious person nodded, turned to President Kage and said, ¡°President Kage, you will be the witness.¡± Then, he opened the bag at his feet, revealing the terrified face of Count Hess, a dignified count, who had been captured alive to im the bounty. Seeing Anthony, Count Hess pleaded in fear, ¡°Don¡¯t, don¡¯t kill me, I¡¯ll pay double the bounty, double¡­¡± Before he could finish his sentence, the mysterious person swung his hand lightly, and Count Hess¡¯s head rolled down with a thud. Even the blood that should have gushed out from his neck was lightly suppressed by the mysterious person, resulting in a seeping effect, preventing the tent from being sprayed with blood. Anthony twitched his mouth and murmured, ¡°Six hundred lives, six hundred souls yearning for the light, you go ask the gods forpensation. I¡¯ll send you to heaven to see them.¡± He nodded to Ange and then murmured something. Ange tilted his head, then nodded in agreement and walked towards the coffin. The mysterious person studied Ange with a scrutinizing and puzzled look. Upon reaching the coffin, Ange opened the top half, revealing a corpse tightly wrapped in sacred burial cloth. Ange probed it with his hand. It was stiff but not dry, it felt like a muscle. Upon unwrapping the burial cloth, he found that it was indeed a corpse, and one that had been dead for many years. However, unlike ordinary corpses, its degree of shrinkage was minimal. A normal corpse would shrink to one-third of its living size after drying out, unless it had hardened like a Zombie Lich, allowing it to retain about 70% of its weight. This corpse had not hardened, but it had not shrunk much either, giving off an impression of a body being too robust to shrink. The corpse still maintained its appearance from when it was alive. It was a very imposing middle-aged man. Ange invoked the Holy Light and spread it onto the corpse, which quickly absorbed it. Upon witnessing this scene, the eyes of the mysterious person widened in shock, and he eximed in disbelief, ¡°Purification? Impossible! Redefinition?¡± Anthony simply smiled without arguing. He had already confirmed the identity of the other party. As they were both experts, exnation was needless and would seem like a cover-up. After all, this was the Purification technique. As for why it produced this effect, the gods had the final interpretation. As for which god would exin it? How about¡­ Libra? Not convinced? Then, let¡¯s have a god war! With Ange¡¯s increasing strength, Anthony¡¯s confidence had been growing as well. Previously, he only wanted topete for the position of Pope when the Gods of Light were not around. But now, he is preparing to seize the authority to interpret divine metaphors. Ange took out a bottle of nutrients, poured it into the corpse¡¯s mouth, then poured another evenly onto the skin, invoking the Holy Light as he went along. Chapter 616 - 344: Catching an Evil Witch_2 Chapter 616: Chapter 344: Catching an Evil Witch_2 The ceaseless Holy Light nourished the dried-up corpse, which rapidly began to fill up as if it had been infused with water. The mysterious person watched Ange¡¯s actions, his eyes growing increasingly shocked. Any magician who saw Ange cast his magic would feel an involuntary shock: Is thissting too long? Can anyonest this long? Of course, no one couldst this long unless they were a god themselves. As Ange continued to vitalize, he suddenly grabbed the Holy Shroud and covered his hand with it. Under the shroud¡¯s concealment, he reached into the Resting Camp and removed an object, briefly touching the corpse with it before quickly putting it away. The Holy Shroud shielded all perception and blocked the mysterious person¡¯s line of sight. This caused the mysterious person to grow anxious and he was about to look, but suddenly a figure shed before him ¨C it was Anthony. ¡°It¡¯s a exclusive secret technique, please don¡¯t peek,¡± Anthony said with a smile. The mysterious person red at Anthony and then turned his gaze back to Ange, only to find that Ange had alreadyid the Holy Shroud down. After a moment¡¯s hesitation, and perhaps with the realization that Ange couldn¡¯t have done anything devious in such a short period of time, he gritted his teeth and held his peace. Turning to Anthony, the mysterious person drew a deep breath and couldn¡¯t help but ask: ¡°How did you recognize me?¡± ¡°From your reaction. When I said ¡®long time no see¡¯, your first reaction was to check whether you had been exposed. It¡¯s obvious that you recognize me,¡± Anthony exined.
The mysterious person had a sudden realization: ¡°I see, it seems I¡¯ve exposed myself. Anthony, you are illuminated by the Light of Wisdom, I hope you will do more to benefit the Light.¡± ¡°Yes, my lord, I will purify the Light that has been tainted by the Evil God,¡± Anthony said with a slight smile, then backed away. Over at Ange¡¯s end, it was time for the final step. He channeled the Holy Light and delivered a punch to the dead body¡¯s heart ¨C Rebirth. The corpse twitched all over and drew a huge breath of air, and astonishingly began to breathe on its own. The heart also started beating normally. Both the mysterious person and President Kage were unable to believe what they were seeing. Their eyes widened in disbelief. ¡°Since the corpse has been dead for over a day, whether it will wake up, whether it will retain its memories from before, whether it will be mentally impaired, we do not bear any responsibility. Please be the witness, President Kage,¡± Anthony rified promptly. President Kage approached the body and checked it. His touch confirmed that the skin, originally pale from death, was gradually regaining color with the flow of blood, turning warm from cold. To this amazement, he repeatedly murmured: ¡°A miracle, it really came back to life? Truly a miracle.¡± After confirming that the corpse was truly alive, Kage approached Ange and paid his respects: ¡°Lord Ange, you have performed a miracle. The Mercenary Guild¡¯s Rnd Kage salutes you.¡± Ange cocked his head. Anthony promptly intervened, shaking Kage¡¯s hand, exining: ¡°Lord Ange has been in arduous cultivation for many years and is not good with words. I will ept this honour on his behalf.¡± ¡°That¡¯s good,¡± realizing through the strength of Anthony¡¯s grip that he understood his hidden intentions in merely wanting Lord Ange to remember his name¡ª Rnd Kage, Kage said. With Anthony being so understanding, Kage naturally reciprocated, whispering: ¡°Lord Anthony, if there is another chance for resurrection, please reserve a spot for me.¡± After stepping out of the tent, Kage raised both of his hands and dered excitedly: ¡°Lord Ange has performed a miracle, the bounty has been imed!¡± ¡°Whoa!¡± There was an uproar all around. Everyone knew what Kage¡¯s words meant ¨C someone had truly been resurrected. Ange and Anthony stepped out of the tent, and the scene immediately became chaotic as everyone wanted to rush forward. ¡°Ah¡ª Hallelujah¡ª Mama¡ª¡­¡± A chant rang out, soothing everyone¡¯s hearts and gradually quieting the noise. Anthony waved his hand and made a showy round of the field, calming everyone down before taking Ange to leave. Throughout that circuit of the field, Ange had harvested countless Soul mes. Back in their territory, Negris asked impatiently: ¡°Who was that guy?¡± ¡°Guliani,¡± replied Anthony. ¡°Is it really him? Good heavens, who is he trying to resurrect?¡± Negris asked in shock. ¡°The Divine Body, otherwise, why wouldn¡¯t he care whether it wakes up or not? If someone descends onto it, it will wake up.¡± Anthony responded. ¡°Then why did you resurrect it?¡± Negris asked, puzzled. ¡°The curia will not just have one Divine Body, if we don¡¯t resurrect it, we will use another. My lord, are we afraid of a descended Divine Body when we are here?¡± Anthony replied with a smile. If he did not resurrect it, the bounty that Anthony offered would be considered as a lie. Inparison to his reputation, a Divine Body was insignificant, even the True God was useless. Otherwise, the Goddess of Redemption wouldn¡¯t have been looted. ¡°Well, that¡¯s true, then why did you let Ange use the Staff of Shadows to touch it?¡± Negris asked. Speaking of this, Anthony hastily asked Ange, ¡°How was it? Did the Staff of Shadows take effect?¡± Before Ange could speak, Durken had already started arguing discontentedly, ¡°What, you don¡¯t believe in my alchemy skills?¡± If the Staff of Shadows did not take effect, didn¡¯t this imply that Durken¡¯s alchemy had failed? Should such a question be raised in front of the designer of the Resting Camp, isn¡¯t that questioning his abilities? No wonder Durken was in a hurry. ¡°No no no, I was just confirming whether you touched it or not. Lord Durken, you are amazing. You even managed to turn Divine Souls into weapons, it¡¯s astounding. You are indeed the greatest Alchemist in history,¡± Anthony ttered Durken. Durken responded unceremoniously, ¡°You¡¯re right. Unfortunately, because of the Gem of the Divine Soul, the Staff of Shadows can only be used three times. I used it once during the test, and again now, leaving only thest use. Be careful with it.¡±@@novelbin@@ ¡­ Guliani carried the coffin back and ced it in front of Lord Light. ¡°This is my favorite body. You are considerate.¡± Lord Light nodded at Guliani. The me on the ruler slowly dimmed and soon became a small wisp. The Divine Body in the coffin abruptly opened its eyes. Guliani reported the situation, the projection of Lord Light inside the Divine Body shook his head and said, ¡°This is not the Great Resurrection Technique. They are heretics.¡± ¡°I also felt something wrong, especially that Ascetic Monk An. His power is too pure, it doesn¡¯t seem like the real Holy Light,¡± Guliani said, puzzled. ¡°Too pure? Among the gods, Justice¡¯s power is the purest. Could it be his person? It¡¯s time to pay him a visit.¡± ¡­ For the next few days, Ange was rushing in various refugee camps, distributing food, showing miracles, reaping faith, stealing believers. Everywhere he went, devout believers no longer belonged to the Gods of Light, they were all connected to the Little Ghost. The constant repetition let Ange return to his most familiar rhythm ¨C sowing, fertilizing, reaping. In the fields, he had repeated this for thousands of years. If he kept doing this, he would be able to reap all the believers in this ne. Unfortunately, believers were ultimately limited. A few dayster, he arrived at thest refugee camp. This camp was very close to the southern tip of the continent, near the sea. Most of the people who fled from the Land of Fallen were resettled along the coast. Therefore, this refugee camp gathered many refugees from the Land of Fallen. Escapees from the Land of Fallen became refugees and were now experiencing famine. They owned absolutely nothing. When they saw Ange¡¯s arrival, they were incredibly excited. Ange habitually distributed food and showed miracles. The miracles included two types: Healing and Judgement. When under the Original Sin Shackles, the emotions of the believers were often more intense during judgement than during healing. Seeing a greedy and gluttonous evildoer being bound by the Original Sin Shackles, a group of people couldn¡¯t help but cheer. They chanted Ange¡¯s name in unison: ¡°Ascetic Monk An! Ascetic Monk An!¡± ¡°My lord, we have caught an evil witch, please judge her.¡± As they spoke, a girl with her wrists bound was pushed forward by them. Ange tilted his head, a peculiar aura emanated from this girl. Chapter 617 - 345: Deliberately Coming for Trial _1 Chapter 617: Chapter 345: Deliberately Coming for Trial _1 Ange could sense an odd presence, which certainly would be a rare urrence. He himself was capable of using earth magic with the elements of wind, fire, water, and earth, the power of holy light and the aura of death, as well as Dragon God Transformation and druid magic. He was acquainted with many formidable beings: High-Level Sword Saints, Arcane Truth Masters, Space Arcanists, even the favored of lightning, hence there were hardly any forces unfamiliar to him. Yet, the power emanating from this twelve or thirteen-year-old girl, her hands bound, her eyes covered, her face portraying resignation, felt somewhat strange to Ange. Moreover, the girl looked familiar as if he had met her somewhere. ¡°My Lord, we¡¯ve captured a witch. If she activates her power and res at someone, they would turn into a sugar beet. Hence, we covered her eyes. Please judge her.¡± The refugee who brought her in said. ¡°Pfft? Sugar beet? Why turn people into sugar beets? Such ignorant fools always speak nonsense,¡± Negris burst outughing. Shapeshifting another person into a different substance was possible, as demonstrated by Ange¡¯s Divine Skill Element Transformation which could turn soil into straw. However, that required divine power. Another example is advanced Arcane Magic ¨C Sheep Transformation. Here the term ¡®advanced¡¯ is used instead of ¡®high level¡¯. In arcane magic, some spells can¡¯t be cast simply by having a high level. These types of magic are collectively called ¡®advanced arcane magic¡¯. They require extensive understanding of matter, elements, space, power levels, etc., to be sessfully cast.
Take Sheep Transformation for instance, the caster must at least understand the skeletal structure and organ arrangement of a sheep, otherwise, all that¡¯d be transformed is a lump of meat and wool. Therefore, some people call arcane magic the magic closest to ¡®God¡¯. Its various miraculous techniques leave people amazed and no one dares to im that they havepletely mastered arcane magic. Even Truth Mage Aestolia, she publically identifies as a ¡®Natural Arcane¡¯ mage, not an ¡®Arcane¡¯ mage, for she does not possess the Sheep Transformation skill. This goes to show that transforming others into sheep, or sugar beets, requires incredible divine power and exceptional skill. No one would use it frivolously on ordinary people unless their divine power is so abundant as to be used prodigally like Ange. ¡°Indeed, it seems like a witch¡¯s move. But why not just make their mouths stick together, their eyes dull or self-ignite? Why turn them into sugar beets? Does this beet have any symbolism?¡± Durken asked quizzically. Sugar beet? Ange tilted his head, and suddenly something came to his mind: ¡°It¡¯s you.¡± He remembered who this girl was. She was the sister of the fat-necked boy from the slums of the Land of Fallen. But wasn¡¯t she only eight or nine years old back then? How did she grow to eleven or twelve now? The girl with her eyes covered, sensing the voice, showed a shocked expression. She struggled hard, surprisingly breaking free from those who were holding her and tore off the cloth covering her face. Seeing Ange, she became excited: ¡°My Lord!¡± It really was that little girl. After removing her blindfold, Ange could recognize her even more clearly. However, how did she age several years within less than one? You should know, that the stage between eight or nine and eleven or twelve is a period of rapid development for a girl. Given adequate nutrition, a girl can change noticeably within a year. The girl in front of him lookedpletely different from the girl he met in the Land of Fallen over a year ago. ¡°Your little brother?¡± Ange inquired.@@novelbin@@ Upon mention of her brother, the girl¡¯s eyes immediately welled up: ¡°He¡¯s dead.¡± Ange tilted his head. Possibly sensing Ange¡¯s confusion, the girl exined: ¡°He got sick and died. Some people wanted to steal his body. I turned them into sugar beets, then they arrested me, calling me a witch.¡± Negris inhaled sharply, cursing: ¡°Kvada, the damned, deserved to be turned into a sugar beet.¡± Durken sighed slowly: ¡°It¡¯s better to be dead, there wouldn¡¯t be as much trouble if they all were Undead.¡± ¡°Are they guilty?¡± Ange asked. If it was anyone else, they might not have understood the meaning of Ange¡¯s words. However, the girl had seen Ange judge others before, and shook her head: ¡°No, they¡¯re just afraid of me.¡± The surrounding people sighed in relief. From the moment Ange asked ¡®It¡¯s you¡¯, they realized they might have caused trouble. Had they actually arrested someone Lord Anthony knew? They quickly shrunk back, trembling with fear. When Ange asked ¡®Are they guilty?¡¯, their hearts hung in suspense, thankful that the girl didn¡¯t me them, otherwise they might have been scared to death on the spot. However, some people were still dissatisfied. An old woman whispered: ¡°Can transforming living people into sugar beets not be considered witchcraft? Just like witches transforming people into mice.¡± Ange tilted his head and brought out a bag of grain. With a toss into the air, it instantly transformed into bread falling down. The old woman was so startled that she knelt down immediately, blurting out in panic: ¡°It¡¯s a miracle, not witchcraft, a miracle!¡± Anthony walked over with a smile and waved his hand. Knights from behind him rushed over, arrested everyone whilst his voice echoed throughout the ce: ¡°Everyone is very enthusiastic, which ismendable, but remember¡ª¡± At this point, Anthony¡¯s voice became unmistakably stern: ¡°Judgement is a right bestowed by God, given to those who can listen to His divine edict. Those whock this ability yet rashly judge others, are offending divine power!¡± Chapter 618 - 345: Deliberately Came for Judgement_2 Chapter 618: Chapter 345: Deliberately Came for Judgement_2 Those who were caught were instantly paralyzed from fear, with some of the more fearful ones even wetting themselves in terror. Oh God! The offense of viting divine authority was a truly horrifying charge. Seeing everyone properly horrified, Anthony¡¯s tone lightened, ¡°Considering this is your first offense, you will beshed three times as a warning. Remember, do not judge others rashly.¡± ¡°If you wish to listen to God¡¯s teachings, you must first be well-versed in the Codex of Divine Law, take thew examination, earn the qualification as a Judgment Knight, then be a Holy Badge Knight, undertake a three-year apprenticeship at the Mobile Court, and establish a correct concept ofw. Only then can you be a Judge and have the authority to judge others.¡± ¡°Remember, do not judge others rashly. God¡¯s authority is sacred and invible! Alright, administer the punishment.¡± At themand, the knightsshed the captured culprits three times, evoking screams and howls. Even the onlookers, who were not receiving the punishment, were terrified. Moving closer, Negris couldn¡¯t help but mutter, ¡°Does your church always conduct trials so strictly? When you judged them just now, do you have the qualification of a Judge?¡± ¡°Heh, heh,¡± Anthony chuckled and subtly revealed a badge, a shield, a small hammer, and a staff. ¡°Decision Badge, Holy Shield, Hammer of the Judge, the power of a Bishop. You¡¯ve seen my Staff of the Pope. Test me on any part of the Codex of Divine Law. If I can¡¯t answer, I¡¯ll change my name to Negris Anthony,¡± said Anthony. Kvada! He had once again showed off. Negris hurriedly changed the subject, ¡°Why is the Holy Badge a shield? Shouldn¡¯t it be called a Holy Shield Knight?¡±
¡°It¡¯s not the same thing,¡± Anthony exined, ¡°If you say there is still some light in today¡¯s church, then the Holy Badge Knights and the Mobile Court might be one of the few sources of light.¡± ¡°This is not just a shield, but a Holy Badge. Properly called the Holy Badge of Justice (Shield). Every Judgment Knight who wants to be a Judge must first be a Holy Badge Knight, join the Mobile Court, and spend three years providing fair judgments in remote areas and small mountain viges.¡± ¡°This truly is difficult. I took this route to promotion several times during my rebirths. Each time, two of us had to venture into the wilds to mediate various disputes for vigers and ordinary people who couldn¡¯t ess justice. Sometimes, we couldn¡¯t go into the city for a year or two. We had to wash and wear our underwear until it was ragged. In the end, we had nothing left to wear and pranced around naked. It was so difficult that when anti-electric silk underwear first hit the market, I bought a batch and sent it to the Tribunal. Now, the knights at the Tribunal are particrly friendly to me.¡± The acting Pope of the Holy Church muttered whispers to Ascetic Monk An. Everyone thought they were discussing some cosmic affair. Who could have thought that Anthony was actually just venting? Whileining, Ange followed the girl back to her original ragged camp, and found a small corpse in a pool of water. The shelters in the Northern Desert Oasis and the Goddess of Beauty City are dry, well-ventted, sun-proof, andfortable domiciles. The southern shelters, on the other hand, are ast resort due tock of materials. The dampness makes them prone to water umtion and they are also teeming with insects. Living in such shelters for a long time would inevitably lead to illnesses. The girl held her brother¡¯s corpse. Her face was full of grief, ¡°Thank you, sir, for saving me. I hope I can bury my brother outside the camp.¡± Ange tilted her head in confusion. Why bury him? Had he been dead a long time? Upon inspecting the boy, Ange found that wasn¡¯t the case. His corpse had just begun to show signs of decay, he had only been dead a few hours. Ange cast Holy Light on the body, revitalizing it. After that, she cast the Rebirth Technique on the boy¡¯s heart. The boy gasped for air and woke up vigorously. Everyone around who witnessed this scene blurted out in disbelief, including the girl. They all knelt down, babbling incoherently, with no one knowing what they were screaming about or even what they should be yelling about. Resurrection from death, such a miracle, even the Church of Light did not dare to boast of it unthinkingly. They had no precedent, so they didn¡¯t know what to yell. There was a precedent, but the incident from Northern Rnd City a few days ago hadn¡¯t reached them yet. Ange tilted her head as she once again perceived the strange power from the girl. ¡°What is your name?¡± Having taken the girl and her brother away from the refugee camp, Ange brought Negris and the others out. ¡°Lucy,¡± the girl answered. A verymon name. Amongmoners, there is at least one Lucy or John in every three out of ten people. ¡°Why did you¡­¡± Negris mimed, ¡°¡­ suddenly grow so much?¡± Lucy shook her head: ¡°I don¡¯t know, after I turned that person into a beetroot, I felt myself changing. Have I grown up?¡± Durken took out the Gold-touch Stick and created a mirror in front of Lucy. After creating the mirror, Durken asked: ¡°Why did you turn into a beetroot and not something else?¡± Lucy subconsciously looked at Ange and then, blushing, said: ¡°It¡¯s delicious.¡± Negris understood immediately. He figured it¡¯s probably because the beetroot that Ange gave her left too deep an impression that when she suddenly used this power, she transformed into the thing that¡¯s most firmly etched in her memory. But what kind of power is this exactly? ¡°Well, I might have a clue.¡± Durken said thoughtfully, chin in hand. ¡°A witch is a very unique phenomenon. ording to the witch herself, this is called self-worship, I am my own god, my poweres from my faith.¡± Negris pped his thigh: ¡°I get it.¡± ¡°You understand? What do you understand?¡± Durken asked curiously. ¡°Self-worship, the power from belief in oneself, ignited the Divine Fire through coincidence, but because of the same origin of power, it has this weird aura. Essentially, it¡¯s still a power of belief.¡± Negris said. Durken shook his head: ¡°Then why are there only witches and no wizards?¡± ¡°Huh, right, why are there only witches and not wizards?¡± Negris wondered aloud. The two looked at each other for a moment, clueless, and decided to put the question aside for now.@@novelbin@@ ¡°So essentially, are all witches individuals who possess divinity? But because the source of belief is too limited, only themselves, their powers are not strong, they are easily captured because their powers are too bizarre, people are afraid of them, and they got used to burning them?¡± Negris analyzed. Durken said: ¡°It¡¯s a power at the level of belief. The Church of Light definitely wouldn¡¯t like to see them either, hence proimed them as heretics. Captured ones are taken to the Stake of Executions.¡± ¡°There used to be quite a lot of witches, why are there so few of them now?¡± Negris said. Durken said: ¡°If all witches have divinity, then they are definitely targets of the Faith Storm, maybe they all died back then, so the king warned the witch to be careful?¡± ¡°That makes sense, then why did a witch suddenly appear now? Transformation into beetroot, this is a Divine Technique of Element Conversion.¡± Negris turned his head, only to see an extra row of beetroots on the ground. Ange led Lucy to walk along the way, flipping the soil up, each flip producing a beetroot. Lucy was panting heavily, Ange replenished her with Soul me, immediately invigorating Lucy as she inserted her hands into the soil and flipped it up. ¡°Kvada! You just needed to test it. What¡¯s the point of making so much? What a waste of Divine Power.¡± Negris scolded. Then he realized: ¡°Can she borrow your Divine Power?¡± Ange nodded. ¡°Wow, you can turn food into bread, soil into straw, and she can turn soil into beetroots. You guys must be in cahoots.¡± Negris grumbled. At this time, Feiti, wearing a straw hat, who appeared as a middle-aged human to others, but as a skeleton to Ange, raised his hand and said: ¡°I know, the sudden appearance of a witch now must be because some kind of power that fosters witches has reappeared.¡± Some kind of power? What power could it be? Just as they prepared to discuss further, a loud voice came from outside: ¡°Lord Anthony, Chief Judge of the Tribunal, Karlok sends his regards. We received word that a witch has appeared here, and havee to conduct a judgment on the God of Arbitration¡¯s order.¡± Chapter 619 - 346 Extremely Awkward Situation_1 Chapter 619: Chapter 346 Extremely Awkward Situation_1 The Judgement Hall is an independent institution that used to operate alongside the three major dioceses, now only two remain. It has its own structure, finance, and armed forces, possessing the authority to supervise and judge all worshippers.@@novelbin@@ The Stake of Executions is the most famous thing about the Judgement Hall, followed by the Judgment Knights, Holy Badge Knights, Judgment Chiefs, the Judgement Army, and the God of Justice and Arbitration. The God of Justice and Arbitration is the full name, just like the God of Bnce is fully known as the God of Equality and Bnce, the Goddess of Redemption is fully called the Goddess of Love and Redemption, and the God of Light and Darkness is the God of Light and Shadow. People¡¯s awe and worship of power and gods can make them conjure up thousands of cool and majestic titles. However, gods have varying degrees of power. For instance, the God of Knowledge, who is unbeatable, or the Undead God, who is also unbeatable¡­ The God of Arbitration is the supreme entity unbeatable by anyone among the Gods of Light. His overwhelming power oversees the judgement and arbitration of all worshippers, and he is the ultimate force upholding justice, order, and thew. Of course, this refers to when the Divine Power System runs perfectly. Now, with gods perishing and the God of Arbitration¡¯s survival unknown, what justice, order, andw is there? If justice still existed, scoundrels like Dyson would be the first to be burned on the Fire Execution Frame. Why would Ange need to kill them? Even though the system of order has copsed and thew is in disarray, the Judgement Hall is still an independent operating institution. It still has jurisdiction over all the heretics and is frequently active. After all, where would they get funding if they did not take action?
Such an organization, independent of the three major dioceses, cannot ept their allocations; otherwise, it would be easily manipted, leaving no room for justice to exist. In addition to the allocations from the curia, the Judgement Hall¡¯s main source of funding is from penalties. To fund itself, the Judgement Hall must strive to restrict all kinds of illegal and irregr activities in the diocese, aiming to pick more thorns and impose more penalties. To avoid being penalized, the diocese must strictly control its believers and worshippers, requiring strict adherence to divinews. Under the supervision of the gods, this was actually a well-functioning mechanism. If the Judgement Hall itself engaged in illegal and irregr activities, the gods would immediately punish them. The problem is, there are no gods now. Anthony once said that the Holy Badge Knights and the Mobile Court are among the few bright spots in the Church of Light. Apart from them, the entire Church of Light is steeped in corruption, including the upper levels of the Judgement Hall. The maniptions are too numerous to count. They could fill an entirely new epic, so they are not worth mentioning here. One of the main reasons Anthony dared to create a schism in the church and seize the authority of the Eastern Diocese was to restrain the corrupt individuals in the upper levels of the church, including the Judgement Hall. However, he doesn¡¯t have direct jurisdiction over the Judgement Hall. He can only supervise it, taking over some of the gods¡¯ duties, which has proven effective. Under his surveince, the Judgement Hall has been restrained a lot in the Eastern Diocese, and there are few incidents where innocent people are falsely used. In addition, he would provide subsidies to the Judgement Hall in the Eastern Diocese through methods like ¡®devotee donations¡¯, welfare, child education, parent pensions, fair retirement allowances, and so on. You cannot ept allocations, but you can¡¯t refuse believers¡¯ donations, can you? Would you risk dampening the enthusiasm of your followers? Can you believe that hundreds of followers would kneel at the door of the Judgement Hall refusing to leave unless their money is epted? As for field benefits, anti-static silk underwear is one of them. There are also countless other things that can¡¯t be counted. Negris once included several rolls of cotton cloth in the supplies he sent to Shamara, the kindness of which Shamara still appreciates today. But this ¡®kindness¡¯,pared to the old chatan of a thousand years, is insignificant. As long as you don¡¯t make a fuss and serve the believers fairly, Anthony can arrange for your whole family to be well taken care of, even including your retirement arrangements. Even more outrageously, Anthony has limited local jurisdiction, all chiefs of judgement must carry out field duties, they can only judge cases in other cities, and must conduct trials across various cities when necessary. The chiefs of judgement in the Eastern Diocese have suffered greatly under Anthony¡¯s arrangements, but due to the excellent invisible benefits and peace of mind, coupled with a sense of honor to maintain fairness, many upright judgement chiefs still prefer the Eastern Diocese and the majority of those who havee do not wish to be transferred out. However, Karlok, who is speaking now, is not a chief of judgement from the Eastern Diocese. Since this ce is located at the intersection of two dioceses, the chiefs of judgement from both dioceses have jurisdiction, especially when a witch, which hasn¡¯t appeared in many years, shows up. So upon hearing the news, Karlok hurried over. Anthony smiled coldly: ¡°He came fast.¡± Hearing Anthony¡¯s tone, everyone knew something was wrong. Negris, curious, asked: ¡°Is something amiss?¡± Anthony replied: ¡°Of course, it takes at least three hours for a fast horse to get here from the nearest city with a Judgement Hall. Lucy hasn¡¯t been awakened for more than three hours. Unless he traveled by dragon, he must have been lurking nearby, waiting to cause trouble.¡± ¡°It¡¯s just a refugee camp. What¡¯s there to meddle with? Did he know in advance that something would happen here?¡± Negris asked quizzically. Anthonyughed: ¡°Even if trouble was to be expected, a grand Chief Judge like him didn¡¯t need to be the one toe. Who is here that warrants his intervention?¡± As Anthony was speaking, he subtly pointed his thumb towards himself. However, everyone collectively turned their gaze to Ange. The only one who noticed him was Luther, who was so surprised that he said, ¡°Lord Anthony, is your finger twitching?¡± ¡°He¡¯s here for Ange? Are they looking for trouble? This should be interesting.¡± Negris wore a malicious grin. Anthony thought they were after him, but when Karlok approached, his gazended on Ange first before he turned to greet Anthony, ¡°Lord Anthony, long time no see. May the Holy Light bless you.¡± This phrase was somewhat provocative. It¡¯s a blessing when ordinary believers invoke the Holy Light, but it isn¡¯t exactly appropriate when directed at Anthony, a prominent Pope or at least an Archbishop, the vessel of divine power. It¡¯s somewhat simr to wishing someone who can live for a thousand years a life of a hundred years. It really seems like they¡¯re here for Ange. Anthony suddenlyughed, he was suddenly curious to see how Ange, with hisck of eloquence, would handle their judgement. As Negris said, ¡°These people are looking for death, aren¡¯t they? There¡¯s going to be a good show.¡± Expecting a good show, Anthony didn¡¯t mind the provocation in Karlok¡¯s words. He said genially: ¡°Oh, it¡¯s Karlok. May the Holy Light protect you too.¡± Karlok was taken aback; he hadn¡¯t seen Anthony for a while, when did his temper be so good? He could sense a certain sincerity in Anthony¡¯s blessings. He looked at Anthony suspiciously and then said, ¡°I received a message that a witch has appeared here. I havee specifically to handle this matter in the name of the God of Arbitration. May I ask¡­ Oh, is this the famous Ascetic Monk An? Karlok salutes you.¡± Just as if he had noticed Ange, Karlok eximed in a loud and exaggerated manner, raising his hand and invoking the Holy Light,ying his palm on his shoulder and bending over to pay his respects. Ange tilted his head and looked at him, his gaze finallynding on the Holy Light in Karlok¡¯s palm. One second, two seconds, three seconds, the scene gradually became unbearably awkward¡­ PS: I¡¯m feeling a headache, I can¡¯t carry on, I will take a nap, the next chapter will be updated before dawn. Chapter 620 - 347: Is This a Coincidence?_1 Chapter 620: Chapter 347: Is This a Coincidence?_1 As long as Ange doesn¡¯t feel awkward, then the one who feels awkward is someone else. How could Ange feel awkward? He doesn¡¯t even know what it means to be awkward. If he can stand here as if he were nting something, he can stand here until tomorrow. Usually, someone would step forward to guide him to avoid making others feel awkward, but everyone now found it amusing, and wanted to see Karlok feel awkward. There was no response, no reciprocal greetings, not even a word. It was aplete disregard; Karlok¡¯s face shifted from white to ck, his expression turning gloomy. No, the fun shouldn¡¯t end so quickly. Negris reminded Ange urgently in his mind: ¡°Say something, anything.¡± Ange said: ¡°Holy Light, isn¡¯t pure.¡± Karlok¡¯s face instantly turned ashen.@@novelbin@@ What Ange said was the truth, but to the ears of everyone in the Church of Light, it was a severe usation. Worshippers always take pride in the sacred radiance, the pure Holy Light. Now, someone dared to say that his Holy Light was impure? The impure ones are genuine, Ange¡¯s is too pure, and therefore fake, but others don¡¯t know. Not everyone can distinguish who is purer like Shamara can.
Isn¡¯t this equivalent to pointing at Karlok¡¯s nose and scolding him? What¡¯s even more frightful is that Ange¡¯s words are too damaging. They couldpletely cause Karlok to fall from grace in an instant. What is Ange? An ascetic monk. Within the Church of Light, there is nothing purer than an ascetic monk. If he says you are impure, you don¡¯t even have the right to argue, because everyone would definitely believe the words of an ascetic monk more. ¡°You nder!¡± Karlok screamed in fury. Ange tilted his head. Karlok nearly spat out a mouthful of blood. What does tilting his head mean? Is he being cute? Say something! He used to hate those who were eloquent, like Anthony, but he then suddenly realized that he hated those who left words hanging in the middle more. Karlok had no choice but to turn to Anthony: ¡°Lord Anthony, what does this mean? Are you ndering me? My honor is my life. If you don¡¯t make it clear, I will fight you to the death.¡± Anthony weakly said: ¡°But¡­but I¡¯m not the one who said that. Besides, I¡¯m not very familiar with Lord Ange.¡± As he spoke, he shrank to one side, his expression as innocent as possible. Karlok clenched his teeth and muttered: ¡°Shameless.¡± Not familiar with each other? Would he go and back you up all the time if you aren¡¯t familiar with each other? From ck Mountain Rnd in the North to this deste area by the sea in the South, is it possible for a high-ranking ascetic monk like him to move around freely, and he dared to say they¡¯re not acquainted? Karlok was furious to the point of insanity. He had already forgotten the purpose of this trip. He let out a huge roar, the Holy Light burst forth from his body, and at the same time, he pulled out the Sword of Judgement. The weapons of the other worshippers usually have no names. They¡¯re all standard longswords, two-handed swords and the like. Only the standard longsword from the Judgment Hall has its own name ¨C Judgement. However, his impulsiveness infuriated a clergyman at the back of the team, who muttered under his breath: ¡°Idiot.¡± Originally, they hade to judge the witch under an absolutely justifiable pretext. Even if the case were to be taken to the curia, they would still have the upper hand. However, Karlok¡¯s impulsiveness has left their ¡®justification¡¯ in shambles, turning it into a private grudge. Just because an ascetic monk says that you are impure, you start fighting? After cursing, the clergyman put his hand into his chest and crushed a piece ofmunication jewelry. The weak fluctuations of the jewelry spread out. But when he raised his head, he found that both Ange and Anthony had turned their gaze to him. ¡°Damn it, they¡¯ve noticed.¡± The clergyman¡¯s heart tightened. However, after looking at him, Anthony showed an unfathomable expression on his face and then turned his head back. Luther quickly stuffed thest mouthful of beetroot into his mouth, pulled out his longsword impatiently, and roared: ¡°Dare to offend Lord Ange! Taste my Dragon Pattern Steel Core¡­¡± Because of the distinct features of Negris and others, they basically do not appear in such situations. Luther was too excited. Finally, no one waspeting with him for the spotlight. His treasured sword was going to taste fresh blood atst, regardless of what was in front of him, he would sh first and ask questionster. ¡°Judgment!¡± Karlok roared and swung his sword. Judgment isn¡¯t just a sword, it¡¯s also a technique. It works in coordination with the Sword of Judgment, ignoring the opponent¡¯s defense and judging them via the Holy Light. Unless one is a high-level Sword Saint, and can resist it with their Protective Battle Aura, the firmer the block, the heavier the damage from the Holy Light. ng! The weapons of the two sides collided, making a loud noise like the collision of metal. A sacred light burst out from the Sword of Judgment, and fell on Luther, swallowing him in a pir of light. But once the pir of light disappeared, Luther was unscathed, while instead, Karlok felt a tingling numbness in both hands. ¡°A high-level Sword Saint?!¡± Karlok cried out in shock. Luther smiled slightly. ¡°Not just that, wait for me to digest it, and I¡¯ll soon beat the shit out of you.¡± Luther blocked Karlok, and the guards around Anthony also joined the battle, fighting with the Judgment Knights brought by Karlok. Anthony, who was ¡®unfamiliar¡¯ with Ange, leaned in to listen for a moment, then murmured to him: ¡°Strange, Polk didn¡¯t detect any ambush. Who is that clergyman trying to notify?¡± Negris asked: ¡°Ange, did White Neck and Bone Dragon detect anything?¡± In the sky, a Bone Dragon with a skin mantle was hiding in the clouds, and White Neck was standing on its back, craning its neck and looking around curiously. The Bone Dragon looked somewhat different from before. Its mantle was a bit bulging, as if it had been inted. Indeed, it was inted. After Durken discovered that the body of the Bone Dragon was hollow, he immediately thought, ¡°Why don¡¯t you turn it into an intable airship?¡± Chapter 621 - 347: Such a Coincidence Again_2 Chapter 621: Chapter 347: Such a Coincidence Again_2 It just needs slight adjustments ¨C by adding a few air inlets and heat-generating magic arrays within the long wind channel and body of the Bone Dragon. By warming up the air it breathes in, it boosts its floating ability, allowing the Bone Dragon to drift without the need to p its wings. If hovering in mid-air is needed, they just need to heat the air; if speed is needed, they expel the air, and the Bone Dragon restores its aerodynamic form. As a result, the Bone Dragon has be an atmospheric floating tform, ready to stay on guard in the sky at any time. However, the Bone Dragon¡¯s field of vision is rtively narrow, significantly inferior to that of the Giant Dragon. That¡¯s why White Neck is usually sent out along with it, acting as its eyes. But even with White Neck¡¯s sharp eyes scanning the ground, it still couldn¡¯t detect any significant movement. Ange shook his head, showing that White Neck had not found anything. But then he pointed towards the sea, iming, ¡°There, something is there.¡± Anthony¡¯s face registered surprise: ¡°Laying an ambush at sea? How crafty!¡± Crafty, but effective. Even Anthony hadn¡¯t thought of looking in the sea. Navigational technology in this world is still underdeveloped, and there aren¡¯t any valuable items offshore. Other than scarce inds and some pirates, people usually ignore the sea, making it a blind spot in their thinking.
After Anthony was reminded, he gazed into the distant sea and could faintly see some sail-shaped shadows. ¡­ nging noise! Carrack felt the adversary¡¯s strength was escting, causing numbness in his palms. Surely this wasn¡¯t the power of a high-level Sword Saint¡­could it be a Truth Sword Saint? But why did his face seem unknown? Ignoring the countable Truth Sword Saints, Carrack was familiar with a fair number of high-level Sword Saints ¨C he had at least seen portraits of them. So why hadn¡¯t hee across this man before? ¡°Who are you?¡± Carrack found an instant to shout. ¡°Luther Lofen!¡± Luther responded excitedly. Finally, someone had asked his name. He was waiting for a chance to announce his name. Tears welled up in his eyes. Before, he would finish a fight before getting a chance to reveal it or even draw his sword. ¡°Lofen family? Never heard of it,¡± Carrack stated, puzzled. ¡°You¡¯ve heard of it now, die! Shatter, crushing strike!¡± Luther¡¯s energy was overflowing as he struck with four sessive sword attacks. ng! ng! ng! ng! Suddenly his hands felt light; the sword in his hand shattered at the same moment as Carrack¡¯s Sword of Judgement. ¡°Aaaargh¡­ My Dragon Pattern Steel Core Mithril Iy Magic Rune Covered Earth Forged Gemstone Enhanced Piercing Enchantment Two-handed Sword!¡± He had rarely had an opportunity to draw his sword before, and now that he finally did, it couldn¡¯t withstand one fight and it shattered. This piece of junk! The weaponless opponents punched each other and retreated, holding their distance. Catching his breath, Carrackughed: ¡°The sword had a long name, but it¡¯s quite useless, isn¡¯t it?¡± ¡°Bah, yours shattered too. What¡¯s so great about that?!¡± Luther yelled back. With his energy surging, he clenched his fists before his body, creating a sword out of pure energy. ¡°Hasn¡¯t anyone ever told you that the Judgement is the standard weapon of our Judgement Hall? Everyone gets one, I¡¯ve got plenty more,¡± said Carrack, drawing another Sword of Judgement from his storage space while he spoke. Luther¡¯s face darkened. Carrack was no weakling, and if Luther had no weapon and had to rely only on his energy sword,cking a physicalic entity to channel his energy, he would be at a significant disadvantage. Just then, Luther noticed something bouncing next to him. Turning to look, he saw it was Little Angel, jumping while holding its Great Angel¡¯s Staff as if it wanted to lend the weapon to him. Luther felt warmth in his heart and said with a smile, ¡°Thanks, but it¡¯s not necessary. Watch me knock him out with bare hands.¡± The Great Angel¡¯s staff wasn¡¯t suited for hacking and shing like a sword, especially since it was just broken, it¡¯s not really suited for bludgeoning. But he appreciated Little Angel¡¯s kind intentions. ¡°Roar!¡± Little Angel put away the staff and took out a hammer instead. This could be used. It was perfect for smashing, but sadly, Luther couldn¡¯t lift it. ¡°Roar!¡± Little Angel stowed away the Earth Hammer and pulled out a sword instead. ¡°Huh?!¡± ¡°Huh?!¡± This sword¡¯s appearance caused a multitude of gasps, even Negris, who was projected onto Ange, couldn¡¯t help but exim. But at this moment, everyone¡¯s gaze was attracted by this sword, and no one paid attention to its voice. ¡°Light¡­ Judgement and Exile¡¯s Sword?! Judgment God¡¯s weapon? How¡­how could it be here?¡± Karlok was almost popping his eyes out. Negris suddenly remembered something and couldn¡¯t help but yell inside Ange¡¯s mind: ¡°Kvada, Little Angel was the first one to rush into the Temple of Goddess of Redemption, certainly was it who hid it there.¡± ¡°Judgment Angel¡¯s Exile Sword?¡± Luther took it, gripping it tightly and reluctantly said, ¡°The name doesn¡¯t sound good, oh well, I¡¯ll settle for it now and change itter, thank you, Little Angel.¡± ¡°Roar!¡± Little Angel cried out. Luther seemed to understand reluctantly: ¡°You want me to let him beat you up?¡± Little Angel nodded. Luther shook his head like a rattle drum, ¡°No way, no way, I haven¡¯t had enough fun yet, next time, next time.¡± He said and didn¡¯t care how Little Angel reacted. He dashed forward with his sword. Little Angel walked back dejectedly, just as it reached Ange¡¯s side, its neck was suddenly lifted up. ¡°Roar?¡± Ange asked. ¡°Roar!¡± Little Angel answered confidently. Ange, holding it upside down by the foot, gave it a few shakes and seventeen spatial storage bags fell out. Negris originally found it unbearable to see Little Angel turned upside down, but after seeing the space bags that fell out, it instantly felt that this was right. ¡°Kvada, how much stuff have you stashed away? Are you a hoarder?¡± Negris reprimanded.@@novelbin@@ At this moment, Karlok, who was engaged in the battle, suddenly shouted: ¡°God bless! Light of Arbitration!¡± With his outcry, light suddenly radiated from his body, and an overwhelming aura spread out as if some force had been projected onto him. ¡°It¡¯s not good, it¡¯s the God¡¯s blessing of the God of Arbitration.¡± Anthony¡¯s face changed, he immediately took a step forward. Karlok had already begun to summon the God of Arbitration, and what followed would not simply be an ordinary fight, but a battle between the clergy. But just before Anthony¡¯s foot hadnded, Karlok screamed. Luther¡¯s Judgement and Exile Sword prated the Holy Light unobstructedly, stabbing right into Karlok sturdily. ¡°Why¡­ why ¡­¡± clutching the sword, Karlok incredulously asked with wide eyes, why didn¡¯t his protective Holy Light work at all? He¡¯d clearly used the God¡¯s Blessing, hadn¡¯t he? Actually, Luther was also stunned, this clearly was an ultimate move, why was this even worse than before? He didn¡¯t feel any resistance from the Light of Arbitration. ¡°Erm, could it be¡­ this sword is the Arbitration¡¯s weapon, so the Arbitration¡¯s power would ignore it?¡± Anthony said puzzledly. ¡°No way, if that¡¯s the case, then you really died unjustly.¡± While speaking Luther twisted his wrist and created a bloody hole where he had stabbed in. A familiar aura emerged from Karlok, and then it froze, seeming confused. Meanwhile, Karlok, whose chest had been gouged out, lost all his strength, and fell backward. Without the support of a physical body, naturally, the projected force could not be maintained and dissipated quickly. When it vanished, everyone could feel a strong sense of confusion from that aura. ¡°It seems to be the same aura asst time, it¡¯s the God of Arbitration, right? He¡¯s already made his second failed appearance¡­.¡± Negris said helplessly. Whoo¡ªThe loud sound of a horn echoed from the distant sea, severalrge sailboats appeared on the sea, rushing towards the shore at a high speed. They entered the shallows without slowing down, seeming prepared to beach themselves. On these sailboats, all hung the pirate g of a skull, however, thergest two boats had distinctive gs. Below the skull, the bones were reced with a sickle and a sheaf of rice. In addition to the pirate g, there was also a g with a chubby ck bird. Seeing this g, Anthony and Luther exchanged a nce, thinking in their hearts: it can¡¯t be such a coincidence, right? Chapter 622 - 348: Is she taking us too lightly?_1 Chapter 622: Chapter 348: Is she taking us too lightly?_1 Who holds the greatest power on the open ocean today? Unquestionably, it¡¯s the ck Pirate Group, protected by the Giant Dragon. After wiping out all other forces at sea, the ck Pirates have be an unparalleled behemoth, boasting over sixty huge ships, hundreds of medium and small-sized cargo ships, and thousands of small rowing boats. But that¡¯s about it. The ocean is vast, but people are scarce, and the economy is not especially active. After unifying the entire ocean, survival has be the main issue since they can¡¯t plunder recklessly as before. Of course, in the foreseeable future, there will be more and more ships on the sea and the economy will gradually flourish. With all the pirates taken down, the risks of oceanic routes have been significantly reduced, so many merchants will choose these paths for trade due to cost-efficiency. Even if you head south all the way from the Republic of Steris, circling the entire continent along the coastline to reach the east, the transportation costs are still lower than those onnd, making it ideal forrge-scale trade. Not long ago, Silver Coinmented in the Consciousness Space to Negris, expressing his ns to organize manpower for sea transportation. The n was to bring bird droppings from the Fallen Dragon Valley via the West River in Fallen Dragon Lake, transfer to a sea route heading south, bypass West Wind Corner, and then directly reach the east, saving a significant amount of cost. However, establishing sea routes takes time, and people need to eat every day. Especially after taking down all the pirates and converting them into members of the ck Pirates, feeding them has be a big issue. The main source of ie for the ck Pirates is protection fees. However, you can¡¯t charge as much as you used to in the days of plundering; only sustainable practices willst.
When the number of people hasn¡¯t decreased but the ie has, cuts must be made. So the most efficient solution? Renting out their services. With over sixtyrge ships and hundreds of smaller ones lying idle, and no longer any use for them since the pirates were eradicated, it makes perfect sense to rent them out for cargo and passenger transportation. ck Night Raven couldn¡¯t handle these tasks, so in the end, Silver Coin sent people to assist. However, the people Silver Coin sent over were somewhat¡­ hard to describe. A group of sailors gathered on the deck, pping their hands energetically: ¡°p, p, p. Protection of the Giant Dragon! Enthusiastic service! p, p, p. Smooth sailing! Invincible in storms!¡± Their shouting was loud, but what they were saying was awkward. Or at least, those listening felt awkward. Inside the cabin, several knights wearing the Holy Armour of Light wore constipated expressions: ¡°Are¡­ Are these even pirates anymore?¡± ¡°They don¡¯t look like it. They resemble the Goblin Trade Guild.¡± ¡°They¡¯re not trading merchants. Who are they offering their cracked services to? The heretics they¡¯ve chopped down?¡± ¡°These are the heretics themselves, yet they¡¯re talking about the protection of the Giant Dragon? Where did these heretical believers spring from? I swear I¡¯m going to spend the better part of the day chopping them down.¡± ¡°You¡¯re thinking too much. Did you forget what they dered when we just came onboard? ¡®As long as people and ships exist, none will ever perish.¡¯ If you chop them down, the ship will definitely explode. You think you can swim to the shore?¡± ¡°¡­ Never mind, I can¡¯t swim. I¡¯ve been feeling sick since boarding the ship and my legs have gone wobbly.¡± ¡°Our Lord certainly has a keen mind to n an ambush at sea, though. We¡¯re short on ships so we had to rent pirate ones. Imagine the sight when we suddenly charge ashore- Anthony, the traitor, will be dumbfounded.¡± ¡°Indeed, indeed. He¡¯ll certainly be dumbfounded.¡± By the time they hadunched their assault onshore, the scene had definitely dumbfounded them. Two huge ships activated their Ramming Formations, ignoring the rocks on the shore and directly charging onto the beach. The doors at the front opened and knights from the Judgment Order streamed out, charging towards their target. This was the reason they had to rent pirate ships. First, they could bear heavy loads. Second, they had Ramming Formations which could charge straight onto the shore. Third, their fronts could be lowered to set up on the beach, allowing the people inside to directly charge out andunch their attack. ¡°Charge! Blessings of the Holy Light, Judgment is invincible, long live the Judgment Knights! Long¡­ Long¡­ Are we doomed?¡± The Holy Trial Knights who had charged onto the beach were expecting to see the enemy¡¯s formation in disarray. They thought the Great Chief Judge would take advantage of the enemy¡¯s readiness on the sea and strike their formation from the side to scatter and confuse them. Once they had gotten down from their ship, all they had to do was to surge forward, or so they thought. But their n failed. Their ns couldn¡¯t be overlyplex given the limitations of the terrain, not to mention they couldn¡¯t control their vessels. But they hadn¡¯t expected their ns to fall apart so quickly. Had the Great Chief Judge really been so ipetent? His body had been skewered on a spear and stuck at the edge of the shore. It wasn¡¯t just the Great Chief Judge, a group of knights apanying him had all perished as well. Their bodies were treated the same way. As such, the first thing the Holy Trial Knights from the ship had to face was a forest of bodies at the shore. And yet, there were no casualties on Ange¡¯s side. It was unbelievable, but Ange had the power to resurrect. As long as their heads weren¡¯t smashed on the spot, they could all be saved. And after treatment, their skin had be even softer and whiter. The Judgment Knights hesitated on the beach, not knowing whether to advance or retreat. Clearly, under the enemy¡¯s guarded formation, they had to leave the beach and attack uphill, passing through a forest of corpses in the process. True, those bodies wouldn¡¯t hinder them, but it was heartbreaking. Who could march through a forest of warm bodies of theirrades and then attack a fortified enemy position while keeping up morale? Just then, a priest was pushed out from Ange¡¯s line. He was the same one who sent the signal earlier. He wore a face of grief as he shouted out: ¡°Children of God, the Great Chief Judge Karlok has forsaken the Light, brazenly attacking Lord Anthony, his crimes monstrous and heinous. He deceived others, luring everyone onto the wrong path. Don¡¯t fall for his tricks. Surrender, surrender to the merciful Lord Anthony.¡±@@novelbin@@ Chapter 623 - 348: Is she taking us too lightly?_2 Chapter 623: Chapter 348: Is she taking us too lightly?_2 ¡°Traitors, damn Kobolds, traitors!¡± The leading officer among the Holy Trial Knights cursed, loyal to Karlok, he would never surrender to the enemy. He was pondering on how to take revenge. ¡°Not surrendering, huh?¡± Anthony turned towards the Little Angel and whispered. The Little Angel was ted, her True Wings fanned out in a sh, and she rose to the sky. The Holy Trial Knights on the beach caused a ruckus and chaos: ¡°Ho¡­ Holy Spirit Angel.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t panic, don¡¯t panic. It¡¯s just a Two-winged Low-level Angel. We just need to be careful.¡± As soon as these words were spoken, a pair of Light Wings spread out behind the Little Angel.@@novelbin@@ ¡°Fo¡­Four-Winged Angel!¡± The voice of the Holy Trial Knights caught in panic. The biggest difference between a Four-Winged Angel and a Two-Winged Angel is not their fighting power, but their ability to use a powerful attack ¨C Holy Light sh. They would either have to disperse or endure the attack. ¡°Don¡¯t panic, don¡¯t panic.¡± The voice that has just calmed everyone down was now slightly panicked too, ¡°It¡¯s just a Four-Winged Angel; form up, form up!¡±
Barely had they formed up when they saw the Little Angel drawing a Great Angel¡¯s Staff. ¡°Gr¡­Great Angel¡¯s Staff?¡± The Holy Trial Knights were more panic-stricken. ¡°Don¡¯t panic, don¡¯t panic. It¡¯s just the Great Angel¡¯s Staff. Hold the formation, maintain the Wall of Divine Blessing.¡± Just when everyone thought the Little Angel was about to unleash her powerful attack, she turned around and flew back, holding the Great Angel¡¯s Staff high towards Ange, ¡°Arrgh!¡±. Ange shook his head, ¡°Arrgh!¡±. ¡°Arrgh~¡±. The Little Angel, disappointed, flew up again, aiming with the Great Angel¡¯s Staff. The Holy Trial Knights were utterly panicked: ¡°Wh¡­ what is she doing? Is she trying to boost the power of the Great Angel¡¯s Staff?¡± ¡°Seems like it. She was looking for a boost from the Ascetic Monk An, but she got declined.¡± ¡°A Four-Winged Angel, with a Great Angel¡¯s Staff, and she wants a boost? Does she¡­ does she think too highly of us?¡± ¡°¡­Run!¡± The Holy Trial Knights eximed and scattered in all directions. ¡°Don¡¯t run, don¡¯t panic, hold¡­¡± The leading Holy Trial Knight began to yell, but before he could finish, a thick beam of light shone at him, swallowing his body and his loyal followers behind him, and plowing a groove into the beach beyond. When the beam of light disappeared, all the Holy Trial Knights who were touched by the Holy Light vanished. It¡¯s no wonder Ange didn¡¯t give it a boost; even now its power was overflowing. If it got any more powerful, it might go all the way to the sea. But the Little Angel did not care; she wanted more power. She wasn¡¯t happy until her power was at its maximum, and when she wasn¡¯t happy, she had to vent. When she flipped the staff around, the Great Angel¡¯s Staff transformed into the Great Angel¡¯s ¡®Hammer¡¯. She was about to rush forward, swinging it, but Ange, who was ready, pulled her back. ¡°Arrgh!¡± There was no need to charge because these Holy Trial Knights were left with nowhere to go. They realized the two pirate ships, which had rushed to the beach, silently pulled up their bow and a bunch of people on the deck were struggling to anchor. As the anchor wound, the heavy ship was swiftly pulled back into the sea, regaining its mobility. Then the skull g on the bow was lowered, and Anthony¡¯s banner was raised. ¡°God of Misfortune, even the ships we rode were arranged by Lord Anthony? His wisdom is everywhere; we did not lose unjustly.¡± ¡°Hey hey hey, you didn¡¯t say that on the ship just now. You called Lord Anthony a ¡®dirty dog¡¯.¡± ¡°Do you have any proof?¡± ¡°I¡­¡± The pirate ships that regained their mobility started chasing the small and medium-sized vessels brought by the Holy Trial Knights. These boats did not have the ability to rush to the beach, so they stayed back to watch the show, not anticipating it would end like this. Small boat could not beat a big ship, not even run from it, so they quickly surrendered. Anthony tied everyone up and pushed them aside. No one was interested in how he would deal with them. With Anthony¡¯s methods, these prisoners would shape up or tten out, and obediently follow orders. Negris was more interested in the tworge ships on the sea. They all climbed aboard. ¡°This ship is huge, how many tons?¡± Negris asked. The captain and the first mate, responding with pride, said, ¡°Nine hundred tons.¡± ¡°That¡¯s not small, where is your leader?¡± Negris inquired. He didn¡¯t recognize any of these people, he only knew ck Night Raven. They weren¡¯t familiar with one another, so it was difficult to ask about sensitive matters. The captain pointed out to the distance of the sea: ¡°Over there.¡± The sea was wide open, and Negris saw nothing, not even a flying figure, let alone a ship. But not long after, they heard a ssh as three odd-looking ships surfaced from the nearby water. These were three closed, olive-shaped peculiar ships, not veryrge, probably less than one-tenth the length of the nine-hundred-ton ship they were currently on, but they were equipped with a robust ram. The ram was currently attached to the ship¡¯s body, but there was a cable at the back. It was clear that if the cable was tightened, the ram would be lifted and turned into an oblique angle. Negris immediately recognized the threat of this ram. If these three peculiar ships could travel underwater, once the ram was raised, they could puncture the waterline of the enemy ship, creating arge hole in the enemy¡¯s hull, without needing a high speed. The hatch of one ship opened, and a snake person climbed out first, followed by ck Night Raven. Seeing Ange and others on the ship, she excitedly waved and bounced: ¡°Lord! Lord Nage!¡± She then conjured up her fighting spirit, stepped quickly onto the sea surface, and her feet stirred the sea water with her fighting spirit, allowing her to run all the way across the sea surface. But, she couldn¡¯t sustain this for more than three seconds. Her strength couldn¡¯t bear such consumption. Halfway through, she let out a yelp and plunged into the water. It wasn¡¯t long before she crawled up from the water, embarrassed, andughed sheepishly: ¡°Too far, I miscalcted, I miscalcted, ah bless.¡± Ange waved her hand lightly, and with Elemental Repulsion, quickly dispelled the water element from her clothes. The now dry ck Night Raven brushed her clothes and knelt on one knee: ¡°I give my respects to Lord Anthony!¡± The captain and first mate shuddered, looked at each other in shock, and also knelt down. ck Night Raven was now a legend among the pirates, known as the King of the Four Seas. Aside from the Gold Dragon, they had never seen her kneel before someone else. Just who was this Lord Anthony? Ange tilted his head without saying a word, but waved his hand to lift her up using Elemental Magic. See, Ange is notpletely clueless. ck Night Raven asked excitedly: ¡°Lord, how did you guys end up here? Did youe to see me?¡± Negris rolled his eyes at her: ¡°Yes, yes, yes, we came here specifically to see you. How have you been doing recently? Why did you return? How did you end up working with the Church of Light?¡± ck Night Raven ignored Negris¡¯ eye roll and gave them a rundown about the current status of the ships. ¡°So that¡¯s how it is. Thinking to rent out the ships was a good idea, it doesn¡¯t seem like something your slow-brained self could havee up with,¡±mented Negris. ck Night Raven awkwardly scratched her forehead: ¡°Uh, that suggestion was made by the professional personnel sent by Lord Silver Coin.¡± Negris pped his thighs: ¡°I knew it, I knew I was not mistaken.¡± ck Night Raven, seeminglyplimented, giggled shyly, and then realized: Negris wasn¡¯t mistaken, did it mean she really was slow-brained? ¡°What kind of ship are those? They¡¯re weird, where did you find them?¡± Negris asked about the strange ships that everyone was most interested in. ¡°Oh, those are called the Unicorn Whales, a kind of semi-submersible ship that can cruise underwater for a short period of time. It¡¯s based on the technology of the snake people. But after their deity died, they could no longer make them. These three were built with Lord Brooks¡¯ help.¡± ¡°Oh, it¡¯s that kid, alright, I¡¯ll ask him about the principlester,¡± Negris replied. He is aware he could not get the whole principle out from the dull-witted ck Night Raven. That kid?! The captain and the first mate instinctively tensed up. Gold Dragon Brucek, was he actually referred to as ¡®that kid¡¯? Just who were these folks? ¡°When the Church of Light rented the ships to transport people, I suspected that they were preparing to ambush someone. I rented them out since they paid enough, but I was worried they wouldn¡¯t keep their word and harm my ships and people afterward. So, I quietly followed them with the Unicorn Whales. If they dared harm my people, I¡¯d sink these ships once they were seized, burying them in the sea,¡± recounted ck Night Raven. The captain and first mate wiped the cold sweat off their foreheads. ¡°By the way, Lord, when I was submerged in the sea earlier, I found some structures and a few statues underwater.¡± Chapter 624 - 349: Getting Used to New Tricks_1 624 Chapter 349: Getting Used to New Tricks_1 "Is this a Titan city?" Ange dived into the sea, rushing towards the direction ck Night Raven pointed out, quickly spotting a city and several statues in the muddy bottom. Upon a clear look at the statues, Negris asked the aforementioned question. Since they were not too far from the surface, sunlight shone down, illuminating the entire city. Only after getting closer did they realize that the city''s buildings were gigantic. Even the most colossal cities would eventually be covered in sand and mud over time. The majority of the city buildings were nearlypletely buried, with only rooftops protruding. Most of the buildings and giant statues were covered in muck up to their chest; only the upper halves exposed. In a few more decades, perhaps even their tops wouldn''t remain visible. Upon approaching one of the statues, Negris cautiously inspected it and confirmed: "Indeed, it''s a Titan city. This is the statue of the Titan God King." Ange moved to another statue and carefully identified, "This is the Son of Thunder, one of the three Titans." Soon, Negris couldn''t help but call out to Lightning: "Lightning, Lightning,e look, the pet of Lightning, this is the pet of Lightning." "Let me see, let me see." Lightning scrambled around, but unable to see anything. Negris could only see outside when he was projected onto Ange, as Lightning couldn''t make projections. Unless Ange pulled him out right now, unfortunately, he couldn''t breathe underwater. "I can''t see anything. Describe it to me, is the pet of Lightning handsome?" Lightning asked restlessly. @@novelbin@@ "Handsome, handsome, like a yellow weasel," Negris looked at the skinny pet statue at the foot of the Son of Thunder. Ange moved to the third statue, and Negris hesitated before saying, "Is this the God of Forging? The Dwarf God of Forging?" Whether it was the appearance or the divine symbols, it was unmistakably an erged version of the Dwarf God of Forging. Was the legend of dwarfs having Titan bloodlines true? "A lot is buried in the mud, hard to see clearly," Negris said regretfully. Ange tilted his head and started casting a spell towards the city. Water bullets, at a speed of thirteen per second, shot continuously towards the mud. The water bullets, equivalent to high-powered water guns, washed away the mud wherever they hit and revealed the underlying structures. As a substantial amount of mud was cleared, the original structures of the city were revealed. When the stirred mud obscured the waters, Ange redirected the water bullets towards the open sea. As massive amounts of seawater were shot towards the open ocean, the leftover seawater would refill the spots and also remove the murky mud. After an hour, the city of the Titans revealed its concealed entirety. "Gosh, this effect is almost like the arcane magic Tidal Surge, isn''t it? You''ve somehow managed to stack it up using only low-level magic. Incredible," Durken eximed in admiration. Negris disagreed, "It''s far off. The instant destructive power isn''t enough, but it''s indeed pretty good for sediment clearing." "You should turn around to check those ships. They''ll definitely disagree with you," Durken said. Negris turned around only to find a Unicorn Whale semi-submersible ship spinning upside down, caught by the whirlpool created by Ange''s massive water flow. It was unable to move forward or back. The other ships on the sea surface drifted aimlessly, desperately trying to get away from the area. However, the undercurrent was like invisible hands, directing their course. In the age of sailing, relying solely on sea currents and sails for power, it wasn''t easy to break free once caught in an undercurrent. So, to those sailboats, Ange''s magic was no different than the arcane magic Tidal Surge. "Ange, stop for a moment. ck Night Raven''s ship is caught in it." "Oh." With a slight swipe, Ange adjusted the position of the undercurrent, and the semi-submersible ship bobbed towards the sea surface as if spinning. It quickly reemerged, and the cabin door opened impatiently. Out crawled a disoriented Snake Person, taking a deep breath halfway before throwing up. Before they could finish vomiting, someone from inside the ship aggressively pushed them into the water. ck Night Raven appeared, gasping for breath and then vomiting again. Before she could finish, someone pushed her from behind and another Snake Person emerged. Finally, a dizzied, pale-faced ck Night Raven and the Snake Persony on the semi-submersible ship, weakly mumbling, "I... I was nearly... killed by the Lord''s strength... I won''t... I won''t... approach the Lord again." ck Night Raven experienced the disparity once again. Being a great King of the Four Seas and a beautiful pirate leader, she nearly died due to a whirlpool caused by Lord Ange''s sediment clearing... "Poor child, may her soul rest in peace." Negris offered a blessing, taking pleasure in her misfortune. After the mud was cleared, Negris discovered that these should not be considered a city altogether. There were a total of five buildings due to being extraordinary in size, they upied an area equivalent to a minor human city. But when it came to the buildings, there were only five of them. "This should just be a temple," Durken said. As Ange descended towards the ground, Negris took the opportunity to ask, "By the way, where did the Titans go? The Master ne always has legends about the Titans, but why have they never actually seen one?" Chapter 625 - 349: Getting Used to New Tricks_2 Chapter 625: Chapter 349: Getting Used to New Tricks_2 ¡°Don¡¯t you have a Titan under you? Although of mixed blood, they share the bloodline of the Thunder Titans.¡± Durken puzzledly asked. ¡°You mean the Purple Corpse? No, they are not from this dimension.¡± Negris exined the origins of the Purple Corpse. ¡°Oh wow, is it Locke¡¯s shamanistic system?¡± Durken eximed in surprise. The Purple Skeleton Titan still follows the social structure of the primordial tribe. It leans into shamanism, bloodlines, totems, and nature worship. Even though they have no rtionship with Locke, they chose to worship his hand bone as the tribe¡¯s totem, creating a system called the shamanistic system. If they had a blood rtionship, it would be a bloodline instead. Having rified the origins of the Purple Corpse, Durken spoke again: ¡°The Titans were chased away by humans.¡± ¡°Chased away by humans? Where were they chased to?¡± Negris asked in surprise. Could Titans be easily chased away? Not to mention anything else, but with thebat power of the Purple Skeleton Titan alone, about twenty of them could stand against thousands of human soldiers. And let¡¯s not even talk about the full-blooded Titans. Any Thunder Titan, standing at a towering height of six meters, flinging thunderbolt spears as if it¡¯s free, capable of both close and long-range attacks. Who could dislodge them once they¡¯ve imed a territory?
¡°How would I know? Perhaps they were chased to the dimension where you found the Purple Skeleton Titans. They can stand against a thousand soldiers, but do you know how many soldiers there are in human society? The number of Titans is too small; unlike you dragons, they can¡¯t fly. There¡¯s no other option but to leave.¡± Durken shrugged. Because of the Titan¡¯s departure, what should have been the Titan¡¯s sacred temple fell into disuse and gradually sank into the sea due to various geological changes. After touring around the building, Negris was stunned: ¡°This is even more rudimentary than the Undead Temple.¡± ¡°Hey hey hey, what are you talking about? How can the Undead Temple be called rudimentary? That¡¯s minimalism, that¡¯s style, you just don¡¯t appreciate it.¡± Durken rushed to defend. ¡°Oh, so you designed the Undead Temple? It¡¯s rudimentary.¡± ¡°Minimalist.¡± ¡°Rudimentary, ow¡­..¡± Whilst they bickered, Ange finished touring the entire temple. Indeed, just as Negris had described, it was rudimentary. It was essentially just a stone house built from piles of rocks and stones, only that it¡¯s particrlyrge. There wasn¡¯t any furniture or utensils inside, it was just an empty room, like a magnified version of a primitive stone house. ¡°There¡¯s nothing worth seeing; let¡¯s go. It¡¯s too rudimentary. These Titans didn¡¯t even leave any treasures behind.¡± Negris was disappointed. Ange nodded, turned towards the water surface, and swam away. After swimming for a while, he remembered something and turned back. He broke off the Thunderbolt Spear from the statue of the Titan God. ¡°An iron spear, what do you want it for?¡± Negris said displeasedly: ¡°Are you taking it back for forging?¡±@@novelbin@@ When clearing the silt originally, they had carefully examined this spear. It was just amon iron rod, shaped to look like a thunderbolt spear for decoration. The surface wasn¡¯t even treated; it was rusted from being soaking in the sea for a long time. The material was nothing special. Its weight, however, was not small. Due to the immense size of the statue, the spear was six or seven meters long, its weight was estimated to be several tons. Even storing it in the Dimension would be a waste of Soul Energy. ¡°For the Purple Corpse,¡± Ange said. Such a giant spear for the Purple Corpse? The Purple Corpse was pleased to no end. Almost got crushed by the spear, it was just over three meters tall. You tossed her a spear six or seven meters long, are you trying to kill her? Finally, it was the Great Shaman¡¯s idea to stick the spear into the ground and worship it as a totem. That evening, when it usually didn¡¯t thunder, thunder suddenly rattled near the Fallen Dragon Lake. The electric spark fell from the sky, hit the spear, turned into silvery snakes, and conducted around through the ground, awakening all the sleeping Purple Skeleton Titans around the area. When everyone came over, they saw a group of Purple Corpse Titans with their hair standing on ends. Ange¡¯s gaze first fell on the spear. It was originally full of rust spots, but at this moment it had entirely shed its rust, revealing the metal underneath. ¡°How are you guys? Is anyone hurt?¡± Looking at the Titans with their hair standing up, Negris asked concernedly. The Purple Corpse opened her mouth and smoke billowed out: ¡°No-no-nothing¡¯s wrong, just a little numb.¡± As soon as she opened her mouth, smoke came out. By the time she finished her sentence, a string of smoke balls had already emerged from her head. Not only was there no injury but also, due to the bloodline of the Thunder Titan, the Purple Corpse even felt powerful throughout her body. She hugged the lightning and rubbed her head. A Thunderbolt Spear taken off a statue could actually draw down lightning? ¡°It seems this is not an ordinary iron spear. It probably lost all its energy and looked like iron. If the lightning could charge it, it might restore its original appearance.¡± Durken analyzed. He extended his hand to touch the spear but before his hand could touch it, an electric current zapped him. Durken¡¯s body shook uncontrobly on the spot before eventually managing to stand still. Luckily, Ange used his Hand of the Mage to pull him back. ¡°Why did I get shocked? I¡¯m a Witch; my body isn¡¯t conductive¡­¡± Durken is not the Son of Thunder. Not only was he electrocuted, but his skin also turned red and hot, splitting open. ¡°Serves you right for touching it without thought.¡± Negris said annoyed. Chapter 626 - 349: Getting Used to New Tricks_3 Chapter 626: Chapter 349: Getting Used to New Tricks_3 Durken realized: ¡°Right, this activation is too troublesome, it lowers the defensive power and even shocks me.¡± ¡°So, this iron spear is not an ordinary iron object, it has the ability to attract lightning, can the lightning fill the Purple Skeleton Titan with power? So that means, Ange found another treasure?¡± Negris concluded. ¡°Ange¡­¡± Turning to say something to Ange, he saw that Ange had already started digging holes in the ground. ¡°What are you doing again? Didn¡¯t you say it will attract lightning? If you nt something here, won¡¯t it be struck and killed by a lightning bolt?¡± Negris said. Ange took out a stump from the space: ¡°The Thunder Tree.¡± With the lightning spear at the center, extending along the radiating line, he nted five Thunder Trees in session. The distance of each tree was different from the lightning spear, but they all fell on the same straight line. After nting the Thunder Trees, Ange dug out a row of holes on another radiating line, sprinkling seeds: ¡°Thunder Exploding Cotton.¡± Ah, seriously, what was Grandfather thinking? Why did he have to invite the granddaughters of his friends toe home and study with her? They were just here to share her misery!
Luckily, there was the pleasing First Son to look at, otherwise, she would have gone crazy listening to those boring heavenly books every day. Lin Qingluo nced at the three dispirited girls from the general¡¯s family with sympathy, sighed quietly, and focused on the lecture. * On the 16th day of the first month, Lin Jinyu took his four brothers, bade farewell to their elders, and returned to Mystic Canyon. Feng Yi apanied his mother and sister on the journey, escorting them back. Wang Meng and Shitou stayed behind, responsible for supervising the six young boys¡¯ martial arts training in the Duke¡¯s residence. Little Twelve and Little Thirteen also happily joined the martial arts training under their brothers¡¯ lead. The two young boys imitated their brothers¡¯ movements, practicing the Lin n¡¯s basic martial arts techniques. Their clumsy and cute appearance made the entire Martial Arts Arena burst intoughter. Once the New Year passed, Lin Yixuan couldn¡¯t stay in the pce any longer, so he sneaked out of the pce under various pretenses and came to Duke of Zhen¡¯s residence to practice martial arts with Wang Meng and Shitou. During her breaks from studying, Lin Qingluo also came to the Martial Arts Arena to stretch her body and teach the teenagers. With her brothers away, she was the eldest sister. The six younger brothers were very obedient. Whenever their sister came to the Martial Arts Arena, they would joyfully gather around her, like six happy little horses, frolicking around her. Little Eight Lin Jinhao was eleven years old, and Little Nine Lin Jinlei was ten. The two believed their martial arts skills were top-notch among the brothers, so they often entangled their sister to spar with them when their brothers were not around. Pretending to learn from each other, they couldn¡¯t even touch the corner of their sister¡¯s clothes. However, the two were not discouraged and became more motivated after every failure, disying the Lin n¡¯s characteristic fearless spirit. ** Wei Shumin was very considerate and grateful for Lin Qingluo¡¯s kindness to her. She took great care of her little mistress¡¯s diet and daily life. Lin Qingluo often joked with her, saying that a ten-year-old girl was worrying like a thirty-year-old aunt. If one didn¡¯t know better, they would think she was her sister! Zizhu was still as carefree as ever, following Wei Shumin around every day, happily circling around her mistress. Her simple and honest smile made everyone feel rxed andfortable. With thepany of the two maids, Lin Qingluo had given up on the idea of selecting new maids. She clearly told her grandmother and mother that the two girls were enough and that there was no need to add more people. The olddy initially disagreed, feeling heartache for her granddaughter. However, when her beloved granddaughter disyed a sweet smile and called her grandmother sweetly, her heart would melt instantly.@@novelbin@@ All her reluctance was left behind, and she held onto her precious granddaughter tightly, not wanting to let go. Ye Xue¡¯e knew her daughter was right and let her make her own decisions without imposing any restrictions. Thus, the matter of choosing new maids for the Fluttering Snow Residence came to an end. From then on, Wei Shumin and Zizhu, as first-ss maids, stayed at the Fluttering Snow Residence and served by Lin Qingluo¡¯s side. ¡°Did you notice? nting along the radiation line is to makeparisons. Ange will have to move the trees to the most suitable distanceter.¡± Just then, Purple Skeleton came over, scratching his head, hesitantly said to Negris: ¡°During these few days when we were touching the electric gate, we sensed some strange information. If it were just one feeling, it would be fine. However, all of us felt it. Someone iming to be the Thunder God is calling out to us, he¡¯s saying that a storm ising, and asking us to prepare quickly.¡± Chapter 627 - 350: This is Inciting Dissension_1 Chapter 627: Chapter 350: This is Inciting Dissension_1 A group of people, bored as they could be, gathered around the Lightning Javelin, looking skyward, waiting for the lightning to strike. ¡°The Thunder God? The Dwarves¡¯ Thunder God? Do the Dwarves have a Thunder God? Don¡¯t they just have the God of War and the God of Forging?¡± Negris asked in confusion. Durken replied, ¡°Yes, the Thunder God, War God, God of Forging, the three main gods of the Dwarves.¡±@@novelbin@@ Feiti chimed in, ¡°The Thunder God is a Titan. A long time ago, we fought to an impasse, he was formidable, so Iter provided some protection for his War God and God of Forging.¡± ¡°What!? You provided protection for the Dwarves¡¯ War God and God of Forging?¡± Negris eximed in shock. Feiti scratched his head and said, ¡°Well, not exactly protection, they were initially sided with the Church of Light, but for some reason, they started to fight among themselves. I despised such acts of backstabbing, so I stepped in and shielded them. Then, they started to fight with the two deities affiliated with the Church of Light.¡± Negris and Durken exchanged nces. Was what they saw on the War God¡¯s chessboard the incident that had happened then? The one providing protection for the War God and the God of Forging wasn¡¯t the King, but Feiti? After exining the situation they saw in the War God¡¯s chessboard, Feiti pondered for a while, ¡°It could be, they seemed to think that I was the King.¡± ¡°¡­¡± Who could have imagined such twists and turns? If they hadn¡¯t identally brought it up, who would have thought such things could be possible?
At that moment, a bolt of lightning fell from the sky, striking the Lightning Javelin with perfect uracy. ¡°There it is, there it is. Concentrate and see if you can sense that ¡®Thunder God¡¯.¡± The scales all over Negris¡¯ body stood up as he yelled out loud. ¡°No, nothing sensed.¡± Luther replied anxiously with his eyes closed. As a human, he stood furthest away, afraid that the lightning might strike him. Even if it didn¡¯t hit him directly, the electric current conducted into the ground could still harm him. Lightning stood much closer than him. Being the Son of Lightning, if no one stopped him, he would probably be licking the Javelin with his tongue, and sticking himself onto it. ¡°No, I can¡¯t sense anything either. I am the Son of Lightning, how could I not be able to sense it? There must be the Thunder God not speaking.¡± Lightning said bitterly. Everyone else was the same, be it Negris, Durken, Feiti or Lamo, they could not feel any consciousness that imed to be the Thunder God from the lightning bolt. The only exceptions were the Purple Skeleton Titans, ¡°I heard it! I heard it! His voice sounded as if it echoed in my mind, clearer than before.¡± ¡°He said he is the Thunder God, a new storm has taken shape, the descendants with his bloodline, be careful to dodge.¡± ¡°I heard it too, clearer than yesterday.¡± ¡°If we can hear it, does that mean we all bear the bloodline of the Thunder God?¡± The Purple Skeleton Titans like Purple Corpse and the Great Shaman were screaming in excitement. However, others who couldn¡¯t hear were left dumbfounded, looking at them. Ange tilted his head, forming a thought. Negris and Durken¡¯s bodies slumped to the ground with a light noise, as if their consciousnesses had been pulled away, leaving Feiti standing nkly, ¡°Consciousness Space? We¡¯ve entered the Consciousness Space?¡± Others such as Little Angel, Little Zombie, Lisa, Oke, the Purple Corpse¡­ those who had a soul connection with him were all pulled by Ange into the Consciousness Space. After a while, Silver coin came in and a momentter, Anthony joined. Both were people of significant status who couldn¡¯t just freeze in ce; they had to find a proper or safe ce first. Of course, Anthony had already prepared his excuse, iming he was receiving the divine message. Once everyone was present, the dark Consciousness Space suddenly began to revolve. ¡°War God¡¯s chessboard? Are you simting the War God¡¯s chessboard?¡± Negris realized it at first nce. In front of the crowd, a 10-meter-tall image of a Dwarf slowly appeared, and at the same time, a thunderous voice echoed through the entire space: ¡°A new storm has taken shape, a terrifying disaster descends once again, gods will fall, Steris will dim, descendants of Thunderblood lineage, beware for your safety, protect yourselves, when the red starlight once again shimmers in the void, the Thunder will finally return.¡± ¡°A new storm¡­¡± The giant Dwarf repeated the phrase three times, and then the image faded gradually. Negris took a deep breath, ¡°Gods will fall, Steris will dim? Isn¡¯t that the fall of gods, Steris dimming, and the Red Star shining?¡± Anthony stroked his chin, murmuring, ¡°Thunder will finally return? Are these Thunder Titans nning toeback?¡± ¡°It shouldn¡¯t be, the Thunder Titans were ousted from here, even if they were asked to return, they wouldn¡¯t dare,¡± Durken remarked. ¡°So, are they nning tounch a new storm? Is this storm, Faith Storm? Thunder Titans are stirring up a Faith Storm, purging the gods, and then dare to return?¡± Negris spected. Feiti shook his head, ¡°Impossible, if they were the Thunder Titans, the King would have killed them long ago. He wouldn¡¯t let themunch a Faith Storm.¡± Feiti was fully aware of how powerful the Thunder Titans were. A single Undead King could wipe out all the Titans, so there¡¯s no way they couldunch a Faith Storm. Even if they managed to do so once, they wouldn¡¯t have a second chance. Anthony murmu¡¯red, ¡°Maybe the Thunder Titans aren¡¯t alone? This Thunder God is merely using the resonance of lightning to notify the creatures with Thunderblood lineage, others can¡¯t hear it. My Lord, how can you perceive this information?¡± Chapter 628 - 350: This is Instigating Discord_2 Chapter 628: Chapter 350: This is Instigating Discord_2 Ange pointed at the Purple Corpse. Not only did the Purple Corpse have a soul connection with Ange, but in Ange¡¯s spirit, there was also her exclusive symbol. ¡°So, the Thunder God just wanted to notify the existence of the Thunderblood lineage, like the War God and the God of Forging. He might not know that these two have fallen already,¡± said Lord Anthony. Everyone exchanged nces, apprehensive. ¡°Should we, convene a meeting on dimensional safety?¡± suggested Lord Anthony tentatively. ¡­ At early dawn, rubbing his yawning mouth, Tyrone stepped out from the Stargazing Tower. He stood in carriage after smoothing his thinning hair. ¡°You¡¯ve been up all night again? Look at your dark circles; you can rival the ck and white bear man. I wouldn¡¯t want to witness your sudden demise in the tower one day,¡± said Auburnli, who was a little girl, with a tone that was beyond her age. In the corner of the carriage, Space Arcanist Hiludi was seated obediently without casting a stray nce.
In the academy, with the Death Star being the ¡°big shot¡±, the Blue Star being the ¡°boss¡±, and Hiludi as the obedience student, she dared not to speak when these two ¡®big shots¡¯ were speaking. Tyrone responded obediently as well, ¡°The night slipped away unknowingly, the star movements have been quite oddtely, and I have a bad premonition.¡± ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Auburnli was not interested in stargazing, aplex art unrted to magic, and had noprehension of it whatsoever. Tyrone, on the other hand, was fond of it. Apart from practicing magic, epting a few unavoidable assignments, and presiding over the asional Dimensional Safety Meeting, he would spend his remaining leisure time at the Stargazing Tower. He could only observe the celestial movements at night; therefore, his sleeping habits were erratic. In due course, dark circles had formed under his eyes. ¡°The stars have dimmed. A few years ago, their brightness started to decrease. I have been continuously recording this phenomenon with the photometer up till now. To date, the brightness of Steris has decreased by a third. If this continues, all stars will disappear in six years.¡± Tyrone scratched his forehead while speaking. Distracted by his hair, he changed the subject, ¡°Hiludi, you said that hair treatment in the Goddess of Beauty City is really effective, right? Should I consider getting a treatment too?¡± Upon hearing this, Hiludi immediately brightened, saying, ¡°Of course, Lord Blue Star. The treatment is highly effective. I used to have a bald patch. But look at me now! And there¡¯s also senior Jack. He used to have long, flowing hair. But due to his poprity amongst the girls, his wife had to shave his head.¡± Tyrone came to a realization, ¡°So that was the case. I was wondering why he went bald. I thought his magical powers had been enhanced as people say bald heads are stronger. So, he didn¡¯t get bald but got his head shaved?¡± ¡°Exactly, Lord Blue Star. The sooner you get a treatment, the sooner you¡¯ll be handsome, and if you dy, you might get abandoned. Get a treatment a day sooner, and you¡¯ll be handsome a day sooner, use¡­¡± Hiludi rambled on enthusiastically and was about to pull out her business card when Auburnli stopped her. ¡°Use my name for a discount of 10%.¡± Auburnli stopped Hiludi and pulled out her own card. Hiludi was shocked by Auburnli¡¯s audacity. How could you steal a client? She wanted to say something in retaliation, but was put in her ce by Auburnli¡¯s re. Hiludi quickly sat down obediently, swallowing down the phrase: ¡°Name-drop for an 8% discount¡­¡± In surprise, Tyrone epted the card, ¡°There¡¯s a discount too? That¡¯s great. I can save quite a bit. I heard it¡¯s quite an expensive package. Oh, by the way, I think I took up a bounty mission recently whose reward was also a hair growth package. But it was snatched by you, Hiludi, right?¡± Hiludiughed awkwardly and ced her hands obediently on her knees. Resigned to the fact that the prize that once was lost was lost forever, she feigned ignorance at Tyrone¡¯sment. Keeping the card aside, Tyrone asked, ¡°Who called for the meeting this time, and what¡¯s the agenda?¡± Frowning, Auburnli said, ¡°It was Anthony who proposed the meeting. He didn¡¯t provide an agenda but only said that there is an issue rting to the survival of dimensional nes that he¡¯d like to discuss.¡± ¡°Hmph, what big talkers, these from the Church of Light. As though the existence of different nes depends entirely on them! Even if the Church of Light was destroyed tomorrow, I wouldn¡¯t say it¡¯s a threat to the dimensions,¡± Tyrone scoffed. Auburnli and Hiludi exchanged nces and shared a silent understanding. With a faux cough, Auburnli began, ¡°Err, Runi, basically, if it doesn¡¯t vite your principles, I hope you can support Anthony, in principle.¡± Tyrone looked at Auburnli in shock, hardly believing what he heard. Auburnli looked back at him sternly, indicating she wasn¡¯t joking. Tyrone hesitated and asked, ¡°Is he your descendant?¡± Kvada, why is Auburnli calling him little Runi? Although he grew up under Auburnli¡¯s care, she hadn¡¯t called him ¡®little¡¯ Runi ever since he came of age, and yet such an endearing nickname popped up unexpectedly. Tyrone was genuinely ttered. And what did she mean by ¡®supporting him in principle without viting the principles¡­¡¯? That could mean that if it goes against the principle, then the principle should be abandoned for the sake of support. Essentially, don¡¯t oppose him, otherwise, he¡¯s ¡®little¡¯ Runi. When Tyrone was ¡®little¡¯, not obeying would entail punishment. If Anthony wasn¡¯t Auburnli¡¯s great-great-great-great grandson, then why would she support him so ardently? ¡°Anthony is one of us,¡± Auburnli said with a smile. Tyrone¡¯s face turned grave instantly. This piece of news shocked him even more than learning that Anthony might be Auburnli¡¯s descendant. Who is Anthony? Archbishop of the Eastern Diocese, Pope-elect of the Holy Church, the genius who, for the first time ever, split the Church of Light in two; was he on their side? ¡°Really?¡± Tyrone still found it hard to believe. ¡°Indeed. If you don¡¯t support him, I¡¯ll record your bedwetting incident from your childhood in the ¡®Academy¡¯s Grand Event Record''¡±, Auburnli stated. ¡°Oh, oh, oh, what nonsense are you talking about, our little Runi is still around you know! Support, of course, I will support him! Rest assured, I staunchly support Lord Anthony.¡± This was far more threatening than a beating. While chatting along the way, the carriage arrived at the academy. As she stepped off the carriage, Auburnli suddenly remembered something and said, ¡°You mentioned ¡®the stars are dim¡¯, I vaguely remember hearing something simr somewhere¡­ ¡®The gods fall, and the stars dim. The Red Star is shining.''¡± ¡°The Gods fall, the stars dim, the Red Star is shining?¡± Tyrone frowned, ¡°Where did you hear that?¡± Auburnli answered, ¡°I heard it from the God of Knowledge.¡± ¡°The God of Knowledge? When? Is there more to it? Is that all?¡± Tyrone was surprised. ¡°There¡¯s more after that. Something like ¡®Donning battle armor, wearing a robe ofw, the heroic spirit protects the home¡¯,¡± Auburnli added. At the time, Negris had asked her what the meaning of those two lines of the epic poem was. Auburnli had no idea. Regardless of their meaning, she remembered those two lines of epic poetry. When Tyrone mentioned the ¡®stars are dim¡¯, it all sounded too familiar and took her a while to recall it. The dimming stars¡­ does that correspond to the ¡®fall of the gods¡¯ and the ¡®shining Red Star¡¯? With these questions in mind, Tyrone walked into the meeting room where the Teleportation Array was to be activated, as Auburnli dragged a reluctant Hiludi into the room as well.@@novelbin@@ ¡°Why am I included? I am not part of the academy leadership!¡± Hiludi struggled. ¡°The more you participate, the more you learn, once you¡¯ve learned, I will promote you to leadership,¡± Auburnli stated. It was about time to start grooming a new generation of sessors for the academy. ¡°I don¡¯t want to, I have fear of heights and I would get dizzy on the podium,¡± Hiludi protested. ¡°What if you became a leader and I had the podium removed?¡± Without giving Hiludi any chance to struggle, Auburnli forcefully pulled her into the meeting room. Upon activating the Teleportation Array, an urgentmunication request came. Tyrone, taken aback, opened it to hear Guliani¡¯s voice: ¡°Lord Blue Star, there¡¯s an unfortunate development I need to discuss with you.¡± ¡°What happened?¡± Tyrone asked. ¡°Anthony, through some method, has won over Hammer Copper and gotten the Dwarf King¡¯s vote. The Inter-nar Safety Conference is about to turn into a tform for Anthony to issuemands. This would be a great affront to your authority.¡± ¡°Dyson and I will do everything to support you, Lord, and to uphold the dignity of your chairmanship,¡± Guliani solemnly assured. Tyrone¡¯s spirits lifted instantly¡ªthis was a scheme to sow discord. Chapter 629 - 351 Anthony, Are You Trying to Rebel! _1 Chapter 629: Chapter 351 Anthony, Are You Trying to Rebel! _1 Dyson, listening to the voiceing from the Teleportation Array, responded obsequiously, ¡°Yes, yes, yes, Lord, I will follow all yourmands.¡± Guliani¡¯s tone turned somewhat doubtful, ¡°You¡¯ve been acting strange these past few days, what happened?¡± Dyson tried to imbue his tone with as much destion as he could, ¡°I failed¡­¡± Guliani naturally associated this with the recent operation. Despite his irritation, he offered words offort, ¡°It¡¯s not your fault. Who could¡¯ve known when Anthony had won over the Dwarf King? It¡¯s the dwarves who betrayed their allies.¡± While he provided words offort on the surface, deep down, he had already discounted Dyson. But since he had no one else to rely on for now, he decided to appease Dyson first and deal with himter. Dyson was utterly useless. Ever since the retreat from the Land of Fallen, he hadn¡¯t managed to seed in a single endeavor, all the excuses couldn¡¯t hide his ipetence. Being an Archbishop was not a job with a fixed standard and pattern, it required constant adaptation to changing circumstances. To judge the qualification of an Archbishop, there were only two criteria, Faith Elemental Force and taxation. Being ¡®obedient¡¯ wasn¡¯t even the most crucial aspect. Making the Archbishop obey themands of the curia was the Pope¡¯s duty. Even if someone didn¡¯t obey, as long as the Gods approved, no one would question it. This was why Anthony leaving the Holy Church didn¡¯t cause a holy war. The fact that Anthony could use Divine Power indicated he hadn¡¯t betrayed the Gods, and the absence of divine punishment demonstrated he hadn¡¯t lost their approval.
So, this was merely a power struggle under the approval of the Gods. Setting aside this factor, when it came to Faith Elemental Force and taxation, Anthony undoubtedly excelled. Compared to him, Dyson was as worthless as poop, with his only merit being his obedience. If it weren¡¯t for the worry that the other party would take advantage of him, Guliani would almost want to hand over the Western District to Anthony. Having to appease such an ipetent person against his desires, Guliani felt like he was swallowing arge toad. In his usual practice, the ipetent ones were sent to mine coal. The Holy Light team that was previously formed by the curia had been sent to mine coal collectively after their consecutive losses against a small country like the Ganges. They hadn¡¯te out to this day. Dyson responded in the same obsequious manner, ¡°Yes, yes, yes, Lord, I will follow all yourmands.¡± After hanging up, Dyson breathed a sigh of relief. He had managed to bluff his way through for now. The numerous excuses he¡¯d used to avoid going to the curia were already raising Guliani¡¯s suspicions. If he didn¡¯t act ¡®despondent¡¯, how could he exin his actions? However, he couldn¡¯t keep this up. He couldn¡¯t avoid seeing Guliani forever. The next time they met, if the other party checked his Divine Fire, his secret would be exposed. What should he do? Run away? As soon as the thought surfaced, Dyson shook his head fervently. He hadn¡¯t yet enjoyed all the resources left by his predecessor. It wouldn¡¯t be fair to leave now. If he didn¡¯t want to run away or be exposed, there was only one way left. However, he would need to consult with Lord Anthony first. He couldn¡¯t do this on his own. Even the covert spies nted by Guliani around him could tie him up and bring him in for a reward. ¡­ After breaking off the connection, Guliani angrily dialed another number. After a round of questioning, he hung up, puzzled. No matter how smart Guliani was, he would never guess that Dyson¡¯s substitute would be more real than Dyson himself. Since most of the time, the one appearing in front of people was the substitute. Guliani had even met the substitute and hadn¡¯t noticed any difference. It seemed unlikely that he could spot it without checking the Divine Fire. ¡­ Anthony disconnected the call with Dyson and revealed a wry smile, ¡°This is going to be interesting. If the curia loses all its dioceses and is left only with a city, what should it be called?¡± Just as he finished mumbling, anothermunication request came through the Teleportation Array. ¡°This is the first time I¡¯ve ever had such a busy meeting,¡± Anthony smiled and epted the call. Previously, for interdimensional security meetings, everyone would receive a notification, fix a time, assemble online for discussion, and then vote. Now, things were quite the opposite. Even before the official meeting, there was non-stop private lobbying. Anthony had already talked privately with the Elf Queen, Brooks, and the Dwarf King, just finished a call with Dyson, so who could this new call be from? Only Guliani and Tyrone were left who hadn¡¯t had privatemunication. If this call was from Guliani, it would be quite amusing.@@novelbin@@ Luckily, no such entertaining thing happened. Once connected, Tyrone¡¯s voice came from the Teleportation Array, ¡°Uh, Lord Anthony, can I know what news you n to share in this meeting? Is there anything you need me to do?¡± ¡°Oh, it¡¯s Lord Blue Star, hello, hello, you¡¯re too kind. I¡¯m deeply grateful for Miss Auburnli¡¯s care. We¡¯re basically family now¡­¡± After a round of private lobbying, the interdimensional security meeting finally began. Behind Anthony, Ange, Negris, Durken, Feiti were all lined up, joining the meeting in this way. First, Anthony discussed the ¡®New Storm¡¯ situation, which, unsurprisingly, led to amotion, including from Guliani. ¡°How did he find out about the New Storm? Light and Darkness Lord, did you inform him?¡± Guliani turned and asked. Behind Guliani, an ordinary middle-aged man stood. If Ange were present, he would recognize him, wasn¡¯t it the same body that the mysterious figure had sought him to resurrect? Chapter 630 - 351 Anthony, Are You Trying to Rebel! _2 Chapter 630: Chapter 351 Anthony, Are You Trying to Rebel! _2 The projection onto the Divine Body, Lord Light, shook his head and expressionlessly said, ¡°No.¡± The shadow cast by Lord Light on the ground also cracked a smile and said, ¡°No.¡± ¡°Where did he learn about the new storm then? The stars grow dim, the Red Star shines brightly, thunder is to return? Which thunder?¡± Guliani asked. ¡°The Thunder Titan.¡± Lord Light responded. As they were conversing, themunication meeting also erupted into chaos. Copperhammer Dwarven King, all agitated, eximed, ¡°The Thunder Titan? Are you talking about the Thunder God? The Thunder God is returning?¡± ¡°Stars grow dim? How is this so simr to the phenomena I observed when stargazing? The data I collected from the Stargazing Tower over these years showed that the brightness of the stars has indeed been continuously declining. Could this ¡®stars grow dim¡¯ refer to this phenomenon?¡± Tyrone pondered. ¡°What about the Red Star? If the proverb corresponds to the star pattern, then what about the Red Star? Have you seen the Red Star?¡± Anthony inquired. ¡°No, I haven¡¯t spotted the Red Star. What about this new storm? What does it indicate? Surely it can¡¯t be a meteor shower?¡± Tyrone asked. ¡°Next, I¡¯m going through the matter of this storm. Please, everyone, pledge an oath not to leak today¡¯s meeting content.¡± Anthony solemnly stated.
Guliani¡¯s face turned pale, ¡°You want to discuss the matter of the gods? Anthony, you can¡¯t!¡± Anthony naturally did not heed him and quickly conveyed the matter of the gods. Everyone actually had some anticipation and guesswork, after all, the gods have not appeared for thousands of years. But they dared not to affirm it, because nine hundred years ago, the God of Arbitration still descended, and the God of Life has also been sheltering the elves all along. Everyone could not differentiate the distinction between the God of Life and other gods, thus treating them all the same. Upon hearing Anthony¡¯s narration, Tyrone summarised, ¡°So a Faith Storm that took ce over a thousand years ago destroyed the majority of the gods, and now, a new Faith Storm is about to arrive?¡± ¡°Yes.¡± Anthony responded. ¡°Does this Faith Storm affect ordinary people? Such as a Truth Mage like myself?¡± Tyrone asked. A Truth Mage, after all, ims to be a Truth ¡®God¡¯. Will he be affected by the storm? Gard anxiously questioned, ¡°What about the God of Life? Will the God of Life be affected? Has the storm already begun to take effect? Recently, the God of Life has been rtively quiet. Could it be the influence of the storm?¡± Anthony sneered in his heart: Is that the storm¡¯s influence? That¡¯s your God of Life running away. While he thought so in his heart, he couldn¡¯t say it out loud. Anthony rified, ¡°No, the Faith Storm only affects those beings who possess divinity and Divine Fire.¡± Upon hearing these words, Guliani¡¯s heart jolted, and he swiftly asked, ¡°Lord Light, will the Divine Fire also be affected?¡± Lord Light shook his head nkly¡­ Guliani had just heaved a sigh of relief when he heard Lord Light say, ¡°I don¡¯t know.¡± Guliani almost spewed out blood. It turned out that ¡®shaking his head¡¯ meant he did not know.@@novelbin@@ The God of the Dark emerged from the shadow, ¡°What are you worry about? You don¡¯t possess the Divine Fire.¡± Gulianiughed bitterly and offered his Divine Fire, ¡°Ignited a couple of days ago.¡± ¡°That¡¯s impossible. The ignition of the Divine Fire is a grand event, why didn¡¯t anyone detect it? Which ne did you ignite it on?¡± the God of the Dark asked doubtfully. When Ange ignited the Divine Fire, Redemption deep within the same ne¡¯s seabed cavern sensed it. Basically, as long as you¡¯re in the same ne, the act of igniting the Divine Fire is easily sensed by other deities. Guliani lit the Divine Fire a couple of days ago, but nobody felt it. Apparently, when he kindled the Divine Fire, he was not on this ne, nor in the secret world where the God of Light and Darkness resides. ¡°I¡¯m in¡­ Let¡¯s discuss itter.¡± Guliani abruptly changed the subject, pointing at the Teleportation Array. Tyrone was speaking. Tyrone said, ¡°So the current situation is that faith storm a thousand years ago destroyed all gods, it had no effect on ordinary people, so shouldn¡¯t we just ignore it?¡± The God of Light and Darkness could no longer care about Guliani¡¯s change in topic. Even Guliani himself was so ovee with urgency that he said, ¡°No way!¡± ¡°But I think Tyrone makes a lot of sense,¡± Copperhammer¡¯s voice rang out: ¡°Since the gods fell a thousand years ago, why should we still care about the faith storm? Shouldn¡¯t we wee the return of the Thunder God after the Red Star sh?¡± Without their War God and God of Forging, the Dwarves didn¡¯t have to worry about the faith storm. Instead, they eagerly awaited the Thunder God¡¯s return after the Red Star sh. ¡°I¡­¡± Just as Guliani was about to speak, he was interrupted by Copperhammer: ¡°What? You want to block the return of the Thunder? We Dwarves will fight to the death.¡± Oh no, had internal strife arisen between humans and dwarves even before the meeting ended? Tyrone frowned, intending to maintain some order, only to hear Anthony say, ¡°Enough, don¡¯t be so naive. The returning Thunder might not necessarily be your Thunder God. What if it isn¡¯t? If it were your Thunder God, why didn¡¯t he notify you directly?¡± Copperhammer was taken aback. He was so excited about Thunder¡¯s return that he hadn¡¯t thought it through. Reminded by Anthony, he finally got it: ¡°You¡¯ve got a point, but what if it¡¯s the real Thunder God?¡± ¡°If it is the real Thunder God, I guarantee his safe return, but I will stop those who bring him back. That way, he will rely on you Dwarves again. Otherwise, if he brings back a bunch of Titans, who will you listen to then? You can believe, but you need to take the initiative,¡± Anthony exined. Several gasps resounded from the Teleportation Array. Even Tyrone was impressed. This was a genuine attempt to sow discord, trying to drive a wedge between the Dwarves and the Thunder God. Compared with Anthony, Guliani¡¯s previous attempts at stirring trouble seemed forced. This was the best strategy for the Dwarves. If it was not the Thunder God, they ought to block it. If it was, then they should stop those who brought the Thunder God back. Otherwise, why should the Dwarves continue to receive the protection of the Thunder God? Apart from being slightly disrespectful to the gods, everyone knew what choice Copperhammer would make. As expected, no more sound came from the Teleportation Array. The silence at that moment was tantamount to tacit agreement. Having calmed Copperhammer down, Anthony continued: ¡°Not all deities have perished. As far as I know, the God of Arbitration, God of Light and Darkness, God of Shadows, God of Farming, Goddess of Redemption, God of Bnce, and the Harvest Goddess are still alive.¡± ¡°What? Really?!¡± Guliani, shocked, turned to look at the God of Light and Darkness. The God of Shadows emerged from the shadow, astonished, ¡°Redemption and Bnce are still alive? Why didn¡¯t you mention it?¡± Confused, Guliani said, ¡°I didn¡¯t know.¡± ¡°Then why does Anthony know? Who¡¯s the actual Pope? Your intelligencework is weaker than his? What kind of Pope are you!¡± the God of Dark couldn¡¯t help but scold. Guliani was at a loss for words and weakly countered, ¡°He might be lying as well.¡± The God of Dark made a strong case. As the Pope, Guliani¡¯s sources were less informed than a high-ranking Archbishop¡¯s. Who was truly the Pope? The problem was that among the three major districts, he currently only had control over the Western District. His power didn¡¯t surpass even Anthony¡¯s, and with Dyson¡¯s abilities falling short, it was only natural for his sources to becking after failing to manage his own district for so long. Anthony¡¯s voice continued: ¡°The most pressing issue now is to deal with this faith storm, to find a way to protect our gods to keep them from being harmed in the faith storm. For His Majesty Gard and Lord Brooks, who the Thunder returns with is the most important question.¡± ¡°If the Thunder were only to return by itself, there would absolutely be no need to firstunch a faith storm. We must unite everyone¡¯s strength to face this crisis, but as you all have seen recently¡­¡± At this point, Anthony¡¯s voice suddenly turned serious: ¡°Guliani has no ability to unite the power of the church at all. A famine almost caused the death of several million people in the Western District.¡± ¡°He is ipetent, and now I formally propose to the council to vote against Guliani¡¯s position as the Pope of the Church of Light, and for me to take up the post of Pope,¡± Guliani¡¯s anger nearly erupted from the Teleportation Array: ¡°Anthony, are you rebelling?¡± Chapter 631 - 352 Who Dares to Arrest Me _1 Chapter 631: Chapter 352 Who Dares to Arrest Me _1 The entire meeting was stunned by Anthony¡¯s words. After a considerable silence, Tyrone finally said weakly, ¡°How could we vote on internal matters of the Church of Light? Any decisions made won¡¯t be binding.¡± A slight smile swept across Anthony¡¯s face, ¡°That¡¯s why it¡¯s not about dismissal, but denial, denial of his status as a Pope, and shifting all contact with the Church of Light to me.¡± Guliani¡¯s face darkened, realizing that Anthony hade fully prepared. Power consists of several facets: internal personnel and finance; external diplomacy, trade, and war. If these are taken away by others, ostentatious titles would mean nothing but an empty shell. By causing division, Anthony seized the personnel and finance of the Eastern Diocese. And now, he intends to seize diplomatic power? As long as he, the Pope, is alive, there would be no re-election. But if the power of diplomacy was deprived, it meant the Pope¡¯s role would be hollowed out, bearing a title but no real authority. Moreover, there is a high likelihood of Anthony¡¯s plot seeding. Otherponents are challenging to seize. If Anthony himself weren¡¯t the Archbishop of the Eastern Diocese, the independence of the Eastern Diocese would¡¯ve been impossible. Even if Anthony were the Archbishop, the Kings, Dukes, and powerful ns unanimously supporting Anthony without hesitation were beyondprehension. The risk was immense and the gain small. If Anthony sessfully takes over, there would be no significant increase in their territorial profits. Still, should Anthony fail, they would all face retribution from the curia, possibly leading to the confiscation of their mansions and annihtion of their ns.
Why risk such grave consequences to support Anthony? Even if there were a few fools, not everyone in the Eastern Diocese could be fools, could they? What sort of benefits did Anthony offer to prompt everyone in the Eastern Diocese to make the same choice? And now, taking away his diplomatic power would be even easier than gaining the Eastern Diocese¡¯s independence. All it takes is for those at the meeting to acknowledge Anthony¡¯s control of the Church, then the power of diplomacy would naturally be transferred. When no one recognizes you, when everything is directed to Anthony, there would be no diplomacy left for the curia. Knowing Anthony, he wouldn¡¯tunch such a n unless he¡¯s fully confident. Could it be that he had colluded with others? No, this resolution must not be established. The voting cannot proceed unchecked. Guliani firmly said, ¡°This is an internal matter of the Church of Light. I ask all parties to abstain.¡± ¡°So-called internal matters havee to this? If you were capable, you should have settled it internally long ago,¡± Copper Hammer retorted dismissively. Feeling a lump in his throat, Guliani wished he could strangle Copper Hammer. His words were too harsh, akin to directly mocking Guliani¡¯s ipetence. Why? Why did Copper Hammer, an amiable dwarf with thick brows and big eyes, speak so cruelly? Why imitate Anthony? If Anthony could hear his thoughts, he would protest, ¡°No, I didn¡¯t teach him.¡± Some words, when uttered by a seemingly honest character, wreak more havoc, as was evident now. Copper Hammer crushed the ¡®internal affairs¡¯ argument in one sentence. Guliani, with spinning eyes, retorted, ¡°Yes, we have brought internal matters here, wasting everyone¡¯s resources. I apologize for that. But, after all, it¡¯s a matter of the Church. Please allow us to consult among ourselves first¡­¡± ¡°Fine, let¡¯s do that. I will halt other votes, leaving only your inner three. You vote first, whether or not we should bring this matter to a decision here. Let¡¯s start,¡± Tyrone said impatiently. Guliani frowned, thinking: That¡¯s not what I meant¡­ What the hell is going on? What he meant was ¡®we shouldn¡¯t vote¡¯, how did it turn into ¡®internal votes first¡¯? Something isn¡¯t right. He and Tyrone were engaged in a friendly conversation. So, why resort to such tricks? Was this unintentional? Even the ¡®voting¡¯ act interferes with the church¡¯s internal affairs. It shouldn¡¯t have arisen in the first ce. Once it did, it represents interference. Guliani took a deep breath. No matter what, whether Tyrone did it intentionally or not, he was forced to cast his vote. But on second thought, this could still be a blessing in disguise. If the internal parties vote first, out of the three votes he, Dyson, and Anthony hold, he already possesses two, thus potentially keeping this issue within the ¡®internal affairs¡¯ context. Gazing at the teleportation array¡¯s blinking light, Guliani cast a disgruntled vote against. Regardless of the result, his vote represents an unprecedented action in the history of the Church, setting a precedent for interfering with the internal affairs of the Church. Tyrone¡¯s voice rang out, ¡°Okay, the results are one ¡®no¡¯ and two ¡®yes¡¯. The resolution to ¡®bring this matter to the council to decide¡¯ has been officially approved. Now, let¡¯s start with ¡®whether Guliani¡¯s Pope status should be denied, and Anthony acknowledged¡­''¡± Guliani couldn¡¯t listen to the rest. The only words that echoed in his mind were: Two ¡®yes¡¯ votes, resolution approved¡­@@novelbin@@ Why were there two ¡®yes¡¯ votes? One came from Anthony but who cast the other one? Dyson!!!!!! Consumed by rage, Guliani radiated Sacred me all over his body, engulfing him in fire. Lord Light furrowed his brows, looking at him curiously. Chapter 632 - 352 Who Dares to Arrest Me _2 Chapter 632: Chapter 352 Who Dares to Arrest Me _2 The God of Shadows emerged from the shadows and said quietly into the ear of Lord Light, ¡°Such powerful strength, that damn guy, he has been hiding his real strength.¡± Lord Light nodded and said, ¡°Human powers are strong. Those at the Truth Level, their strength is already not inferior to ours.¡± ¡°So why do so many people still believe in us?¡± Dark asked in confusion. ¡°Faith, it is the hope of the weak,¡± Lord Light replied. ¡°Then why does he still have to ignite the Divine Fire? He already has power that is not inferior to ours.¡± The God of Shadows questioned with puzzlement.
Guliani had the body of a demigod for a long time, able to help Dyson ignite the Divine Fire, but he himself has not be a god. He had the strength to be a god for a long time, but strangely ignited the Divine Fire just two days ago. If he¡¯s already that strong, why would he want to be a god? Lord Light responded, ¡°Life span, the human lifespan is too short.¡± Dark was speechless and wide-mouthed. Lord Light¡¯s reason was simple but made sense. Without bing a god, the human lifespan ¨C just over a century ¨C could pass while he took a dream. It¡¯s possible that the powerful of the past might be gone when he woke up. However, this fact shows the terror of humans. With just over a hundred years of lifespan, they continuously produce Truth Level warriors. If they were given thousands to tens of thousands of years of life, how terrifying they would be. ¡°That¡¯s why we consider the Undead and witches as heretics. The Undead possess immortality, and the witches self-worship. They are the biggest threats to the Light,¡± Lord Light stated. ¡°What about the demons, then? Demons are also among the heretics. Has Lord Light forgotten?¡± ¡°Just making up the numbers.¡± ¡°¡­¡± A boundless anger, but ultimately did not cloud Guliani¡¯s judgement. As the Sacred me began to burn, he started to calm down slowly. Looking at the blinking Teleportation Array, he rejected the decision.
The result came out. Tyrone said, ¡°Good, the result is out. Six votes in favor and one vote against. The resolution has passed. From now on, all contacts with the Church of Light will be transferred to Anthony¡¯s end.¡± This result shocked everyone. First two votes in favor, then six votes in favor. Clearly, even Dyson had cast a vote in favor. My God, weren¡¯t Dyson and Anthony mortal enemies? He had tried to assassinate Anthony twice, and Anthony had also tried to kill him. How did they be allies? From within the Teleportation Array, Guliani¡¯s stern voice sounded, ¡°Dyson, why have you betrayed me?!¡± He didn¡¯t even talk about betraying the Light anymore but directly about betraying ¡®me¡¯. It seemed like he was ready for an open confrontation. Dyson¡¯s weak voice resonated, ¡°Your Majesty, what you have been doing is indeed not as outstanding as Lord Anthony. The Western Diocese was ruined by Nik, and you have been tolerating it all this time. So many people have died of starvation during the famine, but Your Majesty, you are doing nothing. Those people are the children of God.¡± ¡°I¡¯ve seen Lord Anthony work tirelessly to save people and offer disaster relief. He is much morepetent than you, Your Majesty. Don¡¯t cling to power, let go. We, the Western Diocese, stand firmly with Lord Anthony.¡± Guliani couldn¡¯t hold back anymore and spat out a mouthful of fresh blood. All the me was put on Guliani¡¯s shoulders, and the usations were lofty and convincing. If it weren¡¯t for Guliani¡¯s tolerance, the Western Diocese wouldn¡¯t be in such a terrible state. No mention was made of Dyson returning and only focusing on extorting money, not doing anything significant. But outsiders would find it very reasonable. Dyson had only been back for half a year. The famine to this extent could not have happened within that short timeframe; the biggest responsibility definitelyy with Nik. With Nik dead and unable to argue for himself and bear the responsibility, the biggest responsibility, therefore,y with Guliani as he was negligent. He was negligent and did nothing to address the escting famine, leading to the deaths of many from starvation. In the end, it was Anthony who extended a helping hand, otherwise, more would have died. This was under the circumstances that the Eastern Diocese was also experiencing a famine. Not only did Anthony handle the famine in the East, but he also helped the West. Inparison, the curia was practically invisible. The huge amount of taxes collected every year, but when things went south, they disappeared? Tyrone was contemting, Gard frowned, Copper Hammer stroked his beard, and Brooke picked up a scale. If it was initially just about supporting the kin disregarding the truth because of Ange, now they found that justice also seemed to be on Anthony¡¯s side. Supporting both kin and justice, this is what everyone desires. If someone else had been used, Guliani would have had ten thousand ways to refute it. But the usation was ced where it should be ¨C on him. It destroyed all his foundations for refutation, and even the phrase ¡®obsession with power¡¯ stifled all his exnations. If he didn¡¯t ept the result, it was ¡®obsession with power¡¯. Killing not just the person, but the heart as well. ¡°Bear the wrath of the gods,¡± Guliani saidstly and cut off the Teleportation Array. Anthony quickly said goodbye to everyone, also cut off the Teleportation Array, and then immediately contacted Dyson¡¯s Teleportation Array. Dyson¡¯s voice came through, no longer calm as in the meeting but urgent, ¡°Lord Anthony, help me.¡± ¡°Don¡¯t panic. I have arranged everything. Activate the teleportation mode,¡± Anthony said.@@novelbin@@ Interdimensional safety meetings were conducted through a teleportation array. The teleportation array has built-inmunication function. When only themunication function is activated, a meeting can be held. If you want to teleport, you have to activate the teleportation function as well. Chapter 633 - 352 Who Dares to Arrest Me _3 Chapter 633: Chapter 352 Who Dares to Arrest Me _3 Anthony teleported over first to confirm the safety, then let Ange, Little Angel, and Luther teleport. Everyone else was stashed inside the Resting Camp. ¡°Can the four of you handle it? I have no idea how many people Giuliani has arranged to assist Dyson. If there are too many, Ange may not be able to cope without transforming,¡± Negris conveyed, worriedly. ¡°We¡¯ll do our best. If things get out of hand, I¡¯ll transform and release you guys. Afterwards, we¡¯ll just kill everyone and that¡¯s it,¡± Anthony stated, resorting to brute-force logic ¨C ¡®once everybody who knows the secret is dead, no one will know the secret.¡¯ He then beckoned Dyson: ¡°Come and meet the Undead God, present your soul to the Undead God and you will be granted his protection.¡± ¡°Undead God!? You? Aren¡¯t you Ascetic Monk An?¡± Dyson¡¯s eyes nearly popped out of his head. He had only betrayed the Pope, why now does he suddenly need to offer his soul to the Undead God?
¡°Correct, I am also the one who has inherited powers from both the God of Bnce and the Undead God.¡± He then whispered to Ange: ¡°Master, show him the Ring of Bnce.¡± Ange took his hand out of his spatial bag, shed the Ring of Bnce, and then put his hand back in. ¡°This¡­this¡­this¡­¡± Dyson stuttered, unable to articte his words. Anthony smiled faintly, ¡°You don¡¯t have a choice. From the moment you covered up Dyson¡¯s head, you¡¯ve had no other choices. The Undead God, or the God of Bnce- choose one.¡± With a mournful expression, Dyson stated, ¡°So, it¡¯s the God of Bnce. I offer Dyson everything and hope your glory will illuminate darkness.¡± Indeed, he had no choice. From the moment he decided to impersonate Dyson, there were no other options. But why was it suddenly like this when he had merely betrayed the Pope?@@novelbin@@ That Anthony, the treacherous swindler¡­ Ange received Dyson¡¯s Soul me and began to summon beings from his spatial bag- Four-winged angels, two-winged angels, and Second-Order angels¡­ one after another. Under everyone¡¯s stunned gaze, Ange summoned a Third Order Four-winged Angel, along with fifty Second Order Two-Winged Angels.
Additionally, with Little Angel being fourth order, the room suddenly filled up with Holy Spirit Angels. Negris, taken aback, asked, ¡°Did you resurrect all these holy relics? Why so many? What a waste. What use are dozens of skeletons covered in holy skin?¡± Ange shook his head: ¡°They aren¡¯t skeletons.¡± Not skeletons? Then were they like Little Angel, spiritual beings? But with such low intellect, even spiritual beings were useless. Could it be¡­ ¡°Did you enhance their intelligence? How did you do that?¡± Negris eximed in awe. Ange tilted his head: ¡°You.¡± Negris almost choked on his own spit. When had he ever enhanced the intelligence of these Holy Spirits? The only thing that had to do with him was Ange stacking those holy skeleton masses into a tower, cing his essence in the center. Could it be¡­ He retracted and noticed where he usually stacked the holy skeletons; half of them were missing. Indeed, they must be the ones Ange had summoned. Could he actually enhance a skeleton¡¯s intellect? Negris floated atop the skeletons, looking left and right, then closer into the eye sockets. Perhaps one of the skeletons, having had enough of his examination, punched the Bronze Book and sent it flying. The fact that it hit him showed an improvement in intellect. With satisfaction, Negris plucked off its arm and merrily flew away. Just then, urgent knocks resounded from the door. From outside, Dyson¡¯s subordinate¡¯s voice could be heard, ¡°Archbishop, Archbishop, the Holy Army, holding the Pope¡¯s warrant, say they are here to arrest you. What happened?¡± Looking at the room full of Holy Spirit Angels, Dyson bitterly smiled, ¡°Let them in. I¡¯d love to see who dares to arrest me.¡± Chapter 634 - 353: You Should Have Said You Wanted to Kneel Earlier! Together _1 Chapter 634: Chapter 353: You Should Have Said You Wanted to Kneel Earlier! Together _1 The ¡®Holy¡¯ Legion is a rather unique entity within the curia, because its members are not human, but Holy Spirit Angels, with the legionmander being a ¡®Holy¡¯ Angel. Of course, many people consider this to be a fictitious entity, actually an avatar of a god. Luna confirmed this theory: ¡°Yes, it¡¯s fictitious. Of us three Supreme Holy Spirits, whichever one of us is free will take the role.¡± If the Supreme Holy Spirits aren¡¯t avable, the deputy legionmander of the Holy Legion is a Fourth Order Four-winged Angel. That is under normal circumstances, yet the current situation isn¡¯t normal ¡­ So now, leading the team is a Third Order Four-winged Angel, and thirty Second Order Two-winged Angels. For the current curia, such a lineup is already considered extremely luxurious, which goes to show the importance Guliani ces on Dyson. With thirty-one Second Order or higher angels, and the people he has put next to Dyson, it is easy to arrest an archbishop who has betrayed the Light.
Beimansen also thought so. As a pdin guiding the Holy Legion, he was not strong, but he had won Guliani¡¯s trust. He even considered himself as a strategist, or even the realmander, of the Holy Legion. It is well known that lower order Holy Spirit Angels are not very flexible-minded and cannot carry out tasks alone unless absolutely necessary. If they go on missions alone, preparations should be made for their inability to return. Didn¡¯t you see Anthony send a Holy Spirit out, and he had to send two ck Warriors to apany it, to pick up its corpse? Beimansen is supposed to guide the Holy Spirits not to do stupid things. He does not havemand authority over the Holy Spirits, but he can guide them indirectly. This role requires a thorough understanding of both the Holy Code and the habits of angels. He needs to get familiar with them and also exin the implications of themands to them. For example, when arresting someone, you cannot give such amand: ¡°Go to xxx ce, seize xxx¡¯ arms and legs, and bring him back intact and alive ¡­¡± If you don¡¯t give such a detailedmand, and they run to another ce, bringing back another guy named xxx, with blood and intestines trailing behind them, then what? It¡¯s not being overly worried, but they¡¯ve really done such things, so a role is needed to help them interpretmands. Li Xiu¡¯e, Sister Qiao, and Doudou were all willing to help take care of the young children.
However, Little Baby only clung to her; if he left her, he would cry heartbreakingly with breathlessness, causing others to feel pity. Feeling helpless, Su Qingluo could only hold Little Baby and enter her guest room. Just as she sat down on the bed to rest, his little face turned red. He started to cry, and then a warm liquid soaked her front. ¡°Mom, the little brother wet me.¡± The soft and tender voice, filled with immense grievances, echoed through the inn¡¯s windows. ¡°What¡¯s wrong?¡± Su Hu and Li Xiu¡¯e hurried over from the neighboring guest room upon hearing the cries. Seeing their daughter¡¯s pouting mouth and disheartened expression, they couldn¡¯t help butugh. From then on, the anxiety and fright experienced on the road dissipated because of this little episode, and their previous panic was gone. ******* Li Xiu¡¯e went downstairs and asked the inn¡¯s waiters for a bathtub and hot water to bathe the two children. Little Baby seemed to understand he had done something wrong. His cheeks were flushed with shame, and his tearful eyshes fluttered, unable to meet his sister¡¯s eyes. ¡°Good baby, get clean, and then Sister will take you downstairs to eat something delicious.¡± Li Xiu¡¯e prepared the bathwater and quickly undressed the little one. She put him in the tub and coaxed him to take a bath. Su Qingluo squatted in front of the tub, helping her mother pour water. Seeing Little Baby wanting to cry again as he left her embrace, she pinched his little nose,ughed, and talked to him, diverting his attention. ¡°Good baby, tell Sister your name.¡± ¡°Xuan¡¯er.¡± Little Baby, with tear-filled eyes, pitifully stretched out his little arms, ¡°Hug me, Sister.¡± ¡°After you take a bath and smell nice, Sister will hug you.¡± Su Qingluo pointed at her wet clothes and intentionally made a disgusted expression, ¡°Smelly, not nice to smell.¡± ¡°Wu wu.¡± Little Baby understood and thought that his sister disliked him. His mouth puckered, and tears flowed again. ¡°Ah, why are you crying again?¡± Helpless, Su Qingluo removed her wet, dirty clothes, stepped into the tub, and bathed with him. Both children were of innocent age; Li Xiu¡¯e saw nothing wrong with it. She poured water quicker, and soon both children were clean. She dried them off and held both little ones in bed. Little Baby had no spare clothes, but luckily Su Qingluo was young, so her clothes were suitable. Li Xiu¡¯e dressed Little Baby in his sister¡¯s pink floral clothes, revealing his white and tender little arms and legs. Apart from his exceptionally eye-catching cheeks, at first nce, there wasn¡¯t much difference between him and a rural child. Sister¡¯s clothes smelled just as sweet as hers. Little Baby was particrly happy wearing his sister¡¯s clothes, without any shyness in wearing a girl¡¯s clothes. Seeing that his sister had also dressed, he stuck to her, reaching out his little arms for a hug. ¡°Xuan¡¯er, be good. If you want to pee, just tell Sister; don¡¯t hold it back. If you hold it for too long, your belly will hurt.¡± As she held Little Baby, Su Qingluo gently poked his little belly, reminding him earnestly¡ªshe didn¡¯t want to be wet again. ¡°Belly hurts.¡± As Little Baby felt her tender little finger poke his belly, his little body shuddered with pain, and he pitifullyined. While in the middle of reading this, Beimansen bumped into the back of the angel in front of him. For some reason, they had stopped walking. ¡°Go and arrest him, why have you stopped?¡± Beimansen pushed and shoved, squeezed, and squeezed out from the pack of angels, leaning out to take a look.@@novelbin@@ In the not-sorge meeting room, it was packed full of Second Order and higher Holy Spirit Angels. They were divided into two groups and were facing each other. Opposite Seno were two four-winged angels. One of them, a little shorter, was carrying a Great Angel¡¯s Staff, puffing his chest and ready to rush forward, but its cor was firmly held by a ¡®human¡¯. Chapter 635 - 353: If You Want to Kneel, Say It Earlier! - Part 2 Chapter 635: Chapter 353: If You Want to Kneel, Say It Earlier! ¨C Part 2 How dare you grab the cor of a Four-Winged Angel? As Beimansen shifted his gaze and recognized Ange¡¯s face, shock struck him: Ascetic Monk An? Then he moved his gaze to the person next to Ange who was smiling at him, he was shocked once again: Anthony? Beimansen could never imagine that Anthony would show up here. How dangerous! For the eminent Archbishop to venture into non-territorial grounds, how much trust must he have in Dyson? Wasn¡¯t he afraid that this was actually a trap set by Dyson, who was colluding with Guliani, to blow him up right after he teleported over? Of course not, because ¡®Dyson¡¯ had been reced.
No matter how much one trusts, it is unthinkable for a dignitary like the Archbishop to risk himself in this manner. Realizing this, Beimansen was overjoyed. What a great opportunity! If he could annihte Anthony here, wouldn¡¯t he be achieving a great merit? Just follow a certain set of actions, and then other set of actions, and it can be done. ¡°By the mandate of the Pope, I am here to arrest Dyson. I request the assistance from all the angels present,¡± Beimansen raised the pope¡¯s order and showed it to the two Four-Winged Angels in the front row. The two Four-Winged Angels turned their heads. One of them looked at him nkly, while the other one just rolled his eyes and continued struggling, ¡°Ow!¡± Beimansen¡¯s eyebrows furrowed. The pope¡¯s order can¡¯tmand these angels? No fear, though the Pope¡¯s order can¡¯tmand these angels, it couldmand the soldiers outside. Once the people nted by the Pope managed to gather the soldiers, they could surround this ce and under the Pope¡¯s authority, could arrest everyone. If Ascetic Monk An, Anthony, and Dyson were all arrested, it wouldpletely resolve the church¡¯s internal problems. The merit he would earn would be so great, wouldn¡¯t it pave his way to be an Archbishop? While Beimansen was daydreaming, Ange pped Little Sky on the head: ¡°Ow!¡±
¡°Ow~¡± Little Sky stopped struggling, obediently raised the Great Angel¡¯s Staff above his head, and handed it over to Ange. As Ange grabbed the Great Angel¡¯s Staff, holy light shed in his palm. The shing was rapid, but there was hardly any overflow, and no noticeable light effect. Other than the two who knew, nobody else realized what Ange was doing. Naturally, Anthony and Dyson were the ones who knew. Seeing the shing in Ange¡¯s hand, their hearts nearly jumped out. The frequency of shing around a dozen times per second, absolute control with no overflow; all power was infused into the Great Angel¡¯s Staff without any waste. Most Divine Light Magic pursue sanctity and illumination. However, it actually wastes much power since emitting light is a form of energy conversion. Thus, for a single Divine Art, at least one third of it is wasted. Of course, the sacred light has a stronger influence on the believers, and effectively harvests faith. That¡¯s also the main reason why the gods prefer wasted light that ¡®looks good¡¯. Better to be pretty than strong, Gard¡¯s beauty is known in many dimensions. Who remembers that she is a Giant Dragon Hunter? The kind that can face Giant Dragons head-on. Presiding the control power and defining capability, Ange removed the ¡°light¡± particle from the holy light, made it less ring. Anthony, as Ange¡¯s Mystical Warrior, understood the implications of these changes. Before this, Ange always relied on others to define the Holy Light. The Face Purification Technique was defined by Lisa, the Rebirth Technique by the impaired singer Senlide, and Ange himself had never defined a new Divine Light Magic before. And now, Ange¡¯s Divine Light Magic no longer emits light. Instead, the Great Angel¡¯s Staff in Ange¡¯s hand started shining. The top of the staff radiated an intense light, illuminating the entire room. Little Sky excitedly took hold of the Great Angel¡¯s Staff, raised it high, unfurled his four wings¡­ No, not four wings. After the light of Little Sky¡¯s body merged with the light of the Great Angel¡¯s Staff, a fifth, and sixth, wing gradually manifested. Six-winged Archangel, the Supreme Holy Spirit! Beimansen¡¯s eyes nearly bulged out of his head. A Four-Winged Angel was enhanced to be Six-Winged Archangel? Is that even possible? How did this happen? What is this Ascetic Monk An? A god? This can¡¯t be. Once the Great Angel appears, the soldiers outside would never dare to surround the ce. It can¡¯t reveal itself. Thinking of this, Beimansen shouted aloud, ¡°She¡¯s posing as the Supreme Holy Spirit, Seno! Kill her! Kill her!¡± The Supreme Holy Spirits are only three in number, namely, the Wisdom Angel, the zing Angel, and the Strength Angel. The one in front of them had been enhanced and was thus a fake. In response, Seno spread his wings with a swish. Beimansen heaved a sign of relief. He had been worried that Seno might not dare toy a hand on the Six-winged Archangel, thankfully¡­ Just as he was thinking this, he suddenly felt a space in front of him. Led by Seno, the Holy Spirit Angels he had brought with him all knelt down on one knee with their heads bowed in respect, making him the only one still standing out. ¡°Are you spreading your wings to kneel, not to fight? Bada, you should¡¯ve said this earlier! We should all kneel together!¡± Beimansen cursed furiously to himself. His legs gave way and he fell to his knees in a puddle of cold sweat. The Little Angel was about to strike with her Angel¡¯s Wand, but was stupefied at the sight. She iprehensibly turned back to look at Ange. ¡°Ow!¡± Ange responded. The Little Angel scratched its head in puzzlement, holding the Great Angel¡¯s Staff back in its arms. How to deal with enemies was easy¨Cjust one blow with Holy Light sh. But what about this current situation? Anthony swiftly stepped forward, ¡°Just let them kneel. Stay on your knees and don¡¯t move.¡± ¡°Ow!¡± Agreed the Little Angel immediately, shouting at Seno and the others. Anthony then walked over, dragged Beimansen out, bound him up and stuffed something in his mouth to keep him quiet. He then directed the Little Angel tomand Seno toe forward. Following this, Anthony began whispering into Seno¡¯s ear. Negris and Durken, who were projected on Ange, could hardly contain their eagerness to jump out, ¡°What¡¯s going on? What¡¯s this? Why has the Four-Winged Angel on the other side knelt?¡± ¡°It seems to be rank suppression. The fifth-ranked Supreme Holy Spirit has rank suppression on these ordinary holy spirits.¡± Durkenmented. ¡°Damnit, call Luna over, aren¡¯t all the Holy Spirit Angels from the curia useless? Luna has seen the Little Angel before, why hasn¡¯t she been suppressed by it?¡± Durken roared, ¡°Damnit, your Little Angel here is barely kept under control by Ange, yet you¡¯re talking about rank suppression?!¡± ¡°Well that¡¯s true, no wonder Ange didn¡¯t buff it before. The buff from the Great Angel¡¯s Staff can boost its rank. A Six-winged Archangel, this is the fourth one, right?¡± Negrismented. ¡°This Six-winged Archangel¡­ can it be counted as raised by Ange? He¡¯s doing the work of the Gods of Light too?¡± Durken asked suspiciously. ¡°Why not? He has the Ring of Bnce.¡± Negris defended confidently. Although he does not possess the divine spirit of the God of Bnce, the Ring of Bnce is daunting enough; revealing it can intimidate quite a few people. On this side, Anthony¡¯s whispers in Seno¡¯s ears were reaching an end. One hand on Seno¡¯s temple, the other covering his mouth, Anthony leaned in close as if whispering a secret. If it weren¡¯t for the holy light glowing from the fingers resting on Seno¡¯s temple, the sight would be fairlymon¡­ Seno¡¯s eyes grew hazy then confused before struggling, till finally, rity was restored. ¡°Guliani has turned to the side of the Evil God and sent you to attack the Supreme Holy Spirit and the Ascetic Monk, his sins are monstrous. He deceived you all, follow the Supreme Holy Spirit and arrest Guliani,¡± Anthony whispered.@@novelbin@@ ¡°Yes!¡± Seno answered. All set; brainwashing the simple-minded Holy Spirit Angels was something Anthony had done countless times before. It wasn¡¯t much of a challenge. Under the suppression of the Little Angel¡¯s rank, Seno couldn¡¯t resist much. The noise outside was getting louder, and there was a faint sense of seismic activity. This was the stir caused by the mobilisation of the militia. A cry echoed distantly, ¡°Archbishop, Potosi and Krik are with the Pope, they have taken control of the armies with the Pope¡¯s insignia. They are now surrounding this ce with the Magic Crystal Cannons, Lord Bishop, run!¡± ¡°What¡¯s there to panic about!¡± Dyson reprimandedposedly, marching out first. Just as he was out of the room, he remembered something, turned around, bowed his head, and said, ¡°After you.¡± Chapter 636 - 354 - Have You Granted it to Me? Pure Light! _1 Chapter 636: Chapter 354 ¨C Have You Granted it to Me? Pure Light! _1 Under the leadership of the Six-winged Archangel, even in the City of Light, there probably wouldn¡¯t have been anyone daring enough to intercept them, let alone the fact that this was Dyson¡¯s territory. They had previously used the decree of the Pope to force those of wavering resolve to take sides. Now that the Great Angel had appeared, the legitimacy of the Pope¡¯s decree seemed questionable. But questioning such things was a matter for the leadership. Ordinary Pdins, soldiers, and priests had no suchplex thoughts in their hearts. They simply knelt in submission. One Six-winged Archangel, two Four-Winged Angels, and eighty Second Order Two-winged Angels; it had been many years since the Master ne had seen so many angels. They flooded into the sky, heading straight for the ce with the strongest energy reaction. ¡°This is the Magic Crystal Cannon, huh? Let me have a look, Angee closer.¡± said Negris.
Ange walked straight over and pressed his palm against the Magic Crystal Cannon, pushing it into his spatial storage. Well, that was it. All three of the small Magic Crystal Cannons had been confiscated and the cannon operators now found themselves unemployed. Negris looked around for a few times but lost interest after noticing Durken casting a nce. He couldn¡¯t help but ask, ¡°Aren¡¯t you an alchemist? Don¡¯t you have any interest in the Magic Crystal Cannon?¡± Durken replied: ¡°I¡¯m not interested. It¡¯s the same as the old Magic Crystal Cannon, which I can make myself. But it has a slow firing speed, wastes an enormous amount of energy, and can only be used against fixed targets.¡± The Magic Crystal Cannon was invented many years ago but never became widespread because of the difficulties in manufacturing and various other shorings. There was no need for the Magic Crystal Cannon to hit fixed targets. Wizards were far more useful. ¡°I once considered using the Magic Crystal Cannon as a defense for the world¡¯s transfer stations, but I found it useless. Instead, I had to resort to using mechanical constructs,¡± Durken exined. ¡°I see,¡± Negris suddenly lost interest. ¡°Now what? Do we march on the City of Light and tether that Pope to the Fire Execution Frame?¡±
As the only normal human who had witnessed everything first-hand, Luther was overly excited seeing Ange and Anthony leave enemies subjugated wherever they went. He could hardly stop himself from blurting out. He hadn¡¯t even had time to draw his sword. ¡°Of course not, we continue the disaster relief,¡± Anthony replied. The refugee camps that Anthony had set up at the border had significantly alleviated the famine in the Western Region. Yet, it was far from enough. Even the uing harvest season might not alleviate the famine, as in many ces, unquenchable hunger had forced people topletely devour tree bark, grass roots, and other nt life.@@novelbin@@ It was foreseeable that the aftereffects of this famine would continue to cause unrest in the Western Region for the next few years. But never mind, now that Anthony had arrived, and their Holy Pope had arrived, the mercy of the gods had arrived. Senlide took the lead, and a regiment of Bards flooded into the Western District. Each pair of Bard was protected by forty Pdins, apanied by five Second-Order Angels and a team of two hundred food transporters. ¡°Gentlemen, listen to my tale. The despot Guliani turned a blind eye to death, allowed famine to spread. Archbishop Dyson, having seen the error of his ways, summoned the Holy Pope Anthony. The Six-winged Angel showed divine might, our Lord An spread God¡¯s decree, the faithful believers set the path¡­¡± The new form of singing instantly attracted a crowd of onlookers, and the story they sang spread like a storm. The gist of the story was that Guliani, being debauched and indifferent to plight, had allowed the spread of famine unchecked. Archbishop Dyson, unable to stand it, had called Holy Pope Anthony to bring justice. The Holy Pope Anthony not only came himself but also brought the Six-winged Angel and Ascetic Monk An, who delivered God¡¯s decree on the spot and brought food to the starving people. At this point, the Bard raised his hand and the covers on the transportation carts revealed enormous piles of grain. Well, those who had half-believed the Bard¡¯s story instantly became convinced upon seeing the food, just like the time when Ange threw a sack of grain in front of a Minotaur matron, asking her, ¡®Got the faith?¡¯ In addition to the various relief teams, Anthony also borrowed a team of Dragon Knights ¡ª well, borrowed from Ange. More than a hundred live Dragon Knights were dispatched at top speed to confiscate the wealth of thosendlords, nobles, and royal houses who had hoarded treasures, engaged in forced buying and selling, illegal monopolies, obstructed trade routes, and hindered the movement of disaster victims, ¡®causing numerous refugees to die on their territory¡¯. Anthony had noted them down in his small booklet. In the past, he could only announce rewards, certainly there were many who defied the rules. Therefore, Anthony could only jot them down in his booklet as he was unable to do much about them at the time. Now that he had the opportunity, of course, he would settle scores as soon as possible. The food and money garnered from looting their properties could be used for local disaster relief. Otherwise, a lot would have been lost if we were to transport all the food from the east and we saved as much as we can. The whole process went smoothly. The only problem was that Ange couldn¡¯t personally harvest the faith at the scene, which made Anthony feel guilty. ¡°Sir, we don¡¯t have enough time. There are too many ces that need relief. Once things steady a bit, we can go and harvest faith.¡± Ange didn¡¯t mind and shook his head, showing the nting God Statue. ¡°It¡¯s growing.¡± Ange had found a pattern. Every time he distributed food on arge scale, the nting God Statue would experience a significant growth. Hence, even if he wasn¡¯t at the scene, he would still be able to harvest a considerable amount of faith. He just wouldn¡¯t be able to harvest the faithwork. Anthony had guessed at the ability of the nting God Statue previously. Now it was confirmed once again. Seeing this, he couldn¡¯t help but ask, ¡°Is this amazing? Is this growth a one-time thing? Or can it continually strengthen the nting God Statue after one time?¡± Chapter 637 - 354: You Bestowed it on Me? Pure Light!_2 Chapter 637: Chapter 354: You Bestowed it on Me? Pure Light!_2 ¡°Once.¡± Ange replied. Anthony said, ¡°So, we have to continuously supply food, right? Can we supply seeds?¡± Shocked, Negris, projected onto Ange¡¯s body, couldn¡¯t help but shout, ¡°Kvada, what are you trying to do?!¡± Negris had a hunch about what Anthony was nning, hence his outburst, all the while chastising himself internally for not thinking of this brilliant idea first. As expected, Anthony said, ¡°If Lord provides the seeds, I will have all thends in the district switched to the new grain. By next harvest season, all the grains will be the result of Lord¡¯s seeds.¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help eximing, ¡°When that timees, everyone in the ne who consumes any food will have to give him power. Even if the power given is less than that from a regr believer, it will umte over the three meals a day. Ange, your nting god status might actually be the strongest.¡± Ange¡¯s eyes brightened, ¡°Great.¡± ¡°Aha! Just up your alley, isn¡¯t it? I bet you absolutely love the nting god status.¡± Negris said irritably, stoking the argument, ¡°How do you get farmers to willingly switch to his grain? Changing crops is risky and farmers¡¯ capability to bear risks is too weak. Without apelling reason, they wouldn¡¯t change crops casually¡ªit¡¯s way too risky.¡± Anthony smiled slightly, ¡°Seedpetition, provided for free, with the church as the guarantor.¡± The seedpetition was well-known throughout the ins. If there¡¯s a new champion seed, which farmer wouldn¡¯t want to use it? Not just the champion seed, even if it¡¯s a several runner-ups one, as long as it¡¯s better than what they are currently nting, many would want it. So why didn¡¯t it spread more widely? It¡¯s too expensive. In thest seedpetition, the new grain that produced a thousand jin per mu required one gold coin per mu for the seeds. Even if the yield is a thousand jin per mu, selling it all may not necessarily earn a gold coin, wouldn¡¯t nting this new crop mean a loss? If it could be provided for free, even if the yield is only five hundred jin per mu, there would be many farmers willing to switch. However, the most ingenious is the church acting as a guarantor. Even the high-yield crops still have risks, such as unsuitable climate, improper management, improper fertilization, insufficient soil fertility, etc. What if there is a total failure? With the church guaranteeing, there¡¯s nothing to fear, even if crops fail, they won¡¯t starve to death. ¡°Brilliant! There¡¯s even a benefit to guaranteeing, the yield will increase significantly next year. If thend guaranteed by the church increases, we can collect a tax of ten to twenty percent on the increase, we don¡¯t lose, and the farmers don¡¯t either.¡± When Negris finished sharing his perceived brilliant idea, he wasughed at by Anthony, ¡°Where are you going to find so many people to measure whether there is an increase in production? If you really want to collect the increased production tax, without aprehensive monitoring ability, you will have to expect farmers to hide their output.¡± Negris went red in the face, aggressively retorting, ¡°Ange can measure it, he just needs to take one look.¡± Unable to hold it in any longer, Durken who had been quietly listening in, burst intoughter, ¡°Come on now, do you want Ange to run around the entire ne to measure outputs? Anthony is correct. Negris, you understand knowledge, but Anthony understands human nature.¡± Negris, not willing to back down, shifted the topic, ¡°What if just providing seeds cannot increase the nting god status?¡± ¡°There is still the Western District.¡± Anthony turned to Ange and said, ¡°Lord, how about I give you all the ownerlessnds in the Western District to nt stuff?¡± What could Ange do? Hadn¡¯t you seen him nodding like a pecking chicken? When Negris heard this, he knew it was over. If nting cropses up, even if the Gods of Light manifested, Ange could knock them back down. And so, the matter was happily decided. First, participate in the seedpetition, strive for the championship, and it doesn¡¯t matter if they don¡¯t get it, even runner-up or third ce would do. Don¡¯t look at the champion crops of the seedpetition that already had a yield of over a thousand jin per mu, but the ones currently grown by farmersmonly yielded less than five hundred jin per mu. Hence, as long as the yield reaches seven or eight hundred jin, with free provision and church backing, there will definitely be many people willing to nt. Ange already had several hundred pounds of salty water rice and over a thousand pounds of magic rice in the Simted Magic Formation. Regardless of whether he won at the Grain Seed Grand Prix or not, his grain would attract a crowd. Then, they could lease all the unownednd in the Western District to Ange, and even the ownednds were negotiable. As long as they were willing to grow new crops, Ange could sow the seeds and stimte growth, afterwards the original owners would manage it. The food from Light Sea ne and Fallen Dragon Lake was farmed simrly. After discussing it, Negris began to feel confused: ¡°Wait, what¡¯s in it for Ange? He provides the seeds andbor, what do we get out of this?¡± All grains will be bought by the Silver Light Mercantile Company and it will have the exclusive distribution rights.¡± Anthony replied. ¡°Kvada, what good does that do?¡± Negris grumbled. Anthony, a little helpless, exined: ¡°Lord Nage, have you never had a businessman as a believer? You could ask Silver Coin, he can tell you the benefits of exclusive distribution rights.¡± Negris blushed embarrassedly: ¡°Merchants are too cunning, even if they want to be my followers, I don¡¯t want them.¡± To avoid being fooled by Anthony, Negris contacted Silver Coin. Hearing about exclusive rights on food distribution, Silver Coin immediately eximed: ¡°We¡¯re going to make a fortune!¡± Negris asked puzzledly: ¡°How are we supposed to get rich?¡± Silver Coin spent arge amount of time educating Negris about the importance of exclusive rights and the strategic value and destructive power of food reserves. ¡°By having a monopoly on an essential and non-receable product like food, we control the food supply of the entire ne. We could easily make several times the profit on food alone. This and that, and then this and that, then lie back and watch the money roll in.¡± Negris was bewildered. Even the God of Knowledge himself was confused by this vast amount of information. In the end, Silver Coin repeated insistently: ¡°We must secure the exclusive distributorship of the food. The harvest in the Land of Fallen is abundant. Using it, we can make a fortune off Harvey and the Great Sage first.¡± ¡°They don¡¯t have any money, what can you earn off them?¡± Negris asked skeptically. ¡°Soul Crystals! They¡¯ve been saving them up for over a thousand years of war, but they have nowhere to spend them. I¡¯m really worried about them.¡± Silver Coin replied. Negris rolled his eyes: ¡°I think you¡¯re just upset that you have money to make but can¡¯t get to it.¡± Cutting themunication, Negris reluctantly agreed. Even without any potential profits, he would have still consented. After all, faith is the ultimate reward. To strengthen the nting God Statue, they needed to do it even without any gain. He had no idea what Silver Coin could do with the exclusive distribution, but the several times profit from grain prices was definitely worth more than the grain itself. ¡°Let¡¯s go, first we return to the Fallen Dragon Lake to check on thepetition grains¡¯ growth status. The Grain Seed Grand Prix is in a few days, we need to get ready.¡± Negris urged everyone. As soon as he finished speaking, a figure peeked in from outside the door. This figure wore ck Angel Armor, every part of his body was covered, even his face was hidden. In the Church of Light, there was only one person who would dress like this. Negris yelled irritatedly: ¡°What are you sneaking around for? What scent have you caught now? There¡¯s no stranger here.¡± The figure in ck Angel Armor, dragging a sackcloth bag, trotted over to Ange. Once he reached Ange, he got nervously lifted his face shield revealing Shamara¡¯s face: ¡°Greetings Lord, Greetings Lord Anthony.¡± For some reason, Ange suddenly felt like patting her on the head. So he lifted his hand and patted her on the head.@@novelbin@@ Afterwards, a holy glow appeared around Shamara¡¯s head. Shamara froze, once she realized what had happened, her eyes welled up with tears: ¡°Pure Light! My Lord, you have bestowed it upon me? Pure Light!¡± Chapter 638 - 355 - Do You Want to Cheat? _1 Chapter 638: Chapter 355 ¨C Do You Want to Cheat? _1 Why did Shamara fall initially? She was overly obsessed with pure light and wanted to take Ange¡¯s power. Unfortunately, she was no match for him. Pure light, not only her obsession, her pursuit, but also her correct understanding of light, light should be like this.@@novelbin@@ Why is your light so impure? Why is your light so filthy? If there¡¯s nothing topare, it would be fine. But there is pure light, why are you so impure? Did you betray the light? The above is the true portrayal of Shamara¡¯s inner feelings when she initially fell. Withoutparison, there would be no harm. Therefore, her feelings toward Ange have always been conflicive. Ange possesses the light she pursues, which irresistibly draws her close, yet a voice in her heart crazily warns her not to do anything foolish. If she can¡¯t take it, what can she do? Give gifts? Shamara bitterly brings the Holy Shroud bag she had been dragging over: ¡°I have a premonition in my heart thating here now, good things will happen. I couldn¡¯te empty-handed, so I brought some gifts, but the good thing came before I even had time to give the gifts.¡± ¡°So, whether ¡®good things happen¡¯ has nothing to do with whether you give gifts, but why on earth did you, Ange, touch her forehead?¡± Negris asked with curiosity and bewilderment. This farming skeleton, other than farming, rarely ever takes the initiative to do anything. Even Little Angel has to hop around him for a long while before he reluctantly touches its head. But this time, he actively touched Shamara¡¯s head? Ange tilted his head, looking somewhat puzzled. He just felt like touching it, that¡¯s why he did. Where were all these reasonsing from? Looking at his expression, Negris knew that there was no point asking Ange any further. This lucky skeleton often didn¡¯t even know why he was doing things. Except for farming which he had clear objectives for, everything else was quite muddled. But paradoxically, the oues were always good; it was like the Goddess of Fortune knocking on his door in the middle of the night ¨C luckiness had arrived. Unable to get the answers he was seeking, Negris could only turn to Shamara: ¡°How about you? What do you feel? What changes did the pure light bring for you?¡± ¡°Uh-huh.¡± Shamara closed her eyes, sensing it, and then opened her left hand, showing a ck light sphere in her palm. She then opened her right hand, revealing a holy light sphere in her palm. ¡°What? You can use Holy Light again?¡± Negris was surprised. The Power of Fall had potent contaminative abilities. All Holy Light that came into contact with it would be contaminated into the Power of Fall, so after falling, Shamara couldn¡¯t use Holy Light anymore. But now, the light sphere in her right hand was as holy as it once was. Shamara shook her head and closed her left hand. The ck light sphere sprung up as if the darkness inside was sucked away, and the sphere became holy. Then her right hand closed, and the holy light sphere turned dark. If someone had their eyes closed at that moment, they might think she quickly switched hands. But Negris and Durken deduced the hint: ¡°Switching between two powers?¡± If the Power of Fall and the Power of Holy Light can be freely switched, does that mean Shamara can act as a saint again? Shamara nodded, thenbined the fallen light sphere in her right hand and the holy light sphere in her left hand slowly. When two unlike attributes of power meet, they either contaminate each other, repel each other, or¡­ ¡°They merged?¡± The ck and white light spheres fused into a gray light sphere. Shamara took the gray light sphere back into her body, then stretched out a pinkie finger, a little glow formed, and then, she walked over to Luther¡¯s side and poked his arm. ¡°Ouch.¡± Luther cried out in pain, a burn the size of a fingertip appeared on his arm. Then she ran over to Little Angel, and poked it with her finger. Holy Light immediately covered Little Angel¡¯s arm, blocking her finger, but the spot where the Holy Light touched her finger also started to smoke. In the end, Ange picked up Little Zombie, her finger still caused smoke. ¡°Now Negris and Durken be serious, ¡°Does it have additional damage to the Undead and the Angels?¡± Shamara nodded, then repeated the previous steps, poked Luther and Little Zombie with her finger, and when she wanted to poke Little Angel, she punched him in the eye, and couldn¡¯t poke him. But it was already unnecessary because Luther and Little Zombie didn¡¯t smoke. ¡°So, a power that changes ording to your will? You can choose to inflict any kind of damage, or choose not to inflict any, and you can switch it at any time?¡± Negris gasped. Shamara nodded. Luther couldn¡¯t help but yell, ¡°Then why does it hurt so much on me? I am neither Undead nor an Angel.¡± Negris said irritably: ¡°That¡¯s the damage itself, you got burnt.¡± A hit on the Undead or the Angels would cause additional damage. But if it hits a living person, that¡¯s an injury from a hit. Luther finally got it: ¡°I see. I feel pain no matter who hits me, that¡¯s so unfair.¡± After doing some research, they finally understood Shamara¡¯s situation. Her body now housed two kinds of power, one is the Power of Fall, and the other is the Power of Holy Light, which can be converted into one another. And they can inflict additional damage on Undead creatures, or not, at her will. Chapter 639 - 355: Do You Want to Cheat?_2 Chapter 639: Chapter 355: Do You Want to Cheat?_2 Realizing this, Negris couldn¡¯t help eximing, ¡°This is a huge advantage for you.¡± ¡°That¡¯s¡­ that¡¯s why I brought a gift, I caught it on the way.¡± Shamara also felt she had struck it rich, and said somewhat sheepishly, hastily gesturing to the bag she had brought. The bag had been opened before, with a small opening at the top. Something inside was sneakily peeping out, but quickly pulled the mouth of the bag closed when everyone turned their eyes towards it. When the bag was pulled open, it revealed the Goddess of Redemption with a look of despair and anger on her face: ¡°I have already run very far. I didn¡¯te willingly, I was caught and brought here.¡± ¡­ ¡°Tell me, why on earth did you capture her? Isn¡¯t she just going to cause us trouble? How are we going to deal with her now?¡± Negrisined angrily as he looked at the Goddess of Redemption, grumbling at Shamara. The Goddess of Redemption was on the verge of giving up, saying nothing yet boiling inwardly with rage as she stared at the Great Angel¡¯s Staff in Little Angel¡¯s hand, the staff being part of her collection. Of course, Little Angel would not give it back to her. She too was sullen, hiding the staff behind her and ready to punch her in the face at any time. Both of them red at each other, about to start fighting. Shamara was in an awkward situation ¨C she hade bearing gifts, only to realize that she had brought a problem: ¡°I bumped into her on the way. She was hiding in a small town, unable to farm or wash clothes. She was worse off than me, only asionally sneaking around to cure diseases and save people in exchange for some living expenses.¡± ¡°A while ago, the curia issued an order to catch witches. She was then reported by people and was caught. When I found her, she had just beaten those who came to capture her to death. I thought, hey, isn¡¯t this the Goddess of Redemption? Perfect. I can¡¯t turn up empty-handed, so I caught her.¡± Negris irritably said, ¡°What do you mean you ¡®caught her?¡¯ Luna did the capturing, didn¡¯t she? Isn¡¯t that right Luna?¡± A voice came from the Holy Armor on Shamara¡¯s body: ¡°Yes¡­ My Lord of Knowledge.¡± ¡°So what should we do now? It was Ange who kicked her out in the first ce, and now you¡¯ve brought her back. How are we going to settle her?¡± Negris said disgruntled. Shamara and Luna felt guilty and could washes with nothing more than an awkward smile. Even a goddess as a gift gets rejected, how dejected they were. It wasn¡¯t that Negris was picky, he just genuinely didn¡¯t know how to settle her. The Goddess of Redemption had been very obedient. Since being driven out, she had hidden in a what was this small town and lived in a pitiful state. Yet she didn¡¯t vite her agreement with Ange in the slightest. Obviously Ange can¡¯t do anything to her but how to settle her? No matter where she is, she would be an unstable factor. Moreover, she now seemed to be in despair, and was even at odds with Little Angel. The Goddess of Redemption was also wronged. She had been hiding in a small town, earning some pocket money by healing diseases and saving people, and yet she was still captured. It seems there¡¯s no escape no matter where she runs, so she may as well not hide at all. The Great Angel¡¯s Staff is mine, give it back! Eventually, before the two started fighting, Shamara stepped forward and dragged the Goddess of Redemption away. ¡°Let me go, let me go, that Great Angel¡¯s Staff is mine, let me grab it back,¡± the Goddess of Redemption struggled. Shamara uttered quietly, ¡°Struggle a bit harder, will you? I¡¯m not even using that much strength to hold you.¡± The Goddess of Redemption whispered back, ¡°I will struggle a bit, you hold on tight to me.¡± And like this, she was ¡®reluctantly¡¯ dragged off. Once they were out of sight of Ange and the others, Shamara let her go, saying, ¡°So what now? Where do you want to go? Need me to take you?¡± The Goddess of Redemption said nkly, ¡°I don¡¯t know. I¡¯ve already hidden in such a remote small town, and yet you found me. Are you a kobold?¡± ¡°Why not go to the curia?¡± Shamara asked in confusion. If she went to the curia, with the Goddess of Redemption¡¯s status, there¡¯d be a lot of people protecting her, no need for her to sneak around to save people. Hearing the word ¡®curia,¡¯ the Goddess of Redemption¡¯s head shook like a windmill: ¡°No, absolutely no. I¡¯m the Goddess of Redemption. Do you know where I sense the most despair? Right in the curia.¡± The redemption statement left Shamara silent. She knew what the Goddess of Redemption was referring to. The curia has many clerics, and the training process for clerics starts from childhood and is very brutal, from the soul to the will, eradicating their nature. What is felt during this process is mostly despair. You can¡¯t even give up because doing so equals turning your back on faith, and that¡¯s unthinkable. You¡¯d either end up locked inside a tiny ck room or ced on a fire execution frame. Every year, because of unable to endure the training and either dying or going insane, there are more than you can count on both hands. Yet no one concerns about the mental health of these children believing it to be the necessary exercise; those who make it through be the most reliable believers. If they were other gods, they wouldn¡¯t even care, as long as there were devotees to spread their faith. How the devoteese to existence is not important.@@novelbin@@ But the Goddess of Redemption was different. She was the god of love and redemption, so all despair and suffering ultimately feeds back to her. If she could, she would smash the curia. There is no way that she¡¯d go back there. Shamara was chosen as the Saint at the age of ten, so she didn¡¯t go through the most brutal phase of the process. Even so, she was rather an extreme and fanatical character, showing just how desperate and oppressive environment in the curia must be. ¡°Then follow us, otherwise you can¡¯t even afford clothes, with all the rips and tears on your dress,¡± Shamara said. Redemption flushed and covered her armpit, stubbornly saying, ¡°I just didn¡¯t want to use divine power. Otherwise, I could change my clothes every day if I wanted to.¡± Chapter 640 - 355: Do You Want to Cheat?_3 Chapter 640: Chapter 355: Do You Want to Cheat?_3 ¡°You can buy them if you have the money. Do you mean these ck silk ones?¡± As the topic turned to clothes, Shamara¡¯s interest was immediately piqued. She unbuckled her Holy Armor to reveal her bustier. ¡°Oh, it hasce trim. What material is this?¡± the Goddess of Redemption asked in surprise. ¡°It¡¯s silk. Lisa said it¡¯s a ckcy edge sweat-wicking, antibacterial, static-dissipative, close-fitting silk underwear, made in the Goddess of Beauty City. It¡¯s very expensive.¡± Shamara exined, pulling it open a bit more. ¡°Wow!¡± The Goddess of Redemption squealed in awe, just like a little girl who had never seen such a thing before. Thus, when Ange and his group departed, they saw two chuckleheads on the roadsideparing each other¡¯s bras. ¡­ When they arrived back at the Fallen Dragon Lake, the grain harvested by theke had been packaged and prepared for transportation at the fastest speed. Transportation of bulk grain was never an easy task. More often than not, famine was caused by insufficient transport capacity. If harvest was abundant in the north and a drought urred in the south, the grains from the north couldn¡¯t be transported to the south, or transportation would be too expensive, which left the southern region unable to afford the grain. At these times, it requires a strong and efficient organization to handle the logistics regardless of the cost, just like what Anthony does. If it wasn¡¯t for these circumstances, Anthony wouldn¡¯t have wanted to fall out with Guliani so quickly. Of course, he also took Dyson¡¯s situation into ount; if he didn¡¯t oppose Guliani, Dyson¡¯s secret would soon be exposed. Various factors urged him to take this step. Now, he needs to continue to consolidate the foundation of his victory. This might be a long process. Anthony has been incredibly busy and had not followed them on this trip. Those with tasks of their own all went their separate ways, leaving only Ange, Little Angel, Little Zombie, and some others. They all rode on Lightning towards Lake Ind. The Record Stone Pir was moved there because Ange found a loophole during the recording process. ¡°You found a loophole? You never notice anything else, why is it that when ites to farming, you could find everything?¡± Negris grumpily grumbled: ¡°What loophole? Let¡¯s hear it.¡± Ange replied: ¡°Territory, outside of its scope, it doesn¡¯t record.¡± As Ange exined, Negris understood. For example, the Record Stone Pir recorded the growth of crops within a three-thousand-acre range. If factors influencing the growth of crops were beyond its range, then it couldn¡¯t record them. What factors beyond three thousand acres could influence the growth of crops? If someone applied a special growth-enhancing magic upstream, or enacted a spell in the sky during rainfall, letting the magic descend with the rain, they could potentially cheat.@@novelbin@@ ¡°You mean to say that someone might use deceptive means to trick the Record Stone Pir and produce higher crop yields than us?¡± Negris was shocked. If it were before, Ange might not care about being outperformed and might even look to learn from those who did better. But this time they needed to win the championship because the influence of a champion was on apletely different level than second ce, which would be detrimental to promoting the new crop variety. If cheating was involved, the harvested crops would be meaningless because they wouldn¡¯t be worthwhile to promote. As they were talking, several owls were huddled in the air above a fertile ck plot ofnd, whispering to each other: ¡°Teacher, are we really going to do this? If themittee finds out, our reputation will be ruined.¡± The owl called ¡°teacher¡± replied: ¡°Yes, don¡¯t forget, in the school¡¯s Simted Magic Formation, the highest record is already 1,320 pounds. If we can¡¯t surpass this number, we might lose. What reputation would we have left then?¡± Chapter 641 - 356: Is there a big difference between the fruits?_1 Chapter 641: Chapter 356: Is there a big difference between the fruits?_1 The biennial seed contest once again turned Steris Academy into an ocean of joy, with contestants and spectators from all directions flocking to this vibrant locale.@@novelbin@@ This year, due to famine, the entire ne had been suppressed for a long time with norge-scale celebrations, even the Harvest Festival was discontinued because the believers of the Harvest Goddess were starving. I heard that the believers of the Harvest Goddess were sold to another ne by Anthony. When Anthony was crowned, his treatment of heretics was so¡­merciful. No wonder he¡¯s the Pope, the representative of God on earth. From now on, without the Harvest Festival, the biennial seed contest is likely to be thergest event. Perhaps due to the repression of a whole year¡¯s desire to ¡®indulge¡¯, or perhaps there were no other activities to distract, there was an exceptionally high number of people attending the seed contest this year. Starting from about ten days ago, an uninterrupted flow of people arrived here using various means of transportation. Some came by boat, some by flying mounts, some walked, some rode horses,ing from all directions. Even at Fallen Dragon Lake, many people passed through, and then were surprised to find out, when did an extra city show up here? Although Goddess of Beauty City had gained some fame among thendlords in the past two years, its influence on themon people was almost zero. People who could barely fill their stomachs didn¡¯t care about a city that could bring beauty to people in the deep desert thousands of kilometers away. Thus, when some people arrived by boat, they found that the river had been sealed off. ¡°Who are you? Why do you have the right to block the East River?¡± A mage aboard a luxurious shallow water boat cast an amplifying magic array and loudly questioned: ¡°Let me tell you, the East River belongs to everyone, no one can block it, remove your river blockade quickly. Otherwise, I¡¯ll burn down your damned city, Goddess of Beauty? Can any Tom, Dick, and Harry dere themselves a goddess these days?¡± At the dock, Ange and his group were ready to set off. ording to Ange¡¯s n, he could just ¡®ride¡¯ a horse to fly over, or ask Hiludi to guide him, or directly teleport over there. Anyway, it¡¯s not far away, it¡¯s not toote to go on the day of thepetition. But he overlooked the enthusiasm of the crowd. First, Lisa shuffled over, helped him dig ditches, pile up ridges, weeded and sowed seeds. Covered in sweat, her clothes were soaked and stuck to her skin, making others think she was trying to seduce Ange. In the end, it was Negris who couldn¡¯t bear it anymore. He told her to cut the chase. ¡°Sir, take me to the seed contest.¡± Lisa said with a hint of excitement in her eyes. ¡°Steris Academy is so close, can¡¯t you go by yourself?¡± Negris was surprised, thinking this wasn¡¯t a big deal. ¡°It doesn¡¯t feel the same going alone. The seed contest, the first phase is all about tasting delicious food, I want to taste everything!¡± Lisa said excitedly. ¡°Wait, wait, why do you sound like a child, waiting for their parents to take them out to y? Also, as a witch, can you eat?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Yes, yes I can.¡± Lisa quickly replied, sticking out her wet little tongue and twisting it around her lips: ¡°That noble Tree Herder can impart a blessing to restore the sense of taste of my tongue, so I can taste everything, as long as I don¡¯t swallow it. I haven¡¯t eaten anything for over a thousand years, will you take me please?¡± ¡°Tree Herder? Aliv¡­ How did it get mixed up with you? Did you guys offend it or something?¡± Negris was about to reveal the identity of the Tree Herder. Lisa shook her head and said, ¡°It seems to like Little Bu, ying together often, even graced the straw owl with a blessing, then plucked its straw, causing the owl to cry out in pain.¡± ¡°¡­It actually does such boring things.¡± Negris didn¡¯t know what to say, how could that thing be as annoyingly fussy as him? ¡°So I was thinking, if it can make an owl cry out in pain, can it help witches regain their senses? So I brought a bottle of Insect Ash Liquid and found it, it happily blessed my tongue.¡± Lisa exined. Negris was surprised, ¡°You even connected those things?¡± ¡°Hehe.¡± Lisa chuckled shyly, ¡°Lord of Knowledge, I also linked to something else. For some older patrons, their physical function may have declined and be unresponsive, a blessing may make them responsive again, thus achieving some kind of life harmony? That¡¯s a big business opportunity.¡± Negris was puzzled, only after Lisa¡¯s awkward exnation did he realize, pped his waist and said, ¡°You¡¯re talking about curing impotence, aren¡¯t you? You and your ¡®life harmony¡¯, talking nonsense.¡± Upon clearing up the confusion, Negris couldn¡¯t help but suggested, ¡°How about giving it a try?¡± Lisa pped her hands, ¡°Alright, let¡¯s give it a try. You are familiar with it, you ask. We can make it a package, three hundred thousand Demon Crystals each. It¡¯s settled.¡± As soon as Lisa finished talking, she ran off, yelling as she left, ¡°Sir, I will pack my bags, don¡¯t forget to wait for me.¡± Negris stood there in shock for a while before swearing out, ¡°Kvada!¡± Pulling pranks on others was his mischief, but being pranked by others, well, that just bes their amusement. In a while, Luther came running, followed by Little Bu, Xi, Purple Corpse, Great Shaman, and Aestolia¡­ The number of people in the group rapidly increased to twenty or thirty, and everyone was in a mood for fun, unwilling to be stuffed into a separate space. So, they had to set off in advance and travel by boat. Chapter 642 - 356: Is there a big difference between the fruits?_2 Chapter 642: Chapter 356: Is there a big difference between the fruits?_2 Just after arriving at the pier, someone yelled at them. Aestolia barely opened her eyes and said indifferently, ¡°Fire Magician.¡± Even though her eyes are healed, she had been blind for several hundred years and she had already gotten used to living that way, and she wouldn¡¯t usually open her eyes. However, whenever she opens her eyes, trouble would begin for the enemy, since it would mean that he had been targeted by the gaze of a Truth Mage. The Little Angel pointed and was about to move forward, but Ange stopped her. Purple Corpse stepped forward, pulled out a speaker from his scroll, and said with a rough voice, ¡°The river has been sealed. You may disembark here and switch to riding camels to get to your destination.¡± Rice fields surrounded Fallen Dragon Lake. Although the harvest was over, the fields were still there and they didn¡¯t want too many people to see them. The opposing Great Magician was not willing toply. He took the boat to get here, precisely because he wanted to enter Fallen Dragon Lake from here, then go westward to the sea, and then continue along the coastline to the north so that he couldfortably reach his destination. Switching to riding camels? Wouldn¡¯t he have to trek through the desert for several days? What if he couldn¡¯t make it in time? ¡°Oh? A Mountain Giant? Or a green giant? Don¡¯t think that being taller gives you the right to randomly block the river. Who gave you permission to do this? Open the way quickly, or elseI¡¯ll burn down your lousy city!¡± After finishing his roar, the Great Magician paused for a moment, ¡°By the way, I haven¡¯t reported my identity yet. Listen carefully, Fire Magician of the Earth Fire Purgatory Magic Tower, me Dragon Destroyer, Kasim Aida!¡± Ange and his crew were taken aback. ¡°What does that mean? Do mages today all greet each other with such exaggerations? me Dragon Destroyer? Earth Fire Purgatory Magic Tower?¡± Negris asked in surprise. Lisa leaned in and said, ¡°The reference is to ava-based Magic Tower in the south. The me Dragon Destroyer must be his nickname.¡± Luther¡¯s eyes sparkled, ¡°That¡¯s so cool, it¡¯s just too short. Should I also give myself a longer nickname?¡± ¡°Isn¡¯t your nickname Beetle Swordsman?¡± Negris asked, surprised. Luther was devastated by this utter defeat. He went to one side to sulk and draw circles in the mud. While they were whispering amongst themselves, Aestolia floated up, and the whole world seemed dimmer. All the elements stopped their activities silently, appearing as obedient as dust particles. ¡°Truth Mage. Elemental Forbidden Land. As for my name, you¡¯ve no right to know.¡± Aestolia said indifferently. The once-arrogant me Dragon Destroyer suddenly had his legs gave way and he knelt on the deck. Aestolia looked at Kasim¡¯s luxurious shallow-bottomed ship, then at the old and rustic small boat at the pier, and suddenly asked, ¡°My Lord, do you want to switch boats?¡± My¡­ My Lord? Who else is greater than the Truth Mage and the Elemental Forbidden Land? Kasim followed Aestolia¡¯s gaze¡­ These people had no manners. As soon as Aestolia made her suggestion, they all rushed to the luxury ship and squeezed Kasim into a corner. ¡°Raise the river barrier rope, let¡¯s go! Whoever, you cover your eyes.¡± Wow, the me Dragon Destroyer had now been reduced to ¡°whoever.¡± Transforming his grief into mischief, Luther personally guarded Kasim. He kept an eye on him while conjuring a small whittling knife with his battle aura and began whittling his fingernails. ¡°Bat¡­ Battle Aura¡­ Sword¡­ High-level Sword Saint? Who are you guys really?¡± Kasim asked in a trembling voice. ¡°You want to know?¡± Luther nced at him, took a deep breath, and said, ¡°Listen carefully, I am the Dragon Pattern Steel Core Mithril Iy Magic Rune Covered Earth Forged Gemstone Enhanced Piercing Enchantment Two-handed Sword Breaker¡¤ Arbitration Sword¡¤ Beetle Swordsman, Luther.¡± By the time Luther had finished his long introduction in one breath, Kasim¡¯s mouth was wide enough to fit an orange. ¡°Good¡­ So cool. No, I have toe up with a longer and cooler one.¡± Driven by a man¡¯s damaginglypetitive desire, Kasim hadpletely forgotten that he was a captive and was sitting on the floor frowning and pondering on a new nickname. Perhaps it wasn¡¯t that he wanted to forget, but he didn¡¯t have a choice but to forget. With a high-level Sword Saint personally standing guard over him, an Elemental Forbidden Land on the ship, and the presence of an even greater figure whom even the Elemental Forbidden Land referred to as ¡®My Lord¡¯, what else could he do other than forget? Since he was sitting on the deck and couldn¡¯t see the outside, he didn¡¯t even bother to cover his eyes. The shipzily entered Fallen Dragon Lake, then turned into West River, heading straight out to sea, then turning northward. Even though flying would have taken three to four hours, the journey by boat took two to three days. They reached the Republic of Steris the day before thepetition was due to start. On the pier, therge carriage of Death Star Auburnli, who had been contacted in advance, was parked in front of berth number three. As if a clearance magic had been applied, no one was seen within ten meters. The Republic of Steris is a nation built upon the Steris Magic Academy. Everyone here has some connection with the Steris Magic Academy. Auburnli, the dean of discipline, is the dean of all the citizens. Wherever she appears, the fear of the dean of discipline imprinted in their bones would awaken. This fear is much more effective than any street clearing magic. Upon seeing her emblem, everyone unconsciously lowered their voices by a few levels: ¡°Is there a big shoting? The old witch is picking people up in person? This is so rare.¡± Buttely, Auburnli has had her troubles. Some bold guys in the academy have been sending her love letters¡­ There was no help for it. After Auburnli¡¯s rejuvenation, she was a fresh and pink loli. It was hard for people to associate her with the ancient witch, so after returning to the college, she had to cover her face with a id hood. As long as her face was not seen, she would still be that fearsome dean of discipline. A luxurious shallow draft boat slowly docked at the berth. As soon as the people on board disembarked, the boat copsed into a pile of wood chips and sank. Auburnli looked at the pale Luther Kasim, the Purple Corpse Great Shaman, and Lightning, and asked with surprise, ¡°What happened? Were you chased on the way?¡± Lisa awkardly replied, ¡°We were worried about running out of time, so we sped the boat a little.¡± ¡°You sped until the boat copsed? How fast did you go?¡± Auburnli asked in shock. ¡°We sped until we nearly took off.¡± Lisa said with a bitter smile, ¡°I suddenly found out that even the dead can get seasick, and I¡¯m a little woozy right now.¡± ¡°Of course the dead can get seasick. It¡¯s sensory disorientation. Normally, your perception of the earth is stable. When you¡¯re on a ship, it¡¯s different. Definitely ufortable, but better than a living person, at least you don¡¯t vomit.¡± After finished speaking, Auburnli turned her gaze to Ange. Ange looked a bit confused and said, ¡°Couldn¡¯t fly.¡± Negris said irritably, ¡°I told you, this is a boat, not Jelis¡¯ ground effect airship. Look, it broke apart, how are we going topensate?¡± When it came topensation, everyone¡¯s gaze immediately turned to Kasim. Kasim waved his hands in panic, ¡°No need, no need¡­ no need¡­¡± Before the word pensate¡¯ came out, he saw Ange take out three Fire Dragon Fruits. ¡°Fire Essence,pensate with these.¡± Ange said. He could now grow Fire Dragon Fruit, and Kasim was a fire mage, so he should be able to use it. He took a deep breath, swallowed the word pensate¡¯, and abruptly changed his words, ¡°Don¡¯t be polite, you are too polite, too polite.¡± He readily took the Fire Dragon Fruit into his arms. One could renounce other things, but not the Fire Dragon Fruit, which could improve the affinity with fire elements. Although the Fire Dragon Fruit is not very expensive, it¡¯s not easy to buy. It¡¯s the kind of thing you stumble upon rather than seek. Generally, it¡¯s consumed internally. The tower of his home just nted one Fire Dragon Fruit tree, taken care of by four people in shifts, producing at most thirteen fruits each year. He would never think of selling such fruits. If he really wanted to sell, it would never be at market price, at least ten times the market price. And that would only happen if he was particrly short of cash, otherwise, he would never do such a foolish thing. These three Fire Dragon Fruits were ten times more expensive than his shallow draft boat which copses when sped up. If possible, he would be very happy to trade several more times. If he¡¯s satisfied, that¡¯s all that matters. Fire Dragon Fruits were not valuable to Ange, so they left afterpensating. Watching their retreating figures, Kasim excitedly muttered, ¡°I¡¯ve made a fortune.¡± He instinctively licked the skin of the fruit and immediately a pure stream of fire elements transformed into a heat wave flowing into him from his tongue.@@novelbin@@ Kasim¡¯s body trembled slightly, his mouth open, warm air steadily puffing out. He didn¡¯t feel the heat at all. ¡°Oh my God, this kind of affinity and elemental purity, it¡¯s so much better than the tree at my house. Is this really Fire Dragon Fruit? Why is there such a big difference between Fire Dragon Fruits?¡± Kasim was a bit stunned. His eyes lit up and he suddenly thought of something. He quickly chased after them, but there was no sign of Ange and his group. He couldn¡¯t help but regretfully say, ¡°Oh, I should have bought a few more.¡± Chapter 643 - 357: Two Ladies, Let Me Show You a Magic Trick_1 Chapter 643: Chapter 357: Two Ladies, Let Me Show You a Magic Trick_1 ¡°Can we nt vegetables here?¡± Ange pointed at the colorful and attractive ornamental garden and asked. Auburnli frowned, screaming internally: You want to nt vegetables in such a beautiful garden!!! ¡°No,¡± Auburnli replied. A few momentster, Ange pointed at the lush greenwn ahead, ¡°Can we grow vegetables there?¡± ¡°No,¡± Auburnli replied. Ange then pointed to the ornamental vine tunnel ahead, ¡°Can we nt vegetables here?¡± ¡°No¡­¡± Auburnli replied, soundingpletely exasperated. Next, Ange pointed at the Magic Power Ball stadium on the side, where wizards could be seen riding and levitating on different kinds of Magic Artifacts, chasing a Magic Power Ball in the air and controlling it to enter the opponent¡¯s goal. It was a game that requires extreme control over magic and the elements. ¡°Vegetables?¡± Ange tilted her head inquisitively. ¡°No¡­ Don¡¯t you have any other hobbies?¡± Auburnli asked, sounding slightly hysterical. Ange tilted her head, pondered for a bit, then pointed at the bustling Bikini Beach in distance, ¡°Can we grow rice there?¡± Auburnli was instantly infuriated. So, if he can¡¯t nt vegetables, he wants to nt rice? Isn¡¯t that the same thing?@@novelbin@@ She then realized that everyone in Ange¡¯s group was looking at her, including the Little Angel holding the Great Angel¡¯s Staff, Little Zombie, Lisa, Element Deand Aestolia¡­ Auburnli quickly suppressed her anger and forced a smile, ¡°No, we can¡¯t.¡± ¡°Oh, no fun,¡± Ange concluded and began to nt something in an illusionary space he opened from thin air. Auburnli felt a lump of anger stuck in her chest which took a while to subside. She didn¡¯t interact with Ange much even though she often hung out in the Goddess of Beauty City. She never imagined that he could be so infuriating. After she arranged amodations in her Mage Tower for everyone, Auburnli handed them some passes and grandly announced: ¡°Enjoy your stay, have fun, if you run into any trouble, try not to kill anyone, just don¡¯t escte things, bullying and forceful acquisitions are fine, just mention my name, I¡¯ll handle it, I have to go now, got a whole lot to do, contact the butler if you need anything.¡± Then, she vanished in haste when she saw Ange eyeing the magical nt garden in front of her Mage Tower again. Auburnli has her own Magic Tower, it¡¯s a six-story structure above the ground. In Steris Nation, this would seem slightly unworthy of her Death Star status. Look at Blue Star for example, the Stargazing Tower shoots up into the sky, standing at a floor-shattering height of hundred meters. However, nobody knew under Auburnli¡¯s towerid twenty storeys that plunged almost seventy meters below. This was the main body of the Death Star Tower. However, when everyone went to visit it, they found that the main body underneath was flooded¡­ Auburnli¡¯s butler, an undead in the guise of a little girl maid, was embarrassedly exining: ¡°I apologize. The Death Star Tower has been built for over six hundred years, it has decayed over time. Two hundred years ago, it started seeping water. At first, the owner tried to repair it, butter she gave up. Now, she¡¯s using it as a fish pond.¡± Okay, since the main body underground couldn¡¯t be toured and they finished visiting the six stories above ground, everyone simply picked up their passes and dispersed. Durken, ecstatic, donned his Gold-touch Suit, topped with a high hat, and casually led the way. Meanwhile, Feiti, concealed as an unassuming middle-aged man, wore a scarecrow¡¯s hat and followed Durken, curiously looking around. In his projected form, Feiti was a Purple Gold Skeleton. With his unparalleled spiritual power, no one except Ange and Auburnli could see through his true form. However, initially he was quite formal, as this might be the first time that he consciously went to a market. But when he witnessed an Undead Warlock leading a skeleton in the open market, he became ustomed to the sight. ¡°Huh, people here aren¡¯t afraid of the undead?¡± Durken asked in surprise. The undead maid butler hurriedly floated over and exined, ¡°Our Lord, this is the Steris Nation. We have a dazzling and diverse array of stars, hence we do not discriminate against the Undead. Those who do have already been buried by the Death Star Lord.¡± ¡°Ah..¡± Everyone suddenly understood. Simrly, Ange curiously looked around. The richness of species diversity on the streets here far surpassed anything he had ever seen; it even exceeded the Underworld City. In Rnd City, though the species were abundant ¨C Minotaurs, Dark Elves, Dwarves, Goblins ¨C but at least they all fit into the humanoid category, but this ce was different. A Wind Element, followed by an Element Summoner, was shouting, ¡°Make way, make way, the Element cleaner is arriving. Please throw your trash to him. Don¡¯t get close. Don¡¯t touch.¡± Everywhere the Wind Element went, the whole street was cleaned, even the dust was sucked away by it. Around the corner, there was a roadside circus, in which skeletons led by a Necromancer were performing the Mechanical Dance. It was a type of dance where they disguised themselves as Mechanical Constructs, danced upright, then, while singing and dancing, removed their own bones. When the dance reached its climax, the crowd cheered ecstatically, tossing silver and copper coins onto the stage. A wizard wearing a red hat flew by, and during a break in the dance, spoke to the Necromancer, ¡°Let me check, all these skeletons have legal origins, right?¡± The Necromancer hurriedly replied, ¡°Yes, yes, here is the registration proof.¡± Chapter 644 - 357 Two Ladies, Ill Perform a Magic Trick for You_2 Chapter 644: Chapter 357 Two Ladies, I¡¯ll Perform a Magic Trick for You_2 ¡°Okay, the source of the corpses must be legal, you know. If you¡¯re found to be grave robbing and stealing corpses, Lord Death Star will personallye to chat with you, understand?¡± The Red Hat Magician said. Upon hearing the name Death Star, the Necromancer began to sweat, ¡°No, no, I¡¯ve performed here many times before, these old colleagues have been with me for over a decade, I would never think of grave robbing.¡± The Red Hat Magepleted his inspection, hopped onto his broom and flew off. He passed by Ange¡¯s party, saw the Death Star¡¯s pass, and even paused to salute. When the Skeleton Dance Team started their performance again, the Necromancer failed to notice an extra skeleton. A hatless Feiti blended in among the skeletons, bouncing joyously through half a day¡¯s dance. When the Necromancer cheerfully stepped on stage to collect his money, he suddenly eximed, ¡°Eh, why is my reward so small?¡± Feiti had grabbed a pocket full of silver and copper coins, and quickly scampered back. He handed a handful to Durken, another to Little Angel and Little Zombie, and a third to Ange. ¡°Where¡¯s mine?!¡± Negris asked. Feiti sneered, ¡°Earn it yourself.¡± The Giant Dragon¡¯spetitive spirit instantly red, ¡°Damn it, you think I can¡¯t make my own? Just you wait!¡± Before the Bronze Dragon coulde up with a money-making idea, Durken approached two attractivedies, smoothly doffing his high hat and bowing. ¡°Lovelydies, I wish you all the beauty and delicacy of lilies.¡± As he spoke, he held his hat in one hand, and with the other, he seemed to pluck something from the air and tossed it in. With a fizzing sound, white smoke billowed out of the empty hat. When the smoke cleared, two bewitching lilies had appeared inside the hat. Durken picked up the lilies and handed them to the beautifuldies. But the twodies took the flowers with knowing smiles. One of them took out her hanky, draped it over the flowers and patted it down. When she lifted the handkerchief, the bouquet had vanished. The other one gently stroked the flower, causing the pristine white blossom to assume a leaden grey metallic sheen, as it transformed into a metal lily. After performing these tricks, thedies smirked and asked him, ¡°What grade are you? Space Magic or Alchemy? Don¡¯t you recognize us? You dare flirt with teachers?¡± Durken had overyed his charm. The ancient witch was mistaken for a student. Durken was taken aback for a moment, and then he gritted his teeth, ¡°Love knows no bounds.¡± He then took out two bottles of limited edition, deluxe 10ml essence. A hundred milliliters of essence would cost thousands of demon crystals, which was extremely expensive. At least the teachers at Steris Magic Academy didn¡¯t often splurge on a full bottle. Lisa created a more affordable deluxe edition, with ten milliliters selling for a hundred and twenty demon crystals. The sales were even hotter. Durken had brought out the limited edition. ¡°Wow! The Goddess of Beauty Essence? The limited edition? For us?¡± The eyes of the two female teachers lit up in excitement. ¡°Of course. It would be a great honor for it to be applied to the beautiful faces of twodies.¡± ¡°Hehe, you certainly have a way with words, but we don¡¯t ept gifts from students.¡± The two teachers reluctantly declined. ¡°I¡¯m not a student. Here, let me show you a magic trick.¡± Durken walked off while chitchatting with the two teachers. Negris sighed, ¡°Two hundred demon crystals just spent like that? Regardless of whether he scored or not, this spendthrift.¡± He looked back, ¡°Hey, where did Ange and the others go?¡± Ange and the others were crouched on the roadside, watching people y ball. ¡°Ladies and gentlemen,e and have a try! The rewards are generous. Each time you toss the ball up in the air, you use magic to control the to catch the ball as it falls. Whatever you catch, you win a prize. One silver coin for one try, one gold coin for eleven tries, one demon crystal for one hundred and twenty tries! Would you like to have a go, youngdy?¡± The ball vendor yelled tirelessly, directing his speech toward Little Angel. Nowadays, Little Angel looked just like a little girl, the ideal age to have the most fun and also the main target market for ball. If the child wanted to y, the adults would inevitably give in. As expected, Little Angel nodded excitedly, stuffed all the coins that Feiti had grabbed into the vendor¡¯s hand, and handed the to Ange. A big spender, huh? Staring at the pile of change in his hand, the owner began counting excitedly. However, his excitement was soon reced by surprise. He looked up to see Ange skillfully controlling his, catching every single ball that was shot into the sky. A few minutester, the owner returned all the money in tears, stuffed all his prizes into Ange¡¯s arms, and then packed his belongings and fled. Hosting a ball¡¯ game at a ce like Steris Academy surely meant amping up the difficulty. He was confident that unless a Truth Mage came along, there would be no losses. In the owner¡¯s mind, Ange must have been a Truth Mage in disguise. That day, everyone had a st. Upon returning to the Mage Tower, they were greeted by an angry Auburnli. ¡°What¡¯s wrong? Has something happened? Do you need help?¡± Negris hurriedly asked. ¡°No need, no need.¡± Auburnli quickly rubbed her cheeks and said: ¡°I¡¯m used to it. Every holiday there¡¯s bound to be a bunch of troubles. As long as no one dies, it¡¯s all good. I just caught two rapists, over a dozen murderers, an exterminator, and six vers. I¡¯ve dealt with all of them.¡± Negris was dumbfounded. She had just said ¡®as long as no one dies¡¯, but she had immediately ¡®dealt with¡¯ over twenty people. Did they not count as people? ¡°What a shame. I searched the exterminator¡¯s soul, and he wasn¡¯t the only one. These sneaky pests won¡¯t let me rest until I find them all. I came back to check on you guys, and now I must return to my shift,¡± Auburnli said. Negris signaled to Ange to bring out one of the Insect Gods: ¡°This problem is easy to solve. Take Hemel with you, let it help you find them.¡± ¡°Hemel? Hermorthos? The Insect God?¡± A surprised Auburnli was looking at the creature before her, which was as fat as a pig. At this moment, Auburnli¡¯smunicator rang. After picking it up andmunicating briefly, she said with a bizarre expression:@@novelbin@@ ¡°A young man and two of our female teachers started a fight at the bar. He was scratched by the women until his face bled and was called a fraud. He was caught by the patrol team¡­ and he had my pass¡­¡± Negris looked around, the only one who hadn¡¯t returned was Durken, who also happened to be masquerading as a young man and had left with two female teachers¡­ ¡°Kvada, what the hell is going on?!¡± Negris started cursing. Auburnli let the patrol team release the young man and immediately left with Hemel to search for the remaining exterminators. Not long after, Durken returned, his face scratched and looking miserable. A group of gossips quickly surrounded him. ¡°What happened? Why did a fight break out? Why did they scratch you?¡± Negris asked with a gleam in her eyes, a me of curiosity burning within her, much like the me that could be seen in everyone else¡¯s eyes. With his face in his hands, Durken promptly turned around and fled. The crowd was unable to catch up, but Auburnli had returned. Hemel had led her around in arge circle with no results, eventually returning to the drainage point beneath the Death Star Tower. The drainage point was too small for Hemel to enter, so he simply spit into it. After a while, a hoard of ck fishes emerged frantically from the hole, their sharp teeth gnashing as they tried to devour Hemel¡¯s saliva. The substance spat out by the Insect God exerted a deadly attraction on these strange fish. Auburnli was outraged: ¡°My fish! My fish have all turned into these strange creatures!¡± ¡°No, it¡¯s fertilizer.¡± Ange ran over excitedly, squeezed past Auburnli, and poured a bottle of insecticide into the drainage point. The already agitated fishes were driven further into frenzy by Hemel¡¯s saliva, soon starting to tear each other apart. Ange joyously gathered the dead fish bodies, clearing arger space in the drainage point. The scent attracted more insect-fish which squeezed in frantically, it was like opening a pipelineposed of insect-fish. Seeing Ange clean up so quickly, Auburnli, who was a bit worried previously, heaved a sigh of relief. But her relief was short-lived due to Negris¡¯ment. ¡°I wonder if there are any in the bay? There are going to be a lot of people at the ceremony tomorrow, and there¡¯s also Bikini Beach, hope they haven¡¯t been fed to the insect-fish.¡± Chapter 645 - 358: The Bright Debut of the Giant Star_1 Chapter 645: Chapter 358: The Bright Debut of the Giant Star_1 ¡°Your God of Misfortune mouth, good predictions fail but bad ones alle true.¡± Durkenined while trying to divert attention to Negris, hoping to prevent others from gossiping about why he had been scratched on the face. Negris replied irritably, ¡°That¡¯s me making the most probable prediction based on existing conditions. If ites true, it just means I predicted correctly. That¡¯s prowess, understand?¡± ¡°Huh, can the God of Misfortune¡¯s Mouth be exined this way? Why then are your good predictions always wrong?¡± Durken suddenly felt enlightened. ¡°Why are they wrong? Aren¡¯t you still standing here? You, a dead witch with a broken Life Box, would Ange have saved you if not for me?¡± Negris replied, annoyance clear in his voice. ¡°Makes sense.¡± Durken pondered, suddenly feeling persuaded. The Bronze Dragon, ncing sideways, nudged him with its elbow, and asked, ¡°Why did those two female teachers scratch you?¡± Durken sighed, ¡°It¡¯s embarrassing to speak of it¡­¡± If it was just to the Bronze Dragon, he didn¡¯t mind sharing, after all, they had known each other for many years. But just as he was about to speak, he suddenly realized that everyone who had been busy had almost stopped, their heads tilted towards him, listening attentively. The only ones who continued to be busy were Ange¡¯s three little pets and the two Insect Gods, who were really excited. Mutant bug fishes were continuously drawn ashore and thrown themselves at Hemel and Mattis, only for Ange to kill them and pile them up on one side. After Negris¡¯s prophetic words, everyone immediately went to the beach to investigate, and with just a spit of saliva, countless ck leeches crazily emerged from the sand. If it weren¡¯t for their rows of sharp teeth, they would indeed look likemon leeches. But toss a piece of meat their way, and it would be gnawed clean in the blink of an eye. One could imagine the disastrous scene if during the crowded festival tomorrow, everyone on the beach in their bikinis and beach shorts, sitting bare-legged on the sand, were bit by these emerging bugs. The scenario is too brutal, unbearable to imagine. Unfortunately for the bugs, they met Ange. He was their nemesis. He had already turned two Insect Gods to ¡®pigs¡¯, and now, with his strategy, the bugs in the sand and the bay had been purged. For safety¡¯s sake, Ange even activated the Instant Death Halo, so any bugs that might still be hatching in the sand were forced to emerge. ¡°The bay is connected to the ocean, and even if we clean up now, more bug fish might creep in tomorrow. I¡¯ll seal up the bay first.¡± Auburnli announced. Auburnli slowly levitated, her magic power overwhelming, as the elements quickly converged from all directions. A dozen minutester, Luther, feeling bored, yawned, ¡°How much longer?¡± ¡°Arcane level magic, it¡¯s too early. This level of magic should ideally be cast by a Magician Group, otherwise, it¡¯s hard to control the summoning of elements. It shows the girl¡¯s strength that she can do it herself.¡± Durken remarked in an old-fashioned manner. The undead female housekeeper overheard this conversation, the term ¡®young girl¡¯ causing a thump in her heart: a young girl of nine hundred years? Just then, Ange suddenly said, ¡°There¡¯s something.¡± After a while, the surface of the water began to boil, countless shadows kept leaping out of the sea, spreading their wings, gliding in the air for a while before diving back into the water. If it weren¡¯t for the four eyes on their sides and the mutated sharp mouthpieces, these would have been flying fish. The mutated Four-eyed Flying Fish swooped towards the bay like gliding bombs, one after the other. They were not messing around. The bugs in the bay were just a prelude, the real show was about to begin. ¡°Sound the rm, highest level!¡± Auburnli yelled. Negris, Durken, and Feiti felt a sinking feeling in their hearts: ¡°They¡¯ve been preparing for a while now, this is trouble.¡± ¡°This scale, are there still things in the sea?¡± Since the start of the bay clean-up operation, everyone had been worrying about bugs being able to reproduce in the sea, wondering if other creatures lived there too? The ocean is arger ecosystem than thend, and without as many predators, at least not as much as onnd filled with gods and skeletons. If bugs could reproduce in the ocean, they¡¯d definitely thrive better. Back on the Light Sea ne, the bugs had gone into the water under themand of the bug controller. But once Ange killed the bug controller, the bugs naturally couldn¡¯t expand. The ocean on the Master ne is salty. The original hope was that the bugs would not be able to adapt to this environment. But when the bugs appeared in the bay, it signified the crushing of this hope, spelling trouble. Thinking about the ocean full of dark bugs, Negris felt his scalp tingling: ¡°We need to find those two bug controllers. Inform ck Night Raven and Brooks to be careful.¡± No sooner had Negris finished speaking than the Four-eyed Flying Fish swarmed in front of the bay, madly crossing the seawall and rushing into the bay. In the darkness, a pir of light tore through the dark, carving a clear gap in the swarm of flying fish: ¡°Argh!¡± Without looking, Negris knew who released the pir of light and facepalmed out of annoyance. The power of Holy Light sh is very strong, but facing this situation, it was like using a cup of water to put out a car fire. The clear gap was quickly filled by other flying fish, showing no signs of ever being attacked.@@novelbin@@ The Little Angel, having just used her massive ability, was very pleased and began to release Holy Light Missiles with her Great Angel¡¯s Staff, bouncing and jumping with joy. Chapter 646: 358 Chapter 646: 358 Immediately after that, a column of ck light cut through the sky: ¡°Roar!¡± Because in the darkness of the night, Little Zombie¡¯s Breath of Death Shockwave was not noticeable. Everyone realized the horror only when they saw a sudden missing strip in the school of Four-eyed Flying Fish. But these were just the prelude. Suddenly, Ange, standing beside Little Angel and Little Zombie, started to attack. One fireball after another, drawing red lines in the night, unleashing a curtain of fire. ¡°One, two, three¡­ twenty? Twenty shots per second? Has he sped up?¡± Negris silently calcted and drew a startling conclusion. Durken¡¯s mouth fell open: ¡°Casting Level 4 Magic instantly? At twenty shots per second? Is he a Magic Turret?¡± Negris scoffed: ¡°What level? Look a little closer, will you?¡± Durken frowned and looked again: ¡°Level 2? No, that¡¯s not right. The power doesn¡¯t match, it¡¯s at least Level 4.¡± ¡°Never mind whether it makes sense or not. Isn¡¯t it Level 2 Magic?¡± Negris immediately felt a sense of superiority from knowing a secret and asked arrogantly. Considering the consumption of elements, indeed, it¡¯s Level 2, but the power is so great, at least equivalent to Level 4. The most likely cause is his proficiency. What is his proficiency?¡± Durken quickly guessed the reason and asked in surprise. ¡°Proficiency?¡± Negris was taken aback: ¡°Can proficiency be quantified? By what standard?¡± ¡°It¡¯s the number of times a spell is cast. Casting it once is one point of proficiency. A magic apprentice¡¯s daily supply of magic can only cast about ten Level 0 spells. If they practice the same spell every day, they can umte over 3,600 points in a year, which is almost enough to level up.¡± A normal wizard typically has a proficiency of around three to five thousand for a spell.¡± After Durken finished speaking, he saw Negris counting on his fingers, so he couldn¡¯t help asking, ¡°What are you counting?¡±@@novelbin@@ ¡°I¡¯m calcting proficiency. Ange¡¯s highest proficiency should be in Rain Technique. During the six-month nting season, he watered 3,000 acres ofnd every day, requiring 5,000 uses of the Rain Technique. He must have been casting this for about a thousand years. How many is 5,000 per day, in six months? How many in a thousand years?¡± ¡°Nine¡­Nine million times?¡± Durken said in shock. He knew Negris was doing this on purpose. Such a creature, who could clearly calcte the rtive discement of the nes of existence, couldn¡¯t really be struggling with such simple math. It was just trying to shock others. Though Durken saw through Negris¡¯s sinister intentions, he was still shocked by this number. A proficiency near ten million was iparable to the few thousand of an ordinary wizard. Durken¡¯s shock greatly satisfied Negris¡¯s sarcastic humor. It continued to boast: ¡°The exploding fireball is used less, but he used to cast fourteen per second. He could keep it up for days and nights. His proficiency should be in the hundreds of thousands.¡± Whether it¡¯s a hundred thousand, a million, or ten million, these numbers are far beyond the realm of normal people. Durken could no longer calcte by the previous standards. He could only re at Negris: ¡°It¡¯s not like you¡¯re the one casting.¡± ¡°I taught him.¡± Negris stated, hands on hips. Ange, the Magic Turret, shocked the entire scene. When he unleashed a curtain of fire, all eyes were drawn to him. But as the duration of the fire curtain continued to increase, even Auburnli could not keep calm. ¡°How can he keep this up? Can anyone really hold on for so long?¡± Every Four-eyed Flying Fish hit by a fireball would explode, shattering into pieces and their bodies sshing into the bay one after another. How Hemel and Mattis were excited! Ange had been feeding them grass and straw every day, and they could finally taste meat. Submerging in the water, the two Insect Gods voraciously started gnawing. It¡¯s only natural for Insect Gods to eat insects. Back in the day, Hemel was raising insects for its own consumption. Now faced with so many juicy Four-eyed Flying Fish, the Insect Gods, who had been malnourished for a long time, began to undergo noticeable changes. Auburnli had no choice but to disperse the elements she had gathered. She realized that Ange had drawn upon nearby elements, causing a conflict with hers. If she didn¡¯t stop, it would mean slowing Ange down. ¡°I¡­ My arcane magic¡¯s elements got stolen by his Level 2 magic. What on earth is happening?¡± Auburnli felt that her understanding of the magic world as a Truth Mage was being challenged. Nowadays, the bay had turned to soup, a soup that was fatally irresistible to bugs. The more bugs that died, the stronger the attraction to those still alive. They forcefully tried to break through the firepower blockade and throw themselves into this pot of ¡®soup¡¯. This really catered to Ange¡¯s preference, who only needed to stand still and send fireballs flying. The Four-eyed Flying Fish seemed numberless, but due to their size, there might only be several tens of thousands of them. Comparing with millions of bugs in terms of body mass, the seawater in the bay had been dyed as ck as ink with their blood. It should have been stinking to high heaven, but with two Insect Gods in the water, not only was there no foul smell, the bloodied water was being absorbed by them. At this rate, by dawn, the bay water would again be clear. All eyes were focused on Ange. A silver ¡®squirrel¡¯ darted over like a bolt of lightning, ran to Auburnli¡¯s side, climbed her dress and soon squatted on her shoulder. Auburnli had noticed it early and didn¡¯t stop it seeing who it was. She let the squirrel climb onto her shoulder before saying, ¡°You¡¯re awake.¡± Chapter 647 - 358: The Bright Debut of the Giant Star_3 Chapter 647: Chapter 358: The Bright Debut of the Giant Star_3 ¡°Of course I am awake. You set off the highest level rm, and I thought something had happened. What¡¯s going on now? Where did this humane from? Is he so freakish? Is it a new star?¡± The squirrel asked. Auburnli asked, ¡°So you also see him as a human?¡± ¡°What do you mean? Is he not a human?¡± The squirrel was surprised to ask back. Auburnli did not answer directly but said: ¡°You will see for yourself when the chancees. Just don¡¯t offend him.¡± The squirrel¡¯s tail stood up straight in an instant, looking at Auburnli surprised. If it was ¡®don¡¯t disturb him¡¯ or ¡®don¡¯t bully him¡¯, it would be quite normal. But Auburnli said ¡®don¡¯t offend him¡¯? What¡¯s going on? Is this human someone even Auburnli doesn¡¯t dare to offend? While the squirrel was shocked and distracted, a horse¡¯s mouth quietly stretched out and bit its big tail. The squirrel and Auburnli were taken aback and turned around to see Lightning biting the squirrel¡¯s tail, munching and saying, ¡°This is so strange, why does this squirrel¡¯s tail have the taste of lightning?¡± The fur hat on Lightning¡¯s head opened its eyes and let out a ¡®ow¡¯ cry. ¡°Squirrel?¡± The squirrel was stunned for a moment, a dangerous light shing in its eyes. It quietly asked Auburnli, ¡°Can I kill this horse?¡± Auburnli shook her head first and then exined, ¡°The human¡¯s, offend him if you kill it. You can¡¯t kill.¡± ¡°Alright then.¡± The squirrel reluctantly agreed. It gathered its strength, and a loud noise suddenly broke out in the sky. Lightning only felt an irresistible terror thunder released from the squirrel¡¯s tail. It ¡®prated¡¯ the whole of Lightning, making it seem like a glowing horse. The residual electric power went to the horn and formed a second release, dazzling the fur hat on its head to a ball, all of its hair was standing up as if it was a giant ¡®sea urchin¡¯. After the thunder, Lightning was breathing white smoke, his eyes blurred, staggering around like a drunken man. The fur hat on its head also widened its eyes. The tips of the hairs were emitting white smoke, slightly like they were electrically cooked. The palm-sized squirrel had now turned into a five-meter-tall, muscle-filled, wide-backed, incredibly strong ¨Crge squirrel. ¡°The sky roars, the giant star shines on stage, Giant Star ¨C Thunderp! You dare call me squirrel?¡± Therge squirrel roared. Giant Star Thunderp, one of the three existing giants in the Republic of Steris. Lightning¡¯s eyes were spinning, and in a daze, he muttered: ¡°Such¡­ such a big¡­ squirrel¡­¡± Thunderp was so annoyed that he wanted to pick up Lightning and throw him around, but then he realized something was wrong: ¡°Huh, his magic resistance is a bit high. This is not an ordinary unicorn.¡±@@novelbin@@ It turns out he had recognized Lightning¡¯s identity early on but deliberately asked if the ¡®horse¡¯ could be killed. However, even as a unicorn, Lightning¡¯s magic resistance was atypically high. ¡°It might be the fur hat on its head. It¡¯s a Dimension Beast.¡± Auburnli said. ¡°Voi¡­Void Species? Dimension Beast?¡± Thunderp widened his eyes. Thest flying fish¡¯s body also fell into the bay, Ange finished his work happily, collected the uneaten insects fish in the bay, then burned them to ash. After all, these are all fertilizers. On a deserted ind about ten kilometers out from the bay, a sleep-eyed pest control master rubbed his eyes and got up to pee. In the middle of it, he couldn¡¯t help but shout, ¡°Oh no, where is our group of flying fish?¡± His cry woke up another pest control master. The two of them stood on the reef, looking at the empty sea, at a loss what to do. ¡°Where are the flying fish? Without our guidance, they won¡¯t run wild.¡± ¡°Unless it¡¯s the call of the Insect God, they won¡¯t be out of control.¡± ¡°Where is there an Insect God, we have bred insects that adapt to saltwater. We are the new Insect God!¡± ¡°What are we supposed to do? We were going to have a feast during the celebration, but now it¡¯s toote to regroup.¡± They argued and didn¡¯t notice that several ¡®people¡¯ quietlynded above their heads. PS: Thank you for all your monthly tickets, the ranking has soared by forty ces, and now the monthly ticket list is at 166. Chapter 648 - 359: Record Holder Who Is Unknown?_1 Chapter 648: Chapter 359: Record Holder Who Is Unknown?_1 Surrounded by several god-level powerhouses, the two insect exterminators couldn¡¯t utter a word before they were hauled back. After torturing and interrogating them severely, as well as soul-searching them, the situation was cleared up and everyone breathed a sigh of relief. ¡°It¡¯s a good thing that the Saltwater insects were cultivated by them and didn¡¯t spread,¡± Negris let out a sigh of relief. ¡°We can¡¯t let our guard down. If they are capable of breeding Saltwater insects, so are other insect exterminators. We must think of a solution, at least to provide early warning. Otherwise, none of our cities will survive the onught of insects breeding inrge numbers in the sea and then rushing ashore all at once,¡± Tyrone voiced his worries. The attack of the Four-eyed Flying Fish sent Steris Academy into its highest level of alert. Although no damage was done due to Ange, it rmed Tyrone. The Republic of Steris is situated next to the sea andcks strategic depth. If Tyrone¡¯s fears were toe true, this ce would be in grave danger. Feeling increasing unease, Tyrone said, ¡°I need to call a dimension safety conference to inform everyone of the situation.¡± Auburnli retorted, ¡°It¡¯s almost dawn and the Seed Conference is about to begin. Who has the time for a meeting? Besides, don¡¯t people need their sleep at this hour? Anyway, the infestation has been cleared for now. We can still brief everyone after the Seed Conference ends in three days.¡± Tyrone shook his head: ¡°We can¡¯t dy. These insects reproduce fast. Judging from what happened in the ck Mountain Kingdom, their numbers could multiply by thousands overnight. We must ensure everyone is prepared in advance.¡± ¡°But the Seed Conference is just about to start. If you call a meeting now, it will take a whole day before everyone responds, agrees on the meeting agenda, and finds time to connect. What if someone is momentarily unavable? That would drag the meeting into tomorrow. What would happen to the Seed Conference then? You¡¯re supposed to preside over it,¡± Auburnli pointed out. Of the three big shots in Steris, only Tyrone is responsible for external affairs. The Seed Conference cannot proceed without him. However, if they were to hold a safety meeting after the Seed Conference, it would be at least four to five dayster. As seen from the example of the ck Mountain Kingdom, insect numbers can explode by thousands of times overnight. If an incident were to ur during this period, it would be toote to report. Unable to resolve the debate, Negris, smiling, raised his hand: ¡°Coincidentally, I was just about to brief my grandnephew. Would you like to join me?¡± ¡°Your grandnephew? Who might that be?¡± Tyrone enquired. ¡°Brooks.¡± ¡°Ah, so it¡¯s an elder from the Dragon n. I apologize for my ignorance.¡± Tyrone expressed his respect. ¡°But just informing n Leader Brooks isn¡¯t enough. The others need to be notified as well,¡± Tyrone added. ¡°No worries, I have their private contact details.¡± Negris headed to the Teleportation Array with Ange, contacting Anthony, Brooks, and Gard one by one. Anthony in turn brought Dyson and Copper Hammer into the conversation, and a six-way meeting started within half an hour. Seeing the gathering resemble a Dimension Safety Conference, but without Guliani, Tyrone was stunned: ¡°This seems like a Dimension Safety Conference, but hosted by you instead?¡± A Dimension Safety Conference is a public channel, which requires a series of protocols and processes before it can be convened. On the contrary, this was a private, impromptu gathering without all the hassle, and conversation quickly ensued. Tyrone reported on the situation and voiced his concerns. Everyone felt grave thinking about the terrifying scenario. The Elves, having suffered from an insect invasion before, were particrly anxious. However, they couldn¡¯te up with any solutions until dawn. ¡°We can only stay vignt, particrly Brooks, I hope you can dispatch people to patrol the ocean. If there are any anomalies, please let us know immediately. These insects could live in water, but insect exterminators can¡¯t, right? We must deal with the insect exterminators. We must not allow them to grow stronger,¡± Tyrone said. Anthony chimed in, ¡°In a while, Dyson and I will issue a joint statement, dering the insect exterminators as heretics. We will give them a deadline to surrender; anyone who is caught will be burned alive.¡± ¡°The Elves can assist too. If there¡¯s anything you need, you can contact Lord Ange,¡± Gard proposed. Upon hearing this, everyone, other than Anthony, was taken aback. Tyrone and Auburnli even shot Ange a surprised nce. The Elves were willing to assist, but they asked them to contact Ange? What did that imply? This signified that Ange had the authority to make decisions on behalf of the Elves. Letting a ¡®human¡¯ decide on their behalf was simply unbelievable for the haughty Elves.@@novelbin@@ As the conference ended, dawn was breaking. Tyrone and Auburnli swiftly departed. The Seed Contest was the grand finale and wouldmence at noon on the third day. The preceding two-and-a-half days were packed withpetitions, bet battles, and other exciting events. However, Ange wasn¡¯t interested in any of these. He retreated into the Resting Pce to study the new changes in the two Insect Gods. Having consumed arge number of insects, Hemel and Mattis underwent a peculiar transformation, bing even more robust. Previously, they indiscriminately gorged on food and ended up gaining weight. But this time, they consumed only meat and not only did they not gain weight, they became stronger. Hemel transformed into a robust ¡®horse¡¯, its sturdy limbs and muscr bodyparable to the most robust Nightmare. There was a metallic sheen on his skin. On touching it, one would discover it was not skin, but very fine scales that were extremely hard. Chapter 649 - 359: Record Holder Who Is Unknown?_2 Chapter 649: Chapter 359: Record Holder Who Is Unknown?_2 This resulted in its defensive power being off the charts. Luther could barely sh it with his Arbitration Sword. He managed to sh it on its own, but Hemel shook it off, its scales stood up, indirectly it was hard to sh again. However, the scales did not stand up for its defense, instead it was to release smoke. This smoke was a potent form of Insect Ash Liquid which not only had the effects of Insect Ash Liquid but also had the ability to ¡®infect¡¯. The smokended on barrennd, quickly soaking it and turning it into moist fertile soil. And this change was ongoing, after infection, the soil was more fertile each day. It was wet to the touch on the first day, and by the third day, it was oozing oil.@@novelbin@@ ¡°Continuously improving the soil? So miraculous?¡± Negris eximed in shock. Yes, very miraculous, Ange quickly harnessed it, it would be put to use plowing in the future. As it walked, it sprayed smoke while tilling the soil simultaneously, killing two birds with one stone. ¡°¡­I knew you would do this, Insect God, don¡¯t you use it for anything better?¡± Negris asked, speechless. Ange shook his head. On the morning of the third day, Auburnli managed to find some time toe back, and found that the Land of Breath of Death behind the Death Star Tower had been turned over. Being a witch, the Breath of Death was indispensable, but Auburnli dared not build a graveyard behind the house. She could only go to the eerie graveyard from time to time, to dig up the surface soil that had been tainted with the Breath of Death, and spread it on the open space behind the house, so as to ¡®breathe¡¯ in the refreshing Breath of Death. Long-term infiltration with the Breath of Death led to no growth on the open space behind the house. It was grey and dull, almost as barren as the Resting Abyss, extremely infertile. After being away for two days, Auburnli found that the Land of Breath of Death was gone, soil that had been piled up for hundreds of years now turned ck and fertile, with lush grasses growing wildly above it. ¡°What the¡­¡± Before Auburnli could curse, Negris, who was ready, handed over a vial of Liquid of Breath of Death. Auburnli opened it and took a sniff, immediately changed her words to, ¡°This grass field is really beautiful.¡± The denuded and dull Land of Breath of Death, where could it be as convenient as the Liquid of Breath of Death, which rejuvenates with one sniff, and calms the mind with another sniff? As she finished speaking, a sturdy ¡®horse¡¯ pulling a plow ran past, overturning the lush grass. After being soaked for two and a half days, it was finally ready for seeding. Little Zombie and Little Angel followed behind sowing seeds, Ange was at the very end, covering the soil and watering the nts. Witnessing the transformation from grass field to cultivated field, Auburnli stared in disbelief. Realizing that if she continued to stay she might die of rage, Auburnli threw out a sentence, ¡°The Grain Competition is about to start, you guys have registered, get ready quickly.¡± and ran off without looking back. ¡­ Ange and his group arrived at the venue for the Grain Competition, it was the same venue they had seen when they first arrived, where the Magic Powerpetition was held. At this moment, a huge Simted Magic Formation had been set up on the field of the venue. The stands were packed with spectators, enthusiastically waving all sorts of cheering props, making loud noises, shing lights, or emitting special effects, it was an extremely lively scene. In one section, the spectators were uniformly dressed and equipped, even banners were raised, which read: Victory to Dobinki. Everyone was dazzled, overwhelmed, expressing their feelings, ¡°They are so passionate, so passionate, these supporters are really passionate.¡± ¡°Yes, yes, Dobinki that old cat-head still has so many passionate supporters? They must be blind, how can his skills bepared to our lord¡¯s?¡± Luther said indignantly. At the Land of Fallen, Ange had given Dobinki and his group a tough time. He didn¡¯t expect Dobinki to be so popr at the Grain Competition. No wonder his students had the audacity to im they would remove the ¡®Spring Breeze Cup¡¯ title. ¡°We can¡¯t let him win the championship. It¡¯s not good for promoting different grains, Ange, keep suppressing him,¡± Negris said, clenching his fist. From a short distance came a gritting voice, ¡°So it was you guys! Alright then, finally caught you guys.¡± Upon turning around, they saw the bear-student who was a pupil of Master Dobinki. Ange¡¯s group had not made any special efforts to conceal themselves, especially the Bronze Dragon, with a form so unique, they could be recognized from afar. Just as they were thinking about beating them up, confronting Negris with joy, they were delivered to their doorstep. Thrilled with pleasure, Negris starts waving his paws, ¡°Good day, teddy-bear.¡± The bear-student was fuming. What did that mean? Was this some sort of mockery? Was he looking down on him? After scanning the surroundings, realizing he didn¡¯t stand a chance beating anyone, the bear-student gritted his teeth and snarled: ¡°You¡¯re the teddy-bear, your whole family is teddy bears! Just you wait, I¡¯m going to get our teacher! You escapedst time from the Land of Fallen, let¡¯s see where you run now!¡± ¡°Run? When did we run? Weren¡¯t you the ones who ran firstst time?¡± Negris was puzzled. Indeed, in the Land of Fallen, it was Dobinki who had fled in the dead of night. Little did he know that Dobinki and the others returned to seek revengeter, by which time they had already retreated to the Holy Kingdom. The bear-student had already left, clearly going to fetch someone. The area they were in was made for thepetitors. All the teams participating in the grainpetition were there. Many recognized Dobinki¡¯s student, but nobody recognized Ange and his team. One kindly old farmer-like contestant warned, ¡°Why did you offend them? Sigh, you guys are in trouble.¡± ¡°Oh? Who are they? How will they cause trouble?¡± Negris pretended to ask curiously. ¡°You don¡¯t know him? Then you¡¯re really in trouble,¡± another elderly farmer-like contestantmented with surprise.¡¯ ¡°Are they famous? Why must I know them? You guys don¡¯t know me either.¡± Negris retorted, hands on hips. Both farmer-like contestants chuckled, wholly unaware of who they¡¯d ¡®hehe¡¯-ed. ¡°That¡¯s Master Dobinki¡¯s student, holder of the current grainpetition record. You¡¯re here for the grainpetition and yet you don¡¯t know the record-holder? How did you offend him?¡± one of the farmer contestants said. Negris replied honestly: ¡°Last time when we beat them in the grain-growingpetition, we didn¡¯t even bother to remember their names. Didn¡¯t expect they still bear a grudge against us.¡± The looks on the faces of the two elder farmer contestants were full of a sort of naive amusement. They grinned, making a ¡°your tall tale is so cute¡± face, chuckled, and each went their separate ways. ¡°Huh, even the truth isn¡¯t credible anymore.¡± Negrismented, disappointed that he¡¯d missed the chance to show off¡­ Soon, the bear-student returned with Dobinki. Spotting them from far away, Negris waved his paw in greeting. However, Dobinki didn¡¯t respond, instead giving Negris a few gloomy nces before turning and walking away. Bang, Bang, Bang! More than a dozen fiery explosions soared into the sky, erupting into a giant fireball, releasing a deafening boom. The grainpetition officially began. ¡°Tsk, using explosive magic as fireworks, how ostentatious.¡± Commented Luther. ¡°As expected of Steris Magic Academy, they never run short of wizards.¡± Negris replied. Bang! An even louder noise echoed, and a bright light shed at the center of the venue. A booming voice echoed throughout the arena: ¡°A thunderous roar in the sky, the Giant Star shimmers now. Your friend, Giant Star Thunderp, has returned! Did you miss me?¡± The bright light subsided, revealing a Thunder Elementposed of bright light and shes of lightning. Lightning bolted up and eximed in surprise, ¡°Is that Giant Star Thunderp? The giant squirrel?¡± ¡°Ladies and gentlemen, dear guests, good afternoon. The biennial grainpetition is about to begin again. Grain is the kindling of life, without it, we can¡¯t spark the me of life. Ack of grain leads to famine, death shall descend upon humanity.¡± ¡°This year, it was a disaster, a painful year, a sorrowful year. In this horrifying disaster, the importance of grain is highlighted all the more. If our grain productions keep growing over the years, famine will be eradicated forever.¡± ¡°The grainpetition¡­ is the stage where all our agricultural masters showcase their capabilities. They bring us more prolific grains and stronger weapons tobat famine. Now, let us wee our stars for the day, let the grainpetition officially begin!¡± PS: 152, don¡¯t forget to cast your monthly tickets before they expire,¡­ Chapter 650 - 360: Im Not The Last Squad?_1 Chapter 650: Chapter 360: I¡¯m Not The Last Squad?_1 With thest roar of the Thunder, several thick bolts of lightning shot from its body, striking the four corners of the venue. They exploded into intense, dazzling sparks. Simultaneously, the giant Simted Magic Formation was activated. No wonder they had Thunder host and control the field. With these bolts of lightning, if it wasn¡¯t controlling them, if one hit the stands, it would cause quite a spectacle. The lightning not only controlled the field but also served as the means to activate the giant Simted Magic Formation. The entire venue lit up asyer uponyer of illusions were disyed, and Thunder faded away with the illumination of the Array, quietly leaving the stage. Despite this, its voice still echoed in the venue, ¡°Some of you here are veterans of the Spring Breeze Cup Grain Seed Competition, but many of you are new friends. Allow me to exin the rules of the Grain Seed Competition, as per tradition.¡± ¡°In front of you now are the teams that have been strictly selected topete in the Grain Seed Competition. Through the data recorded by recording devices, and using this data, we can simte the cultivation to harvest process in the Simted Magic Formation.¡± ¡°Currently presented is the Southern Porcupine Man Team, a brand-new team hailing from the Southern Swamp. The crop they grow is swamp rice, a special type of rice that can grow in harsh environments. It matures once a year, yielding 450 kilograms per acre.¡± The effects presented by therge Simted Magic Formation resembled the Dwarf¡¯s War God¡¯s Chessboard. Everyone looked towards the middle of the field, which disyed a proportional swamp environment. Even weather conditions and day and night changes were replicated identically but sped up several hundred times. The audience could witness at least half a month¡¯s growth process of the crop in a short amount of time: watching the crop germinate and grow, flowering and bearing fruit, all without enduring the hardships of farming. The joy of harvest was, therefore, even more profound and intense. Some people could spend half a day watching others pick ears of corn, let alone such a visually impacting spectacle. Throughout the process, Thunder¡¯s voice would asionally ring out, timely exining changes thatypersons might not understand ¨C such as elongation and grain filling, the effect of top-dressing, and what frost might cause. If there weren¡¯t professionals providingmentary, some changes would leave people baffled. In the end, the crops within the Simted Magic Formation bore lush fruits, and simultaneously, a beam of light ascended, eventually disying ¡®450 kilograms¡¯ at the top. Everyone understood at this point that this was a yield bar graph. ¡°That¡¯s a bit less, isn¡¯t it? Only 450 kilograms, and they¡¯ve advanced to the semifinals?¡± Whispers and murmurs of discussion emanated from thepetitor¡¯s section. ¡°Didn¡¯t you listen to the introduction? It can adapt to the harsh environment of the swamp. 450 kilograms isn¡¯t too shabby. In the swamp, at best, you could only grow grass.¡± ¡°Furthermore, did you notice the nting date? From July to October, that¡¯s four months. Considering the South¡¯s climate, two crops could be grown in four months. There¡¯s room for improving the yield. Two crops a year, a yield of 900 kilograms, is quite impressive.¡± ¡°If you¡¯ve thought about that, so have others. There must be some limitations.¡± In the corner of the contestant¡¯s area, a few old farmer-like men were fidgeting, sweating bullets, listening to their peers¡¯ments. Kvada, these are the old farmer-like men, so are those, all the contestants look like clumsy old farmers, sunburned, and simr in demeanor, it¡¯s hard to narrate any more.¡± Ange¡¯s group was the most unique among all. Ange walked up to several of the contestants and took out a bag of Demon Crystals. ¡°Buying, grain seeds.¡± The restless contestants raised their heads, seemingly at a loss, as they looked at Ange. What did he mean? The contestants¡¯ eyes fell on the bag in Ange¡¯s hand. Upon seeing what was inside, their breathing involuntarily quickened. There were about 100 Demon Crystals in the bag. Don¡¯t be deceived by the constant transactions of tens of thousands of Demon Crystals in the Goddess of Beauty City; in reality, the value of Demon Crystals is exceptionally high. A hundred Demon Crystals equate to a thousand Gold Coins, which under normal grain prices could buy 100 tons of grain. This year, food scarcity has caused an abnormal rise in grain prices. A few years ago, Ice City had bought 100 tons of grain at the price of one Demon Crystal for a ton. The poption in this world wasn¡¯t dense. Even a small manor outside the city would cost around 200 Demon Crystals. A stack of Demon Crystals that could buy half a small manor was sitting right in front of the contestants. Don¡¯t be fooled by them being contestants; from their clothes and jewelry, it was evident they weren¡¯t wealthy. Which farmer had money? Thendlords were the ones with money. Moreover, their vige is located in the Southern Swamps, where arablend is scarce. If they hadn¡¯t cultivated swamp rice, even securing food would¡¯ve be a problem for the vige. They only came to participate in thispetition because they were invited by Steris. Both their travel expenses and amodations were paid for by the Steris Academy. They had never seen so many Demon Crystals in their lives, and they were immediately startled.@@novelbin@@ Ange wasn¡¯t sure how much he should pay for the grain seeds either. Seeing them stunned, he retracted his hand. The contestants¡¯ eyes were hooked on the Demon Crystals as they were retracted from their sight. Confusion, loss, regret, and frustration shed across their faces. A hundred Demon Crystals could buy a lot of clothes, medicinal supplies, needles, and farming tools for the vige. The vige children could stop running around bare-bottomed without realizing that locusts had stuck to their privates. However, these Demon Crystals had just floated away from their grasp¡­ Ange flipped the hand he had just withdrawn, revealing another bag. He handed over two bags of Demon Crystals and repeated, ¡°Buying, grain seeds.¡± Chapter 651 - 360: Im Not The Last Squad?_2 Chapter 651: Chapter 360: I¡¯m Not The Last Squad?_2 The contestants were taken aback again, but they now understood Ange¡¯s intent. He wanted to buy their swamp rice seeds with two bags of Demon Crystals. Swamp rice wasn¡¯t rare; tribes from the viges in the Southern Swamp area all nted it. Their vige just had a higher yield. However, they had originally thought their high yield was significant, but only when they arrived at the Seeds Contest did they realise that their yield was quite small. The highest yield of the previous contest had already broken a thousand catties. If they could exchange an ordinary, not so extraordinary yield of seeds for two hundred Demon Crystals, this deal would be tremendously profitable. The oldest contestant took a deep breath, ready to agree, but Ange pulled his hand back. This ¡®pull back¡¯ almost tugged the hearts out of the contestants, who, on a reflex, tilted forward, feeling an urge to grab hold of him. Ange flipped his hand, and a third bag appeared, ¡°Buy, seeds.¡± The oldest contestant could no longer contain himself and stood up to press on Ange¡¯s hand, ¡°Sell.¡± He then took out a sack of seeds from his ownp, which contained about a catty of swamp rice. The old farmer contestant finally understood what Ange was doing. Ange was bidding, and because they hesitated twice, the bid increased twice.@@novelbin@@ In an instant, a thought shed across the old farmer¡¯s mind: if he hesitated again, would it increase by another hundred? Although he had that thought, the old farmer dared not proceed. He wouldn¡¯t gamble. What if Ange didn¡¯t extend his hand again? Wouldn¡¯t they fail to even reach the current price? A bag of Demon Crystals had already exceeded his psychological price, and three hadpletely stunned him. He dared not be greedy nor to gamble. Negris flew over,ughing and crying, grumbling at Ange. Ange moved too fast, before Negris could react, three bags of Demon Crystals were gone. How was business done like this? This frivolous skeleton. However, the deal had been made, Negris couldn¡¯t object and had to say: ¡°Tell me what you want to buy next, I¡¯ll do the bargaining. You can¡¯t do business; you lose so much.¡± Ange tilted his head and said, ¡°Silver coin.¡± Negris thought for a moment and understood what Ange meant. He almost spit out blood. By bringing up the silver coin at this time, Ange was clearly saying: doing business with silver coins is viable, but not with you. ¡°Even my worst is still better than you!¡± Negris angrily roared. Kvada, this dead skeleton was picking up on sarcastic insults. While it was raging here, the contestants who had received the money excitedly whispered among themselves. The youngest contestant excitedly asked the old farmer, ¡°Vige head, there¡¯s so much money. Can you buy me a pair of shoes?¡± ¡°Hehe, of course, this money can buy everyone in the vige a pair of shoes. After the contest, we¡¯ll go buy them.¡± Negris overheard their conversation and nced down at their feet in astonishment. The contestants were all wearing straw sandals. Negris was slightly shaken. Just now, he was ming Ange for spending money recklessly, but now it was hard toin. Are they really this poor? The farmer produced a high-yield crop of four hundred and fifty jin, but was too poor to afford shoes? It wasn¡¯t right. The idlendowner nobles even had people to carry them, yet hardworking farmers didn¡¯t even have shoes to wear? Shouldn¡¯t the farmers be living in big mansions and riding in luxurious carriages? The seeds they bred and the crops they grew were obviously valuable. Just look at Ange. This year alone, he had sold crops worth over ten million Demon Crystals, not to mention the other intangibles. Negris no longer thought Ange was wasteful. Didn¡¯t the time, energy, and knowledge that the farmers put into their crops deserve the paltry sum of a few hundred Demon Crystals? The Seeds Contest continued, and the second team started. ¡°Now on disy is the Fat nting Team, growing wheat with a yield of five hundred and thirty catties per acre. The Fat nting Team hails from¡­¡± ¡°Next on disy is the Kobold Team that grows rice with a yield of five hundred and sixty catties per acre. The Kobold Team is a human team, with no blood rtion to the Kobolds. Theye from the prairies¡­¡± ¡°Next up for disy is the Stuffed Team, nting wheat, with a yield of six hundred and twelve catties per acre. The Stuffed Teames from the Steel Bone Area, their greatest wish is to be stuffed, and this is the wish of us all. We hope everyone can eat their fill¡­¡± As team after team disyed, the audience understood the order of appearance. It was clearly based on crop yield, in ascending order. This meant that theter the team appeared, the higher the crop yield. Everyone¡¯s expectations were high. Ange would buy whenever he encountered unique seeds, but most of these were just wheat and rice, which were no match for Ange¡¯s seeds, it rarely justified his action. That disappointed everyone. When Ange bought the swamp rice, many people in the contestant area saw it and thought they had met a big spender. They were hoping to make a good profit, but they didn¡¯t expect Ange to snub the wheat and rice, which were higher-yield crops. ¡°Isn¡¯t this discrimination? He¡¯s willing to buy swamp rice for three bags of Demon Crystals, but our crop yield is much higher than swamp rice and he doesn¡¯t even ask? Is he despising us?¡± ¡°Exactly. My rice yield breaks six hundred and ten per acre, but he isn¡¯t even looking at me. It¡¯s so annoying.¡± ¡°If he doesn¡¯t want to buy, don¡¯t buy at all. Buying only the swamp rice, what¡¯s this? Unfair.¡± ¡°Cough, cough, this is the contestant area. We are all teams here. As far as I know, their team hasn¡¯t shown their crops yet. Could it be that they also nt rice or wheat with a higher yield than ours?¡± Chapter 652 - 360: Im Not The Last Squad?_3 Chapter 652: Chapter 360: I¡¯m Not The Last Squad?_3 ¡°Uh¡­¡± ¡°Uh¡­¡± Someone said that sobered everyone up and instantly shut them all up. Well, if the other party was also growing rice or wheat and hasn¡¯t shown their hand yet, their yield must be higher than theirs. Why bother buying their grains then? As thepetition progressed, the grain yield, which was at eight hundred and twenty jin per mu, suddenly jumped significantly: ¡°Up next, we have the Elf Seedlings Team. They¡¯ve grown Elf Rice, a type of improved rice, with a yield of one thousand two hundred and twenty jin per mu¡­¡±@@novelbin@@ ¡°Wow!¡± A loud gasp was heard from both the audience and the contestants. Elves? Elves are participating in the Grain Competition? What are elves? Elves, the sprites of nature, the darlings of nature, the children of nes. They don¡¯t have to cultivate food for their sustenance; when they do start nting things, deserts can be fertile fields. Among the Druids, elves are the most abundant. The fame of the Elf Druids often gives people the impression that druids are elves. The mention of Druids would directly bring Elves to people¡¯s minds. This impression wasn¡¯t changed until the arrival of the Spring Breeze Druid Loui, especially after he became the title sponsor of the Grain Competition. His renown has spread far and wide. But that doesn¡¯t mean people underestimate the elves. No one thinks they can¡¯t cultivate good grains. Most people just think that Elves don¡¯t bother to participate. No one expected that these proud elves would silently appear in the Grain Competition and instantly present a cultivar with a yield as high as one thousand two hundred and twenty jin per mu. In the previous Grain Competition, the highest yield record was over a thousand jin per mu, set by Master Dobinki. The elves have raised this record by more than two hundred Jin. If Master Dobinki doesn¡¯t have a crop with a higher yield, it implies that the crown of the Grain Competition for the next two years will be on the heads of the elves. No one knew the order of the presentation or who all participated, hence the situation suddenly became critical. Has Dobinki not shown up because he¡¯s not participating in this year¡¯s Grain Competition? Or is it because his crop yield is higher than the elves, and it¡¯s not his turn to participate yet? The answer was quickly revealed. After the elves finished their demonstration, Thunder announced, ¡°Next up, we have Master Dobinki¡¯s team growing Dobinki¡¯s High-Yield Rice with a yield of one thousand and four hundred jin per mu!¡± The venue erupted into a gasp and cheer. The gasp was for the astounding one thousand four hundred jin figure. In just two short years, Master Dobinki had managed to increase the yield of the rice he cultivated by almost four hundred jin, which is a two-thirds increase. Dobinki truly deserves to be the champion of the Grain Competition and the first person in history to break the yield of one thousand jin per mu. The cheers, of course, were of pride in humans defeating the elves. As soon as the elves made a move, they broke the record by two hundred jin. But so what? Humans created a new record. Everyone was excitedly watching the simtion, afraid of missing any exciting moments. However, in the Southern Porcupine People¡¯s team, the young farmer who wanted to buy shoes suddenly thought of something. He quietly said to the vige head, ¡°Mr. Vige Head, the person who bought our grain hasn¡¯t appeared yet. Could they still be in line?¡± Upon hearing this, the vige chief shook his head immediately, ¡°That¡¯s impossible! If they are still in line, it means their grain produces more than Master Dobinki¡¯s. At least over one thousand four hundred jin per mu. How is that possible? Although I¡¯m grateful that he was willing to pay a high price for our grain, surpassing Master Dobinki¡¯s yield is unlikely.¡± Not far away, in the VIP region, Dobinki and his students wiped their cold sweat. Fortunately, they had taken some extra measures, otherwise, they were sure to lose this time. Even if they didn¡¯t lose to the person who set the record with the academy¡¯s simted magic formation, they would still lose to these elves that suddenly sprang up out of nowhere. What were these elves doing jumping into this fray? Dobinki casts his gaze towards the box nearby as he was thinking. An exquisite elven woman was leaning against the railing, staring nkly at the contestant area. Contestants can be arranged in the contestant area, but if they have money, they can also buy their box and sit in the VIP area. Both Dobinki and the elves paid for their own seats. Dobinki spected, ¡°Could it be that she can¡¯t stand the loss and is now looking for the person that defeated her?¡± ¡°She might think I¡¯m in the contestant area and keeps looking there. Should I go and introduce myself? Tell her that it was me who defeated the elves and then go into a deep discussion about breeding techniques in private? However, I heard elves are quite pure and won¡¯t casually discuss ¡®breeding¡¯ with others.¡± As Dobinki was lost in his thoughts, Thunder¡¯s voice rang out again, ¡°Next, let us wee Salted Fish Team! They have cultivated¡­¡± Upon hearing this, Dobinki¡¯s mind blew up, ¡°I¡¯m not thest team?¡± PS: It¡¯s thest day of the year; here¡¯s an early update. Wishing everyone a Happy New Year ahead, may all your bad luck disappear and good lucke your way next year. Chapter 653 - 361 I object! Requesting a Duel!_1 Chapter 653: Chapter 361 I object! Requesting a Duel!_1 Not only did Dobinki fail to foresee this, but many spectators present were also caught off guard. After hours ofpetition, some people couldn¡¯t hold it any longer, thinking it was all over. They had left their seats, trying to grab the best viewing spots. Thunder¡¯s announcement left them with a tough choice. Should they hold it in and keep watching or keep watching while holding it in their pants? The option to go and finish up beforeing back to watch was rarely contemted, because the toilets were too far away. By the time they came back, the contest would definitely be over. The Crops Contest always saved the most exciting part forst. Missing this spectacr moment because of a toilet break? Having hustled anxiously for this thrilling moment, would they really miss it in the toilet? Experienced spectators had nned ahead with bottles; inexperienced ones were facing a tough decision. Thunder didn¡¯t care about all these issues. He continued broadcasting: ¡°The Salted Fish Team nted Saline Demon Rice, a remarkable strain. It shares a deep connection with our Crops Contest. It originated from the Magic Rice cultivated by the Spring Breeze Druid!¡± Boom! The whole venue was hit by a wave of noise. The surprise was so sudden that it created an explosive effect. Spring Breeze Druid, the Crops Contest was named after him, but there had not been any news about him for many years. Especially two years ago, when the crop yield record held by the Spring Breeze Druid was broken, smashing the thousand-jin barrier too, people missed him even more. Everyone believed that if the Spring Breeze Druid participated in the contest, he would certainly break the thousand-jin barrier. Perhaps he was just disappointed by theck ofpetition in the Crops Contest, and that¡¯s why he chose not to participate. Now that the Spring Breeze Druid¡¯s record has been broken, everyone was hoping that he could return this year with a higher-yielding crop. However, it was not the Spring Breeze Druid who showed up, but a never-heard-before team, the Salted Fish Team. And the Saline Demon Rice they brought was actually descended from the Spring Breeze Druid? Outsiders enjoy the spectacle, while insiders seek the truth. The name ¡®Saline Demon Rice¡¯ clearly indicated its many secrets. What does Saline mean? Luckily, Thunder didn¡¯t keep the audience waiting for long. He promptly exined, ¡°As the name Saline Demon Rice suggests, it can adapt to saline environments. It can be cultivated in saline-alkalind or in saline wends. Its appearance holds epoch-making significance. Starting from today, salt-alkalind will no longer be cursednd.¡± ¡°Wow!¡± ¡°All seaside wends, ind saltkes, inds, and other ces can introduce Saline Demon Rice. ording to iplete statistics, the worldwide saline-alkali environment unsuitable for cultivation upies one-fifth of the total arablend area. If Saline Demon Rice is promoted, the world will gain an extra one-fifth of arablend overnight, which could feed hundreds of millions more people.¡± ¡°Wow!¡± ¡°This is a groundbreaking rice strain, one that can make the Crops Contest change its rules, one that can establish a brand new agricultural system. However¡­¡±Thunder paused at this point. Was he deliberately trying to keep everyone in suspense? The audience immediately broke into uproar. Seeing that he had everyone¡¯s attention, Thunder continued: ¡°But, for the sake of fairness, we won¡¯t change the rules of this year¡¯s Crops Contest. We¡¯ll continue to determine the champion by yield per acre.¡± All the contestants on the stand and in the box, including Dobinki, had a change of expression. The rules of this year¡¯s Crops Contest remained unchanged, yet the Salted Fish Team was still left forst. Could it be that they had a yield higher than his 1,400 jins? Dobinki no longer had the mood to pay attention to that beautiful elfdy. He didn¡¯t notice that she no longer leaned on the railing. Instead, she had flipped over, transformed into an owl, and took flight towards the contestant area. Ange noticed her before she could get close. After a nce, he realized he knew her and decided not to bother her. On seeing this, the owl quicklynded and using small steps, snuck over to Aestolia, climbing onto her shoulder. Aestolia said: ¡°Once they said Elf Team I knew it was you, did youe by yourself?¡± The owl quietly replied, ¡°The Demon Bow Siblings apanied me. It¡¯s too incredible. I brought out the Elf Rice, but didn¡¯t expect that I wouldn¡¯t even make it into the top two.¡± ¡°If a team could enter multiple types of crops, you might not even make the top five,¡± Aestolia added insult to injury. The owl¡¯s beak hung open, unable to close for a long time. Did Aestolia just imply that she¡¯s seen at least five kinds of crops that yield over 1,020 pounds per acre?@@novelbin@@ For a druid, it was a devastating blow to learn there were five kinds of bountiful crops they had never grown before. ¡°Why don¡¯t you change back? Isn¡¯t it ufortable in your owl form?¡± Noting that Kael¡¯danil showed no intention of transforming back, Aestolia asked with confusion. Kael¡¯danil leaned in closer, whispering, ¡°I¡¯m afraid I¡¯ll be shooed away.¡± Considering past disagreements, Kael¡¯danil was hesitant to freely roam around Ange and the others, fearing he might remind them of the previous incidents. ¡°No need to be afraid. Ange is not that petty. As long as you don¡¯t torch his fields and crops, he usually won¡¯t bother with you,¡± Aestolia reassured quietly. Kael¡¯danil¡¯s beak dropped open again. Had Aestolia, renowned for her arrogance, just referred to Ange as ¡®Sir¡¯? And done so with such closeness? ¡°Change already, your feathers are tickling me,¡± Aestolia pressured, with no attention to Kael¡¯danil¡¯s surprise. ¡°Oh.¡± Sliding down off Aestolia¡¯s shoulder, Kael¡¯danil transformed back into a curvaceous elf beauty by the time she hit the ground. Lisa, in the front seat, turned around to greet, ¡°Kael¡¯danil, long time no see.¡± ¡°Oh, Lisa, it has been a while, you¡¯ve be more beautiful,¡± eximed Kael¡¯danil surprisingly. With that, Lisa waspletely ttered. Halfughing and half-giggling, her hair seemed to split open, ¡°No way, you¡¯ve be more beautiful too, must be the brightening lotion. Let me tell you about this brightening cream¡­¡± Before long, Kael¡¯danil was sitting with Lisa, whispering about god knows what. Now it was Aestolia¡¯s turn to leave her mouth hanging open. Was Kael¡¯danil so adept at socializing? In all this time, Lisa had never been so friendly with her. The images on the Simted Magic Formation had reached their end, but Thunder¡¯s voice suddenly saddened, ¡°Saline Demon Rice was a lifelong dream of Spring Breeze Druid Loui. To fulfil this dream, he traversed mountains and rivers, measured every inch of thend with his feet, tried to find suitable hybrid nts. Unfortunately, he was unable to fulfil this aspiration, and he passed away on the path to tracking demon rice.¡± ¡°What? Spring Breeze Druid passed away?¡± ¡°No way? My God, how did this happen?¡± ¡°Impossible, it¡¯s fake, it¡¯s fake.¡± The ce suddenly went into an uproar, everyone was shocked by the news and were having a hard time epting it. ¡°Today, the Salted Fish Team brings us a new cross-bred Saline Demon Rice, mothered by Demon Rice. It not only fulfills the lifelong aspiration of Spring Breeze Druid but also breaks the record for crop yield. Please observe this bar graph,¡± said Thunder. As he spoke, the simted data wasplete, and a new bar towered over the others in the Magic Formation. On top of this bar was an eye-catching number: 1,512 pounds per acre. ¡°A new high-yielding crop has appeared. It¡¯s the Saline Demon Rice brought to us by the Salted Fish Team. Now, I announce that the winner of this year¡¯s Crop Contest is the Salted Fish Team!¡± With Thunder¡¯s roar, an object releasing a constant electrical radiance suddenly erupted into the field, emitting an incredibly dazzling light effect. ¡°I object!¡± A louder voice echoed through the entire field, overshadowing even the dazzling light show, ¡°I challenge the result. I, Dobinki, propose a simted duel!¡± Kvada! Kvada! A simted duel? A duel that hasn¡¯t taken ce in years? My God, how exciting! How dramatic! To witness a legendary simted duel? The whole venue broke into mor once again. The audience, who had held their excitement for a long time, faced another difficult choice¡ªto hold it in and keep watching or let it loose in their pockets as they continued watching? PS: Hey, it¡¯s sunrise. The sun¡¯s sure been cking off. Chapter 654 - 362: The Little Sapling Hasnt Even Sprouted, How Dare You Accuse Me of Cheating?_1 Chapter 654: Chapter 362: The Little Sapling Hasn¡¯t Even Sprouted, How Dare You use Me of Cheating?_1 I cheated to achieve this yield, and youe up with an unprecedented new variety that can produce even more than me? No way, Dobinki absolutely doesn¡¯t believe it, he demands a simtion duel, to unveil the opponent¡¯s true face on the spot. Admittedly, this is a risky move, because his yield is also achieved by cheating, with the real yield at about 1,200 kilograms, about the same as that of the Elf Seedlings Team. If he doesn¡¯t handle it properly, the yield from the simted duel may even be lower. At that time, he may be overtaken by the elves, but Dobinki would rather give the championship to the elves. He can¡¯t let the Salted Fish Team win, he can¡¯t let Spring Breeze win. After spending so many years of hard work, he managed to suppress Spring Wind, and now he¡¯s sending a team of students to trample on him? Dobinki has obviously considered the Salted Fish Team to be the students of Spring Breeze Druid. Combined with the conflicts that urred in the Land of Fallen, he would rather take the risk and step on these people. Yet to the audience, this move was as unexpected and exciting as finding a gemstone in the rough. Simtion duels are rare events that happen once in several decades. This method of simtion which requires over half a month of growth data is hard to cheat. Even if someone cheats, it¡¯s easy to verify. If someone buys the grain seed for the next nting season, but can¡¯t achieve the yield, or if it¡¯s inconsistent with the growth data, wouldn¡¯t that expose them? So even if Dobinki cheats, he keeps the margin within a reasonable range. If the yield of a 500-kilogram grain seed is increased by 200 kilograms, that¡¯s cheating. If the yield of a 1,200-kilogram grain seed is increased by 200 kilograms, that¡¯s called a reasonable fluctuation. Surely, you can¡¯t expect the new grain you nt to yield as much as what I¡¯ve cultivated, can you? In this case, very few people would question someone else¡¯s yield. Thest time something like this happened was about thirty years ago, when a youngd challenged Spring Breeze Druid and was proven wrong in a simtion duel. His reputation was damaged and he ended up disappearing. So, unless one ispletely certain, challenging this way entails great risk. But the audience doesn¡¯t care about any of that¡ªthere¡¯s only one thought in their minds: this is going to be a great show! ¡°The simtion duel will start in an hour. All the spectators please leave the venue in an orderly fashion and take care of your personal needs. We¡¯ll see you again in an hour. Please leave in an orderly fashion and don¡¯t push each other. You, the bastard on the left stand, if you keep pushing me, I will throw you out!¡± Thunder¡¯s words were music to the ears of the stranded spectators who instantly started to rush out. Thunder worked hard to control the venue, floating around the perimeter to stop those who were rushing, trying his best to maintain order. The other wizards were also ready, preventing any incidence of stamping. This is why no intermission is scheduled. In such a time, any mass need to use the restroom during arge gathering could cause a major trouble, often causing chaos because of theck of facilities. Some may say, why not follow the directions to find the facilities? The problem is, in this world, the illiteracy rate is as high as 95 percent. Out of a hundred people, ny-five are illiterate. So, both entrance and exit need someone to guide and maintain order, otherwise it¡¯s very easy to cause an ident. In this era, anyrge-scale celebration is a major test of a group¡¯s organizational ability. In this regard, the Church of Light and the Harvest Goddess are both very well-organized; at least the Harvest Festival has been held for so many years without any major incidents. While everyone is taking a bathroom break, the venue begins to be set up for the duel. The so-called simtion duel is actually just arger version of the Simted Magic Formation that Ange had yed with at college. The arena setup also needs to highlight the dueling opponents, thus a suspended tform is provided. The opponents can¡¯t be too far away, they need to see each other¡¯s expressions clearly, which enhances thepetitive and dramatic nature of the duel. During the duel, certain props and skills can be used. For example, ¡®sudden temperature drop¡¯ to test the crops¡¯ frost resistance, ¡®high winds¡¯ to test their lodging resistance, ¡®time halt¡¯ to give ¡®time-tight¡¯ teams more time to discuss strategies. Of course, these are all aimed at increasing the fun, testing various crop properties and resistances, as well as the operator¡¯s ability to respond. Otherwise, what¡¯s interesting about just farming? However, in such a setting, items and skills are all forbidden, only time is paused. As time passed by minute by minute, an hour soon arrived, the audience returned to their seats, and the yers from both sides stepped onto the stage. On Dobinki¡¯s side, there were him and five students. On Ange¡¯s side, it was just Ange alone. Even Little Angel and Little Zombie were absent because agriculture is usually done as a group task. For instance, Dobinki, who was responsible for leading the direction, delegated many tasks, like pest-weeding, sunlight exposure, fertilizing and alike to the students as they are more familiar with these details than him. The same goes for Ange, he also let Little Angel and Little Zombie do tasks likend preparation and fertilization. Only because these two little fellows could not cope with the Simted Magic Formation, and their presence might obstruct the process, they might even suddenly use a heavy move on Dobinki. In order to avoid Little Angel assassinating opponents on the spot, everyone unanimously decided not to take him onboard. If even Little Angel was not taken, others certainly had no necessity to step into the field. Kael¡¯danil was actually eager to get up there, mainly hoping to observe Ange¡¯s operation up close. Unfortunately, she was part of the Elf Seedlings Team. If she went up, it would be a two-against-onepetition. After Ange stepped onto the stage, he didn¡¯t even bother to look at his opponent, he just started setting things up proficiently. Those who were familiar with him knew that this was Ange¡¯s character. He had a field to farm, he wouldn¡¯t care even if the Gods of Light appeared before him. However, those who were unfamiliar with him felt overlooked, like Dobinki and his students on the opposite tform. The Bear Student grumbled, ¡°Teacher, look at him. He¡¯s so arrogant. I wonder how Spring Breeze teaches their students, no manners at all. At least you are a veteran in this industry.¡± Dobinki¡¯s face was ashen, but under all this scrutiny, he couldn¡¯t blow up like he wanted to. He had to pretend to be generous and said, ¡°Maybe he just looks young, perhaps even older than we are, so being a bit slow is normal.¡± His intention was to mock the other party for their slow response, but he didn¡¯t realize that the opponent might really be older than him. The rest of the students also grumbled, and thepetition thus started amid these grumbles. However, they soon ran out of things to grumble about.@@novelbin@@ Ange had swapped several Simted Magic Formations at Auburnli¡¯s ce. Some of them were kept in the Resting Camp. When Ange was idle, he would reach in and fiddle with them. No one else had such convenient conditions, so no one, not even the inventors themselves, were as proficient as Ange at manipting the formation. Besides, Ange¡¯s nting technique was based on thousands of years of experience, and the crop seeds were cultivated by him personally. He knew every stage of their growth. Furthermore, the climate of the Fallen Dragon Lake limited the yield of Saline Demon Rice. The further south the rice is grown, the higher the yield. The temperature at Fallen Dragon Lake was a bit low. But the lower temperature had its own advantages, leading to a better taste. However, the grains convention won¡¯t determine victory by the taste, so Ange simply increased the temperature to the highest yield temperature he had simted before. Under hundreds of times eleration, the Saline Demon Rice sprouted, grew, flowered, bore fruits and matured visibly. Before the match even ended, everyone could clearly see the difference in the development of crops between the two sides. Dobinki¡¯s team gradually lost their spirit to even speak. Simtion ended, yield calcted, and a bar chart listed. The bar representing Ange¡¯s side was noticeably higher than that of Dobinki¡¯s side. This result left the organizer stunned as well. The Thunder and Academy officials began verification. After confirming that there was no error, the result was announced: ¡°Simtion contest. Winner, Salted Fish Team, yield per acre¡­.¡± When it came to this point, even the Thunder officials couldn¡¯t help but pause: ¡°One thousand seven hundred and fifty catties!¡± ¡°Loser, Master Dobinki¡¯s team, yield per acre, one thousand one hundred and seventy catties.¡± Seeing this result, Dobinki dazedly said, ¡°Impossible, impossible. He cheated, he cheated!¡± This unwilling statement was overheard by Negris, who snorted in disdain, ¡°Cheating? Ha, the Little Sapling hasn¡¯t even sprouted yet. If he did cheat, the Little Sapling could triple this yield. Instead, Dobinki¡¯s yield dropped so much, could it be that he cheated?¡± Thinking of this, the Bronze Dragon fluttered over to Auburnli and started whispering in her ear. Chapter 655 - 363: Should We Absorb the Goblin Trade Guild?_1 Chapter 655: Chapter 363: Should We Absorb the Goblin Trade Guild?_1 The top three grains have entered the peer review stage. In the next nting season, a reviewmittee will be formed by peers to verify the nting data of the grains. Dobinki knew he was screwed. Without a doubt, his crops would be the focus of attention, and the peer review was likely aimed at him. Ange¡¯s data could be replicated, even resulting in increased output. The whole process was done in a simted magic formation. The peers could just re-run the course. As for his nting data, it couldn¡¯t be reproduced and the yields decreased. If everybody¡¯s yield decreased, and Ange¡¯s decreased more than his, then that was fine. It would be justified as an eptable fluctuation. But now the problem was that only his yield decreased while Ange¡¯s increased. As the one who initiated the simtion contest, he would definitely have to face more stringent review. It was like he had lifted a stone only to drop it on his own foot. Although the result of the peer review wouldn¡¯t be out until the next nting season, Dobinki knew he was done for. Peer reviews are troublesome and costly, and wouldn¡¯t be held unless there was contention over the data. After all, the ultimate goal of the Grain Competition is to find high-yield grains, not to rank them. Does the second ce not also have a high yield just because the first ce has a higher yield? Perhaps the grains in the following ranks, because they didn¡¯t pursue extreme yields, exhibit more excellent performance in other traits and have more potential for promotion ¨C such as drought resistance, flood resistance, cold resistance, acid-base resistance, bear-child resistance, etc. In Ange¡¯s eyes at least, the marsh rice that can adapt to the swamp environment is more valuable than Dobinki¡¯s high-yield rice. In the end, the Grain Competition is to find ¡®more¡¯ high-yield grains, not the ¡®highest yield¡¯ grains. So, as long as the rankingpetitors do not object, peer review will not be held. Well, now that someone was questioning the data, once the peer review results came out next year, Dobinki would be finished. But even now, his results weren¡¯t much to brag about. The final rankings, based on the virtual contest, are as follows: ¡°Champion, Salted Fish Team, with a yield of 1,750 catties per acre. Runner-up, Elf Seedlings Team, 1,220 catties. Third ce, Master Dobinki¡¯s Team, 1,170 catties.¡± ¡°Thank you, masters, for bringing us a wonderful performance and high-yield grains. The world is more brilliant with you.¡± ¡°The XX Grain Competition has now sessfully ended. Please exit the venue in an orderly manner. Do not push women and children. Keep the order. The damn bastard in the right stand, if you push me again, I will throw you out.¡± Ange received his championship prize: A badge with built-in space, a collection of specimens of grains from all previouspetitions, and a magic crystal card from the Magician¡¯s Guild worth a thousand magic crystals.@@novelbin@@ The badge is quite simple, an emblem consisting of a ¡®grain¡¯ and a ¡®crown¡¯ together, symbolizing the rank of the Grain Competition Champion. It is of greatmemorative value. The built-in space, however, is a bit redundant. The space of any one of Ange¡¯s space essories isrger than the built-in one. The Magician¡¯s Guild¡¯s magic crystal card is a kind of prepaid anonymous card. Anyone who holds the card can exchange for the same amount of magic crystals at any Magician¡¯s Guild in any city. A thousand for the champion, five hundred for the runner-up, three hundred for the third, and a hundred for the rest. Ange didn¡¯t think much of these thousand or so magic crystals. But for the Southern Porcupine People¡¯s participating teams, it¡¯s quite a sum of money. They were so happy that they went to buy another pair of shoes. Ange didn¡¯t care for the badge or the magic crystal card. Only the grain collection got his favor. These bound grain specimens, with only three to five seeds each, were meant formemoration, not for value. But, collecting the full set is quite hard. What¡¯s more, the grain specimens are all alive and can be sown. So Ange ripped apart the specimen collection right away and found a patch ofnd in his space to sow them separately. After a quick death spell, Ange ended up with arge batch of high-yield grains. These are the overt rewards, but the invisible benefits came knocking at the door very soon- business cooperation. ¡°Vice Chairman Stenson of the Goblin Business Association hase to visit.¡± When they returned to the Death Star Tower, someone had arrived early and handed their business card to the undead maid, hoping to visit Ange and his group. ¡°Goblin Business Association? They probably want to discuss business cooperation. Great, let me meet them.¡± The Bronze Dragon rubbed his hands together. Ange shook his head, closed his eyes for a moment, took out the Staff of Heaven to open a teleportation door, and not long after, a dumbfounded Silver Coin walked out from the light gate. ¡°Wow, that¡¯s amazing. I stepped through one light gate to heaven, and then stepped back through and ended up here. How does it work?¡± Silver Coin said in amazement. Negris said listlessly, ¡°Just a transfer. There¡¯s a goblin from the Goblin Business Association here to discuss cooperation. You go take care of it.¡± Negris felt dejected. Ange would rather summon Silver Coin from another ne of existence than let him take the lead. His own skills in business matters had beenpletely overlooked. Kvada. ¡°Oh, the Goblin Business Association? What kind of cooperation?¡± Silver Coin¡¯s eyes lit up as he rubbed his hands together and asked. Negris exined the situation and Silver Coin quickly got to the point: ¡°Our goal is to promote new grains? Then profit is not the first consideration, the scale is. So we can¡¯t cooperate with the Goblin Business Association. Those damn goblins only see gold coins in their eyes.¡± Silver Coin was filled with indignation,pletely forgetting he himself was a goblin. ¡°We can¡¯t only cooperate with them. We need to bring in more partners. Let me think, where is the profit margin we can offer to partners? Is there any policy support?¡± ¡°Yes, hasn¡¯t Lord Anthony already controlled two dioceses? That¡¯s great, we have more chips to trade. We can give preferential policies and targeted subsidies, not cooperating, notplying, we can even check their taxes.¡± Silver Coin mumbled a series of thoughts, making Negris sweat in apprehension. Kvada, goblins were indeed more professional at handling these matters. ¡°Okay, I know what to do. Now I¡¯m going to meet the people from the Goblin Business Association. What¡¯s the name of the person from the Goblin Business Association? Let me see if I know him.¡± Silver Coin excitedly asked. ¡°Stenson? Ho ho, an old acquaintance. He¡¯s in the Goblin Guild? That¡¯s great, I¡¯ll have no qualms about tricking him.¡± Silver Coin rubbed his hands so hard they were almost worn thin. It was clear how much he was choked up in the Land of Fallen, his talent for schemesying dormant. Many people have forgotten about this Stenson, but Silver Coin did not. When he came back with the Holy Essence Liquid and began reorganizing his trading party, Stenson had quit the trade guild using his elf-rted resources as leverage. What a surprise, Silver Coin monopolized the trade with the elves by leveraging the World Tree Sapling, cutting off Stenson¡¯s business opportunities. Who would have thought he actually joined the Goblin Business Association? The so-called Vice Chairman of the Goblin Business Association was just a golden title. The Goblin Business Association had hundreds of vice-chairmen, and as long as you could pull together an independent trading party, you could be a vice-chairman. For such a loosely structured business alliance, the real value lies in the supply, market, pricing power, information, etc. Silver Coin chatted with Stenson for two hours. When he left, Stenson looked as if he had lost a family member, almost bursting into tears: ¡°Damn goblin, only sees gold coins in his eyes.¡± Silver Coin came back with a grin, like a fox that had just stolen a chicken. ¡°What results did you achieve with the negotiations? Why are you smiling so happily?¡± Negris asked grumpily. Silver Coin hurriedly said: ¡°No, no. I just thought of something else. Thest time Lord Anthony said that the exclusive right to distribute food would be handed over to me. I was thinking, should I merge with the Goblin Business Association?¡± PS: I¡¯m still writing, not sure if I can finish it yet Chapter 656 - 364: Can the God of Fraudsters Give a Discount?_1 Chapter 656: Chapter 364: Can the God of Fraudsters Give a Discount?_1 Silver coin remained the same. He was still that reckless individual who would dare to plot to win over saints with Holy Essence Liquid and hoodwink elves with a sprout from the World Tree, and under the protection of Ange, he would dare to provoke the Great Sage and Harvey into farming. The Goblin Trade Guild is amercial organization with thousands of years of history. Although it calls itself the Goblin Trade Guild, it epasses all the business talents in the world. Anyone, either a human, an elf or a Minotaur, could join the Goblin Trade guild, except the dwarves. The three major guilds of this world ¡ª the Magician¡¯s Guild, the Mercenary Guild, and the Goblin Trade Guild¡ª transcend the boundaries of state, race, ethnicity, and realm. And now, Silver coin wanted to buy it? Negris felt he was bluffing. ¡°No, no, it¡¯s just business, if someone gives the money, why wouldn¡¯t they sell? If they refuse, it probably means the money isn¡¯t enough, so I won¡¯t give them money. Instead, I¡¯ll offer exclusive grain dealing rights, beauty coupons, resurrection coupons, special product monopoly and much more. Surely there¡¯s something that will meet their price.¡± ¡°There are hundreds of trade convoys under Goblin Trade Guild, if I can buy half of them, the Goblin Trade Guild will be doomed. Then the whole business system will no longer recognize the privileges of the Goblin Trade Guild. Especially for massmodities like grains and cloth, the remaining convoys would start to break away at an elerated pace.¡± ¡°When that happens, the Goblin Trade Guild will send people to kill me or destroy my organizational structure, nipping me in the bud. By then, I will find Lord Anthony, pay him taxes, and ask him to protect me.¡± ¡°It wouldn¡¯t take a few years for the Goblin Trade Guild to disband, and I will buy the rest of it. Then I¡¯ll rece the Goblin Trade Guild with the Silver Light Mercantile Company. Oh, by the way, that¡¯s how I bought the Silver Light Mercantile Company in the first ce.¡± Back then, Silver coin was one of the vice-presidents of the Silver Light Mercantile Company. When he got the Holy Essence Liquid, he changed his business model and broke off from the Silver light Mercantile Company, renaming it the Silver Chamber of Commerce. But after he got the exclusive distributorship from the elves, he turned around and bought back the Silver Light Mercantile Company. Negris stared in astonishment and muttered to himself, ¡°You cunning businessman¡­¡± As Negris voiced these words, a glimmer of sparks burst in front of Silver coin. Ange, who had been busy farming, couldn¡¯t help but raise his head and look at the spark. Negris, too, stared nkly at that spark, while Silver coin looked at it in surprise, ¡°What is this?¡± ¡°Fa¡­ faith fire, the Fire of Mass Faith,¡± Negris stuttered, ¡°Did¡­did I ignite it?¡± It seemed that Silver coin had ignited the fire of faith due to a single ¡®you cunning businessman¡¯ from him. What kind of absurd plot is this? Was that the craziest thing? When Ange first ignited the Fire of Faith for his nting god statue, it was also ignited by him. But the thing is that Ange itself was imbued with powerful divine power, making igniting the divine fire a natural progression. What was Silver coin? Just a Goblin swindler, why could he ignite the Fire of Faith? The even more bbergasted one was Silver coin. Just like Negris said, it was just a Goblin merchant. There¡¯s no connection between him and those gods, demons, faith, divine statues, etc. He¡¯d never even cultivated any followers. Why then would he suddenly ignite the Fire of Faith? What kind of Fire of Faith was it? A Fire of Faith of the God of Fraudsters? If it was the God of Fraudsters, Silver Coin came up with a question immediately: ¡°Can I have discounts when I buy something?¡± Negris was so angry that he wished he could hold Silver coin down and give him a beating.@@novelbin@@ Ange walked over and poked the Fire of Faith, causing it to re up a bit more. Having absorbed the Fire of Faith, and found out that buying goods couldn¡¯t be discounted, Silver Coin lost interest, bid goodbye to Ange and vanished in a puff of smoke. He¡¯s been in Land of the Fallen for a long time andmanding from a distance, there¡¯s so many issues that needed settling already. Negris sighed, ¡°How did this happen? Why could Silver coin ignite the Fire of Faith? Is igniting the Fire of Faith that easy?¡± Durken didn¡¯t really understand this process, but he was good at analyzing problems so he spected, ¡°You have ignited two Fires of Faith so far, could it be because of you? Is your mouth extra potent? Could it be that you aren¡¯t the mouth of misfortune, but rather the mouth of fortune?¡± While saying that, Durken wrapped his arm around Negris¡¯s neck, ¡°Say something to me too, let¡¯s test it out.¡± Negris red at him irritably, ¡°You damn Kobold.¡± Durken very cooperatively barked, ¡°Woof.¡± Luther squeezed past Durken and said, massaging his hands, ¡°Lord of Knowledge, spark some fire for me, I want to be the number one Sword Saint in the world.¡± ¡°Alright, Beet Swordsman,¡± Negris replied. ¡°No, no, no, the world¡¯s number one Sword Saint,¡± Luther corrected. ¡°Alright, the world¡¯s number one Beet Swordsman,¡± Negris replied. ¡°Dammit, the God of Knowledge has gone deaf, can¡¯t even hear what I¡¯m saying clearly,¡± Luther left dejectedly. Lightning poked his head over, ¡°Lord Nage, call me Son of Thunder, otherwise I¡¯lle to your door tonight and curse you.¡± Negris shot him a nce, then roared. A little squirrel scampered over like lightning, clutching a elf bean in its hands. As the squirrel scampered over, Lightning had already vanished like a bolt of lightning. Lisa walked over with a smiling expression. He could handle Luther, but not Lisa. Negris was forced into service, calling everyone by their titles. Those who didn¡¯t have titles yet were given new ones. Regrettably, he couldn¡¯t ignite another Fire of Faith like with the silver coin. ¡­ ¡°Vige chief, vige chief, how much further do we have to go? My shoes are about to burn, they are new,¡± a somewhat younger man, dressed like an old farmer, asked weakly as they trudged through the scorching desert. The intense sunlight was sapping his strength to speak, he could only walk on and mourn his new shoes. ¡°I asked the Bronze Dragon, it said to continue southeast and we would get to the Southern Swamp,¡± the vige chief exined with some annoyance. ¡°Did¡­ did the Bronze Dragon say how long it would take?¡± The young farmer asked. ¡°Err, it didn¡¯t say, but however far, a few days of walking will get us there. We took a big roundabout route to get here by ship, but now we¡¯re going in a straight line, so it must be faster than the ship,¡± the vige chief confidently stated. ¡°Why do I feel something is off? Vige chief, have you ever traveled far? Left the swamps? Seen a desert?¡± Another member of the group interjected. ¡°No¡­ no I haven¡¯t, but what does that have to do with anything? The Bronze Dragon Lord said keep going straight, it said ¡®if you have the guts, keep walking, you¡¯ll definitely get there¡¯,¡± the vige chief said with ack of conviction. The young farmer said, ¡°I think you misunderstood its meaning. What it actually meant was ¡®if you can get there, you¡¯re definitely gutsy¡¯. Vige chief, should we turn back and take the ship instead?¡± ¡°More than ten demon crystals for a ship ticket, are you out of your mind? Keep walking, stop babbling.¡± ¡°But Lord Steris did reimburse us for the ship tickets, right?¡± ¡°Reimburse yes, but isn¡¯t it still money if we save it? The savings can be used for building a house or getting married when we return.¡± While they were bickering, a clip-clop of horse hooves sounded from behind. They turned to see a robust, jet-ck ¡®horse¡¯, carrying four figures galloping towards them, the Bronze Dragon who had persuaded them to walk home among them. A light mist sprayed from the ck ¡®horse¡¯, seeping into the sand and visibly causing the grains to disperse. They passed each other, the four figures on the ¡®horse¡¯ tilted their heads, looking perplexedly at the weary travelers. Thest one, the Bronze Dragon, wore a stunned expression, ¡°Are you guys out of your minds?¡± Chapter 657 - 365: The Taste of Emptiness_1 Chapter 657: Chapter 365: The Taste of Emptiness_1 Stingy, naive farmers almost get tricked to death by a mischievous Bronze Dragon. Thankfully they bumped into each other or else, by the time they finished the thousand-kilometer desert journey, they would have ended up as skeletons. ¡°I said, you guys are too bold, aren¡¯t you? Daring to traverse a desert with no one for thousands of miles? I remember it seems you don¡¯t have a storage bag. Where¡¯s your supplies? Don¡¯t tell me these are the ones you were carrying?¡± the Bronze Dragon apprehensively asked. The Southern Hedgehog Team, sitting anxiously on the sled, nodded in unison. ¡°Pff, then how do you get food? What about drinking water?¡± Negris asked. The Southern Hedgehog team responded by gesturing the druid gestures, as druids can condense moisture from the air, however given their meager magic power, the amount of water they would produce would likely not even be enough to brush their teeth. ¡°So, do you know how long it will take for you to cross this desert with your current speed?¡± They collectively shook their heads. When they heard that it would take two months to get out of the desert and half a year to reach the South, the Southern Porcupine People were dumbfounded. The money saved on transportation wouldn¡¯t be enough to cover their food for half a year. Negris said irritably: ¡°Forget it, we¡¯re acquainted now, so consider using the teleportation array when we arrive in the oasis. You can teleport to Drake Ind and take a ship back home.¡± It¡¯s not about being acquainted, he simply realizes he deceived the wrong people and fears these honest people would die on the way. The vige head seemed worried, asking cautiously: ¡°How much will that cost?¡± Negris forced a smile: ¡°It won¡¯t cost anything, the teleportation array is owned by my house, it¡¯s free.¡± Free my ass, the teleportation array charges in both directions. It¡¯s free from the Oasis, but there is a fee at Drake¡¯s end, yet what can he do? He cheated them. ¡°Oh, oh, oh, that¡¯s great.¡± ¡°Wow, Bronze Dragon Lord, your house operates the teleportation array? That¡¯s really rich.¡± ¡°Yeah, yeah, even your horse is so sturdy. It is too wealthy, our swamp-ass horses are like donkeys.¡± Indeed, the ¡®horse¡¯ was excessively robust, carrying Ange and the four others, pulling the cart, and carrying the six Southern Hedgehog Team members with ease. The problem is, it was not a ¡®horse¡¯ but a god. But no one would believe it if he told them, that he is riding ¡®a god¡¯ while pulling a cart¡­ With the speed of the Insect God, they soon reached the oasis which usually would have taken them more than a month to reach on foot. Today¡¯s Hope Oasis, has already be a bustling desert city. With the roads opened, allmercial activities are being conducted through Hope Oasis. Numerous warehouses and shops have been built here, with many outsiders settling in. With the influx of outsiders, the teleportation array inevitably had to be opened to the public. Compared to carriages, the wealthy people preferred the teleportation array. There were already several people queuing up around the teleportation array at this moment. Seeing Ange and his grouping over, they greeted them enthusiastically, regardless of whether they knew them or not. Anyone who had money to afford the teleportation array definitely wouldn¡¯t be a dirt-poor farmer. So when the Southern Hedgehog Team¡¯s farmers approached, a few of the people in line were displeased. Just as they were about to say something, they saw Dragon Speaker Shafya running over. ¡°Lord Nage, why are you here?¡± Shafya greeted warmly. ¡°I¡¯m sending a few friends home,¡± Negris replied. ¡°Oh, then pleasee over here. You guys can go first,¡± Shafya hurriedly said. The Southern Porcupine People, a bunch of honest farmers, were a little embarrassed after hearing about skipping the queue: ¡°Maybe we shouldn¡¯t, we arrivedte. How about¡­ we wait in line for a while?¡± ¡°No need, the teleportation array was built by Lord Nage¡¯s wife and was initially intended for their personal use. But seeing many people needing it, she opened it to the public. No one would object to that, right? Right, no one has any objections, do they?¡± Shafya nced around at the people in the queue. ¡°Not at all, you go ahead, we¡¯re not in a hurry.¡± The crowd hurriedly shook their heads. They might not know Negris, but how could they be unaware of Dragon Speaker Shafya? Even the people who were being attended to warmly by the Dragon Speaker were Embryo Dragons. Could they be the children of the Dragon Speaker¡¯s Dragon Guardian? Negris was not modest, he told Shafya: ¡°Set it to Drake Ind, it¡¯s not far from the Southern Swamp, they can easily get there by boat.¡± ¡°Alright,¡± Shafya responded. She started adjusting the array personally.@@novelbin@@ At this time, the vige head of the Southern Porcupine People cautiously proposed: ¡°Lord Nage, we would still have to take a boat if we go to Drake Ind, how about we directly teleport to South Swamp Town of the swamp?¡± ¡°Pfft, you guys have a teleportation array near your house?¡± Negris almost spat out a mouthful of old blood. The vige head nodded. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you say so earlier!¡± ¡°Um, you didn¡¯t ask¡­¡± The vige head weakly answered. ¡°I saw you were so poor, and I thought that your ce was very remote,¡± Negris said speechlessly. Looking at these guys wanting to save even the transportation cost, Negris had assumed their home was very remote. Who would have thought they had a teleportation array? The vige head made an embarrassedugh: ¡°It¡¯s not in our house, it¡¯s South Swamp Town, about a hundred kilometers away, on the edge of the swamp. Once we get there, we can walk home.¡± Negris sighed inwardly, a hundred kilometers through a swamp, and these farmers, who knew only some water condensing spell, would have to walk that distance home. But what could he do? He stuffed the money into their hands, and they preferred to save it. To them, walking a few hundred kilometers may not even yield a few demon crystals, so wasn¡¯t it better to save the money, work hard, and then buy things for their families? Negris didn¡¯t bother to say anything because it would be useless. He thought to himself, let¡¯s just help them onest time. Chapter 658 - 365 Taste of the Void_2 Chapter 658: Chapter 365 Taste of the Void_2 With that thought, Negris extended his small w and tapped on everyone¡¯s forehead, ¡°This is a basic Druid secret technique, I hope it will be useful to you.¡± Being the God of Knowledge, Negris¡¯ knowledge storage was not just for show. If he can teach Ange Purification, he naturally can teach others Druid secret techniques. However, his knowledge base was outdated and he could only follow the original interpretation, infusing it in. Whether others canprehend it is up to their own insight. The Southern Porcupine People knelt excitedly, ¡°Thank you, sir, you¡¯re being too kind to us, thank you, sir!¡± Negris didn¡¯t realize what he had done. He had nearly tricked them to death in the desert and felt some guilt, so he decided to make amends. The basics of Druid¡¯s Secret techniques are so basic they have no real value, at least from the Bronze Dragon¡¯s perspective. But for these human farmers whose status was early solidified,cked upward mobility, and were born in remote and impoverished ces, this could well be the foundation for their wealth and ss elevation. They themselves also practiced Druid secret techniques, but it was not systematic, fragmented, with little room for growth. But aplete basic secret technique can fill in the missing parts. It¡¯s like going to a regr Druid college for further studies. Once the foundation is solid, there¡¯s much more room for growth. With their devout worship, Negris discovered dozens of Soul mes flowed into his body. Each farmer contributed more than three Soul mes, showing a very strong belief. ¡°Huh, this works? What if I set up a stall at the entrance of the Steris Academy, and those who believe in me receive the blessing. If they don¡¯t understand a certain subject, I¡¯ll just infuse it. Don¡¯t know if that will work. But it sounds tiring, never mind.¡± Negris had a few thoughts in his soul and quickly gave up. Azy god who typically wanted to reap benefits without effort, hoping disciples would juste to his door. He waved off the grateful farmers and activated the Teleportation Array to send them back, but as soon as the array was activated, a teleportation wave came in eagerly, sending something from the other side.@@novelbin@@ About a dozen humans screamed and charged out from the Teleportation Array in fear. ¡°Help! Monsters, help¡­¡± The scream halted suddenly as a spike pierced through the human¡¯s chest. Upon seeing the spike, Negris was shocked, ¡°Is it a real monster? What is that thing? A giant flea?¡± A creature that even the God of Knowledge did not recognize could only be described as a monster. As soon as the Teleportation Array was connected, something was sent impatiently from the other side. This is not rational since you¡¯re not familiar with the situation on the receiving end. What if the Teleportation Array is small, and so many people are sent here, wouldn¡¯t the people on the outer ring be cut in half? Unless they were driven to desperation, no one would rashly teleport this way. So, these people must be desperate. Regardless, the thing that drove them to desperation still followed. A creature about two meters high with two long legs and four limbs on its upper body, much like an erged flea, was teleported over too. It immediately killed one of the unfortunate humans. After killing a human, it ignored the others, bit off the arm of the fallen man, spat out a pile of ck stuff, and started chewing again. Just as it was about to take another bite, a fireball blew up its head, burning the creature to a char. A frantic Little Angel eximed, ¡°Roar!¡± Ange scratched his head helplessly and responded, ¡°Roar.¡± The refugees who teleported over were intercepted by Shafya and others. Negris was inquiring them, ¡°Who are you? What happened? What is that monster?¡± The refugees all spoke at once, ¡°We¡¯re from the South Swamp Town. We don¡¯t know what happened. Loads of monsters suddenly broke out from the swamp, attacking and eating crops, and spitting in the farnd. It¡¯s that ck stuff.¡± The refugees pointed to the ck stuff spat out by the monster earlier. The hedgehog vige chief quickly asked, ¡°Just South Swamp Town? What about Hedgehog Vige? Any monsters?¡± The refugees shook their heads, ¡°I don¡¯t know, but these monsters eat everything. If the South Swamp Town is eaten up, they will probably go deeper into the swamp.¡± The vige chief turned anxious immediately. He turned to Negris and said, ¡°Sir, we need to go back. Could you please teleport us back?¡± Negris said annoyed, ¡°What are you going back for? To deliver food? Just wait, we haven¡¯t figured anything out yet.¡± Afterward, he turned towards Ange and asked, ¡°Does anything look familiar?¡± Ange nodded, walked over to the monster¡¯s corpse, nced at it a few times, and then waved to the ck horse. The ck horse, naturally being Hemel, is not a horse. Walking over, Hemel sniffed around, and shook his head, ¡°I do not recognize it.¡± He said ¡®I do not recognize it¡¯, not ¡®it¡¯s not¡¯, Ange lightly stepped on a footprint. With a better understanding of the undead aura, Ange could now control the range and the frequency of eleration within the aura. As he struck this footprint, it only covered a distance of tens of meters and didn¡¯t affect the onlooking crowd. After not too long, they saw the chunk of ck matter that was spat out slowly started to move, and countless little insects hatched. It turned out, that big chunk was filled with insect eggs. ¡°They¡¯re clearly bugs, how do you not recognize them? Not this annoyance again, I don¡¯t want to have to fight bugs anymore,¡± Negris yelled, pointing at Hemel. Hemel stood there stunned for a moment and then slowly responded, ¡°They¡¯re not mine¡­¡± ¡°They¡¯re not yours? Could they be Mattis¡¯? When did he escape to the Southern Swamp toy eggs?¡± Negris reacted with surprise. Hemel was perturbed for a moment before he spoke, ¡°They¡¯re not his¡­¡± ¡°What do you mean?¡± Negris¡¯s heart uncontrobly sank. Theoretically, all the insects on this ne originate from either Hemel or Mattis, with Mattis himself descending from Hemel. When every bugtamer graduates, they receive an egg. The resulting cultivation, evolution, and mutation, all start from the original egg. It was only when Mattis became the new Insect God that the insects gained a second strain.¡± But this second strain is, in fact, a mutation from the first strain. The connection between them cannot be denied, so how could Hemel not recognize it and im that it¡¯s not Mattis¡¯s? If they aren¡¯t Hemel¡¯s or Mattis¡¯s, then where did these bugse from? Could there possibly be a third Insect God? While Negris contemted this, the newly hatched bugs had begun eating each other, growing rapidly. They quickly metamorphosed from indistinguishable tiny insects to a creature the size of a small dog, which ended up being the sole survivor from its devouring spree. This insect then lunged at the corpse of therge flea creature and began gnawing fervently. ¡°Don¡¯t you notice that while these bugs are evolving, they are focusing more on increasing their size rather than their poption?¡± Negris pointed out. Ange nodded in agreement. Just then, the body of therge flea creature also transformed, hatching a countless number of little insects that began their own cannibalistic metamorphosis. The small flea creature began to consume the grown insects instead of feasting on the corpse. One mouthful brought down one insect after another. As the small flea creature had a head-start, none of the other insects could grow asrge as it, and in the end, all were consumed by it. This small flea creature gradually grew to two meters, just a bit smaller than the flea creature that had died. The exterior was exactly the same, it was like witnessing a rebirth of sorts, apart from losing a bit of its mass, for instance, the head that Ange had sted away. ¡°This rate of nutrient utilisation is frankly unprecedented,¡± Negris mumbled. Upon finishing gnawing on nearby items, the flea creature finally lifted its head, with its gazending on Hemel, who was closest to it. It immediately let out a strange cry and struck with its legs. The flea creature had a pair of strong legs. Its strike was like a cannon shell dashing out, fiercely pouncing¡­ right into Hemel¡¯s mouth¡­ Just when everyone was aghast, afraid that Hemel the handsome ck horse was about to be bitten to death by the flea creature, Hemel suddenly opened his mouth. Starting from his lips, downwards along his neck, his mouth became a massive hole,rger than the leaping flea creature. Inside was a dense set of sharp fangs that bit down onto the flea creature, then audibly crunched on it. The onlooking crowd was startled, their hair stood on end, and they screamed, ¡°Monster!! This handsome ck horse looks more monstrous than the flea creature!!¡± After a few chews, Hemel blinked, saying, ¡°Has a taste of the void.¡± Chapter 659 - 366: Just Lacking a Powerful Mages Soul_1 Chapter 659: Chapter 366: Just Lacking a Powerful Mage¡¯s Soul_1 ¡°What the hell? The taste of the void? The void has a taste? Even if the void has a taste? When did you ever taste it? Have you been to the void?¡± Negris waspletely baffled by Hemel¡¯s words. Hemel sneakily nced at Ange, saw him watching himself, and abruptly grew braver. He scampered to Lightning¡¯s side and licked the hat on its head. The big cat bristled, extending its small paw and swiping violently. The moment it swung out, its small paw swelled into arge one, and with a smack sent Hemel flying. Hemel was thrown back tens of meters, tumbling and digging a trench before he finally came to a halt. After a while, Hemel got up, shuffled back to Negris, and said nonchntly: ¡°The taste of the void.¡± ¡°Ok, Negris understood what the taste of the void meant. The big cat smells like the void? What is the big cat? It is a Dimension Beast. Having its scent, doesn¡¯t that mean those bugs are all dimensional beings? Thinking that Hemel also didn¡¯t recognize it, Negris immediately realized something serious. ¡°These bugs couldn¡¯t havee from the void, could they?¡± Ange tilted his head, turned around, let out a little ¡®meow¡¯, and summoned everyone he knew to gather around him. ¡°What are you doing?¡± Negris grabbed him. Ange pointed to the teleportation array: ¡°Kill bugs.¡± ¡°No, no, no,¡± Negris saw through him instantly, ¡°You wouldn¡¯t be this enthusiastic about killing bugs. Burning fertilizer wouldn¡¯t make you this eager either. You just burned a big pile of fertilizer and haven¡¯t farmed for days. You can¡¯t wait to fly back there, and now you¡¯re going to the Southern Swamp? Why?¡± Ange said: ¡°Kill bugs, they are spitting.¡± Negris immediately realized: ¡°It¡¯s not just spitting, is it? It¡¯s spitting in the fields right? Fine, fine, let¡¯s go, or else you¡¯ll keep thinking about it.¡± Hearing this reason, Negris knew he couldn¡¯t stop Ange from running amok, even though he had no intentions of doing so. Damaging the fields was a mortal sin in Ange¡¯s book, and it was uneptable no matter who did it. The gathered troops teleported over, and as the light shed, they saw something lunging at them. The Little Angel couldn¡¯t hold back any longer, it was time for the Holy Light sh. A beam of light streamed out, and a flea-bug was left with just its four limbs as the rest of it waspletely obliterated. Hemel quickly trotted over, stepping on the limbs and absorbing them into his body, until every trace of the flea-bugpletely disappeared. Coming out of the teleportation array, they were greeted with an apocalyptic scene. Countless flea-bugs were furiously attacking every living creature in sight, whether it was cattle, sheep, dogs, humans or goblins. As long as it was alive, it couldn¡¯t escape from them and were straightaway devoured once knocked down. These flea-bugs possessed strong hind legs and incredible jumping abilities. With a single push, they could leap tens of meters. No matter how fast someone ran, if they were targeted, they would be tackled with a single blow. Countless creatures were scurrying around in panic, shrieking and running around like headless flies, not knowing where to go since bugs were everywhere. Those who reacted quickly tried to flee towards the teleportation array, but whether this decision was wise was hard to tell, because so many people were fleeing there that the area near the teleportation array was already packed with flea-bugs. Only when the people in front were all tackled and the flea-bugs each had a target, did the remaining people manage to rush through. Some people didn¡¯t give up resisting. There was a huge explosion nearby as a giant fireball hit a bug ¨C this was the Art of Explosion. It was challenging to instantly cast the sixth-level Art of Explosion spell. Unless one possesses the strength of an Arcane Mage, it is mostly stored in scrolls or rings and released during emergencies. The explosion just now was one such instance. A female mage in a purple robe tore open a scroll, aimed it at the bug in front of her and activated it, the intense mes instantly engulfing the bug.@@novelbin@@ However, her magic attracted even more attention. Several nearby flea-bugs started to nce at her. They then slowly crouched down, clearly gathering energy to leap. The female mage immediately crushed a ring in her hand. A circle of fire flowed from her body to the ground and began to spread out from her as the center point. It expanded to a meter away before bursting from the ground, forming a circr wall of mes to surround her. ¡°me Shield, Level Six Magic,¡± said Negris. A flea-bug in the distance suddenly leapt forwards, its entire body charging at the me Shield like a fired cannonball. The enormous impact just about broke through the me Shield, but the mes spraying upwards from the ground still managed to propel the bug into the air, charring its entire body ck. Two more bugs leapt forwards and collided with the me Shield, both getting propelled into the air. However, after taking three hits, the me Shield couldn¡¯t hold any longer, shattering silently. The female mage shouted anxiously, ¡°Followers! Followers! Suitors! Come protect me!¡± She then tore the robe off her body. This action scared Negris so much that he quickly covered Little Angel¡¯s eyes. But he soon realized he had misunderstood; underneath the female mage¡¯s robe was not a sculpted body but rather a conservative bodysuit. Looking at the fabric, it was actually silk. Could it be..? Little pockets were sewn underneath the female mage¡¯s robe, and they were filled with scrolls. She swiftly pulled out one and ripped it open. The scroll immediately burst into mes, transformed into a fireball, and floated on the palm of the woman mage¡¯s right hand, gathering the surrounding Fire Elements and growingrger andrger. At the same time, she propped up a Fire Shield with her left hand, cing it in front of herself. Chapter 660 - 366: Just Lacking a Powerful Mages Soul_2 Chapter 660: Chapter 366: Just Lacking a Powerful Mage¡¯s Soul_2 Crash! Another flea monster lunges forward. The female Mage casts a me Shield in front of her, deflecting the flying flea. Simultaneously, the fireball in her right hand presses down on the flea¡¯s head. A wave of fire shoots out, blowing away half of the flea¡¯s body. The female Mage, slightly gasping, pulls out another scroll, hastily ncing around, and quickly spots Ange and his party. But she doesn¡¯t run towards them right away, instead, loudly asking, ¡°Can you fight?¡± Ange tilts his head, and Negris is even more puzzled, ¡°Why ask that?¡± Luther, impatiently draws his longsword: ¡°Ready to fight for you, beautifuldy.¡± Only then does the female Mage turn around to run towards them, shouting as she goes, ¡°Protect me, let me cast the spell.¡± Durken hesitantly guesses, ¡°Could she be worried that we¡¯re civilians? Confirming ourbat abilities first, and if we don¡¯t measure up, she¡¯ll stay away? Afraid of attracting the bugs?¡± Negris sternly speaks, ¡°I doubt, in this situation, she would still be considering that? If someone else attracts the bugs, it would be even easier for her to escape, right?¡± The female Mage¡¯s speed is impressive, a trail of fire follows her¡ªFire Speed de.@@novelbin@@ She quickly approaches Ange and his group. Without taking the time to observe their appearances, the female Mage swiftly turns around and says, ¡°Protect me, I am Misha, a Level 7 Fire Mage. Help me buy some time.¡± As she speaks, she tears open a scroll and throws three of them ahead. Immediately, three pirs of fire rise in front of everyone, like three obstacles. These fire pirs gather the fire elements around them, visibly bing thicker,rger, and more intense. A flea monster lunges between two pirs of fire. Luther gloriously swings his sword to cleave the monster in two: ¡°Ready to serve you, beautifuldy.¡± Female Mage Misha shoots him a nce and quickly warns him, ¡°Don¡¯t get distracted. If we survive this, I¡¯ll go on a date with you. There are loads of these creatures, and their leaping and impact power are freaking strong.¡± Before she even finishes her sentence, Luther stylishly abandons his sword, raises his hefty fists, and with one punch, sends another attacking flea monster flying backward. The punch broke half of the flea monster¡¯s body. Well, Luther¡¯s impact is even more impressive. But Misha continues, ¡°Save your strength, there are a lot of monsters.¡± She repeatedly pulls out and tears scrolls at a brisk pace. Negris can¡¯t help but ask, ¡°How many scrolls did you bring?¡± Misha responds, without looking back: ¡°Hundreds, there are more in the bag.¡± ¡°Aren¡¯t you a bit extravagant? Do you rely entirely on scrolls in a fight?¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help butment. Misha rolls her eyes without looking back, ¡°It¡¯s not your money I¡¯m spending, my family is rich.¡± After tearing up a total of sixteen scrolls, Misha gathers sixteen fireballs in front of her. Then, she crushed the second ring on her hand. That¡¯s when Ange noticed, Misha¡¯s hands were filled with rings, four each, a total of eight rings on both hands. When she crushes the second ring, a small me-bird springs out. The bird flies straight into the first fireball, instantly swelling in size. After that, it went straight to the second fireball. ¡°Oh, can a Level 7 me Magic, Desire Fire Undead Bird, be used like this?¡± Negris is surprised. Misha finally turns around and gives Negris a surprised look. When she realizes it¡¯s a ¡®young¡¯ dragon, she responds confidently, ¡°You haven¡¯t seen it, huh? I improved it. The casting time for the Undead Bird is too long. So I thought to cast a small bird first and have it continually reborn, growing stronger in the process.¡± As Misha speaks, the young undead bird devouring the sixteen fireballs bes a giant me bird. Then, it ps its wings and lunges at a flea monster in the distance. The me Bird collides with the monster, turning it into a pir of fire. The flea monster struggles, hissing with agonizing cries. Eventually, it copses to the ground, its body continues to burn. It¡¯s not until the veryst bit of monster is burnt to cinder does the Undead Bird take to the sky again. Looking slightly stronger, it resumes its attack on the other flea monsters. ¡°Uh, Misha, do you know about these creatures¡¯ characteristics?¡± Negris curiously asks. ¡°Characteristics? What characteristics?¡± Misha, controlling the Undead Bird, asks distractedly. ¡°Oh, so you don¡¯t know, but you unintentionally chose the most suitable way. If their numbers were fewer, you¡¯d probably be able to wipe them outpletely,¡± says Negris. ¡°What do you mean ¡®unintentional¡¯? Watch your mouth,¡± Misha retorts. Then she spots a flea monster flinging itself onto the Undead Bird, its limbs and legs tightly embracing the Undead Bird, both turning into a fire cluster. Before the flea monster finished burning, another one lunges aiming for the cluster. One after another, flea monsters continue to throw themselves onto the Undead Bird, effectively extinguishing its fire. Misha anxiouslymands, ¡°Not good, quick, set the surrounding houses on fire, help my bird to revive!¡± Negris asks surprisingly, ¡°You¡¯re now setting fires? You didn¡¯t do it at the beginning?¡± Misha exins, ¡°I can¡¯t just burn people¡¯s houses randomly, where will they live if their houses are burnt?¡± Negris can¡¯t help but hold respect for Misha. From her actions, this really is a righteous, kindhearted, and brave kid. Ange suddenly asks, ¡°Instead of burning houses, can we burn them instead?¡± Misha doesn¡¯t understand, ¡°What do you mean?¡± As she finishes her question, she sees Ange wave in front of him, creating a line of fireballs which he shoots towards the Undead Bird. He then reverses his hand for another wave, producing another line of fireballs. Chapter 661 - 366: Just Lacking a Powerful Mages Soul_3 Chapter 661: Chapter 366: Just Lacking a Powerful Mage¡¯s Soul_3 Twenty per second, fireballs were continuously fired, forming a chain that drew rows of fiery trajectories. Ange did not use the exploding fireball; ordinary fireballs were shot into the mass of flea monsters, each one intensifying the mes of the monster crowd.@@novelbin@@ Two or three secondster, the mes extinguished by the monster crowd spewed out of the gaps once again. Misha stood stunned, watching Ange ceaselessly conjure rows of fireballs in front of her. Her mouth grewrger, and her jaw nearly dropped to the ground. While they were only level two fireballs, their sheer number quickly fueled the nearly extinguished Undying Bird. The initially orange mes quickly turned orange-red, then turned blue, showing an increasing temperature. Seven or eight clustered flea monsters were burned into charcoal. A blue Undying Bird rose into the air, the pping of its wings producing a hissing sound as if the air were burning. ¡°The¡­Forbidden Undying Bird?¡± Misha couldn¡¯t articte her words clearly. She used the seventh-level magic called Desire Fire Rebirth, how is it possible that Ange was able to transform it into the nine-level Forbidden Magic? The Forbidden Undying Bird did note out of Misha¡¯s control. She could still manipte it to pounce on other flea monsters, instantly setting them on fire and turning them into burnt torches. The Forbidden Undying Bird was far more potent than the level seven Undying Bird she summoned. Before, it took five seconds to burn a flea monster, but now in just one second, it already turned into charcoal. The Forbidden Undying Bird soared into the sky, rushing towards new targets. Misha was so thrilled she was shaking. As a seventh-level mage, she was now controlling a ninth-level Forbidden Magic. It was too exhrating to experience the power of level nine magic, whoever it rushes towards turns into charcoal. But Ange didn¡¯t stop, tirelessly adding fuel to the Undying Bird at a rate of twenty fireballs per second. Each p from the fiery bird made a sizzling sound as the air was roasted. More and more flea monsters detected the anomaly and rushed over from every direction, bounding fiercely into the fiery bird from afar. The Undying Bird¡¯s mes were scattered every time a flea monster collided with it. Burning suchrge monsters required a significant amount of heat. Perhaps, if enough piled up, they could extinguish it. Under continuous collisions, the Undying Bird inevitably faded, but with Ange¡¯s relentless replenishing, it soon flourished again. For a while, a tug of war was formed; either the bugs were incinerated, or the Undying Bird was extinguished. At that moment, the Undying Bird suddenly pped its wings. The light in the direction it fanned was surprisingly distorted. That was the air heated to the degree that it was able to distort light. The Undying Bird began to turn white from its wingtips ¨C it transformed into arge white ming bird. ¡°Ar¡­Arcane Undying Bird! I¡­ I¡­ I¡­¡± Misha was so excited that she couldn¡¯t even finish her sentences. She was enthusiastically controlling the Undying Bird, ready to counterattack. The zing Arcane Undying Bird, burning with white mes, turned the monsters into fireballs wherever it went. When it reached level nine, the fiery bird needed more than a second to incinerate a bug. However, after evolving into the Arcane level, the fiery bird just needed to collide with the bugs, they¡¯d be left as touchwood without any pause. ¡°One touch and it¡¯s lit, this is amazing! Arcane magic, oh my god, I¡¯m controlling Arcane magic! Sir, are you the God of mes? Watch me clean them all up!¡± Misha shouted excitedly, preparing to ignite every visible monster. Hemel asked somewhat nkly, ¡°If you burn everything, what will I eat?¡± Ange nced at the ashes on the ground and shrugged indifferently. After all, whether they were eaten or burned to ashes, there seemed to be no difference. The scorching hot bird tirelessly cleaned up the bugs. Just when it was about to clean them all up, a voice suddenly sounded: ¡°Oh, Arcane Undying Bird? Is there an Arcane Magician here? Great, the Void Teleportation just needs a powerful Mage¡¯s soul. Go, the Endless Void is where you belong. Banish!¡± Along with this voice, a crack in space suddenly appeared in front of the Undying Bird. The Undying Bird couldn¡¯t stop itself and rushed into it. Chapter 662 - 367 Becoming a Frog_1 Chapter 662: Chapter 367 Bing a Frog_1 Dimensional Exile! ¡°Big Cat?¡± Negris was startled and looked above at the lightning, Ange also tilted his head to look. Seeing Ange look over, Big Cat quickly pricked up its ears that have never been exposed outside its fur and shook its head rapidly. ¡°If not it, could it be Hiludi?¡± Negris mumbled. Far in the Steris United Country, Hiludi sneezed fiercely, oblivious that he almost became a scapegoat. Soon, his suspicion was cleared as several creatures appeared from another street. The first one had a long neck, two short hands, sturdy hind legs, a long tail, and thin grey scales. Everyone couldn¡¯t help but look at Negris. Negris was also stunned. Apart from not having wings and arge belly, with a proportionally longer body, this was clearly a dragon walking upright. ¡°Dragonkin?¡± Negris said in shock.@@novelbin@@ Unfortunately, there wasn¡¯t a dragon present, Negris was actually a witch, and had no way of sensing whether or not the other was a dragonkin. However, the other party had also noticed Ange and the others. From the reaction of that upright dragon, you could draw some clues. He was also taken aback and then shouted excitedly: ¡°Eh, a juvenile dragon? God, this is great, there is actually a juvenile dragon here? Catch it for me and draw its blood.¡± The upright dragon immediately put the matter of the arcane magician behind him, and pointed at Negris with a big hand and shouted with excitement. Apparently, drawing dragon blood was more important to him than the arcane magician. There were four strong human beings following the dragon. Hearing the order, the human in front sneered: ¡°Aolong Magister, as you wish, Uras will serve you.¡± Hearing Uras¡¯s words, the rest of the humans seemed somewhat helpless, but still stopped, seemingly intending to watch? Did they believe that a human could level the enemy and snatch that ¡®juvenile dragon¡¯? The Undying Bird had already suggested that there was an arcane magician nearby. Where did these guys get this confidence from? Despite their incredulity, these people really thought so. Uras stepped forward alone, with scales emerging from his skin. ¡°Eh?¡± Many people on Ange¡¯s side were doubtful, and they couldn¡¯t help but nce at Ange. This wasn¡¯t some dragon god transformation, was it? Negris obviously heard their doubts and hurriedly said: ¡°Dragonman, it is a dragonman transforming, be careful.¡± ¡°OK.¡± Luther also took a step forward, carefully took out a beetroot, and started chewing heartily. Misha was a bit baffled: ¡°You are asked to be careful, not to eat anything. Why are you weird? I don¡¯t date weirdos.¡± Luther grinned, smeared his hand on the Arbitration Sword, and said: ¡°My love only belongs to it, the dragon pattern steel core #£¤&#&@*#£¤# Breaker¡¤Arbitration Sword.¡± Misha didn¡¯t hear clearly because he spoke too fast, so she could only frown and confirm one thing, that this was indeed a strange person, and then quietly took two steps away. Durken held his cheek, pondered: ¡°These are dragon people, so is that upright creature really dragonkin? Do you know it?¡± Negris answered awkwardly: ¡°There are so many dragonkins, how can I know them all? I don¡¯t know.¡± Durken blinked, recalling the legends about dragonkin and immediately showed an expression of sudden realization. Negris gave an embarrassed smile and had no strength to exin anything. The dragon n did a really poor job in terms of dragonkins, some of them even have only a single heir. Whether they could awaken or mutate was unknown, and no one could clearly understand all the lineages of the dragonkins. But regardless of the kind of dragonkin, they inevitably carried the bloodline of the giant dragon, and would have fairly distinct talents. Whether it¡¯s practicing magic or battle aura, or learning knowledge, they were all much stronger than ordinary people. This Aolong Magister was clearly a very powerful spellcaster. He didn¡¯t even care about the arcane magician. But, what was his actual strength? And dragon people were creatures contaminated by the bloodline or breath of the dragon n, like Little Bu. Speaking of lineage, dragon people were even more chaotic than dragonkins, and the results were not necessarily all good. Some creatures were contaminated by the power of the Ice Dragon, and they became afraid of the cold all day. As soon as the temperature dropped, they would get frostbite and suffer terribly. Some creatures were contaminated by the power of the Red Dragon. They became afraid of the heat all day and wished they could hide in an ice cer and nevere out. Of course, with the negative impact, there was also a good impact. For example, some dragon people were strong and vigorous. They have energetic spirits that allowed them to have intercourse seven times a night. Their practice of battle aura would be several times faster than ordinary people. Or they would make rapid progress in practicing magic, even better than those who have eaten fire dragon fruit all their life. And the level of contamination by the breath could be controlled. Over-contamination was bad, but just the right amount of contamination was a huge blessing. Sometimes, it would even be better than being a dragonkin. The Uras and the others in front of them were dragon people contaminated to just the right degree. They were all strong and robust. There were no apparent defects on their surfaces, and they could control the dragon person transformation at any time. Uras grew stronger by a circle, and thin scales covered his key body parts, face, and arms. Inbination with the armor, it increased his defense. He then drew the big sword on his back, held it in his hand, and the sword tip started to fluctuate with energy. Misha gasped subconsciously: ¡°No! High-level Sword Saint, weird man, move aside and let me do it.¡± She took out a bottle of blue potion to pour into her mouth, but before it was opened, the potion disappeared from her hand. When she turned around to check, she found that the potion had somehow ended up in Durken¡¯s hand. He was semi-squinting at the potion bottle as if researching it, and murmuring: ¡°Ah, magic potion, I¡¯ve heard before that someone had developed a potion to replenish magic power. I finally get to see it now.¡± Chapter 663 - 367: Turn into a Frog_2 Chapter 663: Chapter 367: Turn into a Frog_2 Misha couldn¡¯t help but curl her lip, wanting to retort. This brat didn¡¯t seem old, but talked like an old man. Magic potions had been invented over a thousand years ago, how could one not have encountered them? Just admit you¡¯re broke without making excuses, but forget it. Thinking that Durken might be poor, Misha didn¡¯t take the potion back, instead she pulled out a second one and started drinking it. She shifted her gaze back to the battleground, but was shocked by the scene before her.@@novelbin@@ Luther, surrounded by a substantial aura, had sliced off his opponent¡¯s head with a single sword stroke. ¡°The¡­the Ring of Truth? The Sword of Truth?¡± Misha eximed in shock. She had no idea how many times she had been shocked recently. First, there was a mage who could be considered a God of mes. Now there was a Sword of Truth? Misha looked back, her eyes sweeping over Durken, Feiti, and Big Cat sh Hemoer. Could these unremarkable-looking people be of such high power levels? The Ring of Truth was a visible feature of swordsmen who had achieved the Truth Level. Their every movement was able to tear through space with their battle energy, creating a wave-like radiation, which looked like a half ring of light to the naked eye. ¡°Oh, this guy has broken through?¡± Negris eximed in surprise. ¡°Probably stimted by the beets,¡± Durken responded with a shake of his head. ¡°But it is still a breakthrough. He couldn¡¯t achieve the Truth Level when he was eating beets before,¡± Negris added. Under the stimtion of the beets, Luther had broken through to the Truth Level. He had knocked Uras t with a single sword stroke, but was now panting heavily and jogged back. ¡°I can¡¯t go on. I¡¯m exhausted. My muscles almost gave out.¡± Once he finished speaking, he sat down on the ground and pulled out a sk of Holy Essence Liquid to drink. Misha¡¯s eyes widened in shock. As a mage, she knew exactly what that sk was. This was concentrated Holy Essence Liquid, originally costing 1,500 Demon Crystals, but now the price had risen to 1,800 Demon Crystals. She had a sk of it herself and was considered wealthy. Usually, she only dabbed a bit of it on her face. But this man was actually drinking it? Looking at the Mana Recovery Potion in her hand, she suddenly felt it was less precious. Aolong Magister was also shocked. Not only were there Arcanists, but also a Sword of Truth? However, seeing Luther¡¯s condition, he realized this power level had been forcibly elevated and could not be sustained. ¡°Good thing, good thing. Otherwise, it would be troublesome. Let¡¯s go at him together, no more ying around,¡± the Aolong Magister said. He now regretted not having attacked together sooner. In the midst of the y, a High-level Dragon Swordsman had been lost. Although he said to go together, only two Swordsman stepped forward. Thest one stayed still, protecting the Aolong Magister. The scales on their bodies flipped up, and the two Dragon Swordsmen rushed forward quickly. Durken said, ¡°Everyone, let me show you a magic trick.¡± As he spoke, he swept up his cloak, which rapidly shrank into itself. Then, Durken and his cloak disappeared altogether. When he reappeared, there was a cloud of smoke on the left side of the charging path of the Dragon Swordsmen. Before the smoke could disperse, Durken had already thrown out a signal of light, precisely marking the Dragon Swordsman on the left ¨C Alchemy: Constant Spell! The Dragon Swordsman froze and began to struggle violently. As Durken emerged from the smoke, he grinned slightly. ¡°Turn into a dragon? I really like transformative powers. How about this, I¡¯ll give you a transformation too.¡± As he spoke, he waved his Gold-touch Stick at the immobilized Dragon Swordsman. After a burst of smoke, the Dragon Swordsman was nowhere to be seen, leaving only a green frog behind. Before anyone could react, Durken quickly charged forward and gave it a strong kick. The green-skinned frog was kicked far off, tracing a parab into the swamp outside the town. Mid-flight, the transformative power vanished and he resumed his human form, but already seriously injured, he was barely alive. Everyone stood rooted to the spot, stunned by Durken¡¯s enigmatic maneuvers. It wasn¡¯t until he bowed and slowly retreated, vanishing into the billows ofbat dust, that they regained their senses. ¡°Kvada, this Alchemy: Constant Spell is all well and good, but why were you able to turn him into a frog? Do you realize how many variables are involved? How did you do it? You¡¯re not a god.¡± Negris vented out his rage at the retreating Durken, his hand gripping the cor of Durken¡¯s garment. The Alchemy: Constant Spell, immobilizing a high-level Sword Saint, was already incredible, but this was to some extent understandable¡ªDurken was one of the four owners of the Four Great Subtemples, ranking even slightly higher than Locke. Previously weak and unstable due to his recent rebirth, he had now recovered nearly half of his strength after a considerable time of recuperation. Imprisoning a high-level Sword Saint was no small feat. But turning someone into a frog was outrageous¡ªthis involved element conversion, which required a massive amount of energy. He was not Ange; he did not have divine power to utilize. How could he have achieved it so effortlessly? Was this some sort of magic trick? Durken leaned in and said softly, ¡°By borrowing his own Dragon Transformation power, just a little push is all it took. It¡¯s much easier to use his own power to turn him into a frog than to interfere with outside forces.¡± Negris was dumbfounded, lost for words. Durken made it sound easy, but it certainly involved lots of techniques and variables¡ªit couldn¡¯t have been as simple as he put it. But what did it matter? Regardless of the techniques Durken used, the end result was that he did it¡ªhe astonishingly transformed a high-level Sword Saint into a frog with magic. Clearly, this was also no easy feat. After transforming one, Durken promptly stepped back, leaving the other Dragon Swordsman standing there clueless. Using a power beyond the understanding of ordinary people could easily instill fear into others. Seeing the opponent stood bewildered, Little Zombie advanced a step and unleashed his ultimate move! The Breath of Death Shockwave sted onto the Dragon Swordsman. The ck light dispersed, and the Dragon Swordsman surprisingly survived¡ªhe held his de made of fighting spirit in front of him just in time to fend off the Breath of Death Shockwave, his body covered in soot. A look of rm had already appeared in the eyes of the Aolong Magister. Every random creature from their side possessed formidable strength. He had originally assumed that there was only one Arcane Magician on the opposing side, the type he was most adept at suppressing. At this rate, they will lose. In a hurry, the Aolong Magister hit his magic wand, drawing streaks on the ground. Immediately, rifts in space opened one after another in front of him, and flea monsters charged out of the rifts. The surged-out flea monsters made a furious leap, charging towards the injured Dragon Swordsman. The limbs on their upper bodies pierced forward forcefully. The injured Dragon Swordsman took a deep breath, cut the body of the flea monster with a backhand sh, sideswiped another with the de¡¯s edge, decapitating the second flea monster, but the third one knocked him to the ground, its sharp limbs stabbing into his body. The Dragon Swordsman roared in anger, fighting spirit burst out, throwing the flea monster off him. But with serious injuries, his movements involuntarily slowed down. He was eventually overwhelmed and gnawed at by the sessive flea monsters. The flea monstersing up from the rear didn¡¯t hesitate to pounce on their dead counterparts. Only when there were no more corpses did they refocus their attention on Ange and the others. Negris quickly analyzed, ¡°They don¡¯t discriminate between friend or foe, they don¡¯t even leave their dead counterparts alone. They prioritize feeding over anything else. These creatures are not born for battle, or even for reproduction¡ªsince they gnaw at the bodies of their young. These aren¡¯t bugs; what on earth are they?¡± Misha turned back, blinking rather cluelessly, ¡°Is everyone just talking? Is anyone going to take action? The Bronze Dragon isn¡¯t fighting. Is it its turn?¡± They are all mighty fighters. Being mixed with them, surely the Bronze Dragon isn¡¯t as weak as it appears. Wasn¡¯t it going to make a move? Should she herself make a move or not? Maybe not, as she was too weak. She didn¡¯t want to embarrass herself. Just as Misha was caught in her inner struggle, the roar of Ange¡¯s artillery rang out. The condensed exploding fireball, while releasing a thunderous roar of airpression, gave the sensation of being squeezed out. The speed of the fireball greatly increased, and the ensuing explosion after hitting the target also intensified, forcing back the flea monsters one after another. They staggered to be engulfed by the fireball, and not a single one made it past Ange¡¯s rack of firepower. The Big Cat, which had been loftier at her position on the lightning gateway, suddenly stood up, elegantly and silently leaping down to the ground. Chapter 664 - 368: Witness the True Dragon God Transformation!_1 Chapter 664: Chapter 368: Witness the True Dragon God Transformation!_1 Big Cat is an incrediblyzy creature who, barring cherry-picking Elf Beans, would always opt to curl upzily rather than stand around. Every time it¡¯s mentioned, it would meow in sorrow as if to im that its injuries hadn¡¯t healed yet. It was extremely rare for it to take the initiative to jump down. No idea what got its attention but it squatted there, staring intently at the Aolong Magister in the distance, just like a predator ready to pounce on its prey. Suddenly, Big Cat opened its Big Mouth, yelling ahhhhhhh- Remember when Ange first met Big Cat? Back then, its body spanned across dimensions and simply by opening its mouth and yelling, it blew out a void in the Resting Wind. Now, it relived its old trick and instantly formed an invisible void. Within this void, all spatial rifts instantly disappeared. This sudden disappearance caused many of the flealike monsters, that had just crawled halfway out, to abruptly snap into two. The remaining halves rolled onto the ground. But this was certainly not Big Cat¡¯s objective. No matter how numerous these bugs were, they served merely to fertilize Ange¡¯s crops. Its real target was the Aolong Magister. Behind the Aolong Magister, a spatial rift had opened up unnoticed. Taking advantage of everyone¡¯s distraction, he quietly began to retreat. His hand was already halfway into the rift. Within a split second, the spatial rift behind the Aolong Magister vanished, taking with it half of his hand. ¡°Ah!¡± The Aolong Magister cried out in pain, causing the Dragon Swordsman to immediately turn around in concern. The Aolong Magister swiftly masked his cry of pain with an enraged roar, hid his injured hand behind his back and red menacingly ahead, appearing foiled due to the disappearance of the spatial rift. He even reprimanded the Dragon Swordsman: ¡°Focus, don¡¯t get distracted.¡±@@novelbin@@ As the Dragon Swordsman turned back, he contorted his face in agony, silently reciting the spell, his severed hand quickly started regenerating until it waspletely back to normal. He had intended to quietly slip away without rming his enemy and without bringing along the Dragon Swordsman; hence, he couldn¡¯t let the Dragon Swordsman discover that his injury was a result of attempting to escape. With the return of his severed hand and the flea-like creatures thoroughly eradicated, the spatial cracks disappeared, leaving the flea-like creatures without any assistance. They were quickly wiped out totally. The heart of the Aolong Magister sank. As a main practitioner of Spatial Magic, theoretically he should have been the bane of most mages. At the same level in Arcane, he did not consider a Fire Magician as a worthy opponent. He still assumed that one of his enemies was a Fire Magician. However, he soon realized his outrageous mistake. Setting aside Ange who was sting magic, the guy who shouted ¡®let me show you some magic tricks¡¯ far exceeded the Aolong Magister¡¯s understanding. That was definitely not traditional magic, it carried a peculiar feeling. He¡¯d run into a roadblock and thus the Aolong Magister intended to flee, which would¡¯ve been an easy task. But who could¡¯ve thought that all the spatial rifts would suddenly disappear? He couldn¡¯t even figure out what power caused the spatial rifts to vanish. If it was merely a disruption in space itself, that would¡¯ve been bearable. But if it was the enemy¡¯s doing, that could pose a major problem. As the Aolong Magister healed his hand, he scanned his enemy, trying to spot any lingering spatial fluctuations. As for the furball on the ground, he didn¡¯t bother to look in that direction. Negris observed the whole thing and saw Big Cat just roll back onto the ground innocently after yelling ¡®ah¡¯, he couldn¡¯t resist but to curse under his breath, ¡°Kvada!¡± Durken and Feiti exchanged nces and turned towards Negris to ask, ¡°Your cat?¡± They can¡¯t be med for their suspicion as Big Cat¡¯s mischievous demeanor was exactly like that of Negris. ¡°No, no, no, he¡¯s not mine. Stupid cat learns only the bad stuff, I¡¯ll cut his snacks when we get back.¡± Negris ranted. Durken and Feiti smirked: Nice to see you admit you¡¯re not a role model¡­ After all the flea-like creatures were cleaned, a pile of Insect Ash remained on the ground. Ange trotted out to collect them using a pollen collection spell, hauling everything into his spatial area. This unexpected behavior left everyone on the other side and Misha stunned. Misha subconsciously moved closer to Luther and asked in a low voice, ¡°What does Archmage need the ash for?¡± ¡°Oh, to fertilize the fields,¡± Luther replied, adding, ¡°You could actually drop the ¡®Arch¡¯.¡± Drop the ¡®Arch¡¯? What does that mean? ¡®Arch¡¯ Mage bes¡­ Mage? They really were all oddballs. Misha pouted and quickly distanced herself. She had never seen a divine being growing up but hade across plenty of weirdos. For instance, who would use these ashes to fertilize the fields? Archmage does farming? What a load of hogwash! Luther couldn¡¯t ever have dreamt that his honest exnation would be met with the mentalbels of ¡®liar¡¯ and ¡®weirdo¡¯. The Aolong Magister was equally puzzled. He was standing right there, yet the enemy had run off to clean up the ash? Even assuming the ash had some use, this action was a clear form of disrespect. ¡°Damn it, what are you doing!¡± the Aolong Magister shouted. Ange cocked his head, his hands still busy, and casually replied, ¡°It¡¯s windy.¡± What! So, he¡¯s actually worried that the wind would blow away the ashes? I¡­ Just as the Aolong Magister was about to explode, a Bronze Dragon pped its wings flying over, ¡°Don¡¯t lose your cool, he¡¯s always like that, always says things that¡¯ll get on your nerves. Don¡¯t let it bother you, can we know your name?¡± Chapter 665 - 368: Witness the True Dragon God Transformation! _2 Chapter 665: Chapter 368: Witness the True Dragon God Transformation! _2 To prevent the Aolong Magister from exploding in anger, Negris quickly stepped between them, he knew all too well the infuriating nature of Ange, someone who could drive others mad even without uttering a word, Negris had suffered greatly because of it. If it were anyone else asking these questions, the Aolong Magister wouldn¡¯t even bother responding, but Negris was different, he was a Bronze Dragon. The Aolong Magister begrudgingly gave a chest salute and said: ¡°Aolong n, Space Arcane Magician, Gargul.¡± ¡°Aolong n? Never heard of it, where are you from?¡± Negris asked again. ¡°You damned uncouth Juvenile Dragon, even though you are part of the Dragon n, shouldn¡¯t you at least introduce yourself? Have the dragons in this ce forgotten even the basic courtesy?¡± Gargul the Aolong Magister retorted angrily, a sense of being casually dismissed apparent on his face. ¡°Oh, oh, sorry, I¡¯m Negris.¡± A guilty Negris quickly replied. Having spent too long with Ange, he¡¯d grown ustomed to this behaviour. Aren¡¯t all disputes simply settled with a push and shove? However, under normal circumstances, if someone has introduced their name, one should reciprocate. Otherwise, it would be considered impolite. Misha had already taken the initiative to announce her own name and level.@@novelbin@@ Needless to say, one surely can¡¯t say these things to Ange and the others, otherwise they¡¯d look at you in confusion: Courtesy? Roar! Gargul became even more infuriated: ¡°That¡¯s not a name, that¡¯s just a nickname! Do you speak in nicknames addressing a dragon descendant?¡± Negris was even more at fault now; using a nickname was tantamount to denying the other person¡¯s Dragonkin heritage. Although this wasn¡¯t really a big deal, it could indeed be considered as a breach if the other party took things seriously. Negris spread his hands: ¡°Okay, listen carefully, standing before you is Negris*&%$Nefarian Uzumos Lavalite Babugli # @% &*¡­¡± Negris was speaking in Dragon Language as many sybles couldn¡¯t be tranted intomon humannguage. Giant Dragons can emit extremely high and low-frequency sounds, which human ears couldn¡¯t hear. Since they couldn¡¯t be heard, naturally there were no simr sounds in humannguage. Although transliteration was possible, it just sounded too horrible. For instance, his name in trantion would be: Nefarian¡¯s son, Uzumos¡¯s son, Lavalite¡¯s son, Babugli¡¯s son¡­ the son of Mimi Dragon Negris. Twenty minutester, Negris finally finished stating his full name. Ange had already swept all the dust off the ground, in the middle of it all, Gargul couldn¡¯t help but yawn. If he hadn¡¯t yawned, the Bronze Dragon wouldn¡¯t have persisted in pronouncing his full name just to piss Gargul off. Barely able to contain his frustration, an on-edge Gargul extended his arm and cast a spell: ¡°Boiling, fresh blood¡­ Blood Boiling!¡± Blood Boiling is a form of Arcane Magic, simr to the Water Element¡¯s Water Boil, both aim to boil the water inside a living organism¡¯s body, then rupture the skin or internal blood vessels, causing physical damage. Blood Boiling primarily targets blood, unlike Water Elements Boiling that could affect the entire body, but its power was not any less¡­ less¡­ Seeing Negris not responding at all, Gargul looked at his hand in confusion, gathered magic power, and cast the spell again, but Negris remained unaffected. ¡°You¡­ is your Magic Resistance that high?¡± Gargul said, taken aback. Negris, of course, knew why he was unaffected. He had no blood in his body for the spell to boil. But what puzzled him more was, considering their proximity, couldn¡¯t Gargul sense that he was a Corpse Witch Dragon? At this moment, Negris¡¯s scales shone brightly, and his Dragon Scum was clearly visible. His eyes were vibrant, and his breath was fresh. Where was the trace of a Corpse Witch Dragon? As an exnation, creatures like Giant Dragons, during their growth, ayer of white keratin would umte on the surface of their skin and scales, which is known as Dragon Scum. The Dragon Scum was the first thing to disappear when a dragon dies. Even though his exterior looked lively, he had a soul fluctuation. Could Gargul not sense his soul fluctuation? With a thought, Negris suddenly considered a possibility and asked in a probing manner: ¡°In your ce, do you have any corpses that can move after death?¡± Gargul frowned: ¡°Moving corpses? Like ghouls or abominations?¡± ¡°No, no, no, like moving skeletons? Do you have any?¡± Negris quickly waved his hand. What on earth is a ghoul? An undead that eats corpses? Despite not knowing what it was, Negris was certain of one thing: ¡°You¡¯re not from here, where did youe from?¡± The first thought thates to mind when mentioning ¡®moving corpses¡¯ in the Master ne or even nearby Abyss Dimension, including nes reachable by world transfer stations, is undoubtedly the undead, not things like ghouls or abominations. This Gargul definitelyes from an unknown world, a ce that has never even been connected to the world transfer station, untouched by the Breathing Soil of the Undead Empire. Is that why it failed to recognize Negris¡¯s identity? No, if it knew it was a dragon-man, it should also be familiar with a regr giant dragon. Could it not sense his presence? ¡°Where am I from? Offer your blood, and you¡¯ll know.¡± Gargul waved his wand lightly, conjuring a Dimensional sh out of nowhere, aiming at Negris. Since his magic resistance is so high, it might as well sh open his body and drain the blood. The big cat stretched its mouth wide and yawned. The Dimensional Sickle mysteriously vanished. Gargul felt a chill in his heart. Disappeared again? Once could be attributed to spatial disruption, but twice? How can this be exined? It must be due to ongoing spatial disorder. Anyway, Gargul was unwilling to believe that anyone could silently dismantle his Dimensional sh and summoning channel. Indeed, no ¡®person¡¯ could. sh, sh again, again and again, Gargulunched three consecutive Dimensional shes with a backhand, a forehand, and a reverse hand. The big cat casually yawned three times. As long as it was present, Gargul, the Space Mage, would not be able to use spatial magic today. ¡°Damn, you¡¯re just lucky. This space is so chaotic today, otherwise, I¡¯d have turned you into minced meat already,¡± Gargul said. Negris crossed his arms, tilted his nose and announced: ¡°I¡¯m standing right here, let¡¯s see how you slice me up.¡± ¡°Hmph.¡± Gargul gave a hum, his body inted all of a sudden. His scales stood up and then fell off, revealing blood-soaked skin. Then, under his painful countenance, new scales began to grow, evidentlyrger, tougher, and thicker than those he¡¯d lost. His body, going through this process of shedding and growing, rapidly swelled until he stood three meters high, with broad, sturdy upside-down trapezoid back muscles, arms as thick as logs, and muscles bulging, creating a robust dragon-man. ¡°Dragon¡­ Dragon God Transformation,¡± said Negris, his eyes wide in disbelief. This form was indeed reminiscent of the Dragon God. Gargul shed a grin, making it look rather ferocious on his erged form: ¡°At least you know your stuff. You know the Dragon God Transformation, then you must know how painful it is. Every scale from my body falls off to grow again. I have to endure such pain twice.¡± ¡°That¡¯s why I don¡¯t usually transform easily. If I do, I make sure I y the prey to death and let him die in pain topensate for the pain I¡¯ve suffered.¡± Negris started wringing his fingers and said with bewilderment: ¡°Why twice?¡± Is that all you¡¯re concerned about? Gargul exploded in frustration, shouting: ¡°Isn¡¯t there one time when I transform back, you idiot!¡± ¡°Why would you want to transform back? Can¡¯t you stay like this?¡± Negris asked innocently. ¡°No, it¡¯s too exhausting. I can¡¯t hold on if I don¡¯t transform back. Argh, why am I even exining this to you? I said, I will make you die in pain topensate for my pain!!¡± Gargul roared in anger, raising his wand as he yelled. The initially human-sized wand, in the hand of the transformed, three-meter tall dragon man, looked like a fire poker. ¡°Oh, I see. You just did a fake Dragon God Transformation,¡± Negris suddenly understood and shouted out loud, ¡°Let me show you the real Dragon God Transformation!¡± Chapter 666 - 369: No Wonder Hes So Rich_1 Chapter 666: Chapter 369: No Wonder He¡¯s So Rich_1 As Negris spoke, a wave of fear erupted. Looking up, scales began toyer upon Ange, transforming him into a two-meter-high Dragon-Man. This aura was only powerful to the others, but for a dragon descendant like Gargul, it was terrifyingly oppressive. Sensing this aura, Gargul was nearly petrified! This was the aura of the Dragon God, the suppression by nature, the might of the Dragon God! Kvada, why would there be a real Dragon God? Gargul couldn¡¯t even swing his magic wand, broke both his hands instantly, at least three spells erupted from the broken wand, and its body disappeared on the spot, leaving only a spatial fluctuation behind. ¡°Wow, a dimension bomb? Does it really think this is a spatial disturbance? So, it used a dimension bomb to pave the way, using the shockwaves from the dimensional explosion to neutralize the spatial disturbance, thereby gaining the opportunity for teleportation?¡± Durken said, surprised. However, Gargul reappeared at an even faster speed soon after disappearing, hurtling involuntarily to the side, rolling several times on the street, and finally stopped with his face in the dirt, as if he was swatted away. Turning back to look, Negris saw that the big cat that had been huddled on the ground was now standing, licking its slowly shrinkingrge paw. Good grief, in front of the big cat, neither the dimension bomb nor spatial teleportation worked. While it was still struggling to get up, Ange rushed up and stomped a few times. Gargul didn¡¯t even have the chance to fight back and passed out. In the unconsciousness, Gargul¡¯s three-meter-tall body slowly started to shrink, and the scales on his body started to shed. ¡°Isn¡¯t this just fine? Pass out and then transform, so you don¡¯t have to endure the pain a second time.¡± Negris said. Durken frowned, ¡°But this way of transformation won¡¯t allow new scales to grow.¡± In the end, Gargul, who had shrunk into a Little Dragon Man, was left lying on the ground torn and bruised, with many wounds filled with sand and dirt. Wait until the flesh and skin heal, encapsting the sand inside, and then see how he feels. ¡°Alright, let¡¯s wake it up. It looks too miserable, it¡¯s making me feel bad,¡± Negris said sympathetically. They stripped Gargul of all his equipment, then gave his face a swift p to wake him up. ¡­ Tied up and battered, Gargul was pressed harshly against a pir, Negris asked fiercely, ¡°Name?¡± ¡°Gargul Ekabany Garlibaga%#&*$^¡­¡± ¡°Alright, alright. Age?¡± ¡°One hundred and thirty-two.¡± ¡°Gender?¡± ¡°Male.¡± ¡°Where are you from?¡± ¡°Eternity Road.¡± ¡°I¡¯m asking about which dimension you hail from, not the road you traveled on.¡± ¡°Uh, the ce wee from is called the Eternity Road, a road treaded by the Eternity Lord with his spitfire.¡± ¡°Eternity Lord? Spitting fire? What does it look like? Draw it for me.¡± ¡°I don¡¯t know how to draw.¡± ¡°Then describe it. Old Du, doesn¡¯t your alchemy have some sort of sand sculpting?¡± Durken casually pointed, and the sand on the ground seemed to be held by an invisible hand, converging into a mass and changing at will.@@novelbin@@ Under Negris¡¯s relentless questioning, Gargul described the situation of the Eternity Lord and the Eternity Road, then Durken modeled it. The Eternity Lord was a thin, high shadow with an indiscernible face, treading on wavesposed of ardent fire. It was very abstract. Gargul also exined that this was based on descriptions from legends, and he himself didn¡¯t know what the Eternity Lord actually looked like. The Eternity road was much clearer. It was a long and narrow path, not more than forty meters wide, but seemingly infinitely long, extending like a ¡®road¡¯. ¡°I don¡¯t know how long the Eternity Road is. Anyway, from my birth to adulthood, I have never traveled more than a hundred kilometers from home. But the Eternity Road is definitely longer than a hundred kilometers,¡± exined Gargul. Durken murmured, ¡°Forty meters wide but hundreds of kilometers long, even more perhaps. No wonder it¡¯s called a road, or should we call it a line? How did it form? Can anything live on it?¡± ¡°Does such a slender thing have air? Can you grow things on it? What do you usually eat?¡± Most people¡¯s interests were piqued, they started to gather around. Ange joined them after hearing about growing things. This was unprecedented. Even if the Abyss Dimension is irregr, it should be a cluster or lump, with arge enough, volume, otherwise, it wouldn¡¯t be able to retain air and would only be fit for creatures that don¡¯t need air, like the Undead. Such a linear dimension shouldn¡¯t possibly exist, let alone being home to creatures such as the Aolongians. ording to Gargul, there was even more than one species living there. ¡°Look at these areas, they bulge at intervals. We wouldn¡¯t think much of it like this, but actually, these bulges are hundreds of meters wide. They contain a boundary; inside is normal soil with air, rainwater, and sunlight, where we could nt.¡± ¡°The air near the boundary diffuses out and you can breathe normally. The further from the boundary, the thinner the air bes, and even disappears altogether. But we have gotten used to it, my current breathing frequency is slower than that of my ancestors. Coming here, breathing faster even made me a little dizzy.¡± Durken and Feiti exchanged a nce, as if they had realized something: ¡°Boundary? A farm barrier?¡± ¡°Normal soil? So, you mean the soil outside the boundary is not normal?¡± Gargul described the properties of the ground outside of the boundary, to which Durken immediately confirmed, ¡°Obsidian and volcanic rock.¡± Chapter 667 - 369: No Wonder Hes So Rich_2 Chapter 667: Chapter 369: No Wonder He¡¯s So Rich_2 The Farm Barrier, the Eternity Lord is king,¡± Feiti dered insistently. Negris came to realization: ¡°You mean to say that this Eternity Road was created by His Majesty himself? Theva deep underneath the Light Sea ne?¡± Light bulbs went off, and everyone immediately connected all the clues together. At thest moment, the Undead King stepped out from the Void Gate, but before that, he released all theva from underneath the Light Sea ne. The Eternity Road obviously was not formed naturally, mainly made up of obsidian and volcanic rock. Could it be formed from the cooling of the magma that was released from the Void Gate? If it kept erupting, cooling, and stretching, it really could create such a linear pattern. As for the farm barrier, only His Majesty who possessed the skill could create such a thing in this segmented way. ¡°So, another question surfaces. If this road was really formed from the eruption of magma, where did these Aolongianse from? And where did the king go?¡± Feiti asked. It couldn¡¯t have sprung up from the same volcano that erupted just a thousand years ago, could it? ¡°How would I know? The Eternity Lord walking through the sea of fire is a legend. I never saw the Eternity Lord. As for my ancestors, I heard they were taken by the Eternity Lord,¡± Gargul stated. Well, that does sound like His Majesty¡¯s style. But why would His Majesty go through the trouble of capturing so many beings? Why provide them with a farm barrier? Was he afraid they might die? Of course, Gargul couldn¡¯t provide answers to these questions. ¡°What is your purpose foring here? And where are these monsters from?¡± Negris inquired. Gargul hesitated before looking at Negris. ¡°What are you looking at me for? Speak,¡± Negris demanded. ¡°To fulfill the mission of the Dragon God, to terminate the food supply of the Master ne before the storm arrives, and to cut off the source of the gods¡¯ power,¡± Gargul said. Negris and the rest exchanged nces. ¡­ Durken created a Soul Locking Ring which temporarily sealed Gargul¡¯s soul. The moment the ring was ced on his forehead, Gargul¡¯s eyes became lifeless, his expression dead, as if he had lost his soul. But his body still lived, with a heartbeat, breathing, and it moved on its own ord when pushed. ¡°Eh, this is useful. Good for locking wizards,¡± Negrismented in surprise. Capturing a wizard can sometimes be troublesome. Mechanical locks and such can hardly keep a wizard in check. Each time, they would need a prison cart and a handful of people to watch over.@@novelbin@@ With this Soul Locking Ring, just snap it on and you can lead them by it. Convenient and functional. Durken shrugged, ¡°That¡¯s what it¡¯s made for. To lock wizards.¡± They all huddled up, squatting in a circle on the ground. Durken used the Gold-touch Stick to model a sandpan of Eternity Road, exining as he gestured: ¡°If this dragon-man isn¡¯t lying, then this Eternity Road was probably created by His Majesty, though we aren¡¯t clear about what happened afterwards that led him to establish a farm barrier and capture so many beings.¡± ¡°Now the creatures on this road, due to the influence of certain forces, came to the Master ne and tried to destroy our food, starving some sentient creatures and reducing the number of believers. This action indicates several things.¡± At this point, Durkin looked at Negris. Negris added, ¡°This action shows that the power of the gods has an effect on the storm. The stronger their power, the greater their influence on the storm, possibly leading to the storm¡¯s failure.¡± ¡°As for why they have these concerns, it may be because thest storm failed.¡± Feiti raised her hand and asked, ¡°Could this dragon-man be seen as a precursor to the Soul Storm?¡± ¡°Yes, a harbinger of the storm.¡± Everyone agreed that this phrase was apt. ¡°Then who is this Dragon God he talked about? The Dragon God is still alive?¡± Feiti asked. ¡°Impossible!¡± Negris quickly denied all possibilities, ¡°It¡¯s a false Dragon God, didn¡¯t you see when Ange, the true one, appeared, its bloodline instantly shattered. Obviously, it was contaminated by the false bloodline and suppressed by the true one.¡± ¡°I suspect if it weren¡¯t for Ange¡¯s bloodline suppressing it, even if we caught it, it wouldn¡¯t live long enough to reveal this much information to us.¡± Durken¡¯s expression shifted, ¡°The false Dragon God left a trap? Death from bloodline disintegration?¡± ¡°Yes, bloodline corruption, disintegration. Do you think of anything rted?¡± Negris asked. ¡°Celius? The Serpent of Misfortune?¡± Durken asked hesitantly. ¡°Yes, it must be this one, daring to impersonate the Dragon God,¡± Negris said through gritted teeth. ¡°So, these flea-like monsters, were they also sent by it? They aren¡¯t bugs?¡± Durken asked. ¡°No, at first we thought they were like bugs due to their reproduction method, but actually, there¡¯s another creature that reproduces in the same way: snake lice,¡± Negris exined. Negris and Durken were engaged in intense discussion, with Feiti asionally offering additional information. They finally pieced together all the known clues and came to aprehensive understanding. Then, everyone¡¯s eyes turned towards Ange who had already gotten bored and started to farm in his spiritual space. ¡°You can¡¯t just think about farming! The prelude to the storm has arrived, what do we do now?¡± Negris asked impatiently. Ange abruptly stood up, ¡°They are devouring our food, so kill them.¡± Chapter 668 - 369: No Wonder They are So Rich_3 Chapter 668: Chapter 369: No Wonder They are So Rich_3 Well, okay, there¡¯s no need to research so much. The fact that these snake lice feed on grain is enough to seal their fate. ¡°Yes, kill them off, let¡¯s go, we¡¯re going to kill some snake lice. Gargul set up a base deep in the marsh and used eggs to breed these creatures. He¡¯s even hired some swordsmen, and used corrupt methods to forcefully enhance their power. We¡¯ll go and destroy that ce first,¡± Negris said excitedly. As soon as he turned around, Misha, waiting anxiously in the distance, quickly stood up: ¡°Lord Summoner, take me with you! Please, take me, Misha.¡± Ange and the others didn¡¯t include her in their meeting, so she had no idea what they were discussing. It was Negris¡¯ loud deration about destroying the enemy base that caught her attention. How could she miss out on such a great opportunity? ¡°What did you call me?¡± Negris asked, puzzled. ¡°Lord Summoner,¡± Misha replied, ¡°You can summon the Dragon God. You¡¯re a powerful summoner. Isn¡¯t that right?¡± When she mentioned the summoning of the Dragon God, all the others shot ¡®caring¡¯ nces at her, including the stranger amongst them, as if they were looking at a child. Negris gave an awkward yet polite smile, ¡°You must be mistaken.¡± Eventually, they decided to bring Misha along, as she was familiar with the terrain and had a map of the entire marsh.@@novelbin@@ The hedgehog people, who had lived here all their lives, knew how to get home but had no idea what else was in the marsh. After verifying that Gargul¡¯s base wasn¡¯t in the same direction as the hedgehog people¡¯s vige, Negris suggested they head back and stay vignt. It was better if they left the swamp for some time with their families. Ange, Little Angel, Little Zombie, and Negris rode Hemel, while Lightning carried Big Cat Durken, Feiti, and Luther. Meanwhile, Misha held on to a broomstick as they all flew towards the depths of the swamp. Misha felt unsteady sitting atop the slender broomstick and envied Hemel and Lightning. She couldn¡¯t help but ask, ¡°Why can they run across the swamp?¡± ¡°It¡¯s just their nature. What¡¯s up with your broomstick? Why is it smoking?¡± Negris asked, puzzled. Misha turned around and found that her broomstick was indeed smoking. Panicked, she suddenly lost control and plummeted from the sky. Ange wafted his hand, and a gust of wind supported her, preventing her from crashing into the mud. He also brought the broomstick back. Misha quickly thanked Ange and inspected the broomstick: ¡°It¡¯s broken. I¡¯ve probably used it for too long, and the array core broke.¡± Durken intervened, ¡°It¡¯s quite delicately made. Let me see if I can fix it.¡± ¡°Oh, thank you so much. It doesn¡¯t matter if you can¡¯t fix it. I¡¯ve used it for quite some time. I have another one.¡± Misha handed Durken the broken broomstick and pulled out two identical ones from her storage space. Feeling somewhat embarrassed, she suggested to the others, ¡°If the horseback is too crowded, you can try riding this. I have more.¡± Durken rolled his eyes and tossed the broomstick away. Negris couldn¡¯t help butment, ¡°You¡¯re really wealthy. I forgot to ask about your identity. A seventh-level wizard, staying alone in a marsh. Where are your followers?¡± It was strange. A rich female wizard like her should have countless followers. It was unlikely she¡¯d be alone in the swamp. Misha scratched her head awkwardly: ¡°There were too many. I couldn¡¯t tell if they wanted to follow me or court me, so I quietly slipped away. Oh, right, I¡¯m from the Mars Magic Tower, and my father is the current president of the Magician¡¯s Guild.¡± ¡°The Magician¡¯s Guild? Mars? As in the Mars from Steris?¡± Negris¡¯s eyes widened. This female wizard had quite the background! No wonder she was so wealthy. Chapter 669 - 370 Discovery by the Entire Plane_1 Chapter 669: Chapter 370 Discovery by the Entire ne_1 The Mercenary Guild is very wealthy, with bounties worth hundreds of millions of Demon Crystals, including one for the remains of Steadfast Locke, still hanging on the bounty board. By rule, thirty percent of the bounty amount must be deposited as a guarantee, and this is invible. This means that the Mercenary Guild must have at least a cash reserve of 30 million Demon Crystals. Whether they leave the cash in the ount, or lend it out for financial operations, at least 30 million must be recorded on paper. That is enough since the assets of the Mercenary Guild certainly exceed hundreds of millions of Demon Crystals. With the figures on paper in hand, they can mortgage the guild¡¯s assets to get money if they cannot readily produce the cash. The Magician¡¯s Guild, on the other hand, is a hundred times richer than the Mercenary Guild, the difference akin to that between a wealthyndlord and a well-off bank that deals in finance. This is because the Magician¡¯s Guild produces Demon Crystals. ¡°For instance, the Elemental Converter, it¡¯s produced by your Magician¡¯s Guild, right?¡± Negris asked. ¡°No, not at all, don¡¯t just make things up. It was a masterpiece from the Goblin Engineers, nothing to do with us,¡± Misha promptly denied. Negris smirked. He used to believe such denials, but after a Goblin Master Engineer like Vaguli joined his family, he realized this was impossible. Goblin Engineers are just under the nurture of wizards. They either end up like Vaguli, under the care of Steris Academy, or are nurtured by the Magician¡¯s Guild. Without wizards, goblins can¡¯t even engrave Magic Runes, let alone handle the Magic Circuit and Energy Cores inside. Goblins are just employees, while wizards are the bosses. The Magician¡¯s Guild bestows the honor of inventing the Elemental Converter onto the Goblin Engineers. The main reason is the bigger one gets the more target they be, too much wealth attracts hatred. Being wealthy is one thing, but now they can ¡®produce¡¯ money too, which doubles the envy towards them. Being wealthy and producing money is tolerable, but they also have multitudes of followers and numerous girls and women throwing themselves at them, hating them squared.@@novelbin@@ However, the title of Misha¡¯s father as a guild president isn¡¯t the wealthiest among them, the ones with more wealth are ones like thendlord of Mars Magic Tower. Mars obviously follows the naming pattern of Steris, and truly, it has countless connections with Steris. The founder of Mars Magic Tower was a student of Mars, a sessor to the magic tradition, Seventh Level Fire Mage Joseph. There are some beings in the world with no particr talent for cultivation, but they have superior eloquence abilities. No one can beat them in a fight nor can anyone outtalk them, take for instance¡­.Red Star. Negris¡¯s talking skills were slightly inferiorpared to the Red Star¡¯s. He couldn¡¯t outtalk Lightning. Joseph is just like the Red Star, not inherently skilled in cultivation, but first-rate at educating students. Borrowing the fame of Mars, Joseph established the Mars Magic Tower at the foot of the Sulphur Volcano. Several hundred yearster, Mars Magic Tower has grown into the top-tier Wizards¡¯ Tower in the Master ne. Due to its origin ties with Steris, it still receives several exchange student cements. Getting into top-tier academies like Steris Academy is a lifelong dream for all wizards. If they fail the entry exams, many opt to join Wizards¡¯ Towers that offer exchange programs. The wizards of Mars Magic Tower, those with talent focus on cultivating, those without strive to participate in management work while those skilled in intrigue try joining different wizard groups. In the hundreds of years that followed, the Mars Magic Tower has be an integral part of the Pancontinental Magicians Guild, with many of its members infiltrating various departments of the guild, which gives them quite an advantage during elections. Misha¡¯s father, Joseph VI, has served as the president of the Magician¡¯s Guild for eight terms, that is sixteen years, with each termsting two years. The election is just around the corner again. Given the president¡¯s crucial role, despite the position not being profitable, in fact sometimes it incurs losses, it can attract policies favoring one¡¯s Wizards¡¯ Tower. Thus, in recent years, Mars Magic Tower has be increasingly prosperous. ¡°Thesest couple of years, the most profitable businesses have been the Silk Magic Cloth, World Tree branches, spatial ornaments, and Holy Essence Liquids. So much money is being made that people are getting jealous and are starting to undermine my father for the presidency,¡± Misha said indignantly. Ange tilted his head, while Negris and a few others exchanged baffled looks. Changing the subject, Negris asked, ¡°So why are you here? What¡¯s there to enjoy in a marsh?¡± Misha shook her head, ¡°Nothing fun, and too many mosquitoes too. But it¡¯s peaceful, and those guys will never think I woulde to a ce like this.¡± ¡°Oh, it¡¯s so annoying. Since I became an adult, all the people around me started behaving strangely. They promised to be my guardians and followers but now one after another they are beginning to unt themselves.¡± ¡°And there are too many with connections. They have to be shoved in to be my followers, but once they arrive, rather than cultivating, they dress in all sorts of colours and wave them around in front of me, disturbing my cultivation. It¡¯s so vexing!¡± Misha grumbled about this deeply. ¡°Right, the biological instinct to reproduce.¡± ¡°Spring ising, it is the season for the exchange of essence.¡± ¡°By the way, Little Yellow Dragon, can you still¡­?¡± Durken asked with a grin. ¡°I know what you¡¯re asking. Naeli has started learning the Divine Intercourse technique of the Subus. If it really doesn¡¯t work, I¡¯ll reincarnate and go back.¡± Negris replied irritably. A fewscivious old men were whispering amongst themselves about whether Divine Intercourse could produce Dragon offspring, or if using its scale to cultivate a body would be considered its ¡®kin¡¯ or ¡®it¡¯. No one was interested in Misha¡¯s adolescent troubles anymore. Chapter 670 - 370 Discovery by the Entire Plane_2 Chapter 670: Chapter 370 Discovery by the Entire ne_2 Feeling both relieved and dejected, Misha realized that these people didn¡¯t give a damn about whose daughter she was. Even the weirdo kept a proper distance, not showing any signs of fawning over her. But that¡¯s exactly what Misha wanted. Ange was already an Archmage, who could even transform into a Dragon God at Little Yellow Dragon¡¯s ¡®summon¡¯. He was even more powerful than her own father. The rest of them were also incredibly powerful. Even the weirdo had the strengthparable to the Sword Of Truth. If her father was here, he would have to curry favor with them too. Two hourster, they covered a straight-line distance of three hundred kilometers, entering deep into the swamp. Pulling out the map, Misha looked astoundedly at Lightning and Hemel. ¡°What kind of horses are you two? Three hundred kilometers in two hours? My fastest speed when flying in the sky doesn¡¯t exceed that.¡± Lighting smirked, muttered a few words into Hemel¡¯s ear. Hemel then stepped forward, knocking on his own head with his hoof, ¡°What horse? Your whole family are horses. I¡¯m a Unicorn, didn¡¯t you see?¡± Lightning shoulder-bumped him, ¡°Unicorn is my line, you have to change Unicorn to yours when you say it.¡± ¡°Oh, Hemel, see me! Don¡¯t you?¡± Hemel smacked his brain again, then looked puzzled, ¡°Why don¡¯t you say it yourself?¡± ¡°Don¡¯t you see what¡¯s on top of my head? I¡¯ll hit the big cat if I do.¡± ¡°Makes sense.¡± Well, these two horses were weird too. Misha flew a little farther away, pulled out the map andpared, ¡°We are twenty kilometers away from our destination, the Broken Swamp.¡± As they approached the Broken Swamp, Big Cat suddenly froze. Durken also said, ¡°No wonder this ce was chosen as the foothold. It is a weak point in this ne. The barrier here is so weak that even a sneeze from me could break it.¡± Everyone in the team turned to look at him. Negris urged, ¡°Then do it. Sneeze.¡± Helplessly, Durken replied, ¡°What¡¯s wrong with people nowadays? Can¡¯t you take a joke? Have you heard of exaggeration?¡± ¡°Atchoo¡ª¡ª¡± Big Cat suddenly sneezed, which immediately triggered ripples of colorful waves around. This was a phenomenon urring when the nar barrier was on the verge of shattering. Negris snorted disdainfully at Durken. ¡°Lame.¡± At the same moment, Ange suddenly pointed at him, and a row of exploding fireballs flying out from his palm. Behind Negris, an unnoticed tentacle had quietly stretched out. Almost getting Negris wrapped, the exploding fireballs kept bombarding the same spot, blowing it into pieces brutally. More tentacles and bloodsucking ticks jumped out of the swamp, rushing at Ange and his team from all directions. ¡°Damn, we¡¯ve walked into a monster pile-up.¡± Durken shouted. ¡°Defend, defend! Protect Ange, let him cast spells with full power. He has used his transformation and cannot do it again.¡± Negris yelled out loud. Although everyone would usually tease and bicker, at critical moments, they all obeyed orders. Ange was the core of the team, but Ange couldn¡¯t possiblymand a battle, so at critical times, Negris represented Ange. Durken pulled out his Gold-touch Stick, pointed it at the muddy swamp, and a bunch of golden sparkles fell down, solidifying the muddy swamp into a solid ground. Durken jumped onto the hardened ground, brought his palms together, and then pulled them apart with force. A light seal was pulled out from between his palms and kept gettingrger as he pulled. When the light seal reached its limit, Durken pped it onto the ground. This went on for a couple of breaths, and Durken had already imprinted three light seals onto the ground. Aplex magic array appeared on the ground, and under the effect of this magic array, the ground started to swell. The swelling was about six meters in diameter on the hardened ground, rising three meters high before stopping. Outside the diameter of this range, the ground spikes protruded outward. ¡°Field of Flesh ughter, it will get stronger when smeared with flesh and blood. Come up.¡± said Durken. Completing such a magic array and a three-meter high tform, Durken showed no signs of fatigue, he even looked a little excited. There weren¡¯t many things in this world that couldpel him to do his best. Bumping into one, how could he not be thrilled? Luther held his sword ready, fished out a beet root and held it in his mouth, not eating it yet, saving it for when he was tired to replenish his stamina. He didn¡¯t need to draw upon his potential to fend off these tick-like creatures. The Little Angle twisted her shoulders, and the True Wings sprouted from her back. As they slowly extended out, Light Wings emerged beneath her wing roots. She then pulled out the Great Angel Authority in one hand and the Earth Hammer in the other. Little Zombie began to Armorize. One hand transformed into a hoe with a pointed tip that was half a meter long. A single blow could pierce through the tick-like creatures. The other hand turned into a shield. This was Little Zombie¡¯s bestbat posture: charge and then hoe down the enemy. Lightning shook his head, nudging therge cat off his head, to reveal his unicorn horn: ¡°Come on, the Son of Thunder is finally going all out.¡± ¡°Phew¡ª¡± Hemel forcefully spat out a cloud of green mist, which shot towards the creature like a green arrow. Once touched by the green mist, the creature ran forward for a few steps, then suddenly fell forward, its body melting away. Feiti raised his hand with effort: ¡°Lord Ange, could you summon my body over here? I can take these monsters out by myself.¡± Negris immediately rejected: ¡°No need. It¡¯s just some tick-like creatures. Why bother? Is dying too cheap for you? Or do you just want to y?¡± Despite his raised arm, Feiti¡¯s palm was already hanging down, defeated: ¡°Want to y¡­ ¡± ¡°Dream on.¡± Negris sneered, then turned to Ange: ¡°Have Purple Skeleton Titans get ready, prepare for reinforcements at any time.¡± Purple Skeleton Titans weren¡¯t in SPACE because they were not prepared to deploy. They weren¡¯t attacking the curia, and besides the curion, Negris did not believe there was any other enemy inside the Master ne that required such a massive deployment. Having Purple Skeleton Titans ready just served as a precaution, in case of undesired situations. If it¡¯s all just these tick-like creatures, they weren¡¯t worried, however numerous they were. But those tentacles, they didn¡¯t know what they were but they seemed not too tough. The real concerns were the Aolong Mages. If any more like Gargul, being simr-level Aolong Mages, were toe, they¡¯d possibly need to deploy more power. No sooner had the thought crossed his mind than he wished he could smack himself. Because at that moment, in the distance, several tentacles entwined, lifting a few little Dragon Men into the mid-air in their mighty evaluation of the area. Facing the big cat, Negris said: ¡± Big Cat, keep an eye on the situation. If the enemy uses Space Dimension forces again, remember to stop it.¡± ¡°Meow!¡± The big cat energetically patted the ground with its little paw. ¡°Alright alright, I won¡¯t deduct your snacks, okay?¡± Negris said unhappily. ¡°Meow!¡± The big cat patted the paw again. ¡°What? The collecting fee is going up? Increased by one bean? You are a profiteer! It¡¯s not a good habit, I¡¯m telling Ange.¡± Negris threatened. ¡°Meow~ meow~¡± The big cat issued a cute sound, patted its fluffy chest, and gave up on mentioning any price increase. ¡°Hmm, you only pick on the soft targets.¡± Negris sniffed disdainfully, and turned to see Misha¡¯s stunned face. ¡°Are you speaking thenguage of the beastmen? How amazing! I actually understood itsst sentence, it seemed to say: ¡®Don¡¯t bother Lord, leave it to me, no problem¡¯, is that right? By the way, what about me? What am I supposed to do?¡± Misha asked. ¡°Do you still have the Undying Bird Scroll of Rebirth? Use one.¡± Negris instructed. ¡°Oh, yes, I have plenty of level seven Undying Bird Scrolls, leave it to me.¡± Misha patted her chest with confidence. After Misha summoned the Undead Phoenix, Ange found a moment to catalyze it into the Undying Bird. It pped its wings and rushed towards the enemy. While everyone was busy fighting the enormous number of tick-like creatures and probing tentacles, in the Holy Kingdom, the Purple Skeleton Titans had already gathered. Additionally, there were also two War Tree men, dozens of times smaller and curled up in a ball. They would be teleported over to the swamp, where they¡¯d root and spread. Ange pulled out the Staff of Heaven and infused it with Holy Light, ready to open a portal. But suddenly she noticed something strange about the staff. Some parts of it that were previously without touch were suddenly touchable.@@novelbin@@ Ange touched a certain region of the staff with curiosity. Boom! A beam of light broke through the space and descended from the heaven, casting down upon the location where Ange stood ¡ª the God¡¯s Ladder. ¡°My god, how did this happen? The God¡¯s Ladder? How did you summon the God¡¯s Ladder here? We¡¯re in the Master ne.¡± Negris shouted in shock. ¡°This isn¡¯t good, hurry, shut it down. The God¡¯s Ladder prates the barrier of the ne¡­ the whole ne will notice.¡± Negris urged. Chapter 671 - 371: Pick One to Kill_1 Chapter 671: Chapter 371: Pick One to Kill_1 In Demon Valley, a half-demon child with two devil horns on his head, rode on his hobby horse and whipped around a bamboo whip. Running noisily past, he shouted loudly: ¡°Die, vile destroyer of fields, Lord Ange will destroy you!¡± The child, ying the part of the destroyer of fields, screamed and burst intoughter, running off in all directions. Seeing this scene, wrinkles ofughter spread across Green Wood¡¯s face. He shook his head with satisfaction and started breaking the stalk of the Fire Sunflower in his hand. This was a magic nt simr to the sunflower. It grew in environments filled with fire elements. The colossal flower could concentrate arge amount of fire elements and grow white seeds. And what was its use? Well, eating too many would make one prone to internal heat andxative effects. When practicing Fire Magic, munching on these seeds could speed up the recovery rate and they tasted pretty good. Although it could not bepared to the Fire Dragon Fruit which improved Elemental Affinity, it was tasty and cheap, which was why it had many buyers. Hence, Demon Valley was now cultivating this crop on arge scale, selling them to the Master ne to earn money, and using the money to buy food, forming an economic cycle. The barrennds of Demon Valley could no longer support the increasing poption with the crops they produced. They had to rely on Ange for aid from time to time, which was unhealthy. Every ce needed to be productive to sustain operation. Otherwise, in the case of an unexpected event, the trouble would be considerable, like the incident that urred in Witch City a few years ago. Don¡¯t think an unexpected event wouldn¡¯t ur. The Undead King could disappear, what could be more unexpected than that? It was reasonable for Ange to farm thend. But the farther he had to go to farm, the less frequently Ange visited Demon Valley. Consequently, Demon Valley needed to be more self-reliant. However, none of these were problems for Green Wood. Compared to the life ruled by demons a few years ago, life now was like Heaven. He was already too happy, and if he were to die now, he would have no regrets. He had food to eat, three meals a day, with a different menu every time. This was something unimaginable. In the Demon Valley of the past, he was a ve, and it was a big deal if he could eat one meal a day. Even then, he seldom had the opportunity to eat his fill. Only during the busy farming season would the demons allow them to eat their fill. Otherwise, everyone would have no energy to work. As for the taste of food, Green Wood didn¡¯t care in the past and was grateful that he had food to eat. Now that he had tasted good food, every time he looked back on the food of the old days, he would almost vomit. He really didn¡¯t know how he had managed to eat that stuff. He had a ce to live. The residences in Demon Valley were all caves dug out of the mountain wall. The hardened ground was clean and sanitary. Before, they froze to death without windproof doors and breathable windows during cold weather.@@novelbin@@ Now, they not only had doors and windows, but also heaters. They could pick up a few hot rocks from the ground fire and keep warm all night. However, due to the existence of the ground fire, the weather in Demon Valley could freeze people to death for only a few short days. Therefore, whether to heat the stove or not didn¡¯t matter. Having doors and windows was enough. He had a job. His primary job now was taking care of children. Green Wood was already over forty years old, an age at which a human should be at his prime. Unfortunately, judging by his appearance, no one would believe he was so young. Negris had initially thought he was an old human. Being malnourished since childhood had resulted in a dreadful physical development, bad teeth due to calcium deficiency, a hunched figure and fragile bones. Nothing else could be remedied. The calcium deficiency was irreversible. Once the enamel and height were set, even Ange could only possibly help him regrow by using the Goddess of Beauty Fist. So he couldn¡¯t do heavy work, but looking after kids was fine. Green Wood particrly liked this job. Watching the lively children shouting and jumping around made him feel a few years younger. Having food to eat, a ce to live, and a job to do, Green Wood felt that his life had never been so happy. So, he devotedly thanked Ange, who brought this happy life to him. In his spare time, he would look up at the magnificent ce in the sky. ording to Lady Lisa, that was the Immortal Divine Kingdom, the shrine of Lord Ange, and the final resting ce of souls. If Negris hadn¡¯t objected, Lisa would even have wanted to bring over the whole set-up of the Church of Light, to trick everyone into striving to contribute, so their souls could return to the Divine Country after death and enjoy eternal peace. Unfortunately, Negris was against it, so Lisa brought out a trump card¡ªeternal life. Eternal life and youth, wouldn¡¯t that be more attractive than having their souls return to the Divine Country? And the example was right in front of everyone. There was the living Luther by Ange¡¯s side. Everyone sought to retain their consciousness after death by devoutly contributing. If one were to be a mindless zombie or skeleton after death, it would mean they weren¡¯t devout enough. So most believers were very devout. Green Wood was the same. From time to time, he looked up at the sky¡­ Huh? Where was the Immortal Divine Kingdom? The Holy Kingdom that had been suspended in the sky and almost visible from the entire Resting Abyss, had disappeared without him noticing. ¡­ In the Master ne, Ange turned off the Heavenly Stairs and then said: ¡°I, it seems, have summoned the Holy Kingdom here.¡± ¡°Wh¡­what do you mean?¡± Negris asked with great trepidation. ¡°The Holy Kingdom has been summoned by me.¡± Ange swung the Staff of Heaven in his hand, and with a wave, a row of fireballs shot out. ¡°Can¡­can you send it back?¡± Negris asked, swallowing hard. Ange shook his head. At that moment, boom! The entire earth and sky started shaking, as if something heavy had hit them. The sky started flickering with a rainbow of colors, a phenomenon that urred when space became unstable. Chapter 672 - 371: Pick One to Kill_2 Chapter 672: Chapter 371: Pick One to Kill_2 Then, with a snapping sound, under a bright sky, the heavens cracked open, imusibly revealing part of the Holy Kingdom. The light faded for a moment. The Kingdom has descended! Negris covered her eyes, unable to bear the sight. The Holy Kingdom had descended, the kingdom that had disappeared for a thousand years had came today, and even ruptured the nar barrier. No need to think at all, the whole realm knew it, trying to hide now would be toote. Helplessly, she said: ¡°Set down the Titans, let¡¯s deal with them as quickly as we can, then get out of here.¡± Ange raised his staff, and from the split in the sky, a column of light descended. BOOM! A shadow followed it down. Standing three and a half meters tall in heavy armor, Purple Corpse was holding the Thunder Spear. Purple Corpse had grown to a height of three meters. Her whole figure had erged, emanated the intimidation of Titan Giant. ¡°Thunder descends! Invincible! Nothing can defeat me! Forward, with courage! Into the hole! Quick, rescue me!¡± Purple Corpse roared. Thending point of the light column was outside the array, in the marsnd. As soon as Purple Corpsended, she shouted a few heroic words before sinking. The heavy armor on her body prevented her from responding, sinking faster the more she struggled. Everyone exchanged nces, and finally, it was Durken who hardened the ground of thending point with a few taps of the gold-touch stick. Only then was Purple Corpse able to struggle free. Alright, Durken couldn¡¯t just stand idly by. Around the magic array, he transformed a circr area of marsh into solid ground. Once the Titansnded, they gathered around the array, smashing any creatures that got close and throwing their bodies onto the spikes. As the flesh and blood soaked into the spikes, the magic array began to expand and rise, bing sturdier and sturdier. Aptly named the Field of Flesh ughter, it was capable of harnessing the energy of flesh and blood for its power. Thest to descend were two War Giant Trees. Although they stood a hundred meters tall, they had shrunk to form a ring less than five meters across. Upon touching the ground, their roots probed into the marsnd, expanding as if vitalised by magical nutrients. The three Aolongians hoisted high in the air by tentacles watched from a distance, their voices trembling: ¡°What¡­ what are these¡­ these people?¡± ¡°That man acting like a magic turret, his Magic Power is like a bottomless pit, infinite, not even a Truth Mage could reach his level. And that me bird that he casually morphed into a being of arcane level.¡± ¡°That Alchemist is also very strong. The alchemy skill he uses is so esoteric, I can¡¯t understand it.¡± ¡°Hiss¡ª¡±You don¡¯t understand it? But you¡¯re the most powerful alchemist among us.¡± ¡°In this situation, if you say I¡¯m the strongest, it seems like you¡¯re putting me on the hot te. I don¡¯t want to face this level of enemy.¡± ¡°Sigh, that Nightmare Horse is horrible, the green fog it emits is a powerful acid that I¡¯ve never seen before, effortlessly dissolving the lice.¡± If their previous conversation could be considered normal, the moment the Holy Kingdom broke through the nar barrier, showing a part of it, their conversation became a stutter: ¡°Void¡­ Void Fortress¡­!¡± ¡°The¡­ The barrier of¡­ the Master ne, it¡¯s broken.¡± ¡°What the hell have we gotten ourselves into? Our mission was only to torch the fields, to try to reduce the food production here, not to fight against the guardian of the ne.¡± ¡°So¡­ shall we run?¡± The three Aolongians nodded together: ¡°Good idea.¡± As they were sliding down from the tentacles, preparing to make a run for it, the ornament on the forehead of one Aolongian blinked, instantly erecting a shield. CLANG! A ck streak cut onto the shield. After the unsessful strike, the ck streak vanished into thin air. The three Aolongians immediately went into alert mode, desperately releasing detection spells, whilst frantically reinforcing their shields and yelling: ¡°Assassin! Assassin! He can be invisible!¡± nothing was found, as if the ck streak just now was their delusion. The Aolongians dared not move. Assassins are the nemesis of magicians. Without finding the assassin, they dared not go anywhere. If they moved, many spells would fail, making it easy for the assassins to kill them. They didn¡¯t move, and the assassin was like he never existed at all, quietly, every time they moved, a ck streak shed at them. They disregarded everything and used wide-ranging spells of great power, an indiscriminate output, yet they were attacked by the ck streak again every time they tried to move. For a moment, the Aolongian mages couldn¡¯t move, and thus reached a stalemate with the assassin. The number of Snake Fleas was dwindling and the tentacled creatures were starting to crawl out of the marsh. ¡°Marsh tentacle monsters? Why are they so big?¡± These were indigenous marsh creatures that were originally small, about the size of a pig, lurking in the swamp surviving off decayed organic matter. Their mostmon hunting method was to bind their prey using their tentacles and drag them into the swamp. After waiting for the corpse to dpose, they would consume the decayed matter, their life form somewhat intermediate between animals and nts. However, the tentacle monsters crawling out now were muchrger than usual, each a size of a house, swinging tentacles that were over a dozen meters long. Nevertheless, whether it was the tentacle monsters or the Snake Fleas, neither were individuals of significant strength. If faced one-on-one, they wouldn¡¯t even be able to break through Ange¡¯s firepower blockade. But they had let their guard down this time, burrowing into the monster pile. Enemies swarmed in from all directions and Ange suddenly found his Fireballs insufficient. Due tock of firepower, others could pick up the ck. Enemies that charged to the front were taken out by various skillful magic maneuvers or crushed by the Titans. Even Luther, who was usually at a loss after drawing his sword as all the enemies were already dead, managed to defeat a dozen or so enemies. But after all, they were not endless. There was a time when all would be dead. Half an hourter, the Field of Flesh ughter was piled with corpses and the Magic Array had turned into a giant stone tform with a diameter of over twenty meters and a height of ten meters. On the corpses of the Snake Fleas, Hemel spat green mist to dissolve them, preventing them from hatching more Snake Fleas. Ange walked in mid-air. Negris quickly followed him, heading towards the ce where the three Aolongians were. The three shadows revealed their true forms after deactivating their cloaking state. ¡°Voidwalkers?!¡± The Aolong Magisters were surprised, but soon denied: ¡°No, not Voidwalkers, what are they?¡± A crevice opened at the position of mouth on the dark figure¡¯s face, opening and closing as it spoke: ¡°Don¡¯t you have ck Warriors there?¡± The Aolong Magister blinked, clearly never heard of them. Negrisughed: ¡°The resurrection altar of yours was invented by Anthony, they don¡¯t even recognize undead creatures, let alone ck Warriors.¡± Turning to the Aolongians, Negris asked: ¡°What are you? Where do youe from? Why did you attack us?¡± With a nk face, the Aolong Magister said: ¡°They attacked you, it has nothing to do with us, we don¡¯t know these monsters.¡± Negris shrugged, turned to Ange and said: ¡°Pick one and kill it.¡± Ange extended his hand, a st of Fireballs rushed towards one of the Aolong Magisters, who was trampling on a wild ear of rice. Although this was not a great crime, Negris said to pick any, so he chose it. The Aolong Magister desperately erected a shield in panic, trying to struggle, but to no avail. If a barrage of Fireballs didn¡¯t kill it, another barrage would follow, unless it had boundless magic power like Ange¡¯s, otherwise it would simply be grounded down to death. The third barrage of Fireballs broke through its defense and turned the Aolong Magister to ashes. The other two Aolong Magisters were going weak at the knees, but they still managed to say: ¡°We still have a Space Arcane Mage, when hees back, you are doomed.¡± Ange held up Gargul to their faces, the faces of the two Aolong Magisters finally gave in, and they both fell to their knees in the mud: ¡°We surrender, wee from Eternity Road, we are from the Aolong n¡­¡± Just as the Aolong Magister was delivering a detailed confession, Ange cocked his head; he had received a call from Anthony. Just as he connected, he heard Anthony¡¯s anxious voice: ¡°Master, half an hour ago, we detected a violent collision with the nar barrier. Is this rted to you?¡±@@novelbin@@ ¡°Yes,¡± answered Ange. Anthony took a deep breath: ¡°I knew it, has Heaven descended? I just received information that all the Arbitration Angels, Judgement Angels, Gargoyles in the Judgment Hall have swarmed out. Even the God of Arbitration has descended, I fear¡­¡± Anthony hadn¡¯t finished speaking when Ange suddenly said: ¡°I see it.¡± On the horizon, countless points of light were hurtling towards them at high speed. Thergest ball of light leading them belonged to a golden giant. Chapter 673 - 372: Same Nature as Defecting to the Enemy_1 Chapter 673: Chapter 372: Same Nature as Defecting to the Enemy_1 The golden giant and countless points of light slowly descended, surrounding the area where the ne barrier had split. A Heavenly Kingdom Chariot also arrived. Seeing the shattered ne barrier and a glimpse of the Divine Country exposed by the break, Guliani eximed in surprise, ¡°Heavenly kingdom is descending!? Why is the Heavenly Kingdom¡­¡± Realizing he wasn¡¯t alone, Guliani swallowed the rest of his words. On the other side of the chariot stood the incarnation of Lord Light, Ange, in his resurrected Divine Body. In the shadow of the Divine Body, the Dark peeked out and wondered, ¡°The Heavenly Kingdom descends? Why would the Heavenly Kingdom descend? It has been out of control for such a long time, who is moving it?¡± ¡°Not only has it lost control, but also all the holy spirits have died. Since the Falling Event, not even a single Holy Spirit has returned to Heaven. The pressure has been immense on me. If everyone fell like Shamara, the Church would have been over,¡± Gulianiined upon hearing this. That night, countless holy spirits were dispatched like fools, only to be swept away by the Resting Wind. Ange collected their corpses, but the Church of Light named that night ¡ª The Falling Event. Prior to the Falling Event, ordinary worshippers could still perform Holy Spirit Possessions. But after that night, the number of people able to perform Holy Spirit Possessions drastically declined, causing Shamara to make a fuss everywhere. To appease her, Guliani had to make considerable efforts. Initially, he advised her to go home and rest, but behind her back he fabricated charges to incarcerate her. He then had one of his closest saints perform Holy Spirit Possession at a public gathering to quell the fuss caused by Shamara¡¯s outcries. Who knew Shamara would be so extreme, descending into darkness and causing an uproar throughout the ne with the Fallen Angel incident? Her actions dealt an even more severe blow to the reputation of the curia, letting Anthony seize the opportunity, leaving him in a passive position. All these matters were connected, intertwining with one another. And it all seemed to have started from the Falling Event. From that moment, the typically obedient and harmless Anthony suddenly revealed his sharp teeth, biting back at Guliani who was still struggling to cope. Why did the Eastern Diocese follow him blindly, defying the Church¡¯s core values? Are the kings and dukes all fools? Are they not afraid of retribution?@@novelbin@@ Despite their betrayal of God¡¯s grace, these people do not gain any more benefits. What Anthony could give them did not exceed what he himself could provide. With increased risks but no change in rewards, wouldn¡¯t the worldly people oppose? Guliani had been thinking for over a dozen months, but he was still unable to figure it out. Next, why did Dyson betray him? He treated him well, but why did he betray him? What benefit did Anthony promise him? Divinity? He had already ignited his Divine Fire. As long as he followed the steps, he could achieve divinity peacefully, so why pledge allegiance to Anthony? It was as if he had be a different person. Guliani could not think of any other reasons aside from impersonation for him to make such a decision. And all of this started from that Falling Event. Since then, he had not received any news about the Holy Kingdom, leading him to believe that the Holy Kingdom and the holy spirits within had all fallen. Unexpectedly, the Heavenly Kingdom now descended, even breaking through the ne barrier? Who was driving the Heavenly Kingdom? ¡°Isn¡¯t it obvious? Look at the Arbitration Angels. They¡¯re clearly enemies,¡± the Dark sidemented. The Arbitration Angels, Judgment Angels, and Sorrow Angels, also known as gargoyles encircling the rift, all maintained abat stance, ready to attack the Holy Kingdom at any time. The God of Arbitration and his angels were an independent power outside of the curia, directly managed by the powerful warrior deity, the God of Arbitration, not like the curia which was managed by the Pope. The establishment of the Judgment Hall was to judge heretics. In the beginning, the term ¡°heretic¡± referred to dissenters within the Church, and only gradually extended to include the Undead, demons, and other such entities. Compared to heretics, internal dissenters were more detestable. The Arbitration Angel and Judgment Angel are both holy spirits, no different from ordinary Holy Spirit Angels. Only the Sorrow Angel is a bit special. It is created by refining those heresies. It possesses the special abilities of the heresies but loyally guards the safety of the curia. Under normal circumstances, they take the form of stone statues, hanging around eaves and doorposts, and would spring into action in the face of danger, annihting the enemies. Because they take the form of stone statues, they are also known as Gargoyles. Those statues in the control room of the world transit station are quite simr, but they are not refined from heresies, but directly refined with Soul Fire, without any special abilities, and definitely no so-called sins. Even the Sorrow Angel has been brought out, indicating how seriously the Arbitration is taking this action. ¡°What enemy is worth the Arbitration intervening personally? Lord Light had been looking for him several times and he hasn¡¯t responded at all,¡± Dark muttered. Recently, the God of Light and Darkness and Guliani have not stopped. They have both lost control over the two remaining dioceses. If they want to reim the dioceses, relying on a single curia city would not be enough. They are now seeking the support of the God of Arbitration. But when they went to the Judgment Hall, they didn¡¯t meet the Arbitration at all. Even though they left messages for him, Arbitration didn¡¯t reply. If it weren¡¯t for Lord Light still being able to sense his presence, likely everyone would believe that Arbitration had died. Just when they thought that they might never see Arbitration in their lifetime, the Judgment Hall suddenly began to move. Then, under the leadership of the God of Arbitration, all the angels poured out. There were hundreds of them. Guliani quickly followed in the Heavenly Kingdom Chariot. In the beginning, they had no idea what was happening. Is it the end of the world? Is it an event worthy of Arbitration¡¯s all-out attack? It wasn¡¯t until they saw the descending Heavenly Kingdom that they understood what had happened. The descent of the Heavenly Kingdom was indeed an event significant enough to warrant the God of Arbitration¡¯s all-out effort. Now, the only question was, who was controlling the descent of the Heavenly Kingdom? ¡°Master of Justice and Arbitration, where is the enemy?¡± Guliani asked respectfully as the Heavenly Kingdom Chariot approached. The golden giant didn¡¯t move, but Guliani could feel its gaze shift onto him. Guliani bent his body, standing still, as the gaze of the God of Arbitration swept over him. A majestic voice then echoed, ¡°They fled into the Heavenly Kingdom.¡± Ange did not fight them directly but instead hid in the Heavenly Kingdom. This fortress of the Church of Light had now be Ange¡¯s stronghold. ¡°What do we do? Do we attack?¡± Guliani asked. ¡°No,¡± said the God of Arbitration, ¡°Find a way to reim the Heavenly Kingdom.¡± Several hours passed in deep thought until an elderly priest rushed over on a two-legged water bird just before sunset. Upon seeing the Holy Kingdom, he was so overwhelmed with emotion that he tumbled off his mount, kneeling in the hardened mud, praying devoutly,pletely unbothered by his sodden clothes. A whileter, several more priests arrived, dismounting their steeds from a distance, pulling out a kind ofmunication tool and reporting the situation here. Throughout the night, a steady stream of priests, officials, saints, knights, and even devout believers from all directions rushed here using their magical powers. A Delivery Magic Circle was even established. They were willing to spend several times the transportation cost just to be transported here. In the beginning, God of Arbitration, God of Light and Darkness, and Guliani were pleased. However, as the number of people kept increasing, they realized that these people were not praying to them, but to the Holy Kingdom. The Faith Elemental Force offered was directly thrown into the Holy Kingdom, and it was still in the hands of the enemy. The prayers of those people were equivalent to aiding the enemy. PS: I can¡¯t squeeze out any more¡­ Chapter 674 - 373: People Outside Listen to the Master God in Our Hands_1 Chapter 674: Chapter 373: People Outside Listen to the Master God in Our Hands_1 In the Holy Kingdom, Negris watched the formation outside and sighed, ¡°Oh dear, we¡¯re in trouble. The God of Arbitration is actually alive and has appeared. This is troublesome.¡± In confusion, Durken nced at it: ¡°What¡¯s troublesome? We have already killed so many of the Gods of Light. What does one God of Arbitration count for?¡± ¡°It¡¯s not the same. The God of Arbitration is different from the Gods of Light you¡¯ve killed before. Weren¡¯t there said to be three Master Gods? The God of Arbitration is the strongest deity under the three God Masters. It¡¯s not like the Scale of Redemption, itsbat power is in apletely different league,¡± Negris exined. ¡°Now it has been discovered that the three God Masters are actually a single divine entity and have no consciousness. So the God of Arbitration is actually the strongest among the Gods of Light. Moreover, it has survived the Faith Storm a thousand years ago, so in terms ofbat power and experience, it¡¯s not like the Scale of Redemption.¡± On Durken¡¯s face, there was an expression of ¡®how cute, your experience is really limited.¡¯ He smiled and said, ¡°Do you know how many times his Highness has killed this God of Arbitration?¡± Negris paused: ¡°His Highness has killed him? Many times? How did you know? Have you regained your memories of His Highness?¡± Durken shook his head: ¡°Not yet. I don¡¯t know why His Majesty would erase our memories of him, and yet notpletely, just some fragments. It¡¯s really¡­ unpredictable.¡± ¡°You mean ¡®iprehensible¡¯, right? Your ttery is taking a detour. It¡¯s crude,¡± Negris spat out ament, then asked, ¡°How do you know?¡± ¡°You probably don¡¯t know, but I have a bad habit. I like to use secret patterns to record some things on the things I make. Only I and His Majesty can understand these patterns. Others can¡¯t understand. Look at this sentence.¡± Durken waved his hand and a line of patterns appeared. ¡°The meaning of this secret pattern is: ¡®This was constructed on the day of the sixth killing of the God of Arbitration, recorded on the stone.¡¯ Negris drew in a breath: ¡°Is this text? I thought they were patterns! I used to wonder why the patterns on the buildings were so regr. It turns out that it wasn¡¯t my illusion, but real text.¡± ¡°Hehe, I made it up myself, pretty cool, huh?¡± Durken stated proudly. ¡°What does this figure mean? Killing? And this one? Date? And this? Construction, forming meaning?¡± Negris took out some items forged by Durken, and after asking about the patterns on them one by one. ¡°Alright, I¡¯ve learned. The meaning of this sentence is: ¡®Gift for the Smiling Bronze Dragon¡­ Kvada, you cursed me! I thought it was some exquisite pattern.''¡± said Negris angrily. Durken chuckled: ¡°Hehe, if you were as quick at plotting as you are at learning, even Anthony would have to behave.¡± ¡°Hmph, you¡¯ve insulted two with one insult. I¡¯m going to tell Anthony, Ange, could you find Anthony, please?¡± ¡°It can¡¯t be that serious, a little mean.¡± ¡°A little, nothing! I¡¯m going to him to discuss this situation. If I don¡¯t, I should wait for your advice?¡± retorted Negris. ¡°Right, right, right, ask Anthony for advice, Kvada, two Gods from the Light plus a Pope knocking at the door, hurry up and ask Anthony what we should do.¡± Everyone agrees to find Anthony. ¡°Three, that is the God of Light and Darkness, plus another Dark Lord who is part of him.¡± Ange closed his eyes, after a while, he directly took out the Staff of Heaven and a sh of white light shot up from the temple, and Anthony stepped over. As soon as Anthony stepped in, he said with a worried face: ¡°We¡¯re in trouble now, the news of the Heavenly Kingdom¡¯s arrival is spreading throughout the Church of Light. Whether in the east or west, all the religious officials and devout believers are rushing here as if their lives are at stake.¡± Everyone gave each other a look. ¡°The faith of the believers is terrifying. When that power reaches a certain level, no one can withstand it, not even the Gods. What¡¯s going on right now, can we get the Heavenly Castle to leave? If they can¡¯t see the physical object, maybe everyone will calm down a bit,¡± Anthony asked. Ange shook his head and lit up the Staff of Heaven. No matter how much Holy Light Ange infused, the sections he touched remained dimmed. With a frown, Anthony said: ¡°Then we¡¯re in trouble. ording to previous records, the descent of the Heavenly Kingdom shouldn¡¯t be happening like this. I guess it¡¯s because this ce happens to be a weak point in the dimensional barrier, causing it to be stuck. The Broken Swamp experiences spatial rifts from time to time, and the space here is shattered.¡± ¡°What should we do then? Don¡¯t tell me you don¡¯t have a solution either? We¡¯re all waiting for you toe up with a solution,¡± Negris sank. ¡°Of course there are ways, but there¡¯s no way to turn this crisis into an opportunity. If we had nned ahead for this big event of the Heavenly Kingdom¡¯s descent, we could¡¯vepletely wiped out the Church of Light, but now it¡¯s toote,¡± said Anthony, frowning. Negris suddenly felt that Anthony¡¯s face was rather hateful and was itching to punch him in the face. Are these human words? It¡¯s already on edge, and this guy is still worried about not maximizing his benefits. ¡°First of all, we need to let them know that the godhood of the three Master Gods are in our hands, which will make them hesitate, or else we¡¯ll blow up the godhood,¡± said Anthony fiercely. ¡°Hiss¡ª¡ª¡± ¡°Hiss¡ª¡ª¡± ¡°Crack¡ª¡ª¡± Negris, Durken and Feiti gasped in unison, but all Feiti could do with his current skeletal form was to clench his teeth. The Godhead of the Master God was specifically created by the Gods of Light, aiming at a fair distribution of the Faith Elemental Force, with an ethos of Light¡¯s supremacy and blessing, regardless of the situation. The scriptures speak of the creation of the world and formation of all beings, all fabricated by the Creator God, who holds an unmatched stature as the supreme God. They were the Trinity, sharing divine power. Whether it¡¯s arbitration or the Scale of Redemption, the source of their divine power is the Supreme Light Creator God. If the Godhead of their Master God were destroyed, they would immediately return to their original form. So, it¡¯s definitely possible to threaten them using the Master God¡¯s Godhead. The only question is, ¡°Can you really destroy the Master God¡¯s Godhead?¡± It¡¯s one thing to destroy it; the iron sphere that binds the Godhead is, perhaps, can only be broken by Ange from amongst those present. Even if the others tried with all their might, they might not be able to shatter that iron sphere. ¡°There must be a way, such as banishing it to a dimensional space? Even if we cannot do that, we just need them to believe that we can,¡± said Anthony. Mention of the dimensional space immediately caused difort for Durken, who will forever remember the scene of himself being blown up by a chaotic current. If the Master God¡¯s Godhead were banished to a dimension, could it withstand the endless chaos of that space? No one knows. Not even the God of Arbitration. So when a Smiling Bronze Dragon flew out from the barrier, smiling as he threatened, the God of Arbitration was somewhat confused. ¡°No one has ever threatened me¡­¡± The golden giant uttered in a majestic voice. Negrisughed, ¡°Perhaps you don¡¯t remember that you have been killed by the Undead King six times already.¡± ¡°You¡ª¡ª¡± The expressionless golden giant was evidently showing anger on his face, and golden eyes began to flicker, about to stare at Negris. Negris hurriedly said, ¡°You know full well that this is my astral projection, if you damage my body, I will urinate on the Godhead of the Master God.¡± The golden giant had to force his eyes away, the golden light faded, and endless anger appeared in his golden eyes. Even Light and Dark and Guliani were on the verge of bursting, gritting their teeth and cursing, ¡°Despicable.¡± Negrisughed sheepishly, ¡°It¡¯s not my fault, this was the idea of a despicable horse.¡± ¡°Who exactly are you? Bronze Juvenile Dragon, you have appeared many times before, I recognize you, but what is your real motive?¡± Guliani, unable to contain himself, questioned from his chariot. Negris had appeared many times, especially at the Grain Seed Conference, so many people had seen him that he barely concealed himself. ¡°Oh, you may have heard my name. I am the God of Knowledge ¡ª¡ª Negris.¡± Negris announced his name openly. This was also part of Anthony¡¯s strategy. Keeping his identity hidden in the present situation was pointless. It would be better to openly reveal it, causing the enemies to regard him as a feared mouse. ¡°The God of Knowledge? The one who was killed by Steadfast Locke?¡± The God of Arbitration was finally moved, he eximed in astonishment. ¡°No, no, nobody was killed. Where did you get such news from? It¡¯s only that the Undead King, who has long admired my prowess, invited me over, Locke was here to extend the invitation, and even built a Hall of Knowledge for me next to Resting Camp for me to reside in.¡± Negris folded his arms and started distorting history without even batting an eyelid. Doubt clouded everyone¡¯s faces, including the golden giant. Obviously, no one believed Negris. However, it was certain that the God of Knowledge and Undead King were in cahoots. The golden giant turned his gaze towards the fracture and asked expressionlessly, ¡°Undead, reborn?¡± ¡°Hehe, the Undead never died.¡± Beneath the rodent-like caution, the God of Arbitration did not initiate an attack. He never intended to attack the Heaven¡¯s fortress in the first ce; his real aim was to seize control of it. However, given the current situation, a seizure is not feasible either. While the stalemate continued, more and more devout believers gathered in the swamp below, their unending Soul mes were directed towards Heaven.@@novelbin@@ PS: Too many troublesome matters during the New Year, I will try to update as much as possible, I¡¯m going to get a tooth extraction tomorrow Chapter 675 - 374: The Eternal Path_1 Chapter 675: Chapter 374: The Eternal Path_1 The God of Arbitration dared not move, and Ange was stuck. Thus, they both remained in a standoff. Streams of believers came non-stop offering their devoted donations, every day was like a sacred ceremony, consistently harvesting an abundance of faith. Devoted believers are one thing, but even more was the devotion of the worshippers. They strengthened their beliefs and fervently embraced their faith. The disappearance of the gods and the destruction of heaven inflicted the most damage to these worshippers. They had devoutly followed the Gods of Light from an early age, grew up to assume religious positions, but they faintly felt that the gods did not exist? They aren¡¯t fools, those who became worshippers aren¡¯t intellectually defective. They naturally gleaned the abnormalities from all the hints. Some people sought power and interest, chose to muddle along, burying their inner yearning for light, but some waited painfully or fell into despair. No matter which kind, at the sight of the advent of heaven at this moment, their inner faith red up like fire ¡ª bing fanatical believers. The sessive emergence of fanatical believers made the God of Arbitration, the gods of Light and Darkness, Guliani, as well as Anthony and Negris on Ange¡¯s side to feel amazed, joyous, and tangled. The surprise and joy of course came from the emergence of fanatical believers. They influenced the rise and fall of many things. A fanatic could do many things. Consider Ange¡¯s fanatic, Lisa counts as half, and she can already support Goddess of Beauty City and the Light Sea ne. Now look at Oke and the silver coin. What confused them was, they didn¡¯t know who could utilize this power. Anthony certainly had confidence. After all, he had control over tworge parishes. Many of the fanatics were his. But with the God of Arbitration standing there in all his golden glory, it¡¯s hard to say who could outstrip the other. After two gruesome weeks, the Staff of Heaven held by Ange started to shine once again. ¡°It seems that we can move once again,¡± Ange, holding out the Staff of Heaven, said. ¡°Really? Finally! Let¡¯s go back to the Resting Abyss and summon it back immediately.¡± Everyone flocked around, Negris said hurriedly. Anthony nodded and said, ¡°We did incite a lot of fanatics by staying here and gathered quite a lot of faith, but most of the Faith Elemental Force is directed towards the Master God. There are two gods on the other side, they can gather more power than us.¡± Ange, without the godhood of the gods of light, could not share these powers, but he had secured many already, so it was hard to say whether or not they¡¯d suffered any loss. Staying here could mean more faith, but Anthony was still hoping to leave promptly. The reason being, ¡°There are too many uncertainties. We should go with the well-trodden path. Given time, I could gradually strangle the curia, seizing all sources of faith. There¡¯s no absolute need to fight them for it.¡± Rather thanpete for uncertain faith, they would rather use standard tactics. After all, Anthony controlled two big parishes at the moment, boasting an advantage in both poption and economy. ¡°However, we can¡¯t just summon it back. Have you forgotten how the Heaven¡¯s Fortification got stuck there in the first ce? If it doesn¡¯t get trapped, and it falls on the Resting Abyss, both ces would be toast,¡± Anthony said. ¡°Right, we can¡¯t just summon it back. The Resting Wind was what initially got it lodged there. If it doesn¡¯t get lodged this time, if it falls, it¡¯d be game over. How do we move it? Can we have it move backward directly? As long as it doesn¡¯t get lodged in the fortification wall here, we can teleport away,¡± said Negris. Ange nodded. ¡°Alright, let¡¯s get started then,¡± said Negris. ¡°Wait, we can¡¯t just leave like this, we should leave a little gift for the God of Arbitration. Sir, you can prate the Heaven¡¯s Fortification now, you just need to do this and that, and then that and this, can you do that?¡± Anthony asked. Ange nodded while the others grinned with a look of delightful schadenfreude on their faces, ¡°Your method is quite malicious, the God of Arbitration will be furious.¡± Anthony, with a solemn expression, said in a righteous manner, ¡°In the war for faith, we must do our best. After all, what we¡¯re saving are the lostmbs.¡± ¡°Precisely, Lord knows best.¡± Everyone pped enthusiastically and dispersed. Only the foolish Misha genuinely believed in him, and said excitedly, ¡°My Lord, you must save them. I¡¯ve heard all about your deeds. You can certainly do it.¡± Anthony, now interested, eagerly asked, ¡°What deeds of mine have you heard about?¡± ¡°My lord, you squandered all your wealth, went bankrupt, found debts everywhere, created many¡­ schemes to help people in disaster. My father said, out of everyone in the world, only you are truly saving people without any ulterior motives. Others, even those who seemingly expect no returns on the surface, they actually do it for fame and honor.¡± ¡°Only you are absolutely selfless, so my father ordered the guild¡¯s departments to facilitate and cooperate wherever possible when it came to your matters,¡± Misha said.@@novelbin@@ ¡°And who is your father?¡± Anthony curiously asked. ¡°Magic Guild President, Joseph VI,¡± Misha said. Anthony suddenly realized, ¡°I see, no wonder the magic guild was so cooperative and their loan disbursement was so quick. As long as there¡¯s coteral, they can disburse the loan within the day. It so happens that the guild president personally ordered it. Please extend my thanks to President Joseph.¡± While they chatted, Ange was also prepared. He released the Holy Light that enveloped his body. At a distance, he looked like a giant transformed by the Holy Light, majestic, solemn and sacred, just like the golden giant of the God of Arbitration. Meanwhile, the Ring of Bnce appeared behind him. Chapter 676: 374 The Eternal Path_2 Chapter 676: Chapter 374 The Eternal Path_2 As he invoked the Holy Light and the Ring of Bnce, passed through the sky barrier, and entered the Master ne, the gathered faith on the ground erupted in a tidal cry of astonishment: ¡°The God of Equality and Bnce! The God of Bnce, it¡¯s the God of Bnce!¡± ¡°Oh heavens, is the end of the world upon us? Is the Undead Cmitying? The gods are descending!¡± How they used to cry and pray, never receiving a response from the gods, at most experiencing Holy Spirit Possessions. To most worshippers, gods only existed in legends and the Holy Code. It¡¯s no wonder doubts arose. People instinctively question what they¡¯ve never seen before. Likewise, having never seen anything of this sort in their lifetime, they now saw three, four piling up before their eyes. A crowd of angels gathered around. ording to the script designed by Anthony, Ange was supposed to loudly question the God of Arbitration at this moment. However, he tilted his head when he saw the bizarre Sorrow Angels among them. ¡°You¡­ are guilty,¡± said Ange, his voice loud and t without any change in tone, as if he were making a in statement. Yet, the Sorrow Angels appeared at a loss as they watched Sacred mes ignite on their bodies. Are the Sorrow Angels guilty? Of course, at least ording to the Church of Light, these Sorrow Angels were created from heretics with heavy sins. Yet, no one had ever judged them until now. Now they have, and the effect was particrly good. The burning Sacred mes quickly burned the wings on their bodies, causing them to lose control and fall one after another. The believers below could not actually distinguish between Sorrow Angels and Battle Angels. They only heard Ange pronounce ¡®guilty¡¯, and then saw angels falling down in mes. Did this not imply that these falling angels were guilty? ¡°You¡ª¡± the God of Arbitration rushed over. Ange quickly retreated, shouting loudly at the same time: ¡°Arbitration, you have abandoned the light, the God above revoked your qualification to enter Heaven. Those who are not just will be cast out by the light!¡± Ange¡¯s words were sinct, like reading from a script. Indeed, he was reciting from a script. These were the lines taught by Anthony. However, the content was earth-shattering, and the sound reverberated across the entire sky and earth, leaving the worshippers and believers below dumbfounded. Confusion and anger appeared on the poker-faced God of Arbitration, Anthony¡¯s words were unforgivably vicious.@@novelbin@@ Ange passed through the heavenly barrier unhindered because he was certified and did not need to forcefully break the barrier as before to enter. The God of Arbitration collided with the barrier. In his rushes, he punched the barrier. Bang! A thunderous boom rang out from the heavenly barrier. As Locke, Ange needed eight or nine seconds to break the barrier. The God of Arbitration, however, didn¡¯t have that time. As his first strike hits the heavenly barrier, Ange had already activated the Staff of Heaven. The heavenly fortress began to slowly move. The heavenly fortress was stuck on the Master ne¡¯s barrier, leading to the current situation. Once the fortress began to move, the rupturing force would no longer exist and the ne¡¯s barrier would recover at the fastest speed. The God of Arbitration punched the heavenly barrier dozens of times in five seconds. When he wanted to continue, the interdimensional barrier had recovered, and the rupture was gone. Just as the newly recovered interdimensional barrier wasn¡¯t sturdy, the God of Arbitration instinctively wanted to tear space to follow. He wanted to break through the heavenly barrier in one go and kill everyone inside. However, at this moment, he sensed something, turned his head, and saw that the believers and worshippers on the ground were all looking at him with shocked expressions. When he looked over, many people even scornfully looked away and lowered their heads. Thump! Ange¡¯s words were confirmed¡ªthe God of Arbitration was stripped of his qualifications to enter Heaven and was expelled by the light. No! It¡¯s not as you see! It¡¯s not me who was expelled, it¡¯s these people who stole the Heavenly Fortress! The God of Arbitration¡¯s heart roared in fury. But it was no use, people were more willing to believe what they saw with their own eyes. ¡®The God of Bnce¡¯ could enter Heaven unhindered, but he was stopped by the barrier. He had lost his qualification to enter Heaven, he had abandoned the light, he had lost his fairness¡­ The God of Arbitration could almost hear everyone¡¯s thoughts. ¡­ ¡°Tsk, tsk, tsk, do you think Arbitration has a way to exin this? Isn¡¯t he at aplete disadvantage?¡± Negris said gleefully. Even with the superior wisdom as a God of Knowledge, he couldn¡¯t think of a way for the God of Arbitration to escape his disadvantage. As long as he couldn¡¯t enter the Heavenly Fortress, the charge of his expulsion would be unassable. Once the situation here spread, every believer who prayed to Arbitration would invariably think: Does the unfair God of Arbitration still qualify to arbitrate others? This was a tremendous and irreparable blow to the power of the God of Arbitration. ¡°Unless he can silence how many tens of thousands of them?¡± Negris asked Ange. ¡°Five hundred and eighty-six thousand, seven hundred and seventy-nine people,¡± Ange replied. During the two weeks down in the marshes, hundreds of thousands of people had gathered. They were so numerous that they couldn¡¯t urately be counted, but when Ange¡¯s Ring of Bnce swept past them, the number could be calcted urately down to a single individual. ¡°Unless he can silence the mouths of those five hundred and eighty-six thousand, seven hundred and seventy-nine people,¡± Negris said. ¡°Hahaha.¡± Everyoneughed in delighted triumph at the God of Arbitration¡¯s plight. After a few rounds ofughter, they all looked up towards the outside of the barricade because the light outside had dimmed. The Holy Kingdom was always suspended above the Resting Abyss, sharing its luminosity. For the past two weeks, it had been sharing the sunlight of the Master ne. Now, all of the light had disappeared, leaving the outside of the barricade inplete darkness. ¡°Is this the Void? It¡¯s pitch ck, why aren¡¯t there any stars?¡± Luther gazed upwards, asking his question. ¡°You¡¯re confusing the Void with the starry sky. They¡¯re not even on the same level of existence,¡± Misha replied disdainfully. ¡°Ah? They¡¯re not?¡± Luther stopped in surprise. ¡°Of course not.¡± Misha emphasized. ¡°What¡¯s the difference?¡± Luther asked with curiosity. Misha shook her head: ¡°How would I know? I¡¯m not a Space Mage. All I know is they are not the same level of existence.¡± Luther turned to Durken, looking past a Bronze Dragon currently striking a pose and asked, ¡°Alchemy King Durken, could you please exin the difference between the Void and the starry sky?¡± Durken amusingly asked, ¡°Why don¡¯t you ask the God of Knowledge?¡± Luther shrugged, ¡°He likes to show off and talks in aplicated manner. I can¡¯t understand.¡± That upset Negris: ¡°You pig-headed fool.¡± Durken pondered for a moment, then tried to exin with simple words: ¡°If our Master ne and the Abyss Dimension are seen as bubbles, then the Void is the water that supports these bubbles. We can easily swim from one bubble to another in the ¡®water¡¯.¡± ¡°The Holy Kingdom is also a Void Fortress. It can carry us freely in the ¡®water¡¯ without us drowning. Dimensional teleportation, on the other hand, is like removing the ¡®water¡¯ between two dimensions, allowing you to instantly traverse different dimensions.¡± ¡°When you look at the starry sky from the Master ne, each star could potentially be a droplet carrying countless nes.¡± ¡°Ooooh-¡± Locke, who had finally understood, gasped: ¡°This means there¡¯s water everywhere outside of the ne? So, even in the most barren Abyss, things can grow?¡± Purple Corpse held his head, nudging with his knuckles, ¡°The ¡®water¡¯ here refers to the Void, it¡¯s the Void, the Void. Even I understand this. You¡¯re a stupid horse.¡± ¡°With so many stars in the sky, could each one be a ¡®water¡¯? Wouldn¡¯t that mean there are at least thousands of worlds like the Master ne?¡± Luther said, shocked. On a normal night in the Master ne, there were so many stars that they were innumerable, certainly numbering in the thousands. ¡°Heh, thousands?¡± Negris sneered: ¡°In Steris Academy, there was a counting game that had been happening for hundreds of years since the Stargazing Tower was built. The astrologists of Steris still haven¡¯t been able to count exactly how many stars there are.¡± Just then, the big cat that Purple Corpse had been using as a pillow suddenly stood up and opened its mouth and made a noise towards the barricade. The big cat was able to emit dimensional vibrations, which could carve a hole in the Resting Wind. Yet in the Void, its vibration was transmitted like a wave into the distance without forming a hole, until it hit something and bounced back. Ange senses the returning vibration which forms an image in his mind ¨C a thin, long object with no discernible end. ¡°Eternity Road?!¡± Chapter 677: 375 - 30,000 Sorrow Angels_1 Chapter 677: Chapter 375 ¨C 30,000 Sorrow Angels_1 Just as Durken had simted with sand and gravel, it was ¡®thin and elongated¡¯, stretching out further than the eye could see, as if reaching to the end of the void. There was no light in the void, if not for the vibration released by the big cat, they would need to be very close and use their souls to visualize its existence, but it was so ¡°thin¡± that they could easily overlook it. They all looked at each other and saw the same idea in each other¡¯s eyes: Shall we go take a look? But before they could act, Anthony suddenly stopped and seemed to listen carefully, his face progressively darkening with anger. Finally, he turned to everyone and said: ¡°The God of Arbitration is ughtering people on Earth.¡± Negris, using the wisdom of his God of Knowledge, could not figure out how the God of Arbitration would solve this problem as it was a kind-hearted Bronze Dragon. But, to the God of Arbitration, the solution was simple¡ªobliterate them all, he called it¡ªDoomsday Judgement! ¡°Lostmbs, lost in the fog, sunk in lies, your eyes, deceived by falsehood, can no longer see the truth. The light will be blocked by your false pretenses. Destroy, this tainted world! Destroy, you foolishmbs!¡± Following the words of the Arbitration, the remaining seventy-plus Arbitration Angels and Judgment Angels scattered like fireworks and started to wield their swords against the people below. This was a one-sided massacre. All the people below were devout worshippers and clergy who utilized the power of the Holy Light. And the God of Arbitration specialized in restraining heresy. His angels found it easier to judge their own kind versus outsiders, it was as if they were casting a beginner level Fireball Technique in front of an Arcane Magician, where they would easily lose control of the elements. Upon counterattacking the angels, the clergy discovered that their power could not harm the opposition. Their Holy Shield was split open by a sword, their Divine Arts ignored by the opposition, and even their Holy Blessings could not fend off the attacks of the angels. Some began to frantically rip open their Teleportation Scrolls in an attempt to flee. However, the moment the vibrations from the scroll began to ripple out, the giant golden figure in the sky immediately turned its gaze. A Sacred me spewed from the ground, and the scroll along with its user were incinerated to ashes.@@novelbin@@ Others mounted their steeds in panic, attempting to flee. But soon, a burst of Holy Light pierced through their heads like a meteor. Some simply bolted, using their own Holy Power to escape into the distance. The Arbitration shifted his gaze, and the Holy Power around those people disappeared instantly. This was a one-sided massacre. Under the eyes of the Arbitration, these devout worshippers and clergy could no longer use their Holy Power. Until¡­ ¡°Master Ange! Empower me!¡± A loud roar echoed, and a burst of Holy Light exploded, shing through an Arbitration Angel like arge sword. The Arbitration Angel was taken off guard. It was ustomed to the Holy Light being unable to harm it, until the Holy Light fell upon it. The Arbitration Angel was sent flying, rolling into the mud. As it tried to stand up without showing any emotions, several Pdins pounced on it and chopped it to death. The Pdins were among the few who could fight back. Although their Holy Power couldn¡¯t harm the angels, they still had their swords and could hurt the angels by hacking them with brute force. After chopping the angel to pieces, the Pdin looked back at the one who shouted ¡°Master Ange¡± and cried out, ¡°What strength is that?¡± ¡°Master Ange! Ascetic Monk An!¡± roared old Priest F. F could never have imagined that the result of their infiltration would be facing such a massacre. After F was tainted by Shamara, he became one of the Fallen People. During the insect cmity, he was forced to flee into the desert andter arrived at the Goddess of Beauty City. Barely settling down, Anthony founded the Fallen Legion and summoned these former clergy members again. F, who had changed his faith to the Undead Beauty God, had to adjust his faith once again to adapt to the new situation. Luckily, the power of the Undead Beauty Ang was too pure, and the seamless switching of forces did not cause any impact. Instead, it was once polluted and transformed into the Power of Fall, but now it has returned to the pure Holy Light. Anthony would not miss the grand event like Heaven¡¯s Arrival, and immediately dispatched several of his men to blend into the swamp. These people were divided into several teams, there was no corrtion between them, they were not aware of each other¡¯s existence, and even had ck Warriors among them. Polk was lurking in a distant swamp. The humid, dark and decaying swamp was the best hiding ce for ck Warriors, so much so that even the God of Arbitration did not detect their presence. The situation here was reported to Anthony by Polk via Soul Contact. The people Anthony had nted were being ughtered, and in a panic, F shouted the name of Ange. Arbitration Angels could be indifferent to Holy Light, but they could not ignore the power of Ange. They didn¡¯t know who Master Ange was, but everyone was familiar with the name Ascetic Monk An. In recent months, Ascetic Monk An had be the most prominent name in the church. They used to think that ascetic monks were masochistic fools who never made any progress in their penance. Now, with the advent of Ascetic Monk An, people saw what an ascetic monk could do. The Great Wishing Spell! Turning grain directly into bread, such a miraculous power. Just with that alone, Ascetic Monk An was entitled to be a hot candidate for the Pope. If he could turn things into bread, could he also turn them into Magic Crystal Coins? Elf beauties? Treasures from all worlds? But it seems like Lord Anthony was not interested in the power of the Pope. Instead, he stood by Anthony¡¯s side at all times. This also led to a steady increase in Anthony¡¯s prestige, riding on the coattails of Lord Anthony¡¯s poprity. Chapter 678: 375 30000 Sorrow Angels_2 Chapter 678: Chapter 375 30000 Sorrow Angels_2 F¡¯s exmation brought a shock to everyone. Had Ascetic Monk An already risen to the rank of ¡®Lord¡¯? At their wits¡¯ end, they had to try everything. The Pdin touched his sword and murmured: ¡°Lord Ange, grant me strength, with the power of the saints, ignite my holy sword! Guard my sacred body! In the name of the holy¡­¡± With the Pdin¡¯s whisper, they felt a special change in their strength. The original Holy Power was easy to strip away and ineffective against angels, but the evolved Holy Power was different, and this could often be determined by a single thought. ng! An arbitration angel pounced down, and the Pdin swung his sword to block, only to be knocked flying. The Pdin turned in mid-air andnded before rushing forward with a shield attack. ng! The Arbitration Angel was staggered by the impact, its unstoppable momentum halted. Without expression, the angel swung his sword four times in quick session. The Pdin¡¯s longsword finally could not withstand and broke. Hastily, he raised his Holy Shield, ng, and was sent flying back. Boom! A sacred me burst from the ground, swallowing the Pdin¡ªjudgement. The Pdin endured for two seconds until his holy power was exhausted. Then, he screamed terribly, being burned into ashes by the sacred me. Though he died in the end, this scene energized everyone, and they began to murmur: ¡°Lord Ange, grant me strength¡­¡± As long as their Holy Power was effective, the hundreds of thousands of worshippers and believers could defeat the angels by sheer exhaustion of numbers. ¡°Holy Light Chain!¡± ¡°Holy Whip!¡± ¡°Heaven¡¯s Dawn!¡± ¡°Holy Charge!¡± ¡°Punishment Hammer Strike!¡± ¡°Summon Pdin!¡± The sporadic calls spread the information like a hurricane, with more and more people praying to Ange. When they sincerely call Ange¡¯s name, Ange¡¯s thoughts will fall on them, which could be overwhelming for Ange. At the Heaven¡¯s fortress, Ange became stiff, a sacred me rising from his body as his Holy Power was rapidly consumed. There are several power systems within Ange now, those of the Undead God, the Goddess of Beauty, the God of Farming, but none from the Gods of Light. The powers of these systems can be transformed into each other. His Holy Power was purely transformed from the Soul me. Theoretically, the more Soul me he had, the stronger his Holy Power, but this required a process of transformation. In the past, not many people used his Holy Power. Only Lisa, half of Anthony, and those beauticians in the City of the Goddess of Beauty did. But they never gathered together to use it. But as more and more people prayed to him, there wasn¡¯t enough Holy Power to go around. Sensing Ange¡¯s state, Little Ghost was puzzled. It popped its head out from a finger, contemted for a while, then bit Ange¡¯s finger, causing a raging sacred me to rise from its body.@@novelbin@@ Finally, the Little Ghost, which was not easy to raise with so many good things, could repay Ange. Little Ghost didn¡¯t use its own power, but absorbed Ange¡¯s soul energy and then transformed it into Holy Power. With the help of Little Ghost, the conversion speed was multiplied. Then quickly, Ange discovered that he didn¡¯t need to grant all his power like Lisa did. Because the people praying to him already had considerable Holy Power, what Ange needed to do was to infuse his ¡®sacredness¡¯ into the others¡¯ Holy Power. In simpler terms, he needed to infuse his intentions. How much to infuse? What intentions to infuse? Well, he¡¯d better form control groups forparison. With the goal of research in mind, Ange divided them into control groups¡­ The number of Arbitration Angels and Judgment Angels was very small, just over seventy. They were individually very powerful, but there were too few. If the humans on the ground could resist for even a bit longer, the difficulty of their killings would increase exponentially. Besides, not only did everyone stand firm, they retaliated, too. Under the disproportionate numerical disadvantage, the angels faced an outright catastrophe. Each moment, a dozen attacks descended upon them, and soon, the seventy-odd angels were engulfed in a sea of several hundred thousand believers and worshippers. The God of Arbitration watched all of this without expression, until thest angel was turned into Sacred me. The crowd drew breaths with their hearts in their mouths, lifting their heads toward the sky to gaze at the golden giant in doubt. Under that endless divine majesty, no one thought things would just end like this. After exchanging looks, they all let out a resounding cry: ¡°Run!¡± Hundreds of thousands of people scattered in retreat. The golden giant radiated a brilliant light, numerous golden rays shot forth from his body, transforming into a golden de¡ªthe Arbitration Sword. The Arbitration Sword didn¡¯t have a hilt, only a de. It was as swift as lightning, pinning the fastest runners to the ground. The de pierced their bodies, wounds spurting out golden Sacred me, gradually spreading outward, burning their skin and clothes. Under the golden Sacred me, the smooth skin of the corpses became rough and hard, ugly. Finally, the shoulder des pierced through the skin, growing into bloody bone wings. These bone wings quickly covered their skin and feathers. The corpses shrieked, transforming into grotesque Sorrow Angels and took flight. Witnessing this terrifying spectacle, they saw the birth of the Sorrow Angels. ¡°So¡­ This is how Sorrow Angels are created. What¡¯s the difference between this and Undead? What¡¯s the difference between this and demons? So it¡¯s not heresy to possess your powers?¡± F muttered in shock. Countless Arbitration Swords plunged into the crowd, birthing numerous Sorrow Angels. They frantically shed at the people around them, each cut leaving a golden wound. Some peoples¡¯ wounds gradually returned to their original state, blood spilling out. However, some peoples¡¯ wounds gradually ignited with a golden Sacred me, and before long, a new Sorrow Angel was born. ¡°It¡¯s¡­ It¡¯s assimtion? Don¡¯t get cut by a Sorrow Angel, it will assimte you!¡± Someone who had noticed this change warned aloud. ¡°No¡­ It¡¯s not assimtion, it¡¯s contagion. Those who sin greatly are infected by the power of sin, bing Sorrow Angels,¡± someone else cried out with a trembling voice. ¡°Bullshit! At this point, do you still believe the nonsense in the Holy Book? This is corrosion. Arbitration is using his power to corrode our bodies, turning us into his puppets. This is something a devil would do!¡± Another person shouted angrily. But whether they were warning, crying, or scolding, they were noticed by Arbitration. The next moment, their bodies were pierced by golden swords. Arbitration ceaselessly created more Sorrow Angels. The Sorrow Angels continued to assimte more Sorrow Angels. The number of Sorrow Angels increased exponentially. The golden giant kept his gaze on this battlefield. No one could escape his sight. The ughter was ongoing, with more and more humans being turned into grotesque Sorrow Angels. The number of those who could resist was dwindling. The sky turned gloomy. This battlefield had be a sea of blood, strewn with corpses. Hundreds of thousands of bodiesy scattered all around. The God of Arbitration was devoid of expression. He exhibited no sorrow, no anger. His countenance was just as usual, seemingly indifferent to the ughter. To him, even the schemes of Anthony didn¡¯t amount to enough provocation to anger him. There were around thirty thousand grotesque Sorrow Angels roaming around, finishing off the humans who were not yet fully dead. All 587,779 people perished without exception, including F. The only sce was that Ange managed to draw back F¡¯s consciousness. Although F had lost his body and soul, as long as his consciousness remained, he could reincarnate as an Undead, thus escaping death. Anthony sat on the ground, bereft of his spirits. Negris was despondent, heavily shocked. So, it could be handled this way? There was such a method, too? Killing all the believers could also be euphemistically called a judicial extermination. ¡°To cleanse the filth of the world, eradicate the lost sheep, create a new world¡­ Oh God, as long as life is disregarded, things can be handled very well.¡± Negris murmured, ¡°In the Holy Book of Light, the records of creation, things about creating a new world¡­ was it also about them exterminating all the beings of the old world?¡± ¡°It¡¯s possible.¡± Anthony forced himself to his feet, ¡°It¡¯s my fault. I blundered. I shouldn¡¯t have provoked such heartless creatures. I should have killed him first. Now, he has more than thirty thousand Sorrow Angels under him. He will probably take the opportunity to judge me next. Lord, what should we do now?¡± Chapter 679: 376: Preparing to Raid the Arbitrations Nest?_1 Chapter 679: Chapter 376: Preparing to Raid the Arbitration¡¯s Nest?_1 The moment they left the Heavenly Kingdom Fortress from the ne, it was impossible for Ange and the others to return so quickly. They had to first teleport to the nearest Teleportation Array, then ride horses for two hours before reaching the Broken Swamp, when all the blood had already dried up. Now, Anthony faced a predicament. He had ughtered hundreds of thousands of people and refined thirty thousand Sorrow Angels, so what will the God of Arbitration do next? Would he take this opportunity to push away Anthony and Dyson¡¯s forces, and let the curia regain control of Eastern and Western Diocese? It¡¯s highly likely, so preparations must be made in advance. They teleported back to Resting Abyss, then teleported again to Goddess of Beauty City and convened the ne Safety Conference as quickly as possible. As soon as they connected, everyone started asking questions regardless of the conference rules, with the same question: ¡°What happened in Broken Swamp?¡± Anthony exined what happened, and the conference immediately fell into a silence as deep as death. After a few minutes, Copper Hammer swallowed his saliva, barely able to believe the words as he said: ¡°Over half a million people, all staunch believers of your church, were all killed like that?¡± Anthony took a deep breath and replied: ¡°It was in his best interest to do so. He is a being with divinity, but no humanity. Tens of thousands of believers are merelymbs providing him with faith. If they couldn¡¯t provide him with power, he would erase them without hesitation.¡± ¡°I made a wrong estimate, and did something irrational, which led him to opt for the method that was most beneficial to him. Those believers had already formed the perception that Arbitration was being exiled.¡± ¡°If they were to leave, they would spread the news that ¡®The God of Arbitration lost his fairness and was expelled by the Heavenly Kingdom.¡¯ By then, Arbitration would not only lose hundreds of thousands of believers, but also the worship of hundreds of millions of believers in the entire church.¡± ¡°Compared to hundreds of millions of believers, tens of thousands of people are trivial. Besides, it¡¯s a rare opportunity to refine a batch of Sorrow Angels in the process.¡± ¡°All the believers and worshippers gathered in the Broken Swamp were the most devout and fanatical. Among them, the sess rate of incarnation into Sorrow Angels is notably higher, and they might even outnumber the quantity that the rest of the hundreds of millions of believers could refine.¡± Hearing this, Tyrone suddenly asked: ¡°Are you saying that these tens of thousands of Sorrow Angels are all the God of Arbitration has left, and he¡¯ll struggle with transforming the enemies into Sorrow Angels by infection and assimtion again?¡± ¡°Are you worried that the God of Arbitration will randomly kill people to create Sorrow Angels?¡± Anthony instantly perceived the real concern behind Tyrone¡¯s question and quickly answered: ¡°No, no, no. Only the most devout believers can turn into Sorrow Angels. It is impossible for non-believers to seed.¡± ¡°Phew¡ª¡± The sighs of the other leaders could be heard through the array. Copper Hammer said relievedly: ¡°I thought it was like the Undead Cmity, converting everyone they killed.¡± Based on Anthony¡¯s description, the transformation into Sorrow Angels wasn¡¯t much different from the Undead Cmity. ¡°The actions of the God of Arbitration have severely impacted the safety of the ne. I, Anthony, the current Pope of the Holy Church, officially request the Republic of Steris, Elf Empire, Dwarven Empire, and the Giant Dragon n, to send reinforcements, to help me eliminate the evil God of Arbitration, and defend the safety of the ne.¡± Anthony said solemnly. The evil God of Arbitration? This title sounded incredibly absurd. Wasn¡¯t it always the Church of Light thatbelled others with this name? Oh, right. Anthony was still part of the church, only this time the name of evil was hung on the head of the God of Arbitration. ¡°We need to discuss this.¡± ¡°Yes, yes, we need to discuss this.¡± ¡°This is a serious matter, I also need to consult others.¡± Everyone finished speaking and one by one severed the connection. Not long after, Ange seemed surprised, took out amunication device and opened it. Gard¡¯s voice came from inside: ¡°Lord Ange, there¡¯s something I¡¯d like to discuss with you.¡± Ange handed themunicator to Negris for them to discuss. Shortly after, Ange tilted his head again and took out anothermunicator. As soon as he opened it, Auburnli¡¯s voice came through: ¡°Lord Ange, here¡¯s the thing¡­¡± Ange gave themunicator to Negris. While Negris was overwhelmed by the twomunicators, Naeli descended from the air and said: ¡°Lord Ange, Lord Brooks wants to discuss something with you. I first talked to Negris, but Brooks hopes it¡¯s you who decides.¡± Ange tilted his head. Anthony was both amusud and frustrated. It was redundant, they could have just asked directly on the teleportationmunication. In the end, they still came to Ange. However, he also understood why they resorted to such actions. They needed Ange¡¯s individual promise and assurance, not the request of himself, the Pope of the Holy Church. Unknowingly, Ange had be the being with the most weight in the Master ne. Of course, Ange has the weight, the Bronze Dragon does the work, even Brooks of the Dragon n hopes Ange makes the decision. Aftermunicating, the various tribes of the ne mobilized. ¡­ Broken Swamp, the God of Arbitration watched the Heavenly Kingdom Chariot leave in the distance, but did not hinder it. With the Light and Darkness Twin Gods, along with Guliani, whose power was not inferior to a divine being, Arbitration had no surety to retain them. On the chariot, everyone was also looking back with vignce until they couldn¡¯t see the golden giant anymore. Only then did Guliani sigh with relief: ¡°I thought he would kill us.¡± Darkness emerged from the shadows and asked confusingly, ¡°Why did you also leave? If Arbitration regains control of Eastern and Western Diocese, wouldn¡¯t you just continue to be Pope?¡± Guliani quickly shook his head: ¡°No, no, no. Who knows if this Pope is a puppet or really a Pope?¡± The moment the God of Arbitrationunched the doomsday trial, Guliani knew that this was a real god. What is a god? Theyck humanity,passion, and reverence¡­ Such beings can be worshipped, but one should not be loyal to them, because you never know when they will throw you into the mes, just to let the mes burn a little longer. Although Darkness is also a god, he could not reach this level nor understand, ¡°Is it necessary to do this?¡± Being twin with Darkness, naturally Light knew what Darkness was asking, and hesitantly said, ¡°I feel¡­his inner impatience.¡± What made the God of Arbitration impatient? Guliani and Darkness were both moved: ¡°Faith Storm?¡±@@novelbin@@ ¡°Arbitration is the only one among the Gods of Light who has not been reborn. Although we inherit the divinities of our predecessors, we were all reborn after thest Faith Storm, and we¡¯ve lost too many memories. We need to know how the God of Arbitration survived thest Faith Storm,¡± Darkness murmured as if talking to himself. Guliani pondered for a while, then suddenly asked: ¡°Lord Light, are you interested in going into the Judgment Hall? Maybe the secret is hidden there.¡± Darkness was taken aback, goodness gracious, was he nning to search Arbitration¡¯sir? PS: I¡¯ve been busy. After finishing a root canal operation, I took down the curtains and cleaned the windows. It was quite tiring, but I couldn¡¯t just watch my mother climbing up and down. It would be troublesome if she fell. Chapter 680: 377 Burn My Fields! _1 Chapter 680: Chapter 377 Burn My Fields! _1 In the Dwarven Empire, at Iron Stone Fortress, Copper Hammer pushed open a long-forgotten door. ¡°Not sure if the God of Forging¡¯s construct can still be used.¡± Copper Hammer said with anticipation. ¡°Who knows,¡± the gatekeeper Iron Embryo nonchntly scratched his bulbous, reddened nose. ¡°It has been untouched for thousands of years and cannot be started without a divine soul. However, the creations of the God of Forging are not so easily damaged. So, has the nar war begun? Do we need to use the God of Forging¡¯s construct?¡± The God of Forging¡¯s construct, the strongest creation of the Dwarven deity of smithery, possessed considerablebat power. It shouldn¡¯t be used easily unless there is a nar war and the survival of the Dwarves is at stake. Like the War God¡¯s chessboard, it too requires equivalent strength to start. Therefore, the God of Forging¡¯s construct hadn¡¯t been activated in thousands of years. ¡°Indeed, a nar war is underway. The God of Justice and Arbitration of the Church of Light has lost their impartiality, got banished from Heaven, and lost their sanity, ughtering over half a million devoted followers. They have transformed them into Sorrow Angels, who are now emerging from the swamps.¡± ¡°We need to prepare ourselves, assess the situation. If Anthony can y the God, we will aid him. If he cannot stop the God of Arbitration, we will have to think of a way to protect ourselves.¡± With a bewildered expression, Iron Embryo opened his mouth in disbelief, as if he were hearing an absurd epic tale. Iron Embryo was rather old, at over eight hundred years. In the Dwarven society, he was considered elderly. For the past six hundred years, he guarded the relic of Iron Stone Fortress, spending his days sipping liquor and sleeping,pletely detached from the outside world.@@novelbin@@ While he had heard of the God of Arbitration, he didn¡¯t know Anthony. ¡°Who is Anthony?¡± Iron Embryo asked, sessfully diverting Copper Hammer¡¯s attention for a moment. Then, changing his expression, he said: ¡°Ah, my stomach hurts. You go look for the construct yourself in the deepest part of the ruins, at the altar. I need to use the restroom.¡± Copper Hammer, unsuspecting, waved him off and took his team into the ruins. Before long, furious roars echoed from within the relic: ¡°Damn it! Where are the gemstones from the driving core? What about the gems in the joints? And the Mithril coupled gem enhancement enchantments in the energy circuit? Who removed these precious materials? Iron Embryo! Iron Embryo! Kvada, this old lush definitely did this!¡± The seemingly intact exterior of the God of Forging¡¯s construct belied a disaster within. All the valuable gemstones, Mithril, fine gold, and enchanted materials had vanished, leaving the construct an empty shell. As expected, Iron Embryo, who had excused himself to use the toilet, was nowhere to be seen. Copper Hammer initiated a city-wide search, eventually hauling him out from a distillery. Upon interrogation, Iron Embryo admitted his guilt. For the past six hundred years, whenever he ran out of money for drinks, he would filch valuable materials from within the construct. Since the divine soul was gone and the construct couldn¡¯t be activated, three generations of Dwarf Kings had merely taken a nce without closely inspecting it, so no one realized. How did a nar war arise unexpectedly? If he had known, he would have drunk more and embraced death instead. Now that he was in jail with no ess to alcohol, Iron Embryo wasn¡¯t bothered by his discovery as much as regretting not dying before the discovery. After all, he was over eight hundred years old and didn¡¯t have much time left to live. Dragging the now hollow God of Forging¡¯s construct, Copper Hammer arrived at the Goddess of Beauty City: ¡°Lord Durken, no matter what, you must help repair this construct.¡± ¡°No problem, the repair costs and material fees would total one million magic crystals. If you want it expedited, that¡¯ll be an additional half a million.¡± ¡°What? So expensive? Can you offer a discount? We¡¯ve known each other for so long, give me a break.¡± ¡­ Dwarves, elves, giant dragons, and Steris mages had to be coordinated ¨C no room for a weak organizer here. Anthony directly pulled in Brooks, Auburnli, and Aestolia to represent him, then divided the forces into groups ording to thenguage, race, and strength, assigning each to various areas. Negris stayed beside Anthony, using its vast knowledge to provide all sorts of references for Anthony. For instance, dragons snored while sleeping, so their station had to be far from the crowd. Dragon dung stunk terribly so it couldn¡¯t be upwind. Dark Elves were meat-eaters as well as robust male enthusiasts; guards had to keep tabs on them to prevent them from getting weak-kneed during battle, and so on. All kinds of details, customs, and traditions had to be considered carefully. Ange was joyfully farming, unbothered by these tiresome tasks. The gathering of various races necessitated arge quantity of food, and every race¡¯s recipes were different. Humans need a lot of starch in their grain, which tastes good when roasted or boiled; Elves prefer to eat raw fruit high in sugar; Giant Dragons like to eat little sheep; Dwarves are fine with anything, as long as there is alcohol. Besides the small sheep, everything else was Ange¡¯s specialty. If all else fails, he simply used the juice of the Fruit of Life mixed with sweet beet leaves, which he believed Elves would happily eat. Ignoring everything else, he was satisfied with the opportunity to peacefully nt crops. Arge amount of Soul Crystal and Soul me he had gathered earlier allowed him to continuously use the Instant Death Halo without worrying about consumption. Inside the Temple of Rest, there were now two Farm Barriers, covering over 6000 acres ofnd, fully nted with various crops. This included swamp rice bought from the Grain Convention and specimens of productive grains from many generations. As expected from thepetition in the Grain Convention, these productive grains were much better in terms of growth speed and yieldpared to those Ange had collected in the wild. Of course, these superior nts had their drawbacks, such as being more delicate. But that didn¡¯t matter, as cultivation was about careful nurturing; making the delicate crops grow better and faster. Tough and inedible crops could only be considered as grass. Crossbreeding, grafting, reference, selection, then crossbreeding, grafting, reference, selection¡­ In the beginning, Ange had conducted tens of thousands of trials to breed saltwater rice. While participating in the Grain Convention, he also carried out hundreds of selection trials, now he had so many newly developed, productive grains, he was more than willing to try ten thousand times more. Eventually, he found a crop with a trunk of about two meters high. It produced clusters of fruits each as big as an orange, with thin skin. Inside the ripe fruit was all powder upon being rubbed. Ange looked at the name on the specimen¨C Bread Fruit Tree. The yield of an acre of grain was already high at a thousand pounds, but the yield of an acre of fruit trees easily exceeded four to five thousand pounds, even up to twenty to thirty thousand pounds,pletely on a different scale. Spring Breeze Druid once came up with the idea of woody food crops in his notebook. If grains could grow on trees like fruits, the yield could be several times higher than that of ordinary nts. Clearly, not just the Spring Breeze Druid thought this, someone had already put it into action. It was a crop from the previous Grain Convention. Its yield was astonishingly low, just over a hundred pounds per acre, but as it was an unprecedented woody grain crop, the Grain Convention still included it in the specimen collection. After several rounds of cultivation and selection, Ange obtained a robust nt through cutting propagation, then designed to graft the Bread Fruit Tree onto the God flowers, onto the World Tree, and even onto the War Trees. Suddenly, a red light streaked across the sky and bent downwards, plunging towards the farnd on the ground. At the forefront of the red light was an angel ugly as sin, despite its pristine white wings ¨C the Sorrow Angel. The appearance of a Sorrow Angel immediately attracted the attention of many. A bunch of people moved forwards to confront it, including Truth Mages, Giant Dragons, Giant Dragon Hunters, Fallen Angels¡­ The lineup was too luxurious, and the Sorrow Angel appeared intimidated. It made a sharp turn and headed for the high sky, fleeing in panic. Fearing a potential diversion tactic, only Brooks chased after it. The rest scattered to scout the area and soon reported back: ¡°There¡¯s only one Sorrow Angel, and no other movements.¡± Not muchter, Brooks returned too. Landing in human form, he held a handful of ck mud and said with a sullen face: ¡°I was on its tail to see where it went, but it dived into an oasis. All the crops in the oasis were burnt to ashes by this Sorrow Angel. When I tried to stop it, it couldn¡¯t defeat me and exploded, turning the entire oasis into this.¡± Brooks spread out the ck mud in his hand. Anthony¡¯s face turned pale, he instantly took out hismunicator. After a moment on themunicator, he said with a grim expression, ¡°These things have appeared around the world, burning fields, destroying crops, polluting the earth, they want to starve everyone to death through this Doomsday Judgement. It seems that the God of Arbitration never intended to face us in a straight fight.¡± ¡°Why? What¡¯s the benefit for him? If everyone starves to death, won¡¯t it mean starving all his followers too?¡± Negris asked, puzzled. ¡°There must be a follow-up n. They must have a follow-up n, but we¡­¡± Anthony trailed off, as next to him, Ange was already ame with anger, his body entirely covered in fire. ¡°Burning my fields?¡± Chapter 681: 378 Can He Digest That? _1 Chapter 681: Chapter 378 Can He Digest That? _1 Just when everyone thought Ange would recklessly rush out to seek arbitration and ughter, the fire on Ange¡¯s body gradually faded and hardened into his own Soul Armor of straw. Then he ran to Lightning, pulling out a sack full of Elf Beans, then pulled out a ck Crystal Fragment, ¡°Help me.¡± The cat flew into the sack at once, holding it tightly in its paws, and stuck its head into it. With a sigh of ecstasy, the cat raised its head, took the ck Crystal Fragment in its mouth, and began to thump it against its chest. With each thump, its body began to swell. The first thump came with a ¡®plop¡¯, the second with a ¡®bang¡¯, and the third, a series of booming sounds¡­ Returning to its mighty fifty-meter nature, each thump was deafening to those around. ¡°Kvada, this dead cat, I knew it was faking its injury all along,¡± Negris said angrily. ¡°Wasn¡¯t the ck Crystal what it exchanged with you before? Why is it so happy to take it back? What have you done to the ck Crystal Fragment? Cat, let me see the ck Crystal.¡± The cat stuck out its big tongue and spat out the ck Crystal, which floated in front of Negris. At the same time, its giant paw moved above Negris¡¯s head, ready to secure the ck Crystal, as if afraid it would be snatched away. If this giant paw pressed down, wouldn¡¯t it tten him? On second thought, Negris gave up the idea of teasing the cat and stared seriously at the ck Crystal. The formerly ordinary ck Crystal Fragment was now polished and sparkling with specks of light. These lights weren¡¯t reflections of external light, but emitted from the ck Crystal itself. Negris couldn¡¯t find the right words. If he had to describe it, he would say the ck Crystal had e to life¡±. ¡°What did you do to it?¡± Ange tilted his head in thought for a moment before finding the right words. ¡°Wore it.¡± ¡°Just wore it? Didn¡¯t do anything else? What did you use?¡± Negris asked. No sooner had he finished speaking than the cat¡¯s giant paw flicked Negris away, dozens of meters distant. Then, with a hard slurp, it sucked the ck Crystal Fragment into its mouth. Clearly, Negris¡¯s words had rmed the cat, which feared Ange would take back the ck Crystal Fragment. In a rush, it began to pat its chest. Barely escaping being ttened by the paw, Negris shouted in anger, ¡°Wait and see, I¡¯ll take all your Elf Beans.¡± The cat squinted at Negris, licked the sack with its giant tongue, and a whole sack of Elf Beans floated up and slowly into its fur, as if to say: look how many I have. Negris was so angry he wanted to hit someone: ¡°This dead cat has been spoiled by Lightning. I can¡¯t beat you, can I beat up Lightning? Purple Corpse,e and help me whip Lightning. I¡¯ll teach you the skill of Thunder Spearter.¡± Boom, boom, boom, a team of Titans rumbled over like tanks and pulled Lightning aside. Lightning chewed on some beet, a bewildered expression on its face: What does this have to do with me? After all themotion, Negris flew back to Ange and asked again: ¡°Why did you give the ck Crystal back to it? It could be a fragment that fell from the Undead King. It¡¯s our clue to find His Majesty¡­¡± Before Negris could finish his sentence, a powerful force suddenly burst forth from Ange,pelling Brooks and Feiti to look over. The force eventually flowed into Ange¡¯s right hand, and the amalgam Hand of Locke extended from the fingers to the elbow, fully transforming into ck Crystal that sparkled with specks of light. Negris gasped, stunned: ¡°Chaotic transformation? Can you transform into a ck Crystal Body? Was the ¡®wearing it¡¯ you mentioned just now referring to always carrying it around, to increase affinity?¡± Ange shook his head, raising his arm: ¡°Hand.¡± ¡°Only the hand can transform? How long does itst?¡± Negris asked, somewhat disappointed yet also relieved. Disappointed because the entire body couldn¡¯t transform into a ck Crystal Body. If it could, who cares about the God of Arbitration, it could explode on the spot. Relieved because if Ange could do it, it would be too abnormal and unfair. Was he really the farming skeleton they knew? Had he been hiding his power all along? Or was he an incarnation of the king himself, ying everyone for a fool? Fortunately, Ange was still that silly skeleton, just a little abnormal. Kvada, he had even transformed into a ck Crystal Hand. But having transformed into a ck Crystal Hand, how long could itst? And what could it do? With that thought, the ck Crystal quickly retracted from Ange¡¯s hand, revealing a purple-gold skeleton. ¡°Ten seconds,¡± Durken suddenly said. ¡°It can onlyst for ten seconds? How long until it can be used again?¡± Negris asked. In the beginning, Ange could only transform into a dragon once a day, roughly every forty hours or so, just to use Locke¡¯s transformation once. This meant that Locke¡¯s transformation consumed more power than the Dragon God Transformation andsted less time. With increased proficiency in the skills, Ange can now transform into the Dragon God once every several hours, with the duration extended to thirty seconds. ording to this calction, to transform even a hand into ck Crystal, the power consumption would be three times the Dragon God Transformation? ¡°The duration is too short. What can you do in ten seconds?¡± Negris said disappointed. This dragon had too high expectations. Didn¡¯t it realize that when Ange first learned Locke¡¯s transformation, it didn¡¯t evenst nine seconds? Ange can¡¯t be bothered, and ¡®growls¡¯ at the big cat. The big cat nods its head, and as Ange crawls into its fur, he is embarrassingly thrown back not long after, a woman¡¯s silk underwear on his head. Heads swarm around him, gossip burning in their eyes: ¡°Women¡¯s underwear? Where have you been?¡± Ange tilts his head, not understanding why everyone is so excited, and truthfully replies: ¡°Steris, taking a bath.¡± ¡°Ah, this reaction isn¡¯t fun at all.¡± Brooks remarks in regret. ¡°Absolutely.¡± Lisa emphatically agrees. Ange is confused¡­ Not long after, Hiludi crawls out of the fur with wet hair and draped in a bathrobe, apologizing repeatedly: ¡°I¡¯m so sorry, Lord Ange, you startled me. I was taking a bath, and I overreacted, I¡¯m so sorry.¡± ¡°So Ange went to look for you, why did you overreact?¡± Lisa hastened over to help her fix her hair while asking. ¡°I sliced two Dimensional Sickles, the big cat somehow managed to avoid triggering the academy¡¯s spatial ban, and suddenly popped out of my bathroom, even crushing the wall. I thought it was an enemy and attacked reflexively, thank God Lord Ange wasn¡¯t hurt.¡± Hiludi said with lingering fear.@@novelbin@@ She knew the power of a Dimensional Sickle too well; this type of space power theoretically could not be sustained by anything. No matter how solid a material was, once space cracked, it would crack too. Ange gave a shake of his head to assure her he was fine. As Hiludi began to rx, she saw the big cat extend a paw clutching a clump of fur to her. Looking back, she saw the wronged expression on the big cat ¨C apparently, the Dimensional Sickle hadn¡¯t hit Ange, but had hit the cat instead. ¡°I¡¯m so sorry, big cat, I¡¯llpensate you with Elf Beans.¡± Hiludi apologizes in a fluster, finally appeasing the big cat. Ange pulled out a Star Realm Gemstone, a bit of light shimmering inside: ¡°Help me.¡± Hiludi took a look at it and her eyes widened instantly: ¡°Dimensional Space? How big?¡± ¡°Six hundred cubic meters,¡± said Ange. Hearing this number, the big cat stuck its head over. The most valuablepensation it received when Ange and the others rescued it was the few hundred cubic meters of dimensional space it had stored. They initially thought Ange and the others saved it just for the dimensional space. But when they saw the dimensional space inside the Temple of Rest, they realized their mistake. Their dimensional space was calcted in kilometers. Although Ange doesn¡¯t value the few hundred cubic meters of dimensional space, Hiludi certainly does, hugging it as if she didn¡¯t want to let go. Theoretically, all storage spaces are dimensional spaces, but those that are only one or two cubic meters can¡¯t be considered such because they can¡¯t even fit a bed. If you have a few hundred cubic meters of dimensional space, the stability and functionality of the entire space can be greatly enhanced. You can even keep living creatures inside. A few hundred cubic feet of air could sustain a normal creature for a day or two. All you would need to do is rece the air once a day. It would take Hiludi a lifetime of cultivation to ess such arge dimension. Only dimensional creatures like Dimensional Beasts could umte it bit by bit over time. But it would take a long time to umte six hundred cubic meters of space. Hiludi pats her chest and says, ¡°Lord,mand me how you wish, any way you want.¡± Ange turns to Feiti, pulls out a box of Soul Crystals: ¡°Help me.¡± Everyone finally understands what Ange is doing: he¡¯s looking for helpers. Feiti hesitates, nces at Ange, looks around at everyone, and finally fixes his gaze on Ange¡¯s right hand. Sighing, Feiti says, ¡°You possess the ck Crystal Hand, please allow me to pledge my loyalty to you, Undying King.¡± As he speaks, he kneels on one knee, loyally, with the Fire of Oath emanating from him. Regardless of Negris, Durken, or Anthony, they all felt slightly relieved. Although Feiti behaves like a harmless and obedient child, always raising his hand before speaking, in reality, he doesn¡¯t belong to the same group as Ange and is not subject to any binding restriction. Moreover, Feiti is a Lord of Mourning. His strength might not be as formidable as Locke transformed, but Locke can only maintain his transformation for a mere ten seconds. If they can¡¯t beat Feiti in an instant, all of thembined are no match for the Lord of Mourning. That¡¯s why, even when facing the God of Arbitration at the most critical moment, no one ever suggested summoning Feiti¡¯s true form. To their surprise, at this moment, Feiti offers his oath willingly. Although it¡¯s just a pledge of loyalty, this is the loyalty of the Lord of Mourning. Seeing Ange absorb the Fire of Oath, Anthony suddenly suggests: ¡°Since Lord Feiti is willing to help, should we consider inviting Lord Harvey and the Great Sage back?¡± Everyone¡¯s heart skipped a beat. They thought, two Lords of Mourning to serve the God of Arbitration? Can he handle it? That¡¯s too ruthless, isn¡¯t it? It¡¯s just a field on fire, and it¡¯s not even your field¡­ Chapter 682: 379: His Power, Protects Me Unmatched_1 Chapter 682: Chapter 379: His Power, Protects Me Unmatched_1 Harvey looked discontentedly at the golden fields in the distance¡­ How can you identify the expression of ¡°discontented¡± on a mourning skeleton? Just from the overflow of emotional waves from it. As long as you sense his emotions, you can perceive this expression on his bony skull, which is even more intuitive and vivid than regr people. ¡°Why am I¡­why am I here, I want to sleep¡­¡± Harvey muttered. Not long after he spoke, a soul car drove silently at high speed from the front. When it was close to Harvey, it beautifully drifted and urately stopped in front of Harvey. The Great Sage on the car excitedly said, ¡°Harvey, it¡¯s your turn. Go on. There¡¯s not much left, just a few million acres. It will be harvested soon.¡± It¡¯s harvest season again. The nting interval of the Land of Fallen is short, with a cycle every five months. Unlike the Master ne, most ces can only nt one season a year. Of course, in the hot southern areas, there can be two seasons in a year, but it averages out to one season every six months. The Land of Fallen has a season every five months. After the eternal night, the crops need to be nted immediately. After four months of growing season, they must be harvested before the eternal night arrives, otherwise, they will freeze to death. The climate dictates that they can be nted and harvested in five months. Actually, before Ange came to the Land of Fallen, the crops there only had a four-month growing season. Once the eternal night passed, seeds should be sown without dy. Dying a day to sow seeds would dy a day to harvest, and if the crops couldn¡¯t be harvested before the arrival of the next eternal night, those unproductive crops could only be fed to the Minotaur. Thus, the grains chosen for nting were always rapid-growing varieties with low yields, bad taste, and due to insufficient light, low starch content. Eating a pound or two was still not enough to fill up. After Ange arrived, he taught them to pre-cultivate. In a closed indoor space, he started the seeds early, and after the eternal night passed, the seedlings were moved outdoors, gaining an extra half month of nting time. However, what came with this was the consumption of fertilizer. Farming in the Land of Fallen before didn¡¯t require any fertilizer at all. Now, not only is fertilizer needed, but it must be specially mixed by Ange, suited for the soil and climate conditions of Land of Fallen. Now, thergest volume of transactions in the Silver Coin Commerce of Land of Fallen is fertilizer and grain. The Great Sage once felt the pinch. Why can a pound of fertilizer be exchanged for three pounds of grain? He wanted to buy the fertilizer form outright. Silver Coin told him, ¡°This contains bird droppings, volcano ash, grass ash, insect ash. Are you sure you can make this after buying the form?¡± The Great Sage was discouraged. Where was he going to find bird droppings, let alone buy the form, yet still had to buy the raw materials from Silver Coin? He might as well buy the fertilizer directly. Can it be done without fertilizer? Yes, the first season yields 300 pounds per acre, the second season yields 200 pounds per acre, and the third season, 50 pounds per acre. So the Land of Fallen mainly used a crop rotation system in the past. Now with fertilizers, the first season yields 800 pounds per acre, the second yields 900 pounds, and the third, 950 pounds. Buy fertilizers and the increased yield is several times the cost. Any fool would know which option to choose. However, with the expansion of the nting scale, the Great Sage immediately faced another problem: insufficientbor. To be precise, there was a shortage of intelligent undead. Without the guidance of intelligent undead, those unintelligent undead couldn¡¯t be let into the fields; otherwise, the crops they trampled would outnumber the harvested ones. It was okay when Silver Coin was around as he would organize humans to manage the skeletons. But now Silver Coin has been called back and the Great Sage is almost at his wit¡¯s end. The big-headed Great Sage chose the simplest method; he asked Harvey to do it. The honorable Lord of Mourning, was actually driven to harvest rice. How could Harvey not feel dispirited? ¡°I want to sleep¡­¡± Harvey responded feebly. ¡°Sleep my ass, you sleep for twelve months a year, just take a few days to harvest rice, quickly finish and then sleep,¡± urged the Great Sage. ¡°I want to sleep now¡­¡± Harvey simply slumped to the ground. He would rather lie down and not sleep rather than work. As soon as he heard ¡°a few million acres¡±, he felt nauseous and wanted to vomit. The Great Sage was furious, sternly stating, ¡°What do you mean? I¡¯ve been working my bones to pulp for years, tirelessly sustaining countless creatures, maintaining the delicate bnce of the Undead. Even with much growth in a thousand years, now that we finally drove off the Church of Light and have a fertile wastnd, you¡¯re just going toze here instead of helping? Isn¡¯t it only a matter of a few million acres? You could sleep for a couple of hundred years straight, four months of slumber would be enough for you¡­ hey, hey, hey, we¡¯ll start with this field.¡± Hearing the relentless scolding from the Great Sage, Harvey instantly felt not sick but rather invigorated. Springing up with clenched fists, Harvey conjured two sickles, wielding them behind him as he dashed forward like the wind. The grains in the field fell neatly behind him. After harvesting millions of acres in three days, Harvey felt like he was falling apart. He didn¡¯t want to move a single finger bone. It wasn¡¯t that his soul was tired, it was that his heart was. The same way a person who loves to sleep in might feel forced to wake up early for breakfast every day. The Great Sage¡¯s Soul Car skidded to a halt in front of Harvey, excitedly saying, ¡°Harvey, you still are the best. It took you only three days to finish the harvest without wasting a bit. You can take another three days off next nting season.¡± Harvey¡¯s heart sank. He slumped there, mumbling to himself, ¡°God, please strike this guy dead with a bolt of lightning or give me something to do. Even fighting would be fine. Let me fight, please.¡± Perhaps hearing Harvey¡¯s plea, the sound of hooves rang out. Turning his head, all Harvey saw was a Minotaur madam with a feeble Goblin on her shoulder, trotting over. ¡°Oi, isn¡¯t that the Bridgehead Town¡¯s Minotaur sister? Silver Coin? Silver Coin is back?¡± the Great Sage stated.@@novelbin@@ Reaching the Great Sage, the Minotaur madam set down the nearly shattered Silver Coin, speaking with a booming voice, ¡°Great Sage, may your soul be at peace. Silver Coin was looking for you so I brought him over.¡± ¡°Oh, thank you very much, I wish you good health,¡± the Great Sage responded. The Minotaur madam happily jiggled her ample flesh and went on her way. In the past year or so, her life had improved, she had enough to eat, where before could she have maintained such girth? In the past, the Great Sage never dared wish her good health. When she barely had enough to eat, such a wish didn¡¯t seem like a blessing, more like mockery. Now he could loudly wish her good health, but going down this path, he might have to switch to advising her to lose weight in the future. It was truly astonishing that the creatures of the Land of Fallen now had to worry about losing weight after eating too much. Harvey propped himself up, happily greeting, ¡°Silver Coin, you¡¯re back, wonderful.¡± For people like Harvey, who preferred to lie down whenever possible, this huge effort was the highest regard he could give Silver Coin. Ah, he finally realized how good things were when Silver Coin was around. At least Silver Coin could manage production, so he could go back to lying around. Silver Coin replied with a smile, ¡°Lord Harvey, how are you? Harvesting?¡± ¡°Just finished. You¡¯re back, and you¡¯re not leaving again, right? Fantastic, I¡¯ll leave the next harvest to you,¡± Harvey said. ¡°Hehe, Lord Harvey, Great Sage, I have something to discuss with you,¡± Silver Coin awkwardly grinned and then seriously spoke. The Great Sage and Harvey looked at each other, their expressions turning serious. Harvey even stood up from the ground, while the Great Sage began fingering his storage ring. Having spent several nting seasons together, they had a clear understanding of Silver Coin¡¯s personality. When there was money to be made, Silver Coin would always beughing and good-natured. Yet, when he became serious, they had to be cautious regarding their money, as he likely had an idea to make money off them. ¡°You¡¯ve always wondered about the identity of my master, right? Now, I, Silver Coin, on the orders of the Lord of the Undead, Master of Resting Pce, God of Farming, Goddess of Beauty, God of Knowledge, Insect God, Harvest Goddess, King of Alchemy, Durken, sh Feiti¡­ and mymon master, Lord Ange¡­¡± If it had only been the God of the Undead, Resting Pce, or God of Farming, the Great Sage and Harvey might have questioned whether Silver Coin was joking. However, upon hearing the names of Durken and Feiti, they were forced to take him seriously. ¡°sh Feiti? So, he really is alive. I just recalled that name recently and was specting what could have happened. What force made Harvey and me forget that name? What happened?¡± Great Sage asked. Silver Coin exined briefly. The Great Sage had a realization. ¡°God of the Forgotten, I see. Feiti was marked with the Forgotten Mark, causing us and him to forget him. Then, only the Undead God could break this mark. Is the king back?¡± he questioned. ¡°No, the Undead Godhood was taken over by Lord Ange. It was Lord Ange who abolished the Forgotten Mark. Now, Lord Ange has been recognized by the God of Knowledge, the King of Alchemy and Lord Feiti, and has inherited the Resting Pce from his majesty,¡± Silver Coin exined. The Great Sage suddenly smiled, ¡°Silver Coin, this isn¡¯t something to joke about. As you know, I can make your soul wish for death in many ways. So don¡¯t joke about things like this.¡± Silver Coin replied earnestly, ¡°I¡¯m not joking. My soul belongs to Lord Ange. His power protects me without fail.¡± Silver Coin was surrounded by light and a phantom figure carrying a money bag emerged out from him,pletely enveloping him. Chapter 683: 380: God of Fraudsters - Divine Technique of the Silver Coin_1 Chapter 683: Chapter 380: God of Fraudsters ¨C Divine Technique of the Silver Coin_1 ¡°Divine Soul? Being a Divine Soul indeed makes you immune to my influence. But what about that fire on your head? Faith fire? Fire of Mass Faith?!¡± The Great Sage wore an expression of seeing a ghost. Harvey had experienced the Fire of Mass Faith, so the Great Sage recognized this me instantly. But because he recognized it, it was hard to believe. What is Silver Coin? Just a Goblin Witch. Whether it¡¯s Harvey or the Great Sage, they could squash him like a bug. But oddly enough, such a small goblin has the Fire of Mass Faith? Confused, the Divine Soul touched the Fire of Mass Faith, asking, ¡°Is it powerful? But it doesn¡¯t even give discounts.¡± As soon as he finished speaking, the sparkling Fire of Mass Faith suddenly red up, turning into a ball of me. An invisible ripple spread out, engulfing the entire ne. If there were any gods in the lost ne, they should be able to feel this fluctuation. The Great Sage couldn¡¯t perceive the ripple, but he had witnessed this transformation, and it shocked him so much he could barely maintain his form, ¡°Divi¡­Divine Fire, did you ignite the Divine Fire?¡± The transformation had caught Ange¡¯s attention, he couldn¡¯t help but project onto Silver Coin. Along with him, Negris, Durken, and Feiti also projected themselves. ¡°Pfft! God of Fraudsters! Kvada, did you really ignite the Divine Fire?¡± Negris felt like he was going to burst from holding in hisughter. When he initially ignited Silver Coin¡¯s Fire of Mass Faith with just words, Negris thought it was absurd. But, in such a short time? A small me of Faith was ignited into the Divine Fire. Where did the faith of this damned fraudstere from? If the Fire of Mass Faith could be attributed to Negris¡¯ influence, since his mouth was blessed, saying bad things can also be good, then, turning a small me of Faith into the Divine Fire requires solid foundations of faith, lot of followers, and zealous beliefs. Where did his followerse from? Silver Coin was also confused about this. But after a while, he seemed to understand, ¡°I think I know who¡¯s worshipping me, I¡¯m hearing lots of voices.¡± Ange tilted his head, used his mind to tap into the Divine Fire of Silver Coin. Regardless of whether Silver Coin bes a god or not, Ange has absolute control over him, quite like a god. As soon as his mind made contact, Ange was overwhelmed with tidal waves of information. He had seen this situation many times before, the followers of the Undead God, God of Farming, and Goddess of Beauty, also pray to their gods in such a way. However, those vague beliefs, Ange couldn¡¯t hear clearly. He eventually got used to it and usually ignored them. Only those extremely strong beliefs could he hear clearly. Apparently, Silver Coin was not used to it, he didn¡¯t ignore any of the information. So when it got transmitted to Ange, it became chaotic. Still, after serious consideration, the specific content could be distinguished, roughly divided into a few categories. ¡°God of Wealth, please bless me with overnight riches.¡± ¡°God of Wealth, please bless me with effortless wealth.¡± ¡°God of Wealth, please grant me some gold coins.¡± ¡°God of Wealth, please bless me with finding a gold brick on the street.¡± ¡°God of Wealth, please bless me with the affection of a beautiful and wealthy woman.¡± ¡°God of Wealth¡­..¡± Negris, among others, was shared this information. Negris was dumbfounded: ¡°So you are not the God of Fraudsters, you are the God of Wealth? Kvada, no wonder you have so many followers, if you can bless me with overnight riches, I would consider bing your follower.¡± Silver Coin scratched his head, ¡°Overnight riches aren¡¯t out of the question either¡­¡± Negris¡¯ knees gave way, and Durken promptly propped him up, ¡°Show some restraint.¡± After stopping Negris, Durken said, ¡°Overnight riches obviously suit me better, the King of Alchemy, Lord Silver Coin ah¡­¡± After a few jokes to calm the mood, Negris jealous asked, ¡°Igniting the Divine Fire means you have a godhood. After obtaining godhood, one would generally awaken some Divine Techniques consistent with their beliefs. What¡¯s your divine technique? A Dogshit Luck Halo?¡± Lord Silver Coin hesitated before finally revealing, ¡°I have awakened a Divine Technique.¡± ¡°Wha¡ªreally? What Divine Technique?¡± Negris asked. Not knowing how to describe it, Lord Silver Coin could only say, ¡°I¡¯ll demonstrate it for you.¡± He then looked up at the Great Sage and Harvey. Their conversation was conducted through a Soul Contact, so the Great Sage and Harvey couldn¡¯t hear it. They only felt a kind of aura projected towards them, and that¡¯s when Lord Silver Coin lost his train of thought. Guessing that it was Lord Silver Coin¡¯s master, Ange, who had a bunch of grand-sounding titles, they initially only cared about the names Durken and Feiti. However, now they were forced to pay attention to Ange. What kind of power could ignite a Divine Fire in an ordinary goblin? Where did they get that power? Lord Silver Coin said to Harvey, ¡°Lord Harvey, could you do me a favor and punch me lightly using just a small bit of your strength?¡± ¡°A small bit of strength? How small?¡± Harvey asked, a bit excited. Was this goblin really asking him to punch him right after igniting the Divine Fire? Did he really think he could withstand a punch from the Lord of Mourning? ¡°Just the strength to explode an ordinary creature. Hit lightly, I cannot take a hard one,¡± Lord Silver Coin quickly said. Disappointed, Harvey threw a punch. Even his usual flick of a finger could blow up a bull. He had difficulty controlling such a light attack. Lord Silver Coin gave it everything he had. At this moment, facing Harvey, the Lord of Mourning, he recalled what he witnessed when Harvey fought. He watched Harvey push forward fearlessly, oveing the impact of the Soul Tower and breaking through the thousand-year-old fort with a single punch. That destructive power left a deep impression on him. The idea of letting Harvey punch him was ridiculously mad, yet Lord Silver Coin, still the adventure-loving goblin, believed that Ange surely will protect him. As the light punch approached, Lord Silver Coin¡¯s incarnated Divine Soul tightened up. He moved his hands forward, shouting: ¡°Reduction!¡± Harvey felt the strength in his fist quickly reducing. What originally felt light now became genuinely light. Boom! Lord Silver Coin¡¯s body jerked backward a bit, but then it stabilized. It was deadly quiet for a moment. After some time, everyone reacted. Negris eximed in shock, ¡°Reduction? By how much? No, no, your Divine Technique reduces the opponent¡¯s attack? By how much?¡±@@novelbin@@ ¡°By seventy percent,¡± Lord Silver Coin replied. ¡°This is such an absurd Technique, but it makes sense when applied by Lord Silver Coin, it really is¡­ I don¡¯t even know what to say,¡± Negris didn¡¯t know how to put his astonishment into words. On the other hand, Harvey¡¯s interest was truly piqued: ¡°Reduction? I felt like at least seventy percent of my strength had been reduced. The power applied on you was not even thirty percent. This doesn¡¯t prove much. Let me try again, let me give another punch.¡± Harvey raised his fist, purple-gold mes of the soul med on it. Obviously, he intended to give it all. Quickly, Lord Silver Coin took back his Divine Soul, held his head in his hands, squatted down, and cried out: ¡°No!¡± Only a madman would want to withstand a full-strength punch from Harvey. Testing the effects of the Divine Technique was enough. Why should he endure another punch? Wouldn¡¯t that be a loss? Moreover, his purpose here wasn¡¯t to let Harvey test his punches. Reluctantly, Harvey took back his fist. He, as the Lord of Mourning, mustn¡¯t swing a punch to Lord Silver Coin who was currently hugging his head, squatting on the ground. This goblin was really a hard nut to crack. After ncing and ensuring Harvey had already retracted his fist, Lord Silver Coin stood up and with a smile said, ¡°Lord Harvey, Great Sage, on behalf of Master Ange, I¡¯m here to ask whether you would like to go back to Resting Camp?¡± ¡°Whether we return to Resting Camp or not, we can discuss thatter. You stand up first, then summon your Divine Soul, and then punch me again.¡± Chapter 684: 381: Do You Want to Know Why I Erased Your Memory?"_1 Chapter 684: Chapter 381: Do You Want to Know Why I Erased Your Memory?¡±_1 ¡°One more punch, just one more.¡± Harvey pleaded as he followed the silver coin. ¡°No.¡± The silver coin firmly declined. ¡°Just one punch, I¡¯ll use half my strength, or maybe thirty percent, or even ten percent.¡± Harvey was negotiating, haggling like a peddler. ¡°No. Even with ten percent of your strength minus seventy percent, it¡¯s still enough to obliterate me. Lord Ange has already calcted just how weighty your punch is.¡± The silver coin refused. ¡°If you don¡¯t agree, then let¡¯s stop talking about the Resting Pce.¡± Harvey threatened. Silver coin nced at him: ¡°Oh, if the project¡¯s been cancelled, I¡¯m off.¡± With that, he made a gesture to leave. The Great Sage swiftly waved his hand, and the air exploded, shaking Harvey to one side. Grinning, he said, ¡°Just kidding, Harvey was just kidding. Let¡¯s talk about the Resting Pce, how is it now?¡± The silver coin disyed a triumphant expression. Right from when Lord Ange handed him this mission, he knew that the ¡®advantage was his¡¯. Harvey and the Great Sage have nothing to bargain with unless they don¡¯t want to return to the Resting Pce. The silver coin recounted some information about the Resting Pce: ¡°Now, Lord Ange has inherited the Resting Pce and, at the same time, inherited the Undead Godhood. He has also received the recognition of the God of Knowledge, Lord Durken, and Lord Feiti.¡± ¡°What about His Majesty? Where did His Majesty go?¡± The Great Sage hastily asked. The silver coin shook his head: ¡°We don¡¯t know either, we¡¯re also looking for him. Besides His Majesty, the witch has also disappeared.¡± The Great Sage gave him a meaningful nce: ¡°You actually remember the witch? Did Lord Durken or Lord Feiti tell you?¡± Huh? There¡¯s something off about what he said. Negris couldn¡¯t help but blurt out, ¡°Hey, Great Sage, what do you mean by that? Can¡¯t I remember it myself?¡± ¡°Oh, God of knowledge, hahaha, His Majesty personally wiped out your memory, you definitely do not have any memory about the witch.¡± The Great Sageughed as he said this.@@novelbin@@ Clunk, there¡¯s a secret? Negris anxiously asks, ¡°Why did His Majesty personally erase my memory?¡± ¡°For this question, I need to return to the Resting Pce and confirm certain matters before I can tell you.¡± The Great Sage answered. ¡°You swear?¡± Negris hurriedly asked. The silver coin¡¯s heart also skipped a beat, tough luck, the other party also had an ace up their sleeve. The worst part was that Negris was too eager, revealing the weight of this trump card, leave alone negotiating. This dragon was not supposed to take part in negotiations, upon encountering a negotiation expert, he might be left without even his underwear. But since Negris had already agreed, the silver coin couldn¡¯t overturn it and had to end the negotiation painfully. Both sides pledged a Soul Oath, and the silver coin and Harvey rode in the Great Sage¡¯s Soul Car, as they quickly headed in the direction of the teleporter. Arriving at the teleporter, they first teleported to the world transfer station. They discovered that it was on full alert. Harvey¡¯s gaze swept over everyone, ultimatelynding on Feiti and Durken. Harvey¡¯s finger-bones glided over his ribcage, ying a ¡®rustling¡¯ sound as he greeted Feiti, ¡°I have met Lord Feiti and Lord Durken.¡± Only when they met the superior skeletons who were not under theirmand would they use this special form of greeting. Only skeletons could pluck their ribs like this. It was only after Harvey arrived in the Land of Fallen he achieved the level of the Lord of Mourning. During the period of the Undead Empire, Locke and Feiti were ranked higher than him. At that time, Harvey was just a Golden Skeleton; fairly unremarkable among the many golden skeletons. It took Feiti a moment to recall who Harvey was, ¡°Now I remember, you are Lazy Harvey.¡± It seems that Harvey¡¯sziness was well-known during the Undead Empire. While others were called Steadfast Locke, sh Feiti, he ended up being called Lazy Harvey¡­ ¡°No, no, no, Lord Feiti, I¡¯m now called One-Punch Harvey. Silver coin, let me take a punch.¡± Harvey quickly changed the subject. Durken walked over and lightly smacked the Great Sage¡¯s forehead: ¡°Long time no see, Sage.¡± ¡°Long time no see, King of Alchemy. I thought you had died.¡± The Sageughed. Durken chuckled awkwardly: ¡°Well, I did die, but then Ange resurrected me.¡± Durken detailed his experience. The Great Sage was dumbfounded, is that even possible? A severely damaged Life Box could be repaired? This was extremely dangerous, as for a witch, a damaged Life Box signifiedplete death. Everyone discussed what had urred after they lost contact. Only Durken and Feiti could talk, as Ange and Negris had not established enough trust to believe everything they said. Through Durken¡¯s narration, the Great Sage finally understood why Ange was acknowledged by the Undead Godhood. It turned out that this farming skeleton had been maintaining the bnce of the Resting Pce. More than a thousand years. More than a thousand years. Neither he nor any other Undead creature could possibly do this. If Ange did not inherit it, who would? The Great Sage bowed deeply, his gesture sincere: ¡°Sage of the Undead Empire, I am honored to meet the Undead God.¡± Both Negris, Durken, and Feiti all sighed in relief. The pose of the Great Sage suggested that he acknowledged Ange¡¯s legitimate inheritance of the Undead Godhood, indicating a temporary ceasefire. The world transfer station started moving again. This time, a membrane of light appeared between two stone pirs. Everyone went through it one by one, arriving at the Resting Pce. There are two ways to enter the Resting Pce. One is through Ange¡¯s Boundary-crossing Hand. This method consumes Soul Crystals. The other is through the world transfer station, using Demon Crystals to open the teleportation portal. Using the world transfer station, mass matter can be transferred, reducing the consumption of Soul Crystals, and can be used by everyone. However, only Ange can use the Boundary-crossing Hand method. With this method, Ange¡¯s main body cannot enter the Resting Pce. Only his solitary hand and his manifestation of intent can get in. Now, his main body followed everyone from the teleportation portal of the world transfer station into the Resting Pce. This was his first time returning after leaving the Resting Pce. Everyone passed through smoothly, except Ange who felt restricted, as if he was covered by a membrane, just like when he initially left. Ange used his strength to break through, boom! Outside the main hall of the Resting Pce, a certain barrier quietly disappeared. Everyone didn¡¯t notice the change. Only Ange shot a nce towards that direction. ¡°Really, we are back in the Resting Pce. Finally.¡± Inhaling the familiar scent of death and watching the familiar pce in the distance, The Great Sage heaved a mncholic sigh. It wasn¡¯t long before he roared in protest: ¡°Who dug up my Evesting Spring?!¡± Bone Mountain is a sacred object to the skeletons and the Evesting Spring Stone is sacred to the undead. Many newly born undeads, their souls unstable, need to be soaked in the Liquid of Breath of Death to stabilize. Ange raises his hand. Well, it was the new owner of the Resting Pce who dug it. What else could be done? Nevermind. After the Great Sage had seen everything he wanted, he finally arrived at the entrance of the main hall. Looking at the empty space in front of the door, he turned and asked, ¡°Did you see the statue in front of the door?¡± ¡°The Guardian God Emperor? No, we don¡¯t know when it disappeared.¡± Negrismented. The Great Sage sighed deeply. His whole figure slumped as though being burdened by a heavy blow. ¡°Well, I have finished looking. Ask me any questions you want. Negris, do you want to know why His Majesty decided to erase your memories?¡± Chapter 685: 382: Theres Something in the Lords Hall_1 Chapter 685: Chapter 382: There¡¯s Something in the Lord¡¯s Hall_1 ¡°Why?¡± Negris asked; it had been curious for a long time. Why delete its memories instead of those of countless others? Was it being singled out? ¡°Yeah, yeah, why erase its memories? I guess it¡¯s because it talks too much.¡± Lightning shrugged as everyone turned their heads in curiosity. ¡°I guess it¡¯s because it¡¯s always lecherously staring at the witch. The king got mad and, oh, not spanked him, but erased his memory,¡± Luther guessed. Negris¡¯ face paled, it red at them vengefully; it would settle the score with themter. The Great Sage said, ¡°Negris, do you remember your ultimate move?¡± ¡°What ultimate move? Chattering? Or the Enlightenment Aura?¡± Negris asked, perplexed. The Great Sage shook his head, ¡°Apparently you¡¯ve truly forgotten. Those were the abilities of you as the God of Knowledge. What about your skills as the Bronze Giant Dragon? Do you remember them?¡± Negris had a thought, ¡°Are you talking about Predictive Ability? Prophetic Perception?¡± The Great Sage nodded. ¡°What¡¯s the point of this damn Prophetic Perception? It¡¯s practically useless. Naeli has the same ability, sometimes it works, sometimes it doesn¡¯t, can¡¯t predict anything. Shamara¡¯s perception is far more useful.¡± Negris grumbled in irritation. Almost all of the abilities of the Three Ancient Dragons ¨C The Prophet Dragon, the Time Dragon, and the Space Dragon ¨C were useless because they weren¡¯t practical. For instance, the Prophet Dragon¡¯s predictive ability. It could feel some fragments, but it had no idea when they would ur, only recalling the fragments after the event had already transpired, but it was always toote. It had once sensed Steadfast Locke wasing to beat it up, but didn¡¯t know when. By the time Locke showed up, escape was no longer an option. During the fight, it sensed Locke¡¯s attack and the attack¡¯s trajectory, but it couldn¡¯t avoid it and ended up being beaten up and kicked out. It was already the strongest among the Prophet Dragons, while Naeli, also a Bronze Dragon, could at best predict the enemies¡¯ flight path and her own death. Before she died, she sensed her own doom, escaped and bought time to bury her body. Such a pathetic ability¡­ Why the memory deletion? Great Sage rubbed his nose, looking a bit awkward, ¡°That¡¯s just because you¡¯re too weak to control this power. After His Majesty seized your power, he saw a lot of things.¡± ¡°What!? His Majesty seized my power of Prophet!?¡± Negris was shocked. ¡°Yes. You weren¡¯t able to utilize it anyway, so His Majesty nned to borrow it for a while. You even agreed at the time, with His Majesty promising to help you reconstruct your body after he¡¯s done using it.¡± Having said that, Great Sage shot a strange look at Negris: ¡°After attaining the power of the Prophet, His Majesty sat still for two years. When he finally woke up, the first thing he did was erase your memory. For he saw that in the future, you would incessantlyin about him not returning what he borrowed, so much so that everyone in the world would know that His Majesty had a habit of not returning what he borrows.¡± ¡°Damn¡­¡± Negris almost coughed up blood. Although he had no memory of this incident, he knew he was capable of doing such a thing. But if His Majesty had just returned the power of the Prophet, none of this would have happened, right? The Great Sage shook his head, ¡°It won¡¯t do. His Majesty witnessed something more terrifying.¡± Everyone gasped in unison, ¡°The Faith Storm!¡± This time, it was the Great Sage¡¯s turn to be surprised, ¡°It seems you know a lot. How much do you actually know?¡± Negris exined what he knew, the Great Sage was so shocked that his jaw dropped, ¡°How do you guys know more about this than I do?¡± ¡°That¡¯s about it. His Majesty saw the iing Faith Storm, but he doesn¡¯t know exactly when it will arrive. That¡¯s why he can¡¯t return the power of the Prophet to you. He still needs it while making arrangements.¡± Negris rolled his eyes, ¡°Alright, I ept this exnation. He not only borrowed something and didn¡¯t return it, but also erased my memory. And he hasn¡¯t reconstructed my body yet. What a dishonest old bone.¡± Apart from a fewints, Negris had no other solutions. The king was somewhere unknown, so settling the ount was impossible. ¡°And what about the witch? She was the one who stole my power as the Prophet, why was her memory also deleted?¡± Negris asked. The Great Sage answered, ¡°Because she was the one who removed the power of Prophet from you. When you verbally attacked the king, she was caught in the crossfire.¡±@@novelbin@@ ¡°¡­¡± Negris knew he was capable of doing such a thing. If the talents of the Bronze Dragon bloodline were stolen and not returned, keeping his memories would certainly result in him cursing at them every day. Kvada, what a frustrating situation. Now, both of them had disappeared, making it impossible for him to take revenge. No, he could still take revenge. Negris asked: ¡°Why are you telling me all this now? Aren¡¯t you afraid that from today onwards, I¡¯ll not shut up about this, causing all my followers to condemn their outrageous behavior?¡± Lightning and Luther looked at each other, their faces filled with a desire tough but not daring to: Does he still have any followers? But the Great Sage didn¡¯t know. He just forced a smile and said, ¡°It doesn¡¯t matter anymore. The Emperor is gone.¡± ¡°What!?¡± ¡°What did you say!? Impossible?¡± ¡°Stop talking nonsense, how would you know!?¡± Fighters of the Undead Empire such as Durken, Feiti, and Harvey were the most shocked. The Great Sage pointed to where a stone figure should have stood and said, ¡°The Guardian God Emperor was a duplicate of His Majesty. Its disappearance means that His Majesty is gone.¡± After the Great Sage exined, everyone understood. The Guardian God Emperor was a clone of the Undead King, which was why Feiti could not withstand its attacks. Even Durken did not know its origins. With the nomadic Undead King often away, the Guardian God Emperor served as thest defender and the most robust barrier for the Resting Camp. However, unlike the citizens like Durken and Feiti where their soul links can be severed at any time, the Guardian God Emperor was the Undead King¡¯s duplicate. Its disappearance symbolized the final vanishing of the Undead King. This was not good news. Everyone stood still for a long time, taking in this information. After a while, Harvey finally asked, ¡°Who could kill the king?¡± ¡°I don¡¯t know. Maybe the Soul Storm or the Gods of Light or the chaotic currents of the void,¡± the Great Sage said. ¡°I¡­ I must find the murderer to avenge the king!¡± Harvey swore angrily. Durken and Feiti seemed to have the same idea, but they didn¡¯t say anything. Instead, they shifted their gazes to Ange. After hearing the whole process, Ange, who was always somewhat bewildered since most of the talk didn¡¯t hit the crucial point, asked, ¡°Could it have¡­gone in?¡± Ange pointed hesitantly at the main hall of the Resting Camp, for he felt something inside it. Chapter 686: 383 What is Stuck in the Ground_1 Chapter 686: Chapter 383 What is Stuck in the Ground_1 ¡°We can¡¯t enter the main hall,¡± Negris said. Right after he spoke, Ange took a step into the main hall. Supposedly, there should have been a barrier there, but Ange now stepped right through it as if it were nonexistent. Negris quickly flew over, sessfully passing through the spot where the barrier supposedly was. ¡°Has it really disappeared? We can go in,¡± Negris rejoiced, and everybody rushed to follow. The Resting Pce, with its main hall and four other sub halls, was built using a multiyer stacking method of dimensional space. Each building was a separate dimension, therefore corresponding conditions must be met to enter the dimension within the pce. ording to Durken, achieving bnce was necessary, but how to attain that bnce, he did not know. The current Resting Pce haspletely changed from the time he designed and constructed it. There were originally over a dozen keyponents, but now only seven remain. Theoretically, maintaining bnce should be impossible, yet, against the odds, perfect stability has been achieved. Facing this situation, Durken was baffled. He could not open the main hall, and he did not even dare to tamper with anything for fear that it might copse. Such circumstances are quite mystical in architectural studies. Usually, when things aren¡¯t maintained and people mess around, nothing happens for hundreds of years. But once maintenance begins, chaos somehow emerges. Now, suddenly, they could enter the main hall that had been inessible for so long. Ange was probably the only one who could guess the reason; it was because his main body had arrived. The dimensions of the four sub-halls were simple, but the main hall was entirely different. Upon entering, they found themselves in a vast, open space, a long corridor nked by towering pirs. The dome was incredibly high, perhaps a kilometer tall, with no visible boundaries on all sides, like an endless expanse to the naked eye. It felt as if they had stepped into an open field. As they walked forward, Feiti began toin, ¡°I¡¯ve been wanting to ask, when you were designing this, why did you make the main hall so huge? Every time wee here, we have to walk forever, and running or flying is prohibited. It¡¯s so annoying.¡± ¡°What else was I supposed to do?¡± Durken retorted. ¡°The main hall needed to be in bnce with the external Land of Slumber and other spaces. It had to be this big. How else was I supposed to fill the main hall? Leave a huge gap for what, to nt¡­¡± As soon as the word ¡®nt¡¯ came out, Feiti and Negris both instinctively lunged at him, intending to cover his mouth. True to his ¡®Lightning¡¯ title, Feiti swiftly covered his mouth, silencing him. Durken recoiled, pressing his lips tightly together with lingering fear. The others, who either had not reacted in time or did notprehend what had happened, cast their puzzled gazes over. Ange, Little Angel, and Little Zombie turned their heads after hearing themotion. ¡°It¡¯s nothing, nothing at all. Nothing happened,¡± Negris forced a smile. Durken rushed to agree, ¡°Yeah, it¡¯s nothing. We were just joking.¡± Seeing that everyone had stopped paying attention to this incident, Negris and his party breathed a sigh of relief. It was a close call; if Ange had heard the word ¡®nt crops¡¯, and actually decided to dig up the main hall to nt crops, who would be able to stop him? After a long walk, they finally caught sight of a gigantic figure. It had a long sword embedded in the ground before it, both hands clutching the hilt, one knee on the ground, and its head bowed down, unmoving. In front of it was a massive chair, its backrest reaching for the heavens and suggesting the grandeur of something that supported the very universe itself. ¡°So grandiose! So, the Undead King was this gigantic? Even the chair he sits on is this big,¡± Luther remarked in awe. ¡°Yeah, it¡¯s enormous!¡± Lightning agreed, ¡°Even the Old Tree God could sit here with a shaved head.¡± Of course, Lightning was referring to the Tree of Life. His exaggeration was extreme¡ªthe Tree of Life would definitely not fit, even with a shaved head. Durken scratched his nose awkwardly, exining, ¡°You guys are mistaken. That¡¯s just the chair¡¯s backrest. The seat is considerably smaller.¡± When the group reached the giant, they finally saw the ¡°seat¡±. Compared to the towering backrest, the seat was much more normal, about as wide as a regr chair. Inparison to the massive backrest, this was like a single brick standing out on a huge wall, conspicuously out of ce. ¡°¡­¡± The silence was eerie, everyone looked at each other. Lightning finally said, ¡°This design is really unique, as good as the dwarfs and goblins, huh?¡± At these words, Durken¡¯s face darkened. Was that supposed to be apliment? Comparing him with dwarfs and goblins? Dwarfs were eptable; they had once built awe-inspiring structures. Their robust, coarse style was appealing to some. But goblins¡­ Durken shot Lightning a sidelong nce, engraving the insult to memory. Everyone looked upward at the kneeling giant. ¡°Is that the Guardian God Emperor? He¡¯s huge!¡± Even on one knee, the Guardian God Emperor was approximately ten meters tall. Standing up, it must be at least thirty meters. The sense of oppression was quite oppressive. Harvey asked, ¡°The Guardian God Emperor still exists here, does this mean that the king has not dissipated?¡± The Great Sage shook his head, ¡°He has scattered, his soul is gone.¡± Everyone had noticed that there was no hint of soul energy in the statue of the Guardian God Emperor. But even when it had stood outside the pce gates, they had not felt any soul energy either. While speaking, the Great Sage floated up to the Guardian God Emperor¡¯s forehead, where there was a ck crystal about the size of a fist. The Great Sage ran his hand over it. The ck crystal emitted small points of light. ¡°ck Crystal!¡± Everyone couldn¡¯t help but exim. They had just recently seen the ck crystal and approximately understood its value. Even a fragment the size of a fingertip was enough to drive the cat insane¡­ Er, mainly because the cat was just too greedy. It would go crazy over elf beans, cat grass, and even ck crystals. However, there was no doubt that a fist-sized ck crystal would be worth much more than a fingertip-sized one. The tiny light points that the Great Sage rubbed out quickly disappeared, and the ck Crystal fell back into its pitch-ck rustic state, just like an ordinary ck stone. ¡°There are no souls inside anymore.¡± the Great Sage announced. Harvey¡¯s entire body seemed to dete; his small glimmer of hope had been extinguished once again. Unexpectedly, Negris spoke, ¡°That¡¯s not right. If the soul in the Guardian vanishes, but why is it in this position? What¡¯s it paying homage to? If it is his majesty¡¯s avatar, what is there worthy of paying homage to?¡± Ange tilted his head and said, ¡°It¡¯s not paying homage, it¡¯s impaling something.¡± All eyes lit up abruptly. Yes, it might not be paying homage, but attacking something. Something had been stabbed into the ground, or perhaps something was buried underneath?@@novelbin@@ ¡°How can we lift it?¡± After nces all around, eyes eventuallynded on Harvey and Feiti. ¡°The two of you try it, just be careful not to break it.¡± Raising the statue was easy, however recing it ¡®safely¡¯ wasn¡¯t. The two Lords of Mourning should be able to manage that. Just as the words fell, they heard a creaking sound. The Guardian God Emperor slowly moved, standing up. Only the sword still firmly embedded in the ground. Turning their heads, they see Ange putting his hand on the statue¡¯s foot, continuously transferring soul energy into it. The statue stood up and the sword stuck in the ground was easy to deal with. Feiti and Harvey, one on each side, pulled hard together and removed the sword. With an angry roar, a shadow burst out from the hole left by the sword. To be filled next month Chapter 687: 384: Surely, Pure Water Wouldnt be Like This? _1 Chapter 687: Chapter 384: Surely, Pure Water Wouldn¡¯t be Like This? _1 An¡­ a¡­ a lump? ¡°A¡­ A¡­ A slime?¡± Everyone eximed in surprise. Out came a lump, like water, clear and free from any impurity¡­ a slime? Tsk, since when are slimes so clean? It definitely isn¡¯t. Considering the Guardian God Emperor¡¯s sword stuck in the ground, it should at least be something like the God of Truth and Law, not a damn slime!? This blob of water seemed angry too, sputtering furiously, ¡°Slime? YOU are the slime ¨C your whole family are slimes! Have you all gone blind? I¡¯m the Water God!¡± Huh? That tone of speech¡­ Everyone turned to look at Lightning.
Lightning hurriedly exined, ¡°It¡¯s not my problem, I have no idea who that is.¡± ¡°How dare you disrespect the Water God! Boil!¡± The drop of water pulsed with invisible waves, radiating toward Lightning. Ange quickly sidestepped, cing himself between the water st and Lightning. Ange was unharmed; he¡¯d sessfully shielded Lightning from the wave-like attack. ¡°What the hell? What kind of attack is this?¡± Negris flew towards them, pushing one of its small ws into the attacking pulse. Soon, the w started to smoke and scale, before reducing torge water bubbles that flew off and wafted a distinct aroma ¨C the w was cooked. ¡°Ah! Ah! It¡¯s cooked, it¡¯s cooked! It hurts, it hurts!!¡± Negris clutched its fried w and howled in pain. With a swift smack to its head, Durken reprimanded, ¡°You¡¯re a Necromancer. What¡¯s there to hurt?¡± The little angel, also curious, inserted its small, milky hand into the pulsation. Sss! Pustules immediately formed over the pale skin. ¡°Argh¡± The little angel flew into a rage. Spreading its wings, itunched a beam of light in the blob¡¯s direction, causing it to vanish. Ange cocked his head and took a step forward, his scales rippling as he paused time around him. All the creatures present became frozen in ce, unable to even move a finger. Numerous points of elemental energy tore into existence at Ange¡¯s direction, momentarily overtaken by the frozen time. When the freeze ended, they all exploded in unison. A giant vortex formed in front of Ange, forcefully draining every ounce of air from the surroundings, even the ¡®water¡¯ vaporized by the little angel. As the vortex slowly dissipated, only the center ¡®water¡¯ globule remained, rocking left and right as though dizzy. It had also shrunk slightly in sizepared to before. ¡°Whoa¡ª it survived the angel¡¯s st and only vaporized? Damn, it¡¯s a good thing Ange reacted quickly. It might have escaped! If it hid in a corner, who would notice a pool of water?¡± Negris said, realizing the gravity of the situation and feeling relieved at the same time. Upon hearing this, everyone else caught on. They now understood the danger of having such an enigmatic entity lurking in the Resting Camp. Durken spoke up, ¡°Its pulses resemble boiling water elements. Ange¡¯s body doesn¡¯t contain water so can easily ignore the pulses, but you and the little angel contain water, so you developed bubbles.¡± ¡°Ouch ouch!¡± The little angel hopped around, waving its injured arm at Ange. ¡°Grr,¡± Ange grumbled at it, then reluctantly healed it. The Bronze Dragon hurriedly held out its w to catch some of the healing holy light that was spilled over. Thus, the blob of water was bound by Ange, swaying a while, until it finally spoke incredulously, ¡°How¡­ why have I be so weak? I¡¯ve be so small!!!¡± Toward the end of its sentence, its voice morphed back into pulses. Ange promptly produced a piece of wood and perched it on top of the pulse. The wood contained some moisture, causing it to start smoking almost immediately. The heat rapidly climbed, evaporating all water inside. After all the water in the wood evaporated, it turned into charcoal. It was dry and even, indicating that it was of high quality and produced little smoke when burnt. Ange took out a stone, preparing to thrust it into the pulse too. By now, everyone could understand that he was performing an experiment. The blob of water had caught on too. It retracted its pulses and roared, ¡°What the hell are you doing?¡± ¡°Comparing. Start,¡± Ange replied. The blob of water exploded into countless ice spikes. It looked like a pufferfish that had exploded. As it dered earlier, it couldn¡¯t understand why it had be so weak, so ¡®small.¡¯ Its angercked force, much like its feeble yells. But Ange easily crumbled all the ice spikes with a slight push. ¡°Let me go, let me go. I am Water God Tom. I rule over all the water in the world. I can evaporate everything! Evaporate, vapor¡­ freeze! Fr¡­ fr¡­ freeze!!¡­ why are you not reacting?¡± Water God Tom shifted from anger to confusion. Ange removed his hat, revealing his skeletal figure, ¡°No water.¡± In reality, bones do contain some water, but not the kind that¡¯s been metallized. ¡°Damn skeleton! You¡¯re in the same gang as that rockhead. Damn it, damn it!¡± Water God Tom howled angrily. ¡°Yes, yes, we¡¯re in the same gang. But why are you here? Do you know what this ce is?¡± Negris asked. ¡°I am Water God Tom! As long as there¡¯s water, I can get there!¡± Tom roared back, but it sounded weak and intive considering his bounded, minuscule form. However, its words made Negris and the rest look heavy. The Resting Pce is an independent dimension. If this Water God Tom has a special way to get in here, does that mean that the Resting Pce is not as safe as we thought? ¡°You can go anywhere there¡¯s water, then why are you here? Why don¡¯t you run? Just a sword of stone pins you down, and you dare call yourself a Water God? More like a Slime.¡± Lightning carefully peeked out from behind Ange, sputtering saliva. When this clump of water shot out vibrations earlier, it didn¡¯t react in time. Luckily, Ange blocked it. After seeing what happened to Little Angel and Bronze Dragon, it was scared stiff. Kvada, if it was scaled up to a pile of bubbles, wouldn¡¯t it die of pain? Curse it to death. Ange felt this blob of water struggling. Looking closely, it seemed to be shrinking in another direction, with Lightning¡¯s saliva scattered in the air. Could it be disgusted by Lightning¡¯s saliva? A question mark popped up in Ange¡¯s mind. If there¡¯s a question, then let¡¯s verify it. Ange reached out, urately grabbing Lightning¡¯s wagging tongue, pulled arge part of it out of his mouth, gathered a huge blob of saliva with a spell, and slowly moved it towards Tom. Tom¡¯s struggle instantly intensified. It howled in rage, ¡°Go away! Go away! Don¡¯te here, don¡¯te here! Ahhh!¡± Tom sent out ripples, forcefully evaporating the blob of saliva.@@novelbin@@ Everyone quickly understood, exchanged nces, and excitement spread across their faces. Lightning was the most excited of them all, ¡°Can I pee on it?!¡± ¡°No, no, go away, don¡¯te here, go away, don¡¯te here! I Surrender! I promise, I¡¯d do anything. Just keep that foul horse away!!¡± Tom¡¯s initial fear turned into panic, and then he screamed. ¡°Your name.¡± ¡°Tom, Water God Tom.¡± ¡°How did you get here?¡± ¡°I can resonate with the Water Element to move my consciousness to any ce with water.¡± ¡°Hiss ¡ª can you go anywhere? Even enclosed spaces and dimensions?¡± ¡°¡­¡± ¡°Lightning, get ready to pee!¡± ¡°No! Don¡¯t! Don¡¯te here, don¡¯te here, I¡¯ll tell, I¡¯ll tell! I need to sense pure water in the ce.¡± ¡°So can you sense the water outside right now? There should be water outside this space, and there should also be water inside this dead horse¡¯s body, can¡¯t you transfer to it?¡± Negris asked curiously. ¡°Impure, I won¡¯t go.¡± Tom said with disgust. Durken suddenly asked, ¡°Could it be that polluted water affects your ability? If you¡¯re just disgusted, why be afraid of getting a little dirty just to survive and escape?¡± Seeming to have been seen through by Durken, Tom fell silent. ¡°Why did youe in here then? And why were you pinned to the ground?¡± Negris continued to ask. Hesitating for a moment, Tom said, ¡°The God of Arbitration sent me here. He said that if I could open the Resting Pce, he would give me a lot of pure water.¡± ¡°I didn¡¯t expect that just as I sneaked in and approached this pce, arge stone statue moved. It stomped on the ground, knocking me into the air, and with a swing of its sword, it sliced me into this pce, and then I couldn¡¯t get out.¡± ¡°Therge statue chased me around, hacking at me everywhere. There was no water element in it, so it ignored my power. In the end, somehow, I got stabbed by the sword.¡± With a resigned attitude, Water God Tom finished speaking without waiting for further questions. The God of Arbitration? Could it be that it just sneaked in? But the Guardian God Emperor¡¯s soul waspletely dissipated, surely it has been paused for many years already. ¡°When did the God of Arbitration ask you to sneak in?¡± Negris asked. ¡°During the War of the Undead, when Locke was called away by the zing Angel and Strength Angel, Feiti was lured away by the God of Arbitration and the God of Light and Darkness, and when the Great Sage was blocked in the Land of Fallen.¡± As Tom spoke, his gaze swept over everyone. When his gazended on Feiti and Harvey, he hesitated and asked, ¡°Locke and Feiti?¡± When itnded on the Great Sage, he hesitated again, ¡°Great Sage?¡± ¡°You¡¯re all alive. Could it be, did the Light lose?¡± Tom obviously didn¡¯t recognize Locke and Feiti. He only recognized Harvey as Locke because of the Mourning Skeleton. Now everyone understood. ¡°Tom, do you not know how much time has passed? Didn¡¯t you sense anything when you were pinned? The Light lost, disastrously. They even had their power stolen by us. Ange, show him your ring.¡± Ange brought out the Ring of Bnce. ¡°The¡­ The¡­ The Ring of Bnce? The Light lost?¡± The proof was undeniable, and Tom could not deny it. ¡°Also, the pure water you mentioned, it wouldn¡¯t happen to be this kind of water, would it?¡± Negris had someone bring a bucket of water, and then Ange cast Purification, turning it into Holy Water. ¡°If you¡¯re referring to this water, actually, we could also give you a lot of pure water, as long as you behave.¡± Chapter 688: 385 Diffraction Equality_1 Chapter 688: Chapter 385 Diffraction Equality_1 From Ange¡¯s current level of understanding, holy water is actually not very pure. The purification spell merely kills off bacteria and simr entities within the water, but it doesn¡¯t eliminate their remnants. Nevertheless, such water is already considered iparably clean given the current level of production. Can you imagine the situation of contracting diseases from leech-infested water, from washing private parts, from drinking unclean water, or from food poisoning? In this era, such cases are everywhere. Water is not just the source of life, but also the source of diseases. The purification spell can¡¯t remove impurities in the water, yet it can cleanse bacteria, parasites, and such within the water making it iparably cleaner than natural sources of water. The difficulty of purification magic is not high, even a devout believer can cast it. Many diseases don¡¯t require special medicine, just clean water is enough. Not to mention, holy water still retains the power of the purification spell. After drinking, it also cleans the parasites and bacteria inside the intestines. Diseases caused by these microorganisms can be cured quickly.
Therefore, holy water can cure dysentery. However, if you really want to say it¡¯s clean¡­ well, indeed some of the well water has very few impurities. But Tom is already satisfied and is eager to reach out into the bucket. ¡°Don¡¯t rush, don¡¯t rush, you haven¡¯t said whether you will obey or not.¡± Negris spoke. ¡°I will. I certainly will. Whatever you want to hear, just say it,¡± Tom said immediately without hesitation. If the Church of Light were still here, Tom might hesitate a bit under the influence of the power of the Gods of Light. But now, the Gods of Light have been defeated, even their divine ranks piged, while Undead Empire remains unscathed. The renowned Locke and Great Sage Feiti all survived. In such a situation, is there even a need to contemte one¡¯s choices? ¡°Is yourpliance just lip-service? Soul imprint or soul oath?¡± Negris queried. At this, Tom hesitated. He, of course, knows about the soul oath of the undead. The constraint of such an oath is even more terrifying than a ve contract. It binds not only the flesh but also the soul¡­ considering he was a prestigious water deity¡­ While they bargained, Ange didn¡¯t stop. He remembered the ¡®pure water¡¯ request. So after purifying with the purification spell, he also enacted a blemish-removal spell to clear all impurities in the water. The blemish-removal spell is indeed a divine art to remove impurities. From the moment it gets defined, it exists to remove impurities. Upon casting it, the impurities in the holy water disappeared without a trace, leaving nothing but pure water behind. Tom could no longer contain himself, crying out passionately, ¡°Give me water, give me pure water.¡± ¡°Soul oath.¡± Negris replied calmly. ¡°I have no soul,¡± Tom said. ¡°How is that possible? What is this I¡¯mmunicating with?¡± Negris eximed in surprise. ¡°That is my consciousness. I don¡¯t have what you refer to as a soul. Each droplet of pure water can amodate my consciousness, so I don¡¯t have a soul as per your understanding,¡± Tom exined. Upon hearing this, not only Negris but also Durken and the Great Sage gathered around, ¡°Such an existence? How strange! Come, let us study you.¡± Negris is the God of Knowledge, Durken the King of Alchemy, and the Great Sage is the most intellectual being within the Undead Empire. Their joint discussion led to an understanding of Tom. ¡°Kvada, you¡¯re not a god. You don¡¯t have divinity. What¡¯s this act of impersonating the Water God?¡± Negris eximed. ¡°An elemental creature, perhaps? You can¡¯t even be categorized as such, you have no elemental core.¡± Durken stroked his beard pensively. ¡°So, your consciousness resides within pure water, pure water is your core, and it¡¯s also your source of power. The more pure water you have, the stronger you are?¡± The Great Sage queried. ¡°Impressive, indeed. If the entire ocean were pure water, and you entered it, wouldn¡¯t you be invincible? Unfortunately, the salt content in the seawater is too high,¡± Durkenid out his thoughts. Negris said, ¡°So what you fear the most is salt? It can make you salty and impure.¡± Even though they had figured out the existence of Tom, they still hadn¡¯t found a way to control itpletely. ¡°If we can¡¯t control itpletely, we mustn¡¯t set it free. Its existence is terrifying. Even the Little Angel evaporating it wasn¡¯t enough to kill it,¡± someone said. ¡°If we can¡¯t make a soul oath, we should kill it, especially now that it is weakened,¡± another suggested. ¡°But how do we kill it? Evaporation doesn¡¯t work, is there any other way?¡± ¡°It¡¯s afraid of salt isn¡¯t it? Sprinkle some salt on it.¡± ¡°Where can we find salt at such short notice?¡± ¡°Let¡¯s get Lightning. He¡¯s full of salt.¡± Tom was going crazy. Just a moment ago it was being studied for its existence, and now they were brainstorming how to kill it? Were all undead creatures so fickle? ¡°We¡¯re not fickle,¡± Durken said. ¡°It¡¯s that you don¡¯t have a soul and your existence is too dangerous. If we can¡¯t control you, it¡¯s easier to kill you.¡± Durken then turned and yelled to Lightning, who was peeing in the corner, ¡°Lightning, are you done yet?¡± Lightning returned with a full bucket, not spilling any liquid with its light steps. ¡°Kvada, it¡¯s your turn to toast!¡± The crowd dispersed at once. The most terrified one was Tom. It began to struggle in frenzy, ¡°Don¡¯te over here! I have a solution! The God of Arbitration once mentioned a method to me when he threatened me. He said that the Equal Cross could be used for parallel diffraction, diffracting control over another soul onto me. That way, I can be controlled.¡± Negris was stunned. It wasn¡¯t an easy task at hand. Ange only managed to snatch the Ring of Bnce, not the Equal Cross, hence diffraction was impossible. However, Ange flipped his hand, revealing a cross imprint. Negris then recalled that Ange had taken quite a number of valuable items in the Divine Realm of the Goddess of Redemption, including this one-time use of the Equal Cross. Ange conjured a Soul Fire and manipted it to release a Soul Impact, aimed and hit Tom. Tom¡¯s form fluctuated, and it reflected the Soul Impact onto Ange. Ange activated the Equal Cross, returning the equal Soul Impact that hit him. In an instant, a Soul Impact imprinted onto the Soul Fire. Suddenly, a spiritual connection was established between Ange, Tom and the Soul Fire. ¡­ The Tuck ins, thergest in of the ne, spanned tens of millions of acres of fertilend. It yielded substantial food every year, serving as the grain storage of the ne.@@novelbin@@ Ten Sorrow Angels rushed towards the ins like shooting stars, about to spread out and destroy the wilderness as fast a they could. The Lance Knight Legion was in hot pursuit. Anger etched onto their faces, grinding their teeth so hard that their gums almost bled. Who would have expected the Sorrow Angels, who were supposed to safeguard the Light, to be driving everyone to their doom now? The Lance Knight Legion could no longer uphold their faith. They knew if these Sorrow Angels were to destroy the fields, countless people would starve to death next year. It would be dozens of times worse than this year¡¯s famine. A priest stood up on his beast and shouted, ¡°In the past, we defended the Light because it brought warmth. But now if the Light brings destruction instead, let us destroy it! Charge!¡± ¡°Ahhh¡­¡± A shrill scream drifted from the sky. A female mage, clutching a giant wand, was screaming and tumbling out of the clouds, followed by a holy afterimage plummeting behind her. ¡°It¡¯s Ascetic Monk An! It¡¯s Ascetic Monk An!¡± Chapter 689: 386: Ascetic Monk An, is the Light! _1 Chapter 689: Chapter 386: Ascetic Monk An, is the Light! _1 Watching Hiludi, who was spinning and falling below, Ange rubbed his head. He asked for her help because of her super-strong space movement ability, but forgot about her severe fear of heights. If each teleportation results in a fall like this, he might as well fly slowly on his own. While pondering this, he cast a Pollination Technique, conjured a wind vortex, sucking Hiludi up before grabbing her with one hand. ¡°Phew¡ª¡ªThat scared me to death,¡± Hiludi gasped, then added awkwardly, ¡°This is embarrassing, how about I refund half of the hiring fee?¡± Ange tilted his head and asked, ¡°How do you practice flying?¡± She had been around Little Angel and Little Zombie for a while now, so she understood what Ange was asking. Sheughed and exined, ¡°When I used to practice, a familiar would put an Illusion Technique on me. No matter how high I flew, the ground always seemed close to me. My spiritual power has increased now, so the familiar¡¯s Illusion Technique no longer affects me.¡±
¡°Illusion Technique?¡± Ange considered this, then touched his hat. The range of the Straw Man Hat immediately expanded to include Hiludi. His gaze was always cold and without warmth, his demeanor always lofty and hard to approach. Now that he was like this, no one dared approach him, even his mother had to be careful when speaking to him. ¡°I never said I was getting married,¡± Ruan Tianling dismissively turned down Yan Yue, who was not the first to be rejected by him. Although she was embarrassed, she no longer felt the same sense of humiliation and shame. Sometimes, people aren¡¯t born to debauch, but gradually grow ustomed to it. She hooked her lips, mockingly chuckled to herself, but still maintained her look of loneliness and anger on her face. Seeing her, Ruan¡¯s mother quickly made eye contact with Ruan Tianling, ¡°Tianling, Yueyue is already three months pregnant. In another month or two, her belly will start to show. You should get the marriage over as early as possible, it¡¯s all inevitable anyway.¡± Ruan¡¯s mother¡¯sst words had a deep implication, but Tianling¡¯s mind wasn¡¯t on this, so he didn¡¯t get the hint. ¡°If she¡¯s afraid her belly will look bad when it¡¯s big, she can find a man and marry him herself,¡± he dropped these ruthless words coldly and strode out of the living room. ¡°Tianling, you have gone too far! How could you say such things! Are you still thinking about Jian Yufei in your heart, stop, can you hear me¡­¡± Ruan Tianling quickly left the vi, shaking off his mother¡¯s angry voice. Every time he heard Jian Yufei¡¯s name, he would hate her even more. He hated her very very much! Ruan Tianling opened the car door, his face full of gloom. Jian Yufei, enjoy a few more days of your happy life, then I will personally send you to hell! *************** After nning for a week, Ruan Tianling decided to take action. Xiao Lang was riding home in the evening, spotting a sports car parked at the entrance of his vi from afar. Ruan Tianling was casually leaning against his car, arms crossed, his sharp ck eyes urately locking onto him through the windshield. His gaze was filled with danger, and a killing intent. This man was particrly dangerous at the moment. It would be wise for anyone clever not to provoke him, for no one can predict what he might do next. Di Sheng stopped the car, asking Xiao Lang seated at the back, ¡°Master, do you want me to deal with him?¡± ¡°No need, he came to find me.¡± ¡°But I am afraid he has ill intentions.¡± ¡°It¡¯s fine.¡± Xiao Lang smirked, got out of the car. He approached Ruan Tianling, asking sarcastically, ¡°Are you visiting my house? But I do not wee you.¡± Ruan Tianling lightly lifted his gaze, his posture remaining the same, ¡°Where did you hide Jian Yufei?¡± ¡°What are you talking about? I do not understand.¡± ¡°We both know what you did. No need to beat around the bush, I know you took her away. Give her to me, possibly I might give you a chance.¡± Xiao Lang coyly asked, ¡°What chance? I really don¡¯t understand what you mean.¡± Ruan Tianling¡¯s lips curved slightly, his face hidden in the shadows, ¡°The trade bureau randomly came to inspect yourpany today, right? Do you know what would happen tomorrow?¡± He had already given away too much, Xiao Lang naturally understood that the sudden visit from the trade bureau to cause trouble was arranged by Ruan Tianling. But, he had already guessed this. Awaiting him were fifteen hundred Sorrow Angels in battle formation, and a faint consciousness under the shadow of a certain angel.@@novelbin@@ Ange abruptly used the Ring of Bnce, his gaze locking onto that consciousness. ¡°God of Shadows?¡± Chapter 690: 387 Expensive, Not Changing_1 Chapter 690: Chapter 387 Expensive, Not Changing_1 The God of Shadows was hiding within the shadow of a Sorrow Angel, ready to pounce. If it had been anyone else, they might havepletely overlooked it, but it had run into Ange. ¡°So, your Ring of Bnce can also function as a detector?¡± Shocked by the news from Ange, Negris said: ¡°Right, measuring everything¡­ even without weight, there should still be volume, energy strength. Kvada, it just hit me. The magic tricks that Durken performed in front of you, and the evaporation of Tom not long ago, did you discover them in this way too?¡± ¡°The one with Tom, yes.¡± Ange replied, meaning he hadn¡¯t discovered Durken in the same way. Negris sighed and stopped discussing, realizing that this skeleton had be stronger with each passing day. The skills he possessed surpassed Negris¡¯ understanding. Negris couldn¡¯t teach him much more and might have to learn from him in the future.
However, after being hit several times, Negris grew ustomed to it and asked, ¡°Where is the God of Shadows?¡± Ange stretched his hand and pointed to one of the Sorrow Angels. The God of Shadows was taken aback when Ange pointed, and stealthily moved to the shadow of another Sorrow Angel. Right after it moved, it saw Ange¡¯s finger was already pointing to its new location. Hastily switching positions again, Ange was still pointing at it. Despite its reluctance, it had to believe that Ange could genuinely see it. Somewhat unwillingly, it emerged from the shadow and the God of Shadows asked loudly, ¡°How can you see me?¡± Ange tilted his head, thought for a moment, before finding the most suitable adjective: ¡°Fat.¡± He wanted to say that its surface area wasrge. Under the Ring of Bnce, the God of Shadows appeared to have arge area. But saying that would have been wordy, ¡®fat¡¯ was more fitting. Struck dumb, the God of Shadows recalled how it had been described as sinister, evil, deserving of death, but never before as fat. How was it fat? It was but a thinyer. Aren¡¯t shadows supposed to be a thinyer on top of an object? That¡¯s not right. While shadows spread out and normally looked ¡®fatter¡¯ than their actual size, there were also times when they appeared ¡®thinner.¡¯ When the light was too strong or hit at a direct angle, shadows would even disappear. ¡°So, am I fat, or thin? Ah! Why am I even agonizing over this?¡± The God of Shadows exploded in frustration. It wasn¡¯t angry at Ange for calling it fat, but rather at itself for fretting over the question. Didn¡¯t it know that dwelling on academic problems could lead to a headache? Even though it didn¡¯t have hair. Changing the topic at once, the God of Shadows said, ¡°So, it¡¯s you who keeps targeting the angels of the apocalypse.¡± ¡°Sorrow.¡± Ange corrected him. The God of Shadows paused for a moment to understand Ange¡¯s meaning beforeining, ¡°Why do you talk in fragments? Are you constipated? Although they used to be called Sorrow, now that the God of Arbitration has started the apocalypse, they are the angels of the apocalypse, understand? They got promoted.¡±@@novelbin@@ Ange gazed at it nkly. The God of Shadows almost felt like plucking its hair out, were it not for Negris who reminded him mentally at the moment, ¡°Ask what the apocalypse is about.¡± ¡°What¡¯s the apocalypse?¡± Ange asked. The God of Shadows smirked, ¡°Not telling you.¡± Ange pulled out a bag of Demon Crystals. The God of Shadows was once again surprised. His mouth fell agape¡ªit had been shocked thrice since it first emerged from Ange, and the Sorrow Angels hadn¡¯t even surrounded them yet. Ange was always one step ahead, aiming for a position it couldn¡¯t foresee, was he trying to buy it off? It was unexpected since nobody had ever tried to buy it before. ¡°Mere Dem¡­¡± the God of Shadows chuckled dismissively. But before it could finish, Ange took out another bag of Soul Crystals. ¡°Sss! You actually have the Evil Undea¡­¡± Although it didn¡¯t need Soul Crystals, a bagful meant a huge amount of Faith Elemental Force. And the Soul Crystals were from Undead Heretics, did this guy also belong to the heretics? Before it could finish, Ange had taken out a bag of Holy Crystals. Shamara used these to exchange for daily necessities, as there were many Disciples of Light, they were worth much more than their intrinsic value and were very expensive. Ever since Ange obtained Little Ghost, these were like Soul Crystals, which could be condensed at any time, they were just solidified Power of Faith. The God of Shadows was speechless. While Soul Crystals had no use for it, Holy Crystals were very useful. Of course, to buy it over, a mere bag of Holy Crystals was still¡­ Ange took out a Divine Artifact¡ªthe Spear of Shadows. ¡°My Spear of Shadows! How did it end up with you?¡± The God of Shadows couldn¡¯t hold back any longer. ¡°What¡¯s the apocalypse?¡± Ange asked again. The fluctuations in the form of the God of Shadows indicated the turmoil inside it. The thought of ¡®it can¡¯t be bought¡¯ had been thrown into oblivion. However, it managed to resist the temptation and said begrudgingly, ¡°Not telling¡ª¡± Ange then took out a Divine Fragment¡­ The God of Shadows felt its mind buzz. When it used to deceive others, it often used a phrase: everything has its price, and if you can¡¯t buy it, you haven¡¯t bid high enough. Now it knew its own worth. ¡°If¡­ If you have aplete divine statue, I would ept¡­¡± This was the God of Shadows¡¯ psychological price. If it was aplete divine statue instead of fragmented pieces, it would do anything. Before it could finish, Ange already had a divine statue, the second nk divine statue from a God Flower. ¡°Pfft, you actually have one? Are you transformed from the Goddess of Redemption?¡± The God of Shadows could not suppress its excitement¡ªaplete divine statue and a nk one at that. If it obtained an independent divine statue, it could sit back and rx from Lord Light. Everyone always spoke of the God of Light and Darkness, but for the God of Shadows, that wasn¡¯t something to boast about. Lord Light was the principal, and it was just a vassal, a mere shadow of the light. Before Ange took out the divine statue, it never thought it had other choices. But now, a path it had never considered had appeared in front of it. It felt as if it could break free from Lord Light, own its divine statue, and be a real God of Shadows. Without hesitation, the God of Shadows immediately said, ¡°Okay, deal. Give me the divine statue, and I will tell you about the ange¡­¡± Before it could finish, to its frustration, Ange put the nk divine statue away. ¡°What are you doing? Don¡¯t you want to know what the apocalypse is about? Why hide your divine statue?¡± The God of Shadows rushed anxiously and drifted over. Ange shook his head, ¡°Too expensive, no exchange.¡± Ange quickly did the math¡ªexchanging a question with a nk divine statue was too costly. He decided there would be no exchange. After all, he didn¡¯t really care about the apocalypse, only Negris was curious about it. PS: It won¡¯t be speeding up until after the New Year. You have no idea how miserable my past month has been, sigh. Chapter 691: 388: Hurry to the City of Light, Help!"_1 Chapter 691: Chapter 388: Hurry to the City of Light, Help!¡±_1 The enemy threw a Mourning Skeleton at you¡­ The Lord of Mourning!? As Harvey sprang forward like an arrow that had been released from the bow, stepping on air as if it were solid ground, the God of Shadows felt a buzz that overwhelmed his consciousness. Even if Ange had thrown a Great Angel at him, he wouldn¡¯t have been so shocked, the Lord of Mourning, the Lord of Mourning! In the past, the Gods of Light were routed by two Lords of Mourning. Now, fighting it alone, a Lord of Mourning was also thrown out? Before the God of Shadows could recover, Ange casually threw out a Six-winged Archangel. As soon as the little angel holding the Great Angel¡¯s Staff appeared, he excitedly spread his wings, only to be pped in the head by Ange. ¡°Ouch?!¡± The Little Angel let out an angry cry. ¡°Ouch!¡± Ange pointed even more angrily at the tens of thousands of Sorrow Angels in the distance.
The Little Angel pouted, waving the Great Angel¡¯s Staff, and charged forward with excitement. ¡°Really¡­ Really a Great Angel?¡± The God of Shadows was dumbfounded, what kind ofbination is this? A Great Angel with the Lord of Mourning? Furthermore, where did he get these things? A summon? But there wasn¡¯t the slightest fluctuation of a summon. The God of Shadows consciousness buzzes, but his movements are swift, he quickly changed his position, as the shadow of the Sorrow Angel he had just inhabited, had been targeted by Harvey and sted with a punch. It was literally a punch that exploded, the Sorrow Angel exhausted all its defenses and attacks, but couldn¡¯t withstand Harvey¡¯s light punch. But what was even more horrifying to the God of Shadows continued to happen, Ange dipped his hand in and pulled out another Lord of Mourning. ¡°It¡¯s¡­ it¡¯s over, two Mourning Skeletons, are enough to wipe us all out.¡± The God of Shadows mumbled in a dazed state. Back in the heyday of the Church of Light, all the gods came together, and there were three Great Angels, but they were all blown up by two Lords of Mourning. The even more terrifying Undead King hadn¡¯t made a move yet, and the gods were already scattering. Now, there are only a few gods left in the church, and they¡¯re not united, how are they supposed to fight? Ange continued to reach out¡­@@novelbin@@ ¡°There¡¯s¡­ there¡¯s more?¡± Two Lords of Mourning were already insane enough, plus a Great Angel, you¡¯re still going to pull out more? Ange pulled out a human. ¡°Phew¡ªa human, thank God, I knew it, there can¡¯t be that many perverts.¡± The God of Shadows let out a long sigh of relief. This human spread out three pairs of ck wings. ¡°Pfft¡­ Fallen Great Angel? Is that Shamara? No, that¡¯s impossible, the holydy can¡¯t possibly fall from grace and be a Great Angel, this aura, is it Luna?¡± Following that, a graceful figure was hoisted out, appearing obediently by his side. ¡°The¡­ The Goddess of Redemption? Why is the Goddess of Redemption in his hands?¡± The God of Shadows continued to buzz, Is this still the arrogant Goddess of Redemption? Why has she now be as obedient as a young female ve? The array of individuals before him had shocked the God of Shadows for a full year, the figure emerging from the shadow of the horse with a hat was no longer drawing his attention. The hat perched on the horse¡¯s head was tossed into the air, puffing up into arge hair ball of fifty meters in diameter. ¡°A¡­ A Dimension Beast? Kvada, I know who he is now.¡± The God of Shadows slowly came to his senses. One after another, flying dragons squeezed out of the hair, carrying Titan Giants on their backs. The God of Shadows gave up, gathering some Sorrow Angels to ambush those who were trying to kill Ange and the others. It was his idea, he never thought the ambush would fail, and turned into a death trap. But this isn¡¯t his fault, it¡¯s not that the God of Shadows isn¡¯t strong enough, it¡¯s that the enemy has the Mourning. The two Lords of Mourning might be fine, everyone could split up and run, but now, not only the Lords of Mourning, but also a bunch of angel gods, would be nice if half of them could escape. Since they can¡¯t escape anyway, why not just¡­ The God of Shadows slowly descended, then popped out from the shadow of that horse. He dared not sneak into Ange¡¯s shadow, nor dared to sneak into the Goddess of Redemption¡¯s shadow. Shadow traversal is amazing, but it also has significant limitations. If the owner of the shadow is very powerful, then sneaking into their shadow is more like a self-made trap. After weighing up, he decided the horse was the least harmful. As soon as he emerged, Ange turned his gaze towards him, locking him in. ¡°I surrender, don¡¯t attack!¡± The God of Shadows cried desperately, he had a feeling that if he shouted a momentter, Ange¡¯s attack woulde down. Some terrifying power slowly dissipated, but Ange¡¯s gaze was still locked on him. The God of Shadows took a deep breath and said urgently: ¡°I surrender, as long as you give me an empty divine status, I am willing to surrender and be your deputy god.¡± Hearing the words ¡®deputy god¡¯, Ange shook his head: ¡°No, too many.¡± The God of Shadows was stunned, what does that mean? Too many deputy gods? Who worries about having too many deputy gods in this day and age? The figures of Negris, Durken, and other people reflected on Ange, who were about tough out loud. To save the God of Shadows from dying out of sheer rage, Negris quickly intervened: ¡°What he means is that you must demonstrate greater value, otherwise, it¡¯s not worth a divine status.¡± ¡°Who are you?¡± The God of Shadows was dumbfounded again, where did this voicee from? ¡°A deputy god, the God of Knowledge.¡± Negris said. ¡°You? You¡¯re also a deputy god?¡± When Arbitration was chatting with the Bronze Dragon, it saw it too, but didn¡¯t expect, the dignified God of Knowledge to be a deputy god too? Kvada, can the God of Knowledge only be a deputy god? Is the threshold for surrender so high? With a shift of his thoughts, the God of Shadows said: ¡°I can make these Sorrow Angels not run away, allowing you to eliminate them, otherwise if they scatter, it will be very difficult for you all to eliminate them.¡± Negris chuckled: ¡°It¡¯s alright, you don¡¯t really think we only have these people, do you? The Elf Empire, Dwarven Empire, Dragon n, Republic of Steris, the Eastern and Western Diocese, they have all united, you guys are, fighting against a whole ne.¡± The God of Shadows was taken aback, how could this be? Different races could unite so quickly? There are heaps of historical feuds among these races, even with ne security meetings it is impossible for everyone to unite in a short period of time, unless there is someone with enough prestige to lead them. Who could have such prestige to unite the whole ne? The God of Shadows could only say in half belief half doubt: ¡°So, do you want to know why arbitration isunching the Armageddon trial?¡± ¡°What do you mean? Does the God of Arbitration have any tricks up his sleeve? Destroying food and fields, and starving everyone to death can¡¯t be his real goal, can it?¡± Negris, Durken, and the Great Sage were all startled. ¡°Of course not, starving ordinary people wouldn¡¯t starve you guys, he couldn¡¯t be so stupid. Give me the divine status, and I¡¯ll tell you his purpose.¡± Seeing the earnest look on the God of Shadows, everyone hesitated. Could it be that the God of Arbitration really had a n up his sleeve? This would be reasonable, no matter how stupid Arbitration was, he couldn¡¯t possibly starve his source of power, the believers. Should they exchange the divine status for this information? After all, Ange could grow more. While everyone was hesitating, Ange suddenly tilted his head. Anthony was eagerly calling for him: ¡°Lord, Lord, I know what the God of Arbitration wants to do, you guyse to the City of Light quickly, please, save me!¡± Chapter 692: 389: The Way to Replace the Master God_1 Chapter 692: Chapter 389: The Way to Rece the Master God_1 The City of Light, home of the curia, a city entirelyposed of the disciples, worshippers, and various institutions of the Church. Despite its poption of only a hundred thousand, it remains the Holy Land in the hearts of all Disciples of Light across the entire ne of existence. Anthony had control over the Eastern and Western Diocese, with the ability to mobilize hundreds of thousands of troops, outnumbering the total poption of the City of Light. However, he had no desire to conquer the city. Firstly, the City of Light is viewed as a sacred ce by the followers. Any attack on it, regardless of the reasons, would provoke their hostility. Secondly, the city is a vast fortress. It is built into the side of a mountain, with essential facilities constructed directly into the hollowed-out mountainside. The city features the Wall of Sighs, dozens of Soul Towers, and numerous Towers of Holy Light. These types of Holy Light Towers can release columns of light simr to the Holy Light sh, only with several times the power, an attack human forces cannot withstand. To assault this city would inevitably result in heavy losses, with no guaranteed sess.
Anthony would never engage in such folly. As long as he maintains control over the Eastern and Western Diocese, he has countless strategies to iste the City of Light. Through means of restricting materials, personnel, transportation,munication, public opinion, etc., he can weaken the city, bleeding it dry until it turns into a ghost town. When the poption leaves, who would remain to defend the empty city? But¡­ Anthony pointed towards the distant mountains and said to everyone, ¡°When I used to burn religious texts, I came across records iming that the City of Light was established to suppress the King of Terror. I found it ridiculous. What kind of King or Prince of Terror could possibly be more terrifying than our Majesty? It must be the fanciful writing of some Bard. But look at it now.¡± Everyone, despite being dozens of kilometers away, could feel the terrifying aura emanating from the City of Light. This aura was palpable, and even those without heightened perception abilities could sense it clearly. It was as if someone were casting a Fear Technique with a wide range. All the snakes, insects, rodents, and ants nearby had disappeared. The ground was carpeted with insect corpses, whilerger animals were nowhere to be seen, likely frightened away. ¡°Isn¡¯t this just a Fear Technique? What King of Terror? Are there people jumping out from the city?¡± Durken asked. ¡°No, not at all. In fact, the people outside the city have all been called in, and now close to seven hundred thousand people are crowding the City of Light.¡± Anthony said anxiously. He then asked, ¡°Where are Harvey and Lord Feiti? Why are only a few of you with Lord Anthony?¡± The only ones by Ange¡¯s side was Negris, Durken, and the Great Sage. This was evidently insufficient tounch an offensive on the City of Light. ¡°They¡¯re dealing with the Sorrow Angels. You sounded so desperate, so we came here first. Can¡¯t you yell for something other than help?¡± Negris responded disdainfully. Anthony scratched his nose, grinning awkwardly, ¡°I¡¯ve only called for what I couldn¡¯t handle myself.¡± Then he quickly changed the subject: ¡°Let¡¯s put that aside for now; what do we do now? I¡¯m worried about the hundreds of thousands of people inside the city.¡± There are one hundred thousand permanent residents in the City of Light, but as a Holy City, its boundaries do not end at its walls but keep expanding outwards.@@novelbin@@ At the foot of the mountain and on the ins, there are at least twenty-odd towns and settlements of various sizes. Many devout followers hade here from afar for a pilgrimage, inadvertently forming various settlements and towns. There are a variety of merchants, mercenaries, and delegations to meet the needs of the several hundred thousand residents, forming a vastwork of towns popted by seven to eight hundred thousand people. Majority of them had been summoned into the city, then the city gates were closed, and the terrifying aura started to spread. If they could sense this aura from such a distance, wouldn¡¯t it scare many people to death inside the city? The Great Sage suddenly said, ¡°This method seems somewhat like a sacrificial ritual ¨C gathering a bunch of people together to consume their flesh and souls.¡± ¡°It does, but does the Church of Light have such means? Even if they scare every person in the city to death, what good would that do?¡± Durken asked, bewildered. ¡°Let¡¯s ask,¡± Negris suggested. Anthony was stunned for a moment. Ask? Ask who? He was the one who knew the Church of Light best amongst them. Should they ask him? But he didn¡¯t know either. Ange then reached into the shadow on the ground and pulled up the God of Shadows. The God of Shadows looked rathernguid. Its shadow-crossing ability tries to avoid the shadows of powerful beings as it can¡¯t control their shadows; instead, they could control it. Ange grabbed it and simply stuffed it into his own shadow, rendering it immobile. Ange¡¯s formidable spiritual power locked the God of Shadows in the shadow firmly like a lock. ¡°You¡¯re suggesting that the God of Arbitration¡¯s trump card is this? The Fear Sacrifice? What is he trying to do?¡± Negris asked. The God of Shadows shook its head, ¡°Give me the nk God Statue. If I can¡¯t separate from the Light, I dare not answer any of your questions.¡± ¡°Light and Darknessbined. By that, do you mean that you share a divinity with Lord Light? Hence, the nk God Statue is so important to you? With an independent divinity, you could be an independent deity? I get it now. There¡¯s quite a lot at stake for you.¡± The God of Shadows hesitated for a moment before it gritted its teeth determinedly, ¡°I could submit to Lord Anthony and be a subordinate deity.¡± ¡°Gosh, that¡¯s too much information¡­ Oh well, so be it. Tell me about your ability. Can you only cross through shadows?¡± Negris couldn¡¯t help but ask. Anthony could no longer hold back and dragged it away, gripping it by the neck, ¡°Lord Nage, do you think this is an interview? People are about to die.¡± Nobody could defeat Negris, who was in vain trying to swing his little paws about as he was forcefully dragged aside. Ange took out the nk God Statue, and his Faith Elemental Force surged into it. After a few cycles, the statue was filled with Ange¡¯s power. Recing the god statue¡¯s power with his own, Ange could manipte it no matter whose consciousness it epted. The God of Shadows blundered eagerly into the statue. The once pure and wless nk God Statue started to cloud. Before long, the God of Shadows took control of the statue, and a more substantial shadow emerged, wrapping the statue in it. A quick check of its statuster, the God of Shadows sighed deeply, ¡°I never dreamt of being able to exist in this independent form.¡± ¡°Enough with the chatter, get to the point. What is the God of Arbitration up to?¡± Anthony urged. The God of Shadows replied, ¡°For years, no matter what happened, the God of Arbitration has never interfered. The only time he took action was during the Hemel insect gue hundreds of years ago. Do you know why? He has been looking for a way to rece the Master God, and now, he¡¯s found it.¡± ¡°The Master God? The Trinity Lord Divinity? The one from Heaven? That¡¯s bad!¡± As soon as he said that, Ange immediately opened the gate to Heaven and stepped through it. The Novel will be updated first on this website. Come back and continue reading tomorrow, everyone!